Immanuel Kant
CRITIQUE OF PURE REASON Unified Edition (with all variants from the 17 81 and 17 8 7 editions)
Translate...
305 downloads
2321 Views
12MB Size
Report
This content was uploaded by our users and we assume good faith they have the permission to share this book. If you own the copyright to this book and it is wrongfully on our website, we offer a simple DMCA procedure to remove your content from our site. Start by pressing the button below!
Report copyright / DMCA form
Immanuel Kant
CRITIQUE OF PURE REASON Unified Edition (with all variants from the 17 81 and 17 8 7 editions)
Translated
by
Werner S. Pluhar Introduction
by
Patricia Kitcher Hackett Publishing Company, Inc. INDIANAPOLIS/CAMBRIDGE
Immanuel Kant: 1724-1 804 The first edition of Critique of Pure Reason was originally published in 1 781; the second edition was originally published in 1 787 Copyright © 1 996 by Hackett Publishing Company, Inc. All rights reserved Printed in the United States of America 02 01 00 99 98 97 96 1 2 3 4 5 6
7
Cover design by Listenberger Design Associates Interior design by Dan Kirklin For further infonnation please address Hackett Publishing Company, Inc. P.O. Box 44937
Indianapolis, Indiana 46244-0937 Library of Congress Cataloging-in-Publication Data
Kant, Immanuel, 1724-1 804. [Kritik der reinen Vernunft. English] Critique of pure reasonlImmanuel Kant; translated by Werner S. Pluhar; introduced by Patricia Kitcher. Unified ed. p. cm. "With all variants from the 178 1 and 1787 editions." Includes bibliographical references and index. ISBN 0-87220-258-5. ISBN 0-87220-257-7 (pbk). 1. Knowledge, Theory of. 2. Causation. 3. Reason. I. Pluhar, Werner S., 1940II. Kitcher, Patricia. III. Title. B2778.E5P57 1996 121-dc21 96-37033 CIP .
The paper used in this publication meets the minimum requirements of American National Standard for Infonnation Sciences-Pennanence of Paper for Printed Library Materials, ANSI Z39.48- 1984.
This Book Is Dedicated to the Memory of
William H.
Y.
Hackett
(192 1-1 986) Founder of Hackett Publishing Company Encourager, Supporter, and Friend
CONTENTS
Dedication
v
Translator's Preface
xvii
Introduction by Patricia Kitcher 1. Reading the Critique Prefaces and Introduction: Kant's Central 2. Problem 3. Transcendental Aesthetic: The Science of Sensory Perception A. Perception B. Space, Time, and Mathematics C. Kant's Doctrines 4. The Transcendental Analytic: The Rules by Which We Think A. The Metaphysical Deduction B. The Transcendental Deduction C. The Analytic of Principles 5. Transcendental Dialectic: The Source of Metaphysical Error
xxv xxv
vii
xxvii xxxii xxxii xxxv xxxvii xxxix xxxix xlii xlix liii
CRITIQUE OF PURE REASON
2 3
Motto Dedication Preface to the First Edition Preface to the Second Edition Table of Contents for the First Edition Introduction to the First Edition I. II.
The Idea of Transcendental Philosophy The Division of Transcendental Philosophy
Introduction to the Second Edition I.
43 43 65 43
On the Distinction between Pure and Empirical Cognition
II.
5 15 41
43
We Are in Possession of Certain A Priori Cognitions, and Even Common Understanding Is Never without Them
III.
46
Philosophy Needs a Science That Will Determine the Possibility, the Principles, and the Range of All A Priori Cognitions
IV.
Synthetic Judgments V.
VII.
51
All Theoretical Sciences of Reason Contain Synthetic A Priori Judgments as Principles
VI.
48
On the Distinction between Analytic and
The General Problem of Pure Reason
55 59
Idea and Division of a Special Science under the Name of Critique of Pure Reason
Vlll
63
CONTENTS
I.
PART I.
TRANSCENDENTAL DOCTRINE OF ELEMENTS
69
TRANSCENDENTAL AESTHETIC
71 71
§ 1. Section I.
§ 2. § 3.
Space Metaphysical Exposition of This Concept
§ 4.
Conclusions from the Above Concepts
80 81
Time
85
Metaphysical Exposition of the Concept of Time
§ 5. § 6. § 7.
Elucidation
§ 8.
General Comments on Transcendental
Conclusions from these Concepts
Aesthetic Concluding the Transcendental Aesthetic
Introduction.
I. II.
III. IV.
DIVISION I. BOOK I. Chapter I.
94 1 04 1 05
Idea of a Transcendental Logic On Transcendental Logic
1 05 1 05 110
Analytic and Dialectic
111
On Logic As Such On the Division of General Logic into
On the Division of Transcendental Logic into Transcendental Analytic and Dialectic
1 15
TRANSCENDENTAL ANALYTIC
117
ANALYTIC OF CONCEPTS
118
On the Guide for the Discovery of All Pure
On the Understanding's Logical Use As Such
Section II.
§ 9.
87 87 90
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
Concepts of Understanding Section I.
85
Transcendental Exposition of the Concept of Time
PART II.
76 76
Transcendental Exposition o f the Concept of Space
Section II.
ix
1 19 121 1 23
On the Understanding's Logical Function in Judgments
1 23
x
CONTENTS
Section III. § 10.
§ 11. § 12.
Chapter II.
129 On the Pure Concepts of Understanding, or Categories
On the Deduction of the Pure Concepts of Understanding
Section I. § 1 3.
§ 14.
On the A Priori Bases for the Possibility of Experience l.
3. 4.
141
14 1 On the Principles of a Transcendental Deduction As Such Transition to the Transcendental Deduction of the Categories
Section II, First Edition.
2.
129 1 35 138
Preliminary Notice On the Synthesis of Apprehension in Intuition On the Synthesis of Reproduction in Imagination On the Synthesis of Recognition in the Concept Preliminary Explanation of the Possibility of the Categories as A Priori Cognitions
141 147 150 150 152 153 1 54 1 56 161
Section III, First Edition. On the Understanding's Relation to Objects As Such, and the Possibility of Cognizing Them A Priori Summary Presentation: That This Deduction of the Pure Categories of Understanding Is Correct and Is the Only One Possible
164
Section II, Second Edition. § 1 5. On the Possibility of a Combination As Such On the Original Synthetic Unity of § 16. Apperception
175 175
164
173
1 77
CONTENTS
§
17.
§ §
18. 19.
§
20.
§ §
21. 22.
§ §
23. 24.
§ §
25. 26.
§ 27.
BOOK II. Introduction.
The Principle of the Synthetic Unity of Apperception Is the Supreme Principle for All Use of the Understanding What Objective Unity of Self-Consciousness Is The Logical Form of All Judgments Consists in the Objective Unity of Apperception of the Concepts Contained in Them All Sensible Intuitions Are Subject to the Categories, Which Are Conditions under Which Alone Their Manifold Can Come Together in One Consciousness Comment A Category Cannot Be Used for Cognizing Things Except When It Is Applied to Objects of Experience On Applying the Categories to Objects of the Senses As Such
Section II.
185 186
187 188 190 195
ANALYTIC OF PRINCIPLES
204
197
On the Transcendental Power of Judgment
206
On the Schematism of the Pure Concepts of
209
System of All Principles of Pure Understanding
Section I.
183
201 203
Understanding
Chapter II.
180 182
Transcendental Deduction of the Universally Possible Use in Experience of the Pure Concepts of Understanding Result of This Deduction of the Concepts of Understanding Brief Sketch of This Deduction
As Such
Chapter I.
xi
On the Supreme Principle of All Analytic Judgments On the Supreme Principle of All Synthetic Judgments
220 222 225
xu
CONTENTS
Systematic Presentation of All the Synthetic Principles of Pure Understanding
229
1.
Axioms of Intuition: Their Principle: All Intuitions Are Extensive Magnitudes
233
2.
Anticipations of Perception: Their Principle: In All Appearances the Real That Is an Object of Sensation Has Intensive
3.
Analogies of Experience A. First Analogy: Principle of the Permanence of Substance B. Second Analogy: Principle of Temporal Succession According to the Law of
Section III.
Magnitude, i.e., a Degree
Causality
Third Analogy: Principle of Simultaneity According to the Law of Interaction or Community The Postulates of Empirical Thought As Such Elucidation Refutation of Idealism General Comment on the System of Principles
238 247 252
259
C.
4.
Chapter III.
283 283 288 298
On the Basis of the Distinction of All Objects As Such into Phenomena and Noumena
ApPENDIX
276
303
On the Amphiboly of Concepts of Reflection Which Arises through the Confusion of the Empirical with the Transcendental Use of
DIVISION II. Introduction. I. II.
Understanding
323
Comment on the Amphiboly of Concepts of Reflection
329
TRANSCENDENTAL DIALECTIC
346
On Transcendental Illusion On Pure Reason as the Seat of Transcendental Illusion
346
A. B. C.
On Reason As Such On the Logical Use of Reason On the Pure Use of Reason
351 351 354 356
CONTENTS
BOOK I. Section I. Section II. Section III. BOOK II. Chapter I.
xiii
ON THE CONCEPTS OF PURE REASON
359
On Ideas As Such On Transcendental Ideas
361
System of Transcendental Ideas
375
ON THE DIALECTICAL INFERENCES OF PURE REASON
380
On the Paralogisms of Pure Reason
382
367
The Paralogisms of Pure Reason, First Edition. First Paralogism, of Substantiality Second Paralogism, of Simplicity Third Paralogism, of Personality Fourth Paralogism, of Ideality (of Outer Relations) Observation on the Sum of Pure Psychology in Consequence of These Paralogisms
The Paralogisms of Pure Reason, Second Edition.
387 387 389 396 400 409 424
Refutation of Mendelssohn's Proof of the Soul's Permanence Concluding the Solution of the Psychological Paralogisms General Comment Concerning the Transition from Rational Psychology to Cosmology
439
Chapter II.
The Antinomy of Pure Reason
442
Section I.
System of Cosmological Ideas Antithetic of Pure Reason First Conflict of Transcendental
445
Section II.
Section III.
429 437
Comment on the First Antinomy Second Conflict of Transcendental Ideas Comment on the Second Antinomy Third Conflict of Transcendental Ideas Comment on the Third Antinomy Fourth Conflict of Transcendental Ideas Comment on the Fourth Antinomy
454 458 461 465 468 473 476 479 481
On the Interest of Reason in This Its Conflict
486
Ideas
xiv
CONTENTS
Section IV.
Section V.
Section VI. Section VII. Section VIII. Section IX.
I.
II.
III.
IV.
On the Transcendental Problems of Pure Reason Insofar as They Must Absolutely Be Capable of Being Solved Skeptical Presentation of the Cosmological Questions through All Four Transcendental Ideas Transcendental Idealism as the Key to Solving the Cosmological Dialectic Critical Decision of the Cosmological Dispute That Reason Has with Itself Pure Reason s Regulative Principle Regarding the Cosmological Ideas On the Empirical Use of the Regulative Principle of Reason in Regard to All Cosmological Ideas Solution of the Cosmological Idea of the Totality of Composition of Appearances of a World Whole Solution of the Cosmological Idea of the Totality of Division of a Whole Given in Intuition Concluding Comment on the Solution of the Mathematical-Transcendental Ideas, and Advance Notice on the Solution of the Dynamical-Transcendental Ideas Solution of the Cosmological Idea of Totality in the Derivation of World Events from Their Causes Possibility of the Causality through Freedom, as Reconc iled w ith the Universal Law of Natural Necessity Elucidation of the Cosmological Idea of a Freedom in Combination with the Universal Law of Natural Necessity Solution of the Cosmological Idea of Totality in the Dependence of Appearances As Regards Their Existence As Such Concluding Comment on the Entire Antinomy of Pure Reason
496
502 506 510 5 17
524
525
529
532
535
539
54 1
553 557
CONTENTS
Chapter III. Section I. Section II. Section III.
Section IV. Section V.
The Ideal of Pure Reason
Section VII.
560 560
On an Ideal As Such On the Transcendental Ideal (prototypon transcendentale) On Speculative Reason s Bases of Prooffor Inferring the Existence of a Supreme Being
572
Only Three Ways of Proving the Existence of God from Speculative Reason Are Possible
577
On the Impossibility of an Ontological Proof of the Existence of God On the Impossibility of a Cosmological Proof of the Existence of God Exposure and Explanation of the Dialectical Illusion in All Transcendental Proofs of the Existence of a Necessary Being
Section VI.
xv
On the Impossibility of the Physicotheological Proof [of the Existence of God] Critique of Any Theology Based on Speculative Principles of Reason
ApPENDIX TO THE TRANSCENDENTAL DIALECTIC
563
578 586
595 600 609 617
On the Regulative Use of the Ideas of Pure Reason
617
On the Final Aim of the Natural Dialectic of
II. Chapter I. Section I. Section II.
Human Reason
638
TRANSCENDENTAL DOCTRINE OF METHOD
663
The Discipline of Pure Reason
665
The Discipline of Pure Reason in Its Dogmatic Use The Discipline of Pure Reason in Regard to Its Polemic Use On the Impossibility of a Skeptical Satisfaction of Pure Reason as Disunited with Itself
Section III. Section IV.
The Discipline of Pure Reason in Regard to Hypotheses The Discipline of Pure Reason in Regard to Its Proofs
668 687
701 709 718
XVI
CONTENTS
Chapter II. Section I.
The Canon of Pure Reason
728
Section III.
On the Ultimate Purpose of the Pure Use of Our Reason On the Ideal of the Highest Good, as a Determining Basis of the Ultimate Purpose of Pure Reason On Opinion, Knowledge, and Faith
Chapter III.
The Architectonic of Pure Reason
755
Chapter IV.
The History of Pure Reason
771
Section II.
730
735 747
Selected Bibliography
775
Glossary
815
Index
843
TRANSLATOR'S PREFACE
Whereas interest in Immanuel Kant's Critique of Pure Reason is gratify ingly wide-spread, rather less so-not surprisingly-is the fluency in Ger man (especially in Kant's German) that one requires in order to read the work in the original. Thus most readers of the Critique outside of the German speaking countries continue to depend on reliable translations. There seems to be general agreement that the most reliable English translation, on bal ance, has thus far been Norman Kemp Smith's, published originally in 1929. 1 The very fact that his translation has held this lofty position for so many decades testifies to Kemp Smith's remarkable achievement as a trans lator. 2 On the other hand, the same decades-as might be expected-have also permitted Kant scholars to discover in his translation a considerable number of deficiencies of various types and degrees of seriousness;3 and IOther English translations are those by Francis Haywood ( 1 838), 1. M. D. Meiklejohn (1 855), and F. Max Miiller ( 1 881). For further information, see the bibliography in the back of this volume. 2In contrast, Kemp Smith's Commentary to Kant's 'Critique of Pure Reason ' (London: Mac millan, 1918; Atlantic Highlands, N.J.: Humanities Press International, 1992), although still widely read, has lost much of its influence. In the present translation Kemp Smith's Commen tary is nonetheless cited regularly in footnotes, along with selected other secondary sources.
3These include vanous types of mistranslations of terms or parts of sentences, defective and sometimes inconsistent interpretations of Kant's intended meaning (as discernible from the context or from the work as a whole), and even outright omissions of words, phrases, and whole sentences. Less well known is the degree to which Kemp Smith's translation tends to "sanitize" Kant's styLe, in places where enhancement of readability is not an issue. When Kant expresses himself in a dramatic, or witty, or deliberately casual manner, Kemp Smith usually expunges all such signs of flair, by substituting standard philosophical language and
X Vll
XVlll
TRANSLATOR'S PREFACE
thus there has gradually arisen a demand for Kant's
Critique
to be trans
lated into English yet again. This new translation of the Kritik der reinen
Vemunft Kant s magnum -
'
opus on epistemology and metaphysics-has profited immensely from vari ous contributions made by two eminent Kant scholars: Professor James W. Ellington (himself a translator of Kant, of considerable renown), and Pro fessor Patricia W. Kitcher. Ellington's contributions are indicated variously below. Kitcher's contribution is her superb introduction to this volume. In it,
she provides a roadmap to Kant's abstract and complex argumentation by firmly locating his project in the context of eighteenth-century-and current-attempts to understand the nature of the thinking mind and its abil ity to comprehend the physical universe. The present translation itself is based on the
Critique s
first and second
editions-respectively of 1781 and 1787 and known as editions A and B-as these appear in the standard edition of Kant's works,
Kants ge
sammelte Schriften, issued by the Koniglich PreuBische Akademie der Wis senschaften (Berlin: Walter de Gruyter & Co. and Predecessors, 1 902-). In that
Akademie
edition, B occupies volume 3, and A insofar as it deviates
from B is contained in volume 4; the editor for both is Benno Erdmann.
This translation presents A and B-with their page numbers on its 4 margins --either simultaneously, or successively, or B as text and A as a footnote,5 depending on the. degree of variation between the two editions in a given portion of the work. Where A and B themselves have variant readings, I have considered them all, but I indicate only the more signifi cant ones, as seems appropriate for a translation. Apart from a few excep tions, all of which are footnoted, the translation follows the original in the paragraphing and in the use of typographical emphasis and parentheses (likewise in the omission of quote marks), but deals more liberally with such other punctuation marks as dashes, colons, semicolons, and so on.
My foremost aims in this translation are high degrees of both accuracy and readability. To achieve such accuracy, I rely heaVily-apart, of course, from very careful interpretation of the original-on terminological consiserasing any hint of drama. Indeed, Kant's reputation as-in the Critique, at any rate-an un inspired
writer is due less to the work itself than to this method of translation.
4Because translation frequently alters the sequence of words (and sometimes of larger lin guistic units), the page breaks assumed for
A and B in this volume can only approximate those
in the original. 'Footnotes containing Kantian materials are clearly distinguished from translator's footnotes, as I explain below.
TRANSLATOR 'S PREFACE
XIX
tency. Thus technical tenns in the original are, as far as possible, translated always by the same English tenn;6 and this English tenn is never used, without alerting the reader, to render some other expression. E.g., the Eng lish verb 'to detennine' (similarly for the noun) is used always to translate
bestimmen,
never such other Gennan verbs as
ausmachen
(which, in the
sense that approximates 'to determine,' means 'to establish' or 'to de cide'). The tenn 'pure' always renders rein, never such nontechnical tenns as bloj3 ('mere'); and so on. And although the word 'thing' is indeed used for lack of an alternative-to translate both mous
Ding
and the nearly synony
Sache, this fact is indicated in a footnote whenever the two Gennan
tenns occur in the same context; the same applies to 'existence' as render ing both Existenz and the synonymous Dasein; and so on. Likewise, Be ziehung is translated by 'reference' (or, in some contexts, by 'respect') and not-unless so indicated-by the less specific 'relation' (which nonnally renders
Verhiiltnis, Relation); deutlich
is translated by 'distinct,' not by
'clear' (which renders the Gennan klar, a tenn with a different meaning);
Kritik is translated always by 'critique,' never by the far from synonymous 'criticism.' The same terminological consistency extends, ajortiori, to tech nical distinctions in the original. E.g., the English word 'real' (similarly for the noun) is used only for Kant's technical tenn real, never for his like wise technical but far from synonymous tenn wirklich, which means 'ac tual' ; and 'to demonstrate' is used only for Kant's technical tenn demon strieren, never for beweisen, which means 'to prove' (nor for any other such tenns). 7 Likewise, Kant's Erkenntnis (similarly for the verb) is translated always as 'cognition,' 8 never as 'knowledge,' which renders Wissen. The 6In contexts where the same original term has a significantly different meaning--e.g., where
Bestimmung means not 'determination' but 'vocation'-the original term is given in a foot
note.
7Translating wirklich (without alerting the reader) both as 'actual' and as 'real' (similarly for the nouns) creates illusory distinctions. See, e.g., Kemp Smith's rendering of A 49l -951B 5 1 9-
23, esp. A 4951B 523. Moreover, using 'real' (without alerting the reader) to translate both wirklich and real erases a Kantian distinction, and is thus able to create illusory contradic tions. Consider, e.g., the result of Kemp Smith's ambiguous use of 'reality' at A 853-54 B 881-82. Similarly, Kemp Smith's liberal use of 'to demonstrate' for terms other than demon strieren (such as beweisen. erweisen, zeigen, etc.) frequently creates illusory inconsistencies; see, e.g., A 733-361B 761-64, where Kant's very definition of 'demonstrations' (Demonstra lionen) immediately follows, and indeed even includes, loose uses of 'to demonstrate' (for zeigen) and 'demonstrable' (for erweislich) that conflict with the definition given there. =
80r, in a few identified cases. as 'recognition'
xx
1RANSLATOR'S PREFACE
two German terms are by no means synonymous, and hence translating both as 'knowledge' leads to grave inaccuracies, including illusory contradic tions. 9 To enhance readability, I use various grammatical and terminological de vices to clarify the original sentences and their interconnections as far as this can be done without impairing accuracy. One such device 1 0 consists in dividing up most of Kant's notoriously long sentences-a task that can be quite difficult, especially when the sentences are conditional in form. Another consists in replacing Kant's frequently ambiguous uses of 'the former . . . the latter' or 'the first . . . the second' by the appropriate refer ents. l l Yet another consists in interpolating l 2 (or, in the less urgent cases, sup plying in footnotes) individual words or short phrases that will assist readers especially those less experienced-in recognizing connections, transitions, or contrasts that are, in my view, plainly
intended
in the original but are
left rather less explicit and clear there. E.g., such words as 'thus' or 'for' are sometimes inserted to clarify the transition to what is in fact intended as a consequence or as a premise; 'but' is sometimes substituted for 'and' (or vice versa) if the result renders Kant's intended meaning more clearly in English; or a word in the singular may be changed to the corresponding plural (or vice versa) when the singular might sound strange or misleading in English; and so on. All the philosophically
only these,
are marked by brackets. Marking
important interpolations, and all interpolations by brackets
would, as I have come to believe as a result of a special minisurvey con9See, e.g., Kemp Smith's contradictory rendering of A 8 1 8 B 846, and then the further con tradiction between it and his translation of A 828-29 B 856--5 7. In some cases, for lack of a good alternative, I do use the word 'knowledge' to translate another Kantian term, Kennt nis or Kenntnisse--e.g., when using the more literal 'acquaintance' would result in convo luted constructions-and in a few cases I similarly use 'to know' for the verb kennen. But all these cases (except for a few thoroughly nontechnical ones) are identified in footnotes. =
=
100f course, readability is aided also by the fact-which I would not, however, call a device that I, too, employ most of the technical English vocabulary that has traditionally been used in translating Kant. In cases where my translation of a technical Kantian term breaks with tradition--e.g., in my use of 'presentation' (exceptions noted) rather than 'representation' for Vorstellung-I explain and defend my choice in a footnote. In addition, the German equiva lents for the most important Kantian terms are given in footnotes at the beginning of major portions of the work.
II Deciding which referents are appropriate is frequently a matter of considerable interpretation-as, indeed, is translating any Kantian text. 12I.e., inserting, substituting, or altering.
TRANSLATOR'S PREFACE
XXI
ducted on this very issue,I3 be both unnecessary and, for many readers, in jurious to readability-as would, I believe, abandoning the interpolations themselves. This volume is copiously annotated. Kant's own footnotes as well as notes containing Kantian passages from A that differ from B are distin guished from translator's footnotes by their larger print, by bold footnote and reference numbers, and by the absence of brackets around these Kant ian materials. Translator's footnotes use the smaller print, have no bold numbers, and are bracketed. When a footnote containing Kantian materi
let ter, and its number in references is the same as that of the original note but
als has a footnote in tum, this latter note is referenced by a lowercase is followed by this lowercase letter.
The translator's footnotes, a substantial number of which lowe to James Ellington, are intended to assist readers-especially those less experienced-in a variety of ways. A large number of these notes (many contributed by Ellington) offer explanatory comments of various kinds. Oth ers provide translations-all of them my own--of Latin or other foreign expressions, indicate variant readings, and so on. A considerable number of translator's notes (many again supplied by Ellington) contain references to other relevant passages in the
Critique;
others provide relevant infor
mation pertaining to other Kantian works; still others give references to various authors-in particular, references (contributed ton) to secondary sources regarding various topics in the
mostly by Elling Critique. Another
large number of footnotes (all my own) is terminological. Of these, the longer ones explain or defend my translations of certain German terms. The short ones give the original German terms whenever an original term has been translated rather freely or is otherwise of special importance or inter est; whenever terminological relationships between adjacent terms in the original have either been lost or (seemingly) been created in translation; or whenever either the same German term is translated by different English terms or different German terms are translated by the same English term
13The minisurvey was conducted on my behalf by Hackett Publishing Company. It was sent to eleven noted Kant scholars (named below, in my acknowledgments), all of whom gra ciously responded. The results were communicated to me by the publisher. Upon careful con sideration of these philosophers' arguments on both sides of the issue (some of which appro pnately involved the concerns of students), I found myself persuaded to adopt the present policy concerning bracketed interpolations.
XXll
TRANSLATOR'S PREFACE
in the same context.14 The Gennan tenns are usually given in such foot notes
not as they
appear in the original, but as they can be found-by in
terested readers-in a modem Gennan dictionary: viz., in their modern spelling, and the verbs in the infinitive, the nouns in the nominative, etc. References provided in this volume are given as follows. Page refer ences in the tables of contents-the main table from B (as expanded to in clude auxiliary materials of this volume) and the short table from A (which precedes Kant's Introduction)-are to the pagination of the present vol ume. In footnotes, references to the text of the
Critique
are given as 'A'
and 'B ' followed by the page numbers in those editions, which appear on the margins of this translation. Similarly, references to footnotes give the A and B page containing the footnote's reference Dumber, and then the foot note's number (or number and lowercase letter) preceded either by 'n.' or
notes contain bracketed notes provided by the translator. Ref erences to other works by Kant are to the Akademie edition, and are given by 'br. n.' ('ns.' or 'br. ns.' in the plural)-respectively, for
ing Kantian materials, or
as 'Ak.' followed by volume and page numbers and, as applicable, by 'n.' for a note.
IS
At the end of this volume will be found a selected bibliography, a glos sary of the most important Gennan tenns in the
Critique
along with my
translations of them, and an index.
Acknowledgments:
In the course of my work I frequently checked the
translation by Nonnan Kemp Smith, and occasionally also those by F. Max
Milller and by J.M.D. Meiklejohn, as well as the abridged translation by
Wolfgang Schwarz.16 I wish to express my immense gratitude to Profes sor James W. Ellington not only for the contributions already mentioned, but especially for his careful reading of the entire manuscript and for his highly valuable criticisms. I am greatly indebted to Professor Patricia Kitcher for having written such a splendid introduction to this volume. I address sincerest thanks to the various members of Hackett Publishing Company for their splendidly professional and very friendly collaboration at every stage of this project. With regard to the previously mentioned minil"The purpose in Jhese latter two cases-as I indicated above in discussing accuracy-is to alert the reader that a terminological distinction in the translation has no counterpart in the original, or vice versa. 15References in this volume's index are given, as indicated there, in a slightly abbreviated form. 16Immanuel Kant, Critique of Pure Reason-Concise Text (Aalen: Scientia. 1982).
1RANSLATOR'S PREFACE
xxiii
survey concerning bracketed interpolations, I am grateful to the following Kant scholars for providing me with their valuable (and in some cases gen erously elaborate) feedback and advice: Professors Henry E. Allison, Karl Ameriks, Richard E. Aquila, Stephen Engstrom, Anthony C. Genova, Mary Gregor, Salim Kemal, Rudolf A. Makkreel, Geoffrey Payzant, Timothy Sean Quinn, and Jay F. Rosenberg. My warmest and deepest gratitude be longs, once again, to my wife and colleague, Professor Evelyn B. Pluhar, who has contributed substantially to this project on several levels.
WERNER SCHRUTKA PLUHAR The Pennsylvania State University Fayette Campus, Uniontown
INTRODUCTION
1 . Reading the Critique Immanuel Kant ( 1 724-1804) is usually regarded as the most important fig ure in the history of Modern Western Philosophy. The Critique ofPure Rea son ( 1 78 1 , 1 78 7) is his magnum opus. It is a very difficult book to read, much less understand. Professor H. J. Paton of Oxford compared follow ing the "windings and twistings" of the argument of the central portion of the book, the "Transcendental Deduction," to crossing the Great Arabian desert, 1 and he was one of Kant's most sympathetic interpreters. The contemporary reader faces four different challenges in grappling with this text. The most obvious is Kant's language. Even a gifted trans lator cannot evade Kant's deliberate introduction of new and complex terms to present his theories. There is a point to this terminology. By using un familiar language, Kant alerts his readers to the fact that his words have special and very precise senses that must be carefully understood if his theo ries are to be understood. A second challenge arises from the sheer diffi culty of his topics. As St. Augustine observed long ago, we all know what time is until we are asked. Exactly the same point could be made about Kant's other central topics: space, mathematics, causation, and the subjects and objects of knowledge. The first two problems are compounded by a third: the interconnected ness of Kant's theories. As we will see (p. lv-Ivi), Kant believed that all of ' Kant's Metaphysics of Experience. New York: Humanities, 1 936, vol. I, p. 547.
xxv
XXVI
INTRODUCTION
knowledge had to fit into an interconnected whole, because the test of truth of any particular claim was its ability to relate to other, independently es tablished, claims. Since he practiced what he preached, his discussions of some hard problems, time, for example, anticipate other hard problems, such as the nature of causation, so that his accounts of time and causation will be not only consistent, but mutually supporting. Although the virtues of this method are obvious, the result is that the work needs to be under stood as a whole and that many early discussions are unclear until reread in the light of later discussions. The fourth challenge is common to his torical texts, but somewhat worse with the Critique. Kant shared an intel lectual context with his original audience. Just as a contemporary writer would not have to mention Einstein's name in considering the implications of relativity theory, there was no need for Kant to mention Newton or Leib niz in discussing questions about the nature of space or Hume in defend ing the unity of the self or the necessity of causation. This problem is more severe in Kant's writings, because he was more concerned to present his own theories in a systematic fashion than to engage in point-by-point de bates with opponents. As a result, other thinkers are usually not men tioned, even though their work provided the context for Kant's own re flections on a particular topic. In sum, reading Kant is unusually difficult because he does not supply an adequate historical context, he uses unfamiliar temls, and he aims to present a systematically unified solution to a group of very hard problems. My purpose in this introduction is to try to lighten some of those burdens. Although I will discuss the major sections of the Critique in order, my re marks will often be informed by material that is available only later in the text. One aim is to familiarize readers with some of Kant's hard topics, partly by supplying historical context and partly by relating them to con temporary intellectual projects. I will also introduce readers to Kant's most important terminology, both by situating it in his distinctive ways of look ing at particular issues and by supplying contemporary equivalents where possible. The Critique is a bit like a jigsaw puzzle, in that, once some pieces are in place, it becomes progressively easier to figure out what other pieces must look like. My hope is that readers will achieve a sufficient grasp of some key terms and issues, which can then serve as anchors for develop ing a more comprehensive understanding. No introduction and no teacher can tum Kant's Critique of Pure Rea son into easy reading. Would-be students of Kant must be prepared to ex ert considerable intellectual effort if they hope to read this book with a tol-
INTRODUCTION
xxvii
erable degree of understanding. Like doing a difficult jigsaw or crossword puzzle, there is also a great deal of intellectual satisfaction in unraveling the mysteries of the
Critique. For most people, however, that is hardly the
point. In achieving some mastery of Kant's thought, readers put them selves in a position to understand many of the deepest currents in the his tory of ideas since Kant, including developments in our understanding of science, religion, literature, and the human mind itself. They also add an incredibly valuable tool to their own capacities to understand such com plex phenomena, the ability to see them through Kant's eyes. Although I agree with standard complaints about the obscurity of the text, my own view of Kant's philosophical analyses echoes that expressed by one of his early admirers, the great German writer Johann Wolfgang von Goethe, who compared the experience of reading a page of Kant to the feeling he had when entering a brightly lit room.2
2.
Prefaces and Introduction: Kant's Central Problem Kant wrote two somewhat different versions of the
Critique,
one in 1 78 1
and one in 1 78 7. Following standard practice and this translation, I refer
to
passages in the first by
..
N'
and the pages in the standard German
edition, and passages in the second by "B" and its paging in the same
edition. On the most general level, the topics of the
Critique of Pure Reason are
epistemology and metaphysics. Epistemology is the study of knowledge. Typical issues include the extent of human knowledge, its degree of cer tainty, and its sources of evidence and justification. A long-standing dis pute in epistemology concerns whether all knowledge is gained through sensory experience or whether we are born with some "innate" knowl edge. Metaphysics is concerned with basic questions about the nature of reality: what caused the universe? what is the nature of space and time? are all events caused? is all of the furniture of the universe composed of one kind of substance, matter, or are some things "immaterial"?
Kant touches on all of these epistemological and metaphysical topics at one point or another in the Critique, although some are much more promi nent than others. Unlike his predecessors (and some successors!), he also by A. Schopenhauer, Lexicon der Goethe Zitote, herausgegeben von Ziirich: Artemis, 1968, p. 444.
2 A conversation reported
Richard Dobel,
XXVlll
INTRODUCTION
considers the relation between epistemology and metaphysics. One of Kant's basic messages in the Critique-perhaps his most basic-is that phi losophy errs when it tries to draw metaphysical conclusions about the way the world is apart from our knowledge on the basis of epistemological ar guments about how we do or must acquire knowledge of the world. Kant prefaces the
Critique
with a lament about the sad state of meta
physics. But his program for reform is thoroughly epistemological. It is only by working our way to a better understanding of the sources and limits of human knowledge that we will be able to figure out what metaphysical questions can fruitfully be asked. In the Introduction, Kant sharpens the focus of his inquiry to three central questions. To understand the impor tance of these questions, consider the following three knowledge claims, one from mathematics, one from Newtonian physics, and one from meta physics:
( 1 ) The sum of the interior angles of a triangle equals 180°. (2) At sea level, an unsupported object will fall at a rate of 9.8 mlsec2• (3) All events are caused. Although the third claim may seem a little strange, perhaps a little bold, the first two should be completely familiar from high school science and
mathematics. What Kant noticed was that aU three of these claims are a little strange, and strange in the same way. Consider the second. Although it lacks the word "all," the claim is meant to be a universal generalization; it is not that some particular object will fall with that acceleration, but that any and all past, present, and future objects will accelerate at exactly the same rate. But how could we know that? Obviously. we have not seen ev ery single object in the universe behave in this manner. The universality is explicit in the third claim, but it is equally present in the first as well as in the second. The first statement does not merely claim that a particular tri angle (such as the illustrative one drawn on the blackboard by a geometry teacher) has this property; it claims that they
all do.
One of Kant's major points in the Introduction is that there is an appar ent problem with our knowledge of universal claims, such as those en countered in mathematics, science, and metaphysics: how is it possible? Kant notes another odd feature of these claims. This feature can be seen most easily by considering a contrasting sort of claim, for example, "all the coins in my wallet are silver-colored." Even though this claim is uni-
INTRODUCTION
XXIX
versal in fonn, there is no problem about how it could be established. I could simply check them all. But that is not the only difference between this claim and a law of physics or mathematics. Although the claim about the contents of my wallet is true, it is true by sheer coincidence. There is nothing about being in my wallet that makes coins silver-colored. By con trast, it has seemed to many people (and especially to Kant), that there is nothing accidental about all earthly Objects accelerating at 9.8 m1sec2. If an object is released near the earth's surface, then it has to fall at this rate, because it is a law of nature. That is why the claim can be made about all past, present, and even future objects. Kant expresses this difference be tween claims such as the one about my wallet and the laws of physics and mathematics by saying that the fonner are "contingent," meaning that they
happen to be true, and have to be true (B 2-6).
just
the latter are "necessary," meaning that they
What Kant calls the "genuine universality" of laws of nature and math ematics (as opposed to the accidental universality of the claim about the coins in my wallet) is directly related to their necessity. It is precisely be cause these laws are thought to be necessary that they apply to all past, present, and future objects. A future object will fall at this rate, because it
has
to. The properties of genuine universality (hereafter "universality, " which is also Kant's usage) and necessity are also related in that neither can be established by sensory evidence. As David Hume (1111-1776) ar gued (and hence Kant did not bother to), the observation of past objects and events can only tell us that a generalization has been true in the past, it can never show that it had to be true, or that it will be true in the future. There is a serious problem, then, about how we could ever know the truth of universal and necessary claims. To signal their odd status, Kant de
scribes such claims as "a priori." This is a complex concept for Kant, and we can now understand three of its interrelated meanings. A claim is "a priori" for Kant if that claim cannot be established by appeal to sensory observation or past experience and if that claim is necessary and univer sal. The contrasting term is "a posteriori, " which indicates that a knowl
edge claim is based on the evidence of the senses, and hence is neither nec essary nor (genuinely) universal (B 2-6).
Philosophers prior to and after Kant have offered a possible solution to the problem of a priori knowledge claims. The suggestion is that these claims are true because of the meanings of the words they contain. To take what has always been the parade case, the idea is that a claim like "all bachelors are unmarried" is universally and necessarily true-any future
xxx
INTRODUCTION
bachelors will also have to be unmarried-because of the meanings of the words or, as Hume put it, because of the relations between the "ideas" 'bachelor' and 'unmarried'. Kant takes note of this tradition, when he in troduces the notions of "analytic" and "synthetic" judgments (A 61B 1 0). An "analytic" judgment is one in which the predicate concept (or term) is "thought in" the subject concept. By contrast, the subject concept of a "synthetic" j udgment does not "contain" the concept used in its predi cate. The suggestion would be that we know that all past, present, and fu ture bachelors will have to be unmarried, because the idea of being un married is part of (or thought in or contained in) the idea of being a bachelor. In this way, the problem of a priori knowledge is solved for those judgments that are both a priori and analytic. We know that these claims are true, because as soon as we grasp the idea "bachelor", for example, we understand that it involves being unmarried. If the claims of science, mathematics, and metaphysics are all analytic, then the apparent problem of their a priori status disappears. But it is ex actly here that Kant makes one of his most original contributions. His point is very simple. If analytic claims are true just by virtue of the relations among our ideas, then they would not seem to have any relation to the world around us. The great weakness with the "analytic" solution to the problem of a priori knowledge is that, if they only describe the relations among our ideas, then it is totally mysterious how the laws of mathemat ics and physics (at least) can be so remarkably useful in predicting the fu ture course of actual events. Further, if the laws of science and mathemat ics are a matter of our ideas, then, seemingly, we could change them simply by adopting new ideas. Because it trivializes the status of these subjects (and metaphysics), Kant rejected the analytic solution. This led him to his famous formulation of the central problem of the Critique: How are syn thetic a priori knowledge claims possible? That is: how is it possible for us ever to be j ustified in making the universal and necessary claims that occur in mathematics, science, and metaphysics once we recognize that these claims cannot simply be a matter of the relations among our own ideas? (B 19ff.) His strategy for resolving the problem was to examine how knowledge IS possible in general. Although he agreed with the Empiricists that all knowledge begins with experience (A lIB I), he wanted to inquire whether all aspects of knowledge derive from sensory evidence or whether some aspects arise from our minds' ways of dealing with sensory experience (B 1-2). His project is to try to determine the necessary conditions for any
INTRODUCTION
xxxi
knowledge at all and, in particular, to detennine whether any of these nec essary conditions come from the mind itself. A fourth meaning of "a
priori" for Kant is "in the mind prior to the perception of any object" (B
4 1). More precisely, his strategy is to try to show that the universal and necessary (and hence a
priori)
claims of mathematics, science, and meta
physics owe their special status to the fact that certain conditions, which are necessary for knowledge in general, lie a
priori
in the mind and en
able it to deal with sensory experience. To anticipate, his conclusion will be that some claims of metaphysics, mathematics, and science are universally and necessarily true of all the ob jects of which we can ever have any knowledge, because those claims re flect the ways in which our minds work-and must work-if we are going to be able to have any knowledge at all based on the evidence presented to our senses. This was an entirely novel way to try to demonstrate the truth of knowledge claims, as Kant well realized. Perhaps somewhat immod estly, he compared his revolution in epistemology to the Copernican revo lution in astronomy. Still, the analogy is helpful. Copernicus reversed the usual perspective by considering whether the earth moved around the sun, rather than the standard view that the sun and all the celestial bodies re volved around the earth. The standard view in epistemology is that our knowledge claims can be vindicated only by showing that our thoughts about objects conform to what the objects themselves are like. Kant of
fered a new perspective. He urges us to consider vindicating our knowl edge claims by inquiring whether the objects of which we can have knowl edge must conform to our ways of knowing (B xvi-xvii). Because of the unusual nature of his enterprise, Kant gave it a special name: "transcendental" philosophy. The goal of transcendental philoso phy is to investigate the necessary conditions for knowledge with a view to showing that some of those necessary conditions are a priori, universal and necessary features of our knowledge, that derive from tbe mind's own ways of dealing with the data of the senses. The term "transcendental" has often been a source of confusion, because it includes three not obvi
( 1) the idea that some conditions are necessary for (2) the idea that some claims are a priori, in stating uni versal and necessary features of the world. and (3) the idea that some fea ously related ideas: knowledge and
tures of our knowledge are a
priori,
in the sense that they do not derive
from sensory evidence, but from our minds' ways of dealing with sensory evidence. What is distinctive about Kant's philosophy is his belief that some of the necessary conditions for knowledge are also a
priori,
in all four
xxxii
INTRODUCTION
senses of that term: they are universal, necessary, cannot be established by sensory experience, and reflect the mind's ways of dealing with sensory experience; the term "transcendental" constantly draws attention to that complex doctrine.
3.
Transcendental Aesthetic: The Science of Sensory Perception A. Perception. Kant begins his inquiries with an assumption that there are (at least) two quite different mental faculties involved in achieving knowl edge, sensibility and understanding, or, in contemporary tenninology, per ception and conception (A 1 91B 33). Although the distinction between these faculties is as pervasive now as it was in Kant's day, it is nonetheless prob lematic. To my knowledge, no one has ever been able to say exactly what the difference between the two faculties comes to. The general idea is that perception involves the sense organs and conception involves concepts, but it is an open question whether our concepts constrain or influence percep tion, and it may well be that some concepts essentially involve perceptual images. Kant did not intend his use of this distinction to settle any of these psychological questions. Rather his assumption of two faculties rests on epistemological (and ordinary psychological) grounds. His epistemologi cal point is that we can have knowledge of the world around us only if we have some faculty for taking in information about that world and some fac ulty for drawing useful connections between past, present, and future bits of sensory infonnation. Failing that, we could never use our experience with objects to enable us to understand how they and similar objects will be have in the future. Kant's distinction also honors ordinary usage. At least at first glance, there appears to be a significant difference between seeing a beautiful garden and having the thought that it would be more pleasant to sit in a beautiful garden while reading. Although it has other important topics. as we will see, the central topic of the first part of the Critique, the Transcendental Aesthetic. is what Kant called the "science of a priori sensibility" (A 211B 35). What he meant is that, true to his transcendental approach, he is going to investigate percep tion, which is a necessary condition for knowledge or cognition, to deter mine whether it contains any a priori elements that are themselves neces sary for knowledge. At this point it is critical to recall the multiple meanings of "a priori. " We are looking for elements which are necessary and uni-
INTRODUCTION
xxxiii
versal features of perceptual experience and which do not derive from sen sory experience. How are we to find such features? To understand Kant's method, we need some further terminology. Let us take "presentation" to be the most general term for any mental state that is about an object. A perception of a beautiful garden, a judgment that "Socrates is wise," or a belief that "Emma Woodhouse was clueless" would all be presentations of, respectively, a beautiful garden, Socrates and wisdom, and a fictional person with an unfortunate character trait. Kant's method is to start with a presentation of, for example, a body, and then to subtract the conceptual elements (such as the thought that bodies can re sist force), and then to subtract those elements of the presentation that can be derived from the senses, such as color and hardness. Whatever remains, if anything, would have to be the faculty of perception's own contribution to the presentation (A 20-2 1 1B 34-35). This method of "isolating" the a priori contributions of the faculty of perception is both more and less difficult than it may appear. As already noted, since it is not clear exactly what the perception/conception distinc tion involves, it is not obvious how to subtract away the conceptual ele ments. Oddly, the second subtraction, of the elements contributed by the senses, is more straightforward. Kant could take advantage of the work of his predecessors, who had noticed that the retina of the eye that receives visual stimulation could not contain any information about depth. To see their point, think of vision geometrically. The retina can register informa tion from only one point on any given line of sight. For example, if you look at a pencil pointing away from you, then you can see only the eraser. That end of the pencil will occlude all the rest. But the same is true for each of the lines of sight. Whatever you see "first" along each line of sight will block out anything else on that line of sight. Hence, depth itself which is the distance from the eye along the lines of sight---<:annot reg ister on the retina. To recall a familiar concept from geometry, a retinal image is a planar projection of the seen object. Now, without depth infor mation, it is also impossible to determine either the length or the width of an object. If you tilt the pencil slightly, so that you can see the other end, but still hold it at almost 1 800 to your eye, then it will make a very short projection on your retina, whatever its actual length, and the same is true for width that is "foreshortened" by an odd visual angle. Since the retina cannot supply depth information, it cannot inform us about the length or width of objects either; that is, it cannot provide information about their "extension" (or extent) in space or their shape (since shape is constituted
XXXIV
INTRODUCTION
by length, width, and depth) (A 20-2 lIB 34-35). Hence Kant concluded that an object's shape or spatial configuration is a property contributed by the faculty of perception itself. This conclusion is strange, because we certainly seem to see the shapes of objects. Kant is not, however, denying that our perceptions of objects include lots of information about their shapes. What he is denying is that this information comes straight in through our visual organ. His claim is that, unlike colors, which are directly registered on the retina (in the cones), the perceptual faculty must interpret the two-dimensional information on the retina as a three-dimensional array. Perhaps the best way to understand his view is to think about "planar projections," that is, the two-dimensional shape of the shadows of solid objects. As you may recall from geometry, differently shaped solid figures can have the same planar projection. Given just a planar projection, it could be interpreted as the projection of many different three-dimensional shapes, even though many shapes would also be ruled out as possible interpretations. I believe that this is Kant's point: the sensory information registered on our visual organ constrains, but does not determine, a three-dimensional visual image; the production of that im age requires work from the faculty of perception. In contemporary termi nology, Kant's claim would be that the sensory data on our retinas must be processed by our perceptual systems before the visual perception of a house, for example, is possible. Since this processing results in a percep tion with spatial properties, Kant describes space as the "fonn of pure in tuition" (or "perception," in contemporary terminology), meaning that all perceptions will have spatial properties, because these properties are the result of "pure" (that is, not from the senses) processes that lie our perceptual faculty (A 20IB 34).
a
priori
in
Many contemporary cognitive scientists would agree with Kant that vi sual images do not emerge simply from retinal data, but require a great deal of processing by the visual system. Kant goes on, however, to draw some quite startling philosophical conclusions. His first concern is to ar gue that the spatial properties of objects are not dispensable features of them. On the contrary, they are necessary conditions for any knowledge or cognition of objects. (Knowledge is usually thought to require justified true belief; cognition is a weaker relation, such as perceiving an object or dis tinguishing that object from others.) He offers a straightforward epistemo logical argument. It is not possible to have any knowledge or cognition of an object without being able to distinguish that object from all others. Fail ing the ability to separate that object from others, it would not even be clear
INTRODUCTION
xxxv
which object the knowledge or cognition is about. As Kant observes here (A 23-241B 38-39), but makes clearer later with an example, it is not pos sible to distinguish one object from all others, a drop of water, for ex ample, from all others, unless that object is located in space (A 2631B 319). The idea is roughly that the spatiality of an object allows us to keep track of it through space and hence to distinguish it from any qualitatively alike objects. Although this argument about the necessity of spatiality for distin guishing objects has been much debated, there is fairly general agreement that Kant has at least made a good case for the claim that the spatial fea tures of objects are necessary for any knowledge of them. His further claims remain highly controversial. B. Space, Time, and Mathematics. Beyond the "science of a priori per ception," the Transcendental Aesthetic is essentially concerned with two ap parently unrelated issues, the nature of space and time and the synthetic priori status
a
of mathematics. Although both are large issues, I will try to pro
vide some sense of the problems that Kant was addressing and of why he thought they had anything to do with perception. For many years before Kant wrote the Critique, many of the best minds in Europe had been seriously en gaged in a debate about the nature of space and time. Very roughly, the fol lowers of Isaac Newton (1642-1727) believed that space, for example, was a preexisting container into which objects were placed (either by God or by natural forces). The key point was that space did not depend on the exist ence of objects; it was real independently of whether any objects occupied it. In sharp opposition, the followers of Gottfried Wilhelm von Leibniz
(1646-1716) regarded space as nothing more than a system of relative po sitions among objects. On their side, the Leibnizians had the important point that space could not be seen directly; all we ever see are objects in space, not space itself. The Newtonians thought they had science on their side. Al though space could not be directly perceived, it had to exist, because forces are real, which meant that acceleration had to be real, which meant that dis tance through space and time had to be real. Beyond the question of space's dependence on objects, particular problems about the infinite extent and in finite divisibility of space and time had also arisen, problems to which Kant returned in a later portion of the Critique (the Antinomies). Kant himself had tried to defend Newton in an early paper,3 but he was highly dissatisfied with 3 "Conceming the ultimate foundation of the differentiation of regions in space" ( 1 768). in
Kant's Precritical Writings. G. B. Kerford and D. E. Walford. trans. and eds., New York:
Bames and Noble. 1968' 36-43
xxxvi
INTRODUCTION
his own solution. In the Critique, he appears to have given up any hope of resolving questions about the nature of space and time by appeals to ob servation or scientific theory. Still there is the obvious fact that objects ap pear to be in spatial relations to each other and to the perceiver. Kant's so lution to this debate is to maintain that space is the a priori fonn of human perception. As such, it is ( I) real, in the sense that all the objects of which we will ever have any cognition will be spatial; but it is also (2) ideal, in the sense that we have no idea whether objects have spatial properties in dependently of our spatial perceptions of them (A 26-30IB 42-45). This is one of the first conclusions of "transcendental idealism," Kant's own name for his philosophical system, and we need to pause and consider it carefully to avoid some standard misunderstandings. Recall that one of Kant's main themes is that we should not hastily draw metaphysical conclusions from epistemological premises. All of the points we have considered are epistemological. One premise (which is cast in se rious doubt by contemporary physics) is that neither observation nor sci entific theory can reveal the nature of space. Another is that spatial prop erties appear necessary for the differentiation of objects. A third is that the senses cannot by themselves supply spatial infonnation. Since these pre mises all concern our ways of knowing about space, we are in no position to draw conclusions about what space is like in itself (A 42IB 59-60). This is important to bear in mind, because readers are often tempted to assume that, since Kant claims that the spatial features of perceived objects arise in part through the effects of our own perceptual system, then they are somehow figments of the imagination; objects are not really spatial, space is not real; these are things that we merely imagine. That is not Kant's con sidered position. His claim is that, insofar as we are able to have knowl edge of objects, we must perceive them as spatial, and this is partly ac complished through the processes of the perceptual system itself. By his own theory, he is in no position to determine whether objects do or do not have spatial properties "before" we perceive them, or independently of our
o
perceptions of them, although sometimes he seems tempted to speculate on this question (A 42IB 59-60). The thesis of transcendental idealism is that what we know of objects depends in part on our ways of knowing them. To claim that Kant believes that objects are not really spatial is to suggest that he thinks that we can find out something about objects apart from our ways of knowing them-but that contradicts his own central doctrine ! A second possible source of confusion concerns the "contribution" of the perceptual system. The idea would be that jf spatial features come from
INTRODUCTION
xxxvii
the perceptual system, then they must not be real. Again, however, this is not Kant's position. The "pure form of intuition" does not simply make up spatial properties for objects; rather it interprets sensory data (Kant's sen sations [A 201B 34]) in a three-dimensional spatial array. The data con
strain the interpretation, just as a particular planar projection constrains the range of objects of which it might be a projection. On Kant's theory, your perception of a garden would be an interpretation of your (visual) sensa tions, but it is not especially arbitrary: it is constrained by the sensations; Kant assumes that the human visual system is uniform, so that way of in terpreting sensory data will be common to all sighted people; and, finally, he argues that some spatial interpretation of sensory data is necessary for any, however limited, cognition of objects. To recap: Kant argues that all the objects of which we can have any cog nition will have spatial features, because those features are a reflection of the way we do and must process perceptual data, if any cognition is to be possible. With this one theory, he provides solutions to both the problem of how we perceive a three-dimensional world via two-dimensional sense organs and to the question of how science can treat all past, present, and future objects as standing in spatial relations to each other, even though we seem unable either to observe space directly or to infer to its existence from our scientific theories. As if this were not enough, Kant also expects his theory that space is the form of intuition to solve one more important prob lem: the status of mathematical claims. C. Kant's Doctrines. We have already considered the problem. Kant claims that the laws of mathematics, in particular, the theorems of Euclid ean geometry (henceforth "geometry") are both synthetic and a priori. They are necessary and universal, but they are not just a matter of the ideas in our heads, but adequate descriptions of the world we encounter. How, then, could we ever know, for example, that all the triangles that we will ever encounter will have the property that the sum of their interior angles is equal to 1 80°? Kant argues that there is only one possible solution to the necessary and universal applicability of geometry to the world we experi ence: Euclidean geometry is the geometry of the form of human percep tion (B 40-4 1 ). The theorems of geometry are accurate descriptions of the world we encounter through perception, because the human perceptual sys tem interprets sensory data in a three-dimensional Euclidean spatial grid. That would explain why the space of the geometers is also the space of Newtonian physics.
xxxviii
INTRODUCTION
Like most commentators, I have concentrated on Kant's discussions of space, because they are both more developed and more intuitive, but the Transcendental Aesthetic also offers parallel arguments about time. Again the opening claim is that time is not directly registered in our senses. Al though this may seem to be strange claim, since you may feel that you have a "sense" of time, ask yourself what sense that might be. As further con finnation of the problematic character of perception of time, note that many sportscasts impose a clock on the television screen to infonn viewers of how much time is passing. If we could simply detect the passage of time, that would not be necessary. Because we cannot take in temporal infonnation directly through our senses, Kant again claims that the temporal properties require processing by our perceptual system, although he will not explain until much later (the Analogies of Experience, see p. xlix ff.) the sort of data that pennit us to interpret the world we experience in temporal tenns. Although both claims are surprising, Kant's position that the existence of time can be established neither by observation nor by science has seemed much less plausible to his readers than the comparable claims about space. As he acknowledged, the phenomenon of change seems to imply that time is real (A 36-371B 53-54). Much of science is concerned with character izing the changes effected by natural processes, and it does not seem pos sible to make sense of the notions of change or process without assuming the existence of time. If an object 0 lacks a property P (say, a tree not hav ing leaves in the winter) and then acquires P (its leaves come out in spring), seemingly we can avoid contradiction-O both has and lacks P-only by taking account of the temporal differences. Worse still, Kant's epistemo logical theory itself describes cognitive processes, namely, the interpreta tion of sensory data through perceptual (and, as we will see, conceptual) processes. How can we make sense of Kant's own theory of the origins of our knowledge of spatial properties, for example, without assuming the pas sage of time?4 Before turning to the next major section of the Critique, it will be use ful to take stock of what has happened in the Transcendental Aesthetic. Kant has argued that space and time are the a priori fonns of human perception, meaning that the spatial and temporal properties of the objects we perceive do not derive from sensory data, but from our minds' own ways of inter'The apparent inconsistency between Kant"s claim about the ideality of time and his own epis temological theory has been examined in detail by P F. Strawson in The Bounds of Sense. London: Methuen. 1 966.
INTRODUCTION
xxxix
preting sensory data. He has also argued that we can have no cognition at all of objects unless we interpret the data of our senses in spatial and tem poral tenns. So these a priori aspects of presentations are also necessary for cognition, and this is our first piece of transcendental knowledge. By Kant's lights, we now understand the a priori origin of the spatial and tem poral aspects of presentations, and so we understand why those aspects are a priori in the sense of being universal and necessary aspects of the world we encounter in perception (A 56/B 8 1 ). Kant's hope that his arguments about the necessary conditions for cognition in general might finally re solve issues about the nature of space and time and the applicability of Eu clidean geometry to the world we encounter in experience has been dimmed by recent developments in science and mathematics. However, his basic insight that cognitive achievements such as perception are a conjoint prod uct of sensory data and the mind's ways of interpreting those data prob ably seems more plausible now, in light of recent developments in cogni tive science, than it did to his contemporaries.
4.
The Transcendental Analytic: The Rules by Which We Think A. THE METAPHYSICAL DEDUCTION In moving from the Transcendental Aesthetic to the Transcendental Ana lytic, we move from our perceptual to our conceptual faculties. Recall Kant's basic position that cognition requires that we integrate the infonna tion brought in through the senses so that objects may be classified to gether as similar. A presentation that can be applied to more than one ob ject, e.g. "dog," Kant calls a "concept" (A 68/B 93). Concepts are required for any and all cognition, because they indicate similarities across objects. The Transcendental Analytic is about a priori concepts, that is, concepts that apply universally and necessarily throughout the objects we encoun ter, and which lie a priori in our thinking faculty, which Kant calls the "un derstanding" (although at a later point, he also discusses a second type of thinking faculty, "reason," see below p. liv ff.). The goal of this long and complex section of the Critique is to argue that we possess various a priori concepts, which are necessary for cognition in general. He gives these a priori concepts that are necessary for cognition a special name: "catego ries." Although they approach this topic from somewhat different angles,
xl
INTRODUCTION
the three main sections of the Transcendental Analytic, the "Guide" (of ten referred to, as I do in this section, as the "Metaphysical Deduction"), the Transcendental Deduction, and the Principles of Pure Understanding, are all intended to advance the common goal of demonstrating that certain
a priori
concepts must be used if any cognition at all is to be possible. How could we ever determine which among all our concepts might be necessary for all cognition? We might look for the most common con cepts, but this approach struck Kant as too haphazard to be likely to lead to success. Instead, he believed that he had found a clue to the discovery of all such concepts. He observed that what we use concepts for is making judgments. Even the simplest classification, such as "that is a chair," is a judgment with a subject "that" and a predicate "chair. " His idea was that if we could reduce all the many forms of judgment to a few basic kinds (which include all the rest as special cases), then that might give us a clue about the most fundamental types of concepts (A 68-70/B 93-95). Kant was encouraged in this project by his belief that the job of determining the basic forms of judgment had already been carried out by Aristotle, so this resource was at hand for his own endeavors. There has been much debate about the adequacy of the table of judg ments (A 70/B 95), and about the accuracy of Kant's claim that the table comes from Aristotle. Perhaps the most fruitful way to approach Kant's table of judgments is not to worry about whether all the details are correct, but to consider whether the general idea of basic forms of judgment forms that would have to be used for any cognition to be possible-makes sense. At first glance, it might seem that all we would need for some cog nition would be affirmative judgments: "this is a chair," "that is a table," and so forth. Seemingly, this is how small children begin their cognitive careers, substituting pointing for the demonstrative ("this"), using the pres ence of the chair to stand for its own existence ( "is"), skipping the article ( "a"), and just announcing "chair. " To get some feel for Kant's position, consider whether it is plausible to believe that a two-year-old pointing at a chair and saying "chair" actually has the knowledge, "this is a chair." One of Kant's points is that even an apparently simple affirmative judgment, "this is a chair," is not very simple. In particular, he would argue that small children should not be regarded as affirming "chair" of chairs unless they at least have the capacity to deny it, to recognize that the table is no chair. In cognitive development, the use of negation probably comes after one word "affirmations" such as "chair. " Kant's point is not about psycho logical development, however, but cognitive achievement. His plausible, if
INTRODUCTION
xli
debatable, posItIOn is that putative cognizers are incapable of real affirmation unless they have the capacity for negation. To have the ca pacity to make negative judgments is just to have the concept of negation, however, so by the same reasoning, any cognizer must have this category. Let us consider just a couple of other key categories. Kant believed that cognizers must be able to make particular judgments. They must be able to single out some one thing that is the subject of their judgments: this chair. As in the case of affirmation and negation, Kant reasoned that a would-be cognizer could not really understand the concept of one thing-a unitary thing-without also being able to understand the concept of more than one thing, the concept of plurality. Further, he recognized that these two concepts, unity and plurality (A 801B 1 06), were required for a cognizer to understand what a concept was. Since concepts are presentations that can apply to more than one object, it is at least not obvious how a person could understand a concept as a concept, without also understanding the con cepts of "one thing" (unity) and "more than one thing" (plurality) of a kind. Merely classifying objects would provide little, if any, knowledge, un less we could also recognize that they have common attributes. For ex ample, a chair and a table might both be made out of wood, and hence be similar in an important respect. But making the judgment "the table is wooden" requires that we be able to recognize that an object, a table, can have attributes, or properties, and this, in turn, requires something like the concept of subject (a bearer of properties) and the concept of property, or as Kant calls them, in an older vocabulary, the concepts of "substance" and "accident" (A 801B 1 06). As a final example, Kant recognized that we would have very little knowledge unless we recognized relations among properties, in particular, the dependence of some properties on others. Hence hypothetical judgments also seem required, judgments such as "if a match is struck, then it will light," "if metal is left in water, then it will rust," and so forth. Although this is more controversial than the previous cases, Kant will argue that the ability to make hypothetical judgments it self requires the concept of cause and effect. As we will see below, his claim is not that the property mentioned in the antecedent (the "if" part) is the cause of the property mentioned in the consequent (the "then" part), but rather that some causal knowledge is required to support any claim that one sort of property is connected to another. For these and other reasons, Kant believed that there were basic forms of judgment that were required for even the most minimal knowledge of
xlii
INTRODUCTION
the world, and hence that certain concepts, the categories, were necessary for experience. Kant's own term "guide" suggests that this section was not meant to provide conclusive proof of the existence of the categories, but simply to acquaint readers with these possibly key concepts and to give them some idea of how and why they might be central to all cognition. B. THE TRANSCENDENTAL DEDUCTION Apparently, this section is intended first to explain what a transcendental deduction is and then to offer such a deduction for the concepts (the cat egories) introduced in the previous section. Unfortunately this appearance is quite misleading. Readers find this section confusing, in part, because "the transcendental deduction of the categories of the understanding" does not offer a transcendental deduction of any of the categories! Most of the categories are not even mentioned in this section. Not surprisingly, readers are often at a loss to figure out what Kant is doing in this dense and some times repetitive line of argumentation. Kant himself was dissatisfied with this chapter and totally rewrote it for the 1 787 edition. Although some com mentators favor the earlier and others the later version, my own view is largely the same as Kant's: the differences between the editions mainly con cerns the order of exposition. The one important difference-and signifi cant advance of the "B" over the "A" edition-comes at the end, at § 26. I will discuss both versions of the transcendental deduction together, mov ing freely between them, except for some final comments about § 26 of the B edition. Section I, which is common to both editions, fulfills its stated purpose of characterizing a transcendental deduction. Kant explains what a tran scendental deduction is by drawing an analogy with a legal deduction (A 841B 1 16). Unfortunately, this type of legal argument is no longer used, so the analogy does not help contemporary readers. In eighteenth-century Prus sia, lawyers tried to establish legal rights to a piece of property, for ex ample, by constructing a deduction which traced the current claim back to its origin, thereby revealing the legitimacy of the claim. s What is at issue in the transcendental deduction are not the rights of various individuals to 5 Kant scholars owe their present understanding of legal deductions, and so their present un derstanding of transcendental deductions, to a relatively recent paper by Dieter Henrich, "Kant's Notion of a Deduction and the Methodological Background of the First Critique, in Eckart Forster, ed. Kant 's Transcendental Deductions, Stanford: Stanford University Press, 1989: pp. 29-46
INTRODUCTION
xliii
particular properties, but the rights of all cognizers to use various concepts (A 85/B 1 1 7). The concepts in question come from metaphysics, and here, at last, we return to the problems with which we began. Certain concepts had been criticized by the Empiricist philosophers, John Locke ( 1 632- 1 704), George Berkeley ( 1 685- 1 753), and David Hume, in particular "substance" and "cause," on the grounds that their origins could not be traced back to the senses. Implicit in their criticism is the assumption that if a concept can be traced back to sensory data, for example. the use of the concept "dog" to our sensory encounters with dogs, then there is no question about the ap plicability of the concept. "Dog" applies to those objects that give rise to the sensory data that lead to the formation of the concept "dog." Such con cepts thus have an "empirical deduction" (A 85/B 1 1 7). Locke and Ber keley had argued that "substance" and Hume had argued that "cause" could not be traced back to sensory data. These concepts are not a posteriori, derived from sensory experience, but a priori, not derived from experi ence, so it is not clear how or whether they can be legitimately applied to the objects of our experience. The purpose of a transcendental deduction is to establish the legitimate use of these concepts in science and meta physics, by tracing their origins back to the necessary operations of the un derstanding in combining sensory information in a way that makes it us able in cognition. The deduction reveals them to be legitimate by showing that they are indispensable for any cognition at all (A 92-93/B 1 24-26). Put slightly differently, the goal of a transcendental deduction is to show that certain concepts that are a priori, in the sense that they cannot be de rived from sensory data, are necessary for all cognition, and so are a priori in the sense that they describe universal and necessary features of all the objects of which we can ever have any knowledge. To use Kant's central example: the concept of cause cannot be traced back to particular features of sensory experience, but the claim that all events have causes is univer Sally and necessarily true of all the events of which we can have any cog nition. Or so he will argue in the Second Analogy. We are now in a position to appreciate a second reason for the legend ary difficulties of the "Transcendental Deduction" (besides the fact that this chapter does not present a deduction of the categories) and to understand what this section is trying to accomplish. Its purpose is to set the stage for a transcendental deduction, by trying to determine the necessary opera tions of the mind in achieving cognition. This is an incredibly difficult project, one that we cannot carry out with much confidence even today.
xliv
INTRODUCTION
Contemporary readers may well feel that, without the resources of current cognitive science, Kant's project is actually hopeless. Oddly, however, he had some resources available that are little used by contemporary research ers. Today it is common to approach cognition by starting with the early stages of perception. Kant started at the other end of the process, with cog nitive products like judgments and inferences. He also asked a very differ ent sort of question, a normative question: What sorts of processes would be necessary for us to achieve sound judgments and inferences? In con temporary terminology, where much current research is descriptive and "bottom-up," Kant's approach was "top-down" and normative. He tried to analyze the sorts of processes that were necessary for genuine cognition to be possible. Kant's own description of the transcendental deduction characterized it as having two sides, a "subjective" and an " objective" side, with the lat ter being the more crucial (A xvi-xvii). The purpose of the "objective" side is to explore the conditions that must be met by our presentations for any of them to qualify as knowledge of objects. Alternatively, it is an ex ploration of the necessary conditions of objective knowledge itself, how, for example, we are able to claim that "I know that the table is wooden," as opposed to saying merely that "the table seems wooden to me." Al though, as we will see below, the "subjective" side is also extremely im portant, Kant well realized that he was in no position to offer psychologi cal hypotheses about the actual mechanisms that make objective knowledge possible. Rather, the purpose of the subjective deduction is to describe in a very general way the sorts of cognitive processes that were required for knowledge of objects. As we will also see below, one of Kant's constant themes is that the Empiricists' all-purpose psychological mechanism-the association of ideas that were experienced together in time and space-is inadequate to explain any, however minimal, cognition of objects (e.g. A 1 1 2). Kant did not refer to the "processing" of information, but to the com bining or "synthesizing" of the contents of presentations. In this case, how ever, the contemporary equivalent of "processing information" for "syn thesizing [the contents of] presentations," captures his meaning very well. Although I will alternate among the three expressions, "processing infor mation," "combining presentations," and " synthesizing presentations," readers should not be misled by the last expression. "Synthesis" and the corresponding adjective "synthetic" do not mean the same in this context as the term "synthetic" encountered earlier. In the context of the deduc-
INTRODUCTION
xlv
tion, Kant is referring to the processing of information; in the Introduction, where he lays out the problem to be solved in the deduction, he refers to a property of a judgment-the fact that its predicate is not part of its sub ject concept. His view is that all judgments, analytic and synthetic, are pro duced through the synthesizing of presentations. Kant's most important claim on the subjective side of the transcenden tal deduction is that the subject of cognition must be unified. As noted (above, p . xxvi), Kant often failed to supply the historical context of claims, and this is one of the most egregious cases. Students of the history of phi losophy will recall that David Hume had denied that the human mind pos sessed any sort of unity. In his memorable phrase, the mind is nothing but a "bundle of perceptions," each of which could exist perfectly well on its own, without any other mental states at all. 6 Although Hume's successors were appalled by this counterintuitive claim, they found it very hard to re fute. Kant's approach was entirely novel. As he foreshadows at A 1 07, what he will argue is that the unity of the mind is necessary, because without such unity there would be no cognition at all. To see his point, think of the operation of combining information and, in particular, think of the con tents of a resultant mental state or presentation in which, as Kant puts it, "we . . . draw many possible cognitions into one" (A 69/B 94). This state could not exist in independence of the earlier presentations whose contents were combined in it, for without them, it would lack all content (A 1 16). So Kant maintains-in direct contradiction to Hume-that for even the sim plest cognition to be possible, the mind must have a synthetic unity, namely, a connection among its states brought about by operations of synthesis. The unity of the self is a very important theme for Kant, and he signals its importance by giving his doctrine a special and extraordinarily complex name- the "transcendental unity of apperception." What he means by this is that the synthetic unity of the self, explained above, is transcenden tal, because it is a necessary condition for the possibility of cognition, and because this concept, the "I," the thinking self, is a priori (B 1 32). On the latter point, he was in complete agreement with Hume: There is no sen sory impression of a self. Against Hume, he argues that "I" is still a le gitimate concept that applies to objects in the world (namely, the subjects of knowledge), because such subjects are necessary for any cognition at all. The "apperception" piece of this doctrine adds yet another complex6David Hurne, Treatise of Human Nature, L. A. Selby-Bigge, ed., Oxford: The Clarendon Press, 1978, p. 25 1 .
xlvi
INTRODUCTION
ity. ., Apperception" is often presented as equivalent to " self consciousness." Unfortunately, the illumination provided by such a gloss is quite limited, because it was far from clear in the eighteenth century and it is far from clear now-what either a "self" or "consciousness" is. As a first start, we might note that it follows even from the small piece of Kant's analysis of cognition that we have considered so far that anyone who investigates the bases of cognition must recognize the existence of selves. So some type of self-recognition appears to have been established, at least for epistemologists. Notice, however, what the combination of information from different mental states involves: using information from an earlier state in a later state and hence a kind of awareness of that infonnation. In ar guing for the necessity of various kinds of syntheses for cognition, Kant will also be arguing for the necessity of a continual self-consciousness in the sense of a constant use of information contained in earlier states of the subject. Although I do not pretend that the following is a complete account of Kant's doctrine of the transcendental unity of apperception, perhaps it is a start. By this phrase, Kant meant to refer to the constant access to and use of the contents of earlier presentations that is necessary for the pro duction of presentations that achieve a cognitive relation to objects, in cluding perceptions, classifications, judgments, and inferences. Having given some sense of the main event of the subjective deduction, I will briefly discuss just a few of the key turns in the objective deduction. Because it is usually considered to be the most basic fonn of cognition, Kant begins the A version by describing the "synthesis" that is required by perception. His claim is (again) that perception itself cannot be a simple matter of receiving visual infonnation on the retina. To begin to under stand his argument in this section, it is important to realize (as he and his predecessors realized) that the retinal image is constantly changing as we move our heads and bodies. How, then, do we perceive the world as we do, as a collection of stable objects in spatial relations to each other? Kant's claim is that even for perception, we must combine information from our successive, fleeting presentations to create a stable perceptual image. Now consider looking at a large building, such as a cathedral. You might look first at the doors, then at the spire, then at the rose window, and finally at the walls. To create a stable perceptual image of the cathedral, you some how rearrange that material so that the spire is presented as being at the top, the rose window as embedded in the walls above the door, and so forth, regardless of the order in which you take in this infonnation. Kant's sec ond point is that, not only does perception itself require the synthesis of
INTRODUCTION
xlvii
presentations, it requires combining them by some principle other than the law of association, because all that psychological law would produce would be a repetition of the data of sense in the order in which they were re ceived. To form a perception of the cathedral , however, the sensory data must be given some order other than the order of sensing (A 1 20). Notice, however, that Kant did not offer a psychological hypothesis about how the requisite order is produced; his claim is simply that merely to perceive spa tially arrayed objects, the contents of presentations must be combined ac cording to some principle other than the law of association. Knowledge also requires that we form presentations of objects, and Kant offers a very interesting analysis of this apparently simple task. How can a presentation be about an object? That is, how could the various character istics contained in one presentation all belong to one object? Suppose, for example, that I have a presentation of my computer as a hard, white, rect angular solid. How can I know that there really is an object with these char acteristics? As Kant notes at A 1 04-5, we can never make this determina tion by comparing my presentation to some object outside of my cognition which "corresponds" to the presentation, because I have no access to any thing outside of my cognition. If I look at the computer again, that will just give me a fresh presentation, not an object corresponding to it, or to my earlier presentation. Yet we seem to be able to distinguish between objects that are really there, such as my computer, and objects which are not, such as the dagger Macbeth thought he saw, but later realized that he had only imagined. How? Since we cannot make this distinction by checking our presentations against nonpresented objects that correspond to them, Kant saw no alternative but
to infer the use of internal standards for making the objective/[merely] sub
jective distinction. In the A edition, he suggests that it is our concept of an object itself that supplies the standard. If that concept includes the idea that objects do not go in and out of existence, for example, then that would al low Macbeth to dismiss the dagger as a mere phantom (A 199ff.). In the B edition, Kant claims that we can make judgments about objects only by appealing to principles associated with the categories: the "principles of the objective determination of all presentations" (B 142). To take the most important category for Kant, causation, the idea is that the way we deter mine which presentations present real objects and which are merely sub jective is by trying to situate the objects and properties presented in a pre sentation in the causal structure of the world. Those contents that can be
xlviii
INTRODUCTION
understood causally present real objects; those whose contents have no place in a comprehensive causal account of the world would are unreal. Although Kant's suggestion that we distinguish the real from the imagi nary by a (tacit) appeal to causal considerations has some initial plausibil ity, he did not offer any detailed arguments in the Transcendental Deduc tion chapter that the production of judgments of objects requires the use of internal principles indicating causal relations. As already noted, despite its misleading title, he did not provide a transcendental deduction for any of the categories in this section. There are merely suggested links between the need to integrate information in some way other than the law of asso ciation for various cognitive tasks to be possible and the idea of categorial principles that might be used to mediate the required integration. Still, he may have shown something that was quite important in the epistemology of his time and is still important in the epistemology and cognitive science of our own. Even quite simple kinds of cognition require that information be combined in the mind by some principles beyond the association of ideas. And even if he has not established the necessity of any category, he has made significant progress on a central project of transcendental ide alism. In arguing that we must use internal standards in sorting out objec tive reality from subjective phantasm, he has given plausibility to his shock ing claim that the order and regularity we observe in nature is our own (A 125-281B 163-64)-because what we count as part of the natural world is a reflection of our own internal standards that are necessary for cogni tion. At the end of the B edition (§ 26, B 159ff.), Kant considered an inte gration that was left in too-soft focus in A, the integration, not of informa tion, but of the faculties of perceiving and thinking. In essence, he asks himself a blunt, but crucial, question: What is the relation between the many syntheses of the understanding just discussed in the Transcendental Ana lytic and the analysis of the perceptual forms of intuition described in the Transcendental Aesthetic? Like much of the Critique, § 26 has been the sub ject of intensive interpretive efforts, and the following should be regarded as merely one way of making sense of this difficult passage. We know from the Transcendental Aesthetic that the spatial and temporal features of our perceptual arrays are not simply given in our sensory data; the perceiving of one object as behind another or one event as after another requires some sort of interpretation by the perceptual system. Kant's startling proposal is that the spatial and temporal ordering of objects in perception is carried out by syntheses that are somehow directed by the categorial principles of
INTRODUCTION
the understanding (B
1 61). To use his own example,
xlix
we place our percep
tion of ice after our perception of water in time, because we recognize that the ice resulted from a causal process-freezing- performed on the water (B
162).
He does not argue for this claim in
§ 26;
that argument will come
in the Second Analogy, where he maintains that the only way we could or der events in time is by interpreting them as part of a system of causal re lations. Here he is merely giving an example of a possible connection and arguing that, if it were the case that the temporal and spatial ordering of events and objects in perception arose through categorial principles, then the categories would have to apply to all the objects and events of percep tion. This is so, because we would not be able to perceive objects and events in spatial and temporal arrays at all, and hence would have no cognitive relations to them, unless the categories applied to them. C. THE ANALYTIC OF PRINCIPLES The purpose of this section is twofold. First, Kant attempts to provide tem poral interpretations of the categories in the Schematism section. In es sence, he is trying to explain how concepts such as actuality, substance, and cause relate to the temporal features of the world. So, for example, he suggests that a substance, one of the basic constituents of reality, would exist at all times, as opposed to an event, which occurs only at a particular time, or to nonbasic entities (e.g. bridges) which exist for some time and then fall apart (A 143/B 1 82). As many readers have noticed, the symme try between space and time seems to be given up in this section, and the succeeding discussions focus on temporal issues at the apparent expense of problems of spatial position. The second goal of the Analytic of Principles is to argue that certain principles are universally and necessarily true throughout the world of our experience, because they reflect the mind's own ways of integrating infor mation, which ways are necessary for any cognition of temporal proper ties. (Recall that the cognition of temporal properties is itself necessary to any cognition at all, above p. xxxviii.) At this point, the reader may won der whether Kant is ever going to provide an argument for the necessity of the categories themselves. His strategy in the Principles Chapter is, how ever, to argue for that very point, by arguing for the principles. If he could establish the principles of the first two analogies, for example, "in all varia tion . . . substance is permanent, and its quantum in nature is neither in creased nor decreased" (B 224), and "all changes occur according to the
1
INTRODUCTION
law of the connection of cause and effect" (B
232),
then he would have
shown the legitimacy of using the scientific-metaphysical concepts of "sub stance" and "cause" ! As do most commentators, I will focus on Kant's famous defense of the causal principle in the Second Analogy, because, by his own testimony, this was the issue that inspired his transcendental ap proach, and it is also the most carefully argued part of the Principles Chapter. Although Hume's name is not mentioned in either version of this sec tion, from the beginning, Kant's readers have understood that his purpose was to vindicate the causal concept after Hume's devastating attack. One reason for the immense interest in the section is that it presents a relatively rare opportunity in the history of philosophy of seeing two major philoso phers in direct conflict over a central philosophical issue. Hume's attack on the causal concept concerned the issues of universality and necessity. He recognized that, as people normally use the concept of "cause," to say that a pool of water caused a piece of metal to rust is to imply that if any similar metal object were placed in the same wet circumstances, it too would rust. Put another way, Hume recognized that even singular causal claims were implicitly universal. He also believed that causal claims car ried with them an element of necessity. It is no lucky coincidence, but a law of nature, that objects with the constitution of metal have to rust when put in contact with any stuff with the constitution of water. Hume's objec tion to the use of a causal concept that implied universality and necessity was straightforward. No amount of experience with objects can tell us how they have to behave or how they will behave in the future. All we have ever observed is the "constant conjunction" between metals immersed in water and rust. Hence all we are entitled to assert is that there has been a constant conjunction of these properties. We have never seen a necessary connection between these two states.7 Kant's "reply to Hume" was to argue that we could have no cognition of events, of objects changing by acquiring or losing a property, unless we used a concept of causation that included both the offending and related (see above, p. xxix) properties of universality and necessity. In briefest sum mary, this is Kant's argument. s Whether we are perceiving an unchanging 7Hume, Treatise, pp. 78-82. 155-72. oAlthough this has been a very difficult argument to interpret, many current scholars believe that Paul Guyer has recently produced a definitive analysis For more details, see Kant and the Claims of Knowledge, New York: Cambridge University Press, 1 987, Chapter 1 0
INTRODUCTION
Ii
bouse or a boat moving downstream, all of our presentations are succes sive (B
234). With the house, for example, we might first look at the roof,
then at the windows, then at the door; with the boat, first we see it at a po $ition upstream, then we see it in intermediate locations; finally we see it
further down the stream. In both cases, our presentations are changing and
successive, but only in the case of the boat do we perceive an event, a change in the object. His claim is that we can recognize a change in our presentations as a presentation of change an
in objects (as the presentation of
event) only if we also recognize the existence of some causal force (A 191-95/B 236-41). That is, we recognize that the boat has moved down
stream, because we assume that a current or a motor or the wind has caused that change in location and that, given such a force, any and all boats would have to move. By Kant's lights, it is the very universality and necessity of causal connections that entitles us to claim that we have perceived actual change in objects and not mere changes in our own SUbjective presenta tions. Although this argument may seem counterintuitive, it helps to recall the scientific context. Debates over the Copernican hypothesis had empha sized the problem of distinguishing real from apparent motion. This prob lem is resolved in Newtonian mechanics, by maintaining that real motion is that brought about by some force on the body. One way to look at Kant's argument is as a defense of this Newtonian position. In essence, what Kant is arguing is that it is only by appeal to causes that one could distinguish real motion from a subjective impression of motion, because that is the only way one could ever recognize any kind of change at all. With the Principles Chapter, Kant takes himself to have completed most of the positive work of the Critique. He hopes that he has shown that and how the a priori generalizations of mathematics (e.g. Euclidean geometry) and some of the important a priori principles of science and metaphysics (the conservation of substances, the principle that all events have causes) are both universally and necessarily true of all the objects of which we can have any cognition, because they reflect processes that lie a priori in the mind and that are required for integrating sensory information into cogni tions of objects. Before turning to the negative doctrines of the Transcen dental Dialectic, he pauses to survey the position to which he and (he hopes) his reader have been led. One way to understand that position is as a synthesis (in yet a different sense ! ) of the Empiricist and Rationalist epistemologies that preceded him. Like the Empiricists, Kant believed that all knowledge depended on the
Iii
INTRODUCTION
taking in of information through the senses. He firmly rejected the Ratio nalist doctrine of innate ideas, but he elaborated and expanded on Leib niz's cryptic claim that nothing is innate in the mind except the mind it self.9 What Kant has argued is that certain ways of combining information are innate in the mind, because if they were not, then the data taken in by the senses would not lead to cognition, even very basic forms of cognition, such as the perceiving, classifying, and judging of objects. His method of arguing for such claims is not to run psychological experiments nor (ob viously) computer simulations of mental processes, but rather to look at the normative requirements of cognition: perception is supposed to inform us about the properties of objects in our environment; judgments are sup posed to be about properties, objects, and the relations among them, and not merely about our own impressions. The claim is that our perceptions and judgments could have these characteristics only if they were formed according to our own internal standards, standards that enable us to distin guish, for example, changes in our own presentations from the presenta tion of change in objects. At one level, Kant's claim should strike contemporary readers as more plausible than it did his own generation of scholars. It is a familiar idea in contemporary cognitive science that the perceptual system, for example, must have some means of sorting out movements in objects from the move ments of the perceiver. Kant, however, went further than most cognitive scientists are willing to venture, at least for the present. He claimed that because of the ways in which our minds must operate in order to achieve basic cognition, certain principles are universally and necessarily true of all the objects and events of which we can have any cognition at all. In this way, he believed that he had given real plausibility to some of the "nec essary truths" claimed by the Rationalists and firmly rejected by the Em piricists, on the grounds that observation and experience could never es tablish necessity. Kant was concerned in his concluding remarks in the Transcendental Analytic to avoid possible misunderstandings of his position. His claim is only that the objects and events of which we can have cognition must be interpreted by us as having certain properties, including spatial, temporal, and causal properties. He has established-and could establish-no con clusions whatsoever about what objects are like independent of our cog"G. W. Leibniz, New Essays on Human Understanding, abridged edition, Peter Remnant and Jonathan Bennett, trans. and eds., New York: Cambridge University Press, 1982: 1 1 0- 1 1 .
INTRODUCTION
liii
nitive relations to them, including whether such objects do or do not have spatial, temporal, or causal properties. To highlight this important point, Kant again adopted a specialized vocabulary, characterizing the objects and events to which we have or can have cognitive relations as "phenom ena," and objects understood as independent of any cognitive relation to us as "noumena" (A 235ff.IB 294ff.). Although there has been much de bate in the past over this issue, most current scholars do not take "phe nomena" and "noumena" to indicate two different kinds of objects, but rather two different ways of regarding objects, either as objects as we per ceive and understand them or as objects existing independently of any cog nitive relation we might have to them. 10 The concepts of "phenomena" and "noumena" are important for Kant, because the central positive and nega tive claims of Transcendental Idealism can be expressed in terms of them: Our knowledge is a reflection of both sensory evidence and our own ways of knowing objects and hence is only of phenomenal objects; we can know nothing whatsoever of noumenal objects, objects as they are in themselves apart from our ways of knowing. Hence our metaphysical knowledge is restricted to universal and necessary properties of phenomenal objects; we cannot achieve metaphysical knowledge of noumena by engaging in epis temological reflections on what objects must be like for us to know them-or in any other way.
5.
Transcendental Dialectic: The Source of Metaphysical Error Nearly three hundred pages into the Critique of Pure Reason, Kant finally turns to the topic of reason. His goal in the Transcendental Dialectic is to show that all of the metaphysical errors into which previous philosophies have fallen have a common source in the nature of the faculty of reason itself (A 293ff.IB 349ff.). In particular, disputes about the nature of the soul, the fundamental properties of the universe, and the existence of God will all be traced to the deceptive illusions of our capacity for reason. Despite the announced negative intentions of this part of the
Critique, however, it
also presents a fascinating account of the necessary positive contributions of our faculty of reason to knowledge, especially scientific knowledge. I O This understanding of the phenomenallnoumenal distinction has been defended in great de tail by Henry Allison, Kant 's Transcendental Idealism, New Haven: Yale University Press, 1983.
liv
INTRODUCTION
"Reason" is the name that Kant gave to our capacity for drawing in ferences (A 3031B 359). We make inferences, or reason, every day of our lives. If you wake up in a dark room, you immediately infer that it is not yet morning. This apparently simple assumption is actually quite complex. How do you know that it is not 8 :00 A.M.? You reason: if it were 8:00 A.M., then the sun would have risen, and it would be light. But how do you know that the sun would have risen by that hour? At this point, you might ap peal to two quite different facts, the fact that it always has risen, or the fact that the earth revolves on its axis in a regular way during a twenty-four hour period, and that the part of the earth you are on would be facing the sun at 8:00 A.M. As he did in the earlier, positive part of the book, Kant wants to try to understand how this kind of cognition, knowledge through inference, is possible. To take Kant's own example (A 3 2 1 -221B 378), how can we infer that Caius is mortal? He reasons that this would be possible only if we can find some concept, e.g. "man," that applies to Caius and which itself implies the property of mortality. So, we must seek a classification, in this case "man," that appears in a general principle "All men are mortal" that per mits the inference to be drawn (in the previous example, the principle would be either "the sun rises every morning" or "the earth rotates on its axis every twenty-four hours"). Notice, however, that the explanation is still far from complete. How can we assert that "all men are mortal " ? Again, we would have to find some "higher" classification, "mammal" perhaps, and a "higher" principle, such as "all mammals are mortal. " In tum, we would need to find some still higher principle, perhaps "all animals are mortal," through which we could establish that "all mammals are mortal" and so on, advancing to ever-higher principles. Kant drew a positive and a negative moral from the need of reason to embed one inference in an ascending series of inferences (or "syllogisms" in his terminology [A 3311B 388]). The positive moral, which is presented, after several long negative sections, in the section "On the Regulative Use of the Ideas of Pure Reason," is that inference is possible only if our con cepts are systematically related, so that it is possible to find ever-higher principles. In the inference about Caius, we can find a higher principle only because "man" is a species of the genus "mammal," which is itself a spe cies of the genus "animal," which is itself a species of the genus "living thing, " and so on. Kant drew two important conclusions: ( 1 ) inference is possible only because our concepts stand in hierarchies related as species and genera; (2) the variety of nature is so great that if we formed concepts
INTRODUCTION
Iv
as the Empiricists suggest, just by linking properties that are frequently found together in experience, our concepts would lack the systematic in terconnection necessary for inference. Hence the faculty of reason must ac tively seek systematically interrelated concepts (A 6571B 685). At the beginning of the Transcendental Analytic, Kant introduced the discipline of "transcendental logic, " contrasting it with both general and applied logic (A 551B 79). Although the issue is contested, I think that we are
now in a position to understand what he was talking about. The pur
pose of transcendental logic is to explain how it is possible for the forms of syllogism described in general logic (e.g. All A's are B 's, x is an A, there fore, x is a B ) to be applicable to the actual objects of experience. We now have part of the answer: we can use logic to gain knowledge (through in ference) of actual objects, because our reasoning capacity seeks hierarchi cally related concepts--ever-higher genera, and ever-lower species. Kant illustrated this seeking in discussions of several examples, earth, air, fire, and water (A 6461B 674), the fundamental powers of the mind (A 6491B 677), and the acids and alkalis of the chemists (A 6521B 680). As he notes, when scientists observe a great variety, as in chemical compounds, they seek to reduce that multiplicity to the fewest kinds with the largest scope; but when there are differences, they also seek to divide them into ever more fine-grained subspecies, until all the differences are accounted for (A 6561B 684). Thus, the laws and concepts of any science will be systematically interrelated, as indeed they must be. For both layman and scientists deter mine the truth of their theories, not just by looking at sensory data, but also by seeing how well those theories fit into the most unified theory of the largest number of phenomena (A 6471B 675). As Kant well realized, the need of reason for systematically interrelated concepts might well go unfulfilled. Nature might be a mess, with no dis coverable regularities. To recall some earlier examples, if cinnabar were sometimes red and sometimes black (A 1 00), if currents sometimes moved boats and sometimes left them at rest, if men sometimes died and some times lived forever, then there would be no general principles upon which reasoning could be based. Unfortunately, the fact that reason needs nature to be systematic cannot make it so. Instead, Kant described the situation as one in which reason "projects" (A 647/B 675) or "presupposes" (A 650/ B 678) or "demands" (A 65 11B 679) a systematic unity of nature, because without such unity "we would have no reason at all, [and] . . . without rea Son, no coherent use of the understanding, . . . and [hence] . . . no suffi cient mark of empirical truth" (A 65 1/B 679). Reason's critical contribu-
lvi
INTRODUCTION
tion to knowledge is to seek systematic unity in nature, thereby providing a criterion for the truth of theories and enabling the concepts of the under standing to serve in inferences about the properties of not-yet-experienced objects. Metaphysical error results when we confuse our ',�projecting" of the or der of nature with the discovery of such an order. Alternatively, error arises through the confusion of a principle of the systematic unity of nature which merely regulates our search for laws of nature with a metaphysical prin ciple describing what nature is like. Although the issue is delicate, Kant wants to contrast the regulative principle that we much search for system atic unity with constitutive principles such as "all objects occupy a Eu clidean space. " There are at least two important differences between these principles. First, the principle about space does not concern nature as it is in itself, but simply nature insofar as we are able to have knowledge of it. Second, whereas we could have no cognition at all unless we perceived objects in spatial relations, the regulative principle of reason requires only that we seek systematic unity; it does not and could not require that we grasp the complete systematic interconnection of all natural phenomena. Kant maintains that we incorrectly infer the existence of God as a first cause, because reason demands that any causal explanation be completed, by finding the cause of the cited cause, and then the cause of that cause, and so on. This, however, is simply a mistake. We are wrongly inferring a metaphysical conclusion about the existence of a first cause of the uni verse from an epistemological argument about the need to look for higher principles. Although Kant was concerned to reveal the systematic character of meta physical error in the Transcendental Dialectic, he also wished to engage some pressing issues of the day. To give some sense of these discussions, I will briefly consider what he regarded as the three fundamental meta physical questions: the immortality of the soul, freedom of the will, and the existence of God. In the Paralogisms chapter, Kant took on and essentially eliminated the then-contemporary discipline of "Rational Psychology." The project of Ra tional Psychology was to determine the properties of the soul, by deter mining what souls had to be like in order to think. In some ways, this project is very directly related to Kant's own efforts in the subjective de duction (see above p. xliv ff.). He was also concerned to determine what a subject of knowledge had to be like to be capable of cognition. Unlike his Rationalist predecessors, however, Kant came to realize the inherent limi-
INTRODUCTION
Ivii
tation of his method (A 399). Consider the following prototypical argu ment from Rational Psychology (cf. A 3 5 1 ff.). Any thinking thing must be unified and without any separate parts. For if thinking were distributed, say by having a different part of the brain represent each of the different words of the verse "Let me not to the marriage of true minds admit impedi ,, ments, l 1 then there would be no subject who grasped the meaning of the whole verse. Hence, a thinking soul cannot have separate parts; but if some thing lacks parts, then it cannot be destroyed; hence the soul is immortal. Kant realized that so dramatic a metaphysical claim could not be extracted from the highly abstract description of the thinking self warranted by the premises. We know from his own analysis of thinking in general that the subject of thought must possess a synthetic unity, but "that unity is col lective and can . . . refer just as well to the collective unity of the sub stances cooperating on the thought . . . as it can to the absolute unity of the subject" (A 353). Rational psychology is a hopeless enterprise, because it is not possible to infer the constitution of a thinking thing from an abstract description of the requirements of thought. In the Antinomies chapter, Kant returned to the puzzles about the na ture and extent of space and time. He also tackled one of the most vexing of all metaphysical questions, the problem of free will and determinism (the Third Antinomy). An antinomy is a conflict of arguments that arises when two contradictory claims, P and not-P, can both be defended by rea soning that seems completely cogent. Something must be wrong, because, by the law of noncontradiction, it is not possible for both P and not-P to be true. Still, both arguments appear to be solid. Kant regarded the peren nial philosophical dispute between determinism and free will as just such an antinomy. On the side of determinism, we have (among other consid erations), Kant's own argument from the Second Analogy that we can have no cognition of events that are not caused. On the side of free will are weighty ethical considerations, some of which Kant presents with great force in his two major works of ethics, the Groundwork of the Metaphys ics of Morals ( 1 785) and the Critique of Practical Reason ( 1 788, often re ferred to as the "Second Critique" ). The basic idea is that we can be re sponsible for an act only if we were free not to do that action at the time of the acting. If all events are caused, however, then apparently there is a chain of causes culminating in that moment of acting that determines the act. I1 Shakespeare, Sonnet 1 1 6.
Iv iii
INTRODUCTION
Kant's highly controversial solution was to suggest that claims of free will and determinism might both be true (A 538ff.lB 566ff.). Even though any phenomenal event cognized by us must stand in causal relations, that consideration tells us nothing about that event regarded noumenally, apart from the necessary conditions for our knowledge. For all we know, the event could be free in itself. Kant maintained that the issue of whether there is any freedom of the will could not be decided by theoretical consider ations; those tell us only that events, insofar as we can understand them, stand in causal relations; theoretical reason is and must be silent on the question of whether events are free independently of our ways of knowing about them (A 55 1 - 581B 579-86). Thus he regarded the Critique of Pure on this question, which could then be de
Reason as leaving the door open
cided not on theoretical considerations, but on practical ones about how we should act. In the Second Critique and the Groundwork, Kant argues that the ability to act ethically requires us to think of ourselves as acting independently of any foreign cause. Although scholars are divided over the plausibility of Kant's solution to the free-will issue, the importance of his ethical theories is granted by all. As they have been for many years, cur rent discussions of ethics have been dominated by two main schools of thought, the Utilitarianism of John Stuart Mill ( 1 806-1 873) and Kantian ethics. The final major topic of the Critique of Pure Reason is Rational The ology, proofs for the existence of God (A 571ff.1B 599ff.). Along with his frequent rival, David Hume, Kant offered searching criticisms of the stan dard methods of "proving" the existence of God. Between them, Hume and Kant largely put an end to the field of Rational Theology as a serious intellectual endeavor, thereby changing the face of religion. As with free will, Kant's position was that this question has not been and cannot be settled by speculative reason. For him, as for almost all subsequent theo logians, religious belief can never be a matter of intersubjective proof, but only of faith. As he noted way back in the Preface (B xxx), one of his goals in the Critique was to save religion from speculative metaphysical argu ments that are indulged only because people like their conclusions: he will "annul knowledge in order to make room for faith." In the wake of the Scientific Revolution, one of the great philosophical projects of the seventeenth and eighteenth centuries was to try to under stand the extent and bases of human knowledge. Kant's Critique of Pure Reason represents the fullest flowering of this endeavor, because it seeks
INTRODUCTION
lix
to explain the possibility of all knowledge, from the simplest perception to the most sophisticated scientific theory. Its still shocking conclusion is that all knowledge, even that which seems the most direct and elementary, must be a conjoint product of sensory evidence and the mind's own principles for dealing with evidence. Although the arguments about the requirements of knowledge are highly abstract, the issues to which they are directed have enormous practical importance. Who and what are the arbiters of knowl edge? science? religion? common sense? Are quantitative sciences better sources of knowledge than qualitative and, if so, in what ways? Are some issues beyond the realm of science and, if so, why? Although these problems began with the Enlightenment, they continue to dominate the Western intellectual landscape-and to roil the allegedly placid waters of colleges and universities. If the standards of all intellec tual disciplines, from literature to psychology to physics, are our own hu man standards, then how can any claims be objective? If there is no truly objective knowledge, free of all taint of human influence, then how can any claim or theory be regarded as better than any other? In explaining the importance of his reflections on ethics, Kant noted that although innocence is a glorious thing, the sad fact is that it cannot long maintain itself and is 2 easily led astray. 1 His point is no less true in epistemology than it is in ethics. As children, we probably start by believing everything that we see and hear. Then doubts may be raised, when we recognize the vast scope of some of our scientific claims and our inability to rely on anything beyond our own rational standards for weighing evidence. The Critique of Pure Reason is the perfect antidote to epistemological naivete. In corning to grips with this deep and difficult book, readers learn to appreciate the complex ity of the human capacity for knowledge, its inevitable weaknesses, and its equally inevitable strengths. Patricia Kitcher University of California, San Diego
12 Kant, Foundations of the Metaphysics of Morals, Lewis White Beck, trans., New York: Bobbs-Merrill, 1959. p. 2 1 .
�ritir b ee
ttintn mernunft .a==-
-:U==D
I) n
;l m m a n u e l
�crle8r.
1Ja
-
-
.i Q n c
9f t g o , SOQ""n �mDrld) �grlfno" 1
7 8
I.
c
•
r
1
•
t
1
o
q
u e
f
Pure Reason b Y
I m m a n u e l K a n t Professor in Konigsberg Member of the Royal Academy of Sciences in Berlin
Second edition, with occasional improvements
R i g a Johann Friedrich Hartknoch 1 787
i
r
t
f
feintu mtrnunft 3 rn ht d it U r t
IIi .1 61\ i il . D u g ,
,uflHoc Ut
st A tt t ;
Jt 6 li t a � 2( c U e m i t � u !m i r rin r• •f U ft itt .4U r f l"tt' � i rl h· I '••
.
"'9
-
Dt i a o ; :' o � an lt W r l e h l cf) .o a f t ! no ct •
? 8 7·
B ii
BAeo DE VERULAMIO INSTAURATIO MAGNA. PRAEFATIO.
De nobis ipsis silemus: De re autem quae agitur, petimus: ut homines eam non opinionem, sed opus esse cogitent; ac pro certo habeant, non sectae nos alicuius, aut placiti, sed utilitatis et amplitudinis humanae Jundamenta moliri. Deinde, ut suis commodis aequi . . . in commune consulant . . . et ipsi in partem veniant. Praeterea, ut bene sperent, neque Instaurationem nostram ut quiddam infinitum et ultra mortale fingant, et animo concipi ant; quum revera sit infiniti erroris finis et terminus legitimus. 1 l [This motto was added in B. It is a quote from the preface (published in 1 620) to the In stauratio magna (Great Instauration) by Francis Bacon ( 1 561-1626), Baron Verulam, Vis count St. Albans, lord chancellor of England, philosopher, and man of letters. The complete second sentence of the motto, with Kant's omissions restored, reads: "Deinde, ut suis com modis aequi. exutis opinionum zeUs et praeiudiciis. in commune consulant. ac ab erroribus via rum a/que impedimentis, nostris praesidiis et auxiliis Liberati et muniti. laborum qui res tant et ipsi in partem veniant. " The entire passage (with Kant's omissions inserted in the lim four pairs of brackets) translates as follows:
About myself I am silent. But regarding the matter at hand, I ask people to consider it not an opinion, but a work; let me assure them that I en deavor to lay the foundation not for any sect or dogma, but for the ben efit and greatness of humanity. Moreover, I ask that people, in their own interest, [give up the rivalries and prejudices regarding opinions and] be mindful of the common good; [and that] they themselves, [being now freed and protected by the safeguards and aids I have provided against errors and impediments in the methods,] also take part [in the tasks that remain] . Finally, I ask them to have confidence, and not to imagine and construe my Instauration as something [unending or] infinite and su prahuman, when it is in fact unending error's end and proper boundary. (All translations given in footnotes are my own, though I do not say so on each occasion.)]
To his Excellency
B iii
The Royal Minister of State Baron von Zedlitz2 My Lord, To do one's share to further the growth of the sciences is to pursue an interest that is also your Excellency s own; for your interest in the sciences is linked to them quite closely not only through your exalted position as a patron of them, but also through your more intimate relationship to them as a lover and enlightened expert. It is because of this that I avail myself of the one means to some extent in my power, of showing my gratitude for the gracious confidence with which your Excellency honors me in assuming that I can make some contribution toward that aim. To the same gracious attention with which your Excellency has honored the first edition of this work do I now dedicate this second edition also, and along with it all the other concerns of my literary vocation, and remain with the deepest reverence,3
Your Excellency 's Humble, most obedient servant, IMMANUEL KANT Konigsberg, April 23, 1 7874 2[KarI Abraham Freiherr von Zedlitz ( 173 1-1793) served in various capacities, including high chancellor and minister of justice, under Frederick the Great (and later under Frederick Wil liam II). He was also in charge of school affairs.]
3[In the place of this paragraph, A has:]
Whoever delights in the speculative life will find, as [the answer to] one of his temperate wishes, that the approval of an enlightened and com petent judge strongly encourages him to engage in efforts whose ben efit is great, though remote and hence quite unrecognized by the eyes of ordinary people. To such a judge and to his gracious attention I now dedicate this work, and commit to his protection all the other concerns of my liter ary vocation, and remain with the deepest reverence, . . .
4 [ln A, the date of the dedication is March
29,
3
1781 .]
B v
B vi
PREFACE
A vii
[FIRST EDITION] 5
Human reason has a peculiar fate in one kind of its cognitions: 6 it is troubled by questions that it cannot dismiss, because they are posed to it by the nature of reason itself, but that it also cannot answer, because they surpass human reason's every ability. Our reason falls into this perplexity through no fault of its own. Reason starts from principles7 that it cannot avoid using in the course of experi' [For an extensive commentary on this Preface of the first edition, see Hans Vaihinger's Com mentar zu Kants Kritik der reinen Vernunft (New York and London: Garland Pub., Inc., 1976), vol. I, 8 1 - 1 57. This is a reprint of the original edition published by W. Spemann of Stuttgart in 1 8 8 1 , on the occasion of the hundredth anniversary of the publication of the Critique's first edition. (For Vaihinger's comments on the title page, motto, and dedication, see ibid 73-80.) Vaihinger provides extensive interpretation (as well as criticism) and indicates the many his torical influences on the development of Kant's critical philosophy. His interpretation of Kant's thought has corne to be dubbed the "patchwork theory." This theory found a prominent ex ponent in Norman Kemp Smith, who defends it in his A Commentary to Kant 's 'Critique of Pure Reason ' (2d ed., New York: Humanities Press, 1962 [ 1 923]). Although the patchwork theory has since fallen into disfavor, it exerted considerable influence on Kant scholarship, which is the reason why its sources are indicated in footnotes to this translation. (For Kemp Smith's comments on the Prefaces to editions A and B, see ibid., 8-25; for his comments on title, motto, and dedication, see ibid., 1 -7.)] 6[Erkenntnisse. This translation consistently renders Erkenntnis as 'cognition' (and in a few .•
identified instances as 'recognition'), never as 'knowledge.' The reason is that on Kant's view certain cases of practical cognition (Erkenntnis), such as that of God, are not instances of knowledge (Wissen), but of rational (moral) faith. See, e.g., B xxi and xxx, A 633-34 B 661-62, and A 828-29 B 856-57. Cf. the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 467, 469-70, 472, and 475, and the Critique of Practical Reason, Ak. V, 4 together with 137.] =
=
7[Grundsiitze. I am rendering as 'principle' both Grundsatz and Prinzip, because it seems to me that Kant uses the two interchangeably (in this work and in others-see esp. the Logic,
5
6
PREFACE
[FIRST EDITION]
ence, and that this experience at the same time sufficiently justifies it in using. By means of these principles our reason (as indeed its nature re A viii
quires it to do) ascends ever higher, to more remote conditions. But it be comes aware that in this way, since the questions never cease, its task must remain forever uncompleted. Thus it finds itself compelled to resort to prin ciples that go beyond all possible use in experience, and that nonetheless
seem so little suspect that even common human reason agrees with them. By doing this, however, human reason plunges into darkness and contra
dictions; and although it can indeed gather from these that they must be based on errors lying hidden somewhere, it is unable to discover these er rors. For the principles that it employs go beyond the boundary of all ex perience and hence no longer acknowledge any touchstone of experience. The combat arena of these endless conflicts is what we call metaphysics. There was a time when metaphysics was called the queen of all the sci ences; and if the will be taken for the deed, then she did in fact, because of the superior importance of her subject matter, deserve that title of honor. The tone in vogue8 in this era, however, has made it fashionable to treat her with total disdain; a matron who, outcast and abandoned, laments like A ix
Hecuba: Modo maxima rerum, tot generis natisque potens . . . nunc trahor exui, inops.--Ovid, Metamorphoses. 9 Initially her reign, administered by the dogmatists, was despotic. But since the legislation still bore the traces of ancient barbarism, her reign was Ak. IX, 1 1 0), contrary to what Wolfgang Schwarz has argued in a book in which he trans lates and largely paraphrases parts of Kant's first Critique: Immanuel Kant, Critique of Pure Reason-Concise Text (Aalen: Scientia Verlag, 1982). Schwarz claims (ibid 263) that at B 356 (A 299) Kant makes a "decisive distinction" between Grundsiitze and Prinzipien. But in fact the distinction made there is between understanding as our power of Regeln (i.e., rules, not Grundsiitze), and reason as our power of Prinzipien (principles). Moreover, just a little bit later, and still in the same context, Kant very plainly feels free once again to switch from Prinzipien (in the next two paragraphs) to Grundsiitze (in the paragraph after that). The switch is perfectly casual, with no suggestion whatever that a distinction is being made. Schwarz also holds (ibid 268) that Kant makes a distinction between Objekt and Gegenstand. Here too I remain unconvinced, and am rendering both terms as 'object.' I should add, in fairness to Schwarz, that in terminological matters such as these I have come to soften (though not abandon) the position I took in a paper whose main purpose was to defend my rendering of one key term: "How to Render ZweckmiiJ3igkeit in Kant's Third Critique." in Interpreting Kant, ed. Moltke S. Gram, 85-98 (Iowa City: University of Iowa Press, 1982).] .•
.•
" [Modeton. ]
9 [The quote is from xiii, 508-10, and says: "A moment ago I was ruling supreme in the world. a woman of might through all my sons and daughters . . . ; now I am powerless. dragged into exile. . . . "]
PREFACE
[FIRST EDITION]
7
beset by civil wars and thus gradually degenerated to complete anarchy; and the skeptics, a kind of nomads who loathe all steady cultivation of the soil, tore up from time to time the civil society. Luckily, however, the skep tics were few in number, and thus they could not prevent the dogmatists from trying again and again, though without following any consistent plan, to plant that society anew. In modem times, it did seem at one point as if all these conflicts would be brought to an end and the legitimacy of the claims of metaphysics decided upon once and for all, through a certain physiology of the human understanding (whose author was the illustrious Locke). It turned out, however, that although the alleged queen's descent was traced back to the rabble, i.e., common experience, which should have made her pretensions rightly suspect, she yet continued to uphold her claims, because that genealogy was in fact a fictitious one falsely ascribed to her. Thus everything 1 0 lapsed back into the obsolete, worm-eaten dogmatism, and thence into the disdain from which this science was to have been rescued. And now, after all paths (as people are persuading themselves) have been tried in vain, there prevails in the sciences a weariness and utter indifferentism, lI which is the mother of chaos and night-yet is also the source, or at least the prelude, of their approaching reform and en lightenment after ill-applied diligence has left them dark, confused, and useless. For it is futile to try to feign indifference 12 concerning inquiries whose object cannot be indifferent to human nature. Moreover, however much those alleged indifferentists try to disguise themselves in a popular tone by changing the language of the school, they inevitably fall back-insofar as they think anything at all-into metaphysical assertions, the very asser tions they claimed to despise so much. Yet this indifference-which occurs at the very time when all the sciences are flourishing, and which involves precisely those sciences whose knowledge, 13 if such could be obtained, we would least of all forgo---is a phenomenon that deserves our attention and reflection. It is evidently the effect not of the heedlessness but of the matured judgment14 of our age, which is no longer willing to be put off with lO[l.e., metaphysics.] 1 1 [lndifferentismus.] 1 2 [Gleichgiiltigkeit.] 13[Kenntnisse.] 14 Now and then one hears complaints about the shalIow way of thinking in our age and the decline of salida science. But I fail to see how the sciences that rest on a
Ax
A xi
8
PREFACE
[FIRST EDITION]
seeming knowledge. I S And it is a call to reason to take on once again the most difficult of all its tasks-viz., that of self-cognition-and to set up a tribunal that will make reason secure in its rightful claims and will dismiss
A xii
all baseless pretensions, not by fiat but in accordance with reason's eternal and immutable laws. This tribunal is none other than the critique of reason itself: the critique of pure reason. By critique of pure reason, however, I do not mean a critique of books
and systems, but I mean the critique of our power of reason as SUCh, 16 in regard to all cognitions after which reason may strive
experience.
independently of all
Hence I mean by it the decision as to whether a metaphysics
as such is possible or impossible, and the determination of its sources as well
as its range and bounds-all on the basis of principles.
Now, this is the path-the only one that remained-which I have pur sued, and I flatter myself to have found on it the elimination of all the er
rors that had thus far set reason, as used independently1 7 of experience, at variance with itself. I have certainly not evaded reason's questions, by pleading the incapacity of human reason. Rather, I have made a complete well-built foundation-such as mathematics, natural science, etc.-in the least de serve this reproach. On the contrary, they are upholding their ancient reputation for solidity, and in the case of natural science even surpass it. Now, the same spirit would be found operative in other kinds of cognition as well, if care had first been taken to correct their principles. In the absence of such correction, indifference, doubt, and-finally-strict critique are, rather,
proofs
of a solid way of thinking.
Re ligion and legislation commonly seek to exempt themselves from critique, religion through its sanctity and legislation through its majesty. But in doing so they arouse Our age is properly the age of critique, and to critique everything must submit.
well-deserved suspicion and cannot lay claim to unfeigned respect; such respect is accorded by reason only to what has been able to withstand reason's free and open examination. a[Or, possibly, 'thorough': griindlich.] ' 5[Scheinwissen.] 16[des Vernunftvermogells iiberhaupt. I render Vennogen (and likewise Kraft in this sense) as 'power' (sometimes also as 'ability') rather than as 'faculty,' in order to dissociate Kant's theory (of cognition, desire, etc.) from the traditional/acuity psychology. (See also A 5 11B 75 br. n. 22.) My point here is to keep the Kantian powers, which are simply abilities, from be coming reified. i.e., turned into psychological entities such as compartments. sources. or agen cies "in" the mind. Hence when this translation presents Kant as speaking of the power of judgment (or of thought, concepts, desire, and so on), what is meant is simply an ability-a "faculty" only in that sense. In such expressions, moreover, 'power' is never used to mean anything like strength or forcefulness (of judgments, concepts. desires, and so on.)]. 17Urei. j
PREFACE
[FIRST EDITION]
9
specification of them according to principles, and, upon discovering the 10cus 1 S of reason's disagreement 1 9 with itself, have resolved them to its full satisfaction. To be sure, my answers to these questions have not turned out to be such as a raving dogmatist's thirst for knowledge might expect. Noth ing but magical powers -at which I am no adept--could satisfy that kind of thirst for knowledge. Presumably, however, this was also not the aim of our reason's natural vocation. The duty of philosophy was, rather, to re move the deception arising from misinterpretation, even at the cost of de stroying the most highly extolled and cherished delusion. In that activity, I have made comprehensiveness2o my major aim, and I venture to say that there should not be a single metaphysical problem that has not been solved here, or for whose solution the key has not at least been provided. In fact, pure reason is so perfect a unity that, if its principle were insufficient for the solution of even a single one of all the questions assigned to reason by its own nature, then we might just as well throw the principle away; for then we could not fully rely on its being adequate to any of the remaining questions either. As I am saying this, I think I perceive in the reader's face an indigna tion, mixed with contempt, at claims that seem so vainglorious and im modest. Yet they are incomparably more moderate than the claims of ev ery author who offers us the most common program, wherein he purports to prove, say, the simple nature of the soul, or the necessity of a first be ginning o/the world. For whereas he promises to expand human cognition beyond all bounds of possible experience, I humbly confess that this is wholly beyond my power. Instead I deal solely with reason itself and its pure thinking; and to gain comprehensive acquaintance with my reason I need not search far from myself. For I encounter it within myself, and com mon logic already provides me with an example [which shows] that all simple acts of reason can be enumerated completely and systematically. Here, however, the question arises as to just how much I may hope to ac complish with reason once all the material and assistance provided by ex perience is taken away from me. So much about completeness in achieving each of the purposes2 1 set for us, and comprehensiveness in achieving all of them together-purposes set 18
[Punkt. ] 19 [L.iterally. 'misunderstanding' : Mij1verstand.] 2o [Ausfiihrlichkeit. See A 727 B 755 inc!. n. lOS, and cf. A 732 2 1 [Or 'ends' : Zwecke.] =
=
B 760.]
A xiii
A xiv
10
PREFACE
[FIRST EDITION]
for us not by this or that precept, but by the nature of cognition itself, which is the matter of our critical inquiry. A xv
A xvi
Two further items, concerning the form of the inquiry, must be regarded as essential demands that may rightly be made of an author who ventures upon so slippery an undertaking: certainty and distinctness. As regards certainty, I have bound myself by my own verdict: that hold ing opinions is in no way permissible in this kind of study; and that what ever in it so much as resembles a hypothesis is contraband, which is not to be offered for sale at even the lowest price but must be confiscated as soon as it is discovered. For, any cognition that is to hold22 a priori proclaims on its own that it wants to be regarded as absolutely necessary. So does, but much more so still, a determination of all pure a priori cognitions; for it is to be the standard and hence is itself to be the [prime] example of all apodeictic (philosophical) certainty. Now, whether I have in this work achieved what I am here promising is left entirely to the reader's judg ment; for the author should only submit grounds, and should not pro nounce on their effect on his judges. But in order to keep those grounds from being weakened by something through no fault of his own, the au thor may surely be permitted to draw attention himself to those passages that, although they serve only a subordinate purpose, might occasion some distrust. He may thus be in time to block the influence that a reader's slight est qualms concerning such a point might have had on his judgment re garding the work's main purpose. I know of23 no inquiries more important for exploring the power that we call understanding, and for determining at the same time the rules and bounds of its use, than those that I have undertaken in the second chapter of the Transcendental Analytic, under the title of Deduction of the Pure Concepts of Understanding, z4 They are also the ones that have cost me the greatest effort-but, as I hope, an effort not unrewarded. This study, how ever, which is designed to go to some depth, has two sides. The one side refers to the objects of pure understanding and is intended to establish and make comprehensible the objective validity of understanding's a priori con cepts, and precisely because of this pertains to my purposes essentially. The other side seeks to examine pure understanding itself as regards its possi bility and the cognitive powers underlying it in turn, and hence seeks to 22 (feststehen.] 23 [kennen.] 24[See A 84-1 30, and cf B 1 16-69.]
PREFACE
[FIRST EDITION]
11
examine it in a subjective respect. And although this latter exposition25 is of great importance for my main purpose, it does not pertain to it essen tially. For the main question is always this: what, and how much, can un derstanding and reason cognize independently of all experience? rather than: how is our power of thought itself possible? This latter question is, as it were, a search for the cause of a given effect, and to that extent there is something about it resembling a hypothesis (even though in fact, as I shall show on another occasion, it is not so). Thus it seems as if in this case I have permitted myself to hold an opinion, and that the reader too must hence be free to hold a different opinion. On this point I must ask the reader in advance to remember this: should my subjective deduction have failed to produce in him the full conviction that I expect it to produce, yet the objective deduction, with which I am concerned above all, will still ac quire its full force; perhaps what I say on pages [A] 92 to 93 is even suf ficient for this all by itself. As regards distinctness,26 finally, the reader has a right to demand, first, the discursive (logical) distinctness arising through concepts, but then also an intuitive27 (aesthetic) distinctness arising through intuitions,28 i.e., through examples or other illustrations in concreto. 29 For discursive dis tinctness I have provided sufficiently. This pertained to the essence of my project. But it was also the incidental cause of my inability to comply with 25[Eriirterung.] 26 [Deutlichkeit. Distinctness must not be equated with clarity (Klarheit). The Cartesian no tions of clarity and distinctness had been refined by Leibniz as follows: An idea is clear if we can (without doubt) distinguish it from all other ideas, though we may not know by what characteristics we do so. An idea is distinct if it is clear in all its parts (characteristics) and their combination, so that it can be distinguished from all other ideas explicitly, by abstrac tion (from the sensible detail) and definition. Now Kant does not here define distinctness. (But see the end of this note.) Moreover, he expands the notion by allowing not only for a logical (discursive, i.e., conceptual) but also for an intuitive (aesthetic, i.e., sensible) distinctness. But the upcoming passage does show that Kant means rather more by distinctness than he does by clarity as defined by him, in Leibnizian fashion, at B 414 n. 273. On clarity and distinct
ness in Kant, see his Logic, Ak. IX, 58-65, and cf. 33-35, 38-39, 140, 145; see also the An
thropology, Ak. VII, 137-38.]
27 [intuitive.] 28 [Anschauungen.] 29 [In the First Introduction to the Critique ofJudgment (Ak. XX, 226n) Kant says: " . . . [L]ogi cal distinctness and aesthetic distinctness are as different as day and night, and aesthetic dis tinctness [may] occur even if we do not present [vorstellen] the object through concepts at all, i.e., even if our presentation is an intuition and hence sensible." See also below, A 41-441B
59-62. (As regards my rendering of vorstellen as 'to present,' see B xvii br. n. 73 .) ]
A xvii
A xviii
12
PREFACE
[FIRST EDITION]
the demand for intuitive distinctness--a demand that, though less strict, is still legitimate. As my work progressed, I was almost constantly undecided as to what to do about intuitive distinctness. Examples and illustrations al ways seemed to me necessary. and thus they actually did appropriately find their place in my first draft. But I soon discerned the magnitude of my task and the multitude of topics that I would have to deal with. And being aware that through this magnitude and multitude alone my work would already expand enough if treated in the dry, merely scholastic way, I found it in advisable to enlarge the work still further through examples and illustra tions. These are necessary only from the popular point of view, and there is no way to adapt this work for popular use. The genuine experts in this science have less need for such simplification, which, though always agree able, might here even have had consequences running counter to my pur A xix
poses. It is true that Abbot
Terrasson tells us that if the size of a book were
measured not by the number of its pages but by the time required to un derstand it, then we could say about many books that they would be much shorter if they were not so short. 3 0 On the other hand, if we are concerned with the [distinctness and] comprehensibility of a voluminous whole of speCUlative cognition that yet coheres in one principle, then we could just as legitimately say that many books
would have turned out much more dis tinct if they had not been intended to be quite so distinct. For the aids to distinctness, while helpful3 l in parts of a book, are often distracting in the book as a whole. They keep the reader from arriving quickly enough at an overview of the whole; and with all their bright colors they do cover up and conceal the articulation or structure of the system, even though that structure is what matters most if we arc to be able to judge the system's unity and sturdiness. I think the reader might find it rather appealing to unite his efforts with those of the author, when the author has an opportunity to carry out, in ac cordance with the plan here put forth, a major and important work in a com30 [Jean Terrasson ( 1 670-1750), apart from his activities in the church, was also a professor
of ancient philosophy. Kant's quote is from a Gennan translation of Terrasson's La Philoso
phie applicable a tous les objets de I'elprit et de la raison (Philosophy as Applicable to All Objects of Spirit and Reason), published posthumously in 1 754. 'The German translation (Ber lin, 1762) bears the title Philosophie nach ihrem allgemeinen Einflusse auf aile Gegenstiinde des Geistes und der Sitten (Philosophy According to Its General Influence on All Objects of Spirit and Morals); Kant's quote is from p. 1 1 7 ] 3 1 [Reading, with Rosenkranz and Erdmann, heifen for fehlen ('are missing,' or, at best, 'are missed').]
PREFACE
[FIRST EDITION]
13
plete and yet lasting manner. Now metaphysics, according to the concepts
A xx
of it that I shall be providing here, is the only one among all the sciences that may expect such completion, and may expect it within a short time and through a small though concentrated effort. It may expect such completion as will leave to our descendants nothing more than the task of arranging everything in the didactic manner according to their aims, yet without their being able to increase the content in the least. For such a work of metaphysics3 2 is nothing but the inventory, put in systematic order, of all the possessions that we have through
pure reason.
Here nothing can es-
cape us, because what reason brings forth entirely from itself cannot hide, but is brought to light by reason itself as soon as we have discovered its common principle. For cognitions of this kind arise from pure concepts alone; they cannot be influenced -viz., expanded and increased-by anything taken from experience, or even by particular intuition that mighe3 lead to determinate experience. 34 And the perfect unity of this kind of cog-
nitions makes the mentioned unconditioned completeness not only feasible, but also necessary.
supellex.- Persius. 35
Tecum hahita. et noris quam sit libi curta
Such a system of pure (speculative) reason I myself hope to provide un der the title of Metaphysics of Nature. That system, though not half as voluminous as this critique, is to be incomparably richer in content. But first the critique had to establish the sources and conditions of the possibility of that system, and needed to clear and level a ground that was entirely overgrown. For this critique I expect from my reader the patience and impartiality of a judge; but for the system, the consideration and support of an
assistant. For however completely all the principles for that system are
set forth in the critique, the comprehensiveness of the system itself requires also that no
derivative
concepts be missing. These cannot be esti-
mated a priori, but must be discovered gradually. Similarly, whereas in the critique36 the entire synthesis of concepts was done exhaustively, in the sys32[es.
which can refer only to 'work' above.]
·1 3[sollte.]
34 [Without itself as yet being such experience.] 3s [From the Satires of Aulus (or Etruscan Aules) Persius Baccus (34-62 A.D.), Roman poet
and satirist, Satire iv, 52: "Live in your own house, and you will realize how sparsely it is furnished. "1
36[dort.]
A xxi
14
PREFACE
[FIRST EDITION]
tem 3 7 we require in addition that their analysis also be done exhaustively-though all of that is easy and more entertaining than labo rious. Now I just need to add a few comments concerning the printing. Be cause the beginning of the printing was slightly delayed, I was able to see
A xxii
only about half of the proof sheets. I am now finding some misprints in them. They do not disturb the meaning, except for one misprint that occurs on p. [A] 379, fourth line from the bottom,38 where we must read in kind instead of skeptically [sceptisch]. 39 The antinomy of pure rea son, from p. [A] 425 [426] to p. 46 1 , has been set up, in the manner of a
[specijisch]
table, in such a way that whatever belongs to the
thesis runs continuously
on the left side; and what belongs to the antithesis, on the right side. I have arranged the antinomy in this way in order to make it easier to compare thesis and antithesis with each other.40
37[hier.] 38 [In the original German edition.] 39 [The two German terms are given in their older spelling here, to show the similarity be tween them. They are now spelled spezijisch and skeptisch.] 4{)[Satz and Gegensatz here, Thesis and Antithesis just above.]
PREFACE
B vii
[SECOND EDITION]
Whether someone's treatment of the cognitions pertaining to reason's busi 41 ness does or does not follow the secure path of a science-this we can soon judge from the result. If, after many preparations and arrangements have been made, the treatment falters as soon as it turns to its purpose; or if, in order to reach that purpose, it repeatedly has to retrace its steps and enter upon a different path; or, again, if the various collaborators cannot be brought to agree on the manner in which their common aim is to be achieved-then we may rest assured that such an endeavor is still far from having entered upon the secure path of a science, but is a mere groping about. We shall indeed be rendering a service to reason if we can possibly discover that path, even if we should have to give up as futile much that was included in the purpose which we had previously adopted without de liberation.
Logic has
been following that secure path from the earliest times. This
is evident from the fact that since
Aristotle
it has not needed to retrace a
single step, unless perhaps removing some of its dispensable subtleties, or setting it forth in a more distinct and determinate way, were to be counted as improvements of logic, even though they pertain more to the elegance
of that science than to its being secure. Another remarkable fact about logic is that thus far it also has not been able to advance a single step, and hence is to all appearances closed and completed. It is true that some of the moderns have meant to expand logic.
Some of them have inserted
into it psychological chapters on the different cognitive powers (e. g., 41 [Gang here.
Weg just below.] 15
B viii
16
PREFACE
[SECOND EDITION]
on our power of imagination, or on ingenuity). Others have inserted
physical chapters on the origin of cognition,
meta
or the origin of the different
kinds of certainty according to the difference in the objects (i.e., chapters on42 idealism, skepticism, etc.). Still others have inserted into logic an
thropological chapters on prejudices (as well as their causes and rem edies). But all these attempts to expand logic are the result of ignorance concerning the peculiar nature of this science. We do not augment sci ences, but corrupt them, if we allow their boundaries to overlap. But the B ix
boundary of logic is deteunined quite precisely by the fact that logic is a science that provides nothing but a comprehensive exposition43 and strict proof of the formal rules of all thought. (Such thought may be a priori or empirical, may have any origin or object whatsoever, and may encounter in our minds obstacles that are accidental or natural.) That logic has been so successful in following the secure path of a sci ence is an advantage that it owes entirely to its limitations. They entitle it, even obligate it, to abstract from all objects of cognition and their differ ences; hence in logic the understanding deals with nothing more than it self and its foun.44 Reason naturally had to find it far more difficult to en ter upon the secure path of science when dealing not just with itself, but also with objects. By the same token, logic is a propaedeutic and founs, as it were, only the vestibule of the sciences; and when knowledge45 is at is sue, while for the judging of such knowledge we do indeed presuppose a logic, yet for its acquisition we must look to what are called sciences prop erly and objectively.
B x
Now insofar as there is to be reason in these sciences, something in them must be cognized a priori. Moreover, reason's cognition can be referred to the object of that cognition in two ways: either in order merely to determine the object and its concept (which must be supplied from elsewhere), or in order to make it actual as well. The first is reason's theoretical, the second its practical cognition. In both the pure part, i.e., the part in which 42[1 am repeating
'chapters on' on the assumption that dem was meant to go with another von. as used by Kant with the psychological chapters and again with the anthropological ones. in place of the iibeT to which he switched for the metaphysical chapters. Conceivably, dem could be construed as going with nach, with Objekte translated (rather loosely) as 'projects' and re ferring (a bit oddly) to idealism and sk.epticism (which are not usually considered "projects").]
43[darlegen.]
44[Kant's views on general logic are to be found primarily in his Logic and his Reflections on Logic, in volumes IX and XVI, respectively. of the Akademie edition of Kant's writings.] 45[Kenntllisse.]
PREFACE
[SECOND EDITION]
17
reason determines its object entirely a priori, must be set forth all by itself beforehand, no matter how much or how little it may contain. We must not mix with this part what comes from other sources. For we follow bad eco
nomic procedure if we blindly spend what comes in and are afterwards un able, when the procedure falters, to distinguish which part of the income
can support the expenditure and which must be cut from it.46 Two [sciences involving] theoretical cognitions by reason are to deter mine their
objects
a priori: they are
mathematics
and
physics.
In math
ematics this determination is to be entirely pure; in physics it is to be at least partly pure. but to some extent also in accordance with sources of cog nition other than reason.
Mathematics has been following the secure path47 of a science since the earliest times to which the history of human reason extends; it did so al ready among that admirable people, the Greeks. But we must not think that it was as easy for mathematics to hit upon that royal road- or, rather, to build it on its own-as it was for logic, where reason deals only with it-
self. Rather, I believe that for a long time (above all, it was still so among the Egyptians) mathematics did no more than grope about, and that its transformation into a science was due to a
revolution brought about by the for-
tunate idea48 that occurred to one man during an experiment. From that time onward, the route that mathematics had to take could no longer be missed, and the secure path49 of a science had been entered upon and traced out for all time and to an infinite distance. This revolution in the way of thinking was much more important than the discovery of the passage around the celebrated Cape.50 Its history, and that of the fortunate man who brought this revolution about, is lost to us. But
Diogenes Laertiu;l
always names
the reputed authors of even the minutest elements of geometrical demonstration, elements that in ordinary people's judgment do not even stand in need of proof; and Diogenes hands down to us a story concerning the 46[Reading, with Erdmann, von welchem for von welcher.]
47[Weg, also translated as 'road' and as 'passage' just below.] 48[Einfall. ] 49[Gang.1 s°
[11te Cape of Good Hope.]
5 1 [Author of the only extant continuous account of the lives and doctrines of the main Greek philosophers. He is thought to have flourished (where is not clear) in the early part of the third century A.D. His work is known under various titles. such as The Lives of Philosophers,
Lives and Opinions of Famous Philosophers, and several others.]
B xi
18
PREFACE
[SECOND EDITION]
change that was brought about by the first indication of this new path's discovery. This story shows that the memory of this change must have seemed exceedingly important to mathematicians, and thus became indel ible. When the
isosceles triangle was first demonstrated, something dawned Thales,5 2 or by some
on the man who did so. (He may have been called B xii
other name.) He found that what he needed to do was not to investigate what he saw in the figure, nor-for that matter-to investigate the mere concept of that figure, and to let that inform him, as it were, of the figure's properties. He found, rather, that he must bring out (by constructing the figure) the properties that the figure had by virtue of what he himself was, according to concepts, thinking into it a priori and exhibiting. 53 And he found that in order for him to know anything a priori and with certainty about the figure, he must attribute to this thing nothing but what follows necessarily from what he has himself put into it in accordance with his concept. Natural science took much longer to hit upon the high road of science. For only about a century and a half have passed since the ingenious Ba con, Baron Verulam,s4 made the proposal that partly prompted this road's discovery, and partly-insofar as some were already on the trail of this dis covery-invigorated it further. This discovery, too,55 can be explained only by a sudden revolution in people's way of thinking. I shall here take account of natural science only insofar as it is founded on
empirical prin
ciples.
Galileo let balls, of a weight chosen by himself, roll down his inclined plane;56 or when TorSomething dawned on all investigators of nature when
52 [Thales of Miletus (in Asia Minor), who was considered one of the Seven Wise Men of an cient Greece, flourished around 585 RC. He has been regarded, since early antiquity, as the founder of the Ionian school of nalural philosophy, and is generally credited with having in troduced geometry to Greece. Cf. Diogenes Laertius (preceding note), i, 22-44.]
53 [darstellen. This term (similarly for the noun) has traditionally been rendered most often as 'to present.' I believe that 'to exhibit' conveys Kant's meaning rather better. (In a few places, all marked by bracketed insertions, Kant uses Darstellung in a nontechnical sense, as mean
ing exposition.) In this translation, 'to present' is used instead to render vorstellen. My rca sons for this rendering are given at B xvii br. n. 73.J S4[See above. B ii br. n. I . Emphasis on 'VeruIam' deleted.] " [Like the one in mathematics: B xi.] 56[The point of Galileo's experiment was to disprove the Scholastic view that heavy bodies fall faster than light ones, by verifying his own theory that the distance covered would be proportional to the square of the time and independent of the weight.]
PREFACE
[SECOND EDITION]
19
ricelli57 made the air carry a weight that he had judged58 beforehand to be equal to the weight of a water column known to him; or when, in more re cent times,
StahlS9 converted metals into
calx and that in tum into metal,
by withdrawing something60 from the metals and then restoring it to them.61 What all these investigators of nature comprehended62 was that reason has insight only into what it itself produces according to its own plan;63 and that reason must not allow nature by itseltM to keep it in leading strings, as it were, but reason must-using principles that underlie its judgments-proceed according to constant laws and compel nature to an swer reason's own questions. For otherwise our observations, made with
out following any plan outlined in advance, are contingent, i.e., they have
no coherence at all in terms of a necessary law�ven though such a law is what reason seeks and requires. When approaching nature, reason must
hold in one hand its principles, in terms of which alone concordant ap pearances can count as laws, and in the other hand the experiment that it has devised in terms of those principles. Thus reason must indeed ap proach nature in order to be instructed by it; yet it must do so not in the capacity of a pupil who lets the teacher tell him whatever the teacher wants, but in the capacity of an appointed judge who compels the witnesses to answer the questions that he puts to them. Thus even physics owes that S7
[Evangelista Torricelli ( 1 608- 1 647), Italian physicist and mathematician. He was first to
create a sustained vacuum, and he invented the barometer.]
s8[geciachl.] S9
[Georg Ernst Stahl (1 660-1 734), Gennan physician and chemist. He developed the phlo
giston theory of combustion, which offered the first comprehensive explanation of combus tion and of such related biological processes as respiration, fermentation, and decay. The theory dominated chemical thought for almost a century, until its replacement by Lavoisier'S oxida tion theory of combustion.] 6O[ The "something" was thought to be phlogiston. On the phlogiston theory of combustion (cf. previous note), the processes involved
are
these: Metals, when heated, lose phlogiston
and become calces (or calx, in the singular), kinds of ashy powder now known to be oxides. Calces, when heated with charcoal, reabsorb phlogiston and become metals again. (The origi nal phlogiston having been scattered and lost, the new phlogiston absorbed by the calx comes from the charcoal, which is especially rich in phlogiston.)]
fill
am
not here following with precision the course of the history of the experi
mental method; indeed, the
first beginnings of that history are not well known.
62 [As a result of the mentioned experiments. ] 63 [Cf. the
64[allein.}
Critique of Judgment, Ak . V, 384.]
B xiii
20
B xiv
PREFACE
[SECOND EDITION]
very advantageous revolution in its way of thinking to this idea:65 the idea that we must, in accordance with what reason itself puts into nature, seek in nature (not attribute to it fictitiously) whatever reason must learn from nature and would know nothing of on its own. This is what put natural sci ence, for the very first time, on the secure path of a science, after it had for so many centuries been nothing more than a mere groping about. Metaphysics is a speculative cognition by reason that is wholly isolated and rises entirely above being instructed by experience. It is cognition through mere concepts (not, like mathematics, cognition through the ap plication of concepts to intuition), so that here reason is to be its own pu pil. But although metaphysics is older than all the other sciences, and would endure even if all the others were to be engulfed utterly in the abyss of an all-annihilating barbarism, fate thus far has not favored it to the point of enabling it to enter upon the secure path of a science. For in metaphysics reason continually falters, even when the laws into which it seeks to gain (as it pretends) a priori insight are those that are confirmed by the com monest experience. Countless times, in metaphysics, we have to retrace our steps, because we find that our path does not lead us where we want to go.
B xv
As regards agreement in the assertions made by its devotees, metaphysics is very far indeed from such agreement. It is, rather, a combat arena which seems to be destined quite specifically for practicing one's powers66 in mock combat, and in which not one fighter has ever been able to gain even the smallest territory and to base upon his victory a lasting possession. There can be no doubt, therefore, that the procedure of metaphysics has thus far been a mere groping about, and-worst of all-a groping about among mere concepts. Why is it, then, that in metaphysics we have thus far been unable to find the secure path of science? Might this path be impossible here? Why, then, has nature inflicted on reason, as one of reason's most important con cerns, the restless endeavor to discover67 that path? What is more: how little cause have we to place confidence in our reason, when in one of the most important matters68 where we desire knowledge reason not merely for sakes us, but puts us off with mere pretenses and in the end betrays us! Or if we have only missed the path thus far, what indication do we have that 65[Einfall.j 66[Krii/te.j 67 [nachspiinm.] 68[Stiicke.j
PREFACE
[SECOND EDmON]
21
if we renew our search, we may hope to be more fortunate than others be fore us have been? I would think that the examples of mathematics and natural science, which have become what they now are by a revolution accomplished all
B xvi
at once, are sufficiently remarkable to (suggest that we should] reflect on
the essential component in that revolution, viz., the transformation of the way of thinking that became so advantageous for them; and as far as is permitted by the fact that they, as rational cognitions,69 are analogous to metaphysics, we should [there] imitate them with regard to that transfor
mation, at least by way of an experiment. Thus far it has been assumed that all our cognition must conform to objects. On that presupposition. how ever, all our attempts to establish something about them a priori, by means of concepts through which our cognition would be expanded, have come to nothing. Let us, therefore, try to find out by experiment70 whether we shall not make better progress in the problems of metaphysics if we as sume that objects must conform to our cognition.71- This assumption al ready agrees better with the demanded possibility of an a priori cognition of objects-Le., a cognition that is to ascertain something about them be fore they are given to us. The situation here is the same as was that of Co
pernicus when he first thought of explaining
the motions of celestial bod
ies.72 Having found it difficult to make progress there when he assumed that the entire host of stars revolved around the spectator, he tried to find out by experiment whether he might not be more successful if he had the spectator revolve and the stars remain at rest. Now, we can try a similar experiment in metaphysics. with regard to our
intuition
of objects. If our
intuition had to conform to the character of its objects, then I do not see how we could know anything a priori about that character. But I can quite readily conceive of this possibility if the object (as object of the senses) conforms to the character of our power of intuition. However, if these in tuitions are to become cognitions, I cannot remain with them but must re69
[l.e., cognitions by reason.]
70(versuchen.] 71 [Cf. Walter Watson, The Architectonics ofMeaning; Foundations ofthe New Pluralism (Al bany: State University of New York Press, 1 985), 5-9.] 72 [Nicolaus Copernicus (1473-1 543), the Polish astronomer. reinvented the heliocentric hy pothesis. The hypothesis had been advanced previously by Aristarchus, a Greek astronomer of the third century B.C. Bul his work was lost a few decades after he wrote it, and we know about it only through other writers' testimony that i tself was not recovered until long after the time of Copernicus.]
B xvii
22
PREFACE
[SECOND EDITION]
fer them, as presentations.7 3 to something or other as their object. and must determine this object by means of them. [Since for this determination I re quire concepts, I must make one of two assumptions.] I can assume that the concepts by means of which I bring about this determination likewise conform to the object;74 and in that case I am again in the same perplexity as to how I can know anything a priori about that object. Or else I assume that the objects. or-what amounts to the same75 -the experience in which alone they (as objects that are given to us) can be cognized. conform to those concepts. On this latter assumption. I immediately see an easier way out. For experience is itself a way of cognizing for which I need under standing. But understanding has its rule, a rule that I must presuppose within
B xviii
me even before objects are given to me, and hence must presuppose a priori; and that rule is expressed in a priori concepts. Hence all objects of expe rience must necessarily conform to these concepts and agree with them. Afterwards, however, we must also consider objects insofar as they can merely be thought, though thought necessarily. but cannot at all be given in experience (at least not in the way in which reason thinks them). Our 73[Vorstellungen. The traditional rendering of Vorstellung (similarly for the verb)
as
' repre
sentation' suggests that Kant's theory of perception (etc.) is representational, which, however,
repraesentaJio). For one thing. vorstellen, in the Kantian use of the term that is relevant here, is not something that Vorstel [ungen do; it is something that we do. Moreover, vorstellen as so used never means anything it is not (despite the fact that Kant sometimes adds the Latin
like 'represent' in the sense of 'stand for.' Even an empirical intuition, e.g., does not stand for an object of experience (let alone a thing in itselO, but rather enters into the experience which that object of experience is. (Because 'presentation' too is slightly awkward, I have in some contexts replaced it- if clarity could be enhanced at no risk of distortion-by 'con ception' or 'thought' ; similarly for the verb.) Presentations, as the term is here used, are such objects of our direct awareness ideas, and schemata. See
as
sensations, intuitions. perceptions, concepts. cognitions,
A 32018 376-77 and A 14018 179. The German term darstellen
(similarly for the noun) has traditionally been rendered most often as 'to present.' That ren
vorstellen darstellen in Kant's technical
dering, besides being somewhat unclear, obviously becomes especially harmful if is simultaneously rendered as 'to represent.' In this translation
sense of the term is rendered as 'to exhibit,' which is clear and in no way misleading. (In a
few places-all clearly identified-Kant uses
[)ar,�tellllng in the nontechnical sense of 'ex
position. ') The terminological adjustments described here are not entirely new. I already made them in translating Kant's third
Critique: Immanuel Kant, Critique of Judgment, trans., with
an introduction. Werner S. Pluhar (Indianapolis: Hackett Publishing Company, 1987). I have
Vontellung as 'pre first Critique: see above, A vii br. n. 7.]
since discovered that Wolfgang Schwarz had chosen even earlier to render sentation' in his 1982 translation of parts of the
74[As do the intuitions.] 15[Because the objects under discussion are objects of our experience. i.e., objects as expe rienced (objects given to us in experience).]
PREFACE
[SECOND EDITION]
23
attempts76 to think these objects (for they must surely be thinkable) will afterwards provide us with a splendid touchstone of what we are adopting
as the changed method in our way of thinking, viz., that all we cognize a priori about things is what we ourselves put into them.77 This experiment78 is as successful as was desired. It promises that meta
physics will be on the secure path of a science in its first part, viz., the part where it deals with those a priori concepts for which corresponding ob jects adequate to these concepts can be given in experience. For on the changed way of thinking we can quite readily explain how a priori cogni tion is possible; what is more, we can provide satisfactory proofs for the laws that lie a priori at the basis79 of nature considered as the sum of ob jects of experience. Neither of these accomplishments was possible on the kind of procedure used thus far. On the other hand, this deduction-provided
76[Versuche.] "This method, then, which imitates that of the investigator of nature, consists in searching for the elements of pure reason in what can be confirmed or refuted by an experiment.8 Now the propositions of pure reason, especially if they venture be
yond all bounds of possible experience, cannot be tested by doing (as we do in natural science) an experiment with their objects. Hence testing such propositions
will be feasible only by doing an experiment with concepts and principles that we
assume a priori. In that experiment we must arrange [to use] these concepts and principles in such a way that the same objects can be contemplated from two dif b ferent standpoints: on the one hand, for the sake of experience, as objects of the senses and of the understanding; yet on the other hand, for the sake of isolated reason that strives to transcend all bounds of experience, as objects that we merely think.. Now if it turns out that contemplating things from that twofold point of view results in harmony with the principle of reason, but that doing so from one and the same point of view puts reason into an unavoidable conflict with itself, then the experiment decides in favor of the correctness of distinguishing the two points of view.
8[Experiment. ] b[Seiten. j
78[Versuch. The experiment intended t o find out whether w e may not d o better i n metaphys ics if we assume that the objects of our cognition must conform to our cognition, rather than the other way round.]
79[Grund. With a few exceptions, I am rendering this term as 'basis' rather than as 'ground.' For one thing, the corresponding 'based on' is much less awkward than is 'grounded in.' Above all, however, the 'ground' terminology tends
to
suggest a logical relation. The 'basis' termi
nology is broader, almost always appropriately so. E.g., a Bestimmungsgrund, i.e., a basis de tennining something. can be all sorts of things.]
B xix
24
B xx
B xxi
PREFACE
[SECOND EDITION]
in the first part of metaphysics80 ---of our power to cognize a priori81 pro duces a disturbing result that seems highly detrimental to the whole pur pose of metaphysics as dealt with in the second part: 82 viz., that with this power to cognize a priori we shall never be able to go beyond the bound ary of possible experience, even though doing so is precisely the most essential concern of this science. Yet this very [situation permits] the ex periment that will countercheck the truth of the result that we obtained from the first assessment of our a priori rational cognition: viz., that our rational cognition applies only to appearances, and leaves the thing83 in itself un cognized by us, even though inherently actual. For what necessarily impels us to go beyond the boundary of experience and of all appearances is the unconditioned that reason demands in things84 in themselves; reason necessarily and quite rightfully-demands this unconditioned for every thing conditioned, thus demanding that the series of conditions be com pleted by means of that unconditioned. Suppose, now, we find that the un conditioned cannot be thought at all without contradiction if we assume that our experiential cognition conforms to objects as things in themselves, yet that the contradiction vanishes if we assume that our presentation of things, as these are given to us, does not conform to them as things in themselves, but that these objects are, rather, appearances that conform to our way of presenting. Suppose that we find, consequently, that the unconditioned is not to be met with in things insofar as we are acquainted with85 them (i.e., insofar as they are given to us), but is to be met with in them [only] insofar as we are not acquainted with them, viz., insofar as they are things in them selves. If this is what we find, it will show that what we assumed initially only by way of an experiment86 does in fact have a foundation.87 Now, 80[Le., in the Transcendental Aesthetic and the Transcendental Analytic of this Critique, A 19-292IB 33-349.] 81 [Le., legitimation of the claim that we have such a power.] 82 [Le., in the Transcendental Dialectic, A 293-7041B 349-732.] 83[Sache.] 84[Dingen.] 85 [kennen.] 86[Viz., that our power of a priori cognition can inform us only about appearances, but can never take us beyond the boundary of possible experience and allow us to cognize the thing in itself.] 87This experimenta of pure reason is very similar to that done in chemistry, which is called sometimes the experiment of
reduction, but generally the synthetic pro-
PREFACE
[SECOND EDITION]
25
once we have denied that speculative reason can make any progress in that 88 we still have an option available to us. We realm of the suprasensible, 89 can try to discover whether perhaps in reason's practical cognition data can be found that would allow us to determine reason's transcendent con 9o cept of the unconditioned. Perhaps in this way our a priori cognition, 91 though one that is possible only from a practical point of view, would still allow us to get beyond the boundary of all possible experience, as is the wish of metaphysics. Moreover, when we follow this kind of proce 92 dure, still speculative reason has at least provided us with room for such an expansion [of our cognition], even if it had to leave that room empty. And hence there is as yet nothing to keep us from filling in that room, if we can, with practical
SO.93
data of reason;
indeed, reason summons us to do
cedure. The analysis of the metaphysician has divided pure a priori cognition into
two very heterogeneous elements, viz., such cognition of things as appearances, and of things in themselves. The [metaphysician's] dialectic recombines the two so as
to yield agreement with reason's necessary idea of the unconditioned, and finds that
this agreement can never be obtained except through that distinction, which is there
fore [a] true one.
"[Experiment here, Versuch just below.]
88[I.e., the realm of objects considered as things in themselves rather than as objects of sense. ]
89[versuchen.] 9O[I.e., make the concept determinate, give it content by means of attributes or "determina tions" (cf.
A 231B 37 br. n. 30) of this unconditioned.]
91[See below, B xxiv-xxv.] 92{I.e., the use of practical reason.]
"In the same way,a the central laws governing the motions of the celestial bodies provided with established certainty what Copernicus had initially assumed only as a hypothesis, and at the same time provided proof of the invisible force (Newto nian attraction) that links together the world edifice. That force would have re
mained forever undiscovered if Copernicus had not dared, in a manner that con flicted with the senses but yet was true, to seek the observed motions not in the celestial objects but in the spectator. The transformation in the way of thinking [in metaphysics] which I set forth in the Critique is analogous to the Copernican hy pothesis. Here in the preface I likewise put it forth only as a hypothesis, even though in the treatise itself it will be proved, not hypothetically but apodeicticalIy, from the character of our presentations of space and time and from the elementary con b cepts of the understanding. Here I put it forth as a hypothesis in order merely to
B xxii
26
PREFACE
[SECOND EDITION]
The task, then, of this critique of pure speculative reason consists in the described attempt to transform the procedure previously followed in meta physics, by subjecting metaphysics to a complete revolution, thus follow ing the example set by the geometricians and investigators of nature.94 The critique is a treatise on the method [of the science of metaphysics], not a system of the science itself. Yet it does set down the entire outline of meta B xxiii
physics, including the bounds of this science as well as its entire internal structure. For pure speculative reason has a twofold peculiarity. First, it both can and ought to measure what its own ability is according to the different ways in which it selects objects for its thought. For in a priori cognition nothing can be attributed to objects except what the thinking subject takes from itself. Second, pure speculative reason also can and ought to enumer ate completely and on its own the various ways it has of posing problems to itself, and thus to set down in advance the entire outline for a system of metaphysics. For, as regards its cognitive principles, it is an entirely sepa rate, self-subsistent95 unity in which, as in an organized body,96 each mem ber exists for the sake of all the others, and all exist for the sake of each
one reference unless thoroughgoing reference to our entire
one. In this unity no principle can safely be taken in we have also investigated it in [its]
pure use of reason. But [as a consequence of this unity of pure speculative reason] metaphysics is also exceptionally fortunate in a way that is denied to all other rational sciences dealing with objects (as distinguished from
logic, which deals only with the form of thought as such): Once metaphys ics has been brought by this critique onto the secure path of a science, it is able to encompass97 completely the entire realm of the cognitions pertain B xxiv
ing to it. Hence it can complete its work and put it aside for the use of posterity, as capital that can never be increased. What enables metaphys ics to complete its work is that it deals merely with principles, and with the restrictions on their use as determined by these principles themselves. Moreover, being a basic science, it is also obligated to achieve this comdraw attention to the first attempts at such a transformation; and such attempts are always hypothetical. alAs Kant has just described in the case of metaphysics.] b [I.e., the categories.] 94[See WaIter Watson, op. cit. at B xvi br. n. 7 1 , 35.] 9' [fiir sich bestehend.] 96[Cf. the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 3 7 3 74 ] -
97[befassen.]
.
PREFACE
[SECOND EDITION]
pleteness; regarding metaphysics we must be able to say:
27
nil actum repu
tans, si quid superesset agendum. 98 But, it will be asked, what sort of treasure is this that we mean to be queath to posterity, in leaving them a metaphysics that has been purified by critique, though thereby also made durable? A cursory survey of this work will leave one with the impression that such a metaphysics benefits us only negatively, viz., by instructing us that in [using] speculative rea son we must never venture beyond the boundary of experience; and this instruction is indeed its primary benefit. But this benefit becomes positive as soon as we become aware that the principles with which speculative rea
son ventures beyond its boundary do not in fact expand our use of reason; they unfailingly narrow it, as we find when we examine them more closely.
For these principles, which properly pertain to sensibility, do actually threaten99 to expand the bounds of sensibility until they includelOO every thing, thus threatening even to displace the pure (practical) use of reason. Hence a critique that restricts speculative reason is, to that extent, indeed
negative.
But because, by doing so, the critique also removes an obstacle
that restricts-- or even threatens to annihilate-the practical use of reason, its benefit is in fact positive and very important. We see this as soon as we become convinced that there is a use of pure reason which is practical and absolutely necessary (viz its moral use). When used practically, pure rea son inevitably expands and reaches beyond the bounds of sensibility; and .•
although it does not require for this any help from speCUlative pure reason, 101 from it in order not to fall it must still be assured against interference into contradiction with itself. To deny that this service rendered by the cri tique has a positive benefit would be like saying that the police provides no positive benefit; after all, one might say, the main task of the police is only to put a stop to the violence on whose account citizens must fear each other, in order that everyone may carry on his business calmly and safely. 9R
["Thinking that nothing was done as long
as
anything remained to be done." The quote is
from the (unfinished) De bello civili (On the Civil War) by the Roman poet Lucan (Marcus Annaeus Lucanus, A.D. 39-65), ii, 657. The poem, which is also called Pharsalia (after the battle at Pharsalos described in Book vii), deals with the contest between Julius Caesar and the Senate, and the person referred to in the quote is Caesar. Actually, instead of reputans (thinking) the original has credens (believing), and instead of si it has dum or possibly cum (a switch that does not affect the meaning here).] 99 [1f used in the way described.] lOO[uber.] 101 [Gegenwirkung.}
B
XXV
28
PREFACE
[SECOND EDITION]
Now in the analytic part of the critique I shall prove that space and time are only fonns of our sensible intuition and hence are only conditions of the existence of things as appearances, and that, furthennore, we have no concepts of understanding, and hence also no elements whatever for the B xxvi
cognition of things, except insofar as intuition can be given corresponding to these concepts. That will prove, consequently, that we cannot have [speculative] cognition of any object !02 as thing in itself, but can have such cognition only insofar as the object is one of sensible intuition, i.e., an ap pearance. And from this it does indeed follow that any possible specula tive cognition of reason is restricted to mere objects of experience. On the other hand, it must be noted carefully that this [conclusion] is always sub ject to this reservation: that we must be able at least to think, even if not [speculatively] cognize, the same objects also as things in themselves. t03
B xxvii
For otherwise an absurd proposition would follow, viz., that there is ap pearance without anything that appears. Now let us suppose that the dis tinction, necessitated by our critique, between objects of experience and these same objects as things in themselves, had not been made at all. In that case the principle of causality, and hence nature's mechanism as gov erning the detennination of [the exercise of] that causality, would defi nitely have to hold for all things as SUCh lO4 [construed] as efficient causes. Hence I could not, without manifest contradiction, say of the same being, for example the human soul, that its will is free and yet is subject to natu ral necessity, i.e., not free. For I would be taking the soul
in the same sense
l 02[Gegenstand here, Objekt just thereafter.]
103In order for me to cognize an object I must be able to prove its [real] possibility (either from its actuality as attested by experience, or a priori by means of reason). But I can think whatever I want to, even if I am unable to commit myself to there being, in the sum of all [logical] possibilities: an object corresponding to the con cept. b All that is required in order for me to think something is that I do not con tradict myself, i.e., that my concept be a [logically] possiblec thought. But I require something further in order to attribute objective reality to a concept (i.e., real pos sibility, as distinguished from the merely logical possibility just mentioned). However-and this is my pointd-this something further need not be sought in theo retical sources of cognition, but may also lie in practical ones. a[On the distinction between logical and real possibility, see A 391IB 1 78 br. n. 66.] b[If there is such an object, then its concept has objective validity, i.e., the concept (and the object as well) has also real possibility.] e[I e., thinkable. Cf. the etymology of 'logical.'] d [eben. ] l 04[Le., including things i n themselves: iiberhaupt. See br. n . 106, juS! below.]
PREFACE
[SECOND EDITION]
29
in the two propositions, viz., as a thingI05 as SUChI06 (thing in itself); nor, without prior critique, could I help taking it so. Suppose, on the other hand,
Critique is not in error when it teaches us to take the object in two different senses, 107 viz., as appearance and as thing in itself; and that the deduction of the Critique's concepts of understanding is correct, so that the that the
principle of causality applies to things only in the first sense,lOS viz., in
sofar as they are objects of experience, but that these same objects are not subject to that principle when taken in the second sense.109 On these sup
positions. no contradiction arises when we think the same will in both these ways: in its appearance (i.e., in its visible acts), as confonning necessarily to natural law and as to that extent not free; yet on the other hand, qua be 11 1 longing to a thing in itself, 0 as not subject to that law, and hence as free. 1 1 Now as regards my soul when considered from this second standpoint, I cannot cognize it through any [use of] speculative reason (let alone through empirical observation); nor, therefore, can I in this way cognize freedom
as
the property of a being to which I attribute effects in the world of sense.
For otherwise I would have to cognize such a being as a being determined with regard to its existence and yet as not determined in time (which is impossible, because I cannot base such a concept on any intuition). Nev ertheless, Lalthough I cannot in this way cognize my freedom,] I can still
think freedom.
I.e., at least my presentation of freedom contains no con
tradiction, if we make our critical distinction between the two ways of pre senting (sensible and intellectual), and restrict accordingly the pure con cepts of understanding and hence also the principles that flow from them. Now let us suppose that morality necessarily presupposes freedom (in the strictest sense) as a property of our will; for morality adduces a priori, as 10S D [ ing here. Sache just below.] 106[ iiberhaupt. In this translation, J render this term almost always by 'as such,' and only oc
casionally by 'in general' (or 'generally'), because this latter rendering can too often be mis read as an adverb modifying some nearby verb. See, for some early examples, A 6 lIB 86, A
66IB 90, A 691B 94, B 1 15, A 1 1 1 , B 140, B 143, B 146, B 1 59. And although 'as such' is
needed also to translate als .wlch-, this latter use is readily identifiable by means of its place
ment or its insertion in commas.]
107[Or 'significations' : Bedeutungen.]
108 S [ inn. ] 109[I.e., as things in themselves ]
lI o IlI
[A soul.]
[See below, A 444-S I IB 472-79.1
B xxviii
30
PREFACE
[SECOND EDITION]
data of reason, 1 1 2 original practical principles residing in reason, and these B xxix
principles would be absolutely impossible without the presupposition of freedomY 3 But then suppose that speculative reason had proved that free dom cannot be thought at all. 1 I 4 In that case the moral presupposition 1 15
would have to yield to the other [supposition]. 1 1 6 For this other [supposi tion] 's opposite involves a manifest contradiction 1 1 7 (whereas the opposite 8 of freedom and morality 1 1 involves no contradiction, unless freedom has already been presupposedI 19). Hence freedom, and with it morality, would have to give way to the mechanism
of nature.
But in fact the situation is
different. All I need for morality is that freedom does not contradict itself and hence can at least be thought; I do not need to have any further insight into it. In other words, all I need is that freedom [in my act] puts no ob stacle whatever in the way of the natural mechanism [that governs] the same act (when the act is taken in a different reference). Thus the doctrinel 2o of morality maintains its own place, and so does natural science. But this would not have happened if the critique had not instructed us beforehand about our unavoidable ignorance regarding things in themselves, restrict ing to mere appearances what we can
cognize theoretically. This
same ex
position of the positive benefit found in critical principles of pure reason can be produced again in regard to the concept of
God and of the simple
1 1 2 [Cf. the Critique of Practical Reason, Ak. V, 3 1 .] 1 I3[Cf. ibid., Ak. V, 28-33, 47-50, and also 3-4, 42, 93-94, 1 05, 1 6 1 . ] 1 1 4 [Viz., as ruled out by the necessary mechanism of nature.] l l s [Of freedom, as presupposed by morality.] 1 1 6[That freedom cannot be thought.] 1 l 7[Which would thus prove the original supposition, viz., that freedom cannot be thought. The opposite (or denial) of this supposition is that freedom can be thought, which would con tradict a necessary mechanism that (as would have been proved by speculative reason) rules out freedom.] 1 18 [deren. ] 1 1 9 [Here the opposite (or denial) is that there is no freedom and hence no (possibility of) mo rality, which would not contradict a necessary mechanism, obviously not even one that ruled out freedom. Hence here the opposite or denial cannot prove the original supposition, viz of freedom as presupposed by morality. A contradiction would arise only if we had already pre supposed freedom: freedom would contradict both its own denial and that of (the possibility of) morality.] .•
12°[Lehre. also translated as 'science' just below.]
PREFACE
[SECOND EDITION]
31
nature of our soul; but for the sake of brevity I shall omit it. Thus 1 2 1 I can not even assume God. freedom, and immortality. [as I must] for the sake
B xxx
of the necessary practical use of my reason, if I do not at the same time deprive speculative reason of its pretensions to transcendent insight. For in order to reach God, freedom, and immortality, speculative reason must use principles that in fact extend merely to objects of possible experience; and when these principles are nonetheless applied to something that cannot be an object of experience, they actually do always transform it into an ap pearance, and thus they declare all practical expansion of reason to be im possible. I therefore had to annul
faith. 1 22 And the true source of all
knowledge
in order to make room for
the lack of faith 1 23 which conflicts with
morality-and is always highly dogmatic-is dogmatism in metaphysics, i.e., the prejudice according to which we can make progress in metaphys ics without a [prior] critique of pure reason. 1 24 Although,125 therefore, it cannot be difficult to leave to posterity the be quest of a metaphysics drawn up systematically in accordance with a cri tique of pure reason, yet such a metaphysics is a gift that is not to be de spised. For consider merely how reason is cultivated generally by pursuing the secure path of a science, as compared to its baseless groping and care less roaming-about when there is no critique. Consider also our youth with their desire for knowledge, who can then make better use of their time than they can under the usual dogmatism. That dogmatism encourages them quite early and strongly to reason with ease about things of which they un1 21 [By the same reasoning that has just been used.] 1 22[Glaube. It is knowledge (Wissen), not cognition (Erkenntnis), that is being "annulled" (auf heben). Strictly speaking, what is annulled is the claim to knowledge; Kant is adding a touch of drama. As for Glaube, the term can mean either faith or belief. As the present context makes clear (cf. A 820-31 B 848-59 inc!. br. n. 1 1 3), Kant's Glaube, in the full sense of the term, is incompatible with knowledge (though not with cognition; cf. above, A vii br. n. 6). As these terms are used in English, faith is usually considered incompatible with knowledge, whereas belief normally is not (but is even included in standard definitions of knowledge). Hence Kant's Glaube, in the full sense of the term, must be rendered as 'faith.'] =
1 23[Unglaube.] 1 24 [Cf. the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 472: ' . . . [A] person who lacks faith is one who de nies all validity to those rational ideas [of God and immortality of the soul] because there is no theoretical foundation for their reality. Hence such a person judges dogmatically. A per son's dogmatic lack of faith is incompatible with his having a moral maxim prevail in his way of thinking . . . . " ] 1 25[1 am starting a new paragraph where the original merely inserts a dash between sen tences.]
B xxxi
32
PREFACE
[SECOND EDITION]
derstand nothing and into which, moreover, neither they nor anyone else in the world will ever have any insight. It may even encourage them to seek to invent new ideas
126
and opinions and thus to neglect the study of
well-founded sciences. Above all, however, [we see the value of] such a metaphysics if we take into account the inestimable advantage of putting an end, for all future time, to all objections against morality and religion, and of doing so in the
Socratic manner,
viz., by the clearest proof of the
opponents' ignorance. For there has always been some metaphysics in the world; and some metaphysics will presumably continue to be found in it, but with it also a dialectic of pure reason, because a dialectic is natural to pure reason. Hence the primary and most important concern of philosophy is to deprive metaphysics, once and for all, of its detrimental influence, by obstructing the source of its errors. Despite this important change in the realm of the sciences and the
loss
that speCUlative reason must suffer in what it has thus far imagined to be
B xxxii
its possession, the situation remains entirely as favorable as ever with re gard to the universal human concern, and with regard to the benefit that the world has thus far obtained from the teachings of pure reason. The loss
monopoly of the schools; in no way does it affect the in terests of the people. Let me ask the most adamant dogmatist whether any affects only the
of the following proofs have ever been able, after emerging from the schools, to reach the public and exert the slightest influence on its convic
tion: 127 the one that proves our soul's continuance after death from the sim plicity of substance; or the one that proves the freedom of the will as op
posed to universal mechanism by means of subtle but ineffectual distinctions between SUbjective and objective practical necessity; or the one that proves the existence of God from the concept of a maximally real being ([or] from the contingency of what is changeable and the necessity of a prime mover). 128 I take it that these proofs have never reached the public and in fluenced it in that way; nor can they ever be expected to do so, because the common human understanding is unfit for such subtle speculation. Rather, the conviction spreading to the public, insofar as it rests on ratio nal grounds, has had to arise from quite different causes. As regards the 126 [Gedanken.] 127 [Cf. the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 476.]
1 28 [C f. A 604-6/8 632-34. Although the concept of the maximally real (or 'supremely real' : allerrealst) being applies also to the ontological proof, Kant may here have i n mind only the cosmological proof.] .
PREFACE
[SECOND EDITION]
soul's continuance after death, the hope for
afuture life
33
arose solely from
a predisposition discernible to every human being in his [own] nature, viz., the inability ever to be satisfied by what is temporal (and thus is inad equate for the predispositions of his whole vocation). As regards the free dom of the will, the consciousness of freedom arose from nothing but the clear exhibition of duties in their opposition to all claims of the inclina
B xxxiii
tions. Finally, as regards the existence of God, the faith in [the existence of] a wise and great author of the
world arose solely from the splendid or
der, beauty, and provisions manifested everywhere in nature. Indeed, not only does this possession [of convictions held by the public] remain un disturbed, but it even gains further authority through what the schools are [here] being told: 1 29 viz., that on a point dealing with the universal human concern they should not claim to have a higher and more extensive insight than that which can be attained just as readily by the great multitude (most worthy of our respect); and that they should therefore confine themselves solely to the cultivation of these universally comprehensible and for moral
aims sufficient bases of proof. Hence the change 130 affects merely the ar
rogant claims of the schools, who would like to be considered in these mat ters (as they are rightly considered in many other matters) as the sole ex perts 1 3 1 and guardians for truths whose key they keep to themselves, telling the public only how to use them (quod mecum nescit, solus vult scire videri) 1 32 On the other hand, a more legitimate claim of the speculative .
philosopher is nonetheless being taken care of here. He remains always the exclusive trustee of a science that is useful to the public without its know
ing this: viz., the critique of reason. For that critique can never become popular; nor does it need to be. For just as finely spun arguments for use ful truths never make it into the heads of the people, so do the equally subtle objections against those arguments never occur to them. The school, on the other hand, inevitably gets involved in both the arguments and the objec tions, as does anyone who advances to [the point where he can] speculate. Hence the school is obligated to investigate thoroughly the rights of specu1 29 [belehrt.] 13° [ln the realm of the sciences.] 1 3 1 [Kenner.] 1 32["What he is as ignorant of as r am he wants to appear to be the only one to understand." r am grateful to Francis E. Sparshott for identifying this quote (and to Geoffrey Payzant for knowing whom to ask). It is from Horace's Epistles, II, i, 87. The original text actually has ignorat instead of (the synonymous) nescit.J
B xxxiv
34
PREFACE
[SECOND EDITION]
lative reason, in order to forestall once and for all the scandal that sooner or later must become apparent, even to the people, from [all] the controversies-the controversies in which, when there is no critique, meta physicians (and, as such, finally also the clergy) inevitably become en tangled, and which thereafter even corrupt their teachings. Solely by means
materialism, fatalism, atheism, superstition, which can become idealism and skepticism, which are
of critique can we cut off, at the very root, freethinking
lack offaith, fanaticism,
hannful universally; and, finally, also
and
dangerous mainly to the schools and cannot easily cross over to the pub
B xxxv
lic. If governments do indeed think it proper to occupy themselves with the concerns of scholars, they should promote the freedom for such cri tique, by which alone the works of reason can be put on a firm footing. Promoting such freedom would conform much better to their wise care for both sciences and people than does supporting the ridiculous despotism of the schools. The schools raise a loud cry about danger to the public if one tears up the webs they have spun, even though in fact the public has never taken notice of these webs and hence can never feel the loss of them. Critique does not stand in contrast to the dogmatic procedure that rea son follows in its pure cognitions; for that procedure is science (and sci ence must always be dogmatic, i.e., it must always do strict proofs from secure a priori principles). Rather, critique stands in contrast to dogma tism. Dogmatism is the pretension that we can make progress l 33 by means of no more than a pure cognition from concepts (i.e., philosophical cog nition) in accordance with principles-such concepts and principles as rea son has been using for a long time-without inquiring into the manner and the right by which reason has arrived at them. Hence dogmatism is the dog matic procedure followed by reason without prior critique of its own abil
ity.
B xxxvi
The contrast, therefore, is not one that is meant to support a garrulous shallowness with claims to the name of popularity; let alone one to sup port skepticism, which makes short work of all metaphysics. Rather, cri tique is the preliminary operation necessary for promoting a metaphysics that is well-founded and [thus] a science. Such a metaphysics must neces sarily be carried out dogmatically, and systematically according to the strict est demand, and hence carried out in a way that complies with school stan dards (rather than in a popular way). For this demand cannot be remitted, because metaphysics promises to carry out its task entirely a priori, and therefore to the complete satisfaction of speCUlative reason. Hence in car1 33 [In metaphysics 1
PREFACE
[SECOND EDITION]
35
rying out some day the plan prescribed by the critique, i.e., in [composing] the future system of metaphysics, we shall have to follow the strict method of the illustrious Wolff, the greatest among all the dogmatic philoso phers. 1 34 He was first to provide the example (through which he became the originator of the-not yet extinct-spirit of thoroughness in Germany) as to how one is to take the secure path of a science: viz., by establishing principles in a law-governed way, determining concepts distinctly, trying for strictness in proofs, and avoiding bold leaps in inferences. He was, by the same token, superbly suited to transfer into that secure state such a sci ence as metaphysics is-provided it had occurred to him to prepare the ground 1 35 in advance by a critique of the organ,136 viz., pure reason itself. His failure to do so must be imputed not so much to him as rather to the dogmatic way of thinking [characteristic] of his age; and for this failure neither the philosophers of his own period, nor those of all the previous ones, have any [grounds] to reproach one another. Those who reject Wolff's method and yet simultaneously also the procedure of the critique of pure reason can have in mind nothing but [the aim of] shaking off the fetters of science altogether, 1 37 thus converting work into play, certainty into opin ion, and philosophy into philodoxy. 1 38
As regards this second edition,
I wanted, as is proper, to seize this op portunity in order to remedy as much as possible any difficulties and ob scurity, from which many of the misinterpretations may have arisen that acute men-perhaps not without my fault-have hit upon in judging this book. I have not found anything to change in the propositions themselves and in the bases used for proving them, nor in the form and completeness of the plan. This is due partly to the long examination to which I had sub jected them before submitting the book to the public, and partly to the char acter of the matter itself, i.e., the nature of a pure speculative reason. For pure speculative reason has a true structure. 1 39 In such a structure every134 [Baron Christian von Wolff ( 1 679-1754), Gennan mathematician, natural scientist, and, above all, rationalist philosopher of the enlightenment. He is the author of numerous writ ings. Although his work follows the tradition of Descartes and Leibniz, he developed his own philosophical system within that tradition.] 135 [Feld. ] 1 36 [I.e., instrument. See A 61IB 86 .] 137 [gar.J, 1 3 8 [Pursuit of a creed.] 139 [ Gliederbau . ]
B xxxvii
36
B xxxviii
PREFACE
[SECOND EDITION]
thing is an organ, i.e., everything is there for the sake of each member, and each individual member is there for the sake of all,1 40 and hence even the slightest defect, 1 4 1 whether it be a mistake (error) or an omission, must in evitably betray itself when we use that plan or system. I hope, moreover, that this system will continue to maintain itself in this unchangeable state. What entitles me to this confidence is not self-conceit, but merely the fact that this [unchangeable state of the system] is evident from the following experiment: We obtain the same result whether we proceed from the mi nutest elements all the way to the whole of pure reason, or proceed back ward to each part when starting from the whole (for this whole also is given by itself, through reason's final aim in the practical sphere); 142 and the re sult is the same because any attempt to alter even the smallest part imme diately gives rise to contradictions, not merely in the system, but in human reason in general. On the other hand, much remains to be done as regards the [manner of] exposition. 1 43 and in this regard I have tried to make im provements by providing this new edition. Some of these improvements are meant to remedy the misunderstanding concerning the Aesthetic, espe cially the concept of time; others, the obscurity in the deduction of the con cepts of understanding. Yet other improvements are meant to remedy the supposed lack of sufficient evidence in the proofs of the principles of pure understanding; and others still, finally, to remedy the misinterpretation of the paralogisms advanced against rational psychology. That is how far the
B xxxix B xl
alterations extend that I have made in the manner of exposition. (I.e., they extend only to the end of the first chapter of the Transcendental Dialec tic.)l44 I did not extend them further because there was not enough time, 140 [Cf. the Critique of Judgment, Ak. Y, 376.] 141 [In the plan displaying that systematic structure.] 1 42 [Cf. B 7, B 395 ns. 222 and 222b, A 747 B 775, and A 798 B 826. See also the Cri tique of Judgment, Ak. Y, 206, and cf. 168, 255, 257, 259, 262, 268, 341, 344, 353, 473.] =
=
1 43 [Darstellung.] 1440nly one of my alterations could I call, properly speaking, an addition, and even
it concerns only the kind of proof I offer. It consists-see p. [B] 275-in a new refutation of psychological idealism, and a strict proof (also, I believe, the only pos sible proof) of the objective reality of outer intuition. However innocuous idealism may be considered to be (without in fact being so) as regards the essential purposes of metaphysics, there always remains this scandal for philosophy and human rea son in general [if we accept idealism] : that we have to accept merely on faith the existence of things outside us (even though they provide us with all the material we have for cognitions, even for those of our inner sense); and that, if it occurs to
PREFACE
[SECOND EDITION]
37
and also because with regard to the remainder I had not come upon any misunderstanding by competent and impartial criticS. 1 45 Although I cannot
B xli
someone to doubt their existence, we have no satisfactory proof with which to oppose I used in that proof, from the third to the sixth line,a I request that the passage be changed to the following: him. Since there is some obscurity in the expressions
"But this permanent something cannot be an intuition within me. For all bases de termining my existence that can be encountered within me are presentations; and, being presentations, they themselves require something permanent distinct from them, by reference to which their variation,band hence my existence in the time in which they vary, can be determined. I suppose some will object to this proof by saying: But all I am conscious of directly" is what is within me, i.e., my presenta tion of external things, and hence we still have not established whether or not there is anything corresponding to it outside me. However, through inner experience I am conscious of my existence in time (and hence also of its determinability in time), "
B xl
and that is more than to be conscious merely of my presentation. But this con sciousness of my existence (and of its determinability) in time is the same thing as
empirical consciousness of my existence, d and that can be determined only by ref erence to something linked with my existence that is outside me. Therefore this
consciousness of my existence in time is linked, by way of identity: with the con sciousness of a relation to something outside me; and hence what inseparably con nects what is outside me with my inner sense is experience rather than invention,f [outer] sense rather than my power of imagination. For outer sense is in itself al ready the referring of intuition to something actual outside me; and the reality of outer sense, as distinguished from imagination, rests only on our linking outer sense inseparably, as we are doing here, with inner experience itself, viz., as the condi tion of the possibility of inner experience. [This empirical consciousness of my ex istence contrasts with] the intellectual consciousness of my existence that I have in the conception I am, which accompanies all my judgments and acts of under standing: if with that intellectual consciousness of my existence I could at the same time link a determination of my existence through intellectual intuition,g then this determination would not include necessarily the consciousness of a relation to some thing outside me. But in fact I am unable to do so. That intellectual consciousness of my existence does indeed lead the way; but the inner intuition in which alone
my existence can be determined is sensible intuition, and is tied to the condition of time. But this [kind of] determination [of my existence], and hence inner experi ence itself, depends on something permanent to which I must regard myself as re lated by way of contrast; and anything permanent is not within me and hence is to be found only in something outside me. Hence the reality of outer sense is linked necessarily with the reality of inner sense, and this [link] makes experience as such possible. In other words, I am conscious with just as much certainty that there are things outside me that have reference to my sense, as I am conscious that I myself exist as determined in time. On the other hand, for which of my given intuitions there actually are objects outside me that correspond to them, objects that must
B xli
38
B xlii
PREFACE
[SECOND EDITION]
name these critics and praise them as they deserve, they will doubtless find on their own the places where I have taken their suggestions into ac count. 146 The improvements do, however, involve a small loss for the reader, a loss that I could not prevent without making the book rather too voluminous: I had to omit or abbreviate various materials that, while not required essentially for the completeness of the whole, will yet be missed by many readers as possibly useful for some other aim. I had to do this in hence be attributed not to the power of imagination but to outer sense, as belong ing to it, must be established in each particular case. It must be established-and here the proposition that there actually is outer experience must always lie at the basis-in accordance with the rules by which experience as such (even inner ex perience) is distinguished from imagination. We may add to this a comment: The presentation of something permanent in one's existence is not the same thing as a permanent presentation. For although-like all our presentations, even those of matter-the presentation of something permanenth may be quite mutable and may vary greatly, it yet refers to something permanent. Hence this permanent something must be a thing that is distinct from all my presentations and is external. The ex istence of this thing is included necessarily in the determination of my own exist ence, and [together] with it amounts to only a single experience; and this experi ence would not take place even inwardly if it were not (in part) outer at the same time. As to how this occurs, we cannot explain that any further, just as in general we cannot explain further how what is constanti is thought by us [as constant] in time, with the concept of change arising from the simultaneity of what is constant with what varies. a[Of the original text of the proof (i.e., its third sentence), B 275.] b[Wechsel. See B 224 br. n. 45, and cf. A 1 871B 230.] C[unmittelbar. The literal meaning of this term is 'immediately' in the sense of 'without mediation.' But because 'immediately' also has its temporal sense (as 'right away '), which would frequently mislead, 'direct' (with mittelbar rendered analogously as 'indirect') is almost always preferable.] d[Dasein here and immediately below, Existenz just thereafter. Similarly further on in this note.] e[identisch.] f[Erdichtung.] g[lntellectual intuition is what an intuitive understanding would have, whereas we do not: our intuition is sensible, and our understanding is discursive, i.e., conceptual. See B 72 incl. br. n. 1 83.] h [Leaving diese. Presumably Kant avoided saying jene because it could have been taken to refer back to Anmerkung ( 'comment').] tstehend.] i[Zugieichsein. See B 257 br n. 209.] 1 45[Priifer.]
146 [ln making the alterations 1 mentioned above.]
PREFACE
[SECOND EDITION]
39
order to make room for my new exposition, which, as I hope, is more com prehensible now. Basically, my exposition changes absolutely nothing in the propositions or even in the bases used for proving them. But now and then the way in which it departs from my previous method of setting forth the material is such that I could not have accomplished this exposition by means of mere interpolations. I hope that this small loss, which anyone who so wishes can make up anyway by comparing this edition with the first one, is more than made up by the fact that the new version is more com prehensible. I have been pleased and gratified by what I have seen in vari ous published writings (including reviews of some books, as well as sepa rate treatises). I saw there that the spirit of thoroughness in Germany has not faded away, but has only been drowned out for a short time by the tone in vogue, whereby people employ in their thinking a freedom that befits [only] a genius. 147 And I saw that courageous and bright minds have gained mastery of my
Critique despite its thorny paths-paths that lead to
a sci
ence of pure reason which complies with school standards, but which as such is the only science that lasts, and hence is exceedingly necessary. These worthy men have that happy combination of thorough insight with a talent for lucid exposition (the very talent that I am not aware of in my self), and I leave it to them to perfect my treatment of the material, which here and there may still be deficient as regards lucidity of exposition. For although there is in this case no danger of my being refuted, there certainly is a danger of my not being understood. As for myself, although I shall from now on be unable to enter into controversy, I shall pay careful atten tion to all suggestions, whether from friends or opponents, in order to use them in the future when I carry out the system of metaphysics in accor dance with this propaedeutic. In the course of these labors, I have ad vanced considerably in age (this month I reach my sixty-fourth year). 1 48 I must therefore spend my time frugally, if I want to carry out my plan of providing the metaphysics both of nature and of morals, 1 49 and thus con147 [Cf. the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 3 10, 3 1 7.] 1 48 [ Completing his sixty-third year on April 22, 1 787.] 149 [The Metaphysics of Morals appeared in 1 797. The case of the metaphysics of nature is less clear. In 1786. one year before the publication of this Preface, Kant had already pub lished the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science. It is not clear in what respect he considered that work. as conjoined with the Critique of Pure Reason, as falling short of a metaphysics of nature. (Cf. Kant's remarks in the Metaphysics of Morals, Ak. VI, 205, 2 1 4 1 5 . ) Even in the Critique of Judgment, published in 1 790, he speaks of the metaphysics of nature as a project still to be undertaken or completed (Ak. V, 1 70) Perhaps the missing -
B xliii
40
PREFACE
[SECOND EDITION]
firm the correctness of my critique of both speculative and practical rea son. Hence I must rely on the help of those worthy men who have made
B xliv
this work their own, expecting them to clear up the obscurities in it that could hardly have been avoided initially, as well as to defend it as a whole. Any philosophical treatise can be tweaked in individual places (for it can not come forward in all the armor worn by mathematical treatises), while yet the structure of the system, considered as a unity, is not in the slightest danger. Few people have the intellectual 1 50 agility to survey such a system when it is new, but fewer still have the inclination to do so, because they find all innovation inconvenient. Again, in any work that for the most part uses language freely, we can easily dig up seeming contradictions if we tear individual passages from their contexts and compare them with one another. In the eyes of those who rely on the judgment of others, such seem ing contradictions cast an unfavorable light on the work; but they are quite easily resolved by someone who has gained command of the idea as a whole. Moreover, if a theory is internally stable, then any action and re action that initially portend great danger will in time serve only to smooth away the theory's unevennesses; and in a short time they will even provide the theory with the requisite elegance, if those who deal with it are men of impartiality, insight, and true popularity.
Konigsberg,
in the month of April, 1 787.
part was the projected Transition from the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science to Physics, on which Kant worked until a year before his death and which appeared (in unfin ished fonn) in what is now called the Opus Postumum (Ak. XXI and XXII). Cf. James W. Ellington, "The Unity of Kant's Thought in His Philosophy of Corporeal Nature," 135-219 (esp. 2 1 3-19) in Book II of his translation of the Prolegomena and the Metaphysical Foun dations of Natural Science. Immanuel Kant, Philosophy of Material Nature (Indianapolis: Hackett Publishing Company, 1 985).]
15°[des Geistes. ]
CONTENTS 1 5 1
A xxiii
43
Introduction I.
Transcendental
Doctrine of Elements
69
Part I. Section I. Section II.
Transcendental
Aesthetic
71 76 85
Part II. Division I.
Transcendental Logic Transcendental Analytic in two books and their various chapters and sections Transcendental Dialectic in two books and their various chapters and sections
Division II.
II. Chapter I. Chapter II. Chapter III. Chapter IV.
On Space On Time
Transcendental
Doctrine of Method
Discipline of Pure Reason Canon of Pure Reason Architectonic of Pure Reason The History of Pure Reason
The The The
105 1 17 346 663 665 728 755 77 1
m [This is the table of contents in A. For the rather longer table in B, see the beginning of this volume 1
41
A xxiv
INTRODUCTION
B I
[SECOND EDITION] 152
1.153 ON THE DISTINCTION BETWEEN PURE AND EMPIRICAL COGNITION There can be no doubt that all our cognition begins with experience. For what else might rouse our cognitive power to its operation if objects stir ring our senses did not do so? In part these objects by themselves bring 152 [Textual differences between the Introduction in B (which has seven sections) and the one in A (which has two) are indicated in footnotes. For two extensive commentaries on Kant's Introduction, see Hans Vaihinger's Commentar zu Kants Kritik der reinen VemunJt, vol. 1 , 1 58-496, an d Nonnan Kemp Smith's A Commentary to Kant 's 'Critique of Pure Reason, ' 26-78 (both works cited above, Ak. vii br. n. 5. The interpretation of Kant's Introduction pro vided by Vaihinger and Kemp Smith is now generally regarded as flawed. For a plausible (and more sympathetic) alternative interpretation, see Herbert James Paton, Kant's Meta physic of Experience (London: George Allen & Unwin Ltd., 1936 [ 1 970]), vol. 1 , 57-90.]
lS3
[Sections I and II in B replace the first two paragraphs (and section heading)
from Section I in A. The Introduction in A starts as follows:]
INTRODUCTION [FIRST EDITION] I. The Idea of Transcendental Philosophy Experience is, without doubt, the first product to which our under standing gives rise, by working on the raw material of sense impres sions. That is precisely why experience is our first instruction, and why,
43
A l
44
INTRODUCTION
[SECOND EDITION]
about presentations. 1 S4 In part they set in motion our understanding's ac tivity, by which it compares these presentations, connects or separates them, and thus processes the raw material of sense impressions into a cognition of objects that is called experience. In terms of time, therefore, no cogni tion in us precedes experience, and all our cognition begins with experi ence. But even though all our cognition starts with experience, that does not mean that all of it arises from experience. For it might well be that even
A2
as it progresses, it is so inexhaustible in new information-so much so that if the lives of all future generations are strung together, they will never be lacking in new knowledgea that can be gathered on that soil. Yet experience is far from being our understanding's only realm, and our understanding cannot be confined to it. Experience does in deed tell us what is, but not that it must necessarily be so and not otherwise. And that is precisely why experience gives us no true uni versality; and reason, which is so eager for that [universal] kind of cognitions, is more stimulated by experience than satisfied. Now, such universal cognitions, which are at the same time characterized by in trinsic necessity, must be independent of experience, clear and certain by themselves. Hence they are called a priori cognitions; by contrast, what is borrowed solely from experience is, as we put it, cognized only a posteriori, or empirically. Now, it turns out-what is extremely remarkable-that even among our experiences there is an admixture of cognitions that must originate a priori, and that serve perhaps only to give coherence to our presen tations of the senses. For even if we remove from our experiences ev erything belonging to the senses, there still remain certain original con cepts, and judgments generated from these, that must have arisen entirely a priori, independently of experience. These concepts and judgments must have arisen in this way because through them we can---or at least we believe that we can-say more about the objects that appear to the senses than mere experience would teach us; and through them do as sertions involveb true universality and strict necessity, such as merely empirical cognition cannot supply.c '[Kenntnisse.) b[enthalten.) <[The text of A continues with the first paragraph in Section III of B.) 1 54[Vorstellungen. See B xvii hr. n. 73.)
INTRODUCTION
[SECOND EDITION]
45
our experiential cognition is composite, consisting of what we receive through impressions and what our own cognitive power supplies from it self (sense impressions merely prompting it to do so). If our cognitive power does make such an addition, we may not be able to distinguish it from that basic material l55 until long practice has made us attentive to it and skilled in separating it from the basic material.
B2
This question, then, whether there is such a cognition that is indepen dent of experience and even of all impressions of the senses, is one that cannot be disposed of as soon as it comes to light, 156 but that at least still needs closer investigation. Such cognitions are called
a priori cognitions;
they are distinguished from empirical cognitions, whose sources are a pos teriori, namely, in experience. But that expression, [viz., a priori,] is not yet determinate enough to indicate adequately the full meaning of the question just posed. For it is customary, I suppose, to say of much cognition derived from experiential sources that we can or do partake of it a priori. We say this because we derive the cognition not directly from experience but from a universal rule, even though that rule itself was indeed borrowed by us from experience. Thus if someone has undermined the foundation of his house, we say that he could have known a priori that the house would cave in, i.e., he did not have to wait for the experience of its actually caving in. And yet he could not have known this completely a priori. For he did first have to find out through experience that bodies have weight and hence fall when their sup port is withdrawn. In what follows, therefore, we shall mean by a priori cognitions not those that occur independently of this or that experience, but those that occur ab-
solutely independently of all experience. They contrast with empirical cognitions, which are those that are possible only a posteriori, i.e., through ex perience. But we call a priori cognitions pure if nothing empirical whatsoever is mixed in with them. Thus, e.g., the proposition, Every change has its cause, is an a priori proposition; yet it is not pure, because change is a concept that can be obtained only from experience.
15 5[I.e., raw material: Grundstoff.l 1 56[Anschein.l
B 3
46
INTRODUCTION
[SECOND EDITION]
II. WE ARE IN POSSESSION OF CERTAIN A PRIORI COGNITIONS, AND EVEN COMMON UNDERSTANDING Is NEVER WITHOUT THEM
B 4
B 5
What matters here is that we find a characteristic by which we can safely distinguish a pure cognition from empirical ones. Now, experience does in deed teach us that something is thus or thus, but not that it cannot be oth erwise. First, then, if we find a proposition such that in thinking it we think at the same time its necessity, then it is an a priori judgment; and if, in ad dition, it is not derived from any proposition except one that itself has the validity of a necessary proposition, then it is absolutely a priori. Second, experience never provides its judgments with true or strict universality, but only (through induction) with assumed and comparative universality; hence [there] we should, properly speaking, say [merely] that as far as we have observed until now, no exception is to be found to this or that rule. If, there fore, a judgment is thought with strict universality, i.e., thought in such a way that no exception whatever is allowed as possible, then the judgment is not derived from experience, but is valid absolutely a priori. Hence em pirical universality is only [the result of] our choosing to upgrade 157 va lidity from one that holds in most cases to one that holds in all, as, e.g., in the proposition, All bodies have weight. But when universality is strict and belongs to a judgment essentially, then it points to a special cognitive source for the judgment, viz., a power of a priori cognition. Hence necessity and strict universality are safe indicators of a priori cognition, and they do more over belong together inseparably. It is nevertheless advisable to make sepa rate use of the two criteria, even though each is infallible by itself. For, in using them, there are times when showing the empirical limitedness of a cognition is easier than showing the contingency of the judgments based on it; and there are times when showing the unlimited universality that we attribute to a judgment is more convincing 158 than is showing the judg ment's necessity. Now, it is easy to show that in human cognition there actually are such judgments [as we are looking for, viz.], judgments that are necessary and in the strictest sense universal, and hence are pure a priori judgments. If we want an example from the sciences, we need only look to all the propositions of mathematics; if we want one from the most ordinary use of un157 [willkiirliche Steigerung.] 158 [einleuchtend. ]
INTRODUCTION
[SECOND EDITION]
47
derstanding, then we can use the proposition that all change must have a cause. Indeed, in this latter proposition the very concept of a cause so mani festly contains the concept of a necessity in [the cause's] connection with an effect, and of a strict universality of the rule 159 [governing that connec tion] , that the concept of a cause would get lost entirely if we derived it as Hurne did: viz., from a repeated association of what happens with what pre cedes, and from our resulting habit 160 of connecting presentations (hence from a merely subjective necessity). But we do not need such examples 161 in order to prove that pure a priori principles actual[ly exist] in our cog nition. We could, alternatively, establish that these principles are indispens able for the possibility of experience as such, and hence establish [their existence] a priori. For where might even experience get its certainty if all the rules by which it proceeds were always in turn 162 empirical and hence contingent, so that they could hardly be considered first principles? But here we may settle for having established as a matter of fact [that there is a] pure use of our cognitive power, and to have established what its indica tors are. However, we can see such an a priori origin not merely in judg ments, but even in some concepts. If from your experiential concept of a bod/ 63 you gradually omit everything that is empirical in a body-the color, the hardness or softness, the weight, even l 64 the impenetrabil ity-there yet remains the space that was occupied by the body (which has now entirely vanished), and this space you cannot omit [from the concept] . Similarly, if from your empirical concept of any object whatever, corporeal 165 or incorporeal, you omit all properties that experience has taught you, you still cannot take away from the concept the property through which you think the object either as a substance or as attaching to a substance (even though this concept of substance is more determinate than that 159 [Cf. Robert Paul Wolff, Kant's Theory of Mental Activity (Gloucester, Mass.: Peter Smith, 1973), 121-25.] 1"O[Or 'custom': Enquiry Concerning Human Understanding, V, Pt. I, and cf. VII, Pt. II. Cf. also below, B 19-20, 127. Kant knew Hume's Treatise of Human Nature only indirectly, through citations (translated into German) from James Beattie's Essay on the Nature and Im mutability of Truth, of 1770.] 161 [Examples from the sciences or from ordinary understanding.] 1 62 [l .e., even the higher-order rules.] 163 [Korper. ] 164 [ 'even' omitted in the fourth original edition ( 1 794).] 1 6' [korperlich. ]
B 6
48
INTRODUCTION
[SECOND EDITION]
of an object as SUCh I66). Hence you must, won over by the necessity with which this concept of substance forces itself upon you, admit that this con cept resides a priori in your cognitive power.
III. PHILOSOPHY NEEDS A S CIENCE THAT WILL DETERMINE THE POSSIBILITY, THE PRINCIPLES, AND THE RANGE OF ALL A PRIORI C OGNITIONS 167 Much more significant yet than all the preceding 168 is the fact that there A3
B 7
are certain cognitions that [not only extend to but] even leave the realm of all possible experiences. These cognitions, by means of concepts to which no corresponding object can be given in experience at all, appear to ex pand the range of our judgments beyond all bounds of experience. And precisely in these latter cognitions, which go beyond the world of sense, where experience cannot provide us with any guide or correction, reside our reason's inquiries. We regard these inquiries as far superior in importance, and their final aim as much more sublime, 169 than anything that our understanding can learn in the realm of appearances. Indeed, we would sooner dare anything, even at the risk of error, than give up such treasured inquiries [into the unavoidable problems of reason] , whether on the ground that they are precarious somehow, or from disdain and indif 1 ference. 70 These unavoidable problems of reason themselves are God, free dom, and immortality. But the science whose final aim, involving the sci ence's entire apparatus, is in fact directed solely at solving these problems is called metaphysics. Initially, the procedure of metaphysics is dogmatic; i.e., [metaphysics], without first examining whether reason is capable or incapable of so great an enterprise, confidently undertakes to carry it out. 1 66 [The concept of an object as such does not include even (the property or "detennination" of) pennanence. Cf. A 242-431B 300-301 .)). 1 67 [The text of A continues, together with that of B, just below The section number and head ing were added in B.) 1 68 [l.e. than the fact that we have a priori cognitions as described. In A this sentence starts , with 'But'; 'than all the preceding' added in B.) 169 [Cf. the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 245, 264.) 17° [Remainder of paragraph added in B . For its content, cf. A 3371B 395 n. 222, A 798 826, and the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 473.)
=
B
INTRODUCTION
[SECOND EDITION]
49
Now, suppose that we 1 7 1 had just left the terrain of experience. Would we immediately erect an edifice by means of what cognitions we have, though we do not know from where? Would we erect it on credit, i.e., on principles whose origin is unfamiliar to us? It does seem natural that we would not, but that we would first seek assurance through careful inquir ies that the foundation had been laid. In other words, it does seem natural l72 that we would, rather, long since have raised the question as to just how our understanding could arrive at all these a priori cognitions, and what might be their range, validity, and value. And in fact nothing would be more
A4
natural, if by the term we mean what properly and reasonably 174 ought to happen. If, on the other hand, we mean by this term what
B 8
natural 17 3
usually happens, then nothing is more natural and comprehensible than the fact that for a long time this inquiry had to remain unperformed. For, one part of these [a priori] cognitions, viz., 175 the mathematical ones, possess long-standing reliability, and thereby raise favorable expectations concerning other [a priori] cognitions as well, even though these may be of a quite different nature. Moreover, once we are beyond the sphere of experience, we are assured of not being refuted 176 by experience. The appeal l77 of expanding our cognitions is so great that nothing but hitting upon a clear con tradiction can stop our progress. On the other hand, we can avoid such con tradiction by merely 178 being cautious in our inventions--even though they remain nonetheless inventions. Mathematics provides us with a splendid example of how much we can achieve, independently of experience, in a priori cognition. Now, it is true that mathematics deals with objects and cognitions only to the extent that they can be exhibited in intuition. But this detail is easily overlooked because that intuition can itself be given a priori and hence is rarely l79 distinguished from a mere pure concept. Cap171 [man.] 172 ['rather' added in B.] 173 [Instead of 'by the tenn natural", A has 'by this tenn.']
174[verniin!tigerweise.] 175 ["viz.' (a/s) added in B.] 1 76 [A has "contradicted.' ] 1 77[Reiz.] 1 78 ['merely' (nur) added in B.]
1 79[kaum.]
50
A5
B 9
A6
B 10
INTRODUCTION
[SECOND EDITION]
tivated l80 by such a proof of reason's might, our urge to expand [our cog nitions] sees no boundaries. When the light dove parts the air in free flight and feels the air's resistance, it might come to think that it would do much better still in space devoid of air. In the same way Plato left the world of sense because it sets such narrow limits to l81 our understanding; on the wings of the ideas, 1 82 he ventured beyond that world and into the empty space of pure understanding. He did not notice that with all his efforts he made no headway. He failed to make headway because he had no resting point against which-as a foothold, as it were-he might brace himself and apply his forces in order to set the understanding in motion. But [Plato is no exception]: it is human reason's usual fate, in speculation, to finish its edifice as soon as possible, and not to inquire until afterwards whether a good foundation has in fact been laid for it. Then all sorts of rationaliza tions l83 are hunted up in order to reassure us that the edifice is sturdy, or, preferably, even to reject altogetherl 84 so late and risky an examination of it. But what keeps us, while we are building, free from all anxiety and sus picion, and flatters us with a seeming thoroughness, is the following. A large part-perhaps the largest-of our reason's business consists in dissecting what concepts of objects we already have. This [procedure] supplies us with a multitude of cognitions. And although these cognitions are nothing more than clarifications or elucidations of what has already been thought in our concepts (although thought as yet in a confused way), they are yet rated equal to new insights at least in form, even though in matter or content they do not expand the concepts we have but only spell them out. Now since this procedure yields actual a priori cognition that progresses in a safe and useful way, reason uses this pretense, though without itself noticing this, to lay claim surreptitiously l85 to assertions of a quite different kind. In these assertions, reason adds to given concepts others quite foreign to them, doing so moreover l86 a priori. Yet how reason arrived at these conI .O [A has 'encouraged.'] 1 8 1 [A has 'puts such manifold obstacles in the way of.'] 182 [Ideen.] 1 .3 [BeschOnigungen.] 184 [ ' even: along with 'preferably' and 'altogether' (auch . . . lieber gar), added in B.] 1 85 [erschleichen.] 1 86 [ 'moreover' (und zwar) added in B. The addition helps to remove an ambiguity in the Ger man text of A: it helps to separate 'a priori' from Begriffen (concepts) and thus keeps the ex pression from seeming to modify that noun.]
INTRODUCTION
[SECOND EDITION]
51
cepts is not known; indeed, such a 18? question is not even thought of. Hence I shall deal at the very outset with the distinction between these two kinds of cognition.
IV. 188
ON THE DISTINCTION BETWEEN ANALYTIC AND S YNTHETIC JUDGMENTS In all judgments in which we think the relation of a subject to the predi cate (I here consider affirmative judgments only, because the application to negative judgments is easy afterwards I89), this relation is possible in two ways. Either the predicate B belongs to the subject A as something that is (covertly) contained in this concept A; or B, though connected with con cept A, lies quite190 outside it. 19l In the first case I call the judgment analytic; in the second, synthetic. 1 92 Hence (affirmative) analytic judgments are those in which the predicate's connection with the subject is thought by [thinking] identity, whereas those judgments in which this connection is thought without [thinking] identity are to be called synthetic. Analytic judgments could also be called elucidatory. 1 93 For they do not through the predicate add anything to the concept of the subject; rather, they only dissect the concept, breaking it up into its component concepts which had already been thought in it (although thought confusedly). Synthetic judgments, on 194 the other hand, could also be called expansive. For they do add to the concept of the subject a predicate that had not been thought in that concept at all and could not have been extracted from it by any dissection. For 1 87 [Instead of 'such a,' A has 'this.'] 1 88 [This number absent in A, where the heading is that of the second subsection of Section I.]
1 89 ['afterwards' added in B.] 190[ganz, presumably intended for emphasis only, and not for a contrast between complete and partial exclusion.] 191 [Cf. J. W. Ellington, essay cited at B xliii br. n. 149, 1 45-47.] 192 [Emphasis in both terms added in B.] 19J[Emphasis added in B.]
1 94[Erweiterungsurteile; emphasis added in B . I prefer to translate erweitemd as 'expansive' rather than as 'ampliative.' My reason is that the corresponding verb, erweitern, is rendered better as 'expand' than as 'amplify,' because the latter term might (to contemporary readers) suggest increase in force.]
A7
B 11
52
INTRODUCTION
[SECOND EDITION]
example, if I say: All bodies are extended-then this is an analytic judg ment. For I do not need to go beyond 195 the concept that I link with the word body in order to find that extension is connected with it. All I need to do in order to find this predicate in the concept is to dissect the concept, i.e., become conscious 196 of the manifold197 that I always think in it. Hence the judgment is analytic. By contrast, if I say: All bodies are heavy 198-then the predicate is something quite different from what I think in the mere concept of a body as such. Hence adding such a predicate yields a syn thetic judgment. 199 2ooExperiential 20 l judgments, as such, are one and all synthetic.202 For to base an analytic judgment on experience would be absurd, because in 1 95[A has 'outside. ' ] 196[bewujlt in A, mir bewujlt in B . The latter conforms better to German grammar, but adds nothing to the meaning.] 1 97 [Of component concepts.] 198 [1n the technical sense of 'heavy,' as meaning no more than 'having weight'; cf. B 2, B 4. 'All bodies have weight' lacks the copula 'are' and hence would, in the present context, cre ate a nusleading contrast to 'All bodies are extended.'] 1 99 [Cf. Lewis White Beck, "Can Kant's Synthetic Judgments Be Made Analytic?" in Kant Studien, 47 ( 1 955), 168-81 ; reprinted in Beck's Studies in the Philosophy of Kant (India napolis: Bobbs-Merrill Company, 1 965), 74-91 . Cf. also Moltke S. Gram, Kant, Ontology, and the A Priori (Evanston: Northwestern University Press, 1968), 43-82.]
2°O [Thi s paragraph in B replaces the following two in A:]
A8
Now, this shows clearly: ( 1 ) that analytic judgments do not at all expand our cognition, but spell out and make understandable to myself the concept that I already have; (2) that in synthetic judgments, where the predicate does not lie within the concept of the subject, I must have besides this concept something else (X) on which the understanding re lies in order to cognize nonetheless that the predicate belongs to that concept. In empirical judgments, or in judgments of experience,a it is not dif ficult at all to find this X. For here this X is the complete experience of the object that I think by means of a concept A, the concept amounting only to part of the experience. For although in the concept of a body as such I do not at all include the predicate of heaviness,b yet the concept designates the complete experience [of a body] by means of part of it; hence I can add to this part, as belonging to it, further parts of the same experience. I can begin by cognizing the concept of a body analytically through the characteristics of extension, impenetrability, shape, etc., all
INTRODUCTION
[SECOND EDITION]
53
its case I can formulate my judgment without going outside my concept, and hence do not need for it any testimony of experience. Thus the [ana lytic] proposition that bodies are extended is one that holds203 a priori and is not an experiential judgment. For before I tum to experience, I already have in the concept [of body] all the conditions required for my judgment. I have only to extract from it, in accordance with the principle of contradiction, the predicate [of extension] ; in doing so, I can at the same time become conscious of the judgment's necessity, of which experience would not even inform me. On the other hand, though in the concept of a body as such I do not at all include the predicate of heaviness,204 yet the concept designates an object of experience by means of part of this experience; hence I can [synthetically] add to this part further parts, of the same experience, in addition to those that belonged to the concept of a body as such. I can begin by cognizing the concept of a body
analytically through
the characteristics of extension, impenetrability, shape, etc., all of which are thought in this concept. But then I expand my cognition: by looking back to the experience from which I have abstracted this concept of body, I also find heaviness to be always connected with the above characteris-
tics; and so I add it, as a predicate, to that concept
synthetically.
Hence
of which are thought in this concept. But then I expand my cognition: by looking back to the experience from which I have abstracted this con cept of body, I also find heaviness to be always connected with the above characteristics. Hence experience is the X that lies outside the concept A and makes possible the synthesis of the predicate B of heaviness with the concept A. "[See br. n. 201 , just below.] b [In the technical sense of 'heaviness,' as meaning no more than 'weight.' See just above, br. n. 198.]
20 1 [Erfahrungs· ('of experience,' literally). The German noun has no corresponding adjec tive. In translating Kant, the proper English adjective corresponding to 'experience' is 'ex periential,' which in Kant is not synonymous with 'empirical.' Whereas experience is indeed empirical (insofar as it includes sensation), perception (which includes sensation) is empiri cal (viz., empirical intuition) without as yet being experience. In order for perception to be come experience, it must be given the synthetic unity provided by the understanding's cat egones. See A 1 831B 226 (cf. B vii, 12, 1 6 1 ) and the Prolegomena, Ak IV, 297-98.] 202 [The beginning of this paragraph, through 'inform me,' is taken almost verbatim from the Prolegomena: see Ak. IV, 268.] 203[feststehen ] 204 [See br. n. 200b, just above.]
B 12
54
A9 B 13
INTRODUCTION
[SECOND EDITION]
experience is what makes possible the synthesis of the predicate of heavi ness with the concept of body. For although neither of the two concepts is contained in the other, yet they belong to each other, though only contin gently, as parts of a whole; that whole is experience, which is itself a syn thetic combination2os of intuitions. In synthetic judgments that are a priori, however, this remedy206 is entirely lacking. If I am to g o beyond207 the concept A in order to cognize another concept B as combined with it, I rely on something that makes the synthesis possible: what is that something, considering that here I do not have the adViantage of looking around for it in the realm of experience? Take the proposition: Everything that happens has its cause.-In the con cept of something that happens I do indeed think an existence preceded by a time, etc., and from this one can obtain analytic judgments. But the con cept of a cause lies quite outside that earlier concept and208 indicates some thing different from what happens; hence209 it is not part of what is con tained210 in this latter presentation. In speaking generally of what happens, how can I say about it something quite different from it, and cognize as' belonging to it-indeed, belonging to it necessarily2 1 1 -the concept of cause, even though this concept is not contained in the concept of what happens? What is here the unknown =: X on which212 the understanding relies when it believes that it discovers, outside the concept A,213 a predi cate B that is foreign to concept A but that the understanding considers nonetheless to be connected with that concept?214 This unknown cannot be experience. For in adding the presentation of cause to the presentation of what happens, the above principle does so not only with greater universal ity than experience can provide, but also with the necessity's being ex205 [On (linking) or combination (Verbindung), assembly (Zusammensetzung), and connection (Verkniipfung), see below, B 201 n. 30.] 206 [l .e., expenence.] 207 [A has 'outside.'] 208 ['lies entirely outside that concept and' added in B.] 209 [lnstead of 'hence,' A has 'and.' ]
2 1 O[ist . . . gar nicht mil enthalten.] 2 1 ' [This insertion added in B.] 21 2 [Instead of 'unknown
==
X,' A has 'the X.']
21 3 [LiteraIly, 'concept of A' (in this case).] 2' 4 [ 'that the understanding considers' added in B.]
INTRODUCTION
[SECOND EDITION]
55
pressed; hence it does so entirely a priori and on the basis of mere con cepts. Now, on such synthetic, i.e., expansive, principles depends21s the whole final aim of our speculative a priori cognition. For, analytic prin-
A 10
ciples are indeed exceedingly important and needed, but only for attaining that distinctness in concepts which is required for a secure and extensive synthesis that, as such, will actually be a new acquisition216 [of cogni-
B 14
tion] .217
V. 2 1 8 ALL THEORETICAL S CIENCES OF REASON C ONTAIN S YNTHETIC A PRIORI JUDGMENTS AS PRINCIPLES 2 19 1.
Mathematical judgments are one and all synthetic. Although this propo
sition220 is incontestably certain and has very important consequences, it 215 [More lilerally, 'rests': beruht.] 216[A has 'addition' (Anbau, as for a building).]
Z17[A adds, but B omits, the following paragraph:] Hence a certain mystery lies concealed here.B Only by solving it can we make our progress in the boundless realm of understanding's pure cognition secure and reliable. Thus, with the requisite universality, we must uncover the basis on which synthetic a priori judgments are pos sible; we must gain insight into the conditions that make each kind of a priori judgments possible; and we must [properly] defineb this entire cog nition (which constitutes a type of its own), not merely mark it by draw ing a cursory circumference around it: we must define it completely-in a system, and in a manner adequate for any use-in terms of its origi nal sources, its divisions, its range and bounds. So much, for now, as regards what is peculiar about synthetic [a priori] judgments. "If so much as raising this question had occurred to any of the ancients, this question by itself would have created mighty resistance, up to our own time, against all sys tems of pure reason. It would thus have saved [philosophers] all those vain attempts that they undertook blindly, without knowing what they were in fact dealing with. b [bestimmen.] 218 [Sections V and VI added in B. The text of A continues together with that of B in B's Sec tion VII.] 21 9 [Prinzipien.] 220 [Satz. ]
56
INTRODUCTION
[SECOND EDITION]
seems thus far to have escaped the notice of those who have analyzed221 human reason; indeed, it seems to be directly opposed to all their conjec tures. For they found that all the inferences made by mathematicians pro ceed (as the nature of all apodeictic certainty requires) according to the prin
ciple222 of contradiction; and thus they came to be persuaded that the principle of contradiction is also the basis on which we cognize the prin ciples223 [of mathematics]. In this they were mistaken. For though we can indeed gain insight into a synthetic proposition according to the principle of contradiction, we can never do so [by considering] that proposition by itself, but can do so only by presupposing another synthetic proposition from which it can be deduced. We must note, first of all, that mathematical propositions, properly so called, are always a priori judgments rather than empirical ones; for they carry with them necessity, which we could never glean from experience. B 15
But if anyone refuses to grant that all such propositions are a priori-all right: then I restrict my assertion224 to pure mathematics, in the very con cept of which is implied that it contains not empirical but only pure a priori cognition.
It is true that one might at first think that the proposition 7 + 5
=
1 2 is
a merely analytic one that follows, by the principle of contradiction, from the concept of a sum of seven and five. Yet if we look more closely, we find that the concept of the sum of 7 and 5 contains nothing more than the union of the two numbers into one; but in [thinking] that union we are not thinking in any way at all what that single number is that unites the two. In thinking merely that union of seven and five, I have by no means al ready thought the concept of twelve; and no matter how long I dissect my concept of such a possible sum, still I shall never find in it that twelve. We must go beyond these concepts and avail ourselves of the intuition corre sponding to one of the two: e.g., our five fingers, or (as
Segner does in his
221 [Zergliederer.]
222 [Satz.] 223[Grundsiitze On my use of 'principle' to translate both Prinzip and Grundsatz. see above. A vii br. n. 7. Although Satz is usually translatable as 'proposition: in Satz des Widerspruchs it. too. comes out as 'principle." Yet no distortion results in Kant's meaning. On the other hand. such distortion would result if Grundsatz were. here or throughout. rendered in some other way, which would create an illusory contrast with Prinzip.] 224 [Satz.]
INTRODUCTION
[SECOND EDITION]
57
Arithmetic225 ) five dots. In this way we must gradually add, to the concept of seven, the units of the five given in intuition. For I start by taking the number 7. Then, for the concept of the 5, I avail myself of the fingers of my hand as intuition. Thus, in that image of mine, I gradually add to the number 7 the units that I previously gathered together in order to make up the number 5. In this way I see the number 1 2 arise. That 5 were to be added to 7, this I had indeed already thought in the concept of a sum 7 +5, but not that this sum is equal to the number 12. Arithmetic propositions are therefore always synthetic. We become aware of this all the more distinctly if we take larger numbers. For then it is very evident that, no matter how much we twist and tum our concepts, we can never find the [number of the] sum by merely dissecting our concepts, i.e., without availing ourselves of intuition. Just as little are any principles of pure geometry analytic. That the straight line between two points is the shortest is a synthetic proposition. For my concept of straight contains nothing about magnitude, but contains only a quality. Therefore the concept of shortest is entirely added to the concept of a straight line and cannot be extracted from it by any dissec tion. Hence we must here avail ourselves of intuition; only by means of it is the synthesis possible. It is true that a few propositions presupposed by geometricians are ac tually analytic and based on the principle of contradiction. But, like identical propositions, they serve not as principles but only [as links in] the chain of method. Examples are a = a; the whole is equal to itself; or (a+b» a, i.e., the whole is greater than its part. And yet even these principles, although they hold according to mere concepts, are admitted in mathematics only because they can be exhibited in intuition. [As for mathematics generally,] what commonly leads us to believe that the predicate of its apodeictic judgments is contained in our very concept, and that the judgment is therefore analytic, is merely the ambiguity with which we express ourselves. For we say that we are t0226 add in thought a certain predicate to a given concept, and this necessity adheres indeed to the very concepts. But here the question is not what we are to add in thought to the given con-
B 16
=
22' [Johann
Andreas von Segner ( 1 704-1 777), German physicist and mathematician at Jena, Giittingen, and Halle. He is the author of several significant works, and introduced the con cept of the surface tension of liquids. The work mentioned here, as translated from the Latin, is his Anfangsgriinde der Arithmetik (Elements of Arithmetic), See the second edition (Halle/ Saale: Renger, 1 773), pp. 27, 79]. 226 [sollen.]
B 17
58
INTRODUCTION
[SECOND EDITION]
cept, but what we actually think227 in the concept, even if only obscurely; and there we find that, although the predicate does indeed adhere neces sarily to such228 concepts, yet it does so not as something thought in the concept itself, but by means of an intuition that must be added to the con cept.
Natural science (physica)229 contains synthetic a priori judgments as principles. Let me cite as examples just a few propositions: e.g., the propo 2.
sition that in all changes in the corporeal world the quantity of matter re mains unchanged; or the proposition that in all communication of motion, action and reaction must always be equal to each other. Both propositions B 18
are clearly not only necessary, and hence of a priori origin, but also syn thetic. For in the concept of matter I do not think permanence, but think merely the matter's being present in space insofar as230 it occupies space. Hence I do actually go beyond the concept of matter, in order to add to it a priori in thought something that I have not thought in it. Hence the propo sition is thought not analytically but synthetically and yet a priori.231 and the same232 occurs in the remaining propositions of the pure part of natu ral science. 3. Metaphysics is to contain synthetic a priori cognitions. This holds even if metaphysics is viewed as a science that thus far has merely been attempted, but that because of the nature of human reason is nonetheless indispensable. Metaphysics is not at all concerned merely to dissect con cepts of things that we frame a priori, and thereby to elucidate them ana lytically. Rather, in metaphysics we want to expand our a priori cognition. In order to do this, we must use principles which go beyond the given con cept and which add to it something that was not contained in it; and, by means of such synthetic a priori judgments, we must presumably go so far beyond such concepts that even experience233 can no longer follow us; as in the proposition: The world must have a first beginning-and others like 227 [Deleting the emphasis in 'in thought' and 'think' (denken both times).] 228 Uenen.]
229 [Physics.] 230 [durch.] 231 [An alternative reading is: 'Hence the proposition is not analytic but synthetic, and yet is thought a pnori, . . . ' The reading I have adopted seems to go better with 'in' in the last clause.] 232 [SO.] 23' [Actual or possible experience.]
INTRODUCTION
[SECOND EDITION]
that. And hence metaphysics consists, at least nothing but synthetic a priori propositions.
59
in terms of its purpose,
of
VI . THE GENERAL PROBLEM OF PURE REASON Much is gained already when we can bring a multitude of inquiries under the formula of a single problem. For we thereby facilitate not only our own business by defining it precisely, but also-for anyone else who wants to examine it-the judgment as to whether or not we have carried out our project adequately. Now the proper problem of pure reason is contained in this question:
How are synthetic judgments possible a priori?234
That metaphysics has thus far remained in such a shaky state of uncer tainty and contradictions is attributable to a sole cause: the fact that this problem, and perhaps even the distinction between analytic and synthetic judgments, has not previously occurred to anyone.235 Whether metaphys ics stands or falls depends on the solution of this problem, or on an ad equate proof that the possibility which metaphysics demands to see ex234 [(ln the original this sentence, unlike the next two similar ones below, is not set off as a separate paragraph.) The question could also be translated thus: 'How are synthetic a priori judgments possible?' I.e., ' 3 priori' can be construed either as an adverb modifying 'possible' or as an adjective modifying 'judgments.' Kant himself seems to have construed it one way in some contexts, the other way in other contexts.) 23s [The problem, roughly, is this: In the case of analytic judgments Gudgments whose truth depends solely on the meanings of their terms, i.e., on the content of the concepts involved) it is easy to see how such judgments can (by which Kant means 'can legitimately') be made a priori (independently of experience). But the truth of synthetic (nonanalytic) judgments de pends on more than their meaning (conceptual content). An example is the judgment (see B 17) that in all changes in the corporeal world the quantity of matter remains unchanged. This judgment is clearly not analytic, but asserts something (not merely conceptual) about the world (and hence about any possible experience that we may have of it). How then can we make such judgments a priori? Kant's answer lies in his "Copernican revolution" (B xvi-xviii). We can make synthetic judgments a pnori insofar as objects of expenence (which are the same thing as object-experiences) must conform a priori to what we contribute to expenence (and hence to them), instead of experience's confonning a priori to totally independent ob jects (things in themselves) by means of some preestablished harmony. By the same token, as Kant will show in the Transcendental Dialectic (A 293-7041B 349-732), synthetic a priori judgments that go beyond all possible experience (make assertions about things in them selves) cannot be justified (legitimated) theoretically at all (though they may still be justifi able morally-practically).)
B 19
60
B 20
B 21
INTRODUCTION
[SECOND EDITION]
plained236 does not exist237 at all. David Hume238 at least239 came closer to this problem than any other philosopher. Yet he did not think of it nearly determinately enough and in its universality, but merely remained with the synthetic proposition about the connection of an effect with its causes (principium causalitatis).240 He believed he had discovered that such a propo sition is quite impossible a priori. 241 Thus, according to his conclusions, everything that we call metaphysics would amount to no more than the de lusion of a supposed rational insight into what in fact is merely borrowed from experience and has, through habit, acquired a seeming necessity. This assertion, which destroys all pure philosophy, would never have entered Hume's mind if he had envisaged our problem in its universality. For he would then have seen that by his argument there could be no pure math ematics either, since it certainly does contain synthetic a priori proposi tions; and from such an assertion his good sense242 would surely have saved him. In solving the above problem we solve at the same time another one, concerning the possibility of the pure use of reason in establishing and car rying out all sciences that contain theoretical a priori cognition of objects; i.e., we also answer these questions: How is pure mathematics possible? How is pure natural science possible? Since these sciences are actually given [as existent] , it is surely proper for us to ask how they are possible; for that they must be possible is proved by their being actual.243 As regards metaphysics, however, there are grounds on which everyone must doubt its possibility: its progress thus far has been
236[l.e how syn!hetic judgments are possible a prion.) 237 [stattfinden.) 238 [Cf for !his passage, B 5 above and B 127 below.) 239[noch.) .•
.•
24°[Principle of causality.)
241 [Or: '!hat such an a pnon proposition is quite impossible.'] 242[Verstand.) 24�his actuality may still be doubted by some in the case of pure natural science. Yet we need only examine the propositions that are to be found at the beginning of physics proper (empirical physics), such as those about the pennanence of the' quan tity of matter, about inertia, about the equality of action and reaction, etc., in order to soon be convinced that these propositions themselves amount to a physica pura (or physica rationaiis).b Such a physics, as a science in its own right, surely
INTRODUCTION
[SECOND EDITION]
61
poor; and thus far not a single metaphysics has been put forth of which we can say, as far as the essential purpose of metaphysics is concerned, that it is actually at hand. 244 Yet in a certain sense this kind of cognition must likewise be regarded as given; and although metaphysics is not actual as a science, yet it is ac tual as a natural predisposition245 (i.e., as a metaphysica naturalis246). For human reason, impelled by its own need rather than moved by the mere vanity of gaining a lot of knowledge, proceeds irresistibly to such ques tions as cannot be answered by any experiential use of reason and any prin ciples taken from such use. And thus all human beings, once their reason has expanded to [the point where it can] speculate, actually have always had in them, and always will have in them, some metaphysics. Now con cerning it, too, there is this question: How is metaphysics as a natural predisposition possihle?247 i.e., how, from the nature of universal human reason, do the questions arise that pure reason poses to itself and is impelled, by its own need, to answer as best it can? Thus far, however, all attempts to answer these natural questions---e . g., whether the world has a beginning or has been there from eternity, etc.-have met with unavoidable contradictions. Hence we cannot settle for our mere natural predisposition for metaphysics, i.e., our pure power of rea son248 itself, even though some metaphysics or other (whichever it might be) always arises from it. Rather, it must be possible, by means of this pre disposition,249 to attain certainty either concerning our knowledge or lack of knowledge of the objects [of metaphysics], i.e., either concerning a de cision about the objects that its questions deal with, or certainty concerndeserves to be put forth separately and in its whole range, whether this range be narrow or broad.C "[derselben.] b [Pure, or rational, physics.] C[This Kant did in his Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science (1786), Ak. IV, 465-565.] 244 [vorhanden.] 2A5 [Naturanlage.] 2A6 [Natural metaphysics.] 2A7 [In the original, this question is embedded in the paragraph.] 248 [Vemun!tvermogen.] 2A9[I.e., our power of reason.]
B22
62
INTRODUCTION
[SECOND EDITION]
ing the ability250 or inability of reason to make judgments about these ob jects. In other words, it must be possible to expand our pure reason in a reliable way, or to set for it limits that are determinate and safe. This last question, which flows from the general problem above,251 may rightly be stated thus: 252 How is metaphysics as science possible? Ultimately, therefore, critique of pure reason leads necessarily to sci B 23
B 24
ence; the dogmatic use of pure reason without critique, on the other hand, to baseless assertions that can always be opposed by others that seem equally plausible,253 and hence to skepticism. This science, moreover, cannot be overly, forbiddingly voluminous. For it deals not with objects of reason, which are infinitely diverse, but merely with [reason] itself. [Here reason] deals with problems that issue entirely from its own womb; they are posed to it not by the nature of things dis tinct from it, but by its own nature. And thus, once it has become com pletely acquainted with its own ability regarding the objects that it may encounter in experience, reason must find it easy to determine, completely and safely, the range and the bounds of its use [when] attempted beyond all bounds of experience. Hence all attempts that have been made thus far to bring a metaphysics about dogmatically can and must be regarded as if they had never oc curred. For whatever is analytic in one metaphysics or another, i.e., is mere dissection of the concepts residing a priori in our reason, is only a prear rangement for metaphysics proper, and is not yet its purpose at all. That purpose is to expand our a priori cognition synthetically, and for this pur pose the dissection of reason's a priori concepts is useless. For it shows merely what is contained in these concepts; it does not show how we ar rive at such concepts a priori, so that we could then also determine the valid use of such concepts in regard to the objects of all cognition generally. Nor do we need much self-denial to give up all these claims;254 for every meta250 [Vermogen.] 251 [The problem as to how (in general) synthetic judgments are possible a priori: B 19.] 25 2 [In the original, this question forms the end of the preceding paragraph.] 253[ebenso scheinbare. The basic meaning of scheinbar is 'seeming.' Sometimes this term is taken negatively, as meaning 'illusory' ; but at other times Kant takes it positively, as mean ing 'plausible.' For this latter meaning, cf. A 502/B 530, A 703/B 73 1, A 784 B 812; also A 46/B 63, A 289/B 345, A 399.] 254 [Of dogmatic metaphysics.] =
INTRODUCTION
[SECOND EDITION]
63
physics put forth thus far has long since been deprived of its reputation by the fact that it gave rise to undeniable, and in the dogmatic procedure in deed unavoidable, contradictions of reason with itself. A different treat ment, completely opposite to the one used thus far, must be given to metaphysics-a science, indispensable to human reason, whose every new shoot255 can indeed be lopped off but whose root cannot be eradicated.256 We shall need more perseverance in order to keep from being deterred-either from within by the difficulty of this science or from with out by people's resistance to it-from thus finally bringing it to a prosper ous and fruitful growth.
VII . IDEA AND DIVISION OF A S PECIAL S CIENCE UNDER THE NAME OF CRITIQUE OF PURE REASON257 From all of the above we arrive at the idea of a special science258 that may be called the critique of pure reason. 259 Fo�60 reason is the power that provides us with the principlei6 1 of a priori cognition. Hence262 pure reason is that reason which contains the principles for cognizing something
255[hervorgeschossenen Stamm.] 256
[Although 'root' and 'eradicate' have the same origin,
radix,
and 'eradicate a root' may
sound odd to an etymologically attuned ear, all of that applies to the respective German terms,
Wurzel and ausrotten. Indeed, all four terms come from the same root!] 257
[The text of A continues, together with that of B, just below. The section number and head
ing were added in B.] 258 [Instead of the remainder of the sentence as given here from B, A has 'that may serve as [a] critique of pure reason. ' ]
Z59[A adds, but B omits, the following two sentences:]
Now, any cognition is called pure if it is not mixed with anything extraneous. Above all,a however, a cognition is called absolutely pure if no experience or sensation whatsoever is mixed into it, so that the cognition is possible completely a priori.
B[besonders.]
260 [A has 'Now.' ] 26 1 [Emphasis added in B.] 262 [The inference relies on the two sentences from A that Kant just omitted in B , regarding them as understood.]
A 11
64
B 25
A 12
B 26
INTRODUCTION
[SECOND EDITION]
absolutely a priori. An organon263 of pure reason would be the sum of those principles by which all pure a priori cognitions can be acquired and actu ally brought about. Comprehensive application of such an organon would furnish us with a system of pure reason. Such a system, however, is a tall order; and it remains to be seen whether indeed an expansion of our cog nition is possible here at all,264 and in what cases it is possible. Hence a science that merely judges pure reason, its sources, and its bounds may be regarded as the propaedeutic to the system of pure reason. Such a propae deutic would have to be called not a doctrine but only a critique of pure 266 reason.265 Its benefit, in regard to speculation, would actually only be negative. For such a critique would serve only to purify our reason, not to expand it, and would keep our reason free from errors, which is a very great gain already. I call transcendental all cognition that deals not so much with objects as rather with our way of cognizing objects in general insofar as 267 A system of such con that way of cognizing is to be possible a priori. 268 cepts would be called transcendental philosophy. But, once again, this [system of] transcendental philosophy is too much for us as yet, here at the beginning.269 For since such a science would have to contain both analytic cognition and synthetic a priori cognition, in their completeness, it has too broad a range as far as our aim is concerned. For we need270 to carry the analysis only as far as it is indispensably necessary271 for gaining insight, in their entire range, into the principles of a priori synthesis, which is all that we are concerned with. What we are now dealing with is [not such a science, but only] this inquiry, which properly speaking can be called only a transcendental critique, not a doctrine. For its aim is not to expand the cognitions themselves, but only to correct them; and it is to serve as the touchstone of the value, or lack of value, of all a priori cognitions. Ac263 [Emphasis added in B.) 264[A has 'whether indeed such an expansion of our cognition is possible at all.') 265 [Emphasis in 'propaedeutic,' 'doctrine,' and 'critique' added in B.) 266 [ 'in regard to speculation' added in B.) 267 [A has 'as rather with our a priori concepts of objects in general.') 268 [I.e. , a system of a priori concepts of objects in general; see the preceding note. Emphasis in 'system' and 'transcendental philosophy' added in B.) 269 ['a8 yet' added in B; 'once again' refers back to the point made earlier in this paragraph, that a system of pure reason is a tall order.) 270[duifen.)
27 1[Instead of 'necessary' (notwendig), A has 'needed' (niitig) 1
INTRODUCTION
[SECOND EDITION]
65
cordingly, such a critique is a preparation: if possible, for an organon of those [cognitions] ; or, should the [attempt to produce an] organon be un successful, at least for a canon of them. Such a canon would, at any rate, some day allow us to exhibit, analytically as well as synthetically, the com plete system of the philosophy of pure reason, whether that system were to consist in expanding the cognition of pure reason or merely in setting boundaries for it. That such a system is possible-and, indeed, that it can not be overly wide-ranging, so that we may hope to complete it entirely-can be gathered even in advance from the following: What here constitutes the object272 is not the nature of things, which is inexhaustible, but the understanding that makes judgments about the nature of things, and even this understanding, again, only in regard to its a priori cognition. Moreover, the understanding's supply of a priori cognition cannot be hidden from us, because, after all, we need not search for it outside the un derstanding; and we may indeed suppose273 that supply to be small enough in order for us to record274 it completely, judge it for its value or lack of value, and make a correct assessment of it.275 [But my readers must not expect to find in this critique more than the mentioned preparation.] Still less must they expect here a critique of books and systems of pure reason, but should expect the critique of our power of pure reason itselt. 276 Only if we use that critique as our basis do we have a reliable touchstone for assessing the philosophical content of old and new works in this field. Without such critique, unqualified historians and judges277 pass judgment on278 other people's baseless assertions by means of their own, which are just as baseless ?79 Transcendental philosophy is the idea of a science for which280 the cri tique of pure reason is to outline the entire plan architectonically, i.e., from 272 [Of our inquiry.] 273 [aLLem Vennuten nach.] 274[aufnehmen, as in an inventory.]
275 [Remainder of the paragraph added in B.] 276
[Cf. A xii ] 277 [Richter. ] .
278 [beurreilen ] 279 [In A. what follows forms the second section of the introduction and is headed thus: II. The Division of Transcendental Philosophy.]
280
[A has 'is, at this point [hier]. only the idea for which.']
A 13
B 27
66
A 14 B 28
INTRODUCTION
[SECOND EDITION]
principles, with full guarantee of the completeness and reliability of all the components that make up this edifice. Transcendental philosophy is the sys tem of all principles of pure reason. 281 That this critique is not itself al ready called transcendental philosophy is due solely to this: in order for this critique to be a complete system, it would have to include a compre hensive analysis of the whole of human a priori cognition. Now, it is in deed true that our critique must also put before us a complete enumeration of all the root concepts282 that make up that pure cognition. Yet the cri tique refrains, and properly so, from providing either the comprehensive analysis of these concepts themselves, or the complete review of the concepts derived from them. [There are two reasons for this.] First, this dissection of concepts would not serve our purpose; for it lacks that precari ousness which we find in synthesis, [the precariousness] on account of which the whole critique is in fact there. Second, taking on the responsi bility for the completeness of such an analysis and derivation (a responsi bility from which we could, after all, have been exempted in view of our aim)283 would go against the unity of our plan. On the other hand, this com pleteness in the dissection of the a priori concepts yet284 to be supplied, as well as in the derivation [of other concepts] from them, can easily be added later: provided that first of all these [concepts] are there, as comprehensive principles of synthesis, and nothing is lacking285 as regards this essential aim. 286 Accordingly, the critique of pure reason [in a way] includes everything that makes up transcendental philosophy; it is the complete idea of tran scendental philosophy. But the critique is not yet that science itself, be cause it carries the analysis [of a priori concepts] only as far as is required for making a complete judgment about synthetic a priori cognition. The foremost goal in dividing such a science is this: no concepts what ever containing anything empirical must enter into this science; or, differ ently put, the goal is that the a priori cognition in it be completely pure. 287 28 1 [This sentence added in B.] 282 [Stammbegriffe.]
283 [Parentheses added.] 284 [kunftig.] 285 [A has 'lacking in them [ihnen).'] 286 [Of supplying these concepts, as such principles.) 2.7 [For the distinction between 'a pnori' and 'pure,' see B 3.]
INTRODUCTION
[SECOND EDITION]
67
Hence, although the supreme principles and basic concepts of morality288 are a priori cognitions, they still do not belong in transcendental philoso phy. For they do of necessity also bring [empirical concepts] into the for mulation of the system of pure morality: 289 viz., the concepts of pleasure and displeasure, of desires and inclinations, etc., all of which are of em pirical origin. Although the supreme principles and basic concepts of mo rality do not lay these empirical concepts themselves at the basis of their precepts, they must still bring in such pleasure and displeasure, desires and inclinations, etc. in [formulating] the concept of duty: viz., as an obstacle to be overcome, or as a stimulus that is not to be turned into a motive.290 291 is Hence transcendental philosophy a philosophy of merely speculative pure reason. For everything practical, insofar as it contains incentives,292 refers to feelings, and these belong to the empirical sources of cognition. If, then, the division of the science being set forth here is to be per formed in terms of the general viewpoint293 of a system as such, then this science must contain in the first place a doctrine of elements, and in the second a doctrine of method, of pure reason.294 Each of these two main parts would be subdivided; but the bases on which that subdivision would be made cannot yet be set forth here. Only this much seems to be needed here by way of introduction or advance notice: Human cognition has two stems, viz., sensibility and understanding, which perhaps spring from a common root, though one unknown to us. Through sensibility objects are given to us; through understanding they are thought?95 Now if sensibility were to contain a priori presentations296 constituting the condition297 un288 [MoraliUit here, Sittlichkeit just below.] 289 [Whereupon the system is no longer pure, though it is still a priori.] 290 [Instead of 'For . . . turned into a motive,' A has 'For the concepts of pleasure and displea sure, of desires and inclinations, of the power of choice [Willkiir], etc., all of which empirical origin, would there [dabei] have to be presupposed.']
are
of
29 1 [Philosophie here, Weltweisheit just below.] 292 [Instead of 'incentives' (Triebfedern), A has 'motives' (Bewegungsgriinde, more com monly called Beweggriinde.] 29 3 [ Gesichtspunkt.] 294 [In A, 'doctrine of elements' and 'doctrine of method' print) .] 29s [Emphasis in 'given' and 'thought' added in B.] 296 [Vorstellungen. See B xvii br. n. 73.] 297 [A has 'conditions.')
are
doubly emphasized (by bold
A 15 B 29
B 30
68
A 16
INTRODUCTION
[SECOND EDITION]
der which objects are given to us, it would to that extent belong to transcendental philosophy. And since the conditions under which alone the ob jects of human cognition are given to us precede the conditions under which these objects are thought, the transcendental doctrine of sense298 would have to belong to the jirsr-99 part of the science of elements.
298 [l.e., in effect, of sensibility: Sinnenlehre. ] 299 [Emphasis added in B.]
CRITIQUE OF PURE REASON I TRANSCENDENTAL DOCTRINE OF ELEMENTS
{ A 17
B 31
TRANSCENDENTAL DOCTRINE OF ELEMENTS PART I TRANSCENDENTAL AESTHETIC! §F In whatever way and by whatever means a cognition3 may refer to ob jects,4 still intuition is that by which5 a cognition refers to objects di rectly,6 and at which all thought aims7 as a means.s Intuition, however, takes l [See B 35 n. 23. Cf. also Hans Vaihinger, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, vol. 2, 1-123; Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. likewise at A vii br. n. 5, 79-166; and Herbert James Paton, op. cit. at B 1 br. n. 1 52, vol. 1 , 93-184.] 2[Numbering of subsections added in B.] 3[Erkenntnis. For the distinction between cognition and knowledge (Wissen), see A vii br. n. 6.] 4[ Gegenstiinde, in this case. See A vii hr. n. 7.]
5 [Literally, 'the one by which' (where 'one' is in the feminine gender in the original): die jenige. wodurch. I am taking diejenige to refer forward to Anschauung, rather than backward to Art (the other feminine noun in this context), in which case we would have to read: 'still intuition is the way [in which and the means] by which.' (The bracketed insertion would be needed inasmuch as 'way by which' [Art, wodurch] does not make sense, whereas 'means by which' [Mittel, wodurch] does )] 6 [ unmittelbar; see B xxxix br. n. 144c.] 7
[abzweckt. Although Zweck means ('end' or) 'purpose,' abzwecken here is synonymous with abzielen ( ' aim'), in line with the etymology of Zweck (cf. English 'tack' ) as connected with a target (Ziel) ] 8[ I.e., as a means to such cognition.]
71
{A 1 9
B 33
72
PART I
TRANSCENDENTAL AESTHETIC
place only insofar as the object is given to us; but that, in tum, is possible only-for us human beings, at any rate9-by the mind's being affected in a certain manner. The capacity (a receptivity lO) to acquire presentations 1 1 13 as a result oe 2 the way in which we are aifected by objects is called sen
given to us, and it alone intuitions. Through understanding, on the other hand, ob jects are thought, and from it arise concepts. But all thought must, by means sibility. Hence by means of sensibility objects are
supplies us with
of certain characteristics, 14 refer ultimately to intuitions, whether it does so straightforwardly (directe) or circuitously (indirecte); 1 5 and hence it
must, in us [human beings], refer ultimately to sensibility, because no ob ject can be given to us in any other manner than through sensibility. B 34 A 20
The effect of an object on our capacity for presentation, insofar as we are affected by the object, is
sensation.
Intuition that refers to the object
9 [This qualification added in B. The point is that other beings might have an intuition that is intellectual (and as such spontaneous, self-active) rather than sensible (and hence passive, a mere receptivity): see B 72 incl. br. n. I S3.] 10 [1 have inserted 'a' before 'receptivity' in order to make clear that Kant is not equating re ceptivity with capacity. He rather uses the term 'capacity' synonymously with 'power': see A 5 118 75, and cr. the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 177.] " [ Vorstellungen. My reason for translating Vorstellung as 'presentation' rather than as 'rep
resentation' is given at B xvii br. n. 73.] 1 2 [durch.]
'3 [ln his working copy of edition A, Kant adds this handwritten note: 'unless intrinsically [an sich] the presentation [ Vorstellung] is itself the cause of the object.' See Nachtriige zu Kants Kritik der reinen Vernunft (Supplementary Entries to Kant 's Critique of Pure Rea son), ed. Benno Erdmann (Kiel: Lipsius & Tischer, I 8S I ), xi. Gerhard Lehmann, in his own edition of the Nachtriige, indicates that Kant's note is added to the word 'affected': "Nach triige zur Kritik der reinen Vernunft" ( " Supplementary Entries to Kant's Critique of Pure Reason"), in the Akademie edition's Vorarbeiten und Nachtriige (Preliminary Studies and Supplementary Entries), part of the Nachlaft (Posthumous Writings), Ak. XXIII, 44 The note seems to go with the qualification, added in B, 'for us human beings, at any rate,' and thus suggests a contrast with how "objects" would be "given" in the case of a being with an intuitive (rather than discursive, i.e., conceptual) understanding, i.e., with an understand ing whose presentations would be intellectual (rather than sensible) intuitions. See B 72 inc!. br. n. 183.] 14 [This insertion added in B. Kant's word for 'characteristic' (which in some contexts I also render as 'mark') is Merkmal. A characteristic is a partial presentation insofar as it is con sidered as cognitive basis (or ground) of the whole presentation. See the Logic, Ak. IX, 58. See also 1. W. Ellington, essay cited at B xliii br. n. 149, 1 45.] I S [geradezu oder im Umschweife; the Latin terms mean 'directly,' 'indirectly.' Cf all the
Progress of Metaphysics since Leibniz and Wolff, Ak. XX, 279-80.]
§1
73
through sensation is called empirical intuition. The undetermined 16 ob ject 17 of an empirical intuition is called appearance. Whatever in an appearance corresponds to sensation I call its matter; but whatever in an appearance brings about the fact that the manifold of 1S the appearance can be ordered in certain relations 19 I call the /arm of ap pearance. Now, that in which alone sensations can be ordered and put20 into a certain form cannot itself be sensation again. Therefore, although the matter of all appearance is given to us only a posteriori, the form of all appearance must altogether lie ready for the sensations a priori in the mind; and hence that form must be capable of being examined apart from all sen sation. All presentations in which nothing is found that belongs to sensation I call pure (in the transcendental sense of the term). Accordingly, the pure form of sensible intuitions generally, in which everything manifold in ex perience is intuited in certain relations, will be found in the mind a priori. This pure form of sensibility will also itself be called pure intuition. Thus, if from the presentation of a body I separate what the understanding thinks in it, such as substance, force, divisibility, etc., and if I similarly separate from it what belongs to sensation in it, such as impenetrability, hardness, color, etc., I am still left with something from this empirical intuition, namely, extension and shape. These belong to pure intuition, which, even if there is no actual object of the senses or of sensation,21 has its place in the mind a priori, as a mere form of sensibility. There must, therefore, be a science of all principles of a priori sensibility /2 I call such a science transcendental aesthetic. 23 It constitutes the first part of the transcendental doctrine of elements, and stands in contrast to 16 [Or 'indeterminate': unbestimmt. Kant is here giving his less frequently used characteriza tion of an appearance. He usually treats appearances as objects of experience and thus as de tenoined (determinate), viz., by the fonos of thought (categories), by the fonos of intuition (space and time), and by the matter of intuition as contributed by sensation.] 1 7 [Gegenstand; likewise earlier in this and the preceding paragraphs.]
18[On
'manifold,' see B 203 br. n. 38.] 19 [A has 'brings about the fact that the manifold of the appearance is intuited as ordered in certain relations.'] 2°[stellen.l
21 [der
Sinne oder Empfindung. ]
22 [ S ee H. E. Allison, Kant 's Transcendental Idealism (New Haven: Yale University Press, 1983), 8 1 - l l4. See also H. W. Cassirer, Kant 's First Critique (London: Allen & Unwin, 1954), 23-5 l . Also J. N. Findlay, Kant and the Transcendental Object: A Hermeneutic Study (Ox-
B 35
A 21
B 36
74
PART I
TRANSCENDENTAL AESTHETIC
that [part of the] transcendental doctrine of elements which contains the principles of pure thought and is called transcendental logic. A 22
Hence in the transcendental aesthetic we shall, first of all,
isolate
sen
sibility, by separating from it everything that the understanding through its concepts thinks [in connection] with it, so that nothing other than empiri cal intuition will remain. 24 Second, we shall also segregate from sensibil ity everything that belongs to sensation, so that nothing will remain but ford: Clarendon Press, 1981), 95-1 14. And see T. D. Weldon, Kant 's Critique of Pure Rea son (Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1958), 104-127.) 23The Gennans are the only people who have come to use the word aesthetic[s] to designate what others call the critique of taste. They are doing so on the basis of a false hope conceived by that superb analyst, Baumgarten: a he hoped to bring our critical judging of the beautiful under rational principles, and to raise the rules for such judging to the level of a science. Yet that endeavor is futile. For, as regards their principalb sources, those rules or criteria are merely empirical. Hence they can never serve as determinateC a priori laws to which our judgment of taste would have to confonn; it is, rather, our judgment of taste which constitutes the proper touch stone for the correctness of those rules or criteria. Because of this it is advisable to follow eitherd of two alternatives. One of these is to let this new name aesthetic[s] become extinct again, and to reserve the name aesthetic for the doctrinee that is true science. (In doing so we would also come closer to the language of the an cients and its meaning: among the ancients the division of cognition into aicr8TJ'tu lCai VOTJ'tu fwas quite famous.)g The other alternative would be for the new aes thetic[s] to share the name with speculative philosophy; we would then take the h name partly in its transcendental sense, and partly in the psychological meaning. "[Alexander Gottlieb Baumgarten (17 14-1762), philosopher in the Leibnizian tradition and disciple of Wolff (see B xxxvi br. n. 134). He introduced the term 'aesthetics' in a sen�e close to the modem one. Kant himself later found a way to base the critique of taste on a priori pnnciples; his aesthetic theory forms the first part of the third Critique, published in 1790. Kant there reacts to the aesthetic theories prevalent at the time, including that of Baumgarten. See the references to Baumgarten and others in the index to my translation of Kant's Critique of Judgment (cited above, at B xvii br. n. 73).) b ['principal' (vornehmst) added in B.) "['determinate' added in B.) d ['either' added in B.) e[Called 'aesthetic' here.) f[aistheta kai noeta (Latin sensibilia et intelligibilia), i.e., the sensible and the intelligible.) &[Remainder of Kant's note added in B.) h [Given to it by Baumgarten.) 24 [I.e., everything conceptual supplied by the understanding is to be taken away so that one is left with nothing more than what belongs to intuition This in tum is then to be separated into what belongs to sensation (as included in empirical intuition), on the one hand, and pure intuition, on the other.)
§l
75
pure intuition and the mere form of appearances, which is all that sensi bility can supply a priori. In the course of that inquiry it will be found that there are two pure forms of sensible intuition, which are25 principles for a priori cognition: viz., space and time ?6 We now proceed to the task of ex amining these.
25 [ais. ] 26 [See Gottfried Martin, Kant's Metaphysics and Theory of Science (Manchester: Manchester University Press, 1955), 1 1-41 ]
B 37
TRANSCENDENTAL AESTHETIC
Section I Space27 §2
METAPHYSICAL EXPOSITION28 OF THIS C ONCEPT29 By means of outer sense (a property of our mind) we present objects as outside us, and present them one and all in space. In space their shape, mag nitude, and relation to one another are determined or determinable. By 27 [Cf. Hans Vaihinger, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, vol. 2, 123-367. For references to Paton, see
above, B I br. n. 52; for references to Kemp Smith, see above, A vii br. n. 5. Cf. also Chns
topher B. Garnett, Jr., The Kantian Philosophy of Space (New York: Columbia University Press, 1939), 164-235; and cf. Arthur Melnick, Space, Time. and Thought in Kant (Dor drecht: Kluwer Academic Publishers, 1989), 5- 1 1 , 1 89-205, 466-48 1 . See also J. W. Elling ton, op. cit. at B xliii br. n. 149, translator's introduction to the Metaphysical Foundations of
Natural Science, xi-xv.] 2B [The metaphysical exposition investigates the nature of the presentation of space and shows that this presentation is given a priori. The transcendental exposition of space (in § 3) shows that and how from the a prion presentation of space something else that is a priori follows viz., synthetic a priori cognitions (propositions of geometry). Cf. the Prolegomena. Ak. IV. 263-64, 284-85; also below, A 86-88 and B 1 33-34.] 29 [Number and heading of subsection added in B.]
76
SECTION I
77
SPACE
means of inner sense the mind intuits itself, or its inner state. Although in ner sense provides no intuition of the soul itself as an object, yet there is a determinate form under which alone [as condition] we can intuit the soul's
A 23
inner state. [That form is time.] Thus everything belonging to our inner de terminations30 is presented in relations of time. Time cannot be intuited outwardly, any more than space can be intuited as something within us. What,
then, are space and time? Are they actual beings? Are they only determi-
nations of things, or, for that matter, relations among them? If so, are they at least3 1 determinations or relations that would belong to things intrinsi-
cally also, i.e., even if these things were not intuited? Or are they determinations and relations that adhere only to the form of intuition and hence to the subjective character of our mind, so that apart from that character these predicates cannot be ascribed to any thing at all? In order to inform ourselves on these points, let us first of all give an exposition of the concept of space. 32 Now, by exposition33 (expositio) I mean clear (even if not comprehensive) presentation of what belongs to a concept; and such exposition is
metaphysical
if it contains what exhibits the concept as
given a
priori. 1 . Space is not an empirical concept that has been abstracted from outer experiences. For the presentation of space must already lie at the basis34
in order for certain sensations to be referred to something outside me (i.e., referred to something in a location of space other than the location in which I am). And it must similarly already lie at the basis in order for me to be able to present [the objects of] these sensations as outside and
alongside35
one another, and hence to present them not only as different but as being in different locations. Accordingly, the presentation of space cannot be one that we take from the relations of outer appearance by means of experi ence; rather, only through the presentation of space is that outer experi ence possible in the first place. 30
[Bestimmungen. The term usually means, roughly, 'attribute' ; yet in this work it is impor tant to keep visible the term's connection with 'determine,' 'determinate,' etc.] 31 [doch. ] 32
[A has 'let us first of all examine space. ' Also, remainder of paragraph added in B.] 33 [Erorterung.] 34 [zum Grunde liegen.]
35 [ 'and alongside' added in B.]
B 38
78
A 24
PART I
TRANSCENDENTAL AESTHETIC
2. Space is a necessary a priori presentation that underlies36 all outer intuitions. We can never have a presentation of there being no space, even
B 39
though we are quite able to think of there being no objects encountered in it. Hence space must be regarded as the condition for the possibility of ap pearances, and not as a determination dependent on them. Space is an a priori presentation that necessarily underlies outer appearances.37 3 .38 Space is not a discursive or, as we say, universal concept of things
A 25
as such; rather, it is a pure intuition. For, first, we can present only one space; and when we speak of many spaces, we mean by that only parts of one and the same unique space. Nor, second, can these parts precede the one all-encompassing space, as its constituents, as it were (from which it can be assembled); rather, they can be thought only as
in it.
Space is es
sentially one; the manifold in it, and hence also the universal39 concept of spaces as such, rests solely on [our bringing in] limitations. 4o It follows
from this that, as far as space is concerned, an a priori intuition of it (i.e., one that is not empirical) underlies all concepts of space. By the same to-
36 [zum Grunde liegt. ] 37 [A here inserts the following paragraph:]
3. On this a priori necessity rests the apodeictic certainty of all geo metric principles and the possibility of geometry' sa constructions. For if this presentation of space were a concept acquired a posteriori, drawn from generalb outer experience, then the first principles for determining [things] in mathematics would be nothing but perceptions. Hence they would have all the contingency that perception has; and it would then precisely not be necessary for there to be only one straight line between two points, but this would be something that experience always teaches us. By the same token, what we take from experience has only com parative universality," viz., through induction. Hence all we could say is: as far as we have been able to tell until now, no space has been found that has more than three dimensions. "[ihrer.] b[allgemein. ] C [Allgemeinheit. ] 38 [ '4 ' in A.] 39 [allgemeine. This concept is "universal" in the same sense in which the pnnciples of ge ometry are. Cf. below, A 47IB 64.] 4o [Einschrankungen.]
SECTION I
SPACE
79
ken, no geometric principles-e.g., the principle4 1 that in a triangle two sides together are greater than the third-are ever derived from universal concepts of
line
and
triangle;42 rather, they are all derived from intuition,
and are derived from it moreover a priori, with apodeictic certainty. 4.43 We present space as an infinite given magnitude. Now it is true that every concept must be thought as a presentation that is contained in an infinite multitude of different possible presentations (as their common char acteristic44) and hence the concept contains these presentations under it-
self.
But no concept, as such, can be thought as45 containing an infinite
multitude of presentations within itself.46 Yet that is how we think space (for all parts of space, ad infinitum, are simultaneous47). Therefore the original presentation of space is an a priori
intuition,
not a
concept.48
4 1 [Grundsatz. ] 42 [Emphasis in both terms added.] 43[1n the place of this paragraph, A has the following:]
5. We present space as given as an infinite magnitude. A universal con cept of space (which is shared by a foot as it is by an ell) cannot de termine anything as regards magnitude. If the boundlessness in the pro gression of intuition did not carry with it a principlea of the infinity of intuition, no concept of relations would do so. b 'fprincipium.] b[l.e., carry with it a principle of space as an infinite magnitude.] 44[See A 19fB 33 br. n. 14.] 45 ['as if,' literally.] 46[See J. W. Ellington, essay cited at B xliii br. n. 149, 143-45.]
47 [zugieich.]
48 [But, as Kant has indicated, from this original intuition of space concepts can be formed, including such concepts as those of empirical space, relative space, Euclidean space, math ematical space. Cf., for example, the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak. IV, 481-82, where Kant talks about empirical space and absolute space.]
B 40
80
PART I
TRANSCENDENTAL AESTHETIC
§ 3 49
TRANSCENDENTAL EXPOSITION50 OF THE C ONCEPT OF S PACE By a
transcendental exposition
I mean the explication of a concept as a
principle that permits insight into the possibility of other synthetic a priori cognitions. Such explication requires ( I ) that cognitions of that sort do ac tually flow from the given concept, and (2) that these cognitions are pos sible only on the presupposition of a given way of explicating that con cept. Geometry is a science that determines the properties of space syntheti cally and yet a priori. What, then, must the presentation of space be in or der for such cognition of space to be possible? Space must originally be B 41
intuition. For from a mere concept one cannot obtain propositions that go beyond the concept; but we do obtain such propositions in geometry (In troduction, V5 1 ) This intuition must, however, be encountered in us a priori, i.e., prio�2 to any perception of an object; hence this intuition must be pure rather than empirical. For geometric propositions are one and all apodeic tic, i.e., linked with the consciousness of their necessity-e.g., the propo sition that space has only three dimensions. But propositions of that sort cannot be empirical judgments or judgments of experience; 53 nor can they be inferred from such judgments (Introduction, 1154). How, then, can the mind have an outer intuition which precedes the ob jects themselves, and in which the concept of these objects can be deter mined a priori? Obviously, this can be so only insofar as this intuition re sides merely in the subject, as the subject 's formal character of being affected by objects and of thereby acquiring from them direct presentation, i.e.,
intuition,
and hence only as form of outer
sense
in general.
Our explication of the concept of space is, therefore, the only one that makes comprehensible the possibility of geometry as a [kind of] synthetic a priori cognition. Any way of explicating the concept that fails to make 49 [The following passage, to the end of B 4 1 , added in B.] 50 [ef. above, A 22IB 37 hr. n. 28.] 5 1 [B 14-18, specificaliy 1 6.] 52 [VOr, which means 'before' only when used temporally. unlike here ] "[See B 11 br n. 201 .] 54[B 3-6.]
SECTION I
SPACE
81
this possibility comprehensible, even if it should otherwise seem to have some similarity to ours, can be distinguished from it most safely by these criteria. 55
C ONCLUSIONS FROM THE ABOVE C ONCEPTS
{ A 26
B 42
(a) Space represents5 6 no property whatever of any things in them selves, nor does it represent things in themselves in their relation to one another.5 7 That is, space represents no determination of such things, no de termination that adheres to objects themselves and that would remain even if we abstracted from all subjective conditions of intuition. For determina tions, whether absolute or relative, cannot be intuited prio�8 to the exist ence of the things to which they belong, and hence cannot be intuited a priori. (b) Space is nothing but the mere form of all appearances of outer senses; i.e., it is the subjective condition of sensibility under which alone outer in tuition is possible for us. Now, the subject's receptivity for being affected by objects59 precedes necessarily all intuitions of these objects. Thus we can understand how the form of all appearances can be given in the mind prior to all actual perceptions, and hence given a priori; and we can un derstand how this form, as a pure intuition in which all objects must be determined, can contain, prior to all experience, principles for the relations among these objects. Only from the human standpoint, therefore, can we speak of space, of extended beings, etc. If we depart from the subjective condition under which alone we can-viz, as far as we may be affected by objects-acquire outer intuition, then the presentation of space means nothing whatsoever. This predicate is ascribed to things only insofar as they appear to us, i.e., only insofar as they are objects of sensibility. The constant form of this receptivity which we call sensibility is a necessary condition of all relations in which objects are intuited as outside us; and if we abstract from these SS
[The criteria numbered ( I ) and (2) at the beginning of this subsection.)
S6[
vorstellen, clearly not in the sense of the mental activity of presenting discussed at B xvii
br. n. 73.) s7
[As Leibniz claimed when he said that space involves nothing but the relations among the monads (things in themselves).) SB [VOr.)
s9 [
Gegenstiinde here, Objekte jUst below.)
B 43 A 27
82
PART I
TRANSCENDENTAL AESTHETIC
objects, then the form of that receptivity is a pure intuition that bears the name of space. We cannot make the special conditions of sensibility to be conditions of the possibility of things,60 but only of the possibility of their appearances. Hence we can indeed say that space encompasses61 all thing� that appear to us externally, but not that it encompasses all things in them selves, intuited or not, or intuited by whatever subject. For we can make
no judgment at all about the intuitions of other thinking beings, as to whether they are tied to the same conditions that limit our intuition and that are valid for us universally. If the limitation on a judgment is added to the concept of the subject [term] , then the judgment holds unconditionally. The proposition, All things are side by side in space, holds under62 the limi
B 44 A 28
tation: if these things are taken as objects of our sensible intuition. If I here add the condition to the concept and say, All things considered as outer appearances are side by side in space, then this rule holds universally and without limitation. Accordingly, our exposition teaches63 that space is real (i.e., objectively valid) in regard to everything that we can encounter ex ternally as object, but teaches at the same time that space is ideal in regard to things when reason considers them in themselves, i.e., without taking into account the character of our sensibility. Hence we assert that space is empirically real (as regards all possible outer experience), despite assert ing64 that space is transcendentally ideal, i.e., that it is nothing as soon as we omit [that space is] the condition of the possibility of all experience and suppose space to be something underlying things in themselves. B esides space, on the other hand, no other subjective presentation that is referred to something external could be called an a priori objective pre sentation.6S For from none of them can we derive synthetic a priori propo6°[Sachen here, Dinge repeatedly thereafter.] 6 1 [befassen.] 62 [A has 'only under. '] 63[Adopting the fourth edition's substitution of Erorterung Lehrt for the earlier Erorterungen
Lehren.] 64 [A has 'asserting at the same time. ' ] 6S [In the place o f the remainder o f this paragraph, A has the following:]
Hence this subjective condition of all external appearances cannot be compared with any other [subjective presentations referred to some thing external] . A wine's good taste does not belong to the objective de terminations of the wine and hence of an object, even of an object con-
SECTION I
SPACE
83
sitions, as we can from intuition in space (§ 3 66). Hence, strictly speaking, ideality does not apply to them, even though they agree with the presen tation of space inasmuch as they belong merely to the subjective character of the kind of sense involved. They may belong, e.g., to the sense67 of sight, of hearing, or of touch,68 by [being] sensations69 of colors, sounds, or heat. Yet because they are mere sensations rather than intuitions, they do not al low us to cognize any object at all, let alone a priori. The only aim of this comment is to forestall an error: it might occur to someone to illustrate the ideality of space asserted above by means of examples such as colors or taste, etc. These are thoroughly insufficient for sidered as appearance, but belongs to the special charactera of the sense in the subject who is enjoying this taste. b Colors are not propertiesC of the bodies to the intuition of which they attach, but are also only modifications of the sense of sight, which is affected in a certain manner by light. Space, on the other hand, as condition of external objects, belongs necessarily to their appearance or intuition. Taste and colors are in no way necessary conditions under which alone objectsd can become objects of the senses for us. They are linked with the appearance only as contingently added effects of the speciale character of our organs.f That is, moreover, why they are not a priori presentations, but are based on sensation-[a thing's] good taste, indeed, being based even on feelingg (the feeling of pleasure and displeasure), as an effect of sensation. Nor can anyone have a priori a presentation either of a color or of any taste. Space, on the other hand, concerns only the pure form of intuition and hence includes no sensation whatever (nothing empirical) ; and all kinds and determinations of space are capable of being presented a priori-indeed, they must be capable of this if concepts of shapes and of [spatial] relations are to arise. Through space alone is it possible for things to be external objects for us. a[Beschaffenheit.] b [Or ' that wine.'] C [Beschaffenheiten. ] d [Gegenstiinde here, Objekte just below.] e[Or 'particular' : besonder.] f[Organisation.] g[Gefiih l. Cf. br. n. 68, just below.] 6
67
[First pan of the subsection. B 40-4 1 .]
[Sinn.] 68 [Ge fiihl, the basic meaning of which is 'feeling ' Cf. A 29 (see B 44 n. 65) inc!. br. n. 65c.] 6!I [Empjindungen.]
B 45
A 29
84
A 30
PART I
TRANSCENDENTAL AESTHETIC
this, because they are rightly regarded not as properties of things, but merely as changes in ourselves as subjects,70 changes that may even be different in different people. For in this case, something that originally is itself only appearance-e.g., a rose-counts7 l as a thing in itself in the empirical meaning of this expression, 72 a thing in itself that in regard to color can nonetheless appear differently to every eye. The transcendental concept of appearances in space, on the other hand, is a critical reminder. It reminds us that nothing whatever that is intuited in space is a thing73 in itself, and that space is not a form of things, one that might belong to them as they are in themselves. Rather, what we call external objects are nothing but mere presentations of our sensibility. The form of this sensibility is space; but its true correlate, i.e., the thing in itself, is not cognized at all through these presentations, and cannot be. Nor, on the other hand, is the thing in itself ever at issue74 in experience.
70 ['as changes of our subject.' Kant says literally.) 7 1 [gelten.) 72 [C f. A 45/B 62, also B 69 inc!. br. n. 1 75.) 73 [Sache here, Ding two sentences earlier and again (in the plural) hereafter.) 74[gefragt I
TRANSCENDENTAL AESTHETIC
Section II Time75 §4
METAPHYSICAL EXPOSITION76 OF THE C ONCEPT OF TIME77 1 . Time is not an empirical concept that has been abstracted from any ex
perience. For simultaneity78 or succession would not even enter our per ception if the presentation of time did not underlie them a priori. Only on the presupposition of this presentation can we present this and thae9 as be ing at one and the same time (simultaneously) or at different times (se quentially).
5,
7' [Cf. Hans Vaihinger, op. cit. at A vii br. n. vol. 2, 368-441 . Cf. also Arthur Melnick, op. cit. at A 221B 37 br. n. 27, 20-26. For references to Paton, see above, B 1 br. n. 152; for ref erences to Kemp Smith, see above, A vii br. n. 5 . ] 76[Cf. A 221B 37 br. n 28.]
77 [Number and heading of subsection added in B.] 7" [Zugleichsein. See B 257 br. n. 209.] 79 [einiges.]
85
B 46
86
A 31
B 47
A 32
B 48
PART I
TRANSCENDENTAL AESTHETIC
2 . Time is a necessary presentation that underlies all intuitions. As regards appearances in general, we cannot annul time itself, though we can quite readily remove appearances from time. Hence time is given a priori. All actuality of appearances is possible only in time. Appearances, one and all, may go away; but time itself (as the universal condition of their pos sibility) cannot be annulled. 3. This a priori necessity, moreover, is the basis for the possibility of apodeictic principles about relations of time, or for the possibility of axi oms about time in general. Time has only one dimension; different times are not simultaneous but sequential (just as different spaces are not se quential but simultaneous8o). These principles cannot be obtained from ex perience. For experience would provide neither strict universality nor apo deictic certainty; we could say only that common perception teaches us that it is so, but not that it must be so. These principles hold as rules under which alone experiences are possible at all; and they instruct us prior to experi ence, not through it. 4. Time is not a discursive or, as it is called, universal concept; rather, it is a pure form of sensible intuition. Different times are only parts of one and the same time; and the kind of presentation that can be given only through a single object is intuition. Moreover, the proposition that differ ent times cannot be simultaneous could not be derived from a universal concept. The proposition is synthetic, and [therefore] cannot arise from con cepts alone. Hence it is contained directly in the intuition and presentation of time. 5. To say that time is infinite means nothing more than that any deterrninate magnitude of time is possible only through limitations [put] on a single underlying time. Hence the original presentation time8l must be given as unlimited. But if something is such that its parts themselves and any magnitude of an object in it can be presented determinately only through limitation, then the whole presentation of it cannot be given through con cepts (for they contain only partial presentations 82), but any such presen tation8 3 must be based on direct intuition. 80[Cf. the end of § 2, B 40.) 81 [Emphasis added in B.] 82 [A has 'for in their case the partial presentations precede.' Cf. the end of § 2, B 40. See also 1. W. Ellington, essay cited at B xliii br. n. 149, 145.] 83 [ihnen A has ihre instead, so that this last clause reads: 'but [any such presentation] must be based on its direct intuition.']
SECTION II TIME
87
§ 5 84
TRANSCENDENTAL EXPOSITION85 OF THE C ONCEPT OF TIME
for this exposition to No. 3,86 where, for the sake of brevity, I put among the items of the metaphysical exposition what in fact is tran scendental. Let me add here that the concept of change, and with it the con cept of motion (as change of place), is possible only through and in the presentation of time; and that if this presentation were not (inner) a priori intuition, no concept whatsoever could make comprehensible the possibil ity of a change, i.e., of a combination, in one and the same object, of con tradictorily opposed predicates (e.g., one and the same thing's being in a place and not being in that same place). Only in time can both of two contradictorily opposed determinations be met with in one thing: viz., sequentially. Hence our concept of time explains the possibility of all that synthetic a priori cognition which is set forth by the-quite fertile-general theory of motion. I may refer
B
49
§ 687 C ONCLUSIONS FROM THESE C ONCEPTS
(a) Time is not something that is self-subsistent88 or that attaches to things as an objective determination, and that hence would remain if one ab stracted from all sUbjective conditions of our intuition of it. For if time were self-subsistent, then it would be something that without there being an actual object would yet be actual. 89 But if, on the second alternative, time were a determination or order attaching to things themselves,9o then it could not precede the objects as their condition, and could not a priori be cognized through synthetic propositions and intuited. But this a priori cogni84 [This whole subsection added in B.] 8' [Cf. A 22/8 37 br. n. 28. ] 8· [In § 4, A 3 118 47.] 87 [ § 6' added in B ] . 88 [fiir sich selbst bestehen.] 89 [As in the case of Newton's absolute space.] 9O [As in the case of Leibniz. who held that time involves nothing but relations among the monads (things in themselves).]
A 33
88
B
50
A 34
B
51
PART I TRANSCENDENTAL AESTHETIC
tion and intuition can take place quite readily if time is nothing but the subjective condition under which alone any intuition can take place in us. For in that case this form of inner intuition can be presented prior9 1 to the objects, and hence presented a priori. (b) Time is nothing but the form of inner sense, i.e., of the intuiting we do of ourselves and of our inner state. For time cannot be a determination of outer appearances, [because] it does not belong to any shape or posi tion, etc., but rather determines the relation of presentations in our inner state. And precisely because this inner intuition gives us no shape, do we try to make up for this deficiency by means of analogies. We present time sequence by a line progressing ad infinitum, a line in which the manifold constitutes a series of only one dimension. And from the properties of that line we infer all the properties of time, except for the one difference that the parts of the line are simultaneous whereas the parts of time are always sequential. This fact, moreover, that all relations of time can be expressed by means of outer92 intuition, shows that the presentation of time is itself intuition. (c) Time is the formal a priori condition of all appearances generally. Space is the pure form of all outer appearances; as such it is limited, as a priori condition, to just outer appearances. But all presentations, whether or not they have outer things as their objects, do yet in themselves, as de terminations of the mind, belong93 to our inner state; and this inner state is subject t094 the formal condition of inner intuition, and hence to the con dition of time. Therefore time is an a priori condition of all appearance gen erally: it is the direct95 condition of inner appearances (of our souls), and precisely thereby also, indirectly, a condition of outer appearances. If I can say a priori that all outer appearances are in space and are determined a priori according to spatial relations, then the principle of inner sense allows me to say, quite universally, that all appearances generally, i.e., all objects of the senses, are in time and stand necessarily in relations of time. 9 1 [VOr.] 92 [an einer duj3eren.] 93 [gehiiren ] 9 4[gehiiren unter. ] 95 [unmittelbar (analogously for 'indirectly' just below) See
B xxxix br. n. l 44c ]
SECTION II TIME
89
If we take96 objects as they may be in themselves-i.e., if we abstract from the way in which we intuit ourselves inwardly, and in which by means of this intuition we also take int097 our power of presentation all outer intuitions-then time is nothing. Time has objective validity only with re gard to appearances, because these are already things considered98 as objects of our senses. But time is no longer objective if we abstract from the sensibility of our intuition, and hence from the way of presenting peculiar to us, and speak of things as such. 99 Hence time is merely a subjective condition of our (human) intuition (an intuition that is always sensible-i.e., inasmuch as we are affected by objects); in itself, i.e., apart from the subject, time is nothing. Nevertheless, time is necessarily objective in regard to all appearances, and hence also in regard to all things that we can encounter in experience. We cannot say that all things [as such] are in time; for in the concept of things as such we abstract from all ways of intuiting them, while yet this intuition lOO is the very l Ol condition under which 102 time belongs in the presentation of objects. If now we add the condition to the concept, and say that all things as appearances (objects of sensible intuition) are in time, then this principle has all its objective correctness and a priori universality. Hence the doctrine we are asserting is that time is empirically real, i.e., objectively valid in regard to all objects that might ever be given to our senses. And since our intuition is always sensible, no object that is not sub ject to the condition of time can ever be given to us in experience. On the other hand, we dispute that time has any claim to absolute 1 03 reality; i.e., we dispute any claim whereby time would, quite 1 04 without taking into account the form of our sensible intuition, attach to things absolutely, 1 05 as a 9fi[nehmen.]
97 [More literally, 'encompass in': in . . . befassen.] 98 [annehmen.] 99 [Or 'things in general ': Dinge iiberhaupt. My reason for (usually) rendenng iiberhaupt in this way is given at B xxvii hr. n. 106.] loo [Reading diese for the dieser found in B as B appears in the Akademie edition.] 101
[eigentliche.] IOl As added to the concept of a thing as such.] [ I03 [ absolute.] 104[auch.] I05 [ schlechthin.]
A 35
B
52
A 36
90
B
53
PART I TRANSCENDENTAL AESTHETIC
condition or property. Nor indeed can such properties, properties belong ing to things in themselves, ever be given to us through the senses. In this, then, consists the transcendental ideality of time. According to this view, 106 if we abstract from the subjective conditions of sensible intuition, then time is nothing, and cannot be included among objects in themselves (apart from their relation to our intuition) either as subsisting l O7 [as such an object] or as inhering [in one]. But this ideality of time is not to be compared, any more than is the ideality of space, with the subreptions of sensations. 1 08 For in their case we presuppose that the appearance itself in which these predicates 109 [allegedly] inhere has objective reality. 1 1 0 In the case of time, such objective reality is entirely absent/ I I except insofar as this reality is merely empirical, i.e., except insofar as we regard the object itself as merely appearance. See, on this, the above comment, in SECTION I. 1 1 2
§ 7 1 13 ELUCIDATION
A 37
Against this theory, which grants that time is empirically real but disputes that it is real absolutely and transcendentally, I have heard men of insight raise quite unanimously an objection. I gather from this great unanimity that the objection must occur naturally to every reader who is not accus tomed to contemplations such as these. The objection is the following. Changes II 4 are actual. (This is proved by the variation l l 5 on the part of our own presentations-even if one were to deny all outer appearances, I06 [The transcendental idealism of time, properly speaking.)
7
1 0 [subsistierend.)
!08 [l.e., (instances of) their surreptitious substitution for, and thus confusion with, something in the object, as discussed above: A 2S-301B 44-45. See also A 643 B 671 inc!. br. n. 14, and cf. A 791-92 B S I 9-20.) I 09 [l.e., the colors, sounds, etc., surreptitiously treated as properties of the object.J =
=
llo [Whereas the colors, sounds, etc., do not.) ! 1 l [And is here treated as such, subreption thus being precluded.) ! 12 [See the end of the section on space. A 2S-301B 44-45.) 1 1 3 [ ' § 7' added i n B ) 1l4 [Verdnderungen. ) 11 5 [ Wechsel. On variation and change. see
B 224 br n. 45. and cf. A 1 87/B 230.]
SECTION II TIME
91
along with their changes.) Now changes are possible only in time. There fore time is something actual. There is no difficulty in replying to the ob jection. I concede the whole argument. Time is indeed something actual, viz., the actual form of inner intuition. It therefore has subjective reality in regard to inner experience; i.e., I actually have the presentation of time and of my determinations in time. Hence time is to be regarded as actual,11 6 though not as an object but as the way of presenting that I myself have as an object. Suppose, on the other hand, that I could intuit myself without being subject to this condition of sensibility, or that another being could so intuit me; in that case the very same determinations that we now present as changes would provide a cognition in which the presentation of time, and hence also that of change, would not occur at all. Hence time retains its empirical reality as condition of all our experiences. Only absolute reality must, by the reasons adduced above, be denied to time. Time is nothing but the form of our inner intuitionY' If we take away from time [the qualification that it is] the special condition of our sensibility, then the concept of time vanishes as well; time attaches not to objects themselves, but merely to the subject intuiting them. But what causes this objection to be raised so unanimously, and raised, moreover, by those who nonetheless cannot think of any plausible objection against the doctrine that space is ideal, is the following. They had no hope of establishing apodeictically that space is real absolutely; for they are confronted by idealism, according to which the actuality of external objects is incapable of strict proof. By contrast, the actuality of the object of our inner sense 11 8 (the actuality of myself and of my state) is directly evident through consciousness. External objects might be a mere illusion; but the object of inner sense is, in their opinion, undeniably something actual. They failed to bear in mind, however, that both of them, though their actuality as presentations is indisputable, still belong only to appearance. Appearance always has two sides. One is the side where the object is regarded in itself (without regard to the way in which it is intuited, which is 1 1 6[Construing wirklich as an adjective, rather than as an adverb modifying 'to be regarded' .]
1171
can indeed say: My presentations followa one another. But that means only that
we are conscious of them as being in a time sequenceb-in accordance, i.e., with the form of inner sense. Time is not, on that account, something in itself, nor is it a determination attaching to things objectively. "lfolgen.] b [-jolge.] 1 18 [Reading unseres inneren Sinnes for unserer inneren Sinne ('of our inner senses').]
B
54
A 38 B
55
92
A 39 B
56
A 40
PART I 1RANSCENDENTAL AESTHETIC
precisely why its character always remains problematic). 1 l 9 The other is the side where we take account of the form of the intuition of this object. This form must be sought not in the object in itself, but in the subject to whom the object appears. Yet this form belongs to the appearance of this object actually and necessarily. Time and space are, accordingly, two sources of cognition. From these sources we can draw a priori different synthetic cognitions-as is shown above all by the splendid example that pure mathematics provides in regard to our cognitions of space and its relations. For time and space, taken together, are pure forms of all sensible intuition, and thereby make syn thetic propositions possible a priori. 1 20 But precisely thereby (i.e., by be ing merely conditions of sensibility), these a priori sources of cognition de termine their own bounds; viz., they determine that they apply to objects merely insofar as these are regarded as appearances, but do not exhibit things in themselves. Appearances are the sole realm where these a priori sources of cognition are valid; if we go outside that realm, there is no fur ther objective use that can be made of them. This [limited] reality of space and time leaves the reliability of experiential cognition otherwise un touched; for we have equal certainty in that cognition, whether these forms necessarily attach to things in themselves or only to our intuition of these things. Those, on the other hand, who assert that space and time-whether they assume these as subsistent or as only inherent-are real absolutely must be at variance with the principles of experience itself. 12 1 For suppose they decide to assume space and time as subsistent 122 (thus taking what is usually the side of the mathematical investigators of nature): then they must assume two eternal and infinite self-subsistentl 23 nonentities 124 (space and time), which exist (yet without there being anything actual) only in order to encompass everything actual. Or suppose they assume space and time as only inherent (thus taking the side to which some metaphysical natural 1 1 9 [For Kant's view that things in themselves are (thought of as) what appears, see B xxvii.] 120 [Or 'make synthetic a prion propositions possible.' See B 19 br. n. 234.] 1 2 1 [For Kant's discussion of these two alternatives, representing (respectively) the Newtonian and the Leibnizian views, cf. the beginning of the preceding subsection, A 32-331B 49 See also the references given at A 221B 37 br. n. 27.] 1 22 [subsistierend ] 1 23[fur sich bestehende.] I 24[Undinge:
'nonthings,' literally, with absurdity implied. See A 2921B 348 inel. br. n. 149.]
SECTION II TIME
93
scientists belong). Here space and time count 125 for them as relations of appearances (occurring concurrently or sequentially)-relations abstracted from experience but, as thus separated, presented confusedly. If they take this second side, then they must dispute that the mathematical a priori doctrines are valid for actual things (e.g., things in space), or at least that they are apodeictically certain. For a posteriori there is no such certainty at all. According to this second opinion, the a priori concepts of space and time are only creatures of the imagination, 126 and their source must actually be sought in experience: the relations 127 are abstracted from experience; and the imagination has made from them something that, while containing what is universal in these relations, yet cannot occur without the restrictions that nature has connected with them. Those who assume space and time as [real absolutely and] subsistent do gain this much: they make the realm of appearances free 128 for mathematical assertions. On the other hand, these very conditions 129 create great confusion for them when the understanding wants to go beyond the realm of appearances. Those, on the other hand, who assume space and time as [real absolutely but as] only inherent gain on this latter point. I.e., they do not find the presentations of space and time getting in their way when they want to judge objects not as appearances but merely as they relate to the understanding. But they can neither indicate a basis for the possibility of mathematical a priori cognitions (since they lack a true and objectively valid a priori intuition 130), nor bring the propositions of experience into necessary agreement with those a priori mathematical assertions. Our theory of the true character of these two original forms of sensibility provides the remedy for both [sets of] difficulties. Finally, transcendental aesthetic cannot contain more than these two el ements, i.e., space and time. This is evident from the fact that all other con cepts belonging to sensibility presuppose something empirical. This holds even for the concept of motion, which unites the two componentsYI For [the concept of] motion presupposes the perception of something mov1 25 [gelten.] 1 26[Einbildungskraft here, Einbildung just below.] 1 27 [Of space and time.] 128 [Which on the opposing view just mentioned it was not.] 129 [The self-subsistent space and time as being eternal and infinite.]
1 3o[To which to appeal ] IJ1 [Space and time.]
B
57
A 41 B 58
94
PART I TRANSCENDENTAL AESTHETIC
able. 1 32 But in space, considered in itself, there is nothing movable; there fore the movable must be something that we find in space only through experience, and hence must be an empirical datum. Similarly, transcen dental aesthetic cannot include among its a priori data the concept of change. For time itself does not change; rather, what changes is something that is in time. Therefore the concept of change requires the perception of some existent 133 and of the succession of its determinations; hence it re quires experience. § 8 1 34 GENERAL C OMMENTS ON TRANSCENDENTAL AESTHETIC 35
B 59
A 42
I. 136 In order to forestall any misinterpretation of our opinion regarding the basic character of sensible cognition as such, we must first explain as dis tinctly as possible what that opinion is. What we have tried to say, then, is the following. All our intuition is nothing but the presentation of appearance. The things that we intuit are not in themselves what we intuit them as being. Nor do their relations in themselves have the character that they appear to us as having. And if we annul ourselves as subject, or even annul only the subjective character of the senses generally, then this entire character of objects and all their re lations in space and time-indeed, even space and time themselves would vanish; being appearances, they cannot exist in themselves, but can exist only in us. What may be the case regarding objects in themselves and apart from all this receptivity of our sensibility remains to us entirely un known. All we know 137 is the way in which we perceive them. That way is peculiar to us and does not necessarily have to apply to all beings, even 1 32 [Namely, matter. See the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak IV, 469-72.]
IJ3 [Dasein,
which usually means 'existence.']
1 34 [ ' § 8' added in B.]
1 35[Cf. Hans Vaihinger, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, vol. 2, 441-548.] 1 3 6[Number added in B.] 1 37 [More literally, 'are acquainted with" kennen. I am using 'know' in this context for the sake of consistency with my rendenng (for which there is no manageable alternative here) of unbekannt as 'unknown' just above, and of bekannt as 'known' near the end of this para graph ]
GENERAL COMMENTS
95
though it applies necessarily to all human beings. Solely with that way of perceiving are we dealing here. Space and time are its pure forms; sensation as such as its matter. Only that way of perceiving can we cognize a priori, i.e., prior1 38 to all actual perception, and that is why it is called pure intuition. Sensation, on the other hand, is that component in our cognition on whose account it is called a posteriori cognition, i.e., empirical intuition. The forms [of intuition] attach to our sensibility with absolute necessity, no matter of what kind our sensations may be; the sensations can differ very much. Even if we could bring this institution of ours to the highest degree of distinctness, that would still not get us closer to the character of objects in themselves. For what we would cognize, and cognize completely, would still be only our way of intuiting, i.e., our sensibility; and we would always cognize it only under the conditions attaching to the subject originally: space and time. What objects may be in themselves would still never become known to us, not even through the most enlightened cognition of what alone is given to us, viz., their appearance. Hence we must reject the view 1 39 that our entire sensibility is nothing but our confused presentation of things, a presentation that contains solely what belongs to them in themselves, but contains it only by way Of1 40 an accumulation of characteristics 1 41 and partial presentations that we do not consciously discriminate. For this view falsifies the concept of sensibility and of appearance, thus rendering the entire doctrine of sensibility useless and empty. The distinction between an indistinct and a distinct presentation i s merely logical and does not concern the content. 142 No doubt the concept of rightness 1 43 as employed by common sense l44 contains just the same as can be extricated from it by the most subtle speculation, except that in its common 145 and practical use one is not conscious of the diverse presentations contained in that thought. But that does not entitle us to say 138[vor.] 1 39[Held by Leibniz.]
140[unter.] 1 4 1 [Or 'marks'; Merkmalen. See A 1 91B 33 br. n. 14.] 142 [Cf., for this discussion, the First Introduction to Kant's Critique of Judgment, Ak. 226n. See also above. A xvii br. n. 26.]
143[Rech/.] 144 [Literally, 'sound understanding"
145[gemein.]
gesunder Vers/and.]
XX,
B
60
A 43
B
61
96
A 44
PART I
TRANSCENDENTAL AESTHETIC
that the common concept is sensible and contains a mere appearance. For rightness cannot be an appearance at all; rather, its concept lies in the un derstanding, 1 46 and we present by it a character of acts (their moral char acter) which belongs to them in themselves. On the other hand, when a
body is presented in intuition,
this presentation contains nothing whatever
that could belong to an object in itself. It contains, rather, merely the ap pearance of something, and the way we are affected by that something. This receptivity of our cognitive capacity is called sensibility; and even if we were to see through that appearance and to its very bottom, yet this recep tivity remains as different as day and night 1 47 from cognition of the object in itself.
Hence the philosophy of Leibniz and Wolff, 1 48 by considering the dis
tinction between what is sensible and what is intellectual as a merely logi cal one, has imposed an entirely wrong point of view on all investigations about the nature and origin of our cognitions. For plainly the distinction is transcendental, and does not concern merely the form of these cognitions, B 62
i.e., their distinctness or indistinctness, but concerns their origin and con tent. Hence sensibility does not merely fail to provide us with a distinct cognition of the character of things in themselves; it provides us with none whatsoever. And once we remove our subjective character, then the pre sented object, along with the properties contributed to it by sensible intu ition, is not to be found anywhere at all; nor can it possibly be found, be
A 45
cause this subjective character is precisely what determines the form of that object as appearance. 1 49 It is true that we commonly make this distinction about appearances: we distinguish what attaches to their intuition essentially and holds for the sense of every human being in general, from what belongs to that intuition only contingently by being valid only for a special position of this or that sense, or for the special organization of that sense, but not valid for the re lation of [the intuition to] sensibility in general. We then speak of the first kind of cognition as presenting the object in itself, and of the second as presenting only its appearance. This distinction, however, is only empiri146 [And not in intuition.] 147 [himmeLweit.]
148 [See xxxvi br. n. 1 34.] 1 49[This is exactly what is involved in Kant's Copernican revolution. See B xvi-xvii.]
GENERAL COMMENTS
97
cal. 1 50 If (as is commonly done) we fail to go beyond it and do not (as we ought to do) regard that empirical intuition in tum as mere appearance, in which nothing whatever belonging to some thing in itself is to be found, then our transcendental distinction is lost. We then believe after all that we cognize things in themselves, even though in the world of sense, 151 how-
B 63
ever deeply we explore its objects, we deal with nothing whatever but appearances. Thus it is true, e.g., that when during a rain accompanied by sunshine we see a rainbow, we will call it a mere appearance, while calling the rain the thing in itself. And this is indeed correct, provided that we here take the concept of a thing in itself as meaning only something physi-
cal. We then mean by it something that in general 152 experience, and in all
its different positions in relation to the senses, is yet determined thus, and not otherwise, in intuition. But suppose that we take this empirical something as such, and that-without being concerned about its being the same l 53 for the sense of every human being-we ask whether it presents
A 46
also an object in itself (not whether it presents the rain drops, for these, as appearances, will already be empirical objects). In that case our question about the presentation's relation to the object is transcendental, and the answer is: Not only are these drops mere appearances; rather, even their round shape, and indeed even the space in which they fall, are nothing in themselves. They are, rather, mere modifications, or foundations, of our sensible intuition. The transcendental object, however, remains unknown 1 54 to us. Our second important concern in this transcendental aesthetic is that it should not merely gain some favor as a plausible hypothesis, but should be as certain and indubitable as can possibly l55 be demanded of a theory that is to serve as an organon. In order to make this certainty fully evident, let us select some case that can render the validity of this organon obviOUS l56 and can serve to clarify further what has been set forth in § 3.
ISO[ef. A 291B 45, also B 6 9 inc!. hr. n. 175.] l S I [Parentheses around 'in the world of sense' removed.] l S2[aligemein.] 1 53[Einstimmung.] IS4[unbekannt.] 1 3s Uemals.] IS6 [Remainder of sentence added in B.]
B 64
98
PART I
TRANSCENDENTAL AESTHETIC
Suppose, then, that space and time are in themselves objective, and are conditions of the possibility of things in themselves. We then find, in the first place, that we encounter a large number of synthetic a priori propo
A 47
B 65
A 48
sitions about both space and time-above all about space, which we shall therefore investigate here as our prime example. The propositions of geometry are cognized synthetically a priori and with apodeictic certainty. And so I ask: From where do you obtain such propositions, and on what does the understanding rely in order to arrive at such absolutely necessary and universally valid truths? There is no other way [to arrive at truths] than through concepts or through intuition. But these concepts and intuitions are both given either a priori or a posteriori. The a posteriori ones, i.e., em pirical concepts as well as the empirical intuition on which they are based, can yield only such synthetic propositions as are likewise merely empiri cal, i.e., propositions of experience. As such, these propositions can never contain necessity and absolute universality; yet these are what character ize all geometric propositions. The first and sole means of arriving at such cognitions is a priori, through mere concepts or through intuitions. From mere concepts, however, we clearly can obtain no synthetic cognition at all, but only analytic cognition. 157 Just take the proposition that two straight lines cannot enclose any space and hence do not pennit [construction of] any figure, and try to derive it from the concept of straight lines and of the number two. Or take the proposition that three straight lines pennit [con struction of] a figure, and try similarly to derive it from these mere con cepts. All your endeavor is futile, and you find yourselves compelled to have recourse to intuition, as indeed geometry always does. Hence you give yourselves an object in intuition. But of which kind is this intuition? Is it a pure a priori intuition or an empirical one? If it were an empirical intu ition, then it could never tum into a universally valid proposition, let alone an apodeictic one; for experience can never supply anything like that. Hence you must give your object to yourselves a priori in intuition, and base your synthetic proposition on this object. Now suppose that there did not lie within you a power I 58 to intuit a priori; that this subjective condition were not, as regards its fonn, at the same time the universal a priori condition under which alone the object of this (outer) intuition is itself possible; and that the object (the triangle) were something in itself, even apart from any relation to yourselves as subject. If that were so, how could you say that 1 5 7 [Cf. the
Prolegomena, Ak. IV, 268-74.] 158[Verm6gen.]
GENERAL COMMENTS
99
what necessarily lies in [or belongs to] your subjective conditions for con structing a triangle must also belong necessarily to the triangle itself? 1 59 For, after all, you could not add to your concepts (of three lines) anything new (the figure) that would therefore have to be met with necessarily in the object, since this object would be given prior to your cognition rather than through it. Hence you could not synthetically a priori establish anything whatsoever about external objects if space (and similarly time) were not a mere form of your intuition, an intuition that a priori contains conditions 1 60 under which alone things can be external objects for you-these objects being nothing in themselves, apart from these sUbjective conditions. Therefore the following is not merely possible-or probable, for that matter-but indubitably certain: Space and time, as the necessary conditions of all (outer and inner) experience, are merely subjective conditions 1 of all our intuition. Hence in relation to these conditions 16 all objects are mere appearances, and are not given to us in this way on their own. And that is why much can be said a priori about these objects as regards their form, but not the least can ever be said about the thing in itself that may underlie these appearances. 1 62 II. This theory, according to which both outer and inner sense are ideal and hence all objects of the senses are mere appearances, can be con firmed superbly by the following observation. Whatever in our cognition belongs to intuition (excluding, therefore, what are not cognitions at all, i.e., both the feeling of pleasure and displeasure and the will) contains nothing but mere relations: of places in an intuition (extension), of change of places (motion), and of laws according to which this change is determined (motive forces). But what is present in that place, or what effect-besides the change of place-it produces in the things 1 63 themselves, is not given to us by [what belongs to intuition]. Now through mere relations we do not, of course, cognize a thing in itself. Hence our judgment must surely be this: since through outer sense we are given nothing but mere relational presentations, outer sense can, by the same token, contain in its presentation only the relation of an object to the subject, but not the intrinsic character belonging to the object in itself. The same applies to inner intuition. 1 59 [an
sich selbst.]
1 60[Or 'which contains a pnori conditions. '] 16 1 [Or, possibly, 'to our intuition.'] 162 [Remainder of the Transcendental Aesthetic added in B ] 163 [Kant uses Ding (in the plural) here. Sache just below.]
B 66
A 49
B 67
1 00
PART I
TRANSCENDENTAL AESTHETIC
For not only does the proper material in it, with which we occupy our mind, consist in presentations of outer senses; but the time in which we place l 64 these presentations, and which itself precedes the consciousness of them in
B 68
B 69
experience and underlies, as formal condition, the way in which we place them within the mind, already contains relations: of succession, of simul taneity, and of what is simultaneous with succession (the permanent). Now, presentation that can precede all acts of thinking anything is intuition; and if this intuition contains nothing but relations then it is the form of intu ition. But this form does not present anything except insofar as something is being placed within the mind. Therefore this form can be nothing but the way in which the mind is affected by its own activity-viz., this plac ing of its presentation-and hence affected by itself; i.e., it is an inner sense insofar as that sense's form is concerned. Whatever is presented through a sense is, to that extent, always appearance. Hence either we must not grant that there is an inner sense at all; or we must grant that the subject who is the object of this sense can be presented through it only as appearance, and not as he would judge himself if his intuition were self-activity l 65 only, i.e., if it were intellectual intuition. 1 66 What underlies this whole difficulty is this: how can a subject inwardly intuit himself? But this difficulty is shared by every theory. The consciousness of oneself (apperception) is the simple presentation of the 1; 1 67 and if through this consciousness by itself all the manifold in the subject were given self-actively, then the inner in tuition would be intellectual. But in man this consciousness requires also inner perception of the manifold given in the subject beforehand; and the way in which this manifold is given in the mind-viz., without spontaneity-must, for the sake of marking this distinction, be called sen sibility. If the power 168 to become conscious of oneself is to locate (appre hend) what lies in the mind, then it must affect the mind; and only in that way can it produce an intuition of itself. But the form of this intuition lies at the basis beforehand in the mind; and this form determines, in the pre sentation of time, the way in which the manifold is [placed] together in the
1 64[setzen.] 1 65[SelbJltiitigkeit, also translatable as 'spontaneity' (which I prefer to use for Spontaneitiit-d.
just below).]
1 66 [See B 72.] 1 67[Emphasis added, to improve the readability of this single-letter word (as used in this way). This improvement is usually more obvious than it is here.] 1 6"[Or 'ability' : Vermogen ]
GENERAL COMMENTS
101
mind. And thus this power does not intuit itself as it would if it presented itself directly and self-actively; rather, it intuits itself according to the way in which it is affected from within, and hence intuits itself as it appears to itself, not as it is. 169 III. I am saying, then, that the intuition of external objects and the self intuition of the mind both present these objects and the mind, in space and in time, as they affect our senses, i.e., as they appear. But I do not mean by this that these objects 170 are a mere illusion. 1 7 1 For when we deal with 1 appearance, the objects, and indeed even the properties 72 that we ascribe to them, are always regarded as something actually given-except that in 1 sofar as the object's character 73 depends only on the subject's way of in tuiting this given object in its relation to him, we do also distinguish this 174 object as appearance from the same object as object in itself. 175 Thus 1 76 when I posit both bodies and my soul as being in accordance with the quality of space and time, as condition of their existence, I do indeed as sert that this quality lies in my way of intuiting and not in those objects in themselves. But in asserting this I am not saying that the bodies merely 177 to be outside me, or that my soul only seems to be given in my seem self-consciousness. It would be my own fault if I turned into mere illusion what I ought to class with appearance Ys This is not, however, what hap-
B 70
1 69[These topics will be fully explored in the Paralogisms of Pure Reason, A 341-405/B 399-432. See also B 1 5 2-59.]
170[Gegenstiinde here, Objelcte just above and just below.] 171[Schein.] 172[Beschaifenheiten.] 173[Beschaifenheit.] 174 [Erscheinung.] 175[In Kant's usual (transcendental) sense of this expression, rather than in its empirical sense (found, e.g., at A 291B 45 and A 451B 62).]
1 76[setzen.] 1 77[scheinen.] 17B-r he predicates of the appearance can be ascribed to the object itself" in relation
to our sense: e.g., to the rose, the red color or the scent. But what is mere illusion can never be ascribed as predicate to an object, precisely because illusion ascribes to the object taken by itself' what belongs to it only in relation to the senses or in
general to the subject-an example being the two handles initially ascribed to Saturn. If something is not to be met with at all in the object in itself, but is always to be met with in the object's relation to the subject and is inseparable from the pre-
B 70
102
B 71
PART I
TRANSCENDENTAL AESTHETIC
pens if we follow our principle that all our sensible intuitions are ideal. On the contrary: it is when we attribute objective reality to those forms of pre sentation that we cannot prevent everything from being thereby trans formed into mere illusion. For suppose that we regard space and time as properties that, as far as their very possibility is concerned, must be found in things 179 in themselves. And now reflect on the absurdities in which we then become entangled, inasmuch as [we then have] two infinite things that must not be substances nor anything actually inhering in substances, but that yet must be something existent-indeed, must be the necessary con dition for the existence of all things-and must moreover remain even if all existing things are annulled. If we thus reflect on this supposition, then we can hardly blame the good Berkeley for downgrading bodies to mere illusion. Indeed, even our own existence, which would in this way be made dependent on the self-subsistent reality of a nonentity such as time would be, would be transformed along with this time into nothing but illusion-an absurdity of which no one thus far has made himself guilty. IV. In natural theology we think an object [viz., God] that not only can not possibly be an object of intuition for us, but that cannot in any way be an object of sensible intuition even to itself. [When we think of God in this way,] we take great care to remove the conditions of time and space from all his intuition. (All his cognition must be intuition rather than thought, which always manifests limits.) But what right do we have to do this if we have beforehand turned 1 80 space and time into forms of things in themselves-such forms, moreover, as are a priori conditions of the exist ence of things and hence would remain even if we had annulled the things sentation of the object,C then it is appearance. And thus the predicates of space and time are rightly ascribed to objects of the senses, as such; and in this there is no
illusion. Illusion first arises if, by contrast, I ascribe the redness to the rose in it self, or the handles to Saturn, or extension to all external objects in themselves, d without taking account of-and limiting my judgment to--a determinate relation of these objects to the subject.
·[seLbst.] b[fiir sich.]
C[Keeping the original ersteren, which Erdmann changes to Letzteren, so that we would have to read 'presentation of the subject. '] d [an sich. The expression i s actually used adverbially here (and probably also just above), as modifying 'ascribe.' Although 'in themselves' (etc ) does not lend itself to adverbial use, switching to a different term here (e.g., 'intrinsically') would impair clarity.]
1 79[Sachen here, Dinge just below.] 1 80[machen.]
GENERAL COMMENTS
1 03
themselves? For as conditions of all existence in general, they would have to be conditions also of the existence of God. If we are not to make l 8 1 space and time objective forms of all things, then we are left with only one altemative: we must make them subjective forms of our kind of intuition, inner and outer. Our kind of intuition is called sensible l 82 because it is not
original. 183 I.e., it is not such that through this intuition itself the existence of its object is given (the latter being a kind of intuition that, as far as we
can see, can belong only to the original 184 being). Rather, our kind of in-
tuition is dependent on the existence of the object, and hence is possible only by the object's affecting the subject's capacity to present. There is, moreover, no need for us to limit this kind of intuition-intuition in space and time-to the sensibility of man. It may be (though we cannot decide this) that any finite thinking being must necessarily agree with man in this regard. Yet even if this kind of intuition were thus universally valid, it would not therefore cease to be sensibility. It would remain sensibility precisely because it is derivative
(intuitus originarius),
(intuitus derivativus) rather than original
and hence is not intellectual intuition. For the rea
son just set forth, intellectual intuition seems to belong solely to the origi nal being, and never to a being that is dependent as regards both its exist ence and its intuition (an intuition that determines that being's existence by reference to given objects I 85). This last remark, however, must be con sidered as included in our aesthetic theory only as an illustration, not as a basis of proof.
1 81[machen.] 1 82 [Rather than intellectual.]
183 [urspriinglich. On intellectual (original) intuition (and the intuitive understanding that would have it), see B 1 38-39, 145, A 166!B 207 inc!. br. n. 67, A 249-52, B 307-9, A 2561B 3 1 1-12, and A 279-80 B 335-36, and cf. B xl inc!. br. n. 144g, B 68, 1 35, 149. See also the Critique of Judgment, Ak. 402-8, and cf. 418. For the way in which the concept of an intellectual intuition (and of an intuitive understanding) unites Kant's three Critiques in one system, see the Translator's Introduction to my translation of that work (above, B xvii br. n. 73), Ixxxvi-cii.] =
184 [Ur_.] 1 85 [Cf. B 275-79.]
B 72
1 04
B 73
PART I
TRANSCENDENTAL AESTHETIC
C ONCLUDING THE TRANSCENDENTAL AESTHETIC Thus in our pure a priori intuitions, space and time, we now have one of the components required for solving the general problem of transcendental philosophy: How are synthetic propositions possible a priori? 186 When in an a priori judgment about space and time we want to go beyond the given concept, we encounter187 what cannot be discovered a priori in the given concept, but can indeed be so discovered in the intuition corresponding to that concept and can be combined with it synthetically. Because of this, 1 88 however, such judgments can never reach beyond objects 1 89 of the senses, and can hold only for objects of possible experience.
186 [Cf. B 19 inc!. br. ns. 234 and 235.] l R7 [In the a priori intuition.] 1 88 [The judgment's dependence on intuition and the merely synthetic connection to the concept.]
1 89[ Gegenstiinde here, Objekte just below.]
TRANSCENDENTAL DOCTRINE OF ELEMENTS PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC! Introduction Idea of a Transcendental Logic I
ON LOGIC As S UCH Our cognition2 arises from two basic sources of the mind. The first is [our ability] to receive3 presentations4 (and is our receptivity5 for impressions); the second is our ability6 to cognize an object7 through these presentations ' [See Norman Kemp Smith,
op. cit. at A vii hr. n. 5, 167-542.] 2[Erkenntnis. For the distinction hetween cognition and knowledge (Wissen), see A vii hr. n. 6.] 3 [empfangen.] 4[Vorstellungen. My reason for translating Vorstellung as 'presentation' rather than as 'rep resentation' is given at B xvii hr. n. 73.] '[RezeptiviUit.] 6[Or 'power ' : Vermogen. See A 19/B 33 inel. hr. n 10 and A xii hr. n. 16.] 7 [Gegenstand, in this case See A vii hr. n 7 ] 1 05
{ A SO
B 74
1 06
B 75 A 51
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
(and is the spontaneity of concepts 8). Through receptivity an object is given to us; through spontaneity an object is thought in relation to that [given] presentation (which [otherwise] 9 is a mere determination of the mind). In tuition and concepts, therefore, constitute the elements of all our cogni tion. Hence neither concepts without an intuition corresponding to them in some way or other, 1 O nor intuition without concepts can yield cognition. Both intuition and concepts are either pure or empirical. They are empiri cal if they contain sensation (sensation presupposes the actual presence of the object); they are pure if no sensation is mixed in with the presenta tion Y Sensation 12 may be called the matter1 3 of sensible ' 4 cognition. Hence pure intuition contains only the form under which something is intuited, and a pure concept contains solely the form of the thought 'S of an object as such. '6 Only pure intuitions or concepts are possible a priori; empirical ones are possible only a posteriori. Let us give the name sensibility to our mind's receptivity, 17 [i.e., to its ability] to receive ' 8 presentations insofar as it is affected in some manner. Understanding, on the other hand, is our ability to produce presentations ourselves, i.e., our spontaneity of cognition. 19 Our intuition, by our very nature, can never be other than sensible intuition;20 i.e., it contains only the way in which we are affected by objects. Understanding, on the other 8 [l.e., the self-activity (cf. B 68 inc!. br. n. 165) of using concepts in thought and cognition and of expanding them to frame new ones.] 9 [l.e., apart from that thought, whereby this determination enters into our cognition of the object.]
lO[auf einige Art.] II
[I e., the intuition or concept.]
1 2 [Empjindung.] 13 [Cf. the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 1 89, 203, 294, 325-26. See also the Ak. IV, 284, 324, and cf. 306, 307, 309.]
Prolegomena,
14[sinnlich.] I S[Literally, 'of the thinking':
1 6[iiberhaupt; see B 17[Rezeptivitiit.] 18[empfangen.]
des Denkens.]
xxvii br. n. 1 06.]
19[For the contrast between understanding and sensibility, see the 140-46, and cf. 196-99, 220.]
Anthropology, Ak.
2°[Only an intuitive understanding (ours is discur�ive, i.e., conceptual) can have intuition. See B 72 incl br. n. 1 83.]
VII.
intellectual
INTRODUCTION
IDEA OF A TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
1 07
hand, is our ability to think the object of sensible intuition. Neither of these properties is to be preferred to the other. Without sensibility no object would be given to us; and without understanding no object would be thought. Thoughts without content are empty; intuitions without concepts are blind.
Hence it is just as necessary that we make our concepts sensible2 1 (i.e., that we add the object to them in intuition) as it is necessary that we make our intuitions understandable (i.e., that we bring them under concepts).
Moreover, this capacity and this ability22 cannot exchange their functions. The understanding cannot intuit anything, 23 and the senses cannot think anything. Only from their union can cognition arise. This fact, however, must not lead us to confuse their respective contributions;24 it provides us, rather, with a strong reason25 for carefully separating and distinguishing sensibility and understanding from each other. Hence we distinguish the science of the rules of sensibility as such, i.e., aesthetic, from the science of the rules of the understanding as such, i.e., logic.
Now logic, in tum, can be done from two points of view,26 either as logic of the understanding's general 27 use or as logic of its special28 use. The logic of the understanding's general use contains the absolutely nec essary rules of thought without which the understanding cannot be used at al1. 29 Hence it deals with the understanding without regard to the differ ence among the objects to which the understanding may be directed. This logic may be called elementary logic. The logic of the understanding's spe cial use, which may be called the organon of this or that science, contains the rules for thinking correctly about a certain kind of objects. The schools usually make this logic a preface to the sciences, using it as a propaedeu-
2 1 [Cf. Versinnlichung in the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 35 1, and in the First Introduction to that work, Ak. XX, 223.]
22 [l.e., sensibility and understanding. More literally, Kant says 'these two abilities or capaci ties.' The adopted rendering construes capacity as passive (as sensibility is) and ability (or power) as either active (like understanding) or passive. See also A xii br. n. 16.] 23 [See br. n. 20, just above.] 24 [To cognition.]
2S [man hat groj3e Ursache.] 26[See H. J Paton, op. cit. at B 1 br. n. 152, vol. 27 [allgemein, which also means 'universal.'] 28 [besonder, which also means 'particular.' ] 29 [gar kein Gebrauch . . . stattfindet.]
I . 1 88-235.]
B 76 A 52
108
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
tic, even though in tenns of the progression30 of human reason it comes last: reason does not arrive at this logic until long after the science is done and needs only finishing touches that will correct and perfect it. For if we B 77
A 53
B 78
A 54
are to state the rule as to how a [particular] science can be brought about, then the objects of that science must already be familiar to us to a fairly high degree. Now general logic is either pure or applied logic. In general logic we abstract from all empirical conditions under which we exercise our under standing. We abstract, e.g., from the influence of the senses, from the play of imagination, from the laws of memory, from the force of habit, from inclination, etc.; hence we abstract also from the sources of prejudices, 3 1 and indeed from all causes generally that give rise, or may be alleged to give rise, to such and such32 cognitions. For these empirical conditions con cern the understanding only as applied under certain33 circumstances, and becoming acquainted with these circumstances requires experience. Hence a logic that is general but also pure deals with nothing but a priori prin ciples. Such a logic is a canon of understanding and of reason, but only as regards what is fonnal in our use of them-i.e., we disregard what the con tent may be (whether it is empirical or transcendental). A general logic is called applied, on the other hand, if it is concerned with the rules of the understanding as used under the subjective empirical conditions taught34 us by psychology. Hence such a logic has empirical principles, although it is general insofar as it deals with our use of the understanding without dis tinguishing the understanding's objects. That is also the reason why ap plied general logic is neither a canon of the understanding as such nor an organon of special sciences, but solely a cathartic for the common under standing. 35 In general logic, therefore, the part that is to constitute the pure doctrine36 of reason must be separated entirely from the part that is to constitute applied (though still general) logic. Only the first of these parts 3 ? is,
30[Gang.] 31[On prejudice, see the Logic, Ak. IX, 75-8 1 , 32[gewisse.] 33[gewissen.] 34[lehren.] 3' [I .e common sen�e.] 36[_lehre.] .,
3 7 [Pure general logic.]
and the
Critique of Judgment, Ak. V. 294. 1
INTRODUCTION
IDEA OF A TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
1 09
properly speaking, a science, although it is brief and dry and thus is such as the exposition of a doctrine of the understanding's elements is required to be in order to comply with school standards. In such pure general logic, therefore, the logicians must always have in mind two rules: 1 . As general logic, it abstracts from all content of the cognition of un derstanding and from the difference among the objects of that cognition, and deals with nothing but the mere form of thought. 2. As pure logic, it has no empirical principles. Hence it does not (as people have sometimes come to be persuaded) take anything from psy chology; and therefore psychology has no influence whatever on the canon of the understanding. Pure general logic is demonstrated doctrine, and ev erything in it must be certain completely a priori. What I call applied logic is a presentation of the understanding and of the rules governing its necessary use in concreto, viz., its use under the contingent conditions attaching to the subject, conditions that can impede or
B 79
promote this use and that are, one and all, given only empirically. (This
definition of applied logic is contrary to the ordinary meaning of the expression, according to which applied logic should contain certain exercises for which pure logic gives the rule). On my definition, applied logic deals with attention; attention's being impeded and the consequences thereof; the origin of error; the states of doubt, of having scruples, of conviction, etc. 38 Pure general logic relates to applied general logic as pure morality relates to the doctrine proper of virtue. 39 Pure morality40 contains merely the moral4 1 laws of a free will as such; the doctrine of virtue examines these laws as impeded by the feelings, inclinations, and passions to which human beings are more or less subject.42 The doctrine of virtue can never serve as true and demonstrated science; for, just like applied logic, it requires empirical and psychological principles. 38[On attention, see the Anthropology, Ak. VII, 206-8, cf. 212; cf. also the First Introduction to the Critique of Judgment, Ak. XX, the n. on 226-27. On the origin of error, see the Logic, Ak. IX, 53-57. On doubt and scruples, see ibid., 83-84. On conviction (and persuasion), see ibid., 73, and the Critique Of Judgment, 461-63, cf. 477.] 39 [Kant's Doctrine of Virtue (Ak. VI, 375-493) is Part II of his Metaphysics of Morals, Ak. VI, 203-493. For its relation to pure morality. see ibid, 205, 211-28, 374-413.]
4O[Moral.]
41 [sittlich.]
42 [See the Doctrine of Virtue, Ak. VI,
375-493, and cf. the Anthropology, Ak VII, 251-82.]
A 55
1 10
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
II
ON TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC General logic, as we have shown, abstracts from all content of cognition, i.e., from all reference of cognition to its object.43 It examines only the logi cal form in the relation that cognitions have to one another, i.e., only the form of thought as such. But (as the Transcendental Aesthetic establishes) there are both pure and empirical intuitions; and hence we might well find B 80
it appropriate to distinguish also between pure and empirical thought of ob jects. In that case there would be a logic44 in which we would not abstract from all content of cognition. For a logic containing merely the rules gov erning the pure thought of an object would only45 exclude all those cog nitions that have empirical content. Such a logic, moreover, would also deal
A 56
with the origin of our cognitions of objects insofar as that origin cannot be attributed to the objects, whereas general logic has nothing to do with the origin of cognition. Rather, general logic examines46 presentations, whether these have their basic origin47 a priori in ourselves, or are given only em
pirically; and it examines these presentations merely in terms of the laws according to which the understanding, when it thinks, uses them in their relation to one another. Hence general logic deals only with that form of the understanding which can be imparted to the presentations, whatever their origin may be irrespective of that form. And here I shall make a comment; it extends its influence to all subse quent contemplations, and hence must be remembered carefully. We must not call just any a priori cognition transcendental, but must call transcen dental (i.e., concerning48 the a priori possibility or the a priori use of cog nition)49 only that a priori cognition whereby we cognize that-and how--<:ertain presentations (intuitions or concepts) are applied, or are pos-
43[Objekl here, Gegensland (in the plural) just below.] 44[Viz., transcendental logic.]
45[bloft, as added by Adickes.] 46[belrachlen.] 47[uran!iinglich.] 48[1 follow Adickes in adding belreffend and in changing, accordingly, der Gebrauch to den Gebrauch ] 49[Cf. B 25.]
INTRODUCTION
IDEA OF A TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
111
sible, simply50 a priori. Hence neither space nor any a priori geometric determination of it i s a transcendental presentation. Rather, we may call tran
B 81
scendental only the cognition that these presentations are not at all of empirical origin, and the possibility whereby5 1 they can nonetheless refer a priori to objects of experience. Similarly, the use of space regarding ob-
jects in general5 2 would also be transcendental. But if the use of space is limited to objects of the senses only, then it is called empirical. The dis-
A 57
tinction between the transcendental and the empirical belongs, therefore, only to the critique of cognitions, and does not concern the reference of these cognitions to their object. We shall expect, then, that there may perhaps be concepts referring a priori to objects. Not being pure or sensible intuitions, but being merely acts of pure thought, they would be concepts, but such concepts as origi nate neither empirically nor aesthetically. 5 3 In this expectation, then, we frame in advance the idea of a science of pure understanding and of ratio nal cognition,54 whereby we think objects completely a priori. Such a sci ence would determine the origin, the range, and the objective validity of such rational cognitions. It would have to be called
transcendental logic.
For it deals merely with the laws of understanding and of reason; yet it does so only insofar as this logic is referred a priori to objects-unlike general logic, which is referred indiscriminately to empirical as well as pure rational cognitions.
III
ON THE DIVISION OF GENERAL LOGIC INTO ANALYTIC AND DIALECTIC What is truth ? 55
is the ancient and famous question with which people meant to drive logicians into a comer, trying to get them to the point where
5°[ledig/ich.] 5 1 [wie.] 5 2[Objects of experience (which includes sensation) and objects of pure geometry.] "[I.e., concepts originating neither from empirical intuition nor from intuition generally.] 54 [Or 'cognition of reason':
Vernunfterkenntnis.]
"[In A, this question is doubly emphasized (by bold print).]
B 82
1 12
A 58
B 83
A 59
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
either they must let themselves be caught in a pitiful circle,56 or they must confess their ignorance and hence admit the futility of their whole art. In asking logicians this question, these people took for granted, and they pre supposed, the explication of the name truth,57 viz., that truth is the agree ment of cognition with its object. They demanded to know, instead,5 8 what is the universal and safe criterion of the truth of any cognition. [They failed to see, however, the absurdity of their own question.] To know what question one should, reasonably, ask is already a great and necessary proof of one's sagacity and insight. For if the question is in itself absurd and demands answers that are unnecessary, then it not only embarrasses the person raising it, but sometimes has the further disadvan tage of misleading the incautious listener: it may prompt him to give absurd answers and to provide us with the ridiculous spectacle where (as the ancients said) one person milks the ram59 while the other holds a sieve un derneath. Thus if truth consists in the agreement of a cognition with its object, then this object must here60 be distinguished from others. For if a cogni tion does not agree with the object to which it is referred then it is false, even if it contains something that might well hold for other objects. Now a universal criterion of truth would be one that is valid for all cognitions, without distinction of their objects. But while in such a universal criterion of truth we thus abstract from all content of cognition (i.e., from its reference to its object), yet truth concerns this very content. Clearly, there fore, asking questions about a mark for the truth of this content of cogni tions is quite impossible and absurd; and hence one cannot possibly give an indicator6 1 of truth that is sufficient and yet universal at the same time. Now we have already earlier called the content of a cognition its matter. 62 Hence we shall have to say that no universal indicator can be demanded
56[Diallele. For these first four paragraphs of subsection III, cf. the Logic, Introduction, VII, Ak. IX, 49-57. For the circle referred to here, see ibid., 50.] 57 [I.e., in effect, the definition. Emphasis added.]
58[aber.] 59[Reference works characterize this saying as a Greco-Roman proverb quoted (e.g.) in Sam uel Hieron, Works (1616), i, 586; and in John Hales, Several Tracts ( 1 656), 40. Milking of rams is mentioned also in Vergil's Eclogues, iii, 9 1 .]
dadun:h.] Kennzeichen.]
6O[Literally 'thereby': 61 [Or 'criterion' :
62[See A 50/B 74.]
INTRODUCTION
IDEA OF A TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
113
for the truth of cognition in terms of its matter, because such an indicator would be intrinsically contradictory. As regards cognition in terms of its mere form (setting aside all con tent), on the other hand, and thus as regards a logic insofar as it puts forth the universal and necessary rules of the understanding, it is equally clear that such a logic must in these very rules set down criteria of truth. For whatever contradicts these rules is false, because the understanding is then63
B 84
in conflict with its own universal rules of thought, and hence with itself. These criteria, however, concern only the form of truth, i.e., the truth of thought as such, and are to that extent quite correct. But they are not suf ficient. For even if a cognition accorded completely with logical form, i.e., even if it did not contradict itself, it could still contradict its object. There fore the merely logical criterion of truth, viz., a cognition's agreement with the universal64 and formal laws of understanding and reason, is indeed the conditio sine qua non, 65 and hence the negative condition, of all truth. But logic cannot go any farther than this; it has no touchstone by which it can discover an error that concerns content rather than form.66 Now general67 logic analyzes68 the whole formal business of under standing and reason into its elements, and exhibits these elements as prin ciples governing all logical judging69 of our cognition. Hence this part of
63[dabei.] 64[allgemein.] 65[lndispensable (or necessary) condition.] 66 [For the remainder of subsection III, cf. the 67 [allgemein.] 68 [Literally, 'resolves' :
Logic, Introduction, II, Ak. IX,
16-2 1 . ]
auflosen.]
69[Beurteilung. In the First Introduction to the Critique of Judgment (see Ak. XX, 2 1 1), Kant makes a distinction between Beurteilung and Urteil (judgment). He there uses the first term to stand for reflective judgment, i.e., judgment that tries to find a universal for the particular in an intuition (cf. below, A 260-92/B 316-49) -as distinguished from determinative judg ment, in which an already available universal is used to determine an object. But Kant does not repeat the distinction, not even in the Critique of Judgment itself; nor does he consistently adhere to it. The reason for this seems to be that in German grammar adding be- to the in transitive urteilen simply turns it into its transitive analogue, beurteilen. (Cf., say, 'moan' and 'bemoan' in English.) Hence the English verb 'to judge,' which is both transitive and intran sitive, properly renders both German verbs. It is therefore not only unnecessary, but quite misleading, to render urteilen by 'to judge' but beurteilen by some other verb (similarly for the corresponding nouns), especially by such verbs as 'to estimate,' 'to assess,' 'to appraise,' 'to criticize,' all of which already imply evaluation, whereas beurteilen does not itself (Le., apart from special contexts) carry such an implication.]
A 60
1 14
B 85
A 61
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
logic may be called an analytic. 7o This analytic is at least the negative touchstone of truth, precisely because all cognition must first of all be tested and assessed, in terms of its form, by these rules; 7 l this must be done be fore we examine these rules themselves in terms of their content in order to establish whether they contain positive truth as regards their object. On the other hand, the mere form of cognition, however much it may agree with logical laws, is far from being sufficient to establish that a cognition is true objectively (materially). Hence with mere logic no one can venture to make judgments about objects and assert anything about them. Rather, we must first go outside logic to obtain well-based information about ob jects, in order then to attempt merely employing this information and con necting it in a coherent whole in accordance with logical laws, or-better yet-in order only to test the information by these laws. Yet there is some thing very tempting about possessing so plausible an art, whereby we give to all our cognitions the form of our understanding---even though we may still be very empty-handed and poor as regards the cognition's content. So great is this temptation that this general logic, which is merely a canon for judging, has been used-like an organon, as it were-for the actual pro duction of at least deceptive72 objective assertions, and thus has in fact been misused. Now general logic, when used as supposed organon, is called dia
lectic. 73
B 86
Although the ancients used this name dialectic, as standing for a sci ence or art, in quite different senses, still from their actual use of the name we can safely glean that dialectic was for them nothing other than the logic of illusion. I.e., it was the sophistical art of giving an air of truth to one's ignorance, and indeed even to one's deliberate deceptions; this was done by74 imitating the method of thoroughness prescribed by logic as such, and by employing the topic75 of logic 76 to paint over any empty pretense. Now 70 [Kant probably expected his readers to know that auflosen (cf. br. n. 68, just above) has the same root meaning as 'analyze.'] 7 1 [I.e the principles just mentioned.] .•
72 [Blendwerk von. Reading, with Kehrbach, des Blendwerks for zum Blendwerk.] 73[See Walter Watson,
op. cit.
at B xvi br. n. 7 1 , 9 1 -95 ]
74[Reading, with Erdmann, dadurch daj1 for daj1.) 75 [Topik.] 76 [The topic (or topics) of (general) logic is the an, developed above all by Aristotle in his Topics, of discovering plausible (though not demonstrative) arguments to establish or refute a given position. This discovery is accomplished by means of general argument forms that,
INTRODUCTION
IDEA OF A TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
1 15
we may note (as a sure and useful waming)77 that general logic, when re
garded as an organon,
is always a logic of illusion, i.e., it is always dia lectical. For general logic teaches us nothing whatever about the content of cognition; it teaches us merely the formal conditions for the agreement
[of cognition] with the understanding, and these conditions are wholly in consequential otherwise, i.e., as regards the [cognition's] objects. Hence the impudent use of general logic as an instrument (organon), in order (at least allegedly)7s to broaden and expand one's knowledge,19 comes down to nothing but idle chatter, where anything one wishes is-with some sem-
blance of plausibilitySO-asserted or, for that matter, challenged at will.
A 62
Such instruction is in no way compatible with the dignity of philoso
phy. For this reason the name dialecticS l has been [redefined so that a dia lectic is] included with logic as a critique of dialectical illusion; s2 and this is how we want it to be understood here as well.
IV
ON THE DIVISION OF TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC INTO TRANSCENDENTAL ANALYTIC AND DIALECTIC In a transcendental logic we isolate the understanding Gust as in the tran scendental aesthetic above we isolated sensibility), and we select from our cognition merely that part of thought which has its origin solely in the un derstanding. The use of this pure cognition rests on the condition, how ever, that objects to which it can be applied are given to us in intuition. For without intuition, all our cognition lacks objects, and thus remains combeing prepared in advance, serve as the "places" (Greek 't01tOl [t6poi], Latin topica) or head ings to which the more specific arguments are referred. At A 268-6918 324-25 Kant char acterizes Aristotle's topic by reference to an underlying logical topic, which he contrasts in tum with a transcendental topic (cf. also A 8318 109, A 34418 402).] 77 [Parentheses added.] 78 [Parentheses added.]
79[Kenntnisse.] 80[Here 'semblance of plausibility' translates 8 1 [Emphasis added.]
8'[Schein.]
Schein.]
B 87
1 16
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
pletely empty. 83 That part, then, of transcendental logic which sets forth the elements of understanding's pure cognition, as well as the principles without which no object can be thought at all, is transcendental analytic. It is at the same time a logic of truth. For no cognition can contradict it withA 63
out at the same time losing all content, i.e., all reference to any object, and hence without losing all truth. On the other hand, there is great enticement and temptation to employ these pure cognitions of understanding and these principles84 by themselves, and to do so even beyond the bounds of expe-
B 88
rience, even though only experience can provide us with the matter (ob jects) to which those pure concepts of understanding can be applied. As a consequence, the understanding runs the risk that, by idly 85 engaging in subtle reasoning,86 it will put the merely formal principles of pure under standing to a material use, and will make judgments indiscriminately even87
about objects that are not given, or indeed about objects that perhaps can not be given in any way at all. Properly, then, transcendental analytic should be only a canon for judging the empirical use. 88 Hence we misuse tran scendental analytic if we accept it as the organon of a universal and un limited use, and if with pure understanding alone we venture to judge, as sert, and decide anything synthetically about objects as such. Hence89 the use of pure understanding would then be dialectical. Therefore the second part of transcendental logic must be a critique of this dialectical illusion, and is called transcendental dialectic. It is to be regarded not as an art of dogmatically creating90 such illusion (an art that is unfortunately quite prevalent in diverse cases of metaphysical jugglery), but as a critique of understanding and reason as regards their hyperphysical9 1 use. We need
83 [leer.] 84[Grundsiitze here, Prinzipien just above. Concerning my use of 'principle' to render both Prinzip and Grundsatz, see A vii br. n. 7. In the present passage, too, Kant is clearly using
the two terms interchangeably.]
85[leer.] 86[Vernutifteleien.] 87[doch.] 8"[Of the understanding; similarly for 89[1 e , as such a misuse.] 90[erregen.] 9 [ [ I.e., supranatural.]
'universal and unlimited use' just below.]
INTRODUCTION
IDEA OF A TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
1 17
such a critique in order to uncover the deceptive illusion92 in the baseless pretensions of understanding and reason;93 and we need it in order to down grade reason's94 claim that it discovers and expands [cognition]-which it supposedly accomplishes by merely using transcendental principles-[to the claim that it] merely judges pure understanding and guards it against so phistical deceptions.95
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC DIVISION I TRANSCENDENTAL ANALYTIC96 Transcendental analytic consists in the dissection97 of our entire a priori cognition into the elements of understanding's pure cognition. The follow ing points are what matters in this dissection: ( I ) The concepts must be pure rather than empirical. (2) They must belong not to intuition and sen sibility, but to thought and understanding. (3) They must be elementary con cepts, and must be distinguished carefully from concepts that are either de rivative or composed of such elementary concepts. (4) Our table of these concepts must be complete, and the concepts must occupy fully the whole realm of pure understanding. Now, this completeness [characteristic] of a science cannot be assumed reliably by gauging an aggregate of concepts that was brought about merely through trials. Hence this completeness is 92[More literally, 'the false semblance' :
93 [ihrer.] 94 [ihrer.]
den falschen Schein.]
7 1,
95 [See Walter Watson, op cit. at B xvi br. n. 7 1 .] 96 [See Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. See also Herman Jean de Vleeschauwer, La Deduction transcendantale dans I'oeuvre de Kant (Paris ' Librairie Ernest vol. reprinted New York: Garland Publishing, Inc., Leroux, (Vol. I of the original work used the spelling transcendentale .)]
1936, 1937;
97 [ist die Zergliederung.]
5, 1 74-424.
1976), 2, 1 5-202.
A 64
B 89
118
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
possible only by means of an
idea of the whole of understanding's a priori
cognition, and through the division, determined by that idea, of the con cepts amounting to that cognition; and hence this completeness is possible A 65
only through the coherence of these concepts
in a system. Pure understand
ing differentiates itself fully not only from everything empirical, but even from all sensibility [generally] .98 Therefore it is a unity that is self-subB 90
sistent, sufficient to itself, and that cannot be augmented by supplementing it with any extrinsic additions. Hence the sum of pure understanding's cog nition will constitute a system that can be encompassed and determined by99 an idea. The system's completeness and structure l OO can at the same time
serve as a touchstone of the correctness and genuineness of whatever com ponents of cognition fit into the system. This entire part of the Transcen dental Logic 101 consists, however, of two books; one of these contains the concepts, the other the principles, of pure understanding.
TRANSCENDENTAL ANALYTIC BOOK I ANALYTIC OF CONCEPTS By analytic of concepts 102 I do not mean the analysis of concepts, i.e., 103 the usual procedure in philosophical inquiries of dissecting already avail able concepts 1 04 in terms of their content and bringing them to distinct98 [I.e., even from a prion intuition.] 99 [ unte r. ]
loo [Anikulation.
Cf. A xix.]
101 [Viz., the Transcendental Analytic.] 102 [Emphasis added.]
1 03 [oder. ] 1 04[Begriffe. die sich darbieten.]
BOOK I
ANALYTIC OF CONCEPTS
119
ness; rather, I mean the hitherto rarely attempted dissection 105 of the power 106 of understanding itself. The purpose of this dissection is to explore the possibility of a priori concepts, by locating them solely in the un-
A 66
derstanding, as their birthplace, and by analyzing the understanding's pure use as SUCh. 1 07 For this exploration is the proper task of a transcendental philosophy; the rest 1 08 i s the logical treatment of concepts in philosophy
B 91
generally. 1 09 Hence we shall trace the pure 1 1 0 concepts all the way to their
first seeds and predispositions in the human understanding, where these concepts lie prepared until finally, on the occasion of experience, they are developed 11 1 and are exhibited by that same understanding in their purity, 1 l 2 freed from the empirical conditions attaching to them.
ANALYTIC OF CONCEPTS Chapter I On the Guide for the Discovery of All Pure Concepts of Understandingll 3 When we bring into play a cognitive power, then, depending on the vari ous ways in which we may be prompted to do so, different concepts come
I05[I.e., analysis.] 106[Vermogen. See A xii br. n. 16.] I07[iiberhaupt. My reason for rendering this term in this way is given at B xxvii br. n. 108[The analysis of concepts mentioned above.] 109[iiberhaupt.] "o[rein.] 1 " [Or 'unfolded' : entv.lickelt.] II 2[Lauterkeit.] 1 " [See R. P. Wolff, op. cit. at B 5 br. n. 1 59, 6 1 -77.]
106.]
1 20
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
to the fore that allow us to recognize 1 l 4 this power. These concepts can be collected 1 1 5 in an essay that will be more or less comprehensive, once the concepts have been observed fairly long or with significant 1 l 6 mental acu ity. 1 l 7 But by this-as it were, mechanical-procedure we can never reli ably determine at what point 1 l 8 that inquiry will be completed. Moreover,
A 67 B 92
if concepts are discovered only on given occasions, then they reveal themselves in no order or systematic unity ; instead they are ultimately only paired according to similarities, and arranged in series according to the quantity 119 of their content, from the simple concepts on to the more com posite. The way in which these series are brought about, despite being me thodical in a certain manner, is anything but systematic. Transcendental philosophy has the advantage, but also the obligation, of locating its concepts according to a principle. For these concepts arise, pure and unmixed, from the understanding, which is an absolute unity; and hence these concepts themselves must cohere with each other according to one concept or idea. Such coherence, however, provides us with a rule by which we can determine a priori the proper piace 1 20 for each pure concept of understanding, and the completeness of all of them taken together -whereas otherwise all of this would be subject to one's own discretion or to chance.
1 1 4 [kennbar machen.] 1 1 5 [And set forth.] 1 1 6 [mit groj3erer.] 1 1 7 [Scharfsinnigkeit. A has 'visual acuity' (Scharfsichtigkeit).] 1 1 8 [WO.] I I "[Literally,
'magnitude': Grdj3e.]
l2o [seine Stelle.]
Transcendental Guide for the Discovery of All Pure Concepts of Understanding 121
Section I On the Understanding's Logical Use As Such The understanding was explicated merely negatively above, viz., as a non
sensible cognitive power. 1 22 And since independently of sensibility we cannot partake of any intuition, it follows that the understanding is not a
A 68
power of intuition. Apart from intuition, however, there is only one way
B 93
of cognizing, viz., through concepts. Hence the cognition of any under-
standing, or at least of the human understanding, is a cognition through
concepts; it is not intuitive, but discursive. 123 All our intuitions, as sensible, rest on our being affected; 1 24 concepts, on the other hand/ 25 rest on functions. By junction 126 I mean the unity of the act of arranging various
presentations under one common presentation. Hence concepts 127 are based on the spontaneity of thought, whereas sensible intuitions are based on the receptivity for impressions. Now the only use that the understanding can 12 1 [See Graham Bird, Kant's Theory of Knowledge (London: Routledge & Kegan Paul, 1962), 91-109. See also H. W. Cassirer, op. cit. at A 211B 35 br. n. 22, 52-62. Also 1. N. Findlay, op. cit. at A 211B 35 br. n. 22, 1 1 5-35. Especially see H. 1. Paton, op. cit. at B 1 br. n. 152, vol. 1 , 245-309. And see T. D. Weldon, op. cit. at A 211B 35 br. n. 22, 128-47.] 1 22 [Perhaps the reference is to the following characterization at A 651B 89: 'Pure understand ing differentiates itself fully not only from everything empirical, but even from all sensibility [generally].' Kant seems to have forgotten the positive characterization of the understanding which he provided at A 50-521B 74-76.] 1 23 [See the references given at B 72 br. n. 1 83.] 1 24 [Affektionen.]
1 2' [Reading, with Adickes, aber for also ('hence').] 1 26 [Emphasis added.] 1 27 [Inasmuch as they involve such an act.]
121
1 22
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
make of these concepts is to judge by means of them. 128 But in such judg ing, a concept is never referred directly 1 29 to an object, because the only kind of presentation that deals with its object directly is intuition. Instead the concept is referred directly to some other presentation of the object (whether that presentation be an intuition or itself already a concept). Judg ment, therefore, is the indirect1 30 cognition of an object, ViZ., 1 3 1 the pre sentation of a presentation of it. In every judgment there is a concept that [comprises and thus] holds for many [presentations], and, among them,1 32
A 69 B 94
comprises also a given presentation that is referred directly to the object. E.g., in the judgment, All bodies are divisible, 1 33 the concept of the divis ible refers to various other concepts; but, among these, it is here referred specifically to the concept of body, and the concept of body is referred in turn to certain appearances 1 34 that we encounter. Hence these objects are presented indirectly through the concept of divisibility. Accordingly, all judgments are functions of unity among our presentations. For instead of cognizing the object by means of a direct presentation, we do so by means of a higher presentation comprising both this direct presentation and sev eral other presentations; and we thereby draw many possible cognitions to gether into one. Now since all acts of the understanding can be reduced to judgments, the understanding as such can be presented as a power ofjudg ment. 1 3S For, according to what we said above, the understanding is a power of thought. But thought is cognition through concepts; and concepts, as predicates of possible judgments, refer to some presentation of an as yet undetermined1 36 object. Thus the concept of body signifies something-e.g., 1 2B [See 1. W. Ellington, essay cited at B xliii br. n. 149, 143-46.] 1 29[unmittelbar. See B xxxix br. n. 144c.] 130 [Or 'mediate.'] 13 1 [LiteraUy, 'hence' : mithin.] 1 3 2[Reading, with Erdmann, diesen vie len for diesem Vielen ( 'this multitude').] 1 33[Adopting the fourth edition's substitution of teilbar for the earlier veriinderlich ( 'change able'), in agreement with the remainder of the sentence. Kant himself made the same correc tion in his working copy of edition A. See Benno Erdmann's Nachtriige zu Kants Kritik der reinen Vernunft (cited at A 1 9/B 33 br. n. 13), 23.] J34[Corrected by Kant to 'intuitions' in his working copy of edition A. See the Akademie edi tion's Preliminary Studies and Supplementary Entries (cited at A 1 9/B 33 br. n. 1 3), Ak. XXIII. 45 ] 135[See 1. W. Ellington, essay cited at B xliii br. n. 149, 145-46.] 1 36 [Or 'indeterminate.·J
SECTION I
UNDERSTANDING'S LOGICAL USE AS SUCH
1 23
metal-that can be cognized through that concept. Hence it is a concept only because there are contained under it other presentations by means of which it can refer to objects. Therefore the concept of body is the predi cate for a possible judgment, e.g., the judgment that every metal is a body. Therefore we can find all of the functions of the understanding if we can
exhibit completely the functions of unity in judgments. 137 This, however, can be accomplished quite readily, as the following section will show.
[Transcendental] Guide for the Discovery of All Pure Concepts of Understanding Section II § 9 1 38
ON THE UNDERSTANDING ' S LOGICAL FUNCTION IN JUDGMENTS If we abstract from all content of a judgment as such and pay attention only to the mere form of understanding in it, then we find that the function of thought in judgment can be brought under four headings, each containing under it three moments. They can conveniently be presented in the follow ing table.
1 37 [See J. W. Ellington, essay cited at B xliii hr. n. 149, 148- 173.] 138 [ , §
9' added in B.]
{ A 70 B 95
1 24
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
1
Quantity of Judgments Universal Particular Singular 2
3
Quality
Relation
Affirmative
Categorical
Negative
Hypothetical
Infinite
Disjunctive 4
Modality Problematic Assertoric Apodeictic B 96 A 71
Since this division departs in some respects, even though not in essen-
tial ones, from the customary technical apparatus 1 39 used by logicians, there will be some point in my offering the following safeguards against the wor risome possibility of its being misunderstood. 1 . Logicians are right in saying that, when judgments are used in syl logisms, 1 40 singular judgments can be treated like universal 1 4 1 ones. For precisely because singular judgments have no range at all, any predicate of them cannot be referred1 42 to some part of what is contained under the concept of the subject and be excluded from some other part of it. Hence the predicate of a singular j udgment holds for the subj ect concept without exception, just as if this concept were a generally valid1 43 one and the predi cate held for the whole denotation l44 within the concept's range. On the 1 39 [Technik.] 14o[ Vernunftschlusse, which Iiteraliy means 'inferences of reason. ' ] 1 4 1 [allgemein.] 1 42 [gezogen.]
143[l.e., in effect, universal: gemeingultig. ] 1 44 [Bedeutung. Kant normally uses this term to mean either 'signification' or 'meaning,' nei ther of which fits here. And 'denotation' must here be taken broadly, as including not only
SECTION II
§9
1 25
other hand, if145 a singular judgment is compared in terms of quantity 146 with a generally valid one merely as [two kinds of] cognition, 147 then the singular judgment 148 relates to the generally valid one as unity relates to infinity, and hence is in itself essentially distinct from it. Suppose, there fore, that I assess a singular 149 judgment (iudicium singulare) not merely in terms of its intrinsic validity but also as cognition as such, and assess it in terms of the quantity that it has by comparison with other cognitions. In that case the singular judgment is indeed distinct from generally valid judg ments (iudicia communia); and hence it then deserves a separate place in a complete table of the moments of thought as such (although it does indeed not deserve a separate place in the logic that is limited to the use of judgments merely in relation to 1 50 one another). 151 2. Similarly, in a transcendental logic we must distinguish from [not only negative ones but] also infinite judgments, even though in general logic they are rightly included with affirmative ones and do not constitute a separate member in the division of judgments. For general logic abstracts from all content of the predicate (even if the predicate is negative), and has regard only for whether the predicate is being ascribed to the subject or is being opposed to it. But transcendental logic considers the judgment also in terms of what value or content there is in this logical affirmation made by means of a merely negative predicate, and in terms of what gain for cognition as a whole is provided by this affirmation. If in speaking of the soul I had said, It is not mortal, then by this negative judgment I would at least have avoided an error. Now if I say instead, The soul is nonmortal, then I have indeed, in terms of logical form, actually affirmed something; for I have posited the soul in152 the unlimited range of nonmortal beings. Now what is mortal comprises one part of the whole
affirmative judgments
actual but also really (as distinguished from logically) possible objects. See. on all of this. A 1 391B 178 br. n. 66.] 1 4S [As is done in transcendental logic (as distinguished from general logic).] 146 [Literally. 'magnitude' : GroJ3e.] 1 47 [l.e., as two kinds of judgments (propositions), rather than as parts of a syllogism.] 148 [Reading, with Erdmann, es for sie.] 1 49 [ einzeln ] ISO [un/er_.]
1 5 1 [See 1. W. Ellington, essay cited at B xliii br. n. 149, 1 73-74.] I S2 ['into,' literally-unlike in the next occurrence of the verb 'posit' (se/zen) a few lines be low.]
B 97
A 72
1 26
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
range of possible beings, and what is nonmortal comprises the other. Hence my propositionl53 says nothing more than that the soul is one of the infi nite multitude of things that remain if I take away whatever is mortal. But to say that is only to limit the infinite sphere of all that is possible, viz., to B 98
limit it to the extent that what is mortal is separated from it and the soul is posited in the remaining space of the sphere's range. 1 54 But despite this exclusion [of what is mortal from it] , this space still remains infinite; and even if we take away from it still more parts, this does not in the least in-
A 73
crease the concept of the soul and determine it affirmatively. Hence al though such judgments 155 are infinite as regards logical range, they are ac tually merely limitative as regards the content of cognition as such. In view of this, they must not be omitted from the transcendental table of all mo ments of the thought occurring in judgments, because the function that the understanding perfonns in these infinite judgments may perhaps be impor tant in the realm of the understanding's pure a priori cognition. 1 56 3. The following are all the relations of thought in judgments: (a) the relation of the predicate to the subject; (b) the relation of the ground to its consequence; 1 57 (c) the relation, in a divided cognition, of all Ofl5 8 the di vision's members 1 59 to one another. In these three kinds of judgments we consider, in relation to one another: in the first kind of judgments, two con cepts only; in the second, two judgments; in the third, several judgments. To illustrate the second kind, take a hypothetical proposition: If there is a perfect justice, then the persistently evil person is punished. This proposi tion in fact contains the relation of two propositions: There is a perfect jus tice; and, The persistently evil person is punished. Whether these two propositions are in themselves true remains undecided here; only the im153 [That the soul is nonmortaL] 1 54 [I.e., the space (of the sphere's range) that includes whatever is nonmortaL I am following the Akademie edition in restoring in B the reading found in A. The unaltered B version reads: 'in the remaining range of the sphere's space,' which conflicts with what follows.] 155[As the judgment that the soul is nonmortaL] 156 [See J. W. Ellington, essay cited at B xliii br. n. 149, 1 73 -75.]
1 57[Or 'of the basis to its consequence' : des Grundes zur Folge.] 1 58[gesammelt.] 1 59 [More literally, ' of the divided cognition and of all of the members' : der eingeteiltell Erkenntnis und der gesamme/ten Glieder. I have adjusted my rendering to the correction pro vided by Kant in his working copy of edition A: 'in einem eingeteilten ErkenntnisL] der ge sammelten Glieder. See Preliminary Studies and Supplementary Entries, Ak. XXIII, 45.]
SECTION II
§9
1 27
plication 1 60 is thought through this hypothetical judgment. Finally, to il lustrate the third kind: a disjunctive judgment contains a relation of two,
B 99
or of several, propositions to one another. But this relation is not one of sequence. 161 Rather, it is a relation of logical opposition, insofar as the sphere of the one proposition excludes the sphere of the other; yet it is at the same time a relation of community, insofar as the two propositions to
gether occupy 162 the sphere of the proper cognition involved. Hence the relation of the propositions in a disjunctive judgment is a relation of the
A 74
parts of a cognition's sphere. For the sphere of each part complements the sphere of the other part, to yield the whole sum of the divided cognition. Take this judgment, e.g.: The world exists either through blind chance, or through internal necessity, or through an external cause. Each of these propositions occupies a part of the sphere of possible cognition concern ing the existence of a world as such; all of them together occupy the whole sphere. To remove the cognition from one of these spheres means placing it into one of the other spheres; and, on the other hand, to place it into one sphere means to remove it from the others. Hence in a disjunctive judg ment there is a certain community of cognitions. This community consists in the fact that the cognitions reciprocally exclude one another, and yet as a
whole 163
detennine thereby the true cognition; for, taken together, they
constitute the whole content of a single given cognition. And this, more over, is all that I here need to point out in view of what follows. 4. The modality of judgments is a very special function of them. What distinguishes this function is the fact that it contributes nothing to the judg ment's content (for besides quantity, 1 64 quality, and relation there is noth ing else to constitute a judgment's content). Rather, modality concerns only the value that the copula has in reference to thought as such. Problematic judgments are those where the affinnation or negation is taken 165 as merely (optional) ; assertoric ones are those where the affinnation or ne gation is considered as actual (true) ; apodeictic ones are those in which it
B 1 00
possible
1 60 [Konsequenz. 161 [A
]
bjo/ge.] 162 [erjUlien here, einnehmen a few lines below.] 163 [ im Ganzen. ] 1 64 [Literally, 'magnitude' : Groj3e.] 165 [annehmen.]
A 75
1 28
B 101
A 76
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
is regarded as necessary. 166 Thus the two judgments (antecedens and con sequens) whose relation constitutes the hypothetical judgment, and simi larly the judgments (members of the division 167 ) in whose interaction 168 the disjunctive judgment consists, are one and all problematic only. In the above example, 169 the proposition, There is a perfect justice, is not uttered assertorically, but is thought only as an optional judgment, i.e., one that it is possible for someone to assume; only the implication is assertoric. This is also the reason why such optional judgments, even if manifestly false, can still, when taken problematically, be conditions for the cognition of truth. Thus in the disjunctive judgment used above, the judgment The world exists through blind chance has only problematic meaning; viz., to the ef fect that someone might perhaps assume this proposition for an instant. And yet it serves us in finding the true proposition Gust as indicating the wrong road serves us in finding the right one among the number of all the roads that one can take). Hence a problematic proposition is one that expresses only logical possibility (which is not objective possibility). I.e., it ex presses a free choosing to let such a proposition stand 1 70-a mere elect ing to admit it into the understanding. An assertoric proposition speaks of logical actuality or truth; thus in a hypothetical syllogism, e.g., the ante cedent occurs problematically in the major premise but assertorically in the minor premise.1 7 1 And the assertoric proposition indicates that itl72 is al ready linked with the understanding in accordance with the understand ing's laws. An apodeictic proposition thinks the assertoric one as deter mined by these laws of the understanding themselves, and hence thinks it as maintaining [this or that] a priori; and in this way it expresses logical necessity. Thus everything is incorporated in the understanding by de grees: at first we judge something problematically; then perhaps we also 166Just as if thought were a function of the
understanding in the case of problem
atic judgments, of our power ofjudgment in the case of assertoric ones, and of rea son in the case of apodeictic judgments. This remark must wait for its clarification until later. a "[See the beginning of the Analytic of Principles, A 1 30/8 169, and cf. A 30418 360-6 1 .] 167[Of the cognition involved.] 1 68 [Wechselwirkung.] 169[Of a hypothetical judgment.] 170 [gellen.]
1 7 l [The major premise is of the form 'If p. then q, ' the minor premise of the form 'p. '] 1 72[Unlike the 'po serving as antecedent in 'If p. then q. ' J
SECTION II
§9
1 29
accept it assertorically as true; and finally we maintain it as linked insepa rably with the understanding, i.e., as necessary and apodeictic. And hence these three functions of modality may also be called so many moments of thought as such.
[Transcendental] Guide for the Discovery of All Pure Concepts of Understanding
B 1 02
Section III § 1 0 1 73
ON THE PURE C ONCEPTS OF UNDERSTANDING, OR CATEGORIES General logic, as we have said several times already, abstracts from all con tent of cognition. It expects presentations to be given to it from some where else-no matter where-in order then to transform these presenta tions into concepts in the first place. This it does analytically. Transcendental logic, on the other hand, has lying before it a manifold of a priori sensibility, offered to it by transcendental aesthetic. Transcendental aesthetic offers it this manifold in order to provide it with a material for the pure concepts of understanding. Without this material, transcendental logic would
have no content, 1 74 and hence would be completely empty. Now space and time contain a manifold of pure a priori intuition. 1 75 But they belong nonetheless to the conditions of our mind's receptivity1 76 under which alone the
173[,§
10' added in B.]
174 [Von Leclair changes wiirde ('would have') to wiirden, so that this clause reads thus: 'they [i.e., the pure concepts of understanding] would have no content. . . . " ]
1 7'[On 'manifold,' see B 203 b r 176[Rezeptivitiit.]
n . 38.]
A 77
1 30
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
mind can receive l 77 presentations of objects, and which, by the same to ken, must always affect the concept of these objects. Yet the spontaneity of our thought requires that this manifold, in order to be turned into a cog nition, must first be gone through, taken up, and combined in a certain man ner. This act I call synthesis. B 1 03
A 78
B 104
By
synthesis,
in the most general sense of the term, I mean the act of
putting various presentations with one anotherl 78 and of comprising l 79 their manifoldness in one cognition. Such synthesis is pure if the manifold is given not empirically but a priori (as is the manifold in space and time). Before any analysis of our presentations can take place, these presenta tions must first be given, and hence in terms of content no concepts 1 80 can originate analytically. Rather, synthesis of a manifold (whether this mani fold is given empirically or a priori) is what first gives rise to a cognition. Although this cognition may still be crude and confused at first and hence may require analysis, yet synthesis is what in fact gathers the elements for cognition and unites them to [form] a certain content. Hence if we want to make a judgment about the first origin of our cognition, then we must first direct our attention to synthesis. 181 Synthesis as such, as we shall see hereafter, 182 is the mere effect pro
duced by the imagination, which is a blind but indispensable function of the SOUl l 83 without which we would have no cognition whatsoever, but of which we are conscious only very rarely. Bringing this synthesis to con cepts, on the other hand, is a function belonging to the understanding; and it is through this function that the understanding first provides us with cog nition in the proper meaning of the term. Now pure synthesis, conceived of 184 generally, yields the pure concept of understanding. By pure synthesis I mean the synthesis that rests on a basis of synthetic a priori unity. E.g., our act of counting (as is more no177 [empfangen.] 1 78 [zueinander . . . hinzutun.] 1 79 [begreifen.] 18°[Begrijfe. See A 103 br. n. 83.]
1 8 1 [See 1. W Ellington, essay cited at B xliii br. n. 149, 142-46.]
182 [See, e.g., A 120, and cf. A 1 0 1 , B 164, 233, 383.] ' 8 3 [In his working copy of edition A, Kant changes this to: 'which is a function of the un derstanding.' See Preliminary Studies and Supplementary Entries. Ak. XXIII, 45.] ' 84 [ vorgeslellt. ]
SECTION III
§
10
131
ticeable primarily with larger numbers) is a synthesis according to con cepts, because it is perfonned according to a common basis of unity (such as the decimal system). Hence under this concept the unity of the mani fold's synthesis becomes necessary. Bringing various presentations under a concept (a task dealt with by gen eral logic) is done analytically. But bringing, not presentations but the pure
synthesis
of presentations,
to 1 85
concepts is what transcendental logic
teaches. The first [thing] that we must be given a priori in order to cognize any object is the manifold of pure intuition. The second [thing] is the syn-
thesis of this manifold by the imagination.
A 79
But this synthesis does not yet
yield cognition. The third [thing we need] in order to cognize an object that we encounter is the concepts which give
unity to this
pure synthesis
and which consist solely in the presentation of this necessary synthetic unity. And these concepts rest on the understanding. The same function that gives unity to the various presentations in a judg ment also gives unity to the mere synthesis of various presentations in an intuition. This unity-speaking generally-is called pure concept of un
B 1 05
derstanding. Hence the same understanding-and indeed through the same acts whereby it brought about, in concepts, the logical fonn of a judgment by means of analytic unity-also brings into its presentations a transcendental content, by means of the synthetic unity of the manifold in intuition as such; and because of this, these presentations are called pure concepts of understanding applying a priori to objects. Bringing such a transcendental content into these presentations is something that general logic cannot accomplish. Thus there arise precisely as many pure concepts of understanding ap plying a priori to objects of intuition as such, as in the preceding table there were logical functions involved in all possible judgments. For these functions of the understanding are completely exhaustive and survey its power entirely. Following Aristotle, we shall call these functions categories. For our aim is fundamentally 1 86 the same as his, even though it greatly devi ates from his in its execution.
18' [au!: 'upon' or 'onto,' literally.] 1 86[uran!iinglich.]
A 80
1 32
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
TABLE OF C ATEGORIES
B 1 06
OF QUANTITY Unity Plurality Allness 1 87 2 OF QUALITY Reality Negation Limitation
3 OF RELATION of Inherence and Subsistence (substantia et accidens) of Causality and Dependence (Cause and Effect) of Community (Interaction between Agent and Patient l 88) 4 OF MODALITY Possibility-Impossibility Existence-Nonexistence 1 89 Necessity-Contingency
A 81 B 1 07
This, then, is the list of all the original pure concepts of synthesis 1 90 that the understanding contains a priori. Indeed, it is a pure understanding only because of these concepts; for through them alone can it understand some thing in 1 9 1 the manifold of intuition, i.e., think an object of intuition. This division of the categories has been generated systematically from a com mon principle, viz., our ability to judge (which is equivalent to our ability to think). It has not been generated rhapsodically, by locating pure con cepts haphazardly, where we can never be certain that the enumeration of 1 87 [Allheil, rendered consistently as 'allness' in this translation (even though 'totality' would sound better after 'unity' and 'plurality'), 'totality' being reserved for Totalitiit ] 188 [Leidender.] I 89 [Dasein, Nichtsein.] 190 [ln his working copy of edition A, Kant drops the words 'of synthesis.' See Preliminw") Studies and Supplementary Entries, Ak. XXIII, 46.] 1 91 [bei.]
SECTION III
§ 10
1 33
the concepts is complete. 192 For we then infer the division only by induc tion, forgetting that in this way we never gain insight into why precisely these concepts, rather than others, reside in the pure understanding. Locat ing these basic concepts was a project worthy of an acute man like Aris totle. 193 But having no principle, 194 he snatched them up as he came upon them. 1 9S He hunted up ten of them at first, and called them categories (pre dicaments). 1 96 He later believed that he had discovered five more catego ries, and added them under the name of postpredicaments. 1 97 But his table remained deficient even then. Moreover, we also find in it some modes of
(quando, ubi, situs, and prius, simul), 198 as well as an em pirical mode (motus), 199 none of which belong at all in this register of the root200 [concepts] of the understanding. Again, derivative concepts (actio, passio)20 1 are also included among the original concepts,202 while some of pure sensibility
the original concepts203 are missing entirely.
Hence for the sake of [distinguishing] the original concepts, we must note also that the categories, as the true root concepts of pure understand ing, have also their equally pure derivative concepts. In a complete system of transcendental philosophy these derivative concepts can by no means be omitted. In a merely critical essay, on the other hand, I can settle for merely mentioning them.
192[See 1. W. Ellington, essay cited at B xliii br. n. 149, 165-73.] 1 93 [Emphasis removed.] 1 94 [For locating these concepts.] 19S [For some of the outstanding similarities (and differences) of Aristotle's and Kant's views on logic, see Walter Watson, op. cit. at B xvi br. n. 7 1 , 9 1 -95.] 196 [Substance, quantity, quality, relation, place, time, posture, state, action, undergoing.] 197 [The five relational categories, of doubtful authenticity, found in chs. 10- 1 5 of the Cat opposition, priority, simultaneity, motion, having.] 198 [Respectively, when (time), where (place), posture, pnor (priority), simultaneous (simul
egories:
taneity).] 1 99 [Motion.] 200
[Slamm_.] 20 1 [Action, passion (undergoing).] 202 [On Anstotle's list.]
203 [I.e , as contained in Kant's own table of categories.]
A 82
1 34
B 1 08
A 83 B 1 09
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
Let me call these pure but derivative concepts of understanding the
predicables of pure understanding (in contrast to the predicaments204). Once we have the original and primitive concepts, we can easily add the deriva S tive and subsidiary20 ones and thus depict completely the genealogical206 tree of pure understanding. Since I am here concerned with the complete ness not of the system but only of the principles for a system, I am reserv ing that complementary work for another enterprise.207 We can, however, come close t0208 achieving that aim of completing the tree if we pick up a textbook on ontology and subordinate the predicables to the categories: e.g., to the category of causality, the predicables of force, action, undergo ing;209 to the category of community, the predicables of presence, resis tance; to the predicaments of modality, the predicables of arising, passing away,2 10 change; and so on. When the categories are combined either with the modes of pure sensibility or with one another, they yield a great mul titude of derivative a priori concepts. Mentioning these concepts and, if pos sible, listing them completely would be a useful and not disagreeable en deavor, but one that we can here dispense with. In this treatise I deliberately refrain from offering definitions of these categories, even though I may possess them. I shall hereafter dissect these concepts only to a degree adequate for the doctrine of method2 1 1 that I here produce? 1 2 Whereas definitions of the categories could rightly be de manded of me in a system of pure reason, here they would only make us lose sight of the main point of the inquiry. For they would give rise to doubts and charges that we may readily relegate to another activity with out in any way detracting from our essential aim. Still, from what little I have mentioned about this, we can see distinctly that a complete lexicon with all the requisite explications not only is possible but could easily be 204 [l.e., categories.] 2°' [subaltern.] 206 [Stamm .. ] 207 [Presumably the activity of producing a metaphysics of nature. Cf. above, B xliii incl. br. n . 1 49.] 208 [ziemlich.]
209 [Or 'passion': Leiden.] 2 1 O [Respectively, Entstehen, Vergehen. ] 2 1 1 [To be found below, at A 705-856/B 733-884.] 212 [bearbeiten.]
SECTION III
§
10
1 35
brought about. The compartments are now at hand. They only need to be filled in; and a systematic [transcendental] topic,2 1 3 such as the present one, will make it difficult to miss the place where each concept properly be longs, and at the same time will make it easy to notice any place that is still empty. 2 1 4
Concerning this table of categories one can make nice observations that might perhaps have important consequences regarding the scientific fonn of all rational cognitions. For in the theoretical part of philosophy this table is exceedingly useful-indeed, indispensable-for drawing up completely
the plan for a science as a whole insofar as this science rests on a priori dividing it systematically2 1 6 according to determinate principles. This is self-evident already from these facts: The table lists com concepts, and for
pletely all the elementary concepts of understanding; indeed, it contains even the fonn of a system of them residing in the human understanding. Consequently the table directs us to all the moments of a projected specu lative science-indeed, even to their order. In fact, a sample of their so di recting us has already been provided by me elsewhere. 217 Here now are some of those comments that can be made about the table of categories. The first comment is that this table containing four classes of concepts of understanding can be broken up, initially, into two divisions. The con cepts in the first division are directed to objects of intuition (both pure and empirical), while those in the second are directed to the existence of these objects (these objects being referred21 8 either to each other or to the un derstanding).
2l 3 [See A 268/B 324, and cf A 6 11B 86 incl. br. n. 76.] 214 [See 1. W. Ellington, essay cited at B xliii br. n. 149, 1 72-73.] 215 [The entire subsections 1 1 and 12 added in B.] 21 6 [Adopting the Akademie edition's reading, proposed by Vaihinger, of systematisch for math ematisch (,mathematically').] 217 [See the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science (published in 1786, one year be fore the B edition of the first Critique), Ak. IV, 473-77, 495, 523, 55 1 , 558.] 218 [in Beziehung auf]
B 1 10
1 36
B Ill
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
The first division21 9 I would call that of the mathematical categories; the second, that of the dynamical categories. The first division of catego ries, as we can see by inspecting the table, has no correlates; only in the second division do we find correlates. This distinction must surely have a basis in the nature of the understanding. The second comment to be made about the table is that the number of categories in each class is equal everywhere, viz., three; this, too, calls for meditation, because normally220 all a priori division by concepts must be dichotomous. Add to this, moreover, the fact that in each case the third cat egory of the class arises from the combination of the second category with the first of the same class. Thus allness (totality) is nothing but plurality considered as unity; limi tation is nothing but reality combined with negation; community22 1 is the causality of a substance reciprocally222 determining [and being determined by] another substance; necessity, finally, is nothing but the existence that is given through possibility itself. This fact, however, must by no means lead us to think that the third category is a mere derivative concept, rather than a root concept, of pure understanding. For combining the first and sec ond categories, in order to produce the third concept, requires that the un derstanding perform a special act that is not the same as the act it performs in the case of the first and second concepts. Thus the concept of a number (which belongs to the category of allness) is not possible in every case where we have223 the concepts of multitude224 and unity (e.g., it is not pos sible in the presentation of infinity22s). Again, combining the two concepts of a cause and of a substance does not yet provide me with an immediate understanding of influence, i.e., understanding of how a substance can be come the cause of something in another substance. This shows that a spe2 l 9 [Kant actually says 'class' rather than 'division. ' Similarly for the next two occurrences of 'division' just below.] 220 [sonst. ] 2 2 l [I.e., interaction ( Wechselwirkung) between agent and patient (undergoer): A 80/B 106. 1 222 [wechseLseitig; cf. br. n. 221 just above ] 223 [sind. ] 224 [1 e., plurality.] 22' [das UnendLiche. Although this expression literally says 'the infinite' (which refers to some· thing infinite), this is not what it means in mathematical contexts. There it means simply 'in finity.' The Gennan term Unendlichkeit, on the other hand, means 'infinity' only in the mo st abstract sense: 'infiniteness,' 'being infinite.' 1
SECTION III
§ 11
1 37
cial act of the understanding is required; 226 and thus it is with the remain ing classes of categories. The third comment to be made about the table of categories concerns the category of community, which is to be found under the third heading. This is the one category whose agreement with the form corresponding to it in the table of logical functions-viz., the form of a disjunctive judgment-is not so obvious as in the case of the others. In order to assure ourselves of this agreement, we must note the fol lowing: In all disjunctive judgments the sphere (the multitude of every thing contained under the judgment) is presented as a whole divided into parts (the subordinate227 concepts). And because the parts cannot be con tained one under another, they are thought as coordinated228 with rather than as subordinated229 to one another, so that they determine one another not unilaterall/30 as in a series, but reciprocally2 3 1 as in an aggregate (wherein, when one member of the division is posited, all the rest are ex cluded, and conversely). Now a similar connection is thought in [thinking] a whole of things. In such a whole, one thing is not subordinated, as effect, to another as cause of its existence; rather, it is simultaneously and reciprocally coordinate�3 2 with others, as cause regarding their determination (as, e.g., in a body whose parts reciprocally attract-or, for that matter, repel-one another). This kind of connection is entirely different from the one found in the mere relation of cause to effect (ground to consequence), where the consequence does not in tum reciprocally determine the ground and hence does not together with it constitute a whole (e.g., the world together with its creator does not constitute a whole). 233 When the understanding presents the sphere of a divided concept, it follows a certain procedure; it observes that same pro cedure when it thinks a thing as divisible. And in the divided concept the ll6 227
[To produce the category of community.] [unterordnen.]
228
[koordinieren.] 2l9 [subordinieren.] llO [einseitig.] III [wechseiseitig.]
l12
[beiordnen.] 2]] [lnverting, with Vaihinger, the original order, 'the world's creator [together] with the world,' in order to make it agree with the order just mentioned (consequence, ground) in the last Clause.]
B 112
B 1 13
1 38
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
members of the division exclude one another and yet are combined in one sphere; in the same way, the understanding234 presents the thing's parts as being such that while the existence of each part also belongs to it alone (as a substance) to the exclusion of the others, yet the parts are combined in one whole.
§ 12
B 1 14
In the transcendental philosophy of the ancients, however, we find an ad ditional chapter containing pure concepts of understanding. Although these concepts are not there included among the categories, yet according to the ancients they were to count235 as a priori concepts of objects. In that case, however, these concepts would in fact increase the number of categories-which cannot be. These additional concepts are set forth in this proposition, so famous among the scholastics: quodlibet ens est unum, verum, bonum?36 Now it is true that the use of this principle turned out to permit only very meager inferences (yielding nothing but tautological propositions); by the same token, in modern times the principle has come to receive little more than honorable mention237 in metaphysics. Yet whenever a thought-no matter how empty it seems to be-has main tained itself for such a long time, then it deserves an inquiry into its ori gin, and entitles us to conjecture that it has its basis in some rule of the understanding that, as often happens, has only been wrongly interpreted. But in fact these supposedly transcendental predicates of things are noth ing but logical requirements and criteria for all cognition of things in gen eral; and they lay at the basis of such cognition the categories of quantity, viz., those of unity, plurality, and allness. These categories, however, should properly be taken materially, as belonging to the possibility of things them selves. Those [philosophers], on the other hand, used them in fact only in their formal meaning, as belonging to the logical demands concerning any cognition; yet, through carelessness, they still turned these criteria of thought into properties of things in themselves. Let me explain. 23 8 In ev234 [In thinking a thing as divisible.] 23 5 [gellen. ] 236 [Any being is one, true, good.] 237 [au/
238 [namlich.]
SECTION III
§ 12
1 39
unity of the con unity, provided that in [thinking] it we think
ery cognition there are three components. First, there is cept; we may call it qualitative
only the unity in the collating239 of the manifold of cognitions: e.g., the unity of the topic240 in a play, a speech, or a story. Second, in every cog
nition there is
truth
as regards the consequences. The more true conse
quences arise from a given concept, the more indicators there are of its ob jective reality. We might call this the
qualitative plurality
of the
characteristics that belong to a concept as their common ground (rather than are thought, in the concept, as a quantity24 1). Finally, third, in every cog nition there is
perfection;
it consists in the fact that the plurality together
leads back again242 to the unity of the concept, and that it agrees fully with this and with no other concept. This perfection may be called
completeness
qualitative
(totality). This shows that these logical criteria for the pos
sibility of cognition as such only transform the three categories of quan
tity. In these categories, the unity in the production of the quantum243 must be assumed as homogeneous throughout. Here, however, they are only 44 transformed, in order to connect components2 of cognition--even het-
239 [l.e., the arranging and holding together: ZusammenJassung. Collating is intermediate be tween gathering together (Zusammennehmung) (see esp. A 99) and assembly (Zusammenset zung) (see, e.g., A 1 05, but esp. B 201 n. 30). As regards my translation of ZusammenJassung by 'collating,' although in the present instance 'comprehending' (or the noun 'comprehen sion') might seem preferable (in the sense related to 'comprehensive,' 'comprise,' and 'pre hensile'), in others it could far too easily be misread to mean something like (rational) grasp ing. This ambiguity needs to be avoided all the more because I do use 'comprehend' to translate begreifen. My reason for translating this latter term by 'comprehend' rather than by 'grasp' is that the various derivatives of 'comprehend' (such as 'comprehension,' 'compre hensible,' 'incomprehensible,' and 'incomprehensibility') read much more smoothly than the corresponding derivates of 'grasp' ('grasping,' 'graspable,' 'ungraspable,' and 'ungraspable ness'). As regards the option of translating Kant's technical term zusammenJassen by different English terms in different places, the Translator's Preface explains my reasons against such unnecessary breaches of terminological consistency. In the one place (A 841 B 869) where zusammenJassen is translated not by 'collate' but by 'encompass,' the German term is clearly used in a nontechnical sense-which is precisely the reason why 'collate' would not make sense there.] 240[Thema.] =
241 [Literally, 'magnitude' : Groj1e. Similarly a few lines below.] 242
[umgekehrl.] 243 [Quantum J 244 [ ,slucke. ]
B 115
1 40
PART I I
1RANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
one consciousness, using245 as principle246 for this connection the quality of a cognition. Thus the criterion for the possibility of a concept (rather than for the possibility of the concept's object)247 is the concept's definition; in it the unity of the concept, the truth of every thing that may be derived from it initially,248 and finally the completeness of what has been extracted from it constitute what the whole concept re quires for its construction. Or, again, the criterion of a hypothesis is the understandability of the assumed basis of explanation, or, i.e.: its unity (without an auxiliary hypothesis); the truth of the consequences derivable from it (their agreement with one another and with experience); and, fi nally, the completeness of the basis for the explanation of these conse quences-which means that these consequences point back to no more and no less than was assumed in the hypothesis, and that they analytically a posteriori bring249 back and agree with what was thought synthetically a priori in the hypothesis. Therefore by adding the concepts of unity, truth, and perfection to the transcendental table of categories we do not at all complement that table-as if perhaps it were deficient. Rather, while set ting aside entirely the relation of these concepts to objects,250 we bring the procedure used with these concepts under general logical rules governing the agreement of cognition with itself.
erogeneous ones-in
B 116
245 [dun:h.]
246[Reading Prinzip for Prinzips, which would make cognition, rather than its quality, the prin ciple in question.] 241 [Reading, with Hartenstein, nicht des Objekts desselben for nicht des Objekts derselben) ] 248 [zuniichst. ] 249 [liefern.]
250 [l.e., the relation implied in the categories.]
ANAL YTIC OF CONCEPTS Chapter
II
On the Deduction of the Pure Concept of Understanding 1 Section
I
§ 132
ON THE PRINCIPLES OF A TRANSCENDENTAL DEDUCTION As S UCH When teachers of law talk about rights3 and claims, they distinguish in a legal action the question regarding what is legal (quid iuris) from the ques tion concerning fact (quidfacti), and they demand proof of both.4 The first proof, which is to establish the right, or for that matter the legalS entitle ment,6 they call the deduction. [This term also applies to philosophy.] We employ a multitude of empirical concepts without being challenged by any one. And we consider ourselves justified,7 even without having offered a deduction, to assign to these empirical concepts a meaning and imagined l [See Paul Guyer, Kant and the Claims of Knowledge (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1987), 73-154. See also H. J. Paton, "The Key to Kant's Deduction of the Catego ries," in Mo1tke S. Gram, ed., Kant: Disputed Questions (Chicago: Quadrangle Books, 1967), 247-68. Also H. E. Allison, op. cit. at A 2 1/B 35 br. n. 22, 133-72. Also Graham Bird, op. cit. at A 6718 92 br. n. 1 2 1 , 1 10-48. Also J. N. Findlay, op cit. at A 2 118 35 br. n. 22, 135-40. Also Norman Kemp Smith. op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 202-33 1 . Also H. J. Paton, op. cit. at B 1 br. n. 152, vol. 1, 3 1 3-47. And see T. D. Weldon, op. cit. at A 2118 35 br. n. 22, 148-61 .] 2 [ ' § 13' added in B.] 3 [BejUgnisse.] 4 [Legality and factuality.] ' [Rechts-. ] 6[
-anspruch. ] 7 [berechtigt. ]
141
A 84
1 42
B 1 17
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
signification,8 because we always have experience available to us to prove their objective reality. But there are also concepts that we usurp, as, e.g., Jortune, fate. And although these concepts run 100se,9 with our almost uni versal forbearance, yet they are sometimes confronted 10 by the question [of their legality] ,
quid iuris.
This question then leaves us in considerable per
plexity regarding the deduction1 1 of these concepts; for neither from expe A 8S
rience nor from reason can we adduce any distinct legal basis from which the right to use them emerges distinctly. But there are, among the various concepts making up the highly mixed fabric of human cognition, some that are determined for pure a priori use as well (i.e., for a use that is completely independent of all experience); and their right to be so used always requires a deduction. For proofs based on experience are insufficient to establish the legitimacy 12 of using them in that way; yet we do need to know how these concepts can refer to ob jects 13 even though they do not take these objects from any experience. Hence when I explain in what way concepts can refer to objects a priori, I call that explanation the transcendental deduction of these concepts. And I distinguish transcendental deduction from empirical deduction, which in dicates in what way a concept has been acquired through experience and through reflection upon experience, and which therefore concerns not the concept's legitimacy but only the fact whereby we came to possess it.
B 118
We already have, at this point, two types oe4 concepts that, while be ing wholly different in kind, do yet agree inasmuch as both of them refer to objects completely a priori: viz., on the one hand, the concepts of space and time as forms of sensibility; and, on the other hand, the categories as concepts of understanding. To attempt an empirical deduction of these two types of concepts would be a futile job. For what is distinctive in their na
A 86
ture is precisely the fact that they refer to their objects without having bor rowed anything from experience in order to present these objects. Hence 8 [Bedeutung. See A 139fB 178 br. n. 66.]
9[Literally, 'around'; herum-.] l O [in Anspruch nehmen. ] II
[I.e., legitimation.]
1 2 [Rechtmiij3igkeit. ] " [Objekte here, Gegenstiinde just below. See A vii br. n. 7. ] !4 [zweierlei.]
SECTION I
§ 13
1 43
if a deduction of these concepts is needed, then it must always be tran scendental. But even for these concepts, as for all cognition, we can locate in ex perience, if not the principle of their possibility, then at least the occasion ing causes 15 of their production. Thus the impressions of the senses first prompt [us] to open up the whole cognitive power in regard to them, and to bring about experience. Experience contains two quite heterogeneous el ements : viz., a matter for cognition, taken from the senses; and a certain form for ordering this matter, taken from the inner source of pure intuition and thought. 16 It is on the occasion of the impressions of the senses that pure intuition and thought are first brought into operation 17 and produce concepts. Such exploration of our cognitive power's first endeavors to as cend from singular perceptions to universal concepts is doubtless highly beneficial, and we are indebted to the illustrious Locke for first opening up the path to it. 1 8 Yet such exploration can never yield a deduction 1 9 of the pure a priori concepts, which does not lie on that path at all. For in view of these concepts' later use, which is to be wholly independent of experi ence, they must be able to display a birth certificate quite different from that of descent from experiences. The attempted20 physiological derivation concerns a quaestio facti, 2 1 and therefore cannot properly be called a de duction at all. Hence I shall name it the explanation of our possession of a pure cognition. Clearly, then, the only possible deduction of this pure cog nition22 is a transcendental and by no means an empirical one, and empiri cal deductions regarding the pure a priori concepts are nothing but futile attempts-attempts that only those can engage in who have not compre hended the quite peculiar nature of these cognitions. IS [Gelegenheitsursachen. )
1 6[See Walter Watson, op. cit. at B xvi br. n. 7 1 , 95.) 17 [Ausubung. In this sentence, I am taking der ersteren to refer back to 'impressions of the senses.' But the term could also refer to Materie, in which case we would have to read: 'It is on the occasion of [our sensing) such matter. . . .' Substantively, however, the two alternative readings corne to the same.) 18 [See An Essay Concerning Human Understanding, Bk. II.) I 9 [I.e., legitimation.) 2° [By philosophers such as Locke.) 21 [Question of fact (rather than of legality or legitimation).) 22 [Reading, with Erdmann, dieser es allein for diesen aile in es; cf. the beginning of the next paragraph.)
B 119
A 87
144
PART I I
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
Yet even if it be granted that the only possible kind of deduction of pure a priori cognition is one along the transcendental path, that still does not show that this deduction is inescapably necessary. We did earlier trace the concepts of space and time to their sources by means of a transcendental B 1 20
deduction, and we explained and determined their a priori objective valid ity. Yet geometry, using23 nothing but a priori cognitions, follows its course securely without needing to ask philosophy for a certificate of the pure and legitimate descent of geometry's basic concept of space. On the other hand, the use of the concept of space in this science does apply only to the ex ternal world of sense. Space is the pure form of the intuition of that world.
A 88
B 121
In that world, therefore, all geometric cognition is directly evident, be cause it is based on a priori intuition; and, through cognition itself, objects are (as regards their form) given a priori in intuition. With the pure con cepts of understanding, on the other hand, begins the inescapable require ment to seek a transcendental deduction-not only of these concepts them selves, but also of space. For these concepts speak24 of objects through predicates of pure a priori thought, not through predicates of intuition and sensibility; hence they refer to objects25 universally, i.e., apart from all con ditions of sensibility. They are, then, concepts that are not based on expe rience; and in a priori intuition, too, they cannot display any object on which they might, prio�6 to all experience, base their synthesis. Hence these con cepts not only arouse suspicion concerning the objective validity and lim its of their use, but they also make ambiguous the concept of space; for they tend to use it even beyond the conditions of sensible intuition-and this indeed is the reason why a transcendental deduction of this concept was needed above. I must therefore convince the reader, before he has taken a single step in the realm of pure reason, that such a deduction is inescap ably necessary. For otherwise he proceeds blindly, and after manifold wan derings must yet return to the ignorance from which he started. But the reader must also distinctly see27 in advance the inevitable difficulty of pro viding such a deduction. For otherwise he might complain of obscurity when in fact the matter itself is deeply shrouded, or might be too quickly 23 [durch. ]
24 [Reading, with Hartenstein, reden for redet.] 25 [Gegenstand (in the plural) here, Objekt just beloW.] 26 [VOr.] 27 [eillsehen ]
SECTION 1
§ 13
1 45
discouraged during the removal of obstacles. For we either muses entirely abandon all claims to pure rational insights29 into the realm that we care about most, 30 viz., the realm beyond the bounds of all possible experience,
or else must bring this critical inquiry to completion. We had little trouble above in making comprehensible how the con cepts of space and time, despite being 3 l a priori cognitions, must yet refer necessarily to objects, and how they make32 possible, independently of any experience, a synthetic cognition of objects. For only by means of such pure forms of sensibility can an object3 3 appear to us, i.e., can it be an object of empirical intuition. Hence space and time are pure intuitions containing a priori the condition for the possibility of objects as appearances, and the synthesis in space and time has objective validity. The categories of understanding, on the other hand, do not at all present to us the conditions under which objects are given in intuition. Therefore objects can indeed appear to us without having to refer necessarily to func tions of understanding, and hence without the understanding's containing a priori the conditions of these objects. Thus we find here a difficulty that we did not encounter in the realm of sensibility: viz., how subjective con ditions of thought could have objective validity, i.e., how they could yield conditions for the possibility of all cognition of objects. For appearances can indeed be given in intuition without functions of understanding. Let me take, e.g., the concept of cause. This concept signifies a special kind of synthesis where upon [the occurrence of] something, A, something quite different, B, is posited according to a rule. 34 Why appearances should con tain anything like that is not evident a priori. (I say a priori because ex perience cannot be adduced as proof, since we must be able to establish this concept's objective validity a priori.) Hence there is doubt a priori whether perhaps such a concept might not even be empty and encounter no object at all among appearances. For while it is evident that objects of 28 [ Weil es darauf ankommt, dajJ.] 29 [Einsichten.] 3O[Somewhat more literally, 'that we ate fondest of' : beliebtest. ] ll [a/s.]
32[Reading, with Erdmann, machen for machten.] 33 [Gegenstand here, Objekt just below, and then again Gegenstand (in the plural).] 34 [In his working copy of edition A, Kant rephrases this to read: 'is posited a prion, i.e., nec es sarily, according to a rule' (or: 'is posited according to an a priori rule, i.e., posited nec essarily'). See Preliminary Studies and Supplementary Entries, Ak. XXIII. 46.]
A 89
B 1 22
A 90
1 46
B 1 23
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
sensible intuition must conform to the formal conditions of sensibility ly ing a priori in the mind, since otherwise they would not be objects for us, it is not so easy to see the inference whereby they must in addition con form to the conditions that the understanding requires for the synthetic unity35 of thought. For, I suppose, appearances might possibly be of such a character that the understanding would not find them to conform at all to the conditions of its unity. Everything might then be so confused that, e.g., the sequence of appearances would offer us nothing providing us with a rule of synthesis and thus corresponding to the concept of cause and effect,
A 91
so that this concept would then be quite empty, null, and without signifi cation. 36 But appearances would nonetheless offer objects to our intuition; for intuition in no way requires the functions of thought. Suppose that we planned to extricate ourselves from these troublesome inqUiries by saying that examples of such regularity among appearances are offered to us incessantly by experience, and that these examples give us sufficient prompting to isolate from them the concept of cause and thus to verify at the same time the objective validity of such a concept. In that case we would be overlooking the fact that the concept of cause cannot arise in that way at all; rather, it either must have its basis completely a
B 1 24
priori in the understanding, or must be given up entirely as a mt(re chi mera. For this concept definitely requires that something, A, be of such a kind that something else, B, follows from it necessarily and according to an absolutely universal rule. Although appearances do provide us with cases from which we can obtain a rule whereby something usually happens, they can never provide us with a rule whereby the result is necessary. This is, moreover, the reason why the synthesis of cause and effect is imbued with37 a dignity that cannot at all be expressed empirically: viz., that the effect is not merely added to the cause, but is posited through the cause and results from it. And the strict universality of the rule is indeed no property what
A 92
ever of empirical rules; empirical rules can, through induction, acquire none but comparative universality, i.e., extensive usability. But if we treated the pure concepts of understanding as merely empirical products, then our use of them would change entirely. 35 [Reading, with von Leclair (a reading adopted hy the Akademie edition), Einheil for Ein siehl ('insight').] 36 [Bedeulung. See A \ 39/B 178 hr. n. 66.] 37 [anhiingen.]
SECTION I
§ 14
1 47
§ 1 438
TRANSITION TO THE TRANSCENDENTAL DEDUCTION OF THE C ATEGORIES Only two cases are possible where synthetic presentation and its objects39 can concur, can necessarily refer to each other, and can-as it were-meet each other: viz., either if the object makes the presentation possible, or if the presentation alone makes the object possible. If the object makes the presentation possible, then the reference is only empirical and the presen-
B 1 25
tation is never possible a priori. This is what happens in the case of appearances, as regards what pertains to sensation in them. But suppose that the presentation alone makes the object possible. In that case, while40 presentation in itself does not produce its object as
regards existence
(for the
causality that presentation has by means of the will is not at issue here at all),41 yet presentation is a priori determinative in regard to the object if
cognizing
something
as an object is
possible only through it. Now there
are two conditions under which alone there can be cognition of an object. The first condition is
intuition;
through it the object is given, though only
as appearance. The second condition is the concept; through it an object is thought that corresponds to this intuition. Now it is evident from the above that the first condition, viz., the condition under which alone objects can be intuited, does42 indeed, as far as their form is concerned, underlie objects43 a priori in the mind. Hence all appearances necessarily agree with this formal condition of sensibility, because only through it can they appear, i.e., be empirically intuited and given. Now the question arises whether concepts do not also a priori precede [objects], as conditions under which alone something can be, if not intuited, yet thought as object as 38 [ ,§ 14,' accidentally not added in B, was added in the third edition.] 39 [Erdmann suggests (but not in the Akademie edition) that we pluralize Vorstellung and thus read 'presentations and their objects.'] 4O[wei/, in an older sense of this word (which now means only 'because').] 41 [ef. Kant's definition of (the will as) our power of desire: Critique of Practical Reason, Ak. V, 9n; Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, the n. on 177-78.] 4' [Reading, with Hartenstein, liege for liegen.] 43 [The noun used by Kant is Objekt here, Gegenstand (repeatedly) earlier in the paragraph and again just below, then Objekt again See A vii br. n. 7.]
A 93
148
B 1 26
A 94
B 1 27
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
such.44 For in that case all empirical cognition of objects necessarily con forms to such concepts, because nothing is possible as object of experience unless45 these concepts are presupposed. But all experience, besides con taining the senses' intuition through which something is given, does also contain a concept of an object that is given in intuition, or that appears. Accordingly, concepts of objects as such presumably underlie all experi ential cognition as its a priori conditions. Hence presumably the objective validity of the categories, as a priori concepts, rests on the fact that through them alone is experience possible (as far as the form of thought in it is concerned). For in that case the categories refer to objects of experience necessarily and a priori, because only by means of them can any experi ential object whatsoever be thought at all. Hence the transcendental deduction of all a priori concepts has a prin ciple to which the entire investigation must be directed: viz., the principle that these concepts must be cognized46 as a priori conditions for the pos sibility of experience47 (whether the possibility of the intuition found in experience, or the possibility of the thought). If concepts serve as the ob jective basis for the possibility of experience, then-precisely because of this-they are necessary. But to unfold the experience in which these con cepts are found is not to deduce them (but is only to illustrate them); for otherwise they would, after all, be only contingent. Without that original reference of these concepts to possible experience wherein all objects of cognition occur, their reference to any object whatever would be quite in comprehensible.48 44 [Or 'object in general.' My reason for translating iiberhaupt by 'as such' is given at B xxvii br. n. 106.] 45 [ohne.] 46 [ Or 'recognized': erkannt. ]
47 [Reading, with Erdmann and the Akademie edition, Erfahrung for Erfahrungen.] 48 [ln the place of the next three paragraphs of B, A has the following:]
Now there are three original sources (capacities or powers of the soul) that contain the conditions for the possibility of all experience, and that cannot themselves be derived from any other power of the mind: viz., sense, imagination, and apperception. On them are based ( 1 ) the a priori synopsis of the manifold through sense; (2) the synthesis of this manifold through imagination; and finally, (3) the unity of this synthe sis through original apperception. All these powers, besides having their empirical use, have in addition a transcendental use that deals solely with
SECTION I
§ 14
1 49
The illustrious Locke, not having engaged in this contemplation, and encountering pure concepts of understanding in experience, also derived them from experience. Yet he proceeded so inconsistently that he dared to try using these concepts for cognitions that go far beyond any boundary of experience. David Hume recognized49 that in order for us to be able to do this, the origin of these concepts must be a priori. But he was quite unable to explain how it is possible that concepts not in themselves combined in the understanding should nonetheless have to be thought by it as necessar ily combined in the object. Nor did it occur to him that perhaps the under standing itself might, through these concepts, be the author of the experi ence wherein we encounter the understanding's objects. Thus, in his plight, he derived these concepts from experience (viz., from habit,50 a subjective necessity that arises in experience through repeated association and that ul timately is falsely regarded as objective). 5 1 But he proceeded quite consis tently after that, for he declared that we cannot use5 2 these concepts and the principles that they occasion in order to go beyond the boundary of experience. Yet the empirical derivation of these concepts which occurred to both5 3 cannot be reconciled with the scientific a priori cognitions that we actually have, viz., our a priori cognitions of pure mathematics and uni
B 1 28
versal natural science, and hence this empirical derivation is refuted by that fact. Of these two illustrious men, Locke left the door wide open for fanati cism; 54 for once reason has gained possession of5 5 such rights, it can no longer be kept within limits by indefinite exhortations to moderation. Hume, believing that he had uncovered so universal a delusion-regarded as reason-of our cognitive power, surrendered entirely to skepticism. 56 We form and is possible a priori. Above, in Part I, we talked about this transcendental use in regard to the senses. Let us now endeavor to gain insight into the nature of the transcendental use of the other two powers. 49 [Or 'cognized.'] sO [Or 'custom.' Cf. above, B 5 inc!. hr. n. 160, and B 1 9-20.] SI [See the Prolegomena, Ak. IV, 257-61 .] s2 [mil. ] s3 [Locke and Hume.] s4
[Schwdrmerei.] sS [au J ihrer Seile hal.] S6 [See the Prolegomena, Ak. IV, 262.]
A 95
1 50
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
are now about to try to find out whether we cannot provide for human rea son safe passage between these two cliffs, assign to it determinate bounds, and yet keep open for it the entire realm of its appropriate activity. The only thing that I still want to do before we start is to explicate the categories: they are concepts of an object as such whereby the object's in tuition is regarded as determined in terms of one of the logical functions in judging. Thus the function of the categorical judgment-e.g., All bod
B 129
ies are divisible-is that of the relation of subject to predicate. But the understanding's merely logical use left undetermined to which57 of the two concepts we want to give the function of the subject, and to which the func tion of the predicate. For we can also say, Something divisible is a body. If, on the other hand, I bring the concept of a body under the category of substance, then through this category is determined the fact that the body 's empirical intuition in experience must be considered always as subject only, never as mere predicate. And similarly in all the remaining categories.
Deduction of the Pure Concepts of Understanding Section
II
[First Edition) 5 8 ON THE A PRIORI B ASES FOR THE POSSIBILITY OF EXPERIENCE It is wholly contradictory and impossible that a concept should be pro duced completely a priori and yet refer to an object, if that concept neither were itself included in the concept of possible experience nor consisted of 57 [Reading, with Grillo and the Akademie edition. welchem for welcher.] 5" [See 1. N. Findlay, op. cit. at A 2 1 1B 35 hr. n 22, 1 40-5 \ . See also Arthur Melnick, op. cit at A 22/B 37 hr. n. 27, 15 1-63, 235-50, 405-30. Also H. 1. Paton, op. cit. at B 1 hr. n. 1 52, vol. I, 348-498. Also Hans Vaihinger, "The Transcendental Deduction of the Categones in
SECTION II
[FIRST EDITION]
151
elements of a possible experience. For then it would have no content, be cause no intuition would correspond to it; for intuitions as such, through which objects can be given to us, make up the realm, or the entire object, of possible experience. An a priori concept that did not refer to experience would be only the logical form for a concept, but would not be the con cept itself through which something is5 9 thought. If, therefore, there are a priori concepts, then they cannot indeed con tain anything empirical; but they must nonetheless a1l60 be a priori condi tions for a possible experience, for on this alone can their objective reality rest. Hence if we want to know how pure concepts of understanding are possible, then we must inquire what are the a priori conditions on which the possibility of experience depends, and which underlie experience even if we abstract from everything empirical in appearances. A concept expressing, universally and sufficiently, this formal and objective condition of experience would be called a pure concept of understanding. Once I have pure concepts of understanding, then indeed I can think up even objects that perhaps are impossible. Or I can then think up objects that perhaps are in themselves possible but cannot be given in any experience. Such objects may be incapable of being given in experience because in [framing their concepts by] connecting those pure concepts of understanding, something may be omitted that yet belongs necessarily to the condition of a possible experience (as in the concept of a spirit); or because perhaps pure concepts of understanding are extended beyond what experience can encompass (as in the concept of God). But contrast with this the elements for all a priori cognitions, even for arbitrary and absurd inventions. These elements cannot indeed be taken from experience (for otherwise the cognitions would not be a priori cognitions). But they must always contain the pure a priori conditions of a possible experience and of an object of possible experience. For otherwise not only would nothing whatever be thought through these elements, but they themselves would be without data and hence could not arise even in thought. the First Edition of the Critique of Purr: Reason," in M. S. Gram, ed., op. cit. at A 84/8 1 16 hr. n. 1 , 23-6 1 , cf. Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii hr. n. 5, 202-3 3 1 ; and see H. 1. Paton, "Is the Transcendental Deduction a Patchwork?," in M. S. Gram, ed., op. cit. at A 84/8 1 16 hr. n 1 . , 62-9 1 . See also H. 1. de Vleeschauwer, op. cit. at A 64/8 89 hr. n. 96, vol. 2, 203-4 1 5 . And see R. P. Wolff, op cit. at B 5 hr. n 159, 78- 1 82.] 59 ['would he,' literally. ] 1iO [lauter.]
A 96
1 52
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
Now these concepts, which contain a priori the pure thought in every experience, we find to be the categories. And if we can prove that only by A 97
means of the categories can an object be thought, this will already suffice as a deduction6 1 of them and as a justification of their objective validity. However, not only62 our power to think is engaged in such a thought, i.e.,
not only the understanding, but something more.63 Moreover, the under standing itself, as a cognitive power that is to refer to objects, likewise needs to be elucidated, viz., as regards the possibility of that reference. Hence we must first examine, in terms not of their empirical but of their transcendental character, the subjective sources that make up the a priori foundation for the possibility of experience . I f each singular presentation were entirely foreign to-isolated from, as it were�very other presentation and separated from it, then there would never arise anything like cognition; for cognition is a whole consisting of compared and connected presentations. Hence when I ascribe to sense a synopsis, because sense contains a manifold in its intuition, then to this
receptivity can make cognition possible only when combined with spontaneity. Now, this synopsis there always corresponds a synthesis; and thus
spontaneity is the basis of a threefold synthesis that necessarily occurs in all cognition: viz., the synthesis of the
apprehension of presentations that
are modifications of the mind in intuition; the synthesis of the reproduc tion of these presentations in imagination; and the synthesis of their rec
ognition A 98
in the concept. Now, these three syntheses guide us to three
subjective sources of cognition that make possible the understanding itself and, through it, all experience, which is an empirical product of the understanding.
PRELIMINARY N OTICE The deduction of the categories involves very many difficulties, and re quires us to penetrate quite deeply into the first bases of our cognition as such. Hence, in order to avoid the voluminousness of a complete theory and yet also avoid neglecting anything in such a necessary inquiry, I have 61 [I.e., legitimation.] 62 [einzig.] 63 [Which, therefore, must be elucidated.]
SECTION II
[FIRST EDITION]
1 53
found it advisable in the following four passages64 more to prepare the reader than to instruct him; then, in the subsequent Section 111,65 the ex position of these elements of the understanding will first be put forth sys tematically. Hence the reader should not be deterred by any obscurity found in the meantime. Such obscurity is unavoidable as one begins to walk along a path that has never been walked upon before; but it will, as I hope, be cleared up in the mentioned section to the point of complete insight.
1 . ON THE S YNTHESIS OF ApPREHENSION IN INTUITION No matter from where our presentations arise, as modifications of the mind
they yet belong to inner sense: they belong to inner sense whether they are
produced through the influence of external things or through inner causes; and whether they have come about a priori, or empirically as appearances.
A 99
And, as belonging to inner sense, all our cognitions are yet subject ulti mately to the formal condition of inner sense, i.e., to time. In time they must one and all be ordered, connected, and brought into relations. This is a general comment that must be presupposed throughout what follows. Every intuition contains a manifold. Yet this manifold would not be pre sented as such if the mind did not in the sequence of impressions follow ing one another distinguish time. For any presentation
instant
as contained in one
can never be anything but absolute unity. Now in order for this
manifold to become unity of intuition (as, e.g., in the presentation of space),
it must first be gone through and gathered together.66 This act I call the
synthesis of apprehension.
For it is aimed directly at intuition; and al
though intuition offers a manifold, yet intuition can never bring this mani fold about as a manifold, and as contained moreover
in one presentation,
unless a synthesis occurs in this process. Now, this synthesis must be performed [not just empirically but] also a
priori, i.e., in regard to presentations that are not empirical, because with
out it we could not have a priori the presentations of either space or time.
For these presentations can be produced only through the synthesis of the 64 [The upcoming four passages numbered in arabic numerals and running from A 98 through A 1 14.] 6s [This section, referred to again just below, runs from A 1 1 5 through A 1 30.] 66[Durchlaufen . . . und . . . Zusammennehmung. For the latter, see B 1 14 br. n. 239.]
A 1 00
1 54
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
manifold that sensibility offers in its original receptivity. We have, there fore, a pure synthesis of apprehension.
2.
ON THE S YNTHESIS OF REPRODUCTION IN IMAGINATION67
There is a [natural] law whereby presentations that have often followed or accompanied one another will finally associate, and thereby enter into con nection, with one another. By this connection, even without the object's being present, one of these presentations brings about a transition by the mind, according to a constant rule, to the other presentation. Now, this law of reproduction is indeed merely empirical. It presupposes, however, that appearances themselves are actually subject to such a rule, and that such accompanying or following actually takes place, in conformity with cer tain rules, in the manifold of the presentations of these appearances. For otherwise our empirical imagination68 would never get to do anything con forming to its ability, and hence would, like a defunct ability unknown69 even to ourselves, remain hidden in the mind's interior. Suppose that cin nabar were now red, then black, now light, then heavy; or that a human being were changed now into this and then into that animal shape; or that A 101
on the longest day of the year the land were covered now with fruit, then with ice and snow. In that case my empirical imagination could not even get the opportunity, when presenting red color, to come to think of7o heavy cinnabar. Nor could an empirical synthesis of reproduction take place if a certain word were assigned now to this and then to that thing, or if the same thing were called now by this and then by another name, without any of this being governed by a certain rule to which appearances by themselves are already subject. Hence there must be something that itself makes possible this repro duction of appearances, by being the a priori basis of a necessary synthetic unity of them. And we soon hit upon this something if we bear in mind that appearances are not things in themselves, but are the mere play of our 67 [Einbildung.l
6" [Einbildungskra!t j 69 r unbekannt. ]
7() rill die Gedanken zu bekommen.]
SECTION II
[FIRST EDITION]
1 55
presentations, which in the end amount to determinations of inner sense. Suppose now that we can establish that even our purest a priori intuitions provide us with no cognition except insofar as they contain a [certain] com bination7! of the manifold, viz., a combination that makes possible a thor oughgoing synthesis of reproduction. If we can establish this, then this syn thesis has a basis even prior72 to all experience and is based on a priori principles, and we must assume a pure transcendental synthesis of imagi nation that itself underlies the possibility of all experience (inasmuch as this possibility presupposes necessarily that appearances can be repro duced). Now, obviously, if I want to draw73 a line in thought, or to think the time from one noon to the next, or even just to present a certain num ber, then I must, first of all, necessarily apprehend74 in thought one of these manifold presentations after the other. But if I always lost from my thoughts the preceding presentations (the first parts of the line, the preceding parts of the time,75 or the sequentially presented units76) and did not reproduce them as I proceeded to the following ones, then there could never arise a whole presentation; nor could there arise any of the mentioned thoughts -indeed, not even the purest and most77 basic presentations of space and time. Hence the synthesis of apprehension78 is linked inseparably with the syn thesis of reproduction. And since the synthesis of apprehension constitutes the transcendental basis for the possibility of all cognitions as such (not merely of the empirical but also of the pure a priori ones), the reproduc tive synthesis of the imagination belongs to the transcendental acts of the mind; and, on account of this involvement of the imagination, let us call this power the transcendental power of imagination.79 7 1 [On (linking or) combination (Verbindung), assembly (Zusammensetzung), and connection (Verkniipfung), see below, B 201 n. 30.] 72 [VOr.] " [Reading, with Erdmann, ziehen for ziehe.] 74 [fassen. ] " [Between noons.] 76 [Of the number.] 77 [erst ] 78 [Apprehension.]
79 [Vermogen der Einbildungskraft.]
A 1 02
1 56
A 1 03
PART II
3.
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
ON THE S YNTHESIS OF RECOGNITION IN THE C ONCEPT
Without the consciousness that what we are thinking is the same as what we thought an instant before, all reproduction in the series of presentations would be futile. For what we are thinking would in the current state be a new presentation, which would not belong at all to the act by which it was to be produced little by little. Hence the manifold of the presentation would never make up a whole, because it would lack the unity80 that only con sciousness can impart to it. If, in counting, I were to forget that the units8 1 now hovering before my mind82 were added up by me little by little, then I would not cognize the amount's being produced through this successive addition of one [unit] to another; nor, therefore, would I cognize the num ber. For this number's concept consists solely in the consciousness of this unity of synthesis. The very word
concept83
could on its own lead us to this observation.
For this one consciousness is what unites in one presentation what is mani fold, intuited little by little, and then also reproduced. Often this conscious ness may be only faint, so that we do not [notice it] in the act itself, i.e., do not connect it directly with the presentation's production, but [notice it] A 1 04
only in the act' s effect.84 Yet, despite these differences, a consciousness must always be encountered, even if it lacks striking clarity; without this consciousness, concepts, and along with them cognition of objects, are quite impossible. And here we need to clarify85 what we mean by the expression
ject of presentations. 86
an ob
We said above87 that appearances themselves are
nothing but sensible presentations. But presentations in themselves must
80 [Eillheit.] 81 [Eillheitell.] 82 [ vor Sillllell.] 83 [Begriff, from begreifell in the sense of 'to comprise' (but 1I0t in the sense of 'to compre hend' as meaning 'to grasp' ) Emphasis added.]
84 [l.e., in the presentation.] 85 [sich verstiilldlich machell ] 86 [Emphasis added.] 87 [A 101 .]
SECTION II
[FIRST EDITION]
1 57
not in the same way88 be regarded as objects (outside our power of pre sentation).89 What, then, do we mean when we talk about an object cor responding to, and hence also distinct from, cognition? We can easily see that this object must be thought only as something as such90 X. 9 1 For, af =
ter all, outside our cognition we have nothing that we could contrast with this cognition as something corresponding to it. We find, however, that our thought of the reference of all cognition to its object carries with it something concerning necessity. It does so inas much as this object is regarded as what keeps our cognitions from being determined haphazardly or arbitrarily, [and as what ensures], rather, that they are determined a priori in a certain way. For these cognitions are to
refer to an object, and hence in reference to this object they must also nec essarily agree with one another, i.e., they must have that unity in which the concept of an object consists. We are, however, dealing only with the manifold of our presentations. And since that x (the object) which corresponds to them is to be something distinct from all of our presentations, this object is nothing for us. Clearly, therefore, the unity that the object makes necessary can be nothing other than the formal unity of consciousness in the synthesis of the manifold of the presentations. When we have brought about synthetic unity in the mani fold of intuition-this is when we say that we cognize the object. This unity
is impossible, however, unless the intuition can92 be produced according
to a rule through a [certain] function of synthesis, viz., a function of syn thesis that makes the reproduction of the manifold necessary a priori and makes possible a concept in which this manifold is united. Thus when we think of a triangle as an object, we do so by being conscious of the assem bly93 of three straight lines according to a rule whereby such an intuition can always be exhibited.94 Now this
unity o/ the rule determines all that is
manifold, and limits it to conditions that make possible the unity of apper"" [I.e., as presentations.] "9 [Presentations, as such, can be "objects of" other presentations only in the sense that these other presentations refer to them. Cf. the end of A 108.] 9O[Or 'something in general': etwas uberhaupt. My reason for translating uberhaupt by 'as such' is given at B xxvii br. n. 106.]
91 [I.e., the unknown (as in a mathematical equation).] 92 [Literally, 'was able to. '] 93 [Zusammensetzung; see B 201 n. 30.] 94[dargestellt. Concerning my renden ng of this term, see B xvii br. n. 73.]
A 1 05
158
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
ception. And the concept of this unity is the presentation of the object
= x,
i.e., the object that I think through the mentioned95 predicates of a triangle. A 1 06
All cognition requires a concept, no matter how imperfect or obscure that concept may be. But a concept, in terms of its form, is always some thing that is universal and that serves as a rule. Thus the concept of body serves, in terms of the unity of the manifold thought through this concept, as a rule for our cognition of external appearances. But a concept can be a rule for intuitions only by presenting, when appearances are given to us, the necessary reproduction of their manifold and hence the synthetic unity in our consciousness of these appearances. Thus when we perceive some thing external to us, the concept of body makes necessary the presentation of extension, and with it the presentations of impenetrability, shape, etc. Any necessity is always based on a transcendental condition. There must, therefore, be a transcendental basis to be found: a transcendental basis of the unity of consciousness in the synthesis of the manifold of all our in tuitions; and hence a transcendental basis also of the concepts of objects as such, and consequently also of all objects of experience-a transcen dental basis without which it would be impossible to think any object for our intuitions. For this object is nothing more than that something whose concept expresses such a necessity of synthesis. This original and transcendental condition is none other than
A 1 07
dental apperception.
transcen
Now there is, in inner perception, consciousness of
oneself in terms of the determinations of one's state. This consciousness of oneself is merely empirical and always mutable; it can give us no constant or enduring96 self in this flow of inner appearances. It is usually called in
ner sense, or empirical apperception. But what is to be presented neces sarily as numerically identical cannot be thought as such through empiri
cal data. A condition that is to validate9 7 such a transcendental
presupposition must be one that precedes all experience and that makes ex perience itself possible. Now there can take place in us no cognitions, and no connection and unity of cognitions among one another, without that unity of conscious ness which precedes all data of intuitions, and by reference to which all presentation of objects is alone possible. Now this pure, original, and im95 [gedachten. which literally mean� 'thought ' If we took the term in its literal meaning here. we would have to read: 'through the predicates thought [in the concept] of a triangle.'] 96 [stehendes oder bleibendes.] 97 [ge/tend machen.]
SECTION II
[FIRST EDITION]
1 59
mutable consciousness I shall call transcendental apperception. That this apperception deserves this name98 is evident already from the fact that even the purest objective unity, viz., that of the a priori concepts (space and time), is99 possible only by referring the intuitions 100 to this apperception. Hence the numerical unity of this apperception lies a priori at the basis of all con cepts, just as the manifoldness of space and time lies a priori at the basis of the intuitions of sensibility. Now this transcendental unity of apperception brings about, from all pos
A 1 08
sible appearances whatever that can be together in one experience, a co herence of all these presentations according to laws. For this unity of con sciousness would be impossible if the mind, in cognizing the manifold,
could not become conscious of the identity of function whereby it l O l syn thetically combines the manifold in one cognition. Hence the original and necessary consciousness of one's own identity is at the same time a con sciousness of an equally necessary unity of the synthesis of all appear ances according to concepts-these concepts being rules that not only make these appearances necessarily reproducible, but that thereby also de termine an object for our intuition of these appearances, i.e., determine a concept of something wherein these appearances necessarily cohere. For the mind could not possibly think its own identity in the manifoldness of its presentations, and moreover think this identity a priori, if it did not have present to it the identity of its act-the act that subjects all synthesis of apprehension (a synthesis that is empirical) to a transcendental unity, and thereby first makes possible the coherence of those presentations 1 02 ac cording to a priori rules. By the same token, 1 03 we shall now be able to !Os 04 All pre determine more accurately our concept 1 of an abject as such. sentations have, as presentations, their object, and can themselves in turn be objects of other presentations. The only objects that can be given to us directly are appearances, and what in these appearances refers directly to 98 [Transcendental apperception.)
99 [Reading, with Erdmann and the Akademie edition, sei for sein.) loo[Of space and time.) IOI [Reading, with Wille, es for sie, which would refer back to the mentioned unity.) 1 02 [Or, possibly, 'of that synthesis.') IOJ [auch.)
1 04 [Reading, with Adickes, unseren Begriff for unfiere Begriffe .) I05 [Following the Akademie edition in extending the emphasis on 'object' to include 'as such. ')
A 1 09
1 60
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
the object is called intuition. These appearances, however, are not things
in themselves. Rather, they are themselves only presentations that in turn have their object. This object, therefore, can no longer be intuited by us,
and may hence be named the nonempirical object, 1 06 i.e., the transcenden tal object x. 1 07 =
The pure concept of this transcendental object (which object is actually always the same, x, in all our cognitions) is what is able to provide all 1 08 =
our empirical concepts in general 1 09 with reference to an object, 1 I 0 i.e., with objective l l l reality. Now this concept cannot contain any determinate in tuition whatever, and hence presumably pertains to nothing but that unity which must be encountered in any manifold of cognition insofar as this manifold has reference to an object. This reference, however, is nothing but the necessary unity of consciousness, and hence also of the synthesis of the manifold brought about through the mind's concertedl 12 function of combining this manifold in one presentation. Now this unity must be re garded as necessary a priori (because otherwise cognition would be with out an object); and hence the reference to a transcendental object, i.e., the objective reality of our empirical cognition, presumably rests on a tran A 110
scendental law. This transcendental law says that all appearances must, in
sofar as objects are to be given to us through them, be subject tol l 3 a priori
rules of the synthetic unity of appearances, a priori rules according to which alone their relation 1 1 4 in empirical intuition is possible. I.e., the transcen dental law says: just as appearances must in mere intuition be subject to the formal conditions of space and time, so must appearances in experi ence be subject to conditions of the necessary unity of apperception indeed, this law says that through these conditions alone does any cogni tion first becomes possible. 1 06 [The object as such (uberhaupt).] 1 07 [Cf. A 250-5 1 .] 108 [Reading, with Erdmann and the Akademie edition, allen for in allen.] 109 [uberhaupt.] l I o [ Gegenstand. ]
1 1 1 [objektiv. ] " 2 [gemeinschaftlich. ] 1 I 3 [stehen . . . unter.]
1 1 4 [To one another.]
SECTION II
[FIRST EDITION]
161
4. PRELIMINARY EXPLANATION OF THE
POSSIBILITY OF THE C ATEGORIES AS A PRIORI COGNITIONS There is only one experience, in which all perceptions are presented as be ing in thoroughgoing and law-governed coherence, just as there is only one space and one time, in which all forms of appearance and all relation of being or not-being ll 5 occur; when we speak of different experiences, then these are merely so many perceptions-all such perceptions belonging to one and the same general experience. For the form of experience consists precisely in this thoroughgoing and synthetic unity of perceptions; and this unity is nothing but the synthetic unity of appearances according to con cepts.
A unity of synthesis according to empirical concepts would be entirely contingent. And if empirical concepts did not rest on a transcendental ba
A Ill
sis of unity, then it would be possible for our soul to be filled with a crowd of appearances that yet could never turn into experience. But then there would also no longer be any reference of cognition to objects. For cogni tion would then lack its connection according to universal and necessary laws. Therefore, although it would be intuition devoid of thought, yet it would never be cognition, and hence would for us be tantamount to noth ing at all. The a priori conditions for a possible experience as such are at the same time conditions for the possibility of objects of experience. Now I main tain that the categories set forth above 1 l6 are nothing but the conditions of thought in a possible experience, just as space and time embody1 l 7
the con
ditions of intuition for that
same experience. Therefore the categories are
also basic concepts for thinking objects as such for appearances; and hence they have a priori objective validity-which is in fact what we wanted to know. But the possibility of these categories-indeed, even their necessity rests on the reference that our entire sensibility, and with it also all pos sible appearances, have to original apperception. In original apperception everything must necessarily conform to the conditions of the thoroughgo ing unity of self-consciousness. I.e., in it everything must necessarily be 1 " [Or 'nonexistence' : Nichtsein. Cf. A 801B 106.] 1 1 6 [Reading, with Erdmann and the Akademie edition, aben for eben.] 1 1 7 [enthalten.]
A 1 12
1 62
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
subject to the universal functions of synthesis, viz., of that synthesis ac cording to concepts in which alone apperception can prove a priori its thor oughgoing and necessary identity. Thus the concept of a cause is nothing but a synthesis
according to concepts (where what follows in the time
se
ries is synthesized with other appearances); and without such unity, which has its a priori rule and which subjects appearances to itself, no thorough going and universal and hence necessary unity of consciousness would be encountered in the manifold of perceptions. But then these perceptions would also not belong to any experience, and hence would be without an object; they would be nothing but a blind play of presentations-i.e., they would be less than a dream. All attempts to derive those pure concepts of understanding from expe rience and to attribute to them a merely empirical origin are, therefore, en tirely idle and futile. It goes without sayingl lS that, e.g., the concept of a cause carrie s with it the characteristic1 1 9 of necessity. No experience what ever can give us necessity. Experience can indeed teach us that upon one appearance something else usually follows. But it cannot teach us that something else must follow 1 20 the appearance necessarily; nor can it teach us that from the appearance, as a condition, we can make an a priori and quite universal inference to the consequence. 1 2 1 As regards the empirical A 113
rule of association, on the other hand, we must indeed assume it through out122 when we say that everything in a sequence 1 23 of events is subject to rules to the point that nothing ever happens without being preceded by something that it always follows. This rule, taken as a law of nature-on what, I ask, does it rest? And how is even this association possible? The basis for the possibility of the manifold's association, insofar as this basis lies in the object, is called the manifold's
affinity.
I ask, therefore, how do
you make comprehensible to yourselves the thoroughgoing l 24 affinity of appearances (whereby they are, and must be, subject to 1 25 constant laws)? 1 1 8 [ '1 won't mention,' literally.] 1 19 [Zug.] 12° [fo/gen.] 1 2 1 [Fo/ge. ] 122 [durchgangig.] 123 [Reihen/oige.] 124 [durchgangig. ] 1 25 [unter .
stehen. und darunter gehoren.]
SECTION II
[FIRST EDITION]
1 63
On my principles the possibility of this affinity is quite readily compre hensible. All possible appearances belong, as presentations, to the entire possible self-consciousness. But from this self- consciousness, taken as a transcendental presentation, numerical identity is inseparable and is a priori certain. For nothing can enter cognition without doing so by means of this original apperception. This identity must, then, necessarily enter into the synthesis of everything manifold in appearances, insofar as this synthesis is to become empirical cognition. Hence appearances are subject to a priori conditions to which their synthesis (of apprehension) must conform1 26 thor oughly. 1 27 But the presentation of a universal condition according to which a certain manifold can be posited (hence posited in one and the same way) is called a
rule;
tation is called a
and if the manifold
law. Therefore all
must be
so posited, then the presen
appearances stand in a thoroughgoing
connection according to necessary laws, and hence stand in a
dental affinity of which the empirical affinity is
transcen
the mere consequence.
I suppose it sounds quite preposterous and strange that nature should
conform to 1 28 our subjective basis, apperception-indeed, that nature should in regard to its law-govemedness depend on this basis. But we must bear in mind that this nature is intrinsically1 29 nothing but a sum of ap
pearances, and hence is not a thing in itself1 30 but is merely a multitude of
the mind's presentations. If we bear this in mind, then we shall not be sur prised that we see nature in its unity merely in the root power1 3 1 for all our cognition, viz., in transcendental apperception; we there see nature in that unity, viz., on whose account alone it can be called object of all possible experience, i.e., nature. Nor shall we then be surprised that, precisely be cause of this, we can cognize that unity a priori, and hence also as ne cessary-a goal that we would indeed have to abandon if this unity were given in itself, independently of the primary sources of our thought. For I do not know from where we might then get the synthetic propositions about such a universal unity of nature, since we would in that case have to take them from the objects of nature themselves. That, however, could be done 126 [gemiijJ sein.] 127 [durchgiingig.] 128 [sich nach . . . richten.] 129 [an sich.] 130 [an sich.] 131 [Radikalvermogen.]
A 114
1 64
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
only empirically. Hence we could obtain from this source none but a merely contingent unity; but this unity would fall far short of the necessary coher ence that we mean when we speak of nature.
A 1 15
Deduction of the Pure Concepts of Understanding Section III [First Edition] ON THE UNDERSTANDING ' S RELATION TO OBJECTS AS S UCH, AND THE POSSIBILITY OF C OGNIZING THEM A PRIORI 132 Let us now present in a unified and coherent way what in the preceding section we set forth separately and individually. There are three subjective sources of cognition on which rests the possibility of an experience as such and of cognition of its objects: sense, imagination, and apperception. Each of these can be considered as empirical, viz., in its application to given ap pearances. But all of them are also a priori elements or foundations that make possible even this empirical use of them. [In this empirical use,] sense presents appearances empirically in perception; imagination does so in as socia tion (and reproduction); apperception does so in the empirica l COll sc iousness of the identity of these reproductive presentations with the ap
pearances through which they were given, and hence in recognition. 1 33 A 1 16
But all of perception (in view of its being presentation) is based a priori on pure intuition (viz., on time, the form of inner intuition); association is based a priori o n the pure synthesis o f imagination; and empirical con sciousness is based a priori on pure apperception, i.e., on the thoroughgo ing identity of oneself in all possible presentations. 1 32 [See Walter Watson, op. cit. at B xvi hr. n 71 , 143.] 1 "[Deleting the emphasis on 'recognition' that was added in the Akademie edition. ]
SECTION III
[FIRST EDITION]
1 65
If, now, we want to pursue the inner basis of this connection of presen tations, and pursue it to the point at which the presentations must all con verge in order that there they may first of all acquire the unity of cognition needed for a possible experience, then we must start from pure appercep tion. All intuitions are nothing for us and are of no concern to us whatso ever if they cannot be taken up into consciousness, whether they impinge upon itl 34 directly or indirectly; and solely through consciousness is cog nition possible. We are conscious a priori of the thoroughgoing identity of ourselves in regard to all presentations that can ever belong to our cogni tion, and are conscious of it as a necessary condition for the possibility of all presentations. (For any such presentations present something in me only inasmuch as together with all others l 35 they belong to one consciousness; and hence they must at least be capable of being connected in it.) This prin ciple l 36 holds 137 a priori, and may be called the transcendental principle
of the unity
of whatever is manifold in our presentations (and hence also
in intuition). Now the unity of the manifold in a subject is synthetic; there fore pure apperception provides us with a principle of the synthetic unity of the manifold in all possible intuition.138 1 34 [More literally, 'influence it': darau! einfiiefJen.] 1 35 [Reading, with Erdmann, allen anderen for allem anderen ('with everything else').] 136 [Prinzip.] 137 [feststehen. ]
138This proposition is of great importance; we must attend to it carefully. All pre sentations have a necessary reference to a possible empirical consciousness. For if they did not have this reference, and becoming conscious of them were entirely impossible, then this would be tantamount to saying that they do not exist at all. But all empirical consciousness has a necessary reference to a transcendental con sciousness (a consciousness that precedes all particular experience), viz., the con sciousness of myself as original apperception. It is therefore absolutely necessary that in my cognition all consciousness belongs to one consciousness (that of my self). Here, then, is a synthetic unity of the manifold (in consciousness) which is cognized a priori; this unity provides the basis for synthetic a priori propositions pertaining to pure thought, just as space and time provide the basis for such [i.e., a priori] propositions concerning the form of mere intuition. The synthetic propo sition that all the varied empirical consciousness must be combined in one single self-consciousness is the absolutely first and synthetic principle" of our thought as such. We must not, however, ignore the fact that the mere presentation I, in refer ence to all other presentations (whose collective unity makes it possible), is tran scendental consciousness. Now this presentation may be clear (empirical conscious ness)h or obscure-that does not matter here; indeed, nor does whether the
A 117
1 66
A 118
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
But this synthetic unity presupposes or implies 1 39 a synthesis; and if that unity is to be a priori necessary, then the synthesis must also be an a priori one. Therefore the transcendental unity of apperception refers to the pure synthesis of imagination as an a priori condition for the possibility of all assembly140 of the manifold in one cognition. But only the productive syn thesis of imagination141 can take place a priori; for the
reproductive
one
rests on conditions of experience. 142 Therefore the principle of the neces sary unity of the imagination's pure (productive) synthesis prior to apper ception is the basis for the possibility of all cognition, especially of expe rience. Now the synthesis of the manifold in imagination is called transcen dental if, without distinction of intuitions, it deals with nothing but the a priori combination 143 of the manifold; and the unity of this synthesis is called transcendental if it is presented as a priori necessary in reference to the original unity of apperception. Now since this original unity of apper ception underlies the possibility of all cognition, the transcendental unity of the synthesis of imagination is the pure form of all possible cognition; presentation is actual. Rather, the possibility of the logical fonn of all cognition depends" necessarily on the relation to this apperception as a power. a[ Grundsatz. ] b [VorUinder deletes '(empirical consciousness)'.] C[ruhen.] 1 39 [einschliej3en.] 1 40 [Zusammensetzung; see B 201 n. 30.] 141 [Deleting the (continued) emphasis on 'synthesis of imagination.'] 1 42 [Cf. B 156, and A 141fB 1 8 1 br. n. 90. And cf. the Anthropo[ogy, Ak. VII, 167: "The imagi nation (jacultas imaginandi), as a power to intuit even when the object is not present, is ei ther productive or reproductive. As productive, it is a power of original exhibition of the ob ject (exhibitio originaria), and hence of an exhibition that precedes expenence. As reproductive, it is a power of derivative exhibition (exhibitio derivativa), an exhibition that brings back to the mind an empirical intuition that we have had before." Kant then turns to a different type of "productivity" of the imagination (ibid., 1 67-68): "The imagination, insofar as it pro duces imaginings voluntarily as well, is calledfantasy. . . . [Hence] (in other words) the imagi nation then either engages in fiction (i.e., it is productive), or in recall (i.e., it is reproduc tive). But this does not mean that the productive imagination is then creative, i.e., capable of producing a presentation of sense that was never before given to our power of sense; rather, we can always show [from where the imagination took] its material." Cf. also, in the same work, §§ 3 1 -33, Ak. VII, 1 74-82, and the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 240.] 143 [On Oinking or) combination (Verbindung), assembly (Zusammensetzung), and connection (Verkniipfung), see B 201 n. 30.]
SECTION III
[FIRST EDITION]
1 67
and hence all objects of possible experience must be presented a priori through this form.
The unity of apperception [considered] in reference to the synthesis of imagination is the understanding; and the same unity as referred l44 to the transcendental synthesis of imagination is pure understanding. Hence there
A 119
are in the understanding pure a priori cognitions that contain the necessary unity of the pure synthesis of imagination in regard to all possible appear ances. These cognitions, however, are the categories, i.e., the pure con cepts of understanding. Consequently man's empirical cognitive power con tains necessarily an understanding that refers to all objects of the senses, although it does so only by means of intuition and the synthesis of intu ition performed by imagination. Hence all appearances, as data for a pos sible experience, are subject to this understanding. 145 Now this reference of appearances to possible experience is likewise necessary. (For without this reference146 appearances would provide us with no cognition whatso ever and hence would not concern us at all.) Thus it follows that pure un derstanding, by means of the categories, is a formal and synthetic principle of all experiences, and that appearances have a necessary reference to the
understanding. Let us now show how the understanding by means of the categories co heres necessarily with appearances, and let us do so by starting from the bottom1 47 upward, viz., from the empirical. What is first given to us is ap pearance. When appearance is combined with consciousness, it is called perception. (Without the relation to an at least possible consciousness, ap pearance could never become for us an object of cognition, and hence would be nothing to us; and since appearance does not in itself have any objective reality and exists only in cognition, it would then be nothing at all.) But because every appearance contains a manifold, so that different perceptions are in themselves encountered in the mind sporadically and in dividually, these perceptions need to be given a combination that in sense itself they cannot have. Hence there is in us an active 148 power to synthe144 [beziehungsweise .]
1 45 [Reading, with Erdmann, welchem for welchen.] 146 [Or, perhaps, 'without this possible experience' : ohne diese.] 147 [unten.] 148 [tiitig.]
A 120
1 68
A
121
A
122
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
size this manifold. This power we call imagination; and the act 149 that it performs directly on perceptions I call apprehension. 150 For the imagina tion is to bring the manifold of intuition to 151 an image; hence it must be forehand take the impressions up into its activity, i.e., apprehend them. Clearly, however, even this apprehension of the manifold WOUld, by it self, produce as yet no image and no coherence of impressions, if there did not also exist a subjective basis for summoning up a perception from which the mind has passed to another [and bringing it] over to the subsequent ones-and for thus exhibiting entire series of perceptions. I.e., in addition to apprehension we need a reproductive power of imagination, which, by the same token, is indeed only empirical. But if presentations reproduced one another indiscriminately, 152 just as they happen to come together, then there would again arise no determinate coherence of presentations and hence no cognition whatever, but merely an accumulation of them devoid of any rule. Hence there must be for this reproduction of them a rule whereby some presentation combines in the imagination with this presentation rather than with some other one. This subjective and empirical basis of reproduction according to rules is called the association of presentations. But suppose that this unity of association did not also have an objective basis, a basis making the apprehension of appearances by the imagination impossible except under the condition of a possible synthetic unity of this apprehension; in that case, for appearances to yield fortuitously 15 3 a co herence of human cognitions would be something entirely contingent as well. For even if we had the power to associate perceptions, whether in deed these perceptions would be associable would yet remain intrinsi1 49 [Handlung.]
lsu.rhat the imagination is a necessary ingredient of perception itself has, I sup pose, never occurred to any psychologist. This is so partly because this power has been limited by psychologists to reproduction only, and partly because they be lieved that the senses not only supply us with impressions, but indeed also as semble these impressions and thus bring about images of objects. But this undoubt edly requires something more than our receptivity for impressions, viz., a function for their synthesis. 1 51 ['into,' literally.] 152 [ohne Unterschied I ' '' [sich . . . schicken I
SECTION III
[FIRST EDITION]
1 69
cally 1 54 quite undetennined and contingent. And in case they were not as sociable, there could be a multitude of perceptions, and presumably also an entire sensibility, in which there would be much empirical conscious ness to be found in my mind-yet found as separate and without belong ing to a consciousness of myself. This, however, is impossible. For only by classing all perceptions with one consciousness (original apperception) can I say, for all perceptions, that I am conscious of them. Hence there must be an objective basis (i.e., a basis into which we can have a priori insight priorI 55 to all empirical laws of the imagination) 156 on which rests the possibility-indeed, the necessity-of a law extending through all appear ances: a law whereby appearances are throughout1 57 to be regarded as data of the senses that are intrinsically associable and subject, in reproduction, to universal rules of a thoroughgoing 158 connection. This objective basis of all association of appearances I call their affinity. This basis, however, we cannot find anywhere except in the principle of the unity of appercep tion in regard to all cognitions that are to belong to me. According to this principle, all appearances must without exception 159 enter the mind or be apprehended in such a way that they accord with the unity of appercep tion. This would not be possible without synthetic unity in their connec tion, and hence this unity is objectively necessary as well. The objective unity of all (empirical) consciousness in one conscious ness (i.e., in original apperception) is, therefore, the necessary condition even of all possible perception; and the affinity of all appearances (whether near or remote) is a necessary consequence of a synthesis in imagination that is based a priori on rules. Hence the imagination is also a power of an a priori synthesis, and this is the reason why we give it the name of productive imagination. And in sofar as the imagination's aim regarding everything manifold in appear ance is nothing more than to provide necessary unity in the synthesis of appearance, this synthesis may be called the transcendental function of the imagination. Hence from what has been said thus far it is indeed evident, 154[an sich; similarly a little further down in this paragraph.] 155 [VOr.]
156 [Parentheses added ] 157 [durchgiingig.] 158 [durchgiingig. ] 159 [durchaus. ]
A 1 23
1 70
A
124
A
125
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
although strange, that only by means of this transcendental function of the imagination does even the affinity of appearances become possible, and with it their association, and through this association finally their reproduction according to laws, and consequently experience itself. For without this tran scendental function no concepts whatever of objects would meld 1 60 into one experience. For in this constant and enduring t 61 (of pure apperception) consists the correlate of all our presentations insofar as becoming conscious of them i s so much as possible. And all consciousness belongs to an all encompassing pure apperception just as all sensible intuition belongs, as presentation, to a pure inner intuition, viz., to time. Now, this apperception is what must be added to pure imagination in order to make its function intellectual. For the synthesis of imagination, although performed a priori, is yet always in itself sensible, because it combines the manifold--e.g., the shape of a triangle-only as it appears in intuition. But through the mani fold's relation to the unity of apperception, concepts-which belong to the understanding-will be able to come about, but only by means of imagi nation as referred to sensible intuition. 162 Hence we have a pure imagination, as a basic power of the human soul which underlies a priori all cognition. By means of pure imagination we link the manifold of intuition, on the one hand, with the condition of the necessary unity of pure apperception, on the other hand. By means of this transcendental function of the imagination the two extreme ends, viz., sen sibility and understanding, must necessarily cohere; for otherwise sensi bility would 163 indeed yield appearances, but would yield no objects of an empirical cognition, and hence no experience. Actual experience consists in apprehension of appearances, their association (reproduction), and thirdly their recognition; in this third [element] (which is the highest 1 M of these merely empirical elements of experience), such experience contains con160 [zusammenjliejJen.]
1 6 1 [Emphasis added. Cf. 68 br. n. 167.] 1 62 [Vaihinger, interpolating the words 'are brought into play,' reads this sentence as follows: 'But through the manifold's relation to the unity of apperception concepts are brought into play, which belong to the understanding but are able to come about only by means of imagi nation as referred to sensible intuition. ' ] 1 63 [Reading, with the Akademie edition. wiirde for wiirden, which would make jelle refer back to 'sensibility and understanding. ' ] 1 64[Moving 'the highest' from just i n front of the parentheses to just within them.]
SECTION III
[FIRST EDITION]
171
cepts, which make possible the fonnal unity of experience and with it all objective validity (truth) of empirical cognition. Now these bases of the recognition 165 of the manifold, insofar as they concern merely the form of an experience as such, are the categories. Hence the categories underlie all fonnal unity in the synthesis of imagination, and, by means of this syn thesis, underlie also the formal unity Of166 all empirical use of the imagi nation down to the appearances (i.e., its use in recognition, reproduction, association, apprehension). For only by means of those elements 167 can ap pearances belong to cognition, and to our consciousness as such, and hence to ourselves. Hence the order and regularity in the appearances that we call nature 1 68 are brought into them by ourselves; nor indeed could such order and regu larity be found in appearances, had not we, or the nature of our mind, put them into appearances originally. For this unity of nature is to be a nec essary, i.e., an a priori certain, unity of the connection 169 of appearances. But how indeed could we have the ability to institute 1 70 a priori a synthetic unity, if our mind's original cognitive sources did not a priori contain sub jective bases of such unity, and if these subjective conditions were not at the same time valid objectively, viz., by being the bases for the possibility of cognizing an object in experience at all? We have earlier explicated the understanding in various ways: as a spon taneity of cognition (in contrast to the receptivity of sensibility); as a power to think; or as a power of concepts, or again of judgments. These expli1 65 [I.e., the concepts contalned in it.] 166 [Adickes drops the genitive, reading aller empirischer Gebrauch for alles empirischen Ge brauchs. On his reading, the categories would here be said to underlie "all empirical use . . . " rather than all formal unity of that use.]
167 [Including, therefore, recognition and the concepts contained in it, and hence only by means of the categories that these concepts are "insofar as they concern merely the form of an ex perience as such " ] 1 68 [Or: 'the order and regularity in appearances, which order and regularity we call nature.' Kant uses the term 'nature' both materially and formally (see B 163-65), i.e., as standing ei ther for the sum of appearances (as at B 1 63 and implied, e.g., near the end of A 127) or for their (order or) unity (as at B 165 and, just below, at A 127-28). Accordingly, Natureinheit just below can mean either 'unity of nature' or, instead, 'natural unity' (taken as the unity that is nature).] 1 69 [Le., synthesis.] l7u [au} die Bahn b,.ingei1. j
A 1 26
1 72
A
127
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
cations, when inspected closely, 1 7 1 all come to the same. We may now char acterize the understanding as our power of rules. This criterion of an un derstanding is more fruitful and comes closer to its nature. l72 Sensibility gives us forms (of intuition), but the understanding gives us rules. The un derstanding is always busy scrutinizing appearances with the aim of dis covering some rule in them. Rules, insofar as they are objective l73 (and hence attach to the cognition of the object l74 necessarily), are called laws. Many laws are indeed learned by us through experience. Yet these laws are only particular determinations of still higher laws. And the highest among these laws (those under which all other laws fall) issue a priori from the understanding itself. These laws are not taken from experience; rather, they must provide appearances with the latter 's law-govemedness, and pre cisely thereby must make experience possible. Hence understanding is not merely a power of making rules for oneself by comparing appearances; un derstanding is itself legislative for nature. I.e., without understanding there would not be any nature at all, i.e., any synthetic unity of the manifold of appearances according to rules; for appearances, as such, cannot occur out side us, but exist only in our sensibility. This nature, 175 however, as object of cognition in an experience, with everything that this nature may con tain, is possible only in the unity of apperception. The unity of appercep tion, however, is the transcendental basis of the necessary law-govemedness of all appearances in one experience. This same unity of apperception in regard to a manifold of presentations (viz., the manifold's being deter mined by a single presentation 1 76) is the rule, and our power of these rules is the understanding. Hence all appearances, insofar as they are possible experiences, lie a priori in the understanding and obtain from it their for mal possibility; just as, insofar as they are mere intuitions, they lie in sen sibility and are, in terms of their form, possible solely through it. 1 71 [bei Lichte.] 172 [ Wesen.] 173 [objektiv. In his working copy of edition A, Kant changes the beginning of this sentence to the following: "Rules, insofar as they declare existence to be necessary," . . . See Prelimi nary Studies and Supplementary Entries, Ak. XXIII, 46.] 174[Gegenstand. ] 175 [1 follow Erdmann in construing Diese as referring back to 'nature ' Vaihinger similarly replaces Diese by Jene.] 1 76 [l.e., a manifold of intuitions proffered by sensibility is determined by [aus] a concept of
understanding (i.e., by a category).]
SECTION III
[FIRST EDITION]
173
Thus however exaggerated and preposterous it may sound if we say that the understanding is itself the source of the laws of nature, and hence the source of nature's formal unity, such an assertion is nonetheless correct and is appropriate for the object, 177 viz., experience. It is true that empirical laws, as empirical, cannot in any way derive their origin from pure under standing, any more than the immense manifoldness of appearances can be comprehended adequately from the pure form of sensible intuition. How ever, all empirical laws are only particular determinations of the pure laws of understanding. Under these pure laws, and according to their standard, are empirical laws possible in the first place, and do appearances take on a law-governed form; just as all appearances as well, regardless of the va riety in their empirical form, must still always conform to the conditions of the pure form of sensibility. Hence pure understanding is, through 178 the categories, the law of the synthetic unity of all appearances; and it thereby first and originally makes experience possible in terms of its form. This, however, is all that we had to accomplish in the transcendental deduction of the categories, viz.: to make comprehensible this relation of understanding to sensibility, and by means of sensibility to all objects of experience; and hence to make com prehensible the objective validity of understanding's pure a priori con cepts, and thereby to ascertain their origin and truth.
A 1 28
S UMMARY PRESENTATION: THAT THIS DEDUCTION OF THE PURE C ATEGORIES OF UNDERSTANDING Is C ORRECT AND Is THE ONLY ONE POSSIBLE I79 If the objects dealt with by our cognition were things in themselves, then we could have no a priori concepts of them at all. For from where could we get such concepts? If we got them from the object l80 (and I shall not here inquire again how we could become acquainted with this object), then our concepts would not be a priori ones but would be merely empirical. If 1 77 [The object that this nature is.] l78 [in.] 179 [See the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak. IV, the n. at 474-76, where Kant says that he will make improvements for the B Deduction.] 1 80 [Objekt here and just below, Gegenstand above (in the plural) and again further below.]
A 1 29
1 74
A 1 30
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
we got the concepts from ourselves, then [they would lack objective va lidity. For] what is merely in us cannot determine the character of an ob ject distinct from our presentations; i.e., such a [subjective] concept can be no ground as to why there should be a thing having 1 8 1 something like what we have in our thoughts, and why all this presentation should not rather be empty. If, on the other hand, we are indeed dealing 182 with nothing but appearances, then it is not only possible but also necessary that certain a priori concepts should precede our empirical cognition of objects. For ap pearances, as such, amount to an object that is only in us, because a mere modification of our sensibility is not to be met with outside us at all. Now the very conception 183 that all these appearances (and hence all objects that we can deal with) are one and all in me, i.e., are determinations of my iden tical self, conveys as necessary a thoroughgoing unity of them in one and the same apperception. But the form of all cognition of objects (i.e., the form whereby the manifold is thought as belonging to one object) likewise consists in this unity of possible consciousness. Therefore the manner in which the manifold of sensible presentation (intuition) belongs to one con sciousness precedes all cognition of the object, as the intellectual form of that cognition, and itself amounts to a formal a priori cognition of all ob jects as such insofar as they are thought (the categories). The synthesis of this [sensible intuition] by pure imagination, and the unity of all presen tations by reference to original apperception precede all empirical cogni tion. Hence pure concepts of understanding are a priori possible, and in reference to experience even necessary, only because our cognition deals with nothing but appearances. For the possibility of appearances lies in our selves, and their connection and unity (in the presentation of an object) is to be met with merely in us. Hence this connection and unity must precede all experience and must also make experience, in terms of its form, pos sible in the first place. And our deduction of the categories has indeed been conducted on this basis-the one and only possible basis.
IS I [A a propelty ] s I S2 [The verb 'to deal' renders zu tun haben here, sich beschiiftigen the parentheses, which have been added.] IS3 [ Vorstellung.]
a
few lines below within
Deduction of the Pure Concepts of Understanding
Section II [Second Edition) 1 84 Transcendental Deduction of the Pure Concepts of Understanding
§ 15
ON THE POSSIBILITY OF A C OMBINATION 1 85 A s S UCH The [uncombined] manifold of presentations can be given in an intuition
that is merely sensible, i.e., nothing but receptivity; 1 86 and the form of this intuition can lie a priori in our power1 87 of presentation without being any thing but the way in which the subject is affected. But a manifold's com bination (coniunctio) as SUCh 1 88 can never come to us through the senses; nor, therefore, can it already be part of what is contained 1 89 in the pure
211B 35
63-105.
184 [See H. w. Cassirer, op. cit. at A br. n. 22, See also J. N. Findlay, op. cit. at A br. n. 22, Also H. J. Paton, op. cit. at B br. n. 152, vol. br. n. Also H. J. Vleeschauwer, op. cit. at A vol. And see R. P. Wolff, op. cit. at B br. n. 1 , 1 83-202. See also the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Sci ence. Ak. IV, the note at where Kant admits that because of criticism leveled against the deduction provided in the first edition of the Critique he has decided to write a new and different deduction for the second edition. The A deduction has subsequently come to be called by Kant scholars the "subjective" and the B deduction the "objective" deduction.] 18S [On (linking or) combination (Verbindung), assembly (Zusammensetzung), and connection (Verkniipjung), see B 201 n. 30.] 186[In contrast to an intellectual intuition. See B 2 incl. br. n. 1 83.] 187 [_verm6gen here, -kraft just below.]
151-57.
211B 35
5
59 474-76,
641B 89
96,
1 3, 13-274.
1, 499-585.
7
188 [This reading best fits the title of the subsection. An alternative reading is: 'the combina tion (coniunctio) of a manifold as such. ' ] 189 [zugleich mit enthalten.]
175
1 76
B 130
B 131
PART I I
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
fonn of sensible intuition. For this combination is an act of spontaneity by the power of presentation; and this power must be called understanding, in order to be distinguished from sensibility. Hence all combination is an act of understanding-whether or not we become conscious of such combina tion; whether it is a combination of the manifold of intuition or of the mani fold of various concepts; and whether, in the case of intuition, it is a com bination of sensible or of nonsensible 19o intuition. I would assign to this act of understanding the general name synthesis, in order to point out at the same time: that we cannot present anything as combined in the object without ourselves' having combined it beforehand; and that, among all pre sentations, combination is the only one that cannot be given through ob jects, but-being an act of the subject's self-activity--can be performed only by the subject himself. We readily become aware here that this act of synthesis must originally be a single act and must hold equally for all com bination; and that resolution or analysis, which seems to be its opposite, yet always presupposes it. For where the understanding has not before hand combined anything, there it also cannot resolve anything, because only through the understanding could the power of presentation have been given something as combined. But the concept of combination carries with it, besides the concept of the manifold and of its synthesis, also the concept of the manifold's unity. Combination is presentation of the synthetic unity of the manifold.19 1 Hence 190 [Mellin thinks this should be narrowed to read 'empirical or nonempirical.' Erdmann (edi tor's notes, Ak. III, 587 n. 1 07), agrees with him on the grounds that ( I ) we are still within the context of Kant's discussion of sensible intuition, and (2) the principle of the synthetic unity of apperception is limited (according to B 138-39) to our (discursive) kind of under standing. However, as for ( I ), not only is the intuitive understanding with its intellectual in tuition about to be discussed explicitly in the next two subsections (as well as later), but even in the present context Kant clearly alludes to it: by the charactenzation of our intuition as 'merely sensible,' and even by the very general subsection heading. As for (2), what (by B 138-39) is limited to the human understanding cannot be synthesis (combination) as such. For an intuitive understanding would through its self-consciousness give objects (B 1 39, 145). i.e., would give a manifold as already synthesized. (Cf. the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V. 406-7.) What is limited to our understanding is merely the fact that for it this synthesis i� not already part of self-consciousness but is a special act (B 1 39) on which the identity of self-consciousness is based (B 133-34).] 191 We need not here consider whether the [manifold] presentations themselves are identical, so that one can be thought analytically through the other: the conscious· ness of the one presentation can nonetheless, insofar as we are talking about the manifold, always be distinguished from the consciousness of the other presenta tion; and what matters here is solely the synthesis of this (possible) consciousness.
SECTION II
[SECOND EDITION]
1 77
the presentation of this unity cannot arise from the combination; rather, by being added to the presentation of the manifold, it makes possible the con cept of combination in the first place. This unity, which thus precedes a priori all concepts of combination, is by no means the category of unity mentioned earlier (in § 1 0 1 92). For all categories are based on logical func tions occurring in judgments; but in these functions combination, and hence unity of given concepts, is already thought. Hence a category already pre supposes combination. We must therefore search for this unity (which is qualitative unity; see § 1 2 193 ) still higher up, viz., in what itself contains the basis for the unity of different concepts in judgments, and hence con tains the basis for the possibility of understanding, even as used logically.
§ 16
ON THE ORIGINAL S YNTHETIC UNITY OF APPERCEPTION I 94 The I think must be capable of accompanying all my presentations. For otherwise something would be presented to me that could not be thought at all-which is equivalent to saying that the presentation either would be impossible, or at least would be nothing to me. Presentation that can be given prior to all thought is called intuition. Hence everything manifold in intuition has a necessary reference to the I think in the same subject in whom this manifold is found. But this presentation [i.e., the I think] is an act of spontaneity; i.e., it cannot be regarded as belonging to sensibility. I call it pure apperception, in order to distinguish it from empirical apper ception. Or, again, I call it original apperception; for it is the self consciousness which, because it produces the presentation I think that must be capable of accompanying all other presentations[,] and [because it] is one and the same l95 in all consciousness, cannot be accompanied by any further presentation. I also call the unity l 96 of this apperception the tran scendental unity of self-consciousness, in order to indicate that a priori cog192 [Specifically, A 80/B 106.] 193 [Specifically, B 1 1 4.] 194 [See Walter Watson, op. cit at B xvi br. n. 7 1 , 143 ] 1 95 [ein und dasselbe, which grammatically can refer back only to 'the self-consciousness,' not to 'the presentation I think.' Hence the bracketed insenions.] 1 96 [Emphasis added ] .
B 1 32
178
B 133
B 134
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
nition can be obtained from it. For the manifold presentations given in a cer tain intuition would not one and all be my presentations, if they did not one and all belong to one self-consciousness. I.e., as my presentations (even if I l am not conscious of them as being rnine 97 ), they surely must conform nec essarily to the condition under which alone they can stand together in one universal self-consciousness, since otherwise they would not thoroughly 198 belong to me. And from this original combination much can be inferred. This same thoroughgoing l 99 identity of the apperception of a manifold given in intuition contains a synthesis of presentations, and is possible only through the consciousness of this synthesis. For the empirical conscious ness that accompanies different presentations is intrinsically200 sporadic and without any reference to the subject's identity. Hence this reference comes about not through my merely accompanying each presentation with con sciousness, but through my adding one presentation to another and being conscious of their synthesis. Hence only because I can combine a manifold of given presentations in one consciousness, is it possible for me to present the identity itself of the consciousness in these presentations. 201 I.e., the analytic unity of apperception is possible only under the presupposition of some synthetic unity of apperception.202 The thought that these presenta197[Literally, 'as such': als solcher.] 198 [durchgangig. ] 199 [durchgangig.] 200[an sich.] 201 [l.e., across these presentations. I have extended the emphasis to include 'selbst.' ] 202The analytic unity of consciousness attaches to all concepts that are, and inas much as they are, common [to several presentations] . E.g., in thinking red as such, I present a property that can be found (as a characteristic) in something or other, or can be combined with other presentations; hence only by virtue of a possible synthetic unity that I think beforehand can I present the analytic unity.a A presen
B 134
tation that is to be thought as common to different presentations is regarded as be longing to presentations that, besides having it, also have something different about them. Consequently it must beforehand be thought in synthetic unity with other pre sentations (even if only possible ones). Only then can I think in it the analytic unity of consciousness that makes the presentation a conceptus communis. And thus the synthetic unity of apperception is the highest point, to which we must attach all use of the understanding, even the whole of logic, and in accordance withb it transcen dental philosophy; indeed, this power is the understanding itself. "[See J. w. Ellington, essay cited at B xliii br. n. 149, 142-45. ] b[Or 'in terms of,' or simply 'after': nach.]
SECTION II
[SECOND EDITION]
1 79
tions given in intuition belong one and all to me is, accordingly, tanta mount to the thought that I unite them, or at least can unite them, in one self-consciousness. And although that thought itself is not yet the con sciousness of the synthesis of the presentations, it still presupposes the pos sibility of that synthesis. I.e., only because I can comprise the manifold of the presentations in one consciousness, do I call them one and all my pre sentations. For otherwise I would have a self as many-colored and varied as I have presentations that I am conscious of. Hence synthetic unity of the manifold of intuitions, as given203 a priori, is the basis of the identity it self of apperception, which precedes a priori all my detenninate thought. But combination does not lie in objects, and can by no means be borrowed from them by perception and thus be taken up only then into the under standing. It is, rather, solely something performed by the understanding; and understanding itself is nothing more than the power to combine a priori and to bring the manifold of given intuitions under the unity of apperception-the principle of this unity being the supreme principle in all of human cognition. Now, it is true that this principle of the necessary unity of apperception is itself merely an identical204 and hence an analytic proposition. Yet it does declare as necessary a synthesis of the manifold given in an intuition, a synthesis without which that thoroughgoing identity of self-consciousness cannot be thought. For through the 1,205 as simple presentation, nothing manifold is given; only in intuition, which is distinct from this presenta tion, can a manifold be given, and only through combination can it be thought in one consciousness. An understanding wherein through self- con sciousness alone everything manifold would at the same time206 be given would be an understanding that intuits. 207 Our understanding can only think, and must seek intuition in the senses. I am, then, conscious of the self as identical, as regards the manifold of the presentations given to me in an intuition, because I call them one and all my presentations that make up one presentation. That, however, is tantamount to saying that I am con2OJ [Changed by Vaihinger to 'produced.'] 204 [l.e., based, for its truth, on identity.] 205 [Emphasis added.] 206 [zugleich ] 207 [On intuitive understanding and its (intellectual) intuition, see above. B 72 inc!. br. n. 1 83.]
B
135
1 80
B 1 36
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
scious of a necessary a priori synthesis of them.208 This synthesis is called the original synthetic unity of apperception. All presentations given to me are subject to this unity; but they must also be brought under it through a synthesis.
§ 17
THE PRINCIPLE OF THE S YNTHETIC UNITY OF ApPERCEPTION IS THE S UPREME PRINCIPLE FOR ALL USE OF THE UNDERSTANDING
B 1 37
The supreme principle for the possibility of all intuition in reference to sen sibility was, according to the Transcendental Aesthetic,209 that everything manifold in intuition is subject to the fonnal conditions of space and time. The supreme principle for the possibility of all intuition in reference to un derstanding is that everything manifold in intuition is subject to conditions of the original synthetic unity of apperception.2lO All manifold presenta tions of intuition are subject to the first principle insofar as they are given to us. They are subject to the second principle insofar as they must be ca pable of being combined in one consciousness. For without that combina tion, nothing can be thought or cognized through such presentations, be cause the given presentations do then not have in common the act of apperception, I think, and thus would not be collated2 1 1 in one self consciousness. 208 [Or: 'that I am conscious a priori of a necessary synthesis of them.] 209 [See A 38-91B 55-6.] 21DSpace and time, and all their parts, are intuitions; hence they, with the manifold that they contain, are singular presentations. (See the Transcendental Aesthetic)." Hence space and time are not mere concepts, through which the very same con sciousness is encountered as contained in many presentations. They are, rather, [pre sentations through which] many presentations are encountered as contained in one presentation and in the consciousness thereof, and hence [they are presentations ] encountered as composite; and consequently the unity of this consciousness is en countered as synthetic, but yet as original. This singularity of [intuition] is impor tant when applied [to specific contexts]. (See § 25. b ) "[Although Kant did not there use the term 'singular,' the reference seems to be to § 2, numbers 3 and 4 (A 24-251B 39), and § 4, numbers 4 and 5 (A 3 1-21B 47).] b [Below. B 157-59.] 2 1 1 [I.e., arranged and held together: zusammengefaftt See above, B 1 1 4 br. n. 239.]
SECTION II
[SECOND EDITION]
181
Understanding-speaking generally212-is the power of cognitions. Cognitions consist in detenninate reference of given presentations to an ob ject. And an objecf 1 3 is that in whose concept the manifold of a given in tuition is united. But all unification of presentations requires that there be unity of consciousness in the synthesis of them. Consequently the refer ence of presentations to an object consists solely in this unity of conscious ness, and hence so does their objective validity and consequently their be coming cognitions. On this unity, consequently, rests the very possibility of the understanding. Hence the principle of the original synthetic unity of apperception is the primary pure cognition of understanding, on which the entire remaining use of the understanding is based; and this cognition is at the same time en tirely independent of all conditions of sensible intuition. Thus the mere form of outer sensible intuition, i.e., space, is as yet no cognition at all; it pro vides only the manifold of a priori intuition for a possible cognition. Rather, in order to cognize something or other---e . g., a line-in space, I must draw it; and hence I must bring about synthetically a determinate combination of the given manifold, so that the unity of this act214 is at the same time the unity of consciousness (in the concept of a line), and so that an object (a determinate space) is thereby first cognized. The synthetic unity of con sciousness is, therefore, an objective condition of all cognition. Not only do I myself need this condition in order to cognize an object, but every in tuition must he subject to it in order to become an object for me. For oth erwise, and without that synthesis, the manifold would not unite in one con sciousness. Although this last proposition makes the synthetic unity [of conscious ness] a condition of all thought, it is-as I have said215-itself analytic. For it says no more than that all my presentations in some given intuition must be subject to the condition under which alone I can ascribe them-as my presentations-to the identical self, and hence under which alone I can collate them, as combined synthetically in one apperception, through the universa1216 expression I think. 2 12 2 13
[allgemein.]
[Objekt here, Gegenstand just below.] 2 14 [Of synthesis.] 2 15 [B 1 35.] 2 16 [allgemein.]
B 1 38
1 82
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
On the other hand, this principle21 7 is not one for every possible under standing as such, but is a principle only for that [kind of] understanding through whose pure apperception, in the presentation
I think, nothing mani
fold whatever is yet given. An alternative [kind of] understanding would be that understanding through whose self-consciousness the manifold of in B 1 39
tuition would at the same time be given-i.e., an understanding through whose presentation the objects of this presentation would at the same time exist.218 Such an understanding would not require, for the unity of con sciousness, a special act of synthesis of the manifold. The human under standing, which merely thinks but does not intuit, does need that synthe sis. But still, for the human understanding the principle2 1 9 is unavoidably the first principle. And thus our understanding cannot even frame the slight est concept of a different possible understanding-whether of an under standing that itself would intuit; or of an understanding that would indeed have lying at its basis a sensible intuition, yet one of a different kind from that in space and time.
§ 18
WHAT OBJECTIVE UNITY OF S ELF- C ONSCIOUSNESS Is The transcendental
unity of apperception is the unity whereby everything manifold given in an intuition is united in a220 concept of the object. Hence this unity is called
objective,
subjective a/inner sense whereby
and must be distinguished from
unity221 of consciousness, which is a determination
that manifold of intuition for such [objective] combination222 is given em pirically. Whether I can be conscious multaneous or B 140
as
empirically
of the manifold as si
sequential depends on circumstances or empirical con
ditions. Hence empirical unity of consciousness, through association of 217 [Here 'principle' translates Grundsatz. the subsequent 'one' renders Prinzip. See A vii br. n. 7.] 218 [This would be an intuitive understanding, and its intuition would be intellectual. See above, B 72 incl. br. n. 1 83.] 2 19 [Of the synthetic unity of apperception.] 220 [Reading in einem for in einen ('into a' ) .]
22 1 [Emphasis on 'unity' deleted.] 222 [Verbindung.]
SECTION II
[SECOND EDITION]
1 83
presentations, itself concerns an appearance and is entirely contingent. On the other hand, the pure fonn of intuition in time, merely as intuition as such containing a given manifold, is subject to the original unity223 of con sciousness. It is subject to that unity solely through the necessary reference of the manifold of intuition to the one224 [self], i.e., to the I think, 225 and hence through the understanding's pure synthesis that lies a priori at the basis of the empirical synthesis. Only the original unity of consciousness is valid226 objectively. The empirical unity of apperception, which we are not examining here and which moreover is only derived from the original unity under given conditions in concreto, has only subjective validity. One person will link227 the presentation of a certain word with one thing, an other with some other thing; and the unity of consciousness in what is em pirical is not, as regards what is given, necessary and universally valid. 228
§ 19
THE LOGICAL FORM OF ALL JUDGMENTS CONSISTS IN THE OBJECTIVE UNITY OF ApPERCEPTION OF THE C ONCEPTS C ONTAINED IN THEM I have never been able to settle for the explication that logicians give of a jUdgment as such. A judgment, they say, is the presentation of a relation between two concepts. Now, I shall not here quarrel with them about one respect in which this explication is defective (although this oversight has given rise to many irksome consequences for logic): viz., that it fits at most categorical judgments only, but not hypothetical and disjunctive ones (since these contain a relation not of concepts but of furthe�29 judgments). 23o I
223[Einheit.] 224[Einen.] 22S [Emphasis on 226[giiltig.] 227 [ve rbinden.] 228[geltend.] 229[selbst.]
'I
think' added.]
z»rhe voluminous doctrine of the four syllogistica figures concerns only categori
cal syllogisms.b Now, this doctrine is nothing more than the art of surreptitiously
B 141
1 84
PART
11
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGlC
shall point out only that this explication of a judgment leaves undeter mined wherein this relation231 consists. But suppose that I inquire more precisely into the [relation or] reference of given cognitions in every judgment, and that 1 distinguish it, as belong ing to the understanding, from the relation in terms of laws of the repro ductive imagination (a relation that has only subjective validity). I then find that a judgment is nothing but a way of bringing given cognitions to the objective unity of apperception.232 This is what the little relational word233 B 142
is in j udgments intends [to indicate] , in order to distinguish the objective unity of given presentations from the subjective one. For this word indi cates the reference of the presentations to original apperception and its nec essary unity. The reference to this necessary unity is there even if the judg ment itself is empirical and hence contingent--e.g., Bodies are heavy. By this I do not mean that these presentations belong necessarily to one an other in the empirical intuition. Rather, 1 mean that they belong to one an other by virtue of the necessary unity of apperception in the synthesis of intuitions; i.e., they belong to one another according to principles of the objective determination of all presentations insofar as these presentations can become cognition-all of these principles234 being derived from the principle of the transcendental unity of apperception. Only through this [ref erence to original apperception and its necessary unity] does this relation creating," by concealing immediate inferences
(consequentiae immediatae)
the premises of a pure syllogism, the illusion that there
are
among
more kinds of inference
than that of the first figure. Still, the doctrine would not on account of that illusion alone have met with special fortune, had it not also succeeded in procuring for cat egorical judgments an exclusive reputation, viz. as judgments to which all others must be capable of being referredd-which, however, is false by § 9.e
a[syllogistisch.] b[Vernunftschliisse.] C[erschleichen.] d [As their basis.] e[See also Kant's The Mistaken Subtlety of the Four Syllogistic Figures (Die falsche Spit
SECTION II
[SECOND EDITION]
1 85
[among presentations] become a judgment, i.e., a relation that is valid ob jectively and can be distinguished adequately from a relation of the same presentations that would have only subjective validity�.g., a relation ac cording to laws of association. According to these laws, all I could say is: When I support a body, then I feel a pressure of heaviness. I could not say: It, the body, is heavy-which amounts to saying that these two presenta tions are not merely together in perception (no matter how often repeated), but are combined in the object, i.e., combined independently of what the subject's state is.
§ 20 ALL SENSIBLE INTUITIONS ARE SUBJECT TO THE CATEGORIES, WHICH ARE235 CONDITIONS UNDER WHICH ALONE THEIR MANIFOLD CAN COME TOGETHER IN ONE CONSCIOUSNESS The manifold given [which is found] 236 in a sensible intuition is subject necessarily t0237 the original synthetic unity of apperception; for solely through this unity is the unity of intuition possible. (§ 17.) But the act of understanding whereby the manifold of given presentations (whether in tuitions or concepts) are brought under238 one apperception as such is the logical function of judgments. (§ 19.) Therefore everything manifold, in sofar as it is given in one empirical intuition, is determined in regard to one of the logical functions of judging, inasmuch as through this func tion239 it is brought to one consciousness as such.24o The categories. how ever, are indeed nothing but precisely these functions of judging insofar as the manifold of a given intuition is241 determined in regard to them. 23s[als.] 236 [Das mannigfaltige . . . Gegebene. I.e., 'manifold' is an adjective, and 'given' is a ciple functioning as a noun. See also B 203 br. n 38.]
parti
237[gehoren . . unter.] 238[bringen . . unler.] 239[Or, possibly, 'through these functions': durch die.] 240 [See 1. W. Ellington, essay cited at B xliii br. n. 149, 1 73-78.] 241[is/, not wi rd. I.e., Kant is speaking about the manifold's state of being determined, not about the act of the manifold's being determined.]
B 1 43
1 86
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
(§ 1 3 .242) Hence, by the same token, the manifold in a given intuition is
subject necessarily t0243 the categories.
§ 21 COMMENT
B 144
B 145
Through the synthesis of understanding, a manifold contained in an intu ition that I call mine is presented as belonging to the necessary unity of self-consciousness, and this presenting is done by means of the category.244 Hence the category indicates that the empirical consciousness of a given manifold of one intuition is just as subject to a pure a priori self consciousness, as empirical intuition is subject to a pure sensible intuition that likewise takes place a priori. Hence in the above proposition245 I have made the beginning of a deduction of the pure concepts of understanding. Since the categories are independent of sensibility and arise in the under standing alone, I must still abstract, in this deduction, from the way in which the manifold for an empirical intuition is given, in order to take account solely of the unity that the understanding contributes to the intuition246 by means of the category. Afterwards ( § 26) I shall show, from the way in which the empirical intuition is given in sensibility, that the intuition's unity is none other than the unity that (by § 20, above) the category prescribes to the manifold of a given intuition as such; and that hence by my explain ing the category's a priori validity regarding all objects of our senses, the deduction's aim will first be fully attained. From one point, however, I could not abstract in the above proof: viz., from the fact that the manifold for the intuition must be given still prior to 242 [The Akademie edition, following Vaihinger, substitutes '§ 10.'] 243[stehen . . . unter.] �e basis of proof for this rests on the presented an
object"'
unity of intuition, through which
is given. That unity always impliesb a synthesis of the manifold givenC
for an intuition, and already contains this manifold given's reference to unity of apperception.
"[Emphasis added.] b [Or 'includes' : in sich schliej3t ] e[Here again 'manifold' is an adjective, and 'given' is a participle that is about to be con strued as a noun Cf. above, B 143 inc!. br. n. 236.] 245 [The proposition at the beginning of § 21.] 246[in die Anschauung . . durch den Verstand hinzukommt.]
SECTION II
[SECOND EDITION]
1 87
the understanding's synthesis, and independently of it; but how it is given remains undetermined here. For if I were to think of an understanding247 that itself intuited248 (as, e.g., a divine understanding that did not present given objects249 but through whose presentation the objects would at the same time be given or produced), then in regard to such cognition the cat egories would have no signification250 whatever. The categories are only rules for an understanding whose entire power consists in thought, i.e., in the act of bringing to the unity of apperception the synthesis of the mani fold that has, in intuition, been given to it from elsewhere. Hence such an understanding by itself cognizes nothing whatever, but only combines and orders the material for cognition, i.e., the intuition, which must be given to it by the object. But why our understanding has this peculiarity, that it a priori brings about unity of apperception only by means of the catego ries, and only by just this kind and number of them-for this no further reason can be given, just as no reason can be given as to why we have just these and no other functions in judging, or why time and space are the only forms of our possible intuition.
§ 22 A CATEGORY CANNOT BE USED FOR COGNIZING THINGS EXCEPT WHEN IT Is ApPLIED TO OBJECTS OF EXPERIENCE Thinking an object and cognizing an object are then, not the same. For cog nition involves two components: first, the concept (the category), through which an object as such is thought; 25 1 and second, the intuition, through which the object is given. For if no intuition corresponding to the concept could be given at all,252 then in terms of its form the concept would indeed ,
247 [Other than our own.] 248 [See above, B 72 inc!. br. n. 1 83.] 249[As does our understanding, which presents objects given outside of itself, viz., in sensible intuition.] 2,o[Bedeutung. See A 139/B 178 br. n. 66.] 2Sl ['thro ugh which an object is thought at all' would be the most literal rendering. But trans lating 'uberhaupt by 'as such' as associated with 'object' clarifies the connection with what follows.] 2'2 [gar.]
B 1 46
1 88
B
147
B 1 48
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
be a thought; but it would be a thought without any object, and no cogni tion at all of any thing whatsoever would be possible by means of it. For as far as I would know, there would be nothing, and could be nothing, to which my thought could be applied. Now, all intuition that is possible for us is sensible (see the Transcendental Aesthetic). Hence in us, thinking an object as such by means of a pure concept of understanding can become cognition only insofar as this concept is referred to objects of the senses. Sensible intuition is either pure intuition (space and time) or empirical in tuition of what, through sensation, is presented directly as actual in space and time. By determining pure intuition we can (in mathematics) acquire a priori cognition of objects as appearances, but only in terms of their form;253 that, however, still leaves unestablished whether there can be things that must be intuited in this form. Consequently all mathematical concepts are, by themselves, no cognitions---except insofar as one presup poses that there are things that can be exhibited254 to us only in accor dance with the form of that pure sensible intuition. But things in space and time are given only insofar as they are perceptions (Le., presentations ac companied by sensation), and hence are given only through empirical pre sentation. Consequently the pure concepts of understanding, even when they are (as in mathematics) applied to a priori intuitions, provide cognition only insofar as these intuitions-and hence, by means of them, also the con cepts of understanding-----<:an be applied to empirical intuitions. Conse quently the categories also do not supply us, by means of intuition, with any cognition of things, except through their possible application to em pirical intuition?55 I.e., the categories serve only for the possibility of em pirical cognition. Such cognition, however, is called experience. Conse quently the categories cannot be used for cognizing things except insofar as these things are taken as objects of possible experience.
§ 23 The last proposition above is of the greatest importance. For it determines the bounds for the use of the pure concepts of understanding in regard to 25 3 [Literally (and somewhat misleadingly), Kant says: ' . . . of objects, but only in terms of their form, as appearances.'] 254[darstellen. See B xvii br. n. 73.] 255 [Emphasis on 'intuition' deleted.]
SECTION II
[SECOND EDITION]
1 89
objects just as much as the Transcendental Aesthetic determined the bounds for the use of the pure form of our sensible intuition. Space and time, as conditions for the possibility as to how objects can be given to us, hold no further than for objects of the senses, and hence hold for objects of expe rience only. Beyond these bounds. space and time present nothing what soever; for they are only in the senses and have no actuality apart from them. The pure concepts of understanding are free from this limitation and extend256 to objects of intuition as such, whether this intuition is similar to ours or not, as long as it is sensible rather than intellectual. But this fur ther extension257 of the concepts beyond our sensible intuition is of no ben efit to us whatsoever.258 For they are then empty concepts of objects, i.e., concepts through which we cannot judge at all whether or not these ob jects are so much as possible. I.e., the pure concepts of understanding are then mere forms of thought, without objective reality; for we then have available no intuition to which the synthetic unity of apperception-which is all that those concepts contain---<:ould be applied so that the concepts could determine an object. 259 Solely our sensible and empirical intuition can provide them with meaning and significance. 260 Hence if we suppose an object of a nonsensible intuition261 as given, then we can indeed present it through all the predicates that are already contained in the presupposition that the object has as a property262 noth ing belonging to sensible intuition: hence we can present that it is not ex tended or in space, that its duration is not a time, that no change (i.e., suc cession of determinations in time)263 is to be found in it, etc. But yet I have no proper cognition if I merely indicate how the intuition of the object is not, without being able to say what the intuition does contain. For I have not then presented the possibility of there being an object for my pure con cept of understanding, since I was unable to give an intuition correspond ing to the concept, but was able only to say that our intuition does not hold 256[erstrecken.] 257[Ausdehnung.] 258 [hilft uns . . . zu nichts.]
259 [Gegenstand here, Objekt just beloW.] 260 [Sinn und Bedeutung.]
261[I.e . , intellectual intuition. See above, B 72 inc!. br. n. 183.]
262[ihm . . . zukomme.] 263[Cf. below, B 232-33.]
B 149
1 90
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
for it. However, the foremost point here is that to such a something not even one single category could be applied. E.g., one could not apply to it the concept of a substance, i.e., the concept of something that can exist as subject but never as mere predicate. For I do not know at all, concerning this concept, whether there can be anything whatever corresponding to this conceptual deterrnination264 [of substance], unless empirical intuition gives me the instance for applying it. But more about this later.
B 150
§ 24 ON ApPLYING THE CATEGORIES TO OBJECTS OF THE SENSES As SUCH The pure concepts of understanding refer, through mere understanding, to objects of intuition as such-i.e., we leave undetermined whether this in tuition is ours or some other, although it must be sensible intuition. But the concepts are, precisely because of this, mere forms of thought, through which as yet no determinate object is cognized. We saw that the synthesis or combination of the manifold in them referred merely to the unity of ap perception, and was thereby the basis for the possibility of a priori cogni tion insofar as such cognition rests on the understanding; and hence this synthesis was not just transcendental but was also purely intellectual only. But there lies at the basis in us a priori a certain form of sensible intu ition,265 a form that is based on the receptivity of our capacity to present (i.e., based on our sensibility). Hence the understanding (as spontane ity)266 can, by means of the manifold of given presentations, determine in ner sense in accordance with the synthetic unity of apperception; and thus it can think synthetic unity of the apperception of the manifold of a priori sensible intuition267 this unity being the condition to which all objects of our (i.e., human) intuition must necessarily be subject. And thereby the categories, as themselves mere forms of thought, acquire objective268 re-
264 [ Gedankenbestimmung.] 265 [Or: 'But there lies at the basis in us a certain fonn of a priori sensible intuition.'] 266 [Parentheses added.] 267 [Or, possibly: 'and thus it can a priori think synthetic unity of the apperception of the mani fold of sensible intuition.' ] 268 [objektiv ]
SECTION II
[SECOND EDITION]
191
ality. I.e., they acquire application to objects269 that can be given to u s in intuition. But they apply to these objects only as appearances; for only of appearances are we capable of having a priori intuition. This synthesis of the manifold of sensible intuition, which is a priori possible and necessary, may be called figurative synthesis (synthesis spe ciosa). This serves to distinguish it from the synthesis that would be thought, in the mere category, in regard to the manifold of an intuition as such; 27o this latter synthesis is called combination of understanding (syn thesis intellectualis). Both these syntheses are transcendental, not just be cause they themselves proceed a priori, but because they also are the basis for the possibility of other a priori cognition. However, when the figurative synthesis concerns merely the original syn thetic unity of apperception, i.e., merely this transcendental unity thought in the categories, then it must be called the transcendental synthesis of imagination, to distinguish it from the merely intellectual combination?7 l Imagination is the power of presenting an object i n intuition even without the objects being present. Now, all our intuition is sensible; and hence the imagination, because of the subjective condition under which alone it can give to the concepts of understanding a corresponding intuition, belongs to sensibility. Yet the synthesis of imagination is an exercise of spontaneity, which is determinative, rather than merely determinable, as is sense; hence this synthesis can a priori determine sense in terms of its form in accor dance with the unity of apperception. To this extent, therefore, the imagi nation is a power of determining sensibility a priori; and its synthesis of intuitions in accordance with the categories must be the transcendental syn thesis of imagination. This synthesis is an action272 of the understanding upon sensibility, and is the understanding's first application (and at the same time the basis of all its other applications) to objects of the intuition that is possible for us. As figurative, this synthesis is distinct from the intellectual synthesis, which proceeds without any imagination but merely through un derstanding. Now insofar as the imagination is spontaneity, I sometimes also call it the productive imagination, thereby distinguishing it from the 269 [ Gegenstiinde. ]
270 [I.e sensible or intellectual.] .•
27 1 [Of understanding.] 272[Wirkung.]
B
151
B
152
1 92
PART II
reproductive
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
imagination. 273 The synthesis of the reproductive imagina
tion is subject solely to empirical laws, viz., to the laws of association. Therefore this synthesis contributes nothing to the explanation of the pos sibility of a priori cognition, and hence belongs not in transcendental phi losophy but in psychology. Now, this is the place to clarify274 something paradoxical that must have struck everyone in reading the exposition of the form of inner sense (§ 6):275
B 153
viz., how this sense exhibits to consciousness even ourselves only as we appear to ourselves,276 not as we are in ourselves?77 For we intuit our selves only as we are inwardly
affected;
and this seems contradictory, be
cause we [despite being active] would then have to relate to ourselves as passive. 278 And this is the reason why people in their systems of psychol ogy usually prefer to pass
inner sense
off as being the same as the power
of apperception (which we carefully distinguish from inner sense). However, what determines inner sense is the understanding and its origi nal power of combining the manifold of intuition, i.e., the power of bring ing that manifold under one apperception (on which apperception the un derstanding' s possibility itself rests). Now in us human beings the understanding is not itself a power of intuitions; and even if an intuition were already given in sensibility, the understanding cannot take it up into itself, in order-as it were-to combine the manifold of [what would then be] its own intuition. Hence when the understanding is considered by it self alone, then its synthesis is nothing but the unity of the understanding's act: the act of which the understanding is conscious as an act even apart from sensibility, but through which the understanding itself is able to de termine sensibility inwardly as regards the manifold that may, in accor dance with the form of sensibility's intuition, be given to the understand ing. Hence it is understanding which performs, on the passive subject whose
B 1 54
power it is, that act-under the name of a transcendental synthesis of imagination-of which we rightly say that inner sense is affected by it. Ap273 [See A 1 1 8 br. n. 142.] 274 [verstiindlich machen.] 275 [I.e., A 32-6/B 48-53 in the exposition of time in the Transcendental Aesthetic.] 276 [uns here, uns selbst just above.] 277[an uns selbst; i.e., as things in themselves.] 278 [Or 'undergoing' : leidend. I.e., even though as intuiting we would be active, as being in tuited we (the same subject) would simultaneously be passive.]
SECTION II
[SECOND EDITION]
1 93
perception and its synthetic unity is so far from being the same as inner sense that, as the source of all combination, it applies rather to the mani fold of intuitions as such, 279 and-under the name of the categories applies, prior to all sensible intuition, to objects as such. Inner sense, on the other hand, contains the mere form of intuition, but without combina tion of the manifold in this form, and hence contains as yet no determinate intuition at all. Determinate intuition is possible only through the con sciousness of the manifold's determination by the transcendental act of imagination (i.e., by the synthetic influence of understanding on inner sense)-the act that I have called figurative synthesis. This [need for figurative synthesis], moreover, we always perceive in ourselves. We cannot think a line without drawing it in thought. We can not think a circle without describing it.280 We cannot at all present the three dimensions of space without placing three lines perpendicularly to one an other from the same point. And even time we cannot present except inas much as, in drawing a straight line (meant to be the extemally28 1 figura tive presentation282 of time), we attend merely to the act of the manifold's synthesis whereby we successively determine inner sense, and thereby at tend to the succession of this determination in inner sense. Indeed, what first produces the concept of succession is motion, taken as act of the sub ject (rather than as a determination of an object)283 and consequently as the synthesis of the manifold in space, if we abstract from this manifold and attend merely to the act whereby we determine inner sense according to its form. Hence by no means does the understanding already find in in ner sense such a combination of the manifold; rather, the understanding pro duces it, inasmuch as the understanding affects that sense. But how (inas279 [Sensible or intellectual.] 280 [I.e., without tracing it in thought.] 281 [aujierlich.] 282 [I.e., the presentation that is figurative in the external way.] 283
Motion of an
object
in space does not belong in a pure science, and conse
quently not in geometry. For the fact that something is movable cannot be cog nized a priori, but can be cognized only through experience." But motion taken as
the
describingb
of a space is a pure act of the successive synthesis, by productive
imagination, of the manifold in outer" intuition as such, and belongs not only to geometry but even to transcendental philosophy.
"[See the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak. IV, 472, 482-83.] b [I.e., outlining.] C[dujieren.]
B 1 55
1 94
B 156
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
much as in addition to sensible intuition I can present, at least as possible, a different kind of intuition) can the I who thinks be distinct from the p84 that intuits itself,285 and yet be the same286 as it by being the same287 sub ject? And hence how can I say: I, as intelligence and thinking subject, cog nize myself as an object that is thought, viz., I so cognize myself insofar as in addition288 I am als0289 given to myself in intuition-except that I cognize myself, as I do other phenomena, not as I am t0290 the understand ing, but as I appear to myself! This question involves neither more nor less difficulty than does the question as to how I can be an object to myself at all, viz., an object of intuition and of inner perceptions. Yet so it must ac tually be, as we can easily establish if space is already accepted as being merely a pure form of the appearances of outer senses. For as regards time, which after all is not an object of outer intuition at all, we cannot present it to ourselves except under the image of a line insofar as we draw that line; without exhibiting time in this way, we could not cognize the single ness291 of its dimension. Likewise, in seeking for all inner perceptions the determination of length of time, or again of time positions, we must al ways get this determination from what changeable features are exhibited to us by outer things. Consequently the determinations of inner sense must be arranged by us as appearances in time in precisely the same way as the determinations of the outer senses are arranged by us in space. Hence if concerning the determinations of the outer senses we grant that we cog nize objects through them only insofar as we are outwardly affected, then we must also concede concerning inner sense that we intuit ourselves through it only as we are inwardly affected by ourselves; i.e., we must con284 [Emphasis on 'I' added both times.] 285 [The point of the parenthetical remark may be that this distinctness combined with same ness seems even more problematic if we consider intuition as such-including, i.e., the in tellectual intuition of an intuitive understanding-than if we consider sensible intuition, which at least is not the intuition of an understanding Or perhaps Kant is saying merely that this issue of distinctness anses because in our case intuition and understanding are not united.] 286[einerlei.] 287[dasselbe.] 2 88 [To being thought.] 289[noch iiber das.] 291l [VOr. ] 291 [Einheit.]
SECTION II
[SECOND EDITION]
1 95
cede that, as far as inner intuition is concerned, our own [self as] subject is cognized by us only as appearance, but not in terms of what it is In itself. 292
§ 25 By contrast, in the transcendental synthesis of the manifold of presenta tions as such, and hence in the synthetic original unity of apperception, I am not conscious of myself as I appear to myself, nor as I am in myself, but am conscious only that I am. This presentation is a thought, not an in tuition. 293 Now cognition of ourselves requires not only the act of thought that brings the manifold of every possible intuition to the unity of apper ception, but requires in addition a definite294 kind of intuition whereby this manifold is given. Hence although my own existence is not appearance (still less mere illusion), determination295 of my existence296 can occur only in conformity with the form of inner sense and according to the particular way Z9Z1 fail to see how one can find so many difficulties in the view that inner sense is affected by ourselves---of which every act of attention can provide us with an ex ample. In such acts the understanding always determines inner sense, in accor
B 1 57
B 1 58
B 1 57
dance with the combination that the understanding thinks, turning it into the inner intuition that corresponds to the manifold in the understanding's synthesis. Every one will be able to perceive in himself how much the mind is commonly affected by this. 293 [Literally, 'a thinking, not an intuiting.']
294[bestimmt. The intuition is not determinate in kind, and the inference in the next sentence does not rest on a linking of Bestimmung with bestimmt. Rather, the intuition is of a definite kind, viz., the kind described in the next sentence and in n. 296, just below. ] 295 [Bestimmung.] z�e I think" expresses the act of determining my existence. Hence the existence [of myself] is already given through this I think; but there is not yet given through it the way in which I am to determine that existence, i.e., posit the manifold be longing to it. In order for that manifold to be given, self-intuition is required; and at the basis of this self-intuition lies a form given a priori, viz., time, which is sen sible and belongs to the ability to receive the determinable.b Now unless I have in
addition a differentC self-intuition that gives, prior to the act of determination, d the
determinativeC in me (only of its spontaneity am I in fact conscious) just as time so
gives the determinable, then I cannot determine my existence as that of a self active being; instead I present only the spontaneity of my thought, i.e., of the [act
of] determination/ and my existence remains determinable always only sensibly,
B 1 58
1 96
B 159
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
in which the manifold that I combine is given in inner intuition. Accord ingly I have no cognition of myself as I am but merely cognition of how I appear to myself. 297 Hence consciousness of oneself is far from being a cognition of oneself, regardless of all the categories, which make up the thought of an object as such through the combination of the manifold in one apperception. We saw that in order for me to cognize an object differ ent from myself, I not only require the thinking (which I have in the cat egory) of an object as such, but do also require an intuition whereby I de termine that universal concept. In the same way, in order to cognize myself, too, I not only require the consciousness of myself or the fact that I think myself, but require also an intuition of the manifold in me whereby I de termine this thought. And I exist as an intelligence. This intelligence is con scious solely of its power of combination. But as regards the manifold that it is to combine, this intelligence is subjected to a limiting condition (which it calls inner sense) . As subjected to this condition, it can make that com bination intuitable only in terms of time relations, which lie wholly outside the concepts of understanding, properly so called.29B And hence this intel ligence can still cognize itself only as, in regard to an intuition (one that cannot be intellectual and given by the understanding itself), it merely ap pears to itself; it cannot cognize itself as it would if its intuition were in tellectual.
i.e., as the existence of an appearance. But it is on account of this spontaneity that
I call myself an
intelligence.
"[Emphasis added.] b [Literally, 'receptivity of the determinable' : Rezeptivitiit des Bestimmbaren.] C[Viz., intellectual.] d [des Bestimmens .] e[or determinant: das Bestimmende.] '[des Bestimmens.] 297 [These matters are treated in detail in the Paralogisms: A 34l -40SIB 399-432.] 29R[l.e., unschematized.]
SECTION II [SECOND EDITION]
1 97
§ 26 TRANSCENDENTAL DEDUCTION OF THE UNIVERSALLY POSSIBLE USE IN EXPERIENCE OF THE PURE CONCEPTS OF UNDERSTANDING In the metaphysical deduction299 we established the a priori origin of the categories as such through their complete concurrence with the universal logical functions of thought. But in the transcendental deduction we ex hibited the possibility of them300 as a priori cognitions of objects of an in tuition as such ( §§ 20, 21). We museO l now explain how it is possible, through categories. to cognize a priori whatever objects our senses may encounter-to so cognize them as regards not the form of their intuition, but the laws of their combination-and hence, as it were, to prescribe laws to nature, and even to make nature possible. For without this suitability of the categories,302 one would fail to see how everything that our senses may encounter would have to be subject to the laws that arise a priori from the understanding alone. First of all, let me point out that by synthesis of apprehension I mean that assembly of the manifold in an empirical intuition whereby per ception, i.e. , empirical consciousness of the intuition (as appearance), becomes possible. We have a priori , in the presentations of space and time, forms of both outer and inner sensible intuition; 303 and to these forms the synthesis of apprehension of the manifold of appearance must always conform, be cause that synthesis itself can take place only according to this form. But space and time are presented a priori not merely as forms of sensible in tuition, but as themselves intuitions (containing a manifold), and hence are presented with the determination304 of the unity of this manifold in them 299 [A 65-83/B 90- 1 1 6. Kant did not there use this name.] 300 [The categories as such.] 3Oi [soll.] 302 [For such cognition and prescription.] 303 [Or, possibly: 'We have, in [an] the presentations of space and time, forms of both outer and inner sensible a priori intuition. ' ] 304 [l.e., here, property.]
B 160
1 98
B 161
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
(see the Transcendental Aesthetic).305 Therefore even unity of synthesis of the manifold outside or within us, and hence also a combination to which everything that is to be presented determinately in space or time306 must conform, is already given a priori as condition of the synthesis of all apprehension given along307 with (not in) these intuitions. This synthetic unity, however, can be none other than the unity of the combination, con forming to the categories but applied to our sensible intuition, of the mani fold of a given intuition as such in an original consciousness. Conse quently all synthesis, the synthesis through which even perception becomes possible, is subject to the categories; and since experience is cognition through connected perceptions, the categories are conditions of the pos sibility of experience and hence hold a priori also for all objects of expe rience. -
B 1 62
Hence, e.g., when I tum the empirical intuition of a house into a percep tion by apprehending the intuition's manifold, then in this apprehension I use as a basis308 the necessary unity of space and of outer sensible intu ition as such; and I draw, as it were, the house's shape in conformity with this synthetic unity of the manifold in space. But this same unity, if I ab stract from the form of space, resides in the understanding, and is the cat egory of the synthesis of the homogeneous in an intuition as such, i.e., the
30SSpace, presented as
object (as we are actually required to present it in geometry),
contains more than mere form of intuition; viz., it contains also the collating, of the manifold givena according to the form of sensibility, into an tion-so that
B 161
intuitiveb presenta the/arm a/intuition gives us merely a manifold, but/ormal intuition
gives us unity of presentation.
In the Transcendental Aesthetic
I had merely
included this unity with sensibility, wanting only to point out that it precedes any concept. But in fact this unity presupposes a synthesis; this synthesis does not be long to the senses, but through it do all concepts of space and time first become possible. For through this unity (inasmuch as understanding determines sensibility) space or time are first
given
as intuitions, and hence the unity of this a priori intu
24). "[Des mannigfaltigen . . . Gegebenen. I.e., 'manifold' is an adjective, and 'given' is a par
ition belongs to space and time, and not to the concept of understanding (see §
ticiple functioning as a noun.] b [anschaulich. ] 306 [Or, possibly: 'presented [as] determined in space or time.'] 307 [zugleich.] 308 [liegt mir . . zum Grunde ]
SECTION II
[SECOND EDITION]
1 99
category of magnitude. 309 Hence the synthesis of apprehension, i.e., per ception,3 1 0 must conform throughout to that category?l1 When (to take a different example) I perceive the freezing of water, then I apprehend two states (fluidity and solidity) as states that stand to each other in a relation of time. Since the appearance is inner intuition, I lay time at its basis. But in time I necessarily present synthetic unity of the manifold; without this unity, that relation312 could not be given determi nately (as regards time sequence) in an intuition. However, this synthetic unity, as a priori condition under which I combine the manifold of an in tuition as such, is-if I abstract from the constant form of my inner intu ition, i.e., from time-the category of cause; through this category, when I apply it to my sensibility, everything that happens is, in terms of its re lation, 313 determined by me in time as such. Therefore apprehension in such an event, and hence the event itself, is subject-as regards possible perception-to the concept of the reiationJ 1 4 of effects and causes; and thus it is in all other cases. Categories are concepts that prescribe laws a priori to appearances, and hence to nature regarded as the sum of all appearances (natura materi aliter spectata). 31 5 And now this question arises: Since the categories are not derived from nature and do not conform to it as their model (for then they would be merely empirical), how are we to comprehend the fact that nature must conform to the categories, i.e., how can the categories deter mine a priori the combination of nature's manifold without gleaning that combination from nature? Here now is the solution of this puzzle. 309 [I.e., quantity: GroJ3e.] 31 0 [Not apprehension but the synthesis of apprehension is being equated with perception.] lIl In this way we prove that the synthesis of apprehension, which is empirical, must conform necessarily to the synthesis of apperception, which is intellectual and is contained wholly a priori in the category. The spontaneity that brings combination into the manifold of intuition is one and the same in the two cases: in apprehen sion it does so under the name of power of imagination; in apperception it does so under the name of understanding. 3 1 2 [Of time.] 313 [Relation.] 314 [Verhiiltnis .]
3 1 5 [Nature considered materially.]
B 1 63
200
B
164
B
165
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
How it is that the laws of appearances in nature must agree with the understanding and its a priori form, i.e., with the understanding's power to combine the manifold as SUCh, 316 is not any stranger than how it is that appearances themselves must agree with the form of a priori sensible in tuition. For just as appearances exist not in themselves but only relatively to the subject in whom the appearances inhere insofar as the subject has senses, so the laws exist3 1 7 not in the appearances but only relatively to that same being insofar as that being has understanding. Things in them selves would have their law-governedness necessarily, even apart from an understanding that cognizes them. But appearances are only presentations of things that exise 18 uncognized as regards what they may be in them selves. As mere appearances, however, they are subject to no law of con nection whatever except the one prescribed by the connecting power. Now what connects the manifold of sensible intuition is imagination; and imagi nation depends on understanding as regards the unity of its intellectual syn thesis, and on sensibility as regards the manifoldness of apprehension. Now all possible perception depends on this synthesis of apprehension; but it it self, this empirical synthesis, depends on transcendental synthesis and hence on the categories. Therefore all possible perceptions, and hence also ev erything whatever that can reach empirical consciousness, i.e., all appear ances of nature, must in regard to their combination be subject to the cat egories. Nature (regarded merely as nature as such) depends (as natura formaliter spectata)319 on the categories as the original basis of its neces sary law-governedness. But even the pure power of understanding does not suffice for prescribing a priori to appearances, through mere categories, more laws than those underlying a nature as such considered as law governedness of appearances in space and time. Particular laws, because they concern appearances that are determined empirically, are not deriv able completely from those laws,32o although the particular laws are one and all subject to the categories. Experience must be added in order for us to become acquainted with particular laws at all; 32 1 but the a priori laws 316[Or 'at all': uberhaupt.] 3 1 7 [existieren.] 3 1 8 [da sind.] 319 [Nature considered formally.] 320 [The a priori laws underlying a nature as such.] 32 1 [uherhaupt. ]
SECTION II
[SECOND EDITION]
20 1
alone give us information about experience as such322 and about what can be cognized as an object of that experience.
§ 27 RESULT OF THIS DEDUCTION OF THE CONCEPTS OF UNDERSTANDING We cannot think an object except through categories; we cannot cognize an object thought by us except through intuitions corresponding to those con cepts. Now all our intuitions are sensible, and this [sensible] cognition is empirical insofar as its object is given. Empirical cognition, however, is experience. Consequently no cognition is possible for us a p riori323 except
B
166
B
167
solely of objects of possible experience. 324
But this cognition, which is limited to just objects of experience, is not therefore all taken from experience. Rather, as far as pure intuitions as well as pure concepts of understanding are concerned, they are elements of cog nition that are found in us a priori. Now, there are only two ways in which one can conceive oe25 a necessary agreement of experience with the con cepts of its objects: either experience makes these concepts possible, or these concepts make experience possible. The first alternative is not what happens as regards the categories (nor as regards pure sensible intuition). For they are a priori concepts and hence are independent of experience. (To assert that their origin is empirical would be to assert a kind of gen322 [iiberhaupt.j 323 [Or: 'Consequently no a priori cognition is possible for us. 'j
3M In order to keep my readers from being troubled prematurely by the worrisome detrimental consequences of this proposition, let me just remind them that in our thinking the categories are not limited by the conditions of our sensible intuition, but have an unbounded realm. Intuition is required only for cognizing what we think, i.e., only for determining the object. Thus if intuition is lacking, the thought of the object can otherwise still have its true and useful consequences for the subject's use of reason. But because the use of reason is not always directed to the deter mination of the object and hence to cognition, but is sometimes directed also to the determination of the subject and his volition, it cannot yet be set forth here.a '[Kant is here referring to the practical use of pure reason in the realm of morality. Cf. A 795-8 1 9 B 823--47, and see Kant's Critique of Practical Reason.] 32' [denken. ] =
202
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
eratio aequivoca)?26 There remains, consequently, only the second alter native (a system327 of epigenesis, as it were, of pure reason): 328 viz., that
B 168
the categories contain the bases, on the part329 of the understanding, of the possibility of all experience as such. But as to how the categories make experience possible, and as to what principles of the possibility of expe rience they provide us with when applied to appearances, more informa tion330 will be given in the following chapter on the transcendental use of our power of judgment. Someone might want to propose, in addition to the two sole ways33l mentioned above, a middle course332 between them: viz., that the catego ries are neither self- thoughf33 a priori first principles of our cognition, nor again are drawn from experience, but are subjective predispositions for thinking that are implanted in us [and given to us] simultaneously with our existence; and that they were so arranged334 by our originator that their use harmonizes exactly with the laws of nature governing the course of ex perience (this theory would be a kind of preformation system of pure rea son)?3 5 If such a middle course were proposed, the following would de cide against it (apart from the fact that with such a hypothesis one can see no end to how far the presupposition of predetermined predispositions to future judgments might be carried): viz., that the categories would in that case lack the necessity which belongs essentially to the concept of them. For, the concept of cause, e.g., which asserts the necessity of a result un der a presupposed condition, would be false if it rested only on an arbi trary subjective necessity, implanted in us, to link certain empirical pre326[A generation of something by something so different from it that such generation would be an absurdity. Cf. A 835 B 863, and the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 4 l 9n.] 327 [Or, i.e., theory.] 32s [I. ., a system of pure reason whereby experience comes about by epigenesis. On epigen e esis, and on the preformation with which it is about to be contrasted, cf. the Critique of Judg ment, Ak. V, 423-24.] 329 [Seiten.] =
330[ lehren.] 331 [Wege.] 332 [_weg. ] 333 [ulbstgedachte, i.e., thought through self-activity (spontaneously).] 334 [einrichten ] -"-' [I.e., a system of pure reason whereby expenence is fonned in advance. See br. n. 328, just above_]
SECTION II
[SECOND EDITION]
203
sentations according to such a rule of relation. I could then not say that the effect is connected with the cause in the object (i.e., connected with it nec essarily), but could say only that I am so equipped336 that I cannot think this presentation otherwise than as thus connected. And this is just what the skeptic most longs [to hear] . For then all our insight, achieved through the supposed objective validity of our judgments, is nothing but sheer il lusion; and there would also be no lack of people who would not concede this subjective necessity (which must be felt) in337 themselves. At the very least one could not quarrel with anyone about something that rests merely on the way in which his [self as) subject is organized.
BRIEF SKETCH OF THIS DEDUCTION This deduction is the exhibition of the pure concepts of understanding (and, with them, of all theoretical a priori cognition) as principles of the possi bility of experience; the exhibition of these principles,338 however, as the determination of appearances in space and time as such; and the exhibi tion, finally, of this determination as arising from the original synthetic unity of apperception, this unity being the form of understanding as re ferred to space and time, the original forms of sensibility. Only up to this point do I consider the division into subsections 339 to be necessary, because we have been dealing with the elementary concepts. Now that we want to present to ourselves the use of these concepts, the treatise may go on without such division, cohering in terms of continu ity.340
336[einrichten. ] 337[von.] 338 [dieser, which might refer back, instead, to 'experience.' 339 [Paragraphen. ] 340[kontinuierlich.]
B 169
TRANSCENDENTAL ANALYTIC B OOK II ANALYTIC OF PRINCIPLES I
A 131 B 1 70
General logic is built on a ground plan that coincides quite exactly with the division of the higher cognitive powers.2 These powers are: under standing, power of judgment,3 and reason. Hence that doctrine4 deals, in its analytic, with concepts, judgments, and inferences,s precisely in accor dance with the functions and order of those mental powers-the mental powers comprised under the broad sense of an understanding as such.6 For general logic, being merely formal, abstracts from all content of cog nition (pure or empirical) and deals merely with the form of thought (i.e., l [Grundsiitze. On my use of 'principle' to render both Prinzip and Grundsatz, see A vii br. n. 7.] 2[Erkenntnisvermogen. For the distinction between cognition (Erkenntnis) and knowledge (Wissen), see A vii br. n. 6. On my use of 'power' for Vermogen, see A 191B 33 inc!. br. n. 10 and A xii br. n. 16.] ' [Urteilskraft, i.e., the power (or ability) to judge, where Kraft is synonymous with Vermogen (see the preceding note). Urteilskraft can be rendered correctly either as 'power of judgment" or-where no ambiguity anses-as 'judgment,' which also means Urteil (i.e., an individual judgment). Now in the Critique of Judgment, where Urteilskraft occurs constantly, rendering the term as 'judgment' wherever possible makes the text significantly more readable. Hence in my translation of that work (cited above, B xvii br. n. 73) I did frequently use 'judgment' to render not only Uneil but also Urteilskraft. (Cf., in that translation, 4 br. n. 4.) In the CrI tique of Pure Reason, on the other hand, Urteilskraft occurs so much less often that readabil ity is not significantly hampered if, as I have done, one puts consistency first and renders Urteilskraft always as 'power of judgment' while reserving the term 'judgment' for Urteil ] 4[Doktrin; i.e., here, general logic.] ' [Cf.
the Logic, Ak. IX, 89-- 1 36.]
6[die man unter der weitlaufigen Benennung des Verstandes iiberhaupt begreift. Perhaps Kant means here the common understanding (i.e., common sense). Cf., e.g., A 472-73 B 500-501. See also the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 294-95; the Logic, Ak. IX, 57; and the An thropology, Ak. VII, 200, and cf. 228-29. As for my translation of iiberhaupt by 'as such,' see B xxvii br. n. 106.] =
204
BOOK II
ANALYTIC OF PRINCIPLES
205
of discursive cognition) as such. Hence it can, in its analytical part, en compass also the canon of reason.7 For reason's form has its own secure precept, 8 into which we can have insight a priori without considering the particular9 nature of the cognition being used, viz., by merely dissecting the acts of reason into their moments. 10 Transcendental logic, on the other hand, is limited to a definite l l con tent, viz., the content of pure a priori cognitions only. Hence it cannot fol low general logic in this division [including reason]. For we find that the transcendental use of reason is not objectively valid at all, and hence does not belong to the logic of truth, 12 i.e., to analytic. As a logic of illusion it requires, rather, a special 13 part in the scholastic edifice of doctrines, 14 un der the name of transcendental dialectic. 1 5 Thus understanding and power of judgment have in transcendental logic their canon of objectively valid and hence true use, and therefore belong in the analytic part of that logic. Reason, 16 on the other hand, when it at tempts to establish a priori something about objects and to expand cogni tion beyond the bounds of possible experience, is altogether dialectical, and its illusory assertions are thoroughly unfitting for a canon; yet a canon is what the analytic is to contain. Thus the Analytic of Principles will be a canon solely for the power of judgment, 1 7 teaching 18 it to apply to appearances the concepts of under standing, which contain the condition for a priori rules. Because of this I shall, in taking as my topic what are in fact the principles of understand ing, employ the name doctrine of the power ofjudgment, which more ac curately designates this task. 7[l.e., not only the canons of understanding and power of judgment.] 8 [Or 'prescription': Vorschrift.] 9 [besonder.] 1 0[l.e., key elements.] 1 1 [bestimmt.] 12[1n A, 'logic of truth' is emphasized entire, and so is 'logic of illusion,' just below.] 13[besonder.] 1 4[Lehr_.]
IS[See Walter Watson, op. cit. at B xvi br. n. 7 1 , 7 1 . ] 16[Emphasized in A.] 17[The canon for the understanding was the Analytic of Concepts, A 66-- 1 3018 9 1-169.] 1 8 [ lehren.]
{ B 171
A 132
Introduction On the Transcendental Power of Judgment as Such
A 133 B 172
If understanding as such is explicated as our powerl 9 of rules, then the power20 of judgment is the abilitl l to subsume under rules, i.e., to distin guish whether something does or does not fall22 under a given rule (is or is not a casus datae legis 23). General logic contains no prescriptions24 what ever for the power of judgment; nor can it. For since general logic ab stracts from all content of cognition,25 there remains for it nothing but the task of spelling out analytically the mere form of cognition as found in con cepts, judgments, and inferences, and of thus bringing about formal rules for any use of understanding. Now if general logic wanted to show uni versally how we are to subsume under these rules, i.e., how we are to dis tinguish whether something does or does not fall under them, then this could not be done except again by a rule. But for this rule, precisely because it is a rule, we need once again instruction from the power of judgment. And thus we find that, whereas understanding is capable of being taught and equipped by rules, the power of judgment is a particular talent that cannot be taught at all but can only be practiced. This is also the reason why the power of judgment is the specific [feature] of so-called mother wit, 26 for whose lack no school can compensate. For although the school can offer to a limited understanding-and engraft in it, as it were-an abundance of rules borrowed from the insight of others,27 yet the ability to employ these rules correctly must belong to the learner himself; and in the absence 19[Vermogen.] 20[ -kraft.] 21 [ Vermogen.] 2 2 [stehen. Cf. the etymology of casus (case), just below.] " [Case (or instance) of a given rule.] 24 [Or 'precepts' : Vorschriften.] 25 [In B, abstrahiert ( 'abstracts ') is not emphasized. coming just after the emphasized words.] 26[MutterwilZ (Witz alone is rendered in this translation as 'ingenuity. ') Cf the Anthropology (Ak. VII, 1 39). where mother wit is said to consist in the possession of the universal and in nate rules of the understanding.] 27[fremd.]
206
INTRODUCTION
POWER OF JUDGMENT
207
of such a natural gift no rule that one might prescribe to him for this aim is safe from misuse.28 Hence a physician, a judge, or a statesman may have in his mind29 many fine pathological, juridical, or political rules even to the degree where he can become a thorough teacher of them himself, and will yet easily blunder in applying them. He may blunder either because, being lacking in natural power of judgment (though not in understanding), he is able to have insight into the universal in abstracto but is unable to distinguish whether a case in concreto belongs under it; or again he may blunder because he has not been sufficiently trained for this judgment through examples and actual tasks. Indeed, the fact that examples sharpen one's power of judgment is their single and great benefit. For as regards the correctness and precision of the insight of understanding, examples con trariwise commonly impair these, because only seldom do they adequately30 fulfill (as casus in terminis)31 the rule's condition. 32 Besides, examples of ten weaken the understanding's effort to gain insight into rules, as to their adequacy,33 in a universal way34 and independently of the particular cir cumstances of experience; hence they ultimately accustom us to use rules
{ A 134 B 173
28
A lack in power of judgment is in fact what we call stupidity, and for such a handi cap there is no remedy. A dull or limited mind,· if lacking only in the proper de gree of understanding and in what concepts of understanding it owns, can indeed be equipped through learning, even to the point of erudition.b Yet commonly such
minds tend to be wanting also in power of judgment (i.e., lacking in the secunda
Petrie). Hence there is nothing unusual in meeting very learnedd men who, in us
ing their science, frequently reveal this lack, which can never be improved. a[Kopf] b [Gelehrsamkeit.] e[The reference is to the French humanist and (for some time) highly influential logician Pierre de la Ramee, 1 5 1 5 - 1 572, who Latinized his name to Petrus Ramus. According to Ramus. logic (which he equated with dialectic, the art of disputation) consists of two parts. The first part is invention (discovery of arguments). The second part, which came to be known simply as the secunda Petri (second [part of the logic] of Petrus). is (the power of) judgment. or mother wit. See the Encyclopaedia Britannica, 1 1th edition (New York: The Encyclopaedia Britannica Company, 191 1), vol. XXII. 881.] d[gelehrt.] 29 [Kopf] ]o [adiiquat.]
]l [Cases within the bounds (of the rule or concept). Cf. A 727 32 [Cf the Logic, Ak. IX. 62.] 3l [Zuliinglichkeit.] .
34 [im al/gemeinen.]
=
B 755.]
B
173
208
B 1 74
A 1 35
B 175
A 136
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
more as formulas than as principles. Examples are thus merely the power of judgment's walker,35 which those who are lacking in this natural talent can never dispense with. But although general logic36 can give no prescriptions to the power of judgment, the situation is quite different with transcendental logic-so dif ferent, indeed, that it seems to be this logic's [and thus philosophy's] proper task to correct and secure the power of judgment, by means of determinate rules, in the use of pure understanding. For philosophy does not seem to be needed at all as a doctrine, i.e., for allowing the understanding to ex pand37 in the realm of pure a priori cognitions. On the contrary, philoso phy seems ill-suited for this; for little territory or none at all has been gained with it in all the attempts made thus far. Rather, we need philosophy as critique, in order to keep the power of judgment from making slips (lap sus iudicii) 38 as it uses what few pure concepts of understanding we have. This is the task for which we enlist philosophy (although the benefit is then only negative) with all its acuteness and art of examination. But transcendental philosophy has the peculiarity that, besides indicat ing the rule (or, rather, the universal condition for rules) that is given in the pure concept of understanding, it can simultaneously indicate a priori the case39 to which the rules are to be applied. On this point transcenden tal philosophy is superior to all other didactic40 sciences (apart from math ematics), and the cause of this superiority lies precisely in this: Transcen dental philosophy deals with concepts that are to refer to their objects a priori. Hence the objective validity of these concepts cannot be established a posteriori, because this [approach] would fail entirely to touch on41 those concepts' dignity. 42 Rather, transcendental philosophy must43 simulta neously44 set forth, in terms of universal but sufficient criteria,45 the con" [Or 'gocart' (in the onginal sense of the word): Giingelwagen.] 36 [1n A, 'general logic' is emphasized entire.] 37 [Literally, 'for providing the understanding with expansion.'] 3" [Lapses of (the power of) judgment.] 39[Or 'instance' : Fall.] 4°[belehrend.] 4 1 [ganz unberuhrt lassen.] 42 [Of referring a priori to objects.] 43 [ln order to establish the objective validity of these concepts.] 44 [1 e , simultaneously with the concepts themselves.]
CHAPTER I
SCHEMATISM
209
ditions under which objects can be given in hannony with them. For oth erwise these concepts would be without any content, and hence would be mere logical forms rather than pure concepts of understanding. Now this transcendental doctrine of the power of judgment will com prise two chapters. The first chapter deals with the sensible condition un der which alone pure concepts of understanding can be used, i.e., with the schematism of pure understanding. The second chapter deals with the syn thetic judgments that under these conditions emanate a priori from pure con cepts of understanding and that lie a priori at the basis of all other cogni tions; i.e., it deals with the principles of pure understanding.
TRANSCENDENTAL DOCTRINE OF THE POWER OF JUDGMENT (or Analytic of Principles) Chapter I On the Schematism of the Pure Concepts of Understanding46 Whenever an object47 is subsumed under a concept, the presentation48 of the object must be homogeneous49 with the concept;50 i.e., the concept must 4' [Kennzeichen.] 46 [See H. E. Allison, op. cit. at A 211B 35 br. n. 22, 173-98. See also 1. W. Ellington, essay cited at B xliii br. n. 149, 173-86. Also 1. N. Findlay, op cit. at A 211B 35 hr. n. 22, 158-6 1 . Also M. S. Gram, op. cit. at A 71B 1 1 br. n. 199, 83-129. Also Paul Guyer, op. cit. at A 841B 1 1 6 br. n. 1 , 157-8 1 . Also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 334-42. Also H. 1. Paton, op. cit. at B I br. n. 152, vol. 2, 17-78. Also T. D. Weldon, op. cit. at A 211B 35 br. n. 22, 161-7 1 . And see R. P. WOlff, op. cit. at B 5 hr. n. 159, 203-23.] 47[Gegenstand, in this case. See A vii br. n. 7.] 48 [WJrsteliung. My reason for translating Vorstellung as 'presentation' rather than as 'repre sentation' is given at B xvii br. n. 73.] 49 [Or, i.e., 'of the same kind' : gieichartig; cf. the etymology of 'homogeneous.'] 50[Literally, 'with the latter [presentation] ' ; i.e., with the concept.]
{ A 1 37
B 176
210
B l 77 A 138
}
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
contain what is presented in the object that is to be subsumed under it. For this is precisely what we mean by the expression that an object is contained under a concept. 51 Thus the empirical concept of a plate is homogeneous5 2 with the pure geometrical concept of a circle, inasmuch as the roundness thought in the concept of the plate can be intuited [also] in the circle.5 3 Pure concepts of understanding, on the other hand, are quite heteroge neous54 from empirical intuitions (indeed, from sensible intuitions gener ally) and can never be encountered in any intuition. How, then, can an in tuition be subsumed under a category,55 and hence how can a category be applied to appearances-since surely no one will say that a category (e.g., causality)5 6 can also be intuited through senses and is contained in appear ances?57 Now this question, natural and important as it is, is in fact the cause that necessitates a transcendental doctrine of the power of judgment. The doctrine is needed, viz., in order to show how it is possible for pure concepts of understanding to be applied to appearances as such. In all the other sciences no such need arises. For there the concepts through which the object is thought in a universal way58 are not so distinct and hetero geneous from the concepts presenting the object in concreto, as it is given. And hence there is no need there to provide a special exposition concern ing the application of the first kind of concept to the second kind. Now clearly there must be something that is third, something that must be homogeneous59 with the category, on the one hand, and with the ap pearance, on the other hand, and that thus makes possible the application " [Cf. B 40; also the Logic, Ak. IX, 98.] 5 2 [Literally, 'has homogeneity.'] 53[Reading dem ersteren as referring to the concept of the plate rather than to the plate itself, but taking im letzteren to refer not to the concept of the circle but to the circle itself. Vaihinger inverts the sequence, reading in dem letzteren . . . im ersteren for in dem ersteren . . . im lelz teren, which moreover leaves indeterminate whether the reference is to the plate and the circle or to the concepts of these.] 54[ungleichartig, i.e., more literally, 'not of the same kind.' A emphasizes the word; B does not, except as edited (unnecessarily, I think) by Erdmann in the Akademie edition.] 55 [die erste (which should have been die ersten) was meant to refer to Verstandesbegriffe but instead anticipates the terminological switch to die Kategorie.] 56[Parentheses added.] 57 [l.e. in objects of perception (see B 207, 225), which is indeterminate empirical intuition (see B 422 n. 288, cf. B 207).] ,
58[allgemein.] 59 [Literally, 'stand in homogeneity.' ]
CHAPTER I
211
SCHEMATISM
of the category to the appearance. This mediating presentation must be pure (i.e., without anything empirical), and yet must be both
sensible, scendental schema. one hand, and
intellectual,
on the
on the other hand. Such a presentation is the
tran
A concept of understanding contains pure synthetic unity of the mani fold as such. Time, as the formal condition for the manifold of inner sense and hence for the connection of all presentations, contains an a priori mani fold in pure intuition. Now, a transcendental time determination6o is ho
category (in which its unity consists) insofar as the universal and rests on an a priori rule. But it is ho mogeneous with appearance, on the other hand, insofar as every empiri cal presentation of the manifold contains time. Hence it will be possible
mogeneous with the
time determination is
for the category to be applied to appearances by means orl the transcen dental time determination, which, as the schema of the concepts of under standing, mediates62 the sUbsumption of appearances under the category. In view of what has been shown in the deduction of the categories, I hope that no one will have doubts in deciding this question: whether these pure concepts of understanding have a merely empirical use [only] or also a transcendental one; i.e., whether, as conditions of a possible experience, they refer a priori solely to appearances; or whether they can be extended, as conditions for the possibility of things as such,63 to objects in them selves64 (without any restriction to our sensibility). For we saw in the de
duction that concepts are quite impossible,65 and cannot have any signifi cation,66 unless an object is given for the concepts themselves or at least 6O[l.e., a schema.]
61 [vermittelst. ] 62[vermitteln.] 63 [Dinge iiberhaupt.] 64 [Gegenstiinde an sich selbst.]
65[Corrected by Kant to 'that concepts are for us without meaning [Sinn] ' in his working copy of edition A. See Preliminary Studies and Supplementary Entries (cited at A 1 91B 33 br. n. 13), Ak. XXIII, 46.] 66[Bedeutung. Although this term (similarly for the verb) is often translated best by 'mean ing,' that translation will not work in the case of concepts. For a concept without Bedeutung certainly need not be meaningless in the sense of being contradictory, in which case the con cept would be annulled and no object for it would be even logically possible. Still less are such concepts meaningless in the same way as nonsense words are, since these do not even have corresponding concepts. A concept without Bedeutung is. rather, one that refers to no object that is either actual or really possible. (For the distinction between logical and real
B 178 A 1 39
212
B 1 79
A 140
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
for the elements of which they consist;67 and that hence they cannot at all concern things in themselves (i.e., [things considered] without regard to whether and how they may be given to US). 68 We saw, moreover, that the only way in which objects can be given to us is by modification of our sensibility;69 and, finally, that pure a priori concepts, besides containing the function of understanding implicit in the category, must also a priori con tain70 formal conditions of sensibility (of inner sense, specifically), viz., conditions comprising7 1 the universal condition under which alone the cat egory can be applied to any object. 72 Let us call this formal and pure con dition of sensibility, to which the concept of understanding is restricted in its use, the schema of this concept of understanding; and let us call the un derstanding's procedure with these schemata the schematism of pure un derstanding. schema is, in itself, always only a product of the imagination. 73 Yet, because here the imagination's synthesis aims not at an individual intuition but at unity in the determination of sensibility, a schema must be distin-
A
possibility, see B xxvi n. 103, A 241 -441B 300-302 incl. n. 144b, A 5961B 624 n. 148, and cf. A 1441B 1 84, A 2 18-241B 265-72, A 230-341B 282-87 incl. n. 96, B 308, A 581 B 609, A 610 B 638, A 770 B 798, A 787-88 B 8 15-16.) Such a concept is thus not meaningless (except perhaps "meaningless for us," loosely speaking-see the preceding note) but is merely empty, i.e., without content. (See A 1 55-56/B 1 94-95, A 252, A 292/B 348-49, and cf. A 511B 75. A 90/B 1 23 .) Yet Bedeutung is also not translatable as 'denotation.' (For the single exception, see A 7 1 1B 96 br. n. 144.) For not only is Kant's use of Bedeutung (which does sometimes stand for 'meaning') rather less specific, but 'denotation' is normally taken to include only actual things, not also possible ones (in whatever sense of 'possible.') By us ing ' signification' we get around both these problems. Above all, however, we make good sense when we say that if a concept is meaningful but refers to no (actual or really possible) objects then it signifies nothing. ('Significance,' the other possible noun for 'signify,' tends to suggest merely 'importance' and hence is too broad and vague.) Now, logical signification in a concept (A 1471B 1 86) is indeed meaning; but to translate it as ' meaning' would make the addition of 'logical' redundant, and would also conceal the contrast of it with signification in Kant's ordinary sense of the term.] =
=
=
=
67[A 95-96, cf. A 1 1 7 n. 138, 129; B 146, 148-49, 158, cf. B 105, 157, 165.] 68[A 108-9, 1 28-30; cf. A 96, 1 0 1 , 104-5, 1 14, B 145, 147-49, 1 5 1 , 164, 166 inel. n. 324.] 69 [A 98-99. 1 29. cf. A 97, 107-9, 1 1 1 , 1 1 5. 1 27-28; B 146, 148-5 1 . 164-65, cf. B 135-36. 1 39, 144-45. 147.] 7°[enthalten.] 71 [enthalten.] 72[A 98-99, 1 15, cf. 95-96, 1 1 1 -14. 1 19. 1 23-24. 1 27; B 153-55, 1 62-63, cf. 144, 147-48, 1 50-52, 159-61 . 1 64-65, 1 67-69.] 73 [Einbildungskraft.]
CHAPTER I
SCHEMATISM
213
guished from an image.74 Thus if I put five dots after one another, like this, • • . • .
, then this result is an image of the number five. Suppose, on the other
hand, that I only think a number as such, which might then be five or a
hundred. Then my thought is more the presentation of a method for pre senting-in accordance with a certain concept-a multitude (e.g., a thou sand) in an image, than this image itself. Indeed, in the case of a thousand I could hardly survey7 5 that image and compare it with the concept. Now,
this presentation of a universal procedure of the imagination for providing
B 1 80
a concept with its image I call the schema for that concept. In fact, it is schemata, not images of objects, that lie at the basis of our pure sensible76 concepts. No image whatever of a triangle would ever be adequate to the concept of a triangle as such. For it would never reach the concept's universality that makes the concept hold for all triangles (whether right-angled or oblique-angled, etc.),77 but would always be limited to only a part of this sphere. The schema of the triangle can never exist anywhere but in thoughts, and is78 a rule for the synthesis of imagination regarding pure shapes in space. Even less79 is an object of experience or an image thereof ever adequate to the empirical concept; rather, that concept always refers directly80 to the schema of imagination, this schema being a rule for determining our intuition in accordance with such and such a general8l con cept. The concept
dol2
signifies 83 a rule whereby my imagination can
trace84 the shape of such85 a four-footed animal in a general way,86 i.e., without being limited to any single and particular shape offered to me by 74[Bild. ] 75 [iibersehen.]
76[l.e., mathematical.] 77[Parentheses added.]
78[Literally, 'signifies' or 'means' : bedeutet.] 79[Than in the case of pure sensible (mathematical) concepts.] 8o [ unmittelbar. See B xxxix br. n. 144c.] 81 [allgemein.]
82[Emphasis added.] 83 [bedeutet.] 84[verzeichnen.]
85['such' inserted, as suggested by Erdmann.] 86[allgemein.]
A 141
214
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
experience, or even to all possible images that I can exhibit87
in concreto.
This schematism of our understanding, i.e., its schematism regarding ap
B
181
pearances and their mere form, is a secret art residing in the depths of the
human soul, an art whose true stratagems 88 we shall hardly ever divine from nature and lay bare before ourselves. Only this much can we say: The
age A
142
im
is [here] 89 a product of the productive imagination's empirical abil
ity. 9o A
schema
of sensible concepts (such as the concepts91 of figures in
space) is a product and, as it were, a monogram of the pure a priori imagi nation through which, and according to which, images become possible in the first place. But the images must always be connected with the concept only by means of the schema that they designate; in themselves the images are never completely congruent with the concept. A schema of a pure con cept of understanding, 92 on the other hand, is something that one cannot bring t093 any image whatsoever. Such a schema is, rather, only the pure synthesis conforming to a rule, expressed by the category,94 of unity ac cording to concepts as such. It is a transcendental product of the imagina tion which concerns the determination of inner sense as such, according to conditions of that sense's form (viz., time), in regard to all presentations
insofar as these are t095 cohere a priori, in conformity with the unity of apperception, in one concept. Now, instead of letting ourselves be detained by a dry and tedious dis
section of what is required for transcendental schemata of pure concepts 87[darstellen, which traditionally has been translated most often by 'to present.' See B xvii br. n. 73.] "" [Handgrijfe.] 89 [Kant must mean here only empirical images, such as that of dog.] 90 [Le., the productive imagination (the imagination insofar as it is spontaneity: B 152) also has an empirical use (and hence ability). See the reference just below to the pure a priori imagination in connection with sensible concepts generally (i.e., a priori sensible or empiri cal ones), and cf. A 94-95, 1 1 5, 120 n. ISO, and B l S I-52. Vaihinger here substitutes 're productive' for 'productive.' But the reproductive imagination is merely the imagination in sofar as it is subject solely to empirical laws (B 152). Cf. also Erdmann's note, Ak. III, 588.] 9 ' [l.e., the mathematical concepts.] 92 [l.e., of a category.] 93 [Literally, 'into.'] 94 [Grammatically. 'expressed by the category' could, instead, modify 'synthesis' or even ·unity. '] 9' [Reading, with Adickes, sollen for sollten.]
CHAPTER I
SCHEMATISM
215
of understanding as such, let us exhibit them, rather, according to the or der of the categories and in connection with them. The pure image of all magnitudes
(quanta)
for outer sense is space,
B 1 82
whereas the pure image of the magnitudes of all sense objects as such is
schema o!magnitude96 (quantitas) taken as a [pure] con cept of understanding is number, which is a presentation encompassing con
time. But the pure
jointly the successive addition of one item to another (homogenous item).97
Therefore number is nothing other than the unity in the synthesis of the manifold of a homogeneous intuition as such, a unity that arises because I
myself produce9 8 time in apprehending the intuition.
Reality, in the pure concept of understanding, is what corresponds to a sensation as such. Therefore reality is that whose very concept99 indicates a being [of something] (in time); and negation is that whose concept pre sents a not-being l OO (in time). Hence the contrast l O l of reality and nega
tion is made by distinguishing the same time as either a filled or an empty time. Now, time is only the form of intuition, and hence only the form l O2 of objects as appearances; therefore what in these objects corresponds to sensation is the transcendental matter l O3 of all objects as things 104 in their own right lO5 (i.e., their thinghood, 1 06 realityI 07). Now every sensation has a degree or magnitude whereby it can, in regard to the same presentation of an object, fill the same time-i.e., [form of] inner sense-more or fill 96[On magnitude and related concepts, cf. the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 248-60.] 97 [Literally,
'of one to one (homogeneous). ' ]
98 [l.e., synthesize. Cf. A 145/B 1 84.] 99 [Literally, 'whose concept in itself.'] l OO [Or 'nonexistence': Nichtsein ] 10 0 [Or 'opposition': Entgegensetzung.]
I 02 [I.e., without the matter.] I 03 [I.e., matter in the transcendental sense; cf. B 322.]
104 [Dinge.] 1 05 [an sich; i.e., here, as substances. Although Kant ordinarily uses an sich to mean 'in it self' or 'in themselves,' he often uses it loosely. (Cf. br. n. 99, just above.) He must be doing so here, in view of what he has just said in this paragraph. See also A 359-60, 370--73, 385-87, 3 90-91 , B 427-28. Wille, instead, does read 'things in themselves' and inserts 'not' before 'the transcendental matter.' ] I06 [Sachheit. j
I 07 [The root meaning of 'reality' is thinghood.]
A 143
216
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
it less, down to where108 the sensation ceases in nothingness109 (
=
B 1 83
0
=
ne
gatio). Hence there is a relation and coherence, l Io or rather a transition from reality to negation, which is responsible for every reality's being pre
sented1 1 l as a quantum. And the schema of a reality taken as the quantity
of something insofar as it fills time is precisely this continuous and uni
form production of that reality in time, where 1 1 2 from a sensation having
a certain degree we descend, in time, until 1 ! 3 the sensation vanishes, or as
cend gradually from the sensation's negation to its [actual] magnitude. A 144
The schema of substance is permanence of the real in time; i.e., it is the presentation of the real as a substratum of empirical time determination as such, a substratum which therefore endures while1 l 4 all else varies. 1 1 5 (Time is not in transition; 1 1 6 rather, the existence o f what i s mutable i s i n tran sition in time. Hence to time, which itself is immutable and enduring, there corresponds in [the realm of] appearance what is immutable in existence, i.e., substance; and only by reference to substance can succession 1 l 7 and simultaneity 1 1 8 of appearances be determined in terms of time.) The schema of the cause 1 1 9 and of the causality l 20 of a thing as such is
the real upon which, wheneverl21 it is posited, something else always fol IOWS. 1 22 Hence this schema consists in the manifold's successionl23 inso far as this is subject to a rule. 1 08[bis.] I09[in Nichts.] l lO [Between reality and negation.] l l l Uede Realitat . . . vorstellig macht.] 1 12 [indem.] 11 3[bis.] 1 14[indem. ] l 1 S[wechseln. See B 224 hr. n. 45, and cr. A 1 871B 230.] 116 [sich verlaufen.] 1 1 7[Folge.]
1 1 8[Zugleichsein. See B 257 hr. n. 209.] 1 19[Ursache.] 120 [Kausalitat.] 1 21 [wenn . . . nach Belieben.] 122 [folgt.] 123[Sukzessioll ]
CHAPTER I
SCHEMATISM
217
The schema of community (interaction), 1 24 or [Le.] of the reciprocal 1 25 causality of substances in regard to their accidents, is the simultaneity, ac cording to a universal rule, of the determinations of the one substance with
B 1 84
those of the other. The schema of possibility is the harmony of the synthesis of different presentations with the conditions of time as such. (Thus, e.g., what is op posite cannot be in a thing simultaneously, but can be in it only sequen tially.) Hence this schema is the determination, at some time, of the pre sentation of a thing. The schema of actuality is existence within a determinate time.
A 145
The schema of necessity is the existence of an object at all time. Now from all of this we see that the schema of each category contains, and is responsible for the presentation Of, 1 26 the following: the schema of magnitude, the production (synthesis) of time itself in the successive ap
prehension of an object; the schema of quality, 127 the synthesis of sensa
tion (perception) with the presentation of time--or, i.e., the filling of time; the schema of relation, 1 28 the relation of perceptions among one another at all time (i.e., according to a rule of time determination); finally, the schema of modality and of its categories, time itself as the correlate of the determination of an object as to whether and how it belongs to time. Hence the schemata are nothing but a priori time determinations according to rules;
time series, the time content, the time order, and finally the time sum totaZ 1 29 in
and these rules, according to the order of the categories, deal with the regard to all possible objects. 1 30
B 1 85
Now, this shows that the schematism of understanding provided by the transcendental synthesis of imagination comes down to nothing other than the unity in inner sense of all the manifold of intuition, and thus comes down indirectly to the unity of apperception as a function corresponding to inner sense (a receptivity). The schemata of the pure concepts of under standing are, therefore, the true and sole conditions for providing these con124[Wechselwirkung.] 125 [wechselseitig.] 126 [vorstellig mache.] 1 27[The tenn was actually not used at A 143/B 182-83. But see A 175-76/B 2 1 7-18, and cf. A 80/B 106, along with A 70/B 95.] 128[Relation here, Verhiiltnis just below.] 1 29[Zeitinbegriff. ]
1 30[GegensUinde here, Objekte in the next paragraph.]
A 146
218
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
cepts with a reference to objects and hence with signification. 1 3 1 And hence the categories have, in the end, no other use than a possible empirical one. For, by [being] bases 132 of a unity that is a priori necessary (because of the necessary union of all consciousness in an original apperception), they serve merely to subject appearances to universal rules of synthesis, and thus to make them fit for thoroughgoing connection in one experience. In the whole of all possible experience, however, lie all our cognitions; and the transcendental truth that precedes all empirical truth and makes it possible consists in the universal reference to this possible experience. Yet it is obvious also that although the schemata of sensibility are what
B 1 86
first realize the categories, they do nonetheless also restrict them, i.e., they limit them to conditions lying outside understanding (viz., in sensibility). Hence a schema is, properly speaking, only the phenomenon of an object, or the sensible concept of an object, in harmony with the category. (Nu
est quantitas phaenomenon, sensatio realitas phaenomenon, con substantia phaenomenon, aetemitas necessi 34 1 5 tas phaenomenon, etc.)13 Now, it seems that if we omit a restricting merus
stans et perdurabile rerum l 33
A
147
condition from a previously limited concept, then we amplify l36 that con
cept. Thus it was supposed l 37 that the categories in their pure sig nification-i.e., apart from all conditions of sensibility-hold for things as such,
as they are, instead of the categories' having schemata that present as they appear; and hence it was supposed that the cat
these things only
egories have a signification that is independent of all schemata and that ex
tends much farther than they do. The concepts of understanding do in fact retain a signification, even after their separation from all sensible condil 3 1 [Bedeutung. See A 1 391B 178 br. n. 66.] 13 2 [Grande. See B xix br. n. 79.] 1 33 [Extending the emphasis (indicated by my not using italics for the Latin) on cons tans ('con
stant') to include et perdurabile rerum ( 'and permanent of things').] 134 [Corrected by Erdmann (with deletion of commas after aetemitas and necessitas) from phaenomena. For the adjectival use of phaenomenon. see A 433 B 461 , where Kant con trasts mundus phaenomenon (phenomenal world)--called mundus sensibilis ('sensible world' ) at A 249 (B 305 n . l 69}--with mundus intelligibilis (intelligible world) ] 1 35 [Number is phenomenal quantity; sensation, phenomenal reality; the constant and perma =
nent of things, phenomenal substance; eternity, phenomenal necessity; etc ] 1 36[In the sense of 'expand': ampliJizieren.] 1 37 [Viz., by those who omitted the restricting condition(s).]
CHAPTER I
SCHEMATISM
219
tions. But this i s only a logical signification,1 38 [where the concepts of un derstanding signify] the mere unity of presentations. But these concepts 1 39 are then given no object, and hence also no signification that could yield a concept of the object. 140 Thus, e.g., [the concept of] substance, if one omit ted from it the sensible determination1 4 1 of permanence, would signify noth
ing more than something that can be thought as a subject (Le., thought with out being thought as a predicate of something else). 1 42 Now, this is a
presentation that I cannot tum into anything, 1 4 3 because it does not at all indicate to me what determinations l 44 are possessed by the thing that is to count1 45 as such a primary subject. Without schemata, therefore, the cat egories are only functions of the understanding for producing concepts, but they present no object. This latter signification they get from sensibility, which realizes the understanding while at the same time restricting it.
138 [l.e., a meaning; see A 1 391B 178 br. n. 66, end of the note.] 1 39 [Reading denen. in line more with the wider context than with the grammar, as referring back to Verstandesbegriffen rather than to Vorstel/ungen (presentations).] '40 [Corrected by Kant to 'a cognition of the object' ('object' translates Objekt here, Gegen stand just above) in his working copy of edition A. See Preliminary Studies and Supplemen tary Entries (cited at A 1 91B 33 br. n. 13), Ak. XXIII, 46.] 1 41 [Bestimmung. See A 231B 37 hr. n. 30.] 1 42 [Cf. B 149, 288-89; A 242-431B 300-301 ; A 401.] '43 [Such as a cognition, i.e.: nichts machen . . . aus.] 1 44 [See br. n. 141, just above ] 1 45 [gelten.]
B 1 87
A 1 48
TRANSCENDENTAL DOCTRINE OF THE POWER OF JUDGMENT (or Analytic of Principles) Chapter II System of All Principles of Pure Understanding In the preceding chapter we examined the transcendental power of judg ment solely in terms of the universal conditions under which alone it is entitled to use the pure concepts of understanding for making synthetic judgments. Our task now is to exhibit as systematically linked the judg ments that the understanding, under this critical provision, 146 actually brings about a priori. The natural and safe guidance for this task must doubtless be given to us by our table of categories. For precisely in the categories'
B 1 88
reference to possible experience must all pure a priori cognition of under standing consist; and hence the categories' relation to sensibility as such will display, completely and in a system, all the transcendental principles for the use of understanding. Now, first, a priori principles are so named not merely because they con
tain the bases147 of other judgments, but also because they themselves are
A 1 49
not based on higher and more universal cognitions. Yet having this prop erty does not always exempt such principles from requiring a proof. Such a proof could, to be sure, no longer be conducted objectively; [any a priori
principle] 1 48 lies, rather, at the basis of all cognition of its object. This does
not, however, preclude the possibility of creating a proof that starts from the subjective sources underlying the possibility of cognizing an object as such. Nor, indeed, does it preclude that creation of such a proof is needed; 146 [Vorsicht. in an older meaning of the term, which now means 'caution' or 'precaution.']
1 47 [Or 'grounds': Griinde. See B xix br. n. 79.] 148 [My emendation is almost identical to Erdmann's (Ak. JIJ, 588), which stays closer to the text than others. Erdmann surmises that Kant continued the sentence as if he had started it by 'Such a principle could, to be sure, no longer be proved objectively ' ]
220
CHAPTER II
PRINCIPLES OF PURE UNDERSTANDING
221
for otherwise the proposition would still be under the greatest suspicion of being an assertion obtained merely surreptitiously. 149 Second, we shall limit ourselves to just those principles 150 that refer to the categories. Hence the principles of the Transcendental Aesthetic, whereby space and time are the conditions of the possibility of all things as appearances, and likewise the restriction of those principles, viz., that they cannot be used in reference to things in themselves, do not belong within our allotted realm of inquiry. Mathematical principles, similarly,
form no part of this system. For they are drawn only from intuition, not from the pure concept of understanding. Yet because they are nonetheless
B 1 89
synthetic a priori judgments, their possibility also will necessarily be con sidered here. We must include their possibility here, not indeed in order to prove that they are correct and apodeictic ally certain-a proof that they do not require at all-but only in order to make comprehensible, and to de duce, the possibility of such evident a priori cognitions. But we shall also have to talk about the principle of analytic judgments. 1 Moreover, we must talk about this principle in contrast with that 15 of syn thetic judgments-the judgments that we are in fact dealing with. For this contrast is precisely what frees the theory of synthetic judgments from all misunderstanding, and lays their peculiar nature distinctly before us.
1 49 [blojJ erschlichen. On subreption, see A 643
=
B 67 1 incl. br. n. 14.]
150 [Grundsiitze in this case, Prinzipien in the case just below, and Grundsiitze again just after that. See A vii br. n. 7.] 1 51 [Reading, with Mellin, mit dem der for mit der.]
A 150
The System of the Principles of Pure Understanding Section I On the Supreme Principle of All Analytic Judgments Whatever our cognition may contain and however it may refer to its ob ject, all our judgments as such are yet subject to the universal, although only negative, condition that they must not contradict themselves. For oth erwise these judgments, even in themselves (i.e., even with their object left B 190
out of account), are nothing. Yet even if our judgment has no contradic tion in it, it may nonetheless link: concepts in a way not borne out by the
object,1 5 2 or may link: them even if no basis 1 53 justifying such a judgment is given to us either a priori or a posteriori; and thus a judgment, despite
being free from all intrinsic l 54 contradiction, may still be either false or baseless. A 151
Now the proposition,1 55 No thing can have l56 a predicate that contra
dicts it, is called the principle l 5 7 of contradiction. It is a universal, al though merely negative, 1 58 criterion of all truth. Precisely because of this,
however, this proposition belongs l 59 merely in logic. For it holds for cog
nitions regardless of their content, i.e., merely as cognitions as such, and says that the contradiction annihilates and annuls them entirely. Yet the principle of contradiction can also be used positively. I.e., it can be used not merely to banish falsehood and error (insofar as they rest on 1 52 [wie es der Gegenstand nicht mit sich bringt.] 153[Grund. See B xix hr. n. 79.] 1 54[inner.] 155 [Satz.] 156 [Literally, 'To no thing belongs' : zukommen.] 157[Satz.] 1 58[negativ.] 159 [gehoren.]
222
SECTION I
PRINCIPLE OF ALL ANALYTIC JUDGMENTS
contradiction), but also to cognize truth. For
223
if a judgment is analytic,
whether it be negativel60 or affinnative, then its truth must always be cog nizable sufficiently by reference to the principle of contradiction. For de nying the reverse 1 61 of what already lies, and is thought, as concept in the cognition of the object will always have to be correct; but the concept it self will necessarily have to be affinned of the object,1 62 because the op posite of the concept would contradict the object. Hence we must indeed accept 163 the principle 1 64 universal and completely
sufficient principle 1 65
B 191
of contradiction as the
of all analytic cognition.
On the other hand, the principle's authority and usability as a sufficient cri terion of truth also do not go beyond analytic cognition. For although the fact that no cognition whatever can go against the principle without anni hilating itself does make the principle a conditio sine
qua non 1 66
[even] of our [synthetic] cognition's truth, it does not make it a basis determining 1 67
A 1 52
that truth. 1 68 Now in this work we are in fact dealing only with the syn
thetic part of our cognition. Hence, although we shall always take care
never to act against that inviolable principle, we can never expect from it
any infonnation regarding the truth of the synthetic kind of cognition. But although this famous principle is thus stripped of all content and merely fonnal, there is a fonnulation of it that does contain a synthesis mixed in with it from carelessness and without any need whatsoever. It
simultaneously 169 to both be and not be. Not only has (through the word impossible) apodeictic certainty super reads: It is impossible for something
fluously been attached here, a certainty that must surely be understandable on its own from the proposition. But, in addition, the proposition is af fected by the condition of time. It says, as it were: A thing,
=
A, that is
1OO[vemeinend.] 16 1 [Widerspiel.] 162 [von ihm, which (in the original) would refer back grammatically to 'what already lies . . . of the object.'] ' 63 [gelten lassen.] 1 64 [Satz.] 16S [Principium.] 1 66 [Indispensable (or necessary) condition.] 167[Bestimmungsgrund. ] 168 [See the Logic, Ak. IX, 49-53.] 1 69 [Or 'at the same time': zugleich.]
B 192
224
PART II
something,
=
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
B, cannot at the same time be not_B ; 1 70 but it may very well
be both (B as well as not-B) sequentially. E.g., a human being who is young cannot simultaneously be old; but that same human being may very well be at one time young, at another time not young, i.e., old. Now since the principle l 7 1 of contradiction is a merely logical principle, l 72 it must not at A 153
all limit its pronouncements to time relations. Hence such a formulation as the above goes wholly against the principle's intent. The misunderstand ing comes merely from this: One first of all separates a predicate of a thing from the thing's concept, and afterwards connects with this predicate its opposite. That, however, never yields a contradiction with the subject, but yields one only with the subject's predicate, which has been linked with the subject synthetically; and it does so, moreover, only if the first and the second predicates are posited at the same time. If I say, A human being who is unlearned is not learned, then the condition,
simultaneously,
must
be added; 173 for someone who at one time is unlearned may very well at another time be learned. But if I say, No unlearned human being is learned, then the proposition is analytic. For the characteristic (unlearnedness) now goes 174 to make up the concept of the subject; and in that case the nega tive proposition175 is directly l 76 evident from the principle177 of contra diction, without there being any need to add 17 8 the condition, B 193
simulta
neously. It is because of this, then, that I have above changed the formulation of the principle so that it expresses distinctly the nature of an analytic proposition.
1 70[non B (in Latin); likewise just below.] 1 7 1 [Satz.] 1 72 [Grundsatz.] 1 73[dabei stehen.] 1 74[mit. ] 1 75[Satz.] 1 76[unmittelbar. See B xxxix br. n. 144c.] 177[Satz.] 1 78[hinzukommen.]
The System of the Principles of Pure Understanding
A 1 54
Section II On the Supreme Principle of All Synthetic Judgments Explaining the possibility of synthetic judgments is a problem with which general logic has nothing whatever to do; indeed, general logic need not even know the problem's name. But in a transcendental logic this ex planation is the most important task of all---e ven the sole task, if we are talking about the possibility of synthetic judgments that are a priori, as well as about the conditions and the range of their validity. For after complet ing this task, transcendental logic is able to fulfill perfectly its purpose, viz., to determine the range and the bounds of pure understanding.
In an analytic judgment I keep to the given concept, in order to estab
lish something about it. If the judgment is to be affirmative, then I ascribe to that concept only what was already thought in it; if the judgment is to be negative, then I exclude from the concept only its opposite. In synthetic
judgments, however, I am to go outside the given concept, in order to con
sider, in relation with this concept, something quite different from what was
thought in it. Hence this relation is never a relation either of identity or of
B 194
contradiction, so that by looking at the judgment taken by itself one can
A 1 55
not tell1 79 that it is true, or that it is erroneous.
If it is granted, then, that one must go outside a given concept in order to compare it synthetically with another concept, then something third is needed wherein alone the synthesis of two concepts can arise. But what, then, is this third something that is the medium of all synthetic judgments?
There is only one sum total1 80 that contains all our presentations: viz., in
ner sense, and its a priori form, time. Moreover, the synthesis of presen tations rests on imagination; but their synthetic unity (which is required for 119[ihm
ansehen.] 18°[lnbegr(ff. ]
225
226
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
a judgment) rests on the unity of apperception. Hence the possibility of syn thetic judgments will have to be sought therein;1 8 1 and since all three con tain the sources for a priori presentations, the possibility of pure synthetic judgments will also have to be sought in them. Indeed, these judgments will even necessarily 182 be founded on 1 83 these three bases, if a cognition
of objects is to come about that rests solely on the synthesis of presenta tions. If a cognition is to have objective reality, i.e., if it is to refer to an ob ject and have in that object its signification and meaning, then the object must be capable of being given 1 84 in some way. 1 85 For otherwise the con B 195 A 1 56
cepts are empty; and though we have thought by means Of1 86 them, we have in fact cognized nothing through 1 87 this thinking, but have merely played with presentations. To be given 1 88 an object- if this is not again to mean
to be given it only indirectly, but is to mean, rather, to exhibit1 89 it directly in intuition-is nothing other than to refer the presentation of the object to experience (whether actual, or at lease 90 possible, experience). Even space and time, however pure these concepts are of anything empirical, and how ever certain it is that they are presented in the mind completely a priori, would yet be without objective validity, and without meaning and signifi cation, if we did not show that their use with objects of experience is nec
essary.1 91 Indeed, the presentation of space and time is a mere schema that always refers to the reproductive imagination,1 92 this imagination sumIBI [Viz., in inner sense, imagination, and unity of apperception.] IB2 [Reading aus diesen Grunden notwendig as meaning notwendig aus diesen Grunden, with notwendig (construed as an adverb rather than an adjective-'necessarily' rather than 'nec essary' ) having been put last only for the sake of emphasis on the contrast with 'possibility. '] IB3 [aus. ] IB4 [Emphasis added in B.] IB' [On this and the next sentence, see A 139/B 178 br. n. 66.] I B6 [ -durch.] IB7 [du rch. ] IBB [Kant actually says 'To give.'] I B9 [darstellen, which traditionally has been translated most often by 'to present.' See B xvii br. n. 73.] 1 90 [doch.] 1 9 1 [Or, perhaps ' 'if we did not show in objects of experience that their use is necessary ' J
192 [Cf A 1 1 8 inc! br. n. 1 42.]
SECTION II
PRINCIPLES OF ALL SYNTHETIC JUDGEMENTS
227
moning the objects of experience without which they1 93 would have no sig nification. And thus it is, without distinction, with all concepts whatsoever. Hence the possibility
of experience is what provides all our a priori cog
nitions with objective reality. Now experience rests on the synthetic unity of appearances, i.e., on a synthesis perlormed according to concepts of an1 94 object as such of appearances. Without such synthesis, experience would not even be cognition, but would be a rhapsody of perceptions. Such a rhap sody of perceptions would not fit together in any context conforming to rules of a thoroughly1 95 connected (possible) consciousness, and hence would also not fit together to agree with the transcendental and necessary unity of apperception. Hence at the basis of experience there lie, a priori,
B 1 96
principles of its form. These principles are universal rules of unity in the
A 1 57
synthesis of appearances; and the objective reality of these rules as neces
sary conditions1 96 can always be shown in experience-indeed, even in the possibility of experience. Without this reference,1 97 however, synthetic propositions are entirely impossible a priori. 1 98 For they have then no third
something, viz., no 1 99 object in which the synthetic unity can establish the objective reality of their concepts.200 Hence very much concerning space as such, or concerning the shapes
traced in it by the productive imagination,20 1 is indeed cognized by us a priori in synthetic judgments, so that for this cognition we actually require no experience at all. Yet to cognize all this would be nothing-but would
be to deal with a mere chimera202-if space did not have to be regarded as a condition of the appearances which amount to the material for outer 1 93 [Space and time.] 194[Reading, with Vaihinger, von einem for vom ('of the').] 19' [durchgiingig.] 1 96 [Of expenence.) 197 [To actual or at least possible experience. Cf. the preceding paragraph.) 1 98 [Or 'synthetic a pnori propositions are entirely impossible. ' See B 1 9 br. n. 234.) 199 [Following Grillo's reading (as adopted by Erdmann in the Akademie edition) of keinen
for reinen.) 2oo[Foliowing Vaihinger's interpretation of this clause. The (grammatically) possible alterna tive would read: 'in [an) which the synthetic unity of their concepts can establish objective reality. ' ) 201 [Cf A 1 1 8 inc!. br. n . 142 ) 202 [Hirngespinsl.)
228
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
experience. Hence those pure synthetic judgments203 refer- although only indirectly204-to possible experience, or rather to the very possibility of experience, and on this reference alone do they base the objective validity of their synthesis. Therefore experience, as empirical synthesis, is in [regard to] its pos
sibility the only kind of cognition that provides reality to all otherZ°5 syn thesis. By the same token, this latter synthesis, as a priori cognition, has B 197
truth (agreement with the object) only because it contains nothing more than
A 1 58
what is necessary for synthetic unity of experience as such. Hence the supreme principle 206 of all synthetic judgments is this: Ev ery object is subject to the conditions necessary for synthetic unity of the manifold of intuition in a possible experience.
Thus synthetic judgments are possible a priori207 if we refer the formal
conditions of a priori intuition, the synthesis of imagination, and the nec essary unity of this synthesis in a transcendental apperception to a possible experiential cognition as such, and if we then say that the conditions for the possibility of experience as such are simultaneously 208 conditions for the
possibility of objects of experience
and hence have objective validity
in a synthetic a priori judgment.
203 [l.e., the synthetic a priori judgments concerning space as such and the shapes traced in it by the productive imagination.] 204 [Or 'mediately': mitteLbar. See B xxxix br. n. 144c.] 205 [l.e., a priori. ] 206 [Principium.] 208 [Or 'synthetic a priori judgments are possible.' See B 19 br. n. 234.] 2°" [zugLeich. ]
The System of the Principles of Pure Understanding
Section III Systematic Presentation of All the Synthetic Principles of Pure Understandingl The fact that principles occur anywhere at all is attributable solely to pure understanding. For pure understanding not only is our power of rules re garding what happens, but is itself the source of principles, the source ac cording to which everything (whatever we can encounter as an object) is
necessarily subject t02 rules. For without rules there could never be for3 appearances any cognition of an object corresponding to them. Even natu ral laws, when considered as principles of understanding's empirical use, carry with them at the same time4 an expression of necessity, and hence at least the presumption of their being determined from bases5 that are valid
a priori and prior6 to all experience. But all laws of nature, without dis ? tinction, fall under higher principles of understanding, inasmuch as they only apply these higher principles to particular cases of appearance. Hence these higher principles alone provide us with the concept that contains the l [See H. W. Cassirer, op. cit. at A 2 11B 35 hr. n. 22, 1 06-26. See also J. W. Ellington, essay cited at B xliii hr. n. 149, 1 86-94. Also Paul Guyer, op. cit. at A 8418 1 16 hr. n. 1 , 1 76-90. Also Nonnan Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii hr. n. 5, 343-424. Also Arthur Melnick, op. cit. at A 22/8 37 hr. n. 27, 26 1-72. 481-90. Also H. J. Paton, op. cit. at B 1 hr. n. 152, vol. 2, 8 1 - 1 07. Also T. D. Weldon, op. cit. at A 2118 35 hr. n. 22, 1 7 1-83. And see R. P. Wolff, op. cit. at B 5 hr. n. 159, 224-28.] 2 [stehen unter.] 3 [zukommen.] 4[zugl eich. ] s [Griinde. See B xix hr. n. 79.] 6 [VO ] r. 7 [steh en unter.]
229
{ B 1 98
A 159
230
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
S condition and, as it were, the exponent for a rule as such; but experience provides us with the case that falls under the rule. There can in fact be no danger, I suppose, that anyone will regard merely empirical principles as principles of pure understanding--or vice versa, for that matter. For this confusion can easily be prevented by attending to the necessity according to concepts that distinguishes the principles of pure un derstanding, and whose lack is easily perceived in every empirical proposition-no matter how generally such a proposition may hold. But there are pure a priori principles as well that I nonetheless do not wish to assign to pure understanding as belonging to it. For whereas understand B 199 A 1 60
ing is our power of concepts, these principles are not drawn from pure con
cepts, but are drawn (even if by means of understanding) from pure intui
tions. In mathematics there are such principles; 9 but their application to
experience, and hence their objective validity, still rests always on pure understanding-indeed, so does the possibility of such synthetic a priori cognition (i.e., the deduction ofl O this possibility). Hence I shall not include among my principles l l the principles of math ematics themselves. But I shall indeed include the principles on which their possibility and objective validity is based a priori, and which must there fore be regarded as the principles 1 2 [underlying] those mathematical prin 3 4 ciples. 1 They do not emanate from intuition and proceed to concepts, 1 but emanate from concepts and proceed to intuition.
IS
When pure concepts of understanding are applied to possible experi ence, then the use of their synthesis is either
mathematical or dynamical. intuition, and in
For this application 1 6 is concerned in part merely with the part with the
existence,
of an appearance as such. However, whereas the a
priori conditions of intuition are thoroughly necessary in regard to a pos8 [Le., as in mathematics, the indicator for an operation to be performed.] 9[Le., principles drawn from pure intuitions.] IO [Le., legitimation of the claim to.] I I [Grundsatze; likewise for the next two occurrences of 'principles,' inasmuch as they trans late relative pronouns refemng back to the same German term.] 12 [Reading, with Mellin, Principien for Principium.] 1 3 [Grundsatze.]
14 [As do mathematical principles.] 1 ' [See below, A 7 1 3-27 B 740-54.] =
IO [Cf. A 1621B 201-2.]
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
23 1
sible experience, those of the existence of the objects of a possible empiri cal intuition are in themselves only contingent. Hence the principles of the s mathematical use 17 will be l unconditionally necessary, i.e., apodeictic. But as for those of the dynamical use, while they also carry with them the char acter of an a priori necessity, they do so only under the condition of there being empirical thought in an experience, and hence they do so only me 2 l diately and indirectly. 9 They consequently lack 0 (though without detri ment to the certainty they have universally in reference to experience) that 2 immediate 1 evidence possessed by the former kind of principles. 22 This, however, we shall be better able to judge23 at the conclusion of this sys tem of principles. The quite natural instruction for setting up the table of principles is pro
vided to us by the table of categories. For these principles are nothing but
the rules for the objective use of the categories. Accordingly, the follow ing are all the principles of pure understanding.
Axioms of intuition
2
3
Anticipations
Analogies
of perception
of experience
4
Postulates of empirical thought as such
I7 [Of the categories' synthesis. Likewise for 'dynamical use,' just below.] I8 [More literally, 'read' : lauten.] I9 [miltelbar und indirekt.] 2o [nicht enthalten.] 21 [Or 'direct' : unmittelbar.] 22 [I.e., those of the mathematical use of the categories' synthesis.] 23 [beurteilen. Cf. A 601B 84 br. n. 69.]
B 200
A
161
232
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
I have selected these names with care, in order not to leave unnoted the
differences24 regarding the evidence and the employment25 of these prin B 201 A 1 62
ciples. But we shall soon find that, in regard both to evidence and to a priori
determination of appearances, 26 the principles of the categories of magni
tude and quality (if we attend solely to the form of these27) do differ mark edly from the remaining principles. 2 8 For although both kinds of principles
are capable of a complete certainty, in the former kind this certainty is in tuitive but in the latter merely discursive. Hence I shall call the former kind mathematical and the latter the dynamical29 principles.3D But we must
the
24[ Unterschiede.] 25 [Ausiibung; i.e., in the application of the categories, as just discussed.]
26 [And thus, again, the application of the categories through the principles.] 27[l.e., magnitude (or quantity) and quality.] 28[Actually, Kant says: 'But we shall soon find that, in regard both to evidence and to a priori determination of appearances according to the categories of magnitude and quality (if we at tend solely to the form of these), the principles of these [categories do] differ markedly from the remaining principles.'] 29[Changed by Kant to physiological in his working copy of edition A. See Preliminary Stud ies and Supplementary Entries (cited at A 191B 33 br. n. 1 3), Ak. XXIII, 46.] 30AW [linking or] combination (coniunctio) is either assembly (compositio) or con nectionb (nexus). Assembly is the synthesis of manifold [elements] that do not be long to one another necessarily. C E.g., the two triangles by themselves into which
a square is divided by its diagonal do not belong to each other necessarily. Of this sort is also the synthesis of the homogeneous in whatever can be examined math ematically. (This synthesis can be divided in turn into the synthesis of aggregation and that of coalition; the former is concerned with extensive magnitudes, d the other with intensive magnitudes.e) The second kind of [linking or] combination (nexu/)
B 202
is the synthesis of manifold [elements] insofar as they belong to one another necessarily-as, e.g., the accident belongs necessarily to some substance, or the effect to the cause. Hence the manifold, even if heterogeneous, is yet presented as combined a priori. I call this combination dynamical because it is not one produced by choice,g and because it concerns the combination of the existence of the mani fold. (This combination can be divided in turn into the physical combination of ap h pearances among one another, and metaphysical combination-i.e., their combi nation in the a priori cognitive power. i ) "[The note was added in B.] b[Respectively, Verbindung, Zusammensetzung, Verkniipfung. On Zusammensetzung, d. B 1 1 4 br. n. 239.] e[I am including 'belong' in the emphasis (similarly in the definition of connection be low) in order to keep it from being emphasized by the interruption of the emphasis. In
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
233
note carefully that I do not have in mind3 ! here the principles of math ematics in the one case, any more than the principles of general (physical) dynamics in the other. I have in mind, rather, only the principles of pure
understanding as related to inner sense (apart from any distinction32 of the
presentations given in that sense). It is in fact through these latter prin ciples that the principles of mathematics and of general dynamics acquire, one and all, their possibility. Hence I name my principles mathematical and dynamical more in view of their application than for the sake of their con tent. I shall now proceed to examine them in the same order as they are presented in the above table.
1 AXIOMS OF INTUITION33 Their principle34 is:
All intuitions are extensive magnitudes. 35
the original, the tenn (gehiirl) comes after the entire emphasis and hence could not in terrupt it.] d [This concerns the axioms of intuition.] "[This concerns the anticipations of perception.] r[I.e., connection.] g [willkiirlich. ] h[This concerns the analogies of experience.] i[This concerns the postulates of empirical thought as such.] 3 1 [Augen.] 32 [Unterschied. ]
33[In A, the heading and the statement of the axioms' principle read as follows:]
ON THE AXIOMS OF INTUITION
Principlea of pure understanding: their intuition, extensive magnitudes.
All appearances are, in terms of
a[Grundsatz.] 34 [Prinzip. For the axioms themselves, see A 1 631B 204 inc!. br. n. 48.] 3S [See Gordon G. Brittan, Jr., Kant 's Theory o/Science (Pnnceton: Princeton University Press, 1978), 90-1 16. See also H. W. Cassirer, op. cit. at A 2 1IB 35 br. n. 22, 1 27-47. Also J. N. Findlay, op. cit. at A 21IB 35 br. n. 22, 162-66. Also Paul Guyer, op. cit. at A 84IB 1 1 6 br. n. I , 190-96. Also Nonnan Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br n. 5, 347-49. Also H. J. Paton, op. cit. at B 1 br n. 1 52, vol. 2, 1 1 1 -33. Also T. D. Weldon, op. cit. at A 21IB 35 br. n. 22, 183. And see R. P. Wolff, op. cit. at B 5 br. n. 159, 228-3 1 . ]
B 202
234
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
ProoP6 Appearances contain, as regards their form, an intuition in space and time that underlies them, one and all, a priori. Hence they cannot be appre hended, i.e., taken up into empirical consciousness, except through the syn thesis of the manifold whereby the presentations of a determinate space or B 203
time are produced. I.e., appearances can be apprehended only through the assembly of what is homogeneous3 7 and the consciousness of the synthetic unity of this manifold (this manifold38 homogeneous). Now the conscious
ness of the synthetic unity of3 9 the manifold homogeneous in intuition as
such, insofar as through this consciousness the presentation of an object first becomes possible, is the concept of a magnitude
(quantum). Therefore
even the perception [itself] of an object as appearance is possible only through the same synthetic unity (of the given sensible intuition's mani
fold)40 whereby the unity of the assembly of the manifold homogeneous
is thought in the concept of a magnitude. I.e., appearances are, one and all, magnitudes-specifically,
extensive magnitudes,
because as intuitions in
space or time they must be presented through the same synthesis whereby space and time as such are determined. Extensive is what I call a magnitude wherein the presentation of the parts makes possible (and hence necessarily precedes) the presentation of the whole. I can present no line, no matter how small, without drawing it in
A 1 63
thought,4 1 i.e., without producing from one point onward all the parts little by little and thereby tracing this intuition42 in the first place. And the situ ation is the same with every time, even the smallest. In any such time I think only the successive progression from one instant to the next,43 where 36 [This heading and the first paragraph of the proof added in B.] 37 [See B 201 n. 30.]. 38 ['manifold.' This adjective is used by Kant mostly as a noun, but here (and in similar con structions below) it functions solely as an adjective. The term usually connotes both multi plicity and difference in kind, and is then synonymous with 'multifarious.' Of course, when 'manifold' modifies 'the homogeneous,' as it does here, then only the multiplicity connota tion applies.] 39['the synthetic unity of' inserted, as suggested by Vaihinger.] 40 [Parentheses added.] 4 1 [Cf B 1 54.] 42[I.e., the line.] 43 [anderen.]
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
235
through all the parts of time and their addition44 a determinate time mag nitude is finally produced. Since what is mere intuition in all appearances is either space or time, every appearance is-as intuition-an extensive
B 204
magnitude, inasmuch as it can be cognized only through successive syn thesis (of part to part) in apprehension. Accordingly, all appearances are intuited already as aggregates (i.e., multitudes of previously given partS);45 precisely this is not the case with every kind of magnitudes, but is the case only with those that are presented and apprehended by us as magnitudes
extensively.
This successive synthesis of the productive46 imagination in the gen eration47 of shapes is the basis of the mathematics of extension (i.e., ge ometry) with its axioms. These axioms express the conditions of sensible a priori intuition under which alone the schema of a pure concept of outer appearance can come about48---e . g., the axioms that between two points only one straight line is possible; or that two straight lines enclose no space; etc. These are the axioms that, properly speaking, concern only magni tudes49
(quanta),
as such.
But as concerns magnitude
(quantitas),
i.e., the answer to the question
as to how large50 something is, there are for it no axioms in the proper
A 1 64
meaning of the term, although a variety of such propositions are synthetic and directly5 1 certain
(indemonstrabilia). 52 For the propositions which as
sert that equals added to----or subtracted from---equals yield equals are ana lytic propositions, inasmuch as I am directly conscious of the identity of the one magnitude's production with the other magnitude's production. Axi-
44[In the root sense of this word, i.e., the putting of one item with one or more others already
there: Hinzulun .]
4s [Parenthetical insertion deleted by Kant in his working copy of edition A. See Preliminary Studies and Supplementary Entries (cited at A 1 91B 33 br. n. 1 3), Ak. XXIII, 46.] 46[produ ktiv.] 47 [Or 'production' : Erzeugung.] 48[ These axioms thus are the axioms of intuition whose principle was stated at the outset, A 162/B 202.] 49 [ Groj3en ; similarly (in the singular) just below.] so [ groj3.] 51 [unmittelbar. ] S2 [Ite ms not capable (and not in need) of being demonstrated.]
B 205
236
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
oms, however, are to be syntheticS 3 a priori propositions. The evident54 propositions of numerical relations, on the other hand, are indeed syn thetic. Yet, unlike those of geometry, they are not universal; and precisely because of this, they also cannot be called axioms, but can be called only
numerical formulas. 55 The proposition that 7 +
5
=
1 2 is not an analytic
proposition. 56 For neither in the presentation of 7, nor in that of
5,
nor in
the presentation of the assembly of the two numbers do I think the num ber 12. (The fact that I ought to think the number 1 2 in
numbers is not at issue here; for in
adding57 the two
an analytic proposition the question is
only whether I actually think the predicate in the presentation of the sub
ject.) But although the proposition 7 +
5
=
1 2 is synthetic, it is still only a
singular proposition. For insofar as we here take account merely of the syn thesis of the homogeneous (i.e., the units), 58 the synthesis can here occur in only a single way, although the
use made of these numbers
afterwards
is universal. [Geometry is different in this respect.] If I say that by means of three lines, two of which taken together are greater than the third, a tri angle can be drawn, then I have here the mere function of the productive A 1 65
imagination, which can make the lines be drawn greater or smaller, and can similarly make them meet at all kinds of angles chosen at will.s9 By
contrast, the number 760 is possible in only a single way, and so is the num ber 1 2, which is produced through the synthesis of 7 with 5 . Such propo B 206
sitions, therefore, must be called not axioms (for otherwise there would be infinitely many axioms), but numerical formulas.
5 3[Rather than analytic.] 54 [evident.]
55 [See below, A 732-34
=
B 760-62.]
56[ln his working copy of edition A (see Preliminary Studies and Supplementary Entries---<:ited at A 1 91B 33 br. n. 1 3-Ak. XXIII, 46), Kant deletes both this sentence and the words Denn ich denke ('For [. . . do] 1 think'), which start the next sentence (and whose deletion leaves the sentence incomplete).] 57 [Addition. Cf. br. n. 44, just above.] 58 [Einheiten. The term also means 'unities'; but the only thing homogeneous in the synthesis of 7 and 5 are the units (of I) composing each number. Cf the reference to fingers and dots at B I S.] 5° [beliebig.]
6°[ln his working copy of edition A (see Preliminary Studies and Supplementary Entries---<:ited at A 1 91B 33 br. n. J 3-Ak. XXIII, 46), Kant adds 'in the proposition 7 + S 12.'] =
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
237
This transcendental principle of the mathematics of appearances61 greatly expands62 our a priori cognition. For it alone is what makes pure mathematics in all its precision applicable to objects of experience. In the absence of the principle, this applicability might not be so self-evident,63
and has in fact been contested by many. 64 For appearances are not things
in themselves. Empirical intuition is possible only through pure intuition (of space and time). Hence what geometry says about pure intuition holds incontestably for empirical intuition also. And the subterfuges whereby ob jects of the senses need not conform to the rules of construction in space (e.g., the rule of the infinite divisibility of lines or angles) must be dropped. For by making them one denies objective validity to space, and thereby
als065 to all mathematics, and one no longer knows why and how far math ematics is applicable to appearances. The synthesis of spaces and times,
which are the essential form of all intuition, is what also makes possible
A 1 66
the apprehension of appearance, hence makes possible any outer experi ence, and consequently also makes possible all cognition of the objects of this experience. And thus what mathematics in its pure use proves for that synthesis holds necessarily also for this cognition. 66 All objections against
this are only the chicanery of a falsely instructed reason: a reason that er roneously means to detach objects of the senses from the formal condition of our sensibility, and that despite their being mere appearances presents them as objects in themselves, given to the understanding.67 If that were the case, however, then there could be no synthetic a priori cognition of them at all, and hence also no such cognition through pure concepts of space; and the science that determines these concepts, viz., geometry, would itself not be possible. 61 [The pnnciple (of the axioms of intuition) whereby all intuitions are extensive magnitudes.] 62 [Erweiterung. See A 7IB 1 1 br. n. 194.] 63 [von selbst erhellen.]
64[Literally, 'has in fact prompted much contradiction [to it] . ' ] 6s [zugleich.] 66 [von dieser, which grammatically could refer back, instead, to 'apprehension,' 'appear ance: or 'outer experience.'] 67[An understanding that would thus (intellectually) intuit things in themselves would be an intuitive understanding. (See B 307-9, and cf. B 72 inc!. br. n. 1 83.) Kant now goes on to imply that such an understanding's cognition would never be synthetic but always analytic (and thus still a priori); this was the position of Leibniz and his followers. Kant may also be thinking of Plato, who regarded mathematical objects as noumena. known only by intellect. See below, A 3 13-14IB 370-71.]
B 207
238
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
2 ANTICIPATIONS OF PERCEPTION68 Their principle69 is: In all appearances the real that is an object of sen sation has intensive magnitude, i.e., a degree.7o
ProoPl Perception is empirical consciousness, i.e., a consciousness in which there is sensation as well. Appearances, as objects of perception, are not pure (i.e., merely formal) intuitions, as space and time are (for these cannot in
themselves7 2 be perceived at all). Hence appearances contain, in addition to [pure] intuition, the matter73 (through which something existent is pre sented in space or time) for some object as such. I.e., appearances contain also the real of sensation-sensation74 being merely subjective presenta68[In A, the heading and the statement of the anticipations' principle read as follows:]
THE ANTICIPATIONS OF PERCEPTION The principlea that anticipates all perceptions, as such, reads thus: In all appearances sensation, as well as the
the object
(realitas phaenomenon),b
real that corresponds to it in intensive magnitude, i.e., a
has an
degree. ' [ Grundsatz. ] b [Phenomenal (cf. A 1 461B 1 86 br. n. 1 34) reality.] 69 [Prinzip ]
70 [See J. N. Findlay, op. cit. at A 211B 35 br. n. 22, 162-66. See also Paul Guyer, op. cit. at A 841B 1 16 br. n. I , 1 96-205. Also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 349-55 Also H. J. Paton, op. cit. at B I br. n. 1 52, vol. 2, 1 34-55. Also T. D. Weldon, op. cit. at A 211B 35 br. n. 22, 1 83-84. And see R. P. Wolff, op. cit. at B 5 br. n. 1 59, 232-38.] 71 [This heading and the first paragraph of the proof added in B.] 72 [an sich. used loosely, as Kant does so often (a fact that is itself worth noting and hence is deliberately left unconcealed in the translation) ] 73 [Materien (the plural of Materie). Since the English term (in the sense relevant here) is not commonly used in the plural, Materien is translated as 'matter' in some contexts, but as 'kinds of matter' in others.] 74[Reading, with Vaihinger, subjektiver for subjektive. (However, Kant's use of the nomina tive instead of the genitive in this construction would, on this reading, be more casual than erroneous.) This is not the reading adopted by the Akademie edition, where (cf. Erdmann's note, Ak. III, 588) Kant seems to characterize as "merely subjective presentation" (etc.) not sensation but the real of sensation. It is sensation, however, that is often characterized by Kant in this way, i.e., as subjective rather than objective presentation (A 19-20/B 34, A 320/B
SECTION III
239
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
tion, concerning which we can become conscious only of the fact that the subject is affected, and which we refer to an object as such. Now from em
B 208
pirical consciousness to pure consciousness, i.e., to the point where the real of that consciousness entirely vanishes and there remains a merely formal 7 (a priori) consciousness of the manifold in space and time, a stepwise 5 change is possible. Hence there is likewise possible a synthesis in the pro duction of a sensation's magnitude, from the sensation's beginning, i.e., 7 from pure intuition, = 0, up to this or that 6 magnitude of the sensation. Now since sensation is in itself not at all an objective presentation, and since neither the intuition of space nor that of time is to be met with in it, 77 sensation will indeed not have an extensive magnitude. Yet it will have a magnitude (viz., by virtue of the apprehension in sensation, in which the empirical consciousness can in a certain time increase from nothing, to the sensation's given measure). Therefore sensation will have an
sive magnitude. 78 As
=
0,
inten
corresponding to this intensive magnitude of sensa
tion we must ascribe also to all objects of perception, insofar as percep tion contains sensation, an 7 on sense. 9
intensive magnitude,
i.e., a degree of influence
All cognition whereby I can cognize and determine a priori what be longs to empirical cognition may be called an anticipation; and this is doubtless the signification in which Epicurus used the term
7tPOAl1\j1tC;80
A 167
But there is something in appearances that is never cognized a priori and that hence amounts to the proper difference between empirical and a priori cognition: viz., sensation (as the matter of perception); and hence it fol lows that what cannot at all be anticipated is, properly speaking, sensation. 376, cf. B 208, just below). The real, on the other hand, is characterized as what corresponds to sensation (A 166, statement of the anticipations' principle, A 1 681B 209, cf. A 14318 1 82 inc!. br. n. 107, A 17518 217, A 5811B 609); as cause of sensation (A 16818 210); and as ob ject of sensation (B 207, statement of the anticipations' principle, cf. B 225, A 2341B 286, and the end of the very sentence under discussion here).] 75[stufenartig. Although 'gradual' has basically the same meaning (cf. its etymology), 'step wise' is more explicit. (I am using . gradual' instead to render the less technical allmiihlich, as well as some wholly nontechnical occurrences of nach und nach.)] 76[beliebig.] 77[ihr . . . zukommen.] 78 [Extending the emphasis to include 'intensive. ' ] 79[Or 'on the sense [involved).') 8°[p r6lep.
B 209
240
PART I I
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
The pure determinations in space and time regarding both shape and mag nitude, on the other hand, could be called anticipations of appearances; for they present a priori what may always be given a posteriori in experience. Suppose, however, that we do find something that is cognizable a priori in every sensation, as sensation as such (i.e., even though no particular sen sation may be given); this something WOUld, then, deserve to be called anticipation8 1-in an exceptional meaning of the term. For it seems strange
to say that we can anticipate 82 experience in what concerns, of all things, 8 3
its matter, which can be drawn only from experience. Yet such is actually the case here. Apprehension merely by means of sensation (i.e., if I do not consider the succession of many sensations) fills 84 only an instant. Hence [sensa
tion], as something contained in appearance whose apprehension8 5 is not a successive synthesis proceeding from parts to the whole presentation, has
no extensive magnitude; a lack of sensation at that same instant would A 1 68
present that instant as empty, and hence as tuition corresponds to sensation is reality
=
O. Now what in empirical in
(realitas phaenomenon); 86 what
corresponds to the lack of sensation is negation,
B 21 0
=
O.
However, every sen
sation is capable of diminution, so that it can decrease and thus gradually vanish. Hence between reality contained in appearance, on the one hand, and negation, on the other hand, there is a continuous coherence of many possible intermediate sensations, whose difference from one another is al ways smaller than the difference between the given sensation and zero, i.e., complete negation. In other words, the real contained in appearance has always a magnitude. But [this magnitude is not an extensive one], which is not to be met with in [such] apprehension; for apprehension by means of mere sensation occurs in an instant rather than through successive syn thesis of many sensations, and hence does not proceed from the parts to the whole. Hence the real does indeed have a magnitude, but not an ex tensive one. 81 [Antizipalion ] 82 [vorgreifen, which means the same (and has even the same etymology) as 'anticipate.' There is no unambiguous alternative English tenn.] 83 [gerade.]
84 [Or 'occupies.'] 8'[The apprehension of (i.e., by means of) sensation.] 86[Phenomenal reality. Cf. A 1461B 1 86 br. ns. 1 34 and 1 3 5 ]
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
24 1
Now a magnitude that is apprehended only as unity, and in which mul tiplicity can be presented only by approaching [from the given magnitude] toward negation,
=
0, I call an
intensive magnitude. Hence any reality con
tained in appearance has intensive magnitude, i.e., a degree. And if this re ality is considered as cause (whether of the sensation, or of other reality contained in appearance, e.g., a change), then the degree of the reality con sidered as cause is called a moment87-e.g., the moment of gravity. It is
A 169
called this because the degree designates only that magnitude whose ap prehension is not successive but instantaneous. But here I touch on this only in passing, because for now I am not yet dealing with causality.
Therefore every sensation, and hence also every reality contained in ap
B 21 1
pearance, no matter how small either88 may be, has a degree, i.e., an in tensive magnitude. This magnitude can always be lessened, and between reality and negation there is a continuous coherence of possible realities
and of possible smaller89 perceptions. Every color, e.g., red color, has a
degree that, no matter how small it may be, is never the smallest; and this is the situation throughout90-with heat, with the moment of gravity, etc. The property of magnitudes whereby no part in them is the smallest pos sible (i.e., no part is simple) is called their continuity. Space and time are
quanta continua, 91
because no part of them can be given without our en
closing it between boundaries (points or instants); and hence any part of them can be given only in such a way that this part itself is in tum a space or a time. Therefore space consists only of spaces, time only of times. Points
and instants are only boundaries, i.e., mere positions limiting92 them. But positions always presuppose the intuitions that they are to delimit93 or de
termine; and neither space nor time can be assembled94 from mere posi
tions if these are considered as components that could be given even prior to space or time. Such magnitudes may also be called flowing magnitudes, 87 [(das) Moment. Cf. A 2081B 254.] 88 [sie, used to refer back to both 'sensation' and 'reality.'] 89 [kleiner, which sounds just as unusual here as 'smaller' does (and as 'little' would).] 90 [iiberall. ]
9 1 [Continuous quanta.] 92 [Einschriinkung.] 9'
[beschriinken. ] 94 [ See B 201 n. 30.]
A 170
242
PART I I
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
because the synthesis (of productive95 imagination) in their production96 is B 212
a progression in time, and the continuity especially of time is usually des ignated by the term flowing (flowing by).
Hence all appearances as such are continuous magnitudes-both in terms
of their intuition, viz., as extensive magnitudes, and in terms of their mere perception (sensation, and hence reality), viz., as intensive magnitudes. If the synthesis of the manifold of appearance is interrupted, then this mani fold is an aggregate of many appearances and is not, properly speaking, appearance as a quantum. Such an aggregate is not produced by merely continuing the productive synthesis of a certain kind, but is produced by
repeating a synthesis that always ceases again. If I call 1 3 thalers97 a quan tum of money, then I do so correctly insofar as I mean by this the [total]
content of one mark98 of fine silver. For this mark is indeed a continuous
magnitude, in which no part is the smallest but each part could constitute
a coin99 that always contained material for still smaller coins. But if by that designationlOo I mean 1 3 round thalers, as so many coins1 0 1 (whatever their silver content might be), then my calling 102 this a quantum of thalers
A 171
is inappropriate. I must call it, rather, an aggregate, i.e., a number of coins. 1 03 But since with any number there must still be underlying unity, appearance as unity is a quantum, and as such is always a continuum. We saw that all appearances, considered extensively as well as inten
B 213
sively, are continuous magnitudes. If this is so, then the proposition that all change (a thing's transition from one state to another) is likewise continu 4 ous could be proved here easily and with mathematical self-evidence, 1 0 95 [produktiv.] 96 [Erzeugung.] 97 [Thaler or (as the tenn is now spelled) Taler, a large silver coin issued (in different types) by vanous Gennan states from the fifteenth to the nineteenth centuries. The name (from which 'dollar' derives) is an abbreviation of loachimst(h)aler. so named for Sankt Joachimst(h)al (Jachymov, in Czech), a town in northwestern Bohemia, Czech Republic, where the silver was mined and the coin was first made.] 98 [An old European unit of weight (ca. 8 ounces), used especially for gold and silver.] 99 [Geldstiick; 'piece of money,' literally.] H10 [Benennung; i.e., here. ' 1 3 thalers.'] 101 [Munzen.] 102 [nennen.] 103 [Geldstucke .] 1 04 [Evidenz. ]
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
243
were it not that the causality of a change as such lies wholly outside the bounds of a transcendental philosophy and presupposes empirical prin ciples. For the understanding does not at all disclose to us a priori the pos sibility of a cause that changes the state of any things, i.e., determines them to enter the opposite of a certain given state. The understanding fails to do so not merely because it has no insight whatever into that possibility (in deed, we lack such insight in several a priori cognitions), but because
changeability concerns only certain determinations 105 of appearances, viz., l 6 those that experience alone can teach us, while only their cause O is to be
found in the unchangeable. Here, however, we have nothing available for our use except the pure basic concepts of all possible experience, among which there must be nothing empirical whatsoever. Hence we cannot, with out violating the unity of the system, anticipate lO7 general natural sci 1 ence, 08 which is built upon certain basic experiences.
A 1 72
Yet we have no lack of documentation 109 for our principle's great in
fluence in anticipating perceptions, and even in compensating for their lack insofar as the principle blocks all wrong inferences that might be drawn from that lack. For we saw that all reality in perception has a degree between which and negation there is l l O an infinite stepwise sequence of ever lesser de l l 1 grees, and that every sense must likewise 1 have a definite 1 2 degree in the receptivity of sensations. But if this is so, then no perception and hence also no experience is possible that would prove, whether directly or indi ll 1l rectly 3 (by whatever circuitous path in the inference 4), a complete lack in appearance of anything real. I.e., one can never obtain from experience a proof of empty space or of an empty time. For, first, the complete lack IOS [Bestimmungen. See A 231B 37 hr. n. 30.] 1 06 [Considered as cause as such.] I01
[vor,greifen. Cf. A 1671B 209 hr. n. 82 .] I08 [Naturwissenschaft.] 1 09 [Beweistiimer.] I l o [stattjinden.]
II1
[Following Erdmann's reading (not, however, given in the Akademie edition) of ebenso wohl for gleichwohl (' nonetheless').] 1 1 2 [bestimmt, which also means 'determinate.'] 1 1 3 [Or 'immediately or mediately.' See B xxxix hr. n. 144c.] 1 14 [Umschweif im SchliefJen.]
B 214
244
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
of the real in sensible intuition cannot itself be perceived. Second, this lack cannot be inferred 1 1 5 from even a single appearance and from the differ
ence in its reality, nor must it ever be assumed in order to explain that in tuition. 1 1 6 For suppose even that the whole intuition of a determinate space or time is real through and through, i.e., that no part of it is empty. Still, every reality has its degree, which can decrease to nothing (i.e., empti A 173
ness) 1 l7 by infinitely many steps, with the extensive magnitude of the ap pearance being unchanged. And hence there must be infinitely many dif
ferent degrees with which space and time may be [wholly] filled; and it must be possible for the intensive magnitude in different appearances to be smaller or greater even with the extensive magnitude of the intuition be ing the same. B 215
Let us give an example of this. Natural scientists1 l8 perceive (partly by the moment11 9 of gravity or weight, partly by the moment of resistance to other matter in motion) that the quantity of matter of various kinds differs greatly even with the volume being the same. 1 20 Almost all natural scien
tists, when perceiving this, infer from it unanimously that in all kinds of
matter1 2 1 this volume1 2 2 (i.e., extensive magnitude of the appearance)
must-even if in varying measure-be empty. 123 But to whom would it ever have occurred that these investigators of nature, who are for the most part mathematical and mechanical [in orientation], would base this infer ence of theirs solely on a metaphysical presupposition-which presuppo sitions, after all, they claim to avoid so very much? For they assume that the
real
in space (I do not want to call it impenetrability or weight here,
because these are empirical concepts) is
everywhere uniform 124 and can dif-
1 1S[folgern.] 1 1 6 [derselben; grammatically this could refer instead to 'reality.'] 1 1 7[das Leere.] 1 18 [Naturlehrer.] 119 [See A 1 68/B 210 br. n. 87.] 1 20 [Kant treated this in detail in the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science ( 1786). See Ak. IV, 523-25, 532 35.] -
121 [Materien. See B 207 br. n. 73.] 1 22 [l .e., the space occupied by matter.] 123 [Or ·void.'] 1 24 [einerlei.l
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
245
fer only in extensive magnitude, i.e., in amount. 125 This supposition, for which they could not have had a basis in experience and which is there fore merely metaphysical, I oppose with a transcendental proof. This proof,
A 1 74
to be sure, is not meant to explain the difference in the filling of spaces. Yet it does completely annul the supposed necessity of that presupposition whereby the differencel26 in question can be explained only by assuming empty spaces. And thus the proof has at least the merit of giving to the understanding the freedom to think this differencel27 in another way also-should explaining nature necessitate some other hypothesis to ac count for this difference. For we then see that although equal spaces may be filled completely by various kinds of matter, so that in none of theml28 there is a point where no matter can be found to be present, yet everything
real has, with its quality being the same, its 129 degree (of resistance or weight); and this degree can-without any lessening of the extensive mag
nitude, or amount-be smaller ad infinitum 130 before the real 13 1 passes into emptiness and vanishesY2 Thus something that spreads 133 and fills a space, as, e.g., heat, and likewise any other reality (contained in appearance), can decrease in its degree134 ad infinitum without leaving even the smallest part of this space in the least empty, and can nonetheless fill this space just as well with these smaller degrees as another appearance can with greater de grees. I do not by any means intend to assert here that this is actually how 1 25 [Kant has in mind natural scientists like Robert Boyle, Isaac Newton, and others, who claimed that absolutely dense (and indivisible) atoms move about in absolutely empty space (void). Kant opposed such atomism.] 126 [Unterschied.] 127 [Verschiedenheit.]
1 28 [Reading,
with Erdmann, jenen for heiden.] 129 [Reading seinen for ihren. Kant probably thought that he had wntten 'every reality,' as he did at A 1721 B 214. On this reading, what has the (varying) degree is everything real, not the quality (which then stays the same in this respect as well). Erdmann instead reads ihren (despite its grammatically odd placement for that purpose) as referring to the quality (which would thus have the [varying] degree), on the ground that atAk. III, 1 58, lines 9-10 (A 1 761B 2 18) Kant equates the real with quality.] 1 30[ins Unendliche.] 1 3 1 [Reading es for sie, for the same reason as before; see br n. 1 28, just above.] 1 3 2 [See A 1731B 2 1 5 br n. 120.] 133 [eine Ausspannung.J
1 34 [Literally, 'in its degrees" in ihren Graden.]
B 216
246
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
kinds of matter differ in their specific gravity. Rather, I intend only to es A 175
tablish, from a principle of pure understanding, that the nature of our per ceptions makes such a way of explaining possible, and that people are wrong when they assume that the real [component] of appearance is the
same135 in degree and differs only in aggregation and the extensive mag nitude thereof-and when they assert this, allegedly, even a priori by means of a principle of understanding. B 217
Nonetheless, something about this anticipation of perception is always striking to an investigator of nature who is accustomed to transcendental de
liberation 1 36 and has thus become cautious. For the anticipation arouses some
concern about the claim that the understanding can anticipate1 37 a synthetic proposition such as this-i.e., a synthetic proposition about the degree of ev
erything real in appearances, and hence about the possibility of there being in sensation itself, if we abstract from its empirical quality, an intrinsic dif ference. And hence there remains a question not unworthy of solution: viz., how the understanding can a priori make in this matter a synthetic pro nouncement about appearances, and how it can thus anticipate appearances
in what is strictly1 38 and merely empirical, i.e., in what concerns sensation. The
quality of sensation
(e.g., colors, taste, etc.) is always merely em
pirical and cannot at all be presented a priori. But the real-as opposed to negation,
=
0 -that corresponds to sensation as such presents only some
thing whose concept itself contains 139 a being [of something], and signi
A 1 76
fies nothing but the synthesis in an empirical consciousness as such. For empirical consciousness can in inner sense be raised from 0 to any higher140 degree, so that the same extensive magnitude 141 of intuition (e.g., an illu minated surface) arouses as great142 a sensation as does an aggregate143 of much else (that is less illuminated) taken together. We can, therefore, ab1 35 [Or 'alike ' : gleich.] 1 36[iiberlegung; see A 2601B 3 1 6 br. n. 4. The term was inserted here by Erdmann.] 1 37 [In the original, 'can anticipate' occurs only at the end (Ak. III, 1 57, line 29) of a very long
sentence. I follow Erdmann (see ibid., line 25) in repeating the expression in the present clause, which it does seem to govern as well.] 138 [eigentlich.] 1 39 [And thus indicates; cf. A 1 43/8 1 82.] 140 [griijler.] 141 [Griijle.]
I 42
[grojl.] 143 [Having that same extensive magnitude. Cf. A 1791B 221.]
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
247
stract entirely from the extensive magnitude of appearance, and can yet
B 218
present in mere sensation in one moment a synthesis of uniform ascent from
o to the given empirical consciousness. Hence although all sensations, as
such, are given only a posteriori, 144 their property of having a degree can
be cognized a priori. It is remarkable that in magnitudes as such we can cognize a priori only a single
quality, viz., continuity, and that in all qual
ity (the real [component] of appearances) we can cognize a priori nothing more than their l 45 having an intensive quantity, viz., the fact that they have a degree; everything else is left to experience.
3 ANALOGIES OF EXPERIENCEl Their principle2 is:
Experience is possible only through the presentation of a necessary connection of perceptions. 3
Proof4 Experience is an empirical cognition, i.e., a cognition that determines an object through perceptions. Hence experience is a synthesis of perceptions 144 [Reading, with Mellin, a posteriori for a priori.] 1 45 [I.e., the appearances'.] 1 [ln A, the heading and the statement of the analogies' principle read as follows:]
THE ANALOGIES OF EXPERIENCE Their general
principlea
is this: All appearances are, as regards their
existence, subject a priori to rules governing the determination of their
relation to one another in one time. a[Grundsatz.] 2 [Prinzip.]
' [See Gerd Buchdahl, Metaphysics and the Philosophy of Science (Oxford: Basil Blackwell, 1 969), 641-47. See also Arthur Melnick, Kant 's Analogies of Experience (Chicago: Univer sity of Chicago Press, 1973), 48-57. Also J. N. Findlay, op. cit. at A 21fB 35 hr. n. 22, 163-66. Also M. S. Gram, op. cit. at A 7fB 1 1 hr. n. 199, 130-33. Also Paul Guyer, op. cit. at A 84fB 1 16 hr. n. 1 , 207-14. Also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii hr. n. 5, 355-9 1 . Also H. J. Paton, op. cit. at B 1 hr. n. 152, vol. 2. 159-83. Also T. D. Weldon. op. cit. at A 21fB 35 hr. n. 22, 1 84-86. And see R. P. Wolff. op. cit. at B 5 hr. n. 1 59. 238-48.] 4[This heading and the first paragraph of the proof added in B.]
A 177
248
B 219
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
that itself is not contained in perception but contains the synthetic unity of the manifold of perceptions in one consciousness. This unity amounts to what is essential for a cognition of objects of the senses, i.e., for experi ence (rather than merely intuition or sensation of the senses). 5 Now, in ex perience perceptions do indeed come together only contingently, so that no necessity in their connection is, or even can be, evident from the percep tions themselves. For apprehension is only a compi1ation6 of the manifold of empirical intuition; and we find in it no presentation of the necessity of the linked existence7 in space and time8 of the appearances that it com piles. Experience, on the other hand, is a cognition of objects through per ceptions; and hence in experience the relation within the manifold's exist ence9 is to be presented not as the manifold1 0 is compiled in time, but as it objectively is in time. Time, however, cannot itself be perceived. There fore determination of the existence of objects in time can come about only through the linking of perceptionsl l in time as such, and hence only through concepts connecting them a priori. And since these concepts always carry with them necessity as well, 1 2 experience is possible only through a pre sentation of the necessary connection of perceptions. The three modes of time are permanence, succession, and simultane ityY Hence there will be three rules 14 governing all time relations of ap pearances, whereby every appearance's existence 15 can be determined in regard to the unity of all time; and these rules will precede experience and make it possible in the first place. ' [EmPfindung der Sinne, as distinguished from sensation as meaning feeling. Cf. my trans lation of the Critique of Judgment (cited at B xvii br. n. 73), Ak. V, 29 1 inc!. br. n. 1 9.] 6 [Zusammenstellung. ] 7 [EXistenz.]
8 [Putting, with Vorlander, a comma after zusammenstellt. Without the comma, the text trans lates: ' . . . in the linked existence of the appearances compiled by it in space and time."] 9 [Dasein.] l O[es, which grammatically could refer back to 'relation' instead.] " [ihre; grammatically this could instead refer back to 'objects ' ] 12 [zugleich.] 1 3 [Beharrlichkeit. Folge, Zugleichsein.] l4 [Viz., the three analogies. Cf. A 17818 220, A 1 8018 222.] " [In his working copy of edition A (see Preliminary Studies and Supplementary Entries-dted
at A 1918 33 br n. I3-Ak. XXIII, 47), Kant adds 'relation of the real in appearance. " ]
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
249
The general principle of all three analogies rests on the necessary unity of apperception in regard to all possible empirical consciousness (i.e., 1 6 per ception) at every time; and since this unity underlies [empirical conscious ness] a priori, the principle rests on the synthetic unity of all appearances as regards their relation in time. For original apperception refers to inner sense (the sum of all presentations); specifically, it refers a priori to the form of inner sense, i.e., to the relation in time of the manifold 17 empirical con sciousness. Now all this manifold is to be united, as regards its time rela tions, in original apperception-for so says this apperception's a priori tran scendental unity, 18 to which is subject whatever is to belong to my (i.e., to my one) cognition and hence is to be able to become an object for me. Hence this synthetic unity in the time relation of all perceptions, a unity which is detennined a priori, is this law: that all empirical time determinations must be subject to rules of universal time determination. And the analogies of experience that we now want to deal with must be rules of this sort These principles have the peculiarity that they do not consider appear ances and the synthesis of their empirical intuition, but consider merely [the appearances'] existence and their relation to one another in regard to that existence. Now the way in which something is apprehended in appearance can be determined a priori in such a manner19 that the rule of the appear ance's synthesis can also give20 this a priori intuition,2 1 i.e., can produce the appearance from this intuition,22 in the case of every empirical ex ample that comes to hand. The existence23 of appearances, however, can not be cognized a priori; and even if we could in that just mentioned way24 16 [Cf. B 160, 207.]
1 7 [ See B 203 br. n. 38.] 18[ Or, perhaps, 'so says a pnori this apperception's transcendental unity.'] 19 [Viz., something's being apprehended as an extensive or intensive magnitude can a priori be determined so as to yield constitutive principles (as in the case of the axioms of intuition and the anticipations of perception) rather than regulative principles; cf. A l 79-801B 221-23.] 2° [zugleich . . . geben.] 2 1 [Of extensive or intensive magnitude. I am taking ihrer to refer to Erscheinung rather than to Art, and am reading a priori as an adjective modifying Anschauung rather than as an ad verb modifying geben.] 22 [Reading sie as refemng (like ihrer, just before) to Erscheinung rather than to Anschauung a p riori, and daraus as referring to Anschauung rather than to Beispiele. ] 2] [Dasein; emphasis added.] 24 [Of the axioms and the anticipations.]
B 220
A 178
B 221
250
A 1 79
B 222
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
contrive to infer some existenes or other, we could still not cognize it de terminately, i.e., we could not anticipate what distinguishes this existent's empirical intuition from [that of] others. The previous two principles,26 which I called the mathematical prin ciples because they justified applying mathematics to appearances, dealt with appearances in regard to their mere possibility; and they taught us how ap pearances could be produced, as regards both their intuition and the real in their perception, according to rules of a mathematical synthesis. Hence in both syntheses we can use numerical magnitudes and, with them, the de termination of appearance as a magnitude. Thus, e.g., I can assemble the degree of sensations of sunlight from some 200,000 illuminations provided by the moon,27 and can determinately give that degree a priori, i.e., construct it. Those earlier two principles may therefore be called con stitutive. The situation must be quite different with those principles that are to bring priori under rules the existence of appearances. For since existence can a not be constructed, the principles will deal only with the relation of exist ence, and will be able to yield none but merely regulative principles. Hence finding either axioms or anticipations is here out of the question. Thus if a perception is given to us in a time relation to other (although indeterminate) perceptions, then we shall indeed not be able to say what is that other per ception or how grear8 a perception it is; rather, we shall be able to say how, as regards its existence, this other perception is necessarily linked with the former perception in this mode of time. Analogies signify something very different in philosophy from what they represent29 in mathematics. In math ematics they are formulas asserting the equality of two relations3o of mag nitudes, and are always constitutive; so that if three31 members of the pro portion are given, the fourth32 is thereby also given, i.e., it can be constructed. 25 [Dasein. ] 26 [The principle of !he axioms of intuition and the pnnciple of the anticipations of percep tion.] 27 [Cf. A 1 761B 2 17.] 2B [l.e., of what magnitude Cf. A 1 761B 217.] 29 [ vorstellen. ] lO[Or 'ratios': -verhiiltnisse. ] 3 ' [Reading, with Mellin (and the Akademie edition), drei for zwei.] 32 [Reading, with Mellin (and the Akademie edition), vierte for drit/e.]
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
25 1
In philosophy, however, an analogy is the equality not of two quantitative but of two qualitative relations. Here I can from three given members cog nize, and give a priori, only the relation to a fourth, but not this fourth mem ber itself. But I do have33 a rule for seeking the fourth member in experi ence, and a mark34 for discovering it there. Hence an analogy of experience will be only a rule whereby unity of experience is to arise from perceptions (not a rule saying how perception itself, as empirical intuition as such, is to arise). And such an analogy will hold,35 as principle of objects (i.e., ap pearances), not constitutively but merely regulatively. But the same [restric tion] will apply36 also to the postulates of empirical thought as such,37 which concern at once38 the synthesis of mere intuition (the form of appearance), the synthesis of perception (the matter of appearance), and that of experi ence (the relation of these perceptions). I.e., these postulates are only regu lative principles. These principles do not indeed differ in certainty from the mathematical principles, which are constitutive; for this certainty is estab lished a priori in both. But they do differ from the mathematical principles in [not having the latter's] kind of evidence, i.e., their intuitive character (and hence their ability to be demonstrated39). But what has been pointed out for all synthetic principles, and must be noted especially here, is this: these analogies have their sole signification and validity not as principles of understanding's transcendental use, but merely as principles of its empirical use, and hence can be proved only as principles of such use; and appearances must consequently be subsumed not under the categories taken absolutely, but only under their schemata. For if the objects to which these principles are to be referred were things in themselves, then cognizing anything about them synthetically a priori would be entirely impossible. But they are indeed nothing but appear ances. And the complete cognition of appearances-which is, after all, what all a priori principles must ultimately always amount to-is merely our pos sible experience. Hence these principles can aim at nothing more than be ing the conditions for the unity of empirical cognition in the synthesis of
33[In the analogy.] 34 [Or 'characteristic' : Merkmal.] 3 '[gelten.] 36[gelten.] 37 [See A 2 1 S-35/B 265-94 ] 38 [zusammen.] 39 [Cf. A 734-35
=
B 762-63 J
A 1 80
B 223
A 181
B 224
252
PART
II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
appearances. This unity, however, is thought solely in the schema of the pure concept of understanding. The function, unrestricted by any sensible condition, of the unity of the schema40 [as such], as the unity of a synthe sis as such, is contained in the category. Hence these principles will entitle us to assemble appearances only by an analogy with the logical and uni versal unity of concepts. And hence in the principle itself we shall indeed make use of the category; but in employing4 1 the principle (i.e., in apply ing it to appearances) we shall put the category's schema, as the key to its use, in the category's42 place--or, rather, put the schema alongside the cat egory as a restricting condition of it called a formula of the category.43
A FIRST ANALOGY
A 1 82
PRINCIPLE OF THE PERMANENCE OF
SUBSTANCE44
In all variation by appearances 45 substance is permanent, and its quan tum in nature is neither increased not decreased. 46 4°[Reading, with Kehrbach, dessen for deren. Kant probably thought he had written 'in the schemata of the pure concepts of understanding. '] 41 [Ausfiihrung.] 42 [Reading, with Max Miiller, deren for dessen; the contrast does seem to be with 'category.' Erdmann in the Akademie edition (cf. his note at Ak. III, 588) instead relates dessen to Grundsatz ( 'principle'). Cf. the next note.] 43 [Reading, with Max Miiller, der ersteren for des ersteren. See also A 2401B 299. Erdmann (cf. br. n. 42, just above) instead relates des ersteren to Grundsatz.] 44 [ln A, the heading and the statement of the principle read as follows:] PRINCIPLE OF PERMANENCE
All appearances contain the permanent (i.e., substance) as the object itself, and the mutable as its mere determination, i.e., as a way in which the object exists. 45 [Or 'variation on the part of appearances.' Here 'variation' (Wechsel), as my use of 'by' or 'on the part of' rather than (the less active) 'of' is intended to suggest, means 'change' in the sense that includes 'exchange.' 'Change' itself is needed to render Veriinderung (since 'alter ation' suggests only partial change, i.e., Abiinderung). 'Exchange,' on the other hand, inap propriately excludes vanation other than exchange, creates too close a terminological link to 'change,' and also lacks an intransitive verb.] 46 [See H. E. Allison, op. cit. at A 211B 35 br. n. 22, 199-21 5 . See also Graham Bird, op. cit. at A 671B 92 br. n 1 2 1 , 1 49-67. Also G. G. Brittan, op. cit. at B 202 br. n 35, 143-64. Also
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
253
Proof47 All appearances are in time; and solely in time, as substrate (viz., as per manent form of inner intuition), can either simultaneity48 or succes sion49 be presented. Hence time, in which all variation by appearances is to be thought, endures50 and does not vary. For time is that in which, and as determinations of which, sequentiality5 1 or simultaneity can alone be pre sented. Now, time by itself cannot be perceived. Hence the substrate which presents time as such, and in which aU variation or simultaneity can in ap prehension be perceived through the appearances' relation to it, must be found52 in the objects of perception, i.e., in the appearances. But the sub strate of everything real, i.e., of everything belonging to the existence53 of things, is substance. In substance alone, and as determination,54 can ev erything belonging to existence be thought. Hence the permanent in rela tion to which all time relations of appearances can alone be determined is H. W. Cassirer, op. cit. at A 211B 35 br. n. 22, 148-77. Also 1. N. Findlay, op. cit. at A 2 11B
35 br. n. 22, 1 66-70. Also M. S. Gram, op. cit. at A 71B 1 1 br. n. 199, 133-40. Also Paul Guyer, op. cit. at A 841B 1 1 6 br. n. I , 215-35. Also Nonnan Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 358-63. Also Arthur Melnick, op. cit. at A 1761B 2 1 8 hr. n. 3, 58-77; and op. cit. at A 22IB 37 br. n. 27, 51-102. Also H. J. Paton, op. cit. at B I br. n. 152, vol. 2, 1 84-220. Also C. F. von Weizsiicker, The Unity of Nature (New York: Farrar, Straus, Giroux: 1 980), 308-26 ("Kant's First Analogy of Experience and the Conservation Principles of Physics"). Also T. D. Weldon, op. cit. at A 211B 35 hr. n. 22, 1 86-87. And see R. P. Wolff, op. cit. at B 5 br. n. 159, 248-60.] 47 [In the place of this heading and the first paragraph of the proof, A has the following:] PROOF OF THIS FIRST ANALOGY
All appearances are in time. Time can determine the relation within
the existence of appearances in two ways, either insofar as appearances are sequentiaF or insofar as they are simultaneous. In respect of the first way, time is considered as time series; in regard to the second, as time range. a[nacheinander.] 48 [Zugleichsein.] 49 [Fo/ge.] 50[bleiben.] 51 [Nacheinandersein.]
5 2 ['to be found,' literally; anzutrejfen.] " [Dasein here, Existenz just below.] '" [Of substance.]
B 225
254
B 226
A 1 83
B 227
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
substance [contained] in appearance, i.e., the real of appearance that as sub strate of all variation remains55 always the same. Since, therefore, sub stance cannot vary in its existence, its quantum in nature can also be nei ther increased nor decreased. Our apprehension of the manifold of appearance is always successive, and therefore is always varying. Hence through apprehension alone we can never determine whether this manifold considered as object of experience is simultaneous or sequential. We cannot determine this unless something underlying in experience is there always-i.e., something enduring and per manent of which all variation and simultaneity56 are only so many ways (modes of time) in which the permanent exists. Hence all time relations (for simultaneity and succession are the only relations in time) are possible only in the permanent. I.e., the permanent is the substratum of the empiri cal presentation of time itself; all time determinations are possible only in this substratum. Permanence expresses time as such as the constant corre late of all existence of appearances, of all variation and of all concomi tance. For variation concerns not time itself, but only appearances in time (just as simultaneity is not a mode of time itself; for in time no parts are simultaneous, but all are sequential). If we wished to attribute to time it self a succession or sequentiality,57 then we would have to think yet an other time wherein this succession would be possible. Solely through the permanent does sequential existence in different parts of the time series ac quire a magnitude, called duration. For in mere succession by itself exist ence is always vanishing and starting, and never has the least magnitude. Without this permanent, therefore, there is no time relation. Now time can not in itself be perceived. Therefore this permanent in appearances is the substratum of all time determinations. Hence it is also the condition for the possibility of all synthetic unity of perceptions, i.e., the possibility of ex perience; and all existence5 8 and all variation in time can only be regarded, by reference to this permanent, as a mode of the existence of what is en during and permanent. Therefore in all appearances the permanent is the object itself, i.e., the (phenomenaI59) substance, whereas whatever varies 55 [bleiben. ] 56 [Zugleichsein here, Simullaneiliil just below.]
57 [More literally, 'sequential succession ' : Folge nacheinander.] 5" [Dasein here, Exislenz just below.] 59 [phaenomenon. Cf. A 146/B 1 86 br n. 1 34 ]
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
255
or can vary belongs only to the way in which this substance or these sub stances exist, and hence to their determinations. I find that in all ages not just philosophers but even the common under standing have presupposed this permanence as a substratum of all varia tion of appearances; and they probably60 always assume it, moreover, as indubitable. The only difference is that the philosopher expresses himself somewhat more determinately on this point than does the common under standing, by saying that in all changes in the world substance endures and only the accidents vary. Yet nowhere do I encounter so much as an attempt to prove this quite synthetic proposition. Indeed, only seldom is the propo sition placed, as surely it deserves to be, at the top of the laws of nature that are pure and hold6 1 completely a priori. The mere proposition that sub stance is permanent is indeed tautological. For merely because of this per manence do we apply the category of substance to appearance, and people ought62 to have proved that in all appearances there is in fact something permanent wherein the mutable is nothing but a determination of its exist ence. Such a proof, however, can never be conducted dogmatically, i.e., from concepts, because it concerns a synthetic a priori proposition; and people never thought of the fact that such propositions are valid only in reference to possible experience and hence can be proved only by a de duction of the possibility of experience. It is no wonder, then, that al though this proposition has been laid at the basis in all experience (be cause in empirical cognition one feels the need for it), yet it has never been proved. A philosopher was asked, How much does smoke weigh? He replied: From the weight of the burnt wood subtract the weight of the ashes that remain, and you will have the weight of the smoke. He therefore presup posed as incontestable that matter63 (substance) does not pass away even in fire, but that itsfarm only undergoes an alteration.64 Similarly the propo sition that nothing arises from nothing was only another consequence65 in6O [werden.]
61 [bestehen.] 62 [man . . . mussen.] 63 [Emphasis added; similarly in 'fonn' just below.] 64 [Abiinderung. Cf. B 224 br. n. 45 In his working copy of edition A (see Preliminary Stud ies and Supplementary En tries--<:ited at A 1 9/B 33 br. n. l 3-Ak. XXIII, 47), Kant notes, at the end of the present sentence, 'From where does he know that? Not from expenence.'] 6S [Or 'corollary': Folgesatz.]
A 1 84
B 228
A 1 85
256
B 229
A 1 86
B 230
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
ferred from the principle of permanence, or rather from the principle of the everlasting existence of the subject proper [contained] in appearance. For if the [component] in appearance that we wish to call substance is to be the substratum proper of all time determination, then all existence in past as well as future time must be determinable solely and exclusively by ref erence to it.66 Hence we can give the name substance to an appearance only because we presuppose the existence of substance at all time. This exist ence at all time is not even well expressed by the word permanence, since permanence applies more to future time. On the other hand, the intrinsic necessity to be permanent is linked inseparably with the necessity always to have been, and therefore the expression67 may be allowed to remain. Gigni de nihilo nihil, in nihilum nil posse reverti68 are two propositions that were connected by the ancients as unseparated and that are now some times separated. They are separated, through misunderstanding, because of a conception that they concern things in themselves and that the first propo sition might therefore run counter to the world's depending (even in terms of its substance) on a supreme cause. But there is no need for such worry. For we are here talking only about appearances[, which are] in the realm of experience; and the unity of experience would never be possible if we were to let new things originate (in terms of substance). For there would then no longer be what alone can present the unity of time, viz., the iden tity of the substratum, by reference to which69 alone all variation has thor oughgoing unity. On the other hand, this permanence is nothing more than our way of presenting the existence of things (in appearance). The determinations of a substance, which are nothing but particular70 ways for the substance to exist, are called accidents. They are always real, because they concern the existence of substance. (Negations are only de terminations expressing the nonexistence7 1 of something in substance.) If now we attribute a special72 existence to this real in substance (e.g., mo tion, as an accident of matter), then this existence is called inherence, as ""[daran.] 67 ['Principle of pennanence.'] 68 [That nothing can arise from nothing, nothing revert to nothing.] 69 [woron.] 7°[besonder.] 71[Or 'not-being': Nichtsein.] 72 [J.e , differentiated or specific (cf. 'differentia' and 'species'): besonder ]
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
257
distinguished from the existence of substance, which is called subsistence. From this [attribution of a differentiated existence to the real in substancel, however, arise many misinterpretations; and we speak more accurately and correctly if we characterize an accident only as the way in which the ex istence of a substance is detennined positively. Yet by virtue of the con ditions of our understanding's logical use we cannot avoid separating, as it were, what can vary in a substance's existence while the substance itself endures, and examining it in relation to what is properly pennanent and radical.73 And hence this category74 has indeed been put under the head ing of the relations,75 but more as the condition of relations than as itself containing a relation. Now this permanence is also the basis for the following correction of the concept of change.76 Arising and passing away are not changes of what arises or passes away. Change is a way of existing that ensues77 upon an other way of existing of the same object. Hence whatever does change en dures, and only its state varies. This variation, therefore, concerns only the detenninations, which can cease or, for that matter, start. Hence we can say, using an expression that seems somewhat paradoxical: only the per manent (i.e., substance) undergoes change; 7 8 the mutable undergoes 79 no change but only a variation, since some detenninations cease and others start. Hence change can be perceived only in substances; and an arising or passing away taken absolutely, i.e., without its pertaining merely to a de tennination of the pennanent, cannot at all be a possible perception. For precisely this pennanent makes possible the presentation of the transition from one state to another, and from not-being80 to being; and hence these8 l can be cognized empirically only as varying determinations of what en dures. Suppose that something absolutely begins to be. If you suppose this, 73 [I.e., at the root.] 74 [Of inherence.]
7' [See A 801B 106.] 76 [Veriinderung. On change, vanation, and alteration see B 224 hr. n. 45. ] 77 [erfolgt. ] 78 [wird veriindert. ] 79 [erleidet. ] 8°[Nichtsein. which also means 'nonexistence. ' ] 8 1 [These states as well as not-being and being.]
A 1 87
B 23 1
A 188
258
B 232
A 1 89
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
then you must have a point of time in which it was not. But to what will you fasten this point of time, if not to what is already there?82 For an empty time that would precede is not an object of perception; but if you tie this arising to things that were beforehand and that continue up to the some thing that arises, then this something was only a determination of what, as the pennanent, was beforehand. The case is the same with passing away also; for it presupposes the empirical presentation of a time where an ap pearance no longer is. Substances ([contained] in appearance) are the substrates of all time de tenninations. If some substances arose and others passed away, this would itself annul the sole condition of the empirical unity of time; and appear ances would then refer to two different83 times wherein existence would be flowing by84 concurrently-which is absurd. For there is only one time, wherein all different times must be posited not as simultaneous but as se quential. Pennanence, accordingly, is a necessary condition under which alone appearances are detenninable as things or objects in a possible experience. But as to what is the empirical criterion of this necessary pennanence and, with it, of the substantiality of appearances, the opportunity to make the needed comments will be provided by what follows. 85
82 [Or 'already exists'· schon da is/.] 83[zweieriei ] 84[ vel1'liejlen.] 85[A 205-6/8 250-5 1 .]
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
259
B SECOND ANALOGY PRINCIPLE OF TEMPORAL SUCCESSION86 ACCORDING TO THE LAW OF CAUSALITy87
All changes occur according to the law of the connection of cause and effect. 88
Proof89 (The previous principle has established that all appearances [forming part] of the temporal succession9o are one and all only changes;9 1 i.e., they are a successive92 being and not-being of the determinations of substance, which itself is permanent. The principle has established, therefore, that there is no such thing93 as the being94 of substance itself as succeeding95 its not86[I.e., succession in time: Zeitfolge. (The tenn can also mean 'time sequence.')] 87[1n A, the heading and the statement of the principle read as follows:] PRINCIPLE OF PRODUCTION
Everything that occurs (i.e., starts to be) presupposes something that it succeedsa according to a rule. "[folgen auf.]
88[See Lewis White Beck, Essays on Kant and Burne (New Haven: Yale University Press, 1978), 1 30-64. See also H. E. Allison, op. cit. at A 21IB 35 br. n. 22, 216-34. Also Graham Bird, op. cit. at A 67IB 92 br. n. 121, 149-67. Also G. G. Brittan, op. cit. at B 202 br. n. 35, 165-87. Also Gerd Buchdahl, op. cit. at A 176IB 2 1 8 br. n. 3, 648-65. Also H. W. Cassirer, op. cit. at A 21IB 35 br. n. 22, 178-20 1 . Also J. N. Findlay, op. cit. at A 21IB 35 br. n. 22, 170-75. Also M. S. Gram, op. cit. at A TIB 1 1 br. n. 199, 140-66. Also Paul Guyer, op. cit. at A 84IB 1 1 6 br. n. 1 , 237-66. Also Nonnan Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 363-81 . Also Arthur Melnick, op. cit. at A 176/B 2 1 8 br. n . 3, 78-135; and op. cit. at A 22/B 3 7 br. n. 27, 163-74. Also H. J. Paton, op. cit. at B 1 br. n. 1 52, vol. 2, 221-93. Also T. D. Weldon, op. cit. at A 21IB 35 br. n. 22, 1 87-88. And see R. P. Wolff, op. cit. at B 5 br. n. 159, 260-83.] 89[First two paragraphs of the proof added in B.] 9O[And hence all variation (cf. the restatement of the principle, just below): -folge.] ol [Of substance.] 92 [sukzessiv.] o3 [nicht . . . stattfinde.] 94[Sein.] 95
[folgen auf.]
260 B 233
B 234
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
being, or its not-being96 as succeeding its existence;97 in other words, there is no such thing as the arising or passing away of substance itself. The prin ciple could also have been expressed thus: All variation (succession)9 8 on the part of appearances is only change; for an arising or passing away of substance would not be changes of it, because the concept of change pre supposes the same subject as existing,99 and hence as being permanent, with two opposite determinations. After this preliminary reminder, there now fol lows the proof.) I perceive that appearances succeed one another, i.e., that at one time there is a state of things whose opposite was there in the things' previous state. Hence I am in fact connecting two perceptions in time. Now con nection is not the work of mere sense and intuition, but is here the product of a synthetic ability of our imaginationl OO which determines inner sense in regard to time relation. But imagination can link those two states in two ways, so that either the one or the other state precedes in time. For time cannot in itself be perceived, and what precedes or followS 10 l cannot be determined by reference to it in the object-empirically, as it were. I am, therefore, conscious only that my imagination102 places one state before and the other1 03 after, but not that the one state precedes the other in the object. In other words, mere perception leaves indeterminate the objective relation of the appearances following one another. Now in order for this objective relation to be cognized as determinate, the relation between the two states must be thought as being such that it determines as necessary which of the states must be placed1 04 before and which after, rather than vice versa. But a concept carrying with it a necessity of synthetic unity can only be a pure concept of understanding, which therefore does not reside in perception. Here this concept is that of the relation of cause and effect; of these two, the cause is what determines the effect in time, and deter96[ Or 'nonexistence' : Nichtsein.) 97 [Dasein.) 98 [ Wechsel (Sukzession). On variation and change (as well as alteration), see B 224 hr. n. 45.) 99 [existierend.) 1CX) [Einbildungskrajt.) 1 0 1 [folgen.) 102 [lmagination. ] 1 03 [eines . . . da.v andere.] 1 00 [Or 'posited.']
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
26 1
mines it as the consequence, 1 05 rather than as something that [as occur ring] merely in imagination might [instead] precede (or might not even be perceived at all). Therefore experience itself-i.e., empirical cognition of appearances-is possible only inasmuch as we subject the succession 106 of appearances, and hence all change, to the law of causality. Hence appear ances themselves, taken as objects of experience, are possible only in ac cordance with this law. Apprehension of the manifold of appearances is always successive. 1 07 The presentations of the parts succeedlO8 one another. Whether they also follow 1 09 one another in the object is a second point for reflection which is not already contained in the first point. 1 10 Now it is true that anything, even every presentation insofar as one is conscious of it, can be called an object. Yet what this word might signify in the case of appearances, not insofar as they (as presentations) are objects but insofar as they only des
ignate an object, calls for deeper investigation. Insofar as appearances, taken only as presentations, are simultaneously objects of consciousness, they are not at all distinct from apprehension, i.e., from the taking up into the syn
thesis of imagination; and we must say, therefore, that the manifold of ap pearances is always produced in the mind successively. If appearances were things in themselves, then no human being could gather1 l 1 from the suc cession of presentations how their manifold is combined 112 in the object. For we deal, after all, only with our presentations; how things may be in themselves (i.e., apart from taking account of presentations whereby they affect us), is entirely outside our sphere of cognition. Appearances, then, are indeed not things in themselves; but they are all that can be given to us for cognition. And now, whereas the presentation [as such] of the mani fold l l 3 in apprehension is always successive, I am to indicate what sort of I05 [Foige.] 106 [Foige.] 107 [sukzessiv.] IO" (foigen auf] 109 (foigen.]
1I° [The first point being that the presentations of the parts succeed one another.] 1 I 1 [ermessen. Human beings lack the intellectual intuition (viz., of things in themselves) that
an intuitive understanding would have. See B 72 inc! br. n. 183.] 112 [Or 'linked': verbunden.] 1 1 3 [Of appearances.]
B 235 A 1 90
262
B 236 A 191
B 237 A 1 92
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
combination in time belongs to the manifold in appearances themselves. Thus, e.g., the apprehension of the manifold in the appearance of a house standing before me is successive. Now the question is whether the mani fold of this house itself is successive intrinsically1 14 as well; and this, to be sure, no one will grant. But once I raise my concepts of an object to the level of transcendental signification, the house is not at all a thing in itself, but is only an appearance, i.e., a presentation, whose transcendental object is unknown. ll 5 What, then, do I mean by the question as to how the mani fold may be combined in appearance itself (which, after all, is nothing in itself)? Here what lies in the successive apprehension is regarded as pre sentation; but the appearance that is given to me, despite being nothing more than a sum of these presentations, is regarded as their object, with which the concept that I obtain from the presentations of apprehension is to agree. We soon see that, since agreement of cognition with the object is truth, the question can only be inquiring after the fonnal conditions of em pirical truth; and we see that appearance, as contrastedl l 6 with the presen tations of apprehension, can be presented as an object distinct from them only if it is subject to a rule that distinguishes it from any other apprehen sion and that makes necessary one kind of combination of the manifold. That [element] in the appearance which contains the condition of this nec essary rule of apprehension is the object. Let us now proceed to our problem. That something occurs, i.e., that something, or a state that was not there before, comes to be cannot be per ceived empiricallyll7 unless it is preceded by an appearance that does not contain this state. For an actuality succeeding an empty time, i.e., an aris ing not preceded by any state of things, cannot be apprehended any more than empty time itself. Hence any apprehension of an event is a percep tion succeeding another perception. But because, as I showed above by ref erence to the appearance of a house, this is 1 1 8 so in all synthesis of appre hension, the apprehension of an event is not yet distinguished thereby from other apprehensions. Yet I also observe that if, in an appearance contain ing an occurrence, I call A the preceding state of the perception and B the succeeding state, then B can in apprehension only succeed A, and simi1 i4 [in sich.] 1 1 5 [unbekannt. ] 1 1 6 [im Gegenverhiiltnis.] 1 l7[As Kant uses the term 'perceive, ' 'empirically' is actually redundant.] 1 1 8 [besrhajfen ist. ]
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
263
lady perception A cannot succeed B but can only precede it. For example, I see a ship floating down the river. 1 1 9 My perception of its position lower down in the course of the river120 succeeds the perception of its position higher up, and there is no possibility that in the apprehension of this ap pearance the ship should be perceived first lower down and afterwards higher up in the river. Hence the order in the perceptions' succession in apprehension is here determinate, and apprehension is tied to this order. In the previous example of a house my perceptions could, in apprehension, start from the house's top and end at the bottom, but they could also start from below and end above; and they could likewise apprehend the mani fold of the empirical intuition by proceeding either to the right or to the left. Hence in the series of these perceptions there was no determinate or der making necessary the point in apprehension where 1 2 1 I must begin in order to combine the manifold empirically. In the perception of what oc curs,1 22 however, this rule 1 23 is always to be found, and through it the or der of the perceptions succeeding one another (in the apprehension of this appearance) is made necessary. In our case, 1 24 therefore, I shall have to derive the subjective succession of apprehension from the objective succession of appearances; for other wise the subjective succession is entirely indeterminate and fails to distin guish any one appearance from some other appearance. The subjective suc cession by itself, being entirely arbitrary, proves nothing about the connection of the manifold in the object. Hence the objective succession will consist in the order of the manifold of appearance whereby the appre hension of the one item (viz, what occurs) succeeds the apprehension of the other (viz., what precedes) according to a rule. This alone can entitle me to say of the appearance itself, and not merely of my apprehension, that a succession is to be found in it-which means the same as that I cannot perform the apprehension except in precisely this succession. 1 25 11 9 [Stro m, i.e., not a stream but a (large) nver.] 1 20[ FlujJ.] 1 21 [Reading, with Mellin. wo for wenn.] 1 22 [As in the case of the ship floating down the river.] 1 23 [As to where I must begin.] 1 24 [l.e., 1 2S
the case of an event.]
[Or 'sequence.']
B 238
A 1 93
264
B 239 A 194
B 240 A 1 95
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
In accordance with such a rule, therefore, what precedes an event as such must contain1 26 the condition for a rule whereby this event always and nec essarily follows. But I cannot go, conversely, from the event backward and determine (through apprehension) what precedes. For no appearance goes back from the succeeding point of time to the previous one, although it does refer to some previous one. The progression from a given time to the detenninate following time, on the other hand, is necessary. Hence be cause it 1 27 is, after all, something that follows, I must necessarily refer it to something else as such that precedes it and that it succeeds according to a rule, i.e., necessarily. Thus the event, as the conditioned, directs1 28 us re liably to some condition, while this condition determines the event. Suppose that an event is not preceded by anything that it must succeed according to a rule. Then all succession of perception would be deter mined solely in apprehension, i.e., merely subjectively; but this would not at all detennine objectively which item in fact1 29 precedes in perception and which follows. 13o We would in that way have only a play of presen tations that would not refer to any object whatever; i.e., our perception would not at all distinguish one appearance from all others in tenns of time relation. For the succession1 3 1 in apprehending is in that case everywhere the same, and hence there is in appearance nothing detennining this suc cession so that a certain 1 3 2 succession 1 33 is, as objective, made necessary by it. Hence I shall in that case not say that two states succeed each other in appearance. Rather, I shall say only that one apprehension succeeds the other; and this is merely something subjective and detennines no object, and hence cannot count1 34 as cognition of any object (not even of an ob ject in [the realm of] appearance). Hence when we experience that something occurs, then in doing so we always presuppose that it is preceded by something or other that it suc126 [Literally, 'there must reside in what precedes an event as such.'] 1 27 [l . e. , the event.] 1 28 [Anweisung.] 129 [eigentiich.] 130 [nach/oigend. ] 1 3 1 [Sukzession.]
1 32 [l.e., specific or particular.] 1 33 [Foige.] 1 34[gelten.]
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
265
ceeds according to a rule. Otherwise I would not say of the object that it succeeds; for the mere succession in my apprehension, if it is not deter mined by a rule by reference to something preceding it, justifies no [as sumption of a] succession in the object. Hence it iS 135 always on account of a rule that I make my subjective synthesis (of apprehension) objective, viz., a rule according to which appearances in their succession, i.e., as they occur, 136 are determined by the previous state. And the experience itself of something that occurs is possible solely and exclusively under this presup position. It is true that this seems to contradict all the remarks that people have always made about the course taken by our understanding. According to those remarks, it is only by perceiving and comparing the agreeing suc cessions of events that follow upon preceding appearances that we are first led to discover a rule whereby certain events always succeed certain ap pearances, and only thereby are we first prompted to frame the concept of cause. This concept would, on such a basis, 1 37 be merely empirical. And the rule whereby everything that occurs has a cause, as this concept pro vides it, would be just as contingent as the experience itself. 13 8 The rule's universality and necessity would then be attributed to it only fictitiously and would have no true universal validity, because they would be based not on anything a priori, but only on induction. But the case with this rule is the same as that with other pure a priori presentations (e.g., space and time): we can extract them as clear concepts from experience solely be cause we have put them into experience and hence have brought experi ence about through them in the first place. To be sure, this presentation of a rule determining the series of events, as a concept of cause, can have logi cal clarity only once we have made use of it in experience. Yet [our] tak ing account of this presentation, [viz.,] as a condition of the synthetic unity in time of appearances, was nonetheless the basis of the experience itself, and hence the experience was preceded a priori by this condition. Hence we must show, in the example [of an event], that even in expe rience we never attribute succession (in the case of an event-where some thing occurs that was not there before) to the object and we never distin guish this succession from the subjective one in our apprehension, except 1 3s [geschehen.] 136 [geschehen.] 1 37 [Fuft.] 1 38 [On which it is based.]
B 24 1 A 196
B 242
266
A 1 97
B 243
A 198
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
when there lies at the basis a rule that compels us to observe this order of perceptions rather than some other order; indeed, we must show that this compulsion is what in fact makes the presentation of a succession in the object possible in the first place. We have within us presentations of which we can also become con scious. But no matter how far this consciousness 139 may extend and how accurate and punctilious it may be, they still remain forever only presen tations, i.e., inner determinations of our mind in this or that time relation. How is it, then, that we posit an object for these presentations; or how is it that in addition to the subjective reality that they have as modifications [of the mind], we also attribute to them who knows what sort of objective reality? Their objective signification cannot consist in the reference to an other presentation (of what one would want to call object 140). For other wise the question returns: how does this other presentation, in tum, go be yond itself and acquire objective signification in addition to the subjective one that it possesses by being a determination of the mental state? Suppose that we inquire what new character is given to our presentations by the ref erence to an object, and what is the dignity that they thereby obtain. We then find that this reference does nothing beyond making necessary the pre sentations' being combined1 41 in a certain way and being subjected to a rule; and we find, conversely, that only through the necessity of a certain order in the time relation of our presentations is objective signification con ferred on them. In the synthesis of appearances the manifold of presentations is always successive. 142 Now, through this succession no object whatever is pre sented; for through this succession, which is common to all apprehensions, nothing is distinguished from anything else. But once I perceive, or as sume in advance, that there is in this succession 143 a reference to the pre ceding state, upon which the presentation follows 144 according to a rule, then something presents itself as an event, or as something that occurs. I.e., 139 [Of our presentations.]
14° [Reading, with Mellin. Gegenstand for Yom Gegenstande.] 1 4 1 [Or 'linked': Verbindung.]
142 [More literally, 'always succeeds sequentially' : folgt . . . nacheinander ] 143 [Folge.] 144 [fo/gen.]
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
267
I then cognize an object that I must posit 145 in 146 a certain detenninate po sition 147 in time-a position that in view of the preceding state cannot be assigned to it differently. Hence when I perceive that something occurs, then this presentation contains, first, [the presupposition] 148 that something pre cedes; for precisely by reference to this preceding something does the ap pearance acquire its time relation, viz., its existing after a preceding time in which it was not. But, second, it can obtain its determinate time posi tion in this relation only inasmuch as in the preceding state something is presupposed that it succeeds always, i.e., succeeds according to a rule. And from this results, first, that I cannot reverse the series, taking what occurs and putting it ahead of what it succeeds; and, second, that if the state that precedes is posited, then this specific 149 event succeeds unfailingly and nec essarily. Thus it is that among our presentations there comes to be an or der in which what is present directs us (insofar as it has come to be) to some preceding state as a correlate of the happening that is given. And al though this correlate is still indetenninate, it does refer detenninatively 150 to this happening as its consequence 15 1 and in the time series connects it with itself necessarily. Suppose, then, that it is a necessary law of our sensibility, and hence a formal condition of all perceptions, that the previous time necessarily de termines the following one (inasmuch as I cannot arrive at the following time except through the preceding one). If this is so, then it is also an in dispensable law of empirical presentation of the time series that the ap pearances of past time determine every existent 1 52 in the following time; and that these existents, as events, do not take place except insofar as their existence 153 is detennined in time-i.e., fixed in time according to a l4S [setzen.] l46 [Literally, 'upon' : auf.] l47 [Stelle.] l4" [Cf. A 1951B 240.] 1 49 [bestimmt.] lso [bestimmend. ] l S I [Fo/ge.] I S2 [Dasein.] I S3 [Dasein.]
B 244 A 1 99
268
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
only in l 54 appearances can we cognize empirically this continuity in the coherence of times.
rule-by those appearances of past time. For
B 245
A 200
B 246
Understanding is required for all experience and for its possibility. And the first thing that understanding does for these is not that of making the presentation of objects distinct, but that of making the presentation of an object possible at all.155 Now, this is done through the understanding's transferring the time order to the appearances and to their existence, by al lotting to each appearance, as consequence, a position in time determined a priori with regard to the preceding appearances; without this position in time the appearance would not agree with time itself, which a priori de termines for all its parts their position. Now this determination of an ap pearance's position cannot be taken from the relation of appearances to ward absolute time (for absolute time is not an object of perception). Rather, conversely, the appearances must themselves determine for one another their positions in time, and must make these positions l 56 necessary in the time order; i.e., what follows l 57 or occurs must succeed l 5 8 what was con tained in the previous state and must do so according to a universal rule. This results in a series of appearances that, by means of the understand ing, produces and makes necessary in the series of possible perceptions the same order and steady coherence that is found a priori in the form of inner intuition (i.e., in time), in which all [such] perceptions would have to have their position. Hence that something occurs is a perception belonging to a possible ex perience. This experience becomes actual when I view the appearance as de termined as regards its position in time, and hence view it as an object that in the coherence of perceptions can always be found according to a rule. This rule, however, for determining something in regard to temporal succes sion,1 59 is that the condition under which an event always (i.e., necessarily) follows is to be found in what precedes the event. Hence the principle of I S4[an.] I SS [Or possibly, 'making possible the presentation of an object as such.'] 156 [Reading, with Gorland, dieselben for dieselbe.] ,
I S7 [folgen.] 158 [folgen auf] I S9 [Or 'time sequence' : Zeitfolge.]
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
269
sufficient basis 160 is the basis of possible experience, i.e., of objective cog nition of appearances with regard to their relation in time sequence. 161 The basis for proving this proposition, however, rests solely on the fol lowing moments. All empirical cognition involves the synthesis of the mani fold by the imagination. This synthesis is always successive, 1 62 i.e., in it the presentations always succeed 1 63 one another. In the imagination itself, however, the sequencel 64 is not at all determined as regards order (i.e., as to what must precede and what must folloW I 65 ), and the series of the pre sentations following one another can be taken as proceeding backward just as well as forward. But if this synthesis is a synthesis of apprehension 166 (of the manifold of a given appearance), then the order is determined in the object, or-to speak more accurately-there is in this apprehension an order of successive synthesis that determines an object; and according to this order something must necessarily precede, and when this something is posited then the other event must necessarily follow. Hence if my percep1 60[Or 'ground' or 'reason': Kant is reinterpreting, in accordance with the second analogy, the principle of sufficient reason (Satz vom zureichenden Grunde) used by Leibniz and later broad ened by Wolff (to include not only the contingent). See also A 2 171B 264-65 and A 783 B 8 1 1 . (I am using 'basis,' rather than 'reason,' in line with that reinterpretation; as for 'ground,' see B xix br. n. 79.) In the Lectures on Metaphysics (Ak. XXVIII, 55 1 ), Kant says that this principle, if taken universally (,Whatever is has its basis; therefore whatever is must be a consequence' ), is false: it implies the obviously false proposition, 'If something is and has no basis then it is nothing.' Rather, Kant says, the principle must be restricted: "The relation of consequence to basis [or ground] is a relation of subordination; and things standing in such a relation make up a series. Hence this relation of basis to consequence is a principle of [a] series, and it holds only of the contingent." The principle thus "deals not with concepts as such, but only with the senses." It is synthetic, not analytic (as Wolff had claimed). But the principle "is possible a priori through the relation of concepts in reference to a possible ex perience. The principle of sufficient basis is one on which possible experience rests. A basis here is what, if something is posited, is succeeded by something else according to universal rules." A sufficient basis, Kant goes on (ibid., 552), is one that contains everything that is found in the consequence. See also the Logic, Ak. IX, 5 1 -53 (and cf. the "principle of basis [or ground or reason]" involved in hypothetical inferences: ibid., 129).] 1 6 1 [in Reihenfolge der Zeit. ] =
1 62 [sukzessiv.] 1 63 [folgen auf] 164 [Folge.] 165 [folgen.]
166 [Perforrned by the imagination as governed by the understanding. Cf. Erdmann's note at Ak. III, 589.]
A 20 1
270
B 247
A 202
B 248
A 203
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
tion is to contain the cognition of an event, i.e., of something's actually occurring, then it must be an empirical judgment in which we think of the consequencel 67 as detennined, i.e., as presupposing in tenns of time an other appearance that it succeeds necessarily, or according to a rule. Oth erwise, if I posited what precedes and the event did not succeed it neces sarily, then I would have to regard this event as only a subjective play of my imaginings; and if I still presented by it something objective, then I would have to call it a mere dream. Therefore the relation of appearances (as possible perceptions) whereby what follows (occurs) is with regard to its existence detennined in time, necessarily and according to a rule, by something preceding it-in other words, the relation of cause to effect is the condition of the objective validity of our empirical judgments as re gards the series of perceptions, and hence is the condition of these judg ments' empirical truth and therefore of experience. The principle 1 68 of the causal relation in the successionl 69 of appearances holds, therefore, also forl 7O all objects of experience ([insofar as they are] under the conditions of successionl 7 l), because it is itself the basis of the possibility of such ex perience. Here, however, emerges a perplexity that must still be removed. The principle l72 of the causal connection among appearances is, in our fonnu lation, limited to their [occurring in] sequence. Yet in using the principle we find that it fits also the case of their concomitance, and that cause and effect can be simultaneous. E.g., there is heat in the room which is not found in the open air. I look around for the cause, and discover a heated stove. Now this stove, as cause, is simultaneous with its effect, the room's heat. Hence here there is between cause and effect no sequence in tenns of time. They are, rather, simultaneous; and yet the law of cause and effect does hold. The majority of efficient causes in nature are simultaneous with their effects, and the temporal succession of the effects is due only to the fact that the cause cannot accomplish its entire effect in one instant. But at the instant when the effect first arises, it is always simultaneous with the cau167 [Folge.] 1 68 [G rundsatz. ] 169 [Folge.]
17°[Reading, with Hartenstein, von instead of vor ('prior to').] 1 7 1 [Sukzession.] 172 [Satl. ]
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
27 1
sality of its cause. 1 73 For if the cause had ceased to be an instant before, then the effect would not have arisen at all. It must be noted carefully, here, that what we are considering is the order of time, not the lapse of time; the relation remains even if no time has elapsed. The time between the cau sality of the cause and the cause's direct 1 74 effect may be vanishingly brief, but yet the relation of the cause to the effect175 always remains determin able in terms of time. If I consider as cause a [lead] ball that lies on a stuffed cushion and makes an indentation in it, then this cause is simultaneous with the effect. But I nonetheless distinguish the two by the time relation of their dynamical connection. For if I lay the ball on the cushion, then the previ ous smooth shape of the cushion is succeeded by the indentation; but if the cushion has an indentation (no matter from where), then this is not suc ceeded by a lead ball. 176 Hence temporal succession is indeed an effect's sole empirical criterion in reference to the causality of the cause preceding it. The [totally filled] tumbler177 is the cause of the water's rising above the horizontal plane [at the top] of the tumbler, although the two appearances are simultaneous. For as soon as water is scooped from a larger vessel with [an empty] tumbler, there ensues this: the horizontal level that the water had in the larger ves sel changes to a concave level in the [partially filled] tumbler. This causality leads to the concept of action; action leads to the concept of force and thereby to the concept of substance. Since my critical project deals solely with the sources of synthetic a priori cognition and I do not want to mingle with it dissections [of concepts], which concern merely the elucidation (rather than the expansion) of concepts, I leave the detailed ex position of these concepts to a future system of pure reason-although such an analysis can also be found in abundance 178 in the textbooks of this kind that are already familiar. What I must, however, touch upon is the empiri173 [Kausalitiit ihrer Ursache.] 1 74 [Or 'immediate' : unmittelbar.] 175 [der einen zur anderen. In terms of grammar alone, der einen would refer not to the cause but to its causality.] 176 [Kant's point is that temporal succession decides empirically what is the cause and what
is the effect. The indentation did not cause the lead ball. because it is not succeeded by the lead ball.] 177 [Glas. ] 1 78 [' in rich measure,' literally.]
B 249
A 204
272
B 250
A 205
B 25 1
A 206
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
cal criterion of a substance insofar as it seems to manifest itself not through the permanence of appearance but better and more easily through action. Where there is action and hence activity and force, there is also sub stance, and in substance alone must be sought the seat of that fertile source of appearances. That is nicelyl79 said; but if we are to explain what we mean by substance and want to avoid the fallacy of circular reasoning, then the answer is not so easy. How, from action on something, I SO are we to in fer at once the agent's permanence-this permanence being, after all, so essential and peculiar a characteristic of substance ([as] phaenomenon l S I )? Yet according to our previous remarks, solving the question is not so dif ficult after all, even though the question would be quite insoluble accord ing to the usual way (of proceeding with one's concepts, viz., merely ana lytically). Action already means the relation of the causality's subject to the effect. Now any effect consists in what occurs, and hence in the mu table that designateslS2 time in terms of succession. Therefore the ultimate subject of the mutablelS3 is the permanent as the substratum of everything that varies, i.e., substance. For according to the principle of causality ac tions are always the first basis of all variation by appearances; hence ac tions cannot reside in a subject that itself varies, since otherwise other ac tions and another subject determining that variation would be required. By virtue of this does action prove, as a sufficient empirical criterion, the sub stantiality of a subject, I S4 without my needing first of all to search for the subject'slS5 permanence by perceptions that I have compared. Nor could proving this substantiality along this path of comparison be accomplished as comprehensively as is required by the magnitude and strict universality of the concept of substance. For, that the first subject of the causality of all arising and passing away cannot itself arise and pass away (in the realm of appearances) is a safe inference that issues in empirical necessity and permanence in existence, and hence in the concept of a substance as ap pearance. 1 79 [ganz gut.) 1 8° [Behandlung.] l 8 l [I. e . ,
substance ([taken as] phenomenal). Cf. A 1461 B 1 86 br. n. 1 34 ]
182 [bezeichnen.] 1 83 [desselben.] 1 84 [ ' of
a subject' added by Wille. and treated as implied in 'substantiality' by Erdmann.]
1 85 [desselben ]
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
273
When something occurs then the mere arising, even if we take no ac count of what arises, is in itself already an object of inquiry. The transi tion l 86 itself from a state's not-being to this state, even supposing that this state contained no quality in [the realm] of appearance, already calls for inquiry. This arising, as was shown in the First Analogy,I 87 concerns not substance (for substance does not arise) but its state. Hence arising is only change, and not origination from nothing. For if this origination from noth ing is regarded as effect of an extraneous cause, then it is called creation; and creation cannot be admitted as an event among appearances, because its very possibility would already annul the unity of experience. If, on the other hand, I regard all things not as phenomena but as things in them selves and as objects merely of understanding, then despite their being sub stances they can still be regarded as being dependent, in terms of their ex istence, on an extraneous cause. That alternative, however, would then entail quite different significations of the words, and would not fit appearances, as possible objects of experience. Now, we do not a priori have the least concept as to how anything can be changed at all, i.e., how it is possible that one state occurring at one point of time can be succeeded by an opposite state occurring at another point of time. This [concept of how change is possible] requires knowl edge l88 of actual forces---e.g., knowledge of the motive forces, or, which is the same, of certain successive appearances (as motions) indicating such forces-and such knowledge can be given only empirically. But we can nonetheless examine a priori, according to the law of causality and the con ditions of time, the form of every change, i.e., the condition under which alone, as an arising of a different state, change can take place (no matter what may be its content, i.e., the state being changed); and hence we can so examine the succession itself of the states 189 (i.e., the occurrence l 90). 191 186[ Ubergang.] 1 87 [in der Nummer A.] 1 88 [Kenntnis.] 189 [Or 'succession of the states themselves' ; but the adopted reading seems to fit the context better.] 190 [Reading, with Vaihinger, das Geschehen for das Geschehene.] 191 1t should be noted carefully that 1 am talking not about the change of certain re lations as such, but about change of a state. Thus if a body moves unifonnly then it does not change its state (of motion) at all; but it does change its state if its mo tion increases or decreases.
B 252
A 207
274 B 253
A 208
B 254
A 209
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
When a substance passes1 92 from one state, a, to another, b, then the point of time of the second state is different from the point of time of the first, and follows it. In the same way, too, the second state as reality (in [the realm of] appearance) differs from the first, in which this reality was not, as b differs from zero; i.e., even if state b were to differ from state a only in magnitude, the change is [still] an arising of b_a, 193 which in the previous state was not and in regard to which that state = O. The question, therefore, is how a thing passes from one state, = a, to another, = b. Between two instants there is always a time, and between two states at those instants there is always a difference that has a magnitude (for all parts of appearances are always magnitudes in tum). Hence any transition from one state to another occurs in a time that is contained be tween two instants, the first instant determining the state that the thing leaves and the second instant determining the state that it enters. Both in stants, therefore, are bounds of the time of a change and hence bounds of the intermediate state between the two states, and as such belong also to the entire change. Now every change has a cause that manifests its causal ity in the entire time wherein the change takes place. Hence this cause pro duces its change not suddenly (i.e., all at once, or in one instant), but in a time; so that, as the time increases from its initial instant (a) 194 up to its completion (in b), the reality'S magnitude (b-a) is also produced through all the smaller degrees contained between the first degree and the last. Hence all change is possible only through a continuous action of the cau sality; this action, insofar as it is uniform, is called a moment. 1 95 Change does not consist of these moments, but is produced by them as their effect. This, then, is the law of the continuity of all change. The basis of this law is this fact: that neither time nor, for that matter, appearance in time consists of parts that are the smallest; and that nonetheless, as a thing changes, its state passes through all these parts, as elements, to the thing's second state. No difference of the real in [the realm of] appearance is the smallest, just as no difference in the magnitude of times is the smallest. And thus the reality'S new state grows, starting from the first state, in which it was not, through all the infinite degrees of this reality; and the differ192 [iibergehen.] 1 9' [l.e., b minus a.] 1 94 [Parentheses added here and in the very next case, just below.] 195[(das) Moment. Cf. A 168/8 210 ]
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
275
ences of the degrees from one another are all smaller than the difference between a and a. What benefit this principle 196 may have for the investigation of nature is of no concern to us here. But how is such a principle, which thus seems to expand our cognition of nature, possible completely a priori? This ques tion very much requires our examination, even though what the principle says is [so] obviously 1 97 actual and correct that we might believe our selves to be exempted from the question as to how the principle was pos sible. For there is such a variety of unfounded198 claims about our cogni tion's expansion by pure reason, that we must adopt as a universal principle [the resolve] to be throughout distrustful on that account, and not to be lieve or assume anything of the sort, even upon the clearest dogmatic proof, without documentation that can provide a well-founded 199 deduction. All increase of empirical cognition and any progress2OO of perception-no matter what the objects may be, whether appearances or pure intuitions-is nothing but an expansion of the determination of inner sense, i.e., a pro gression in time. This progression in time determines everything and is in itself determined through nothing further. I.e., the progression's parts are given only in time and through the synthesis of time; they20 1 are not given prior to the synthesis. Because of this, every transition in perception to something that follows in time is a determination of time through the pro duction of this perception; and since time is always and in all its parts a magnitude, every such transition is the production of a perception as a mag nitude that goes through all degrees, none of which is the smallest, from zero onward up to the perception's determinate degree. From this, then, is evident the possibility of cognizing a priori a law governing changes as regards their form. For we only anticipate our own apprehension, whose formal condition, since it resides in ourselves prior to all given appear ance, must indeed be capable of being cognized a priori.202 196 [SatZ. ] 197 [der Augenschein beweist.] 19 8 [ungegriindet.] 199 [griindlich.] 2oo [Fortschritt; 'progression,' just below, translates Fortgang.] 2D l [Reading with Vaihinger, sind for sie.] ,
2D2 [ef. below, A 766
=
B 794 , where Kant restates this point with special clarity.]
B 255
A 210
B 256
276
A 21 1
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
We have seen that time contains the sensible a priori condition for the possibility of a continuous progression of what exists to what follows. In the same way the understanding, by means of the unity of apperception, is the a priori condition for the possibility of a continuous determination, through the series of causes and effects, of all positions for appearances in this time-the causes entailing203 unfailingly the existence of the effects, and thereby making the empirical cognition of time relations valid for ev ery time (i.e., universally) and hence valid objectively.
C THIRD ANALOGY PRINCIPLE OF SIMULTANEITY ACCORDING TO THE LAW OF INTERACTION204 OR COMMUNITy20S
All substances, insofar as they can be perceived in space as simultaneous, are in thoroughgoing interaction?06 PrOOP07
B 257
Things are simultaneous if their perceptions can in empirical intuition suc ceed one another reciprocalllo8 (which cannot occur in the temporal suc203 [nach sich ziehen.]
204[Or 'reciprocal action' or 'reciprocal causation' : Wechselwirkung.] 205[In A, the heading and the statement of the principle read as follows:] PRINCIPLE OF COMMUNITY
All substances, insofar as they are simultaneous, stand in thoroughgoing community (i.e., interaction with one another). 206[See Gerd Buchdahl, op. cit. at A 1 76/B 2 1 8 hr. n. 3, 665-7 1 . See also 1. N. Findlay, op. cit. at A 21/B 35 hr. n. 22, 175-77. Also Paul Guyer, op. cit. at A 84/B 1 1 6 hr. n. 1 , 267-76. Also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii hr. n. 5, 381-9 1 . Also Arthur Melnick, op. cit. at A 176/B 2 1 8 hr. n. 3, 94- 1 2 1 , 130-35. Also H. 1. Paton, op. cit. at B I hr. n. 1 52, vol. 2, 294-33 1 . Also T. D. Weldon, op. cit. at A 21/B 35 hr. n. 22, 1 88. And see R. P. Wolff, op. cit. at B 5 hr. n. 1 59, 283-92.] 207 [First paragraph of the proof added in B.] 208 [wechseiseilig. More literally, Kant says: 'if the perception of one thing can succeed the perception of another reciprocally.']
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
277
cession of appearances, as was shown under the second principle). Thus I can carry on my perception either first with the moon and thereafter with the earth, or, vice versa, first with the earth and then with the moon. And because the perceptions of these objects can succeed each other recipro cally, I say that the objects exist simultaneously. Now simultaneity is the existence of the manifold in the same time?09 However, time itself cannot be perceived; and hence from the fact that things are piaced2 10 in the same time we cannot glean that their perceptions can follow one another recip rocally. Hence the synthesis of imagination in apprehension would indi cate for each of these perceptions only that it is there in the subject when the other is not, and vice versa.2 1 1 But it would not indicate that the ob jects are simultaneous; i.e., that if the one is there then the other is also there in the same time, and that this simultaneity of the objects is neces sary in order that the perceptions can succeed one another reciprocally. Hence for things existing outside one another simultaneously we require a concept of understanding of the reciprocal succession2 12 of their determi nations, in order to say that the reciprocal succession of the perceptions has its basis in the object and in order thus to present the simultaneity as objective. But the relation of substances wherein the one substance con tains determinations whose basis is contained in the other substance is the relation of influence; and if this latter thing21 3 reciprocally contains the ba sis of the determinations in the former thing,2 14 then the relation is that of community or interaction. Therefore the simultaneity of substances in space cannot be cognized in experience except under the presupposition that they interact with one another. Hence this interaction is also the condition for the possibility of the things themselves as objects of experience. 209 [Although this definition can be used to support translating Zugleichsein as 'coexistence' (similarly for the adjective), 'coexistence' and 'existence' (unlike 'simultaneity' and 'exist ence') are so close as to affect the definition's import; and what I render as 'exist simulta neously' in the statement preceding the definition could not have been translated in that way at all. (All of this applies to many other places in the Third Analogy and elsewhere.) I re serve 'coexistence' to render Kant's Koexistenz. This, too, is important, as can be seen most clearly wherever Kant relates coexistence and simultaneity; see A 21 31B 260, A 21 81B 265 n. 244, A 428 B 456.] 2 1 0[Or 'posited' : gesetzt.] =
21 1 [ wechselweise.] 212 [Folge.] 213 [dieses. 2 14
meaning this latter substance.]
[in dem anderen. meaning the former substance.]
B 258
278
A 212
B 259
A 213
B 260
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
Things are simultaneous insofar as they exist in one and the same time . But whereby do we cognize that they are in one and the same time? They are so when the order in the synthesis of this manifold's apprehension is indifferent, i.e., when that synthesis can go either from A through B, C, D, to E, or vice versa from E to A. For if the synthesis is sequential in time (in the order starting from A and ending in E), then starting the apprehen sion in perception from E and proceeding backwards to A is impossible, since A belongs to past time and hence can no longer be an object of ap prehension. Now suppose that in a manifoldness21 s of substances taken as appear ances each of them were completely isolated, i.e., that no substance ef fected2 1 6 influences in2 17 another and reciprocally received influences from it. I say that in that case their simultaneity would not be an object of a pos sible perception, and that the existence of one substance could not by any path of empirical synthesis lead to the existence of another. For if you bear in mind that the substances would be separated by a completely empty space, then although the perception proceeding in time from one substance to the other would determine this other substance's existence by means of a perception that follows, yet it could not distinguish whether objectively the appearance succeeds the first or is, rather, simultaneous with it. Hence there must be something else, besides mere existence, whereby A determines for B-and also, vice versa, B in turn for A-their positions in time. For only under this condition can those substances be presented empirically as existing simultaneously. Now only what is the cause of some thing else, or of its determinations, determines for that something its po sition in time. Therefore every substance (since it can be a consequence only in regard to its determinations) must contain within itself the causal ity of certain determinations in the other substance and simultaneously must contain within itself the effects of the other substance's causality-i.e., they must stand (directly or indirectly) in dynamical community-if their si multaneity is to be cognized in any possible experience. However, some thing is necessary in regard to objects of experience if without that some thing the experience of these objects would itself be impossible. Hence for all substances in [the realm of] appearance, insofar as they are simulta2 1 ' [l.e., in this case, a multiplicity See B 203 hr. n. 38.] 21 0[wirken.] 2 1 7 ['into,' literally.]
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
279
neous, it is necessary that they stand in thoroughgoing community of in teraction. The word community2 1 8 is ambiguous in our language; it can mean the same as communio or as commercium. 219 We here employ it in the latter sense, as meaning a dynamic community, without which even locational community (communio spatii)220 could never be cognized empirically. We can easily tell by our experiences: that only the continuous influences in all positions of space can lead our sense from one object to another; that the light playing between our eye and the celestial bodies can22 1 bring about an indirect community between us and them and can thereby prove their simultaneity; that we cannot empirically change place222 (and perceive this change) unless matter everywhere makes possible the perception of our po sition; and that only by means of matter's reciprocal influence223 can mat ter establish its simultaneity and thereby establish (although only indi rectly) the coexistence224 of objects, down to the most remote ones. Without community every perception (of appearance in space) would be severed from any other; the chain of empirical presentations-i.e., experience -would begin entirely anew with each new object, and the previous chain could not in the least cohere225 with it or stand to it in a time relation. By this I do not in any way wish to disprove empty space. 226 For there may be such space wherever perceptions cannot reach at all and where there occurs, therefore, no empirical cognition of simultaneity. But such space is then no object whatever for all our possible experience. 227 The following may serve as elucidation. In our mind all appearances, as contained in a possible experience, must stand in community (com2 1 8 [Gemeinschaft. ]
219 [Respectively, 'communion' ( 'sharing') and 'commerce' (cf. 'communication' ).] 220 [Community (or communion, sharing) of space.] 22l [Reading, in line with Kant's grammar, konnen in the next clause as going also with be wirken and beweisen ( 'bring about' and 'prove'). Adickes suggests that we replace the two infinitives with bewirke . . . beweise. ] 222 [keinen Ort empirisch veriindern.]
223 [On matter.] 224[Koexistenz.
See B 257 hr. n. 209.] 225 [Or 'connect. ' ] 226 [Or, i.e., a vacuum: leerer Raum.] 227 [See the 5 63-65.]
Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak. IV, 481-82, 523-25, 532-35,
A 2 14 B 26 1
280
A 215 B 262
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
munio) of apperception; and insofar as objects are to be presented as con nected inasmuch as they exist simultaneously, they must reciprocally de termine each other's position in one time and thereby make up a whole. If this subjective community is to rest on an objective basis, or be referred to appearances as substances, then the perception of the one appearance, as basis, must make possible the perception of the other, and thus also vice versa. Only then will the succession, which is always there in perceptions as apprehensions,228 not be attributed to the objects, but these objects can, rather, be presented as existing simultaneously. This, however, is a recip rocal influence, i.e., a real community (commercium) of substances; with out this community the empirical relation of simultaneity could not occur in experience. Through this commercium appearances, insofar as they stand outside one another and yet in connection, make up a composite229 (com positum reaie),230 and such composites231 become possible in various ways. Hence the three dynamical relations from which all other relations arise are those of inherence, consequence, and composition.232 These, then, are the three analogies of experience. They are nothing but principles for the determination of the existence of appearances in time, according to all three modes of time: 233 viz., according to the relation to time itself as a magnitude (the magnitude of existence, i.e., duration); ac cording to the relation in time as a series (i.e., as sequential); and, finally, also according to the relation in time as a sum of all existence234 (i.e., as simultaneous). This unity of time determination is dynamical through and through. I.e., time is not regarded as that wherein experience directly de termines for each existent235 its position; for such determination is impos sible, because absolute time is not an object of perception to which ap22S [I.e., perceptions insofar as they are considered subjectively as apprehensions always come to us successively and not simultaneously.] 229 [Zusammengesetztes.] 23° [Real composite.] 2'" [Composita.] 232 [lnhiirenz, Konsequenz. Komposition ] 233 [See A 1 76 /B 2 1 9.] 234 [Dasein.] 2J ' [Dasein.]
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
28 1
pearances could be held Up?36 Rather, the rule of understanding through which alone the existence of appearances can acquire synthetic unity in terms of time relations is what determines for each appearance its position in time, hence doing so a priori and validly for all and every time. By nature (in the empirical meaning of the term) we mean the coher ence of appearances as regards their existence according to necessary rules, i.e., according to laws. There are, then, certain laws-which are, more over, a priori-that make a nature possible in the first place. Empirical laws can occur and can be found only by means of experience; and this, more over, in consequence of those original laws through which experience it self becomes possible in the first place. Hence our analogies in fact exhibit the unity of nature, in the coherence of all appearances, under certain in dices;237 these indices express nothing but the relation of time (insofar as time comprises all existence) to the unity of apperception-a unity that can occur only in synthesis according to rules. Hence together the analogies say that all appearances reside, and must reside, in one nature; for without this a priori unity no unity of experience, and hence also no determination of objects in experience, would be possible. I must, however, make a comment about the kind of proof that we have employed for these transcendental laws of nature, and about its peculiar ity; this comment has to be very important also as a precept for every other attempt to prove any a priori propositions that are intellectual and also syn thetic. For all our endeavor would have been entirely futile if we had tried to proceed dogmatically, i.e., from concepts,238 in proving these analogies: i.e., in proving that everything that exists is to be found only in what is permanent; that every event presupposes something in the previous state which it succeeds according to a rule; and finally, that in a simultaneous manifold the states are simultaneous (stand in community) in reference to one another according to a rule. For through mere concepts of things, no matter how one dissects these concepts, one cannot from one of these ob jects and from its existence get to the existence239 of another or to its way of existing?40 What [method of proof] , then, did that leave us? [None but 236 [For reference.] 237 [Exponenlen.] 238 [ l.e., if we had tried to proceed analytically rather than synthetically ] 239 [ Dasein.] 24o [exislieren.]
A 216, B 263
B 264 A 217
282
B 265
A 218
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
relying on something third:f41 the possibility of experience as a cognition wherein all objects, if their presentation is to have objective reality for us, must ultimately be capable of being given to us. Now in this third some thing, whose essential form consists in the synthetic unity of apperception of all appearances, we found the a priori conditions for the thoroughgoing and necessary time determination-without which even empirical time de termination would be impossible-of all existence in [the realm of] ap pearance, and found rules of synthetic a priori unity that allow us to an ticipate experience. In the absence of this method,242 and in the delusion of trying to provide dogmatic proof of synthetic propositions that the ex periential use of understanding recommends as understanding's principles, it then came about that people so often attempted-though always in vain-to provide a proof of the principle of sufficient basis. 243 And no one thought of the two remaining analogies, although tacit use has always been made of them;244 they were overlooked because people were lacking the categories as the guide that alone can uncover and make noticeable any gap, in concepts as well as principles, on the part of understanding.
24 1 [In the case of analytic judgments, mere analysis (dissection) of what is already thought in the subject concept shows the connection between it and the predicate concept; and hence only two things are needed here- viz., subject and predicate. But in the case of synthetic judgments, the predicate is ascribed to the subject by means of some third thing; and iden tifying this third thing is, of course, the main problem of Kant's critical philosophy. See above, A 7-10IB 1 0-24.] 242 [The synthetic method.] 243 [Or 'ground' or 'reason.' Cf. A 20lIB 246 br. n. 1 60.] 244 The unity of the world whole wherein all appearances are to be connected is manifestly a mere conclusion drawn from the covertly assumed principle of the community of all substances that are simultaneous. For if those appearances were isolated then they would not, as parts, make up a whole. And if their connection (interaction of the manifold) were not already necessary on account of their simul taneity, then one could not from this simultaneity, as a merely ideal relation, infer that unity, as a real relation. But we have shown, in its appropriate place,a that com munity is in fact the basis for the possibility of an empirical cognition of coexist ence, and that peopleb are in fact only making an inference from this possibilityC back to that community as its condition. a[A 2 1 3-14IB 260-61 .] b [In assuming the principle of community.] claus dieser, which grammatically could refer back, instead, to 'cognition' or to 'coexist ence.' ]
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
283
4 THE POSTULATES OF EMPIRICAL THOUGHT As SUCHl 1 . What agrees (in tenns of intuition and concepts) with the fonnal con ditions of experience is possible. 2. What coheres2 with the material conditions of experience (with sen sation) is actual. 3. That whose coherence3 with the actual is detennined according to uni versal conditions of experience is necessary (exists necessarily).
Elucidation The categories of modality have the peculiarity that they do not in the least augment, as determination of the object, the concept to which they are added as predicates; they express, rather, only the object's relation to the cognitive power. For even when the concept of a thing is already quite com plete, I can nonetheless still ask about this object whether it is merely pos sible or also actual; or, if it is actual, whether it is perhaps also necessary. Through these categories no further detenninations are thought in the ob ject itself; rather, the question is only how the object (along with all its de tenninations) relates to understanding and its empirical use, to the empiri cal power of judgment, and to reason (as applied to experience). Precisely because of this, moreover, the principles of modality are noth ing more than explications of the concepts of possibility, actuality, and ne cessity in their empirical use; and thereby they are also restrictions of all the categories to merely empirical use, and do not admit and allow tran scendental use of the categories. For if the categories are not to have a merely logical signification and to express analytically the fonn of thought, but are to pertain to things and their possibility, actuality, or necessity, then they must concern possible experience and its synthetic unity, wherein alone objects of cognition are given. ' [See H. W. Cassirer, op. cit. at A 2 1 IB 35 hr. n. 22, 202- 1 1 . See also J. N. Findlay, op. cit. at A 21IB 35 hr. n. 22, 1 78-80. Also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii hr. n. 5, 391-403. Also H. J. Paton, op. cit. at B I hr. n. 1 52, vol. 2, 335-71 . Also T. D. Weldon, op. cit. at A 21IB 35 hr. n. 22, 1 89. And see R. P. Wolff, op. cit. at B 5 hr. n. 1 59, 292-99.] 2 [Or 'connects' : zusammenhiingen.] ' [Or 'connection' : Zusammenhang (,hanging together,' literally). Cf. A 225-26IB 273-74, A 216 B 263, A 1 14.] =
B 266
A 219
B 267
284 A 220
B 268
A 221
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
The postulate of the possibility of things demands, then, that their con cept agrees with the fonnal conditions of an experience as such. But this experience, i.e., the objective form of experience as such, contains all the synthesis that is required for cognition of objects.4 A concept comprising5 a synthesis is to be considered empty, and refers to no object, if this syn thesis does not pertain to experience: either as a synthesis obtained from experience, the concept then being called an empirical concept; or as a syn thesis which, as a priori condition, underlies experience as such (the form of experience), the concept then being a pure concept-but one that none theless belongs to experience, because its object can be encountered only in experience. For from where are we to obtain the character of possibility of an object that is thought through a synthetic a priori concept, if not from the synthesis in which the form of the empirical cognition of objects con sists? That such a concept must contain no contradiction is indeed a nec essary logical condition; but it is far from sufficient for the concept's hav ing objective reality, i.e., for the possibility6 of such an object as is thought through the concept. Thus there is no contradiction in the concept of a fig ure enclosed by two straight lines, because the concepts of two straight lines and of their meeting contain no negation of the figure. Rather, the figure's impossibility rests not on the concept in itself but on its construction in space, i.e., on the conditions of space and of its detennination; and these conditions in tum have their objective reality, i.e., they apply to possible things, because they contain a priori the form of experience as such. Let us now show the extensive benefit and influence of this postulate of possibility. If I present a thing that is permanent,7 so that whatever varies in it belongs merely to the thing's state, then from such a concept alone I can never cognize that a thing of that sort is possible. Or suppose I present something that is to be of such a character that when it is posited then some thing else always and unfailingly succeeds its this something may indeed be capable of being thought thus without contradiction; but from this one cannot judge whether a property of this sort (as causality) is to be met with 4 [Kant uses Objekt (in the plural) here, Gegenstand just below, and so on for the remain der of the paragraph. See A vii br. n. 7.] 5 [in sich fassen.] 6 [Kant means real possibility. The object's logical possibility requires merely that the con cept of the object contain no contradiction.]
7 [As in the case of substance-the first analogy of experience.] " [As in the case of causality-the second analogy.]
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
285
in any possible thing. Finally, I can present various things (substances) which are9 such that the state of one thing entails a consequence in the state of another, and thus also vice versa. 1O But from these concepts, which con tain a merely arbitrary l l synthesis, I cannot glean whether a relation of this sort can belong to any things. l 2 Hence only by the fact that these concepts express a priori the relations of perceptions in every experience do we cog nize their objective reality, i.e., their transcendental truth; and although we cognize it indeed independently of experience, yet we do not cognize it independently of all reference to the form of an experience as such, and to the synthetic unity in which alone objects can be cognized empirically. But suppose that we wished even to frame new concepts of substances, of forces, of interactions, and that we tried to frame them from the mate rial offered to us by perception, without taking the example of their con nection from experience itself. We would then end up with nothing but chi meras; their possibility lacks any criterion whatsoever, because for these concepts we neither have adopted experience [as such] as the teacher nor have taken these concepts from [actual] experience. Such fictional con cepts cannot, as the categories can, acquire their character of possibility 1 3 a priori, as conditions on which all experience depends. Rather, they can acquire it only a posteriori, as concepts given by experience itself; and hence their possibility must either be cognized a posteriori and empiri cally, or it cannot be cognized at all. Consider a substance l 4 that would be present permanently in space, but without occupying it (like that interme diate something between matter and thinking beings which some have wanted to introduce); or a special basic power of our mind for intuiting (and by no means merely inferring) future events in advance; l 5 or, finally, an ability of the mind to stand in community of thought l6 with other hu man beings (no matter how distant they may be). These are concepts whose possibility is entirely baseless. For we cannot base it on experience and its 9 [bescha./fen sein.] IO[As in the case of community-the third analogy.] l l [Or 'chosen [by me]' : willkiirlich.]
12[Actual
or really possible things.] 13 [den Charakter ihrer Moglichkeit.] 1 4 [See A 2211B 268 br. n. 7.] 15 [See
A 2211B 268 br. n. 8 .]
16 [See
A 2211B 269 br. n 10.]
B 269
A 222
B 270
A 223
286
B 27 1
A 224
PART II
1RANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
familiar laws. But without this experience and these laws 17 that possibility is an arbitrary combination of thoughts; and although this combination of thoughts contains no contradiction, yet it cannot lay claim to objective re ality, nor therefore to the possibility of such an object as one here wishes to think. As concerns reality, thinking it in concreto without availing one self of experience is surely ruled out per se. 18 For reality can deal only with sensation, as matter of experience; it does not concern the fonn of re lation, with which one could at least play in one's inventions. But I leave aside everything whose possibility can be gleaned only from [the things'] actuality in experience, and here examine only the possibility of things through a priori concepts. Of these things I go on to assert that they 19 can never occur on the basis of2o such concepts by themselves, but only [if the concepts are taken] as formal and objective conditions of an experience as such. It does indeed seem as if the possibility of a triangle could be cognized from the triangle's concept by itself (the concept is certainly independent of experience). For we can in fact provide the concept with an object-i.e. , construct the concept---completely a priori. But since this2 1 is only the fonn of an object,22 it would still remain forever only a product of imagination. The possibility of this product's object would still remain doubtful. This possibility requires something further still, viz., that this figure be thought under none but those conditions on which all objects of experience rest. Thus what connects with this concept of a triangle the presentation of the possibility of such a thing is solely this: that space is a fonnal a priori con dition of outer experiences; and that the fonnative23 synthesis whereby we construct a triangle in imagination is entirely the same synthesis that we perfonn in apprehending an appearance in order to frame an experiential concept of it. And thus, since the concepts of continuous magnitudes-in deed, of magnitudes as such-are one and all synthetic, the possibility of 17 [sie.] ' " [verbietet es sich wohl von selbst.] L9 [Kant may have meant to say 'that their possibility.' ] 2D [aus.] 21 [The geometrical object.] 22 [The form of an object of experience.] " [formative. ]
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
287
such magnitudes is never clear from the concepts themselves, but solely24 from these concepts as formal conditions for the determination of objects in experience as such. And where indeed should we wish to search for ob jects corresponding to concepts if not in experience, through which alone objects are given to us? Yet we can cognize and characterize the possibil ity of things even without having experience itself come first. 25 We can do so, viz., merely by reference to the formal conditions26 under which any thing at all is determined as an object in it; and hence we can do so com pletely a priori, yet only in reference to experience and within its bounds. The postulate for cognizing the actuality of things requires perception, and hence sensation of which we are conscious. Although it requires not exactly27 that we perceive directly the object itself whose existence is to be cognized, it does require that the object cohere28 with some actual per ception, according to the analogies of experience, which set forth all real connection in an experience as such. A thing's character of existence can never29 be found in the thing's mere concept. For no matter how complete the concept is, so that nothing what ever is lacking in order for us to think a thing with all its intrinsic deter minations, yet existence has nothing whatever to do with all this. Rather, existence has to do only with the question as to whether such a thing is given to us in such a way that the thing's perception at least can precede the concept. For if the concept precedes the perception, this signifies the concept's mere possibility. The sole character of actuality is, rather, the per ception that provides the material for the concept. But the existence of a thing can be cognized even prio�o to the thing's perception, and hence com paratively a priori, provided that the thing coheres3 1 with some percep tions in accordance with the principles of their empirical connection (the analogies). For then the thing's existence does, after all, cohere with our perceptions in a possible experience, and we can, with those analogies as 24
[allererst.]
2s [voranschicken.] 26[Of experience. ]
27 [eben .] 28 [Or 'connect': zusammenhiingen. ] 29 [gar kein Charakter seines Daseins.] 30 V [ Or. ] " [Or 'connects.']
B 272
A 225
B 273
A 226
288
B 274
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
our guide, get from our actual perception to the thing [contained] in the series of possible perceptions. Thus the existence of a magnetic matter per meating all bodies is cognized by us from the perception of the attracted iron filings, even though direct perception of this material is impossible for us in view of the character3 2 of our organs. For in principle33 we would, according to the laws of sensibility and the context of our perceptions in one experience, also come upon the direct empirical intuition of that mag netic matter, if our senses were more delicate; our senses' coarseness does not at all concern the fonn of possible experience. 34 Hence our cognition of the existence of things reaches as far as does our perception and what is attached to it35 according to empirical laws. If we do not start from expe rience, or do not proceed according to the laws of the empirical coherence of appearances, then our seeking to divine or explore the existence of any thing whatsoever will be a futile display. Against these rules for proving existence indirectly,36 however, a powerful objection is made by idealism; this is the right place for idealism's refutation.37
Refutation of Idealism38 Idealism (I mean material idealism) is the theory that declares the exist ence of objects in space outside us either to be merely doubtful and un32 [Beschaffenheit.] 33 [uberhaupt. ]
34 [But concerns its matter.] 35 [deren Anhang.] 36 [Or 'mediately': mittelbar; cf. B xxxix br. n. 144c. Erdmann, in his notes (Ak. Ill, 589) ex plains why Kant says mittelbar here, rather than unmittelbar (as proposed by Frederichs): "The second postulate and its elucidation deal with the rules whereby we get from our actual per ception to things in the series of possible perceptions. Hence the direct consciousness of the existence of other things outside myself (Ak. 1 92, lines 1 and 2 [B 276, end of first paragraph of the Proof]) is being presupposed. The refutation of idealism inserted in B undertakes to prove this presupposition. Accordingly, our text permits no alteration."] 37 [This sentence and the following Refutation (which ends at the horizontal line at B 279) added in B.J 3 8 [See H. E. Allison. op. cit. at A 211B 35 br. n 22, 294-309. St:e also J. N. Findlay, op. cit. at A 2 1 1B 35 br. n. 22. 1 80-85. Also Paul Guyer, op. cit. at A 841B 1 1 6 br. n. I , 279-329. Also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 298-3 2 1 . Also H. 1. Paton, op. cit. at B 1 br. n. 1 52, vol 2, 375-86. And see R. P. Wolff, op. cit. at B 5 br. n. 1 59, 299-301.]
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
289
provable, or to be false and impossible. The first is the problematic ideal ism of Descartes; it declares only one empirical assertion39 (assertio) to be indubitable,4o viz.: I am. The second is the dogmatic idealism of Ber keley; it declares space, with all the things to which space attaches as in separable condition, to be something that is in itself impossible,4 1 and hence also declares the things in space to be mere imaginings. Dogmatic ideal ism is unavoidable if one regards space as a property that is to belong to things in themselves; for then space, with everything that space serves as condition, is a nonentity.42 However, the basis for this idealism has already been removed by us in the Transcendental Aesthetic. Problematic ideal ism, which asserts nothing about this but only alleges that we are unable to prove by direct experience an existence apart from our own, is reason able and is in accordance with a thorough philosophical way of thinking-viz., in permitting no decisive judgment before a sufficient proof has been found. The proof it demands must, therefore, establish that re garding extemal43 things we have not merely imagination but also expe rience. And establishing this surely cannot be done unless one can prove that even our inner experience, indubitable44 for Descartes, is possible only on the presupposition of outer45 experience.
Theorem The mere, but empirically determined, consciousness of my own existence proves the existence of objects in space outside me. 39[Behauptung.] 4O[ungezweifelt (literally, 'undoubted'). l.e., the proposition that I am (as a thinking thing, with its thoughts) is the only proposition (concerning the existence of something) that is self evident (and as such is not even in need of being guaranteed by God against possible decep tion). See Descartes' Meditations on First Philosophy. Meditation Il.] 4 1 [Cf. B 7 1 . See Berkeley's Principles of Human Knowledge, § 1 1 6. Cf. A New Theory of Vision, §§ 46, 126; and Siris, § 27 1 . The metaphysical status of objects and their properties is discus sed most extensively throughout the Principles and the Three Dialogues between Hy las and Philonous. (What sources Kant actually used is a matter of some debate.)] 42 [Unding: 'nonthing,' literally, with absurdity implied. See A 2921B 348 inc!. br. n. 149.] 43 [iiufter.] 44[unbezweifelt (literally, 'undoubted' ).] 4S [iiufter.]
B 275
290
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
Proof
B 276
B 277
I am conscious of my existence as determined in time. All time determi nation presupposes something permanent in perception. But this perma nent something cannot be something within me, precisely because my ex istence can be determined in time only by this permanent something.46 Therefore perception of this permanent something is possible only through a thing outside me and not through mere presentation of a thing outside me. Hence determination of my existence47 in time is possible only through the existence48 of actual things that I perceive outside me. Now consciousness of my existence49 in time is necessarily linked with con sciousness of the possibility of this time determination; therefore it is nec essarily linked also with the existence of things outside me, as condition of the time determination. I.e., the consciousness of my own existence is simultaneously a direct consciousness of the existence of other things out side me. Comment 1. In the preceding proof one becomes aware that the game that idealism played is being turned around and against it-and more rightly so. Idealism assumed that the only direct experience is inner expe rience and that from it we only infer external things; but50 we infer them only unreliably, as happens whenever we infer determinate causes51 from given effects, because the cause of the presentations that we ascribe-per haps falsely-to external things may also reside in ourselves. Yet here we have proved that outer experience is in fact direct,S2 and that 46 [According to B xxxix n. 144, this sentence is to be replaced by the following passage: "But this permanent something cannot be an intuition within me. For all bases determining my existence that can be encountered within me are presentations; and, being presentations. they themselves require something permanent distinct from them, by reference to which their variation, and hence my existence in the time in which they vary, can be determined."]
47[Dasein.] 48 [Existenz.] 49 [ of my existence' inserted, as suggested by Vaihinger.] 50[SO idealism assumed.] 51 [Or 'definite [or specific] causes,' as distinguished from inferring some cause or other.] '
s2In the preceding theorem, the direct" consciousness of the existence of external things is not presupposed but proved, whether or not we have insight into the pos sibilitv of this consciousness. The question concerning that possibility would be whether we have only an inner sense, and no outer sense but merely outerb imagi nation. Clearly, however, in order for us even to imagine something-i.e., exhib it
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
29 1
only by means of it can there be53 inner experience-i.e., not indeed con sciousness of our own existence, but yet detennination of that existence in time. To be sure, the presentation I am, which expresses the consciousness that can accompany all thinking, is what directly includes the existence of a subject; but it is not yet a cognition of that subject, and hence is also no empirical cognition-i.e., experience--of it. For such experience involves, besides the thought of something existent, also intuition, and here specifi cally inner intuition, in regard to which-viz., time-the subject must be determined; and this determination definitely requires external objects. Thus, consequently, inner experience is itself only indirect and is possible only through outer experience. Comment 2. Now, all experiential use that we make of our cognitive power in determining time agrees completely with this view. Not only can we perceive54 any time detennination solely through the variation in ex ternal relations (i.e., through motion) by reference to the pennanent in space (e.g., the sun's motion with respect to the earth's objects); but except merely for matter we do not even have anything pennanent on which, as intuition, we could base the concept of a sUbstance. And even this pennanence is not drawn from outer experience, but is presupposed a priori as necessary con dition of all time determination, and hence presupposed also as detenni nation of inner sense, with regard to our own existence,55 through the ex istence56 of external things. The consciousness that I have of myself in the presentation I is not an intuition at all, but is a merely intellectual presen tation of a thinking subject's self-activity.57 Hence this i8 also does not it to sense in intuition-as external, C we must already have an outer sense, and must thereby distinguish directly the mere receptivity of an outer intuition from the spon taneity that characterizes all imagining. For if even outer sense were merely imag ined, this would annul our very power of intuition which is to be determined by the imagination. a[unmittelbar; see B xxxix hr. n. 144c.1 b [iiufter.] C [iiufter.] 53 [moglich sei.l s4 [ Reading , with Grillo (and the Akademie edition), wahmehmen for vomehmen (,under take').]
" Wasein.] s6[ Existenz.] S7 [Or 'spontaneity' : Selbsttiitigkeit.] 58 [E mphasis added.]
B 278
292
B 279
A 227
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
have the least predicate of intuition that, as permanent, could serve as cor relate for the time detennination in inner sense-as, say, impenetrability is such a predicate of empirical intuition in matter. Comment 3. It does not follow, from the fact that the existence of ex ternal objects is required for the possibility of a determinate consciousness of ourselves, that every intuitive presentation of external things implies als059 these things' existence; for the presentation may very well be (as it is in dreams as well as in madness) the mere effect of the imagination. Yet it is this effect merely through the reproduction of fonner outer60 percep tions; and these, as has been shown, are possible only through the actual ity of external6 1 objects. What was here to be proved is only that inner ex perience as such is possible only through outer experience as such. Whether this or that supposed experience is not perhaps a mere imagining must be ascertained by reference to its particular detenninations and by holding it up to the criteria of all actual experience. As concerns, finally, the third postulate,62 it deals with material neces sity in existence, and not with merely fonnal and logical necessity in con necting concepts. Now [we have seen that] 63 no existence64 of objects of the senses can be cognized completely a priori; but that such existence can yet be cognized comparatively a priori, viz., relatively to another exist ence65 that is already given; but that even then we can get only to such existence66 as must be contained somewhere in the coherence67 of the ex perience whereof the given perception is a part. Since this is so, the neces sity of existence can never be cognized from concepts, but always only from the connection with what is perceived, and according to universal laws of experience. Now there is no existence68 that could be cognized as neces59 [zugleich einschliefJen .] 60 [iiufJer.] 61 [iiufJer.] 62 [Vi
z . , that of necessity. ] 63 [A 225-26/B 273.]
64 [Existenz.] 65 [Dasein.] 66 [Exislenz.] 67 [Or ·context. ' ] 6K [Dasein.]
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
293
sary under the condition of other given appearances, except the existence of effects arising from given causes according to laws of causality. The ex istence whose necessity we can alone cognize is, therefore, not that of things (substances), but only that of their state; viz., we can cognize this neces sity from other states that are given in perception, and according to em pirical laws of causality. From this it follows that the criterion of necessity lies solely in the law of possible experience which says that everything that occurs is determined a priori by its cause in [the realm of] appearance. Hence we cognize the necessity only of those effects in nature whose causes are given to us, and the characteristic of necessity in existence reaches no further than the realm of possible experience; and even in this realm it does not hold for the existence of things as substances, because substances can never be regarded as empirical effects, or [i.e.] as something that occurs and arises. The necessity concerns, therefore, only the relations of appear ances according to the dynarnical law of causality, and the possibility based thereon of inferring a priori, from some given existence (a cause), another existence (the effect). Everything that occurs is hypothetically necessary; this is a principle that subjects change in the world to a law, i.e., to a rule of necessary existence, without which even a nature would not take place at all. Hence the proposition that nothing occurs through a blind random ness69 (in mundo non datur casus)70 is an a priori law of nature. So also is the proposition that no necessity in nature is blind necessity, but all is con ditioned and hence understandable necessity (non datur fatum). 7 1 Both are laws by which the play of changes is SUbjected to a nature of things (of things as appearances), or-which is the same-subjected to the unity of the understanding wherein alone these changes can belong to one experi ence, i.e., to the synthetic unity of appearances. These two principles be long to the dynamical ones. The first is in fact a consequence of the prin ciple of causality (which is among the analogies of experience). The second belongs to the principles of modality. Modality adds to causal determina tion the concept of necessity; but this necessity is subject to a rule of un derstanding. The principle of continuity prohibited in the series of appear ances (changes) any leap (in mundo non datur saltus);72 but it also prohibited in the sum of all empirical intuitions in space any gap or breach between 69 [Ohngefiihr (Ungefiihr).]
7o [In the world there is no accident ] 71 [There is no fate.] 72 [In the world there is no leap.]
B 280
A 228
B 28 1
A 229
294
B 282
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
two appearances (non datur hiatus). 73 For the proposition can be ex pressed by saying that nothing that would prove a vacuum, or would so much as admit it as a part of empirical synthesis, can enter experience. For as concerns the void that one might think as lying outside the realm of pos sible experience (i.e., outside the world), it does not come within the ju risdiction of mere understanding, which decides only on questions con cerning the utilization of given appearances for empirical cognition. The void is a problem for ideae4 reason, the reason which goes even beyond the sphere of a possible experience and wants to judge of what surrounds and bounds that sphere itself; hence it must be examined in the Transcen dental Dialectic. 75 We could easily present these four propositions (in
mundo non datur hiatus, non datur saltus, non datur casus, non datur fa tum),76 like all principles of transcendental origin, in their order, accord
A 230
B 283
ing to the order of the categories, and assign77 to each its position. How ever, the already practiced reader will do this on his own, or will easily discover the guide for doing so. But all four propositions unite merely in this: that they admit in empirical synthesis nothing that could impair or in terfere with the understanding and the continuous coherence of all appear ances, i.e., the unity of understanding's concepts. For in understanding alone does the unity of experience, the unity in which all perceptions must have their position, become possible. Whether the realm of possibility is larger than the realm containing ev erything actual, and this realm in turn larger than the set78 of what is necessary-these are nice questions, whose solution is, moreover, syn thetic; but they also fall solely under the jurisdiction of reason. For what they mean is roughly tantamount to the question whether things as appear ances belong, one and all, within the sum and the context of a single ex perience whereof every given perception is a part that hence cannot be linked with any different79 appearances; or whether my perceptions can be73 [There is no break.] 74 [idealisch, i.e., pertaining to ideas.] 75 [Viz., in the Antinomy of Pure Reason, A 405-567IB 432-595.] 76 [1n the world there is no break, there is no leap, there is no accident, there is no fate.] 77 [Reading, with Grillo, anweisen for beweisen ('prove').] 7" [Menge. ] 79 [anderen.)
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
295
long to more than one possible experience (in its80 universal coherence). The understanding gives a priori the rule to experience as such only ac cording to the subjective and formal conditions of both sensibility and ap perception, the conditions which alone make experience possible. Even if different forms of intuition (from space and time) and likewise different forms of understanding (from the discursive form of thought or of cogni tion through concepts) were possible, yet we cannot think them up and make them comprehensible in any way; and even if we could, they still would not belong to experience, the sole cognition in which objects are given to us. The understanding cannot decide whether perceptions differ ent from those that belong in general to our entire possible experience can take place, and hence whether there can be a quite different realm of mat ter besides [the actual one] ; the understanding deals only with the synthe sis of what is given. Otherwise too it is very obvious how meager are our usual inferences whereby we uncover a large kingdom of possibility of which everything actual (any object of experience) is only a small part. Ev erything actual is possible; from this follows naturally, by the logical rules of conversion, 8 1 the merely particular proposition that something possible is actual-which then seems to mean the same as that much is possible that is not actual. It does indeed seem as if one could even straightfor wardly posit the number of the possible beyond that of the actual because something must still be added to the possible in order to make up the ac tual. 82 I am, however, unacquainted with such addition to the possible; for what would still have to be added beyond the possible would be impos sible. Only something can be added to my understanding, beyond agree ment with the formal conditions of experience: 83 viz., connection with some perception. But what is connected with perception, according to empirical laws, is actual, even if it is not perceived directly. But that a different se ries of appearances is possible in the thoroughgoing coherence with what is given to me in perception, and hence that more than a single all80 [Construing ihrem as referring to Erfahrung ('expenence' ) rather than to Wahmehmungen ('perceptions').] 81 [Specifically, conversion by limitation, i.e., the "modified" (or "changed") conversion dis cussed by Kant in the Logic, Ak. IX, 1 18-19.] 82 [Reading, with Vaihinger, jenem . . . dieses for jener . . . diese, which made the passage read, 'because something must still be added to the number of the possible in order to make up the number of the actual.'] 83 [l.e., beyond possibility.]
A 23 1
B 284
A 232
296
B 285
A 233
B 286
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
encompassing experience is possible, cannot be inferred from what is given; and much less still can it be inferred unless something or other is given, since without material nothing can be thought at all. What is possible solely under conditions that themselves are merely possible is not possible in ev 84 ery respect. But when one wants to know whether the possibility of things extends further than experience can reach, the question is indeed taken in reference to this possibility in every respect. I have made mention of these questions only in order to leave no gap in what according to common opinion belongs to the concepts of under standing. In fact, however, absolute possibility (possibility that holds in all respects) is not a mere concept of understanding, and cannot in any way have empirical use. It belongs, rather, solely to reason, which goes beyond all possible empirical use of understanding. Hence on this matter we have here had to settle for a merely critical comment, but have oth erwise left the matter in obscurity until we can give it further treatment in the future. Since I am just about to conclude this fourth subsection85 and with it also the system of all principles of pure understanding, I must still indicate on just what ground I have called the principles of modality postulates. I do not here want to take this term in the meaning that has been given to it---{;ontrary to the sense that it has for the mathematicians, to whom the term in fact belongs-by some of the more recent philosophical writers, whereby to postulate is to mean the same as to pass a proposition off, with out justification or proof, as directly certain. For if we were to grant this for synthetic propositions, no matter how evident they may be, viz., that without providing a deduction one may on the strength86 of their own pro nouncement commit them to unconditioned approval, then all critique of understanding is lost. And since there is no lack of audacious claims that, moreover, common belief (while being no credential) does not reject, our understanding will then be open to every delusion; it will be unable to refuse its approval to those pronouncements that demand admission, al though illegitimately, in the same tone of confidence as do actual axioms. If, therefore, an a priori determination is added synthetically to the concept of a thing, then such a proposition must without fail be supplemented by 84 [in aller Absichl.] 85 [Nummer.] 86 [Ansehen .J
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
297
at least a deduction, if not a proof, showing that the assertion made by such a proposition is legitimate. The principles of modality are not, however, synthetic objectively; 87 for the predicates of possibility, actuality, and necessity do not in the least aug ment the concept of which they are affirmed,88 merely because to the pre sentation of the object they still add something. But inasmuch as these prin ciples are nonetheless always synthetic, they are so only subjectively; i.e., to the concept of a thing (of something real) of which they otherwise say89 nothing they add the cognitive power wherein this concept arises and re sides. Thus if the concept is connected merely in the understanding with the formal conditions of experience, then its object90 is called possible; if the concept is in coherence9 1 with perception (sensation, as matter of the senses),92 and through perception is determined by means of the under standing, then the object93 is actual; if the concept is determined through the perceptions' coherence according to concepts, then the object94 is called necessary. Hence the principles of modality affirm of a concept nothing other than the action of the cognitive power by which the concept is pro duced. Now what is called a postulate in mathematics is a practical propo sition containing nothing but the synthesis whereby we first give to our selves an object and produce its concept-e.g., the proposition instructing us to describe, with a given line, a circle on a plane from a given point. And the reason why a proposition like this cannot be proved is that the procedure which it demands is precisely the procedure whereby we first produce the concept of such a figure. Thus we have the same right to pos tulate the principles of modality, because they do not at all augment our95
87 [Emphasis added; likewise in 'subjectively,' below.] 88 [sagen.] 89 [sagen.] 9O [ Gegenstand. ] 9 1 [Or 'connection' : Zusammenhang. Likewise just below.] 92 [Empjindung. als Materie der Sinne.] 93 [Objekt.] 94[ Gegenstand.]
95 [Reading. with Erdmann, unsern for ihren.]
A 234
B 287
298
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
A 235
concept of things,96 but merely indicate the way in which the concept is connected with the cognitive power as such.
B 288
General Comment on the System of Principles97
B 289
Something very noteworthy is the fact that we cannot have insight into the possibility of any thing according to the mere category, but must always have available an intuition by which to display the objective reality of the pure concept of understanding.98 Take, e.g., the categories of relation. From mere concepts we can have no insight whatever into ( I ) how something can exist only as subject and not as mere determination of other things, i.e., how it can be substance; or (2) how because something is, something else must be, and hence how in general something can be a cause; or (3) how, when several things are there, then from the fact that one of them is there, something follows for the others, and thus also reciprocally, and hence how a community of substances can in this way occur. The same holds also for the remaining categories: e.g., how a thing can together with many things be one and the same, 99 i.e., a magnitude; etc. Hence as long as intuition is lacking, we do not know whether we are through the cat egories thinking an object, and whether indeed any object whatever can belong to them at all. And this is confirmation that the categories by them selves are no cognitions at all, but are mere forms of thought for making cognitions from given intuitions. It is precisely because of this, moreover, that from mere categories no synthetic proposition can be made: e.g., that in all existencel OO there is substance, i.e., something that can existl O l only as subject and not as mere predicate; or that each thing is a quantum; etc. 96Through the actuality of a thing I do indeed posita more than the possibility of it, but not in the thing; for the thing can never contain more in its actuality than what was contained in its complete possibility. Rather, while the thing's possibility was merely a positingb of the thing in reference to the understanding (to understand ing's empirical use), actuality is at the same time a connection of the thing with perception. a[setzen.] b [Position. ] 97 [The General Comment (to the end of the chapter) added in B.] 9" [See H. J. Paton, op. cit. at B 1 hr. n. 1 52, vol. 2, 426-38.] 99 [einerlei ] lOo [Dasein.] 1 0 1 [existieren.]
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
299
For [without intuition] there is nothing here that we could employ in order to go beyond a given concept and connect with it another concept. By the same token, no one has ever succeeded in proving a synthetic proposition merely from pure concepts of understanding: e.g., the proposition that what ever exists contingently has a cause. No one could ever get further than to prove that without this reference to a cause we could not at all compre hend the existence of the contingent, i.e., cognize a priori through under standing the existence of such a thing; 102 but from this it does not follow that this same reference to a cause is the condition also for the possibility of the things themselves. Hence if the reader will look back at our proof of the principle of causality, he will become aware that only for objects of possible experience were we able to prove that principle, viz., that every thing that occurs (i.e., any event) presupposes a cause; and it presupposes this, moreover, in such a way that we were also unable to prove the prin ciple from mere concepts, but could prove it only as principle for the pos sibility of experience and hence of the cognition of an object given in em pirical intuition. It cannot be denied that the proposition that everything contingent must have a cause is nonetheless clearly evident to everyone from mere concepts. But the concept of the contingent is then already framed in such a way that it contains not the category of modality (viz., as something whose not-being lO3 can be thought), but the category of relation (viz., as something that can exist only as consequence of something else); and then it is indeed an identical l 04 proposition to say that what can ex ist105 only as consequence has its cause. In fact, when we are asked to give examples of contingent existence, 106 we always appeal to changes, and not merely to the possibility of the thought of the opposite. 107 Change, howI02 [Kant uses Ding here, Sache (in the plural) just below.] ! 03 [Or 'nonexistence': Nichtsein.] 1 04 [I.e., analytic.] !o' [existieren.] 106[Dasein.] l07 We can easily think the not-being of matter; yet the ancients did not infer from thi s the contingency of matter. But even the variationa of the being and not-being of a given state of a thing, in which all change consists, does not prove at all that state's contingency-from the actuality of its opposite, as it were. E.g., a body's [state of] rest succeeding its motion does not yet prove that, because the [state of] rest is the opposite of the motion, the body's motion is contingent. For this oppo site is opposed to the other [ state] only logically, not realiter. b In order to prove
B 290
300 B 29 1
B 292
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
ever, is an event; and an event, as such, is possible only through a cause, and hence its not-being is inherently possible. And thus we cognize con tingency from the fact that something can exist only as the effect of a cause; hence if a thing is assumed as contingent, then to say that the thing has a cause is an analytic proposition. Even more remarkable, however, is the fact that in order to understand the possibility of things as consequent upon the categories, and hence in order to establish the categories' objective reality, we need not merely in tuitions but indeed always outer intuitions. If we take, e.g., the pure con cepts of relation, we find: ( 1 ) In order to give, as corresponding to the con cept of substance, something permanent in intuition (and thereby establish this concept's objective reality), we need an intuition in space (an intuition of matter); 108 for space alone is determined as permanent, whereas time, and hence whatever is in inner sense, constantly flows. (2) In order to ex hibit change, as the intuition corresponding to the concept of causality, we must take as our example motion, as change in space; 109 indeed, only thereby can changes, whose possibility no pure understanding can com prehend, be made intuitive. For change is combination of contradictorily opposed determinations in the existence of one and the same thing. Now, how it is possible that from a given state l lO there should follow an oppo site state of the same thing-not only can no reason make this compre hensible l l l to itself without an example, but it cannot make this under standable to itself without intuition even. And this intuition is that of the motion of a point in space; solely the point's existence in different loca tions (as a succession of opposite determinations) is what first makes change intuitive. For in order thereafter to make even internal changes 1 1 2 thinkthe contingency of the body's motion one would have to prove that it was possible for the body, instead of [undergoing] the motion at the preceding point of time, to have been at rest then-not for it to be at rest afterwards, for in that case the two opposites are quite consistent with each other. a[Wechsel; see B 224 hr. n. 45.] b [Really.] 108 [See the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science. Ak. IV. 469-72.] l09 [See ibid., Ak. IV, 476-77.] 1 ! O [Of a thing.] III
I 12
[begreiflich.]
[In consciousness.]
SECTION III
SYNTHETIC PRINCIPLES
301
able, w e must make time, as the fonn of inner sense, comprehensible 1 1 3 figuratively through a line; and we must make internal change comprehen sible through the drawing of this line (i.e., through motion), and hence we must make the successive existence of ourselves in different states com prehensible through outer intuition. This is so, in fact, because all change, in order even to be itself perceived as change, presupposes something per manent in intuition, but in inner sense no pennanent intuition is to be met with. 1 14 (3) The category of
community,
finally, cannot as regards its pos
sibility be comprehended at all by mere reason; and hence insight into the objective reality of this concept is impossible without intuition-specifically,
outer intuition in space. For how are we to think the possibility that, when several substances exist, then from the existence of one substance some
thing can reciprocally follow (as effect) for the existence of the others, and hence that because there is something in the one substance there must in the others also be something that cannot be understood from the existence of these others alone? For this is required for community, but is not at all comprehensible among things each of which completely isolates itself through its subsistence. ll5 Hence when Leibniz attributed to the substances in the world-but as thought by the understanding alone-a community, he needed a deity to mediate this community. For this community rightly seemed to him incomprehensible 1 l6 as arising from their existence alone. However, we can make the possibility of community (of substances as ap pearances) quite readily comprehensible 1 1 7 if we present substances in space and hence in outer1 18 intuition. For space already contains, a priori, fonnal
external1 1 9 relations as conditions for the possibility of real relations (in action and reaction,1 20 and hence as conditions for the possibility of com
munity). We can easily establish, similarly, that the possibility of things as
magnitudes,
and hence the objective reality of the category of magnitude,
1 l 3[fqf3lich.] 114 [See the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak. IV, 47 1 .] I1 S [Subsistenz. See A 1 861B 230 and A 801B 106; cf. A 361B 52, A 391B 56, A 414IB 441, B 419-20.] 116 [unbegreijlich.] 1 17
[fqf3lich.] 1 1 8 [a'4/3er.] 119 [iiujler.] 120[Wirkung
und Gegenwirkung.]
B 293
302
B 294
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
can likewise be displayed only in outer intuition, and that only by means of outer intuition can it thereafter be applied also to inner sense. However, to avoid being long-winded, I must leave it to the reader's meditation to provide examples. This whole remark 1 2 1 is of great importance not only for confirming our preceding refutation of idealism, but much more yet for indicating to us, when we shall be talking about self-cognition from mere inner conscious ness and about determination of our nature without the aid of outer em pirical intuitions, the limits of the possibility of such cognition. 122 Hence the final inference from this entire section is this: all prin ciples 1 23 of pure understanding are nothing more than a priori principles of the possibility of experience; and all a priori synthetic propositions also refer solely to this possibility-indeed, their possibility itself rests entirely on this reference. 1 24
121 [I.e., the General Comment starting at B 288.]
122 [See the Paralogisms of Pure Reason, A 34l-4051B 399-432.] 123 [Grundsatze here, Prinzipien just below; see A vii br. n. 7.]
124 [See above, B 19-24.]
TRANSCENDENTAL DOCTRINE OF THE POWER OF JUDGMENT ([or] Analytic of Principles) Chapter III On the B asis of the Distinction of All Objects As Such into Phenomena and Noumenal 25 We have now not only traveled throughout the land 1 26 of pure understand ing and carefully inspected its every part, but have also surveyed 1 27 it throughout, detennining for each thing in this land its proper place. This land, however, is an island, and is enclosed by nature itself within un changeable bounds. It is the land of truth (a channing name), and is sur rounded by a vast and stonny ocean, where illusion properly resides and many fog banks and much fast-melting ice feign new-found lands. This sea128 incessantly deludes the seafarer with empty hopes as he roves129 through his discoveries, and thus entangles him in adventures that he can never relinquish, nor ever bring to an end. But before we venture upon this sea, to search its latitudes for certainty as to whether there is in them any-
2 1 IB 35 br. n. 22, 237-54. Also Gerd Buchdahl, op. cit. at 21IB 35 22, 2 1 2-37. 2 1 IB 35 22, 185-90. 84IB 1, 333-44. 5, 404-17. 22IB 36 22IB 26, 1 4 1 -46. 3, 1 5 1 -56. 27, 250-60; 1 76/B 218 21IB 35 22, 189-96. 152, 2, 439-62. 5 1 59, 3 1 1 - 1 6.]
125 [See H. E. Allison, op. cit. at A
176/B 218
3, 532-52.
A br. n. br. n. Also H. W. Cassirer, op. cit. at A Also J. N. Findlay, op. cit. at A Also Paul Guyer, op. cit. at A br. n. Also Gott br. n. Also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. br. n. fried Martin, op. cit. at A Also Arthur Melnick, op. cit. at A br. n. and op. cit. at A Also H. 1. Paton, op. cit. br. n. at B I br. n. br. n. vol. Also T. D. Weldon, op. cit. at A And see R. P. Wolff, op. cit. at B br. n.
116
37
126[Or 'territory' : Land.]
127 [
-messen. ]
1 28 [Taking es to refer not to the land (das Land) of truth but to the ocean as thought of (by anticipation of the next sentence) as the sea (das Meer).]
129 [ -schwiinnen. which also means
'to
rave,' 'be fanatic.']
303
B 295
A 236
304
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
thing to be hoped, it will be useful to begin by casting another glance on the map of the land that we are about to leave, and to ask two questions. We should ask, first, whether we might not perhaps be content with what this land contains, or even must be content with it from necessity 130 if there is no other territory at all on which we could settle. And we should ask, second, by what title we possess even this land and can keep ourselves se cure against all hostile claims. Although we have already answered these questions sufficiently in the course of the Analytic, a summary account of the Analytic's solutions may still reinforce one's conviction by uniting their moments in one point. For we have seen that everything that the understanding draws from it self, rather than borrows from experience, it still has for the sake of noth
B 296
ing other than use in experience only. The principles of pure under standing-whether constitutive a priori (like the mathematical principles) or merely regulative (like the dynamical ones)---contain nothing but, as it
A 237
were, the pure schema for possible experience. For experience has its unity solely from the synthetic unity that the understanding confers, originally and on its own, on the synthesis of imagination by reference to appercep tion; appearances, as data for a possible cognition, must a priori already have reference to, and be in harmony with, that synthetic unity. Now, these rules of understanding not only are true a priori; but, by containing the ba sis for the possibility of experience as the sum of all cognition wherein ob jects may be given to us, they are even the source of all truth, i.e., the source of our cognition's agreement with objects. Yet having someone set forth to us what is true does not seem to us enough; rather, we want him to set forth what we desire to know. 131 Hence if through this critical inquiry we do not learn more than what presumably we would, in the merely empiri cal use of our understanding, have practiced on our own even without such subtle investigation, then the advantage obtained from that inquiry does not seem worth the expense and the apparatus. Now to this one might indeed
reply that no inquisitiveness 132 is more detrimental to the expansion of our lJO[Not. ] l3 1 [In his working copy of edition A (see Preliminary Studies and Supplementary Entries---{; ited
at A 1 9/B 33 br. n. l 3-Ak. XXIII, 47), Kant amends this as follows After 'what is true' he inserts 'however little it may be'; and the clause after 'rather' is changed to '[we want] to expand our cognition.'] 1 32[ WJlwitz. ]
PHENOMENA AND NOUMENA
305
cognition than the inquisitiveness that always wants to know the benefit133 in advance, i.e., before we have entered into investigations, and before we could frame the least concept of that benefit even if it were laid before us. Yet there is one advantage that even the most difficult and listless learner of such transcendental investigation can be made to comprehend and also care about. This advantage is, viz., that although the understanding, when occupied merely with its empirical use and not reflecting on the sources of its own cognition, can get along quite well, yet one task it cannot accom plish: viz., determining for itself the bounds of its use, and knowing what may lie inside or outside its entire sphere; for this task requires precisely those deep inquiries that we have performed. But if the understanding can not distinguish whether or not certain questions lie within its horizon, then it can never be sure of its claims and its possessions; rather, it must then count on receiving a multitude of embarrassing rebukes when (as is un avoidable) it keeps overstepping the bounds of its domain and strays into delusion and deception. We may say, therefore, that the use that the understanding can make of all its a priori principles and, indeed, of all its concepts is nothing but an empirical and never a transcendental use; and this is a proposition that, if it can be cognized with conviction, points to 134 important consequences. A concept is used transcendentally in any principle if it is referred to things as such and in themselves; 135 but it is used empirically if it is referred merely to appearances, i.e., to objects of a possible experience. That only the empirical use can occur at all, however, can be seen from the follow ing. Every concept requires, first, the logical form of a concept (the logi cal form of thought) as such; and then, second, also the possibility of our giving to it an object to which to refer. Without an object the concept has no sense 136 and is completely empty of content, although it may still con tain the logical function for making a concept from what data may come up. Now, the object cannot be given to a concept otherwise than in intu ition; and if a pure intuition l3? is possible a priori even before the object, still this pure intuition itself also can acquire its object, and hence objec1 3 3 [Of such expansion.]
1 34 [in . . . hinaussieht-to which Kant adds (ibid.): 'against fanaticism [Schwiinnerel], '] 135 ['things as such and in themselves' amended by Kant (ibid.) to 'objects that are not given to us in any intuition, hence nonsensible objects. ' ] 1 36 [Or 'meaning' : Sinn.] 137 [Amended by Kant (ibid.) to: 'even if for us a pure sensible intuition. ']
B 297 A 238
B 298
A 239
306
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
tive validity, only through empirical intuition, whose mere form the pure
B 299
A 240
B 300
intuition is. Therefore all concepts, and with them all principles, however possible these [concepts and principles] may be a priori, refer nonetheless to empirical intuitions, i.e., to data for possible experience. Without this reference they have no objective validity whatever, but are mere play, whether by the imagination or by the understanding, with their respective presentations. Just take as an example the concepts of mathematics, and take them, first, in their pure intuitions. Space has three dimensions; be tween two points there can be only one straight line; etc. Although all these principles, and the presentation of the object that this science deals with, are produced in the mind completely a priori, yet they would signify noth ing if we could not always display 138 their signification in appearances (em 139 pirical objects). Hence, too, we require that an abstract concept be made sensible, i.e., that the object corresponding to it be displayed in intuition, because otherwise the concept would remain (as we say) without sense, i.e., without signification. Mathematics fulfills this demand by constructing the shape, which is an appearance present to the senses (although brought about a priori). In the same science, 140 the concept of magnitude seeks its hold and sense in number, and seeks number in fingers, in the beads of the aba CUS, 141 or in the dashes and dots put before us. The concept always re mains one that is produced a priori along with the synthetic principles or formulas based on such concepts; yet their use and their reference to al leged objects can in the end be sought nowhere but in experience, whose possibility (as regards form) is contained a priori in those concepts. But that this is also the case with all the categories, and with the prin ciples spun from them, is evident also from the following. Not even one of the categories can we define really, 142 i.e., make understandable the pos sibility of its object, 143 without immediately descending to conditions of 38 [darlegen, used as a synonym for darstellen ( 'to exhibit'), for which cf. B xvii br. n. 7 3 ] 139 [abgesondert.] I
1 4°[Of mathematics.] 1 4 1 [Literally, 'in the corals of the calculating-board.'] 142 [Rather than merely nominally; 'really' added in B. For the distinction, see ns. 144 and 144b, just below, and cf. the Logic, Ak. IX, 143-44.] 143 [This clause added in B. In his working copy of edition A (see Preliminary Srudie , a/l d Supplementary En tries�ited at A 191B 33 br. n. 1 3-Ak. XXIII, 47), Kant had wntten next to the present paragraph : 'We cannot explain their [ihre] possibility. ' ]
PHENOMENA AND NOUMENA
307
sensibility and hence to the fOnD of appearances; to these appearances, as their sole objects, the categories must consequently be limited. For if we take away the mentioned condition, then all signification, i.e., reference to the object, is gone; and through no example can we then make compre hensible to ourselves just what sort of thing is in fact meant by such a concept. 144
A 241
144[In A the present paragraph continues with the following passage, omitted in B (and in A the subsequent text is also still part of this same paragraph):]
Above, in presenting the table of the categories, we exempted our selves from providing definitions of each of them, a because for our aim-which is concerned solely with the categories' synthetic use-such definitions are not needed, and one must not incur responsibility for needless undertakings from which one can be exempted. This was no pretext, but a not unimportant rule of prudence: viz., not to venture im mediately upon defining [a concept], and not to attempt or allege to at tain completeness or precision in determining a concept, if one can make do with any one or another of its characteristics-and for this we do not, of course, require a complete enumeration of all the characteristics that make up the whole concept. But we now find that the basis for this caution lies deeper still: viz., in the fact that we were unable to define them, even if we had wanted to.b Rather, if we remove from the cat egories all conditions of sensibility, which mark them as concepts for a possible empirical use, and take them as concepts of things8 as such (and hence as concepts for transcendental use), then there is nothing more to be done with them but to regard the logical function that they have in judgments ash the condition for the possibility of things themselves. Yet we then do this without in the least being able to indicate just where the categories can have their application and their object, and hence how in pure understanding and without sensibility they can have any significa tion and objective reality.
A 242
"[For the table, see A 80fB 106; for this comment, A 82-83fB 108-9.] bI here mean real definition. Such definition does not merely providec for a thing's name other and more understandable words. Rather, it contains a clear charactenstic whereby the object (definitum)d can always safely be cognized, and makes the expli cated concept usable for application. Real explication: therefore, would be explica tion that makes distinct not merely a concept but also its objective reality. Of this lat· ter kind are mathematical explications that exhibit the object in intuition in conformity with the concept!
C[unterlegen.] d[What is defined.] "[Or 'Real definition' : Realerkliirung.]
A 242
308
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
No one can explicate the concept of magnitude as such, except perhaps by saying that it is that determination of a thing whereby we can think how many times a unit 145 is posited in it. Yet this how-many-times is based on successive repetition, and hence on time and the synthesis (of the homo geneous) in time. Reality contrasted with negation can be explicated only if one thinks of a time (as the sum of all being) that is either filled with something or empty. If from the concept of substance I omit permanence
A 243 B 301
(which is an existence at all time), then I have nothing left for this concept but the logical presentation of subject, a presentation that I mean to real ize 146 by presenting something that can occur only as subject (i.e., only without being a predicate of anything). However, not only do I not know any conditions at all under which some thing will possess this logical su periority; 147 but we also cannot make from it anything further, 148 and can not draw from it the least inference. For through this explication no object whatever is determined for the use of the concept of substance, and hence we do not know at all whether the concept in fact signifies anything what soever. Of the concept of cause (if I omit from it the time in which some , thing succeeds something else according to a rule) I would find, in the pure category, nothing more than that it 149 is something from which the exist ence of something else can be inferred. And not only would we be entirely unable, through this explication, to distinguish cause and effect from each other, but since even that ability to infer the existence of something else will soon require conditions of which I know nothing, the concept would have no determination whatever as to how it fits any object. The supposed principle that everything contingent has a cause does, to be sure, make its f[In his working copy of edition A (see Preliminary Studies and Supplementary Entries-dted at A 1 91B 33 br. n. 1 3-Ak. XXIII, 47), Kant notes here: 'Instead of to explicate one could also use the expression to support [belegen] something by an example.' For Kant's position that there may be definitions in mathematics but not in philosophy, see below, A 727-32 B 755-70.] g[Dinge here, Sachen just below.] h[Deleting the comma before als ('as') ] =
1 45 [Eines. ] 146[Le., provide with reality: realisieren.]
1 47 [In his working copy of edition A (Ak. XXIII, 47; see br. n. 144f, just above), Kant notes: 'See the General Comment' (B 288-94).] 14 8 [Such as cognition.]
1 49 [es refers to Ursache; but, being neuter rather than feminine, it does so with (deliberate) vagueness.]
PHENOMENA AND NOUMENA
309
entrance with considerable gravity, as if it carried ISO its own dignity within itself. Yet if I ask what do you mean by contingent, and you reply, that whose nonexistence 1S1 is possible, then I would like to know by what you intend to cognize 1S2 this possibility of nonexistence, if you do not in the
series of appearances present a succession and, in this succession, present an existence that succeeds the nonexistence (or vice versa), and hence present a variation. For to say that a thing's nonexistence does not contra dict itself is a lame appeal to a merely logical condition that, although nec essary for the concept, is yet far from sufficient for the thing's real possi bility. Thus I can indeed annul any existing substance in my thought without contradicting myself; but from this I cannot infer the substance" s objective contingency in its existence, i.e., the possibility in itself of its 1S3 nonexist ence. As regards the concept of community, one can easily gather that since the pure categories of both substance and causality permit no explication determining the object, neither is reciprocal causality in the reference of substances to one another (commercium) lS4 capable of such explication. As
for possibility, existence, and necessity, no one who has sought to draw their definition solely from pure understanding has ever been able to ex plicate them except through a manifest tautology. For the deception of sub stituting the logical possibility of the concept (where the concept does not contradict itself) for the transcendental possibility lSS of things (where to the concept there corresponds an object) can trick and satisfy only the un seasoned. 156 150 [habe.] 1 5 1 [Or 'not-being' : Nichtsein.] 1 52 [Or 'recognize': erkennen.] 153 [Reading, with Vaihinger (and the Akademie edition), ihres for seines. Kant seems to have thought that he had written Gegenstand or Objekt.] 1 54 [Cf. A 2 1 31B 260.] 1 55 [Changed by Kant to 'real possibility' in his working copy of edition A (see Preliminary Studies and Supplementary Entries----<:ited at A 1 91B 33 br. n. 1 3-Ak. XXIII, 48).] 15I1 In a word,· if all sensible intuition (the only intuition that we have) is removed, then none of these concepts can be supported by anything and their real possibil ity be established thereby. All that then remains is logical possibility, i.e., the fact that the concept (the thought) is possible. What is at issue, however, is not this, but
whether the concept refers to an object and hence signifies something. "[This footnote added in B.]
{ A 244
B 302
310
B 303
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
157Now from this flows incontestably the consequence that the pure categories can never be of transcendental but always only of empirical IS7[In A, unlike in B, the following is preceded by this paragraph:)
A 245
A 246
There is something strange and even preposterous about the suppo sition of there beinga a concept that [as such] must surely have a sig nification, but that is not capable of any explication. Yet here, with the categories, the special situation is that only by means of the universal sensible condition can they have a determinate signification and refer ence to some object; but that this condition has been omitted from the pure category, so that the category can contain nothing but the logical function for bringing the manifold under a concept. But from this func tion alone, i.e., from the form of the concept alone, we can cognize and distinguish nothing as to what object belongs under the category, pre cisely because we have abstracted from the sensible condition on which alone objects can belong under the category at all.b Hence the catego ries require, in addition to the pure concept of understanding, determi nations of their application to sensibility as suchc (schemata). d Without these determinations the categories are not concepts through which an object is cognized and distinguished from others, but are only so many ways of thinking an object for possible intuitions, and of giving the ob ject (under conditions that are still required) its signification in accor dance with some function of the understanding, i.e., of defining it. Hence they cannot themselves be defined. The logical functions of judgments as such-unity and plurality, affirmation and negation, subject and predicate--cannot be defined without committing a circle; for the defi nition itself would, after all, have to be a judgment, and hence would already have to contain these functions. The pure categories, however, are nothing other than presentations of things as such insofar as the manifold of their intuition must be thought through one or another of ihese logical functions: magnitude is the determination that can be thought only through a judgment having quantity (iudicium commune);e reality is the determination that can be thought only through an affir mative judgment; substance is what in reference to intuition must be the ultimate subject of all other determinations. In saying this, however, we leave quite indeterminate just what sort of things it is in regard to which this function rather than some other is to be employed. Hence without the condition of sensible intuition, for which they contain the synthesis, the categories have no reference whatever to any determinate object. and
PHENOMENA AND NOUMENA
311
use, 1 58 and that the principles of pure understanding can be referred 1 59 only, with respect to the universal conditions of a possible experience, to objects of the senses, but never to things as SUCh 160 (i.e., never without taking ac count of the way in which we may intuit them). The Transcendental Analytic, accordingly, has this important result: viz., that the understanding can a priori never accomplish more than to antici pate the form of a possible experience as such; and since what is not ap pearance cannot be an object of experience, the understanding can never overstep the limits of sensibility within which alone objects are given to us. Its principles are merely rules for the exposition of appearances; and
A 247
the proud name of an ontology that pretends to provide, in a systematic doctrine, synthetic a priori cognitions (e.g., the principle of causality) of things in themselves must give way to the modest name of a mere analytic of pure understanding. Thinking is the act of referring given intuitions to an object. If the kind of this intuition 1 6 1 is not given 162 in any way, then the object is merely transcendental, and the concept of understanding has none but a transcen dental use, viz., to provide the unity of thought of a manifold as SUCh. 1 63 Hence through a pure category, in which we abstract from any condition of sensible intuition (the only intuition possible for US), 164 no object is de terrnined/65 rather, a pure category expresses only the thought of an obhence cannot define any such object, and consequently do not in them selves have the validity of objective concepts . [daft . . . sein soli.] b [uberhaupt.] C [uberhaupt. ] •
d[Reading, with Vaihinger, Schemata for Schema.] "[Common judgment.] I S8[1n
his working copy of edition A (see Preliminary Studies and Supplementary Entries---
at A 191B 33 br. n. 13 -Ak. XXIII, 48), Kant adds, 'i.e., no principles from mere catego ries. ' ] IS9 [Kant (ibid.) adds, 'if they are to provide cognition.'] 160[Kant (ibid.) adds, '[referred] synthetically.'] 16 1 [I.e., sensible intuition or some other kind; see just below.] 162 [l.e., specified.] 163[ Kant (ibid.) changes this to: 'manifold of a possible intuition as such.'] 1 64 [Parentheses added.] 16s [Kant (ibid.) adds, 'and hence nothing is cognized.']
B 304
3 12
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
ject as such according to different modes. Now the use of a concept in volves also a function of the power of judgment, 1 66 by means of which an object is subsumed under the concept, and hence involves at least the for mal condition under which something can be given in intuition. If this con
A 248
dition of the power of judgment (the schema) is lacking, then all subsump tion is lost; for nothing is then given that can be subsumed under the concept. Hence the merely transcendental use of the categories is in fact not a use at all, 1 67 and has no object that is determinate, or is even deter minable as regards form. From this it follows that the pure category is also insufficient for a synthetic a priori principle, and that the principles of pure understanding are only of empirical but never of transcendental use; and it
B 305
follows that beyond the realm of possible experience there can be no syn thetic a priori principles at all. Hence it may be advisable to put the point as follows. The pure catego ries, without formal conditions of sensibility, have merely transcendental signification, but have no transcendental use. 168 For such use of the pure categories is intrinsically impossible, because they lack all the conditions for any use of them (in judgments), viz., the formal conditions for the sub sumption of some alleged object under these concepts. Hence because they (as merely pure categories) are not meant to have empirical use, and can not have transcendental use, they have no use whatsoever when separated from all sensibility, i.e., they cannot be applied to any alleged object. They are, rather, merely the pure form of understanding's use regarding objects as such, and the pure form of thought; but through them alone we are [there fore] unable to think or determine any object. 169 1 66 [Viz., a schema.] 1 67 [Kant (ibid.) changes this to: ' [not a] use for cognizing anything. ' ] 1 6" [See below, A 3 1O-1 1IB 366-68.] 169[Instead of the following four paragraphs (to the first part of B 309), A has the following:]
A 249
Appearances, insofar as they are thought as objects according to the unity of the categories, are called phenomena. But if I assume things that are objects merely of the understanding and that, as such, can none theless be given to an intuition--even if not to sensible intuition (but hencea coram intuitu intellectualib)-then such things would be called noumena (intelligibilia).c Now one would think that the concept of appearances, as limited by the Transcendental Aesthetic, provides us already by itself with the ob jective reality of noumena and justifies the division of objects into phe-
PHENOMENA AND NOUMENA
313
But there is, here, an underlying delusion that it is difficult to avoid. The categories are not, as regards their origin, based on sensibility, as are the nomena and noumena, and hence also the division of the world into a world of sense and a world of understanding (mundus sensibilis et in telligibilis). Indeed, one would think that the concept justifies this divi sion in such a way that the distinction hered concerns not merely the logical form of the cognition of one and the same thing, viz., as indis tinct or distinct, but concerns the difference regarding how things can be given to our cognition originally and regarding which they are in themselves distinguished from one another in type. For if the senses present something to us merely as it appears, then surely this some thing must also in itself be a thing, and an object of a nonsensible in tuition, i.e., an object of understanding. That is, a cognition must then be possible in which no sensibility is to be found, and which alone has reality that is objective absolutely-i.e., a cognition whereby objects are presented to us as they are while being cognized in our understanding's empirical use only as they appear. Hence there would be, besides the empirical use of the categories (which is limited to sensible conditions), also a pure and yet objectively valid use of them; and we could not as sert what we have alleged thus far, viz., that our pure cognitions of un derstanding are nothing more at all than principles of the expositione of appearance which even a priori deal with no more than the formal pos sibility of experience. For a wholly different realm would here lie open before us: a world, as it were, thought (perhaps even intuited) in the intellectf-a world that could engage our pure understanding not less,g but indeed much more nobly. Now, it is true that all our presentations are by the understanding re ferred to some object; and since appearances are nothing but presenta tions, the understanding refers them to a something as the object of sen sible intuition. But this something iSh in so far only the transcendental object.i This, however, signifies only a something = x of which we do not know-nor (by our understanding's current arrangement) can in prin ciple! ever know-anything whatsoever. Rather, this transcendental ob ject can serve only, as a correlate of the unity of apperception, for the unity in sensible intuition's manifold by means of which the understand ing unites that manifold ink the concept of an object. This transcenden tal object cannot be separated at all from the sensible data, for then there remains nothing through which it would be thought. It is, therefore, not in itself an object of cognition, but is only the presentation of appear-
A 250
A 25 1
3 14
PART II
forms of intuition,
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
space and time; they therefore seem to admit of an ap
plication expanded beyond all objects of the senses. Yet they themselves
A 252
ances under the concept of an object as such-a concept determinable through the manifold of these appearances.1 Precisely because of this, too, the categories present no special ob ject given to the understanding alone, but serve only to determine the transcendental objectm (the concept of something as such) through what is given in sensibility, in order that we can thereby cognize appearances empirically under concepts of objects. But as for the cause why people, being not yet satisfied by the sub stratum of sensibility, have added to the phenomena also noumena that only the pure understanding can think, it rests merely on the following. Sensibility-and its realm, viz., that of appearances-is itself limited by understanding so that it deals not with things in themselves but only with the way in which, by virtue of our subjective character, things appear to us. This was the result of the entire Transcendental Aesthetic; and from the concept of an appearance as such, too, it follows naturally that to appearance there must correspond something that is not in itself ap pearance. For appearance cannot be anything by itself and apart from our way of presenting; hence, if we are not to go in a constant circle, then the word appearance already indicates a reference to something the direct presentation of which is indeed sensible, but which in itself even without this character of our sensibility (on which the form of our intuition is based)-must be something, i.e., an object independent of sensibility. Now from this consideration arises the concept of a noumenon. But this concept isn not at all positive and is not a determinate cognition of some thing, but signifies only the thinking of something as such something in which I abstract from all form of sensible intuition. But in order that a noumenon may signify a true object, to be distinguished from all phenomena, it is not enough that I free my thought from all conditions of sensible intuition. I must, in addition, also have a basis for assuming an intuition which is different from this sensible one and ina which such an object could be given; for otherwise my thought is empty after all, even though not contradictory. Above,P we were indeed unable to prove that sensible intuition is the only possible intuition generally, and were able to prove only that it is this for us; but we were likewise unable to prove that a different kind of intuition is also possible. And although our thought can abstract from anyq sensibility, yet we are left
PHENOMENA AND NOUMENA
315
are in tum nothing but forms of thought that contain merely the logical 171 170 one consciousness the manifold given ability to unite a priori in in with the question whether this thoughtr is not then a mere form of a con cept, and whether after this separations there remains an object at all.! The object to which I refer appearance as such is the transcendental object,U i.e., the wholly indeterminate concept of something as such. This object cannot be called the noumenon. For I do not know concerning it what it is in itself, and have no concept of it except merely the concept of the object of a sensible intuition as such-an object which, therefore, is the same for all appearances. I cannot think it through any categories; for a category holds only for empirical intuition in order to bring it un der a concept of an object as such. Although a pure use of a category is 10gicallyV possible, i.e., is without contradiction, it has no objective va lidity whatever, because the category does not then apply to any intu ition that would thereby acquire the unity of an object. For a category is, after all, a mere function of thought; through it I am not given any object, but only think what may be given in intuition. "[Reading, with Vaihinger (and the Akademie edition), also for als.] b['To an intellectual intuition.' Cf. B xl br. n. l44g, and B 72 incl. br. n. 183.] "[I.e., intelligibles.] d[Unlike in Leibniz and Wolff.] e[In his working copy of edition A (see Preliminary Studies and Supplementary Entries-cited at A 191B 33 br. n. 1 3-Ak. XXIII, 48), Kant adds, 'synthesis of the manifold. ' ]
f[im Geiste.] "[Tban the world of sense.]
h[Kant (ibid.) expands this to: 'this something as object of an intuition as such is. ' ] i [ Objekt here an d a t the beginning o f the paragraph, Gegenstand just above. For the transcendental object, cf. A 1 04-5, 1 09.]
i [uberhaupt.]
k[ 'into,' literally.] '[Kant (ibid. ) notes, 'fonn of thought only, but no cognition.'] m[Kant uses Objekt here and just above, Gegenstand (in the plural) just below.] "['is' added by Hartenstein (and adopted by the Akademie edition).]
O[unter.] P[In the Transcendental Aesthetic.] q[Reading, with Hartenstein (and the Akademie edition), jeder for jener.] ' [Of a noumenon.] '[From sensibility.] '[In his working copy of edition A (op. cit. in br. n. 16ge, just above, 49), Kant changes this to: ' . . . there still remains a possible intuition at all. For no one can establish the possibility of an intellectual intuition; and hence it could easily be that no such way of cognizing, in regard to which we would consider something as object, would oc-
B 306 A 25 3
316
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
intuition. And thus, if one takes away from the categories the only intu ition possible for us, then the signification they can have is even less than that of the pure sensible forms. l 72 For through these forms an object is at least given, whereas a way-peculiar to our understanding--of combining the manifold signifies nothing whatever if the intuition wherein alone this manifold can be given is not added. On the other hand, certain objects as appearances are called by us beings of sense (phenomena), because we dis tinguish the way in which we intuit them from the character 1 73 that they have in themselves. But if this is so, then our concept of beings of sense already implies that these objects regarded in that character (even if we do not intuit them in that character) 174-or, for that maUer, other possible things that are not objects of our senses at all-are, as it were, contrasted by us with the beings of sense, 175 viz., as objects thought merely through understanding, and that we may therefore call them beings of the under standing 176 (noumena). And now the question arises whether our pure con cepts of understanding might not have signification in regard to these nou mena and be a way of cognizing them. But here we find, at the very outset, an ambiguity that may occasion great misunderstanding. For when the understanding calls an object in one reference merely phenomenon, then it simultaneously frames, apart from this reference, also a presentation 177 of an object in itself. And hence the B 307
understanding conceives 178 that it can frame
concepts
of such an object
cur at all. Hence the positive concept of a noumenon asserts something whose po,, sibility cannot be proved.'] U[Here Kant uses Gegenstand; just above he said Objekt. See A vii br. n. 7.] V['logically' added by Kant himself in his working copy of edition A (op. cit. in br. n 1 6ge, just above, 49).] 17° ['into,' literally.] 171 [Here 'manifold' is an adjective and 'given' functions as the noun.]
1 72 [Of intuition.] 1 73 [Beschaffenheit .] 174[Parentheses added.] 175 [l.e., phenomena.]
176 [Verstandeswesen. Although in the interest of avoiding reification of the Kantian mental powers (cf. A xii br. n. 16) I usually omit 'the' before 'understanding,' the exception here clarifies that Kant does not mean a being having understanding. (Stnctly speaking, the con· text would suffice to resolve the ambiguity-already present in the German also.)] 177 [Vorstellung.] 1 78 [sich vorstellen.]
PHENOMENA AND NOUMENA
317
also; and since the understanding supplies no concepts other than the cat
egories, it conceives that the object in this latter signification 179 must at least be capable of being thought. Through this, however, the understand ing is misled into considering the wholly
indeterminate concept of a being
of the understanding, as a something as such apart from our sensibility, to be a
determinate
concept of a being that we could in some way cognize
through understanding. If, by abstracting from our way of intuiting a thing, we mean by nou menon a thing
insofar as it is not an object of our sensible intuition, then negative meaning of the term. But if by noume non we mean an object of a nonsensible intuition and hence assume a spe this is a noumenon in the
cial kind of intuition, viz., an intellectual one 18°-which, however, is not ours and into the possibility of which we also have no insight-then that would be the noumenon in the positive meaning of the term. Now the doctrine of sensibility is simultaneously the doctrine of nou mena in the negative meaning of the term; i.e., it is the doctrine of things
that the understanding must think without this reference to our kind of in tuition, and hence must think not merely as appearances but as things in themselves. But the understanding, in thus separating [things from our in tuition] , simultaneously comprehends that in considering them in this way it cannot make any use of its categories. For the categories have signifi cation only in reference to the unity of intuitions in space and time; and hence, by the same token, they can a priori determine this same unity through universal combination concepts 181 only because space and time are merely ideal. Where this unity of time cannot be found, and hence in the case of the noumenon, there the entire use of the categories-indeed, even all their signification---ceases completely, because we then have no insight even into the possibility of the things that are to correspond to the categories-a point on which I need only appeal to what I have set forth at the very beginning of the General Comment on the preceding chap ter. 1 82 The possibility of a thing can, however, never be proved merely from the fact that a concept of this thing is not contradictory, but can be proved 1 79 [As object in itself.] 1 8°[ef B xl br. n. 144g, and B 72 inc!. br. n. 1 83.]
1 8 1 [Or: 'they can determ ine this same unity through universal a priori combination con cepts.' ] 1 82[See B 288.]
B 308
318
PART I I
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
only by supporting 183 the concept through an intuition corresponding to it. Hence if we wanted to apply the categories to objects that are not regarded as appearances, then we would have to lay at the basis an intuition other than the sensible one; and then the object would be a noumenon in the posi tive signification. Now such an intuition-viz., intellectual intuition-lies absolutely outside our cognitive power, and hence the use of the catego ries can likewise in no way extend beyond the boundary containing the ob jects of experience. And although to the beings of sense there correspond B 309
beings of the understanding and there may indeed be beings of the under standing to which our sensible power of intuition has no reference what ever, yet our concepts of understanding, as mere forms of thought for our sensible intuition, do not in the least extend to them. Hence what is called noumenon by us must be meant as such only in the negative signification. If from an empirical cognition I remove all thought (through catego ries), then there remains no cognition at all of any object. For through mere intuition nothing at all is thought; and the fact that my sensibility's thus being aifected 1 84 is [an occurrence] in me does not at all amount to a ref erence by such a presentation to any object. But if, on the other hand, I
A 254
omit all intuition, then there does still remain the form of thought, i.e., the way of determining an object for the manifold of a possible intuition. Hence the categories do in so far extend further than sensible intuition, because they think objects 1 85 as such without yet taking account of the special way (viz., sensibility) 186 in which they may be given. But they do not thereby determine a larger sphere of objects; 187 for, that such objects can be given cannot be assumed without presupposing as possible a kind of intuition other than the sensible-which, however, we are in no way entitled to do .
B 3 10
I call a concept problematic if, although containing no contradiction and also cohering with other cognitions as a boundary of given concepts in volved in them, its objective reality cannot be cognized in any way. The concept of a
noumenon,
i.e., of a thing that is not to be thought at all as an
object of the senses but is to be thought (solely through a pure understand ing) as a thing in itself, is not at all contradictory; for we cannot, after all, assert of sensibility that it is the only possible kind of intuition. Moreover, 1 83 [beiegen. ] 184 [diese Affektion der Sinnlichkeit.]
1 85 [Objekte.]
1 86 [Reading, with Erdmann. die Sinnlichkeit for der Sinnlichkeit ( ' [kind] of sensibility') ] 1 87[Gegenstande.]
PHENOMENA AND NOUMENA
3 19
the concept of a noumenon is necessary in order not to extend sensible in tuition even over things in themselves, and hence in order to limit the ob jective validity of sensible cognition. (For the remaining things,188 to which
A 255
that validity does not reach, are called noumena precisely in order to in dicate that those cognitions cannot extend their domain over everything thought by the understanding.) Yet, in the end, we can have no insight at all into the possibility of such noumena, and the range outside the sphere of appearances is (for us) empty. I.e., we have an understanding that
problematically
extends further than this sphere; but we have no
intuition-indeed, not even the concept of a possible intuition-through which objects can be given to us outside the realm of sensibility, and through which the understanding can be used
assertorically beyond sen sibility. The concept of a noumenon is, therefore, only a boundary concept serving to limit the pretension of sensibility, and hence is only of negative
use. But it is nonetheless not arbitrarily invented; rather, it coheres 1 89 with
B 31 1
the limitation of sensibility, yet without being able to posit anything posi tive outside sensibility's range. Hence the division of objects into phenomena and noumena, and of the world into a world of sense and a world of understanding, cannot be per mitted at all in the positive signification, 1 90 although concepts do indeed permit the distinction 19 1 into sensible and intellectual ones. For we cannot determine any object for intellectual concepts, and hence also cannot pass them off as objectively valid. How, if we depart from the senses, are we to make comprehensible that our categories (which would be the only re
A 256
maining concepts for noumena) still signify anything at all-given that in order for them to refer to some object, there must still be given something more than merely the unity of thought: viz., in addition, a possible intu ition to which they can be applied? The concept of a noumenon, as taken merely problematically, remains nonetheless not only permissible, but, as a concept putting sensibility within limits, also unavoidable. But that nou menon is then not a special [viz.]
intelligible object for our understanding.
Rather, an understanding to which it would belong is itself a problem, viz.,
as to how it can cognize its object not discursively through categories, but 188 [Reading, with Erdmann,
die iibrigen for das iibrige.]
1 89 [Or 'connects. ' ] 1 90 ['in the positive signification' added i n B.] 19 1[Of concepts.]
B 3 12
320
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
intuitively in a nonsensible intuition; 1 92 of such an understanding we can not frame the slightest presentation as to its possibility. Now in this way 193 our understanding acquires a negative expansion. I.e., it is not limited by sensibility; rather, it limits sensibility by calling things in themselves (things not regarded as appearances) noumena. But it immediately sets bounds for itself also: it acknowledges not cognizing things in themselves through any categories, and hence only thinking them under the name of an unknown 194 something. 1 95 In the writings of the moderns,196 however, I find a quite different use of the expressions 197 mundus sensibilis and [mundus] intelligibilis198 that A 257
deviates completely from the sense employed by the ancients.
And
although this use involves no difficulty, we also find in it nothing but an idle fiddling with words. According to this use, some have opted to call the sum of appearances, insofar as it is intuited, the world of sense; but they have opted to call it the world of understanding insofar as the coher B
313
ence of appearances is thought according to universal laws of under standing. The first world199 would by presented by theoretical2oo as1 92 [Conceming an intuitive understanding and its intellectual intuition, see B xl br. n. 144g, and B 72 incl. hr. n. 1 83.] 1 93 [l.e., through the concept of a noumenon as used problematically.]
194 [unbekannt.] 1 95[See W. Watson, op. cit. at B xvi br. n. 7 1 , 57, 59-60.] 1 96 [Kant very likely means Leibniz and Wolff. See A 249 . ] 1 97 [Which mean 'sensible world,' 'intelligible world.']
19SWea must not use, instead of this expression, b the expression intellectual world, as writers commonly tend to do when they set forth their views in German. For only cognitions are intellectual or sensory;C but what can only be an objec� of the one or the other kind of intuitione-i.e., the objects [themselves]-must be called (regardless of the harshness of the sound) intelligible or sensible.f "[This note added in B.] b[mundus intelligibilis.] C [intellektuell oder sensitiv.] d[Kant uses Gegenstand here, Objekt (in the plural) just below.] "[I.e., intellectual or sensory (sensible, in the customary meaning of sinnlich) intuition.] f[intelligibel; sensibel, in the literal meaning of 'capable of being sensed.' The "harsh sound" seems to be that of the ending. -ibel, since the pairs of terms are otherwise simi lar.] 1 99 [Viz., the sensible World.] 200[I.e., observational; cf. the etymology of 'theoretical.']
PHENOMENA AND NOUMENA
32 1
tronomy, which sets forth our mere observations of the starry sky; the second world, on the other hand, viz., an intelligible world, would be pre sented by contempiative20l astronomy (as explained, say, according to the Copernican system of the world, or even according to Newton's laws of gravitation). But such twisting of words is a merely sophistical subterfuge intended to evade a burdensome question by toning down its meaning to one's convenience. Understanding and reason can indeed be used in regard to appearances; but the question arises whether they still have any use even when the object is not appearance (but noumenon); and in this meaning the object is taken when it is thought as in itself merely intelligible, i.e., given solely to understanding and not at all to the senses. Hence the ques tion is whether, apart from that empirical use of understanding (even in the Newtonian presentation of the world structure), there can also be a tran scendental use of it that deals with the noumenon as an object. This ques tion we have answered negatively. Hence when we say that the senses present objects to us as they appear, but the understanding presents them as they are, then the second [descrip tion of objects] is to be taken not in transcendental but merely in empiri cal signification: viz., it refers to them as they must, insofar as they are objects of experience, be presented in the thoroughgoing coherence of ap pearances, and not according to what they may be apart from the reference to possible experience and consequently to senses as such, and hence not according to what they may be as objects of pure understanding. For this will always remain unknown202 to us--even to the point that it also re mains unknown to us whether such transcendental (extraordinary) cogni tion is possible at all, at least as a kind of cognition that is subject to our usual categories. In us, understanding and sensibility can determine ob jects only in combination. If we separate them, then we have intuitions with out concepts, or concepts without intuitions; but in either case we have pre sentations that we cannot refer to any determinate object. 203 If, after this entire discussion, anyone still harbors qualms about forgo ing the merely transcendental use of the categories, let that reader try them in some synthetic assertion. For an analytic assertion does not advance the understanding. And since the understanding here deals only with what is already thought in the concept, it leaves unestablished whether the concept
20 l [l .e reflective.] 202 [unbekannt.] .•
203
[See A SO-S21B 74-76.]
A 258
B 3 14
322 A 259
B 315
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
refers in itself to objects, or whether it signifies only the unity of thought as such (which unity abstracts entirely from the way in which an object may be given). The understanding as so used is content to know what lies in its concept; it is indifferent as regards what the concept itself may apply to. Accordingly, let that reader try the categories with some synthetic and supposedly transcendental principle, such as: Everything that is exists as substance or as some determination attaching thereto; or: Everything con tingent exists as effect of another thing. namely, its cause; etc. Now I ask: whence does he intend to obtain these synthetic propositions, given that the concepts are to hold not in reference to possible experience but for things in themselves (noumena)? Where is here the third something204 that we always require for a synthetic proposition205 in order thereby to con nect with one another concepts that have no logical (analytic) kinship206 whatever? That reader will never be able to prove his proposition; indeed, what is still more, he will never be able to offer justification for the pos sibility of such a pure207 assertion without taking into account the empiri cal use of understanding and thereby forgoing entirely the pure and sense free judgment. And thus the concept208 of pure and merely intelligible objects is entirely empty of any principles for the application of such con cepts. For we cannot think of any way in which such objects might be given; and the problematic thought which yet leaves open a place for them
A 260
serves only, like an empty space, to limit the empirical principles, but with out containing or displaying any other object of cognition outside the sphere of these principles.
204[In his working copy of edition A (see Preliminary Studies and Supplementary Entries-cited at A 1 91B 33 br. n. 1 3-Ak. XXIII, 49), Kant changes this to: 'this third something , [con sisting] of intuition. ' ] 20S [See A 216-171B 263-64 br. ns. 238 and 241.] 206 [Or 'affinity ' : Verwandtschaft. Cf. A 662
=
B 690.]
207 [l.e., completely nonempirical.] 208 [In his working copy of edition A (see Preliminary Studies and Supplementary Entries-cited at A 191B 33 br. n. I3-Ak XXIII, 49), Kant changes this to: ' the positive concept. the pos sible cognition.' 1
APPENDIX
B 316
On the Amphibolyl of Concepts of Refiection2 Which Arises through the Confusion of the Empirical with the Transcendental Use of Understanding3 Deliberation4 (rejlexio)5 does not deal with objects themselves in order to obtain concepts from them straightforwardly, but is our state of mind when we first set about to discover the sUbjective conditions under which [alone] we can arrive at concepts. It is our consciousness of the relation of given presentations to our various sources of cognition-the consciousness through which alone the relation of these presentations to one another can be determined correctly. The first question that we must ask before we treat our presentations any further is this: In which cognitive power do they be long together? Is it the understanding, or is it the senses, by which they are connected or compared? Many judgments are accepted from habit or put together6 through inclination; but because no deliberation precedes the judg ment, or at least succeeds it critically, it counts7 as a judgment having its
A 261
origin in understanding. Not for all judgments do we need an inquiry, i.e., do we need to pay attention to their bases of truth. For if judgments are
directly certain--e.g., the judgment that between two points there can be only one straight line-then we cannot indicate for them any still nearer mark of truth than they themselves express. But all judgments-indeed, all 1 [I.e , ambiguity.) 2[Rejlexion.) .
3
[See Nonnan Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 41 8-24.) [Oberlegung. The decision-making implication of 'deliberation' agrees well with Kant's char 4 acterization of Uberlegung below. I am using 'reflection' to translate Rejlexion (and 'to re flect' occasionally, in nontechnical contexts, to render nachsinnen and iibercienken).) s[Rejlection.) 6[gekniipjt.) 7[gelten.)
323
B 3 17
324
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
comparisons-require a
deliberation,
Le., a distinction of the cognitive
power to which the given concepts belong. I call
transcendental delibera tion the act whereby I hold the comparison of presentations as such Up8 to
the cognitive power in which this comparison is made, and whereby I dis tinguish whether the presentations are being compared with one another as belonging to pure understanding or to sensible intuition. Now the relation in which concepts can in a state of mind belong to one another is that of
sameness and difference; of agreement and conflict; of the intrinsic and the extrinsic; or, finally, of the determinable and determination (matter and form). Correct determination of this relation rests on distinguishing in which cognitive power these concepts belong to one another subjectively: whether in sensibility or in understanding. For distinguishing9 these two makes a great difference10 in the way in which we are to think the relation. A 262
Before all objective judgments we compare the concepts in order to hit uponll the sameness (of many presentations under one concept) for the sake
B 318
of universal judgments, or their difference for producing particular judg ments; and upon the agreement from which affirmative judgments and the conflict from which
negative judgments
can come to be; etc. Because of
this we should, it seems, call the cited concepts comparison concepts
(con ceptus comparationis). However, when what matters is not the logical form of the concepts but their content-i.e., whether the things themselves are the same or different, in agreement or in conflict, etc.-then we see that the things can have a twofold relation to our cognitive power, viz., to sen sibility and to understanding; yet on this place
in
which they belong de
pends the way in which they are to belong to one another. Therefore tran scendental reflection, i.e., [consciousness of] the relation of given presentations to one or the other kind of cognition, will alone be able to determine their relation to one another; and whether the things are the same or different, agreeing or conflicting, etc . , cannot be established immedi ately from the concepts themselves by mere comparison l 2 (comparatio); but this can be established solely 1 3 by distinguishing, by means of a tran" [For reference.] 9 [ Unterschied.]
l O [Unterschied.] " [kommen auf; Mellin's addition, adopted by Erdmann in the Akademie edition.] 12 [Vergleichung.] 1 3 [allererst.]
APPENDIX
AMPHIBOLY OF CONCEPTS OF REFLECTION
scendental deliberation
(reflexio),
325
the kind of cognition to which they be
long. Hence we could, to be sure, say that
logical reflection is mere com
parison. For in its case we abstract entirely from the cognitive power to which the given presentations belong; and hence to that extent the presen tations are to be treated as homogeneous in terms of having their seat in the mind. But transcendental reflection (which deals with the objects them selves) contains the basis for the possibility of objective comparison 14 of presentations with one another; it is, therefore, very different indeed from
B 319
logical reflection, because the cognitive power to which the presentations belong is not the same. This transcendental deliberation is a duty that no
A 263
one who wants to make any a priori judgment about things can disavow. We shall now take it in hand, and shall obtain from it more than a little light for determining understanding's proper business. 1 . Sameness 1 5 and difference. Suppose that an object is exhibited to us repeatedly but always with the same 1 6 intrinsic determinations (qualitas et quantitas). 17 In that case, if the object counts 1 8 as object of pure under standing then it is always the same object, 19 and is not many20 but only one thing (i.e., we have numerica identitas). 21 But if the object is appear ance, then comparison of concepts does not matter at all; rather, however much everything regarding these concepts22 may be the same,23 yet the dif ference of the locations of these appearances at the same24 time is a suf ficient basis for the numerical difference of the object (of the senses) itself. Thus in the case of two drops of water we can abstract completely from all intrinsic difference (of quality and quantity), and their being intuited si
A 264
multaneously in different locations is enough for considering them to be numerically different. Leibniz took appearances to be things in themselves,
B 320
14 [Komparation.] I5 [Einerleiheit.] 16[eben denselben.] I7
[Quality and quantity.]
I " [gilt.] 19 2O 21
[eben derselbe.] [Reading, with Kehrbach, viele for viel. ] [Numencal identity.]
22 [derselben.] 23 [einerlei.] 24 [gleich.]
326
PART II
and hence to be
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
intelligibilia,
i.e., objects of pure understanding (although
he assigned to them the name of phenomena, because their presentations are confused); and thus his principle25 of the indistinguishable26 (prin
cipium identitatis indiscernibilium)27
could indeed not be disputed. But
since appearances are objects of sensibility and since understanding's use regarding them is not pure but merely empirical, space itself-as the con dition of outer appearances-already indicates plurality and numerical dif ference. For although one part of space may be completely similar to and like another part, it is yet outside this other part, and precisely thereby is a part different from it and added to it in order to make up a larger space; and this must, therefore, hold for all things that are simultaneous in the various positions of space, however similar and alike they may be other wise.
2.
Agreement and conflict. When reality is presented only by pure un (realitas noumenon),28 then one cannot think a conflict be
derstanding
tween the realities, i.e., a relation such that the realities when combined in A 265 B 321
one subject annul each other's consequences and 3 - 3
=
O?9
In the case
of the real in appearance (realitas phaenomenon), 30 on the other hand, two realities can indeed be in conflict with each other, and when they are united in the same subject each can wholly or in part annihilate
the consequence
e.g., two motive forces in the same straight line insofar ! as they either pull or push a point in opposite directions;3 or, again, a pleas
of the other-as,
ure32 that counterbalances a pain.
3. The intrinsic and the extrinsic?3 In an object of pure understanding, only what has (as regards its existence) no reference whatever to anything else different from itself is intrinsic. The intrinsic determinations of a
sub-
25 [Satz.] 26 [Or
'of the indiscernible' : des Nichtzuunterscheidenden. ]
27 [Principle of the identity o f indiscernibles.] 28 [Noumenal reality.] 29
[ln his working copy of edition A (see Preliminary Studies and Supplementary Entries--<:ited
at A 191B 33 br.
n.
13-Ak. XXIII, 49), Kant adds, 'for only negation,
=
reality. ' ] 30[Phenomenal reality.] 31 [See the Metaphysical Foundo.tions of Natural Science. Ak. IV. 544-5 1 . ]
32 [VeY,ll niigen.] " [inner, iiujJer. respectively.]
0, is opposed to
APPENDIX
AMPHIBOLY OF CONCEPTS OF REFLECTION
stantia phaenomenon34
327
in space, on the other hand, are nothing but rela
tions,35 and the substance itself is altogether a sum of relations36 only. We are acquainted with substance in space only through forces that are ac
tive 3 7 in space: either in propelling other substances toward the sub stance38 (attraction), or in preventing them from penetrating into the sub stance39 (repulsion and impenetrability);40 we are not acquainted with other properties making up the concept of the substance that appears in space
and that we call matter. As object of pure understanding, on the other hand, every substance must have intrinsic determinations and forces that concern its intrinsic reality. However, what intrinsic41 accidents can I think of but those offered to me by my inner sense-viz., what either is itself a
ing
or is analogous to it? This is the reason why
Leibniz
think
A 266
turned all sub
stances, because he conceived them as noumena, into simple subjects en dowed with powers of presentation-in a word, into monads. And it is the reason why he turned into such monads even the components of matter, having in his thought taken from them everything that may signify extrin
sic42 relation, and hence taken from them also
4.
Matter and form.
composition. 43
These are two concepts on which all other reflec
tion is based, so very inseparably are they linked with any use of under standing. Matter signifies the determinable as such; form signifies its de termination (both in the transcendental meanings of these terms, where we abstract from all difference in what is given and from the way in which it l4 [Phenomenal substance.]
lS [Verhiiltnisse. In his working copy of edition A (entry CXLVIIl in Erdmann's version, omit ted in Lehmann's-see A 19/B 33 br. n. 1 3) , Kant adds, 'in space there are none but outer [iiuJler] relations, in inner sense none but inner [inner] ones; the absolute is lacking.'] l6 [Reiationen.] l1 [wirksam.] l8 [dahin.] J9[Reading in sie for in ihn. on the assumption that Kant substituted (in his rrund) 'object' for 'substance.' The only proximate referent of ihn is 'space,' and using this referent would con
strue attraction, repulsion and impenetrability as having to do with spaces rather than with
the objects occupying them: 'either in propelling other substances toward the space occupied
by the substance [dahin] (attraction), or in preventing them from penetrating into this space.']
4O[See the Metaphysical Foundations oj Natural Science, Ak. IV, 498-99.] 41 [inner. also translated as 'inner' just below.]
42 [Or ' outer. ' ] 4l [Or 'assembly' : Zusammensetzung; see B 201 n . 30.]
B 322
328
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
is determined). Logicians formerly called the universal the matter, but the specific difference the form. 44 In every judgment the given concepts can be called logical matter (for the judgment), and their relation (by means of the copula) the judgment's form. In every being,45 its constituents (essen
tialia)46 are the matter,
and the way in which they are connected in a thing 47 is the essential form. As regards things as such, moreover, unbounded reality was regarded as the matter of all possibility, but the limitation of A 267 B 323
this reality (i.e., negation) was regarded as the form whereby one thing dif fers from another according to transcendental concepts. For the understand ing demands first that something be given (at least in concept), in order to be able to determine it in a certain way. Hence in pure understanding's con cept matter precedes form; and because of this Leibniz first assumed things (monads) and within them a power of presentation on their part, in order then to base thereon their extrinsic48 relation and the community of their states (viz., the community of the presentations). Hence space and time were possible as bases49 and consequences-space only through the rela tion of substances, time through the connection of their determinations among one another. And thus it would in fact have to be, if pure under standing could be referred directly to objects, and if space and time were determinations of things as they are in themselves. But if they are only sen sible intuitions, in which we determine all objects solely as appearances, then the form of intuition (as a subjective character of sensibility) precedes all matter (the sensations)-and hence space and time precede all appear ances and all data of experience-and is, rather, what makes experience
A 268 B 324
possible in the first place. The intellectualist philosopher could not tolerate that the form should precede the things themselves and should determine their possibility-a quite correct verdict50 once he assumed that we intuit things as they are (although only by means of confused presentation). But sensible intuition is in fact a quite special subjective condition lying a priori at the basis of all perception, and its form is original. Hence the form is 44 [ef. the view attributed to the Aristotelian school in Kant's First Introduction to the Cri
tique of Judgment, Ak. XX, 2 I Sn.] 45 [Wesen.] 46 [Essentials.]
47 [wesentlich ] 4" [Or 'outer. · ]
40[Or 'grounds. '] 50 [Zemur (in the old sense based on the Latin).]
APPENDIX
AMPHIBOLY OF CONCEPTS OF REFLECTION
329
given by itself, and the matter (or the things themselves as they appear) is far from lying at the basis (as one would have to judge according to mere concepts); rather, its own possibility presupposes a formal intuition (time and space) as given.
COMMENT ON THE AMPHIBOLY OF CONCEPTS OF REFLECTION Permit me to call
transcendental location the position that we
assign to a
concept either in sensibility or in pure understanding. In this way the judg ing5 1 of this position-the position belonging to every concept according to the difference in our use of it-and the instruction, according to rules, for determining this location for all concepts would be the
topic.5 2 This
transcendental
would be a doctrine that, by always distinguishing to which
cognitive power the concepts properly belong, would protect us thor oughly against surreptitious claims53 made by pure understanding, and against deceptions arising from these. Every concept and every heading un der which many cognitions belong may be called a logical location. On logical topic of Aristotle,54 which schoolteachers and ora
this is based the
tors could e�ploy in order to look up, under certain headings of thought, what was most fitting for a matter at issue, and in order then to reason or wordily chatter about it with a semblance55 of thoroughness. The transcendental topic, on the other hand, contains nothing more than the cited four headings of all comparison and differentiation. These head ings differ from categories inasmuch as they do not exhibit the object ac cording to what makes up its concept (magnitude, reality), but exhibit in all its manifoldness only the comparison of presentations that precedes the concept of things. But this comparison requires first of all a deliberation, i.e., a determination of the location to which belong the presentations of the things being compared, i.e., whether they are thought by pure under standing or given in appearance by sensibility. 5 1 [Beurteilung; see A 60/B 84 hr. n. 69.] "[Cf. A 83/B 109.1
53 [Erschleichungen.] S4
[See A 61/B 86 inc!. hr. ss [Schein.]
n.
76. See also W. Watson, op. cit. at B xvi hr. n. 7 1 , 92-5.]
{ A 269
B 325
330
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
Concepts can be compared logically without our worrying about where their objects belong, i.e., whether as noumena they belong to understand ing, or as phenomena to sensibility. But if with these concepts we want to go to the objects, then we need first of all [a] transcendental deliberation in order to decide for which cognitive power these objects are to be ob jects, whether for pure understanding or for sensibility. Without this delib B 326 A 270
}
eration, my use of these concepts is very unsafe and there arise supposed synthetic principles that critical reason cannot acknowledge and that are based solely on a transcendental amphiboly, i.e., a confusion of a pure ob ject of understanding with appearance. Lacking such a transcendental topic, and being therefore tricked by the amphiboly of the concepts of reflection, the illustrious
intellectual system of the world;
Leibniz erected
an
or, rather, he believed that he cognized
the intrinsic character of things inasmuch as he compared all objects only
with the understanding and the abstractS6 formal concepts of his thought.
Our table of concepts of reflection provides for us the unexpected advan tage of laying before us what differentiates his doctrinal systemS7 in all its parts, and of laying before us simultaneously the governing basis of this peculiar way of thinking that rested on nothing but a misunderstanding. He compared all things with one another merely by concepts, and naturally found among them no differences other than those by which the under standing distinguishes its pure concepts from one another. The conditions of sensible intuition, which carry with them their own distinctions, he did not regard as original. For sensibility was for him only a confused way of presenting, and not a separate source of presentations. Appearance was for him the presentation of the
thing in itself,
although a presentation different
A 27 1
in logical form from cognition through understanding; for, with its usual
B 327
lack of dissection, appearance draws into the concept of the thing a certain mixture of supplementary presentationsS 8 that the understanding knows how to separateS9 from it. In a word, Leibniz intellectualized appearances, just as Locke according to a system of noogony (if I may be permitted to em ploy such expressions) had sensualized all of the concepts of understand56 [abgesondert.l 57 [ .begriff l 58 [Nebenvorstellungen. ] 59 [absondern.]
APPENDIX
AMPHIBOLY OF CONCEPTS OF REFLECTION
33 1
ing, i.e., had passed them off as nothing but empirical or abstracted60 con cepts of reflection. These great men did not seek in understanding and sensibility two quite different sources of presentations which could, how ever, only in connection make objectively valid judgments about things. Instead, each man kept to only one of the two sources, viz., the one source that in his opinion referred directly to things in themselves, while the other source did nothing but confuse or order the presentations of the first source. Accordingly, taken
Leibniz compared with one another objects of the senses, as things as such, merely in the understanding. First, he compared
these objects insofar as they are to be judged by understanding as being the same or different. Hence he envisaged solely their concepts and not their position in intuition wherein alone objects can be given, and ignored com pletely the transcendental location of these concepts (i.e., whether the ob ject is to be numbered among appearances or among things in themselves). Thus the outcome could not be other than it was: viz., Leibniz extended his principle of the indistinguishable, 6 1 which holds only for concepts of things as such, to [cover] also the objects of the senses
menon);62
(mundus phaeno
and he believed that he had thereby provided our cognition of
nature with significant expansion. Indeed, if I am acquainted with a drop of water as l:l thing in itself and in terms of all its intrinsic determinations, then I can accept no drop of water as being different from another if the entire concept of this drop is63 the same as the drop. But if the drop is ap pearance in space, then it has its location not merely in the understanding (i.e., among concepts), but in sensible outer intuition (i.e., in space). And there the physical locations are quite inconsequential in regard to the in 64 trinsic determinations of things, and a location b can receive a thing com pletely similar to and like another found in location a just as well as if the things were intrinsically ever so different. The difference of locations even by itself, apart from further conditions, makes the plurality and distinction of objects as appearances not only possible but also necessary. Hence that 6O [abgesonderte .] 61
[Or 'indiscernible' ; i.e., the principle of the identity of indiscernibles.]
62 [T he phenomenal world.] 63 [As regards its determinations.] 64 [T o improve readability, I have deleted the
'= '
before b and similarly before a just below.]
{ A 272
B 328
332
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
seeming law65 is not a law of nature. It is solely an analytic rule for66 the comparison of things through mere concepts.
Second,
A 273 B 329
the principle that realities (taken as mere affirmations) never
logically conflict with one another is an entirely true proposition concem
ing the relation of concepts; but it has not the least signification, neither in
regard to nature nor at all in regard to any thing in itself (of this thing we have no concept67 ). For this real conflict occurs wherever A B = 0, i.e ., -
wherever one reality combined with another in one subject annuls the oth er's effect. This situation is put before us unceasingly in nature by all ob structions and reactions; these, since they are based on forces, must be called
realitates phaenomena. 68
General mechanics can even indicate the empirical condition of this conflict in an a priori rule,69 because it takes account of the opposition in the direction70 -a condition about which the transcendental concept of reality knows nothing whatever. Although Mr. von Leibniz did not exactly announce this proposition7 1 with the pomp of a new principle, yet he employed it to make new assertions, and his fol lowers entered it expressly in their
Leibnizian-Wolffian
doctrinal edifice.
E.g., according to this principle all evils are nothing but consequences of creatures' limits, i.e., negations, because these alone conflict with reality. (And thus it actually is in the case of the mere concept of a thing as such, but not in things as appearances.) Similarly, the adherents of Leibniz find B 330 A 274
it not only possible but also natural to unite, without any worrisome con flict, all reality in one being. For they are acquainted with no conflict other than that of contradiction (whereby the concept of a thing is itself an nulled), and not with the conflict of reciprocal impairment, where one real basis72 annuls the effect of another;7 3 only in sensibility do we encounter for such conflict the conditions required to present it. 65 [The principle of the identity of indiscemibles.] 66[Reading, with the fourth edition, der for oder.] 67 [Edition A has 'no concept whatever.' ] 68 [Phenomenal realities ] 69 [Or 'can even indicate a priori the empirical condition of this conflict in a rule. ' ] 7° [Of the forces.
Cf. A 265/B 321
inc!. br. n . 3 1 .]
71 [The proposition that realities (taken as affirmations) never logically conflict with on � an other. ]
72 [Reaigrund.] " [And vice versa.]
APPENDIX
Third,
AMPHmOL Y OF CONCEPTS OF REFLECTION
333
the Leibnizian74 monadology has no other basis at all than the
fact that this philosopher presented the distinction of the intrinsic and the extrinsic merely in relation to understanding. Substances as such must have something intrinsic, which therefore is free from all extrinsic75 relations and consequently also from composition.76 Hence the simple is the foun
dation of what is intrinsic in things in themselves. But what is intrinsic in the state of these substances also cannot consist in location, shape, conti guity,77 or motion (these determinations are all extrinsic relations); and hence we can attribute to substances no other intrinsic7 8 state than that whereby we ourselves inwardly79 determine our sense, viz., the state ofpre And thus the monads were completed; these are to amount to the basic material of the whole universe; but their active force8o consists
sentations.
only in presentations, through which they are in fact efficacious merely within themselves. Exactly because of this, however, Leibniz' principle of the possible com
munity of substances among one another also had to be a predetermined 8 1 harmony, and could not be a physical influence. For since everything is
engaged only inwardly, i.e., with its presentations, one substance's state of presentations could not stand in any efficacious linkage whatsoever with that of another substance. Rather, some third cause,82 and one influenCing each and every substance, had to make their states correspond to one an other. But this was to be accomplished not exactly through aid provided on each occasion and specially arranged in each individual case (as in the sys
lema assistentiae), 83
but through the unity of the idea [in the mind] of a
cause valid for all substances, an idea in which they must one and all ac quire their existence and permanence and hence also their reciprocal cor respondence among one another according to universal laws. 74 [Emphasis on 'Leibnizian' deleted.] 7S [Or 'outer. ' Likewise just below.] 76 [Or
'assembly· : Zusammensetzung; see B 201 n. 30.]
n [Beriihrung.] 78[ inner. ] 79
[innerlich.]
I!O [Or
'power. ' ] Bi [ Or 'preestablished·: vorherbestimmte ] 82 [ Viz., God.] 8l [System of assistance; the occasionalism of Nicholas de Malebranche ( 1 638- 1 7 1 5).]
{ A 275 B 331
334
PART II
Fourth,
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
Leibniz' famous
doctrinal system84 of space and time,
in which
he intellectualized these forms of sensibility, had arisen solely from this same delusion of transcendental reflection. If I want to present, by mere understanding, extrinsic85 relations of things, then this can be done only by means of a concept of their reciprocal action; and if I am to connect a thing's state with another state of the very same thing, then this can be done only in the order of bases86 and consequences. 87 And thus Leibniz thought B 332 A 276
of space as a certain order in the community of substances, and of time as the dynamical sequence88 of their states. But as for the peculiar [features] , independent of things, that space and time seem to have about them, these he ascribed to these concepts'
confusion,
which brought it about that what
is a mere form of dynamical relations is considered to be, on its own, 89 a self-subsistent intuition that precedes the things themselves. Hence space
and time were for Leibniz the intelligible form of the connection of things (substances and their states) in themselves; and the things were intelligible substances
(substantiae noumena).90
But he nonetheless wanted to make
these concepts hold9 1 for appearances. For he conceded to sensibility no
kind of intuition of its own; rather, he sought all-even empirical -presentation of objects in understanding, and left to the senses nothing but the despicable task of confusing and corrupting understanding's pre sentations. But even if we could through pure understanding say something syn thetically about things in themselves (which, however, is impossible), then this could still not be applied92 to appearances, which do not present to us things in themselves. Hence in the case of appearances I shall, in transcen dental deliberation, always have to compare my concepts only under the conditions of sensibility, and thus space and time will be determinations not of things in themselves but of appearances; and what things may be in
84[Lehrbegriff·] 85[Or 'outer.'] 8b[Or 'grounds. ' ] 87[Folgen.] 8"[Folge.] 89[eigen.] 90 [Noumenai sub�tances.]
91 [geltend machen ] 92[gezogen.]
APPENDIX
AMPHIBOLY OF CONCEPTS OF REFLECTION
335
themselves I do not know-nor indeed need to know, since, after all, I can never encounter a thing otherwise than in appearance. The remaining concepts of reflection I also treat in this way. Matter is
substantia phaenomenon.93
{ A 277
B 333
What may belong to it intrinsically I seek in
all parts of the space that it occupies and in all effects that it exerts-which, to be sure, can never be more than appearances of outer senses. Hence I do indeed have nothing that is intrinsic94 absolutely, but have only what is intrinsic comparatively, which itself consists in tum of extrinsic95 rela tions. On the other hand, the character of matter that would be intrinsic absolutely,96 i.e., according to pure understanding, is a mere fancy.97 For matter is not at all an object for pure understanding.98 The transcendental
object, on the other hand, which may be the basis of this appearance that
we call matter, is a mere something99 about which we would not under stand what it is even if someone were able to tell us. For we cannot un derstand anything except what carries with it, in intuition, something lOO cor
responding to our words. If the complaints that we have no insight whatever into the intrinsic characterlO l of things are to mean the same as that we do not by pure understanding comprehend what the things appearing to us may be in themselves, then these complaints are quite improper and un reasonable. For they then want us to be able to cognize things, and hence intuit them, even without senses, and consequently want us to have a cog nitive power wholly different from the human one not merely in degree but even in its intuition and in kind; and hence they want us not to be hu man, but to be beings about whom we cannot even state whether they are so much as possible, much less what their character is. Observation and dissection of appearances penetrate to the intrinsic character 102 of nature, and one cannot know how far this penetration may in time go. But those 93
[Phenomenal substance.]
94 [innerlich.] 95
96
[Or 'outer. ']
[das schlechthin . . . lnnerliche der Materie.] 97 [ Grille. ] 98 [S ee the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak. IV, 472-74.] 99 [ Etwas.] ulO (ein.] IO l [das Innere.] 1ll2 [in s Innere. ]
{ A 278
B 334
336
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
transcendental questions that go beyond nature we would, despite all this, still never be able to answer, even if all of nature were uncovered for us. This is so because we have not been given [the ability] to observe even our own mind " for in it lies the secret of our sensibility's origin-by means
of an intuition other than that of our inner 103 sense. Sensibility's reference to an object, and what may be the transcendental basis of this [objective] unity, this doubtless lies too deeply hidden so that we, who are acquainted even with ourselves only through inner sense and hence as appearance, might with so unfitting an instrument of our investigation discover any thing other than what are always in tum appearances-whereas it was the nonsensible cause of those appearances that we hoped to explore. This critique of conclusions drawn from mere acts of reflection is thus extremely useful. For it establishes distinctly the nullity of any conclu A B 335
279 }
sions about objects compared with one another solely in the understand ing, and at the same time confirms what we have mainly been urging: that although appearances are not also comprised, as things in themselves, among the objects of pure understanding, yet they are the only objects by reference to which our cognition can have objective reality-viz., in cases where to the concepts there corresponds intuition. If we reflect merely logically, then we only compare our concepts among one another in the understanding, as to whether both of two concepts have the same content, whether or not they contradict each other, whether some thing is contained in the concept intrinsically or added to it, and which of the two is given and which is to count 104 only as a way of thinking the given one. But if I apply these concepts to an object as such (in the tran scendental meaning of the expression), without further determining this ob ject as to whether it is an object of sensible or of intellectual intuition, then there immediately emerge limitations (whereby we are not to go outside this concept l O5) that subvert 106 all empirical use of these concepts. And pre cisely thereby these limitations prove that the presentation of an object as a thing as such is by no means merely
insufficient,
but is, when taken with
out sensible determination of it and independently of any empirical conI03 [inner. ] 1 04 [gelten. ]
lOS
[Of an object as such.]
1 06[verkehren.]
APPENDIX
AMPHIBOLY OF CONCEPTS OF REFLECTION
dition, intemally l O7
337
conflicting. They prove, therefore, that either one must
(in logic) abstract from any object, or, if one does assume an object, must think it under conditions of sensible intuition; and hence they prove that the intelligible would require a quite special intuition that we do not have, and in the absence thereof the intelligible is for us nothing; but also prove, on the other hand, that appearances cannot be things in themselves. For 0 0 if I think merely things 1 8 as such, then the difference of outer 1 9 rela tions can indeed not amount to a difference of the things 11 0 themselves,
B 336 A 280
but rather presupposes it. And if the concept of the one thing does not differ at all intrinsically from the concept of the other, then I am only positing one and the same thing l l l in l 1 2 different relations. Moreover, through addition of a mere affirmation (reality) to another the positive is,
of course, augmented, and nothing is withdrawn from it or annulled; hence the real [characteristics] in things as such cannot conflict with one another-etc. As we have shown, the concepts of reflection have, through a certain misinterpretation, such an influence on the use of understanding that they have been able to mislead even one of the most sharp-sighted 1 1 3 among all philosophers into devising a supposed system of intellectual cognition-a system that undertakes to determine its objects without involvement II 4 of the senses. Precisely because of this there is great benefit, for reliably de termining and securing the bounds of understanding, in extricating what cause deludes us in the amphiboly of these concepts as this amphiboly prompts us to adopt false principles. We must indeed say that what belongs to or contradicts a concept uni versally also belongs to or contradicts everything particular that is con-
1 07 [in sich selbst .] 108 W inge.] U19 [Or
'extrinsic.']
l 1o[
Sachen.] 111 W ing.] 11 2[ 'into
,' literally.]
lI3 [ ha sc rfsichtig; cf. A 66 / B 91 hr. 114 [DazukulI!t ]
n.
1 l 7.]
B 337 A 28 1
338
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
tained under it (dictum de
omni et nullo). l 15
It would be absurd, however,
to change this logical principle so that it reads thus: what is not contained in a universal concept is also not contained in the particular ones that fall under it; for these are particular concepts precisely because they contain more than is thought in the universal one. Now plainly the whole intellec tual system of Leibniz is actually built upon this latter principle;
1 16
and hence his system falls simultaneously with this principle, along with all the ambiguity, arising therefrom, in the use of understanding. The principle ll 7 of the indistinguishable 1 l 8 is in fact based on the pre supposition that if a certain distinction is not found in the concept of a thing as such, then it is also not to be found in the things themselves; and that consequently all things that are not already distinguished from one another (in quality or quantity) in their concepts are completely the same (numero eadem). 1 l 9 Yet in the mere concept of some thing or other one has already abstracted from some necessary conditions of an intuition; and hence, through an odd hastiness, what one is abstracting from is taken for some B 338
thing that is not to be found at all, and nothing is granted to the thing ex cept what its concept contains.
A 282
The concept of a cubic foot of space, no matter where and how often I think of it, is in itself always completely the same. But two cubic feet are nonetheless distinguished in space
(numero diversa)/ 2o merely by their lo
cations. These locations are conditions of the intuition wherein the object of this concept is given; and although these conditions do not belong to the
concept, they still belong to all of sensibility. In like manner, there is no
conflict at all in the concept of a thing if nothing negative is combined with an affirmative [characteristic] ; and merely affirmative concepts cannot, when combined, bring about any annulment. But in the sensible intuition 1 1 5 [The dictum of all and none; i.e., the rule that what belongs to or contradicts the genus or species also belongs to or contradicts all objects that are contained under that genus or spe cies. See the Logic, Ak. IX, 123. This rule is there said to be easily deducible from the prin ciple on which rests the possibility and validity of all categorical syllogisms: What belongs to the charactenstic of a thing also belongs to the thing itself; and what contradicts the char acteristic of a thing also contradicts the thing itself.] 1 1 6[Grundsatz.] 1 17 [Satz; viz., the principle of the identity of indiscernibles. Cf. A 264IB 320.] 1 1 " [Or
'of the indiscernible' : des Nichtzuunterscheidenden.]
1 19[Numerically the same.] 12°[Numerically different.]
APPENDIX
AMPHIBOLY OF CONCEPTS OF REFLECTION
339
wherein reality (e.g., motion) is given we do find conditions (opposite di rections), 1 2 1 from which we were abstracting in the concept of motion as such, that make possible a conflict, though indeed not a logical one: viz., a zero, = 0, arising from none but positive [characteristics] ; and we could 1 not say that all realities 1 22 are in harmony 23 with one another because no conflict is to be found among their concepts. 1 24 Again, according to mere concepts the intrinsic is the substratum of all relational 1 25 or extrinsic 126 determinations. If, therefore, I abstract from all conditions of intuition and
{ B 339
A 283
keep solely to the concept of a thing as such, then I can abstract from all extrinsic relation, and there must yet remain a concept of what signifies no relation at all but signifies merely intrinsic determinations. Now from this it then seems to follow that in every thing (substance) there is something that is absolutely intrinsic and that precedes all extrinsic determinations in asmuch as it makes them possible in the first place, and that hence this sub stratum is something that no longer contains any extrinsic relations and con sequently is simple. (For corporeal things still are never more than relations, at least relations of the parts outside one another.) And because we are not acquainted with any absolutely intrinsic l 27 determinations except those [given] through our inner1 28 sense, it thus seems to follow that this sub stratum is not only simple but is also (by analogy with our inner sense) determined through presentations, i.e., it seems to follow that all things are 12 1 [See the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak. IV, 491-94.] 122[alle Realitiit. ] 1 23[Reading, with Hartenstein and the Akademie edition, in Einstimmung for Einstimmung.]
l�f we here were to make use of the usual subterfuge and to say that at least re alitates noumenaa cannot act in opposition to one another, then we would surely
have to adduce an example of such a pure and sense-free reality, in order to un derstand whether such a reality indeed representsb something or rather nothing at all. Yet we can get no example from anywhere else but from experience, which never offers us more than phenomena; and hence this propositionC means nothing more than that a concept containing only affirmations contains nothing negative--a Proposition that we never doubted. a[Noumenal realities.] b[ vorst ellen. ] <[That noumenal realities cannot act in opposition to one another.] 12S[Re . admg, with Hartenstein and the Akademie edition, Verhiiltnis- for Verhiiltnis.]
126[Or 'outer' ; similarly for the next three occurrences of 'extnnsic '] 1 27 (inner.] 128 [inner.]
B 339
340 B 340
in fact
PART II
monads,
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
or [i.e.] simple beings endowed with presentations. In
deed, all of this would be correct, were it not that, besides the concept of A 284
a thing as such, something more belongs to the conditions under which alone objects of outer intuition can be given to us and from which the pure concept abstracts. For thus we find that a permanent appearance in space (impenetrable extension) can contain only relations and nothing absolutely intrinsic, and can yet be the primary substratum of all outer perception. Through mere concepts I cannot indeed think anything extrinsic without something intrinsic, 1 29 precisely because relational concepts do presup pose things given absolutely and are impossible without them. Intuition, however, contains something that does not lie at all in the mere concept of a thing as such; and this something provides us with the substratum that through mere concepts would not be cognized at all: viz., a space that, with all that it contains, consists of nothing but formal-or, for that matter,
real-relations. Hence I cannot say that, because without something 130 ab solutely intrinsic no thing can be presented through mere concepts, there is also in the things themselves that are contained under these concepts, and in their intuition, nothing extrinsic that is not based on something ab B 34 1
A 285
solutely intrinsic. For once we have abstracted from all conditions of in tuition, then we are indeed left with nothing in the mere concept but the intrinsic [characteristics] as such and their relations among one another through which alone the extrinsic is possible. But this necessity, which is based solely on abstraction, does not occur in the case of things insofar as they are given in intuition with determinations that express mere relations without being based on anything intrinsic; for such things are not things in themselves, but are merely appearances. Whatever [characteristics] we are acquainted with in matter are nothing but relations (what we c all its intrin sic determinations is intrinsic only comparatively); but among these rela tions there are independent 131 and permanent ones, through which a deter minate object is given to us. The fact that, if I abstract from these relations,
I am left with nothing further to think does not annul the concept of a thing as appearance, nor the concept of an object in abstracto; but it does annul any possibility of an object determinable in terms of mere c oncepts, i.e., any possibility of a noumenon. It is startling, to be sure, to hear that a thing 1 29 [Or, respectively, 'outer' and 'inner.' Similarly for the remaining occurrences of these termS in this passage.] 13° [ein.] 1 31 [selbsliindig ]
APPENDIX
AMPHIBOLY OF CONCEPTS OF REFLECTION
34 1
is supposed to consist altogether of relations. Such a thing, however, also is mere appearance and cannot be thought at all through pure categories; the thing itself consists in the mere relation of something as such to the senses. Similarly, if we begin with mere concepts, then indeed we cannot think the relations of things in abstracto except in such a way that one thing is the cause of determinations in another; for this is our understanding's concept of relations itself. But because we are then abstracting from all in tuition, we are dropping an entire way in which the manifold [elements] can determine their location for one another, viz., the form of sensibility (space), which in fact precedes all empirical causality. If by merely intelligible objects we mean those things that are thought1 32 through pure categories, without any schema of sensibility, then such ob jects are impossible. For the condition of the objective use of all our con cepts of understanding is merely the kind of intuition we have-the sen sible intuition 133 whereby objects 134 are given to us; and if we abstract from this intuition, then those concepts have no reference to any object. 135 In deed, even if we were to assume a kind of intuition other than this our sen sible one, yet our functions of thought would in regard to it have no sig nification whatever. If, on the other hand, by merely intelligible objects we mean merely objects of a nonsensible intuition-objects for which, to be sure, our categories do not hold and of which therefore we can never have any cognition at all (neither intuition nor concept)-then noumena in this merely negative signification must indeed be admitted. For we are then say ing nothing more than that our kind of intuition does not deal with all things, but deals merely with objects of our senses; that consequently its objective validity is bounded; and that hence there remains room for some other kind of intuition and therefore also for things as objects of it. But in that case the concept of a noumenon is problematic; i.e., it is then the pre sentation of a thing about which we can say neither that it is possible nor that it is impossible. For we are not acquainted with any kind of intuition Whatever but our sensible one, nor with any kind of concepts but the cat egories; yet neither of the two is appropriate for an extrasensible1 36 object. hi
1l2[I n s working copy of edition A (see Preliminary Studies and Supplementary Entries�ited at A 191B 33 br. n. l 3-Ak. XXIII, 49), Kant changes this to: 'cognized by us.'] 13l [LiteralIy, Kant says 'the kind of our sensible intuition.'] 1 14 [Gegenstiinde.] IlS [Objekt.] 1 36[a'4l ersinnlich. ]
B 342
A 286
B 343
A 287
342
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
Hence admitting such noumena does not yet allow us to expand positively the realm of the objects of our thought beyond the conditions of our sen
sibility, and to assume that besides appearances there are also objects of
pure thought, i.e., noumena, because these objects have no positive signi
fication that we can indicate. For we must confess concerning the catego ries that, when taken alone, they are not yet sufficient for cognition of things in themselves, and that without the data of sensibility they would merely be subjective forms, without an object, 137 of the unity of understanding. Thought is not, indeed, in itself a product of the senses, and is to that ex tent also not limited by them; but it does not therefore have its own and pure use forthwith, without the assistance of sensibility, since it is then with out an object. We also cannot call the noumenon such an
for this 1 3 signifies precisely the problematic concept of an object for S a quite dif
B 344
object;
ferent intuition and for an understanding quite different from ours-an ob
ject that hence is itself a problem. 139 Hence the concept of the noumenon is not the concept of an object; rather, it is the problem, 1 40 linked inevita bly with the limitation of our sensibility, as to whether there may not be
A 288
objects wholly detached from this sensibility's intuition. This question can be answered only indeterminately. We can say, viz., that because sensible intuition does not deal with all things without distinction, there remains room for more and different objects, and that therefore such objects can not be absolutely denied; but that in the absence of a determinate con cept1 4 1 (since no category is suitable for this) they also cannot be asserted as objects for our understanding. Accordingly the understanding limits sensibility, but without therefore expanding its own realm. And inasmuch as the understanding warns sen sibility not to claim to deal with things in themselves but solely with ap
pearances, it does think an object in itself. But the understanding thinks it only as transcendental object. This object is the cause of appearance (hence is not itself appearance) and can be thought neither as magnitude nor as 1 37[Here Kant says Gegenstand; in the next two occurrences of 'object' he says Objekt; then again Gegenstand; and so on. Cf. A vii br. n. 7.] 1 3 8 [In his working copy of edition A (see Preliminary Studies and Supplementary Entries--cited at A 19/B 33 br n. 1 3-Ak. XXIII, 49), Kant writes ' [exhibited] before.'] 1 39 [Problem.] 1 40 [Aufgabe.]
1 4 1 [Of such objec.ts.]
APPENDIX
AMPHIBOLY OF CONCEPTS OF REFLECTION
343
reality nor as substance, etc. (because these concepts always require sen sible forms wherein they determine an object). Hence concerning this ob ject we are completely ignorant l 42 as to whether it is to be found in us--or, for that matter, outside us; and whether it would be annulled simulta neously with sensibility, or would still remain if we removed sensibility. If
B 345
we want to call this object noumenon, because the presentation of it is not sensible, then we are free to do so. But since we cannot apply to it any of our concepts of understanding, the presentation yet remains empty for us, and does not serve for anything but to mark the bounds of our sensible cognition and to leave us with room that we can fill neither through pos
A 289
sible experience nor through pure understanding. The critique of this pure understanding, therefore, does not permit one to create a new realm of objects apart from those that it may encounter as appearances, and to stray into intelligible worlds-not even into the con cept of them. The mistake which in an utterly plausible manner misleads philosophers into doing so, and which is indeed excusable although not jus tifiable, lies in this move: the use of understanding, contrary to understand ing's vocation, has been made transcendental; and thus objects, i.e., pos sible intuitions, must conform to concepts-instead of concepts' conforming to possible intuitions (as that whereon alone their objective validity rests). But the cause of this move, in tum, is that apperception, and with it thought, precedes all possible determinate arrangement of presentations. We there fore think something as such and, on the one hand, determine it sensibly; but, on the other hand, we yet distinguish from this way of intuiting it the universal object presented
B 346
in abstracto. And thus we are left with a way of
determining the object merely through thought; and although this way of determining the object is a mere logical form without content, it nonethe less seems to us to be a way in which the object exists in itself (as nou menon), i.e., without taking account of the intuition that is limited to our senses. Before we leave the Transcendental Analytic, we must still add some thing that, although not of special importance in itself, might yet seem re quired for the completeness of the system. The highest concept from which philosophers tend to begin a transcendental philosophy is usually the di vision into the possible and the impossible. But since any division presup-
142[unbekannt.]
A 290
344
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
poses a divided concept, a still higher concept must be indicated, and this is the concept of an object as such (taken problematically, and whether it is something or nothing being left undecided). Since the categories are the only concepts referring to objects as such, the distinction of an object as
B 347
to whether it is something or nothing will proceed according to the order and instruction of the categories. 1 . The concepts of everything, of much, and of one are opposed by the concept that annuls everything, i.e., none. And thus the object of a concept to which there corresponds no intuition whatever that one can indicate is =
nothing. I.e., it is a concept without an object
(ens rationis) 1 43_as nou
mena are, which cannot be numbered among the possibilities, even though they must not on that account be claimed to be impossible; or as, say, cer A 29 1
tain new fundamental forces that are being thought are indeed thought with out contradiction, but also without an example from experience, and hence must not be numbered among the possibilities. 144 2. Reality is something; negation is nothing, viz., the concept of the lack of an object
B 348
(nihil privativum) 1 45-as,
e.g., shadow or cold. 3. The mere foan of intuition, without substance, is in itself no object, but is the merely foanal condition of an object (as appearance) (i.e., it is an ens imaginarium) 1 46-as pure space and pure time. These are indeed something, viz., as foans for intuiting, but are not themselves objects that are intuited. 4. The object of a concept that contradicts itself is nothing because the concept is nothing; it is the impossible (nihil negativum) 1 47_as say, a two sided rectilinear figure. ,
14J [Being of reason. Cf. A 68 1
=
B 709 and A 669
=
B 697.]
144 [See the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak. IV, 498-99.] 145 [Privative nothing.] 146[Imaginary being.] 147 [Negative nothing.]
APPENDIX
AMPHIBOLY OF CONCEPTS OF REFLECTION
345
Hence the table of this division of the concept of nothing (for the par allel division, of something, follows from this on its own) would have to be set up thus: NOTHING
A
292
B
349
as
1 Empty concept without object,
ens rationis 2
3
Empty object
Empty intuition
of a concept,
without object,
nihil privativum
ens imaginarium 4
Empty object without concept,
nihil negativum We see that the thought-entity 148 (no. 1) is distinguished from the non
entity149 (no. 4) by the fact that the thought-entity must not be numbered among the possibilities, because it is mere invention (although not contra dictory invention), whereas the nonentity is opposed to possibility inas much as the concept annuls even itself. Both are, however, empty con
cepts. The nihil privativum (no. 2) and the ens imaginarium (no. 3), on the other hand, are empty data for concepts. If light has not been given to the senses, then one cannot present darkness either; and if extended beings have not been perceived, then one cannot present space. Both negation and the mere form of intuition, if without something real, are no objects.
14R[U
149
terally. 'thought-thing ' : Gedankending .]
Wnding: 'nonthing,' literally, with absurdity implied. Cf. A 391B 56, B 7 1 , and B 274. Cf.
allo A 51/8 75.]
A 293
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC DIVISION II TRANSCENDENTAL DIALECTIC 1 INTRODUCTION2 I ON TRANSCENDENTAL ILLUSION Above3 we called dialectic as such4 a logic of illusion. This does not mean that it is a doctrine of probability. 5 For probability is truth, but truth cog' [See W. H. Walsh, Kant's Criticism of Metaphysics (Chicago: Chicago University Press, 1 975), 1 69-76. (This work has not been cited before, but its earlier parts often provide con cise help for comprehending Kant's basic meanings in the first half of the Critique.) See also H. W Cassirer, op. cit. at A 2 1 1B 35 br. n. 238-48. Also J. N. Findlay, op. cit. at A 211B 35 br. n. 1 95-200. Also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 425-54. And see T. D. Weldon, op. cit. at A 2 1 1B 35 br. n. 197-20 1 . The last half of the Critique (of the Doctrine of Elements, stnctly speaking) has stimulated less commentary than the first half. J. N. Findlay (on page 195 of the work just cited) offers the following provocative observation: "We pass from the many badly overgrown, hazardous bunkers of the Transcendental Ana lytic to the comparatively smooth, green fairways of the Transcendental Dialectic, where there are fewer hermeneutic problems." Here the practice followed in the first half of the Critique is followed again in the second half: only such secondary sources are cited as are considered to be for the most part sympathetic to Kant's views and helpful for comprehending his mean ings. No attempt is made to provide a complete listing of secondary sources-a task of Her culean proportions.]
22,
22,
22,
2 [See Heinz Heimsoeth, Transzendentale Dialektik: Ein Kommentar zu Kants Kritik der reinen Vernunft (Berlin: Walter de Gruyter, 1 966-7 1 ), vol. I , I - IS.] 3[A 611B 86.] 4 [iiberhaupr. My reason for translating this term in this way is given at B xxvii br. n. 106.] 5['Illusion' translates Schein, which also means 'seeming'; and 'probability' renders Wahr scheinlichkeit, which literally means 'seeming true ']
346
DIVISION II
INTRODUCTION
347
nized through insufficient bases; 6 and although cognition7 of such truth is therefore deficient, yet it is not on that account deceptive, and hence must not be separated from the analytic part of logic. Still less may and
illusions be regarded as being the same.
appearance
For truth and illusion are not
B 350
in the object insofar as it is intuited, but are in the judgment made about the object9 insofar as it is thought. Hence although it is correct to say that the senses do not err, this is so not because they always judge correctly but because they do not judge at all. Thus both truth and error, and hence also illusion as the process of mistakenly leadinglO to error, are to be found only in the judgment, i.e., only in the relation of the object to our understand ing. In a cognition l l that accords throughout with the laws of understand ing there is no error. There is also no error in a presentation 12 of the senses
A
294
(because it contains no judgment at all). But no force of nature can devi ate from its own laws by itself. Thus neither the understanding on its own (i.e., apart from the influence of another cause), nor the senses by them selves would err. The understanding would not err, because, if it acts merely in accordance with its laws, then the effect (the judgment) must necessar ily agree with these laws; but the formal [element] of all truth consists in the agreement with the laws of the understanding. And in the senses there is no judgment at all, neither a true nor a false one. Now because we have no other sources of cognition besides these two, it follows that error comes about only by sensibility'S unnoticed influence on understanding. Through
this influence it comes about that the l 3 subjective bases of the judgment meld 14 with the objective ones and make them deviate 1 S from their [proper] 6[Or 'grounds' or 'reasons' : Griinde. See B xix br. n. 79.] 7 [Erkenntnis. For the distinction between cognition and knowledge ( Wissen), see A vii br. n. 6.] 8 [Erscheinung, Schein.] 9[Gegenstand, in this case. See A vii br. n. 7.] IO [Verleitung. ] 11 [ Of the object.] 12 [ Vorstellung. My reason for translating Vorstellung as 'presentation' rather than as 'repre sentation' is given at B xvii br. n. 73.]
13 ['the' added in B.] 14 [ zusammenjliefJen.] 1, [ Literally, 'deviant': abweichend.)
B 35 1
348
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
detennination16-just as a body in motion would indeed by itself always keep to a straight line in the same direction, but is deflected 17 into curvi linear motion if influenced 1 8 at the same time by another force acting in A 295
another direction. 1 9 Hence in order to distinguish the action peculiar to un derstanding from the force20 that mingles with it, we shall need to regard an erroneous judgment as the diagonal between two forces2 1 detennining
the judgment in two different directions that-as it were-enclose an angle, and to resolve this composite action into the simple ones of understanding and of sensibility. 22 In the case of pure a priori judgments we must do this
by transcendental deliberation,23 whereby (as has already been shown)24
every presentation is assigned its place in the cognitive power appropriate to it, and whereby the influence of sensibility on understanding25 is there fore also distinguished. B 352
It is not our task here to deal with empirical (e.g., optical) illusion, which occurs in the empirical use of otherwise correct rules of understanding, and through which our power of judgment26 is misled by the influence of imagi nation. Here we have to do, rather, solely with transcendental illusion, which influences principles whose use is not even designed for experience; if it were, then we would, after all, at least have a touchstone of their cor rectness. Rather, transcendental illusion carries us, even despite all the warnings issued by critique, entirely beyond the empirical use of the cat egories and puts us off with the deception of there being an expansion of
B 35 1
16Sensibility, when laid at the basis of understanding, as the object to which un derstanding applies its function, is the source of real cognitions. But the same sen sibility, insofar as it influences the understanding's acts themselves and determines it to make judgments, is the basis of error. l 7 [Actually Kant says that the line is so deflected.) 1 8[einftiej3en.) 19[This is Newton's first law of motion. See the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Sci ence, Ak. IV, 543.) 20 [Or (if Kraft is taken in the sense of Vermogen) '[mental] power.' On my use of 'power' for Vermogen, see A xii br. n. 16.) 2 1 [Or 'powers.' See the preceding note.] 22[See the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak. IV, 492.) 23 [See A 260/B 3 1 6 inc\. br. n. 4.] 24[A 260-92/B 3 16-49.) 25 [der letzteren [Erkenntniskraft] aUfjene.] 2o [Urteilskraft See A 130/B 1 69 br. n. 3.]
DIVISION II
pure understanding.
INTRODUCTION
349
Let us call the principles27 whose application keeps
altogether within the limits of possible experience immanent principles, and those that are to fly beyond these limits transcendent principles. But by
A 296
transcendent principles I do not mean the transcendental use or misuse of the categories, which is a mere mistake made by the power of judgment when, not being duly curbed by critique, it does not pay enough attention to the boundaries of the territory on which alone our pure understanding is permitted to engage in its play. Rather, I mean by them actual principles requiring28 us to tear down all those boundary posts and to claim an en tirely new territory that recognizes no demarcation at all. Hence
transcen
dental and transcendent
are not the same. The principles of pure under standing that we have put forth above29 are to be of empirical and not of transcendental use, i.e., use extending beyond the boundary of experience.
B 353
But a principle that removes these limits-indeed, even commands us to step beyond them-is called
transcendent.
If our critique can manage to
uncover the illusion in these claimed principles, then the principles of merely empirical use may be called, in contrast to the transcendent ones,
immanent principles
of pure understanding. Logical illusion (the illusion of fallacious inferences), which consists in the mere imitation of the form of reason, arises solely from a lack of at tentiveness in regard to the logical rule. Hence as soon as our attentiveness is sharpened in regard to the case before us, the illusion entirely vanishes. Transcendental illusion, on the other hand, does not cease even when we have already uncovered it and have, through transcendental critique, had distinct insight into its nullity. (An example is the illusion in the proposi tion that the world must have a beginning in terms of time.)30 The cause of this is that in our reason (regarded subjectively as a human cognitive power) there lie basic rules and maxims of its use that have entirely the look of objective principles; and through this it comes about that the sub jective necessity of a certain connection of our concepts for the benefit of understanding is regarded as an objective necessity of the determination of things in themselves. This is an 2'
illusion
that we cannot at all avoid any
[Grundsiitze, in this case. On my use of 'principle' to render both Prinzip and Grundsatz,
see A vii br. n. 7.]
28 [Or 'expecting,' in the sense that implies not a waiting but a demand (cf. 'command,' just below): zumuten.] 29 [A l 30-292/B 169-349.]
lO
[See A 426-33/B 454-6 1 .]
A 297
350 B 354
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
more than we can avoid the illusion that the sea seems to us higher3 ! in the center than at the shore because we see the center through higher light rays than the shore; or-better yet-any more than even the astronomer can prevent the moon from seeming larger to him as it rises, 32 although he is not deceived by this illusion. Hence the transcendental dialectic will settle for uncovering the illusion of transcendent judgments, and for simultaneously keeping it from deceiv ing us. But that the illusion should even vanish as well (as does logical il lusion) and cease to be an illusion-this the transcendental dialectic can
A 298
never accomplish. For here we are dealing with a natural and unavoidable illusion that itself rests on SUbjective principles and foists 33 them on us as objective ones, whereas a logical dialectic in resolving fallacious infer ences deals only with a mistake in the compliance with principles, or with an artificial illusion created in imitating such inferences. Hence there is a natural and unavoidable dialectic of pure reason. This dialectic is not one in which a bungler might become entangled on his own through lack of
knowledge, 34 or one that some sophist has devised artificially in order to confuse reasonable people. It is, rather, a dialectic that attaches to human reason unpreventably35 and that, even after we have uncovered this decep B 355
tion, still will not stop hoodwinking and thrusting reason incessantly into momentary aberrations that always need to be removed.
31 [Kant actually says 'not higher,' as if instead of 'avoid' he had said 'arrange.' Similarly with 'prevent' in the example just below.] 32 [Than it does later on ] 33 [unterschieben.] 34 [Kenntnisse.] 35 [unhintertreiblich.]
DIVISION II
INTRODUCTION
35 1
II ON PURE REASON AS THE SEAT OF TRANSCENDENTAL ILLUSION36 A On Reason As Such All our cognition37 starts from the senses, proceeds from there to under standing, and ends with reason, beyond which there is found in us nothing higher to work on the material of intuition and bring it under the highest
unity of thought. Because I am now to provide an explication of this our
A
299
supreme cognitive power, I find myself in some perplexity. There is of rea son, as there is of understanding, a merely formal-i.e., logical-use, where
reason abstracts from all content of cognition. But there is also a real use, where reason itself contains the origin of certain concepts and principles that it borrows neither from the senses nor from understanding. Now the first use or power38 has indeed long since been explicated by logicians as the power of making mediate inferences (as distinguished from immedi ate39 inferences, consequentiae immediatae).40 But this explication does not yet give us insight into the second power, which itself produces concepts. Now since we here encounter a division of reason into a logical and a tran scendental power, we must search for a higher concept of this source of cognition which comprises both concepts under itself. By analogy with the concepts of understanding41 we may, however, expect that the logical con cept42 will provide us simultaneously with the key to the transcendental concept, and the table of the functions of logical reason43 simultaneously with the root chart44 of the concepts of reason. 36[See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 2931B 349 br. n. 2, vol. 1 , 1 5-25.] 37 [ Erkenntnis. See A vii br. n. 6.) 38 [Or 'ability': Vermogen. See A xii br. n. 16.] 39 [unmittelbar, which I usually (but, of course, not in the sense used in logic) render as 'di rec t.' See B xxxix br. n. 144c.) 4O[C f. Kant's own Logic, Ak. IX, 1 14, also 1 15-36.].
4 1 [See above, A 70-831B 95-110.] 42 [Of reason.] 43 [ der ersteren.) 44 [Stammleiter.]
B 356
352
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
In the first part of our transcendental logic we explicated the under standing as our power of rules.45 Here we shall distinguish reason from understanding by calling it our power A 300
of principles.
The term principle46 is ambiguous, and commonly means only a cog nition that can be used as a principle47 although in itself and according to its own origin it is not a principle. Every universal proposition, even if it were obtained (by induction) from experience, can serve as major premise in a syllogism;48 but it is not therefore itself a principle. The mathematical axioms (e.g., the axiom that between two points there can be only one
straight line) are even a priori universal cognitions, and are therefore rightly called principles relatively to the instances that can be subsumed under them. But surely I cannot therefore say that I cognize this property of B 357
straight lines, as such and in itself, from principles; rather, I cognize it only in pure intuition.49
I would, therefore, call cognition from principles only that cognition wherein I cognize the particular in the universal through concepts. Thus any syllogism is a form of deriving a cognition from a principle. For the major premise always provides a concept whereby everything that is sub sumed under the condition of this concept is cognized from it according to a principle. Now since every universal cognition can serve as major premise
A 301
in a syllogism, and since the understanding offers such universal proposi tions a priori, these propositions may indeed be called principles in regard to their possible use. But if we consider these principles50 of pure understanding in them selves according to their origin, then they are anything but cognitions from concepts. For they would not even be possible a priori if we did not bring in our pure intuition (in mathematics) or conditions of a possible experi ence as such. The principle that everything that occurs has a cause cannot be inferred at all from the concept of what occurs as such; the principle 45 [ See A 126-27, A 1 321B 1 7 1 , A 158-611B 197-200.]
46[Emphasis added.] 47 [Prinzip here and just above; Principium just below and in the subsequent occurrence. Kant uses the two forms of the term interchangeably.] 48 [Vemunftschluft, literally 'inference of reason.') 49 rSee above, B 40-41 ) 50 [Grundsatze here, Prinzipien in the preceding sentence. Kant clearly continues to use the two terms interchangeably, as is here shown by his use of the demonstrative pronoun 'these. ' See A vii br. n. 7.]
DIVISION II
INTRODUCTION
353
shows, rather, how we can acquire i n the first place a detenninate experi ential concept of what occurs. Hence the understanding cannot at all furnish synthetic cognitions from concepts; and it is properly speaking these cognitions that I call principles absolutely, whereas all universal propositions as such may be called com
B
358
parative principles. There is an ancient wish which some day, who knows how remote, will perhaps be fulfilled: viz., that we might yet, instead of the endless mani foldness of civil laws, locate their principles. For in this locating of their principles alone can the secret of-as we say-simplifying legislation con sist. Yet here the laws are also only limitations of our freedom that restrict it to conditions under which it thoroughly harmonizes with itself; and hence they concern something that is entirely our own work and whereof we our selves can, through those concepts,5 1 be the cause. 52 But how objects in themselves, and how the nature of things, are to be subject to principles
A 302
and to be determined according to mere concepts is something that, if not impossible, is still at least quite preposterous in its demand. But whatever may be the situation here (for the inquiry into this issue is still ahead of us), it at least shows that cognition from (what are in themselves) prin ciples is something quite different from mere cognition of understanding. Cognition of understanding, too, can indeed in the form of a principle pre cede other cognitions; but in itself it does not (insofar as it is synthetic) rest on mere thought, nor does it contain a universal according to concepts. The understanding may be considered a power of providing unity of ap pearances by means of rules; reason is then the power of providing unity of the rules of understanding under principles. Hence reason initially53 never deals with experience or any object, but deals with the understand ing in order to provide the understanding'S manifold cognitions with a priori unity through concepts. This unity may be called unity of reason, and is quite different in kind from what unity the understanding can achieve. This is the universal concept of our power of reason, insofar as making this concept comprehensible has been possible in spite of a complete lack of examples (which are to be provided only later). sl rOf
laws.]
S2[See the Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals, Ak. III, 4 1 1 - 1 2.] s3 [zuniichst.]
B
359
354
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
B On the Logical Use of Reason
A 303
We make a distinction between what is cognized directly54 and what is only inferred. The fact that in a figure bounded by three straight lines there are three angles is cognized directly; but the fact that these angles taken to gether are equal to two right angles is only inferred. Since we constantly need to make inferences and thereby finally become quite accustomed to doing so, we ultimately no longer take note of this distinction, and often-as B 360
in the-so-called deception of the senses-regard as directly perceived some thing that we yet only inferred. In every argument55 there is one proposi
one other proposition, viz., the conclusion56 drawn the inference (consequentia)57 whereby the truth of
tion that lies at the basis; from it; and, finally,
the second proposition is connected inevitably with the truth of the first. If the inferred judgment is already so contained in the first judgment that it can be derived from it without mediation by a third presentation, then the inference is called immediate58 (consequentia immediata); I would prefer to call it an inference of understanding.59 But if, apart from the cognition laid at the basis, still another judgment is needed to bring about the con clusion,6o then the inference is called an inference of reason.6 1 The propo sition
All human beings are mortal already
contains the propositions that
some human beings are mortal, that some mortals are human beings, and A 304
that nothing that is immortal is a human being; and these propositions are therefore immediate inferences from the first one. The proposition that all scholars are mortal, on the other hand, is not contained in the judgment laid at the basis62 (for the concept of scholars does not occur there at all), and can be inferred from it only by means of an intermediate63 judgment.
54 [unmittelbar. See B xxxix br. n. 144c.] 55 [Schluft. On this entire subsection, cf. the Logic, Ak. IX, 1 14-36.]. 56 [Folgerung.] 57 [Schluftjolge (Konsequenz).]
58[l.e., unmediated (direct): unmittelbar.] 59[See the Logic, Ak. IX, Ak. l I S.] 6O [Folge.]
6 1 [Or 'syllogism' : Vemunftschluft.] 62 [l.e., that all human beings are mortal.] 63 [Zwischen-.]
DIVISION II
INTRODUCTION
355
In every syllogism64 I first think a
rule (maior)65 by the understanding. Second, I subsume a cognition (minor) under the condition of the rule by means of the power ofjudgment. Finally, I determine my cognition (con dusio) by the predicate of the rule and hence a priori by reason. Therefore
B
361
A
305
the various kinds of syllogism consist in the relation that the major premise,
as the rule, presents between a cognition and its condition. Hence syllo gisms are threefold, as are all judgments as such insofar as they differ in the way in which they express the cognition's relation in the understand ing; viz., they are either
gisms.66
categorical
or
hypothetical
or
disjunctive
syllo
What usually happens is that the conclusion67 has been assigned as a judgment68 in order to see whether it does not issue from judgments al ready given, viz., judgments through which a quite different object is thought. When this is the task set for me, then I locate the assertion of this conclusion69 in the understanding, in order to see whether it does not occur in it under certain conditions according to a universal rule. If I then find such a condition, and if the object of the conclusion can be sub sumed under the given condition, then the conclusion is inferred70 from the rule
which holds also for other objects of cognition. We see
from this 7 1 that reason in making inferences seeks to reduce the great manifold ness of understanding's cognition to72 the smallest number of principles (universal conditions) and thereby to bring about the highest unity of this cognition.
64 [Or 'inference of reason': Vernunftschlufl. ] fiS [I.e., propositio maior: major premise. Analogously for minor, just below.] 66[See the Logic, Ak. IX, 1 2 1 -22.] 67 [Konklusion.]
fi8[I.e., as asserted.] 69 [Schluflsatz.] 7° [folgern.]
7\ [schlie./3en.] 72[Here 'reduce to' translates bringen aUf.]
356 B
PART II
TRANS CENDENTAL LOGIC
C On the Pure Use of Reason
362
Can one isolate reason? And is it then still on its own73 a source of con cepts and judgments which arise solely from it and through which it refers to objects? Or is it then a merely subsidiary74 power to provide given cog nitions with a certain form, a form which is called logical and through which the cognitions of understanding are only subordinated to one an other, and lower rules subordinated to other and higher rules (whose con dition comprises in its sphere the condition of the lower rules), to what ever extent this can be accomplished by comparing them? This is the question with which we are now dealing only provisionally. Manifoldness of rules and unity of principles is indeed a demand of reason. Reason makes this demand in order to bring the understanding into thoroughgoing coher ence with itself, just as the u nderstanding brings the manifold of intuition A
306
under concepts and thereby brings the intuition into connection. But such a principle75 prescribes no law to objects, and does not contain the basis for the possibility of cognizing and determining them as objects at all. It is, rather, merely a subjective law for the management of understanding's supplies, [instructing understanding] to reduce the universal use of its concepts-by comparing them-to their smallest possible number. This [in
B
363
struction] does not entitle us to demand from objects themselves such ac cordance as would promote the convenience and the broadening of our un derstanding, and to provide that maxim with objective validity as well. In a word, the question is: Does reason in itself, i.e., pure reason, a priori con tain synthetic principles and rules; and in what may these principles con sist? Reason's formal and logical procedure in syllogisms already gives us sufficient guidance concerning the basis on which will rest reason's tran scendental principle as used in synthetic cognition through pure reason. First, an inference of reason 76 does not deal with intuitions in order to bring them under rules (as does understanding with its categories), but deals with concepts and judgments. Hence even if pure reason deals with ob-
73[eigen.] 74[subaltern.] "[I.e., a principle that is only a demand.] 76[Or 'syllogism" VernunftschluJ3.]
DIVISION II
INTRODUCTION
357
jects, it still has no direct77 reference to them and their intuition, but refers directly only to understanding and its judgments; understanding and its judgments are what initially turn to the senses and their intuition in order
A
307
B
364
A
308
B
365
to determine the object of these. Hence unity of reason is not unity of a possible experience-which is the unity of understanding-but the former unity is essentially different from the latter unity. The principle that every thing that occurs has a cause is not at all a principle cognized and pre scribed by reason. It makes possible the unity of experience and borrows nothing from reason; reason could not, without this reference to possible experience and hence from mere concepts, have commanded such syn thetic unity. Second, reason in its logical use seeks the universal condition of its judg ment (i.e., of the conclusion), and a syllogism is itself nothing but a judg ment made by means of subsuming its condition under a universal rule (ma jor premise). Now this rule is in tum exposed to the same attempt by reason, and thus the condition of the condition must, as long as doing so is fea sible, be sought (by means of a prosyllogism);78 and hence we readily see that the principle79 peculiar to reason as such (in its logical use) is: to find, for understanding's conditioned cognition, the unconditioned whereby the
cognition's unity is completed. 80
But this logical maxim can become a principle8 l of pure
reason only by
our assuming that, if the conditioned is given, then the entire series of con ditions subordinated to one another-a series that is hence itself unconditioned-is also given (i.e., contained in the object and its connec tion). Such a principle of pure reason, however, is plainly
synthetic;
for al
though the conditioned does refer analytically to some condition, it does not so refer to the unconditioned. Moreover, from this principle there must arise various synthetic propositions of which pure understanding knows nothing ; for pure understanding has to do only with objects of a possible experience, and the cognition and synthesis of such objects is always con77[Or 'immediate' : unmittelbar. See B xxxix hr. n. 144c.] . 78[0n prosylloglsms (and episyllogisms), cf. A 33 1 1B 387-88 incl. hr. n. 1 87 ; also the Logic, Ak. IX, 1 34.] 79[Grundsatz.]
BO[Or 'perfected': vollendet.] u [P rincipium.]
358
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
ditioned. But the unconditioned, if such there actually is,82 may 83 be ex amined specially according to all those detenninations84 that distinguish it
from everything conditioned, and must thereby provide material for many synthetic a priori propositions. The principles85 arising from this supreme principle86 of reason will,
however, be transcendent in regard to all appearances; i.e., no empirical use adequate to this principle can ever be made of it. It will, therefore, be entirely different from all principles of understanding (whose use is wholly immanent, because they have as their subject87 only the possibility of ex perience). Our task in the transcendental dialectic, then, will be to answer the following questions. Does that principle-i.e., that the series of condi tions (in the synthesis of appearances, or, for that matter, in that of the think ing of things as such) extends up to the unconditioned-have, or does it A 309
not have, its objective correctness; and what inferences issue from it for the empirical use of understanding?88 Or is there, rather, no such objec tively valid proposition of reason at all, but a merely logical precept89 to seek, in ascending to ever higher conditions, to approach their complete ness90 and thereby to bring into our cognition the highest unity of reason that is possible for US?91 In other words: Has this need of reason been re
B
366
garded, by a misunderstanding, as a transcendental principle of pure rea son that rashly postulates such unlimited completeness in92 the series of conditions found in the objects themselves? But, in that case, what misun derstandings and delusions may be creeping also into syllogisms, whose 82 [statthaben.1
83[The third, fourth, and fifth editions have 'will' instead. I 84 [Bestimmungen. See A 231B 37 br. n. 30.1
85 [Grundsiitze.1 86 [Prinzip. The synthetic principle that, if the conditioned is given, then the entire (uncondi tioned) series of conditions subordinated to one another is also given. I 87 [Thema.1
88[These questions are treated in the Paralogisms (A 34l-4051B 399-432), Antinomy (A 405-5671B 432-595), and Ideal of Pure Reason (A 567-6421B 595-670).\ 89[Or 'prescription': Vorschrift .\ 9O [Volistiindigkeit.]
9 1 [This issue is treated in the Regulative Use of the Ideas of Pure Reason, A 642-68/ B 670-96.\ 92 [Kant, always aware of the original meaning of 'to postulate' as 'to demand,' actually say � 'of' (or 'from'): von.]
DIVISION II
INTRODUCTION
359
major premise has been taken from pure reason (and is perhaps more a pe tition than a postulate), and which ascend from experience upward to its conditions? These questions, then, will be at issue in the transcendental dia
lectic. Let us now unfold this dialectic from its sources, which are deeply hidden in human reason. We shall divide it into two chapters,93 the first of
which is to deal with the
ond with
transcendental concepts of pure reason, the sec dialectical syllogisms.
its transcendent and
TRANSCENDENTAL DIALECTIC
A 3 10
B OOK I ON THE CONCEPTS OF PURE REAS ON94 Whatever may be the case regarding the possibility of concepts obtained from pure reason: they are, at any rate, not merely concepts that are re flected [upon], but are concepts that are inferred. Concepts of understand ing are also thought a priori, viz., prior95 to and for the sake of experience; but they contain nothing more than the unity of reflection on appearances that they have insofar as they are to belong necessarily to a possible em pirical consciousness. Through them alone do cognition and determination of an object become possible. And so concepts of understanding are what first provide material for pure reason to make inferences, whereas under standing'S own concepts are not preceded by a priori concepts of objects96 from which understanding's concepts could be inferred. Rather, the objec tive reality of understanding's concepts is based solely on the fact that, since 93 [Books, actually.] 94[See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 2931B 349 br. n. 2, vol. 1 , 27-3 1 . See also Thomas K. SWing, Kants Transcendental Logic (New Haven: Yale University Press, 1969), 229-43. (This work has not been cited before. Its earlier sections are provocative for dealing with parts of the first half of the Critique.)] 9' [VOr.]
96[Or, possibly. 'preceded a pnon by concepts of objects. ' ]
B 367
360
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
they amount to the intellectual fonn of all experience, their application must always be capable of being shown in experience.
But the designation, concept of reason, even if considered provision ally, already shows that such a concept refuses to be confined within ex perience. For a concept of reason concerns a cognition whereof any em A 311
pirical cognition (perhaps even the whole of possible experience or of its empirical synthesis) is only a part; although no actual experience ever fully attains to that cognition, yet any actual experience always belongs to such a cognition. Concepts of reason serve for
comprehending, 97
whereas con
cepts of understanding serve for understanding (viz., perceptions). If con cepts of reason contain the unconditioned, then they concern something to which all experience is subject but which itself is never an object of ex perience: viz., something to which reason leads in its inferences from ex perience and by which it assesses and gauges the degree of its own em B 368
pirical use, but which never makes up a member of the empirical synthesis. If such concepts nonetheless have objective validity,98 then they may be called
conceptus ratiocinati99 (correctly inferred concepts); if they do not,
then they have at least been obtained surreptitiouslylOO by the illusion of an inference, 101 and may be called conceptus ratiocinantes (reasoning con cepts). 102 But since this matter cannot be settled until we get to the chap ter 103 on the dialectical inferences of pure reason, we cannot yet take it into account. Instead, just as we called the pure concepts of understanding
categories, we shall provisionally assign to the concepts of pure reason a 97[Or, i.e., grasping: Begreifen. It should be noted that although in different contexts this term can also mean 'to comprise' (and in that meaning it is related to Begriff, i.e., 'concept'), it never means merely 'to conceive' (as this latter term is used in philosophy). Cf. A 792 B 820 inc!. br. n. 394.] =
98 [See below, A 642-68/ B 670-96.] 99 [Reasoned concepts. In Kant's working copy of edition A (see Preliminary Studies and Supplementary Entries-dted at A 191B 33 br. n. 1 3-Ak XXIII, 49), the words 'objective validity, then they may be called conceptus ratiocinati, ' as well as the subsequent parenthe sis, '(correctly inferred concepts),' are crossed out.] loo [erschlichen. On subreption, see A 643 B 67 1 incl. br. n. 14.] =
10 l [See below, A 338-6421B 396-670.] 1 02 [vemanftelnde BegriJfe. In the Critique of Judgment (Ak. V, 396), the conceptus ratioci natus is described as "a concept that is a basis for cognition and is confirmed by reason," and the conceptus ratiocinans as an "objectively empty one that we use merely for reason ing." For a similar distinction regarding judgments, cf. ibid., 337n ] 1 03 [Kant again means 'book.')
BOOK I
CONCEPTS OF PURE REASON
361
new name and call them transcendental ideas-a designation that I shall now elucidate and justify.
TRANS CENDENTAL DIALECTIC
A
3 12
B
369
A
313
B OOK I
Section I On Ideas As Such 1 04 Despite the richness of our languages, a thinking mind1 05 often finds him self at a loss for the expression which precisely fits his concept, and lack ing which he cannot become properly understandable either to others or even to himself. Coining new words is a presumption to legislate in lan guages that is rarely successful; and before one proceeds to this desperate
remedy, it is advisable to look around in a dead and scholarly language, in order to see whether this concept along with its appropriate expression can not already be found there. And even if the concept's ancient use were to have become somewhat shaky through the carelessness of its originators,
yet to solidify what meaning primarily belonged to it (even if whether people then had precisely this same meaning in mind were to remain doubt ful) is better than to ruin one's task merely by keeping oneself from being understandable. Hence suppose that for a certain concept we were to find perhaps only a single word that in its already established meaning precisely fits this concept-whose distinction from other, kindred concepts is of great im portance. It is then advisable not to handle the word wastefully, or to use it synonymously in the place of others merely for the sake of variety, but to preserve for it carefully its own meaning. For otherwise it may easily 104 [ Sce Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 293/B 349 br. n. 2, vol. 1 , 3 1-43.] los [Kopf ]
362
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
come about that, after the expression no longer especially occupies peo
B 370
ple's attention but gets lost among the heap of others with meanings quite deviant from its own, the thought which it alone could have preserved is lost as well. From the way in which Plato employed the expression idea we can readily see that he meant by it something that not only is never borrowed from the senses, but that far surpasses even the concepts of under standing-with which Aristotle dealt 106-inasmuch as nothing congruent with it is ever found in experience. For Plato ideas are archetypes of things themselves, and not merely keys to possible experiences, as are the cat egories. Ideas, in his opinion, flowed from highest reason, from where they have been imparted to human reason; now, however, human reason is no
longer in its original state, but must laboriously recall the ancient ideas, now much obscured, through recollection (called philosophy). I do not here want to enter into any literary inquiry seeking to establish what meaning
A 314
the august philosopher linked with his expression. 107 I shall point out only that there is nothing at all unusual in finding, whether in ordinary conver sation or in writings, that by comparing the thoughts uttered by an author on his topic we understand him even better than he understood himself, because he did not sufficiently determine his concept and thus sometimes spoke-<>r, for that matter, thought-[in a manner] contrary to his own in
B 371
tention. Plato 108 well discerned that our cognitive power feels a much higher need than merely to spell out1 09 appearances according to synthetic unity in order to
be able to read them as experience; and that our reason naturally soars to
cognitions which go far beyond the point where any object capable of being given by experience could ever be congruent with them, but which nonethe less have their reality and are by no means mere chimeras. Plato found his ideas primarily in whatever is practical, 110 i.e., what A 315
ever rests on freedom-freedom in tum being subject to cognitions that are a product peculiar to reason. Anyone seeking (as many have actually done) IOO[ef. A 8 1 1B 1 07 . ] 107 [I.e., idea. ] I 08[Emphasis deleted.] 1 09 [Inserting, as suggested by Erdmann, zu before buchstabieren.] llo He did, to be sure, extend his concept" to speculative cognitions also, provided that they were pure and given completely a priori; he extended it even over math ematics, although mathematics has its object nowhere but in possible experienc e.
SECTION I
ON IDEAS AS SUCH
363
to draw the concepts of virtue from experience, i.e., to make what at most can serve only as an example for an imperfect elucidation into a source of cognition by treating it as a model, would tum virtue into an ambiguous III
mutable according to time and circumstances and unusable for nonentity any rule. Everyone becomes aware, on the contrary, that if someone is pre sented to him as a model of virtue, yet the true original to which he com
B 372
pares this alleged model, and by which alone he assesses it, he always has solely in his own mind. 1 1 2 This original, however, is the idea of virtue, in regard to which all possible objects of experience do indeed serve as ex amples (i.e., proofs that what the concept of reason demands is to a cer tain degree feasible), but not as archetypes. The fact that no human being will ever act in a manner adequate to what is contained in the pure idea of virtue in no way proves that there is in this thought anything chimerical. For it is still only by means of this idea that any judgment about moral value or lack of value is possible. Hence this idea underlies necessarily any approach to moral perfection, however far removed from such perfection we may be kept by the obstacles in human nature, which cannot be deter mined as regards their degree. 1 1 3
Plato's 1 1 4 Republic has become proverbial as allegedly a striking ex amplel l5 of a dream-built perfection that can reside only in an idle think er's brain; and Brucker 1 1 6 finds ridiculous the philosopher's assertion that a prince would never rule well if he did not partake of1 l 7 the ideas. How ever, we would do better to pursue this thought further and (where the superb man leaves us without help) to shed light on it through a new
Now in this I cannot follow him any more than in his mystical deduction of these ideas, or in the exaggerations whereby he hypostatized them, as it were, although the lofty language employed by him in this realm is entirely capable of a milder interpretation appropriate to the nature of things. "[Of idea.] 11 1 [Unding. See A 292/B 348.]
\J2[Kopf.] 1! 3[See the Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals, Ak. IV, 406-1 2.] 114
[Emphasis deleted.] 1 1 5 [Kant I'nerally says 'as an allegedly striking example.'] 1 ! 6[ Johann Jakob Brucker ( 1696-1 770), German historian of philosophy and member of the Academy of Sciences at Berlin. He wrote a number of works, the main one being his (origi nally) five-volume Historia Critica Philosophiae (Critical History of Philosophy) of 1742-44. Kant's reference seems to be to vol. I, 726-27 of this work.] 1 1 7 [Or 'participate in. ' ]
A
3 16
364 B 373
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
endeavor, than to set it aside as useless on the pitiful and harmful pretext of unfeasibility. Surely an organization 1 1 8 consisting of the greatest human
freedom according to laws through which the freedom of each can coexist with that of the others 1 l 9 (not an organization consisting of the greatest hap piness, for this will no doubt follow on its own) is at least a necessary idea. It is an idea that we must lay at the basis not merely in first drafting a po
litical constitution, 1 20 but also in all laws; 1 2 1 and in so doing we must ini tially abstract from the present obstacles, which perhaps may not so much arise inevitably from human nature, as arise, rather, from our neglecting the genuine ideas in making laws. For there is nothing more harmful to be found, and nothing more unworthy of a philosopher, than the vulgar ap
peal to experience as allegedly confiicting . 1 22 After all, such experience
would not exist at all if those provisions had at the right time been made A 3 17
according to the ideas, and if crude concepts adopted in their place had not-precisely by being drawn from experience-foiled all good inten tion. The more legislation and government were established in harmony with that idea, the rarer indeed would punishments become; and thus it is quite reasonable to maintain (as Plato does) that if legislation and govern ment were arranged perfectly then no such punishments would be needed at all. Now although this perfect arrangement may never come about, yet
B 374
the idea is quite correct which puts this maximum forth as an archetype in order to bring, according to it, the legal organization of human beings ever closer to the greatest perfection possible. For what may be the highest de gree at which humanity must stop, and hence how great may be the gulf that necessarily remains between the idea and its execution, is something that no one can or ought to determine, precisely because the freedom at is sue here is what can surmount any stated boundary. But Plato1 23 sees an origin from ideas not merely in that sphere where human reason shows veritable causality and where ideas become efficient causes (of actions and their objects), viz., in the moral sphere; but also in regard to nature itself he rightly sees distinct proofs of its origin from I I 8 [ Veifassung.]
1 1 9[See the Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals, Ak. IV, 433-34.] 1 20 [Staatsveifassung.]
1 2 1 [See the Metaphysics of Morals, Ak. VI, 23 1 .] 1 22[With ideas.] 1 23[Emphasis deleted.]
SECTION I
ON IDEAS AS SUCH
365
ideas. 1 24 A plant, an animal, the regular arrangement of the world edifice (hence presumably also the whole natural order) show distinctly that they
A
318
B
375
A
319
are possible only according to ideas. They show that although no indi vidual creature under the individual conditions of its existence is congru ent with the idea of the most perfect creature of its kind (any more than a human being is congruent with the idea of humanity which, as the arche type of his actions, he yet bears in his soul), yet in the highest understand ing these ideas are individual, unchangeable, thoroughly 1 25 determined, 1 26 and are the original causes of things; and that only the whole of the com bination of things in the universe is, solely and exclusively, fully adequate to that idea. If we separate what is exaggerated in Plato's manner of ex pression, then the philosopher's intellectual soaring 1 27-whereby he rises from the merely replicating 1 28 contemplation of what is physical in the world order to this order 's architectonic connection according to pur
poses, 1 29 i.e., according to ideas-is an endeavor that deserves to be re spected and followed. But this intellectual soaring is of quite particular merit in what concerns the principles of morality, legislation, and religion, where the ideas make the experience itself (of the good) possible in the first place, although they can never be expressed fully in it. This merit fails to be recognized only because it is being judged by exactly those empiri cal rules whose validity as principles was to be annulled precisely by the ideas. 1 3o For in respect of nature experience indeed provides us with the rule and is the source of truth; but in regard to moral laws experience is (alas !) the mother of illusion, and to obtain the laws about what I
do from what is being done, reprehensible. 1 3 1
ought to
or to seek to limit them thereby, is extremely
1 24 [On teleology and purposiveness in nature, see A 620-30 B 648-59, A 690-702 B 7 1 8-30, and cf. B 425-26. A 772-73 B 800-801 , A 799 B 827, A 826 B 854. For Kant's fullest treatment of the subject, see the Critique of Teleological Judgment: Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 357-485.] 1 2' [durchgiingig. ] 126[Or, perhaps, 'are determined individually, unchangeably, [and] thoroughly.' ] 127 [Geistesschwung.] =
=
1 28 [
=
copeilich (kopielich).] . 1 29 [0r ends, , In the nontemporal sense: Zwecke.] Ilo [ sie.] 1 31 [ See the Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals, Ak. IV, 406-12.] '
=
=
366
B 376
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
Instead of all these contemplations, in whose proper execution consists indeed the dignity peculiar to philosophy, we must now occupy ourselves with a less glamorous job that yet is also not without merit: viz., to level and solidify 13 2 the ground for those majestic moral edifices; for in this ground can be found all kinds of mole burrows that were left by a reason digging vainly but quite confidently for treasures, and that make that build ing insecure. Hence what is now incumbent on us is to gain exact famil iarity with pure reason's transcendental use, principles, and ideas, in order that we can properly determine and assess pure reason' s influence and value. But before I put this preliminary introduction aside, I beseech those who have philosophy at heart (which is saying more than one commonly encounters)-if they should find themselves convinced by what I say here and later-to safeguard the expression idea 133 in its original meaning, lest it henceforth end up among the remaining expressions by which people commonly designate, in carefree disorder and to the detriment of science,
A 320
sundry kinds of presentation. We are, after all, not lacking in names prop erly fitting each kind of presentation, and do not1 34 need to encroach upon the property of another kind of presentation. Here is a chart1 35 of them. The genus is presentation 1 36 as such (repraesentatio). Under it falls pre sentation with consciousness (perceptio). A perception 137 that refers solely to the subject, viz., as the modification of the subject's state, is senSQ tion 138 (sensatio); an objective perception is cognition 139 (cognitio). Cog
B 377
nition is either
intuition or concept 140 (intuitus vel conceptus). An intuition
refers directly to the object and is singular; a concept refers to the object indirectly, by means of a characteristic that may be common to several things. A concept is either an empirical or a pure concept; and a pure con cept, insofar as it has its origin solely in the understanding (not in the pure 132 [baufest machen.] \ 33 [Emphasis added, as it was in the third edition.]
1 34[In defining idea.] 135 [Stufenleiter.] 136 [Vorstellung. My reason for translating this term (despite the Latin synonym inserte d here by Kant) as 'presentation' rather than as 'representation' is given at B xvii br. n. 73.] I 37 [Perzeption (i.e., Wahmehmung, as Kant says ordinarily).] 1 38 [Empjindung.] 1 39 [Erkenntnis. On cognition, cf. the Logic, Ak. IX, 33, 9 1 . For the distinction between co g nition and knowledge (Wissen), see A vii br. n. 6.] 1 40 [Anschauung, Begriff.]
SECTION I
ON IDEAS AS SUCH
367
image of sensibility), 1 4 1 is called notion. 142 A concept framed from notions and surpassing the possibility of experience is an idea, 143 or concept of rea son. Once someone has become accustomed to these distinctions, he must find it unbearable to hear the presentation of some red color to be called an idea; it must not even be called a notion (concept of understanding).
TRANSCENDENTAL DIALECTIC
A
321
B
378
B OOK I Section II On Transcendental Ideas 144 The Transcendental Analytic gave us an example showing how the mere logical form of our cognition can contain the origin of pure a priori con cepts that present objects and that do so prior1 45 to all experience--or, rather, that indicate the synthetic unity which alone makes possible an em pirical cognition of objects. The form of judgments (as converted into a concept of the synthesis of intuitions) produced categories that govern all use of understanding in experience. We may similarly expect that the form of inferences of reason, 146 when applied to the synthetic unity of intuitions in accordance with the categories, will contain the origin of special a priori concepts that we may call pure concepts of reason or transcendental ideas, and that will determine according to principles the use of understanding in the whole of all our experience. 141 [In other words, an unschematized category of understanding. See above, A 1 37-47IB 1 76-87.] 142[Notio (emphasis added). Cf. the Logic, Ak. IX, 93.] 14l[/dee. ] 144[See Heinz Heimsoeth, op.
cit. at A 2931B
14S [vor.]
14ltOr 'syllogisms' : Vemunftschliisse.]
349 br. n. 2, vol. 1 , 43-63.]
368
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
We saw that the function of reason in its inferences consists in the uni A
322
versality of cognition according to concepts, and that the syllogism itself is a judgment determined a priori in the entire range of its condition. 147 I could indeed draw the proposition, Caius is mortal, from experience by us ing merely understanding. But I am searching for a concept (here the con cept of human being) that contains the condition under which the predicate (Le., assertion as such) of this judgment is given; and after I have sub sumed [the predicate] under this condition taken in its entire range (All hu
B
379
man beings are mortal), I determine according to this [subsumption] the cognition of my object (Caius is mortal). Thus in the conclusion of a syllogism we restrict a predicate to a cer tain object, after having previously in the major premise thought it in its entire range under a certain condition. This complete 148 magnitude of range
in reference to such a condition is called universality 149 (universalitas). To it corresponds in the synthesis of intuitions allness (universitas) or totality of conditions. Hence the transcendental concept of reason is none other than the concept of the totality of conditions for a given conditioned. Now solely the unconditioned makes possible the totality of conditions; and, con versely, the totality of conditions is always itself unconditioned. Therefore a pure concept as such of reason can be explicated as 1 50 the concept of the
A
323
unconditioned insofar as this concept contains a basis for the synthesis of the conditioned. Now there will be just as many kinds of pure concepts of reason as there are kinds of relations that the understanding presents by means of the cat egories. And hence we shall have to search for an unconditioned, first, of the categorical synthesis in a subject; second, of the hypothetical synthe sis of the members of a parts in a system.
series;
third, of the
disjunctive
synthesis of the
For there are likewise three kinds of syllogisms, each o f which pro ceeds by prosyllogisms 15 1 to the unconditioned: one proceeds to the sub B
380
ject that is itself no longer a predicate; another to the presupposition that presupposes nothing further; and the third to an aggregate of those mem147[See esp. A 306-71B 363-64.] 14"[Or 'perfect' : vollendet.] 1 49 [Allgemeinheit.]
15o[Kant (here and in similar cases elsewhere) actually says durch ('by') He means, i.e .. ex plicated by 'the concept of the unconditioned '] ''' [Cf. A 3071B 364 inc!. br n. 78.]
SECTION II
ON TRANSCENDENTAL IDEAS
369
bers of a division which require nothing further in order to complete l 52 the division of a concept. Hence reason's pure concepts of totality in the syn thesis of conditions are necessary and based on the nature of human rea son at least as tasks: viz., to extend, 1 53 if possible, the unity of understand ing up to the unconditioned. They have this necessity and basis even if these transcendental concepts were otherwise to lack a use in concreto ad equate l54 to them, and even if they therefore have no other benefit than to put the understanding in the direction wherein its use, while being ex panded to the utmost, is simultaneously brought into thoroughgoing agree ment with itself. But in speaking here of the totality of conditions and of the uncondi
A
324
B
381
tioned as the title common to all concepts of reason, we again come upon an expression that we cannot dispense with and that yet, in view of an am biguity attaching to it through long misuse, we cannot use safely: the word absolute. This is one of the few words that in their very initial meaning were adaptedl 55 to a concept for which offbandl56 there is no other word at all in the same language that fits it precisely. Hence the word's loss--or, what is tantamount, its shaky use-must entail also the loss of the concept itself. Moreover, because this concept occupies reason very much indeed, we cannot dispense with it without great detriment to all transcendental judging. 1 57 The word absolute is now often used merely to indicate that something holds of a thing considered
in itself,
and hence holds for it
in
in this meaning absolutely possible would mean what is pos sible in itself (inteme) 1 58-which is indeed the least that one can say of an object. On the other hand, the word l59 is sometimes also used to indi cate that something (e.g., absolute dominion) holds in any reference l 60 (i.e.,
trinsically;
without limitation); and in this meaning I S2[Or
absolutely possible
would mean
'perfect': vollenden.]
I S3
[fortsetzen.] IS4 [angemessen.] ISS [angemessen.] IS6
[nach der Hand.]
IS1
[Beurteilungen. See A 601B 84 hr. n. 69; and cf. A 3 l 81B 375 for a recent example of beurteilen.] IS8 [Intrinsically.] IS9 [abrolute. ] 160 [in aller Beziehung.]
370
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
what is possible in any respect, possible
A 325
in any reference-which is in tum the most that I can say about the possibility of a thing. Now, it is true that
sometimes these two meanings coincide. Thus, e.g., what is intrinsically impossible is also impossible in any reference and hence absolutely. But in most cases the two meanings are infinitely far apart, and I can in no way infer that because something is possible in itself, it is therefore also pos sible in any reference and hence absolutely. Indeed, concerning absolute necessity I shall show later 1 6 1 that it does not by any means depend in all cases on intrinsic necessity and hence must not be regarded as synony B
382
mous with it. If the opposite of something is intrinsically impossible then this opposite is, of course, also impossible in every respect, 162 and hence the thing itself is absolutely necessary. But I cannot infer conversely that
intrinsically im intrinsic necessity.
if something is absolutely necessary then its opposite is possible, i.e., that the absolute necessity of things is an
For this expression of intrinsic necessity is in certain cases a quite empty expression to which we cannot link the least concept. On the other hand, the expression of the necessity of a thing in any reference (reference to any thing possible) carries with it quite particular determinations. Now since the philosopher 1 63 can never be indifferent to the loss of a concept that is of wide application in speculative philosophy, 164 I hope that he will also not be indifferent to determining and carefully preserving the expression to which the concept attaches. A
326
In this expanded meaning, then, I shall employ the word
absolute
and 1 65
oppose it to what holds only comparatively or in a particular respect;
for the latter is restricted to conditions, but the absolute holds without re striction. Now, the transcendental concept of reason always concerns only the ab solute totality in the synthesis of conditions, and never ends except at what is unconditioned absolutely, 166 i.e., in every reference. For pure reason 16 1 [Actually outside of the present context the expression 'intrinsic necessity' seems to oc cur in this Critique only at A 1 851B 229.] 162 [A bsicht.] ,
1 63 [Philosoph.] 1 64[Weltweisheit.] '65 [Riicksicht.]
1 66[Kant here uses schlechthin, having used absolut before. I translate both terms by 'abso lute' because they are synonymous (except that schlechthin is an adverb only), as is clearly
SECTION II
ON TRANSCENDENTAL IDEAS
371
leaves everything else to understanding, [the power] which initially 1 67 re
B
383
A
327
B
384
fers to objects of intuition, or rather to their synthesis in the imagination. Pure reason reserves for itself solely the absolute totality in the use of the concepts of understanding, and seeks to take the synthetic unity thought in the category up to the absolutely 1 68 unconditioned. Hence this further unity may be called the
unity of reason
of appearances, just as the unity ex
pressed by the category may be called their
Ac not in cordingly, reason refers only to the use of understanding. It does so sofar as understanding contains the basis of possible experience (for the
unity of understanding.
concept of the absolute totality of conditions is not a concept usable in an experience, because no experience is unconditioned); rather, reason refers to that use in order to prescribe to understanding the direction leading to a certain unity-a unity of which the understanding has no concept and which aims at collating 1 69 all acts of understanding, in regard to every object, in an absolute whole. Hence objective use of the pure concepts of reason is always
transcendent, whereas objective use of the pure concepts of under immanent, because it limits itself to
standing must by its nature always be possible experience alone.
By an idea I mean a necessary concept of reason for which no congru ent object can be given in the senses. Therefore the pure concepts of rea
son, which we are now examining, are transcendental ideas. They are con cepts of pure reason; for they consider all experiential cognition as being determined by an absolute totality of conditions. They are not arbitrarily invented; rather, they are imposed by the nature of reason itself and hence refer necessarily to the entire use of understanding. Finally, they are tran scendent and surpass the boundary of all experience; hence no object can ever occur in experience that would be adequate to a transcendental idea. When we mention an idea, then we say very much concerning the object (as an object1 70 of pure understanding), but precisely because of this say very little concerning the subjectl 7 l (i.e., regarding the [object's] actuality under empirical conditions); for the idea, as the concept of a maximum, shown by their being explicated identically here, and because no adequate synonym for 'ab solute' is available in English.] 167 [zu niichst.] 1 68 [schlechthin here, absolut just before.]
169[I.e., arranging and holding together: zusammenJassen. See B 1 1 4 br. n. 239.] 170[ Gegenstand here, Objekt just before. See A vii br. n. 7.]
17 1 [Specifically, concerning the object as conditioned by the (human) subject.]
372
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
can never be given congruently A 328
in concreto.
Now since the latter172 is in
fact the entire aim in the merely speculative use of reason, and since ap proaching a concept that is yet never attained in executing that aim is tan
tamount to missing the concept altogether, we say of such a concept that it
is only an idea. Thus we might say that [the concept of] the absolute whole of all appearances
is only an idea; for since
we can never outline such a
whole in an image, it remains a problem without any solution. Since in the practical use of understanding, on the other hand, we are concerned solely B 385
to execute something according to rules, practical reason's idea can always be given actually
in concreto,
although only in part; indeed, the idea is the
indispensable condition of any practical use of reason. 173 Its execution is
always bounded and deficient, but under indetenninable bounds and hence always under the influence of the concept of an absolute completeness. Thus the practical idea is always extremely fruitful, and is in regard to actual actions inescapably necessary. In the practical idea pure reason even has a
causality for actually producing what its concept contains. 174 Hence of wis dom we cannot say---il.isdainfully, as it were-that it is only an
idea. Rather,
precisely because wisdom is the idea of the necessary unity of all possible purposes, 1 75 it must, as an original and at least limiting condition, serve everything practical as a rule. A 329
Now, although we must say of the transcendental concepts of reason that they are
only ideas,
yet we shall have to regard them as by no means
superfluous and null. For even if no object can be detennined by them, they can yet basically-and unnoticed-serve the understanding as a canon for its extensive and accordant use. By such use the understand ing does not, indeed, cognize any more objects than it would cognize ac cording to its own concepts; yet it is guided by it better and further in B 386
this cognition-not to mention the fact that perhaps the transcendental ideas of reason make possible a transition from the concepts of nature to 1 72 [l.e., saying something about the object's actuality under empirical conditions.] 173[See the Critique of Practical Reason, Ak. V. 28 33 .] -
174[See ibid., 58-68.] 1 75[According to the Critique of Judgment, wisdom (as ascribed to the deity) is the combi nation of omnibenevolence and justice (Ak. V, 444. cf. 448n), and is what one would need in order to establish a final purpose (ibid., 441 , cf. 462), i.e., a purpose that requires no other purpose as a ('ondition of its possibility (ibid., 424).]
SECTION II
ON TRANSCENDENTAL IDEAS
373
the practical concepts 176 and in this way provide for the moral ideas them l selves sUpport 77 and coherence with reason's speculative cognitions. For infonnation on all of this we must await what follows. But in accordance with our aim we here set aside the practical ideas, and hence consider reason only in its speCUlative use-and within this use we consider reason more narrowly still, viz., only in its transcendental use. Now here we must enter upon the same path that we took above in the de duction of the categories: viz., we must examine the logical form of ratio nal cognition, to see whether reason might not likewise become, through this fonn, a source of concepts that would allow us to regard objects in themselves as determined synthetically a priori in regard to one or another function of reason. Reason, when considered as our power of a certain logical form of cog nition, is the power to infer, i.e., to judge mediately 178 (by the subsump tion of the condition of a possible judgment under the condition of a given judgment). The given judgment is the universal rule (major premise, 179 fpropositio] maior). The sUbsumption of the condition of another[,] pos sible judgment under the condition of the rule is the minor prernise 1 80 (fpropositio] minor). The actual judgment, which states the assertion of the rule in the subsumed case is the conclusion 181 (conclusio). For the rule says something universally under a certain condition. Now the condition of the rule takes place in an occurring case. Hence what held 182 universally un der that condition is regarded as valid 1 83 also in the occurring case (which carries that condition with it). We readily see that reason arrives at a cog nition through acts of understanding that make up a series of conditions. Suppose that I arrive at the proposition, All bodies are changeable, only as follows. I start from the more remote cognition (in which the concept of body does not yet occur but which does contain the condition of that con176[Kant later came to give the credit for this transition to the power of judgment. See the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, esp. 1 95-98.] 177 [Ha ltung.] 178 [mittelb ar, which I usually translate as 'indirectly.' See B xxxix hr. n. 1 44c.] 1 79 [Ober satz. Cf., on all of this, the Logic, Ak. IX, 1 20-2 1 .] 1 80 [ Unter satz.] IB1 [SchlujJsatz.] 182 [gelte n.] I B3 [giiltig. ]
A 330
B 387
374
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
cept): Everything composite is changeable. From this cognition I proceed to a closer one, viz., Bodies are composite, that falls under the condition of the previous 1 84 cognition. And from this cognition do I first proceed to a third one that now connects the remote cognition (changeable) with the A
331
cognition at issue: Therefore bodies are changeable. If this has been my procedure, then I have arrived at a cognition (conclusion) through a series of conditions (premises). Now every series whose indicator1 85 is given (as that of a categorical or a hypothetical judgment) can be continued. Hence this same act of reason leads to
B
388
ratiocinatio polysyllogistica; 186
this is a series of inferences that can be continued to indefinite lengths either on the side of the conditions tioned
(per prosyllogismos) (per episyllogismos). 187
or on the side of the condi
But we soon become aware that the chain or series of prosyllogisms,
i.e., of inferred cognitions on the side of the bases 1 88 or conditions for a given cognition-in other words, the ascending series of syllogisms-must relate differently toward our power of reason from the
descending series,
i.e., reason's progression on the side of the conditioned through episyllo gisms. For since in the former case 1 89 the cognition (conclusio) is given only as conditioned, we cannot arrive at it by means of reason except by presupposing at least that all the members of the series on the side of the conditions are given (i.e., by presupposing totality in the series of pre mises), because only on the presupposition of these members as given is A
332
the judgment at issue possible a priori. On the side of the conditioned or of the conclusions, on the other hand, we think only a becoming series rather than one already presupposed or given entire, and hence think only a potential progression. Hence if a cognition is regarded as conditioned, then reason is compelled to regard the series of conditions in the ascend
B
389
ing line as complete and as given in its totality. But if this same cognition is regarded simultaneously as condition of other cognitions that among them make up a series of conclusions in a descending line, then reason can be quite indifferent as to how far this progression extends a parte posteI 84[erster.]
1 85 [Exponent.] l 86 [Polysyllogistic reasoning. Cf. the Logic, Ak. IX, 1 33-34.] l 87 [Respectively, by prosyllogism or by episyllogism. Cf. A 3071B 364 and the Logic, Ak. IX, 134.] l 88 [Or 'grounds' : Grande.] l89 [On the side of the conditions.]
SECTION II
ON TRANSCENDENTAL IDEAS
375
riori, 190 and whether indeed totality of this series is possible at all. For rea son does not need such a [total] series for the conclusion lying before it, because this conclusion is already sufficiently determined and secured by its bases a parte priori. 191 Now it may be that the series of premises on the side of the conditions has afirst member, as supreme condition, or that it does not and is therefore without bounds a parte priori. Yet in either case the series of premises must contain totality of conditions, even supposing that we can never arrive at comprehending 1 92 this totality; 193 and the en tire series must be true unconditionally if the conditioned regarded as a con clusion arising from it is to count1 94 as true. This is a demand of reason. For reason proclaims that its cognition is determined a priori and neces sary, and that it is so either in itself-and then the cognition requires no bases-or, if the cognition is derived, that it is so as a member in a series of bases that is itself unconditionally true.
TRANSCENDENTAL DIALECTIC B OOK I Section III System of Transcendental Ideas 1 95 We are not dealing here with a logical dialectic, which abstracts from all content of cognition and uncovers solely the deceptive1 96 illusion in the 1 90 [On the side of what is posterior, or consequent.] 1 9 1 [On the side of what is prior, or antecedent.] 1 92 [1.e. (rationally) grasping: fassen.] ,
1 93[sie.]
1 94[gelten.] 1 9' [See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 293/B 349 hr. n. 2, vol. 1 . 63-70.] 1 9tValsch.]
{ A 333
B 390
376
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
form of syllogisms, 197 but with a transcendental dialectic. Such a dialectic is to contain, completely a priori, the origin of certain cognitions that arise from pure reason, and of inferred concepts whose object cannot be given em pirically at all and which therefore lie entirely outside the range of our power of pure understanding. From the natural reference that the transcendental use of our cognition, both in inferences and in judgments, must have to its logi cal use, we gathered that there will be only three kinds of dialectical infer ences, referring to the three different 198 kinds of inference whereby reason can from principles arrive at cognitions; 199 and we gathered that in all of these three kinds of dialectical inferences reason's task is to ascend from the conditioned synthesis, to which understanding always remains tied, to the
B 391 A 334
unconditioned synthesis, which understanding can never reach. Now what is universal about all reference200 that our presentations can have is ( 1 ) their reference to the subject; (2) their reference to objects,201 and to these objects either (a)202 as appearances or (b) as objects of thought as such. If we combine this subdivision203 with the above [division],204 then all relation205 of presentations, of which we can frame either a concept or an idea is threefold: ( 1 ) the relation of presentations to the subject;
(2) their
relation to (a) the manifold of the object; (3) their relation to (b) all things as such. Now, all pure concepts as such deal with the synthetic unity of presen tations; but concepts of pure reason (transcendental ideas) deal with the un conditioned synthetic unity of all conditions as such. Hence all transcenden tal ideas can presumably206 be brought under three classes, of which the first contains the absolute (unconditioned) unity of the thinking subject, the sec ond the absolute unity of the series of conditions of appearance, the third the absolute unity of the condition of all objects of thought as such. )97 [ Or 'inferences of reason' : Vernunftschliisse. For fallacious syllogisms, see the Logic, Ak. IX, 1 34-35.] 198 [dreieriei.]
199 [See A 304/B 361 inc!. br. n. 66.] 2oo [Beziehung.] 20) [Objekte here, Gegenstiinde just below, and Objekt a little after that. See A vii br. n. 7.]
202 [The parenthesized small letters in this paragraph have been added.] 203[(a) and (b).] 204 [ lnto ( 1 ) and (2).] 205 [Verhiiltnis ] 2(J(,[werden.]
SECTION III
SYSTEM OF TRANSCENDENTAL IDEAS
377
The thinking subject is the object of psychology; the sum of all appear ances (the world) is the object of cosmology; and the thing containing the supreme condition of the possibility of all that can be thought (the being of all beings) is the object of theology.207 Hence pure reason provides us with the idea for a transcendental psychology
(psychologia rationalis); for a transcendental cosmology (cosmologia rationalis); finally, also for a tran scendental theology208 (theologia transcendentalis)?09 Even the mere out
{ B 392 A
335
line for each and every one of these sciences cannot at all be ascribed to understanding, not even if understanding were combined with the highest logical use of reason-i.e., all thinkable inferences-in order to progress from one object of understanding (appearance) to all others, up to the most remote members of the empirical synthesis; rather, even any such outline is a pure and genuine product or problem solely of pure reason. What sort of modes of reason's pure concepts fall under these three head ings [or classes] of all the transcendental ideas will be set forth completely in the following chapter;2 10 they run along the course2 1 1 of the categories, for pure reason never refers straightforwardly to objects but only to under standing's concepts of them. Similarly, only in the full elaboration212 can we make distinct a thought that at first glance seems extremely paradoxi cal: how reason, merely by using synthetically the same function that it employs for the categorical syllogism, must necessarily hit upon the con cept of the absolute213 unity of the thinking subject; how reason's logical procedure in hypothetical syllogisms must necessarily entail the idea of the214 absolutely2 1 5 unconditioned in a series of given conditions; and how, finally, the mere form of a disjunctive syllogism must necessarily entail the highest concept of reason, viz., that of a
being of all beings.
207[Respectively, Psychologie, Kosmologie, Theologie.] 208[Respectively, Seelenlehre, Weltwissenschaft, Gotteserkenntnis ('cognition of God,' liter ally).] 209[Respectively, 'rational psychology,' 'rational cosmology,' 'transcendental cosmology. '] 2 10[Once again, Kant means 'book.'] 211 [Literally, 'thread': Faden.] 21 2[Ausjiihrong .] 2 1 3 [a bsolut. ]
214[Read' 09, with Erdmann and the Akademie edition, in hypothetischen [Vernunftschliissen] 1 die Idee vom for in hypothetischen Ideen die vom.] 21 S[schlechthin. See A 3261B 382 br n. 1 66.]
{ B 393 A
336
378
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
Properly speaking, an
objective deduction of these transcendental ideas,
such as we were able to supply for the categories, is impossible. For pre cisely because they are only ideas, they have in fact no reference to any object that could be given congruently with them. We have been able, how ever, to undertake a subjective derivation2 1 6 of them from the nature of our reason, and this derivation has indeed been accomplished in the present
chapter. 2 17
We readily see that pure reason aims at nothing but the absolute totality of the synthesis
on the side of the conditions (whether of inherence,
or of
dependence, or of concurrence), and that it is not concerned with absolute completeness
on the side of the conditioned. For pure
reason needs only
the former totality in order to presuppose the entire series of conditions and in order thereby to give it to the understanding a priori. But once a con dition given completely (and unconditionally) is there, then a concept of reason regarding the continuation of the series is no longer needed; for the B 394
A 337
understanding takes each downward step, from the condition to the con ditioned, on its own. In this way the transcendental ideas serve only for ascending, in the series of conditions, up to the unconditioned, i.e., to the principles. But as regards descending to the conditioned, although our rea son does make very extensive logical use of the laws of understanding, there is for it here no transcendental use whatsoever; and if we frame an idea of
the absolute totality of such a synthesis (of the progressus2 1 8)---e . g., of the entire series of all future changes of the world-then this is a thought entity21 9 (ens rationis)22o that is thought only by choice22 1 and is not pre
supposed necessarily by reason. For the possibility of the conditioned does indeed presuppose the totality of its conditions, but not the totality of its consequences. Therefore the concept of the latter totality is not a transcen dental idea; yet here we are dealing solely with transcendental ideas. We also become aware, finally, that among the transcendental ideas themselves there can be seen a certain coherence and unity, and that by means of these ideas pure reason brings all its cognitions into a system. To 21 6[Reading, with Mellin, Ableitung for Anleitung.] 2 1 7 [l.e., again, book.] 2 1 8 [Progression, i.e., the "going forward. " ] 21 9 [Gedankending. Cf. A 292IB 348 inc!. br. n. 148.] 22°[Being of reason. Cf. A 290-92/B 347-48 inc!. br. n. 143.] 22 1 [Or. perhaps, 'arbitrarily ' : willkiirlich.]
SECTION III
SYSTEM OF TRANSCENDENTAL IDEAS
379
proceed from the cognition of oneself (the soul) to the cognition of the world and, by means of it, to [the cognition of] the original being is so natural an advance that it seems similar to reason's logical progression from 222 Now whether there actually lies at the basis here, premises to conciusion. covertly, a kinship of the same kind as there is between the logical and the transcendental procedure-this is also one of the questions for whose an swer we must first await the continuation of this inquiry. Provisionally we have already accomplished our purpose. For whereas the transcendental concepts of reason are usually mixed in with others in the theory of phi losophers, who never223 duly distinguish them from concepts of under standing, we have been able to extricate them from this ambiguous posi tion, to indicate their origin and thereby simultaneously their detenninate number (beyond which there can be no further transcendental concepts of reason whatever),224 and to present them in a systematic coherence, whereby a special realm is marked out and delimited for pure reason.
222MetaphysicsB has only three ideas as the proper purpose of its investigation-God,
freedom, and immortalitl-and in such a way that the second concept, when com bined with the first, is to lead to the third as a necessary conclusion.c Everything else that this science deals with serves it only as a means for arriving at these ideas and at their reality. It needs these ideas not for the sake of natural science, but in order to get beyond nature. Insight into these ideas would make theology, morality, and-through combination of the two---religion and hence the highest purposes of our existence dependent merely on our speculative power of reason and on noth ing else. In a systematic presentation of those ideas the mentioned order would, as the synthetic order, be the most fitting. But in the treatment that must necessarily precede such systematic presentation the analytic order, which reverses the syn thetic order,d will be more appropriate to the purpose of carrying out our great plan-which we do by proceeding from what experience provides us with directly, viz , psychology, to cosmology, and from there up to theology.e � [This note was added in B .] b [Cf. B 7 , A 798 B 826, and the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 473.] C [For this syllogistic relation, cf. the Announcement That a Treatise on Perpetual Peace in Philosophy Is Nearly Completed, Ak. VIII, 4 1 8 . See also B l I O- I I above. Also Kant's note in the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 197. Also No. 5854 in the Reflections on Meta physics, Ak. XVIII, 370.] d [For the distinction between the analytic and synthetic orders, see the Prolegomena, Ak. IV, 264. See also below, B 4 1 8-19.] "[Respectively, Seelenlehre, Weltlehre, Erkenntnis Gottes ('cognition of God,' literally).] 22] [ohne . . . einmal.] 224 [Parentheses added.] =
B
395
A
338
B
396
TRANSCENDENTAL DIALECTIC B OOK II ON THE DIALECTICAL INFERENCES OF PURE REASON 1 We may say that the object of a mere transcendental idea is something of which we have no concept, although this idea has been produced in reason
A B
339 397
quite necessarily and according to reason's original laws. For in fact no concept of understanding-i.e., no concept that can be shown and made intuitive in a possible experience-is possible for an object2 that is to be adequate to reason's demand. Yet we would express ourselves better, and with less risk of being misunderstood, if we said that we cannot become acquainted with the object corresponding to an idea, although we can have a problematic concept of it. Now, at least the transcendental (subjective) reality of the pure concepts of reason rests on our having been led to such ideas by a necessary syllo gism. Therefore there will be syllogisms which contain no empirical pre mises and by means of which we infer, from something that we are ac quainted with, something else of which we have in fact no concept and to which, through an unavoidable illusion, we nonetheless give objective re ality. Hence such inferences should, with regard to their result, rather be called subtly reasoning3 inferences than inferences of reason,4 although they may indeed bear the latter name because of how they are prompted; for they are, after all, not invented, nor have arisen contingently, but have sprung from the nature of reason. They are sophistries5 not of human be ings but of pure reason itself. Even the wisest among all human beings can not detach himself from them; perhaps he can after much effort forestall I [See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 2931B 349 br. n. 2, voL
1 71 .
78. ]
-
2 [Gegenstand here (and just above), Objekt just below. See A vii br. n. 7.] 3 [vemiinjielnd.] 4 [Or 'syllogisms' : Vemunjischliisse.] ' [Sophislikationen.]
380
DIALECTICAL INFERENCES OF PURE REASON
BOOK II
381
the error, but he can never fully rid himself of the illusion that incessantly teases and mocks him.
Hence there are only three different6 kinds [or classes] of dialectical
syllogisms-as many as there are ideas in which their conclusions result. In the syllogism of the first class 7 I infer from the transcendental concept of the subject-a concept that contains nothing manifold-the absolute unity of this subject itself, of which I have in this way no concept what ever. This dialectical inference I shall call the transcendental paralogism. The second class of subtly reasoning inferences is aimed at the transcen dental concept of the absolute totality of the series of conditions for a given appearance as such. Here, from the fact that the concept which I have of the unconditioned synthetic unity of the series on one side is always a self contradictory one, I infer the correctness of the opposite unity, of which I yet also have no concept. The state of reason in these dialectical inferences I shall call the
antinomy of pure reason.
By the third kind of subtly rea
soning inferences, finally, I start from the totality of conditions for think ing of objects as such insofar as they can be given to me, and from this I infer the absolute synthetic unity of all conditions of the possibility of things
as such; i.e., from things that by their mere transcendental concept I am not acquainted with I infer a being of all beings, which through a tran scendent8 concept I am even less acquainted with and of whose uncondi tioned necessity I can frame no concept. This dialectical inference I shall call the
ideal of pure reason.
6[dreierlei.] 7 [Double emphasis on 'class' deleted.] 8 [The fourth and fifth editions have 'transcendental.' But cf., e.g., A 469 593, A 674 B 702.] =
=
B 497, A 565
=
B
A B
340 398
A 341 B 399
}
TRANSCENDENTAL DIALECTIC B OOK II Chapter I On the Paralogisms of Pure Reason9 A logical paralogism lO consists in a syllogism's wrongness II as regards form, whatever its content may be. A transcendental paralogism, however, has a transcendental basis1 2 for inferring wrongly as regards form. Such a falla cious inference will thus have its basis in the nature of human reason, and will carry with it an illusion that is unavoidable although not unresolvable. We now come to a concept that was not entered in the above general list of the transcendental concepts, 1 3 and that must yet be classed with them, but without in the least changing the table and declaring it deficient. This is the concept-or, if one prefers, the judgment-l think. But we readily
B
400
see that this concept is the vehicle of all concepts as such and hence also of transcendental concepts, and that it is therefore always also comprised among these and hence is likewise transcendental; but that it cannot have a special title, because it serves only to bring forward 14 all thought as be9 [See Karl Ameriks, Kant s Theory of Mind (Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1982), 1 -24. See also H. E. Allison, op. cit. at A 21/B 35 hr. n. 22, 272-93. Also H W. Cassirer, op. cit. at A 21/B 35 hr. n. 22, 249-65. Also J. N. Findlay, op. cit. at A 2 1/B 35 hr. n. 22, 200-210. Also Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 293/B 349 hr. n. 2, vol. I , 79-96. Also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii hr n. 5, 455-77. Also T. K. Swing, op. cit. at A 3 1O/B 366 hr. D. 94, 244-45 . Also W. H. Walsh, op. cit. at A 293/B br. n. 1, 176-95. And see T. D. Weldon, op. cit. at A 21IB 35 br. n. 22, 201-3.]
349
I O [Cf. the Logic, Ak. IX, 1 34-35.] " [Falschheit.] I 2[Or 'ground' . Grund. See B xix br. n 79.] 1 3[The table of the categories, A 80/B 106.] 14 [auffiihren . ]
382
CHAPTER I
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
383
longing to consciousness. Yet however pure of the empirical (the impres
A
342
B A
401 343
sion of the senses) this concept may be, it still serves to distinguish two kinds of objects taken from the nature of our power of presentation. I, as thinking, am an object of inner sense and am called soul; what is an object of the outer senses is called body. Thus the expression, I, as a thinking be ing, already means the object of psychology-which may be called ratio nal psychology 1 5 if I demand to know nothing more about the soul than what can be inferred from this concept I, insofar as it occurs in all thought, independently of all experience (which determines me more closely and in
concreto). Now rational psychology
actually is an enterprise of this kind. For if the slightest empirical [element] of my thought-some particular percep tion of my inner state-were also mixed in with this science's bases of cog
nition, then it would no longer be rational but empirical psychology. Hence we are indeed facing an alleged science which has been built on the single proposition I think, and whose basis or lack of basis we can, quite fittingly and in accordance with the nature of a transcendental philosophy, examine here. We must not be troubled by the fact that in this proposition, which expresses the perception of oneself, I do have an inner experience, and that therefore the rational psychology built on it is never pure but is based in part on an empirical principle. For this inner perception is nothing more than the mere apperception I think that makes even all transcendental con cepts possible, 1 6 since in them we sayY I think substance, cause, etc. For inner experience as such and its possibility, or perception as such and its relation to other perception, without any specific 1 8 distinction or determi nation of such inner experience or perception being given empirically, can not be regarded as empirical cognition; it must be regarded, rather, as cog
nition of the empirical as such, and it belongs to the inquiry into the possibility of any experience-an inquiry that is indeed transcendental. The slightest object of perception (e.g., even just pleasure or displeasure), if added 19 to the universal presentation of self-consciousness, would at once transform rational psychology into an empirical one. ls [Seelenlehre here; Psychologie just above.] 1 6[See C. Thomas Powell, Kant 's Theory of Self-Consciousness (Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1 990), 1 1 -64.] 17 [heiPen .] 1 8[Or 'particular' (as contrasted with 'universal' or 'as such'): besonder.] 19 [Reading, as suggested by Erdmann, welches for we/che.]
384
A 344 B 402
}
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
Hence I think is rational psychology's sole text, from which it is to un fold its entire wisdom. We readily see that if this thought is to be referred to an object (myself), then it can contain nothing but transcendental predi cates of this object; for the slightest empirical predicate would ruin the sci ence's rational purity and independence from all experience. Here we shall merely have to follow the guidance of the categories, how ever, but with one exception. For here a thing-I, as thinking being-has been given first; hence although we shall not change the above order of the categories among one another as it is presented in their table, yet we shall here start from the category of substance, whereby a thing is presented in itself,2o and thus shall pursue the series of the categories backward. 2 1 The topic22 of rational psychology, from which whatever else it may contain must be derived, is thus the following:
The soul is
substance.23 2 In terms of quality it is simple.
3 In terms of the different times in which it exists,24 it is numerically identical, i.e., unity (not plurality).
4 It stands in relation to possible objects in space.25
20 [Grammatically, one could also read 'through which a thing in itself is presented.'] 2 1 [See above, B 395 br. n. 222d ] 22 [l.e. (here), the scheme locating the soul in terms of the categories. Cf. A 2681B 324 (also A 6 11B 86).] 23[In his working copy of edition A (see Preliminary Studies and Supplementary Entries--c ited at A 1 91B 33 br. n. 13-Ak. XXIII, SO), Kant replaces this by 'The soul exists [existiert] a� substance. '] 24 [da ist.] 251f any reader cannot so easily divine from these expressions in their transcen
dental abstractness what is their psychological meaning and why the last attribute"
CHAPTER I
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
385
From these elements arise all concepts of pure psychology, merely by the assembly of these elements and without the least recognition of an other principle. This substance, merely as object of inner sense, yields26 the concept of
immateriality;
as simple substance, that of
{ A 345
B 403
incorruptibility.
Its identity as intellectual substance yields personality; all three of these components together, spirituality. The relation of the substance to objects yields
commerce27
with bodies; and hence as so related it presents think
ing substance as the principle of life in matter, i.e., as soul
(anima)
and as
the basis of animality; and animality as limited by spirituality presents
im
mortality. Now by reference to this [topic of rational psychology] there are four paralogisms of a transcendental psychology that is wrongly considered to be a science of pure reason concerning the nature of our thinking being. Yet we can lay at the basis of this science nothing but the simple, and by itself quite empty, presentation I, of which we cannot even say that it is a
B 404
A 346
concept, but only that it is a mere consciousness accompanying all con cepts. Now through this l or he or ir8 (the thing) that thinks, nothing more is presented than a transcendental subject of thoughts x.29 This subject =
is cognized only through the thoughts that are its predicates, and apart from them we can never have the least concept of it; hence we revolve around it in a cons�ant circle, since in order to make any judgment regarding it we must always already make use of its presentation. This is an inconvenience that cannot be separated from it, because consciousness in itself is not so much a presentation distinguishing a particular object, as rather a form of presentation as such insofar as this presentation is to be called cognition; for only of such presentation can I say that I think anything through it. of the soul belongs to the category of existence. he will find them sufficiently explained and justified in what follows There is present also-both in this section and in the entire work-an influx of Latin expressions, instead of the synonymous German ones, and this may be re garded as contrary to taste in good writing style. My excuse for using them is that I preferred taking something away from the elegance of language, to impeding the book's scholarlyb use by keeping it in the slightest degree from being understood. "[I.e., 4.] b[Schu[.. ] 26[geben.] 27 [Cf. A 2 1 3/B 260.] 28 [Empha sis on the three terms added.] 29U .e " the unknown (as in a mathematical equation). Cf. A \04, \09.]
B 403
386
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
It must, however, seem strange at the very outset that the condition un der which I think at all, and which is therefore merely a characteristic of ! myself as subject,3D is to be valid als03 for everything that thinks; and that upon a proposition that seems empirical we can presume to base an apo deictic and universal jUdgment, viz.: that everything that thinks is of such B 405
a character as the pronouncement of self-consciousness asserts of me. The
A 347
things a priori all of the properties that make up the conditions under which
cause of this, however, lies in the fact that we must necessarily ascribe to alone we think them. Now through no outer experience, but solely through self-consciousness, can I have the least presentation of a thinking being. Hence objects of that sort are nothing more than the transfer of this con sciousness of mine to other things, which thereby alone are presented as thinking beings. But in this process the proposition
I thinP2 is taken only
problematically. I.e., it is not taken insofar as it may contain a perception of an existent33 (the Cartesian cogito, ergo sum34); the proposition is taken, rather, in terms of its mere possibility, in order to see what properties may from so simple a proposition flow to its subject (whether or not such a sub ject exists 35). If our pure rational36 cognition of thinking beings as such were based on more than the
cogito,
viz., if we availed ourselves also of our observa
tions concerning our thoughts' play and of what natural laws of the think ing self can be drawn from these observations, then there would arise an empirical psychology that would be a kind of physiology of inner sense. But although it could perhaps explain the appearances of inner sense, it still could never serve to disclose to us such properties (e.g . , that of B 406
simple37) as do not belong at all to possible experience,
nor serve to teach
30[ 'my subject,' Kant says literally. Similarly on several occasions below.] 3 1 [zugleich.]
32 [Emphasis added.] 33 [Dasein, which also means 'existence.'] 34[1 think, therefore 1 am.] 35 [existie ren .] 36 [Vemunft·· ] ]? [die des Einfachen (emphasis added), one of the properties of the soul (A 3441B 402). The phrase could also mean 'that of the simple' or 'those of the simple.']
CHAPTER I
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
387
us apodeicticaliy with regard to thinking beings as such anything whatever concerning their nature. It would, therefore, not be a rational38 psy chology.
[THE PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON] [First Edition] The proposition
I think {taken problematically)39
contains, then, the form
of any of understanding's judgments as such, and accompanies all catego ries as their vehicle. 4o Clearly, therefore, the inferences from this propo sition can contain merely a transcendental use of understanding. Such use allows no experience to be mixed in, and hence regarding its progress we can-by what we have shown above-frame even in advance none but an unfavorable conception. Let us, therefore, trace this use, with a critical eye, through all the predicaments4 1 of pure psychology.
First Paralogism, of Substantiality42 That whose presentation is the absolute subject of our judgments and hence cannot be used as determination of another thing is substance. I, as a thinking being, am the absolute subject of all my possible judg ments, and this presentation of myself cannot be used as predicate of any other thing. Therefore I, as thinking being (soul), am substance.
3B[rational. ] 39 [See A 347/8 405.]
4O [See A 341/8 399.] 41 [l .e. hasic concepts.] 42[
,
See Karl Ameriks, op. cit. at A 34 1 /8 399 hr. n. 9, 25-83, esp. 64-76. See also Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 293/8 349 hr. n. 2, vol. I , 97- 1 04. Also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii hr. n. 5, 457-58. Also C. T. Powell, op. cit. at A 3431B 40 1 hr. n. 1 6, 65-90. And see T. K. Swing, op. cit. at A 3 1 01B 366 hr. n. 94, 245-49.]
A
348
388
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
CRITIQUE OF THE FIRST PARALOGISM OF PURE PSYCHOLOGY
We have shown in the analytic part of the Transcendental Logic43 that pure categories (and among them also that of substance) have no objective sig A 349
nification in themselves, i.e., if they are not based on an intuition to whose manifold they can be applied as functions of synthetic unity. Without this basis they are only functions of a judgment and are without content. I can say of every thing as such that it is substance insofar as I distinguish it from mere predicates and determinations of things. Now in all our thought the [ is the subject wherein thoughts inhere only as determinations, and this [ cannot be used as the determination of another thing. Hence everyone must necessarily regard himself as the substance, but regard thought as be ing only accidents of his existence and determinations of his state. However, what sort of use am I to make of this concept of a substance? I can by no means [legitimately] infer from it that I, as a thinking being,
continue by myself and do not naturally either arise or pass away. Yet only for this inference can the concept of the substantiality of myself as think ing subject benefit me; apart from this use of the concept, I could quite readily dispense with it. So far are these properties from being inferable from the mere pure cat egory of a substance that we must, rather, lay at the basis the permanence of a given object taken from experience if we want to apply to this object the empirically usable concept of a A 350
substance. With our proposition, how
ever, we have not laid at the basis any experience, but have merely in ferred permanence from the concept of the reference that all thought has to the [44 as the common subject wherein it inheres. Nor could we, even if doing so were our aim, establish such permanence through any sure obser vation. For although the [ is in all thoughts, there is not linked with this presentation the least intuition that would distinguish it from other objects of intuition. Hence one can indeed perceive that in all thought this presen tation occurs again and again, but not that it is a constant45 and enduring intuition wherein the thoughts (as mutable) vary.46 43[A 1 39/B 1 78, A 1 45-47/8 1 85-87, and cf A 1 56/B 195.]
44[Emphasis on 'I' added; similarly for the remaining originally unemphasized occurrences (of this sort) in The Paralogisms of Pure Reason, edition A.] 4' [szehend.] 46 [wechseln. See B 224 hr. n 45.]
CHAPTER I
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
389
From this it follows that the first syllogism of transcendental psychol ogy foists on us what is only a supposed new insight. For the constant47 logical subject of thought is passed off' by it as the cognition of the real subject of the inherence of thought. With this real subject we are not, and cannot be, in the least acquainted. For consciousness alone is what turns all presentations into thoughts, and hence solely in it as the transcendental subject must all perceptions be found; and apart from this logical meaning of the I we are not acquainted with the subject in itself that, as substratum, underlies this I as it underlies also all thoughts. However, we may quite readily accept48 the proposition The soul is substance, provided that we are content that this concept of the soul as substance does not in the least lead US49 further; that it cannot teach us any of the usual conclusions drawn by the subtly reasoning psychology, such as to the everlasting duration of the soul in all changes and even in death; and that this concept therefore des ignates a substance only in idea, but not in reality.
Second Paralogism, of Simplicityso A thing whose action can never be regarded as the concurrence of many acting things is simple. Now the soul, or the thinking
I,
is such a thing. Therefore, etc.
CRITIQUE OF THE SECOND PARALOGISM OF TRANSCENDENTAL PSYCHOLOGY
This is the Achilles5 1 of all dialectical inferences of pure psychology. It is by no means merely a sophistical game that a dogmatist contrives in order to provide his assertions with a cursory illusion of plausibility,52 but is an 4' [ bestiindig.] 48[ gelten lassen.]
49 [Reading, with Hartenstein, uns for unser.] so [See Karl Ameriks, op. cit. at A 3411B 399 br. n. 9, 25-83, esp. 47-64. See also Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 2931B 349 br. n. 2, vol. I, 1 05-20. Also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 458-6 1 . Also C. T. Powell, op. cit. at A 3431B 401 br. n. 16, 9 1 - 1 29. And see T. K. Swing, op. cit. at A 3 1 01B 366 br. n. 94, 249-5 1 .] S I [The reference here is to Achilles as the great hero who slew Hector (the prince of Troy), not to Achilles' heel (his one remaining vulnerable point).] s2 [ einen jliichtigen Schein.)
A 351
390
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
inference that seems to withstand even the keenest examination and the most scrupulous investigation. Here it is. Any composite substance is an aggregate of many substances, and the action of something composite--or what inheres in this something as53 thus composite-is an aggregate of many actions or accidents that are distrib uted among the set54 of substances. Now an effect arising from the con A 352
currence of many acting substances is indeed possible when this effect is merely extrinsic (e.g., the motion of a body is the united motion of all its parts). But with thoughts, as accidents belonging intrinsically to a thinking being, the situation is different. For suppose that something composite thought: then each part of it would contain a part of the thought, but solely55 all taken together would contain the whole thought. This, however, is con tradictory. For since the presentations (e.g., the individual words of a verse)
A 353
that are distributed among different beings never amount to a whole thought (a verse), the thought cannot inhere in something composite as composite. Hence a thought is possible only in one substance that is not an aggregate of many and hence is absolutely 56 simple. 57 The so-called nervus probandi5 8 of this argument lies in the proposition that in order for many presentations to amount to one thought, they must be contained in the absolute59 unity of the thinking subject. No one, how ever, can prove this proposition /rom concepts. For just how would he set about accomplishing this? The proposition, A thought can only be the ef fect60 of the absolute unity of the thinking being, cannot be treated as ana lytic. For since the thought consists of many presentations, its unity is col lective and can, as far as mere concepts are concerned, refer just as well to the collective unity of the substances cooperating6 1 on the thought (as the 53 [Emphasis added; similarly near the end of the paragraph.] 54 [Menge.] 55 [allererst.] 56 [schlechte rdings.]
57Giving this proof the usual rigorous guise that complies with school standards is quite easy. But for my purposes, putting before us, at least in a popular way, the mere basis of proof is already sufficient. 58 [Nerve of the proof. ] 59 [absolut.] 6O [Wirkung.]
6 1 [mitwirken.]
CHAPTER I
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
391
motion of a body i s the composite motion of all the parts of the body) as it can refer to the absolute unity of the subject. Hence we cannot by the rule of identity62 have insight into the necessity of presupposing for a compos ite thought a simple substance. But that the same proposition63 is to be cog nized synthetically and completely a priori from nothing but concepts-this no one will dare to advocate who has insight into the basis, as we have set it forth above, 64 of the possibility of synthetic a priori propositions. But it is also impossible for this necessary unity of the subject, as the condition of the possibility of any thought, to be derived from experience. For experience does not allow65 us to cognize any necessity66-not to men tion even the fact that the concept of absolute unity is far beyond its sphere. From where, then, do we take this proposition on which the whole psy chological inference of reason67 relies? It is obvious that if one wants to have a presentation of a thinking be ing then one must put oneself in that being's place, and hence must sub stitute one's own self as subject for the object that one wanted to consider (which is not the case in any other kind of investigation); and it is obvious that we require, in order to have any thought, the absolute unity of the sub ject only because otherwise we could not say I think68 (the manifold [be ing held together] in one presentation). For although the whole of the thought could be divided and distributed among many subjects, still the sub jective I cannot be divided and distributed, and yet we presuppose this I in all thought. Hence here, just as in the previous paralogism, the formal proposition of apperception I think remains the whole basis on which rational psychol ogy ventures to expand its cognitions. But this proposition is, of course, not an experience, but is the form of apperception. Although this form at62[l.e., the rule (or principle) underlying analytic propositions.] 63 [l.e., the proposition that a thought can only be the effect of the absolute unity of the think· ing being.]
64[Above all, in the Transcendental Aesthetic (A 1 9-491B 33-73) and the Analytic of Prin ciples (A 1 30-292/B 1 69-349).]
6s[geben.] 66 [ See above, B 3-4.] 67 [Or 'syll ogism.'] 68 Emphas [ is added (on both tenns, in line with the whole context---d. , e.g., Kant's point at �e very beginning of the next paragraph); similarly for the remaining onginally unempha SiZed OCcurrences of 'I think' in The Paralogisms of Pure Reason, edition A.]
A 354
392
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
taches to and precedes every experience, it must still always be regarded only as concerning a possible cognition as such, viz., as merely subjective condition of such cognition. We wrongly tum this subjective condition into a condition of the possibility of a cognition of objects, viz., into a concept of a thinking being as such. We do this because we cannot present such a being without putting ourselves, with the formula of our consciousness, in the place of any other intelligent being.
inferred from the proposition I think; rather, the former proposition, I am simple, 69 al ready lies in every thought itself. The proposition I am simple must be re Moreover, the simplicity of myself (as soul) is not actually
A 355
garded as a direct expression of apperception, just as the supposed Carte
cogito, ergo sum70 is in fact tautological, since the cogito 7 (sum cogitans) 1 directly asserts my actuality. But I am simple means noth sian inference
ing more than that this presentation I does not comprise72 the least mani foldness, and that it is [thus] absolute (although merely logical) unity. Hence the so famous psychological prooe3 is based solely on the indi visible unity of a presentation [I] that governs only the verb think with re
gard to a person. Plainly, however, the I attached to this thought designates the subject of the inherence of thought only transcendentally; and through this I we do not indicate in this subject the least property, nor are we ac quainted with or know anything about this subject at all. The subject74 means only a something as such (transcendental subject). The presentation of this subject must indeed be simple, precisely because we determine in this subject nothing whatsoever-as, of course,75 certainly nothing can be presented more simply than through the concept of a mere something. But the simplicity of the presentation of a subject is not therefore a cognition of the simplicity of the subject itself. For we abstract entirely from the sub ject's properties when we designate it solely by the expression I, which is entirely empty of content (and which I can apply to any thinking subject). 69 [Kant says merely der ers/ere; cf. just below. Erdmann and the Akademie edition change this to die ers/ere, to make it refer back to 'simplicity.'] 70 [1 think, therefore I am.] 71 [1 think (I am [as] thinking). Cf. B 428.] 72 [in sich fassen.] 73[Of the soul's simplicity.] 74 [As so designated.] 7 5 [denn.]
CHAPTER I
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
This much is certain: that through the
II
393
always think oC6 an absolute
A
356
A
357
but logical unity (simplicity) of the subject; but not that I cognize through it the actual simplicity of myself as subject. We saw that the proposition,
I am substance, signifies nothing but the pure category, of which I can make
no use in concreto (empirical use). I am similarly permitted to say, I am a simple substance, i.e., one the presentation of which never contains a syn thesis of the manifold. But this concept-or, for that matter, this proposition-teaches us nothing whatever regarding myself as an object of
experience. For the concept of substance is itself used only as a function of synthesis, without an underlying77 intuition and hence without an ob ject, and holds only of the condition of our cognition, but does not hold of any object that one can indicate. Let us perform an experiment concerning the supposed usefulness of this proposition.78 Everyone must admit that the assertion of the simple nature of the soul has any value only insofar as I can thereby distinguish this subject from all matter, and consequently can exempt it from the decay to which matter is always subjected. Indeed, the above proposition is intended quite spe cifically for this use, and this is why it is usually also expressed thus: The soul is not corporeal. Now suppose that I could show that even if this car dinal proposition79 of rational psychology, in the pure signification of a mere judgment of reason (made from pure categories), is granted all ob jective validity (Everything that thinks is simple substance), we nonethe less cannot make the least use of this proposition in deciding whether the soul is heterogeneous from or akin to matter. If I can show this, then this will be tantamount to my having relegated this supposed psychological in sight to the realm of mere ideas, which lack the reality needed for objec tive use. In the Transcendental Aesthetic we have proved undeniably that bod ies80 are mere appearances of our outer sense and not things in themselves. In accordance with this, we may rightly say that our thinking subject is not corporeal; 81 that is, since it is presented by us as object of inner sense, it 76[sich . . . gedenken.]
" [Literally, 'underlaid': unterlegt.] 78 [ The soul is simple.'] 79 [That the soul is simple.] '
8O[Korper.]
81 [I.e., we as thinking subjects are not corporeal (korperiich).]
394
A 358
A 359
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
cannot insofar as it thinks be an object of outer senses, i.e., an appearance in space. Now, this means the same as that among outer82 experiences we can never encounter thinking beings, as such; or that we cannot exter nally83 intuit their thoughts, their consciousness, their desires, etc., for all of this belongs t084 inner sense. In fact, this argument seems also to be the natural and popular one that even the commonest understanding seems to have hit upon all along, and by which it began already very early to regard souls as beings that are quite distinct from bodies. Now extension, impenetrability, cohesion, and motion-in short, what ever the outer senses can supply us with-will thus indeed neither be nor contain thoughts, feeling, inclination, or decision, which are not objects of outer intuition at all. Nonetheless, something lies at the basis of outer ap pearances and affects our sense in such a way that this sense acquires the presentations of space, matter, shape, etc. And this something, considered as noumenon (or better, as transcendental object), might yet simulta neously also be the subject of our thoughts-although, because of 85 the way in which our outer sense is affected by this something, we acquire no intuition of presentations, of the will, etc., but acquire merely intuitions of space and its determinations. But this something is not extended, not im penetrable, not composite, because all these predicates concern only sen sibility and its intuition insofar as we are affected by such [transcendental] objects (with which we are otherwise unacquainted). These expressions,86 however, in no way allow us to cognize what sort of object it is, but only that to this object, as one considered apart from any reference to outer senses and thus considered in itself, we cannot ascribe these predicates of outer appearances; solely the predicates of inner sense- presentations and thought-do not contradict such an object. Accordingly, even if the sim plicity of the soul's nature is granted, such simplicity does not at all suf ficiently distinguish the human soul from matter, with regard to matter's substratum-if matter is regarded (as it ought to be) merely as appearance. If matter were a thing in itself, then it would as a composite being be distinguished altogether from the soul as a simple being. However, matter is merely outer appearance, whose substratum is not cognized through any B2 [iiujJer.] 83 [iiujJeriich.] 84 [VOr.] 85 [durch.] 8o [Le., 'not extended,' 'not impenetrable,' 'not composite.']
CHAPTER I
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
395
predicates that we can indicate. Hence concerning this substratum I can87 indeed assume that it is in itself simple, although by the manner in which it affects our senses it produces in us the intuition of what is extended and hence composite. And I can assume, therefore, that the substance which in
regard to our outer sense possesses88 extension is in itself attended by thoughts that can be presented consciously by the substance's own inner sense. In this manner, the same [thing] that in one reference is called cor poreal would in another reference simultaneously be a thinking being; and although we could not intuit this being's thoughts, we could still intuit their signs in appearance. Thus the expression which says that only souls think (as special kinds of substances) would be dropped. We would say, rather, as we do usually, that human beings think; i.e., that the same [thing] which
A 360
as outer appearance is extended is intrinsically (in itself) a subject that is not composite but is simple and thinks. But we can, without permitting such hypotheses, make this general re mark. If by soul I mean a thinking being in itself, then the very question as to whether or not the soul is of the same kind as matter (which is not at all a thing in itself but is only a kind of presentations in us) is already un fitting. For, of course, it is understood that a thing in itself is of a different nature from the determinations that make up merely its state. But if we compare the thinking I not with matter but with the intelli gible which lies at the basis of the outer appearance that we call matter, then, since of the intelligible we know nothing whatever, we also cannot say that the soul is in any respect intrinsically distinct from the intelligible. Thus our simple consciousness is not acquaintance with the simple na ture of ourselves as subject, insofar as this subject is thereby to be distin guished from matter taken as a composite being. Hence it seems that this concept, 89 in90 the single case where it is us able, viz., in the comparison of myself with objects of outer experience, is not suitable for determining what is peculiar to and distinctive of one's na ture. But if this is so, then although we may, of course, claim to know that the thinking I-the soul (a name for the transcendental object of inner sense}-is simple, yet this expression does not therefore have any use what87 [I.e., without contradicting myself.] 88 [der . . . zukommt.] 89 [Of the soul's Simplicity.] 9O[Omitting, with Erdmann and the Akademie edition, ihn before in.]
A 361
396
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
ever extending to actual objects, and hence cannot in the least expand our cognition. Thus falls, with its main support, the whole of rational psychology. And here as little as anywhere else can we hope to broaden our insights through mere concepts (but still less through the mere subjective form of all our concepts: consciousness) without reference to possible experience. This is so especially because even the fundamental concept of a simple nature is of such a kind that it cannot be encountered in any experience at all, so that there is no way whatever to arrive at this concept as an objectively valid one.
Third Paralogism, of Personality91 What is conscious of the numerical identity of itself in different times is to that extent a person. Now the soul is, etc. Therefore it is a person. CRITIQUE OF THE THIRD PARALOGISM OF TRANSCENDENTAL PSYCHOLOGY
A 362
If I want to cognize the numerical identity of an external object through experience, then I shall pay attention to the permanent [element in] that appearance to which, as subject, everything remaining refers as determi nation, and shall note the identity of that permanent [element] in the time wherein the remainder varies. 92 I, however, am an object of inner sense, and all time is merely the form of inner sense.93 Consequently, I refer each and every one of my successive determinations to the numerically identi cal self found in all time, i.e., in the form of the inner intuition of myself. On this basis, the personality of the soul would have to be regarded not even as inferred, but as a fully identical proposition94 of self-consciousness in time; and this is indeed the cause of its holding a priori. For it actually 9 1 [See Karl Ameriks, op. cit. at A 3411B 399 hr. n. 9, 1 28-76, esp. 1 30-37. See also Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 2931B 349 hr. n. 2, vol. I, 1 20-26. Also Norman Kemp Smith, op cit. at A vii hr. n. 5, 461-62. Also C. T. Powell, op. cit. at A 3431B 401 hr. n. 16, 1 30-73, esp. 1 30-35. And see T. K. Swing, op. cit. at A 3 1 0/8 366 hr. n. 94, 25 1 -52.] 92 [wechseln. See 8 224 hr. n. 45.] 9'[See the Transcendental Aesthetic, A 32-331B 49-50.] 9<[I.e., the proposition 'The soul is a person' would have to be regarded as analytic.]
CHAPTER I
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
397
says nothing more than that in the entire time wherein I am conscious of myself, I am conscious of this time as belonging to the unity of myself; and it amounts to the same whether I say that this entire time is in me as
individual unity, or that I am with numerical identity to be found in all this
time. In my own consciousness, therefore, identity of the person is unfail ingly to be met with. But if I contemplate myself from someone else's point of view (as object of his outer95 intuition), then this external observer con siders me first of all in time,96 for in apperception time is in fact presented only in me.97 Hence although he thus grants the I that in my consciousness accompanies at all time-and with full identity-all presentations, he will not yet infer from it the objective permanence of myself. For here the time wherein the observer posits me is not the time found in my own but the time found in his sensibility, and hence the identity that is necessarily linked with my consciousness is not therefore linked with his, i.e., with his outer intuition of myself as subject. Hence the identity of the consciousness of myself in different times is only a formal condition of my thoughts and of their coherence, but does not prove at all the numerical identity of myself as subject. In this subject regardless of the logical identity of the I-there may, after all, have oc curred such variation98 as does not permit us to retain [the claim to] its identity, although we may still go on to accord to this subject the homony mous I. For in any different state of the subject, even the state of its con version [to another], this I would still always preserve the thought of the preceding subject and thus could also pass it on to the subsequent one.99
A 363
95 [aujler, also rendered as 'external' just beloW.] 96 [And not yet (as I do in my self-consciousness) as (also) an individual unity having (his) entire time in him.] 97 [l e. (cf. A 370 inc!. br. n. 1 26), in oneself (not yet in anything external)-here in the ex .
ternal observer, as Kant goes on to say. I follow Vorllinder in adding emphasis on 'in me' and similarly, just below, on 'my' in 'my consciousness.'] 98 [Wechsel. See B 224 br. n. 45.] !IIIAn elastic ball striking another such ball in a straight direction communicates to that ball (if we take account merely of the positions in space) its entire motion and hence its entire state." Now let us-by analogy with such bodies-assume sub
stances one of which imbues the other with presentations along with the conscious ness of these. We shall then be able to think an entire series of such substances: the first would communicate its state, along with the consciousness thereof, to the second substance; the second would communicate its own state, along with the state
A 364
398 A 364
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
Although the proposition, put forth by some ancient schools, l o0 that everything in the world is
in flux and
nothing is permanent and enduring
cannot be upheld lO 1 once one assumes substances, this proposition is
nonetheless not refuted by the unity of self-consciousness. For we our selves cannot judge from our consciousness whether as souls we are per manent or not, because we class with our identical self only what we are conscious of, and thus must indeed necessarily judge that in the entire time of which we are conscious we are the same. But we cannot yet, on that account, declare this sameness to be valid from the standpoint of a stranger. For we do not encounter in the soul any permanent appearance except merely the presentation
I that
accompanies and connects all ap
pearances, and hence we can never establish whether this
I
(a mere
thought) is not just as much in flux as are all the remaining thoughts that it strings one to another. A 365
It is noteworthy, however, that the personality of the soul and its pre supposition, permanence, and hence the soul's substantiality must now first of all be proved. For if we could presuppose the latter, 1 02 then there would follow from it, not yet indeed the continuance of consciousness, but still the possibility of a continuing consciousness[,] in an enduring subject; and this is already sufficient for personality, which does not itself immediately cease because its actionlO3 is, perhaps, interrupted for a time. But there is nothing through which this permanence is given to us prior to the numeri cal identity of ourselves that we infer from the identical apperception; rather, this permanence is first inferred from that numerical identity. (And of the previous substance, to the third; and the third substance would similarly com municate to yet another the states of all the previous substances, along with its own state and the consciousness of all of them. Hence the last substance would be con scious of all the states of the substances that had changed before it as being its own states, because these states would have been transferred to it together with the con sciousness of them. Despite this, however, that substance would not have been the same person in all these states. "[See the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak. IV, 544-59.] lOO [It is attributed to Heraclitus, but was held also by such philosophers as Cratylus and (to some extent) Plato.] 101 [stat!finden.] I 02 [I.e., substantiality, with the implicit permanence.] l 03 [Wirkung.]
CHAPTER I
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
399
this [permanence] is what, if things were done rightly, should first be fol lowed by the concept of substance that is usable only empirically. 1 04) Since, then, this identity of the person does not by any means follow from the identity of the / found in the consciousness of all time wherein I cognize myself, we were also unable-aboveI 05-to base on it the substantiality of the soul. However, just as the concept of substance and of the simple remained with us, so may we keep also the concept of personality (insofar as this concept is merely transcendental, i.e., insofar as it concernsl O6 the unity of the subject with which we are otherwise unacquainted but in whose deter minations there is a thoroughgoing connection through apperception). And to this extent the concept of personality is, indeed, needed and sufficient for practical use. 107 But on no account can we parade it as an expansion of our self-cognition through pure reason, 108 an expansion that from the mere concept of the identical self holds outl O9 to us an uninterrupted con tinuation of the subject. For this concept revolves forever around itself, and does not take us further in regard to a single question aimed at synthetic cognition. What sort of thing matter may be in itself (as transcendental ob ject) is indeed entirely unknown 1 1 0 to us. But inasmuch as matter is pre sented as something external, the permanence of it as appearance can none theless be observed. I I I But if I want to observe in the variation of all appearances the mere /, then I have no other correlate for my comparisons than again myself with the universal conditions of my consciousness. Hence I can give to all questions none but tautological answers, viz., by sub stituting my concept and its unity for the properties belonging to myself as object, and by thus simply presupposing what people demanded to know. 1 04[ef. the end of A 349.] lOS [In the first paralogism; see esp. A 349-50.] 1 06 ['concems' inserted, as suggested by Adickes.] I07 [See below, A 809- 1 1 B 837-39. See also the Critique of Practical Reason, Ak. V, 122-24.] I 08 [See ibid., 1 34-4 1.] 109 [vors piegeln.] l lo [unbekannt. ] 1 l 1 [See the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak. IV, 542-43 .] =
A
366
400
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
Fourth Paralogism, of Idealityll2 (of Outerll3 Relations)
A
367
That whose existence 1 l 4 can only be inferred as the existence of a cause for given perceptions has a merely doubtful existence. 1 1 5 Now all outer1 l 6 appearances are of such a kind that their existence can not be perceived directly, l 17 but that these appearances can only be in ferred as the cause of given perceptions. Therefore the existence of all objects of outer senses is doubtful. I call this uncertainty the ideality of outer appearances, and the doctrine of this ideality is called idealism, in comparison to which the assertion of a pos sible certainty concerning objects of outer senses is called dualism. CRITIQUE OF THE FOURTH PARALOGISM OF TRANSCENDENTAL PSYCHOLOGY
A
368
Let us first subject the premises to examination. [They say the following.] We may rightly assert that only what is in ourselves can be perceived di rectly, and that solely my own existence can be the object of a mere per ception. Therefore the existence of an actual object outside me (if this wordl l S is taken in its intellectual meaning) 1 l 9 is never given straightfor wardly in perception. Rather, perception is a modification of inner sense, and the existence of such an actual object can only be added to perception, as its external cause, in thought and hence can only be inferred. This is also the reason why Descartes rightly limited all perception, in the nar rowest meaning of this term, to the proposition, I (as a thinking being) am. For clearly, since the external is not in me, I cannot encounter it in my ap1 1 2[See Karl Ameriks, op. cit. at A 3411B 399 br. n. 9, 84-1 27, esp. 1 1 1 - 1 4. See also Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 2931B 349 br. n. 2, vo!. I , 1 26-41 . Also Norman Kemp Smith, op cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 462-63. Also C. T. Powell, op. cit. at A 3431 B 401 br. n. 16, 1 74-206, esp. 175-82. And see T. K. Swing, op. cit. at A 3 101B 366 br. n. 94, 252-69.] I13 [iiufter.] 1 1 4 [Dasein.] l ls [Existenz here, Dasein in the two occurrences just below.] 116 [iiufter.] 1 1 7 [unmittelbar. See B xxxix br. n. 144c.]
1 1 8[ ' outside' ; cf. A 369 inc!. br. n. 124.] J I9[I.e., the meaning that it has according to pure concepts of understanding. Cf. A 369 i nc! br. n. 1 24.]
CHAPTER 1
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
40 1
perception, and hence also not in any perception, which is in fact only the determination of apperception. Hence 1 cannot, in fact, perceive external things, but can only infer their existence from my inner perception, by regarding this perception as the ef fect for which something external is the proximate cause. But the infer ence from a given effect to a determinate1 20 cause is always uncertain, be cause the effect may have arisen from more than one cause. Accordingly, in the reference of the perception to its cause it always remains doubtful whether this cause is internal or external; and hence it remains doubtful whether all so-called outer perceptions are not a mere play of our inner sense, or whether they do refer to external actual objects as their cause. At any rate, the existence of these objects is only inferred and runs the risk of all inferences, whereas the object of inner sense (I myself with all my pre sentations) is perceived directly and its existence admits of no doubt. Hence by an idealist we must mean, not someone who denies the ex istence of external objects of the senses, but someone who merely does not grant that this existence is cognized through direct perception, and who in fers from this that we can never through any possible experience become completely certain of their actuality. Now before 1 exhibit our paralogism in regard to its deceptive illusion, I must first point out that we must necessarily distinguish two kinds Of1 21 idealism. By transcendental idealism of all appearances 1 mean the doc trinal system1 22 whereby we regard them, one and all, as mere presenta tions and not as things in themselves, and according to which space and time are only sensible forms of our intuition, but not determinations given on their own or conditions of objects taken as things in themselves. This idealism is opposed to a transcendental realism, which regards both time and space as something given in itself (independently of our sensibility). Hence the transcendental realist conceives 1 23 outer appearances (if their ac tuality is granted) as things in themselves that exist independently of us and of our sensibility, and that would therefore be outside us even accord ing to pure concepts of understanding. 1 24 It is, in fact, this transcendental 1 20[Or 121
'definite': beslimmt.]
[ a twofold,' literally.] '
122[ Lehrbegrijf; i.e., a (structured) body of doctrines.] 123 ( . [ SICh) . . vorstellen. which I usually translate as 'to present.' See B xvii br. n. 73.]
1 24
[I.e., even with 'outside' taken in the meaning that it has according to such concepts; cf. A 367 inc!. br. n 1 1 9. Emphasis added.]
A
369
402
A 370
A 37 1
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
realist who afterwards plays the empirical idealist. 1 25 Having wrongly pre supposed that if objets of the senses are to be external then they must have their existence in themselves, i.e., even apart from the senses, he then finds that from this point of view all our presentations of the senses are insuf ficient to make the actuality of these objects certain. The transcendental idealist, on the other hand, can be an empirical re alist or, as he is called, a dualist. I.e., he can grant the existence of matter without going outside mere self-consciousness and without assuming any thing more than the certainty of presentations in me 1 26 and hence the cogito, ergo sum. For he accepts this matter and even its intrinsic possibility merely as appearance, which as separated from our sensibility is nothing. Hence matter is for him only a kind of presentations (intuition), called external; they are called external not as referring to objects in themselves external, but because they refer perceptions to the space wherein all things 1 27 are external to one another, although the space itself is in us. Now, we have from the very beginning declared ourselves in favor of this transcendental idealism. Hence with our doctrinal system there is no longer any perplexity in assuming just as much the existence of matter on the testimony of our mere self-consciousness, and of declaring it proved thereby, as the existence of myself as a thinking being. For I am, after all, conscious of my presentations; hence these presentations exist, and so do I myself who have them. However, external objects (bodies) are mere ap pearances and hence are also nothing but one of the kinds of my presen tations. The objects of these presentations are something only through them; apart from presentations these objects are nothing. Therefore external things exist just as well as I myself exist-and both, moreover, on the direct tes timony of my self-consciousness. The only difference is that the presenta tion of myself as the thinking subject is referred merely to inner sense, whereas the presentations designating extended beings are referred also to outer sense. I do not need to make an inference concerning the actuality of external objects any more than I do in regard to the actuality of the object of my inner sense (this object being my thoughts); for both objects are noth ing but presentations, whose direct perception (consciousness) is simulta neously a sufficient proof of their actuality. 12S[Kant begins to describe this view at A 37 1 .] 126[Le., in him (in oneself); cf. A 362 incl. br. n. 97 Transcendental idealism along with em pirical realism is, of course, Kant's own view.] 1 27[a/les.J
CHAPTER I
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
403
The transcendental idealist is, therefore, an empirical realist and con cedes to matter as appearance an actuality that does not need 1 28 to be in ferred but is directly perceived. Transcendental realism, on the other hand, gets necessarily into a quandary, and finds itself compelled to make room for129 empirical idealism. For it regards objects of the outer senses as some thing distinct from the senses themselves, and thus regards mere appear ances as independent 1 30 beings that are outside us. And thus, indeed, no matter how conscious we are 1 3 1 of our presentation of these things, it is on this view still far from certain that if the presentation exists then the ob ject corresponding to it also exists. In our system, on the other hand, these external things-viz., matter-are in all their shapes and changes nothing but mere appearances, i.e., presentations in us, of whose actuality we be come conscious directly. Now, as far as I know, all psychologists who adhere to empirical ide alism are transcendental realists; and thus they have indeed proceeded quite consistently in conceding to empirical idealism great importance as one of the problems from which human reason finds it difficult to extricate 132 it self. For, indeed, if we regard outer appearances as presentations produced in us by their objects where these objets are taken as things that are in them selves outside us, then it is impossible to see how we can cognize the ex istence of these objects otherwise than by the inference from effect to cause; and in this inference it must always remain doubtful whether the cause is in us or outside us. Now we may, indeed, grant that something that may in the transcendental meaning of the term be outside us is the cause of our outer intuitions. But this something is not the object that we mean by the presentations of matter and of bodily things; for these are only appear ances, i.e., mere kinds of presentations that are always to be found only in us and whose actuality rests just as much on direct consciousness as does the consciousness 1 33 of my own thoughts. In regard both to inner and to outer intuition we are equally unacquainted with the transcendental object. Nor, however, is the transcendental object at issue; at issue is the empiri128 [daif; in Kant, durfen usually means the same as bedurfen.] 1 29 [Literally, 'grant room to': Platz einzuriiumen.] '30 [selbstiindig .] 13 1 [bei unserem besten BewujJtsein.] 132 [helfen.]
1 33 [Kant probably meant to say 'as does the actuality of my own thoughts'; cf. A 370-7 1 , esp. the end of the first paragraph at A 37 1 .]
A
372
A
373
404
A 374
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
cal object. This object is called an external one if it is presented in space, and an internal object if it is presented only in a time relation. Both space and time, however, are to be found only in us. The expression outside us thus carries with it an unavoidable ambigu ity, sometimes meaning something that as thing in itself exists as distinct from us, and sometimes meaning what belongs merely to outer appear ance. Now the concept in the latter meaning is the one in which the psy chological question concerning the reality of our outer intuition is properly taken. Hence in order to release this concept from the insecurity, 1 34 let us distinguish empirically external objects-from those that might be called external in the transcendental sense-by calling them, straightforwardly, things that are to be found in space. Space and time are indeed a priori presentations that reside in us, as forms of our sensible intuition, even before an actual object has deter mined our sense through sensation in order for us to present this object un der those sensible relations. Yet this material 1 35 or real something, this something that is to be intuited in space, necessarily presupposes percep tion and cannot independently of perception, which indicates the actuality of something in space, be invented or produced by any imagination. 1 36 Hence perception is what designates an actuality in space or time, accord ing as it is referred to the one or the other kind of sensible intuition. Once sensation is given (sensation, when applied to an object as such without determining it, is called perception), then through its manifoldness many an object can be invented in imagination 1 37 that has no empirical position in space or time outside of imagination. This is indubitably certain: whether we take the sensations called pleasure and pain, or-for that matter-those of the outer senses, 1 3 8 such as colors, heat, etc. , it is through perception that the material 1 39 for thinking any objects of sensible intuition must first be given. This perception, then (to stay, for now, with outer intuitions only), presents something actual in space. For, first, perception is the presenta tion of an actuality, just as space is the presentation of a mere possibility 134 [Of ambiguity.] 135 [materiell.] I
35 [Einbildungskraft.]
1 37 [Einbildung (similarly just below). This term and Einbildungskraft are used virtually i n terchangeably by Kant.]
l3R['senses' inserted. as suggested by Erdmann and incorporated in the Akademie edition .] 1 30 [Sroff.]
CHAPTER I
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
405
of being together. Second, this actuality is presented to 1 40 outer sense, i.e., in space. Third, space itself is nothing but mere presentation. Hence only what is presented in space can count 14 1 as actual;142 and, con versely, what is given-i.e., presented through perception-in space is
A
375
A
376
A
375
also actual in it; for if it were not actual in space, i.e., directly given in it through empirical intuition, then it also could not be invented [in imagi nation], because the real [component] of intuitions cannot be thought up a priori at all. All outer perception, therefore, directly proves something actual in space-or is, rather, the actual itself. Hence to this extent empirical real ism is beyond doubt; i.e., to our outer intuitions there corresponds some thing actual in space. To be sure, space itself and all its appearances are, as presentations, only in me. But in this space the real-or [i.e.] the ma terial of all objects of outer intuition-is nonetheless given actually and independently of all invention. And it is indeed impossible for anything out side us (in the transcendental sense) to be given in this space, because space itself is nothing outside 143 our sensibility. Hence even the most rigorous idealist cannot demand a proof that the object outside us (in the strict [tran scendental] meaning) corresponds to our perception. For if there were such an object, then it could still not be presented and intuited as outside us. For this presupposes space; and actuality in space, as actuality of a mere pre sentation, is nothing but perception itself. Hence the real [component] of outer appearances is actual only in perception and cannot be actual in any other way. Now from perceptions there can be produced cognition of objects, ei ther through a mere play of imagination, or-for that matter-by means 140
[VOr. ]
1 41
[gelten. ] 14Z We must take careful note of this paradoxical but correct proposition: that there is nothing in space except what is presented in it. For space itself is nothing but
presentation. Consequently, what is in space must be contained in the presentation, and nothing whatever is in space except insofar as it is presented in it actually. It is a proposition that must indeed sound strange: that a thing can exist only in the presentation of it. But here it loses its obj ectionable character, because the things' that we are dealing with are not things in themselves but only appearances, i.e., presentations. a [Sachen , and similarly just above; Dinge just below.]
143[Or 'apart from ' ] .
406
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
of experience. And here there may indeed arise deceptivel 44 presentations to which the objects do not correspond, and where the delusion 145 is at tributable sometimes (in dreams) to a deception 1 46 of imagination, some times (with the so-called deception 1 47 of the senses) to a slip of the power of judgment. 1 48 Now in order here to escape the deceptive illusion, 1 49 one proceeds by this rule:
What is linked with a perception according to em
pirical laws is actual.
Such delusion, however, as well as the safeguard
against it, affects idealism just as much as dualism, because we are deal
ing, as regards such illusion, 1 50 only with the form of experience. To re
fute empirical idealism as a false perplexity concerning the objective re ality of our outer perceptions, the following is already sufficient: Outer A
377
perception directly proves an actuality in space. This space, although be ing in itself only a mere form of presentations, still has objective reality in regard to all outer appearances (which are also nothing but mere presen tations). And likewise, without perception even [imaginative] inventing and dreaming are not possible, and hence our outer senses have, according to the data from which experience can arise, their actual corresponding ob jects in space. The dogmatic ter; the skeptical
idealist would be the one who denies the existence of mat idealist the one who doubts matter's existence because he
considers such existence 1 5 1 to be unprovable. The dogmatic idealist can be such only because he believes that he finds contradictions in the possibil
ity of a matter as such; and we are not yet dealing with him now. The fol
lowing section 1 5 2 on dialectical inferences, which presents reason in its in ternal dispute regarding what concepts it frames concerning the possibility 144 [truglich.) 14S [Tauschung.) 146 [Blendwerk.) 147 [Betrug.) 148 [ Urteilskra/t.) 1 49 [falscher Schein.) lso[dabei.)
lSl[Reading, with Erdmann, e.. . . . es for sie . . . sie. Kant seems to have thought that he had written Existenz rather than Dasein.) lS2[Chapter, actually.)
CHAPTER I
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
407
of whatl5 3 belongs to the coherence of experience, will also remedy this difficulty. The skeptical idealist, however, challenges merely the basis of our assertion and declares that our persuasion as to the existence of roatter-a persuasion that we believe ourselves to be basing on direct perception-is insufficient. He is a benefactorl 54 of human reason insofar as he compels us to open our eyes widely in taking even the smallest step of common experience, and not immediately to admit as well-earned into our possession what perhaps we obtain only surreptitiously. 1 55 The ben efit156 provided here by these objections of idealism is now obvious and
A
378
A
379
clear. They forcibly impel us-if we do not want to become entangled in our commonest assertions-to regard all perceptions, whether called inner or outer, as a consciousness merely of what attaches to our sensibility. And they impel us to regard the external objects of these perceptions not as things in themselves but only as presentations of which we can become conscious directly, as we can of any other presentation. We thus see that these objects are called outer157 because they attach to the sense that we call the outer sense. The intuition of this sense is space-this space itself, however, being yet nothing but an inner kind of presentation wherein cer tain perceptions connect with one another. If we accept external objects as things in themselves, then it is abso lutely impossible to comprehend how we could arrive at the cognition of their actuality outside us, since we rely merely on the presentation that is in us. For, after all, one cannot sense outside oneself but only within one self, and hence our entire self-consciousness supplies us with nothing but merely our own determinations. Thus skeptical idealism compels us to take the one refuge left us, viz., that of the ideality of all appearances. We have-in the Transcendental Aesthetic-established this ideality indepen dently of these consequences, which we could not then foresee. Now if we ask whether, accordingly, only dualism has a place in psychology, then the answer is: Indeed-but only in the empirical meaning of the term. I.e., in 1S3 [ Adopting Hartenstein's reading of die sie sich for die sich, but as combined with Kehr bach's reading of de.uen macht for dessen. Erdmann and the Akademie edition simply drop die sich, thus leaving 'the concepts of the possibility.'] IS4 [Wohltiiter.] l ss[ erschleichen.] 1S6[ Nutzen . ] 157
[Or 'external.']
408
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
the coherence 158 of experience matter, as substance in [the realm of] ap pearance, is actually given to outer sense, 159 just as the thinking I, likewise as substance in [the realm of] appearance, is given to1 60 inner sense. And in both cases appearances must, moreover, be connected with one another according to the rules that this category 1 6 1 brings into the coherence----Qf both our outer and inner perceptions-that yields 162 an experience. If, how ever, as is commonly done, we were to expand the concept of dualism and take it in the transcendental meaning, then neither it nor the views opposed to it-pneumatism on the one hand, or materialism on the other hand l 63 -would have the slightest basis. For we would then fail in the detenni nation of our concepts, taking the difference in the way of presenting objects-objects with which we remain unacquainted as regards what they are in themselves-to be a difference in these things themselves. I, as pre
A 380
sented through inner sense in time, and objects in space outside me are in deed appearances quite distinct in kind, l 64 but they are not thereby thought as different things. The transcendental object which underlies outer ap pearances, and likewise that transcendental object which underlies inner in tuition is in itself neither matter nor a thinking being, but is, rather, a basis-with which we are unacquainted-of appearances that provide us with the empirical concept of both the first and the second kind.1 65 If, therefore, as the present critique obviously compels us to do, we re main faithful to the rule-laid down above-to carry our questions just as far as [our] possible experience can provide us with its object and no fur ther, then it will not even occur to us to explore the objects of our senses as to what they may be in themselves, i.e., apart from any reference to the senses. But if the psychologist takes appearances to be things in them selves, then whether as a materialist he accepts into his doctrinal system solely and exclusively matter as things existing by themselves, or as a spiri tualist accepts merely thinking beings (viz., according to the fonn of inner 1 5 S[Or 'context.' ] 159[See the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak. IV, 503, 542-43.] 1 60[VOr.] 16 1 [Of substance.] 1 62 [ZU.] 163 [I.e., concerning (respectively) spint and matter.] 1 64[Correcting skeptisch to spezijisch, on Kant's own instruction at A xxii.] 165 [I.e., of matter and of a thinking being. Cf. A 379.]
CHAPTER I
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
409
sense), or as a dualist accepts both: he is yet, through misunderstanding, always kept doing subtle reasoning about the way in which what is, after all, not a thing in itself-but is only the appearance of a thing as such may exist in itself.
Observation on the Sum of Pure Psychology in Consequence of These Paralogisms166
A
381
A
382
If we compare psychology as the physiology of inner sense with somatol
g/ 67
o
as a physiology of objects of outer senses, then we find-besides
the fact that much can be cognized empirically in both-the noteworthy difference that in the second science much can yet be cognized syntheti cally a priori from the mere concept of an extended impenetrable being, but in the first science nothing at all can be so cognized from the concept of a thinking being. 1 68 The cause is this. Although both kinds are appear ances, yet the appearance to outer sense has something constant1 69 and en during that provides us with a substratum lying at the basis of the mutable determinations, and hence provides us with a synthetic concept, viz., the concept of space and of an appearance in space; 170 time, on the other hand, which is the sole form of our inner intuition, has nothing enduring, and hence allows 1 7 1 us to cognize only the variationl 72 by determinations, but not the determinable object. For in what we call soul, everything is in con tinual flux and there is nothing enduring, except perhaps (if one insists) 173 the I; the I is so simple because this presentation, by having no content and hence no manifold, seems also to present, or-to put it better-to des ignate, a simple object. If bringing about a pure rational cognition of the nature of a thinking being as such is to be possible, then this I would have 166 [See
Karl Ameriks, op. cit. at A 341/B 399 br. n. 9, 84- 1 27. See also Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 293/B 349 br. n. 2, vol. I, 1 4 1 -64. And see Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. S, 463-66.] 167 [Korperlehre literally 'doctrine of bodies.'] , 1 68 [See the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak. IV, 47 1 .] '69[stehend.]
1 70[See 171
the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak. IV, 471 -72.]
[geben .]
I72 [Wechsel. See B 224 br. n. 45.] . 171 [ln hi s working copy of edition A (see Preliminary Studies and Supplementary Entries---<:ited at A 19/B 33 br. n. 1 3-Ak. XXIII, 50), Kant deletes 'perhaps (if one insists).']
410
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
to be an intuition that, by being presupposed in thought as such (prior to all experience), would-as thus an a priori intuition-supply synthetic propositions. 174 However, this I is no more an intuition than a concept of
A 383
any object. It is, rather, the mere form of consciousness 1 75-the conscious ness that can accompany both kinds 1 76 of presentations and can thereby raise them to cognitions, viz., insofar as there is also given in intuition somethingl 77 else that offers material for a presentation of an object. Hence the whole of rational psychology falls, as a science surpassing all powers of human reason; and nothing is left for us but to study our soul by the guidance of experience, and to keep within the limits of those questions that go no further than [the realm where] their content can be displayed by possible inner experience. But although rational psychology if taken as expansive cognition has no benefit but is then composed of nothing but paralogisms, one cannot deny that it has an important negative benefit if it is supposed to count as nothing more than a critical treatment of our dialectical inferences, viz., those of common and natural reason. For what, indeed, do we need a psychology based merely on pure prin ciples of reason? Doubtless primarily for the aim of securing our thinking self against the danger of materialism. This, however, is accomplished by the pure rational concept of our thinking self that we have already given. For so far is this concept from leaving us with any fear that if we removed matter then all thinking and even the existence of thinking beings would thereby be annulled, that it shows-rather-that if I removed the thinking subject then the whole corporeal world would have to go away, since this world is nothing but the appearance in the sensibility of, and a kind of pre sentations of, ourselves as subject. Through this concept, to be sure, I do not cognize this thinking self bet ter as regards its properties, nor can I thus gain insight into its permanence-indeed, not even into the independence 178 of this self's ex istence from what may be 1 79 the transcendental substratum of outer ap174[Or, perhaps, 'would as intuition supply synthetic propositions a priori.') 1 75[ln his working copy of edition A (see br. n. 1 73 , just above), Kant changes 'the mere form of consciousness' to 'the object of consciousness with which we are unacquainted.') 176[l.e., inner and outer.) 1 77 [jrgend etwas.) 178 [Unabhiingigkeit.) 1 79 [etwaig.)
CHAPTER I
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
411
pearances; for I am just as unacquainted with this substratum as I am with the thinking self. 180 But it is nonetheless possible that I may find cause, somewhere other than in merely speculative bases, to hope for an exist ence of my thinking nature that is independene 81 and permanent during l 82 all possible variation of my state. And hence much has been gained al ready, as I freely confess my own ignorance, by my yet being able to repel the dogmatic attacks of a speculative opponent, and to show him that he can never know more about the nature of myself as subject in denying that my expectations are possible, than do I in holding on to them.
A 384
Then there are still three dialectical questions that are based on this tran scendental illusion of our psychological concepts-questions that amount to the goal proper of rational psychology and cannot be decided otherwise than through the above inquiries: viz., the questions ( 1 ) about the possibil ity of the soul's communionl 8 3 with an organic body, i.e., about animal ity1 84 and the state of the soul in a human being's life; (2) about the be ginning of this communion, i.e., about the soul in and before a human being's birth; (3) about the end of this communion, i.e., about the soul in and after a human being's death (the question concerning immortality). Now, people believe that they find difficulties in these questions, and by using1 85 them as dogmatic objections they seek to give themselves the repu tation of having a deeper insight into the nature of things than common understanding can presumably have. All these difficulties, I maintain, rest on a mere deception whereby what exists merely in thoughts is hyposta tized and is assumed, in the same quality, as an actual object outside the thinking subject. I.e., I mean the deception of regarding extension, which is nothing but appearance, as a property of external things that subsists 1 86 even apart from our sensibility, and of regarding motion as these things ' effect that occurs actually and in itself, even apart from our senses. For mat ter, whose communion with the soul arouses such great concern, is noth ing but a mere form, or a certain way of presenting an object, with which 180[See above, A 357-60.] 18 1 [selbstiindig.] 182 [bei.] 183
[Gemeinschaft. which also means 'community.'] 184 [Animalitiit.]
185 [mit.] 1 86
[subsistierend.]
A 385
412
A 386
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
we are unacquainted, by means of that intuition which is called outer sense. Thus there may well be something outside us to which this appearance that we call matter corresponds; but in the same quality that it has as appear ance it is not outside us, but is merely within us as a thought-although this thought, through the mentioned [outer] sense, presents it as being out side us. Hence matter does not signify a kind of substances that is so very distinct and heterogeneous 187 from the object of inner sense (the soul). It signifies, rather, the heterogeneity 1 88 of the appearances of objects (with which we are unacquainted as they are in themselves) whose presentations we call outer, by comparison with those that we class with inner sense. We call those presentations outer although they belong just as much merely to the thinking subject as do all other thoughts, except for having the delu sive feature that, because they present objects in space, they detach themselves-as it were-from the soul and seem to hover outside it; and yet the space itself wherein they are intuited is nothing but a presentation, whose counterpart cannot in the same quality be encountered outside the soul at all. Hence now the question is no longer about the soul's commun ion with other known 1 89 substances outside us that are different in kind, 1 90 but merely about the connection of the presentations of inner sense with the modifications of our outer sensibility, and how these presentations and modifications may be connected among one another according to constant laws so as to cohere in an experience. As long as we hold inner and outer appearances up to one another as mere presentations in experience, we find nothing that is preposterous and that makes the communion of the two kinds of senses strange. But suppose that we hypostatize outer appearances, and that we refer them to our selves as thinking subject no longer as presentations but so refer them also, in the
same quality which they have as they are in us, as subsisting 19 1 by them· selves outside us; and suppose that we so refer also their actions which they
show in relation to one another as appearances. As soon as we do this, we have outside us a character of efficient causes that refuses to be reconciled with their effects in us; for this character refers only to outer senses, but the effects refer to inner sense-and these outer and inner senses, although 1 87 [heterogen.] 1 88 [ Ungleichartigkeit. ] 1 89 [bekannt. ] 1 9° [jremdartig. i.e., here, different from the phenomenal.] 191 [bestehend.]
CHAPTER I
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
413
united in one subject, are yet extremely heterogeneous. Thus we then have no other outer effects than changes of place, and no forces except merely endeavors resulting in, as their effects, relations in space. In us, however, the effects are thoughts, among which there does not occur any relation of place, or any motion, shape--or any determination of space at all; and thus for us the guide to the causes is entirely lost from their effects that were to show up in inner sense. We should bear in mind, however, that bodies are
A
387
A
388
not objects in themselves that are present to us, but are a mere appearance of who knows what unknown 192 object; that motion is not the effect of this unknown cause, but is merely the appearance of its influence on our senses; and that, consequently, both the bodies and the motion are not something outside us, but are merely presentations in us; and that hence the motion of matter does not produce presentations in us, but the motion itself (and hence also the matter that we can thereby come to know l 93) is mere pre sentation. And we should bear in mind, finally, that the entire self-created difficulty thus comes down to this question: how and by what cause the presentations of our sensibility are so linked with one another that the pre sentations called outer intuitions can according to empirical laws be pre sented as objects outside us. Now, this question in no way involves the sup posed difficulty of explaining the origin of presentations of efficient causes outside us that are quite different in kind. This difficulty arises by our tak ing the appearances of an unknown cause to be the cause itself outside us 194 -a move that can occasion nothing but confusion. When judgments in volve a misinterpretation that has through long habit taken root in them, then it is impossible to make the correction immediately as comprehen sible as may be demanded 1 95 in other cases, where no such unavoidable illusion confuses the concept. Hence this liberation of our reason from so phistical theories can hardly already have the distinctness that it needs in order to be fully satisfactory. I believe that I can further this distinctness in the following manner. All objections can be divided into dogmatic, critical, and skeptical ones. A dogmatic objection is one directed against a proposition; a critical ob jection is one directed against the proof of a proposition. A dogmatic ob1 92 [unbekannt; likewise just below and near the end of A 387 .] 1 93 [sich . . . kennbar macht.]
194 [I.e., the appearances are taken to be things in themselves. See below, A 391 adjin. and A 392 ad fin.] 19' [Reading, with Rosenkranz, gefordert for gefordert.]
414
A
A
389
390
PART II
1RANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
jection requires that we have an insight into the character of the object's nature, in order that we can assert the opposite of what the proposition claims concerning this object. Hence the objection is itself dogmatic, and claims to be better acquainted with the character at issue than is the adver sary. A critical objection, because it leaves the proposition untouched in regard to its merit 196 or lack of merit and challenges only the proof, does not at all need to be better acquainted with the object or to pretend to a better acquaintance with it. Such an objection shows only that the asser tion is baseless, not that it is incorrect. A skeptical objection puts propo sition and counterproposition in reciprocal opposition to each other as ob jections of equal importance: each reciprocally as dogma and the other as the objection thereto. It is, therefore, seemingly dogmatic on two opposite sides, in order to annul entirely all judgment about the object. Hence a dog matic and a skeptical objection must both alike pretend to as much insight into their object as is needed in order to assert something about it affirma tively or negatively. Only a critical objection is such that, just by showing that something null and merely imagined is being assumed for the sake of someone's assertion, it topples the theory; it does so by withdrawing the theory's alleged foundation, without seeking to establish anything else-i.e., anything about the character of the object. Now when we follow 1 97 our reason's ordinary concepts regarding the communion 1 98 in which our thinking subject stands with the things outside us, we are dogmatic and regard them as veritable objects 1 99 subsisting in dependently of us. I.e., we then follow a certain transcendental dualism that does not class those outer appearances with the subject as presentations, but transfers them, just as sensible intuition supplies them to us, outside us as objects and thus separates them entirely from the thinking subject. Now this subreption200 is the foundation of all theories concerning the commu nity between soul and body. And people never ask whether this objective reality of appearances is indeed [assumed] quite correct[ly], but presup pose this reality as having been conceded and reason only about the way in which it must be explained and comprehended. Three systems are usu ally devised concerning this, and are actually the only possible ones: viz .. 196 [Wert.] 1 97 [nach.] 1 98 [Or 'community' . Gemeinschaft.] 199 [Gegenstdnde here, Objekte just below. See A vii br. n. 7 J
200 [See A 643/B 671 inc!. br n. 14 ]
CHAPTER I
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
those of physical influence, predetermined harmony, sistance. 20 1
and
415
supranatural as
The last two of these ways of explaining the soul's communion with matter are based on objections against the first way, which is the concep tion202 of common sense. The objection is that what appears as matter can not by its direct influence be the cause of presentations, since these are a kind of effects entirely heterogeneous from matter. But those who raise this objection cannot be linking with what they mean by an object of outer senses the concept of a matter that is nothing but appearance and hence is
in itself already mere presentation produced by some external objects. For otherwise they would be saying that the presentations of external objects (appearances) cannot be external causes of the presentations in our mind; and this would be an entirely senseless objection, since no one would think oe03 regarding as an external cause what he has once acknowledged to be mere presentation. Hence they must, by our principles, aim their theory at
the assertion that whatever is the true (transcendental) object of our outer senses cannot be the cause of those presentations (appearances) that we mean by the name matter. But then their assertion is entirely baseless, since no one can have a basis for claiming to know204 anything about the tran scendental cause of our presentations of outer senses. Suppose, on the other hand, that the alleged reformers of the doctrine of physical influence-in accordance · with the common way of conceiving a transcendental dualism-regard matter, as such, as a thing in itself (and not as mere ap pearance of an unknown205 thing); and suppose that they aim their objec tion at showing that such an external object, which shows in itself no other causality than that of motions, can never be the efficient cause of presen tations, but that a third being must hence intercede in order to bring about between the two, if not interaction, then at least correspondence and har mony. If they argued in this way, then they would begin their refutation by 7tp&rcov 'IIe-Gooc;206 of physical influence;
assuming in their dualism the
201 [These seem to correspond to the interactionism of (above all) Rene Descartes ( 1 596-1650),
the theory of preestablished harmony of Gottfried Wilhelm von Leibniz ( 1 646- 1 7 1 6), and the occasionalism of Nicholas de Malebranche ( 1 638- 1 7 15).] 202 [ Vors tellung.] 2OJ [ei '!fallen.] 204 [ kennen. ] 2os [ unbekannt; likewise at the end of the paragraph and (twice) in the subsequent one.] 206[P roton pseudos: foremost falsehood.]
A
391
416
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
and hence they would refute by their objection not so much this natural influence as their own dualistic presupposition. For all the difficulties con cerning the linking of our thinking nature with matter arise, without ex ception, from this surreptitiously obtained207 conception208 that matter, as such, is not appearance-Le., mere presentation209 of the mind to which
A 392
A 393
an unknown object corresponds-but is the object in itself as it exists out side us and independently of all sensibility. Hence no dogmatic objection can be made against the commonly as sumed physical influence. For if the opponent assumes that matter and its motion are mere appearances and hence are themselves mere presenta tions, then he can posit the difficulty only in the claim that the unknown object of our sensibility cannot be the cause of the presentations in us; but for this claim he does not have the least justification, because no one can tell concerning an unknown object what it can or cannot do. Yet, by the proofs given by us above, he must necessarily concede this transcendental idealism-provided that he does not want manifestly to hypostatize pre sentations and to transfer them, as true things, outside himself. Nonetheless, a well-based critical objection can be made against the common dogma2 1 O of physical influence. Such an alleged communion be tween two kinds of substances, viz., thinking and extended, uses as its ba sis a crude dualism; and it turns extended substances-which, after all, are nothing but mere presentations of the thinking subject-into things sub sisting by themselves. Hence the misunderstood physical influence can be defeated fully by uncovering the fact that its basis of proof is null and sur reptitiously obtained. Hence the notorious question concerning the communion of the think ing and the extended, if everything merely imaginary is separated from it, would come down solely to this: how in a thinking being as such there is possible an outer intuition-viz., that of space (specifically, a filling of space with shape and motion). Finding an answer to this question is, how ever, impossible for any human being;2! 1 and we can never fill this gap in 207 [erschlichen.] 208 [ Vorste[[ung.] 209 [ Vorstellung.] 2 1 O [Lehrmeinung, literally 'doctrinal opinion.']
21 1 [For some other instances where Kant claims that the utter limits of human comprehen sion have been reached, see above, B 145-46; the Prolegomena, Ak. IV, 3 1 8 ad fin . and the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 405-6.] .
CHAPTER I
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
417
our knowledge, but can only mark it by ascribing outer appearances to a transcendental object: an object which is the cause of this kind of presen tations, but with which we are not acquainted at all and of which we shall also never acquire any concept. In any problems that we may encounter in the realm of experience we treat those outer appearances as objects in them selves, without worrying about the primary basis of their possibility (as ap pearances). But if we go beyond their boundary, then for this the concept of a transcendental object becomes necessary. A direct consequence of these remarks about the communion between a thinking and an extended being is the settlement of all controversies and objections concerning the state of the thinking nature before this commun ion (i.e., before life), or after such communion once abolished (in death). The opinion that before any communion with bodies the thinking subject was able to think would be expressed thus: that before the beginning of this kind of sensibility, whereby something appears to us in space, the same transcendental objects that in our present state appear as bodies were in tuitable in an entirely different way. And the opinion that after abolition of all communion with the corporeal world the soul can still continue to think would be proclaimed in this form: that if the kind of sensibility should cease whereby transcendental and, for now, entirely unknown21 2 objects appear to us as a material world, then this would not yet abolish all intuition of these objects, and these same unknown objects might quite possibly con tinue to be cognized by the thinking subject-although, of course, no longer in the quality of bodies. Now although no one can from speculative principles adduce the slight est basis for such an assertion-indeed, even its possibility cannot thus be established but can only be presupposed-yet just as little can anyone make any valid dogmatic objection against it. For whoever he may be, he knows just as little as I or anyone else regarding the absolute and intrinsic2 1 3 cause of outer and corporeal appearances. Hence he also cannot have a basis for claiming to know on what the actuality of outer appearances in our current state (i.e., in life) rests-nor, therefore, can he know that the condition of all outer intuition, or even the thinking subject himself, will cease after this state (i.e., in death). And thus all dispute about the nature of our thinking being and of its connection with the corporeal world is merely a consequence of this error: 212 [unbekannt ; likewise just below.] 213 [inner, which also means 'internal' or 'inner.']
A 394
A 395
418
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
that in regard to something of which one knows nothing one fills the gap by using paralogisms of reason, whereby one turns thoughts into things and so hypostatizes them. From this there arises, in the case both of him who asserts affirmatively and of him who asserts negatively, imaginary science. For each of them either supposes that he knows something about objects of which no human being has any concept, or turns his own presentations into objects and thus revolves in a perpetual circle of ambiguities and con tradictions. Nothing but the sobriety of a strict but just critique can free us from this dogmatic deception-which keeps so many people caught up in theories and systems through an imagined happiness to be found there and can limit all our speculative claims to the realm of possible experience only. The critique does not do this, say, by insipidly scoffing at all the at tempts that have so frequently failed, or by piously sighing over the limits of our reason. It does so, rather, by means of a determination of reason's bounds that is carried out according to secure principles, and that affixes with utmost reliability its A 396
nihil ulteriui 1 4 to the Pillars of Hercules. These
pillars were erected by nature itself in order that we pursue reason's voy age only as far as the steadily continuing coasts of experience extend; for we cannot leave these coasts of experience without venturing upon a shore less ocean that, after offering t02 15 us outlooks forever deceptive, compels us in the end to give up, as hopeless, all our burdensome and tedious en deavor? 16 So far we still owe the reader a distinct and general exposition of the transcendental and yet natural illusion in the paralogisms of pure reason, as well as the justification for their arrangement, which is systematic and runs parallel to the table of categories. We could not have taken on this exposition and justification at the beginning of this section2 1 7 without run ning the risk of becoming obscure or of inappropriately anticipating our selves. Let us now try to fulfill this obligation. 214[Nothing beyond-viz., beyond the line connecting the Pillars of Hercules. i.e., the twO points of land, Gibraltar and Jebel Musa. on either side of the Strait of Gibraltar. The Pillars were for centuries regarded by the peoples of the Mediterranean as the limits of seafanng en terprise.1 21 5 [unler.1 21 6[TIus is one of the rare occasions when Kant waxes poetic. For some others. see A 235-36/B 294-95; A 6 1 3 B 64 1 ; A 629-30 B 657-58.] =
217[Chapter, actually.]
=
CHAPTER I
We may posit all
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
illusion
as consisting in taking the
subjective
419
condi
tion of thinking to be the cognition of the object. Moreover, in the intro duction to the Transcendental Dialectic we have shown that reason deals solely with the totality of the synthesis of the conditions for a given con
ditioned?1 8 Now since the dialectical illusion of pure reason cannot be an empirical illusion, which occurs in determinate empirical cognition, it will concern what is universal in the conditions of thinking, and there will be
A 397
only three cases of pure reason's dialectical use:
I . The synthesis of the conditions of a thought as such.
2.
The synthesis of the conditions of empirical thinking.
3. The synthesis of the conditions of pure thinking. In all three of these cases pure reason deals merely with the absolute to tality of this synthesis, i.e., with the condition that is itself unconditioned. This division is also the basis for the threefold transcendental illusion, which gives rise to the three sections2 19 of the Dialectic and accordingly provides us with the idea for three illusory sciences drawn from pure reason: tran scendental psychology, transcendental cosmology, and transcendental the010gy?20 Here we have to do only with transcendental psychology. Because in thinking as such we abstract from all reference of the thought
to any object (whether of the senses or of pure understanding), the synthe
sis of the conditions of a thought as such (No. I ) is not objective at all, but
is merely a synthesis22 1 of the thought with the subject-a synthesis that is, however, wrongly regarded as a synthetic presentation of an object. From this, however, it also follows that the dialectical inference to the condition of all thinking as such, a condition which is itself unconditioned, does not commit an error in content (for it abstracts from any content or ob ject), but that it errs in form alone and must therefore be called a paralogism.
Moreover, because the one condition that accompanies all thinking is
the
I in the universal
proposition
I think,
reason deals with this condition
insofar as the condition is itself unconditioned. It is, however, only the for mal condition-viz. , the logical unity of any thought, a thought wherein I 218 [See A 307-91B 364-66.) 219 [Kant means chapters again.] 220 [Cf A 334-351B 391-92.] 22 1 [Viz., the I think.)
A 398
420
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
thus abstract from any object-and is yet presented as an object that I think: viz., I myself and the unconditioned unity of this
I.
If someone were to pose to me the question, in general, What is the char acter of a thing that thinks?, then I do not a priori know the slightest an swer to this. For the answer is to be synthetic (because an analytic answer may indeed explicate what thinking is, but provides no expanded222 cog nition of what this thinking rests on as regards its possibility)?23 Any syn thetic solution, however, requires intuition; but in this problem, universal as it is, intuition has been omitted entirely. Likewise, no one can answer the question, Just what sort of thing must a movable thing be?, in its uni versality. For impenetrable extension (matter) is then not given [in intu
ition].224 Now although I know no universal answer to this question, it does seem to me that I can give such an answer in a single case, viz . , in the A 399
proposition that expresses self-consciousness:
I think. For this I is the pri
mary subject; i.e., it is substance; it is simple; etc. But then these propo sitions would all have to be experiential ones; yet in fact they could not contain such predicates225 (which are not empirical) without a universal rule stating a priori the conditions226 of the possibility of thinking as such. In this way my initially so plausible insight, that we can make judgments about the nature of a thinking being and can do so from concepts alone, becomes suspect, although I have not yet uncovered the error in it.
This error can be uncovered, however, by further investigation int0227
the origin of these attributes that I ascribe to myself as a thinking being as
such. They are nothing more than pure categories, through which I never think a determinate object, but think only the unity of presentations in or der to determine an object of them. A category alone, without an underly ing intuition, cannot provide me with a concept of an obj ect; for only through intuition is the object given, which is thereupon thought in accor dance with the category?28 If I declare a thing to be a substance in [the realm of] appearance then there must be given to me beforehand predi222 [erweitert.]
223[See above, A 6-101B 10-14.] 224[See the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak. IV, 472. ] 22'[As 'substance,' 'simple,' etc.] 226 [As including these predicates.] 22? [Literally. 'behind' . hinter ] 22"[See above, B 146-49.]
CHAPTER I
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
42 1
cates of its intuition, by which I distinguish the pennanent from the mu table and the substratum (the thing itself) from what merely attaches to it. If I call a thing
simple in [the realm 011 appearance,
A 400
then I mean by this
that the intuition of it is indeed a part of appearance but cannot itself be divided, etc. But if I cognize something as simple only in concept and not in [the realm of] appearance, then this actually provides me with no cog nition at all of the object, but only of my concept which I frame of a some thing as such that does not admit of an intuition proper. I am then saying only that I think something as entirely simple, because I actually know noth ing more to say about it than merely that it is something. Now, mere apperception (the
I)
is substance in concept, simple in con
cept, etc.; and thus all those psychological doctrines do to that extent have their indisputable correctness. Yet through this we do not by any means cog nize concerning the soul what in fact we want to know. For none of these predicates hold of any intuition at all, and hence they also cannot have any consequences that would be applied to objects of experience. They are, therefore, completely empty. For this concept of substance does not teach me that the soul continues on its own, nor that it is a part of outer intuitions which itself cannot be divided further and hence cannot arise or pass away through any changes of nature-all of these being properties that could make the soul knowable229 to me in the coherence23o of experience and could dis close to me something concerning its origin and future state. But if I say
through the mere category that the soul is a simple substance, then I am us
ing understanding's bare concept of substance, which contains nothing more
than that a thing is to be presented as a subject in itself and not in tum as a predicate of another subject. Clearly, therefore, nothing follows from this concept as regards the soul's pennanence; and the attribute
simple23 1
cer
tainly cannot add this pennanence. Hence we are not in the least being in fonned about what may in the world's changes affect the soul. If we could be told that the soul is a simple part of matter, then from this matter we could, by what experience teaches us about it, derive the pennanence and,
together with the soul's simple nature, its indestructibility. But of this232 the concept of the I in the psychological principle (l think) tells us not one word.
229 [kenn 230 [Or
bar.]
'context. ' ]
23 1 [Emphasis added ] 232 [I.e., the soul's being a simple part of matter.]
A 401
422
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
But the fact that the being which thinks in us supposes that it cognizes itself through pure categories-specifically those expressing absolute unity under each heading of categories-is due to this. Apperception is itself the basis of the possibility of the categories, which in tum present nothing but the synthesis of the manifold of intuition insofar as this manifold has unity
in apperception. Hence self-consciousness as such is the presentation of what is the condition of all unity and is yet itself unconditioned. Hence we can A 402
say about the thinking
I (the
soul)-which thinks233 itself as substance, as
simple, as numerically identical in all time, and as the correlate of all exist ence from which all other existence must be inferred-that it cognizes not
so much itself through the categories, but cognizes the categories, and through them all objects, in the absolute unity of apperception and hence through it self. Now it is, indeed, very evident that what I must presuppose in order to cognize an object at all cannot itself be cognized as an object by me, and that the determining self (the thinking) is distinct from the determinable self
(the thinking subject) as cognition is distinct from the object [cognized].
Nonetheless, nothing is more natural and tempting than the illusion of re garding the unity in the synthesis of thoughts as a perceived unity in the sub
ject of these thoughts. One might call this illusion the subreption234 of the hypostatized self-consciousness
(apperceptionis substantiatae). 235
If the paralogism in the dialectical syllogisms of rational psychology is to be given a logical title insofar as these syllogisms nonetheless have cor rect premises, then it may be considered236 a sophisma figurae dictio
nis, z37
In this sophism the major premise uses the category merely tran
scendentally, in regard to its condition; but the minor premise and the A 403
conclusion use the same category empirically, in regard to the soul that has been subsumed under this condition. Thus in the paralogism of substanti ality,238 e.g., the concept of substance is239 a purely intellectual concept that, without conditions of sensible intuition, has a merely transcendental 233 ['thinks' inserted originally by Mellin.l 234[See A 6431B 67 1 inc!. br. n. 14.] 235 [(Subreption) of the substantiated apperception; reading, with Hartenstein and the A ka demie edition, apperception is for apperceptiones_l 236 [gelren_ l 237 [Sophism (a type of fallacy) of figure of speech. in which the middle term is taken in di f ferent meanings_ See the Logic. Ak_ IX. 1 34-35_1 23 "[Reading, with Adickes. Substanzialitiit for Simplizitiit_l 239 [In the major premise_]
CHAPTER I
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
423
use, i.e., has no use whatsoever. But in the minor premise one applies the same concept to the object of all inner experience, yet without first ascer taining and laying at the basis the condition of its application
in concreto,
viz., this object's pennanence; hence the use that has been made of the con cept is empirical, although here inadmissible. Finally, let me show the systematic coherence of all these dialectical as sertions of a subtly reasoning psychology in a coherence of pure reason, and hence show them in their completeness. It should be noted that apper ception is being carried through all the classes of the categories, but only for those concepts of understanding that in each class lie at the basis of the others' unity in a possible perception, and hence for subsistence, reality, unity (not plurality), and existence. The only difference is that reason here presents all of these concepts as conditions of the possibility of a thinking being that are themselves unconditioned. Thus the soul cognizes in itself:
1
the unconditioned unity
A 404 of relation,
i.e., it cognizes itself not as inhering but as subsisting
2
3
the unconditioned unity
the unconditioned unity
of quality,
in the plurality in time,
i.e., it cognizes itself
i.e., it cognizes itself
not as a real whole but as simple240
as being, in different times, not numerically different but
one and the same subject
4
the unconditioned unity of existence in space, i.e., it cognizes itself not as the consciousness of several things outside it, but as that of the existence of itself only and of other things merely as its presentations
�ow the simple here corresponds
in tum to the category of reality I am not yet
able to show, but this will be pointed out in the next chapter on the occasion of an other use that reason makes of the s ame concept. a
"[See A 435-43
=
B 463-7 1 . ]
424
A 405
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
Reason is our power of principles. The assertions of pure psychology do not contain empirical predicates of the soul, but contain such predicates of the soul as, if such there be, are to determine the object in itself inde pendently of experience and hence through mere reason. Therefore they would, properly, have to be based on principles and universal concepts of thinking natures as such. Instead we find that the singular presentation, I am, governs them all. This presentation, precisely because it expresses (in determinately) the pure formula of my entire experience, announces itself like a universal proposition holding for all thinking beings; and since it is nonetheless in every respect singular, it carries with it the illusion of an absolute unity of the conditions of thought as such, and thus extends far ther than possible experience could reach.
[THE PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON] [Second EditionJ241 The proposition
I think (taken problematically)242 contains, then, the form
of any of understanding's judgments as such, and accompanies all catego ries as their vehicle?43 Clearly, therefore, the inferences from this propo sition can contain merely a transcendental use of understanding. Such use allows no experience to be mixed in, and hence regarding its progress we can-by what we have shown above-frame even in advance none but an unfavorable conception. Let us, therefore, trace this use, with a critical eye,
through all the predicaments244 of pure psychology. For the sake of brev
ity, however, let us allow their examination to proceed in an uninterrupted continuity.245
24l [See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 2931B 349 br. n. 2, vol. I , 164-7 1 . See also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n 5, 466-70 and cf. 473-77.] 2'2 [See A 3471B 405 ] 2"'[See A 3411B 399.] 244[I.e . basic concepts.] .
2'5 [Zusammenhang.J
CHAPTER I
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
425
First of all, the following general remark may make us more keenly at tentive to this kind of inference. I do not cognize any object246 by merely thinking, but I can cognize any object only by determining a given intu ition with respect to the unity of consciousness in which all thought con sists. Hence I do not cognize myself by being conscious of myself as think ing, but I cognize myself when I am conscious of the247 intuition of myself as determined with regard to the function of thought. All the modes of self consciousness in thought as such are, therefore, not yet understanding's con cepts of objects (categories), but are mere functions that do not allow248 thought to cognize any object at all, and hence also do not allow it to cog nize myself as an object. The object is not the consciousness of the deter mining self, but only that249 of the determinable self, i.e., of my inner in tuition (insofar as its manifold can be combined in accordance with the universal condition of the unity of apperception in thought).
1 . Now in all judgments I am always the determining subject of the re lation that makes up the judgment. But that I, who think, must be consid ered250 in such thought always as a subject and as something that cannot be regarded as merely attaching25 1 to thought like a predicate-this is an apodeictic and even identical25 2 proposition. But this proposition does not
mean that I am, as an object. a being subsisting by myself or [i.e.] sub stance. This latter claim goes very far, and hence it also requires data that
are in no way found in thought, and perhaps (insofar as I consider the think ing [self] merely as thinking) requires more than I shall ever find (in thought) at all.
2. That the
pS3 of apperception, and hence in
all thought, is a
singular
that cannot be resolved into a plurality of subjects and therefore designates a logically simple subject-this lies already in the concept of thought and 246 [Objekt here, Gegenstand just below; and so on for the rest of the paragraph. See A vii br. n. 7.]
247 [Reading, with Grillo, der for die.] 248 [geben.] 249 [Reading, with Hartenstein, das for die.] 2so[gelten.] 2s l [Reading. with Erdmann and the Akademie edition, anhiingend for anhiinge.] 2S2 [I.e., analytic.] 2s3 [Emphasis added; similarly for the remaining originally unemphasized occurrences (of this sort) of T in the Paralogisms of Pure Reason, edition B.]
B 407
426 B 408
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
hence is an analytic proposition. But this does not mean that the thinking
I is a simple substance;
that would be a synthetic proposition. The concept
of substance always refers to intuitions that, in me, cannot be other than sensible and hence lie entirely outside the realm of understanding and its thought; yet here we are in fact talking only about this thought when we say that the I in thought is simple. Indeed, it would be miraculous if what otherwise requires so much effort for distinguishing what is substance in what intuition displays-but even more for distinguishing (as with the parts of matter) whether this substance can also be simple-were here in the poorest of all presentations given to me thus straightforwardly, as if through a revelation, as it were.
3. The proposition of the identity of myself in all the manifold whereof I am conscious is likewise a proposition that lies in the concepts them selves and hence is analytic. But this identity of the subject, of which I can become conscious in all presentations of this subject, does not concern the subject's intuition whereby it is given as object. Hence this identity also cannot mean identity of the person, by which we understand the conscious
ness of the subject's own substance as a thinking being in all variation of its states. Proving this identity could not be accomplished by merely ana
B 409
2
lyzing the proposition I think, 54 but would require various synthetic judg ments based on the given intuition.
4. I distinguish my own existence, as that of a thinking being, from other
things outside me (which include my body)-this is likewise an analytic proposition. For other things are things that I think as distinct from me.
But from this I do not in any way know whether this consciousness of my
self is at all possible without things outside me whereby presentations are
given to me, and hence whether I can exist as merely a thinking being (i.e. , without being human). 255 Hence analyzing the consciousness of myself in thought as such does
not yield the slightest gain as regards the cognition of myself as object. The logical exposition of thought as such is wrongly considered to be a metaphysical determination of the object. It would be for our entire critique a great stumbling-block-indeed, even the only one-if there were a possibility of proving a priori that all
thinking beings are in themselves simple substances; and that, being such, they therefore (as a consequence from the same basis of proof) insepa254[Emphasis added; similarly for the remaining originally unemphasized occurrences of ' I think' in the Paralogisms of Pure Reason, edition B.] 255[See Karl Ameriks, op. cit at A 3411B 399 br. n. 9, 1 15-20.]
CHAPTER I
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
427
rably carry with them personality and are conscious of their existence as one that is set apart from all matter. For in this way we would, after all, have taken a step beyond the world of sense; we would have entered the realm of noumena-and now let no one deny us the right to expand fur
B 410
ther into this realm, to settle in it, and to take possession in it according as each of us is favored by his lucky star. For the proposition, Any think ing being is, as such, a simple substance, is a synthetic a priori propo sition. For, first, it goes beyond the concept on which it is based256 and adds to thinking being as such its
way of existing;
and, second, it adds to
that concept a predicate (that of simplicity) that cannot be given in any experience whatever. Hence it would then seem that synthetic a priori propositions are feasible and admissible not merely, as we have asserted,
in reference to objects of possible experience-viz., as principles of the possibility of this experience itself-but that they can apply also to things
as such and in themselves. And this is a conclusion that would put an end to this entire critique and would dictate that we leave everything as it was. Once we step closer to the matter, however, we see that the danger here is not so great. In the procedure of rational psychology a paralogism prevails, which is exhibited by the following syllogism:
What cannot be thought otherwise than as subject also does not exist otherwise than as subject, and therefore is substance. Now a thinking being, considered merely as such, cannot be thought oth erwise than as subject. Therefore it also exists only as a subject, i.e., as substance. In the major premise one talks about a being that can be thought in gen eral, in every respect, and hence also as it may be given in intuition. But in the minor premise one talks about it insofar as it considers itself, as sub ject, only relatively to thought and the unity of consciousness, but not si mUltaneously in reference to the intuition whereby it257 is given as object for such thought. Therefore, one is inferring the conclusion per
figurae dictionis, 25 8
and hence by a fallacious inference. 259
sophisma
2S6[The concept of a thinking being.]
2S7
[Reading, with VorHinder. es for sie.] 2S8 [By a sophism of figure of speech. See A 402 br. n. 237.] Z5 �ought is taken in two entirely different meanings in the two premises. In the
B 41 1
428 B 412
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
That resolving a famous argument into a paralogism in this way is en tirely correct is distinctly evident when one consults the general comment on the systematic presentation of the principles and the section on the nou
mena. 260 There we proved that the concept of a thing that can exist by it self as subject but not as mere predicate does not yet carry with it, on that account, any objective reality; i.e., we proved that-since we have no in sight into the possibility of such a way of existing-we cannot know whether an object belongs to this concept at all, and consequently proved that this concepe6 1 yields absolutely no cognition. Hence if this concept is to indicate, under the name of substance, an object that can be given,
and the concept is to become a cognition, then we must lay at its basis
a
permanent intuition; for intuition-i.e., that whereby alone the object is
given-is the indispensable condition of a concept's having objective re
B 413
ality. In inner intuition, however, we have nothing permanent at all, for the
I is only the consciousness of my thinking. Hence if one remains with mere thinking, then one also lacks the necessary condition for applying the con cept of substance-i.e., the concept of a self-subsistent subject-to oneself as a thinking being. And the simplicity of the substance, which is linked with this concept, then drops out entirely along with that concept's reality, and is transformed into nothing more than a logical qualitative unity of self consciousness in thought as such-no matter whether the subject is com posite or not.
major premise it is taken as it applies to an object as such" (and hence also to an object as it may be given in intuition). But in the minor premise it is taken only as it consists in the reference to self-consciousness; hence here one thinks of no ob ject whatever, but presents only the reference to oneself as subject (as the form of thought). In the first premise one talks about things that cannot be thought other wise than as subjects. In the second premise, however, one talks (by abstracting
B 412
from any object) not about
things but about thought,
in which the
I always
serves
as the subject of consciousness. Hence in the conclusion it cannot follow that I can not exist otherwise than as subject, but merely that in thinking my existenceb I can use myself only as the judgment's subject. And this is an identical proposition that reveals absolutely nothing concerning the way in which I exist.c
a[Or 'object in general.'] b [Existenz ] C[Dasein.] 26o [Respectively, B 288-94 and A 235-601B 294-3 1 5.] 261 [Reading, with Erdmann and the Akademie edition, er for es.]
CHAPTER I
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
429
Refutation of Mendelssohn's Proof262 of the Soul's Permanence263 The usual argument for the soul's pennanence is meant to prove that the soul (if it is granted to be a simple being) cannot cease to be by
division.
But Mendelssohn, this acute philosopher, soon noticed that the argument falls short of being adequate for the aim of securing necessary continuance for the soul; for one could assume as well that the soul ceases to exist by vanishing. Now in his Phaedo Mendelssohn tried to shield264 the soul from this capacity to pass away,265 which would be a true annihilation, by ven
turing to prove that a simple being cannot cease to be at all. For, he ar gued, a simple being (because it contains no parts and thus also no plural
ity) cannot at all be diminished and thus lose little by little266 something
of its existence, and thus be transfonned gradually into nothing; and hence [if the being vanished then] there would be no time whatever to be en countered between an instant wherein this being is and another instant wherein it no longer is-which is impossible. However, Mendelssohn failed to bear in mind the following: We may indeed grant to the soul this simple nature-i.e., a nature such that the soul contains no manifold [elements] external to one another and hence no extensive magnitude. 267 Yet even then one cannot deny to the soul, any more than to any existent whatever, in
tensive magnitude,268 i.e., a degree of reality in regard to all its powers269 -indeed, in regard to everything as such that makes up existence.27o This 162[Moses Mendelssohn (1 729-86), Phiidon, oder iiber die Unsterblichkeit der Seele (Phaedo, or on the Immortality of the Soul), 1 767, in the Gesammelte Schriften Jubiliiumsausgabe (Col lected Writings Anniversary Edition), 1 929-38, as photomechanicaIly reproduced by Felix Meiner Verlag (Hamburg: 1979), iii/ I , 6 1 -7 1 , 89-99. Cf. the appendix to the second edition (1768), ibid., 1 33-35, and the appendix to the third edition ( 1769), ibid., 146-48.] 263 [See Karl Ameriks, op. cit. at A 3411B 399 br. n. 9, 175-88. See also Heinz Heimsoeth,
op. cit. at A 2931B 349 br. n. 2, vol. I, 1 7 1 -9 1 . And see Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 470-73.] 264 [abhalten.] 265 [Vergiinglichkeit.] 266 [nach und nach.] 267 [See above, A 1 62-661B 202-7.] 268 [See above, A 1 66-761B 207- 1 8.] 269 [Vennogen.] 27°[In the appendix to the third edition of his work (see br. n. 262, just above), p. ISS, Men delssohn actually discusses intensive quantity (magnitude), i.e., degree, but in a different con !ext. ]
B 414
430
PART I I
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
degree can decrease through all the infinitely many smaller degrees; and thus the alleged substance (the thing whose permanence has not otherwise already been established) can be transformed into nothing-not indeed by (remissio) of its powers27 1 (and hence, if I may be permitted to employ this expression, by fading out272).
division, but yet by gradual abatement
B 415
For even consciousness has always a degree, which can be diminished ever further;273 and so does, consequently, the power of being conscious of one self, and thus also all the other powers. Hence the permanence of the soul considered as mere object of inner sense remains unproved, and even un provable, although in life its permanence is clear by itself. 274 For there the thinking being (as human) is to himself simultaneously an object of outer senses; this, however, is not at all adequate for the rational psychologist, who undertakes to prove from mere concepts the soul's absolute perma nence even beyond life. 275 271 [Kriifte.] 272 [Elangueszenz.] l73Clarity is not-as logicians say-the consciousness of a presentation, since a certain degree of consciousness, although not sufficient for recollection, must be
B 415
founda even in many obscure presentations. For without any consciousness we would make no distinction in the combination of obscure presentations; yet we are in fact able to do this with the characteristics of many concepts (such as the con cepts of rightnessb and fairness, or those of the musician when he strikes many notes simultaneously in improvising). A clear presentation is, rather, one in which the con sciousness suffices for
being conscious of the distinction
between this presentation
and others. If the consciousness suffices for distinguishing them but not for being
conscious of the distinction, then the presentation would still have to be called ob
scure. Hence there are infinitely many degrees of consciousness, down to its van
ishing.
a [anzutreffen.] b[On this example and the entire note, cf. the First Introduction to the Critique of Judg· ment, Ak. XX, the n. on 226-27.]
274 [See the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak. IV, 542-43.] l7sThere are those who, in bringing upa a new possibility, believe that they have done enough already if they insistb that no contradiction can be shown in their pre suppositions. (They include all those people who believe that they have insight into
B 416
the possibility of thought-of which they have an example only with the empirical intuitions in human life--even after life ceases.) These people can be put in a great quandary by other possibilities that are not in the least bolder. An example of this sort is the possibility of the division of a simple substance into several substanc es. and-vice versa-the melding (coalition) of several substances into one simple sub-
CHAPTER I
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
Now suppose that we take our above propositions276 in
43 1
synthetic con
B 416
text, which is indeed how they must, as valid for all thinking beings, be stance. For although divisibility presupposes a composite, yet it does not necessar ily require a composite of substances, but may involve a composite merely of de grees (of the various powers) of one and the same substance. Now, we can think: all powers and abilitiesC of the soul, even that of consciousness, as being shrunk to half, but in such a way that substance always still remains. In the same way we can also without contradiction conceived the extinguished half as preserved, not in the soul but outside it; and thus, since whatever in the soul is real and therefore has a degree-and hence the soul's entire existence, with nothing lacking-has here been halved, we can conceive that a separate substance would then arise outside it. For the multiplicitye that has been divided was already in the soulf beforehand-not, however, as multiplicity of substances, but as multiplicity of each reality consid ered as quantum of existence; and the unity of substance was only a way of ex isting that, through this division alone, has been transformed into a pluralityg of subsistence.h In the same way, however, several simple substances could in turn meld into one, with nothing getting lost except merely the plurality of subsistence; for the one substance would contain the degree of reality of all the previous sub stances taken together. And perhaps the simple substances that give us the appear ance of matter' might produce souls of children through such dynamical division of parent souls considered as intensive magnitudes (although not, of course, by a mechanical or chemical influence on one another, but still by an influence un knowni to us whereof this mechanical or chemical influence would be only the appearance)-:-the parent souls in turn compensating for their children's souls' de parture through coalition with new material of the same kind. I am far from grant ing to such chimeras the slightest value or validity, and the above principles of the Analytic have urged us sufficiently to make no other use of the categories (such as that of substance) than an experiential one. Yet here the rationalist makes, out of our mere power of thought and without any permanent intuition whereby an object would be given, a self-subsistent being; and he does so merely because the unity of apperception in thought permits him no explanation of the soul from what is composite--whereas he would do better to admit that he does not know how to explain the possibility of a thinking nature. But if the rationalist is bold enough to make a self-subsistent being in this way, why should not the materialist, although no more able to adduce experience for the sake of supporting his possibilities, be entitled to equal boldness in availing himself of his own principle for the opposite use, while retaining the formal unity of the first principle.1< " [auf die Bahn bn·ngen.] b[trotzen.]
C [Krdfte und Venn6gen.] d [sich . . . vorstellen ; cf. B xvii hr. n. 73.] < [Or ' plurality ' : Vie/heir.] '[Reading in ihr as referring to the soul, instead of connecting it with 'each reality, ' as Erdmann suggests.]
B 417
B 418
432
B 417
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
taken in rational psychology as a system; and suppose that we proceed from the category of relation-with the proposition, All thinking beings are, as such, substances-backward through the series of categories, until the circle
closes. If we do this, then we come ultimately upon these beings' exist ence. 277 But in this system of rational psychology the thinking beings not B 418
only are conscious of this existence independently of external things, but they can also independently of external things determine this existence by themselves (as regards the permanence that belongs necessarily to the char acter of substance). From this, however, it follows that in this system
idealism-at least problematic idealism-is unavoidable; and that, if the existence27 8 of external things is thus not required at all for determining one's own, then, by the same token, one is only assuming their existence quite gratuitously, without ever being able to give a proof of it.
Suppose, on the other hand, that we pursue the analytic procedure. Here
the
I think,
as a proposition that already includes an existence, lies at the basis as given, and hence279 so does modality. And suppose that we now dissect this proposition, in order to cognize its content, viz., as to whether
and how this I existing in space or in time determines its existence only thereby. 280 If we proceeded in this way, then the propositions of rational psychology would start not with the concept of a thinking being as such, but with an actuality; and from the way in which this actuality is thought, g[Mehrheit.] h[l.e., existence as a substance; see A 1 86IB 230.] ; [einer Materie.] ' [unbekannt.] k[l.e., the unity of apperception.]
276[Propositions 1-4, A 344IB 402.] 277 [Existenz. Existence (da ist, from Dasein) is mentioned only in proposition 3. (See the pre· ceding note, as well as the reference to time both in proposition 3 and at B 4 1 8, just below.) We arrive there by moving counterclockwise ("backward") from proposition I ; and the circle is then closed, provided that we consider the four propositions (along with the four category types) as occupying equal segments of the circle, all of which we have then visited. If, al· ternatively, we considered the propositions as located at discrete points on the circle, then the circle would close only when we return to proposition I , which says that the soul is sub stance. But Kant in no way suggests that we have returned to the starting point. And although he did indeed in his working copy of edition A change proposition I to read ' [The soul] ex ists as substance' (see A 344IB 402 br. n. 23; emphasis added), he did not incorporate this change in edition B.] 278 [Dasein.]
279 [By the table of categories, A 80IB 106.] .RO[l.e., by space and time; cf. the end of B 4 19, and B 420.]
CHAPTER I
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
433
after everything empirical in it has been separated, one would infer what
B 419
belongs to a thinking being as such-as is shown in the following table.
I think, 2
3
as subject,
as simple subject. 4
as identical subject 28 1 in every state of my thought. Now the second proposition here leaves undetermined whether I can ex ist and be thought only as subject, and not also as predicate of another sub ject. Hence the concept of a subject is here taken merely logically, and whether or not we are to understand substance by it remains undetermined.
But in the third proposition, although I have not yet established anything concerning the subj ect's character or subsistence, the absolute unity of apperception-the simple
I in the presentation,
the
I to which
all combi
nation or separation that makes up thought refers-is important even by itself. Apperception is something real, and its simplicity lies in its very pos sibility. Now there is in space nothing real that is simple; for points (which 8 are2 2 all that is simple in space) are merely boundaries, and are not them selves anything that-as a part-serves to make up space. From this fol lows, therefore, the impossibility of explicating my character as merely a thinking subject283 on bases supplied by materialism. On the other hand, in the first proposition my existence is regarded as
given.
For the propo
sition does not say that every thinking being exists (which would simul taneously affirm of these beings absolute necessity, and hence too much), but says only that I exist as thinking. Hence the proposition is empirical, and comprises determinability of my existence merely in respect to my pre sentations in time. But for this [determination], on the other hand, I first need something permanent; yet such, insofar as I think myself, is not given 28i [Deleting the comma after 'subject.' ] 28Z [ausm achen. ] 283 [I.e., as (thinkmg) substance, and not as predicate of another substance (and hence as ac cident).]
B 420
434
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
to me at all in inner intuition. Therefore, there is no possibility of deter mining the way in which I exist, i.e., whether as substance or as accident,
through this simple self-consciousness. Hence if materialism is unsuitable as a way of explicating my existence, then
spiritualism
is likewise insuf
ficient for this; and the conclusion is that in no way-whichever it might be--can we cognize anything whatsoever about that character of our soul which concerns the possibility of the separate existence [of the soul] as such. Indeed, we are acquainted with the unity of consciousness itself only by its being for us an indispensable requirement for the possibility of expe rience. How then could we, through this unity, get beyond experience (our existence in life), and even extend our cognition-by the proposition I think,
B 42 1
which is empirical but indeterminate in regard to any kind of intuition-to the nature of all thinking beings as such? There is, therefore, no rational psychology as a
doctrine,
which would
furnish us an addition to our self-cognition, but only as a discipline, which in this field sets bounds for speculative reason that cannot be overstepped. This discipline sets these bounds in order to keep us, on the one hand, from throwing ourselves into the lap of soulless materialism, and, on the other hand, from getting lost while roving about in spiritualism, which for us, in life, is baseless. It reminds us, rather, that this refusal of reason to give a satisfying answer to our inquisitive questions reaching beyond this life should be regarded as a hint of reason to tum our self-cognition away284
from fruitless transcendent285 speculation and to fruitful practical use. Al
though this use286 is directed always only to objects of experience, it yet obtains its principles from higher up, and determines our conduct in such
a way as it would if our vocation reached infinitely far beyond experience and hence beyond this life. 287 We see from all this that rational psychology owes its origin to a mere misunderstanding, where one takes the unity of consciousness underlying the categories to be an intuition of the subject as object, and applies to it 284[Reading abwenden for anwenden. Erdmann, Valentiner, and Mellin suggest similar changes. Without them, the text says ' . . . apply our self-cognition of fruitless transcendent speculation to fruitful practical use.'] 2Rs [iiberschwenglich. ] 286[Reading, with Erdmann and the Akademie edition, welcher, wenn er for welches. wenn es (which would refer back to the self-cognition ).] 287[Cf. B 424-26 and A 828-29
=
B 856-57 inc!. br. n. 148.]
CHAPTER I
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
the category of substance. But this unity is only the unity in
435 thought;
B 422
through it alone no object is given, and hence the category of substance, which always presupposes given
intuition, cannot be applied to it. This sub
ject, therefore, cannot be cognized at all. Hence the subject of the catego ries cannot by thinking the categories acquire a concept of itself as an ob ject of the categories. For in order to think the categories, this subject must use as basis its pure self-consciousness, which-after all-was to be ex plicated. Similarly, the subject wherein the presentation of time originally has its basis cannot thereby determine its own existence in time; and if this determination cannot be made, then the first one, as determination of one 288 self (as thinking being as such) through categories, cannot take place.
zas.rhe I think is, as has been said already,a an empirical proposition, and contains the proposition I exist.b But I cannot say, Everything that thinks exists; for then the property of thinking would tum all beings possessing it into necessary beings. Hence my existence also cannot, as Descartes supposed, be regarded as inferred from the proposition I think (because otherwise it would have to be preceded by the major premise, Everything that thinks exists), but is identical with it. The proposition I think expresses an indeterminate empirical intuition, i.e., perception (and hence it does prove that sensation,c which as suchd belongs to sensibility,e underlies this existential proposition). But the proposition I think precedes the experience that is to determine the object of perception through the category in regard to time; and the existence is heref not yet a category. The category of existence has reference not to an indeterminate given object, but only to an object of which one has a con cept and concerning which one wants to know whether or not it is posited also out side of this concept. An indeterminate perception here signifies only something real that has been given-and given only for thought as such, and hence not as appear ance nor as thing in itself (noumenon), but as something that in fact exists and is marked as such in the proposition I think. For we must note that, when I called the proposition I think an empirical proposition, I did not mean that the I in this propo sition is an empirical presentation. Rather, this presentation is purely intellectual, because it belongs to thought as such. Yet without some empirical presentation that provides the material for thought, the act I think would not take place; and the em pirical [element] is only the condition of the application or use of the pure intel lectual power. a[B 420.] b [Emphasis added ] C [Empjindung.] d [foigiich.] e[Sinnlichkeit. ] '[I.e., as contained in this proposition.]
B 423
436 B 423 B 424
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
Thus a cognition attempted beyond the bounds of possible experience, although pertaining to the highest interest of humanity, vanishes-insofar as it is to be credited to speculative philosophy-as based on deluded ex pectation. Yet the critique, in its strictness, simultaneously proves that there is no possibility of dogmatically establishing, concerning an object of ex perience, anything beyond the boundary of experience. And thereby the cri tique renders to reason-with its interest289-a not unimportant service: viz., the critique also secures reason against all possible assertions of the opposite. For this can be done only in two ways: either by proving one's proposition apodeictically, or-if this is unsuccessful-by locating the sources of this inability; and if these sources lie in the necessary limits of our reason, then they must subject any opponent to exactly the same law of renouncing all claims to any dogmatic assertion. Yet not the slightest loss arises from this for the right-indeed, even the necessity-of assuming a future life by following principles of the practical use of reason, which is linked with the speculative use. 290 For the merely speculative proof of a future life has never been able to have any influence on common human reason anyway. The proof is so poised29 1 on the tip of a hair that even the school can maintain it on this tip only as long as it makes the proof spin unceasingly around it, like a top; hence even in the school's eyes the proof provides no permanent foundation on
B 425
which anything could be built. The proofs that are usable for the world are all left with their value undiminished by this. On the contrary, by do ing away with those dogmatic pretensions they gain in clarity and in a conviction that is not artificial. For they transfer reason to the domain
peculiar to it, viz., the order of purposes,292 which is yet simultaneously
an order of nature. But then reason, when regarded as in itself a practical power that is not limited to the conditions of the order of nature, is jus tified in going beyond this order by simultaneously expanding the order of purposes, and with it our own existence, beyond the bounds of expe rience and life?93 For consider the analogy with the nature of living be ings in this world. Here reason must necessarily assume as a principle 289[In obtaining such cognition.) 290[Cf. A 828-29 B 856-57 inc!. br n. 148 See also the Critique of Practical Reason. Ak V. 1 22-24 and 1 34-4 1 .] =
29 1 [gestellt.J 292[Or 'ends' : Zwecke.] 293[See Karl Ameriks,
op.
cit at A 34 11B 399 br. n. 9. 1 89-233.]
CHAPTER I
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
437
that there is to be found in these beings no organ, no power, no impulse-and, therefore, nothing-that would be dispensable or dispro portionate to its use and hence unpurposive, but that everything in them is exactly commensurate with its destination in life. 294 Judging by this analogy, the human being-who, after all, can alone contain the ultimate final purpose295 of all this purposive natural order-would have to be the only creature excluded from this order. For his natural predispositions-not merely concerning his talents and the impulses to make use of these, but concerning, above all, the moral law in him-go far beyond all the ben efit and advantage that he could draw from them in this life?96 They go so far beyond these that this moral law teaches him to esteem above ev erything even the mere consciousness of a righteous attitude-and this in the absence of all advantages, including even the shadowy construct297 of posthumous fame; and that he feels inwardly called upon to make him self fit, by his conduct in this world and while forgoing many advan tages, to be a citizen of a better world, which he has in his idea. Thus there always still remains this powerful and forever irrefutable basis of proof, accompanied by an incessantly increasing cognition of purposive ness in everything that we see before us and by an outlook into the im mensity of creation, and hence also by the consciousness of a certain un
boundedness in the possible expansion of our knowledge298 along with
an urge commensurate therewith. This basis of proof remains despite our
having to give up any claim to insight into the necessary continuance of our existence from the merely theoretical cognition of ourselves.
Concluding the Solution of the Psychological Paralogism299 The dialectical illusion in rational psychology is due to the confusion of an idea of reason (the idea of a pure intelligence) with the concept-in all
294 [See the Critique of Judgment, Ak. Y. 369-77.] 295 [letzter Endzweck. In the Critique of Judgment, Kant makes a distinction between ultimate and final purpose: Ak. Y, 426, cf. 443.] 296 [See the Critique of Practical Reason, Ak. Y, 1 6 1 -63.] 297 [Schattenwerk.] 29"
[Kenntnisse.] 299 [See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit at A 2931B 349 br n. 2, vol. I, 1 9 1 -98.]
B 426
438
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
respects indetenninate--of a thinking being as such. I think myself for the sake of a possible experience while still abstracting from all actual expe
rience, and infer from this thought that I can become conscious of my ex
B 427
istence even as it is apart from experience and its empirical conditions. I consequently confuse the possible
abstraction
from my empirically deter
mined existence with the supposed consciousness of an existence of my
separately, and I believe that I cognize the substantial in me as the transcendental subject. For I have in my thoughts
thinking self that is possible
merely the unity of consciousness that, as the mere fonn of cognition,30o lies at the basis of all detennination. The problem of explicating30 1 the soul's communion with the body does not properly belong to the psychology at issue here. For [anyone addressing] this problem intends to prove the soul's personality even as apart from this communion (i.e., after death), and hence this problem is in the proper meaning of the term
transcendent.
[For] although it deals
with an object of experience, yet it does so only insofar as this object ceases to be an object of experience. In tenns of our doctrinal system, however, a sufficient answer can be given to this problem also. The dif ficulty giving rise to this problem consists, as is familiar, in the presup posed heterogeneity of the object of inner sense (the soul) and the ob jects of outer senses; to the former only time, to the latter also space, attaches as formal condition of their intuition. However, the two kinds of objects differ hereby from each other not intrinsically but only insofar as
B 428
one extrinsically
appears to the other.
Consequently, what it is, as thing
in itself, that underlies the appearance of matter might perhaps not be so heterogeneous. If we bear this in mind, then that difficulty vanishes, and only one remains: how a communion302 of substances is possible at all. Solving this difficulty lies wholly outside the realm of psychology, and-as the reader will readily judge after what has been said in the Ana lytic about basic powers and abilities303-without any doubt also outside the realm of all human cognition.
300 [Reading, with Wille, die blofie for der blofien.] 301 [Or 'explaining' : erkliiren.] 302 [Or 'community' : Gemeinschaft.] 303 [Grundkriifte und Vermogen.]
CHAPTER I
439
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
General Comment Concerning the Transition from Rational Psychology to Cosmologt04 The proposition I think or I exist as
thinking30s is an empirical proposition.
Such a proposition, however, is based on empirical intuition, and hence is based also on the objece06 being thought, taken as appearance. And thus it seems as if on our theory the soul would be transformed altogether, even in its thinking, into appearance, and as if in this way our consciousness it self, as mere illusion,307 would in fact have to deal with nothing. Thought, taken by itself, is merely the logical function, and hence is
wholly308 spontaneity in the combination of the manifold of a merely pos sible intuition, and by no means exhibits the subject of consciousness as appearance. This is so merely because thought [as such] takes no account whatever of the kind of intuition involved, as to whether it is sensible or intellectual.309 By such thought I present myself to myself neither as I am nor as I appear to myself, but think myself only as I think any object as such, i.e., any object from whose kind of intuition I abstract. If I here present myself as
subject
of thoughts, or-for that matter-as
basis
of
thought, then these ways of presenting do not signify the categories of sub stance or cause. For the categories are those same functions of thinking (judging) but as already applied to our sensible intuition-the intuition that would indeed be required if I wanted to
cognize myself.
Here, however, I
want to become conscious of myself only as thinking; I set aside how my own self is given in intuition. And thus the self could indeed be merely appearance to me who think, but not insofar as I think. In the conscious
ness of myself in mere thought I am the being itseLJ--of which, however, through this consciousness nothing is yet given for thought. But insofar as the proposition I think says the same as I exist as think it is not a mere logical function. Rather, it determines the subject
ing,
(which is then simultaneously an object) in regard to existence; and it can not take place without inner sense, whose intuition always provides us with the object not as thing in itself but merely as appearance. In this proposil04 [See Karl Ameriks, op. cit. at A 3411B 399 hr. n. 9, 234-301 .]
lOS
[ef. A 355 inc!. hr. n. 7 1 . Emphasis added.] lO6 [Which in this case is the subject.] 307 [Or ' semblance': Schein ] J08
[lauter. ] lO9 [On intellectual intuition. see B 7 2 inc!. br. n. 1 83.]
B 429
440
B 430
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
tion, therefore, there already is no longer mere spontaneity of thought but also receptivity of intuition, i.e., the thinking of myself as subject is ap plied to the empirical intuition of the same subject. In this intuition, then, would the thinking self have to seek the conditions for using its logical functions as categories of substance, cause, etc., in order not merely to des ignate itself-through the I-as object in itself, but also to determine the kind of its existence, i.e., to cognize itself as noumenon. This determina tion and cognition, however, is impossible; for inner empirical intuition is sensible and provides us with nothing but data of appearance. Such data supply to the object of pure consciousness nothing for any knowiedge3 1 0 of its separate existence, but can serve us merely for the sake of experi ence. But suppose that we later found occasion, not in experience but in cer tain laws of the pure use of reason3 ! ! that hold3 !2 a priori but yet concern our existence (i.e., not in merely logical rules), to presuppose ourselves completely a priori as
legislating in regard to our own existence, 313 and as
also ourselves determining this existence. This would then uncover in us a spontaneity whereby our actuality would be determinable without our need ing for this determination the conditions of empirical intuition. And here we would become aware that the consciousness of our existence contains B 43 1
a priori something that, although our existence can be determined thor oughly3 1 4 only through sensibility,3 ! 5 can yet in view of a certain inner power serve to determine it in reference to an intelligible (although only
thought) world.3 ! 6
But this would, nonetheless, not advance in the least all the attempts made in rational psychology. For although I would have, through this mar velous power that the consciousness of the moral law first reveals to me, a purely intellectual principle for determining my existence, yet through what predicates would I do this? Through none but those predicates that must be given to me in sensible intuition; and thus I would in rational psychol3 1 °[Kenntnis.] 3 1 1 [Viz., its pure practical use.] 3 1 2 [feststehen.] 3 1 3 [Dasein here; Existenz just above and just below. The two terms continue to alternate in the remainder of the paragraph.] 3 1 4 [durchgangig. ] 3 15 [sinnlich.]
316[See the Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals. Ak. IV, 452-53.]
CHAPTER I
PARALOGISMS OF PURE REASON
44 1
ogy end up again where I was: viz., in need of sensible intuition in order to provide signification for my concepts of understanding (substance, cause, etc.),3 1 7 through which alone I can have cognition of myself. These intui tions, however, can never help me advance beyond the realm of experi
ence. Yet in regard to reason's practical use, which is still always directed to objects of experience, I would be entitled to apply these concepts, in
accordance with the signification analogous to the one found in reason's
theoretical use, to freedom and its subject. For I then understand by them merely the logical functions of subject and predicate, of basis3 1 8 and con sequence; and in accordance with these functions all acts or effects are, in accordance with those laws, determined in such a way that they can al ways be explained in accordance with the categories of substance and of cause simultaneously with the natural laws, although they arise from an entirely different principle. The intention in saying this was only to fore stall the misunderstanding to which the doctrine of our self-intuition, the intuition of ourselves as appearance, is easily exposed. We shall have oc casion to make use of this in what follows.319
J1 7 [Parentheses added.] 31 8 [Or 'ground.' See B xix br. n. 79.] 31 9[See below. A 444-5 1
=
B 472-79 and A 532-658
=
B 560-86.]
B 432
TRANSCENDENTAL DIALECTIC
B OOK II
Chapter II The Antinomy of Pure Reason 1 We have shown in the introduction to this part of our work2 that all tran scendental illusion of pure reason rests on dialectical inferences whose A 406
schema is provided by logic, viz., in the three formal kinds of syllo
gisms3 as such4 -roughly as the categories find their logical schema in
the four functions of all judgments. The first kind of these subtly reason ingS inferences6 dealt with the unconditioned unity of the
subjective con
ditions of all presentations7 as such (of the subject or soul); it corre sponds to categorical syllogisms, whose major premise, as principle,
B 433
states the reference of a predicate to a
subject.
Thus the
second
kind
of dialectical argument will, by analogy with hypothetical syllogisms, take as8 its content the unconditioned unity of the objective conditions in [the realm of] appearance-just as the
third kind of dialectical infer
ences, which will come up in the following [third] chapter, has9 as its ' [See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 293/B 349 hr. n. 2, vol. 2, 199-203.] 2 [l.e., in the introduction to the Transcendental Dialectic. See A 299/B 355-56, A 304/B 360-6 1 , A 306-9/B 363-66.]
3 [Literally,
'inferences of reason': VernunftschlUsse. ]
4[iiberhaupt. See B xxvii hr. n. 106 ] 5 [verniinftelnd.l
6 [l.e., the paralogisms, A 34l-40S/B 399-432.] 7 [Vorstellungen. My reason for translating Vorstellung as 'presentation' rather than as 'rep resentation' is given at B xvii hr. n. 73.] " [machen zu.]
9[By analogy with disjunctive syllogisms.]
442
CHAPTER II
ANTINOMY OF PURE REASON
443
topiclO the unconditioned unity of the objective conditions for the pos sibility of objects as such. It is noteworthy, however, that the transcendental paralogisms brought about a merely one-sided illusionl l regarding the idea of the subject of our thought, and that not the slightest illusion of plausibility 1 2 arising from con cepts of reason can be found for the assertion of the opposite. The advan tage is entirely on the side of pneumatism, although this view cannot deny having the built-in 1 3 defect that, despite all the illusion of plausibility in its favor, in the critique's ordeal by fire it dissolves entirely into smoke.
The outcome is quite different when we apply reason to the objective synthesis of appearances. Here, although reason means to validate1 4 its prin
A 407
ciple of unconditioned unity with much illusion of plausibility, it soon be comes entangled in such contradictions that it is compelled, in regard to cosmology, to renounce its demand for such unity. For here a new phenomenon of human reason manifests itself, viz., an entirely natural antithetic: i.e., an antithetic for [the discovery of] which no one needs to ponder or artfully lay snares, but into which reason falls on its own and, moreover, inevitably. And although this antithetic protects rea son from the slumber-produced by a merely one-sided illusion-of an imaginary conviction, yet it also tempts reason either to submit to a skep
tical hopelessness, or to adopt a dogmatic defiance and rigidly stand up for1 5 certain assertions without granting a hearing or doing justice to the bases 1 6 supporting the opposite. Both [the slumber of imaginary conviction and this skepticism or dogmatism] are the death of a sound philosophy, although the slumber1 7 might at least still be called pure reason's euthanasia. Before we unveil the instances 1 8 of discord and disarray to which this conflict of laws (antinomy) of pure reason gives rise, let us offer certain 1°[In the sense of 'subject' or 'subject matter' (not in the sense of topic discussed at A 268/B 324): Thema.] l l [einseitigen Schein.] l2 [der mindeste Schein; similarly just below and in the next paragraph.]
1 3 [Literally, 'hereditary' : Erb-.] l4 [ge/tend machen.] 1 5 [den Kopf . . . auf . . . setzen. ] 1 6[Or 'grounds.' See B xix br. n. 79.] 17 Uener , which can refer only to the slumber; hence the other (nonbenign) death must be the disjunction of skepticism and dogmatism.] 18 [Au/tritte.]
B 434
444
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
points 1 9 that may elucidate and justify the method employed by us in treat ing our topic. All transcendental ideas insofar as they concern absolute to A 408
tality in the synthesis of appearances I call
world concepts, partly because
of precisely this unconditioned totality-on which rests also the concept, which itself is only an idea, of the world whole-and partly because they deal with the synthesis of appearances only, and hence with empirical syn thesis. By contrast, absolute totality in the synthesis of the conditions of B 435
all possible things as such will give rise to an ideal of pure reason; this ideal, although it has reference to a world concept, is yet entirely distinct from it. Hence just as the paralogisms of pure reason laid the basis for a dialectical psychology, so will the antinomy of pure reason put before us the transcendental principles of a supposed pure (rational) cosmology. The antinomy will do so not in order to find this cosmology20 valid and adopt it, but-as is, indeed, already indicated by the very name, conflict of reason-in order to exhibit it in its beguiling but deceptive2 1 illusion, as an idea that cannot be reconciled with appearances.
19 [Erorterungen geben.] 2° [sie.] 21 [blendenden aber falschen.]
The Antinomy of Pure Reason
Section I System of Cosmological Ideas 22 Now in order for us to be able to enumerate these ideas with systematic precision according to a principle, we must note two points.
First, 23
pure
and transcendental concepts can arise only from the understanding. Rea son does not in fact produce any concept, but at most frees the
understanding
A 409
concept of
of the inevitable limitations of a possible experience; and
thus reason tries to expand the concept beyond the bounds of the empiri cal, but yet in connection with the empirical. Reason does this by demand ing, for a given conditioned, absolute totality on the side of the conditions (under which the understanding subjects all appearances to synthetic unity). It thereby turns the category into a transcendental idea, in order that, by continuing empirical synthesis up to the unconditioned (which is never found in experience but only in the idea), reason may provide this synthe sis with absolute24 completeness. Reason demands this totality according to the principle that if the conditioned is given, then the entire sum of con ditions and hence the absolutell5 unconditioned (through which alone the conditioned was possible) is also given. Hence, first, transcendental ideas will in fact be nothing but categories expanded up to the unconditioned, and they can be put in a table arranged according to the [four] headings of the categories. However, second, not all categories will be suitable for this,
3, 530-32. 1 76fB 2 18 22, 2 1 -25. 22, 266-31 1 . 2 1 fB 35 84fB 1 1 6 1 , 3 85-407. 2, 2, 203- 14. 5, 293fB 349 22fB 36 26, 42-64. 478-80. 22, 293fB 349 2 1 1 35 1 , 195-2 14. 203- 1 0.] " [Edition A emphasizes 'first' doubly (by bold print), its repetition at A 09 singly, and 'sec 4 ond' at A 409 again doubly.]
22 [See Gerd Buchdahl, op. cit. at A br. n. See also H. W. Cassirer, op. Also J. N. Findlay, op. cit. at A cit. at A br. n. br. n. Also Paul Guyer, op. cit. at A br. n. Also Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A br. n. vol. Also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. Also W. H. Walsh, op. br. n. Also Gottfried Martin, op. cit. at A br. n. And see T. D. Weldon, op. cit. at A cit. at A B br. n.
2 1 fB 35
24 [absolut
.] 2s [schlechthin.]
445
B 436
446
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
but only those categories in which the synthesis makes up a series- a se ries, moreover, of conditions for a conditioned that are subordinated to (not coordinated26 with) one another. Absolute totality is demanded by reason A 4l 0
only insofar as this totality concerns the ascending series of conditions for a given conditioned, and hence not when we are talking about the descend ing line of consequences, nor yet when we are talking about the aggregate of coordinated27 conditions for these consequences. For as regards the given
B 437
conditioned, conditions are already presupposed and must be regarded as given with it. Consequences, on the other hand, do not make their condi tions possible, but rather presuppose them; hence in proceeding to the con sequences (or [i.e.] in descending from the given condition to the condi tioned) we do not have to worry whether or not the series ceases, and the question concerning the totality of this series is, indeed, no presupposition of reason at all. Thus a completely elapsed time up to the given instant is thought by us necessarily and as also being given (although not as being determinable by us). Future time, on the other hand, is not the condition for arriving at the present; and hence for comprehending future time it makes no difference at all how we want to deal with that time, i.e., whether we want to let it cease somewhere or let it run ad infinitum. Let the series be m, n, 0, in
which n is given as conditioned with respect to
m
but simultaneously as
condition of 0; let the series proceed upward from the conditioned
A 41 1 B 438
n to m (I. k, i,28 etc.), and similarly downward from the condition n to the condi tioned 0 (p, q, r, etc.). In that case I must presuppose the first series in or der to regard n as given, and according to reason (with its demand for to tality of conditions) n is possible only by means of this [ascending] series. But the possibility of n does not rest on the subsequent [descending] se ries 0, p, q, r, which, therefore, also cannot be regarded as given, but only as dahilis. 29 Let me call regressive the synthesis of a series on the side of the con ditions, i.e., the synthesis proceeding from the condition nearest to the given appearance and thus onward to the more remote conditions. And let me 26[beigeordnet.] 27 [koordiniert. ] 2" [Kant skips j, as merely the (consonant) vanant of i.]
29[Givable ]
SECTION I
SYSTEM OF COSMOLOGICAL IDEAS
447
call progressive the synthesis that proceeds, 3D on the side of the condi tioned, from the nearest consequence31 to the more remote ones. The re gressive synthesis proceeds32 in antecedentia, the progressive one in con
sequentia. 33
Hence the cosmological ideas deal with the totality of the
regressive synthesis and proceed
in antecedentia,
not
in consequentia.
When this latter process occurs, 34 then it is a chosen35 rather than a nec essary problem of pure reason; for in order to be able to comprehend com pletely what is given in appearance we do indeed need the bases36 thereof, but not the consequences. Now in order to set up the table of ideas in accordance with the table of categories, we first take the two original quanta3? of all our intuition, time and space. Time is in itself a series (and the formal condition of all series), and hence in time-with regard to a given present-the anteced entia as conditions (what is past) are to be distinguished a priori from the
consequentia (what is future). Consequently, the transcendental idea of the absolute totality of the series of conditions for a given conditioned deals with all past time only. According to the idea of reason the entire elapsed time, as condition of the given instant, is thought necessarily as given. As regards space, however, in it taken in itself there is no distinction of pro gression from regression; for space amounts to an aggregate, but not to a
series,
since its parts are one and all simultaneous. In the case of time, I was able to regard the present point of time-with regard to past time-only as conditioned [by this past time], but never as its condition; for only through bygone time (or, rather, through the going-by of the preceding time)
does this instant arise in the first place. But the parts of space are not sub ordinated to, but are coordinated with, one another; hence here one part is not the condition for the possibility of another part, and thus space does not in itself amount to a series, as does time. The synthesis of the mani3°[fongehen.] 31[Foige.] 32 [gehen.] 33 [Respectively: to the antecedents, to the consequents.] 34[l.e., when the cosmological ideas proceed to the consequents.] 3s[willkiirlich.] 36[Or
'grounds.' See B xix hr. n. 79. For my use of 'comprehend' instead of 'grasp,' see B 1 14 hr. n. 239.] 37 [l.e., the categories of quantity are considered first.]
A 41 2 B 439
448
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
fold parts of space, however, through which we apprehend space, is none theless successive; hence it occurs in time and contains a series. And in this series of aggregated spaces (e.g., the feet in a rod),3 8 from a given space onward, the further spaces that are added in thought are always the con
dition of the boundary
of the previous spaces. Hence the measuring of a space is likewise to be regarded as a synthesis of a series of the conditions
A 413 B 440
for a given conditioned, with this exception: here the side of the conditions is not in itself distinct from the side on39 which the conditioned lies, and
hence in space regression and progression4o seem to be the same. Yet be
cause one part of space is not given by another part but is only bounded
by it, we must regard each bounded space as being also conditioned inso far as it presupposes another space as the condition of its boundary, and so on for the other spaces. As regards bounding,4 1 therefore, the progres sion42 in space is also a regression, and the transcendental idea of the ab solute totality of the synthesis in the series of conditions concerns also space. And thus I can inquire just as well about the absolute totality of ap pearance in space as about that of appearance in bygone time. But whether an answer to such questions is possible at all we shall be able to determine hereafter.
Second,43 then, reality44 in space- i.e., matter-is a conditioned. The intemal45 conditions of this conditioned are its parts, and the parts of the parts are its remote conditions. Thus there takes place here a regressive syn thesis, whose absolute totality is demanded by reason. This absolute total ity cannot take place otherwise than by a completed division whereby the reality of matter vanishes either into nothingness46 or, at any rate, into what 38 [The German rod (Rute) varied in length from 2.8 to 5.3 meters (the most commonly used vanant being 3.766 meters long) and contained 10, 12, 14, or 16 feet (FujJ).] 39[Literally, 'toward' : nach . . . hin .] 40 [regressus und progressus. ] 4 1 [Begrenzung.] 42 [Fortgang.]
43[The corresponding 'first' occurred at the beginning of the last paragraph in A 4 1 11B 438 and concerned time and space. Here, second, Kant turns to the content of space.] 44[l.e., Kant now considers the categories of quality.] 45 [Or 'intrinsic' . inner.] 4°[in Nichts.]
SECTION I
SYSTEM OF COSMOLOGICAL IDEAS
449
is no longer matter: viz., the simple. Hence here also there is a series of conditions and an advance47 to the unconditioned. Third, as concerns the categories of real relation48 among appearances,
B 441
the category of substance with its accidents is not fitting for a transcen dental idea; i.e., with regard to this category reason has no basis for pro ceeding regressively to conditions. For accidents (insofar as they inhere in
A 414
a single substance) are coordinated with one another and do not make up a series. In regard to the substance, on the other hand,49 accidents are not, in fact, subordinated to it, but are the way of existing of the substance it self. What might here still seem to be an idea of transcendental reason would be the concept of the substantial. But this means nothing but the concept of an object as such that subsists insofar as one thinks in it merely the transcendental subject without any predicates; here, however, we are talking only about the unconditioned in the series of appearances. Clearly, therefore, the substantial cannot amount to a member in this series. The same holds also for substances in community, which are mere aggregates and have no indicator;Q of a series. For they are not subordinated to one another as conditions of their possibility-as we were indeed able to say of spaces, whose boundary was never determined in itself but always by another space. There remains, therefore, only the category of causality, which offers us a series of causes for a given effect. In this series we can ascend from the effect as the conditioned to the causes as conditions, and thus can answer the question of reason. Fourth, the concepts of the possible, the actual, and the necessary5 1 do not lead to any series--except only insofar as what is contingent in exist ence must always be regarded as conditioned; and insofar as it points, ac cording to the rule of understanding, to a condition under which this con dition itself must necessarily be pointed to a higher condition, 52 until reason encounters-only in the totality of this series-unconditioned necessity. Accordingly, if we pick out those categories that necessarily carry with them a series in the synthesis of the manifold, then there are no more than 47
[Fortschritt.]
48 [I.e., Kant now turns to the categories of relation.] 49 [I.e., rather than in regard to other accidents.] sO [ fuponent.] S I [I.e., lastly, Kant considers the categones of modality.] s2 [And so on.]
B 442
A 415
450
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
four cosmological ideas, in accordance with the four headings of the cat egories. B 443
1
Absolute completeness of the composition
of the given whole of all appearances 2
3
Absolute completeness of the
Absolute completeness of the arisingS 3 of an appearance as such54
division
of a given whole in [the realm oj] appearance 4
Absolute completeness of the dependence of the existence
of the changeable in [the realm oj] appearance A 4 16
B 444
Here we must note, first, that the idea of absolute totality concerns noth ing but the exposition of appearances, and hence not understanding's pure concept of a whole of things as such. Therefore appearances are here con sidered as given, and reason demands absoluteSS completeness of the con ditions of their possibility insofar as these conditions make up a series . Hence reason demands an absolutelyS6 (in every respect) complete syn thesis whereby the appearance can be expounded in accordance with laws of understanding. Second, what reason seeks in this synthesis of conditions-which is pur sued serially and, moreover, regressively-is, in fact, only the uncondi tioned; i.e., what reason seeks is, as it were, completeness in the series of
the premises that together presuppose no further premises. Now this un53 [Entstehung.] 54 [iiberhaupt. See B xxvii hr. n. 106.] sS [absolut.] s6 [schlechthin ]
SECTION I
conditioned is
SYSTEM OF COSMOLOGICAL IDEAS
always contained
45 1
in the absolute totality of the series if we
present this totality in imagination. 57 But this absolutely completed syn thesis is again only an idea; for we cannot know, at least not in advance, whether such a synthesis is indeed possible with appearances. If we present everything merely through pure concepts of understanding, without condi tions of sensible intuition, then we can say straightforwardly that for a given conditioned the entire series of conditions subordinated to one another is also given; for the conditioned is given solely through that series.5 8 With appearances, however, we find59 a special limitation of the way in which they are given: viz., they are given through the successive synthesis of the
A 41 7
manifold of intuition, a synthesis that in regression is to be complete. Now whether this completeness is possible in sensibility60 is still a problem. The idea of this completeness, however, does lie in reason, regardless of the possibility or impossibility of connecting empirical concepts in a way ad equate to this idea. The absolute totality, then, of the regressive synthesis of the manifold of appearance (a synthesis governed by the categories that present appearance as a series of conditions for a given conditioned) nec essarily contains the unconditioned--even if we leave undecided whether
B 445
and how this totality is to be brought about; and hence reason here takes the path of starting from the idea of totality although its final aim is in fact the
unconditioned,
whether that of the entire series or of a part thereof.
Now, one can think Of 6 1 this unconditioned in two ways. Either one
thinks of it as consisting merely in the whole series, in which therefore all members would without exception be conditioned and only their whole would be absolutely62 unconditioned; and then the regression is called in finite. Or the absolutely63 unconditioned is only a part of the series, a part
to which the remaining members of the series are subordinated but which
itself is not subject to any other condition.64 In the first case the series is 57
a
[Einbildung.]
58
[Construing diese as singular; cf. 'sum' at A 409IB 436.] s9 [anzutr effen.] 6O [sinnlich.] 61 [sich . . . gedenken.] 62 [schlechthin.] 6] [absolut.]
�e absolute whole of a series of conditions for a given conditioned is always unconditioned; for outside the series there are no further conditions in regard to
A 418
452
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
parte priori 65 given without bounds (without beginning), i.e., infinitely, and yet wholly; but the regression in it is never completed and can be called B 446
infinite only potentially. In the second case there is a first member of the series, which is called: with regard to bygone time, the beginning of the with regard to space, the boundary of the world; 66 with regard to the parts of a whole given within its bounds,67 the simple; with regard to
world;
causes, absolute
self-activity (freedom); with natural necessity.
regard to the existence of
changeable things, absolute
We have two terms, world and nature, which sometimes blend. 68 The
first term means the mathematical whole of all appearances and the total
A 419 B 447
ity of their synthesis on both the large and the small scale, i.e., the totality of the synthesis as it advances both by composition69 and by division. But this same world is called nature70 insofar as we consider it as a dynamical whole and take account, not of the aggregation in space or time in order to bring this aggregation about as a magnitude, but of the unity in the exist ence of appearances. Now here the condition of what occurs is called the cause; 7 1 and the cause's unconditioned causality72 in [the realm of] ap pearance73 is called freedom, whereas the conditioned causality is called which this whole could be conditioned. However, this absolute whole of such a se ries is only an idea---or, rather, a problematic concept whose possibility must be examined, viz., in reference to the way in which it may contain the unconditioned, which is the transcendental idea that is in fact at issue. 65 [On the side of what is prior, or antecedent. ] 66 [ Weltgrenze.] 67 [Grenzen.] 68 [ineinanderlau/en.] 69 [Or 'assembly': Zusammensetzung.]
B 446
7°Nature, taken adjectivally (formally), signifies the coherence of a thing's deter minations according to an internal principle of causality. By nature taken substan tively (materially), on the other hand, we mean the sum of appearances insofar as, by virtue of an internal principle of causality, they are in thoroughgoing coherence. In the first meaning we speak of the nature of fluid matter, fire, etc., and we then use the word adjectivally. On the other hand, when we talk about the things of na ture, then we have in mind a subsisting whole. 71
[ Ursache ]
72 [Kausalitiit.] 73 [unbedingte Kausalitiit der Ursache in der Erscheinung. which could also mean 'uncondi tioned causality of the cause in [the realm of] appearance.']
SECTION I
SYSTEM OF COSMOLOGICAL IDEAS
453
natural cause-in the narrower meaning.74 The conditioned found in ex istence as such is called contingent, and the unconditioned necessary. The unconditioned necessity of appearances may be called natural necessity. 5 I earlier7 called the ideas with which we are now dealing cosmologi 76 cal ideas. I did so partly because by the term world we mean the sum of all appearances, and our ideas are indeed directed to the unconditioned only among appearances; and partly because the term world, in the transcen dental meaning, signifies the absolute totality of the sum of existing things, and we are indeed directing our attention solely to the completeness of the synthesis (although, in fact, only in the regression to the conditions). More
A 420
over, these ideas are one and all transcendent, and although they do not exceed the object-viz., appearances-in kind but deal merely with the world of sense (not with noumena), they still carry the synthesis up to a
degree that surpasses
all possible experience; hence, in my opinion, they
may one and all quite fittingly be called world concepts. Yet with regard to the distinction between the mathematically and the dynamically uncon ditioned at which the regression aims, I would call the first two of these concepts77 world concepts (concepts of the world on the large and the small scale) in a narrower meaning, but would call the remaining two concepts
transcendent natural concepts.
For now this distinction is not of special
significance, but it may become more important hereafter.
74 [Of natural; i.e., the meaning that excludes freedom as manifested in appearance.] " [ A 4081B 435, A 41 11B 438, A 4151B 442.] 76 [I.e., world ideas ] "[I.e., the world concepts (cosmological ideas), as listed in the table at A 4 1 51 B 443.]
B 448
The Antinomy of Pure Reason Section II Antithetic of Pure Reason78 If thetic is the term for any sum of dogmatic doctrines,79 then by antithetic I mean not dogmatic assertions of the opposite, but the conflict of seem
A 42 1
ingly dogmatic cognitions (thesis cum antithesi)8o without attribution to one of them of a superior claim to approval over the other. Thus the antithetic does not deal at all with one-sided assertions, but considers universal cog nitions of reason only in regard t081 their conflict with one another and to the causes of this conflict. The transcendental antithetic is an inquiry con cerning the antinomy of pure reason, its causes, and its result. When we
B 449
apply our reason not merely-for the sake of using the principles of un derstanding82 -to objects of experience, but venture to extend our reason beyond the bounds of experience, then there arise subtly reasoning doc trines. 83 These doctrines neither may hope to be confirmed in experience. nor need they fear being refuted in it; and each of them not only is in it self without contradiction, but even encounters conditions of its necessity in the nature of reason--except that, unfortunately, the counterproposi tion84 has on its side equally valid and necessary bases8 5 for its assertion. The questions, then, that naturally arise in such a dialectic of pure rea son are the following. ( 1 ) What are, in fact, the propositions in which pure reason is unfailingly subject to an antinomy? (2) To what causes is this an78[See Heinz Heimsoeth. op. cit. at A
79[Lehren.]
2931B 349 br. n. 2, vol. 2, 215- 1 9.]
8°[Of thesis with antithesis. (Replacing thesin, the accusative of thesis, with the (Latin) geni tive.)] 8 1 [nach.]
82 [The principles of understanding (Grundsiitze des Verstandes) were treated above, A
1 58-2351B 1 97-294.]
83[ verniinftelnde Lehrsiitze.] 84[Or 'antithesis': Gegenl·atz.] 85[Or 'grounds.' See B xix br. n.
79.] 454
SECTION II
ANTITHETIC OF PURE REASON
455
tinomy due? (3) Despite this contradiction, does a path to certainty yet re main open to reason, and in what way? Accordingly, a dialectical doctrine86 of pure reason must have this two fold feature distinguishing it from all sophistical propositions: First, it must concern not a chosen87 question that one is raising only for this or that ar bitrary88 aim, but a question that any human reason must in its progress necessarily come upon. And second, such a doctrine, with its counterpropo sition, must carry with it not a merely artificial illusion that immediately vanishes once we have insight into it, but a natural and unavoidable illu sion that still continues to delude us-although not to deceive us-even when we are no longer tricked by it, and that hence can be rendered in nocuous, but never obliterated. Such a dialectical doctrine89 will refer not to the unity of understanding in experiential concepts, but to the unity of reason in mere ideas.90 But as synthesis according to rules this unity is still to be congruent, first, with the understanding, and yet as absolute unity of this synthesis it is to be con gruent simultaneously with reason. Hence if this unity is adequate to rea son then its conditions will91 be too great for the understanding, and if the unity is commensurate with the understanding then its conditions will be too small for reason. And from this there must arise a conflict that cannot be avoided, no matter how one goes about doing so. These subtly reasoning assertions thus reveal a dialectical combat arena.92 There any party permitted to make the attack keeps the upper hand, and the party compelled to proceed93 merely defensively is certain to be defeated. Vigorous knights, by the same token, whether they pledge themselves to the good or to the evil94 cause, are sure to carry off the wreath of victory-provided they take care to have the prerogative of making the last attack and are not obliged to withstand a new onslaught 86
[Lehrsatz.] 87 [ willkurlich.] 88 [gewisser beliebiger.] 89 [Lehre.] 9O [See above, A 3 1 0- 1 1/B 366-68.]
9 1 [Reading, with Erdmann and the Akademie edition, werden for wird.] 92 [Kamp
fplatz.] 93 [verfahren; A has 'carry on' (sich fuhren).] 94 [Or 'bad' ; schlimm.]
A 422
B 450
A 423
456
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
by the opponent. We can indeed readily conceive that this contest arena95 has all along been entered often enough and that many victories have been B 45 1
won by both sides, but that for the last and decisive victory care has always been taken-by forbidding the opponent to take up arms thenceforth-that solely the champion of the good cause would prevail in the arena. We, however, as impartial arbiters of combat, must set aside entirely whether the cause for which the contestants96 are fighting is the good or the evil one, and must let them decide their cause between them selves. Perhaps, after having more exhausted than harmed each other, they
will become aware on their own of the nullity of their contest, 97 and will part as good friends.
This method of watching--or, rather, of occasioning on one's own-a contest98 of assertions, not in order finally to decide in favor of one or the other party, but in order to inquire whether the contest's object is not per haps a mere deception for which each party grasps in vain and from which A 424
it cannot gain anything even if not resisted at all-this procedure, I say, may be called the
cism,
skeptical method.99
It is entirely distinct from
skepti
a principle of technical l Oo and scientific ignorance-a principle that
undermines the foundations of all cognition in order, if possible, to leave cognition without any reliability and security whatsoever. For the skepti B 452
cal method aims at certainty. It does so by seeking to discover the point of misunderstanding in such a dispute lOl -a dispute that on both sides is meant sincerely and is conducted with understanding-in order that, as wise legislators do, it may from the perplexity of judges in lawsuits obtain in formation for itself about what is deficient and not precisely determined in its laws. The antinomy that manifests itself in the application of laws is for our limited wisdom the best experiment for testing [reason's] nomo
thetic, 102 in order that by this antinomy we may alert reason-which in ab95 [ Tummelplatz.] 96[die Streitenden.] 97 [Streithandel.] 98 [Streit. ] 99 [See Walter Watson. op. cit. at B xvi br. n. 7 1 , 95.J IOO [kunstmafJig.] 10 1
[Streit. ]
1 02 [I.e., the legislation giving rise to those laws.]
SECTION II
ANTITHETIC OF PURE REASON
457
stract speculation does not easily become aware of its slips-to the mo
ments 103 involved in detennining its principles. Only to transcendental philosophy, however, does this skeptical method belong essentially. In any other field of inquiry it may perhaps be dispens able; but not in this one. Using this method in mathematics would be ab surd; for there no false assertions can hide and make themselves invisible, inasmuch as the proofs must always proceed along the course 104 of pure
A 425
intuition and, moreover, by a synthesis that is always evident. In experi mental philosophy 105 a doubt that prompts delay may indeed be useful, but at least no misunderstanding is possible that cannot easily be removed; and experience must in the end contain the ultimate means-whether discov ered early or late-for deciding the quarrel. 106 Morality can also-at least in possible experiences-give all of its principles in concreto, along with their practical consequences, and can thereby avoid the misunderstanding arising from abstraction. Transcendental assertions claiming an expan sive 107 kind of insight even beyond the realm of all possible experiences, on the other hand, neither fit the case where their abstract synthesis could be given in any a priori intuition, nor are such 108 that the misunderstand ing could be uncovered by means of any experience. Therefore transcen dental reason pennits no other touchstone 109 than the attempt to recon cile ll o its assertions among themselves, and hence to conduct beforehand a free and unhindered contest1 1 1 of these assertions among one another. Let us now engage in this contest. 112
103 [I.e., key elements.] 1 04 [Faden.] lo5 [Experimentalphiiosophie. Will e suggests that we read Experimentalphysik ( 'experimental physics').] 106 [Zwist. ] 107 [erweitemd. See A 7fB 1 1 hr. n. 1 94.] 108 [sind . . . so beschaffen.] 109 [Of truth.] l lo [Vereinigung III
.]
[We//s/rei/.]
112The antinomies succeed one another according to the order of the transcenden tal ideas cited above.· a[A 415fB 443 ]
B 453
A 426 B 454
}
{A
The Antinomy of Pure Reason FIRST CONFLICT OF TRANSCENDENTAL IDEAS 1 1 3 THESIS
ANTITHESIS
The world has a beginning in time and is also enclosed within bounds as regards space.
The world has no beginning and no bounds in space, but is infinite as re gards both time and space.
PROOF
PROOF
For assume that the world has no beginning as regards time. In that case, up to every given point in time an eternity has elapsed and hence an infinite series of successive 1 l4 states of things in the world has gone by. However, the infinity of a series con sists precisely in the fact that it can never be l l S completed by succes sive l 1 6 synthesis. Therefore an infi nite bygone world series is impos sible, and hence a beginning of the
For suppose that it has a beginning. In that case, since the beginning is an existence preceded by a time wherein the thing is not, a time must have preceded wherein the world was not, i.e., an empty time. In an empty time, however, no arising of any thing is possible; for no part of such a time has, 1 1 7 in preference to another part, any distinguishing con dition of existence rather than non existence 1 l 8 (whether one assumes
I l 3[See Paul Guyer, op. cit. at A 841B 1 1 6 hr. n. 1 , 407-09. See also Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 2931B 349 hr. n. 2, vol. 2, 220-27. Also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii hr. n. 5, 483-88. Also Arthur Melnick, op. cit. at A 22/B 37 hr. n. 27, 3 1 8-53. And see T. K. Swing. op. cit. at A 3 101B 366 br. n. 94, 270-76.] 1 1 4[aufeinander folgend.] 1 1 5 [sein (rather than werden).] 116 [sukzessiv.] 1 1 7 [an sich hat.]
1 1 8[Kant actually says. 'rather than [condition] of nonexistence' (where tiner, vor der instead of vor die.]
458
427
B 455
I
read. with Valen
SECTION II
A B
428 } 456
ANTITHETIC OF PURE REASON
world is a necessary condition of the world's existence-which was the first point to be proved. As regards the second point in the thesis, assume again the oppo site. In that case the world will be an infinite given whole of things ex isting simultaneously. Now in the case of a quantum that is not given within certain bounds of any intu ition, 1l9 we can think Of1 20 this quantum's magnitude in no other way than through the synthesis of its parts, and can think of the totality of such a quantum only through the completed synthesis , or [i.e.] through repeated addition of unit to unit. 121 Accordingly, in order for the world-which occupies all spaces to be thought as a whole, the suc cessive synthesis of the parts of an infinite· world would have to be re garded as completed, i.e., in the enu-
459
that the world 1 22 arises of itself or through another cause). Hence al though many a series of things can begin in the world, the world itself cannot have a beginning and hence is infinite with regard to past time. As concerns the second point in the antithesis, assume, first of all, the opposite: viz., that the world is, as regards space, finite and bounded. In that case the world is located 1 23 in an empty space that is not bounded. Hence we would find here not only a relation of things in space but also a relation of things to space. Now the world is an absolute whole, outside of which there is to be found no object of intuition, and hence no correlate of the world to which the world stands in relation; therefore the relation of the world to empty space would be a relation of it to no object. But such a relation-and
ll�f an indeterminate quantum is enclosed within bounds, then we can intuit it as a whole without needing to construct its totality through measuring, i.e., through the successive synthesis of its parts. For the bounds already determine the [quantum's] completeness by cutting off anything further. 120[gedenken.]
121 The concept of totality is in this case nothing but the presentation of the com pleted synthesis of the quantum's parts. For since we cannot abstract the concept from the intuition of the whole (such intuition being impossible in this case), we can frame the concept only through the parts' synthesis carried up to the comple tion of the infinite-at least in our idea. 122 [sie, the closest referent of which is actually Bedingung ( ,condition') rather than Welt ('world').]
1 23[befindet . . .
sich.]
{ A 429 B 457
B
456
460
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
meration 124 of all coexisting things an infinite time would have to be re garded as having elapsed-which is impossible. Accordingly, an infinite aggregate of actual things cannot be regarded as a given whole, and hence also not as given simulta neously. Consequently, a world is, as regards extension in space, not infinite but is enclosed in its bounds-which was the second point to be proved.
hence also the bounding 125 of the world by empty space-is nothing. Therefore the world is, as regards space, not bounded at all; i.e., it is infinite with regard to extension.126
1 24 [Durchziihlung.) 125 [Begrenzung.)
126Space is merely the form of outer" intuition (i.e., it is merely formal intuition), but not an actual object that can be intuited externally. Space, as prior to all things that determine (occupy or bound) it---{)r that, rather, give us an empirical intuition conformingb to its form-is called absolute space;c absolute space is nothing but the mere possibility of outer appearances insofar as they either exist in themselves or can still be added to given appearances. Hence empirical intuition is not composed o� appearances and space (i.e., perception and empty intuition). The one is not the other's correlate in synthesis, but is only linked with the other in one and the same empirical intuition, viz., as its matter and form. If we try to posit one of these two items outside the other (viz., space outside all appearances), then there arise from this all sorts of empty determinations of outer intuition that yet are not possible perceptions: e.g., the distinction between the world's motion or rest in infinite empty space-a determination of the relation of the two to each other that can never be perceived and that, by the same token, is therefore the predicate of a mere thought-entity. "[Or 'external.') b [gemiijJ .) C[See the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak IV, 48 1-82, 560 See also J. W. Ellington, op. cit. at B xliii br n. 149, Translator's Introduction to the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, xiv-xv.] d[Or 'assembled from' : zusammengesetzt aus.]
B 457
SECTION II
430 458
ANTITHETIC OF PURE REASON
46 1
Comment on The First Antinomy
}
I. ON THE THESIS
II. ON THE ANTITHESIS
In these mutually conflicting argu ments I have not sought to use de ceptions in order perhaps to con duct (as we say) a lawyer 's proof-which employs the oppo nent's carelessness to its own advan tage and gladly accepts his appeal to a misunderstood law in order to build its own illegitimate claims on that law's refutation. Each of these proofs is drawn from the nature of the case, and the advantage obtain able from the fallacious inferences of the dogmatists from both parties has been put aside. I could also seemingly have proved ' the thesis by starting, in ac cordance with the custom of the dogmatists, from1 27 a defective con cept of the infinity of a given mag nitude. A magnitude 128 [so I could have argued] is infinite if beyond it (i.e., beyond what multitude of a
The proof for the infinity of the given world series and the infinity of the world sum-total 1 29 rests on this: that in the opposite case an empty time and similarly an empty space would have to make up the boundary of the world. Now, I am not unaware that philosophers seek subterfuges against this implica tion, 130 by claiming that a boundary of the world as regards both time and space is indeed entirely pos sible without one's needing to as sume an absolute time prior to the beginning of the world, or an abso lute space spread out outside of the actual world-both of which are im possible. With the latter part of this opinion 131 of the philosophers from the Leibnizian school I am entirely satisfied. Space is merely the form of outer 132 intuition, but not an ac tual object that can be intuited ex-
127 [ 'starting . . . from' here renders vorangeschickl. ] 1 28 [Grd"Be.] 129 [ Weilinbegriff] 130 [Konsequenz.] 1 3 1 [I.e., the part denying an absolute time prior to the beginning of the world and an absolute space spread out outside of the actual world. Kant goes on to show how his own view (though different from that of Leibniz) also has this consequence.] 1 32 [Or 'external ']
{ A 43 1
B 459
462
A 432 B 460
}
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
given unit it contains) no greater 133 one is possible. Now no magnitude is the greatest, because one or more units can always still be added. Therefore an infinite given magni tude, and hence also an infinite world (infinite as regards both the bygone series and extension), is im possible; therefore the world is bounded in both respects. Thus could I have conducted my proof. However, this concept of the infin ity of a given magnitude does not agree with what is meant by an in finite whole. For we do not present 1 34 through this concept how great this whole is, and hence the concept of this whole is also not the concept of a maximum. Rather, through this concept we think only the whole's relation to an arbitrarily assumed unit, in regard to which this whole is greater than any num ber. Now according as the unit is as sumed greater or smaller, the infi nite whole would be greater or smaller. Only infinity, since it con-
temally, and not a correlate of ap pearances but the form of appear ances themselves. Hence space can not occur absolutely (by itself) as something determinative in the ex istence of things, since it is no ob ject at all but only the form of pos sible obj ects. Hence things considered as appearances do in deed determine space; i.e., they bring about the fact that among all its possible predicates (of magni tude and relation) these or those [particular] predicates belong to ac tuality. B ut space considered as something self-subsistent cannot conversely determine the actuality of things as regards magnitude or shape, because it is nothing actual in itself. Hence a space (whether full or empty)135 can indeed be bounded by appearances, but appearances cannot be bounded by an empty space outside them. The same holds also for time. But all of this being granted, the fact is nonetheless in disputable that these two non-
{A B
433 46 1
1 33 [groj1er.] 1 34 [Or 'conceive' : vorstellen. See B xvii br. n. 73.]
135It will readily be discerned that I mean by this the following: empty space insofar as it is bounded by appearances hence empty space within the world"-at least does not contradict transcendental principles, and thus may, as far as they are concerned, be granted (although its possibilityb may not therefore immediately be asserted). -
"[See the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak. IV, 563-64 I b [Real, rather than merely logical, possibility.]
B 46 1
SECTION II
ANTITHETIC OF PURE REASON
sists merely in the relation to these given units, would always remain the same; but through this concept, of course, the absolute magnitude of the whole would not be cognized nor, indeed, is cognizing this mag nitude at issue here. 136 The true (transcendental) concept of infinity is this: that the succes sivel 37 synthesis of unit[s] l 38 in measuring by means of a quantum can never be 139 completed.14o From this it follows quite surely that an eternity of actual successive 141 states up to a given point in time (the present one) cannot have gone by, and that the world must therefore have a beginning. In regard to the second part of the thesis the difficulty concerning an infinite and yet elapsed series does, indeed, go away; for the mani fold of a world that is infinite as re-
463
entities 142--empty 143 space outside, and empty time prior to, the world-must assuredly be assumed if one assumes a boundary of the world, whether in regard to space or time. For as concerns the above implication-whereby we say that if the world has bounds (as regards time and space) then the infinite void 144 must determine the exist ence of actual things as regards their magnitude-the escape by which philosophers seek to evade this im plication consists, although covertly, only in this: that instead of thinking of a world of sense one thinks Of145 who knows what kind of intelligible world; instead of the first beginning (an existence preceded by a time of nonexistence) one thinks an exist ence as such 146 that presupposes no other condition in the world; and in-
1 36[In this concept.] 1 37 [sukzessiv.] 1 38 [Or 'unity' ('oneness'): Einheit.] 1 39 [sein (rather than werden).]
14D-rhe quantum thereby contains a multitude (of [al given unit) that is greater than any number-which is the mathematical concept of the infinite. 1 41 [aufeinander folgend.] 1 42 [Undinge. See A 292IB 348.] 1 43 [leer.] 1 44 [Leere.] 145 [sich . . . gedenken.] 1 46[iiberhaupt. See B xxvii hr. n. 1 06.]
464
PART II
lRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
gards extension is given simulta neously. Consider, however, the to tality of such a multitude: since we cannot appeal to bounds that by themselves make up this totality in intuition, we must, in order to think this totality, account for our con cept. However, this concept cannot in such a case proceed from the whole to the detenninate multitude of parts, but must establish the pos sibility of a whole through the suc cessive synthesis of the parts. Now because this synthesis would have to make up a series that can never be completed, one cannot think a total ity Of147 such a synthesis, and hence also not by means of it. For the con cept of totality itself is in this case the presentation of a completed syn thesis of the parts; but this comple tion, and hence also the concept of it, is impossible.
stead of the boundary 1 48 of exten sion one thinks limits 149 of the world whole; and thus one gets away from 150 time and space. But we are here talking only about the mundus phaenomenon 15 1 and its magnitude, and in the case of this world we can by no means abstract from the men tioned conditions 152 of sensibility without annulling the essence 153 of that world. The world of sense, if it is bounded, lies necessarily in the infinite void. If one wants to leave out the void, and hence space as such, as a priori condition for the possibility of appearances, then the entire world of sense drops out. In our problem, 154 this world alone is given to us. The mundus intelligibi liS 155 is nothing but the universal concept of a world as such. In this concept one abstracts from all con ditions of the intuition of the world, and therefore in regard to this con cept no synthetic proposition what ever is possible either affinnatively or negatively.
1 47 [Reading von instead of vor, which would yield 'a totality cannot be thought prior to it. ' ] 148 [Grenze.] 149 [Schranken.] 15D [aus dem Wege gehen.]
1 5 1 [Phenomenal world.] 152 [I.e time and space.] 1 53 [Wesen.] .•
1 5< [As to whether the world is bounded or infinite.]
1"[Intelligible world.]
A 434
8 462
}
{ A 435
The Antinomy of Pure Reason
B 463
SECOND CONFLICT OF TRANSCENDENTAL IDEAS 156 THESIS
ANTITHESIS
Every composite substance in the world consists of simple parts, and nothing at al1 15? exists but the simple or what is composed of it.
No composite thing in the world consists of simple parts, and there exists in the world nothing simple at all.
PROOF
PROOF
For suppose that composite sub stances did not consist of simple parts. In that case, if all composi tion 1 5 8 were annulled in thought, then there would remain no com posite part and (since on this sup position there are no simple parts) also no simple part; hence there would remain nothing at all, and consequently no substance would
Suppose that a composite thing (as substance) consists of simple parts. Now all external 159 relation and hence also all composition from sub stances 160 is possible only in space; hence however many parts the com posite consists of, the space that it occupies must also consist of as many parts. Now space consists not of simple parts but of spaces. Hence
1 56[See Paul Guyer, op. cit. at A 84/B 1 1 6 br. n. 1 , 409-1 1 See also Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 293/B 349 br. n. 2. vol. 2. 227-37. Also Nonnan Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 488-92. Also Arthur Melnick, op. cit. at A 22/B 37 hr. n. 27, 283-3 1 7, 353-66. And see T K. Swing, op. cit. at A 3 1 0/B 366 hr. n. 94, 276-77.] 1 57 [iiberall. In Kant this tenn does not, as it does today, mean 'everywhere' (for which Kant uses allerwiirts or allenthalben).] 1 58 [Zusammensetzung.]
159[Or 'extrinsic. 'J 1 60 [aus Substanzen (cf. the end of this paragraph), i.e., all composition of a substance from other substances J
465
466
A 436 B 464
}
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
have been given. Therefore, either one cannot possibly annul in thought all composition, or after its annul ment there must remain something that subsists without any composi tion, i.e., the simple. In the first case, 16 1 however, the composite would again not consist of sub stances; (for with substances com position is only a contingent rela tion of substances-a relation without which substances, as by themselves permanent beings, 162 must still subsist). Now since this case contradicts the presupposi tion, 1 63 there remains only the sec ond case: viz., that the substan tivel 64 composite in the world consists of simple parts. From this it follows directly that the things in the world are, one and all, simple beings; that composition is merely an external 1 65 state of them; and that although we can never put elementary substances completely out of this state of com bination and isolate them, yet rea son must think them as the first 166
every part of the composite must oc cupy a space. However, the abso lutely first 1 67 parts of anything com posite are simple. Therefore the simple occupies a space. Now any thing real that occupies a space com prises 1 68 a manifold [of elements] outside one another and hence is composite; as a real composite, moreover, it is composed not from accidents (for these cannot without substance be outside one another) but, hence, from substances; there fore the simple would be a substan tive composite-which is self contradictory. The second proposition of the antithesi s-that nothing simple whatever exists in the world-is to mean no more here than this: the ex istence of the absolutely simple can not be established from any experi ence or perception, whether outer or inner; and the absolutely simple 169 is, therefore, a mere idea the objec tive reality of which can never be established in any possible experi ence, and which is hence without
161 [Where not all composition has been annulled in thought.] 162 [Wesen.] 163 [That composite substances do not consist of simple parts.] I
64 [substantielle.]
1 65 [Or 'extnnsic. ' ] 166 [Or 'pri mary.'] 167 [Or 'primary.' ] 1 68 [in sich fassen.] 169 [Einfache.]
{A
437
B 465
SECTION II
ANTITHETIC OF PURE REASON
subjects of all composition, 170 and hence must think them, prior to any composition, as simple beings.
467
any application and object in the ex position of appearances. For let us assume that an object of experience could be found for this transcenden tal idea; then the empirical intuition of some object would have to be cognized as one containing abso lutelyl 7 1 no manifold [of elements] outside one another and combined into unity. Now from our not being conscious of such a manifold we cannot validly infer that such a manifold is entirely impossible in any intuition of an object; yet this impossibility is assuredly needed for absolute simplicity. 1 72 Thus it fol lows that this simplicity cannot be inferred from any perception what soever. Since, therefore, nothing can ever be given as an absolutely 1 73 simple objectl 74 in any possible ex perience, but since the world of sense must be regarded as the sum of all possible experiences, nothing simple is given in it at all. This second proposition of the antithesis goes much further than the first. The first proposition ban ishes the simple only from the intu ition of the composite; the second, by contrast, removes the simple from all of nature-which is also
170 [Komposition.] I7 l [schlechthin.] 172 [absolute Simplizitiit.] 173 [schlechthin.] 174 [Objekt here and just above; Gegenstand before that and just below. See A vii br. n. 7.]
468
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
the reason why we were able to prove this proposition not from the concept of a given object of outer intuition (of the composite), but only from the concept's relation to a pos sible experience as such.
A 438 B 466
Comment on The Second Antinomy
}
I. ON THE THESIS
II. ON THE ANTITHESIS
In talking about a whole that neces sarily consists of simple parts I mean only a substantive whole-this be ing the composite proper, i.e., the contingent unity of the manifold that, given separately (at least in thought), is put into a reciprocal linkage and thereby makes up a unit. 1 75 Space should, properly, be called not a compositum but a to tum, 1 76 because its parts are pos sible only in the whole, not the whole through the parts. At most space could be called a compositum ideale. rather than reale. l77 But this is mere subtlety. Space is not a com posite made up from substances (not even from real accidents). Hence if I annul all composition in it, then nothing must remain, not even a
Against this proposition-whose ba sis of proof is merely mathemat ical-concerning an infinite divi sion of matter, objections have been advanced by the monadists. These objections already arouse suspicion by the fact that the monadists refuse to accept the clearest mathematical proofs as being insights into the character of space-insofar as space is in fact the formal condition for the possibility of all matter-but they regard such proofs only as in ferences from abstract but chosen 1 78
175[Eines.] 1 76 [Not a composite but a whole.] 177 [An ideal. rather than a real. composite.]
17B[willkiirlich ]
concepts that could not be referred to actual things. The monadists downgrade these proofs as if, in deed, it were so much as possible to think up a different kind of intuition from the one that is given in the
{A B
43 9 467
SECTION II
0} AB 44 468
ANTITHETIC OF PURE REASON
point; for a point is possible only as the boundary of a space (hence of a composite). Therefore, space and time do not consist of simple parts. If something belongs only to the state of a substance, then even if it has a magnitude (e .g., change)-it also does not consist of the simple; i.e., a certain degree of change does not come about by an accretion of many simple changes. Our inference from the composite to the simple holds l 79 only for self subsistent things. But accidents of the statel 80 are not self-subsistent. Hence one can easily ruin the proof for the necessity of the simple, as the components l 81 of any substan tive composite/ 82 and thereby ruin one's case as such: viz., if one ex tends the proof too far and tries to make it hold, without making a dis tinction, for anything composite as has actually already happened repeatedly. I am, besides, talking here only about the simple insofar as it is nec essarily given in the composite inasmuch as the composite can be resolved into the simple as its com-
469
original intuition of space, and as if the a priori determinations of this space did not pertain 1 83 simulta neously to whatever is possible only through the fact that it occupies this space. If we listened to them, then besides the mathematical point which, although simple, is not a part but merely the boundary of a space-we would have to think also physical points; these, although like wise simple, have the advantage that, as parts of space, they occupy it by their mere aggregation. Now, I shall not here repeat the common and clear refutations of this absurdity-since, 1 84 indeed, the at tempt by means of merely discur sive concepts to subtly reason away the self-evidence of mathematics is entirely futile. I shall note only that if philosophy here plays tricks with mathematics, then this happens only because philosophy forgets that in this question the concern is only with appearances and their condi tions. Here, however, it is not enough that for understanding 's con cept of the composite we find the concept of the simple. Rather, for
179 [Or 'is valid': gilt.] 180[Of a thing.] lS I [Bestandteile.] I R2 [Zusammengesetzten.] I S3 [Or, possibly, 'as if the determinations of this space did not a prion pertain. '] I 84 [wie. 1
{ A 44 l
B 469
470
A 442 B 470
}
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
ponents. 1 85 The proper meaning of the term monad 186 (according to Leibniz's use) should, presumably, apply only to the simple that is given directly 1 87 as simple substance (e.g., in self-consciousness), rather than given as element of the composite, which might better be called an ato mus. 188 And since it is only with re gard to the composite that I wish to prove simple substances, as ele ments of the composite, I could call the thesis 1 89 of the second antinomy transcendental atomism. 190 How ever, inasmuch as this term has long since already been used to desig nate a particular way of explaining bodily appearances (moleculae) 1 9 1 and hence presupposes empirical concepts, the thesis may be called the dialectical principle of monad
ology.
the intuition of the composite (the intuition of matter) we must find the intuition of the simple; and this, ac cording to laws of sensibility and hence also for objects of the senses, is entirely impossible. Hence for a whole composed from substances that is thought merely through pure understanding it may indeed hold that we must, prior to any composi tion of this whole, have the simple; yet this does not hold for the totum substantiale phaenomenon, 1 9 2 which, as empirical intuition in space, carries with it the necessary property that no part of it is simple-because no part of space is simple. The monadists, however, have been acute enough to try to evade this difficulty: viz., by presup posing not space as a condition for the possibility of objects of outer in tuition (bodies), but instead these objects and the dynamical relation of substances as such as the condi tion for the possibility of space. Now, we have a concept of bodies
185 [See the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak. IV, 503.08. See also 1. W. El lington, op. cit. at B xliii br. n. 149, Translator's Introduction to the Metaphysical Founda tions of Natural Science. xxi-xxiii.] 1 86 [Monas.] 187 [unmittelbar. See B xxxix br. n. 144c.]
188[Atom, i.e., indivisible element.] 189[Reading-with Mellin, Valentiner, and the Akademie edition these.]
These (or 'Thesis') for Anti
-
190 [Atomistik.] 19 1 [Molecules.]
1 92[Phenomenal substantive Whole 1
SECTION II
ANTITHETIC OF PURE REASON
47 1
only as appearances; as appear ances, however, they necessarily presuppose space as the condition for the possibility of all outer ap pearances. Hence this subterfuge of the monadists is futile-and it has, indeed, been sufficiently cut down above, in the Transcendental Aes thetic. 193 If bodies were things in themselves, [on the other hand,] then the proof of the monadists would in deed hold. 1 94 The second dialectical asser tion 195 has the peculiarity of having against it a [special] dogmatic as sertion. This latter assertion is, among all subtly reasoning asser tions, the only one that undertakes to prove manifestly, in an object of experience, the actuality of what above we ascribed merely to tran scendental ideas: viz., the absolute simplicity 196 of substance. I mean the assertion that the object of inner sense, the I that thinks, 197 is an ab solutely simple 198 substance. Now without here entering into this issue (since it has been examined more elaborately above), 199 I shall note only this: that when we think some193 [A 22-301B 37-45.] 1 94 [Or 'be valid' ; gelten.] 1 9' [Of the antithesis.] 196 [Simplizitiit.] 1 97 [das lch. was da denkt. Emphasis added; similarly below.] 1 ··[einjach.)
199[See the Paralogisms of Pure Reason. A 341-405 (especially 348-61 )/B 399-432.)
{ A 443 B 471
472
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
thing merely as object without add ing any synthetic determinations of its intuition (and this is, in fact, what we do through the entirely bare pre sentation I), then of course we can not perceive in such a presentation anything manifold and any compo sition. Moreover, since the predi cates through which I think this ob ject are merely intuitions of inner sense, there also c annot occur in it anything that would prove a mani fold [of elements] outside one an other and hence prove real compo sition. Thus w h at prompts the mentioned assertion is only that our self-consciousness is such that, be cause the subject that thinks is si multaneously its own object, this subject cannot divide itself (al though it can divide the determina tions inhering in it); for in regard to itself any object is absolute unity. Nonetheless, if this subject were to be contemplated externall/oo as an object of intuition, then presumably it would in appearance manifest in itself composition. That, however, is how it must always be contemplated if we want to know whether or not there is in it a manifold [of ele ments] outside20 1 one another.
200[aujieriich.] 201 [a ujierhalb.]
A 444 }
{ A 445
The Antinomy of Pure Reason
8 472
B 473
THIRD CONFLICT OF TRANSCENDENTAL IDEAS 202 THESIS
ANTITHESIS
The causality according to laws of nature is not the only causality, from which the appearances of the world can thus one and all be derived. In order to explain these appearances, it is necessary to assume also a cau sality through freedom.
There is no freedom, but everything in the world occurs solely accord ing to laws of nature.
PROOF
PROOF
Assume that there is no other cau sality than the one according to laws of nature. In that case, everything that occurs presupposes a previous state upon which it unfailingly fol lows according to a rule. The previ ous state, however, must itself be something that has occurred (has come to be in the time wherein pre viously it was not); for if it had al ways203 been, then its consequence also would always have been and
Suppose there is, in the transcenden tal meaning of the term, a freedom as a special kind of causality ac cording to which the events of the world could happen: 204 viz . , a powe�05 of absolutely beginning a state, and hence also of absolutely beginning a series of consequences thereof. In that case, not only will a series begin absolutely through this spontaneity, but the determination of this spontaneity itself to produce the
202 [See
H. E. Allison, op. cit. A 2 1 1B 35 br. n. 22, 3 1 0-29. See also Graham Bird, op. cit. at A 671B 92 br. n. 1 2 1 , 1 98-204. Also Paul Guyer, op. cit. at A 841B 1 16 br. n. 1 , 4 1 1-12. AIso Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 2931B 349 br. n. 2, vol. 2, 237-47. Also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 492-95. And see T. D. Weldon, op. cit. at A 211B 35 br n. 22, 2 1 0- 17.] 203 U ederzeit here, immer just below; the two terms are synonymous.) 204 [eifolgen.) 205
[Vermogen. See A xii br.
n.
16 )
473
474
A 446 B 474
}
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
would not now first of all have arisen. Hence the cause's causal ity,206 through which something oc curs, is itself something which has occurred and which, according to the laws of nature, again presup poses a previous state and its cau sality, but this state similarly pre supposes a still earlier207 one, etc. Hence if everything occurs accord ing to mere laws of nature, then there is always only a subsidiary208 but never a first beginning, and hence there then is on the side of the causes originating from one another no completeness of the series at all. The law of nature, however, con sists precisely in this: that nothing occurs without a cause sufficiently determined a priori. Hence the proposition, in its unlimited univer sality, whereby209 any causality is possible only according to natural laws contradicts itself; and hence this causality cannot be assumed as being the only one. Accordingly, we must assume a causality through which something
series-i.e., the causality-will be gin absolutely, so that nothing pre cedes by which this occurring ac tion is determined according to constant laws. However, any begin ning to act presupposes a state of the not yet acting cause; and a dynami cally first beginning of action pre supposes a state that has no connec tion2 1 O of causality at all with the preceding state of the same cause, i.e., in no way results2 1 1 from that preceding state. Therefore, transcen dental freedom runs counter to the causal law;212 and hence a link age2 1 3 of successive states of effi cient causes according to which no unity of experience is possible-and which, therefore, is also not encoun tered in any experience-is an empty thought-entity. We have, therefore, nothing but nature as the place wherein we must seek the coherence21 4 and order of events in the world. Freedom (inde pendence) from the laws of nature is indeed a liberation from constraint, but also from the guidance of all
206 [Kausalitiit der Ursache.] 207 [iilter.] 208 [subaitern.] 209 [als wenn.] 2 1 0[Zusammenhang, which also means 'coherence.'] 2 1 1 [eifolgen.] 2 1 2 [Kausalgesetz; i.e .. the law of causality (Gesetz der Kausalitiit--cf. B 232).] 2 1 3 [Verbindung; c f. B 20 1 n 30 ] 2 1 4 [Zusammenhang.]
{A B
447 475
SECTION II
ANTITHETIC OF PURE REASON
occurs without its cause's being de termined still further, according to necessary laws, by another, preced ing cause. I.e., we must assume an absolute spontaneity of causes whereby they can begin on their own a series 2 1 S of appearances that runs2 1 6 according to natural laws hence transcendental freedom without which even in the course2 17 of nature the sequence2 1 B of appear ances on the side of the causes is never complete.
2 1 5 [Reihe.] 216 [laufen.] 217 [La uf.] 2 1 8 [Reihenfolge .] 219 [ Gesetzmiij1igkeil.] 220 [davon jene.] 221 [versprechen here. verheifJen just below.]
475
rules. For one cannot say that in stead of the laws of nature, laws of freedom enter into the causality of the course of nature, because if free dom were determined according to laws then it would not be freedom but would itself be nothing but na ture. Hence nature and freedom dif fer as do law-governedness2 19 and lawlessness. Nature220 does indeed burden the understanding with the difficulty of seeking the origin of events ever higher up in the series of causes, because the causality in them is always conditioned; but for compensation it promises22 1 us thor oughgoing and law-governed unity of experience. The deception of free dom, on the other hand, does in deed promise to the investigating understanding a point of rest in the chain of causes, by leading it to an unconditioned causality that on its own starts to act; but, being blind itself, it disrupts the guidance of rules that alone makes possible an experience having thoroughgoing coherence.
476 A 448 B 476
PART II
}
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
Comment on The Third Antinomy I. ON THE THESIS
II. ON THE ANTITHESIS
The transcendental idea of freedom does not, indeed, amount to the en tire content-which is in large part empirical-of the psychological concept of that name;222 rather, the transcendental idea's content is only the absolute spontaneity of action, as the proper basis for the action's imputability. But this idea is none theless the stumbling-block proper for philosophy, which finds insur mountable difficulties in granting such a kind of unconditioned cau sality. Hence what in the question about the freedom of the will has all along put speculative reason in a great quandary 223 is-properly speaking-only transcendental, and concerns merely this: whether we must assume a power of beginning spontaneousl/24 a series of succes sive things or states. Being able to answer the question as to how such
The defender of the omnipotence225 of nature (transcendental phys iocracy) would, in opposing the doc trine of freedom, maintain his propo sition against this doctrine's subtly reasoning inferences in the follow ing manner. If you do not assume in
the world something mathematically first as regards time, 226 then you also do not need to seek something dynamically first as regards causal ity. Who told you to think up an ab
solutely 227 first state of the world and hence an absolute228 beginning of the gradually passing229 series of appearances, and to set bounds to limitless nature in order to provide your imagination with a resting point? Since the substances in the world have always been-or since at least the unity of experience makes such a presupposition necessary-there is no difficulty in
222 ['Freedom.'] 223 [The transcendental idea of freedom is a stumbling-block for speculative philosophy but not for practical philosophy. See below, A 532-58 B 560-86.] =
224 [von selbst. literally 'on [one's] own.' ] 225 [Allvermogenheit.)
226 [As was the case with the antithesis of the first antinomy.) 227 [schlechthin.)
228 [absolut ) 229 [ablaufen.l
{ AB 449 477
SECTION II
A 450 B 478
}
ANTITHETIC OF PURE REASON
a power is possible is not equally necessary. For in the causality ac cording to natural laws we must likewise settle for cognizing a priori that such a causality must be pre supposed, even though we do not comprehend in any way the possi bility whereby through a certain [thing's] existence the existence of another is posited, and must thus keep solely to experience. Now, to be sure, we have in fact established this necessity of a first beginning, is suing from freedom, only insofar as this is required for making compre hensible an origin of the world, whereas all subsequent states can be taken to be a succession23o accord ing to mere natural laws. Yet, hav ing once proved thereby (although not gained insight into) the power of beginning entirely spontaneously a series in time, we are now also per mitted to let different series begin spontaneously, even in the midst of the course of the world, as regards [not time but] causality,231 and to at tribute to their substances a power of acting from freedom. Here we must not let ourselves be detained, however, by a misunderstanding: viz., that because a successive se-
477
also assuming that the variation232 by the states of these substances, i.e., a series of their changes, has likewise always been, and that we therefore need not seek a first be ginning, whether mathematical or dynamical. The possibility of such an infinite origination,233 without a first member in regard to which ev erything else is merely subsequent, cannot be made comprehensible. 234 But if you want therefore to dismiss this puzzle of nature, then you will find yourselves compelled to reject many basic synthetic characteristics (basic forces) that you are just as little able to comprehend, and even the possibility of a change as such must then become objectionable to you. For if you did not find through experience that change is actual, then you would never be able to ex cogitate a priori how such an un ceasing sequence of being and not being is possible. However, even if a transcenden tal power of freedom is perhaps con ceded in order to begin the changes of the world, yet this power would at any rate have to be solely outside the world (although to assume, out side of the sum of all possible in-
230[Ab/olge .] 23 1 [ef. just below.] 232 [Wechsel. See B 224 br. n. 45.] 233 [Abstammung.]
23< [Kant actually says, 'cannot be made comprehensible as to its [seiner, which also has no grammatical antecedent] possibility.' ]
{ A 45 1
B 479
478
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
ries in the world can have only a comparatively first beginning, since a state of things in the world does al ways precede it, perhaps no abso lutely first beginning of any series is possible during the course of the world. For we are here talking about an absolutely235 first beginning not as regards time but as regards cau sality. If (for example) I now get up from my chair completely freely and without the influence of natural causes, which is determinative nec essarily, then in this event-along with its natural consequences ad infi nitum-a new series begins abso lutely,236 although as regards time this event is only the continuation of a preceding series. For this decision and act of mine do not lie at all in the succession of mere natural effects, and are not a mere continuation of them. Rather, as regards this happen ing of my decision and act, the de terminative natural causes entirely cease above them;237 and although this happening follows238 upon the determinative natural causes, it does not result239 from them, and hence must be called-not, indeed, as re gards time, but yet with regard to
tuitions, a further object that cannot be given in any possible perception always remains a bold presump tion). But to attribute such a power to substances in the world itself can not be permitted on any account. For then the coherence-which is called nature-of appearances de termining one another necessarily, according to universal laws, would for the most part vanish, and along with it so would the mark of em pirical truth which distinguishes ex perience from a dream. For along side such a lawless power of freedom, nature can scarcely be thought any more, because the laws of nature are altered incessantly by the influences of freedom, and the play of appearances-which accord ing to mere nature would be regular and uniform-is thereby rendered confused and incoherent.
235 [absoLut.] 236 [schLechthin.]
237 [Kant pictures the causes as lying "above" their effects--by analogy with premises in re lation to their conclusion.] "" [folgt. ] 239[eifolgt.]
SECTION II
ANTITHETIC OF PURE REASON
479
causality-an absolutely first begin ning of a series of appearances. Reason's requirement to appeal, in the series of natural causes, to a first beginning issuing from free dom is confirmed with great clarity by the fact that (except for the Epi curean School) all the philosophers of antiquity found themselves con strained, in order to explain the world's motions, to assume a prime mover, 240 i.e., a freely acting cause that first and on its own24 1 began this series of states. For they did not undertake to make a first beginning comprehensible from mere nature.
A 4S2 B 480
}
The Antinomy of Pure Reason FOURTH CONFLICT OF TRANSCENDENTAL IDEAS242 THESIS
ANTITHESIS
There belongs to the world some thing that, either as its part or as its cause, is an absolutely necessary being.
There exists no absolutely neces sary being at all, 243 neither in the world nor outside the world, as its cause.
240['first mover,' literally.) 24 1 [Or 'spontaneously' : von selbst.) 242 [See Paul Guyer, op. cit. at A 84/B 1 1 6 hr. n. I, 4 1 1 - 1 2. See also Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 293/B 349 hr. n. 2, vol. 2, 247-59. Also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii hr. n. 5, 495-98. And see T K. Swing, op. cit. at A 3 1 O/B 366 hr. n. 94, 278-80.] 243[iiberall. See A 434
=
B 462 hr. n. 157.]
{ A 453 B 48 1
480
A
454 } B 482
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
PROOF
PROOF
The world of sense, as the whole of all appearances, contains als0244 a series of changes . For without changes even the presentation of the time series, as a condition for the possibility of the world of sense, would not be given to US.245 Any change, however, is subject to its condition-a condition which pre cedes it as regards time and under which it is necessary. Now any con ditioned that is given presupposes, with regard to its existence, a com plete series of conditions up to the absolutely246 unconditioned, which alone is absolutely necessary. Hence something absolutely necessary must exist, if a change exists as its consequence. This necessary some thing, however, belongs itself to the world of sense. For suppose that it were outside that world; then the se ries of changes of the world would derive its beginning from this some thing even though this necessary cause itself would not belong to the world of sense. This, however, is impossible. For inasmuch as the be-
Suppose that the world itself were, or that in it there were, a necessary being. In that case, either there would be in the series of the world's changes a beginning that would be unconditionally neces sary and hence without cause-which con flicts with the dynamical law of the determination in time of all appear ances; or the series itself would be without any beginning and, al though contingent and conditioned in all its parts, would nonetheless be absolutely necessary and uncon ditioned as a whole-which is self contradictory, because the exist ence of a multitude c annot be necessary if no single part thereof possesses an existence that is nec essary in itself. Suppose, on the other hand, that there were an absolutely necessary cause of the world [that existed] out side the world. In that case, this cause, as the supreme247 member in the series of causes of changes of the world, would first begin the ex istence of and the series of these
244 [zugleich. ]
245As formal condition of the possibility of changes, time does indeed precede them" objectively; but subjectively, and in the actuality of consciousness, this presentation is still, like any other, given only through the prompting of percep tions. "[Reading, with Erdmann and the Akademie edition, diesen for dieser.] 246 [schlechthin here, absolut twice just below.] 247 [obent. ]
{A B
45 5 483
SECTION II
ANTITHETIC OF PURE REASON
ginning of a time series can be de tennined only by what precedes it as regards time, the supreme condition of the beginning of a series of changes must exist in the time wherein this series was not yet (for a beginning is an existence preceded by a time wherein the thing that be gins was not yet). Therefore the cau sality248 of the necessary cause249 of changes, and hence also the cause it self, belong to time and hence to ap pearance (in which alone time, as its fonn, is possible); consequently they cannot be thought as separate from the world of sense, which is the sum of all appearances. Therefore there is contained in the world itself some thing absolutely necessary (whether it be the entire world series itself or a part thereof).
A 456 B 484
}
48 1
changes.250 But in that case this cause would also have to begin to act, and its causality would belong to time, but precisely because of this would belong to the sum of appear ances; consequently it itself, the cause, would not be outside the world-which contradicts the pre supposition. Therefore neither in the world nor outside the world (although in causal linkage with it) is there any absolutely necessary being.
Comment on The Fourth Antinomy I. ON THE THESIS
II. ON THE ANTITHESIS
Here it is incumbent on me, in prov ing the existence of a necessary be ing, to use none but a cosmological
When in ascending in the series of appearances we suppose ourselves to encounter difficulties that go
24" [Kausalitiit.] 249 [Ursache.]
2!5'7he word begin" is taken in two meanings. The first is active, where the cause begins (infit) a series of states as its effect. The second is passive, where the cau sality starts (fit) in the cause itself. My inference here is from the former to the lat ter kind of beginning. "[Emphasis added.]
{ A 457
B 485
482
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
argument, i.e., one that ascends from the conditioned in [the realm of] ap pearance to the unconditioned in concept, this unconditioned being regarded as the necessary condition for the absolute totality of the se ries. Attempting the proof25 1 from the mere idea of a highest25 2 of all beings as such belongs to a differ ent principle of reason, and such a proof253 will therefore have to come up separately. 254 Now the pure cosmological proof can establish the existence of a necessary being only if it simul taneously leaves undecided whether this being is the world itself or a thing distinct from it. For in order to ascertain the latter alternative, we require principles that are no longer cosmological and do not pro ceed in the series of appearances; we then require, rather, concepts of contingent beings as such (insofar as they are considered merely as objects of the understanding) and a principle for connecting these, through mere concepts, with a nec essary being. All of this, however, belongs to a transcendent philoso-
against the existence of an abso lutely necessary supreme cause, then-by the same token-these dif ficulties must not be based on mere concepts of the necessary existence of a thing as such; hence they must not be ontological. Rather, these dif ficulties must emerge255 from the [supreme cause's] causal linkage with a series of appearances, [the linkage that is required] in order to assume for this series a condition that is itself unconditioned; conse quently, these difficulties must be cosmological, and must be inferred according to empirical laws. For we must find that the ascent in the se ries of causes (in the world of sense) can never end with an empirically unconditioned condition, and that the cosmological argument from the contingency of the states of the world-as evinced by 2 56 their changes-turns out to go against the assumption of a cause that is first and that absolutely first starts the series. In this antinomy, however, we find an odd contrast. We find, viz., that the basis of proof from which
25 1 [Of a necessary being's existence.] 252 [ Or 'supreme' (oberst), which here does not work grammatically.] 253 [See A 592-602 reason, A 567-704
= =
B 620-30 for the ontological proof, which belongs to the ideal of pure B 595-732.]
254 [besonders.] 255 [sich . .
256 [laut ]
hervorjinden.]
459 { A 487 B
SECTION II
A 458
B 486
}
ANTITHETIC OF PURE REASON
phy, for which this is not yet the place. 25 7 But once we begin the proof cos mologically, by laying at the basis the series of appearances and the re gression in these according to em pirical laws of causality, we cannot afterwards leap away from it and cross over to something that does not, as a member, belong in the se ries at all. For if we regard some thing as condition, then we must do so in the same meaning25 8 in which we took the relation259 of the con ditioned to its condition in the se ries that was to lead, by a continu ous advance, to this highest260 condition. Now if this relation261 is sensible and belongs to the possible empirical use of understanding, then the supreme condition or cause can close .the regression only according to laws of sensibility, hence only as belonging to the time series, and the necessary being must then be re garded as the supreme member of the world series. People have nonetheless taken the liberty of making such a leap
an original being's existence was in ferred in the thesis is the same from which this being's nonexistence is inferred-and inferred, moreover, with the same rigor-in the antith esis. First we were told262 that there is a necessary being, because the entire past time comprises the se ries of all conditions and with it, therefore, also the unconditioned (the necessary). Now we are told that there is no necessary being, pre cisely because the entire bygone time comprises the series of all con ditions (which therefore are, one and all, in tum conditioned). The cause of this [odd contrast] is this. The first argument takes account only of the absolute totality of the series of conditions determining one another in time, and thereby obtains some thing263 unconditioned and neces sary. The second argument, on the other hand, takes into consideration the contingency of everything that is determined in the time series (be cause anything so determined is pre ceded by a time wherein the condi tion itself must, as conditioned, be
257[For the cosmological proof of the existence of God, see A 603-20 25 8 [Of condition.] 259 [Relation.] '6° [hochst.] 26 1 [Verhiiltnis.] 262 [hiejJ es.] 26] [ei". ]
483
=
B 63 1-48.]
484
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
(�E'ta�a.mc; Etc; aA.A.O 'Y€UOC;). 264
A 460 B 488
}
For from the changes in the world they inferred the empirical contin gency of these changes, i.e., their dependence on empirically determi native causes, and obtained an as cending series of empirical condi tions-and this was, indeed, quite proper. But since in this series they could find no first beginning and no supreme member, they suddenly de parted from the empirical concept of contingency and took the pure cat egory. This category then gave rise to a merely intelligible series whose completeness rested on the exist ence of an absolutely necessary cause; and this cause, not being tied to any sensible conditions, was now also freed from the time condition for beginning its causality itself. This procedure, however, is entirely illegitimate, as can be inferred from the following. Contingent, in the pure sense of the category, is that whose contra dictory opposite is possible. Now this intelligible contingency cannot at all be inferred from empirical con tingency. If something is changed, then its opposite (the opposite of its state) is actual, and hence also pos sible, at another time. Hence this is
determined in turn)-whereby, then, everything unconditioned and any absolute necessity drop out entirely. The kind of inference in both argu ments, however, is quite commen surate even with common human reason, which repeatedly lands in the situation265 of being at variance with itself after having considered its object from two different stand points. Mr. de Mairan266 regarded the dispute between two famous astronomers, which arose from a similar difficulty concerning the choice267 of standpoint, as a suffi ciently remarkable phenomenon in order to compose a special treatise on it. For the one astronomer in ferred that the moon revolves on its axis, because it always turns the same side toward the earth; and the other astronomer inferred that the
moon does not revolve on its axis, precisely because it always turns the same side toward the earth. Both in ferences were correct, according as one took the one or other standpoint from which to observe the moon's motion.
264 [metdbasis eis dllo genos, i.e., a shifting to another kind.] 265 [Fall.]
266[Jean -Jacques Dortous de Mairan ( 1678-177 1 ), French physicist and mathematician. He is the author of numerous memoirs and of works on the pendulum, atmospheric refraction, and the motions of the earth and the moon.] 267 [Wahl ]
{ A 46 1
B 489
SECTION II
ANTITHETIC OF PURE REASON
not the contradictory opposite of the previous state; for this would re quire that in the same time wherein the previous state was, its opposite could have been in its place-and this cannot at all be inferred from the change. A body that was in mo tion, A, comes to rest, non-A. Now from the fact that a state op =
=
posite to state A succeeded state A, we cannot at all infer that the con tradictory opposite of A is possible and that hence A is contingent; for this would require that in the same time wherein the motion was, rest could have been there instead of it. Now, we know nothing more than that rest was actual, and hence also possible, in the subsequent time. But motion at one time and rest at an other time are not contradictorily opposed to one another. Therefore the succession of opposite determi nations, i.e., change, in no way proves the contingency according to concepts of pure understanding, and hence also cannot lead to the exist ence of a necessary being conceived according to pure concepts of un derstanding. Change proves only empirical contingency, i.e., it proves only that the new state by itself, without a cause that belongs to the previous time, could not-in conse quence of the law of causality have taken place at all. This cause, even if it is assumed as absolutely necessary, must still in this way be encountered in time and belong to the series of appearances.
485
A 462
B 490
}
The Antinomy of Pure Reason Section III On the Interest of Reason in This Its Conflictl There we have, then, the entire dialectical play of the cosmological ideas. These ideas in no way permit an obj ect congruent with them to be given in any possible experience; indeed, they do not even permit reason to think them in agreement with universal laws of experience. Yet they are none theless not thought up by choice,2 but reason is led to them necessarily in the continuous progress of empirical synthesis-viz., when it wants to free from any condition and comprehend, in its unconditioned totality, what ac cording to rules of experience can always be determined only condition ally. These subtly reasoning3 assertions are so many attempts to solve four natural and unavoidable problems of reason. Hence there can only be ex actly four4 of these assertions, neither more nor fewer, because there are no further series of synthetic presuppositions that bound the empirical syn thesis a priori.
A 463 49 1
B
}
The glamorous pretensions that reason has in expanding its domain be yond all bounds of experience have been presented by us only in dry for mulas that contain merely the basis of reason's claims of its right. s And, as befits a transcendental philosophy, we have divested these formulas of everything empirical, although only in combination with the empirical can the whole splendor of reason's assertions shine forth. In this application, however, and in the progressive expansion of reason's use by starting from the realm of experiences and gradually soaring up to these sublime ideas, philosophy shows a dignity that, if philosophy could only maintain its pre' [See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 2931B 349 hr. n. 2, vol. 2, 259-76. See also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii hr. n. 5, 498-99.] 2 [Or, perhaps, 'arbitrarily': willkiirlich.] ' [verniinftelnd.] 4 [gerade so viele. ] ' [rechtlichen Anspriiche. Cf. A 465
=
B 493.]
486
SECTION III
INTEREST OF REASON IN THIS CONFLICT
487
tensions, would far surpass the value of all other human science. For phi losophy promises to us the foundation for our greatest expectations and out looks concerning the ultimate purposes wherein all endeavors of reason must in the end be united.6 Consider again these questions: whether the world has a beginning and some boundary to its extension in space; whether somewhere, and perhaps in my thinking self, there is an indivisible and in destructible unity-or nothing but what is divisible and passes away; whether in my actions I am free or, like other beings, led along the course7
of nature and fate; whether, finally, there is a supreme cause of the world, or whether the things of nature and their order amount to the ultimate ob ject, at which we must stop in all our contemplations. These are questions for whose solution8 the mathematician would gladly give away his entire
science, since it still cannot provide him with satisfaction regarding hu manity's highest and most treasured purposes. The proper dignity even of mathematics (this pride of human reason) rests on this: Mathematics gives reason the guidance for gaining insight into nature, on both the large and the small scale, far beyond all expectation of a philosophy building on com mon experience-viz., insight into nature in its order and regularity as well as in the admirable unity of the forces that move it. 9 By doing this, math ematics itself provides prompting and encouragement to a use of reason
that is expanded beyond all experience, as well as furnishes the philoso phy lO enga ed in this use of reason with the most superb materials for sup
g
porting its investigation, as much as the character thereof permits, by means of adequate intuitions. I I
Unfortunately for speculation (but fortunately perhaps for the practical vocation l 2 of human beings), reason finds itself-in the midst of its great6 [See B 395 n. 222; also the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak. IV, 477.] ' [Faden. ]
8[In this entire context I am translating Auflosung consistently a s 'solution' rather than a s 'reso lution,' because Kant is obviously talking about problems (even when calling them ques tions).] 9 [See the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak. IV, 470-73, 477-79.] IO [Weltweisheit here, Philosophie just above.] 1 1 [I.e., mathematics goes beyond actual experience and provides the formal (and a pnori) ba sis of the natural sciences; but it does not transcend all expenence, as do speculative reason's attempts (discussed in the Transcendental Dialectic) to enter the realm of noumena.] 12 [Bestimmung. The reference is to the ultimate purposes of humanity just mentioned at A
463
=
B 491 . Cf. the reference to morality and religion at the end of A 466
=
B 494.]
{ A 464
B 492
488
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
est expectations---quite disconcerted in a throng of arguments and coun
terarguments. 1 3 Yet because of reason's honor and even security, neither withdrawing from the quarrel nor watching it indifferently as a mere mock
combat is feasible, and even less feasible is simply 1 4 commanding peace;
for the object of the dispute is of great interest. Thus nothing is left for reason but to reflect on the origin of this disunity with itself, in order to see whether the disunity is not perhaps to be blamed on a mere misunder
A 465 493
B
}
standing. For although upon exposition of such a misunderstanding the proud claims on both sides might indeed be dropped, yet instead a lasting tranquil reign of reason over the understanding and the senses would have its beginning. Let us for now defer this thorough exposition yet a little, and consider 1 first which party 1 5 we might best like to join, 6 should 1 7 we be compelled 1 to take sides. 8 We are consulting, in that case, not the logical touchstone of truth but merely our interest. Hence although such an inquiry estab lishes nothing in regard to the disputed right of the two parties, 1 9 it will still have this benefit: it will make comprehensible why the participants in this dispute have preferred to join one side rather than the other-precisely without being caused to do so by a superior insight into the object of the dispute; and it will likewise explain still other, secondary things,20 e.g., the zealous heat of the one party and the cold assertion of the other; why people like to cheer the one side with joyous approval and are implacably preju diced in advance against the other.
There is something, however, that in this preliminary jUdgment2 1 deter
mines the point of view from which alone it can be carried out with due thoroughness, and this is the comparison of the principles from which the two parties start. Among the assertions of the antithesis one discerns a per13 [Literally, 'grounds and countergrounds' or 'bases and counterbases' : Grunden und Gegen grunden.] 14 [schlechthin.] l s [Seite.] 16 [sich schlagen auf.] 17 [etwa.] 18 [Partei.] 19 [Teile.] 2° [Nebendinge.] 2 1 [Beurteilung See A 6018 84 br. n. 69. ]
SECTION III
INTEREST OF REASON IN THIS CONFLICT
489
fect uniformity in the way of thinking and a complete unity of the maxim-namely, a principle of pure empiricism-not only in explaining the appearances in the world22 but also in solving the transcendental ideas23 of the universe24 itself. By contrast, the assertions of the thesis lay at their
{ A 466 B 494
basis, besides the empirical kind of explanation within the series of ap pearances, also intellectual beginnings, and to that extent the maxim is not simple. Now, I shall call this maxim, after its essential distinguishing char 2 acteristic, 5 the dogmatism of pure reason. Thus on the side of dogmatism in determining the cosmological ideas of reason, viz., on the side of the thesis, we find the following. First, we find a certain practical interest, which is heartily shared by any well-meaning person if he understands what is truly to his advantage. For that the world has a beginning; that my thinking self is of a simple and hence incorruptible26 nature; that this self is also, in its voluntary27 ac tions, free and raised above the constraint of nature; and that, finally, the entire order of the things that make up the world stems from an original being from which everything takes its unity and purposive connection-these are so many foundation stones of morality and religion. The antithesis robs us of all these supports, or at least seems to do so. Second, there manifests itself on this side28 also a speculative29 interest of reason. For if we assume and use the transcendental ideas in such a way, then we can completely a priori comprehend3o the entire chain of condi22[ Welt. ] 23 [On solving ideas (considered as problems), see below, A 482/B 5 10.] 2'[Weltall.]
25[Viz., the pretension that we can make progress in metaphysics by means of no more than a cognition from concepts-i.e., intellectual cognition. See B xxxv.] 26[l.e., not subject to decay.] 27 [willkiirlich.J
28 [l.e., the side of the thesis.] 29 ['Speculative' in Kant means the same as 'theoretical' except for being confined to objects beyond any possible expenence. See A 634 3 5 B 662-63.] -
=
lO[l.e., (rationally) grasp: fassen here, begreifen just below. The two terms are almost always used interchangeably by Kant (only rarely does Kant use fassen as a synonym for auffassen, 'to apprehend'), and 'to comprehend' captures their meaning best. See B 1 14 br. n. 239. Note also that begreifen, in the sense at issue here, does not mean merely 'to conceive' (as this lat ter term is used in philosophy)-----d , e.g., A 792 B 820 incl. br. n. 394---e--d spite its etymo logical link to Begrijf ('concept'); and in the sense in which the verb is so linked, it means 'to comprise. '] =
{ A 467 B 495
490
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
tions and comprehend the derivation of the conditioned, because we start from the unconditioned. The antithesis does not accomplish this; it com mends itself very poorly by being unable to give, to the question concern ing the conditions of its synthesis, any answer that does not endlessly leave us with ever further questions to ask. According to the antithesis, we must from a given beginning ascend to a still higher one; any part3 1 leads to a still smaller part; any event always has above it still another event as its cause; and the conditions of existence as such are always supported in turn by3 2 others, without ever obtaining unconditioned bearing and support in an independent33 thing as original being.
Third,
this side has also the advantage of popularity, an advantage that
certainly plays more than the smallest part in commending it. The com mon understanding finds not the least difficulty in the ideas concerning the unconditioned beginning of all synthesis. For it is more accustomed any way to proceed downward [to consequences] than to ascend to the [ante cedent] bases; and in the concepts of the absolutely first (over whose pos sibility it does not ponder) it has something convenient as well as a fixed point to which to tie the line that guides its steps, whereas in the restless ascent from the conditioned to the condition-always with one foot in the A 468
B 496
}
air-it can find nothing at all to like. On the side of empiricism in determining the cosmological ideas of rea son, or on the side of the antithesis, we find the following.
First, we find no such practical interest issuing from pure principles of reason as morality and religion carry with them. Mere empiricism seems, rather, to deprive both of these of all force and influence. For if there is no original being distinct from the world; if the world is without a beginning and hence also without an author; if our will is not free and the soul has the same divisibility and corruptibility as does matter; then the moral ideas and principles also lose all validity, and fall along with the transcendental ideas that amounted to their theoretical support. Second: On the other hand, however, empiricism offers to the specula tive34 interest of reason advantages that are very enticing and that far sur pass what advantages the dogmatic teacher of ideas of reason may prom ise. According to empiricism the understanding is always on its own 3 l [Of a substance.] 3 2 [stutzen sich . . auf] .
33 [selbstandig.]
"[See br.
n.
29. just above.]
SECTION III
INTEREST OF REASON IN THIS CONFLICT
49 1
territory, viz., the realm consisting entirely of possible experiences; the un derstanding can explore the laws of these experiences, and by means of these laws can expand endlessly its secure and comprehensible cognition. Here the understanding can and should exhibit the object-both in itself and in its relations-in intuition,35 or at least in concepts whose image can be submitted clearly and distinctly in given similar intuitions. The under standing not only does not need to leave this chain of the natural order so as to attach itself to ideas, with whose objects it is not acquainted because as thought-entities36 they can never be given, but it is not even permitted
{ A 469 B 497
to leave its business. I.e., the understanding is not permitted to cross over-under the pretext that its business is now finished-into the domain of idealizing reason and to transcendent concepts, where it no longer needs to observe, and to investigate according to the laws of nature, but needs only to
think and to invenf7-being sure that it cannot be refuted by facts
of nature, precisely because it is not tied to their3 8 testimony but may pass them by or even subordinate these facts themselves to a higher authority, viz., that of pure reason. Hence the empiricist will never permit one to assume any epoch of na
ture to be the absolutely first; or to regard any boundary of his outlook into the range of nature as being the outermost; or to cross over, from the ob jects of nature that he can analyze by observation and by mathematics and that he can determine synthetically in intuition (i.e., from the extended), to such [objects] as neither sense nor imagination can ever exhibit in con creto (i.e., to the simple). Nor will the empiricist grant us permission to lay down as basis even in nature a power of producing effects39 independently of laws of nature (i.e., freedom), and thus to encroach on the understand ing's business of exploring, by the guidance of necessary rules, how ap pearances arise. Nor, finally, will the empiricist allow us to seek the cause for anything outside of nature (i.e., to seek an original being); for we are acquainted with nothing more than nature, since nature alone offers us ob jects and can inform us regarding its laws.4o 35 [LiteraIly. 'to intuition' : der Anschauung.] 36 [Gedankendinge. See A 292IB 348.] 31 [dichten.] 38 [Or. possibly. 'nature's': ihr; similarly for the remainder of the sentence.] 39 [wirken. ] 4O [ihren. which could al�o refer to 'objects.']
{ A 470 B 498
492
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
The empirical philosopher might, to be sure, have no other aim with his antithesis than to subdue the inquisitiveness4 1 and presumption of reason. For reason may, mistaking its true vocation, boast of
edge
insight
and
knowl
where in fact insight and knowledge cease. And what we allow as
holding in regard to our practical interest reason may want to pass off as furthering our speculative interest; reason may want to do this in order to break, where doing so is conducive to its convenience, the thread of physi cal inquiries and fasten it-with a pretense of expanding our cognition-to
that we know nothing. If, I say, the empiricist settled for this aim, then his principle would
transcendental ideas, through which in fact we cognize only
be a maxim for moderation in claims, for modesty in assertions, and si multaneously for the greatest possible expansion of our understanding through the teacher who is in fact assigned42 to us, viz., experience. For in
A 47 1
B 499
}
that case the intellectual presuppositions and jaith43 that we need for the sake of our practical concerns would not be taken from us. We merely could not let them come forward under the title and with the pomp of science
and rational insight. For speculative
knowledge proper cannot concern
any
object at all other than an object of experience; and if we step beyond the boundary of experience, then the synthesis seeking cognitions that are new and independent of experience has no substratum of intuition on which it could be performed. As it is, however, i.e., if empiricism itself (as usually happens) becomes dogmatic with regard to ideas and audaciously denies whatever is beyond the sphere of its intuitive cognitions, then empiricism itself commits the mistake of immodesty, which is all the more censurable here because it causes irreparable detriment to reason's practical interest. This is the form that the conflict takes in the opposition of Epicurean
ism44 against Platonism. 41 [Vorwitz.] 42 [ vorgesetzt.] 43 [Glaube. See B
xxx
hr. n. 1 22.]
44There is, however, still the question as to whether Epicurus ever put these prin ciples forth as objective assertions. If, say, they were nothing more than maxims for the speculative use of reason, then he showed in them a more genuine philo sophical" spirit than any other of the philosophersb of antiquity. For consider the principles which hold that, in explaining appearances, we must proceed as if the realm of inquiry is not cut off by any boundary or beginning of the world; that we must assume the material of the world to be such as it must be if we are to b e in-
SECTION III
INTEREST OF REASON IN THIS CONFLICT
493
Each of the two philosophers says more than he knows, but in this way:
Epicurus encourages and furthers knowledge, although to the detriment of the practical; and Plato, while providing us with superb principles for the
{ A 472 B 500
practical, yet precisely thereby permits reason, in regard to all matters wherein alone a speculative knowledge is accorded to us, to cling t045 ideal explanations of natural appearances to the neglect of physical investiga tion. As concerns, finally, the
third moment of which one may take account in a preliminary choice between the two disputing parties, one fact is ex tremely strange: viz., empiricism goes entirely against popularity, although one would think46 that the common understanding would eagerly adopt a
plan which promises to satisfy it through nothing but experiential cogni tions and their rational coherence, whereas transcendental dogmatics47 com pels it to ascend to concepts that far surpass the insight and rational power of the minds most practiced in thinking. Yet this is precisely the common understanding's motive.48 For it then finds itself in a situation in which even
{ A 473 B 501
the most scholarly person can presume nothing that is beyond the common understanding. If it understands little or nothing of these surpassing con cepts,49 yet there also is no one who can pride himself on understanding much more about them. And although the common understanding cannot speak about such concepts in a manner complying with school standards as
well as others can, yet it can do infinitely more than this by way of subtle
structed about it through experience; that we must use no other production of events than one where they are determined by unchangeable natural laws; and, finally, that we must use no cause distinct from the world. Even now these are still quite cor rect but little observed principlesc for expanding speculative philosophy, as well as for discovering the principles of morality independently of extraneous resources; and those who demand that as long as we are engaged in mere speculation we must ignore the dogmatic [versions of these] propositions must not therefore be accused of wanting to deny them. a [philosophisch.] b[Weitweisen.] C [Grundsiitze here, Prinzipien just below. See A vii br. n. 7.] 4s [
nachhiingen.]
46 [
giauben.]
47
[Dogmatik.] 48 [In prefemng dogmatism.] 49 [davon.]
{ A 472 B 500
494
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
reasoning50 about them; for it is wandering around among nothing but ideas, about which one is most eloquent precisely because one
about them.
knows nothing
Concerning the investigation of nature, on the other hand, the
common understanding would have to grow entirely silent and to admit its ignorance. Hence, no doubt, convenience and vanity strongly commend these principles. Moreover, although a philosopher will find it very diffi cult to accept something as a principle if he cannot account to himself for doing so, or perhaps to introduce concepts into whose objective reality one can have no insight, yet to the common understanding nothing is more usual. It wants to have something with which it can confidently begin. It is not troubled by the difficulty of comprehending the presupposition it self. For to the common understanding (which does not know 5! what com prehending means) this difficulty never occurs,5 2 and the common under standing regards as known5 3 what is familiar4 to it through repeated use.
But for the common understanding all speculative interest ultimately van ishes in the face of55 practical interest, and it imagines that it has insight
B 502 A
474
into and knowledge of 56 what its worries or hopes impel it to assume or have faith in. 57 Thus empiricism is entirely bereft of all the popularity of transcendentally idealizing reason; 58 and no matter how much empiri cism5 9 may contain that is detrimental to the supreme practical principles, there is yet no need to worry that it will ever step beyond the bounds of the school, and that it will acquire in the community even a somewhat con siderable reputation and some favor with the great multitude.
50[vemiinfteln.] 5 1 [wissen.] 52[in den Sinn kommen.] 53 [bekannt.] 54 [gelaufig.] 55 [VOr.] 56 [ZU wissen.] 5J [glauben ]
58[Reading, with Erdmann (who does not make the change in the text of the Akademie edi tion), aller Popularitiit der transzendental-idealisierenden Vernunft for der transzendental idealisierenden Vernunft aller Popularitat.] 59[Reading, with Mellin, er . . er for sie . . . sie.]
SECTION III INTEREST OF REASON IN THIS CONFLICT
495
Human reason is by its nature architectonic.6o I.e., it regards all cogni tions as belonging to a possible system, and hence it also permits only such principles as at least do not make a projected cognition incapable of stand ing together with others in some system. The propositions of the antithesis, however, are of such a kind that they make the completion of an edifice of cognitions entirely impossible. According to them, beyond any state of the world there is always a still earlier61 state; in any part there are always still other parts that are in tum divisible; prior to any event there is always an other event that likewise was in tum produced at another point;62 and in existence as such everything is always only conditioned, no unconditioned and first existence whatever being acknowledged. Since, then, the antithesis nowhere grants anything first, and grants no beginning that could serve ab solutely as the structure's basis, a complete edifice of cognition is--on such presuppositions-entirely impossible. Hence reason's architectonic interest (which demands not empirical but pure a priori rational unity) carries with it a natural commendation for the assertions of the thesis. But suppose that a human being could disavow all interest and could, indifferent toward all consequences, consider the assertions of reason merely according to the merit63 of their bases. Such a human being, if he knew of no way to get out of the throng of assertions except by subscrib ing to one or the other of the doctrines in dispute, would be in a state of unceasing vacillation. Today it would strike him as convincing that the hu man will isfree; tomorrow, taking into consideration the indissoluble chain of nature, he would suppose that freedom is nothing but self-delusion and that everything is merely nature. If, however, doing and acting now came up, then this play of merely speculative reason would vanish like the shad owy images of a dream, and he would choose his principles merely ac cording to practical interest. But it is nonetheless fitting for a meditating and investigating being to devote certain times solely to the examination of his own reason, but-in doing so-to divest himself entirely of all par tiality and thus to communicate his observations publicly to others for their judgment. Therefore no one can be blamed for, still less barred from, let ting the propositions and counterpropositions come forward to defend them6O[Cf. A 832-5 1 6 1 [iilter.l 62 [anderweitig.] 63
[Gehalt ]
=
B 860-79.]
{ A 475 B 503
A 476 B 504
496
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
selves, as best they can when not frightened by any threat, before a jury of his own rank (viz., the rank of feeble human beings). The Antinomy of Pure Reason
Section IV On the Transcendental Problems of Pure Reason Insofar as They Must Absolutely Be Capable of Being Solved64
A 477 } B 505
To want to solve all problems and answer all questions would be such im pudent bluster and extravagant self-conceit that one would thereby have to forfeit all trust immediately. Nonetheless there are sciences by whose na ture any question occurring in them must, on the basis of what one knows, absolutely be answerable, because the answer must arise from the same sources from which the question arises; and in such sciences65 it is by no means permitted to plead unavoidable ignorance, but the solution can be demanded. What in all possible cases [of action] is right or wrong we must be able to know according to [a] rule, because it concerns our obligation, and what we cannot know we also have no obligation to do. In the expla nation of nature's appearances, on the other hand, much must remain un certain and many questions must remain insoluble for us, because what we know of nature is far from being sufficient, in all cases, for what we are to explain. Now, the question arises whether in transcendental philosophy there is any question, concerning an object66 put before reason, that is un answerable by this same pure reason; and whether we may rightly avoid 64[See Heinz Heimsoeth, op cit. at A 2931B 349 br. n. 2, 276-83. See also Norman Kemp Smith, op. dt. at A vii br n. 5, 499-501.]
6' [WO.] 60[ Objekt here, Gegenstand in several subsequent paragraphs. See A vii br. n. 7 1
SECTION IV TRANSCENDENTAL PROBLEMS
497
answering it decisively by classing the object67 -as being (on the basis 0�8 anything that we can cognize) absolutely uncertain-with what is such that, although we have a concept of it sufficient for raising a question, we are entirely lacking in means or ability69 ever to answer this question. Now, I maintain that transcendental philosophy has, among all specu lative cognition, this peculiarity: that no question whatever concerning an object given to pure reason is insoluble for this same human reason, and that no pleading of unavoidable ignorance and of the problem's unfathom able depth can absolve us from the obligation to answer it thoroughly and completely. For, the same concept that enables us to ask the question must assuredly also make us competent to answer it, since (as in the case of70 right and wrong) the object is not to be met with outside the concept at all. However, the only questions in transcendental philosophy to which one may rightly demand a satisfactory answer concerning the character of the object-and which the philosopher is not permitted to avoid by pleading their impenetrable obscurity-are cosmological ones. And these questions can pertain only to cosmological ideas. For the object must be given em pirically, and the question concerns only the object's adequacy to an idea. By contrast, if the object is transcendental and hence itself unknown7 l -e.g., in the questions as to whether the something whose appearance (in ourselves) is our thinking (i.e., the soul) is in itself a simple being,72 and whether there is a cause of all things taken together that is absolutely nec essary;73 etc.-then we are to seek for our idea an object concerning which we can admit that it is unknown to us, although not therefore impossible.74
{ A 478 B 506
67 [es.] 68 [aus.]
l\9[Vennogen. See A xii br. n.
16.]
7°[bei.] 71 [unbekannl.]
72 [This question was treated in the Paralogisms of Pure Reason. A 341-405/B 399-432.] 73 [This question will be treated in the Ideal of Pure Reason, A 567-642/B 595-670.]
74 Although one can give no answer to the question as to what character a tran scendental object has, i.e., what the object is, one can indeed answer that the ques tion itself is nothing-viz., because no object of it has been given. Hence all ques tions of transcendental psychology are [in this way 1 indeed answerable and actually answered. For they concern the transcendental subject of all inner appearances; this Subject is not itself appearance and therefore is not given as object, and thus none of the categories (at which, after all, the question is actually aimeda) encounter con-
{ A 479 B 507
498
A 479 } B 507
A 480 } B 508
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
The cosmological ideas alone possess the peculiarity that they can presup pose their object and the empirical synthesis required for its concept as given; and the question that arises from these ideas concerns only the pro gression of this synthesis insofar as this progression is to contain absolute totality-a totality that is no longer anything empirical, since it cannot be given in any experience. Now what is at issue here is merely a thing75 as object of a possible experience and not as a thing76 in itself. Hence the an swer to the transcendent cosmological question, since it concerns no ob ject in itself, cannot lie anywhere else except in the idea. And in regard to possible experience the question is not about what can be given in con creto in some experience, but about what lies in the idea that the empirical synthesis is merely to approach. Therefore the question must be capable of being solved from the idea alone. For the idea is a mere creature of rea son, which therefore cannot tum the responsibility77 away from itself and shift it to the unknown object. The fact that a science can, in regard to all questions belonging to its own sum total78 (quaestiones domesticae),79 demand and expect solutions that are all certain---even if perhaps at this time they have not yet been found-is not so extraordinary as initially it seems. Apart from transcen dental philosophy, there are two further pure rational sciences, the one hav ing a merely speculative and the other a practical content: pure mathemat ics and pure morality. so But has anyone ever heard [it claimed] that-because, as it were, of a necessary ignorance on our part regarding the conditions-it is uncertain what relation the diameters has quite exactly, in rational or irrational numbers, to the circle? Since in l rational numbers ditions for their application to this subject. Hence here is the case where the com mon expression holds, that no answer is also an answer-i.e., a question as to the character of the something that, being posited entirely outside the sphere of those objects that can be given to us, cannot be thought through any detenninate predi cate is entirely null and empty. "[auf . . . gestel/t.] 75 [Ding.] 76 [Sache.] 77 [ Verantwortung. Grillo reads Beantwortung ('[the task of] answenng [the question]' ) ] 78 [lnbegrijf.] 79 [lndigenous questions.] BO [Morai.] 8 1 [durch.]
SECTION IV 1RANSCENDENTAL PROBLEMS
499
this relation cannot be given congruently at all, but in irrational numbers it has not yet been found, people82 judged that at least the impossibility of such a solution can be cognized with certainty, and Lambert gave a proof of this impossibility.83 In the universal principles of morals84 there can be nothing uncertain, because the propositions either are altogether null and meaningless, or must flow merely from our concepts of reason. In natural science,85 on the other hand, there is an infinity of conjectures in regard to which certainty can never be expected. For natural appearances are objects that are given to us independently of our concepts. Therefore the key to them lies not in us and our pure thinking but outside US;86 and, precisely because of this, in many cases this key cannot be found and hence no se cure information can be expected. I not counting here the questions of the Transcendental Analytic, which concern the deduction of our pure cog nition; for we are now dealing with the certainty of judgments only in re gard to the objects and not in regard to the origin of our concepts them selves. Hence as regards the obligation to provide at least a critical solution of the questions of reason that have been posed, we shall not be able to evade it by raising complaints about the narrow limits of our reason, and by con fessing, with the semblance of a humble self-cognition, that deciding these questions is beyond our reason: whether the world has been there from eter nity or has a beginning; whether cosmic space is filled with beings ad in finitum or enclosed within certain bounds; whether anything at all in the world is simple, or whether everything must be divided ad infinitum; whether there is a generation or production from freedom, or whether ev erything is attached to the chain of the natural order; and finally, whether there is some entirely unconditioned87 and in itself necessary being, or whether everything is, as regards its existence, conditioned and hence ex ternally dependent and in itself contingent. For all these questions concern am
82 [man . ] 8' [Johann Heinrich Lambert ( 1728-77), German physicist, astronomer, and mathematician. The paper containing his proof of the incommensurability of 7t was presented by him to the Royal Academy of Sciences of Berlin in 1 76 1 . He was made a member of the Academy in 1764.] 84[Sirten .]
8s [Naturkunde.] 86[See
the Metaphysical Foundations 87 [Reading, at Erdmann's suggestion,
of Natural Science. Ak IV, 473.] unbedingtes for unbedingt.]
{ A 481 B 509
500
A 482 B 510
}
B 51 1 A 483
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
an object that cannot be given anywhere else but in our thoughts, viz., the absolutely unconditioned totality of the synthesis of appearances. If we are unable to say and establish anything certain about this object from our own concepts, then we must not shift the blame upon the thing88 that is hiding from us; for a thing of that sort cannot be given to us at all (because it is nowhere to be met with outside our idea). Rather, we must seek the cause of that inability in our idea itself; the idea is a problem89 which admits of no solution and of which we nonetheless obstinately assume that an actual object corresponds to it. If we set forth distinctly the dialectic that lies in our concept itself, this would soon lead us to complete certainty as to what our judgment regarding such a question has to be. Your pretext of uncertainty regarding these problems can be countered, first of all, with this question-and it, at least, you must answer distinctly: From where do you get the ideas whose solution here entangles you in such difficulty? Is it perhaps from appearances whose explanation you require and whereof, in consequence of these ideas, you have to seek only the prin ciples, or the rules90 of their exposition? Suppose that nature were lying before you entirely uncovered, and that nothing were hidden from your senses and from the consciousness of whatever is put before your intu ition. Yet, through not a single experience will you be able to cognize the object of your ideas in concreto. (For doing so requires, besides this com plete91 intuition, also a completed92 synthesis and the consciousness of its absolute totality-and this is not possible through any empirical cogni tion.) Hence your [cosmological] question can by no means be necessary for explaining any appearance that occurs,93 and thus can by no means be assigned, as it were, by the object itself. For you can never encounter94 the object, because it cannot be given through any possible experience. In all possible perceptions you always remain encumbered by95 conditions, 88 [Sache.]
89 [Ideas. as problematic concepts (A 647 '" B 675). are problems assigned to us (cf A 669 '" B 697) ] 90[Reading. as suggested by Erdmann. Regeln for Regel ] 9 1 [vollstiindig.] 92 [vollendet.] 93[vorkommen .] 94 [vorkommen .1 95 [bejangen . . unter.]
SECTION IV TRANSCENDENTAL PROBLEMS
501
whether conditions in space or in time; you never get to anything uncon ditioned, in order to establish whether this unconditioned is to be posited in an absolute beginning of the synthesis or in absolute totality96 of the series without any beginning. But the total97 when thus taken in the em pirical meaning is always only comparative. The absolute total of magni tude (the world totaI98), of division, of origin, of the condition of existence as such-with all the questions as to whether this total is to be brought about through finite synthesis or through a synthesis to be continued ad infinitum--concerns no possible experience. E.g., you could not in the least explain the appearances of a body better, or even just differently, by as suming either that the body consists of simple parts or that it consists throughout of parts that are always again composite; for you can never en counter either a simple appearance or an infinite composition. Appear ances demand to be explained only insofar as their conditions of explana tion are given in perception; but everything in them that may ever be given, when taken together in an absolute whole, is not99 itself a perception. Yet in fact this total is what in the transcendental problems of reason we are required to explain. Since, therefore, the solution of these problems can itself never occur in experience, you cannot say that what is to be attributed herein to the object is up.certain. For your object is merely in your brain and cannot be given outside it at all. Consequently, you need only take care to be at one with yourselves, and to prevent the amphiboly lDO that turns your idea into a supposed presentation of an object that is empirically given and that hence can also be cognized according to laws of experience. The dogmatic so lution, therefore, is by no means uncertain, but impossible. The critical so lution, however, which can be completely certain, considers the question not objectively at all, but in tenns of the foundation of cognition on which the question is based. an
% 97
[Totalitiit.]
[das All.] 9B [das Weltall. i.e., the universe.] 99 [Reading, with Mellin and the Akademie edition, keine for eine.] lOO [I.e., ambiguity. Cf. A 260-92fB 3 1 6-49.]
B 512 A 484
A 485
B 513
}
The Antinomy of Pure Reason Section V Skeptical Presentation of the Cosmological Questions Through All Four Transcendental Ideas 101
A 486 514
B
}
We would gladly renounce our demand to see our questions answered dog matically, if we comprehended already in advance that the answer, no mat ter how it turns out, would only further increase our ignorance and plunge us from one incomprehensibility into another, from one obscurity into a still greater one, and perhaps even into contradictions. If our question aims merely at affirmation or negation, then we act prudently if at the outset we leave aside the supposed bases for answering them, and consider first of all what we would gain if the answer fell to the one side, and what if it fell to the opposite side. Now if the result in both cases turns out to be something entirely meaningless (nonsense), 102 then we have [in this] a well based challenge to examine critically our question itself, and to see whether the question itself does not rest on a baseless presupposition and does not play with an idea that betrays its falsity better in application and through its consequences than in its abstract presentation. This is the great benefit which we have in the skeptical manner of treating the questions that pure reason puts to pure reason, and by which we can at little expense be spared a great dogmatic jumble, so as to put in its place a sober critique that, as a true cathartic, will luckily purge us of delusion along with its attendant, viz., the attitude of knowing a lot. Hence if concerning a cosmological idea I could in advance have in sight into the fact that, whichever side of the unconditioned of the regres sive synthesis of appearances the idea were to join, the idea would yet be either too large or too small for any concept of understanding, then I would comprehend that the idea must be entirely empty and without significaI O I [See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 2931B 349 hr. n. 2, vol. 2, 284-86. See also Norman Kemp Smith. op cit. at A vii hr. n. 5, 501-3 ]
I02 [Lauter Sinnleeres (Nonsens).] 502
SECTION V COSMOLOGICAL QUESTIONS
503
tion. For since, after all, the idea has to do only with an object of experi ence that 103 [as such] is to be commensurate with a possible concept of understanding, the object, no matter how I may accommodate it to the idea, does not fit the idea. And this is actually the case with all world con cepts; l04 and precisely because of this do they entangle reason, as long as it adheres to them, in an unavoidable antinomy. For [consider the various pairs of alternative assumptions.] First, assume that the world has no beginning. In that case the world is too large for your concept. For this concept, which consists in a succes sive regression, can never attain the entire bygone eternity. Suppose that the world has a beginning. In that case the world is in turn too small for your concept of understanding in its necessary empirical regression. For since the beginning always still presupposes a time that precedes it, it is not yet unconditioned; and hence the law of the understanding's empirical use enjoins us to inquire about a still higher time condition, and thus the world is plainly too small for this law. The situation is the same regarding the twofold answer to the question concerning the world's magnitude as regards space. For if the world is in finite and unbounded, then it is too large for any possible empirical con cept. If the world is finite and bounded, then you rightly go on to ask, What determines this boundary? Empty space is not a self-subsistent correlate of things, and cannot be a condition at which you could stop; still less can it be an empirical condition amounting to a part of a possible experience. (For who could have an experience of the absolutely 105 empty 106?) But abso lute totality of the empirical synthesis always requires that the uncondi tioned be an experiential concept. Therefore a bounded world is too small for your concept. Second, if every appearance in space (any matter) consists of infinitely many parts, then the regression of the division is always too large for your concept. And if alternatively the division of space is to cease with some member of the division (viz., with the simple), then the regression is too small for the idea of the unconditioned. For this member still 107 leaves us with a regression to further parts contained in it. I03 [Reading, with Erdmann and the Akademie edition, welcher for welche.] 104 [l.e., cosmological concepts.] 105 [Schlechlhin_ here, absolul just below.] 106 [Or 'void.' ] I07 [noch immer.]
{ A 487 B 515
A 488 B 516
504
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
Third,
if you assume that in all that occurs in the world there is nothing but the result according to laws of nature, then the causality of the cause 108 is always in something that occurs; and this causality thus necessitates your regression to a still higher cause and hence necessitates the ceaseless prolongation of the series of conditions a parte priori. 109 Thus the nature that merely produces effects 1 10 is too large for any concept of yours in the synthesis of events in the world. If you choose to admit now and then events caused spontaneously, and hence to admit generation fromfreedom, then according to an unavoid able natural law the why 112 pursues you, and compels you according to the causal law of experience to go beyond this point/ 13 and thus you find that a totality of connection of this sort is too small for your necessary empiri cal concept. Fourth, if you assume an absolutely necessary being (whether it be the world itself, or something in the world, or the cause of the world), then you posit it in a time that is infinitely remote from any given point of time; for otherwise it would be dependent on another, earlier existence. 1 14 But in that case this [necessary] existence is inaccessible to your empirical con cept, and too large ever to be reached by you through any regression that you may pursue. On the other hand, if-in your opinion--everything belonging to the world (whether as conditioned or as condition) is contingent, then any ex istence given to you is too small for your concept. For any such existence compels you to continue to look around for another existence on which it is dependent. We have said in all these cases that the world idea 115 is either too large, or again too small, for the empirical regression and hence for any possible concept of understanding. Why did we not put the point in reverse and say that in the first case the empirical concept is always too small for the idea, tum
III
A 489 } B 517
I08 [Kausalitiit der Ursache.] I09 [On the side of what is pnor.] l lo [wirkend.] ! l l [von selbst gewirkte.]
! ! 2 [Emphasis added.] I3 ! [Of spontaneous generation.] 1 1 4 [Dasein here. Existenz just below and in the next paragraph.] l !5 [I . e. , cosmological idea.]
SECTION V COSMOLOGICAL QUESTIONS
505
and in the second too large, and that hence the blame attaches, as it were, to the empirical regression? Instead we accused the cosmological idea by saying that in being too much or too little it diverges from its purpose, viz., possible experience. The reason was this. Possible experience is what alone can give reality to our concepts; without it any concept is only an idea de void of truth and of reference to an object. Hence the possible empirical concept was the standard by which the idea had to be judged, as to whether it is a mere idea and a thought-entity or finds its object in the world. For we say of something that it is too large or too small relatively to something else only if it is assumed for the sake of, and must be equipped according to, 1 17 the latter. The playthings of the ancient dialectical schools included also this question: If a ball will not go through a hole, which are we to say: Is the ball too large, or the hole too small? In this case how you want to express yourselves makes no difference; for you do not know which of the two is there for the sake of the other. the other hand, you will not say, The man is too tall for his garment; but, The garment is too short for the Hence we have been brought at least to the well-based suspicion that the cosmological ideas, and with them all the subtly reasoning assertions that have been put in contest with one another, are perhaps based on an empty and merely imaginary concept of the way in which the object of these ideas is given to us; and this suspicion may already be able to lead us onto the right track for uncovering the deception that has so long mis led us. 1 16
On
man.
116[St".e
1I7 [da
A 29218 348.]
rnach eingerichtet.]
{ A 490 B 518
The Antinomy of Pure Reason Section VI Transcendental Idealism as the Key to Solving the Cosmological Dialectic 1 l 8
A 491 } B 519
We have sufficiently proved in the Transcendental Aesthetic that every thing intuited in space or time, and hence all objects of an experience pos sible for us, are nothing but appearances. I.e., they are mere presentations that-in the way in which they are presented, viz., as extended beings, or as series of changes-have no existence with an intrinsic basis, 11 9 i.e., out side our thoughts. This doctrinal system I call transcendental idealism.120 The realist in the transcendental meaning of this term turns these modifi cations of our sensibility into things 12 1 subsisting in themselves, and hence turns mere presentations into things in themselves. 1 22 One would do us wrong if one sought to impute to us empirical ideal ism, 123 long since much-decried. This view, while assuming that space has its own actuality, denies the existence in it of extended beings, or at least 1 1 8 [See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 293/B 349 br. n. 2, vol. 2, 287-96. See also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 503-4.] 119 [an sich gegriindete.]
12°EIsewherea I have sometimes also called it formal idealism, in order to distin guish it from material idealism-i.e., the usual idealism, which doubts or denies the existence of external things themselves. In some cases it seems advisable, in order to prevent any misunderstanding, to employ these expressions instead of the ones mentioned above. b " [The note was added in B.] b [Transcendental idealism hasjust been mentioned; empirical idealism is about to be men tioned.] l21 [Dinge here, Sachen just below.]
l 22 [This may be a reference to John Locke.] ! 2 3 [Kant may have in mind the philosophy of George Berkeley, Bishop of Cloyne; but his characterization of Berkeley's position is not without a certain amount of polemical viola tion.]
506
SECTION VI 1RANSCENDENTAL IDEALISM AS KEY
507
finds that existence doubtful, and does not concede on this point any suf ficiently provable distinction between dream and truth. As regards the ap pearances of inner sense in time, empirical idealism finds no difficulty in considering these as actual things; indeed, it even asserts that this inner ex perience, solely and exclusively, adequately proves the actual existence of this experience's object (as object in itself, with all this time determina tion). Our transcendental idealism, by contrast, allows that the objects of outer intuition, just as they are intuited in space, are also actual; and that all changes are actual in time just as inner sense presents them. For since space is already a form of the intuition that we call outer, and since without ob jects in this space there would be no empirical presentation at all, we can and must assume in it extended beings as actual-and the same is the case also with time. But this space itself, together with this time, and along with both of them all appearances are yet in themselves no things; rather, they nothing but presentations, and cannot exist at all outside our mind. And even the inner and sensible intuition of our mind (as object of consciousness)-the mind whose determination is presented through the succession of different states in time-is also not the proper self as it ex ists in itself, or [i.e.] the transcendental subject, but is only an appearance that has been given to the sensibility of this being which is unknown 124 to us. We cannot concede the existence of this inner appearance as a thing existing in itself in this same way. 1 25 For the condition of this appearance is time, and time cannot be a determination of any thing in itself. In space and time, however, the empirical truth of appearances is sufficiently se cured and adequately distinguished from the affinity with the dream if both 126 cohere, correctly and thoroughly, in one experience according to empirical laws. Accordingly, objects of experience are never given in themselves, but are given only in experience and do not exist outside it at all. That there may be inhabitants on the moon, 127 although no human being has ever per ceived them, must indeed be conceded; but it signifies no more than that
B 520 A 492
are
1 24 [unbekannt ] 1 2S [As
was shown in the Paraiogisms of Pure Reason. A 34i-4051B 399-432.] 1 26 [Truth and dream.] 1 27 [Cf. the Universal Natural History and Theory of the Heavens (1755), Ak. I, 349-68, and the Critique of Judgment (1790), Ak. V, 467.]
B 52 1
A 493
508
B 522 A 494
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
in the possible advance 1 28 of experience we could come upon them. For anything is actual that stands in a context with a perception according to laws of empirical progression. 129 Hence those inhabitants are actual if they stand in an empirical coherence with my actual consciousness, although they are not therefore actual in themselves, i.e., outside this advance of ex perience. Nothing is actually given to us but perception and the empirical ad vance from it to other possible perceptions. For appearances, as mere pre sentations, are in themselves actual only in perception; perception, in fact, is nothing but the actuality of an empirical presentation, i.e., appearance. If an appearance is called an actual thing prior to perception, then this sig nifies either that in the progression of experience we must come upon such a perception, or it has no signification 130 at all. For that the appearance131 exists in itself, without reference to our senses and to possible experience, could indeed be said if we were talking about a thing in itself. But we are talking merely about an appearance in space and time, and both space and time are determinations not of things in themselves but only of our sensi bility. Hence what is in space and time (viz., appearances) is not some thing in itself; rather, appearances are mere presentations, which, if they are not given in us (in perception), are not encountered anywhere at all. Our power of sensible intuition is, in fact, only a receptivity, i.e., a ca pacity to be affected in a certain way with presentations. The relation of these presentations to one another is a pure intuition of space and time (which are nothing but forms of our sensibility); and insofar as these pre sentations are connected and determinable in this relation (i.e., in space and time) according to laws of the unity of experience, they are called objects. With the nonsensible cause of these presentations13we are entirely unac quainted, and hence we cannot intuit it as object. 2 For such an object would have to be presented neither in space nor in time (which are merely conditions of sensible presentation), and without these conditions we can not think of any intuition at all. We may, however, call the merely intelli gible cause of appearances as such the transcendental object, just so that 128 [Fortschritt.] 129 [Fortgang.] 1 30 [Bedeutung. See A 139/B 178 br. n. 66, and cf. below, A 495/B 523.] l 3 l [l.e., the thing that appears.] 1 32 [Objekt here. Gegenstand just above and just below In this entire paragraph. as elsewhere. Kant uses the two terms interchangeably. See A vii br. n. 7.]
SECTION VI 1RANSCENDENTAL IDEALISM AS KEY
509
we have something that corresponds to sensibility, which is a receptivity. To this transcendental object we may attribute the whole range and coher ence of our possible perceptions, and about it we may say that it is given in itself prior to all experience. But appearances are given, in conformity with the transcendental object, not in themselves but only in this experi ence. For they are mere presentations, which signify an actual object only as perceptions; they do so, viz., if such a perception coheres with all oth ers according to the rules of the unity of experience. Thus we may say that actual things of past time are given in the transcendental object of expe rience. But they are objects for me, and actual for me in past time, only insofar as I presentl 33 that a regressive series of possible perceptions (ei ther by the guide of history or by the footprints of causes and effects) leads according to empirical laws-in a word, that the course of the world leads-to a bygone time series as condition of the present time. Yet this series is then presented as actual only in the coherence134 of a possible ex perience, and not in itself; and hence all events that have from time im memorial 135 gone by prior to my existence yet signify nothing but the pos sibility of prolonging the chain of experience, starting from the present perception, upward to the conditions that determine this perception as re gards time. Accordingly, if I present, taken together, all existing objects of the senses in all time and in all spaces, then I do not prior to experience posit [or put] those objects into that time and these spaces; rather, this presentation is nothing but the thought of a possible experience in its absolute complete ness. In this possible experience alone are those objects given (since they nothing but mere presentations). Thus when we say that those objects exist prior to all my experience, this signifies only that they are to be met with in the part of experience to which, starting from the perception, I must first of all advance. The cause of the empirical conditions of this advance-and hence what members I may come upon, or, again, how far I can in my regression come upon such members-is transcendental and thus necessarily unknownl 36 to me. Nor, however, are we concerned with this cause; rather, we are concerned only with the rule of the advance of the experience wherein objects-i.e., appearances-are given to me. The are
133 [Or 1 34[
'conceive': vorstelLe.]
0r ' context' : Zusammenhang. ] 13'[ Undenklich.] 1 36 [unbekannt.]
B 523 A 495
B 524 A 496
5 10
B 525 A 497
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
upshot is entirely the same, moreover, whether I say that in my empirical progression in space I can come upon stars that are a hundred times more remote than the outermost stars that I see, or whether I say that perhaps such stars are to be met with in cosmic space even though no human be ing has ever perceived or will ever perceive them. For even if these stars were given as things in themselves, without reference to possible experi ence as such, yet for me they are nothing and hence are no objects except insofar as they are contained in the series of the empirical regression. Only in another reference is the distinction of the way in which one takes the actuality of the mentioned objects1 37 of the senses important: viz., when these same appearances are to be used for the cosmological idea of an ab solute whole, and hence when one is concerned with a question that goes beyond the bounds of possible experience. This distinction is then impor tant, viz., for preventing a deceptive delusion that must inevitably arise from the misinterpretation of our own experiential concepts. The Antinomy of Pure Reason Section VII Critical Decision of the Cosmological Dispute That Reason Has with Itselfl 3 8
The entire antinomy of pure reason rests on this dialectical argument: If the conditioned is given, then the entire series of all its conditions is also given; now objects of the senses are given1 to us as conditioned; conse quently, etc. Now through this syllogism, 39 whose major premise seems 1 37 [Or, possibly, 'of conceived objects': gedachter Gegenstiinde ] 13 8[See Heinz Heimsoeth. op. cit. at A 2931B 349 br. n 2, vol. 2, 296-309 See also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 504-6. And see Arthur Melnick, op cit at A 221B 37 br. n. 27, 379-95.] 139 [Literally, 'inference of reason'· Vernunftschlufi.]
SECTION VII CRITICAL DECISION OF THE DISPUTE
511
so natural and evident, as many cosmological ideas are introduced as there are differentl40 conditions (in the synthesis of appearances), insofar as these conditions make up a series. The cosmological ideas postulate the absolute totality of these series, and precisely thereby put reason inevitably in con flict with itself. But before we uncover what is deceptive in this subtly rea soning argument, we must enable ourselves to do so, by correcting and making determinate certain concepts occurring in it. First, the following proposition is clear and indubitably certain: that if the conditioned is given, then precisely thereby a regression in the series of all conditions for this conditioned is assigned141 to us. For the very con cept of the conditioned implies that through this concept something is re ferred to a condition; and if this condition is in turn conditioned, then that something is referred to a more remote condition, and thus is referred through all the members of the series. The above proposition, therefore, is analytic and rises above any fear from a transcendental critique. It is a logi cal postulate142 of reason, viz., to pursue and as far as possible extend,143 by means of understanding, that connection of a concept with its condi tions which attaches to the very concept itself. Furthermore. if both the conditioned and its condition are things in them selves, and if the conditioned has been given, then not merely is the re gression to the condition assigned. but this condition is thereby actually already givenl44 with the conditioned. And since this holds for all mem bers of the series, the complete series of conditions-and hence also the unconditioned-is given, or, rather, presupposed, simultaneously 145 through the fact that the conditioned, which was possible only through that series, is given. Here the synthesis of the conditioned with its condition is a syn thesis of the mere understanding, which presents things as they are with out considering whether and how we can reach a cognition 146 of them. Ap pearances, on the other hand, are mere presentations, and as such are not 1 40[Kant literally says 'according to the difference of.'] 141 [aufgegeben.]
142[I.e , in the original sense of the term, a demand. See the Critique ofJudgment, Ak. V, 468; and cf. above, A 2201B 267 and A 2251B 272.] 143 [fortsetzen.]
.
1 44 [gegeben.] 14s [With the conditioned.] 1 46 [Kenntnis (rather than Erkenntnis) here and in the next two occurrences. The term's more literal meaning, 'acquaintance: is grammatically unmanageable here.]
B 526 A 498
B 527
5 12
A 499
B
528
A 500
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
given at all unless I reach cognition of them (i.e., unless I reach the ap pearances themselves, for they are nothing but empirical cognitions). Hence if I deal with appearances then I cannot say, in the same meaning of the term, that if the conditioned is given then all conditions for it (as appear ances) are also given, and hence I can in no way infer the absolute totality of the series of these conditions. For appearances themselves are, in ap prehension, nothing but an empirical synthesis (in space and time) and hence are given only in this synthesis. Now it does not follow at all that if the conditioned is given (in appearance), then the synthesis amounting to its empirical condition is thereby also given with it and presupposed; rather, this synthesis first occurs in the regression, and never without it. What we can indeed say in such a case, however, is that a regression to the condi tions, i.e., that a continued empirical synthesis on this side 147 is dictated or assigned to us, and that there can be no lack of conditions given through this regression. This shows that the major premise of the cosmological syllogism takes the conditioned in the transcendental meaning of a pure category, but the minor premise takes it in the empirical meaning of a concept of under standing applied to mere appearances. Therefore, we find in this syllogism the dialectical deception called sophisma figurae dictionis. 148 This decep tion, however, is not contrived, but is a quite natural delusion of common reason. For by this delusion, if something is given as conditioned, then (in the major premise) we presuppose the conditions and their series-uninspected as it were. For to do this is nothing other than [to sat isfy] the logical demand to assume complete premises for a given conclu sion; and here no time order is to be found in the connection of the con ditioned with its condition, but they are presupposed in themselves, as given simultaneously. Furthermore, it is equally natural (in the minor premise) to regard appearances as things in themselves and likewise as objects given to mere understanding-as was done in the major premise, where I ab stracted from all conditions of intuition under which alone objects can be given. In this [natural treatment of the premises] we have, however, over looked a noteworthy distinction between the concepts. The synthesis of the conditioned with its condition-and the entire series of conditions--carried with it (in the major premise) nothing about limitation by time, and no con cept of succession. On the other hand, the empirical synthesis-and the se,
147[The side of the conditioned 1
1 48 [Sophism (a type of fallacy) of figure of speech. See A 402 inc!. hr. n. 237 1
SECTION VII CRITICAL DECISION OF THE DISPUTE
5 13
ries of conditions in appearance-(which in the minor premise is sub sumed [under the major]) is necessarily given successively and only in time, i.e., sequentially. Hence here l49 I was not able to presuppose, as I was there, 1 50 the absolute totality of the synthesis and of the series pre sented through this synthesis. For there all the members of the series are given in themselves (without time condition), but here they are possible only through the successive regression, which is given only by actually being carried out. After having been convicted l51 of such a slip in the argument that they jointly laid at the basis (of their cosmological assertions), both disputing parties may rightly be dismissed, as parties whose demand is based on no well-founded title. But although they did not know how to build their con clusions on sturdy bases of proof, their quarrel is not yet ended thereby in the respect that both or either of them has been shownl 52 to be wrong in the asserted matter itself (the conclusion). After all, nothing seems clearer than that if one of two persons asserts that the world has a beginning and the other asserts that the world has no beginning but has been there from eternity, then surely one must be right. Yet if that is so, then, because the clarity is the same on both sidt<s, there is no possibility of ever ascertain ing which side is in the right, and the dispute continues as before even though at �e tribunal of reason the parties 1 53 have been ordered to silence. Thus no remedy remains for ending the dispute thoroughly and to the sat isfaction of both parties, except finally to show that-since, after all, they can so nicely refute each other-they are disputing about nothing, and that a certain transcendental illusion has painted for them an actuality where none is to be found. Let us now enter upon this path on which a dispute that defies a verdict can be settled. The Eleatic philosopher Zeno, 1 54 a subtle dialectician, was severely re buked as a mischievous sophist already by Plato because-to show his 149 [In the minor premise.] Iso [In
the major premise.] ISI [ Uberweisung.] IS2 lS3
[iibeTjiihren.]
[Parteien here, Teile earlier in the paragraph and just below ] IS4 [ Zeno of Elea, born probably around 490 B.C., is best known for his paradoxes concern ing , above aU, plurality and motion.]
B 529 A 501
B 530 A 502
5 14
B 53 1 A 503
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
artistry-he sought to prove a proposition by plausible1 55 arguments and soon after to overturn the same proposition again by other arguments equally strong. Zeno asserted that God (this God presumably was for him nothing but the world) is neither finite nor infinite, neither in motion nor at rest, neither similar nor dissimilar to any other thing. To those who judged Zeno on this procedure he seemed to want entirely to deny two proposi tions contradicting each other-which is absurd. I believe, 156 however, that he cannot rightly be charged with this. The first of these propositions I shall soon examine more closely. 157 As for the others, if by the word God Zeno meant the universe, then he did indeed have to say that this universe nei ther is permanently present in its location (at rest) nor changes its location (moves), because all locations are only in the universe and hence the uni verse itself is in no location. 1 5 S Likewise, if the universe comprises all that exists, then it is to that extent also neither similar nor dissimilar to any other thing, because there is apart from it no other thing to which it could be compared. If two judgments that are opposed to each other presuppose an inadmissible condition, then despite the conflict between them (which, how ever, is not a contradiction proper) both of them drop out, because the con dition drops out under which alone each of these propositions was to hold. If someone were to say that any body either smells good or smells not good, then there is a third alternative, viz., that the body does not smell (emit an odor) at all; and thus both of the conflicting propositions can be false. If I say that any body either is good-smelling or is not good-smelling (vel suaveolens vel non suaveolens), then the two judgments are opposed to each other contradictorily and only the first one is false, while its con tradictory opposite-viz., that some bodies are not good smelling---comprises also those bodies that do not smell at all. In the pre vious opposition (per disparata), 159 the contingent condition of the concept of bodies (smell) still remained in the conflicting judgment and therefore was not also annulled by it; hence this latter judgment was not the contra dictory opposite of the former judgment. Accordingly, if I say that, as regards space, either the world is infinite or it is not infinite (non est infinitus), then if the first proposition is false, 1"55 [scheinbar.] 1 56 [finde. ]
1 57[See the pair of propositions discussed at A 504 B 532.] J 58 [ Univers(um) here and just above, Weltall just below.] =
15 9 [B y disparates.]
SECTION VII CRITICAL DECISION OF THE DISPUTE
515
its contradictory opposite, that the world is not infinite, must be true. By this [negative proposition] I would only annul an infinite world, without positing another world, viz., the finite one. But if I said that the world is either infinite or finite (noninfinite), then both of these propositions can be false. For I then regard the world as in itself determined in terms of mag nitude, because in the counterproposition I do not merely annul the infin ity, and with it perhaps the entire separate existence of the world; rather, I add a determination to the world taken as a thing that is actual in itself, and this may likewise be false, viz., if the world were not given as a thing in itself at all and hence also not in terms of its magnitude-neither as in finite nor as finite. Permit me to call this sort of opposition dialectical but that of contradiction analyticall 60 opposition. 16 1 Thus of two dialectically opposed judgments both can be false, because one judgment not merely contradicts the other but says something more than is required for contra diction. If one regards the two propositions, that the world is infinite in magni tude and that the world is finite in magnitude, as opposed to each other contradictorily, then one assumes that the world (the entire series of ap pearances l62) is a thing in itself. For [in either proposition] the world re mains, whether I annul in the series of its appearances the infinite or the finite regression. But if I remove this presupposition-or [Le.] this tran scendental illusion-and deny that the world is a thing in itself, then the contradictory conflict of the two assertions is transformed into a merely dia lectical one; and because the world does not exist in itself at all (Le., in dependently of the regressive series of my presentations), it exists neither as a whole that is infinite in itself nor as a whole that is finite in itself. The world is to be met with only in the empirical regression of the series of appearances, and not at all by itself. If, therefore, this series is always con ditioned, then it is never given wholly; and hence the world is not an un conditioned whole, and thus also does not exist as such a whole---neither with infinite nor with finite magnitude. What has been said here about the first cosmological idea, viz., that of the absolute totality of magnitude in [the realm of] appearance, holds also for all the other cosmological ideas. The series of conditions is to be met with only in the regressive series itself, but not [as existing] in itself in ap1 60[Or 'analytic' .] 16 1 [Oppos 162 [I.e.,
ition here, Entgegemetzung before.]
things that appear ]
{ A 504 B 532
{ A 505 B 533
516
A 506 } 534
B
B
535 A 507
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
pearance1 63 considered as a thing of its own given prior to all regression. Hence I shall also have to say that the multitude of parts in a given ap pearance is in itself neither finite nor infinite. For appearance is nothing that exists in itself, and the parts are first given by, and in, the regression of the decomposing 1 64 synthesis, a regression that is never given in abso lute entirety-neither as finite nor as infinite. The same holds for the se ries of causes superordinated to one another/ 65 or the series of the condi tioned existence up to the unconditionally necessary existence. Here again this series can never be regarded as being in itself, as to its totality, either finite or infinite. For as a series of subordinated presentations it consists 1 66 only in the dynamical regression; prior to this regression, however, and as a series of things in themselves that subsists 167 by itself, it cannot exist at all.168 Thus the antinomy of pure reason [that takes place] with pure reason's cosmological ideas is removed: viz., by showing that it is merely dialec tical, and is a conflict due to an illusion that arises because the idea of absolute totality, which holds only as a condition of things in them selves, has been applied to appearances, which exist only in our presen tation and-if they make up a series-in the successive regression, but otherwise do not exist at all. However, conversely, we can also draw from this antinomy a true benefit that, although not a dogmatic one, is yet a critical and doctrinal benefit: viz., we can by this antinomy prove indi rectly the transcendental ideality of appearances-in case, perhaps, some one were not satisfied with the direct proof provided in the Transcenden tal Aesthetic. This indirect proof would consist in the following dilemma. If the world is a whole existing in itself, then it is either finite or infinite. Now, both of these alternatives are false (according to the proofs, ad duced above, of the thesis and antithesis, respectively). Hence it is also false that the world (the sum of all appearances) is a whole existing in itself. From this it follows, then, that appearances as such are nothing 1 6' [I.e., in what appears.] '64[Le., disassembling.] 1 65 [iibereinander geordnet.] 166 [bestehen.] 167 [bestehen ] 1 68 [Or, possibly: 'and as a series of things that subsists by itself, it cannot exist in itself at all . ' ]
SECTION VII CRITICAL DECISION OF THE DISPUTE
517
apart from our presentations 169-which is precisely what we meant by their transcendental ideality. This comment is important. It shows that the above proofs of the four fold antinomy were not deceptions but were well-founded. l 7O They were well- founded, viz., on the presupposition that appearances, or a world of sense comprising them all, are things in themselves. The conflict of the propositions drawn from these proofs reveals, however, that there is a false hood in the presupposition, and thereby leads us to discover the true char acter of things as objects of the senses. Hence the dialectic by no means promotes skepticism. But it does promote the skeptical method, 1 7 1 which can display the dialectic as an example of the method's great benefit: viz., when we let the arguments of reason come forward against each other in their greatest freedom; for although these arguments ultimately do not sup ply what we were searching for, yet they will always supply something ben eficial and useful for correcting our judgments. The Antinomy of Pure Reason Section VIII Pure Reason' s Regulative Principle Regarding the Cosmological Ideasl 72
Since through the cosmological principle of totality no maximum of the series of conditions in a world of sense considered as a thing in itself is 169[Or, possibly, 'that appearances are nothing whatsoever [iiberhaupt] apart from our pre sentations.' ] 170[Or, perhaps, 'thorough': griindlich. ] \7) [ See A 424/B 451 incl. br. n. 99.] I72[See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit at A 293/B 349 br. n. 2, vol. 2, 3 1 0-18. See also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 506-8.]
{ A 508 B 536
518
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
but such a maximum can merely be assignedl 73 to us in the regres sion of the series, this principle of pure reason, with its meaning corrected in this manner, still retains all its validity-although not as an axiom for 1 7 4 thinking the totality as actual in the object. The principle retains its va lidity, rather, as a problem for the understanding, and hence for the subject: viz., to perform and continue, in accordance with the completeness in the idea, the regression in the series of conditions for a given conditioned. For in sensibility, i.e., in space and time, any condition that we can reach in the exposition of given appearances is in turn conditioned, because these ap pearances are not objects in themselves-in which the absolutely uncon ditioned might, perhaps, occur. These appearances are, rather, merely em pirical presentations; and these must always find their condition, which determines them as regards space or time, in intuition. Hence the cosmo logical principle of reason is, in fact, only a rule that commands us to per form, in the series of conditions of given appearances, a regression that is never permitted to stop at anything absolutely unconditioned. It is, there fore, not a principle1 75 for the possibility of experience and of the empiri cal cognition of objects of the senses, and hence it is not a principle of un derstanding; for every experience is enclosed (in accordance with the given intuition) within its bounds. Nor is this cosmological principle a constitu tive principle 1 76 of reason for expanding the concept of the world of sense beyond all possible experience. Rather, it is a principle of the greatest pos sible continuation and1 expansion of experience, whereby no empirical boundary must count 77 as absolute. Thus it is a principle of reason that, as rule, postulates 178 what is to be done by us in the regression, and does not anticipate what is given in itself in the object prior to all regression. I therefore call this cosmological principle a regulative principle of rea son. 179 By contrast, the principle of the absolute totality of the series of given,
A 509 } B 537
1 7 3[The two emphasized terms
are
gegeben and aufgegeben.]
174[Objekt. Throughout this section, as in general, Kant uses this term interchangeably with Gegenstand. See A vii br. n. 7.] 175 [Prinzipium. In this section, as elsewhere, Kant uses Prinzip(ium) interchangeably with Grundsatz. See A vii br. n. 7.]
176[Emphasis on 'principle' deleted.] 177 [gelten. ]
I 7 B[I.e .. demands. cr. A 498/B 526 br n. 142.]
179[The regulative use of the ideas of reason will be discussed not only in what immediately follows but, above all. at A 642-68/B 670-96.]
SECTION VIII REGULATIVE PRINCIPLE
519
conditions considered as given in the objects (the appearances) in them so l selves would be a constitutive cosmological principle. The nullity of this latter principle I wanted to indicate precisely by this distinction, and wanted thereby to prevent what otherwise inevitably occurs: our attributing (by transcendental subreption) l sl objective reality to an idea that serves merely as a rule. Now in order properly to definels2 the meaning of this rule of pure rea son, we must note, first of all, that this rule cannot tell us what the object is, but only how the empirical regression is to be performed in order for us to arrive at the complete concept of the object. For if the rule told us what the object is, then it would be a constitutive principle, and obtaining such a principle from pure reason is impossible. By this rule, therefore, we can in no way intend to mean that the series of conditions for a given con ditioned is in itself finite or infinite. For then we would by a mere idea of absolute totality-a totality that is provided only in the idea itself-think an object that cannot be given in any experience; for we would confer on a series of appearances an objective reality independent of the empirical synthesis. Hence the rational idea l s3 will prescribe a rule only to the re gressive synthesis in the series of conditions; according to that rule this syn thesis proceeds from the conditioned, by means of all the conditions sub ordinated to. one another, to the unconditioned-although this unconditioned is never reached, for the absolutely unconditioned is not found in experi ence at all. Now to this end l84 we must first accurately define the synthesis of a se ries insofar as this synthesis is never complete. For this aim, people usu ally employ two expressions that are intended to distinguish something in this synthesis, yet they do so without quite being able ls5 to indicate the basis of this lsdistinction. The mathematicians speak solely of a progressus in infinitum. 6 In its place, the investigators of concepts (philosophers) l80 [l .e ., in the objects that appear, considered as they are in themselves. Cf. the next para graph.] 1 8 1 [See A 643 B 67 1 inc!. br. n. 14.] 1 82[Or 'determine' : bestimmen. Similarly in the next paragraph.] 1 83 [Or 'idea of reason': Vernunftidee.] 1 84[Of defining this prescription of a rule by the rational idea to the regressive synthesis.] 18' [rech t wissen.] 1 86 [Prog ression to infinity (literally, 'to the infinite'), i.e., infinite progression.] =
{ A 51O B 538
{ A 511 B 539
520
A 512 } B 540
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
want to accept only the expression of a progressus in indefinitum. 187 With out lingering upon an examination of the perplexity that has commended to them this distinction of two progressions, and upon the distinction's good or fruitless use, I want to try to define these two concepts accurately in reference to my aim. Of a straight line we may rightly say that it can be extended to infin ity, 1 88 and here the distinction of an infinite and an indeterminably long progressionl 89 (progressuslindefinitum) would be an empty subtlety. To be l 1 9 9 0 sure, if one says, Continue drawing a line, then it iS indeed more cor rect to add in indefinitum than to say in infinitum. For the first means no more than, Extend the line as far as you want; but the second means, You shall never stop extending it (which, of course, 192 is not the aim here). Nev ertheless, if only what can be done is at issue, then the first expression is quite correct; for you can go on augmenting l93 the line to infinity. And so is it also in all cases where one speaks not of the regressus but only of the progressus, i.e., of the progression l 94 from the condition to the condi tioned; in the series of appearances this possible progression proceeds to infinity. From a pair of parents you can progress l95 without end in the de scending line of procreation, and you can quite readily think that the line actually progresses thus in the world. For herel 96 reason never requires ab solute totality of the series, because it does not presuppose such totality of the series as a condition and as 197 given (datum), but presupposes it only 1 87[Indefinite progression (literally, 'progression to the indefinite.'] 188[Literally, 'to the infinite' : ins Unendliche, which I usually translate as ad infinitum. In the present context, I am trying to avoid mixing Kant's own Latin expressions with my own, es pecially where the two are similar but not identical, as in the case of in infinitum and ad in finitum.] 1 89 [unbestimmbar weiten Fongangs.] 1 9° [fon.] 19 1 [lautet.] 192 [eben.] 1 93 [immer grofter machen.] 1 94 [The two terms in the original are Pmgres.�us (which I usually render as 'progression') and Fortgang.] 1 95 [Or 'proceed' or 'continue ' : fortgehen-the verb corresponding to Fongang ('progres sion').] 1 96[I.e., in progression rather than regression.] 1 97 [wie here, als just below and elsewhere.]
SECTION VIII REGULATIVE PRINCIPLE
521
as something conditioned that is only alleged and givable 198 (dabile) and is added to without end. But the situation is quite different with the problem concerning regres sion: How far does the regression 199 extend that ascends in a series from to the conditions? Can I say that it is a regression the given conditioned oo or only that it is a regression extending indeterminably ja?O l 2 to infinity, (in indefinitum)? Hence can I from the now living human beings ascend, in the series of their progenitors, to infinity? Or can I say only that, no mat ter how far I have gone back,202 I have never encountered an empirical basis for regarding the series as limited somewhere, and thus for each of the forefathers203 I am entitled and also obligated to go on locating-although indeed not presupposing-his ancestor also? In answer to these questions I say this: 204 (a) If the whole has been given in empirical intuition, then the regression in the series of the whole's in ternal conditions proceeds to infinity. (b) If [the regression is not one of decomposition,] however, i.e., if only a member of the series is given and the regression is first of all to proceed205 from this member to absolute to tality, then there takes place only a regression to an undetermined dis tance206 (in indefinitum). Hence207 the division of some208 matter given be tween its bounds (i.e., a body)209 must be said to proceed to infinity. For this matter is given as a whole, and consequently with all its possible parts, in empirical intuition. But the condition of this whole is its part, and the 19 8 [nur angebLich; angebLich means 'alleged,' but Kant is here relying also on the root mean ing that gebLich would have, viz , 'givable.'] 199 [Regressus here and usually; in the rest of this and in the next paragraph Kant uses also Riickgang.] 200 [I.e., in (or ad) infinitum. See A 5 1 1
=
B 539 br. n. 1 88.]
201 [unbestimmbar weil.] 202 [zuriickgegangen. the verb corresponding to Riickgang ('regression' ).] 2o' [Urviiter.] 204 [The small parenthesized letters in the entire discussion below have been added.] 20S [forlgehen here, gehen just above ] 206 [in unbestimmte Weite.] 207 [ln case (a).] 208 [ einer.] 209 [ See the Metaphysical Foundations of NaturaL Science, Ak. IV, 525, where Kant says that a body is a matter between determinate bounds and thus has a figure (or shape).]
B 541 A 513
522
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
condition of this part is the part of the part, etc.; and in this regression of decomposition an unconditioned (indivisible) member of this series of con ditions is never encountered. Therefore, not only is there nowhere an em pirical basis for stopping in the division, but the further members of the division that is to be continued themselves empirically given prior to this continuing2!O division; i.e., the division proceeds to infinity?! 1 By Con trast,2 12 the series of progenitors for a given human being is not given in its absolute2 13 totality in any possible experience. But the regression still proceeds from each member of this [series of] procreation to a higher mem ber, so that no empirical boundary is to be encountered that would exhibit a member as absolutely2 ! 4 unconditioned. Nevertheless, since even the members that might provide the condition for such [exhibition of a mem ber as absolutely unconditioned] do not already lie, prior to the regression, in the empirical intuition of the whole, the regression proceeds not to in finity (in dividing the given) but to an indeterminable distance in locating further members for the given ones, and these further members are always given in tum only as conditioned?! 5 In neither of the two cases, the regressus in infinitum and the regressus in indefinitum, is the series of conditions regarded as being given as infi nite in the object. These conditions are not things that are given in them selves, but only appearances, which are given as conditions of one another only in the regression itself. Hence the question no longer is how large this series of conditions is in itself, i.e., whether it is finite or infinite; for the series is nothing in itself. The question is, rather, how we are to perform the empirical regression, and how far we are to continue it. And here there is indeed2 !6 a notable difference regarding the rule for this advance. If the whole (a) has been given empirically, then it is possible to go back to in finity2 1 7 in the series of the whole's internal conditions. However, if the are
A 5 14 } B 542
2 10[weitergehen here, jortsetzen just above.] 2 1 1 [See the Metaphysical Foundations oj Natural Science, Ak. IV, 503-8, where Kant deal� with the infinite divisibility of matter.] 2 1 2 [l case (b).] n 213 [absolut.] 214 [schlechthin. ] 2 1 5 [And hence only in indejinitum.] 2 16 [denn.] 2 17 [I.e., ad injinitum: ins Unendliche . . . zuriick zu gehen.]
SECTION VIII REGULATIVE PRINCIPLE
523
whole (b) is not given but is first to be given through empirical regression, then I can say only that it is to infinity possible to proceed to still higher conditions of the series. In the first case I was able to say that always more members are there, and are empirically given, than I reach through the re gression (of decomposition). But in the second case I am able to say only that I can always proceed still further in the regression, because no mem ber is empirically given as absolutely unconditioned, and thus any mem ber always still admits a higher member as possible, and hence admits as necessary the inquiry about it. In the first case it was necessary to encoun ter further members; in the second, however, it is necessary always to in quire about further members, because no experience bounds anything ab solutely. For either you have no perception that bounds your empirical regression absolutely;2 18 and then you must not regard your regression as completed. Or you do have such a perception that bounds your series; and then this perception cannot be a part of the series that you have traversed (because what bounds must be distinguished from what is bounded by it); and thus you must continue your regression still further to this condition also, and so on. The following section will put these remarks in their proper light by ap plying them.
2lB [schechthin here, absolut just above.]
{ A 515 B 543
The Antinomy of Pure Reason Section IX On the Empirical Use of the Regulative Principle of Reason in Regard to All Cosmological Ideas 219
A 516 } B 544
There is, as we have shown repeatedly, no transcendental use of pure con cepts either of understanding or of reason. The absolute totality of the se ries of conditions in the world of sense is based solely on a transcendental use of reason that demands this unconditioned completeness from what it presupposes as being a thing in itself. The world of sense, however, does not contain such completeness. Therefore, the issue can never again be the absolute magnitude of the series that occur in the world of sense, i.e., whether they may be bounded or in themselves unbounded. Rather, the is sue can only be how far, in tracing experience back to its conditions, we are to go back in the empirical regression in order that-in accordance with the rule of reason-we may stop at no other answer to reason's questions than one that is commensurate with the object. Hence what alone remains to us is the validity of the principle of rea son taken only as a rule of the continuation and magnitude of a possible experience-the principle's invalidity as a constitutive principle of appear ances [taken as things] in themselves having been established sufficiently. Moreover, if we can beyond doubt display that validity of the principle taken as such a rule, reason's dispute with itself is wholly ended. For not only have we, through this critical solution, annulled the illusion that put reason at variance with itself; but, in its place, we are disclosing the sense in which reason agrees with itself and the misinterpretation of which alone prompted the dispute, and are thus transforming what would otherwise be only a dialectical principle into a doctrinal one. Indeed, if this principle 293/B 349 hr. n. 2, vol. 2, 31 8-19. See also Norman 5, 508-21.]
2 1 9 [See Heinz Heimsoeth, op cit. at A Kemp Smith, op. cit at A vii hr. n.
524
SECTION IX REGULATIVE PRINCIPLE
525
can be verified in220 its subjective signification, whereby it is to determine understanding's greatest possible use in experience commensurately with the objects of experience, then this is to achieve just as much as if, like an axiom, the principle determined objects in themselves a priori (which is impossible from pure reason). For even such a priori determination could have, in regard to objects22 1 of experience, no greater influence on the ex pansion and correction of our cognition than would actively manifest itself in the most extensive experiential use of our understanding.
{ A 517 B 545
I SOLUTION OF THE COSMOLOGICAL IDEA OF THE TOTALITY OF COMPOSITION OF ApPEARANCES OF A WORLD WHOLE222 as
Here, with the remaining cosmological questions, the basis of the regu lative principle of reason is this proposition: that in empirical regression we can encounter no experience of an absolute boundary, and hence no experience of any condition as one that is absolutely unconditioned em pirically. The basis223 of this, however, is that such an experience would have to contain a bounding of appearances by nothing, or [i.e.] the void, [as something] that the continued regression could come upon by means of a perception-which is impossible. Now this proposition,224 which says as much as that in empirical re gression I always arrive only at a condition that must itself be regarded in tum as empirically conditioned, contains this rule in terminis:225 that how ever far I may have got with this inquiry in the ascending series, I must always inquire about a still higher member of the series, whether or not I become acquainted with this member through experience. 220 [nach.] 221 [Objekte here, Gegenstiinde just above. See A vii br. n. 7.] 222[ See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 293/B 349 br. n. 2, vol. 2, 3 1 9-23. See also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 508-9.] 223 [Or 'ground' or 'reason' : Grund.] 224 [ The proposition mentioned in the first sentence of the preceding paragraph.] 22s [In its (very) terms.]
{ A 518 B 546
526
A 519 } B 547
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
Now nothing further is needed for the solution of the first cosmological problem than to establish also whether, in the regression to the uncondi tioned magnitude of the world whole (as regards time and space), this never bounded ascending can be called (a)226 a regression to infinity227 or (b) only an indeterminably continued regression228 (in indefinitum). The mere general presentation of the series of all past states of the world, as well as that of the series of all things that are simultaneous in cosmic space, is itself nothing but a possible empirical regression that I think, al though still indeterminately; and only through this possible regression can there229arise the concept of such a series of conditions for the given percep tion. Now, I have the world whole always only in concept, and by no means (as a whole) in intuition. Hence I cannot from that whole's magni tude infer the magnitude of the regression and determine the regression's magnitude in accordance with that of the world; rather, I must frame a con cept of the world's magnitude in the first place through the magnitude of the empirical regression. But of this regression I never know anything more than that from any given member of the series of conditions I must always proceed empirically to a still higher (more remote) member. Therefore, the magnitude of the whole of appearances is not thereby determined abso lutely at all. Hence we also cannot say that this regression proceeds to in finity. For saying this would anticipate the members not yet reached by the regression, and would present their multitude as so great that it could not be reached by any empirical synthesis, and consequently would determine (although only negatively) the world's magnitude prior to the regression-which is impossible. For prior to the regression this [world] is not (as regards its totality) given to me at all; nor, therefore, is its magni tude. Accordingly, we cannot say anything at all about the world's mag nitude in itself, not even that there occurs in the world a regression in in finitum, but we must merely search for the concept of the world's magnitude 226[ Small parenthesized letters added.] 227 [I.e., in (or ad) infinitum. See A 5 1 1
=
B 539 br. n. 1 88.]
228 [Regressus here and in the remainder of subsection I, Riickgang just above.]
229Hence, by the same token, this world series cannot be either larger or smaller than the possible empirical regression on which alone its concept rests. And since this regression cannot give to us any determinate infinite, but just as little anything determinately finite (absolutely bounded), we clearly cannot assume the world's magnitude either as finite or as infinite, because the regression (through which this magnitude is presented) permits neither of the two.
SECTION IX REGULATIVE PRINCIPLE
527
according to the rule that determines the empirical regression in the world. This rule, however, says no more than that however far we may have got in the series of empirical conditions, we are not to assume an absolute boundary anywhere, but are to subordinate every appearance, as condi tioned, to another as its condition, and hence are to proceed onward to this condition; and this is the regression in indefinitum, which, because it de termines no magnitude in the object, can be distinguished distinctly enough from the regression in infinitum. Therefore, I cannot say that the world is infinite as regards past time or as regards space; for such a concept of magnitude as a given infinity is em pirical, and hence is also absolutely impossible in regard to the world taken as an object of the senses. Nor shall I say that the regression from a given perception onward to all that bounds it in a series, both in space and in past time, proceeds to infinity; for saying this presupposes the world's mag nitude to be infinite. Nor shall I say that this regression is finite; for an ab solute boundary is likewise empirically impossible. I shall, therefore, be unable to say anything about the whole object of experience (the world of sense), but shall be able to say something only about the rule according to which experience is to be engaged in, and continued, commensurately with its object. Hence the first and negative answer to the cosmological question con cerning the world's magnitude is this: the world has no first beginning as regards time and no outermost boundary as regards space. For in the opposite case the world would be bounded by empty time, on the one hand, and by empty space, on the other. Now since the world as appearance cannot in itself be bounded in either of the two ways, be cause appearance is not a thing in itself, there would have to be possible a perception of bounding by absolutely empty time or space through which these world ends would be given in a possible experience. Such an expe completely empty of content, is impossible. There rience, however, being fore, an absolute230 boundary of the world is impossible empirically, and hence also absolutely.231 23°
[absolul here, schlechterdings just below.]
131 t 1 will be noted that the proof has been conducted in a quite different way from the dogmatic proof provided above in the antithesis of the first antinomy." We had there acceptedb the world of sense, in accordance with the common and dogmatic way of presenting it, as a thing that is, as regards its totality, given in itself prior to all regression; and we had asserted that if the world does not occupy all time and
{ A 520 B 548
{ A 521 B 549
528
A 522 } B 550
A 523 } B 551
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
From this, then, there follows simultaneously the affirmative answer: the regression in the series of the world's appearances, as a determination of the world's magnitude, proceeds in indefinitum. This is equivalent to say ing: the world of sense has no absolute magnitude; rather, the empirical regression (through which alone the world can be given on the side of its conditions) has its rule, viz., that from any member in the series, as a con ditioned member, we are always to advance (whether by our own experi ence, or the guide of history, or the chain of effects and their causes) to a still more remote member, and are not to refrain anywhere from expand ing the possible use of our understanding-this expansion being, indeed, reason's proper and sole task with its principles. This rule does not prescribe a determinate empirical regression that con tinues ceaselessly in a certain kind of appearances. E.g., it does not pre scribe that from a living human being we must always ascend in a series of progenitors without expecting a first pair; or that in the series of cos mic232 bodies we must always ascend without admitting an outermost sun. Rather, the rule commands only the advance from appearances to appear ances, even if these were not to yield any actual perception (if, viz., the perception is for our consciousness too weak in degree to become experi ence); for these appearances do nonetheless belong to possible experience. Any beginning is in time, and any boundary of what is extended is in space. Space and time, however, are only in the world of sense. Hence only appearances in the world are conditionally bounded, but the world itself is bounded neither in a conditioned nor in an unconditioned way. Precisely on this account, and because the world can never be given wholly and even the series of conditions for a given conditioned cannot, as world series, be given wholly, the concept of the world's magnitude is given only through the regression, and not prior to it in a collective intuition. This regression, however, always consists only in the [continued] determining of the magnitude. Therefore, it yields no determinate concept, and hence also no concept of a magnitude that would with respect to a certain [unit of] measure be infinite. The regression, therefore, does not proceed to in finity (as given, as it were), but proceeds to an undetermined distance, in all spaces, then it has no determinate position whatever in either. Hence the infer ence was likewise different from the one made here; viz., we there inferred the world's actual infinity. "[A 427-291B 455-57.] b [gelten lassen.]
232 rl.e., celestial.]
SECTION IX REGULATIVE PRINCIPLE
529
order to yield a magnitude (of experience) which first becomes actual through this regression. II SOLUTION OF THE COSMOLOGICAL IDEA OF THE TOTALITY OF DIVISION OF A WHOLE GIVEN IN INTUITION233
divide a whole that is given in intuition, then I proceed from some thing234 conditioned to the conditions of its possibility. The division of the parts (subdivisio or decompositio)235 is a regression in the series of these conditions. The absolute totality of this series would be given only if the regression could reach simple parts. But if all the parts of a continuously progressing decomposition are always in turn divisible, then the division-i.e., the regression from the conditioned to its conditions-proceeds in infinitum. For the conditions (the parts) are con tained in the conditioned itself; and since the conditioned is wholly given in an intuition that is enclosed between its bounds, the conditions236 are one and all given with it also. Hence the regression must not be called merely a regression237 in indefinitum, as we were permitted to call the pre vious cosmological idea only. In the previous case [also] I was to proceed from the conditioned to its conditions; but there the conditions were given outside the conditioned, and hence they were not given through the con ditioned and simultaneously with it, but were first added in the empirical regression. Despite this, however, we are by no means permitted to say of such a whole which is divisible to infinity that it consists of infinitely many parts. For although the intuition of the whole contains all the parts, it yet does not contain the whole division; this division consists only in the pro gressing decomposition, or [i.e.] in the regression itself that first makes the series actual. Now since this regression is infinite, all the members (parts) that it reaches are indeed contained in the given whole taken as an aggreIf I
233[See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 293/B 349 br. n. 2, vol. 2, 323-29. See also Nonnan Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 509.) 234 [einem.)
23s[Subdivision or decomposition). 236[l.e., the parts.) . 237[Ruc " kgang here, Regressus Just above and in the remainder of subsection II.)
{ A 524 B 552
530
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
gate; 238
A 525 } B 553
A 526 } B 554
but not contained therein is the whole series o/the division, which is infinite successively and never whole and hence can exhibit no infinite multitude of parts and no gathering together of such a multitude in a whole. This general notice can quite readily be applied, first, to space. Any space intuited within its bounds is a whole such that its parts are, in any decom position, always in turn spaces; and hence any such space is divisible to infinity. From this the second application of the notice follows quite naturally: viz., to an outer appearance enclosed within bounds (a body). The divis ibility of such an appearance is based on the divisibility of space, for space amounts to the possibility of a body as an extended whole. Hence a body is divisible to infinity, yet without therefore consisting of infinitely many parts.239 It seems, to be sure, that because a body must be presented in space as being a substance, it will be different from space as regards the law of the divisibility of space. For we may surely admit at least this difference: De composition240 can never remove all composition241 in space; for all space, which otherwise has nothing independent242 about it, would then cease to be (which is impossible). On the other hand, the claim that if all compo sition in matter were annulled in thought then nothing at all would remain seems not to be reconcilable with the concept of a substance; for a sub stance properly ought to be the subject of all composition, and would have to remain in its elements even if the connection of these elements in space, whereby they amount to a body, were annulled. However, what would in deed be thought [thus] concerning a thing in itself, through a pure concept of understanding, is not the case with what is called substance in [the realm of] appearance. This substance is not an absolute subject; it is, rather, a pennanent image belonging to sensibility and is nothing but intuition, in which nothing unconditioned whatsoever is to be met with. But although this rule of advance to infinity does without any doubt have its place in the subdivision of an appearance as a mere occupying of space, yet the rule cannot hold if we want to extend it also to the multitude of parts that-in the given whole-are already separated in a certain way so 238 [Taking Aggregate to be dative singular rather than nominative plura1.] ""[See the MetaphysicaL Foundations of NaturaL Science, Ak. IV, 503-8.] 24o [Dekomposition.] 24 1 rZusammensetzung.] 242 [Selbstiindiges.]
SECTION
IX
REGULATIVE PRINCIPLE
53 1
as t0243 make up [an appearance as] a quantum discretum. To assume that in every structured (organized) whole each part is structured in tum, and that thus in dissecting the parts to infinity one always encounters new art ful[ly structured] parts244 -in a word, that the whole is structured to in finity: this assumption is quite unthinkable,245 even though the alternative assumption that the parts of matter could to infinity become structured in their decomposition is indeed thinkable. For the infinity of the division of a given appearance in space is based solely on the fact that what is given through this appearance is merely [its] divisibility, i.e., merely a multitude of parts that in itself is absolutely indeterminate, whereas the parts them selves are given and determined only through the subdivision-in short, the fact that the whole is not in itself already divided. Hence in this whole the division can determine a multitude of parts that will go as far as one wants to advance in the regression of division. In the case of an organic body structured to infinity,246 on the other hand, the whole is-precisely through this concept of an organic body-already presented as divided, and one [conceives that one] encounters in it, prior to any regression of divi sion, a multitude of parts that is in itself determinate but also infinite-and thereby one contradicts oneself. For this infinite involution247 is regarded as a series never to be completed (i.e., as infinite), and yet also-when gath ered together248-as nonetheless completed. Infinite division character izes only appearance as quantum continuum, 249 and is inseparable from the occupation of space; for precisely in this occupation lies the basis of infi nite divisibility. But as soon as something is assumed as quantum discre tum, then the multitude of units in it is determinate and hence, by the same token, is always equal to some number. Therefore, only experience can es tablish how far the organization in a structured body may go; and even if 243 [dadurch. J 244 [Kunstteile. J 245 [will sich gar nicht denken lassen ] 246 [In
the Critique of Teleological Judgment (the second half of the Critique of Judgment) an organic (or "organized") body (or "being") is characterized as one in which everything is a pUrpose (Zweck) and reciprocally also a means (Ak. V, 376); hence in the case of such a body the idea of the whole (as a purpose) is what allows us to judge and cognize all the parts in their systematic combination (Ak. V, 1 93, 426).] 247 [Or
'enfolding': Einwicklung. Cf. the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 423, cf. 4 1 8.] 248 [in einer Zusammennehmung.] 249[Le. , as continuous (rather than discrete) quantum ]
{ A 527 B 555
532
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
[actual] experience were certain to reach no inorganic part, yet such parts must lie at least in possible experience. But how far the transcendental di vision of an appearance as such extends is not a matter of experience at all, but is governed by a principle of reason whereby the empirical regres sion in the decomposition of what is extended is, in accordance with the nature of this appearance, never to be regarded as absolutely completed. A 528 } B 556
A 529 } B 557
Concluding Comment on the Solution of the Mathematical-Transcendental Ideas, and Advance Notice on the Solution of the Dynamical-Transcendental Ideas250
We presented the antinomy of pure reason, through all the transcendental ideas, in a table?51 We also indicated the basis of this conflict and the only remedy for removing it, which consisted in declaring both the opposed as sertions to be false?52 In doing all this, we everywhere presented the con ditions as belonging to their conditioned according to relations of space and time, which is the usual presupposition of the common human understand ing; and so this conflict was indeed based entirely on that presupposition. In this respect all the dialectical presentations of totality in the series of conditions for a given conditioned were indeed throughout of the same kind?5 3 There was always a series, and in it the condition and the condi tioned were connected as members of this series and were thereby homo geneous?54 And thus the regression always had to be thought as uncom pleted; or, if it was to be thought as completed, then a member that was in itself conditioned must falsely be assumed to be a first member and hence to be unconditioned. Therefore, although in all cases the object, i.e., the conditioned, was not considered merely according to its magnitude, yet the series of conditions for this object was considered merely in this way. And thus the difficulty, which could be removed by no settlement but only by entirely severing the knot, consisted in reason's making the series255 either 250[See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 293fB 349 hr. n. 2, vo\. 2, 329-34. See also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii hr. n. 5, 5 1 0-12.] 25 1[A 4 1 5fB 443.] 252 [A 502-7fB 5 30-35.] 253[von gleicher Art.] 254[I.e., (again,) of the same kind: gleichartig ] 2S5 [ es. ]
SECTION IX REGULATIVE PRINCIPLE
533
too long or too short for the understanding, so that the understanding could never match reason's idea. In all this we did, however, overlook an essential difference obtaining among the objects-i.e., the concepts of understanding-that reason en deavors5to raise to ideas; for according to our table of categories provided above,2 6 two of the categories signify a mathematical but the other two a dynamical synthesis of appearances. Up to this point we could, indeed, quite readily afford to overlook this difference. For just as in the general presen tation of all the transcendental ideas we always remained subject to con ditions in [the realm oj] appearance, so in the two mathematical transcendental ideas we also had no other object than the one in [the realm of] appearance. Now, however, we proceed to dynamical concepts of un derstanding insofar as these are to fit the idea of reason; and here this dis tinction257 becomes important,258 and opens up for us an entirely new out look concerning the contest in which reason is embroiled. For previously this contest was dismissed as built, on both sides, on false presuppositions. But now, in the dynamical antinomy, perhaps there occurs a presupposi tion that can coexist with reason's pretension; and from this point of view, and with the judge compensating for the lack of legal bases that were mis taken [as being such] on both sides, the contest can be settled to the sat isfaction of both parties-which could not be done with the dispute in the mathematical antinomy. The series of conditions are indeed homogeneous insofar as we take ac count only of their extent:259 i.e., of whether they are commensurate with the idea, or whether the ideas are too large or too small for those series. However, the concept of understanding that underlies these ideas may con tain either only a synthesis of the homogeneous26o (this homogeneous is presupposed with any magnitude, in both the composition and division thereof), or a synthesis ofthe heterogeneous; this heterogeneous can at least be admitted in the dynamical synthesis, i.e., the synthesis of both the causal linkage26 1 and the linkage of the necessary with the contingent.262 256[A SOIB 106.] 257[Between the dynamical and the mathematical categones.] 258[See above, A 1 60-611B 1 99-200; also A 1 7S-S01B 221-23 ] 259[Erslreckung.] 260[As in the case of the two mathematical-transcendental ideas.] 261 [In the case of the third antinomy.] 262[In the case of the fourth antinomy.]
{ A 530 B 558
534
A 53 1 } B 559
A 532 560
B
}
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
Hence in the case of the mathematical connection of series of appear ances none but a sensible condition can come in, i.e., a condition that is itself a part of the series?63 The dynamical series of sensible conditions, on the other hand, does also admit of a heterogeneous condition that is not part of the series but, as merely intelligible, lies outside the series. Thus reason is satisfied; for the unconditioned is put prior to appearances, and yet the series of appearances, as always conditioned, is not thereby con fused and-----<:ontrary to the principles of understanding-----<:ut off. Now because the dynamical ideas admit of a condition of appearances that lies outside the series of these, i.e., a condition that is not itself ap pearance, something occurs here that is entirely different from the result of the mathematical antinomy?64 For the mathematical antinomy caused the result that both dialectical counterassertions265 had to be declared false. By contrast, in the dynamical series the thoroughly conditioned-which is in separable from these series as appearances-----<:an be connected with the con dition which, although empirically unconditioned, is also nonsensible. As so connected, this thoroughly conditioned can satisfy the understanding, on the one hand, and reason, on the other.266 Thus the dialectical argu ments that in one way or another sought unconditioned totality in mere ap pearances drop out; and hence the propositions of reason-in their signi fication as corrected in this way-----<:an, by contrast,267 both be true. This can never take place with the cosmological ideas that concern merely a mathematically unconditioned unity; for in their case we encounter no con263[And thus homogeneous with it.] 264['mathematical' insened (likewise just below), as suggested by Hartenstein and incorpo rated in the Akademie edition. Kant is here treating the two mathematical antinomies as one such antinomy involving two cases: (a) composition (first antinomy) and (b) division (sec ond antinomy).] 265[Kant here means assertions that counter each other. viz., thesis and antithesis.] 266For, the understanding does not pennit among appearances any condition that would itself be empirically unconditioned. But if for somea conditioned one could conceive an intelligible condition-which thus would not likewise belong, as a member, in the series of appearances-but without thereby in the least interrupting the series of empirical conditions, then such a condition could be admitted as em pirically unconditioned, and yet the empirical continuous regression would not thereby be impaired anywhere. "[einem.]
267[With those in the mathematical antinomies. See br. n. 264, just above.]
SECTION IX REGULATIVE PRINCIPLE
535
dition of the series of appearances that is not itself appearance and as such likewise268 a member of the series. III SOLUTION OF THE COSMOLOGICAL IDEA269 OF TOTALITY IN THE DERIVATION OF WORLD EVENTS FROM THEIR CAUSES270
Only two kinds of causality can be conceived in regard to what occurs, viz., either a causality according to nature or one from freedom. The cau sality according to nature is the connection, in the world of sense, of one state with a previous state upon which the state follows according to a rule. Now the causality of appearances rests on conditions of time; and the pre vious state, if it had always been there, would not have produced an effect that first arises in time. Therefore, the causality of the cause271 of what oc curs or comes about has likewise come about, and-according to the prin ciple of understanding-itself requires a cause in tum. By freedom, on the other hand, in the cosmological sense of the tenn, I mean the powe?72 to begin a state on one s own. 273 Thus the causality of freedom is not in tum subject, according to the law of nature, to another cause that detennines it as regards time. Freedom, in this meaning of the tenn, is a pure transcendental idea. This idea, first, contains nothing bor rowed from experience. Moreover, second, the object of this idea cannot be given detenninately in any experience, because there is a universal law of the very possibility of all experience whereby whatever occurs must have a cause, and whereby, therefore, also the cause's causality which itself has occurred or come about must in tum have a cause. And thus the entire realm of experience, however far it may extend, is transfonned into a sum of what is mere nature. But since in this way no absolute totality of conditions in 268 [mit . . . ausmacht.]
269[Reading, with Erdmann, Idee for Ideen.] 270[See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 293/B 349 br. n. 2, vol. 2, 334-45. See also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 5 12-1 3.] 27 1
[KausaUtiit der Ursache.]
272[Or 'ability' : Vermogen. See A xii br. n. 16.] 27' [I .e., spontaneously: von selbst.]
{ A 533 B 561
538
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
junction, or whether-rather-both can, with one and the same event but in different reference, take place simultaneously. As for the principle con cerning the thoroughgoing connection288 of all events in the world of sense according to immutable natural laws, its correctness is already established as a principle of the Transcendental Analytic and tolerates no impairment. Hence the question is only whether, in regard to the same effect that is de termined according to nature, freedom can nonetheless also take place, or whether freedom is completely excluded by that inviolable rule. And here the deceptive, although common, presupposition of the absolute eality of appearances at once shows its detrimental influence of confusing our rea son. For if appearances289 are things in themselves, then freedom cannot be saved. Nature is then the complete and in itself sufficiently determining cause of every event, and the condition of this cause is always contained only in the series of appearances-which, along with their effect, are nec essary under natural law. If, on the other hand, appearances count as noth ing more than they in fact are, viz., if they count not as things in them selves but as mere presentations connected290 according to empirical laws, then they must themselves still have bases29 1 that are not appearances. But such an intelligible cause292 is not, as regards its causality, determined by appearances, although its effects appear and thus can be determined by other appearances. Hence this cause, along with its causality, is outside the se ries of empirical conditions, whereas its effects are encountered within the series. Hence the effect can be considered as free with regard to its intel ligible cause, and yet with regard to appearances be considered simulta neously as resulting from these according to the necessity of nature. This distinction, when set forth in a universal way293 and quite abstractly, must appear extremely subtle and obscure, but it will become clear in its appli cation. Here I wanted only to make the comment that since the thorough going connection of all appearances in one context of nature is an inexo rable law, this law would necessarily have to overturn all freedom if one were to adhere obstinately to the reality of appearances. This is also the r
A 537 } B 565
288 [Or 'coherence' : Zusammenhang.] 289[I.e., things that appear.] 290[Or 'cohering ' : die "
zusammenhiingen.]
291 [Or 'grounds': Griinde. See B xix br. n. 79.] 292[Or, i e., basis ] .
293 [im allgemeinen.]
SECTION IX
REGULATIVE PRINCIPLE
539
reason why those who follow the common opinion in this matter have never succeeded in reconciling nature and freedom with each other.
Possibility of the Causality through Freedom, as Reconciled294 with the Universal Law of Natural Necessity295 What in an object of the senses is not itself appearance I call
{ A 538 B 566
intelligible.
Accordingly, if what in the world of sense must be regarded as appearance has, when taken in itself, also a power which is not an object of sensible intuition but through which it can still be the cause of appearances, then
causality of this being can be considered from two sides: as intelli gible. according to its action as that of a thing in itself; and as sensible,
the
according to the effects of this causality as those of an appearance in the world of sense. Thus regarding such a subject's power we would frame an empirical as well as an intellectual concept of its causality, these concepts occurring together in one and the same effect. Such a twofold side from which to think the power of an object of the senses contradicts none of the concepts that we have to frame of appearances and of a possible experi ence. For since these appearances are not in themselves things, they must
be based on a transcendental object determining them as mere presenta tions; and hence nothing prevents us from attributing to this transcenden tal object, besides the property through which it appears, also a causality that is not appearance although its effect is nonetheless encountered in ap pearance.296 Any efficient cause, however, must have a character,297 i.e., a law of its causality298 without which it would not be a cause at all. And thus in a subject of the world of sense we would have, first, an
empirical
character.
Through this character the subject's actions, as appearances, would according to constant natural laws stand throughout in connection
with other appearances and could be derived from these appearances as the actions' conditions; and thus these actions would, in combination with those other appearances, amount to members of a single series of the natural or294[Or 'as United' : in Vereinigung.] 29S[See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 293/B 349 br. n. 2, vol. 2, 345-52, 397-406. See also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 5 1 3-14.] 296[See the Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals, Ak. IV, 453-59.] 297[Charakter. ] 298 [ Kausalitiit; 'cause' just below translates Ursache.]
{ A 539
B 567
536
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
the causal relation can be obtained, reason creates for itself the idea of a spontaneity that can, on its own, start to act-without, i.e., needing to be preceded274 by another cause by means of which it is determined to action in tum, according to the law of causal connection. Extremely noteworthy is the fact that this transcendental idea offree dom is the basis of the practical concept of freedom, and that transcenden
A 534 562
B
}
tal freedom is what in practical freedom275 amounts to the proper mo ment276 of the difficulties that have all along surrounded the question of
practical freedom's possibility. Freedom in the practical meaning of the term is the independence of our power of choice277 from coercion278 by impulses of sensibility. For a power of choice is sensible279 insofar as it is pathologically affected (i.e., affected280 by motivating causes281 of sensi bility); it is called animal power of choice (arbitrium brutum) if it can be pathologically necessitated.282 The human power of choice, although an arbitrium sensitivum, 283 is an arbitrium not brutum but liberum; 284 for its
action is not made necessary285 by sensibility, but the human being has a
power to determine himself on his own, independently of coercion by sen sible impulses. We readily see that if all causality in the world of sense were merely nature, then every event would be determined by another event in time and according to necessary laws; and hence, since appearances insofar as they determine the power of choice would have to make every action necessary as their natural result, the annulment of transcendental freedom would si multaneously eliminate all practical freedom. For practical freedom pre274 [vorangeschickt werden.] 27S Uene in dieser.]
276 [l.e., key element.] 277 [Willkiir.]
278 [NOtigung. I usually translate notigen as 'to compel,' but 'compulsion' would sound too psychological here.] 279 [l.e belongs to sensibility ] .•
280 [On this and the entire paragraph. cf. A 802 2 8 1 [Bewegursachen.] 282 [necessitiert.] 2R'[Sensory (sensible) power of choice.] 284[Not animal but free.] 2KS [notwendig.]
=
B 830.]
SECTION IX
REGULATIVE PRINCIPLE
supposes that although something did not occur, it yet
537
ought to have
oc
curred, and that hence the cause of this something in [the realm of] appearance was not completely determinative: not so determinative, viz., that there did not lie in our power of choice a causality for producing, in dependently of those natural causes and even against their force and influ ence, something that in the time order is determined according to empiri cal laws-and hence a causality whereby we can begin a series of events
entirely on our own. Hence what happens here-as we find in general in the conflict of a rea son that ventures beyond the bounds of possible experience-is that the
{ A 535
B 563
problem is in fact not physiological but transcendental. Hence the ques tion of the possibility of freedom does indeed challenge psychology; but since it rests on dialectical arguments of the merely pure reason, it must, along with its solution, engage only transcendental philosophy. Now in or der to enable transcendental philosophy to give a satisfactory answer to this problem, which it cannot decline to do, I must first try-by the following remark-to determine more closely the procedure of transcendental phi losophy in dealing with this problem. If appearances were things in themselves, and hence if space and time were forms of the existence of things themselves, then the conditions and the conditioned would always belong, as members, to one and the same series. And from this there would arise, in the present case also, the anti nomy that is common to all transcendental ideas: viz., that this series would have to tum out inevitably too large or too small for the understanding. However, the dynamical concepts of reason,286 with which we are dealing in this and the following subsection,287 have the following peculiarity. Be cause these concepts have to do not with an object considered as a mag nitude but only with the object's existence, we can abstract also from the magnitude of the series of conditions, and what matters in their case is merely the dynamical relation of the condition to the conditioned. Thus in the question concerning nature and freedom we already encounter the dif ficulty as to whether freedom is even possible at all, and, if it is possible, whether it can coexist with the universality of the natural law of causality. And hence the question arises whether the proposition that every effect in the world must arise either from nature or from freedom is a correct dis2.0 [ln contrast to the mathematical concepts of reason, which were dealt with in subsections I and II.]
2.7[Nummer;
viz., III and IV ]
{ A 536
B 564
540
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
der. Second, one would have to grant to the subject also an intelligible char acter. Through this character the subject is indeed the cause of those ac tions as appearances, but the character itself is not subject to any conditions of sensibility and is not itself appearance. The first character could also be called the character of such a thing in [the realm of] appearance, the sec ond the character of the thing in itself. Now according to its intelligible character this acting subject would not stand under299 any conditions of time; for time is the condition only of ap A 540 B 568
}
pearances and not of things in themselves. In this subject no
arise or pass away.
action would
Hence it would also not be subjected to the law of all
time determination and of everything changeable, viz., that everything that occurs has300 its cause in appearances (those of the previous state). In a word, the subject's causality, insofar as it is intellectual, would not stand at all in the series of empirical conditions that make the event necessary in the world of sense. We could not, indeed, ever become acquainted with this intelligible character directly, because we cannot perceive anything except insofar as it appears; but we would still have to think it in accordance with the empirical character, just as in general we must-in thought-lay a tran scendental object at the basis of appearances although we know nothing about this object as to what it is in itself. 30 1 Hence according to its empirical character this subject, as appearance, would be subjected to all laws of determination in terms of causal linkage. To this extent the subject would be nothing but a part of the world of sense; and its effects would, like any other appearance, flow from nature unfail ingly. Just as302 outer appearances would influence303 this subject, and as the subject's empirical character, i.e., the law of its causality, would be cog nized through experience, so all its actions would have to be explicable according to natural laws, and all requirements for a complete and neces
A 54 1 B 569
}
sary determination of these actions would have to be found in a possible experience. But according to its intelligible character (although we can have noth ing more of this character than just the general concept of it) the same sub ject would nonetheless have to be pronounced free from any influence of '99 [I.e., be subject to.] 3[)o[Literally, 'encounters' or 'finds' : antreffe.] 30 l [See the Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals, Ak IV, 461 -63.] 30'[Or, perhaps, 'In the way in which', So wie.]
303 [einjliejJen 1
SECTION IX REGULATIVE PRINCIPLE
541
sensibility and determination by appearances. For insofar as this subject is nothing occurs in it and there is found in it no change requir ing dynamical time determination and hence no connection with appear ances as causes. Therefore, this active being would to this extent be inde pendent and free in its actions from all natural necessity, which is found correctly only in the world of sense. Of this subject we would say quite that it begins its effects in the world of sense on its own, 304 without the action's beginning in the subject itself. 305 And this would be valid without any consequene06 need for the effects in the world of sense to begin on their own.307 For in that world they are always predetermined-although only by means of the empirical character (which is merely the appearance of the intelligible character)-by empirical conditions in the previous time, and possible only as a continuation of the series of natural causes. And thus freedom and nature, each in the complete meaning of its term, would be found in the same actions-according as these compared with their intelligible or with their sensible cause-simultaneously and without any conflict. noumenon,
are
are
Elucidation of the Cosmological Idea of a Freedom in Combination with the Universal Natural Necessiti08
I thought it good to start by309 sketching the outline of the solution to our transcendental problem, in order that we might better survey the course that reason takes in solving the problem. Let us now spell out the moments that are in fact at issue in deciding this solution, and examine each separately. Consider the natural law that everything that occurs has a cause; that since the causality of this cause,310 i.e., the action, precedes [the effect] in time and-in regard to an effect that has arisen--cannot itself always have been there but must have occurred, this causality likewise has among ap pearances its cause whereby it is determined; and that, consequently, all 304
[von selbst. ] 30s [in ihm selbst. ] 306 [darum. ] 307 [von selbst.] 308 [See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 293/B 349 hr. n. 2, vol. 2, 352-87, 397-406. See also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit al A vii hr. n 5, 5 14-1 8.]
309
[zuerst.] 3 10 [die Kausalitiit dieser Ursache.]
{ A 542 B 570
542
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
events are detennined empirically within a natural order. This law, through which appearances can first amount to a
nature and yield objects of an ex
perience, is a law of understanding from which we are not pennitted on any pretext to deviate, nor exempt any appearance. For otherwise we would A 543 B 57 1
}
posit the appearance outside of all possible experience, but thereby would distinguish it from all objects of possible experience and thus would turn it into a mere thought-entity and chimera. Thus it looks, here, as if there is only a chain of causes that in the re gression to the causes' conditions pennits no
absolute totality
at all. Yet
this perplexity in no way detains us; for it has already been removed in our general judgment on the antinomy of reason, into which reason falls when in the series of appearances it aims at the unconditioned. If we wish to yield to the delusion of transcendental realism, then we are left with neither na ture nor freedom. Here the question is only whether, if in the entire series of all events we acknowledge nothing but natural necessity, it is still pos sible to regard the same event, which on the one hand is a mere natural ef fect, as yet being on the other hand an effect arising from freedom, or whether we find between these two kinds of causality a direct contradic tion. Among the causes in [the realm of] appearance there assuredly cannot be anything that could absolutely and on its own begin a series. For here every action, as appearance, insofar as it produces an event, is itself an event
A 544 B 572
}
or happening that presupposes another state wherein its cause is to be found; and thus everything that occurs is only a continuation of the series, and in this series no beginning that takes place on its own is possible. Hence all the actions of natural causes in the time sequence are themselves in turn effects that likewise presuppose their causes in the time series. An original action, through which something occurs that was not there before, is not to be expected from the causal connection of appearances. But if effects are appearances, is it indeed also necessary that the cau sality of their cause, which (cause) itself is also appearance, must be solely empirical? And is it not possible, rather, that although every effect in [the realm of] appearance does indeed require a connection3 1 1 with its cause according to laws of empirical causality, yet this empirical causality itself could nonetheless, without in the least interrupting its connection with natu ral causes, be an effect of a causality that is not empirical but intelligible? I.e., could not the empirical causality itself be an effect of an action, origi3 1 1 [Verkn upftmg here, Zusammenhang just below.]
SECTION IX
REGULATIVE PRINCIPLE
543
nal in regard to appearances, of a cause that in so far3 12 is therefore not appearance but-according to this power-intelligible, although otherwise it also must, as a link in the chain of nature, be classed entirely with the world of sense? The principle of the causality of appearances among one another is re quired by us in order that for natural events we can seek and indicate natu ral conditions, i.e., causes in [the realm of] appearance. If this requirement is granted to us and not weakened by any exception, then the understanding-which in its empirical use sees in all happenings nothing but nature and is, moreover, entitled to do so-has all that it can demand, and physical explanations proceed along their course unhindered. Now in this [task] the understanding is not impaired in the least if one assumes---even supposing that the assumption were, besides, to be merely invented-that among the natural causes there are also some which have a power that is only intelligible, inasmuch as this power's determination to action never rests on empirical conditions but rests on mere bases of understanding-yet rests on these in such a way that this cause's
action in
[the realm oj] appearance conforms to all laws of empirical causality. For in this way the acting subject would, as causa phaenomenon, 31 3 be linked up with nature in the unsevered dependence of all this cause's actions; and this subject's phenomenon3 1 4 (with all its causality in [the realm of] ap pearance) would only contain certain conditions that, if one wants to as cend from the empirical object to the transcendental, would have to be re3 12 [Or, possibly, 'an effect of a cause's action that in regard to appearances is original and in so far.' Although this latter reading connects well with the preceding discussion of original action, the reference to power suggests that Kant is now referring to the cause. Cf. below, A 545 B 573 and A 546 B 574.] 313 [Phenomenal cause.] =
=
3 14 [l.e., the subject'S appearance, by which Kant means simply the appearing subject. This appearing subject can still, when considered in itself, have intelligible properties. See, e.g., A 538 B 566, A 539 B 567; and just above, where Kant speaks of natural causes as having an intelligible power. Hartenstein's substitution of 'noumenon' for 'phenomenon' raises, more over, several other difficulties. First, whereas it makes sense to speak of the subject as not only (as phenomenal) being an appearance but also (as noumenal) having an appearance (as the phrase 'the subject's phenomenon' implies), the subject (whether as phenomenal or nou menal) cannot have a noumenon, but can only be one (cf. A 5411B 569). Second, the cau Sality of the subject as noumenal would not be in the realm of appearance-<mly its effects would be. (Cf. the continuation of this paragraph, and Erdmann's note in the Akademie edi tion, Ak. III , 590.) Third (cf. again Erdmann, ibid.), it is from the empirical object-here the subject; cf. the end of A 546 B 574--that we may want to ascend to the transcendental one.] =
=
=
{ A 545
B 573
544
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
garded as merely intelligible. For if we only follow the rule of nature in regard to what may be the cause among appearances, then we need not be concerned as to what sort of basis of these appearances and their connec tion is being thought in the transcendental subject, which is empirically un known31 5 to us. This intelligible basis in no way challenges the empirical A 546 B 574
}
questions, but concerns perhaps merely the thinking in pure understand ing; and although the effects of this thinking and acting of pure under standing are found in the appearances, yet these appearances must none theless be capable of being explained completely, according to natural laws, from their cause in [the realm of] appearance. The appearances must be capable of being explained by pursuing, as the supreme basis of explana tion, their merely empirical character, and by entirely bypassing as un known the intelligible character that is the empirical character's transcen dental cause-except insofar as this intelligible character is indicated by the empirical character as the intelligible character's sensible sign. 3 1 6 Let us apply this to experience. The human being is one of the appearances in the world of sense, and in so far is also one of the natural causes, the cau sality of which must be subject to empirical laws. As such a cause he must, accordingly, also have an empirical character, as do all other things of na ture. We discern this character through abilities and powers 3 1 ? that he mani fests in his effects. In inanimate nature, or in animate but merely animal3 1 8 nature, we find no basis for thinking any power as being other than merely sensibly conditioned. Only the human being, who otherwise is acquainted with all of nature solely through his senses, cognizes himself also through mere apperception-viz., in actions and inner determinations that he can not class at all with any impression of the senses. And thus he is to him self, indeed, on the one hand phenomenon, but on the other hand-viz., in
A 547 B 575
}
regard to certain powers-a merely intelligible object, because his action cannot be classed at all with the receptivity of sensibility. We call these [specifically human] powers understanding and reason. Reason, above all, is quite particularly and primarily distinguished from all empirically con ditioned abilities, because it examines its objects merely according to ideas 3 1 5 [unbekannt; likewise just below, A 546
=
B 574.]
3 1 6[See the Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals, Ak. IV, 453-63.]
3 17 [Kriifte und Vermogen. When used in reference to mental powers, Kriifte is actually �yn· onymous with Vermogen (see also A xii br. n. 1 6). On the term 'ability,' see A 19tB 33 br n 10 and A 5 1 IB 75 br n 22.] 3 ' " [blofl tierisch belebt.]
SECTION IX
REGULATIVE PRINCIPLE
545
and according to these ideas determines the understanding, which then makes an empirical use of its own (although likewise pure) concepts. Now, that this reason has causality, or that we at least conceive such a causality in it, is evident from the imperatives which, in all that is practi cal, 319 we impose as rules on the performative powers. 320 The ought ex
presses a kind of necessity and connection with bases32 1 that does not oth
erwise occur in all of nature. The understanding can cognize regarding nature only what is, or has been, or will be. That something in nature ought
to be other than what in fact it is in all these time relations-this is impos sible; indeed, the [term] ought, if we have in mind merely the course of nature, has no meaning whatsoever. We cannot ask at all what ought to hap pen in nature, any more than what properties a circle ought to have, but can ask only what happens in nature, or what properties the circle has. Now this
ough222
expresses a possible action whose basis is nothing
but a mere concept, whereas the basis of a mere action of nature must al ways be an appearance. Now the [concept-based] action must indeed be possible under natural conditions, if the ought is directed to nature; 323 how ever, these natural conditions concern not the determination itself of the
power of choice but only this determination's324 effect and result in [the realm of] appearance. No matter how many natural bases-how many sen
sible stimuli-impel me to will, 325 they yet cannot produce the ought; they
can produce only a willing that is far from necessary but is always condi tioned, whereas the ought326 pronounced by reason opposes this condi tioned willing with standard and goal327 -indeed, with prohibition and au thority. Whether the object328 is one of mere sensibility (the agreeable) or even of pure reason (the good), reason does not yield to the empirically 319[I.e., all that has to do with action.] 320[ausiibende Kriifte (cf. br. n. 3 1 7, just above).] 321 [Or 'grounds': Griinde See B xix br. n. 79).] 322[Solien; emphasis added here and in the next occurrence of the term, at the beginning of A 548
=
323[sie. ]
324
B 576.]
[derselben.]
32s [ Wolien. ]
32�[Emphasis added.] 327 [Majl und Ziel.] 328[The object of my power of choice 1
{ A 548
B 576
546
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
given basis and does not follow the order of things as they exhibit them selves in appearance, but with complete spontaneity makes for itself an or der of its own according to ideas. Reason adapts the empirical conditions to accord with these ideas, and in conformity with these ideas declares to
be necessary even such actions as in fact329
have not occurred and perhaps
will not occur, but concerning which reason nonetheless presupposes that it can have causality in reference to them, since otherwise reason would not expect from its ideas effects in experience. A 549 B 577
}
Let us now remain with this point and assume as at least possible that reason actually has causality with regard to appearances. In that case, de spite being all reason, 330 it must yet show itself as having an empirical char acter. For any cause presupposes a rule according to which certain appear ances follow as effects; and any rule requires a uniformity of effects that is the basis for the concept of cause (as a power). And this concept, insofar as it must become evident from mere appearances, we may call the pow er's empirical character. This character is constant, whereas the effects ap pear in changeable shapes according to the difference in the accompany ing and in part limiting conditions.
1 Thus every human being's power of choice33 has an empirical charac
ter. This character is nothing but a certain causality of his reason insofar as this causality shows in its effects in [the realm of] appearance a rule
whereby one can gather, in terms of their kind and degrees, the bases332 and actions of his reason and thereby judge the subjective principles of his power of choice. Since this empirical character itself must be drawn from
appearances, as its effect, and from the rule of these as provided to us by experience, all actions of a human being are determined in appearance on the basis of333 his empirical character and the other contributing334 causes A 550 B 578
}
according to the order of nature; and if we could explore all appearances of his power of choice down to the bottom, there would not be a single human action that we could not with certainty predict and cognize as nec329 [doch. J 330 [Literally, 'no matter how much i t i s reason.' J 3 l I [Willkiir.l 332 [Or 'grounds ' J 333 [aus.l 334 [mitwirkend.J
SECTION IX
REGULATIVE PRINCIPLE
547
essary from335 its preceding conditions. In regard to this empirical charac ter, therefore, there is no freedom; and yet only in tenns of this character can we consider a human being if we seek merely to observe him and, as is done in anthropology, explore physiologically the motivating causes of his actions. But if we examine the same actions in reference to reason-not, how ever, speCUlative reason in order to explain them in tenns of their origin, but reason solely insofar as it is itself the cause for producing them-in a word: if we compare these actions with reason in a practical regard, then we find a rule and order quite different from the order of nature. For in that regard perhaps there ought not to have occurred all that according to na ture' s course yet has occurred and according to its own empirical bases inevitably had to occur. But sometimes we find, or at least believe that we
find, that the ideas of reason have actually proved their causality in regard to human beings' actions considered as appearances, and that these actions have occurred not because they were detennined by empirical causes-no: but because they were detennined by bases of reason. Now supposing one could say that reason has causality in regard to ap pearance: could reason's action then indeed be called free, when in rea son's empirical character (the way of sensing)336 the action is quite exactly detennined and necessary? This empirical character in turn is detennined in the intelligible character (the way of thinking)?37 We are not, however, acquainted with the intelligible character but designate it only by appear ances, which, properly speaking, allow33 8 us to cognize directly only the way of sensing (empirical character).339 Now insofar as the action is at33S [aus.] 336[Sinnesart.] 337(Denku ngsart.] 338 [geben.]
l3�ence the morality proper of actions (merit and guilt),a even the morality of our own conduct, remains entirely hidden to us. Our imputations can be referred only to the empirical character. But no one can fathom how much of this character is a pure effect of freedom, and how much is to be ascribed to mere nature: viz., either to a defect of temperament that one has through no fault of one's own,b or to one's temperament's fortunateC constitution (meritum fortunae).d And hence no one can pass judgmente in accordance with complete justice.
a [Ve niienst und Schuld. Note that Kant says 'and' here, not 'or.' In other words, what is said to be hidden from us is not whether an action is morally good or bad (i.e., mora) or immoral), but whether it falls within the moral sphere at all (i.e., whether it is mora) or
{ A 551
B 579
548
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
tributable to the way of thinking as its cause, it yet in no way results from this way of thinking according to empirical laws, i.e., in such a way that the conditions of pure reason
precede
the action, but only in such a way
that the effects of these in [the realm of] appearance of inner sense precede it. Pure reason, as a merely intelligible power, is not subjected to the form of time, nor consequently to the conditions of temporal succession. The cau A B
552 } 580
sality of reason in its intelligible character by no means arises, or starts at a certain time, in order to produce an effect. For otherwise it would itself be subjected to the natural law of appearances insofar as this law deter mines causal series with regard to time, and the causality of reason would then be nature, not freedom. Hence we must be entitled to say that if rea son can have causality in regard to appearances, then it is a power
through
which the sensible condition of an empirical series of effects first begins. For the condition that lies in reason is not sensible and hence does not it self begin. Accordingly, there takes place here what in all empirical series we were unable to find: 340 viz., that the condition of a successive series of events can34 1 itself be empirically unconditioned. For here the condition is
outside the series of appearances (viz., in the intelligible) and hence is sub jected ' to no sensible condition and no time determination by a preceding cause. Yet in another reference the same cause belongs nonetheless also to the series of appearances. The human being is himself an appearance. His power of choice has an empirical character that is the (empirical) cause of all his actions. There is no condition determining a human being in accor dance with this character which is not contained in the series of natural ef fects and which does not obey nature's law-the law according to which nonmoral). Now in the Metaphysics of Morals (Ak. VI, 227) Kant draws a different (and tripartite) distinction between verdienstlich (meritum), Schuldigkeit (debitum), and mo ralische Verschuldung (demeritum)-respectively, 'meritorious,' 'debt due, ' and 'moral , guiltiness (or liability) . Of these, verdienstlich ( 'meritorious') agrees with 'merit' as use d above. As regards the remaining two terms in the tripartite distinction, both terms, Schul digkeit and (moralische) Verschuldung, contain the term Schuld (likewise used above) This is possible because Schuld can mean either 'debt' or 'guilt.' Of these two, only 'guilt' fits the distinction that Kant is making here (cf. also A 555 = B 583).] b[unverschuldet.] C [glucklich.] d[Reward of fortune.] e[richten.] 140 [ vermissen.]
34 1 [konnte.]
SECTION IX
REGULATIVE PRINCIPLE
549
an unconditioned empirical causality of what occurs in time is not to be found at all. Therefore, no given action (since it can be perceived only as appearance) can begin absolutely on its own. Of reason, however, one can not say that the state wherein it determines the power of choice342 is pre
{ A 553 B 581
ceded by another state wherein that state itself is determined. For since rea son itself is not an appearance and is not subjected to any conditions of sensibility, there takes place in reason, even as concerns its causality, no temporal succession; and hence the dynamical law of nature that deter mines temporal succession according to rules cannot be applied to reason. Hence reason is the permanent condition of all the voluntary343 actions under which the human being appears. Each of these actions, even before it occurs, is predetermined in the human being's empirical character. But in regard to the intelligible character, of which the empirical character is only the sensible schema, no
before
or
after
holds, and every
action-regardless of its time relation to other appearances-is the di rect344 effect of the intelligible character of pure reason. Hence pure rea son acts freely, i.e., without being dynamically determined in the chain of natural causes by external or internal bases that precede the action as re gards time. And this freedom of pure reason can be regarded not only nega tively, as independence from empirical conditions (for the power of reason would thus cease to be a cause of appearances). Rather, this freedom can
be designated also positively, as a power of reason to begin on its own a series of events. 345 Reason begins the series in such a way that nothing begins in reason itself, but that reason, as unconditioned condition of any voluntary action, permits no conditions above itself that precede the action as regards time-although reason's effect does begin in the series of ap pearances, but in the series can never amount to an absolutely first begin ning. To illustrate the regulative principle of reason involved here by an ex ample drawn from the principle's empirical use-not to confirm it (for such proofs by example are unsuitable for transcendental assertions)--let us take 342 [Willkur.] 343 [Or 'chosen·· willkurlich ] 344 [unmittelbar; see B xxxix hr. n. 144c . ] 34s
[For other places where Kant distinguishes freedom in the negative sense from freedom in the positive sense, see the Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals. Ak. IV, 446-47, 452-53, 454-55, 457-58; also the Metaphysics of Morals. Ak. VI, 2 1 3-14, 221 , 226.]
{ A 554
B 582
550
A 555
B 583
}
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
a voluntary action, e.g., a malicious lie, by means of which a person346 has brought a certain amount of confusion into society. 347 And suppose that we first investigate his action as to its motivating causes348 from which it arose, and that thereupon we judge how the action can, along with its con sequences, be imputed to him. In pursuing the first aim we search349 through the agent's empirical character until we come to its sources. We locate these in bad upbringing, evil company,350 partly also in the wick edness of a natural makeup35 J that is insensitive to shame; and partly we put them to frivolity and rashness. Here, then, we do not ignore the occa sioning causes that prompted the action. In all this we proceed as we do in general when we investigate the series of determining causes for a given natural effect. But although we believe the action to be determined by these causes, we nevertheless blame the perpetrator. We blame him not because of his unfortunate natural makeup, nor because of the circumstances influ encing him-indeed, not even because of his previous way of life. For we presuppose that we can set aside entirely how this way of life was,352 and that we can regard the bygone series of conditions as not having occurred, and can regard this deed as entirely unconditioned with respect to the pre vious state, as if the perpetrator starts with it a series of consequences com pletely on his own. This blame is based on a law of reason; and reason is regarded in this blaming as a cause that, regardless of all the mentioned empirical conditions, could and ought to have determined the person's con duct differently. And the causality of reason is by no means regarded merely as concurrence; rather, it is regarded as in itself complete, even if the sen sible incentives were not at all for this causality but were even against it. The action is imputed to the agent's intelligible character: now-at the in stant when he is lying-the guilt is entirely his. Hence his reason, regard less of3 all empirical conditions of the deed, was wholly free, and to its fail ure3 5 is the deed to be imputed entirely. 346 [Mensch.] 347 [ Gesellschaft. ] 348 [Bewegursachen.] 349 [gehen.] 350 [ Gesellschaft ] 35 1 [Naturell.] 352 [beschaffen.l 3 53 [Le . his reason's failure to adhere to the truth:
ihrer UnterlaHung ]
SECTION IX
REGULATIVE PRINCIPLE
55 1
We can readily see from this imputing judgment that in making it we thinking that reason is in no way affected by all that sensibility; 354 that
are
reason does not change (although reason's appearances-viz., the way in which reason manifests itself in its effects-do change); that in reason there
{ A 556
B 5 84
is no antecedent state determining the subsequent state, and that reason therefore does not belong at all in the series of sensible conditions that make appearances necessary according to natural laws. Reason is present to, and is the same in, all actions of the human being in all circumstances of time. But reason itself is not in time, and by no means gets into a new state in which it previously was not; with regard to this state reason is determina tive, 355 but not determinable. Hence we cannot ask, Why did reason not determine itself differently?-but only, Why did reason not determine ap
pearances differently through its causality? To this, however, no answer is possible. For a different intelligible character of reason would have given a different empirical character. And when we say that regardless of his en tire previous way of life the perpetrator could still have abstained from the lie, this means only that the lie is directly subject t03 56 the force of reason, and reason is not subjected3 57 in its causality to any conditions of appear ance and of the course of time. And it means, moreover, that although the difference of time can make a principal difference for appearances in
re
gard to one another, it can make no difference for the action in reference to reason, because appearances are not things 358 in themselves and hence are also not causes359 in themselves.
Hence in judging free actions with regard to their causality we can get
only as far as the intelligible cause, but not beyond it. We can cognize that this cause determines360 [actions] freely, i.e., independently of sensibility, and that in this way it can be the sensibly unconditioned condition of ap3S4
[I.e. , by all those sensible incentives.]
3SS
[Or 'determining' or 'determinant' : bestimmend.] 356 [stehen unter.] 3S7 [unterwoifen.] 3SB [Sachen.] 3S9 [Ursachen.] 360 [bestimmt. The grammar of this sentence allows this alternative reading: 'We can cognize �t this Cause can be free, i.e., determined [bestimmt] independently of sensibility, and that In
this way it can be the sensibly unconditioned condition of appearances.' However, the in telligible cause (reason) has all along been said to determine (actions), not to be determined. Kant said this most recently and quite explicitly at A 556 = B 584. and he implies it again
{ A 557
B 5 85
552
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
pearances. But why the intelligible character gives precisely these appear ances and this empirical character under the conditions at hand-this ques tion far exceeds all our reason's power to answer it, indeed, all its right even to ask it; it exceeds these as far as if we asked whence it is that the transcendental object of our outer sensible intuition gives us precisely in tuition in space only, and not some other intuition. 361 However, the prob lem that we had to solve does not obligate us to answer that question. For that problem was only this: whether freedom conflicts with natural neces sity in one and the same action; and this we have answered sufficiently. For we have shown that, because in the case of freedom a reference to a quite different kind of conditions is possible from the kind found in the case of natural necessity, the latter's law does not affect freedom, and hence both can take place independently of, and without interfering with, each other.
A 55 8 B 586
}
It must be noted carefully that by this contemplation we have not sought to establish the actuality of freedom as one of the powers containing the cause of the appearances of our world of sense. For not only would this contemplation then not have been a transcendental one at all, which deals merely with concepts, but this [attempt to establish the actuality of such freedom] also could not succeed; for from experience we can never infer something that must not be thought according to laws of experience at all. Furthermore, we have not even sought to prove the possibility of free dom; 362 for this [attempt] also would not have succeeded, because in gen eral we cannot from mere a priori concepts cognize the possibility of any real basis363 and any causality. Freedom is being treated here only as a tran scendental idea whereby reason means364 to start absolutely the series of conditions in [the realm of] appearance by the sensibly unconditioned. 365 In this [attempt], however, reason becomes entangled in an antinomy with its own laws, the laws that it prescribes to the empirical use of understand ing. Now, to show that this antinomy rests on a mere illusion and that najust below-although doubtless bearing in mind the restrictions in the (upcoming) last part of this subsection, A 557-58 = B 585 -86 . ] 36 ' [See above, A 393 br. n. 2 1 1 .] 362 [Kant means real, not logical, possibility. For the distinction, see A l 391B 1 7 8 br. n. 66 ]
363 [Realgrund.] 364 [denkt. ] 3 65[See the Critique of Practical Reason, Ak. Y, 3-5, 47.]
SECTION IX
ture at least does
not conflict
REGULATIVE PRINCIPLE
553
with the causality from freedom-this was
the only goal that we were able to accomplish, and it was, moreover, our one and only concern.
IV SOLUTION OF THE COSMOLOGICAL IDEA OF TOTALITY IN THE DEPENDENCE OF ApPEARANCES AS REGARDS THEIR EXISTENCE As SUCH366
{ A 559
B 587
In the preceding subsection367 we considered the changes of the world of sense in their dynamical series, where each change is subject to another as its cause. Now, however, we employ this series of states only for our guid ance in order to arrive at an existence368 that can be the highest condition of all that is changeable, viz., the necessary being. Our concern here is not unconditioned causality, but the unconditioned existence369 of substance it self. Hence the series that we have before us is in fact only the series of concepts, and not that of intuitions insofar as one intuition is the condition of the other. But we readily see that since everything in the sum of appearances is changeable and hence is conditioned in its existence, there cannot be in the series of dependent existence370 any unconditioned member at all whose existence would be absolutely necessary. And hence we see that if appear ances were things in themselves, and if precisely because of this their con dition would always belong to one and the same series of intuitions as does the conditioned, then a necessary being as condition of the existence of the appearances of the world of sense could never have its place. However, the dynamical regression has the following peculiarity that dis tinguishes it from the mathematical regression. The mathematical regres sion deals, in fact, only with the assembling37 ! of parts to form a whole,372 366
[See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 2931B 349 br. n. 2, vol. 2, 387-94. See also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 5 1 8- 19.]
367
[Nummer.] 368 [ Or 'existent'. Dasein.] 369 [Existenz.] 37° [Existenz here, Dasein just above and just below.] 37 1 [Or 'composing' ; Zusammensetzung.]
{ A 560
B 588
554
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
or with the splitting Up3 73 of a whole into its partS. 374 Therefore, the con ditions of this series must always be regarded as parts of the series, hence as homogeneous with it, and consequently as likewise appearances. In the dynamical regression,375 on the other hand, we are not concerned with the possibility of an unconditioned whole composed from given parts, or the possibility of an unconditioned part for a given whole; here we are con cerned, rather, with the derivation376 of a state from its cause, or the deri vation377 of the contingent existence of substance itself from necessary ex istence. 37 8 Hence in the dynamical regression the condition need not, of course,379 necessarily make up one empirical series together with the con ditioned.
Hence there still remains open to us an escape from the seerning3 80 an
tinomy now before us. For both of the mutually conflicting propositions may be true simultaneously in a different reference, so that all things in the world of sense are contingent throughout and hence, by the same token, have only empirically conditioned existence, while yet a nonempirical con dition of the whole series, i.e., an unconditionally necessary being, also has A 561 B 589
}
its place. For this being, as intelligible condition, would not at all belong to the series as a member thereof (not even as the supreme member), nor would it make any member of the series empirically unconditioned; rather,
it would leave3 81 the entire world of sense in its empirically conditioned existence that runs3 8 2 through all the members. This way of laying an un conditioned existence at the basis of appearances would thus differ from the empirically unconditioned causality (freedom) treated in the previous 372 [As examined in the first antinomy.]
373 [Zeifiillung.] 374[As examined in the second antinomy.] 375 [Examined in the third and fourth antinomies.] 376[Examined in the third antinomy.] 377 [Examined in the fourth antinomy.] 37 8 [Reading von dem notwendigen for von der notwendigen. Kant seems to have thought that he had just used Existenz rather than Dasein.]
379 [eben ] 380
[Or 'illusory ' : scheinbar.]
38 1 [Or 'keep' : lassen ] 3 82[gehen. ]
SECTION IX
REGULATIVE PRINCIPLE
555
item?83 For in the case of freedom the thing itself, as cause (substantia phaenomenon), 384 belonged nonetheless in the series of conditions, and only its causality was thought as intelligible. Here, on the other hand, the nec essary being would have to be thought as entirely outside the series of the world of sense (as ens extramundanum385 ) and as merely386 intelligible; for only thereby can one prevent that this being itself is subjected to the law of the contingency and dependence of all appearances. Hence the regulative principle of reason regarding this problem of ours is the following: that everything in the world of sense has empirically con ditioned existence, and that there is in that world no unconditioned neces sity whatsoever with regard to any quality; that there is in the series of con ditions no member of which one must not always expect-and, as far as one can, seek-the empirical condition in a possible experience, and that nothing entitles us to derive any existence from a condition outside the em pirical series, or, for that matter, to regard such an existence as absolutely independent and self-sufficient387 in the series itself; yet that we hold all this without thereby disallowing that the whole series could be based on some intelligible being (which, therefore, is free from any empirical con dition and contains, rather, the basis of the possibility of all these appear ances). But our intent with this contemplation is by no means to prove the un conditional�y necessary existence of a being, or even just to base on this contemplation the possibility of a merely intelligible condition of the ex istence of the appearances in the world of sense. Rather, our intent is only that, just as we limit reason in such a way that it does not leave the thread of empirical conditions and stray into bases of explanation that are tran scendent and incapable of any exhibition in concreto, so, on the other hand, should388 we limit also the law of the merely empirical use of understand ing, so that it does not decide on the possibility of things as such and de clare what is intelligible-although we can indeed not use it to explain appearances-to be therefore impossible. Hence this contemplation shows 3B3 [im vorigen Artikel; i.e., Subsection IlL] 384 3Bs
[Phenomenal substance.] [Extramundane being, i.e., being beyond the world.]
3B6[blojl; Kant says 'merely' because theoretical cognition is being ruled out.] 3B7
[unabhiingig und selbstiindig. In other types of context I translate selbstiindig as 'indepen
dent.'] 3B
B[ZU. ]
{ A 562
B 590
556
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
only that the thoroughgoing contingency of all natural things can quite well
coexist with the voluntary389 presupposition of a necessary, although merely intelligible, condition; and that, therefore, no true390 contradiction is to be found between these assertions, and hence they can A 563 B 591
A 564 B 592
}
}
both be true.
Such an
absolutely necessary being of the understanding may, indeed, be in itself impossible; yet this impossibility can by no means be inferred from the universal contingency and dependence of everything belonging to the world of sense, nor inferred from the principle that tells us not to stop at a single member thereof, insofar as it is contingent, and appeal to a cause outside the world. Reason takes its course in its empirical use, and its special course in its transcendental use. The world of sense contains nothing but appearances; these, however, are mere presentations that are always in turn sensibly conditioned. Here, then, we never have as our objects things in themselves. It is not surpris ing, therefore, that we are never entitled to make a leap from a member of the empirical series,39 1 whatever member it may be, outside the coher ence392 of sensibility. To make this leap would be to act as if these mem bers were things in themselves that existed outside393 their transcendental basis and that we could leave in order to seek outside them the cause of their existence. In the case of contingent things this seeking of the outside cause would indeed have to be done in the end, but not in the case of mere presentations of things; for their contingency is itself merely phenomenon, and can lead to no other regression than to the one that determines phe nomena, i.e., the regression that is empirical. But thinking an intelligible basis of appearances, i.e., of the world of sense, and thinking it as freed from the contingency of that sensible world394 runs counter neither to the unlimited empirical regression of appearances nor to their thoroughgoing contingency. Establishing this, however, is indeed all that we had to ac complish in order to remove the seeming antinomy; and only in this way could it be done. For if the condition for everything that is conditioned (as regards its existence) is in each case sensible, and precisely therefore be3B9[Or 'chosen': wiLlkiirlich.] 390[l.e., genuine.] 39 1 [Reihen (i e
•
plural).]
392 [Or 'context': Zusammenhang. ] 393[Or 'apart from' : aufter.] 394[Or, possibly, 'of appearances" der [elzleren ]
SECTION IX
REGULATIVE PRINCIPLE
557
longs to the series, then the condition itself is in tum conditioned (as is brought out by the antithesis of the fourth antinomy). Hence there either had to remain a conflict within reason, which demands the unconditioned,
or the unconditioned had to be posited outside the series and in what is in telligible; the necessity of what is intelligible neither requires nor permits any empirical condition, and hence the intelligible is absolutely necessary with respect to appearances. Reason's empirical use (regarding the conditions of existence in the world of sense) is not affected by our granting a merely intelligible being, but proceeds, in accordance with the principle of thoroughgoing contin gency, from empirical conditions to higher conditions that are always like wise empirical. But just as little does this regulative principle, when our concern is reason's pure use (regarding purposes395 ), exclude our assum ing an intelligible cause that is not in the series. For then [the expression] intelligible cause means only the basis, to us merely transcendental and un known, 396 of the possibility of the sensible series as such. The existence of this basis, as independent of all conditions of the sensible series and un conditionally necessary in regard to these conditions, 397 does not at all run counter to the unbounded contingency of the sensible series, 398 and hence also does not run counter to the never-ending399 regression in the series of empirical conditions.
Concluding Comment on the Entire Antinomy of Pure Reason4OO As long as, in dealing with our concepts of reason, we have as our object merely the totality of conditions in the world of sense and what can be done concerning these conditions in the service of reason, our ideas, although transcendental, are yet cosmological. But as soon as we posit the uncon ditioned (which is, after all, what we are in fact concerned with) in what is entirely outside the world of sense and hence outside all possible experi39' [Or 'ends' : Zwecke.] 396 [ unbekannt.] 397 [ dieser.] 39" [der ersteren (i.e., in relation to the just mentioned conditions).] 399 [Literally, 'nowhere-ended' : nirgend geendigt.]
4OO[See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 293/B 349 hr. n. 2, vol. 2, 394-97. See also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii hr. n. 5, 5 1 9 2 1 .] -
{ A 565
B 593
558
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
ence, the ideas become
transcendent.
They then do not serve merely for the completion of reason's empirical use (which compietion40 ! remains al
ways an idea that can never be achieved but must nonetheless be fol lowed402). Rather, they then part entirely with reason's empirical use, and make for themselves objects whose material is not taken from experience and whose objective reality also does not rest on the completion of the em pirical series but rests on pure a priori concepts. Such transcendent ideas have a merely intelligible object. Admitting this object as a transcendental object403 of which we otherwise know nothing is indeed allowed. But we do not have on our side, for this transcendental object,404 what we would A 566 B 594
}
need in order to think it as a thing determinable through its distinguishing and intrinsic predicates: we have neither any bases of its possibility (as something independent of all experiential concepts), nor the slightest jus tification for assuming such an object-which, therefore, is a mere thought entity.4os Nonetheless, among all the cosmological ideas, the one that prompted the fourth antinomy urges us to venture this step. For the exist ence of appearances, which within itself has no basis whatsoever but is al ways conditioned, calls upon us to look around for something different from all appearances, and hence to look for an intelligible object with which this contingency will cease. However, once we have given406 ourselves per mission to assume a self-subsistent actuality outside the realm of sensibil ity as a whole, appearances can be regarded407 only as contingent ways in
which beings that are themselves intelligences408 present intelligible ob jects. And hence we are left with nothing but analogy: according to it we use experiential concepts in order that regarding intelligible things, of which 40 1 [Reading, with Erdmann and the Akademie edition, die for der.]
402 [befolgt.] 403 [Objekl here, Gegensland everywhere else in this Concluding Comment. See A vii br.
n.
7.] 404[WOZU.]
405 [Gedankending. See A 292IB 348.] 406[Literally, 'taken' : genommen ] 407 [Following Hartenstein's reading, as adopted by Erdmann in the Akademie edition, of
(111-
zusehen sind for anzusehen.] 408 [Cf. A 641 = B 669, A 698 = B 726, A 8 1 5 = B 843; and B I SS , 157 n. 296, 426, A 74 2 = B 770. Cf also the Critique of Practical Reason, Ak. V, 1 14; the Metaphysics of Mora ls, Ak. VI, 4 1 8 ; and the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 233.]
SECTION IX
REGULATIVE PRINCIPLE
559
as they are in themselves we have not the least cognition,409 we can yet frame some sort of concept. Since we do not come to cognize4 1 0 the con tingent except through experience, but are here concerned with things that are not to be objects of experience at all, we shall have to derive our cog nition of them from what is necessary in itself, viz., from pure concepts of things as such. Hence in taking the first step outside the world of sense, we are compelled to begin our new cognitions with our inquiry into the absolutely necessary being, and to derive from the concept thereof the con cepts of all things insofar as they are merely intelligible. And this attempt 4 we shall 1 1 undertake in the following chapter.
409[Kenntnis; similarly in the remainder of this paragraph. The more literal 'acquaintance' is
grammatically unmanageable here.] 410 [More literally, 'become acquainted with' : kennenlemen.]
41 i
[wollen. ]
{ A 567
B 595
TRANSCENDENTAL DIALECTIC B OOK II Chapter III The Ideal of Pure Reason 1 Section I On an Ideal as Such2 We have seen above that through pure concepts of understanding, 3 apart from all conditions of sensibility, no objects whatever can be presented,4 inasmuch as these concepts then lack the conditions of their objective re ality, and nothing is to be found in them but the mere form of thought. But these concepts can nonetheless be exhibited5 in concreto if they are ap plied to appearances; for in appearances they properly have the material for an experiential concept, which is nothing but a concept of understand ing in concreto. Ideas, however, are still further removed from objective reality than are categories; for no appearance can be found in which they I [See H. W. Cassirer, op. cit. at A 2 11B 35 br. n. 22, 3 1 2-29. See also 1. N. Findlay, op. cit at A 2 11B 35 br. n. 22, 226-4 1 . Also Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 2931B 349 br. n. 2, vol. 3, 409-19. Also Nonnan Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 522-25. Also Gottfried Mar tin, op. cit. at A 22IB 36 br. n. 26, 1 5 8-70. Also T. K. Swing, op. cit. at A 3 101B 366 br n 94, 298-301. Also W. H. Walsh, op. cit. at A 2931B 349 br. n. 1 , 214-29. And see T. D. Wel don , op. cit. at A 211B 35 br. n. 22, 228-29.]
2[iiberhaupt. My reason for translating this tenn in this way is given at B xxvii br n 1 06 I 3 [l.e., categories.]
4 [vorstellen, traditionally translated as 'to represent. ' My reason for breaking with this tradi
tion is given at B xvii br. n. 73.)
' [darstellen, traditionally often rendered as 'to present.' My reason for translating the tenn
differently is given at B xvii br. n. 73.)
560
SECTION I ON AN IDEAL AS SUCH
561
could be presented in concreto. Ideas contain a certain completeness to which no possible empirical cognition6 is adequate; and reason has in mind7 with them only a systematic unity to which, without ever fully reaching this systematic unity, reason seeks to approximate the unity that is possible empirically. But what I call an ideaL seems to be still further removed from objec tive reality than is even the idea. By ideaL I mean an idea not merely in concreto but in individuo, i.e., as an individual8 thing determinable or even determined by the idea alone.9 Humanity [as conceived] in its entire perfection contains not only the expansion of all the essential properties belonging to human nature, which make up our concept thereof, to the point of their complete congruence with humanity'S purposes; for this would be only our idea l O of perfect human ity. Rather, humanity [as so conceived] contains also everything that, be sides this concept, belongs to the thoroughgoing determination of the idea. For plainly only one [member] of all [pairs of] opposite predicates can be fit for the idea of the most perfect human being. What to us is an ideal was for Plato an idea of the divine understanding, an individual object in this understanding's pure intuition,11 the most perfect of each kind of possible being, and the original basis of all copies thereof in [the realm of] appear ance. 12 But even without going as far as Plato did, we must admit that human reason contains not only ideas but also ideals. Although these ideals, un like the Platonic ones, do not have creative power, they do have practical power (as regulative principles) and underlie the possibility of the perfec tion of certain actions. Moral concepts are not entirely pure concepts of reason, because something empirical (pleasure or displeasure) underlies them. Nonetheless, with regard to the principle by which reason sets lim its to a freedom that in itself is lawless (in other words, if one attends merely to the form of moral concepts), these concepts can quite readily serve as 6[Erke nntnis. FOT the distinction between cognition and knowledge (Wissen), see A vii br. n. 6.]
7[Sinn. ]
8[ein zeln. ] 9 [Cf . the Critique of Judgment, Ak. Y, 232-33.] le And not yet an idea!. Emphasis added.] l I1
[On the intellectual intuition of an intuitive understanding. see B 72 inc!. br. n. 1 83.]
l 2[See
A 3 13-15IB 370-72.]
{ A 568 B 596
{ A 569 B 597
562
570 }
A B 598
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
examples of pure concepts of reason. Virtue and, with it, human wisdom in their entire purity are ideas. But the wise person 13 (of the Stoics) is an ideal, i.e., a human being who exists only in one's thoughts but is com pletely congruent with the idea of wisdom. Just as the idea gives the rule, so the ideal serves in such a case as the archetype 1 4 for the thoroughgoing determination of the copy;l S and we have within us no other standard for our actions than the conduct of this divine human being-a standard with which we can compare, judge, and thereby improve ourselves even though we can never attain it. Even if one were not to grant objective reality (ex istence) to these ideals, yet they are not therefore to be regarded as chime ras. They provide us, rather, with an indispensable standard of reason. Rea son requires the concept of what is entirely complete in its kind, in order to assess and gauge by this concept the degree and the deficiencies of what is incomplete. But trying to realize the ideal in an example, i.e., in appearance,-as, e.g., to realize the wise person in a novel-is unfeasible and has, moreover, something preposterous and not very edifying about it. For in such an attempt the natural limits that continually impair the com pleteness in the idea make any illusion impossible, and the good itself that lies in the idea is thereby made suspect and similar to a mere invention. Such is the case with the ideal of reason, which must always rest on determinate concepts and serve as rule or archetype, whether to be com plied with or to judge 16 by. The situation is quite different with the crea tures of the imagination concerning which no one can offer an explication and give an understandable concept: the monograms, as it were. These are only characteristics that, although [likewise] individual, are not deter mined according to any rule that one can indicate. Such characteristics amount less to a determinate image than to a design that hovers, as it were, at the mean of various experiences;l 7 they are characteristics such as paint ers and physiognomists claim to have in their minds 1 8 and as are supposed to be an incommunicable shadowy image of these people's products or, for that matter, for their judgments. Such characteristics may, although only 1 3[Or, of course, 'the sage.'] 14 [Or 'original image': Urbild.] 1 5[Or 'ectype' or 'derivative image ' : Nachbild.]
16 [Beurteilung; similarly for 'judgment�' a few lines down. See A 60/B 84 br n. 69] 1 7 [Cf. the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 234.)
1 8 [in ihrem Kopfe.]
SECTION I
ON AN IDEAL AS SUCH
563
improperly, be called ideals of sensibility; for they are meant to be the un attainable models of possible empirical intuitions, yet provide no rule ca pable of explication and examination. By contrast, the aim that reason has with its ideal is thorough 1 9 deter mination according to a priori rules. Hence reason thinks an object that is to be thoroughly determinable according to principles, although the con ditions adequate for this determination are lacking in experience and the concept itself is thus transcendent.
{ A 571
B 599
Chapter III
Section II On the Transcendental Ideapo (prototypon transcendentale)21 Every concept is, as regards what is not contained in this concept itself, indeterminate and subject to the principle of determinability: viz., that of every two predicates contradictorily opposed to each other only one can belong to the concept. This principle rests on the principle22 of contradic tion, and hence is a merely logical principle that abstracts from all content of cognition and has in view nothing but the cognition's logical form. But every thing is, with regard to its possibility, subject also to the prin ciple of thoroughgoing determination,23 whereby of all possible predicates of things, insofar as these predicates are compared with their opposites, one 19
[Or 'thoroughgoing' : durchgiingig.]
2O
[See Heinz Heirnsoeth, op. cit. at A 2931B 349 br n. 2, vol. 3, 4 1 9-59.]
21 [
Transcendental prototype.]
22[Satz
(literally 'proposition') in this particular expression, but Grundsatz above and Prinzip just below: see A vii br. n. 7. (Similarly in the next paragraph.)] 2J [ Emphasis on determination added by the Akademie edition ]
{ A 572
B 600
564
A
573 }
B 601
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
must belong to the thing. This principle24 rests not merely on the principle of contradiction. For besides considering the relation of two predicates that conflict with each other, the principle considers every thing also in relation to possibility in its entirety,25 i.e., to the sum of all predicates of things as such. And by presupposing a priori this entire possibility as condition,26 the principle presents every thing as deriving its own possibility from the share that it has in that entire possibility.27 Hence the principle of thor oughgoing determination concerns content, and not merely logical form. It is the principle of the synthesis of all predicates that are to make up the complete concept of a thing, and is not merely the principle of the analytic presentation through one of two opposite predicates. And it contains a tran scendental presupposition, viz., of the matter for all possibility, the mat ter28 that is to contain a priori the data for the particular possibility of ev ery thing. The proposition that every existing thinl9 is thomughl/o determined means not only that of each pair of given predicates opposed to each other, but also that of all possible [pairs of] predicates one always belongs to the thing. This proposition does not just logically compare predicates with one another, but compares transcendentally the thing itself with the sum of all possible predicates. What it means is that in order to cognize a thing com24 [Dieses; Kant writes this whole sentence as if he had just said Prinzip rather than Grund satz. Cf. A vii br n. 7.) 25 [gesamte Moglichkeit.) 26 [ Or perhaps, 'presupposing this possibility as a pnori condition . ' ] ,
27Hence through this principle every thing is referred to a common correlate, viz., possibility in its entirety. This entire possibility (i.e., the material for all possible predicates), if it were found in the idea of some single thing, would prove an af finity of all possible thingsa through the identity of the basisb of their thoroughgo ing determination. The determinability of every concept is subordinated to the uni versalityC (universalitas) of the principle of the excluded middle between two opposite predicates; but the determination of every thing is subordinated to the all nessd (universitas) or [i.e.] the sum of all possible predicates. " [alles Miiglichen.)
b [Or 'ground' ; see B xix br. n. 79.]
C[Allgemeinheit.) d [Allheit. Cf. A 80/B 106 ) 28 [Or, perhaps, 'the possibility. ' )
29 [alles Existierende.] JO [durrhgiingig; �imilarly (twice) in the next paragraph.]
SECTION II
ON THE lRANSCENDENTAL IDEAL
565
pletely, one must cognize everything possible and thereby determine the thing, whether affirmatively or negatively. Thoroughgoing determination, consequently, is a concept that we can never exhibit in concreto as regards its totality; and hence this concept is based on an idea that resides only in reason, the power which prescribes to the understanding the rule of the un derstanding's complete use. Now, to be sure, this idea of the sum of all possibility insofar as this sum underlies, as condition, the thoroughgoing determination of every thing-is itself still indeterminate with regard to the predicates that may make up that sum, and we think through it nothing more than a sum of all possible predicates as such. Yet upon closer investigation we find that this idea, as original concept,3! expels a multitude of predicates which, as de rivative, are already given through other predicates, or which are not con sistent with one another,3 2 and that the idea thus refines33 itself until it be comes a concept thoroughly determined a priori. The idea thereby becomes the concept of a single34 object that is determined thoroughly through the mere idea, and that must therefore be called an ideal of pure reason. If we consider all possible predicates not just logically but transcenden tally, i.e., with regard to their content insofar as it can be thought in them a priori, then we find that through some of them we present a being [of something], through others a mere not-being. Logical negation, which is indicated merely by the little word not, 35 never attaches-properly speaking-to a concept [intrinsically] but only to its relation to another con cept in the judgment; and hence it cannot even remotely be sufficient to designate a concept as regards the concept's content. The term not-mortaP6 can in no way allow37 us to cognize that a mere not-being is presented through it in the object; rather, it leaves all content untouched. A transcen dental negation, on the other hand, signifies not-being in itself. It is op posed by transcendental affirmation, which is a something whose concept -
ll [Urbeg riff l l2 [nebeneinander nich/ s/ehen konnen.] ll
u
[la /ern .
]
l4 [Or
'individual' : einzeln ] lS [Emphasis added ]
lfi [Or
'nonmortal' : nichtsterblich. Emphasis added.]
31[geben.]
{ A 574
B 602
566
A 575
}
A 576
}
B 603
B 604
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
expresses already in itself a being and hence is called reality3 !! (thing hood39). For through this affirmation alone, and as far as it reaches, are ob jects something (things4o)-whereas the opposing [transcendental] nega tion signifies a mere lack; and where this negation alone is thought, there the annulment of any thing is presented. Now, no one can think a negation determinately without using as a ba sis the opposed affirmation. The person born blind cannot frame the least conception of darkness, because he has none of light; or the savage frame one of poverty, because he is not acquainted with wealth. The ignorant per son has no concept of his ignorance,4 1 because he has none of science;42 etc.43 Hence all concepts of negations are also derivative, and the realities are what contain the data and, so to speak, the matter44 or the transcen dental content for the possibility and thoroughgoing determination of all things. If, therefore, thoroughgoing determination is based by us on a transcen dental substratum in our reason-a substratum that contains, as it were, the entire supply of the material45 from which all possible predicates of things can be obtained-then this substratum is nothing other than the idea of a total46 of reality (omnitudo realitatis). All true negations are then nothing but limits-which they could not be called if the unlimited (the total) did not lie at the basis. 38 [Which is denved from Latin res, thing.]
39 [Sachheit.] 4O [Dinge. ] 4 1 [Unwissenheit.] 42 [Wissenschaft. ]
43The observations and calculations of the astronomers have taught us many mar velous things; but most important, I suppose, is the fact that they have uncovered for us the abyss of our ignorance. For without these [astronomical] cognitions;' human reason could never have conceived this abyss to be so great. Meditating on this [ignorance] must produce a great change in the determination of the final aims of the use of our reason.b ·[Kenntnisse.] b [r follow Wille in attaching this note to the 'etc.' instead of to the preceding sentence 1 44 [Materie.] 45 [Stoff ] 46 [All.J
SECTION II ON THE lRANSCENDENTAL IDEAL
567
But through this [idea of] total possession47 of reality one presents also the concept of a thing in itself as thoroughly determined. And the concept of an ens realissimum48 is the concept of a single49 being [Wesen], because of all possible opposite predicates one predicate, viz., what belongs to be ing [Sein] 5o absolutely, is found in this concept's determination. Hence a transcendental ideal is what underlies the thoroughgoing determination ,found necessarily with everything that exists, and this ideal is what amounts to the supreme and complete material condition5 l of the possibility of ev erything that exists-the condition to which all thinking of objects as such as regards their content must be traced back. But it is also the only ideal proper of which human reason is capable; for this case is the only one where a thing's concept that in itself is universal is determined thoroughly through itself and cognized as the presentation of an individua1.5 2 Logical determination of a concept by reason rests on a disjunctive syl logism,5 3 in which the major premise contains a logical division54 (the di vision of the sphere of a universal concept), the minor premise limits this sphere to a part, and the conclusion determines the concept through this part.55 The universal concept of a reality as such, however, cannot be di vided a priori; for without experience one is not acquainted with any de terminate kinds56 of reality that would be contained under that genus. Hence the transcendental major premise of the thoroughgoing determination of all things is nothing other than the presentation of the sum of all reality. It is a concept that not merely comprises all predicates with regard to their tran scendental content under itself, but that comprises them within itself. And the thoroughgoing determination of any thing rests on the limitation of this 47 [AllbesiIZ.] 48[Most real being.] 49 [Or 'individual': einzeln. ] 50[ Because 'being' in the sense of Sein is clearly broader in meaning than is 'existence' (Ex
istenz, Dasein), inasmuch as it includes (especially in the present context) the ascription of predicates by means of the copula, there is no adequate way in English to avoid the use of 'being' in these two different senses here.] 51
[oberste und vollstandige maleriale Bedingung.J 52 [/ndividuum.] 51 [LiteraIly , 'inference of rea�on" VernunflschlujJ ]
S4 [Einteilung here, Teilung immediately hereafter; similarly later in this paragraph J 55 [See the Logic, §§ 77, 78, Ak IX, 129-30.] 56 [Or 'species ' : Arlell.]
{ A S77
B 60S
568
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
total 57 of reality, inasmuch as some of this reality is attributed to the thing but the rest is excluded. This procedure agrees with the either and or 5 8 of
578 }
A B 606
the disjunctive major premise and the determination of the object through one of the members of this division in the minor premise. Thus the use of reason whereby it lays the transcendental ideal at the basis of its determi nation of all possible things is analogous to the use according to which it proceeds in disjunctive syllogisms. This, however, was the proposition on which I earlier based the systematic division of all transcendental ideas,59 viz., the proposition according to which these ideas are produced in a way parallel and corresponding to the three kinds of syllogisms. It goes without saying that reason, for this its aim of merely presenting the necessary thoroughgoing determination of things, does not presuppose the existence of such a being as conforms to this ideal;6o rather, reason pre supposes only the idea of this being, in order that from an unconditioned totality of thoroughgoing determination it can derive the conditioned one, i.e., the totality of what is limited. Hence the ideal is for reason the arche type (prototypon)6 1 of all things, the things which one and all-as defi cient copies (ectypa)62-take the material for their possibility from that ar chetype, and which while approximating it either more or less are nonetheless always infinitely far from attaining it. Thus all possibility of things (i.e., possibility of the manifold's synthe sis as regards its content) is viewed as derivative, and solely the possibil ity of what includes all reality is viewed as original. For all negations (which, after all, are the only predicates through which everything else can be distinguished from the most real being) are mere limitations of a greater and, finally, of the supreme63 reality; hence they presuppose this reality and are merely derived from it as regards their content. All manifoldness of 57 [All. ] '"[Emphasis on both terms added.] '9[See A 321 -401B 377-99, esp. A 3211B 378.] 60 [Kant himself had earlier tried to infer the existence of God from the real possibility of things. See The Only Possible Basil of Prooffor Demonstrating the Existence of God ( 1 763). Ak. II, 70-92, 162-63. See also the Principorum primorum cognitionis metaphysicae nom dilucidatio (New Elucidation of the First Principles of Cognition in Metaphysics, 1755), Ak I, 385-4 16.] 6 1 [Prototype.] 62[Ectypes.]
·' lhochst. l
SECTION II ON THE 1RANSCENDENTAL IDEAL
569
things is only a way, as multifarious as this manifoldness, of limiting the concept of the supreme reality-the concept which is their common substratum-just as all [geometric] figures are possible only as various ways of limiting infinite space. Hence the object of reason's ideal, an ob ject which is to be found only in reason, is called also the original being64 (ens originarium); insofar as it has no being above it, it is called the su preme being (ens summum); and insofar as everything, as conditioned, is subject to it, it is called the being of all beings (ens entium). All this does not, however, signify the objective relation of an actual object to other things. Rather, it signifies the relation of the idea to concepts, and leaves us in complete ignorance concerning the existence of a being of such ex ceptional superiority. Moreover, because an original being cannot be said to consist of many derivative beings, inasmuch as each of these presupposes that being and hence cannot make it up, the ideal of the original being will have to be thought also as simple. Hence, moreover, the derivation of all other possibility from this origi nal being cannot, strictly65 speaking, be regarded as a limitation of this be ing's supreme reality and, as it were, as a division of this reality. For then the original being would be regarded as a mere aggregate of derivative be ings, which by the foregoing [paragraph] is impossible-although initially we did, in the first rough outline, present the being in this way.66 Rather, the supreme reality would underlie the possibility of all things as a basis, 67 and not as a sum. And the manifoldness of those things would rest not on the limitation of the original being itself, but on that of its complete con sequence. And to this consequence there would belong also our entire sen sibility, along with all reality in [the realm of] appearance; yet this sensi bility cannot belong as an ingredient to the idea of the supreme being. Now if we thus pursue this idea of ours further by hypostatizing it, then we shall be able to determine the original being, through the mere concept of the supreme reality, as a being that is single, simple, all-sufficient, eter nal, etc.-in a word, we shall be able to determine it in its unconditioned
64[Urwesen.] 6S[genau.] fi6[See A 572-73 B 600-601 . and cf. A 577 67[Or 'ground' : Grund; see B xix hr. n. 79.] =
=
B 605 . ]
{ A 579
B 607
{ A 580
B 608
570
A B 609
581 }
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
completeness through all the predicaments. 68 The concept of such a being is that of God, as thought in the transcendental meaning; and thus the ideal of pure reason is the object of a transcendental theology-as, indeed, I have mentioned above. 69 In fact,70 however, such use of the transcendental idea would already overstep the bounds of the idea's [proper] determination and admissibility. For in laying this idea at the basis of the thoroughgoing determination of things as such, reason treated the idea only as the concept of all reality, without demanding that all this reality should be given objectively and should itself amount to a thing. This latter thing is a mere invention through which we integrate71 and realize the manifold of our idea in an ideal re garded as a separate being. We have, however, no right to do this, or even to assume straightforwardly the possibility of such a hypothesis. Nor, in deed, do all the inferences that flow from such an ideal have any bearing, or the slightest influence, on the thoroughgoing determination of things as such-the determination for whose sake alone the idea was needed. Describing our reason's procedure and dialectic is not enough, how ever. We must also try to discover the sources of this dialectic, in order to be able to explain this illusion72 itself, like a phenomenon of understand ing; for the ideal of which we are speaking is based on an idea that is natu ral and not merely chosen.73 I ask, therefore: How does reason come to regard all possibility of things as derived from a single underlying possi bility, viz., that of the supreme reality, and then to presuppose this supreme reality as contained in a separate original being? The answer arises74 on its own from the discussions of the Transcen dental Analytic. The possibility of objects of the senses is a relation of these objects to our thinking. In this relation something (viz., the empirical form) can be thought a priori. But what amounts to the matter-viz., the reality in [the realm of] appearance (i.e., what corresponds to sensation)-must be given, for without being given it could in no way even be thought, and 68 [l .e . , basic concepts.]
69[A 334-35/B 391 -92.] 7°rdoch.] 71 [zusammenfassen.] 72 [Schein ] 73 [Or, perhaps, 'arbitrary' : willkrirlich.] 74[bietet sich . . dar.]
SECTION II
ON THE TRANSCENDENTAL IDEAL
57 1
hence its possibility could not be presented. Now, an object of the senses can be determined thoroughly75 only if it is compared with all predicates of [the realm of] appearance and presented through them affinnatively or negatively. In this process, however, what amounts to the thing itself (in [the realm of] appearance)-viz., the real-must be given, for without be ing given it could in no way even be thought. But that wherein the real of all appearances is given is the single, all-encompassing experience. There fore, the matter for the possibility of all objects of the senses must be pre supposed as given in one sum76-as that on whose limitation alone all pos sibility of empirical objects, their difference77 from one another, and their thoroughgoing detennination can rest. Now in fact no objects but those of the senses can be given to us, and they can be given to us nowhere but in the context of a possible experience. Consequently, nothing is an objectfor us unless it presupposes the sum of all empirical reality as condition of its possibility. Now in accordance with a natural illusion78 we regard this pre supposition as a principle79 that must hold for all things as such-although it is a principle that properly holds only for those things that are given as objects of our senses. Consequently, the empirical principle80 of our con cepts of the possibility of things as appearances will be regarded by us, through omission of this limitation, as a transcendental principle of the pos sibility of things as such. But the fact that we thereafter hypostatize this idea of the sum of all re ality is due to the following. We dialectically transfonn the distributive unity of the understanding's experiential use into the collective unity of a whole of experience;8 1 and by this whole of appearance we think an individual thing containing all empirical reality within itself. And this thing is then confused, by means of the already thought transcendental subreption,82 with 7S [durchgiingig .] 76 [Or 'sum total ' : Inbegriff.] 17Wnterschied.] 7a[lI/usian.] 79 [Grundsatz (likewise twice just below).] RO [Prin zip. This tenn is synonymous with Grundsatz. See A vii br. n. 7 .] al [ef. the Critique of Judgment. Ak. V, 406-8.)
a2[I.e., the subreption whereby the presupposition of the sum of all empirical reality is regarded as a principle that holds for all things as such. On subreption, see A 643 = B 671 inc!. hr. n. 14.)
{ A 582
B 610
{ A 583 B 611
572
PART I I TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
the concept of a thing that stands at the top of the possibility of all things, for whose thoroughgoing determination it provides the real conditions. 83
Chapter III
Section III On Speculative Reason' s B ases of Proof for Inferring the Existence of a Supreme Being 84
584 }
A B 612
Although reason has this urgent need to presuppose something that can serve the understanding as a complete basis for the latter's thoroughgoing determination of its concepts, it yet discerns that such a presupposition is ideal and merely fictitious. Reason discerns this far too easily to be per suaded, by this presupposition alone, to assume that a mere creature of its own thought85 is an actual being. Reason would not assume such a being if it were not pressed by something else to seek its state of rest somewhere in the regression from the conditioned, which is given, to the uncondi tioned; although this unconditioned is not in itself and according to its mere concept given as actual, yet it alone can complete the series of conditions 83Hence this ideal of the maximally real being,a although it is a mere presentation, is first realized, i.e., turned into an object; thereupon it is hypostatized; finally, by a natural advance of reason to the completionb of unity, the ideal is even personified-as we shall soon set forth. For the regulative unity of experience rest, not on the appearances themselves (i.e., on sensibility alone), but on the connec tion of their manifold through the understanding (in an apperception); hence the unity of the supreme reality and the thoroughgoing detelminability (possibility) of all things seem to lie in a supreme understanding, and hence in an intelligence. a[Or 'supremely real being': des allerreal.lten Wesens. i.e., the ens reafiuimum. ] b[Or 'perfection ' : Vollendung.) 8<[See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 2931B 349 br. n. 2, vol. 3, 459-74. See also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 525-27.)
8 ' [SeibstgeschOpf ihres Denkens.)
SECTION III
EXISTENCE OF SUPREME BEING
573
when these are traced to their bases. Now, this is the natural course taken by every--even the commonest-human reason, although not every hu man reason perseveres in it. Human reason starts not from concepts, but from common experience, and hence lays at the basis something existent. This ground,86 however, sinks unless it rests on the immovable rock of the absolutely necessary. But this rock itself hovers unsupported if there is still empty space outside and under it, and if the rock does not itself fill all, and thus leave no more room for any why-viz., by being infinite in terms of reality. If something-whatever it may be--exists, then we must grant also that something or other exists necessarily. For the contingent exists only under the condition of another [existent] as its cause; and for this cause the same inference holds again; and so on, until we get to a cause that is not con tingent and that precisely therefore is there without any condition and nec essarily. This is the argument on which reason bases its advance to the origi nal being. Now, reason looks around for the concept of a being that fits such a su periority of existence87 as unconditioned necessity is. Reason does this not so much in order then to infer a priori from the concept of this being the being's existence (for if it dared to do that, then it would have no need whatever to investigate more than mere concepts, and would not have to lay at the b�sis88 a given existence). Rather, reason looks around for the concept of such a being in order to find, among all concepts of possible things, the concept that has within it nothing that conflicts with absolute necessity. For it regards as already established, according to the earlier in ference, that surely something or other must exist with absolute89 neces sity. If reason can now remove everything that, except for one [thing], is incompatible with this necessity, then this [one thing] is the absolutely nec essary being-whether or not we can comprehend this being's necessity, i.e., derive it from the being's concept alone. Now, that [being] whose concept contains within itself the therefore for every wherefore90 and is in no point and in no respect defective but is ev erywhere sufficient as condition-[that being] seems to be, precisely there-
afi[Boden.] 87 [Existenz here, Da�'eilJ twice just below Similarly in the remainder of this section ] s8[Of its inference.] 89[schlechthin here and just below, absolut earlier in this section.]
9OU.e., for every
why,
emphasis in both terms added.]
{ A 585
B 613
574
A 586 B 614
}
A 587 B 615
}
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
fore, the being that is fitting for absolute necessity. For since it itself pos sesses all conditions for all that is possible, it does not itself require-nor is even capable of [depending on]-any condition, and consequently sat isfies at least in one point the concept of unconditioned necessity. In this regard it cannot be equaled by any other concept that, being deficient and in need of supplementation, manifests no such characteristic9 1 as indepen dence from all further conditions. From this inequality, it is true, one can not yet safely infer that what does not92 contain within itself the supreme and in every respect complete condition must therefore itself be condi tioned as regards its existence; but still, it then does not have in it the one mark93 of unconditioned existence that reason can cope with in order to cognize-through an a priori concept-some being as unconditioned. Hence the concept of a being of supreme reality would, among all con cepts of possible things, be most fitting for the concept of an uncondition ally necessary being. And although it does not satisfy this latter concept completely, we still have no choice here, but find ourselves compelled to keep to this concept. 94 For we must not cast the existence of a necessary being to the winds; but if we admit the existence of such a being, we still cannot find in the entire realm of possibility anything that could lay a better based95 claim [than can this being of supreme reality] to such a superi ority [as necessity] of existence. Such, then, is human reason's natural course. Human reason first con vinces itself of the existence of some necessary being. In this being it cog nizes an unconditioned existence. Now it seeks the concept of what is in dependent of any condition, and finds this concept in what is itself the sufficient condition for everything else, i.e., in what contains all reality. But the total96 without limits is absolute unity and carries with it the concept of a being that is single, viz., the supreme being. And thus human reason infers that the supreme being, as original basis of all things, exists97 with absolute necessity. 9 1 [Merkmal ] 92 [Emphasis added.]
93 [Merkzeichen The mark is independence of further conditions, viz .. by being the sufficient condition for everything else, i.e . • by containing all reality. Cf the next two paragraphs.]
94 [Of a being of supreme reality ] 95 [einen gegrundeterel1 ] 96 [All. ] "7 [da sei.l
SECTION III
EXISTENCE OF SUPREME BEING
575
This concept [of the supreme being] cannot be denied to have a certain soundness98 if one is talking about making decisions, i.e., if the existence of some necessary being has been granted and one agrees that one must take sides and decide wherein to posit this being. For then one cannot choose more fittingly---or, rather, one has no choice at all but is compelled to give one's vote to the absolute unity of complete reality as the original source of possibility. However, if nothing impels us to decide and we would prefer to leave this whole matter aside until the full weight of the bases of proof would force us to give our assent-i.e., if we are concerned merely with judging how much we do know and what we merely flatter ourselves to know about this problem-then the above inference appears in a far less advantageous guise, and requires our favor to compensate for its lack of legitimate claims. For, that inference is defective even if we consent t099 everything as it here lies before us: viz., first, that there is a correct inference from some given existence (perhaps even merely my own) to the existence of an un conditionally necessary being; and second, that a being containing all re ality and therefore also every condition must be regarded as absolutely l OO unconditioned, and that, consequently, the concept of a thing that is fitting for absolute necessity has thereby been found. Even from all this one can in no way infer that the concept of a limited being, which does not have supreme reality, therefore contradicts absolute necessity. For although in this limited being's concept we do not find the unconditioned that already carries with it the total of conditions, we still can in no way infer from this that this being's existence must, on that very account, be conditioned-just as in a hypothetical syllogism I cannot say that when a certain condition (viz., here, that of completeness according to concepts) is not there, then the conditioned also is not there. Rather, we remain at liberty to accept all the remaining-limited-beings as likewise unconditionally necessary, al though we cannot infer their necessity from the universal concept that we have of them. In this way, however, the present argument would not have provided us with the least concept of the properties of a necessary being, and would have accomplished nothing whatsoever. Nonetheless, this argument for a supreme being retains a certain impor tance, and retains an authority that cannot immediately be taken from it 98[Griindlichkeit ] 99 [gut sein lassen.] I('(J[schlechthin here, absolut twice just below.]
{ A 588
B 616
576 A 589 B 617
}
A 590 B 618
}
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
because of this objective insufficiency. For suppose there are obligations that, while being entirely right in the idea of reason, would be without any reality when applied to ourselves-i .e., would be without any incentives 1 01_unless a supreme being were presupposed that could pro vide such practical laws with efficacy and forcefulness. l 02 In that case w e would also have an obligation to follow practical concepts which, al though perhaps not sufficient objectively, are still preponderant by the stan dard of reason, and by comparison with which we still cognize nothing that is better and more convincing. Thus the duty to choose would here, through a practical addition, 1 03 upset the balance left by the inconclusiveness of speculation. 1 04 Indeed, reason would get no justification from itself, its most lenient judge, if-when subject to urgent motivating causesl 05 but en dowed with only deficient insightlO6-it had not followed these bases of its judgment, since, after all, we are at least not acquainted with any that are superior and better. Because this argument [for a supreme being] rests on the intrinsic in sufficiency of what is contingent, it is in fact transcendental. Nonetheless, the argument is so simple 1 07 and natural that even the commonest human mind, 108 once led to the argument, is adequate to it. One sees things change, arise, and pass away. Hence they, or at least their state, must have a cause. But the same question 1 09 can be asked about any cause that may ever be given in experience. Now where could 1 1 0 we put the highest causality more appropriately than where there is also the supreme lll causality? I.e., the 1 01 [Or 'springs' : Triebfedern.] I 02[Wirkung und Naehdruek; cf. A 8 1 1 B 840. On the necessity of presupposing a supreme being on moral grounds, see A 804- 1 9 B 832-47, esp. A 8 1 3- 1 5 B 841 -42 ] =
=
=
103[Whereby we are to presuppose a supreme being.] I04[Regarding such a being.] I05[l.e., practical concepts (bases of reason's practical judgment) that-as Kant has just said-are preponderant by the standard of reason although perhaps not sufficient objectively.] I06[Insight insufficient to decide theoretically whether there is a supreme being.] I07[einfditig.] I 08[Mensehensinn.]
!09[As to what is the cause ] I IO[sollen ]
I 1 1 [Respectively, oberst and hoehst. I have been translating hochst as 'supreme' because 's u preme being' renders hoehstes Weun more idiomatically than does 'highest being. ' ]
SECTION III EXISTENCE OF SUPREME BEING
577
highest causality must surely be put into that being which contains within itself originally the sufficiency for every 1 12 possible effect, and the concept of which also arises very easily from the single characteristic of an all encompassing perfection. This supreme cause we then regard as absolutely necessary, because we find our ascending to it absolutely necessary and also find no basis 1 1 3 for going still further and beyond this cause. With all peoples, therefore, we see shining through their blindest polytheism 1 14 some sparks of monotheism, l i S to which they have been led not by meditation and deep speculation, but only by the common understanding's natural course that has gradually become understandable to them.
ONLY THREE WAYS OF PROVING THE EXISTENCE OF GOD FROM SPECULATIVE REASON ARE POSSIBLE All the paths that one may enter upon with this aim [of proving theoreti cally the existence of God] follow one of three courses. They either start from determinate experience and the particular character-cognized thereby-of our world of sense, and from this character ascend according to laws of causality to the supreme cause [existing] apart from the world; or they empirically lay at the basis indeterminate experience only, i.e., some existence; or, finally, they abstract from all experience and infer com pletely a priori, from mere concepts, the existence of a supreme cause. The first proof is the physicotheological, the second the cosmological, the third the ontological proof. There neither are, nor can be, any more such proofs. I shall establish that reason accomplishes no more on the one path (the empirical) than it does on the other (the transcendental), and that reason spreads its wings in vain in trying to get beyond the world of sense by the mere force 1 1 6 of speculation. But as for the order in which these ways of proving [the existence of God] must be put forth, it will be exactly the re verse of the order which the gradually expanding reason takes and in which We [here] also placed them at first. For we shall find that although expe1 1 2 [Reading, with Erdmann and the Akademie edition, jeder for der.] In [Or 'ground' : Grund; see B xix br n. 79.]
114[ Vieig6Iterei ] 1 1'[Monolheismus .] 1 1 6 [Macht.]
{ A 591
B 619
578
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
rience provides the first prompting for such proofs, yet the mere transcen dental concept is what guides reason in this its endeavor and what in all such attempts marks out the goal that reason has set for itself. Hence I shall begin by examining the transcendental proof, and shall see thereafter what adding the empirical considerations can do to increase its cogency. 11 7
A 592 B 620
}
Chapter III
Section IV On the Impossibility of an Ontological Proof of the 1l8 Existence of GO d From what has been said thus far, we see that the concept of an absolutely necessary being is a pure concept of reason, i.e., a mere idea, whose ob jective reality is far from proved by the mere fact that reason requires this idea. Indeed, the idea only instructs us to seek a certain-although unattainable---completeness, and serves in fact more to confine 1 l 9 the un derstanding than to expand it to new objects. Now here we find the strange and preposterous fact that although the inference from a given existence as such to some absolutely necessary existence seems to be compelling and correct, we nonetheless have all the conditions of the understanding en tirely against us when we attempt to frame a concept of such a necessity. People have at all times spoken of the absolutely l20 necessary being. and have taken pains not so much to understand whether and how a thing I
17 [More literally, 'proving force' : Beweiskraft.]
l l R [ See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 293/B 349 br. n. 2, vol. 3, 474-86. Also Nonnan Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n 5, 527-3 1 . Also T. K. Swing, op. cit. at A 3 1 O/B 366 br n. 94. 30 1 - 1 5 . And see T. D. Weldon. op. cit. at A 2 1/B 35 br. n 22, 229-30. See also the Critiqlle of Judgment, 475-76, and cf. 473.J
1 1 9 [Or 'to bound': begrenzen.] 12{J[absolut.]
SECTION IV
ONTOLOGICAL PROOF
579
of this kind can even be thought, but rather to prove its existence. Now a nominal explication of this concept is, indeed, quite easy: we can say, viz., that this being is something whose nonexistence is impossible. But this ex plication leaves us not a whit more informed concerning the conditions that make it necessary121 to regard a thing's nonexistence as absolutely 122 un thinkable. And yet these conditions are what we want to know; i.e., we want to know whether or not we think anything at all through this concept. 123 For if by means of the word unconditionallyl24 I dismiss all the conditions that the understanding always requires in order to regard something as nec essary, this does not come close to enabling me to understand whether then still think something through a concept of an unconditionally neces sary being, or perhaps think through it nothing at all. What is still more: once people had ventured to accept this concept merely haphazardly and had finally become quite familiar with it, they even believed themselves to be explicating it by a multitude of examples. And thus there seemed to be no need whatever for any further inquiry as to whether the concept is understandable. People knew that every proposition of geometry---e .g., the proposition that a triangle has three angles-is ab solutely necessary; and thus they spoke even of an object that lies entirely outside the sphere of our understanding l 25 as if they understood quite well what they f!1eant by the concept of this object. In fact all the alleged examples are, without exception, taken from judg ments rather than from things and their existence. But the unconditioned necessity of judgments is not an absolute necessity of things. 126 For the unconditioned necessity of a judgment is only a conditioned necessity of the thing [as subject] or of the predicate in the judgment. The above [geo metric] proposition does not say that three angles are necessary abso lutely;1 27 it says, rather, that under the condition that a triangle is there (i.e., is given), three angles are necessarily also there (in it). Nonetheless, this
{ A 593
B 62 1
I
12 1
[Reading, with Noire, notwendig for unm6glich { 'impossible').]
1 22 [schlechlerdings 1 123 [Of an absolutely or unconditionally necessary being.] 124[unbedingt, which also means 'unconditioned ' ] 1 2' [Viz., God.] 1 26[Sachen here (and similarly just below); Dinge just above.] 1 27 [schlechlerdings here; absolul (twice) just above ]
{ A 594
B 622
580
A 595 B 623
}
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
merely logical necessity has proved to have great powerl 28 of illusion. For people framedl 29 an a priori concept of a thingl 30 and arranged this con cept in such a way that-in their opinion-it comprised in its range als0 13 1 existence. 1 32 Having framed the concept in this way, they believed that they could safely infer the being's existence. For since existence necessarily be longs to the object of this concept-i.e., under the condition that this thing is posited as given (existing) 1 33-the object's existence is (according to the rule of identity) 134 necessarily also posited. And hence this being is itself absolutely necessary, because-in a concept that has been assumed at will-this being's existence also1 35 is thought, viz., under the condition that the concept's object is posited. If in an identical I 36 judgment I annul the predicate and retain the sub ject, then a contradiction arises, and hence I say that the predicate belongs to the subject necessarily. But if I annul the subject along with the predi cate, then no contradiction arises, for nothing is left that could be contra dicted. To posit a triangle and yet to annul its three angles is contradictory; but to annul the triangle along with its three angles is not a contradiction. And with the concept of an absolutely necessary being the situation is ex actly the same. If you annul the being's existence, then you annul the thing itself with all its predicates. Whence, then, is the contradiction to come? Extrinsically\ 37 there is nothing that would be contradicted, for the thing is not to be necessary extrinsically. 1 38 Intrinsically to the thing there is also nothing that would be contradicted; for by annulling the thing itself you have simultaneously annulled everything intrinsic to it. God 1 39 is omnipotent-this is a necessary judgment. The omnipotence cannot be an! 28 [Macht.] 129 [Viz., in the ontological proof.] 1 30 [l.e. of a being.] ,
131 [mit.] 1 32 [Dasein, here and in the remainder of the paragraph.] 1 3 3 [existierend ] 1 J4[l.e., in this case, whatever is existent is existent.]
1 35 [mit. ] 1 3 6 [ l .e., analytic (true by virtue of the meaning of its tenns).] 1 37 [To the thing Similarly just below ] ! '"[l.e., necessitated by something other than itself.]
1 39 [Gatt ]
SECTION IV
ONTOLOGICAL PROOF
581
nulled if you posit a deity, 1 40 i.e., an infinite being, with [part of] whose concept the concept of omnipotence is identical. But if you say God does not exist, 1 4 1 then neither omnipotence nor any other of his predicates is given; for they are all annulled along with 1 42 the subject, and hence this thought does not manifest the least contradiction. Thus you have seen that if I annul the predicate of a judgment together with143 the subject, then an intrinsicl44 contradiction can never arise-no matter what the predicate may be. You are now left with no escape except to say that there are subjects that cannot be annulled at all and that hence must remain. This, however, would be equivalent to saying that there are absolutely necessary subjects-the very presupposition whose correctness I doubted and whose possibility you wanted to show me. For I cannot frame the slightest concept of a thing that, if it were annulled with all its predi cates, would leave a contradiction; and without a contradiction I have, through pure a priori concepts alone, no mark of impossibility. Wishing now to argue against all these general conclusions (which no one can refuse to accept), you challenge me with a case that you put forth as a factual145 proof. You argue that there is indeed one concept-and, moreover, only this onel46-where the nonexistence or annulment of the concept's object is self-contradictory; viz., the concept of the maximally real 1 47 being. This being, you say, has all reality, and you are entitled to assume such a being as possible. (This possibility I concede for now, al though the fact that a concept does not contradict itself is far from prov ing the object's possibility.)148 Now [so you argue] all reality includes 1 40 [ Gattheit.]
141 [Literally, 'God is not' : Gatt ist nicht.] 142 [zusamt . ] 14J [zusamt . ] 144[Or 'internal': inner.l 145 [durch die Tal.]
146[Emphasis added.] 1 47
[allerrealst.]
1411A concept is always possible if it does not contradict itself. This is the logical mark of possibility, and by this mark the concept's object is distinguished from the nihil negativum.a But the concept may nonetheless be an empty one if the objec tive reality of the synthesis whereby the concept is produced is not separately es tablished. However, as has been shown above,b establishing this reality rests al Ways on principles of possible experience and not on the principle" of analysis (the
{ A 596
B 624
582
A 597 B 625
}
A 598 B 626
}
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
alsol49 existence; hence existence lies within the concept of a possible thing. I SO If now this thing is annulled, then the thing's intrinsic possibility is annulled-which is contradictory. I reply: You have already committed a contradiction if, in offering the concept of a thing that you wanted to think merely as regards its possibil ity, you have already brought into this concept-no matter under what co vert name lSI_the concept of the thing's existence. I S2 If this [move] is granted to you, then you have seemingly won your point/ 53 but in fact you have said nothing, because you have committed a mere tautology. I ask you: is the proposition that this or that thing exists (a thing that, whatever it may be, I grant you as possible)-is this proposition, I ask, an analytic or a syn thetic one? If the proposition is analytic, then by asserting the thing's ex istence you add nothing to your thought of the thing. But in that case ei ther the thought, which is in you, would have to be the thing itself; or you have presupposed an existence as belonging to possibility, and have then allegedly inferred the thing's existence from the thing's intrinsic possibility-which is nothing but a pitiful tautology. The word reality, which merely sounds different in the concept of the thing [as sUbject] from [the word] existence 1S4 in the concept of the predicate, is of no help. 1 55 For even if you call all positing [of a subject] reality (whatever it is that you are positing), you have in the concept of the subject already posited, and assumed as actual, the thing with all its predicates and are merely re peating it in the predicate. On the other hand, if you admit-as any reaprinciple of contradiction). This point is a warning that we must not from the (logi cal) possibility of concepts immediately infer the (real) possibility of things. ·[Negative nothing. ] b[See esp. A 1 55-57/B 1 94-96, and cf. the beginning o f this chapter, A 567-69 = B 595-97.] C[Grundsatz here, Prinzipien just above, Satz just below. See A vii br. n. 7. and A 571 = B 599 br. n. 22.]
1 49[mitbegreifen . . . unter; emphasis on 'all reality' added.] 1 50 [von einem Moglichen ] lSI
[Such as 'reality' or (cf., just below, the analytic version of 'This or that thing exists') 'real possibility.']
1 52[Exi.�tenz here. Dasein in the preceding paragraph. Similarly in the remainder of this sec·
tion.]
15 3[Spiel.] 1 54[Emphasis added; likewise for 'reality ' just above and just below.]
155 [macht es nicht aus.]
SECTION IV
ONTOLOGICAL PROOF
583
sonable person must-that any existential proposition is synthetic, then how can 1 56 you assert that the predicate of existence cannot be annulled with out contradiction? For this superiority 157 belongs only to analytic propo sitions as their peculiarity, since their character rests precisely on this [ne cessity]. I would, indeed, hope to eliminate without much ado all this meditative subtlety 158 through an exact determination of the concept of existence-had I not found that the illusion arising from the confusion of a logical with a real predicate (i.e., with the determination of a thing) permits almost no instruction [to dispel the illusion]. Anything whatsoever can serve as a logi cal predicate; even the subject [of a proposition] can be predicated of it self; for logic abstracts from all content. But a determination is a predicate that is added 1 59 to the subject's concept and increases it; hence it must not already be contained in that concept. Being 160 is obviously not a real predicate, 161 i.e., it is not a concept of anything that can be added to the concept of a thing. It is merely the pos iting of a thing [in itself] or of certain determinations in themselves. 1 62 In its logical use it is merely the copula of a judgment. The proposition God is omnipotent contains two concepts that have their objects: God and om nipotence. The little word is is not a further predicate over and above these two, but is only what posits the predicate in 1Y!ference to the subject. If I now take the subject (God) together with all its predicates (to which be longs also omnipotence) and say God is l 63--or, There is a God-then I posit no new predicate as added to the concept of God, but posit only the subject in itself with all its predicates; viz., I posit the object in reference l64 must contain exactly the same; and hence nothing to my concept. Both further can be added to the concept-which expresses only the [object's] 1 S6 [wollt.] 1 57 [Of having such necessity ]
1S8 [grUblerische Argutation.] 1 59
[Viz., in
1 60 [Or
to
a
synthetic proposition.]
be: Sein . ]
16 1 [rea/es (as denved from Latin res. thing) Priidikat. On Kant's famous argument that ex istence is not a (real) predicate, cf. The Only Possible Basis of Prooffor Demonstrating the Existence of God, Ak. II, 72-77, 156-57.] 162 [an sich. used loosely here (with regard to the thing and the determinations).] 163 [I.e., God exists.] ' 64[The object and the concep!.]
{ A 599
B 627
584
A 600 B 628
}
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
possibility-merely because (through the expression it is 165) I think this object as given absolutely. And thus the actual contains no more than the merely possible. 1 66 A hundred actual thalers 1 67 do not contain the least more than a hundred possible thalers. For, the possible thalers signify the con cept and the actual thalers signify the object and the positing thereof in it self; hence if the object contained more than the concept, then my concept would not express the entire object and thus would also not be the concept commensurate with this object. In the state of my assets, however, there is more in the case of a hundred actual thalers than in the case of the mere concept of them (i.e., their mere possibility). For in the case of the hun dred thalers' actuality the object is not merely contained analytically in my concept (which is a determinationl 68 of my stateI 69), but is added syntheti cally to my concept; yet these thought hundred thalers themselves are not in the least augmented by their being outside my concept. Hence no matter through which and through how many predicates I think a thing (even if I think it in its thoroughgoing determination), not the least is added to this thing by my going on to say that this thing is. l 7O For oth erwise what exists would not be the same as I had thought in the concept, but would be more; and I could then not say that exactly the object of my concept exists. Even if I think in a thing all reality except one, the missing reality is not added by my saying that such a deficient thing exists. Rather, the thing then exists as encumbered with exactly the same deficiency with whichl 7 1 I thought it, since otherwise there would exist something other than what I thought. Now if I think a being as the supreme reality (i.e., as a being without deficiency), then there still remains the question as to whether or not this being exists. For although nothing of the possible real content of a thing as such is missing in my concept of this being, yet some thing is still missing in the concept's relation to my entire state of thought, viz., that the cognition of this object is possible also a posteriori. I n And 1 65 [Emphasis added.] 166 [See A 230-321B 282-85.]
167 [See A 1701B 2 1 2 br. n. 97.]
1 68 [I.e., attribute.] 1 69 [The state of my assets.] 1 70
[I.e., exists.]
1 7 1 [als.] I 72
[Not just conceptually and thu� a priori ]
SECTION IV
ONTOLOGICAL PROOF
585
now we find also the cause of the difficulty that prevails here. If an ob ject 173 of the senses were at issue, then I could not confuse the thing's ex istence with the mere concept of the thing. For when the object is thought through the concept, then it is thought only as agreeing with the universal conditions of a possible empirical cognition as such. But when it is thought through existence, then the object is thought as contained in the context of experience as a whole; and here the concept of the object is not in the least augmented by the connection with the content of experience as a whole, although our thinking acquires through this content another possible per ception. But if we wish to think existence through the pure category alone, then we must not be surprised that we cannot indicate any mark whereby to distinguish existence from mere possibility. Hence no matter what and how much our concept of an object may con tain, we must yet go outside the concept in order to assign existence to the object. In the case of objects of the senses this is done through the coher ence of these objects, according to empirical laws, with some one of my perceptions. But for objects of pure thought there is no means whatsoever of cognizing their existence. For their existence would have to be cognized entirely a priori. But our consciousness of any existence (whether such con sciousness arises directly through perception or indirectly through infer ences connecting something with perception) belongs altogether to the unity of experience. And although an existence outside this realm [of experi ence] cannot absolutely be declared to be impossible, it is a presupposition that we cannot justify by anything. The concept of a supreme being is in many respects a very useful idea. But this idea, precisely because it is merely that, is quite incapable of al lowing us to expand, by means of it alone, our cognition regarding what exists. Even as regards possibility the idea is unable to teach us anything further. To be sure, the analytic mark of possibility, which consists in the fact that mere positings 1 74 (realities) cannot generate a contradiction, can not be denied to this concept. 1 75 However, the connection of all real prop erties in a thing is a synthesis whose possibility we cannot judge a priori. For the realities are not given to us specifically. And even if they were, no 1 73[Gegenstand here and throughout the remainder of this section; Objekr just above. In this entire section and everywhere else Kant treats the two terms as interchangeable. See A vii br. n. 7.] 174[positionen.] 1 75[Of a supreme being.)
{ A 60 1
B 629
{ A 602
B 630
586
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
judgment whatever in regard to them [can] take place at all. For, the mark of the possibility of synthetic cognitions must always be sought only in experience; the object of an idea, however, cannot belong to experience. Hence the illustrious 176 Leibniz is far from having accomplished what he flattered himself to have achieved: viz., an a priori insight into the possi bility of such an august 1 77 ideal being. Hence all effort and labor is lost if expended on the famous 178 onto logical (Cartesian) proof of the existence of a supreme being from mere concepts; and, I suppose, a human being could not from mere ideas be come richer in insights 179 any more than a merchant could become richer in assets if he tried to improve his situation by adding a few zeros to his cash balance.
603 } B 631
A
Chapter III
Section V On the Impossibility of a Cosmological Proof of the Existence of God 1 80 Trying1 8 1 to wrest from an idea drawn up entirely by choice 182 the exist ence of the object corresponding to it is something quite unnatural and a 17 6 lberiihml.] 1 77 [Or 'sublime': erhaben. ] 1 78[beriihml.] 1 79[l.e., theoretical cognitions; cf. the etymology of 'theoretical ' ] 1 80[See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 293/B 349 br. n . 2, vol. 3, 486-5 1 1 . Also Nonnan Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br n. 5, 53 1 -37. Also T K. Swing, op cit. at A 3 1O/B 366 br n. 94, 3 1 6- 1 8 And see T D. Weldon, op. cit. at A 2 1 /B 35 br. n. 22, 230-3 \ . See also the Critique of Judgment, 475-76, and cf. 473 ] 1"1
[As does the ontological proof ]
182[ganz willkurlich entworfen j
SECTION V
COSMOLOGICAL PROOF
5 87
mere innovation of school wit. 183 Indeed, the attempt to prove the exist ence of God in this way would never have been made, had it not been pre ceded by two facts: First, our reason had a need to assume, [as the condi tion] for existence as such, something or other that is necessary (at which one can stop in ascending [to ever further conditions]). Second, since this necessity must be unconditioned and a priori certain, reason was forced to seek a concept that would, if possible, satisfy such a demand and allowl 84 us to cognize an existence completely a priori. Now this concept was be lieved to have been found in the idea of a maximally real being. 1 85 And thus this idea was there used only for gaining a more determinate acquain tance with something concerning which one was already otherwise con vinced or persuaded that it must exist-viz., the necessary being. But people concealed this natural course of reason, and instead of ending with this con cept, they tried to start from it in order to derive from it the necessity of existence which the concept was, after all, determined only to supplement. Thus there arose the miscarried ontological proof, which brings with it noth ing satisfactory either for the natural and sound understanding or for any examination that complies with school standards. 1 86 The cosmological proof, which we shall now investigate, retains the con nection of absolute necessity with supreme reality. But rather than make an inference-as did the foregoing [ontological] proof-from supreme re ality to necessity of existence, the cosmological proof instead makes an in ference from the previously given unconditioned necessity of some being to this being's unbounded reality. And to this extent the proof at least puts everything onto the track of a kind of inference that is-I do not know whether rational or subtly reasoningl 87-at least natural. This kind of in ference carries with it the strongestl 88 persuasion not only for the common but also for the speculative understanding-as, indeed, it manifestly also 183 [Schulwitz. (Witz alone is rendered in this translation as 'ingenuity. ' ] 184[geben.]
1 85 [Or 'supremely real being' :
allerrealstes Wesen, i.e., ens realissimum.]
1 80 [On the ontological and the cosmological proofs and the relation between them, cf. the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 475-76. (Kant there considers both these proofs to be ontologi cal, but the former ontological proper.) See also The Only Possible Basis of Prooffor Dem· onstrating the Existence of God, Ak. II, 157-58.] 187[vemiinftigen oder verniinftelnden.] 1 88 [meiste.]
{ A 604
B 632
588
A 605 B 633
}
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
draws the first contours 1 89 for all proofs of natural theology. These con tours have always been followed and will continue to be followed, no mat ter how much they may be decorated and concealed with an abundance Of190 ornamental foliage and curlicues. This proof, which Leibniz 1 9 1 also called the proof a contingentia mundi, 1 92 we shall now lay before us and subject to examination. The proof, then, runs as follows: 1 93 If anything exists, then an abso lutely necessary being must also exist. Now at least I myself exist. There fore, an absolutely 1 94 necessary being exists. The minor premise contains an experience; the major premise contains the inference from an experi ence as such to the existence of the necessary. 195 Thus the proof starts, in fact, from experience, and hence is not conducted entirely a priori, or [i.e.] ontologically. And because the object of all possible experience is called the world/ 96 the proof is called the cosmological proof. Since this proof also abstracts from any particular property of objects of experience whereby this [particular] world may be distinguished from every possible world, the proof's name already distinguishes it also from the physicotheological proof, 197 which uses as bases of proof observations of the particular char acter of this our world of sense. 1 89[Grundlinien.] 190 [noch so viel.] 191 [Emphasis deleted.] 1 92 [From the contingent things of the world.] '9 3 [Cf. the Critique of Judgment (Ak. V, 476): "The other ontological proof (which is also called the metaphysical-cosmologicaL proof) starts from the necessity of the existence of some thing or other (which must certainly be granted, since an existence is given me in self consciousness), and infers from this the complete determination of it as the supremely real being. " ] 194[absoLut here, schlechterdings just above; similarly i n the remainder of this section.]
19sThis inference is too familiar to require being set forth at length here. It rests on the supposedly transcendental natural law of causality whereby everything COIl tingent has its cause; and this cause, if contingent in turn, must likewise have a cause; and so on, until the series of causes subordinated to one another must end at an absolutely necessary cause, without which the series would not have com pleteness. 196[l.e., the cosmos.] '97 [To be discussed in Section VI below,
A 620-30
=
B 648-58.]
SECTION V
COSMOLOGICAL PROOF
589
The proof now continues to infer as follows: The necessary being can bel98 detennined in only one way, i.e., by only one predicate from all pos sible [pairs of] opposite predicates. Consequently, it must bel99 deter mined thoroughly200 by its very concept. 20 1 Now only one concept of a thing is possible that determines the thing thoroughly and a priori, viz., the concept of the ens realissimum. 202 Therefore, the concept of the maxi mally real being is the only concept through which a necessary being can be thought. I.e., a supreme being necessarily exists. -So many subtly reasoning203 principles come together in this cosmo logical argument, that speculative reason here seems to have mustered all its dialectical art in order to bring about the greatest possible transcenden tal illusion. However, let us set examination of these principles204 aside for a while, in order merely to reveal a trick whereby speculative reason puts forth as a new argument what is in fact an old one in disguised shape, and thereby appeals to the agreement between [allegedly] two witnesses: one a witness from pure reason,205 and another with empirical credentials. But in fact there is solely the first witness, who is merely changing his apparel and voice in order to be taken for a second witness. In order to lay its foun dation quite securely, the cosmological proof bases itself on experience, and thereby gives itself the look of being distinct from the ontological proof, which puts its entire confidence in pure a priori concepts alone. But the cosmological proof employs this experience only for taking a single step, viz., the step to the existence of a necessary being as such. What proper ties this being has-this the empirical basis of proof cannot teach us, but reason here entirely abandons this basis of proof and conducts its investi gation among206 concepts only. Viz., reason investigates what properties an absolutely necessary being as such must have, i.e., which among all pos1 98[werden.] 199 [sein.] 2°O[durchgiingig, emphasis added ] 201 [And hence a priori.] 202 M [ aximally real being.] 203 [vemunftelnde.] 204[ihre; the term could refer, alternatively, to the dialectical son.]
2Os[reiner VemunJtzeuge.] 206[hinter.]
art
or even to speculative rea
{ A 606
B 634
{ A 607 B 635
590
A 608 B 636
}
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
sible things contains within itself the required207 conditions (requisita)208 for an absolute necessity. Now, reason believes that it finds these requisites solely and exclusively in the concept of a maximally real being, and it then infers that this maximally real being is the absolutely necessary being. Clearly, however, one is here presupposing that the concept of a being of supreme reality is completely adequate to the concept of absolute neces sity of existence, i.e., that the absolute necessity of existence can be in ferred from the supreme reality-a proposition that was asserted by the on tological argument. Hence the ontological argument, although it was to have been avoided, is in fact being assumed and laid at the basis in the cosmo logical proof. For absolute necessity is an existence based on 209 mere con cepts. If I now say that the concept of the ens realissimum is such a concept-and is, moreover, the only one that is suitable and adequate to necessary existence--then I must also concede that necessary existence can be inferred from this concept. Hence the ontological proof alone, con ducted from mere concepts, is what in fact contains all the cogenc/ 10 in the so-called cosmological proof. And the alleged experience [appealed to in the proof] is entirely futile-sufficient, perhaps, for merely leading us to the concept of absolute necessity, but not for establishing this necessity in any determinate thing. For as soon as we aim at establishing this neces sity in a determinate thing, we must immediately leave all experience and search among pure concepts, in order to discover which of them might con tain the conditions of the possibility of an absolutely necessary being. But once2 1 l we gain insight in this way into the possibility of such a being, then the being's existence is also established. For this possibility means the same as that among all possible things 2 1 2 there is one that carries with it absolute necessity, i.e., this being exists with absolute necessity. All deceptions committed in making inferences are discovered most eas ily if they are displayed in a manner complying with school standards. Here is such an exposition. 207 [erforderlich.] 2°"[Requisites.]
209 [aus.] 2 \O [More literally, 'proving force' . Beweiskraft ] 21 1 [nur. ] 2 1 2 [unter aUem Mogiichen.]
SECTION V COSMOLOGICAL PROOF
591
Consider the proposition (which i s the nervus probandi21 3 of the cos mological proof) that any absolutely necessary being is als02 14 the maxi mally real being. If this proposition is correct, then it must, like all affi.r mative judgments, be convertible at least per accidens215-i.e., at least to this proposition: some maximally real beings are also absolutely necessary beings. However, one ens realissimum is in no respect different from an other; and hence what holds for some beings contained under this concept holds also for all. Hence I shall (in this case) be able to convert the propo sition also simpl/ 1 6-i.e., to this one: any maximally real being is a nec essary being. Now because this proposition is determined a priori and merely from its concepts, 217 the mere concept of the maximally reaf 1 8 be ing must carry with it also this being's absolute necessity. But this is pre cisely what the ontological proof asserted, and what the cosmological proof did not want to acknowledge but nonetheless laid at the basis of its infer ences, although in a covert manner. Thus the second path taken by speCUlative reason in order to prove the existence of the supreme being not only is just as deceptive as the first, but has the further defect of committing an ignoratio elenchi. 2 1 9 For it prom ises to lead us along a new course, but after a little detour takes us back again onto the old course that we had left for its sake. I said just previously220 that in this cosmological argument there lies hidden an entire nest of dialectical claims-a nest that transcendental cri tique can easily discover and destroy. I shall now only cite these claims, and shall leave it to the already practiced reader to investigate these de ceptive principles further and to annul them. 2 \ 3 [Nerve of the proof.] 2 14[zugleich; likewise in the converse by limitation. just beloW.] 2IS
[On conversion. including conversion per accidens (by contingent [fact]. i.e., conversion by limitation), cf. the Logic. Ak. IX, 1 1 8- 1 9.] 21 6 [Rather than per accidens (by limitation): schlechthin.] 2 1' [Erdmann wonders whether instead of aus seinen we should read aus reinen: 'from pure concepts.']
21 8 [Kant actually says just real.1t here ( ' most rea! '). rather than allerrellist.] 21 9
[The fallacy of misconstruing one's argument. normally by alleging to prove one propo sition while actually proving another. but here by alleging to u�e certain premises while ac tually using others.]
22o[At the beginning of the first full paragraph at A 606
=
B 634.]
{ A 609
B 637
592
A 610 B 638
}
A 611 B 639
}
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
Thus we find, e.g.: ( 1 ) The transcendental principle for making an in ference from the contingent to a cause. This principle has signification22 1 only in the world of sense, but outside this world it has no meaning222 at all. For the merely intellectual concept of the contingent can in no way produce a synthetic proposition, such as the principle of causality; and the principle of causality has no signification whatever and no mark for its use except only in the world of sense. Yet here [in the cosmological proof] the principle was to serve precisely for getting beyond the world of sense. (2) The principle223 for inferring a first cause from the impossibility, in the world of sense, of an infinite series of causes given above224 one another. The principles of reason's use do not entitle us to make this inference225 even in experience, and still less to extend this principle beyond experi ence (to [a realm] to which this chain [of causes] cannot be expanded at all). (3) Reason's false self-satisfaction as regards the completion of this series. It arises through the fact that one finally removes any [further] con dition, while yet without [such further] condition no concept of a neces sity can take place; and since nothing further can then be comprehended, this226 is assumed to be a completion of one's concept [of the series]. (4) The confusion of the logical possibility of a concept of all united re ality (without internal contradiction) with the transcendental possibility [of that reality] . The latter possibility requires a principle of the feasibility of such a synthesis; such a principle, however, can again apply only to the realm of possible experiences-etc. The cosmological proof is an artistic feat that aims merely at evading the attempt to prove the existence of a necessary being a priori and through mere concepts. For, such a proof would have to be conducted ontologi cally; but we feel entirely incapable of doing this. With this aim227 we lay at the basis an actual existence (an experience as such) and infer from it. as best we can, some absolutely necessary condition of this existence. We then do not need to explicate the possibility of this condition; for if the " I [Bedeutung.] 222 [Sinn ] 22' [This term substituted in B; A had 'inference. " ] 224 [I.e., as superordinated to.] 22SrOr, possibly, 'do not entitle us to this principle': wozu
. . lIicht berechtigen. ] 226 [I.e. the removal of any further conditions--or, possibly, the fact that nothing funher can ,
be comprehended.]
227[Of evading an ontological proof.]
SECTION V
COSMOLOGICAL PROOF
593
condition has been proved to exist, then there is no need whatever to raise the question concerning its possibility. If now we want to determine this necessary being more closely as regards its character,228 then we do not229 seek what [condition] is sufficient for comprehending from [the being's] concept the necessity of [the being's] existence; for if we could find this [condition], then we would not need an empirical presupposition. No, we seek230 only the negative condition (conditio sine qua non)23 1 without which a being would not be absolutely necessary. Now this procedure would, indeed, be acceptable in any other kind of inferences from a given consequence to its basis. But here, unfortunately, it so happens that the con dition being demanded for absolute necessity can be found in only one be ing. Hence this being would have to contain within its concept everything that is required for absolute necessity [viz., supreme reality] . And thus this [condition, viz., supreme reality,] makes an inference to this absolute ne cessity possible a priori. 23 2 I.e., I would thus have to be able to infer [not only that any absolutely necessary being is also the maximally real be ing,233 but] also, conversely, that anything to which this concept (of su preme reality) applies is absolutely necessary. And if I cannot make this inference (as, indeed, I must confess that I cannot if I want to avoid the ontological proof), then I have come to grief on my new path and find my self back again where I started. The concept of a supreme being does, in deed, satisfy all a priori questions that can be raised concerning the intrin sic determinations of a thing; and hence this concept is also an ideal without equal, because the universal concept234 distinguishes this being among all possible things also as an individual. But the concept of a supreme being does not at all satisfy the question concerning this being's own existence. Yet only that was, in fact, the concern. 235 And to the inquiry of someone who already assumed the existence of a necessary being and who only 228 [Or nature ] 229 [As does the ontological proof.] 230 [In the cosmological proof.] 23 1 ["Condition without which not," i.e., necessary condition.] 232 [Or, perhaps, 'makes possible an a priori inference to this absolute necessity. '] 233 [This being the "nerve" of the cosmological proof; see A 608 = B 636, the beginning of the last paragraph.] 234 [As universal.] 235 [In the cosmological proof.]
{ A 612
B 640
594
A 613 B 641
}
PART II lRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
wanted to know which among all things would have to be regarded as that being, one was still unable to respond: This [being] here is the necessary being. We may, indeed, be pennitted to assume the existence of a being of su preme sufficiency as cause for all possible effects, in order to facilitate rea son's search for unity among its bases of explanation. But to presume so much as to say that such a being necessarily exists is no longer the modest utterance of a pennitted hypothesis, but the audacious claim to an apode ictic certainty. For the cognition of what one alleges to cognize as abso lutely necessary must likewise carry with it absolute necessity. The entire problem of the transcendental ideal depends on this: either to find for absolute necessity a concept [of a being having such necessity], or to find for the concept of some thing the thing's absolute necessity. If one can perform one of these tasks, then one must also be able to perform the other; for reason cognizes as absolutely necessary only what is neces sary by its very concept. However, both tasks entirely surpass all our ut most endeavors to satisfy our understanding on this point, but surpass also all attempts to calm the understanding on account of this incapacity. Unconditioned necessity, which we so indispensably require as the ul timate support236 of all things, is for human reason the true abyss. Even eternity, no matter how awesomely sublime it may be depicted to be by someone like Haller, 237 does not make nearly the same dizzying impres sion on the mind; for it only measures the duration of things, but does not support them. One cannot fend off the thought, nor can one bear it, that a being conceived by us as supreme among all possible beings might, as it were, say to itself: I am from eternity to eternity, and apart from me there is nothing except what is something merely through my will; but whence, then, am I? Here everything gives way beneath us; and the greatest no less than the littlest perfection merely hovers unsupported23 8 before specula tive reason, which loses nothing in letting the one no less than the other vanish without the slightest hindrance. Many forces of nature that manifest their existence through certain ef fects remain for us inscrutable;239 for we cannot trace them far enough by 236 [ Trager.] 237 [Albrecht von Haller ( 1708-77), Swiss anatomist and physiologist. He is the author of many scientific works, and even of theological writings and poems, including Die Alpen (The Alps) ]
21R [ohne Haltung.] 239 [unerforschlich J
SECTION V
COSMOLOGICAL PROOF
595
observation. Likewise, the transcendental object that lies at the basis of appearances-and with it the basis as to why our sensibility has these [par ticular] highest conditions rather than others-is and remains for us in scrutable;24o for although the thing24 1 itself is indeed given,242 we just do not have insight into it. An ideal of pure reason, however, cannot be called inscrutable. For it can show no further credentials of its reality than rea son's need to complete243 all synthetic unity by means of it. Hence the ideal is not given even as a thinkable object, and thus is also not inscrutable as an object. Rather, the ideal244 must, as a mere idea, find its seat and its so lution in the nature of reason, and hence must be scrutable. For reason con sists precisely in our being able to account for all our concepts, opinions, and assertions, whether from objective bases or-if these concepts, opin ions, and assertions are a mere illusion-from subjective bases.
{ A 614 B 642
EXPOSURE245 AND EXPLANATION OF THE DIALECTICAL ILLUSION IN ALL TRANSCENDENTAL PROOFS OF THE EXISTENCE OF A NECESSARY BEING Both of the proofs conducted246 thus far were transcendental, i.e., they were attempted independently of empirical principles. For although the cosmo logical proof lays at the basis an experience as such, it is still not con ducted from some particular character of experience?47 Rather, it is con ducted from pure principles of reason, as referred to an existence given through empirical consciousness as such, and it abandons even this guid ance so as to rely on pure concepts alone. What, then, in these transcen240[See the chapter on the distinction between phenomena and noumena, A 235-60/B
294-3 15.]
241 [Sache; i.e., here, the transcendental object.]
242[
iibrigens gegeben, viz , as a thinkable object; cf. just below.]
243 [Or 'perfect': vollenden.] 244 [Reading, with Hartenstein and the Ako.demie edition, es for er.] 24 '[Or 'Uncovering' : Entdeckung.] 246 [By Kant's imagined interlocutors, whom he previously addressed directly by (the plural) ' you ' : A 595-98 = B 623-26.] 24 7[As is the physicotheological proof, discussed in the next section.]
{ A 615 B 643
596
A 616
B 644
}
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
dental proofs, is the cause of the natural illusion that connects the concepts of necessity and supreme reality, and that realizes and hypostatizes248 what can, after all, be only an idea? What is the cause that makes it inevitable for us to assume something, among existing things, as in itself necessary, and yet at the same time to shrink back from the existence of such a being as from an abyss? And how do we set about bringing reason to an under standing with itself on this issue, so that it may get away from the waver ing state of a timid approval, which it always takes back again, and arrive at calm insight? It is an extremely remarkable fact that if one presupposes that some thing exists, then one cannot circumvent the inference that something or other also exists necessarily. On this entirely natural (although not yet there fore secure) inference249 rests the cosmological argument. On the other hand, no matter what concept of a thing I may assume,25 0 I find that I can never conceive25 1 the thing's existence as absolutely necessary; and that whatever it may be that exists, nothing prevents me from thinking its non existence. 252 Hence although I must for the existene5 3 as such assume something necessary, I cannot think any thing as necessary254 in itself. In other words, I can indeed never complete the regression255 to the condi tions of existence256 without assuming a necessary being, but I can never start from this being. If for existing things as such I must think something necessary, but am not entitled to think any thing as necessary in itself,25 7 then it follows in evitably that necessity and contingency must not concern and apply to things themselves, because otherwise a contradiction would take place; and hence it follows that neither of these two principles is objective, but that 248 [Le., respectively: turns (an idea) into a thing and, moreover, into one that is self subsistent.] 249[SchlujJ here, Foigerung just above.] 25°[Le., a concept adequate for something or other that exists necessarily.] 25 1 [Or 'present': vorstellen. See B xvii br. n. 73.] 252[Literally, 'not-being' : Nichtsein. Cf. A 801B 106.] 253[ZU dem Existierenden. ]
254 [selbst als an sich notwendig.] 255[Zuruckgehen. previously referred to as Regressus.] 256 [des Existierrms.] 25? [an sich selbst al" notwendig.]
SECTION V
COSMOLOGICAL PROOF
597
they can at most be subjective principles25 8 of reason. As such subjective principles they enjoin us, on the one hand, to seek for everything given as existent [a] something that is necessary-i.e., never to stop anywhere but at an explanation that is complete a priori. But, on the other hand, they en join us never to hope to attain this completion-i.e., to assume nothing em pirical as being unconditioned in order to exempt ourselves from further derivation. In such subjective signification the two principles, as merely heuristic and regulative principles concerned with nothing but reason's for mal interest,259 can quite well coexist.260 For the one principle says, You ought to philosophize in such a way about nature as if for everything be longing to existence there iS261 a necessary first basis; you ought to do this solely in order that by pursuing such an idea, viz., an imagined highest262 basis, you may bring systematic unity into your cognition. But the other principle warns you not to assume any determination pertaining to the ex istence of things as being such a highest basis-i.e., as being absolutely necessary-but to continue keeping your path open to further derivation, and hence always to treat any such determination as still conditioned. But if everything that is perceived in things must necessarily be regarded by us as conditioned, then-by the same token-no thing (that may be given empirically) can be regarded as absolutely necessary. From this, however, it follows that you must assume the absolutely nec essary as being outside the world. For the absolutely necessary is to serve only as a principle of the greatest possible unity of appearances, viz., as their highest basis; and within the world you can never reach this highest basis, because the second rule commands you to regard all empirical causes of unity always as derivative. The philosophers of antiquity regarded every 263 form of nature as con tingent, but regarded matter-in accordance with the judgment of common reason-as original and necessary. But if they had regarded matter, as to its existence, in itself rather than in respect of appearances-as substratum thereof-then the idea of [matter's] absolute necessity would have van258
[Prinzipien here, Grundsiitze just above. See A vii br. n. 7.] 259 [Such heunstic pnnciples will be examined fully in the Appendix, A 63 1 -681B 659-96.]
260 [beieinander 261 [Or
262
beHehen. j
'were,' if gebe is here taken as the older spelling of giibe ]
[oberst; see A 590
263 [a lle. ]
=
B 6 1 8 br. n i l ! .]
{ A 617
B 645
598
A 618 B 646
}
A 6l9 B 647
}
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
ished at once. For there is nothing that ties reason to this existence abso lutely, but reason can always, and without conflict, annul such existence in thought; but hence the absolute necessity [of matter] resided likewise only in thought. Therefore, this persuasion264 must have been based on a cer tain regulative principle. And indeed, extension and impenetrability (which together amount to the concept of matter)265 constitute the highest empiri cal principle of the unity of appearances; and insofar as this principle is empirically unconditioned, it possesses a property of a regulative prin ciple. But since every determination of matter (the matter which amounts to the real [component] of appearances)266-and thus also impenetrability -is an effect (action) that [as such] must have its cause and hence is al ways still derivative, matter is nonetheless not fitting for the idea of a nec essary being as principle of all derivative unity. 267 For, each of matter's real properties, as derivative, is only conditionally necessary and hence can intrinsically be annulled-but therewith the entire existence of matter would be annulled; on the other hand, if this [intrinsic annulIability of matter] did not result,268 then we would have reached the supreme basis of unity em pirically, which is prohibited by the second regulative principle. Thus it fol lows that matter-and in general whatever belongs to the world-is unfit ting for the idea of a necessary original being [considered even] as a mere principle of the greatest empirical unity, but that this being must be pos ited outside the world. For then we can always confidently derive the ap pearances of the world and their existence from other appearances as if there were no necessary being, and yet can strive unceasingly toward the completeness of this derivation as if such a being were presupposed as a highest basis. According to these considerations, the ideal of the supreme being is nothing but a regulative principle of reason. This principle enjoins us to regard all linkage in the world as if it arose from an all-sufficient neces sary cause, in order that in explaining this linkage we may base on this cause269 the rule of a unity that is systematic and necessary according to 2("'[ Of the necessity of matter.]
265 [Cf. the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science. Ak. IV, 498-99, 508- 1 1 .] 266[Parentheses added.]
267 [I . e. , not even if this being is considered as a merely regulative such principle ] 26" [geschehen.]
269 [darauf, which could also refer to the (described) way of regarding all linkage in the world. or to the regulative pnnciple, or to the ideal.]
SECTION V
COSMOLOGICAL PROOF
599
universal laws; the ideal is not an assertion of an existence necessary in it self. At the same time, however, we cannot avoid conceiving270 this for mal principle-by means of a transcendental subreption27 1 -as constitu tive, and to think this unity hypostatic ally. For [the case here is similar to that of space.] All shapes, which are merely different limitations of space, are made originally possible by space, although space is only a principle of sensibility; yet space is precisely therefore regarded as an absolutely nec essary and self-subsistent something, and as an object given a priori in it self. Such [a subreption] also happens quite naturally in the case at hand. The systematic unity of nature cannot in any way be put forth as a prin ciple of our reason's empirical use, except insofar as we lay at the basis [of this unity] the idea of a maximally real being as the highest cause. Since that is so, this idea of such a being is thereby conceived as an actual ob ject; and this object in tum is conceived as necessary, because it is the high est condition. And hence a regulative principle is transformed into a con stitutive one. This substitution manifests itself through the following fact. This highest being was absolutely (unconditionally) necessary with respect to the world. But if I now consider it as a thing by itself, this necessity is not capable of any concept. Hence this necessity must be one that was to be found in my reason only as formal condition of thinking, but not as ma terial and I:typostatic condition of existence.
270[Or 'presenting' ; similarly near the end of A 6 1 9 271 [See A 643
=
B 67 1 inc!. br n. 1 4 ]
=
B 6471
{ A 620
B 648
Chapter III
Section VI On the Impossibility of the Physicotheolo gical Proof272 If, then, neither the concept of things as such nor the experience of some existence as SUCh27 3 can accomplish what is being demanded,274 there re mains one further remedy to be tried. We must inquire whether a determi nate experience-hence the experience of the things of the present world, their character and arrangement-does not perhaps provide a basis of proof that can safely bring275 us to the conviction of the existence of a supreme being. We would call such a proof the physicotheological proof.276 Should this proof likewise be impossible, then no satisfactory proof for the exist ence of a being corresponding to our transcendental idea277 is possible at all from mere speculative reason ?78
1761B 218 br. n. 3, 523-30. See also Heinz Heimsoeth. 2931B 349 2, 3, 5 1 1 -30. Also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit at A vii hr. n. 5, 53 8-540. Also T. K. Swing, op. cit. at A 3 1 01B 366 br. n. 94, 3 18-33. And see T. D Weldon, op. cit. at A 2 1 tB 35 br. n. 22, 23 1 -32. Unlike in the preceding two sections, Kant
272[See Gerd Buchdahl, op. cit. at A br. n. vol.
op. cit. at A
omits from the title the words 'of the existence of God,' presumably as already implied by 'physicotheological.' This proof is better known as the teleological argument or argument from design. Kant presents and criticizes it most fully in the Critique of Judgment: see Ak V. and See also The Only Possible Basis of Prooffor esp. Demonstrating the Existence of God, Ak. II, and cf.
436-42, 46 1-66,
3 85-485,
476-85.
1 1 6-37,
1 60-62.]
27 3[As, respectively, in the ontological and cosmological proofs discussed in the preceding
two sections. On my rendering of iiberhaupt by 'as such' (only rarely by 'in general ' ), see B xxvii br. n.
1 06.]
274[Viz., to prove the existence of God.]
275[verhelfen.] 276[I.e., by the etymology of the adjective, a proof proceeding from nature to God.] 277 [Of a supreme being ]
632 808- 1 6 B
278 [Our only recourse will then be a moral theology based on practical reason. See A B (esp. A A = B and A = B A = B
660, 636 836-44).]
664 , 641
669,
804-19
600
832-47
=
=
SECTION VI
PHYSICOTHEOLOGICAL PROOF
60 1
After all the above considerations, we soon become aware that we can expect the answer to this inquiry to be quite easy and conclusive. For how can [an] experience ever be given that would be adequate to an idea? The peculiarity of an idea consists precisely in the fact that no experience at all can ever be congruent with it. The transcendental idea of a necessary and all-sufficient original being is so exceedingly large279 and so highly ex alted above everything empirical, which is always conditioned, that partly one can never tum up enough material in experience to fill such a con cept,280 and partly one is always groping about in what is conditioned and [thus] will forever search in vain for the unconditioned; for no law of any empirical synthesis gives us an example of the unconditioned or the slight est guidance for finding it. If the supreme being stood in this chain of conditions, then it would it self be a member of the series of these conditions; and thus it would-like the lower members to which it is superior28 1-still require further inves tigation concerning its own, still higher basis. 282 On the other hand, if one wants to separate the supreme being from this chain and keep it283_as a merely intelligible being-from also being included284 in the series of natu ral causes, then just what bridge can reason build so as to reach this be ing? For all laws of the transition from effects to causes-indeed, all syn thesis and .expansion of our cognition as such-pertain to nothing but 279[Or 'exceedingly great': iiberschwenglich groft. Although 'great' might seem to be the more fining adjective, note the spatial metaphor just below.] 280[Cf. the Scottish philosopher David Hume ( 1 7 1 1 -76), who in his Dialogues Concerning
Natural Religion (Pt. V, next to last paragraph) has Philo say: "In a word, Cleanthes, a man who follows your hypothesis [that a God is needed to account for the order in the world]
is able, perhaps, to assert or conjecture that the universe sometime arose from something like design; but beyond that position he cannot ascertain one single circumstance. and is left afterwards to fix every point of his theology by the utmost license of fancy and hy pothesis. " ] 28 1 [More literally 'placed ahead of': vorgesetzt.] ,
282[Hume (Dialogues, PI. IV, pars. 6-9) extends the same reasoning even to a supreme being conceived as intelligible ("mental"): "We are still obliged to mount higher in order to find the cause of this cause . . . . [A] mental world or universe of ideas requires a cause as much as does a material world. . . Have we not the same reason to trace that ideal world into an other ideal world or new intelligent pri nciple? . . . If the matenal world rests upon a similar ideal world. this ideal world must rest upon some other, and so on without end."] 28J [nicht ] 2114 [mitbegreifen.]
{ A 621
B 649
602 A 622 B 650
}
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
possible experience; hence they pertain merely to objects of the world of sense and can have signification only in regard to them. The present world discloses to us a vast arena of manifoldness, order, purposiveness,285 and beauty-whether we pursue these in the infinity of space or in space's unlimited division. Such is this arena---even by what little acquaintance with it our feeble understanding has been able to gain-that vis-a-vis so many and such immensely great marvels all speech286 loses287 its force, all numbers lose their power to measure, and even our thoughts lose any boundary; and thus our judgment of the whole must dissolve into a speechless, but all the more eloquent amazement. Ev erywhere we see a chain of effects and causes, of purposes288 and their means, and we see regularity in all arising and passing away. And since nothing has on its own entered the state wherein it is to be found, any thing289 always points further toward another thing as its cause; and this cause in tum necessitates precisely the same further inquiry. And thus the entire universe would in this way have to sink into the abyss of nothing ness,290 unless one assumed something that--outside of this infinite [world of the] contingent-subsists on its own originally and independently: some thing that supports this [universe] and, as the cause of its origin, secures for it als029 1 its continuance. This supreme cause (regarding all things of the world)-how large292 are we to think it? We are not acquainted with 285 [Zweckmiij1igkeit. For a defense of my rendering of this term as 'purposiveness' rather than as 'finality,' see my essay cited at A vii br. n. 7 The concept of purposiveness is the most important concept in both halves of the Critique of Judgment: subjective purposiveness is cen tral to the Critique of Aesthetic Judgment, objective purposiveness to the Critique of Teleo logical Judgment and, in particular, to Kant's discussion therein of the physicotheological proof. The relation between subjective and objective purposiveness bears not only on that between the two halves of the Critique of Judgment, but also on the relation-which was of great concern to Kant--of that entire work to the Critique of Pure Reason and the Critique of Practical Reason . See, on these matters, the Translator 's Introduction to my translation of the Critique of Judgment, op. cit. at B xvii br. n. 73.] 2B"[Or 'language' : Sprache.] 287 [More literally, 'is unable to find': vermissen ] 28S [Or 'ends' : Zwecke.] 2"9 [Reading, with Erdmann and the Akademie edition, es for er ] 290 [des Nichts. ] 29 1 [zugleich.] 2.2 [Or 'great': graft. Here again 'great' might seem to be more fitting; but note again the spatial references below, especially A 624 = B 652, at the end of the first full paragraph 1
SECTION VI
PHYSICOTHEOLOGICAL PROOF
603
the world in its entire content, much less do we know how to assess its magnitude293 by comparison with all that is possible. But since with re gard to causality we d0294 require an utmost295 and highest being, what prevents us from also positing this being, in its degree of perfection, above everything else that is possible ? This we can easily accomplish-although indeed only through the delicate outline of an abstract concept-if we con ceive all possible perfection as united in this being as in a single sub stance. The concept of this being is beneficial to reason's demand for par simony of principles; it is not subjected to any contradictions within itself; and-through the guidance that such an idea provides toward order and purposiveness-the concept is even conducive to the expansion of our use of reason in the midst of experience, but is also not contrary in a decisive way to any experience. This proof deserves always to be mentioned with respect. It is the proof that is oldest, clearest, and most commensurate with common human rea son. It enlivens the study of nature, just as the proof itself has its existence from and acquires ever new force through this study. It brings purposes and aims296 to things where our observation would not have discovered them on its own, and it expands our acquaintance297 with nature through the guidance provided by a special unity whose principle is outside nature. But this acquaintance with nature reacts again on its cause-viz., on the idea that prompted it-and increases the faith298 in a supreme origina to�99 to an irresistible conviction. Hence any attempt to detract from the authority of this proof would not only be hopeless, but also entirely futile. For reason is lifted up unceas ingly by bases of proof that, although only empirical, are very powerful and are forever increasing under reason's very eyes. 300 And thus no doubts arising from subtle abstract speculation can weigh reason down so much that it would not quickly recover. For casting one glance upon the marvels 293 [Grojle.] 294[einmal.] 295[iiujlerst. ] 2"'tOr 'intentions.'] 297 [ -kenntn isse.J 298[Glaube. See B
xxx
299[Of the world.] 300['hands,' literally.]
br n. 1 22 ]
{ A 623 B 651
{ A 624 B 652
604
A 625 B 653
}
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
of nature and upon the majesty of the world edifice would tear reason out of any brooding indecision, as out of a dream; and reason would lift itself up from one magnitude to the next until reaching the most supreme, and would lift itself up from the conditioned to the condition until reaching the highest and unconditioned originator. 30l Thus we have indeed no objection to make against the rationality and usefulness of this procedure, but must, rather, recommend and encourage it. Yet we cannot therefore endorse the claims which this kind of proof would like to make to apodeictic certainty and to an approval requiring no favor or extraneous support whatsoever. And the proof's good cause cannot be harmed in any way if the dogmatic language of a disdainful subtle reasoner302 is tuned down to the tone of moderation and modesty of a faith that suffices to calm us-but precisely without commanding un conditional submission. Accordingly, I maintain that the physicotheologi cal proof can never by itself establish the existence of a supreme being, but must always leave the task of compensating for this deficiency to the ontological proof (which it serves only as an introduction). Hence the on tological proof still contains (insofar as a speculative proof has, indeed, any place at all) the only possible basis of proof that no human reason can pass over. 303 The chief moments of the physicotheological proof in question are the following: ( I ) Everywhere in the world we find distinct signs of an ar rangemene04 carried out with great wisdom according to a determinate aim; 305 and we find these signs within a whole of indescribable manifold ness in content, as well as unbounded magnitude in range. (2) This purpo sive arrangement is quite extraneous to the things of the world and at taches to them only contingently; i.e., the nature of different things could not-through so many kinds of means acting in unison-have harmonized on its own with determinate final aims, had not an arranging rational prin ciple expressly306 selected and designed these things according to underJO l [Of the world.] J02 [hoiznsprechender Vemiinftler.]
3U3[ vorbeigehen, which could also be rendered as 'ignore.' 1
3U4 [Anordnung.J
3U5[Or 'determinate [or definite] intention': bestimmte Absiclzt.] ",o [eigenllich ]
SECTION VI PHYSICOTHEOLOGICAL PROOF
605
lying ideas. (3) Therefore, there exists an august307 and wise cause (or sev eral such causes) that must be the cause of the world not merely as an all powerful nature acting308 through fecundity, but as an intelligence acting through freedom. (4) The unity of this cause can be inferred from the unity of the reciprocal reference that the parts of the world have as members of an artistic structure; from what our observation can reach we can make this inference with certainty, but beyond that point we can make the inference with probability, according to all the principles of analogy. Let us not here cavil309 with natural reason concerning its inference from the analogy of some natural products to what human art produces-viz., when this art does violence to nature and compels it not to proceed ac cording to its own purposes but to yield to ours. From this analogy (i.e., from the similarity of those natural products with houses, ships, or clocks) natural reason infers that presumably310 just such a causality-viz, under standing and will-lies at the basis also in nature's case. In this way natu ral reason derives the intrinsic possibility of freely acting nature (the na ture which first makes possible all art and perhaps even reason itself) from still another art, although a suprahuman one. Indeed, this kind of inference might perhaps not withstand the most rigorous transcendental critique. Yet we must admit that once we are asked to name a cause, then we cannot here proceed more safely than on the analogy with such purposive prod ucts; for these are the only products in whose case we are fully acquainted with the causes and the manner of their action. Indeed, reason could not be justified 3 1 1 even to itself if from the causality with which it is ac quainted it sought to pass to obscure and unprovable bases of explanation with which it is not acquainted. According to this inference, the purposiveness and consonance of na ture's many arrangements would have to prove merely the contingency of the form but not that of the matter-i.e., the substance-in the world. For proving the contingency of the matter would require, in addition, that we be able to prove that unless the things of the world were the product of a supreme wisdom even as regards their substance, they would in them selves be unsuitable for acquiring such order and harmony according to uni307 [Or 'sublime' : erhaben.] 308 [wirken.] 309 [Ohne 3 IO [wird.] 3 1 1 [sich
.
.
. zu schikanieren ]
verantworten.]
{ A 626
B 654
{ A 627
B 655
606
A 628 B 656
}
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
versal3 1 2 laws. But proving this would require bases of proof quite differ ent from those of the analogy with human art. Hence the proof could not establish [the existence of] a creator of the world, to whose idea every thing is subjected; but it could establish at best [the existence of] an ar chitect of the world, who would always be greatly limited by the suitabil ity of the material on which he works. 3 1 3 This, however, is far from sufficient for the great aim that is being envisaged, viz., to prove an all sufficient original being. If we wished to prove the contingency of matter itself, we would have to resort to a transcendental argument; but precisely this was to be avoided here. The inference, then, proceeds from the order and purposiveness observ able throughout the world, regarded as a thoroughly314 contingent arrange ment, 3 1 5 to the existence of a cause proportionate thereto. However, the concept of this cause must allow3 1 6 us to cognize something quite deter minate concerning this cause, and hence it can be no other concept than that of a being possessing all power, wisdom, etc.-in a word, all perfec tion as an all-sufficient being. For such predicates as very grea� 1 7 or amaz ing or immense power and excellence provide no determinate concept at all, and in fact do not say what the thing is in itself. 318 Rather, they are only relational presentations of the magnitude3 1 9 of an object that the ob31 2 [Or 'general' : allgemein.] 313 [As in the case of Plato's cosmology presented in his Timaeus.] 314 [durchaus.] 3 15 [Einrichtung.] 3 1 6 [geben.] 3 1 7 [groJ3.] 318 [Cf. the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 438. And cf. David Hume again: "The Deity is known to us only by his productions . . . . As the universe shews wisdom and goodness, we infer wis dom and goodness. As it shews a particular degree of these perfections, we infer a particular degree of them, precisely adapted to the effect which we examine. But further attribute� or further degrees of the same attributes, we can never infer or suppose, by any rules of ju_t reasoning." (An Enquiry Concerning Human Understanding, XI. 5th par. from the end ) And in the Dialogues, Philo says to Cleanthes: "First. by this method of reasoning, you renounce all claim to infinity in any of the attributes of the Deity. For, as the cause ought only to be proportioned to the effect, and the effect, so far as it falls under our cognizance, is not in fi nite, what pretensions have we, upon your suppositions, to ascribe that attribute to the Di vine Being? . . . Secondly, you have no reason, on your theory, for ascribing perfection to the Deity, even in his finite capacity, or for supposing him free of error, mistake , or incoherence. in his undertakings." (PI. V, pars 5-6).] 3 I 9 [Grofte.]
SECTION VI
PHYSICOTHEOLOGICAL PROOF
607
server (of the world) is comparing with himself and his power of compre hension; and they tum out equally eulogistic whether the object is made greater, 320 or whether the observing subject is made smaller in relation to it. When magnitude (of perfection) of a thing as such is at issue, then there is no determinate concept except the one that comprises the entire possible perfection, and only the totae 21 (omnitudo) of reality is thoroughll 22 de termined in the concept. Now, I trust that no one will presume to have insight into the relation of the world's magnitude observed by him (in both range and content) to omnipotence, the relation of the world's order to supreme wisdom, the re lation of the world's unity to the absolute unity of the originator, 323 etc. Therefore, physicotheology cannot provide a determinate concept of the highest cause of the world, and hence it cannot be sufficient for a principle of theology that is in tum to amount to the foundation of religion. The step to absolute totality is altogether impossible by the empirical path. Now in the physicotheological proof this step is nonetheless taken. What, then, may be the means employed in order to cross such a wide gap? Having reached a state of admiration for the greatness, 3 24 wisdom, power, etc., of the originator of the world, and being unable to get further, one abandons all at once this physicotheological argument conducted from empirical bases of proof, and proceeds back to the world's contingency that one has inferred at the very outset from the world's order and purposive ness. From this contingency alone one now proceeds, solely by transcen dental concepts, to the existence of an absolutely3 25 necessary [being as first cause] ; and from the concept of the absolute necessity of the first cause one then proceeds to the thoroughly determined or determining concept of this originator of the world, 326 viz., the concept of an all-encompassing re ality. Hence the physicotheological proof reached an impasse in its enter prise, and in this quandary shifted suddenly to the cosmological proof. And since the latter is only a covert ontological proof, the physicotheological 320 [verg
rofiern.]
321 [ All.] 322 [
durchgdngig.] 323[Of the world ] 324 [ Grofie.]
32' [ schlechthin here, absolut just below.] 326 [desselben. Kant may have thought that he had just repeated Welturheber rather than said erste Ursache ('firs! cause') .]
{ A 629
B 657
608
A 630 B 658
}
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
proof actually carried out its aim merely through pure reason, although at the very outset it had denied all affinity with pure reason and had staked everything on evident proofs from experience. Hence the physicotheologians do not have cause at all to act so de murely toward the transcendental kind of proof, and to look down on it-with the self-conceit of clairvoyant naturalists3 27-as the cobweb of gloomy ponderers. For if they would only examine themselves, they would find that after having proceeded a good distance on the ground328 of na ture and experience, and yet still finding themselves just as far as before from the object that shines toward their reason,329 they suddenly abandon this ground and pass over into the kingdom of mere possibilities, where on the wings of ideas they hope to get close to what had eluded all their em pirical investigation. 33o Having finally gained-by such a mighty leap-what they suppose to be a firm foothold, they extend the now de terminate concept (which they have come to possess without knowing how) over the entire realm of creation. And the ideal, which was a product solely of pure reason, they now elucidate-although poorly enough and far be low the dignity of its object-by experience; and they refuse to admit that they have reached this acquaintance with or presupposition of this object by a course other than that of experience. Accordingly, the physicotheological proof of a single original being as supreme being is based on the cosmological proof thereof, but this proof in turn on the ontological prooe 3 l And since no further path besides these three is open to speculative reason, the ontological proof-from pure con cepts of reason alone-is the only possible proof,332 if indeed a proof of a proposition so far exalted above all empirical use of the understanding is possible at all.
327 [Na/urkenner.] 32· [Boden.]
329[I . e . like a sun: en/gegenschein/ (still wntten in two words, as was typical in Kant's time) I ,
330[For such eloquence as Kant displays here. c f. A 235-36/B 294-95.]
33 1 [Of such a being ] 332[That there is a God.j
Chapter III Section VII Critique of Any Theology B ased on Speculative Principles of Reason333
I
If by theology mean the cognition of the original being, then this theol ogy is of two kinds. One kind is based on mere reason (theologia ratio nalis); the other kind is based on revelation 334 (theologia revelata). 335 Now the first kind336 either thinks its object (as ens originarium, ens realissi mum, ens entium)337 merely through pure reason, by means of transcen dental concepts alone; and then it is called transcendental theology. Or this theology33 8 thinks its object-as the supreme intelligence-through a concept which it borrows from nature (the nature of our soul); and then it would have to be called natural theology. Someone who grants only a tran scendental theology is called a deist; someone who assumes also a natural theology is . called a theist. The deist admits that through pure reason we can cognize at most the existence of an original being, but that our con cept of this being is merely transcendental, i.e., only the concept of a be ing having all reality-a reality339 which cannot, however, be determined more closely. The theist asserts that reason is able to determine the ob ject340 more closely on the analogy with nature, 341 viz., as a being that 333[See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 2931B 349 br. n Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 54 1 -42 ]
2, vol. 3, 531-45. See also Norman
334[Offenbarung.)
335[Respectively, 'rational theology' and 'revealed theology.' ] 336[Rational theology.) 337 [Original being, most real being, being of (all) beings ] 338 [l.e., rational theology ) 339 [And with it, of course, the being itself I 340 [l.e., object of theology.] 341 [Specifically, the nature of our soul;
see
just above.]
609
63 1 B 659
{A
610
A 632 660
B
}
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
through understanding and freedom342 contains within itself the original basis of all other things. Thus the deist conceives of the object as merely a cause of the world (whether a cause through the necessity of its nature or through freedom remains undecided); whereas the theist conceives of the object as an originator of the world. Transcendental theology is again of two kinds. The one kind seeks to derive the existence of the original being from an experience as such (with out determining more closely anything concerning the world to which this experience belongs); it is called cosmotheology. The other kind of tran scendental theology believes that it cognizes the existence of the original being through mere concepts, without the aid of the least experience; it is called ontotheology. Natural theology infers the properties and the existence of an origina tor of the world from the character, the order, and the unity found in this world-a world in which we must assume two kinds of causality and their rule, viz., nature and freedom. Hence natural theology ascends from this world to the supreme intelligence, considered either as the principle of all natural or as the principle of all moral343 order and perfection. In the first case natural theology is called physicotheology, in the second moral the-
010gy.344
A 633 66 1
B
}
What one usually understands by the concept of God is by no means merely a blindly acting and eternal nature as the root of things, but a su preme being that is to be the originator of things through understanding and freedom; 345 and this concept is also the only one that interests us. Hence one could, strictly speaking, deny346 that the deist has any faith in God, and leave him merely the assertion of an original being or highest cause. However, no one must be accused of wishing to deny something merely because he does not dare to assert it; and thus it is more lenient and appropriate to say that the deist has faith in a God, but the theist in a liv342 [1 e., free will.] 343 [sittlich here, Moral- just below.]
344Not theological morality; for the latter contains moral laws that presuppose the existence of a supreme ruler of the world, whereas moral" theology is a conviction--of the existence of a supreme being-that is based on moral laws "[Moral- here (likewise, without the hyphen, for 'morality' above), sittlich ju�t above and just below ]
34' [Le., through intellect and free will.]
]46 r absprechen here, leugl1en just beloW.]
SECTION VII CRITIQUE OF SPECULATIVE THEOLOGY
611
ing God (summa intelligentia). 347 Let us now locate the possible sources of all these attempts of reason in theology. I shall here settle for explicating theoretical cognition as one whereby I cognize what is, and practical cognition as one whereby I conceive what ought to be. Accordingly, the theoretical use of reason is the use whereby I cognize a priori (as necessary) that something is; and the practical use is the use whereby one cognizes a priori what ought to occur.348 Now if the fact that something is or that something ought to occur is indubitably cer tain but yet only conditioned, then a certain determinate condition for this fact may yet either be absolutely necessary, or it may be presupposed only as optional349 and contingent. In the first case the condition is postulated (per thesin); in the second case it is supposed350 (per hypothesin). 351 Now, there are practical laws that are absolutely necessary (viz., the moral laws). Hence if these laws presuppose necessarily some existence35 2 as the con dition for the possibility of their obligating force, then this existence must postulated; for the conditioned from which the inference proceeds to this determinate condition is itself cognized a priori as absolutely neces sary. We shall show hereafter353 that moral laws not only presuppose the existence of a supreme being, but-because, as they are considered other wise,354 they are absolutely necessary-they rightly postulate this exist ence, although indeed only practically. But for now we still set this kind of inference' aside. When we are concerned merely with what is (not with what ought to be), then the conditioned that is given to us in experience is always thought as being also contingent. Hence the condition pertaining to this condi tioned cannot be cognized from it as absolutely necessary, but serves only as a presupposition for rational cognition of the conditioned: a presuppo sition that is necessary--or, rather, needed-in respect to something else,
be
347 [Highest intelligence.J 348[Or 'to happen' or 'to be done': geschehen.J 349 [beliebig.J 350
[supponiert.J 351 [Respectively, 'by thesis' and 'by hypothesis.' J 352 [Or 'existent': Dasein.J 353 [See A 804- 19 B 832-47, esp. A 808-19 B 836-47.J
�
=
=
4[I.e., not as the commands of a supreme being but as having their own (rational) obligat Ing force. Cf. A 8 1 9 B 847 ] =
{ A 634 B 662
612
A 635 B 663
}
A 636 B 664
}
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
but that in itself and a priori is only chosen. 355 But if in theoretical cog nition the absolute necessity of a thing is to be cognized, then this could be done only from a priori concepts-but never356 from [such concepts con sidered] as a cause in reference to an existence given through experience . A theoretical cognition is speculative if it concerns such an object, or such concepts of an object, as one cannot reach in any experience. It is contrasted with cognition of nature, which concerns no objects or predi cates of objects other than those that can be given in a possible experience. The principle whereby from what occurs (i.e., from the empirically con tingent), taken as effect, we infer a cause is a principle of the cognition of nature, but not a principle of speculative cognition. For if we abstract from this principle taken as one that contains the condition of possible experi ence as such, and then-by omitting everything empirical-wish to assert it of the contingent as such,357 then there remains not the least justifica tion for such a synthetic proposition. I.e., I cannot then use this principle in order to gain insight from it as to how, from something that is, I can pass over to something quite different (called cause). Indeed, in such merely speculative use the concept of a cause as well as the concept of the con tingent loses any signification whose objective reality could be made com prehensible in concreto. Now if from the existence of things in the world one infers their cause, then this inference belongs not to the natural but to the speculative use of reason. For what the natural use of reason refers, as empirically contin gent, to some cause are not things themselves (substances) but only what occurs, i.e., the states of things; [a cognition] that substance itself (matter) is contingent as regards its existence would have to be a merely specula tive rational cognition. But even if I were concerned only with the form of the world-the manner of the world's combination358 and the variation thereof-but wished to infer from this form a cause entirely distinct from the world, then this would again be a judgment of merely speculative rea son; for the objece59 here is not at all an object of a possible experience . But in that case the principle of causality-which holds only within the 355[Or, possibly. 'arbitrary': willkiirlich ] 356 [As in practical cognition.] 35 7[Rather than of the empirically contingent.] 35B[As found, e.g in the systems of heavenly bodies, but especially also in organisms.] .•
359[Gegenslar.d here, Objekt just below; similarly in the remainder of the section (and else where). See A vii hr. n. 7.]
SECTION VII CRITIQUE OF SPECULATIVE THEOLOGY
613
realm of experience, and which outside that realm i s without use and, in deed, even without signification-would be diverted entirely from its [proper] determination. Now, I maintain that all attempts to make a merely speculative use of reason in regard to theology are entirely fruitless and are-by their intrin sic character-null and void, but that the principles of reason's natural use lead to no theology whatsoever; and I maintain, consequently, that unless moral laws are laid at the basis or used as a guide, there can be no theol ogy of reason at all. For, all synthetic principles of understanding are of immanent use only; but cognition of a supreme being requires a transcen dental use of these principles, a use for which our understanding is not at all equipped. If the empirically valid law of causality is to lead to the origi nal being, then this being would likewise360 have to belong to the chain of objects of experience; but in that case this being would itself, like all ap pearances, be conditioned in tum. However, even if we were permitted to make the leap beyond the bounds of experience by means of the dynami cal law of the reference of effects to their causes, with what concept can this procedure provide us? By no means can it provide us with a concept of a supreme being, because experience never offers us the greatest of all possible effects (the effect which is to provide testimony of its cause361 ). If we are to be permitted-merely in order not to leave anything empty in our reason---.t.: o fill in this lack of complete determination362 through a mere idea of supreme perfection and original necessity, then this may indeed be granted as a favor; but it cannot be demanded as a right based on an irre sistible proof. Thus perhaps the physicotheological proof could indeed, by connecting speculation with intuition, give force to other proofs (if such are to be had); but when taken by itself it merely prepares the understand ing for theological cognition and points it in a straight and natural direc tion,363 instead of being able to complete the business alone. 364 360[mit_.]
361 [I.e. , the supreme cause.]
362[Of the concept of a supreme being.] 363[For such cognition.]
364[Cf. the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 38 1-84, 417, 436-48, 455-56, 470, 480, 485. In deed, this "preparation" that teleology provides for (moral) theology is at the heart of the
role played by the Critique ofJudgment in uniting the three Critiques into a system. (Cf. above, A 622 B 650 br. n 285.) See the Translator's Introduction to my translation of the Critique Of Judgment (op. cit. at B xvii br n 73). Section 15. lxxxvi-cix.] =
{ A 637
B 665
614
A 638 B 666
}
A 639 B 667
}
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
We readily see from this that transcendental questions permit only tran scendental answers, i.e., answers based on a priori concepts alone, without the least empirical admixture. Here, however, the question is obviously syn thetic and demands an expansion of our cognition beyond all bounds of experience, viz., to the existence of a being that is to correspond to our mere idea-an idea thae6 5 can never be matched by any experience. Now by the proofs that we have given above,366 all synthetic a priori cognition is possible only through the fact that it expresses the formal conditions of a possible experience; and hence all principles have only immanent valid ity, i.e., they refer solely to objects of empirical cognition, or [i.e.] to appearances. Hence, by the same token, a transcendental procedure used with a view to the theology of a merely speculative reason accomplishes nothing. But suppose even that someone would rather cast doubt on all the proofs given above, in the Analytic, than let me rob him of his persuasion that the bases of proof that he has used so long have weight. Even then he cannot refuse to yield to my challenge if I demand that he should at least justify himself as to how it is-and by means of what illumination-that he dares to soar above all possible experience by the might of mere ideas. I would beg to be spared new proofs, or amended work on old proofs. For [such will continue to be offered] . It is true that there is not much choice in this regard, because all merely speculative proofs do in the end come down to a single one, viz., the ontological proof; and thus I do not, indeed, need to fear being particularly burdened by the fertile ingenuity367 of the dogmatic champions of such a sense-free reason. It is true, moreover, that I do not want to decline the challenge-and I say this without therefore consider ing myself to be very contentious-to uncover in every attempt of this kind the fallacious inference, and thus to foil the attempt's claim. Still, none of this ever completely destroys the hope for better luck in those who have once become accustomed to dogmatic persuasions. And hence I keep to my single and appropriate demand that they justify themselves, in a uni versal way and from the nature of the human understanding along with all other sources of cognition, in regard to this question: how do they want to set about expanding their cognition entirely a priori, and extending it to 365[As such.] ]66[In the Transcendental Analytic, A 64-2921B 89-349 (to some extent abo in the Tran scendental Aesthetic, A 1 9-491B 33-73).] ]67 [die Fruchtbarkeit.]
SECTION VII CRITIQUE OF SPECULATIVE THEOLOGY
615
[the realm] where no possible experience and hence no means whatever is sufficient to ensure the objective reality of any concept thought up by our selves? In whatever way the understanding may have arrived at this con cept, the existence of the concept's object still cannot be found analytically in the concept; for the cognition of the object's existence consists precisely in the object's being posited in itself outside the thought. But going out side a concept on one's own and managing to discover new objects and transcendene68 beings without pursuing the empirical connection (which, however, never gives us more than appearances)-this is entirely impos sible. But although reason in its merely speculative use is far from sufficient for achieving this great aim-viz., arriving at the existence of a highest being-it still has one great benefit. For in case the cognition of this being can be obtained from somewhere else,369 reason in its speCUlative use is able to correct this cognition; to make it harmonize with itself and with any intelligible aim; and to purify it of anything that might go against the concept of an original being, and purify it of any admixture of empirical limitations. Hence transcendental theology, in spite of all its insufficiency, still has an important negative use. For it is a constant appraisal370 of our reason when this reason deals merely with pure ideas-which pennit none but a transcendental standard precisely because they are ideas. For the presup position of a supreme and all-sufficient being as highest intelligence may once incontestably37 ! assert its validity, even if in a different-perhaps practical-reference. And in that case it would be of the greatest impor tance to determine this concept accurately on its transcendental side, as the concept of a necessary and maximally real being; and to remove from this concept whatever goes against supreme reality and belongs to mere ap pearance (viz., anthropomorphism in the broader meaning of this tenn); and get rid at the same time of all opposing assertions-whether atheistic, or deistic, or anthropomorphistic. Doing all this is very easy in such criti cal treatment; for the same bases by which we display human reason's in ability as regards the assertion of such a being's existence are necessarily also sufficient to prove the uselessness of any counter-assertion. For whence
{ A 640 B 668
to
368
[iiberschwenglich.] 369 [Vi z., from reason in its pure practical (i.e .. moral) use.] 310 [ Zensu r. ] l1i [ohne Wider",de.]
{ A 641 B 669
616
A 642 B 670
}
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
is anyone to obtain, by pure speculation of reason, the insight thaen there is no supreme being as original basis of everything; or thae73 this being has none of the properties that we conceive, by their consequences, as ana logical with the dynamical realities of a thinking being; or thae 74 these properties would in the latter case375 also have to be subjected to all the limitations that sensibility imposes inevitably on the intelligences that are familiar to us through experience? Hence the supreme being remains for the merely speculative use of rea son a mere ideal-but yet a faultless ideal, a concept that concludes and crowns the whole of human cognition. Although the concept's objective reality cannot be proved by this speculative path, it also cannot be refuted by it. And if there were to be a moral theology that can compensate for this deficiency, 376 then transcendental theology-previously only problematic-proves itself indispensable: by the detennination of its con cept,377 and by the unceasing appraisal of a reason that is deluded often enough by sensibility and is not always in harmony with its own ideas. Ne cessity, infinity, unity, existence outside the world (rather than as world soul),378 eternity without conditions of time, omnipresence without condi tions of space, omnipotence, etc.: all of these are transcendental predi cates; and hence the purified concept of them, which any theology needs so very much, can be obtained only from transcendental theology.
372 [ As the atheist claims.] ]73 [As the deist claims.] 374 [As the anthropomorphist claims.] 3 7s[Of their being thus analogical.] 37 6 [See A 804-19
=
B 832-47, esp. A 808-16
377[Of a supreme being.]
=
B 836-44).]
' 78[See the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 392, and cf. 374-75.]
APPENDIX TO THE TRANSCENDENTAL DIALECTIC ON THE REGULATIVE USE OF THE IDEAS OF PURE REASONl The outcome of all dialectical attempts of pure reason does not only con firm what we have already proved in the Transcendental Analytic, viz., that all our inferences seeking to take us beyond the realm of possible experi ence are deceptive and baseless? Rather, the outcome of those attempts teaches us also this special fact: that human reason has in these attempts3 a natural propensity to overstep this realm's boundary; and that transcen dental ideas are just as natural to human reason as the categories are to the understanding. But there is this difference: whereas the categories lead to truth, i.e., to the agreement of our concepts with the object,4 the transcen dental ideas bring about a mere illusion5 -although an irresistible one--which we can barely prevent from deluding6 us, even by means of the most rigorous critique. Whatever has its basis in the nature of our powers7 must be purposive8 and be accordant with their correct use-if only we can prevent a certain misunderstanding and thus can discover these powers' proper direction. Hence presumably the transcendental ideas will have their good and conl [See Gerd Buchdahl, op. cit. at A 1 761B 2 1 8 hr. n. 3, 497-5 16. See also H. W. Cassirer, op. cit. at A 211B 35 hr. n. 22, 330-50. J. N. Findlay, op. cit. at A 211B 35 hr. n. 22, 241-45. Also Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 2931B 349 hr. n. 2, vol. 3, 546-601 . Also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii hr. n. 5, 543-52. Also W. H. Walsh, op. cit. at A 2931B 349 hr. n. I , 241--49. And see T. D . Weldon, op. cit. at A 2 1 1B 3 5 hr. n . 22, 232-45.] 2 [grundlos. On Grund, see B xix hr. n. 79.] 3 [dabei.] 4[Objekt here, Gegenstand in the next paragraph; and so on. See A vii hr. n. 7.] '[Schein.] 6[Tciuschung.] ' [I.e., mental powers: Krdfte. Here Kraft is a synonym for Vermogen-for which see A xii hr. n. 16.] 8 [zweckmdjJig. See A 622
=
B 650 hr.
n.
285.]
617
{ A 643 B 671
618
A 644
B 672
}
PART II TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
sequently immanent use, although when their signification9 is misunder stood 10 and they are taken to be concepts of actual things, they can be tran scendent in their application and can on that very account be deceptive. For it is not the idea in itself but merely its use l l that can in regard to our entire possible experience be either overreaching (transcendent) or indig enous (immanent), 1 2 according as the idea either is directed straightfor wardly to an object that supposedly corresponds to it, or is directed only to the understanding's use as such! 3 in regard to the objects dealt with by the understanding. And hence all errors of subreption 14 are to be attributed always to a deficiency in the power of judgment, 1 5 but never to the under standing or to reason. Reason never refers straightforwardly l6 to an object, but refers solely to the understanding, and by means of it to reason's own empirical use. Hence reason does not create any concepts (of objects), but only orders them and gives to them that unity which they can have in their greatest possible ex tension, 1 7 i.e., the unity which they can have in reference to totality on the part of series. The understanding takes no account at all of this totality, but takes account only of the connection whereby series of conditions come about everywhere according to concepts. Hence reason properly has as its object only the understanding and the purposive engagement thereof. And just as the understanding unites the manifold in the object by means of con9 [Bedeutung. See A 1 391B 178 br. n. 66.] IO [verkennen.] II [By the power of judgment; see just below.]
l 2[uberfiiegend (transzendent) oder einheimisch (immanent).] 1 3[uberhaupt (see B xxvii br. n. 106); i.e., even apart from any intuition, and hence even be yond possible experience.] l4[Subreption, also called by Kant Erschleichung. See A 791-92 B 81 9-20, and cf. A 36/B 53, A 1491B 1 88, A 3 1 11B 368, A 389, A 402, A 509 B 537, A 583 B 6 1 1 , A 619 B 647. See also Kant's Inaugural Dissertation (1 770), De mundi sensibilis atque intelligibilis forma et principiis (On the Form and Principles of the Sensible and Intelligible World), § 24, Ak. 11, 4 1 2: ". . . praestigia intellectus, per subomationem conceptus sensitivi, tamquam notae in tellectualis, dici posset (secundum analogiam signijicatus recepti) vitium subreptionis, " i.e., "We may call fallacy of subreption (by analogy with the accepted meaning) the intellect's trick of slipping in a concept of sense as if it were the concept of an intellectual character istic." Cf. also the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 257.] =
==
l5[UrteilskraJt. See A 1 301B 169 br. n. 3.] l 6 [I.e . , directly: geradezu.] 17 [Ausbreitung.]
==
==
APPENDIX
REGULATIVE USE OF THE IDEAS
619
cepts, so reason in its tum unites the manifold of concepts by means of ideas-viz., by setting a certain collective unity as the goal of the under standing's acts, which otherwise deal only with distributive unity. Accordingly, I maintain that the transcendental ideas are never of con stitutive 18 use, i.e., a use 1 9 whereby concepts of certain objects would be given; and in case they are nonetheless understood in that way, they are merely subtly reasoning20 (i.e., dialectical) concepts. On the other hand, the transcendental ideas have a superb and indispensably necessary regu lative use: viz., to direct2 1 the understanding to a certain goal by refer ence22 to which the directional lines of all the understanding's concepts con verge in one point. And although this point of convergence is only an idea (focus imaginarius), 23 i.e., a point from which-since it lies entirely out side the bounds of possible experience-the concepts of understanding do not actually emanate, it yet serves to provide for these concepts the great est unity, in addition24 to the greatest extension. Now from this there does indeed arise for us the delusion25 whereby it seems as if these directional lines had sprung forth26 from an object itself, lying outside the realm of empirically possible cognition Gust as objects27 are seen behind the mir ror's plane). Yet this illusion28 (which we can, after all, prevent from de ceiving us), is nonetheless indispensably necessary if, besides the objects that are before our eyes, we want at the same time to see-far from these objects29-�so the objects that lie behind our back. I.e., the illusion is nec essary if, in our own case, we want to direct30 the understanding beyond 18[Emphasis added; likewise in 'regulative' just below.] 19[5O daft.] 20[verniinftelnde.] 21 [richten.] 22[in Aussicht.] 2J[lmaginary focus.] 24[neben.] 2' [7auschung.]
26[Reading, with Hartenstein and the Akademie edition, ausgeschossen for ausgeschlossen.] 27[Viewed in a mirror.] 2"[Illusion. ]
29[Viz., objects o f experience.] JO[abrichten.]
{ A 645
B 673
620
A 646 B 674
}
PART II 1RANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
every given experience (as part of the entirety of possible experience), and hence also to direct it to its greatest possible and utmost expansion. If we survey our cognitions of understanding in their whole range, we find that what reason decrees and tries to bring about concerning them-as a goal quite peculiar to reason-is the systematic character of cognition, i.e., its coherence based on a3 1 principle. This unity of reason always pre supposes an idea, viz., the idea of the form of a whole of cognition-a whole that precedes the determinate cognition of the parts and that con tains the conditions for determining a priori for each part its position and its relation to the remaining parts. Accordingly, this idea postulates32 com plete unity of the cognition of understanding, whereby this cognition is not merely a contingent aggregate but becomes a system that coheres accord ing to necessary laws. This idea cannot properly be said to be a concept of the object, but can be said only to be a concept of the thoroughgoing unity of such33 concepts, insofar as this unity serves the understanding as a rule. Such concepts of reason are not drawn from nature; rather, we interrogate nature in accordance with these ideas, and we consider our cognition to be deficient as long as it is not adequate to them. We admit that pure earth, pure water, pure air, etc., are scarcely to be found. Yet the concepts of them (which, therefore, as far as the complete purity is concerned, have their ori gin only in reason) are needed by us in order properly to determine what share each of these natural causes has in [the whole of) appearance. And thus, in order to explain in accordance with the idea of a mechanism the chemical effects that [different] kinds of matter34 have on one another, we reduce35 all kinds of matter to earths (mere weight, as it were), to salts and flammable entities (considered as force), and finally to water and air as ve hicles (the machines, as it were, by means of which the first tw036 produce their effects3?). For although we do not actually express ourselves in that way, we can yet readily detect such an influence of reason on the divisions made by investigators of nature. 3 1 [Or 'one' : einem.] 32 [And thus (in the original sense of 'to postulate' ) demands.] 33[dieser.] 34 [Materien.] "[bringen.] 3"[Weight and force.] 37[wirken.]
APPENDIX
REGULATIVE USE OF THE IDEAS
62 1
If reason is a power to derive the particular from the universal, then there are two alternatives. 3 8 Either, first, 39 the universal is already certain in it self and given. On this alternative, only the power ofjudgment is required, for subsumption, and by this sUbsumption the particular is determined nec essarily. I shall call this the apodeictic use of reason. Or, second, the uni versal is assumed only problematically and is a mere idea; i.e., the par ticular is certain but the universality of the rule for this consequence40 is still a problem. Thus here several particular cases, all of which are certain, are tried out on the rule as to whether they issue from it. And if, on this second alternative,41 it seems that all particular cases that we can indicate do follow from the rule, then we infer the rule's universality; and from this universality we afterwards infer also all cases that are not in themselves42 given. This I shall call the hypothetical use of reason. The hypothetical use of reason based on43 ideas, as problematic con cepts,44 is properly speaking not constitutive. I.e., this use of reason is not such45 that-if we are to judge with all strictness-there follows from it the truth of the universal rule that has been assumed as hypothesis. For how is one to know all the possible consequences that, inasmuch as they fol low from the same assumed principle, prove the principle's universality? Rather, this use of reason is only regulative. 46 Through it we seek, as far as possible, to bring unity into the particular cognitions, and thereby to bring the nile close to universality. Hence the hypothetical use of reason aims at the systematic unity of the cognitions of understanding; this unity, however, is the touchstone of the truth of the understanding's rules. On the other hand,47 the systematic unity 38 [On the upcoming distinction between the apodeictic and the hypothetical (or the consti tutive and the regulative) uses of reason, compare and contrast Kant's distinction between determinative and reflective judgment in the Critique of Judgment: Ak. Y, 179-8 1 . ]
39[ first' inserted; likewise 'second' just below.] '
41 [To clarify this paragraph, I have used both 'alternative' and 'case' 42 [an sich, used loosely here; likewise repeatedly below.] 43[aus zum Grunde gelegten.] 44 [Cf. A 4821B 5 1 0.]
45 [SO beschaffen.] 46
[Emphasis added ]
47[umgekehrt.]
to
translate Fall.]
{ A 647
B 675
622
A 648 B 676
}
A 649 B 677
}
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
(as a mere idea) is nothing more than a projected unity, which in itself must be regarded not as given but only as a problem. This unity, however, serves us in finding a principle for the manifold and particular use of understand ing, and thereby serves us in guiding this use48 and making it coherent also concerning the cases that are not given. This, however, shows only that the systematic unity--or unity of rea son--of the manifold cognition of understanding is a logical principle: viz., a principle which serves to assist the understanding by means of ideas in cases where the understanding is not sufficient for setting up rules, and which serves at the same time to provide the diversity49 of the understand ing's rules-as far as this can be done-with accordance under a50 prin ciple (systematic accordance) and thereby with coherence. But this merely logical principle does not decide whether the character of the objects--or of the nature of the understanding that cognizes them as such objects-is in itself determined for systematic unity, and whether we may therefore, even without taking account of such an interest of reason, postulate this unity a priori in a manner [implying] certainty.5 1 And hence the logical prin ciple does not decide whether we may say that all possible cognitions of understanding (including the empirical ones) have unity of reason and fall under common principles from which they can be derived in spite of their diversity. A principle deciding all of this would be a transcendental prin ciple of reason, i.e., a principle that would make the systematic unity nec essary not merely subjectively and logically, as a method, but objectively. Let me illustrate this point by an instance of the use of reason. To the various kinds of unity according to concepts of understanding there be longs also the unity of the causality of a substance-the causality which is called [power or] force. 52 The various appearances of the same substance show, at first glance, so much heterogeneity that one must at the outset as sume almost as many kinds oF3 [powers or] forces of this substance54 as there are effects coming to the fore. Thus in the human mind we assume at 48 [diesen, which by (Kantian) grammar could refer back also to 'understanding.' ] 49[Or 'variety ' : Verschiedenheit ] 50 [Or 'under one.'] > ' [in gewisser MafJe. This (feminine) noun, MafJe (,manner'), is no longer in use).]
52 [Kraft·] 53 [vielerlei.] 54 [derselben ]
APPENDIX
REGULATIVE USE OF THE IDEAS
623
the outset [such powers as] sensation, consciousness, imagination, memory, ingenuity, 55 discrimination, 5 6 pleasure, desire, etc. But a logical maxim commands us at the outset to diminish as much as possible this seeming diversity57 by comparing [these powers] and thereby discovering their hid den identity, and by examining whether imagination combined with con sciousness is not [the same as] memory, ingenuity, discrimination, or per haps even [the same as] understanding and reason. We have thus the idea of a basic power; and although logic does not at all ascertain whether there is such a power, the idea of such a power is at least the problem posed for a systematic presentation of the manifoldness of powers. The logical prin ciple of reason demands that we bring about this systematic unity as far as possible; and the more the appearances of one power and another are found to be identical to each other, the more probable does it become that these appearances are nothing but different58 manifestations of one and the same power-which may be called (comparatively) their basic power. And we proceed in the same way with the remaining powers. The comparative basic powers must in turn be compared with one an other, so that by discovering their accordance we can bring them close to a single radical-i.e., absolute-basic power. But this unity of reason among the powers is merely hypothetical. For we are not asserting that such a power must in fact be there. 59 Rather, we are asserting that we must-for reason's benefit, viz., in order to set up certain principles-seek this abso lute basic power for the various rules that may be provided to us by ex perience, and that we must in this way bring systematic unity into cogni tion wherever this can be done. But if we direct our attention to the understanding' s transcendental use, we find that this idea of a basic power as such is not determined merely as a problem for hypothetical use. Rather, the idea claims to have objective reality, and through this claim the systematic unity of the various powers of a substance is postulated and an apodeictic60 principle of reason is set S5 [Witz.]
56[More literally, 'power to differentiate' Unterscheidungskraft.] 57[This maxim-that principles (or entities) must not be multiplied beyond necessity-is tra ditionally called Ockham's Razor, after William of Ockham ( 1300-49), the English scholas tic philosopher.] 5S [ verschieden.] 59 [Kant says literally, 'be encountered' : angelroffen werden.] 6O [Rather than merely problematic. C f A 646-471B 674-75.]
{ A 650
B 678
624
A 65 1 B 679
}
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
up. For without ever having attempted to discover the accordance of the various powers-indeed, even if all our attempts to discover it fail-we still presuppose that such accordance will be there.61 And we presuppose this not only, as in the case just mentioned,62 because of the unity of the substance. Rather, even where many, although to a certain degree homo geneous substances are found, as in matter in general, reason presupposes systematic unity of manifold [powers or] forces-where the particular natu ral laws fall under more general ones, and parsimony of principles63 is not merely an economical principle of reason but becomes an intrinsic law of nature. It is, indeed, impossible to see how there could be a logical64 principle concerning the unity of reason of nature's rules, if we did not presuppose a transcendental principle whereby such systematic unity, construed as at taching to the objects themselves, is assumed a priori as necessary. For by what right can reason in its logical use demand that the manifoldness of forces which nature allows65 us to cognize should be treated as a merely hidden [actual] unity and should be derived as much as possible66 from some basic [power or] force, if reason were free to admit as likewise pos sible that all forces are [actually] heterogeneous and that the systematic unity of their derivation does not conform to nature? For reason would then proceed in a manner contrary to its vocation,67 by setting itself as a goal an idea that would entirely contradict nature's [actual] arrangement. Nor can we say that this unity according to principles of reason was gleaned by reason previously from the contingent character of nature. For reason's law whereby we are to seek this unity is necessary, because without this law we would have no reason at all, but without reason would have no co herent use of the understanding, and in the absence of such use would have no sufficient mark of empirical truth. And hence, in view of this mark, we must throughout presuppose the systematic unity of nature as objectively valid and necessary. 61 [Literally, 'to be encountered' : anzutreffen.] 62 [l.e., the case of the human mind.] 6'[Here the term is Prinzipien. just below it is Grundsatz. See A vii, br. n. 7.] 64[Emphasis added; likewise for 'transcendental' just below.] 65 [gibt.] 66 [soviel an ihr ist.J 67 [Bestimmung. which also means 'determination.'J
APPENDIX
REGULATIVE USE OF THE IDEAS
625
We also find this transcendental presupposition hidden, in a marvelous way, in the principles of philosophers, although these philosophers have not always recognized68 it in them, or admitted the presupposition to them selves. Consider the principle that all the manifoldnesses among individual things does not exclude the identity of a species; that the various species must be treated only as the different determinations of a few genera, but these genera as the different determinations of still higher families, 69 etc.; and that we must therefore seek a certain systematic unity of all possible empirical concepts insofar as they can be derived from higher and more general ones. This principle is a rule of the school7o-or a logical principle-without which no use of reason would take place; for we can make inferences from the general to the particular only insofar as we base such inferences on general properties of things under which the particular properties fall. 71 But that such accordance is found also in nature is presupposed by phi losophers in this familiar rule of the school: that rudiments72 (principles) must not needlessly be multiplied (entia praeter necessitatem non esse mul tiplicanda). 73 This rule says that the nature of things itself offers material for the unity of reason, and that the apparently infinite variety must not keep us from presuming behind it a unity of basic properties-properties from whic4 the manifoldness can be derived only by further determina tion. 74 This unity, despite being a mere idea, has at all times been pursued so eagerly that people have found cause to moderate rather than to encour age the desire for it. Great75 though it was already that chemists76 were able to reduce all salts to two main genera, acid and alkaline, they are even 68 [erkannt.]
69[ Geschlecht.] 70 [See A 649
=
B 677 br. n. 57.]
7 I [On this rule, as well as those discussed below (up to A 6681B 696), see the Critique of JUdgment, Ak. V, 182, and cf. 1 85-88. See also the First Introduction to that same work, Ak. XX, 210- 1 6.] 72 [Atiflinge (literally 'beginnings').] 73 [Th.at entities must not be multiplied beyond necessity; cf. A 649 74 [Of these properties.] 7' [vie!.] 76 [Scheidekiinstler (literally, 'separation artists').]
=
B 677 br. n. 57.]
{ A 652
B 680
626 A 653 B 68 1
}
A 654 B 682
}
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
trying to regard this difference also as merely a variation77 or different manifestation of one and the same basic material. They have sought to re duce little by little the various kinds of earths (the material of stones and even of metals) to three, and finally to two; but, not yet content with this, they cannot rid themselves of the thought of presuming nonetheless a single genus behind these varieties78-indeed, of presuming a common principle even for these earths and the salts. One might think/9 perhaps, that this [attempt to find such unity] is merely an economical stratagem80 that rea son uses in order to save itself as much trouble as possible, and merely a hypothetical attempt that-if successful-provides probability to the pre supposed basis of explanation precisely through this unity. Yet such a self ish aim can easily be distinguished from the idea whereby everyone pre supposes that this unity of reason is commensurate with nature itself, and that reason is here not begging but commanding, although without being able to determine the bounds of this unity. Suppose (a case that is readily thinkable) that among the appearances offering themselves to us there were so great a diversity-I will not say in form (for in that regard appearances may be similar to one another), but in content, i.e., in the manifoldness of existing beings-that even the very keenest human understanding could not by comparing appearances with one another discover the slightest similarity. If that were so, then the logical law of genera would have no place at all; and even a concept of genus, or any general concept whatsoever, would have no place-nor, indeed, would even an understanding, which deals solely with such concepts. Hence the logical principle of genera, if it is to be applied to nature8 l (by which I here mean only those objects that are given to us), then it presupposes a transcendental one. According to this transcendental principle, homogene ity is necessarily presupposed in the manifold of a possible experience (al though we cannot a priori determine the degree of this homogeneity); for without homogeneity no empirical concepts and hence no experience would be possible. 77 [Varietiit. ] 78 [ Varietiiten.] 79[glauben.] 8o [Handgriff ] " ! [Or 'to what is nature' : auf Natur.]
APPENDIX
REGULATIVE USE OF THE IDEAS
627
The logical principle of genera, which postulates 8 2 identity, is opposed by another one, viz., the principle of species. This principle requires of things-regardless of their agreement under the same genus-manifoldness and diversity, and makes it a precept for the understanding to be no less attentive to these than to identity. This principle8 3 of species (or of mental acuteness, or discrimination84) greatly limits the frivolity 85 of the principle of genera (or of ingenuity) . 8 6 Thus reason shows here a twofold interest-two interests that conflict with each other: on the one hand the interest of range (generality) as concerns genera, on the other hand the in terest of content (determinateness) in regard to the manifoldness of spe cies; for although in the first case the understanding thinks much under its concepts, yet in the second case it thinks all the more in the concepts them selves. This twofold interest manifests itself also in the very different ways of thinking found among investigators of nature. Some of them (who are primarily speculative) always look-being, as it were, hostile to hetero geneity-to the unity of the genus; the others (primarily empirical minds) unceasingly seek to split nature into so much manifoldness that on their view one would almost have to give up any hope of judging87 nature's ap pearances according to general principles. Obviously this latter88 way of thinking is likewise based on a logical principle. �his principle89 aims at the systematic completeness of all cog nition. It applies when I descend, starting from the genus, to the manifold that may be contained thereunder, seeking in this way to provide the sys tem with extension-just as in the first case,90 where I ascend to the ge82[Which here again implies 'demands.'] 83[ Grundsatz here, Prinzip at the beginning of the paragraph. See A vii br. n. 7.]
84[Respectively, Scharfsinnigkeit and Unterscheidungsvermogen.] 8s[Leichtsinn.] 86[ Witz. In the Anthropology, ingenuity-Witz (ingenium)-is described as the power to think up the (general or) universal for the particular; and the power to find the particular for the (general or) universal (the rule) is called simply power ofjudgment. See Ak. VII, 221 , 201 , cf. 204.] 87[beurteilen; see A 601B 84 br. n. 69.]
88[Le., empirical.] 89[The principle of species.] 9O[The case of the pnnciple of genera 1
{ A 655
B 683
628
A 656 B 684
}
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
nus, I seek to provide the system with oneness.91 For from the sphere of a concept designating a genus one cannot see how far this sphere's division can proceed, just as from the space that can be occupied by matter one can not see how far the division of matter can proceed.92 Hence every genus requires different93 species, but these in tum require subspecies. And since there is94 no subspecies that does not always in tum have a sphere (a range, as conceptus communis95 ), reason in its full96 expansion demands that no species be regarded as being in itsel�7 the lowest. For since, after all, the species is always a concept that contains within itself only what is com mon to different things, this concept cannot be thoroughly98 determined. Hence the concept also cannot be referred proximately99 to an individual, but must consequently always contain under itself other concepts, i.e., sub species. This law of specification 100 could be expressed thus: entium va
rietates non temere esse minuendas. 101
One can readily see, however, that this logical102 law would likewise be without meaning and application, if there did not lie at its basis a tran scendental law of specification. This law does not, indeed, demand of the things that can become our objects an actual infinity of differences; for the logical principle, which asserts merely the indeterminateness of the logi cal sphere in regard to possible division, gives no occasion for such a de mand. But the transcendental law nonetheless imposes on the understand ing the demand that under every species that we encounter it must seek subspecies, and for every difference must seek smaller differences. For if 91 [I.e., unity: Einfalt. literally 'onefold(ness),' as contrasted with the just mentioned mani fold(ness).) 92 [See the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science. Ak. IV. 503-8.) 93[Or 'diverse': verschieden. ) 94[stat(finden.) 95 [Common concept (for more specific concepts); cf. the next sentence.) 96[ganz.) 97 [Or 'in principle': an sich selbst.) 98[durchgiingig.) 99[zuniichst.) 1 00rCf the Critique of Judgment. Ak. V. 1 86, and the First Introduction thereto, Ak. XX, 2 1 4-16. 242-43 ) !O1
[The varieties of entities must not lightly be diminished.)
1 02[Emphasis added; likewise for 'transcendental' just below )
APPENDIX
REGULATIVE USE OF THE IDEAS
629
there were no lower concepts, then there would also be no higher ones. Now the understanding cognizes everything only through concepts; con sequently, however far the understanding reaches in its process of division, it cognizes never through mere intuition, but always in tum through lower concepts. Cognition of appearances in their thoroughgoing l 03 determina tion (such cognition is possible only through understanding) requires a specification 1 04 of the understanding's concepts that must unceasingly be continued; and hence such cognition requires an advance to the always still remaining differences from which we had abstracted in the concept of the species and had abstracted even more in that of the genus. Moreover, this law of specification also cannot be borrowed from ex perience; for experience cannot provide us with such far-reaching disclo sures. Empirical specification soon comes to a halt in the differentiation of the manifold, if it has not already been preceded by the transcendental law of specification as a principle of reason, and has not been guided by this principle to seek such differentiation, and to continue to presume such dif ferentiation even when it is not manifested to the senses. To discover that absorbent earths are in tum lOS of different kinds (viz., calcareous and muri atic earths) we required an antecedent rule of reason that assigned to the understanding the task of seeking difference. The rule did this by presup posing nature to be so opulentl O6 that we may presume it to have such dif ference. For only under the presupposition of differences in nature do we have understanding, just as we have understanding only under the condi tion that nature's objects possess homogeneity. For the manifoldness of what can be collated lO7 under a concept is precisely what amounts to this concept's use and to the activity of the understanding. Hence reason prepares the understanding's realm by these means: ( 1 ) by a principle 108 of the homogeneity l o9 of the manifold under higher genera; (2) by a principle of the variety of the homogeneous under lower 103[durchgiingig.] l 04[Le., a making specific.] l 05 [Reading, with Mellin, noch for nach.) l(16[reichhaltig ] l 07[Le., arranged and held together (by us, and thus comprised by the concept): zusammenge faflt. See B 1 14 br. n. 239.] 108[Prinzip here, Grundsatz just below. See A vii br. n. 7.] trl9[Gleichartigkeit here. Homogenitiit just below ]
{ A 657
B 685
630
A 658 B 686
}
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
species;-and, in order to complete llO the systematic unity, reason adds (3) also a law of the affinity of all concepts, a law that commands a con tinuous transition from every species I I I to every other species through a step-wise increase of difference. I l 2 We may call these three rules the principles of the homogeneity, of the specification, 1 I 3 and of the continuity of forms. The third principle arises by our uniting the first two, after we have-in our idea---completed the systematic coherence both in ascending to higher genera and in descending to lower species. For all manifold nesses l l4 are then akin to one another, because they stem one and all, through all degrees of the expanded determination, from a single highest genus. We can make the systematic unity among the three logical principles sensible 1 15 in the following manner. We can regard every concept as a point that serves as the standpoint of an observer and thus has its horizon, i.e., there i s a multitude of things that can be presented and-as it were-surveyed from this standpoint. Within this horizon there must be a multitude of points that can be indicated ad infinitum, each having in turn its own narrower purview. 1 16 I.e., every species contains subspecies, 1 1 7 ac cording to the principle of specification, l l 8 and the logical horizon con sists only of smaller horizons (subspecies), but not of points having no range (individuals). But for [several] different horizons (i.e., genera) 120 de termined by equally many concepts, a common horizon can be thought as drawn, from which those different horizons can one and all be surveyed as from a central point. This common horizon is the higher genus. And so on, until finally we reach the highest genus; this is the universal and true ho rizon, which is determined from the standpoint of the highest concept, and
1 19
A 659 B 687
}
HO[Or 'to perfect' : vollenden. ]
HI
[Art. ] 1 l 2 [Or 'diversity' : Verschiedenheit.] 1 1 3 [Spezijikation. ]
1 14[I.e., varieties.] 115[1.e., capable of being sensed.] 116[Gesichtskreis. ] 1l7[Respectively, Arten and Unteranen.] 1 18 [Spezijikation. ] 1 1 9[Of a genus or species.]
120[Parentheses added ]
APPENDIX
REGULATIVE USE OF THE IDEAS
63 1
which comprises under itself all manifoldness as [its] genera, species, and subspecies. To this highest standpoint I am led by the law of homogeneity; to all lower standpoints and to their greatest variety I am led by the law of speci fication. But since there is thus nothing empty in the entire range of all possible concepts, and since nothing can be encountered outside this range, the presupposition of that universal purview and of its thoroughgoing di vision 121 gives rise to this principle: Non datur vacuum formarum. 122 I.e., this principle says that there are not different original and first genera that are, as it were, isolated and separated from one another (by an empty in termediate space); rather, all the manifold genera are only divisions of a single highest and universal genus. And from that principle there arises this direct consequence: Datur continuum formarum. 123 I.e., according to this principle all differences of species border on one another and permit no transition to one another by a leap, but permit a transition only through all the smaller degrees of differencel 24 through which one can get from one species to another. In a word, this principle says that there are (in reason's concept) no species or subspecies that are nearest to each other; rather, in termediate [third] species are always still possible whose difference from the first and the second species is smaller than the difference between these two. Thus the first law keeps us from straying into accepting a manifoldness of different original genera, and recommends homogeneity. The second law, on the other hand, limits in tum this inclination toward accordance, and commands us to distinguish subspecies before we take our general concept and tum with it to individuals. The third law unites these two, inasmuch as amidst the utmost manifoldness it1 25 yet prescribes that we seek homo geneity through the stepwise transition from one species 1 26 to another-a transition which indicates a kind of kinship of the different branches inso far as all of them are offshoots from one stem. 1 21 [Einteilung here, Abteilung just below.] 1 22[There is no vacuum of forms.] 1 23[There is a continuum of forms.] 1 24[Unterschied here and (twice) just below; Verschiedenheit just above.] 1 25 [Reading, with Hartenstein and the Akademie edition, es for sie.] 126 [Spezies.]
{ A 660 B 688
632
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
However, this logical law of the continuum specierum (formarum logi carum) 1 27 presupposes a transcendental one (lex continui in natura). 1 28 For
A 66 1 B 689
}
without such a transcendental law, the understanding's use would only be misled by that logica1 1aw's prescription, inasmuch as this use 129 would then perhaps take a path directly opposite to nature. Hence this logical law must rest on pure transcendental and not on empirical bases. For in the latter case this law would come later than the systems; but in fact this law first gave rise to what is systematic in our cognition of nature. Nor indeed are there hidden behind these laws, 130 construed as mere attempts, any inten tions for a test to be performed with them-although where this coherence does occur 1 3 1 it provides, of course, a powerful basis for considering the hypothetically excogitated unity to be well-based, and although the laws thus have their benefit in this regard also. Rather, we can see distinctly from these laws that they judge the parsimony of basic causes, the manifoldness of effects, and a consequent kinship of the members of nature to be in them selves rational and commensurate with nature, and that these principles therefore carry their commendation with themselves directly and not merely as stratagems 1 32 of method. We can readily see, however, that this continuity of forms is a mere idea, for which no congruent object whatever can be shown in experience. This is so not only because the species in nature are actually separated and each species must therefore in itself amount to a quantum discretum, 1 33 and be cause if the stepwise progression in their kinship were continuous then this kinship would have to contain also a true infinity of intermediate members lying between 1 34 any two given species-which is impossible. Rather, the continuity of forms must be a mere idea also because we cannot make any determinate empirical use whatever of this law; for this law does not in dicate the least mark of affinity as to how-and how far-we are to seek 127[Continuum of species ([i.e.,] of logical fonns).] 128[Law of (the) continuum (or of continuity) in nature.] 1 29 [Reading, with Erdmann and the Akademie edition, er for sie.] \3°[The law just mentioned, along with the previous two laws that it unites and thus incor porates.] \ 3 1 [zutreffen.] 132 [Handg riffe.] 1 33[Discrete quantum.] 1 34[Kant literally says 'within' : innerhalb 1
APPENDIX
REGULATIVE USE OF THE IDEAS
633
the sequence of degrees of difference in this affinity, but contains nothing further than a general indication that we are to seek this affinity. If we now transpose the just mentioned principles in terms of their or der, so as to arrange them according to their use in experience, then the principles might stand in this order: manifoldness, kinship, and unity but each taken as an idea 1 35 in its highest degree of completeness. Reason pre supposes the cognitions of understanding that are applied proximately 136
{ A 662
B 690
-
to experience, and seeks their unity in terms of ideas-a unity that goes much further than experience can extend. The kinship that the manifold-irrespective of its diversity-has under a principle of unity con cerns not merely things, but concerns much more yet the mere properties and forces of things. Thus, e.g., if through an experience (that is not yet fully corrected) the [orbital] course of the planets is given to us as circu larB7 and we then find differences, we presume them to lie in what can change 138 a circle 1 39 according to a constant law, through all the infinite intermediate degrees, to one 140 of these divergent orbits; i.e., we presume that the planetary motions that are not circles will more or less approxi mate the properties of a circle; and thus we hit upon the ellipse. Comets show in their paths an even greater difference from the circle, since (as far as our observation extends) they do not even return in a circle. 1 4 1 But we guess that they follow a parabolic course, which is still akin to the ellipse, and which in all our observations is indistinguishable from an ellipse if the latter's major axis is extended very far. Thus, under the guidance of those principles, we arrive at unity of the genera of these paths' shape. But thereby we arrive in addition at unity of the cause of all the laws of these bodies' motion (viz., gravitation). From this cause we thereafter extend our conquests, and try to explain on the same principle also all variations and seeming departures from those rules. FinaUy we even add more than can ever be confirmed by experience: viz., we conceive, according to the rules of kinship, even hyperbolic comet paths; on such paths these bodies leave 13' [Reading, with Erdmann and the Alwdemie edition, Idee for Ideen.] 1 36 [zuniichsl.] 1 37[kre isfdrmig. ] 13 " [abiindern. elsewhere translated as 'alter' (which here would not work well grammati cally ).] 1 39 [Zirkel.]
1 40 [Reading, with Hartenstein and the Alwdemie edition. einem for einer.] 14 1[I.e ., they do not complete a revolution wherein they return to the same point.]
{ A 663 B 69 1
634
A 664 B 692
}
PART II
lRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
our solar world 142 altogether and, by going from sun to sun, they unite in their course the more distant parts of a-for us unbounded-world system that coheres through one and the same motive force. What is remarkable about these principles and is also our sole concern here is this: they seem to be transcendental. And although these principles contain mere ideas-which are to be observed 143 by reason's empirical use although they can be followed l44 by it only asymptotically, as it were, i.e., merely approximately, without ever being reached by it-they nonetheless have, as synthetic a priori propositions, objective but indeterminate valid ity and serve as rules of possible experience. Moreover, as we work on ex perience we actually use these principles with good success 145 as heuristic principles, despite our inability to bring about a transcendental deduc tion 146 of them. Such a deduction is always impossible in regard to ideas, as has been proved above. 1 47 In the Transcendental Analytic we made a distinction among the prin ciples of understanding: 1 48 we distinguished the dynamical principles, as merely regulative principles of intuition, from the mathematical, which are constitutive as regards intuition. Nonetheless, those dynamical laws are in deed 1 49 constitutive as regards experience, inasmuch as they make pos sible a priori the concepts without which no experience takes place. Prin ciples of pure reason, on the other hand, cannot be constitutive even as regards empirical concepts; for since no corresponding schema of sensi bility can be given for them, they cannot have an object in concreto. If I thus abandon such an empirical use of these principles taken as constitu tive, how am I nonetheless to secure for them a regulative use, and with it some objective validity, and what sort of signification can this regulative use have? The understanding amounts to an object for reason, just as sensibility is an object for the understanding. Making the unity of all possible empirical 142 [Le., the solar system.] 143[Or 'complied with': Befolgung.] 1 44 [folgen.] 1 " [Gluck.] 1 46 [Le., legitimation.] 141[See A 3361B 393; cf. A 669
=
B 697, A 787
=
B 81 5.]
1 4"[A 160-62/B 1 99-202.] 149[1 e , despite being merely regulative as regards intuition.]
APPENDIX
REGULATIVE USE OF THE IDEAS
635
acts of understanding systematic is a business of reason, just as the under standing has the business of connecting the manifold of appearances through concepts and of bringing this manifold under empirical laws. How ever, acts of understanding without schemata of sensibility are indetermi nate. 1 50 In the same way, the unity of reason is in itself also indeterminate as regards the conditions under which the understanding is to link its con cepts systematically, and as regards the degree to which-i.e., how far-the understanding is to do this. But although in intuition no schema can be found for the thoroughgoing systematic unity of all concepts of under standing, yet there can and must be given an analogue of such a schema-an analogue that is the idea of the maximum of the division and union of the understanding's cognitions in a principle. For what is greatest and abso lutely complete can be thought of determinately, because all restricting conditions-which yield indeterminate manifoldness-are being left out. Hence the idea of reason is an analogue of a schema of sensibility, but with this difference: application of the concepts of understanding to the schema of reason is not likewise (as is application of the categories to their sen sible schemata) a cognition of the object itself, but is only a rule or prin ciple for the systematic unity of all use of the understanding. Now, every principle that lays down a priori for the understanding the thoroughgo ing l5 1 unity of the latter's use holds also, although only indirectly, of the object l 52 of experience. Hence the principles of pure reason will have ob jectivel53 reality as regards this object also--not, however, so as to deter mine anything in this object, 1 54 but only so as to indicate the procedure whereby the understanding's empirical and determinate experiential use can become thoroughly l 55 accordant with itself. This use can become so by be ing as much as possible brought into coherence with, and derived from, the principle of thoroughgoing unity. I call maxims of reason all subjective principles that are obtained not from the character of the object, but from reason's interest concerning a certain possible perfection of the cognition of this object. Thus there are l'O[See A 1 37-42IB 1 76-8 1.] 151 [durchgiingig.] 1 52 [Gegenstand.] l s3[objektive.] l s4[Reading, with Wille, ihm for ihnen.] l ss[durchgiingig.]
{ A 665
B 693
B 694 A 666
636
A B
667 } 695
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
maxims of speculative reason, which rest solely on reason's speculative in terest, although it may seem as if they were objective principles. When merely regulative principles 1 56 are regarded as constitutive, then they can, as objective principles, be in conflict with each other. But if they are regarded merely as maxims, then there is no true conflict but merely a diverse interest of reason that causes the splitting of the way of thinking. In fact, reason has only one single 157 interest, and the dispute between rea son's maxims is only a diversity and reciprocal limitation of the methods used to satisfy this interest. Thus in one reasoning person 15 8 the interest of manifoldness (accord ing to the principle of specification), but in another the interest of unity (according to the principle of aggregation 159 ) may be stronger. 160 Each of them believes that he has acquired his judgment from insight into the ob ject, and is yet basing it solely on his greater or lesser attachment to one of the two principles. Neither16 1 of these principles rests on objective bases, but they rest only on the interest of reason; hence they might better be called maxims rather than principles. Sometimes men of insight dispute with one another concerning the characteristics of human beings, animals, or plants-indeed, even the characteristics of bodies in the mineral kingdom-some of them assuming, e.g., that there are special national char acteristics 1 62 based on lineage, or definite and hereditary differences of families, races, etc., while others have their mind set on maintaining that nature has made entirely uniform 163 predispositions in this regard and that all such difference rests only on external contingencies. When I see men M of insight disputing in this way, then I need only consider the character l of the object at issue in order to comprehend that this character lies far too deeply hidden for either side to be able speak: from insight into the nature 156 [Here (and at the beginning of the preceding paragraph) the term used is Grundsatz: just above and just below it is Prinzip. See A vii br. n. 7.] 1 57[Or 'unitary ' : einig.] I 58[Vemunftler.] l 5"[l.e., presumably, the principle of homogeneity.] 1 60[vennogen.]
161 [Reading, with Rosenkranz, keiner for keine. Kant seems to have thought that he had ju�t said Prinzipien (as he does again just below) rather than Grundsiitzen ]
162 [ Volkscharaktere.] 163[einerlei. ] 1 64 [Beschaffenheit. ]
APPENDIX
REGULATIVE USE OF THE IDEAS
637
of the object. 165 What manifests itself here is nothing but the twofold in terest of reason, of which the one party takes to heart--or, for that matter, affects-the one interest and the other party the other. Hence the maxims of nature's manifoldness and of nature's unity can indeed quite readily be reconciled; but as long as these maxims are regarded as objective insights, their difference occasions not only dispute but also obstacles. These ob stacles greatly 166 delay the truth, until a means is found to reconcile 167 the disputing interest and to satisfy reason in this regard. The situation is the same with the assertion or challenge of a very fa mous law initiated by Leibniz and excellently dressed up by Bonnet: the law of the continuous scale 168 of creatures. This law 169 is nothing but the fact of our compliance with the principle of affinity, which rests on the in terest of reason. For observation and insight into the arrangement of nature could in no way have provided us with this law as an objective assertion. The steps of such a scale, as they can be indicated to us by experience, stand much too far apart; and in nature itself our supposedly small differ ences on that scale commonly are such wide gaps that observations of this sort do not count for anything when taken as intentions of nature (above all in dealing with a great manifoldness of things, where finding certain similarities and approximations must always be easy). On the other hand, the method of looking for order in nature in accordance with such a prin ciple, and the maxim of regarding such order as having its basis in a na ture as such-although we leave undetennined as to where and how far this order may have such a basis-is indeed a legitimate and excellent regu1 65 [Objekt here, Gegenstand just above. See A vii br. n. 7.] 1 66[lang.] 167[Or 'unite': vereinigen.] ' 68 [Stufenleiter (literally 'stepladder'). As for Gottfried Wilhelm Leibniz ( 1 646-1 7 16), the ref erence seems to be to his principle of continuity. But more specifically (for the present con text), see his Nouveaux essais sur l 'entendement humain (New Essays Concerning Human Understanding, written in 1704 as a reply to Locke's Essay [ 1690] of the same title, but not published until 1 765), bk. III, ch. vi, § 12. Charles Bonnet (1720-93) was a Swiss naturalist and philosopher. In his Contemplation de la nature (Contemplation of Nature, 1 764-65), he further developed the idea of the scale of creatures (or chain of beings), construing this scale temporally rather than-as Leibniz had done-statically as resulting from divinely preestab lished hannony. See also Lorin Anderson, Charles Bonnet and the Order of the Known (Dor drecht and Boston: D. Reidel Publishing Company, 1 982). And see Arthur O. Lovejoy, The GT'f!at Chain of Being ' A Study of the History of an Idea; The William James LectUT'f!S De livered at Harvard Univer.rity, 1 933 (Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press, 1 936).] 169 [Reading, with Erdmann, welches for welche.]
{ A 668
B 696
638
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
lative principle of reason. But although this principle, as regulative, goes much further than the point where it l70 can be matched by experience or observation, yet it does so without determining anything. Rather, it only traces out for such experience or observation 1 7 1 the path to systematic unity.
A 669
B 697
}
ON THE FINAL AIM OF THE NATURAL DIALECTIC OF HUMAN REASON1 72 The ideas of pure reason can never in themselves be dialectical; rather, their mere misuse alone must bring it about that there arises from them a de ceptive illusionl 7 3 for us. For they are assignedl 74 to us by the nature of our reason, and this highest tribunal of all rights and claims of our specu lation cannot possibly itself contain original delusions and deceptions. 1 75 Hence presumably the ideas will have their good and purposive vocation in the natural predisposition of our reason. But the rabble of subtle reason ers 1 76 screams, as usual, about [alleged] absurdity and contradictions, and rails at reason's government. Yet these people are unable to penetrate into the innermost plans of this government, to whose beneficial influences they should feel indebted even for their own preservation and, indeed, for the very culture that enables them to rebuke and condemn that government. One cannot with any reliability employ an a priori concept without first having brought about a transcendental deduction of it. The ideas of pure reason do not, indeed, permit a deduction of the same kind as do the cat egories. l77 But if they are to have at least some objective validity--even if only an indeterminate one-and are not merely to present empty thought-
170[Reading, with Erdmann, ihm for ihr.] 1 7 1 [ihr.] I 72 [See Gerd Buchdah1, op. cit. at A 1 761B 2 1 8 br. n. 3, 520-30. See also Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 2931B 349 br. n. 2, va!. 3, 602-43. And see Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 552-6 1 .] l13[triigLicher Schein.] 174[auJgegeben, viz., as a problem. See A 4821B 5 10 cf. A 647 ,
1 75[Tiiuschungen und BLendwerke.] I 76[VemiinftLer.]
I 77[Cf. A 663-64
=
B 691-92 inc!. br. n. 147.]
=
B 67 5.]
APPENDIX
FINAL AIM OF THE NATURAL DIALECTIC
639
entities 1 78 (entia rationis ratiocinantis), 1 79 then a deduction 1 80 of them must definitely be possible, even supposing that it might deviate greatly from the deduction that one can carry out with the categories. This deduction will be the completion 181 of pure reason's critical business, and this de duction we shall now take on. It makes a great difference whether something is given to my reason as an object absolutely or only as an object in my idea. In the first case my concepts serve to 182 determine the object. In the second case there is ac tually only a schema. No object is directly added to this schema, not even hypothetically; rather, the schema serves 183 only for presenting, by means of the reference to this idea, other objects according to their systematic unity, and hence for presenting them indirectly. Thus I say that the concept of a supreme intelligence is a mere idea. I.e., its objective reality is not held to consist in the concept's referring straightforwardly 184 to an object (for we could not justify the concept's objective validity if we took it in that signification). Rather, the concept is only a schema-arranged accord ing to conditions of the greatest unity of reason-of the concept of a thing as such. This schema serves only to preserve the greatest systematic unity in our reason's empirical use; and it preserves this unity inasmuch as we derive, as it were, the object of experience from this idea's imagined ob ject considered as the basis or cause of the object of experience. One then says, e.g., that the things of the world must be regarded as if they had re ceived their existence from a supreme intelligence. In this way the idea is in fact only a heuristic and not an ostensive concept; and it indicates not what the character of an object is, but how we ought, under this concept's guidance, to search for the character and connection of experiential ob jects as such. Thus the three different 185 transcendental ideas (psychologil 7R[Gedankendinge; cf. A 290-921B 347-48.]
1 79 [Beings of (our) reasoning, as distinguished from entia rationis ratiocinatae, i.e., beings of reason, which will be mentioned at A 6811B 709. See also the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 468, and cf. 337n, 396.] 1 8°[Le., legitimation.] l Rl [Or 'the perfecting' : die Vollendung.] lR2 [gehen . . . dahin.] 'R3 [dienen.]
l84 [Le., directly: geradezu.] 1 8'[dreieriei.]
{ A 670
B 698
{ A 67 1
B 699
640
A 672 B 700
}
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
cal, cosmological, and theological) 186 are indeed not referred directly to any object corresponding to them and to the determination thereof. But if one can show that, nonetheless, under the presupposition of such an object in one 's idea all l 87 rules of reason's empirical use lead to systematic unity and always expand experiential cognition and can never go against it, then proceeding according to such ideas is a necessary maxim of reason. And this is the transcendental deduction l 88 of all ideas of speculative reason, not as constitutive principles of our cognition's expansion over more ob jects than experience can give, but as regulative principles of the system atic unity of the manifold of empirical cognition as such. By means of these regulative principles l 89 this cognition is, within its own bounds, cultivated and corrected more than could be done without such ideas and by using merely the principles of understanding. Let me make this point more distinct. In conformity with the mentioned ideas construed as principles, we shall [have a threefold regulative use thereof) . First (in psychology), we shall, by the guidance of inner experi ence, connect all appearances, actions, and receptivity of our mind as if this mind were a simple substance that (at least in life) exists permanently and with personal identity, while its states-to which the body's states be long only as external conditions-vary l 90 continually. Second (in cosmol ogy), we must trace the conditions of both internal and external natural ap pearance, in an inquiry not to be completed at any point, I 9 1 as if nature I 92 were in itself infinite and without a first or highest member. And although we must not l 93 therefore deny--<>utside of all appearances-the merely in telligible first bases of nature, we must never bring these bases into the con text of natural explanations, because we are not acquainted with them at all. Finally, and third. (as concerns theology), we must regard whatever may 1 86 [The ideas, respectively, of the thinking subject, of the sum of all appearances (the world). and of the thing containing the supreme condition of the possibility of all that can be thought (the being of all beings [i.e., God]): see-besides the remainder of the current section-A 3341B 391 .] 187[Grillo reads als for alie, thus construing the ideas as being these rules.] 1 88[I.e., legitimation.] 189 [dadun:h.] 19°[wechseln; see B 224 br. n. 45.] 1 91 [nirgend.] 192[dieselbe ; similarly just below.] 193[nicht diiifen, which in Kant almost always means 'need not.']
APPENDIX
FINAL AIM OF THE NATURAL DIALECTIC
64 1
belong in the context of possible experience as if this experience amounted to an absolute unity that were nonetheless dependent 194 throughout and were always still conditioned within the world of sense. Yet whatever be longs in that context must be regarded by us at the same time as if the sum of all appearances (the sensible world itself) had outside its own range a single highest and all-sufficient basis, viz.-as it were-an independent, 1 95 original, and creative reason. I mean a reason by reference to which we direct all our reason's empirical use, in its greatest expansion, as if the ob jects themselves had arisen from that archetype of all reason. This [three fold regulative use of our ideas thus] means the following: First, 196 we must not derive the internal appearances of the soul from a simple thinking sub stance, but must derive them from one another according to the idea of a simple being. Second, we must not derive the world order and its system atic unity from a supreme intelligence, but must, third, obtain from the idea of a supremely wise cause the rule whereby reason, when we connect causes and effects in the world, can best be used to its own satisfaction. Now, there is not the slightest obstacle to prevent us from assuming these ideas as also objective and hypostatic l 97-except only in the case of the cosmological idea, where reason comes upon an antinomy when it tries to bring about such an idea. (The psychological and theological ideas contain no such antinomy at all.) For there is no contradiction in [any of] these ideas; 198 hence how could someone dispute with us regarding the objec tive reality of these ideas, when he knows no more concerning their [ob jects' real] possibility in order to deny it, than we do in order to affirm it? Nevertheless, the fact that there is no positive obstacle against assuming something is not yet sufficient [justification] for doing so; and we cannot be permitted--on the mere trust1 99 of a speculative reason that likes to com plete its business-to introduce as actual and determinate objects what are only thought-beings200 that surpass all our concepts, although such beings do so without contradicting any of these concepts. Hence these [things] are 194[abhiingig.) '9' [selbstiindig.) ' 96 ['First' added; likewise 'Second' and 'third' just below.) ' 97 [Substantive (i.e., pertaining to substance).) 198 [Not even in the cosmological idea; for the antinomy (A 405-611B 432-89), although an obstacle, has been solved (A 5 15-651B 543-93).) I 99[Kredit.) 2oo[Gedankenwesen. Cf. Gedankendinge: A 290-92/B 347-48.)
{ A 673 B 701
{ A 674 B 702
642
A 675 B 703
}
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
not to be assumed in themselves, but the reality of these [ideas] is to be assumed to hold only as the reality of a schema for the regulative principle of systematic unity of all cognition of nature; and hence these [things] are to be laid at the basis20 ) only as analogues of actual things, but not as in themselves actual things. First we annul in202 the idea's object the condi tions that limit our concept of understanding, but that also alone make pos sible our having a determinate concept of any thing. 203 And now we think a something of which, as to what it is in itself, we have no concept what ever, but for which we can nonetheless think a relation-analogous to the relation that appearances have among one another-that this something has to the sum of appearances. Accordingly, if we assume such ideal beings, then we do not in fact ex pand our cognition beyond the objects of possible experience; rather, we then expand only the empirical unity of this experience, viz., through the systematic unity for which the idea provides the schema. Hence this idea holds not as a constitutive but only as a regulative principle. For by pos iting a thing-a something, or actual being---corresponding to the idea, we do not say that we seek to expand our cognition of things by means of tran scendene04 concepts. For we lay this being at the basis205 not in itself but only in our idea, and hence only so as to express the systematic unity that is to serve us as a guideline for reason's empirical use. But we do this with out establishing anything concerning the basis of that unity, or concerning the intrinsic property of such a being on which as cause this unity rests. Thus the transcendental and sole determinate concept that merely specu lative reason provides of God is-in the strictest meaning of the term-deistic. I.e., reason provides us not even with the objective validity of such a concept, but provides us only with the idea of something on which the supreme and necessary unity of all reality is based, and which we can not think except on the analogy of an actual substance as cause of all things according to laws of reason. Only thus can we think this something-if. 20 1 [Of that cognition.] 202 [von.] 203[Emphasis added.]
204[transzendent. The fourth and fifth editions have 'transcendental' (ef A 340/B 398) Bu t see A 565 = B 593 (ef. A 469 = B 497), and contrast the tralUcendentai (becau�e legitimatel) used) deistic concept mentioned at the beginning of the next paragraph.] 205 [I.e., at the basis of empirical cognition (our reason's empirical use).]
APPENDIX
FINAL AIM OF THE NATURAL DIALECTIC
643
indeed, we undertake to think it as a separate206 object at all, and do not prefer to be content with the mere idea of reason's regulative principle, and to set aside the completion of all conditions of thought as a goal transcen dent207 for human understanding. This latter alternative, however, cannot coexist with the aim of achieving in our cognition a perfect systematic unity to which reason at least sets no limits. Hence comes about this [twofold fact] : On the one hand, if I assume a divine being, then I have indeed not the slightest concept either of the in trinsic possibility of this being's supreme perfection or of the necessity of this being's existence. But, on the other hand, I can then nonetheless deal adequately with all those other questions that concern what is contingent, and can provide for reason the most perfect satisfaction as regards the great est unity that reason in its empirical use is to search for-although not as regards that being's presupposition itself. This [twofold fact] proves that reason's speculative interest and not its insight is what entitles208 reason to start from a point lying so far beyond its sphere, in order to contemplate its objects from that point as a complete whole. Thus we can see here a distinction in the way of thinking-given209 one and the same presupposition-that is fairly subtle but yet of great impor tance in transcendental philosophy. I may have sufficient ground to assume something relatively (suppositio relativa), and yet not be entitled2 1 0 to as sume it absolutely2 1 1 (suppositio abso[uta)? 12 This distinction applies when we are concerned merely with a regulative principle of which we do in deed cognize the necessity in itself but not the source thereof, and when we assume for this necessity a supreme basis merely in order to think the principle's universality so much more determinately---e . g., when I think as existing a being corresponding to a mere idea that is, moreover, transcen dental. For then I can never assume this thing's existence in itself; for this existence cannot be reached by any of the concepts through which I can think any object determinately, and the conditions of my concepts' objec206[besonder.] 207[iiberschwenglich.] 2°"[berechtigen.] 209[bei.] 210[bejugt. ] 21 \ [schlechthin.]
2 12[(Make a)
relative and absolute supposition. respectively.]
{ A 676
B 704
{ A 677
B 705
644
A 678 B 706
}
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
tive validity are excluded by the idea itself. The concepts of reality, sub stance, causality, and even of necessity in existence have-apart from the use whereby they make empirical cognition of an object possible213-no signification whatever that would determine any object. Hence they can in deed be used to explain the possibility of things in the world of sense, but not the possibility of a world whole itself, because the basis for explaining this world whole would have to be outside the world and hence could not be an object of possible experience. Now, I can nonetheless assume such an incomprehensible being-the object of a mere idea-relatively to the world of sense, although not in itself. For if the greatest possible empirical use of my reason is based on an idea (the idea of systematically complete unity, of which I shall soon speak more determinately214), and if this idea can never in itself be exhibited adequately in experience but is yet ines capably necessary in order for me to bring empirical unity close to its high est possible degree, then I shall be not only entitled but also compelled to realize this idea. I.e., I must then posit for this idea an actual object. But I must posit this object only as a something as such with which I am not at all acquainted in itself, and to which, as a basis of that systematic unity and in reference thereto, I merely give such properties as are analogous to the concepts of understanding employed in the understanding's empirical use. Hence by analogy with the realities in the world-i.e., the substances, the causality, and the necessity-I shall think a being that possesses all of this in supreme perfection. And inasmuch as this idea rests merely on my reason, I shall be able to think this being as an independenr 1 5 reason that is the cause of the world whole through its ideas of the greatest harmony and unity. Thus I omit all conditions limiting the idea, solely in order to make possible-under the safeguard of such an original being-the sys tematic unity of the manifold in the world whole, and, by means of this unity, the greatest possible empirical use of reason. This I do by regarding all linkages as if they were arrangements made by a supreme reason of which our reason is a faint copy. I then think this supreme being en tirely216 through concepts that in fact have their application only in the world of sense. But since, on the other hand, I have that transcendental pre supposition available for none but a .relative use-viz., that use whereby it 213 [l.e., sensible intuition, as matter, is determined by the concepts, as form ] 21 4[See below, A 680-88 21 5 [seLb.•tiindig.] 2 1 6 [lauter.]
=
B 708-16.]
APPENDIX
FINAL AIM OF THE NATURAL DIALECTIC
645
is to provide merely the substratum of the greatest possible unity of experience-I may quite readily think a being that I distinguish from the world [of sense and yet think it] through properties that belong solely to the world of sense. For I do not by any means demand-nor am I entitled to demand-to cognize this object of my idea according to what it may be in itself. For I have no concepts for doing this; and even the concepts of reality, substance, causality-indeed, even the concept of necessity in existence-lose all significance and are empty titles for concepts devoid of any content, if I venture with them outside the realm of the senses. Rather, I merely think the relation that a being, in itself quite unknown2 17 to me, has to the greatest systematic unity of the world whole; and I do this solely in order to make this relation the schema of the regulative principle of my reason's greatest possible empirical use. If we now cast our glance upon the transcendental object of our idea, we see that we cannot presuppose this object's actuality in itself according to the concepts of reality, substance, causality, etc., because these concepts have not the slightest application to something that is entirely distinct from the world of sense. Hence reason's supposition of a supreme being as high est cause is thought only relatively, for the sake of the systematic unity of the world of sense, and this being is a mere something in our reason's idea whereof we have no concept as to what it is in itself. This also explains why we do indeed require-in reference to what is given to the senses as existing-the idea of an original being necessary in itself, yet can never have the slightest concept of this being and its absolute necessity. We can now put before us distinctly the result of the entire Transcen dental Dialectic, and determine accurately the final aim of pure reason's ideas, which become dialectical only through misunderstanding and care lessness. Pure reason is in fact occupied with nothing but itself. Nor can it have any other business. For what are given to it are not objects for the unity of the experiential concept, but cognitions of understanding for the unity of the concept of reason, i.e., for the unity of coherence in a prin ciple. The unity of reason is the unity of a system; and this systematic unity serves reason not objectively, as a principle for extending2 1 8 reason over objects, but subjectively, as a maxim for extending reason over all possible empirical cognition of objects. Nevertheless, the systematic coherence that reason can give to the understanding's empirical use not only furthers the 217 [unbekannt. ] 218 [verbreiten.]
{ A 679
B 707
{ A 680
B 708
646
A B 709
681 }
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
extension2 1 9 of this use, but at the same time verifies220 the correctness thereof. And thus the principle of such a systematic unity is also objec tive,22 1 but in an indetenninate way (as principium vagum222). I.e., it is ob jective not as a constitutive principle for detennining something in regard to its direct object, 223 but as a merely regulative principle and maxim for furthering and solidifying ad infinitum (indefinitum)224 reason's empirical use-viz., by opening up new paths unknown225 to the understanding, while yet never going in the least against the laws of this empirical use. However, reason cannot think this systematic unity otherwise than by giving to its idea thereof at the same time an object. But since experience never gives an example of perfect systematic unity, this object cannot be given by any experience?26 Now this being of reason227 (ens ration is ra tiocinatae) is indeed a mere idea, and hence is not assumed absolutely and in itself as something actual. Rather, we lay it at the basis228 only prob lematically (because we cannot reach it through any concepts of under standing), in order to regard all connection of things in the world of sense as ifthey had their basis in this being of reason. But we do this solely with the aim of basing on this idea the systematic unity that is indispensable to reason but that furthers the cognition of understanding in every way and yet can also never hinder it. We mistake this idea's signification as soon as we regard this idea as the assertion-or even just the presupposition---of an actual thing229 to which we mean to ascribe the basis of the world's systematic organiza219[dessen Ausbreitung.] 220[bewiihren.] 221 [objektiv.] 222 [Indefinite principle.] 223[ Gegenstand.] 224 [My Latin here translates Kant's German expressions: ins Unendliche (Unbestimmte); i.e., literally, 'to the infinite (indefinite).'] 225 [nicht kennt.] 226[And is thus a being of reason.] 227 [Vemunftwesen, as contrasted with the being of (our) reasoning (ens rationis ratiocinan tis). See A 670 B 698 inc\. br. n. 179.] =
228 [Of our cognition of nature.] 229 [Sache here, Ding near the end of the paragraph.]
APPENDIX
FINAL AIM OF THE NATURAL DIALECTIC
647
tion?30 Instead, we here leave entirely undecided what sort of character this organization's basis that eludes our concepts has in itself; we only set up for ourselves an idea serving us as a point of view from which alone we can extend that unity so essential to reason and so salutary to the un derstanding. In a word, this transcendental thing is merely the schema of that regulative principle by which reason extends systematic unity over all experience as far as it can?3 1 The first object of such an idea am I myself, regarded merely as think ing nature (soul). If I want to search for the properties with which a think ing being exists in itself, then I must consult experience; and I cannot even apply to this object any one of the categories except insofar as the schema thereof is given in sensible intuition. But with this experience I never ar rive at a systematic unity of all appearances of inner sense. Hence instead of this experiential concept (of what the soul actually is)-which cannot carry us far-reason takes the concept of the empirical unity of all thought; and by thinking this unity as unconditioned and original, reason turns this concept into a rational concept (idea) of a simple substance that, in itself immutable (personally identical), stands in community with other actual things outside it-in a word, the idea of a simple independent intelligence. In so doing, however, reason has before it nothing but principles of sys tematic unity that are useful to it in explaining the appearances of the soul. These prin(liples tell us, viz., to regard all determinations as [united] in a single subject; to regard all powers232 as much as possible as derived from a single basic power; to regard all variation233 as belonging to the states of one and the same permanent being; and to present all appearances in space as entirely different from actions of thought. This simplicity of the substance, etc., was meant to be only the schema for this regulative prin ciple, and is not presupposed as if it were the actual basis of the soul's properties. For these properties may also rest on quite different bases with which we are not at all acquainted. Indeed, we could not-properly speak ing--<:ognize the soul in itself through these assumed predicates even if we wanted to allow them to hold of the soul absolutely; for they amount to a mere idea, which cannot at all be presented in concreto. Now, such a 230 [-veifassung.] 23 1 [soviel an ihr ist.] 232 [Or 'forces': Krdfte.] 233[Wechsel. See B 224 hr. n. 45.]
{ A 682
B 7 10
{ A 683 B 71 1
648
A B 712
684 }
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
psychological idea can give rise to nothing but advantage, provided that we take care to allow this idea to hold not as something more than a mere idea, but to hold merely relatively to reason's systematic use regarding our soul's appearances. For then no empirical laws of corporeal appearances, which are of a quite different kind, mingle with the explanations of what belongs merely to inner sense. No windy hypotheses concerning the gen eration, destruction, and palingenesis234 of souls, etc. are then admitted. Thus our contemplation of this obj ect of inner sense is then quite pure and unmingled with heterogeneous properties. Moreover, reason's inquiry is then directed at tracing the bases of explanation within this subject as far as possible to a single principle. All of this is brought about by-indeed, is best brought about solely and exclusively by-such a schema consid ered as if it were an actual being. Indeed, the psychological idea cannot signify anything but the schema of a regulative concept. For even if I wished only to ask whether the soul is not in itself of a spiritual nature, this question would have no meaning at all. For by using such a concept I remove235 not merely corporeal nature but all nature as such,236 i.e., all predicates of any possible experience; and hence I then remove all condi tions for thinking an object for such a concept, even though solely this thinking of an object is what makes us say that the concept has a meaning. The second regulative idea of merely speculative reason is the world concept as such. For nature237 is in fact the one and only given object in regard to which reason needs regulative principles. Now this nature is in deed twofold--either thinking or corporeal nature. However, in order to think corporeal nature as regards its intrinsic possibility-i.e., in order to determine the application of the categories to it-we need no idea, i.e., no presentation that surpasses experience. Indeed, no idea is possible in re gard to corporeal nature. For in it we are guided merely by sensible intuition-unlike in the psychological basic concept (E), 238 which contains a priori a certain form of thought, viz., the unity of thought.239 Hence there 234[I.e., regeneration.] 23 5 [From the concept of the soul.] 236 [Or 'in general': iiberhaupt. See B xxvii br. n. 106.] 237[Or, i.e., the world.] 2 38[Emphasis added.] 239[And there reason does tum the concept of this unity into an idea, viz., the idea of a simple substance. See A 682 B 710.] =
APPENDIX
FINAL AIM OF THE NATURAL DIALECTIC
649
remains for pure reason nothing240 but nature as SUCh24 1 and the complete ness of the conditions therein according to some principle. Absolute total ity of the [various] series of these conditions-in the derivation of the mem bers of these series-is an idea. Although in reason's empirical use this idea can never come about [as realized] completely, the idea yet serves as a rule as to how we are to proceed in regard to these series of conditions-viz., in explaining given appearances (i.e., in regressing or, in other words, as cending242 ), we are to proceed as if the series were in itself infinite, i.e., we are to proceed in indefinitum. 243 But where (viz., in [the realm of] free dom) reason itself is regarded as determining cause, i.e., where we deal with practical principles, we are to proceed as if we had before us an ob ject not of the senses but of the pure understanding. There the conditions can no longer be posited in the series of appearances, but can be posited outside this series; and the series of states can be regarded as if it began absolutely (through an intelligible cause). All of this proves that the cos mological ideas are nothing but regulative principles, and are far from positing---constitutively, as it were-an actual totality of such series. The remainder of these considerations can be found in its place under the An tinomy of Pure Reason. 244 The third idea of pure reason, which contains a merely relative suppo sition of a being considered as the single and all-sufficient cause of all cos mological series, is the rational concept of God. We do not have the slight est basis for assuming the object of this idea absolutely (i.e., for supposing it in itself). For what indeed, if not the world, can enable245 or even just entitle us to believe in or to assert, in itself and as absolutely necessary by its very nature, a being of the highest perfection, and to do so from the mere concept of such a being? Solely in reference to the world can this supposition be necessary. And thus we can see clearly that the idea of this being, like all speculative ideas, says no more than that reason commands us to regard all connection in the world according to principles of a sys tematic unity, and hence to regard all these connections as if they had arisen, 240 [Nothing for which to provide regulation.] 24 1 [1.e., whether corporeal or thinking nature.] 242 [1n a series.] 243 [Indefini tel y.] 244[A 405-5671B 432-595.] 24S [vermogen.]
{ A 685
B 71 3
{ A 686
B 7 14
650
A 687 B 715
}
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
one and all, from a single all-encompassing being as supreme and all sufficient cause. Clearly, therefore, reason can here be aiming at nothing but its own formal rule-the rule that it employs in the expansion of its empirical use-but can never be aiming at an expansion beyond all bounds of its empirical use; and consequently there does not lie hidden under this idea any constitutive principle of that use of reason which is directed to possible experience. This supreme246 formal unity, which rests solely on concepts of reason, is the purposive247 unity of things, and reason's speculative interest neces sitates our regarding all arrangement in the world as if 248 it had sprung from the intention of a most supreme reason. For such a principle opens up to our reason, as applied to the realm of experiences, entirely new pros pects for connecting the things of the world according to teleological laws, and for arriving thereby at their greatest systematic unity. Hence the pre supposition of a supreme intelligence-although, of course, merely in one's idea-as the world whole's only cause can always benefit reason, and yet can also never do harm. For if in regard to the shape249 of the earth (as round, but somewhat fiattened),2so or of mountains and oceans, etc., we previously assume25 1 nothing but the wise intentions252 of an originator, then we can in this way make a multitude of discoveries. Provided that we stay with this presupposition taken as a merely regulative principle, then even error cannot harm us. For, at worst, all that can follow from this er246[Or 'highest': hOchst.] 247[zweckmiijJig. On ZweckmiijJigkeit, see A 622
=
B 650 br. n. 285.]
248[Emphasis added.] 249 [Figur.]
2soThe advantage provided by a spherical shapea of the earth is familiar enough. But few people know that the flattening of the earth as a spheroid is what alone prevents the prominences consisting of the mainland--or even those consisting of smaller mountains, thrown up perhaps by earthquakes-from shifting [the tilt of] the earth's axis continuously and considerably in a fairly short time. Such shifts would indeed occur if the bulge of the earth atb the equator were not a mountain so enormous that it can never noticeably be displaced with regard to that axis by the momentum of any other mountain. And yet we unhesitatingly explain this wise provision from nothing more than the equilibrium of the earth's formerly fluid mass. a[ -gestaLt.] b[unter.] 25 1 [As explanation.] 252 [Absichlen.]
APPENDIX
FINAL AIM OF THE NATURAL DIALECTIC
65 1
ror is that where we expected a teleological coherence253 (nexus finalis) we find a merely mechanical or physical one (nexus effectivus).254 Through this error we merely fail to find255 in such a case one further unity, but do not ruin the unity of reason required in reason's empirical use. But even this contrariety256 of such an error cannot at all affect the [regulative] law itself in its general and teleological intent. 257 For although a dissector may be found guilty of an error if he refers some member of an animal body to a purpose from which it can distinctly be shown not to result, yet there is no possibility whatever of proving in any case that a natural arrangement-whatever it may be-has no purpose whatsoever. This is also the reason why (the physicians') physiology has expanded its very limited empirical knowledge258 of the purposes of an organic body's structure by a principle that was brought in259 merely by pure reason; this principle has been taken so far in this physiology that one assumes quite audaciously, and at the same time with the agreement of all people with understanding, that everything in the animal has its benefit and good intent. 260 This pre supposition, if it were meant to be constitutive, would go much further than all observation performed thus far can entitle us to go. And this shows that the presupposition is nothing but a regulative principle of reason for reach ing supreme systematic unity. Through this principle reason seeks to reach such unity by means of the idea of a purposive causality on the part of the highest cause of the world, and by acting as if this cause, as supreme in telligence, were the cause of everything according to the wisest inten tion?61 But if we deviate from this restriction of the idea to the merely regu lative use of reason, then reason is misled in a variety of ways. For it then leaves the ground262 of experience-the ground which must, after all, con253 [Or 'connection' : Zusammenhang.) 254[Respectively, connection in tenns of final and in tenns of efficient causes.)
2SS
[vermissen.)
256 [Querstrich.) 257[Absicht.) 258 [Kenntnis.) 259 [eingeben. which also means 'to inspire.') 260[Or 'aim': Absicht.] 261 [On physicotheology, cf. the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 436-42.] 262 [Boden.)
{ A 688
B 716
{ A 689
B 717
652
A 690
}l 7 1 8
}
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
tain the signs marking reason's course-and ventures beyond this ground to [the realm of] the incomprehensible and inscrutable.263 At the altitude of this [realm] reason necessarily gets dizzy; for from the standpoint of this [realm] reason sees itself cut off entirely from any use that harmonizes with experience. The first mistake that arises from using the idea of a supreme being not merely regulatively but constitutively (which goes against the nature of an idea) is lazy reason264 (ignava ratio).265 We may call by this name any prin ciple that makes one regard one's investigation of nature as absolutely com pleted, and thus makes reason retire to rest as if it had fully carried out its task. And this applies wherever such investigation may be pursued, and hence it applies even to the psychological idea. If the psychological idea is used as a constitutive principle for explaining the appearances of our soul, and thereafter perhaps for expanding our cognition of this subject even be yond all experience (viz., to the subject's state after death), then this does indeed make things266 very easy for reason, but it also entirely ruins and destroys all natural use of reason according to the guidance of experiences. Thus the dogmatic spiritualist, in explaining the person's unity that sub sists unchanged through all variation of the person's states, does so by [ap263 [unerforschlich.] 264 [faule Vernunft. ]
265This is what the ancient dialecticians called a fallacious inference that ran thus: If it is your fate that you shall recover from this illness, then it will happen, whether or not you use a physician. Cicero says that this [lazy] kind of inference acquired its name because if we follow it, then reason is left without any use whatever in life.a This is the cause for which I assign the same name to the sophistical argu ment of pure reason. [On lazy reason, cf. A 773 B 801 . I have not been able to find this expression in Ci· cero. But in Leibniz's Discourse on Metaphysics (IV, second paragraph), we find this pas sage: 'Car, quant 11 l' avenir, il ne faut pas estre quietiste ny attendre ridiculement 11 bra� croises, ce que Dieu fera, selon ce sophisme que les Anciens appeloient "A.oyov aEPYOv. la raison paresseuse, mais il faut agir selon la volonte presomtive de Dieu, autant que nous en pouvons juger, tachant de tout nostre pouvoir de contribuer au bien general, et parti culierement 11 I'ornement et 11 la perfection de ce qui nous touche. ou de ce qui nous est prochain, et pour ainsi dire 11 portee.' I.e.: 'For as regards the future we must not be qui etists, nor await ridiculously with folded arms what God will do, according to the soph ism that the ancients caned "A.oyov aEpyov [logon aergon], lazy reason; rather, we must act according to the presumptive will of God insofar as we can judge of it, trying, with all our power. to contribute to the general good. and particularly to the adornment and perfection of what touches us, or of what is close to us and, so to speak, within range." ] "
266[es.]
=
APPENDIX
FINAL AIM OF THE NATURAL DIALECTIC
653
pealing to] the unity-which he believes he perceives directly in the [-of the thinking substance;267 the interest that we take in things that are held not to take place until after our death he explains by our consciousness of the immaterial nature of ourselves as thinking subject; etc. And thus the dogmatic spiritualist exempts himself from all natural investigation-[which starts] from physical bases of explanation-of the cause of these our inner experiences. For by the fiat, as it were, of a transcendent reason he bypasses-for the sake of his convenience but with the forfeiture of all insight-the sources of cognition that are immanent in experience. This det rimental consequence is even more obvious in the dogmatism concerning our idea of a supreme intelligence and in the theological system of nature (physicotheology) wrongly based thereon. For there all the purposes mani festing themselves in nature-which are often only turned into such pur poses by ourselves-serve to make the exploration268 of causes quite easy for us, because instead of seeking these causes in the" universal laws of the mechanism of matter, we then appeal straightforwardly to the inscru table269 decree of the supreme wisdom. And thus we regard reason's en deavor as completed when in fact we are merely exempting ourselves from reason's use-a use that, after all, finds no guidance anywhere except where such is provided to us by the order of nature and the series of changes tak ing place according to nature's intrinsic and universal270 laws. This mis take can be avoided if we consider from this viewpoint of purposes not merely some components of nature-as, e.g., the distribution and structure of the mainland, and the character and location of mountains, or perhaps even just the organization in the plant and animal kingdoms-but instead make this systematic unity of nature in reference to the idea of a supreme intelligence entirely universal. For we then lay at the basis [of nature] a purposiveness according to universal laws of nature-laws from which no particular arrangement has been excepted, but which have only marked any such arrangement [as purposive] more or less discemibly27 1 for us. And we then have a regulative principle of the systematic unity of a teleologi cal connection-a unity, however, which we must not determine in ad267 [Cf. the Paralogisms of Pure Reason, A 341-40SIB 399-432. (The term spiritualism oc curs at A 380.)] 268 [Etj"orschung.] 269 [unetj"orschlich.]
27°[Reading, with Hartenstein and the Akademie edition, allgemeinen for allgemeineren.] 27 1
[kenntlich. ]
{ A 69 1
B 719
654 A 692 B 720
}
A 693 B 721
}
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
vance, but in expectation of which we may only trace the physical mechanical connection according to universal laws. For only in this way can the principle of purposive unity always expand reason's use regarding experience, and not impair it in any instance. The second mistake that arises from the misinterpretation of this prin ciple of systematic unity is that of inverted27 2 reason (perversa ratio, UO"'tEPOV 1tPO'tEPOV rationis273). The idea of systematic unity was to serve only as a regulative principle for seeking such unity in the coherence of things in terms of universal natural laws, and for believing that insofar as some measure of this unity can be found along the empirical path, one has to that extent also come closer to completeness in the use of the idea274 -although this completeness will, of course, never be reached. But in stead of treating the idea in this regulative way, one reverses275 the mat ter: 276 one begins by presupposing277 as hypostatic278 the actuality of a principle of purposive unity; and because the concept of such a supreme intelligence is in itself quite inscrutable, one determines it anthropomor phically; and then one thrusts purposes upon nature forcibly and dictato rially, instead of seeking them-as is proper-along the path of physical investigation. Thus the result is not only that teleology, which was to serve merely to supplement the natural unity in terms of universal laws, now works rather toward annulling this unity;279 but, in addition, reason even deprives itself of its purpose, viz., to prove from nature, in accordance with these laws,28o the existence of such an intelligent highest cause. For if the supreme purposiveness in nature cannot be presupposed a priori, i.e., as belonging to nature's essence, how then can we be enjoined to search for 272[verkehrt.] 27'[hysteron proteron of reason, i.e., reason's (fallacy of putting) prior what is posterior; an example would be begging the question ] 274[ ihres.] 275[umkehren.] 276[Sache.] 277[zum Grunde /egen. See A 693
=
B 721 br. n. 283.]
278[l.e., substantive (pertaining to substance-here a supreme intelligence as pnnciple of pur posive unity).] 279[l.e., any purposes "forcibly and dictatorially thrust" upon nature are extraneous to it and hence can interfere with natural unity. Cf. just below.]
28°[Cf. the beginning of this paragraph I am reading. with Wille, nach dielen for nach diesem 1
APPENDIX
FINAL AIM OF THE NATURAL DIALECTIC
655
this purposiveness and to come closer, on the scale28 1 thereof, to an origi nator's supreme perfection construed as a perfection that is absolutely nec essary and hence cognizable a priori?282 The regulative principle of sys tematic unity demands that we presuppose this unity-absolutely, and hence as following from the essence of things-as a unity of nature that is not merely cognized empirically but is presupposed a priori, although still in determinately. But if I first lay at the basis28 3 a supreme arranging be ing,284 then the unity of nature is indeed annulled. For then this unity is quite extraneous and contingent to the nature of things, and also cannot be cognized from universal laws of nature. Hence there arises a vicious circle in proving, since one is presupposing what in fact was to be proved. We merely confuse reason if we take the regulative principle of nature's systematic unity as constitutive, and if we presuppose hypostatically2 85 as cause what is-in our idea only-laid at the basis of an accordant use of reason. The investigation of nature takes its course, all by itself and in ac cordance with nature's286 universal laws, along the chain of natural causes. This investigation does indeed proceed in accordance with the idea of an originator. 287 But it does so not in order to derive from this originator the purposiveness that it pursues everywhere. Rather, it does so in order to cog nize from this purposiveness the existence of this originator, and to cog nize this ex�stence as absolutely necessary inasmuch as the purposiveness is sought in the essences of natural things and also--if possible-in the essence2 88 of all things as such. Now whether or not this latter aim2 89 suc28 1 [Stiifenleiter.] 282[le., such necessary perfection on the part of a creator could not be inferred (in a physi coteleological argument or "argument from design") from empirically cognized and hence contingent purposiveness in nature.] 283[Of my consideration: zum Grunde legen. Although in Kant this expression is sometimes synonymous with voraussetzen (cf., e.g., A 692 B 720, or A 736 B 764). i.e 'to presup pose,' more frequently it is somewhat broader (less determinate) in meaning and weaker in force. Consider, e.g., the beginning of the next paragraph, where both expressions occur.] 284[le., a God: hochstes ordnendes Wesen.] =
=
.•
285[le., as a substance.] 286[derselben.] 287[Urheber.]
288[Here (unlike just above) I follow Hartenstein in reading dem Wesen for den Wesen.] 289[Of proving the absolutely necessary existence of an originator.]
{ A 694
B 722
656
A
695 } B 723
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
ceeds, the idea itself always remains correct; and so does likewise the idea's use, if it is restricted to the conditions of a merely regulative principle. Complete purposive unity is perfection290 (considered absolutely). If we do not find this absolute perfection in the essence of the things that make up the entire object29 1 of experience, i.e., in the essence of the entire ob ject of all our objectively292 valid cognition, and hence if we do not find this perfection in natural laws that are universal and necessary, how are we from this [fact] to infer---of all things293-the idea of the supreme and ab solutely necessary existence of an original being294 as origin295 of all cau sality? The greatest systematic unity-and consequently also all purposive unity-is the school for the greatest use of human reason, and is even the foundation of the possibility of this greatest use. Hence the idea of this unity is linked inseparably with the essence of our reason. Therefore, this same idea is legislative for us; and thus assuming, as corresponding to this idea, a legislative reason (intellectus archetypus)296-from which, as object of our reason, all systematic unity is to be derived-is very natural for us. On the occasion of [our discussion of] the antinomy of pure reason, we said297 that all questions raised by pure reason must absolutely be answer able, and that here we cannot be permitted to excuse ourselves from such answers by pleading the limits of our cognition-as is indeed both inevi table and proper in many questions on the nature of things. For here298 the questions are put before us not by the nature of things but solely by the nature of reason, and they concern only reason's intrinsic arrangement.299 We can now confirm this assertion-which at first seemed bold-with re29°[Vollkommenheit.] 291 [Gegenstand.] 292[objektiv.] 293 [gerade.] 294[Urwesen.] 295 [Ursprung. ] 296 [Archetypal intellect (understanding). Cf. the Critique of Judgment. Ak V, 408. An arche typal understanding would present originals (things in themselves). Our own understanding is "ectypal"; it requires images (perceptions) gained from our (sensible rather than intellec tual) intuition, and with their help presents derivatives (things as appearances) of those ongi nals.] 297[A 476-841B 504- 1 2.] 298[I.e., in the case of pure reason.] 299[Or 'intrinsic (or inner) disposition' . innere Einrichtung.])
APPENDIX
FINAL AIM OF THE NATURAL DIALECTIC
657
gard to the two questions in which pure reason has its greatest interest;300 and we can thereby bring to full completion our consideration of the dia lectic of pure reason. Thus if (with regard to a transcendental theology)301 one asks, first, whether there is something that is distinct from the world and contains the basis of the world order and of the coherence thereof according to .univer sal laws, then the answer is: without doubt. For the world is a sum302 of appearances; hence there must be some basis of these appearances that is transcendental, i.e., thinkable only for the pure understanding. If the ques tion is, second, whether this being is substance, and of the greatest reality, and necessary, etc., then I answer that this question has no signijication303 whatever. For all the categories through which I try to frame a concept of such an object have only an empirical use, and have no meaning304 what ever unless they are applied to objects305 of possible experience, i.e., to the world of sense. Outside this realm they are mere titles for concepts 3OO[Kant might be referring to the first two questions in the upcoming paragraph, the subse quent questions being construed as supplemental and elucidatory. But more likely he is re ferring, first, to whether the soul is immortal and, second, to whether God exists---the up coming questions all dealing with details concerning only the latter of these two. The immortality of the soul and the existence of God become postulates of practical reason later on, in the Canon of Pure Reason (A 795-83 1 B 823-59). As for freedom of the will, this is not actually a postulate of practical reason, despite what Kant says in one place (Critique uf Judgment, Ak. V, 475). Kant holds (Critique of Practical Reason, Ak. V, 3 1 and 47) that the moral law is a fact of reason (Faktum der Vemunft), and that the moral law leads directly to the concept of freedom and to practical knowledge (not merely practical cognition) of free dom. See the Critique of Practical Reason. Ak. V, 29-30, 47; the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 468, 474-75, cf. 280, 403, 484; and Kant's First Introduction to the latter work, Ak. XX, 206.] 301Through what I have already previously said" concerning the psychological idea =
and its proper vocation as a principle for the merely regulative use of reason, I am here exempted from any specific and long-winded further discussion of the tran scendental illusion whereby the systematic unity of all manifoldness of inner sense is presented hypostatically.b The procedure in that case is very similar to the one that the critique [offered here] observes in regard to the theological ideal. "[See A 680-84 B 708-12.] b[Le. substantively.] =
,
302 [Summe.] 303[Bedeutung. See A 1391B 1 78 br. n. 66.] 304 [Sinn.]
30S[Kant here uses the term Objekt; just above and later in the paragraph he uses Gegenstand. See A vii br. n. 7.]
{ A 696
B 724
658
A 697
B 725
A 698 B 726
}
}
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
-titles which may indeed be admitted but through which, on the other hand, nothing can be understood. If the question is, third and finally, whether we may not at least think this being, which is distinct from the world, on an analogy with objects of experience, then the answer is: in deed, but only as object in our idea and not in reality. I.e., we may do so only insofar as this being is a substratum, unknown306 to us, of systematic unity, order, and purposiveness of the world's arrangement-ran idea] which reason must tum into the regulative principle of its investigation of nature. What is more, we may without fear or rebuke permit in this idea certain anthropomorphisms that further the regulative principle at issue. For it is always only an idea. This idea is not at all referred directly to a being distinct from the world. Rather, the idea is directly referred to the regula tive principle of the world's systematic unity, but is referred to this prin ciple only by means of a schema of this unity, viz., a supreme intelli gence307 as originator of this unity according to wise intentions. Through this idea we were to think not what this original basis of the unity of the world is in itself, but how we are to use this basis�r, rather, the idea of it-relatively to reason's systematic use regarding the things of the world. But (one will continue to ask) in this way we can, after all, assume a single wise and omnipotent originator of the world? Without any doubt; and not only that, but we must presuppose such an originator. But then we do, after all, expand our cognition beyond the realm of possible experi ence? By no means. For we have presupposed only a something (a merely transcendental object) of which we have no concept at all as to what it is in itself. But we have-in reference to the systematic and purposive order of the world edifice, an order that we must presuppose when we study nature-thought this unknown308 being only on the analogy with an intel ligence (an empirical concept). I.e., we have endowed this being, in view of the purposes and perfection based on it,309 with just those properties that can-according to the conditions of our reason--contain the basis of such a systematic unity. Hence respectively to the world use of our reason this idea has its full basis. But if we sought to confer objective validity on this 306 [unbekannt.] 307 [1 take the genitive case in einer to go with vermittelst ( 'by means of') rather than with Schema. On this kind of schema, cr. A 6651B 693, A 670 B 698, A 674 B 702, A 68 I 82 B 709-1 0, A 699 B 727; also A 679 B 707, A 683-84 B 7 1 1- 12.] =
=
=
=
308[More literally, 'to us unknown' : uns unbekannte.] 309[By our reason.]
=
=
-
APPENDIX
FINAL AIM OF THE NATURAL DIALECTIC
659
idea absolutely, then we would be forgetting that what we are thinking is solely a being in our idea. And since we would then be starting from a ba sis not determinable at all through observation of the world, we would thus be rendered unable to apply this principle commensurately with reason's empirical use. But (one will go on to ask) in this way I can, after all, make use of the concept and presupposition of a supreme being in the course of my ratio nal observation of the world? Yes, this was in fact the aim for which this idea was laid at the basis by reason. But may I now regard purposelike ar rangements as intentions, inasmuch as I derive them from the divine will, although [as brought about] by means of special predispositions in the world that are aimed3 1 0 at such arrangements? Yes, you3 1 1 can do that also, but when you do so it must be indifferent to you whether someone says that divine wisdom has so arranged everything for its3 ! 2 highest purposes, or whether he says that the idea of supreme wisdom is a regulative [element] in the investigation of nature and a principle of nature's systematic and pur posive unity according to universal laws, even where we do not become aware of that unity. I.e., it must be entirely the same to you, wherever you perceive this unity, whether you say that God has wisely willed it so, or whether you say that nature has wisely arranged it thus. For the greatest systematic and purposive unity, which your reason required you to lay at the basis of all natural investigation as a regulative principle, was precisely what entitled you to lay at the basis 3 ! 3 the idea of a supreme intelligence as a schema of the regulative principle. And to whatever extent, [when in vestigating] according to this [schema] , you now find purposiveness in the world, to that extent you have confirmation of the idea's legitimacy. How ever, the principle in question had as its aim nothing other than the search for the necessary and greatest possible unity of nature. Hence insofar as we attain this unity, we shall indeed owe it to the idea of a supreme being; yet we cannot, without falling into contradiction with ourselves, bypass na ture's universal laws-for [the investigation of] which alone the idea was laid at the basis-in order to regard this purposiveness of nature as con3 10 [gestellt.] 311 (ihr; i.e., Kant replies in the plural.] 3 12 [Reading, with Erdmann and the Akademie edition, ihren for seinen.] 31 3[Of that natural investigation: zum Grunde legen. See A 693 B 721 hr. n. 283.] =
{ A 699
B 727
{ A 700
B 728
660
A 701 B 729
}
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
tingent and hyperphysical3 1 4 in its origin. For we were not entitled to as sume above nature315 a being with the mentioned [divine] properties, but were entitled only to lay the idea of this being at the basis316 in order to regard appearances3 1 7--on the analogy of a causal determination-as con nected with one another systematically. Precisely therefore, moreover, are we entitled to think the world cause-in our idea-not only according to a subtler anthropomorphism (without which nothing whatever concerning this being would be think able), viz., as a being that has understanding, liking and disliking, as well as a desire and a will that accord therewith,3 1 8 etc .. Rather, we are entitled to attribute to this being infinite perfection-which, therefore, far sur passes the perfection that any empirical knowledge319 of the world order can entitle us to attribute to this being. For the regulative law of system atic unity wants us to study nature as if systematic and purposive unity-amidst the greatest possible manifoldness-were everywhere320 to be found ad infinitum. For although we shall in fact spy out or reach only little of this perfection of the world, yet seeking and presuming it every where belongs to our reason's legislation; and to engage in the observation of nature according to this principle must always be advantageous for us and can never become disadvantageous. But likewise clear-under this con ception321 of the idea of a supreme originator as laid at the basis322-is the fact that I lay at the basis not the existence and the knowledge but only the idea of such a being. I.e., I do not in fact derive anything from this being, but derive something merely from the idea thereof; i.e., I derive some thing, according to such an idea, from the nature of the things of the world. Moreover, a certain consciousness-although undeveloped--of the genu314[Le., supranatural.] 3 15 [Reading, with Rosenkranz, der Natur for die Natur, which would go with Kant 's use of setzen ('to posit').] 3 1 6[Of our investigation.] 317 [Reading, with Hartenstein and the Akademie edition, die Erscheinungen for der Erschei nungen.] 318[demselben gemajie.] 319[Kenntnis; likewise later in this paragraph.] 32°[allenthalben here, allerwiins just below.] 32 1[Vorstellung.]
322[Of my investigation of nature (likewise just below): zum Grunde legen. See A 693 721 br. n. 283.]
=
B
APPENDIX
FINAL AIM OF THE NATURAL DIALECTIC
66 1
ine use of this our concept of reason seems to have prompted the modest and appropriate language of the philosophers of all times. For in talking about the wisdom and foresighe23 of nature and also about divine wisdom they treat these as synonymous expressions. Indeed, as long as philoso phers are concerned merely with speculative reason they prefer the first ex pression, because it restrains the claim to an assertion that is bigger than the one to which we are entitled, and at the same time points reason back to its proper realm-nature. Thus pure reason, which seemed at the outset to promise us nothing less than an expansion of our knowledge324 beyond all bounds of experience, contains-if we understand it properly-nothing but regulative principles. These principles do indeed command us to aim at a greater unity than the understanding's empirical use can attain; yet precisely by moving the goal 2 to be approached by this use3 5 so far away, they bring this use's agree ment with itself-through systematic unity-to the highest degree. But if one misunderstands these principles and considers them to be constitutive principles of transcendent cognitions, then they give rise, by a splendid but deceptive illusion, to persuasion and imaginary knowledge,3 26 and thereby to perpetual contradictions and controversies. Thus all human cognition begins with intuitions, proceeds from there to concepts, and ends with ideas. This cognition does indeed have-with re gard to all three of these elements-a priori sources of cognition that seem at first glance to defy the bounds of all experience. Yet a completed cri tique convinces us that all our reason in its specUlative use can never-with these elements-get beyond the realm of possible experience. And the cri tique convinces us that the proper vocation of this highest cognitive power is to employ all the methods and principles of reason327 solely for tracing nature to its innermost core according to all possible principles of unity-the foremost of which is the unity of purposes-but never to soar beyond na ture's boundary, since for us there is nothing but empty space outside it. The critical investigation-as carried out in the Transcendental Analytic-of 323 [ 324
Vorsorge.]
[Kenntnisse. ] 325 [desselben (similarly just below). grammatically, this could refer instead to understand ing.] 326 [Wissen. ] 321 [derselben.]
{ A 702
B 730
662 A 703 B 73 1
}
B 732 A 704
PART II
TRANSCENDENTAL LOGIC
all propositions that can expand our cognition beyond actual experience has, to be sure, sufficiently convinced us that these propositions can never lead to anything more than a possible experience. And if we were not distrust ful of even the clearest abstract and general doctrines, and if charming and plausible328 prospects did not entice us to cast off those doctrines' con straint, then we could indeed have been spared the laborious interroga tion329 of all the dialectical witnesses that a transcendent reason brings for ward on behalf of its claims. For even beforehand we knew with complete certainty that all allegation of reason, although perhaps honestly meant, must be absolutely null, because it concerns information3 30 that no human being can ever acquire. Yet there is no end of the talking unless one un covers the true cause of the illusion33 l that can trick even the most reason able person. Moreover, resolving all our transcendent cognition into its el ements (as a study of our inner nature) is in itself of no slight value; but for the philosopher it is even a duty. Hence not only was there a need to investigate comprehensively this entire working of speculative reason-idle though it is--down to its primary sources. But since the dialectical illusion is here not only deceptive in the judgment332 but is also enticing in the in terest that is here taken in the judgment, and since the illusion is always natural and will remain so for the future, it was advisable for us to draw up comprehensively the proceedings of this trial, as it were, so as to de posit them in the archives of human reason in order to prevent future er rors of a similar kind.
328 [scheinbar.] 3 29 [AbhOrung.] 330 [eine Kundschaft. ] 331 [Schein.] 3 32[I e . .
,
the judgment
( Urteil)
handed down in the court of reason
1
[CRITIQUE OF PURE REASON] II TRANSCENDENTAL DOCTRINE OF METHOD!
{ A 705
If I regard the sum of all cognition2 of pure speculative reason as an edi fice for which we have at least the idea within ourselves, then I can say that in the transcendental doctrine of elements we assessed the building equipment available to us, and determined for what edifice-and for what height and firmness thereof-the equipment suffices. We found, to be sure, that although we had in mind to build a tower that was to reach to heaven, yet our supply of materials sufficed only for a dwelling just spacious enough for the tasks that we perform on the level of experience, and just high enough for us to survey these tasks. But we found that through lack of ma terial3 the bold enterprise4 had to fail--even if one leaves out of account the language confusions that inevitably had to disunite the workers con cerning the plan, and to scatter them all over the world to build [dwellings] separately--each according to his own design. Here6 we are concerned not so much with the materials, as rather with the plan. And since we have been
{ A 707
' [See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 2931B 349 br. n. 2, vol. 4, 645-49.] 2[Erkenntnis. For the distinction between cognition and knowledge (Wissen), see A vii br. n.
6.]
l [The ter m used here is Stoff; above and below in this paragraph Kant uses Materialien.] 4[Of building the tower.] ' [As in the Biblical story of the tower of Babel, Genesis 1 1 : 1 -9.] 6 [In the transcendental doctnne of method.]
663
B 733
B 735
664
PART II
DOCTRINE OF METHOD
warned not to venture upon this task in accordance with an arbitrary and blindly chosen design7 that might perhaps surpass our entire power, 8 and yet cannot well abstain from erecting a firm residence, we must make our projection for such a building in relation to that supply which is both given to us and is adequate for our need. A 708 B 736
}
Hence by transcendental doctrine of method I mean the determination of the formal conditions of a complete system of pure reason. With this
aim, we shall be dealing with a discipline, a canon, an arr:hitectonic, and finally a history of pure reason. And we shall here accomplish with a merely transcendental aim what-under the name of a [general] practical logic the schools have tried to do but have accomplished poorly in regard to the use of the understanding as such.9 For general 10gic l O is not limited to a particular kind of cognition of understanding (e.g., not to the pure kind), nor to certain objects. l l Hence it can do nothing more-without borrow ing knowledgel 2 from other sciences-than put forth the titles for possible
methods and the technical terms that are employed
in all sorts of sciences
for what is systematic therein; and these titles and terms acquaint the learner in advance merely with names whose meaning and use he is not meant to get to know until later.
7 [blinden Entwurf] 8[Or 'ability' : Vermogen. See A xii br. n. 16.] 9[uberhaupt. See B xxvii br n. 106.] 1 O[l.e., the logic of the understanding as such, as distinguished from transcendental logic, the logic of the understanding as aided by a pnori intuition. See above, A 52-57/8 76-82.] l!
[Here the tenn used is Gegenstand. See A vii br. n. 7.]
12[Kenntnisse; 'know' similarly renders kennen just beloW.]
TRANSCENDENTAL DOCTRINE OF METHOD
Chapter I The Discipline of Pure Reason 1 3 Because human beings desire knowledge, negative judgments that are such not only in form but also in content are held in no special regard. Perhaps they are viewed even as jealous enemies of our cognitive urge in its un ceasing endeavor to expand [our cognition] ; and one almost needs to de fend oneself14 for trying to gain mere toleration for these judgments-and even more so for trying to gain for them favor and esteem. Although any proposition whatsoever can be expressed negatively [in form, i.e., as negative] logically, yet in regard to the content of cognition as such,-i.e., whether this cognition is either expanded or limited by a judgment-the task peculiar to negative 15 judgments is merely to prevent error. This is also the reason why, when negative propositions are intended to prevent a false cognition in cases where error is in fact 1 6 never possible, they are indeed very true, but empty. I.e., they are not at all appropriate to 1 3 [See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 2931B 349 br. n. 2, vol. 4, 650-55. See also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 563. And see T. D. Weldon, op. cit. at A 211B 35 br. n. 22, 246-47.] 14[Ap% gie.] IS[verneinend here, negativ in 'negatively' above and in 'negative' below.] 1 6[doch.]
665
{ A 709
B 737
666
A 71D B 738
}
PART II
DOCTRINE OF METHOD
their purpose, and precisely therefore are often ridiculous-like the propo sition of that school orator who said that without an army Alexander could not have conquered any countries. But where the limits of the cognition possible for us are very narrow and the inducement to judge is great, where the illusion offering itself to us is very deceptive and the detriment arising from error is considerable, there an instruction's negative character, which serves merely to safeguard us from errors, is even more important than is much positive information by which our cognition could be increased. The constraint whereby the con stant propensity to deviate from certain rules is limited and finally eradi cated is called discipline. It is distinguished from culture, 17 which is in tended merely to provide a projiciency l 8 without annulling, on the other hand, another proficiency already present. Hence discipline will make a negative19 contribution, but culture and doctrine a positive contribution, to ward molding a talent that has already on its own20 an impulse to manifest itself. Everyone will readily admit that a discipline is in many respects re quired for our temperament, as well as for those talents (such as imagina tion and ingenuity) that like to allow themselves free and unlimited move ment. But that reason, which properly is obligated to prescribe its discipline to all other endeavors, itself needs a discipline-this may indeed seem strange. And reason has, in fact, thus far escaped such humiliation pre cisely because, given21 the solemnity and thorough propriety with which it deports itself, no one could easily have come to suspect it of playing 1 7[Or 'cultivation': Kultur: On culture and discipline, cf. the Critique of Judgment, Ak. Y, 43 1-34.] 1 8[Fertigkeit. ]
191 am well aware that in the language of the school the name of discipline tends to be used as equivalent to that of instruction. Yet there are---{)n the other hand-so many other cases where the first expression, as meaning training, a is carefully dis tinguished from the second, as meaning informing. And the very nature of things also requires that we preserve for this distinction the only fitting expressions. Thus 1 wish that this wordb might never be permitted to be used in any but a negative meaning. a[Zucht, which in German is actually more clearly synonymous with Disziplin than �re the English terms training and discipline.] b[discipline.] 2°[Reading, with Valentiner and the Akademie edition,for sich selbst instead of vor sich selbst. ] 2 1 [bei. ]
SECTION I
DISCIPLINE OF PURE REASON
667
frivolously with imaginings in place of concepts, and with words in place of things. Reason in its empirical use needs no critique; for its principles are sub jected to continuous examination against the touchstone of experience. Nor does reason need a critique in mathematics, where its concepts must im mediately be exhibited22 in concreto in pure intuition, and where anything unfounded and arbitrary thus becomes obvious at once. But where neither empirical nor pure intuition keeps reason on a visible track-viz., in its tran scendental use according to mere concepts-there reason needs a disci pline that will subdue its propensity toward expansion beyond the narrow bounds of possible experience, and that will keep it away from extrava gance and error. So much does reason there need this discipline that even the entire philosophy of pure reason deals with nothing but this negative benefit. Single aberrations can be remedied by an appraisal, 23 and their causes by critique. But where we find-as we do in pure reason-an en tire system of delusions and deceptions, 24 well linked with one another and united under common principles, there a quite particular and moreover negative legislation seems to be required, under the name of a discipline. This legislation, working from the nature of reason and of the objects of reason's pure use, must set up a system, as it were, of caution and self examination-a system before which any false and subtly reasoning25 il lusion cannot endure but must immediately betray itself, regardless of all the grounds that may be offered for its palliation. But we must note carefully that, in this second main part of the tran scendental critique,26 I direct the discipline of pure reason not at the con tent of the cognition from pure reason but merely at the method of this cognition; the former has already been done in the Doctrine of Elements. But reason's use is so similar no matter what may be the object to which it is applied, and yet is also-insofar as it is to be transcendental-so es sentially different from any other use, that we cannot, without the admoni tory negative doctrine of a discipline especially aimed at this goal, prevent what errors must necessarily arise from our complying inappropriately with methods that are indeed fitting for reason elsewhere--only not here. 22 [darslellen; see B xvii hr. n. 73.] 23 [Zensur.] 24[1auschungen und Blendwerke.] '15[verniinftelnd. ] 2fi[l.e., the Doctrine of Method.]
{ A 711
B 739
{ A 712
B 740
Chapter I
Section I The Discipline of Pure Reason in its Dogmatic Use27
A 713 B 741
}
Mathematics provides the most splendid example of a pure reason suc cessfully28 expanding itself on its own, without the aid of experience. But examples are contagious, primarily for the very power that naturally flat ters itself with having the same success in other cases that was imparted to it in one case. Thus pure reason hopes to be able to expand just as suc cessfully and soundly29 in its transcendental use as it managed to do in its mathematical use, if it applies primarily the same method in the transcen dental use that was so obviously beneficial in the mathematical. Hence we are greatly concerned to know whether the method for attaining apodeictic certainty which in the latter science is called mathematical is the same method which is used to seek the same certainty in philosophy-and which would there have to be called dogmatic. Philosophical cognition is rational cognition/rom concepts. Mathemati cal cognition is rational cognition from the construction of concepts. But to construct a concept means to exhibit a priori the intuition correspond ing to it. 3o Hence construction of a concept requires a nonempirical intu ition. Consequently this intuition, as intuition, is an individuaP 1 object; but as the construction of a concept (a universal32 presentation33), it must none theless express in the presentation its universal validity for all possible in27[See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 2931B 349 br. n. Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 563-67.]
2, vol. 4, 655-88. See also Nonnan
28[gLiicklich; analogously for 'success' just below.] 29[griindlich.] 30[ef. the Critique of Judgment. Ak. Y, 343.] 31 [Or 'singular': einzeLn ] 32 [Or 'general' : aLLgemein. Similarly in the remainder of this paragraph and in the neltt one ] "[Vol'sleLlung. traditionally translated as 'representation.' See B ltvii br. n. 73.]
668
SECTION I
PURE REASON IN ITS DOGMATIC USE
669
tuitions falling under the same concept. Thus I construct a triangle by ex hibiting the object corresponding to this concept either through imagination alone in pure intuition, or-in accordance with this pure intuition-also on paper, and hence also in empirical intuition. But in both cases I do exhibit the object completely a priori, without having taken the model for it from any experience. The individual figure drawn there34 is empirical, and yet serves to express the concept without impairing the concept's universality. For in dealing with this empirical intuition one takes account only of the action of constructing the concept-to which35 many determinations are entirely inconsequential: e.g., the magnitude36 of the sides and of the angles-and one thus abstracts from all these differences that do not change the concept of triangle. 37
{ A 714
B 742
Hence philosophical cognition contemplates the particular only in the universal. Mathematical cognition, on the other hand, contemplates the uni versal in the particular, and indeed even in the individual; 38 yet it does so nonetheless a priori and by means of reason. And thus, just as this indi vidual is determined under certain universal conditions of construction, so the object of the concept-to which this individual corresponds only as its schema-must be thought as determined universally. Hence the essential difference between these two kinds of rational cog nition consists in this difference of form, and does not rest on the differ ence of their matter or [i.e.] objects. Those who have meant to distinguish philosophy from mathematics by saying that philosophy has as its object39 merely quality but mathematics only quantity have mistaken the effect for the cause. The form of mathematical cognition is the cause of the fact that mathematics can deal solely with quanta.40 For only the concept of mag nitudes can be constructed, i.e., displayed4 1 a priori in intuition. Qualities, on the other hand, can be exhibited only in empirical intuition; hence a raJ4[On the paper.] J![As concept.] J6[I follow Hartenstein in deleting the comma after Grdj3e ('magnitude').] J7 [See above, A 140-42IB 1 79-8 1 . ] JB [Viz., the individual (i.e., singular) intuition. ] J9 [The tenn used i s Objekt here, Gegenstand just above. (Similarly later in this paragraph.) See A vii br. n. 7.] 4O[Or, i.e., magnitudes.] 4 1 [darlegen, which is here used synonymously with darstellen ('to exhibit' )-see just below.]
{ A 715
B 743
670
A 7 16 B 744
}
PART II
DOCTRINE OF METHOD
tional cognition of qualities can be possible only through concepts. Thus no one can take an intuition corresponding to the concept of reality from anywhere but experience, and one cannot acquire this intuition42 a priori from oneself and prior43 to empirical consciousness. Conical44 shape can indeed45 be made intuitive without any empirical aid, merely according to the concept of a cone; but the color of this cone46 will have to be given previously in some experience or other. I cannot in any way exhibit in in tuition the concept of a cause as such except by an example provided to me by experience; etc. Besides, philosophy deals with magnitudes just as much as mathematics does--e.g., with totality, infinity, etc. Mathematics similarly is concerned not only with quantity but also with the difference between lines and planes considered as spaces of different quality, and with continuity as a quality of extension. But although in such cases philosophy and mathematics have a common object, the way in which this object is treated by reason is yet entirely different in philosophical and in math ematical contemplation. Philosophy keeps to universal concepts only. Math ematics47 can accomplish nothing with the mere concept but hastens at once to intuition, in which it contemplates the concept in concreto, but yet not empirically; rather, mathematics contemplates the concept only in an intu ition that it exhibits a priori-i.e., an intuition that it has constructed-and wherein what follows from the construction's universal conditions must also hold universally for the object of the constructed concept.48 Give to a philosopher the concept of a triangle, and let him discover in his own way what the relation49 of the sum of its angles to a right angle might be. He now has nothing but the concept of a figure enclosed within three straight lines and-with this figure-the concept of likewise three angles. Now, no matter how long he meditates on this concept, he will un cover nothing new. He can dissect and make distinct the concept of a 42[derselben teilhaftig werden.) 43[VOr.) 44[konisch.J 4s[wird.) 46[Kegel.) 47[diese: grammatically the term would refer to the mathematical contemplation (similarly for Jene just above and the philosophical contemplation), but clearly 'contemplates' just be low requires mathematics as its subject.) 48[See above, A 7 1 4
=
B 742 br. n. 37.)
49[Or 'ratio' : sich . . . verhalten.)
SECTION I
PURE REASON IN ITS DOGMATIC USE
67 1
straight line, or of an angle, or of the number three, but he cannot arrive at any other properties that are in no way contained in these concepts. But now let the geometrician take up this question. He begins immediately by constructing a triangle. He knows that two right angles together yield50 ex actly the same [sum] as do all the adjacent angles together that can be drawn from one point on a straight line. He therefore extends one side of his tri angle and thus obtains5 1 two adjacent angles52 that together are equal to two right angles. Of the two angles he now divides the external one by drawing a line parallel to the opposite side of the triangle; and he sees that there arises here an external adjacent angle that is equal to an internal one; etc. In this manner he arrives, by a chain of inferences but always guided by intuition, at a completely evident and at the same time universal solu tion of the question. 53 However, mathematics constructs not merely magnitudes (quanta), as in geometry, but also mere magnitude [as such] (quantitas),54 as in alge bra. In this algebraic construction, mathematics abstracts entirely from the constitution55 of the object that is to be thought according to such a conSO[austragen.]
s l [Along this straight line.] S2[One internal and one external to the tnangle.] S3[The following diagram may serve to guide our intuition:
Extending the triangle's one side (here at the bottom) yields at first two angles (equal to two right angles): 3, and the sum of 2e and I e ( 'e' stands for 'external'). This latter sum is then divided further into 2e and Ie by the line parallel to the triangle's opposite side. Because this line is thus parallel. I e can be seen to equal 1 , and 2e can similarly (as Kant indicates merely by saying 'etc. ') be seen to equal 2 The remainder (3) of the angle (equal to two right angles) along the straight line is simply the tnangle's third angle. Thus the sum of the triangle's three angles-two of them transposed, as it were----<:an be seen to equal the angle along the straight line and thus to equal two nght angles.] s4[Quantity.] 5s[Beschajfenheit, which
I
usually translate by 'character." ]
{ A 717
B 745
672
A B 746
718 }
PART II
DOCTRINE OF METHOD
cept of magnitude. It then chooses a certain notation5 6 (viz., numbers)57 usable for all constructions of magnitudes as such, i.e., for addition, sub traction, etc., extraction of the root, and so on. And after mathematics has designated58 the universal concept of magnitudes also according to the dif ferent relations of these magnitudes, 59 it exhibits in intuition, according to certain universal rules, all manipulation by which the60 magnitude is pro duced or changed. E.g., in cases where one magnitude is to be divided by another, mathematics puts the characters6 1 of the two magnitudes together according to the form distinctive62 of division; etc. And thus [in algebra] mathematics reaches by means of a symbolic construction-just as [in] ge ometry [it] reaches according to an ostensive or geometric construction (of the objects themselves)-results that could never be reached through any discursive cognition by means of mere concepts. What may be the cause of the fact that two artists of reason63 find them selves in so different a position, the one proceeding on his path by con cepts, the other by intuitions that he exhibits a priori in accordance with concepts? By_ the basic transcendental doctrines set forth above, this cause is clear. At issue here are not analytic propositions, which can be produced by merely dissecting concepts (in this the philosopher would doubtless have the advantage over his rival); rather, at issue are synthetic propositions-and such, moreover, as are to be cognized a priori. For I am to take account not merely of what I actually think in my concept of a triangle (since this is nothing more than the mere definition); rather, I am to go beyond the concept and to properties that do not lie in this concept but yet belong to it. Now, doing this is impossible except by my determining my object ac cording to the conditions either of empirical intuition or of pure intuition. The first procedure would yield (by measuring the triangle's angles) only 56 [Bezeichnung. ] 57 [Right parenthesis moved here, following Erdmann and the Akademie edition, from its po sition after 'etc. ' just below.] 58 [bezeichnet. ] 59[In the various constructions or operations.] 60[Reading, with Wille, durr:h die die for die durch die.] 61 [ Or 'symbols' : Charaktere.] 62 [bezeichnend. ]
"' [The philosopher and the mathematician: Vemunftkiinstler.]
SECTION I
PURE REASON IN ITS DOGMATIC USE
673
an empirical proposition, which64 would contain no universality, still less any necessity; and with such propositions we are not concerned at all here. But the second procedure is mathematical construction, and here specifi cally geometric construction. By means of this construction I add in pure intuition, just as I do in empirical intuition, the manifold that belongs to the schema of a triangle as such and hence belongs to the triangle's con cept. Universal synthetic propositions must indeed be constructed by this65 (second procedure]. 66 Hence it would be futile for me to philosophize about the triangle-i.e., to meditate about it discursively. 67 By doing so I would not advance in the least, except to the mere definition; yet from the definition I should, prop erly, start. There is indeed a transcendental synthesis from concepts alone, one that again68 only the philosopher succeeds in performing. But this syn thesis never concerns more than a thing as such,69 viz., as regards the ques tion under what conditions the thing's perception can belong to possible experience. But in mathematical problems the question is not about this, nor in general70 about existence, but is about the properties of the objects in themselves,7 l solely insofar as these properties are linked with the con cept of the objects. In the [geometric] example cited above we tried only to make distinct how great a difference there72 is between reason's discursive use accord ing to concepts and its intuitive use through construction of concepts. Now the question naturally arises as to what is the cause that necessitates such a twofold use of reason, and by what conditions we can cognize73 whether [in a specific case] only the first use has a place or the second use also. All our cognition still refers ultimately to possible intuitions; for through these alone is an object given. Now an a priori concept (a nonempirical 64[As empirical.] 6s [wodurch.] 66 [Cf. above, A 7 14
=
B 742 incl. br. n. 37.]
67 U.e., conceptually.] 68 [I.e., as in the case of producing analytic propositions.] 69 [Or 'thing in general': Ding iiberhaupt.] 7o[iiberhaupt. ] 7 1 [an sich, used loosely here.] 72[anzutreffen.] 7J [Or 'recognize' : erkennen. !
{ A 719
B 747
674
A 720 B 748
}
A 721 B 749
}
PART II
DOCTRINE OF METHOD
concept) either already contains within itself a pure intuition; and in that case it can be constructed. Or it contains nothing but the synthesis of pos sible intuitions that are not given a priori; and in that case we can indeed judge through it synthetically and a priori, but only discursively according to concepts, never intuitively by constructing the concept. Now of all intuition74 none is given a priori except the mere form of appearances, i.e., space and time; and a concept of these as quanta can be exhibited a priori in intuition-i.e., constructed-either simultaneously with the quality of these [quanta] (their shape), or their mere quantity alone (the mere synthesis of the homogeneous manifold) can be so exhibited through number. But the matter of appearances, through which things are given to us in space and time, can be presented75 only in perception and hence a posteriori. The only concept that presents this empirical content of appear ances a priori is the concept of thing as such; 76 and the synthetic a priori cognition of this thing as such can supply nothing more than the mere rule of the synthesis of what our perception may give us a posteriori, but can never supply a priori the intuition of the real object, because this intuition must necessarily be empirical. Synthetic propositions dealing with things as such-whose intuition can not be given a priori at all-are transcendental. Accordingly, transcenden tal propositions can never be given through construction of concepts, but can be given only according to a priori concepts. Such propositions con tain merely the rule according to which we are to seek empirically a cer tain synthetic unity of what cannot be presented intuitively and also a priori (viz., perceptions). But transcendental propositions cannot a priori exhibit a single one of their concepts in any instance; they do this exhibiting only a posteriori, by means of experience, which itself first becomes possible in accordance with those synthetic principles. If we are to judge synthetically concerning a concept, then we must go beyond this concept, viz., to the intuition wherein it is given. For if we stayed with what is contained in the concept, then the judgment would be merely analytic and merely an explication of the thought as to what is ac tually contained therein. But from the concept I can go to the pure or em pirical intuition that corresponds to it, in order to consider the concept in 74[Of whatever kind.] 7S[ vorstellen. See B xvii hr. n. 73 ]
76[des Dinges iiberhaupt. I follow the Akademie edition in extending the emphasis to include iiberhaupt.]
SECTION I
PURE REASON IN ITS DOGMATIC USE
675
that intuition in concreto and thus to cognize a priori or a posteriori what property belongs to this concept's object. The first alternative is rational and mathematical cognition through construction of the concept; the sec ond is mere empirical (mechanical) cognition, which can never yield nec essary and apodeictic propositions. Thus I could indeed dissect my em pirical concept of gold, and would gain from this nothing more than the ability to enumerate everything that I actually think in connection with this word; but although a logical improvement would thus occur in my cogni tion, no increase or addition would be gained in it. However, [instead of dissecting the concept of gold, I here go to empirical intuition:] I take the matter that we encounter under this name,77 and with it I engage in per ceptions that will provide me with various synthetic but empirical propo sitions. 78 The mathematical concept of a triangle, on the other hand, I would construct, i.e., give a priori in intuition, and in this way I would acquire a synthetic but rational cognition. But if, finally, the transcendental concept of reality, substance, force, etc. is given to me, then this concept desig nates neither an empirical nor a pure intuition, but only the synthesis of empirical intuitions (intuitions that therefore cannot be given a priori). And because here the synthesis cannot a priori go outside the concept to the in tuition corresponding thereto, there also can arise from this concept no de terrninative79 synthetic proposition, but only a principle of the synthesis80 of possible empirical intuitions. Therefore, a transcendental proposition is a synthetic rational cognition according to mere concepts, and hence is dis cursive; for although all synthetic unity of empirical cognition first be comes possible through such propositions, no intuition is given a priori through them. There is, then, a twofold use of reason; 8 1 and the two uses, despite the universality and a priori production of cognition that they have in com17[Of gold.] 18[Cf. below, A 727-28fB 755-56.] 79[Or 'detenninant': bestimmend.] BOBy means of the concept of cause I do actually go outside the empirical concept of an event (where something occurs)-not, however, to the intuition that exhibits the concept of cause in concreto, but to the time conditions as such that might, in conformity with the concept of cause, be found in experience. Hence I here pro ceed merely according to concepts, and cannot proceed by constructing concepts. For the concept is a rule of the synthesis of perceptions, which are not pure intui tions and hence cannot be given a priori. 81
[See the Logic. Ak. IX, 22-23;
also
the Prolegomena. Ak. III, 268-69, 272-73, 280-86.]
{ A 722
B 750
{ A 723 B 75 1
676
A 724 B 752
}
PART II
DOCTRINE OF METHOD
mon, are yet very different thereafter. 82 And this is so because in appear ance, through which all objects are given to us, there are two components: the form of intuition (space and time), which can be cognized and deter mined completely a priori; and the matter (the physical [component]) or content [of intuition] , which signifies a something encountered in space and time and hence a something containing an existence and corresponding to sensation. As regards the material component, which can never be given in a determinate way except empirically, we cannot have anything a priori except indeterminate concepts of the synthesis of possible sensations inso far as these [concepts] belong to the unity of apperception (in a possible experience). As regards the form of intuition, we can determine our con cepts a priori in intuition, by creating for ourselves in space and time the objects themselves through uniform synthesis, which we accomplish by contemplating them merely as quanta. Of the two uses of reason, the first is called the use of reason according to concepts; in it83 we can do nothing more than bring appearances-according to their real content-under con cepts, which cannot thereby84 be determined otherwise than empirically, i.e., a posteriori (but still in conformity with these same concepts as rules of an empirical synthesis). The second is the use of reason through con struction of concepts; in it, since the concepts already concern an a priori intuition, they also can-precisely therefore-be given determinately and a priori, without any empirical data, in pure intuition. [The first use of rea son is philosophical, the second mathematical.] To consider everything that exists85 (as a thing in space or time) 86 ( 1 ) as to whether and how far it is a quantum or not; to consider (2) that an existence or lack thereof must be presented in it; to consider (3) how far this something (which occupies space or time) is a primary substratum or a mere determination, how far it has, as regards its existence, a reference t087 something else as its cause or effect, and finally how far, as regards its existence, it stands isolated or in 82 [im Fortgange ] 83 [Reading, with Erdmann and the Akademie edition, in dem for indem. Similarly just below, where Kant turns again to the second use of reason.] 84[1 am following Erdmann's suggestion to read dadurr:h for darau! ( 'thereupon').] 85 [da ist.] 86 [The four parenthesized numerals just below have been added. Kant's list roughly follows (as indicated by these numerals) the table of categories at A 801B 106, and (thus) follows also the order of the principles of understanding at A 1 54-2351B 193-287.] .7[Literally, 'how far it has a reference of its existence to.' ]
SECTION I
PURE REASON IN ITS DOGMATIC USE
677
[a relation of] reciprocal dependence with others; and to consider (4) the possibility of this existence, its actuality and necessity, or the opposites of these three-all this belongs to rational cognition from concepts, which is called philosophical. But to determine [and cognize] a priori an intuition in space (i.e., shape); to divide time (i.e., [to cognize] duration); or merely to cognize the universal [element] of the synthesis of one and the same [item] in time and space and thus cognize the magnitude, arising from this synthesis, of an intuition as such (i.e., number)-that is a rational task88 through construction of concepts, and is called mathematical. The great success that reason is having in mathematics89 gives rise quite naturally to the presumption that reason-if not itself then still its method-will manage to have such success also outside the realm of mag nitudes,9o viz., by bringing all its concepts91 to intuitions that it can give a priori. By doing this92 reason would become, so to speak, master Of3 nature-whereas pure philosophy fumbles around in nature with discur sive concepts, without being able to make the reality of these concepts in tuitive and precisely thereby authenticated. 94 Nor do the masters in this mathematical art, should they some day take up this extended task, seem at all lacking in this kind of confidence in themselves, or the community lacking in great expectations from their skill. For since these mathemati cians have hardly ever philosophized about their mathematics (a difficult task!), the specific difference between the two uses of reason does not en ter their mind and thoughts at all. They then count as axioms what are merely prevalent and empirically used rules that they borrow from com mon reason. As for their concepts of space of �ime, with which (as the only original quanta) they occupy themselves, the question as to whence these concepts may come is of no concern to them at all. And it similarly seems useless to them to investigate the origin of pure concepts of understanding and therewith also the range of these concepts' validity, but it seems use ful to them only to employ these concepts. In all of this they act quite 88 [Or task of reason: Vernunftgeschiift.] 89[Das groj3e Gluck, welches die Vernunft vennittelst der Mathematik macht.] 90 [l.e., outside of mathematics.] 91 [Rather than only mathematical concepts.] 92[I.e., by thus extending this mathematical method.] 9J [uber. ] 94 [beglaubigt.]
{ A 725
B 753
678
A 726 B 754
}
A 727 B 755
}
PART II
DOCTRINE OF METHOD
properly-provided that they do not overstep the boundary assigned to them, viz., that of nature. As it is, however, they pass inadvertently from the realm of sensibility to the unsafe terrain of concepts that are pure and even transcendental, where the ground permits them neither to stand nor to swim (instabilis teltus, innabilis unda),95 and where they can take only hasty steps of which not the slightest trace is preserved by time. In math ematics, on the other hand, their path forms96 a highway that even the re motest posterity can tread with confidence. We, however, have made it our duty to determine with accuracy and cer tainty the bounds of pure reason in its transcendental use. But this kind of endeavor has the peculiarity that, despite the most emphatic and clear warn ings, people engaging in it continue to allow themselves to be put off with hopes-before they completely give up the project of getting beyond the bounds of experiences and into the exciting97 regions of the intellectual [realm]. Hence it is necessary for us to remove even the last anchor, as it were, of such a fanciful hope, and to show that pursuing the mathematical method in this kind of cognition cannot provide the slightest advantage-unless it were the advantage of exposing all the more dis tinctly the weak sides of the method itself. And we must show that geom etry98 and philosophy are two quite different things-although in natural science they offer their hands to each other99-and that therefore the pro cedure of the one can never be imitated by the other. The solidityl OO of mathematics rests on definitions, axioms, and dem onstrations. I shall here settle for showing that none of these items can, in the sense in which the mathematician takes them, be accomplished or imi tated by philosophy. I shall show that in philosophy the geometrician brings about by his method nothing but houses of cards, and that the philosopher can by his method only arouse chatter in the share of [cognition belonging 95[Unstable (literally, 'incapable of being stood on') earth, unswimmable sea (literally 'wave').] 96 [macht. ] 97[reizend.] 98[Mej3kunst (literally, art of measuring'). Perhaps Kant here intends the term to stand for all of mathematics. Similarly for Mej3kiinstler (,geometncian') in the next paragraph.] '
99[See the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak. IV, 470-73 See also J. W. El lington, op. cit. at B xliii br. n. 149. 198-204. And see Gerd Buchdahl, op. cit. at A 1 76/B 2 1 8 br. n. 3, 552-73 (esp 560-6 1).] IOO[ Griindlichkeit.]
SECTION I
PURE REASON IN ITS DOGMATIC USE
679
to] mathematics. 1 0 1 Yet philosophy consists precisely in knowing lO2 its own bounds; and even the mathematician, if his talent is not perhaps by nature already bounded and limited to his field, cannot reject the warnings of phi losophy, nor brush them aside. 1 . On definitions. To define, as the term itself yields, 1 03 is in fact in tended to mean no more than to exhibit a thing's comprehensive l O4 con cept originally within its bounds. lOS According to such a requirement, an empirical concept cannot be defined 106 at all but can only be spelled out. 107 For since in such a concept we have only some of the characteristics be longing to a certain kind of objects of the senses, we can never be sure whether by the word designating the same object we do not sometimes think more and sometimes fewer of the object's characteristics. Thus in the con cept of gold one person may think, besides the weight, color, and ductility, also the property of not rusting, while another person perhaps knows noth ing of this property. We employ certain characteristics only as long as they are sufficient for distinguishing; 1 08 new observations, on the other hand, remove some characteristics and add others, and thus the concept is never securely bounded. What, indeed, could be the point of defining an empiri101 [Or, conceivably, 'in that share of mathematics [viz., in geometry]' : in dem Anteil der Math ematik.] I 02[kennen.]
IOl l .e., as its etymology implies. Cf. A l 341B 1 73 inc!. br. n. 3 1 . See also the Logic, Ak. IX, [
144, and cf. 62-63, 140.]
104 [ausfUhrlich. which also means 'elaborate. ' ]
losComprehensivenessa means clarity and sufficiency of the characteristics; bounds means the precision whereby there are no more characteristics than belong to the comprehensive concept; and originally means that this detennination of the bounds is not derived from somewhere else and thus still in need of a proof-which would render the supposed explication of the concept incapable of standing at the top of all judgments concerning an object. a[AusfUhrlichkeit. In the Logic CAk. IX, 63) Kant once gives completudo ('completeness') as the Latin equivalent of this term. Since 'completeness' is needed to render Vollstan digkeit, it seems appropriate to translate AusfUhrlichkeit differently, especially where the two German terms occur together: e.g., at A xiv and A 7321B 760.] 106[Cf. the Logic, § 1 03, Ak. IX, 1 4 1 --42.] I07[expliziert (literally 'unfolded'), the corresponding noun being Explikation. The English term 'explication' (similarly for the verb) is needed to render Erklarung (except in the infre quent cases where this term means 'explanation'), of which Explikation is merely one type: see below, A 7301B 758.] I 08 U .e. , for distinguishing one kind of thing from others.]
{ A 728
B 756
680
A 729 B 757
}
PART II
DOCTRINE OF METHOD
cal concept? For when we talk, e.g., about water and its properties, we shall not linger upon what we think by the word water, 109 but shall proceed to experiments; and the word, with the few characteristics attaching to it, is to amount merely to a designation of the thing, not to a concept of it. Hence the alleged definition of water is nothing but a determining of the word. [Thus empirical concepts cannot be defined but can only be spelled out.] Second, strictly speaking one also cannot define any concept that is given a priori, e.g., substance, cause, right, propriety, etc. For I can never be sure that the distinct presentation of a concept given to me (as still confused) has been developed comprehensively, unless I know that it is adequate to the object. However, the object's concept, as it is given, may contain many obscure presentations that we pass over in dissecting the concept, although we always use them in applying it; and hence the comprehensiveness of my concept's dissection is always doubtful, and can-through multifarious fitting examples-be made only presumptively but never apodeictically cer tain. Instead of the term dejinition l l O I would l l 1 rather use exposition. This term always still remains cautious; and thus in its case the critic can allow this exposition to hold to a certain degree and can yet still harbor qualms concerning its comprehensiveness. Since, then, neither concepts given em pirically nor concepts given a priori can be defined, there remain no con cepts on which to try this artistic feat of definition except concepts thought by choicey2 In such a case I can indeed always define my concept; for I must surely know what I wanted to think-since I myself deliberately made the concept and it was not given to me through the nature of my under standing, nor through experience. But I cannot say that I have thereby de fined a true object. For if the concept rests on empirical conditions--e.g., the concept of a ship's clock-then the object and its possibility is not yet given through this chosenl 1 3 concept. From this concept itself I do not even know whether it has an object at all, and my explication of the concept may better be called a declaration l l4 (of my project) than a definition of an object. Thus no concepts suitable for definition have remained except those that contain a chosen synthesis capable of being constructed a priori. 109 [Emphasis added.] l l O[Emphasis added.] 111
[In the case of a priori concepts.]
1 l 2 [I.e., invented: willkurlich.] 1 " [I.e., invented: willkurlich.] 1 l4[Cf. the Logic, Ak. IX, 143.]
SECTION I
PURE REASON IN ITS DOGMATIC USE
68 1
Hence only mathematics has definitions. For the object that it thinks is also exhibited by it a priori in intuition, and this object assuredly can contain neither more nor less than the concept, because the concept of the object was given through the explication l l 5 originally, i.e., without the explica tion's being derived from anything. The German language has for the terms 1 l 6 exposition, spelling-out, ll 7 declaration, and definition no more than one word: Erkliirung. 1 18 Hence we must surely relinquish some of the strict ness of the requirement under which we refused the honorary name of defi nition to philosophical explications. Let us confine this whole comment to the observation that philosophical definitions are brought about only as ex positions of given concepts, but mathematical definitions as constructions of concepts made originally; philosophical definitions are brought about only analytically through the concepts' dissection (whose completeness is not apodeictically certain), whereas mathematical definitions are brought about synthetically; and thus mathematical definitions themselves make the concept, whereas philosophical definitions only explicate it. From this there follow two consequences: (a) In philosophy one must not imitate mathematics by starting from a definition-except perhaps as a mere attempt. For since the definitions are dissections 1 1 9 of given concepts, the concepts, though still confused, pre cede the definitions; and the incomplete exposition precedes the complete one. Thus once we have drawn some characteristics from a still uncom pleted dissection, we can infer from them various details in advance, be fore we have reached the complete exposition, i.e., the definition. In a word, in philosophy the definition, as involving rigorous 1 20 distinctness, must con clude rather than begin the work.121 In mathematics, on the other hand, we 1 1 5 [Which is, in this case, a definition.] 1 1 6[All of Latin origin.] Il7[Explikation. See br. n. 107 just above. ] 11 8 [I.e., 'explication.'] 1 I9[I.e., analyses.] 1 20[abgemessen.]
1Zl
philosophy is teeming with defective definitions-above all those that, although actually containing elements for the definition, do not yet contain them completely. Now if one could do nothing whatever with a concept until one had defined it, then all philosophizing would be in a bad state indeed. Yet as far as the elements (re sulting from the dissection) reach, a good and safe use can always be made of them; and hence even deficient definitions-i.e., propositions that are properly not yet defi-
{ A 730 B 758
{ A 73 1
B 759
682
A 732 B 760
}
PART II
DOCTRINE OF METHOD
have no concept whatever prior to the definition, since the concept is given through the definition in the first place; hence mathematics must-and also always can-start from the definition. (b) Mathematical definitions can never err. For since the concept is first given through the definition, it contains exactly just what the definition wants us to think through the concept. But although there cannot occur in the concept anything incorrect in content, sometimes-although only rarely -there may still be a defect in the form (the guise) of the concept, viz., as regards its precision. Thus the common explication of a circular line1 22 -viz., that it is a curved line every point of which is equidistant from a single point (the center)-has the defect that the determination 123 curved has unnecessarily come in. For clearly there must be a particular theorem, deduced from the definition and easily provable, that any line every point of which is equidistant from a single point is curved (i.e., no part of it is straight). Analytic definitions, on the other hand, can err in a multitude of ways: viz., either by bringing in characteristics that actually did not lie in the concept; or by lacking the comprehensiveness that amounts to the es sential feature of a definition-for one can never be entirely certain of the completeness of one's dissection of the concept. Hence the method that mathematics uses in defining cannot be imitated in philosophy. 2. On axioms. These are synthetic a priori principles insofar as such principles are directly certain. Now, one cannot link a concept with an other concept synthetically and yet directly; 124 for in order for us to go be yond a concept, a third, mediating 125 cognition is needed. 126 Now, since philosophy is merely the rational cognition according to concepts, there will be no principle to be found in it that deserves the name of an axiom. Math ematics, on the other hand, is capable of having axioms, because by means nitions but that are otherwise true and thus are approximations to definitions�an be used to great benefit. In mathematics definition belongs ad esse, in philosophy ad melius esse. It is nice, but often very difficult, to reach a definition. The jurists are still searching for a definition for their concept of right. a
"[Respectively, 'to being (essence)' and 'to better being (improved essence)' .] 1 22 [l.e., in effect, the circumference of a circle.] 1 23[l.e., attribute: Bestimmung.] 124[unmittelbar (similarly just above); see B xxxix br. n. 144c.] ' 2s[vermittelnd.] 1 26 [See above, A 6-1018 10-14.]
SECTION I
PURE REASON IN ITS DOGMATIC USE
683
of constructing concepts in the intuition of the object it can connect the object's predicates a priori and directly---e . g., the axiom that three points always lie in one plane. On the other hand, a synthetic principle can never be directly certain merely from concepts---e . g., the proposition that every thing that occurs has its cause. There I must look around for a third some thing, viz., the condition of time determination in an experience, 1 27 and am unable to cognize such a principle from the concepts alone, directly and without mediation. 128 Hence discursive principles are something quite dif ferent from intuitive principles, i.e., axioms. Discursive principles always still require a deduction. 129 Intuitive principles [or axioms], on the other hand, can altogether dispense with a deduction. For the same reason they are evident, which is something that the philosophical 1 30 principles, de spite all their certainty, can never claim. Thus we are infinitely far from having any synthetic proposition of pure and transcendental reason that is as obvious (as people defiantly tend to express it) as the proposition that two times two make four. It is true that in the Analytic, in the table of the principles of pure understanding, 131 I also mentioned some axioms. But the principle adduced there 1 32 was not itself an axiom; rather, it served only to state the principle 1 33 of the possibility of axioms as such, and itself is only a principle based on concepts. For the possibility even of mathemat ics must b� shown in transcendental philosophy. 1 34 Hence philosophy has no axioms and must never enjoin its a priori principles in such an absolute manner, but must take the trouble to justify its right regarding them by a thorough deduction. 135 3. On demonstrations. Only an apodeictic proof insofar as it is also in
tuitive can be called a demonstration. Now experience indeed teaches us 1 27[Cf. A 2171B 264.] 128 [direkl unmittelbar.] 1 29 [l.e., legitimation. Likewise just below.] 1 30 [And thus discursive.] l 3 l [A 1611B 200.] 1 32 [See above. A 1 62-661B 202-7.] 1 33[Principium here, Grundsatz just above and just below. See A vii br n. 7.] 1 34 [See above, B 40-41 and A 165-661B206-7.] 135[l.e., legitimation.]
B 761 A 733
{ A 734
B 762
684
A 735 B 763
}
PART II
DOCTRINE OF METHOD
what is, 136 but not that it1 37 cannot possibly 13 8 be different. Hence empiri cal bases of proof can provide no apodeictic proof at all. But even from a priori concepts (used in discursive cognition) no intuitive certainty-i.e., no self-evidence 1 39--can ever arise, no matter how apodeictically certain the judgment may otherwise be. Hence only mathematics contains demon strations, because it derives its cognition not from concepts but from the construction thereof, i.e., from the intuition that can be given a priori as corrresponding to the concepts. Even the procedure that algebra follows with its equations (producing from them by reduction the truth together with the proof), 140 while not a geometric construction, is still a construction in terms of characters. 1 4 1 Here the concepts, above all those of the relation of magnitudes, are displayed in intuition through signs, and all inferences are secured against mistakes-leaving aside now the heuristic [value of this kind of construction]-by putting each inference before our eyes. Philo sophical cognition, on the other hand, must forego this advantage, inas much as it must consider the universal always in abstracto (through con cepts), whereas mathematics can examine the universal in concreto (in the individual intuition) and yet through pure a priori presentation, so that any slip becomes visible. Hence I would prefer to call the former 142 proofs ac roamatic (discursive) proofs, because they cannot be conducted except through words alone (i.e., through the object in thought), instead of call ing them demonstrations, which-as the tenn already indicates-proceed in the intuition of the object. From all this it follows that it is in no way fitting for the nature of phi losophy, above all in the realm of pure reason, to strut about with a dog matic gait143 and adorn itself with the titles and ribbons of mathematics, for philosophy still does not belong in the order of mathematics, despite 136[was da sei, which I here read with da unemphasized (and sei emphasized); emphasizing da (let alone contracting the two words to dasei, as the Akademie edition does) changes the meaning to 'what there is' or 'what exists,' and thus narrows Kant's point.) l37[l.e., what is.) l3 " [gar.] 139[Evidenz. The visual connotation of this term's etymology is here being linked by Kant to the same connotation in Anschauung (,intuition'). Cf. the remainder of this paragraph.) ' 40[Parentheses added.) l4 1 [charakteristische KOllslruktion.) l 42 [I.e., the philosophical.) l43[Gang )
SECTION I
PURE REASON IN ITS DOGMATIC USE
685
having every cause to hope for a sisterly union with mathematics. Such dogmatic claims are idle pretensions that can never succeed, but that must rather undo philosophy's aim to uncover the deceptions of a reason mis taking its own bounds, and philosophy's aim to guide, by sufficiently clari fying our concepts, the self-conceit l44 of speculation back to a modest but thorough self-cognition. 145 Hence reason will not in its transcendental at tempts be able to look ahead so confidently, as though the path that it has traversed led to the goal so very directly. And reason will not be able to count on its presupposed l46 premises so daringly as to eliminate l47 any need to look back repeatedly and be mindful whether it may not perhaps un cover mistakes in the progression of its inferences-mistakes that were overlooked in the principles and that require reason either to determine these principles more fully or to alter them entirely. I divide all apodeictic propositions (whether they be provable or, for that matter, certain immediately 148) into dogmata and mathemata. A directly syn thetic proposition l49 based on concepts is a dogma, whereas a directly syn thetic proposition obtained through construction of concepts is a mathema. Analytic judgments teach l50 us in fact nothing more about the object than is already contained in the concept that we have of it; for they do not ex pand the cognition beyond the concept of the proposition's subject, but only elucidate this concept. Hence analytic propositions cannot properly be called dogmas 1 5 1 (a word that could perhaps be rendered as instructional pronouncements I 5 2). Of the mentioned two kinds of [directly] synthetic a priori propositions, however, only those belonging to philosophical cogni tion can, according to the customary usage of language, carry this name, 1 53 1 44[Eigendiinkel.] 14S[Selbsterkenntnis.] 1 46 [zum Grunde gelegt.] 147 [nicht.] 1 48 [unmittelbar; my usual translation of this tenn as 'directly' might in this context be mis leading.] 1 49 [Le., a proposition that is synthetic in itself, not merely under the presupposition of pos sible experience. Cf. the next paragraph.) ls°[lehren. ) 1 5 1 [Dogmen. ] lS2 [Lehrspriiche. which approximates the root-meaning of Dogmen.] lS3[Of dogmata.)
{ A 736
B 764
686
A 737 B 765
}
A 738 B 766
}
PART II
DOCTRINE OF METHOD
and one would scarcely call by the name of dogmata the propositions of arithmetic or geometry. Hence this customary usage confirms the explica tion l 54 that we have given, whereby only judgments based on concepts-and not those based on the construction of concepts---<:an be called dogmatic. Now all of pure reason in its merely speculative use contains not a single directly synthetic judgment based on concepts. For, as we have shown, by means of ideas reason is not capable of any synthetic judgments that would have objective validity. 1 55 But although reason does set up secure prin ciples by means of concepts of understanding, it does this not at all di rectly from concepts, but always only indirectly by referring these con cepts to something entirely contingent, viz., to possible experience. 156 And thus these principles are indeed apodeictically certain when this possible experience (i.e., something considered as object of possible experiences) is presupposed; but in themselves (directly) they cannot even be cognized a priori. 157 Thus as regards the proposition that everything that occurs has its cause, no one can have thorough insight into it from these given con cepts alone. Hence this proposition is not a dogma, although from another point of view-viz., that of the only realm of the proposition's possible use, i.e., experience-it can quite well be proved, and proved apodeicti cally. But despite having to be proved, the proposition is called a principle rather than a theorem, 158 because it has the special property of itself first making possible its own basis of proof, viz., experience, and of always hav ing to be presupposed in experience. Now if in pure reason's speculative use there are indeed no dogmata whatever in terms of content, then all dogmatic method, whether it is bor rowed from the mathematician or is meant to become a peculiar manner of its own, is inherently inappropriate. For it merely hides defects and er rors and thus deludes philosophy, whose proper aim is to let all steps of reason be seen in their clearest light. The method can nonetheless always be systematic. For our reason is itself (subjectively) a system. But reason in its pure use by means of mere concepts is only a system of investiga tion according to principles of unity-an investigation for which only ex154 [Of dogma.] 1 55[See A 669-7 11B 697-99. ] 156[See above, A 156-581B 1 95-97.] 157 [I.e let alone cognized (a pnori and) with apodeictic certainty. Emphasis on 'cognized' added.] .•
158[Respectively. Grundsatz and Lehrsatz. ]
SECTION I
PURE REASON IN ITS DOGMATIC USE
68 7
perience can supply the material. Concerning the method peculiar to a tran scendental philosophy, however, nothing can be said here. For we are dealing only with a critique of the circumstances of our assets: 1 59 whether we can build anything at all, and how high up we might, from the material that we have (the pure a priori concepts), be able to take our edifice.
Chapter I
Section II The Discipline of Pure Reason in Regard to its Polemic Use 1 60 Reason must in all its undertakings subject itself to critique, and cannot impair the critique's freedom by any prohibition without doing harm to it self and drawing upon itself a suspicion detrimental to it. Thus nothing is so important as regards any benefit, and nothing so sacred, that it might exempt itself from this testing and probing scrutiny, which knows 161 no authority 162 of the person. The very existence of reason rests on this free dom [of critique] . For reason has no dictatorial authority; and its pro nouncement [in people] is never more than the agreement of free citizens, each of whom must be able, without holding back, to utter his qualms indeed, even his veto. But although reason can never refuse to submit to critique, it yet does not always have cause tojear163 critique. Pure reason in its dogmatic (rather than mathematical) use, however, is not conscious of observing its own su preme laws so very strictly that it would not, before the critical eye of a 1 59 [Or 'powers': Vermogensumstiinde.] 1 60[See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 2931B 349 br. n. 2, vol. 4, Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 16 1 [kennen.]
5, 567.]
1 62 [Ansehen. ] 163 [ scheuen.]
688-718 . See also Norman
{ AB 739 767
688
A 740 B 768
}
PART II
DOCTRINE OF METHOD
higher and judicial reason, have to appear with timidity-indeed, with com plete relinquishment of all pretension to dogmatic authority. The situation is quite different when reason is dealing not with the ver dictl64 of a judge but with the claims of a fellow-citizen, and is expected merely to defend itself against them. For these claims likewise seek to be dogmatic, although in denying, 165 as the former claims1 66 are so in affirm ing; and hence there takes place a justification Kat' iiv8pomoV. 167 Such justification secures one's claims against any encroachment and provides one with a titled possession that need not fear any pretensions from oth ers 168 even if it cannot itself adequately be proved Kat' clA:r18Etav.169 Now by pure reason's polemic use I mean the defense of its proposi tions against their dogmatic denials. What matters here is not whether per haps pure reason's assertions might not just as well be false, but only the fact that no one can ever with apodeictic certainty (indeed, even just with greater plausibility 1 70) assert their opposite. For surely we do not then hold our possession by way of petition, if we have before us a title of it-although an insufficient one-and if there is complete certainty that no one can ever prove this possession to be illegitimate. It is a worrisome and distressing fact that there should be an antithetic of pure reason at all, and that pure reason-which represents, after all, the highest tribunal ruling over all controversies, 1 7 1 should fall into dispute 1 72 with itself. Above we did indeed have before us such a seeming antithetic of pure reason. 1 73 But it turned out to rest on a misunderstanding. For ap pearances were taken, in accordance with the common prejudice, to be 164 [Zensur.] 165[Or 'negating' : verneinen.] 1 66 [I.e., reason's own.] 167[kat' anthropon, i.e., according to man.] 1 68[fremd.] 169 [kat' alitheian, i.e., according to the truth. Cf., for this contrast, the Critique of Judgment,
Ak. V, 463.]
1 70[Schein.] 171 [Streitigkeiten.] t72[Streir. ]
l73 [Cf. A 420-6 11B 448-89.]
SECTION II
PURE REASON IN ITS POLEMIC USE
689
things in themselves, and then absolute completeness of their synthesis was demanded in the one way or the otherl 74 (but was found to be equally im possible in both ways). However, such completeness cannot be expected of appearances at all. Hence there was then no actual contradiction of rea son with itself in the propositions that the series of appearances given in themselves has an absolutely l 75 first beginning, and that this series abso lutely and in itself is without any beginning. 176 For the two propositions are quite consistent with each other, since appearances, according to their existence (as appearances), are nothing at all in themselves-i.e., are some thing contradictory, l 77 and hence presupposing them in this way must natu rally entail contradictory conclusions. But one could not allege such a misunderstanding and thereby settle the dispute of reason if, say, someone asserted theistically that there is a su preme being, and-on the contrary-someone else asserted atheistically that there is no supreme being; 178 or, in psychology, 1 79 if someone asserted that everything that thinks has absolute permanent unity and is thus distinct from any material unity that passes away, and someone else countered this by asserting that the soul is not an immaterial unity and cannot be exempted from the fact of passing away. ISO For here the question's object is free from anything extraneous that contradicts its nature, and the understanding is dealing on�y with things in themselves and not with appearances. Hence a true conflict would indeed be found here, provided that pure reason had something to say on the denying side that came close to being the basis for an assertion; for as regards critique of the bases of proof used by the dog matically affirming side, one may quite well concede this critique to the opponent without therefore giving up these affirmative propositions-which, after all, at least have on their side the interest of reason, to which the op ponent cannot appeal at all. 1 74[In the thesis and antithesis, respectively, of each of the four antinomies.] 1 75 [absolut here, schlechthin just below.] 1 76 [See the first antinomy, A 426-331B 454-61 .] 1 17[When nonetheless so regarded.] 1 7 B [See the Ideal of Pure Reason, A 567-6421B 595-670.] 1 79[See the Paralogisms of Pure Reason, A 34l-4051B 399-432.] I BO [von der Vergtinglichkeit.]
{ A 741
B 769
690
A 742 B 770
}
A 743 B 77 1
}
PART II
DOCTRINE OF METHOD
I am not, indeed, of the opinion So often expressed by superb and medi tative men (e.g., Sulzer) 181 when they felt the weakness of the proofs pro vided thus far, viz., that we may still hope to discover some day evident demonstrations of the two cardinal propositions of our pure reason: There is a God, There is a future life. On the contrary, I am certain that this will never occur. For whence is reason to obtain the basis for such synthetic assertions that do not refer to objects of experience and to their intrinsic possibility? But it is likewise apodeictically certain that no human being will ever come forward who can assert the opposite with the slightest plau sibility, let alone do so dogmatically. For since, after all, he could estab lish this opposite only through pure reason, he would have to undertake to prove that a supreme being is impossible, and that so is the subject who is thinking in us, when considered as pure intelligence. 1 82 But whence is he to obtain the knowledgel 83 entitling him to make such synthetic judgments concerning things that lie beyond all possible experience? Hence we do not have to worry at all that someone will some day prove the opposite. 184 And precisely because of this we do not need to devise proofs for them that con form to school standards, but may assume at least those propositions that are linked l 85 quite well with the speculative interest of our reason in its empirical use, and that are, moreover, the only means of reconciling l 8 6 our reason's speculative with its practical interest. And for the opponent (who must here be regarded not merely as a critiC), 187 we have in readiness our non liquet, 188 which cannot fail to disconcert him. But if the same non li quet is turned back upon us, we do not refuse it; for we have constantly in reserve the subjective maxim of reason 189-which our opponent necessar, " 1 [Johann Georg Sulzer ( 1720-79), Swiss writer and theorist. His main work ( 1 7 7 1 -74) is Allgemeine Theorie der Kunste (General Theory of the Arts).] 1 82 [See A 566
=
B 594 incL br. n. 408.]
1 83[Kenn tnisse. ] ' 8'[Of the two cardinal propositions.] 1 85 [zusammenhiingen.] 1 86[Or 'uniting' : vereinigen.] 1 87[But as making dogmatic assertions opposite to our own. Kant now goes on, in line with the root meaning of polemic, to describe this clash of opposing assertions by analogy with a medieval fencing bout.] 1 "8[It (your assertion) is not clear (i.e., not proved).] ' 89 [Whereby we may assume proposition� that are linked quite well with the speculative in terest of our reason in its empirical use, etc ]
SECTION II
PURE REASON IN ITS POLEMIC USE
69 1
ily lacks-and under its protection we can watch all his strokes in the air with tranquillity and indifference. Thus there is, properly speaking, no antithetic of pure reason at all. For the only combat arena for such an antithetic would have to be sought on the field of pure theology and psychology; but that terrain can bear no com batant in his full armor and equipped with weapons that we need fear. He can come forward only with taunts and bluster-which we may laugh off as child's play. This is a comforting remark that gives reason courage again; for on what else could reason rely if it-alone called upon to do away with all errors-were itself in internal disarray, 190 unable to hope for peace and tranquil possession? Whatever nature itself arranges is good for some aim. Even poisons serve to overpower other poisons that are produced in our own bodily hu mors, and hence they must not be missing in a complete collection of medi cal remedies (a pharmacy). Thus the objections against the persuasions and the self-conceit of our merely speculative reason are themselves assigned to us by the nature of this same reason, and they must therefore have their own good determination and aim that must not be cast to the winds. For what aim have many objects, although linked with our highest interest, been placed so high by Providence that we are allowed to encounter them al most only .in an indistinct perception doubted even by ourselves-a per ception whereby our searching gazes are more excited than satisfied? Whether venturing to make audacious determinations of such [Providen tial] outlooks is beneficial must at least be doubted, and perhaps doing so is even harmful. But putting the investigating as well as the examining rea son in a state of complete freedom-so that it can attend unhindered to its own interest-is always and without any doubt beneficial. Reason furthers this interest just as much by setting limits to its own insights as it does by expanding them; and this interest always suffers when outside l 9 1 hands in tervene to lead reason-against its natural course-in accordance with forced aims.
Therefore, just let your opponent speakl 92 reason, and combat him only with weapons of reason. Be otherwise without worries concerning the good 1 90 [in sich selbst zerruttet.]
19 1
[Jremd ]
1 92[sagen-replaced by Erdmann and the Akademie edition with zeigen ( 'show'), in view of Kant's use of zeigen in the second paragraph of A 746/8 774.]
{ A 744
B 772
PART II
692
DOCTRINE OF METHOD
cause 193 (of reason's practical interest), for in a merely speculative dispute this cause never comes into play. The dispute then reveals nothing but a certain antinomy of reason that, because it rests on the very nature of rea 4 son, must necessarily be listened to and examined. The dispute 19 culti vates reason by making it contemplate its object from two sides, and the dispute corrects reason's judgment 195 by limiting it. What becomes dis putable here is not the A 74S B 773
}
cause l 96 but the tone.
For you are still left with a sufficient basis to speak the language-justified before the keenest
reason-of a firmjaith, even though you have had to give up the language of knowledge. 1 97 Suppose that 198 we asked David Hume, a man dispassionate 199 and par ticularly destined2°O to maintain balance of judgment: What led you to un dermine, by perplexities reached through laborious pondering, the persuasion-so comforting and beneficial to human beings-that their ra tional insight suffices for asserting [the existence of] a supreme being and for obtaining a determinate concept of this being?20 ! Hume would answer: Nothing but the aim of advancing reason in its self-cognition, and also a certain indignation at the constraint that people want to inflict on reason, inasmuch as they boast of reason and simultaneously prevent it from frankly confessing its own weaknesses that are revealed to it in its self-examination.
Priestley, a man devoted solely use and averse to all transcendent
Suppose, on the other hand, that you ask to the principles of reason's
empirical
speculation, what motives he had for tearing down two such basic pillars of all religion as our soul's freedom and immortality (the hope for a future life is for him only the expectation of a miracle of resurrection)-he, who 1 93[Sache.] 194[Slreil.] 1 95[Urleil; see A 1 301B 1 69 br. n. 3.] 196[ Or '(subject-)matter' : Sache.] 1 97[Cf. B
xxx
incl. br. n. 1 22. See also A 820-3 l IB 848-59.]
1 98[Wenn; similarly just below.] 1 99[kallbliilig (literally, 'cold-blooded').] 2oo[eigenllich geschaffen.] 20 1 [See the Dialogues Concerning Natural Religion (I 779)--d. above, A 62 1 1B 649 br. n. 280)-and the Enquiry Concerning Human Understanding ( 1 748).]
SECTION II
PURE REASON IN ITS POLEMIC USE
693
is himself a pious and zealous teacher of religion?202 Priestley could give no other answer than this: I was motivated by the interest of reason; rea son loses something if we seek to withdraw certain objects from the laws of material nature-the only laws that we can cognize203 and determine exactly. Now it would seem inappropriate to decry the latter philosopher, who knows how to reconcile his paradoxical assertion with the aim of re ligion, and thus to hurt a well-meaning man because he cannot find his way once he has strayed from the realm of natural science. 204 But this favor must then be accorded just as much to the no less well-intentioned and in his moral character irreproachable Hume, who cannot abandon his abstract speculation merely because he rightly supposes that their object lies en tirely outside the bounds of natural science and in the realm of pure ideas. What, then, is to be done about this contest, above all as regards the danger arising from it that seems to threaten the common best interest205 ? Nothing is more natural and nothing more appropriate than the decision that you have to make concerning this contest. Just let these people do as they wish; if they show talent, if they show themselves engaged in deep and new investigation-in a word, if they just show reason-then reason always gains. If you adopt other means than those of an unconstrained rea son, if you scream about treason or call together the community as if to put out a fire, as it were, then you make yourselves ridiculous. For the is sue is not at all what side among these is advantageous or disadvantageous to the common best interest, but only how much reason may achieve in its speculation that abstracts from all interest, and whether this speculation can count for anything at all or must perhaps rather be given up for what is practica1.206 Hence instead of flailing about with your swords, you should rather watch this contest quietly from the secure seat of critique. This con test is troublesome for the combatants, but entertaining for you; and-given an outcome that is certain to be bloodless-it must tum out to be profit able for your insights. For to expect enlightenment from reason and yet to prescribe to it beforehand on which side it must necessarily sally forth is 202 [See Joseph Priestley ( 1 733- 1 804; Priestley died six days before Kant, on February 6),
Disquisitions Relating 10 Matter and Spirit ( 1 777) and The Doctrine of Philosophical Neces sity Illustrated ( 1777). Priestley is best known for his discovery of oxygen.] 203[kennen.] 204 [Naturlehre here, Naturwissenschaft just below.] 2°' [dem gemeinen Besten.] 206 [Cf. B xxxviii inc!. br. n. 142.]
{ A 746
B 774
{ A 747
B 775
694
A 748 B 776
}
PART II
DOCTRINE OF METHOD
quite absurd. Besides, reason is already on its own so well subdued and kept within limits by reason, that there is no need whatever for you to sum mon the guard to oppose with civic resistance the party whose worrisome superiority seems dangerous to you. In this dialectic there is no victory that you have cause to worry about. Moreover, reason very much needs such a dispute, 207 and one would wish that the dispute had been conducted sooner and with unlimited pub lic pennission. For a mature critique would have come about so much the earlier. At that critique's appearance all these contests208 must vanish, be cause the contestants learn to become aware of their delusion and their prejudices that have disunited them. There is in human nature a certain insincerity that must still in the end involve, like everything that comes from nature, a predisposition to good purposes: viz., an inclination to conceal one's true attitudes, and to parade certain adopted attitudes that one considers good and laudable. Through this propensity both to conceal themselves and to adopt a semblance ad vantageous to them, human beings have quite certainly not only civilized themselves but also little by little moralized themselves in a certain mea sure. For no one was able to penetrate the cosmetic of propriety, respect ability, and decency; and thus everyone found for himself, in what sup posedly genuine examples of the good he saw around him, a school for improvement. Yet this predisposition to simulate being better than one is and to express attitudes that one does not have serves only provisionally, as it were, to bring a human being out of the state of crudeness, and to al low him at first to adopt at least the manner of the good familiar to him. For afterwards, once the genuine principles have been developed and have passed over into the person's way of thinking, that falseness must little by little be combated vigorously; for otherwise it corrupts the heart and keeps good attitudes from springing up under the rank weed of the beautiful sem blance. It saddens me to perceive the same insincerity, dissimulation, and hy pocrisy even in the utterances made in the speculative way of thinking where, after all, human beings meet far fewer obstacles in revealing their confessed thoughts209 openly and candidly,21 0 as is proper, and where they 207[Streit.] 208[Streithdndel.] 209[Literally. 'the confession of their thoughts. ' ]
21 o[unverhohlen.)
SECTION II
PURE REASON IN ITS POLEMIC USE
695
have no advantage whatever [if they do otherwise] . For what can be more detrimental to our insights than to communicate even mere thoughts in a falsified manner, or to conceal2 1 1 doubts that we feel concerning our own
{ A 749
B 777
assertions, or to give a veneer of self-evidence to bases of proof that do not satisfy even ourselves? However, as long as these secret wiles are pro voked merely by private vanity (as is usually the case in speculative judg ments that have no special interest for us and do not easily admit of apo deictic certainty), they are at least countered by the vanity of others--and
this with public sanction;
and thus things ultimately arrive where they
would have been brought, although much earlier, by the sincerest attitude and uprightness. But in cases where the community supposes that some
quibbling subtle reasoners 2 1 2 are handling nothing less than [a plan] to rock the foundation of the public welfare, there it seems not only prudent but also permitted and perhaps even laudable for us to come to the aid of the good cause by using illusory bases. 2 1 3 For in such cases this is preferable to leaving the supposed opponents of the good cause even just the advan tage of making us tune down our [argument's] tone to the moderation be fitting a merely practical conviction, and of compelling us to admit our lack of speculative and apodeictic certainty. I would think, however, that surely nothing in the world is reconcilable more poorly with the aim of maintain ing a good �ause than are insidiousness, dissimulation, and fraud. In weigh ing the rational bases of a mere speculation, surely the least that may be demanded is that everything must proceed honestly. And if even this little could safely be counted on, then the dispute of speCUlative reason con cerning the important questions of God, immortality (of the soul), and free dom would either have been decided long ago, or would be brought to an end very soon. Thus the sincerity of the attitude often stands in inverse re lation to the goodness2 14 of the cause itself, and this cause has perhaps more upright and righteous2 1 S opponents than defenders. Hence I here presuppose that I have readers who do not want any just cause to be defended with injustice. Now, it is already decided regarding 211 [verhehlen; similarly in the preceding paragraph.] 212 [spitljindige Verniinftler.] 2 1 3 [Or 'grounds' : Griinde. See B xix b r n. 79.) 2 14[Gutartigkeit.) 21 5[redlich.]
{ A 750
B 778
696
PART II
DOCTRINE OF METHOD
this cause2 1 6 that according to our principles of critique-if one takes ac count not of what occurs but of what properly ought to occur-there should in fact be no polemic of pure reason at all. For how can two persons carry on a dispute about a thing2 1 7 whose reality neither of the two can exhibit in an actual or even merely in a possible experience, each brooding over the thing's idea solely in order to extract from it a little
A 75 l B 779
}
more than an idea,
viz., the actuality of the object itself? By what means are they to get out of the dispute, when neither of the two can make his cause2 18 comprehen sible and certain straightforwardly, but can only attack and refute that of his opponent? For this is the fate of all assertions of pure reason: They [are synthetic propositions that] go beyond the conditions of all possible experience-the conditions outside of which no documentation of truth is anywhere to be found. But such assertions must nonetheless employ the laws of understanding; and these laws are determined merely for empiri cal use, yet without them no step can be taken in any synthetic thought. Thus assertions of pure reason always offer weak sides to the opponent and can reciprocally take advantage of their opponent's weak side. The critique of pure reason may be regarded as the true tribunal for all controversies of reason. For the critique is not itself involved in these con troversies, which deal directly with objects, but is aimed at determining and
judging the right2 1 9 of reason as such according to the principles of its first institutes. 22o Without such critique reason is, as it were, in the state of nature, 221 and cannot validate222 or secure its assertions and claims except through
war.
Critique, on the other hand, which obtains all its decisions from the basic rules governing its own appointment223-rules whose authority no one can doubt-provides us with the tranquillity of a situation of law, a situation in which we are to carry on our controversy solely through litigation. What 2 l6[Sache.] 2 1 7[Sache.] 218 [Sache.] 21 9 [Rechtsame ] 220 [Institution; i.e., here, the summary of such (legal) principles.] 22 1 [As described by Thomas Hobbe� (cf. below), Leviathan, ch. 13.]
222 [geltend machen ] 223[Einsetzung ]
SECTION II
PURE REASON IN ITS POLEMIC USE
697
in the first situation ends the transactions224 is a victory boasted of by both parties, usually followed by what is merely an insecure peace brought about by some mediating authority; but in the second situation it is the critique's
verdict, 225 which, because it here concerns the very
source of the contro
{ A 752
B 780
versies, must warrant a perpetual peace. Moreover, the endless controver sies of a merely dogmatic reason compel us finally to seek tranquillity in some critique of this reason itself and in a legislation based on this cri tique. It is as Hobbes maintains: the state of nature is a state of injustice and violence, and one must necessarily abandon it and subject oneself to the constraint of law; for such constraint alone limits our freedom so that it can coexist with the freedom of everyone else and precisely thereby with the common best interest. 226 This freedom then also includes that of putting forth publicly, for judg ment227 by others, one's thoughts and one's doubts that one cannot resolve for oneself, without therefore being decried as a restless and dangerous citi zen. This much already lies in the original right of human reason. For hu man reason recognizes no other judge than universal human reason itself again, wherein everyone has his voice. And since all improvement of which our situation228 is capable must come from this universal human reason, such a right is sacred and must not be encroached upon. Moreover, it is unwise to C;ry down certain daring assertions as dangerous, or thus to cry down presumptuous attacks on assertions that already have on their side the assent of the largest and best part of the community; for to do this is to give to such assertions an importance that they should not have at all. When I hear that an uncommon mind is supposed to have demonstrated away the freedom of the human will, the hope for a future life, and the existence of God, then I am eager to read his book; for in view of his talent 1 expect him to further my insights. That in fact he will have accomplished nothing of all this-this I already know beforehand with complete certainty. I do so not because, say, I believe that I am already in possession of invincible proofs of these important propositions, but because the transcendental 224 [I.e., what in the state of nature puts an end to the acts of war.] 225 [Sentenz.] 226 [See Leviathan. ch. 14. and cf. the Metaphysics of Morals, Ak. VI, 230, and the Ground
ing for the Metaphysics of Morals, Ak. IV, 433-36.]
227[Beurteilung.] 22"[Or 'condition' or 'state' . Zustand. J
{ A 753 B 781
698
PART II
DOCTRINE OF METHOD
critique-which has uncovered for me our pure reason's entire supply229 -has completely convinced me that, just as pure reason is entirely insuf ficient for making affirmative assertions in this realm, so will its knowl edge be insufficient-indeed, even more insufficient-for making any nega tive assertions concerning these questions. For whence is the alleged freethinker to obtain his knowledge230-e.g., that there is no supreme be ing? This proposition lies outside the realm of possible experience, and hence also outside the bounds of all human insight. On the other hand, the dogmatic defender of the good cause against this enemy of the good cause I would not read at all. For I know beforehand that he will attack the oth er's illusory bases23 1 solely in order to gain admittance for his own-and
A 7S4 B 782
}
that, besides, a routine illusion still does not provide one with so much ma terial for new observations as does an illusion that is strange and inge niously excogitated. By contrast, the opponent of religion, likewise dog matic in his own way, would give to my critique a much-desired occupation and an occasion for further correction of its principles, without there be ing anything whatsoever to fear on account of him. But232 surely at least the youths entrusted to academic instruction should be warned against such writings, and should be kept away from early ac quaintance with such dangerous propositions until their power of judg ment233 has matured--or rather until the doctrine that one seeks to estab lish in them is rooted so firmly as to resist vigorously all persuasion to the contrary views, wherever such views may come from? 4 If in matters23 of pure reason one had to keep to the dogmatic proce dure and expressly had to dispose of one's opponents polemically-i.e., in
such a way that one would enter into the fight and would arm oneself with bases of proof for opposite assertions-then indeed nothing would for the time being be more expedient than to place the youths' reason under guard ianship for some time, and thus to protect their reason at least that long against corruption. In the long run, however, nothing would be more idle and fruitless. For if after the initial period either curiosity or the fashion of
229 [L e. , supply of synthetic
a
prion propositions.]
2'30[Kenntnis. Wille chooses to make 'alleged' modify 'knowledge . ' ] 23 t [I.e., bases of proof.]
232 [SO it will be objected.] 233[Urteilskra!t; see A 1 30/B 1 69 br n. 3.] 234[Sachen.]
SECTION II
PURE REASON IN ITS POLEMIC USE
699
the times play such writings into the youth's hands, will that inculcated youthful persuasion then still stand the test? Consider someone who in or der to resist the attacks of his opponent brings with him nothing but dog matic weapons, and does not know how to develop the hidden dialectic that lies no less in his own bosom than in his adversary's. He sees illusory 5 bases23 which have the advantage of novelty, making their entrance against
{ A 755
B 783
illusory bases which no longer have such an advantage but which arouse, rather, the suspicion that the credulity of youth has been misused. He then believes that there is no better way for him to show that he has outgrown the child-rearing stage than by brushing aside those well-meant warnings; and, being dogmatically habituated, he imbibes in long drafts the poison that dogmatically ruins his principles. Exactly the opposite of what was here recommended must be done in academic training, but of course only on the presupposition that a thor ough instruction in the critique of pure reason has already occurred. For in order to bring that critique's principles into operation236 as early as pos sible and show their sufficiency in dealing even with the greatest dialecti cal illusion, it is definitely necessary that the student be trained to use these principles. The attacks that are so dreadful for the dogmatist must be di rected against the student's reason-which, although still weak, is by then enlightened .through critique-and the student must be allowed to make the attempt to test the baseless assertions of the opponent bit by bit against 2 those principles. He cannot possibly find it difficult 37 to dissolve those as sertions into nothing but smoke; and thus he begins early to feel his own powe�3 8 to secure himself completely against such harmful deceptions, which must ultimately lose all illusion for him. To be sure, the same strokes239 that knock down the enemy's edifice must be equally ruinous to his own speculative building also-should he mean to erect such. Yet he is entirely unconcerned about this; for he has no need whatever to live in that building, but still has before him an outlook into the practical realm, where he can with good ground hope to find a firmer terrain on which to erect his rational and salutary system. 235 [Bases of proof. (Likewise just below.)] 236 [Ausubung.] 237 [By this method.] 238 [Kraji.] 239 [Of his sword. ]
{ A 756
B 784
700
A 757 B 785
}
PART II
DOCTRINE OF METHOD
There is, accordingly, no proper polemic in the realm of pure reason. Both parties fight only in the air,240 scuffling with their shadows. For they go beyond nature, where nothing is available for their dogmatic grip to seize and hold. Well may they fight: the shadows that they cut up grow together again in one moment-like the heroes in Valhalla24 1 -so as to amuse them selves anew in bloodless combats. But there also is no permissible skeptical use of pure reason-no prin ciple that could be called the principle of neutrality in all controversies of pure reason. To incite reason against itself, to hand weapons to it on both sides, and then to watch its fiercest fight calmly and scoffingly-this does not look sound242 from a dogmatic point of view, but has about it the air43 of a mischievous and spiteful cast of mind. However, if one looks at the invincible delusion and the boastfulness244 of the subtle reasoners245- an attitude that refuses to be moderated by any critique-then indeed there is actually no other course246 than to oppose the bluster247 on the one side with another bluster that bases itself on the same rights as the first. For through the resistance of an enemy, reason may at least just be startled enough to put some doubt into its pretensions and to give a hearing to cri tique. On the other hand, to settle entirely for these doubts alone and to set out to commend the conviction and confession of one's ignorance-not merely as a remedy against dogmatic self-conceit but also as the way to end reason's dispute with itself-is an entirely futile project, and can in no way be suitable for providing reason with a state of tranquillity; at best it is a means for awakening reason from its sweet dogmatic dream and for inducing it to subject its situation to a more careful examination. Yet be cause this skeptical manner of withdrawing from an irksome transaction248 of reason seems to be, as it were, the short path to a permanent philosophi240[sind Luftfechter.] 241 [In Norse mythology (and in Richard Wagner's operatic version thereof in Der Ring des Nibelungen), the hall of the chief god Odin (German Wotan) into which he receives the souls of heroes slain in battle.]
242 [wahl.] 243[Ansehen. ] 244[ Grofltun.] 245 [Ve rnunftler.] 246[Rat.] 247[Groflsprecherei.j 248 [Cf. above, A 75 1 -52
=
B 779-80.]
SECTION II PURE REASON IN ITS POLEMIC USE
70 1
cal tranquillity-or at least the highway favored by those who think that by scoffingly despising all investigations of this kind they can give them selves philosophical airs-I find it necessary to exhibit this way of think ing in its proper light. ON THE IMPOSSIBILITY OF A SKEPTICAL SATISFACTION OF PURE REASON AS DISUNITED WITH ITSELF Consciousness of my ignorance (unless this ignorance is simultaneously cognized as necessary), instead of249 ending my inquiries, is rather the proper cause to arouse them. All ignorance is either ignorance of things or ignorance of the [proper] determination and bounds of my cognition. If the ignorance is only250 contingent, then it must impel me to investigate things (objects) dogmatically in the first case, and to investigate the bounds of my possible cognition critically in the second case. But that my ignorance is absolutely necessary and hence absolves me from all further investigation-this cannot be established empirically, by observing, but can be established only critically, by fathoming the primary25 1 sources of our cognition. Therefore, determination of our reason's bounds can be made only according to a priori bases. However, the limitation of reason that is merely a cognition, although only indeterminate, of an ignorance that can never be removed completely can be cognized also a posteriori, viz., by what--despite all our knowledge252-always still remains for us to know. The first kind of cognition of one's ignorance,253 which is possible only through critique of reason itself, is thus science; 254 the second kind is noth ing but perception; and regarding perception one cannot say how far the inference from it may reach. If I conceive of the earth's surface255 (ac cording to its sensible semblance) as a plate, then I cannot know how far 249 [Reading, with Kirchmann and the Akademie edition, es for sie.]
250[ Reading nur for nun, as suggested by Erdmann.] m [I.e., a priori.]
252 [Wissen.] 25 3[ Unwissenheit.] 254[Wissenschaft·] 255[Erdjldche.]
{ A 758 B
786
{ A 759 B
787
702
A 760 } B 788
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
it extends. But experience does teach me that wherever I may go, I always see a space around me in which256 I could proceed farther. Hence I cog nize the limits of what is in each case my actual geography,257 but I do not cognize the bounds of all possible geography. But if I have indeed got as far as to know that the earth is a sphere and its surface spherical, then I can also from a small part of it--e.g., the magnitude of a degree----<:ognize determinately and according to a priori principles the diameter, and through it the complete boundary of the earth, i.e., its surface area. And although I am still ignorant as regards the objects that this surface may contain, yet I am not ignorant as regards the range that it contains,258 i.e., the surface's magnitude and limits. The sum of all possible objects for our cognition seems to us [similarly] to be a level surface; and this surface has its seeming horizon-viz., what comprises the entire range of such possible objects for our cognition and has been called by us the rational concept of unconditioned totality. 25 9 To reach this horizon empirically is impossible, and all attempts to determine it a priori according to a certain principle have been futile. However, all questions of our pure reason still aim at what may lie outside this horizon, or-for that matter-at least on its boundary line. The illustrious David Hume was one of these geographers of human rea son. He supposed that he had adequately disposed of all those questions by relegating them outside human reason's horizon-a horizon which he was yet unable to determine. He dwelt above all on the principle of causality, and noted quite correctly concerning it that people are not basing its truth (indeed, not even the objective validity of the concept of an efficient cause as such) on any insight whatever, i.e., on any a priori cognition; and that, therefore, what makes up the principle's entire reputation is not in the least this law's necessity, but merely its general usefulness in the course of ex perience, and a subjective necessity-arising from this usefulness-that he calls custom. 260 Now, from our reason's inability to use this principle in a way that goes beyond all experience he inferred that all pretensions of rea son as such to go beyond the empirical [realm] are null. 256[Reading, with Erdmann (but not the Akademie edition), darin for dahin ( "to which' ).j 257 [Erdkunde here, Erdbeschreibung just below.] 25 8 [Reading, with Hartenstein and the Akademie edition, des Umfanges, den sie enthdlt for des Umfanges, der sie enthalt ( 'the circumference that contains them· ).J 259 [See, e.g., A 3221B 379.] 260 [Or 'habit.' See B 5 inc!. br. n 1 60.J
SECTION II PURE REASON IN ITS POLEMIC USE
703
A procedure of this kind---of subjecting the facts26 1 of reason to ex amination and, [as warranted] according to the findings, to rebuke-may be called the census262 of reason. There can be no question263 that this procedure leads inevitably to doubt concerning all transcendent use of principles. However, this is only the second step, which does not nearly complete the work to be done. The first step in matters of pure reason, which marks pure reason's infancy, is dogmatic. The just mentioned sec ond step is skeptical, and attests to cautiousness on the part of the power ofjUdgment made shrewd through experience. However, a third step is still needed---one that pertains to the power of judgment only in its maturity and manhood, when it has at its basis firm maxims that are verified as re gards their universality-viz., to subject to assessment not the facts of rea son, but reason itself as regards its entire ability 264 and suitability for pure a priori cognitions. This step is not the census but the critique of reason. What through this critique we prove from principles-and do not by any means merely conjecture-are not merely limits of reason but the determi nate bounds265 of reason; i.e., what we thus prove is reason's ignorance not merely in some part or other but in regard to all possible questions of a certain kind. Thus skepticism is a resting-place for human reason, where it can reflect on its dogmatic wandering and make a sketch of the region where it finds itself, so that it can thereafter choose its path more safely. But skepticism is not a dwelling-place for constant residence; for such can be found only in a complete certainty, whether certainty in the cognition of the objects themselves or certainty in the cognition of the bounds within which all our cognition of objects is enclosed. Our reason is by no means a plane spread out indeterminably far, whose limits one cognizes only in a general way. It must, rather, be compared to a sphere whose radius one can find from the curvature of the arc on its surface (i.e., from the nature of synthetic a priori propositions), from which in tum one can reliably indicate also the sphere's content266 and boundary. Outside this sphere (the realm of experience) nothing is an object for rea261
[Fakta.]
262 [I.e., inventory-taking: Zensur.] 263 ['doubt,' Kant says literally.] 264 [Or 'power ' : Vermogen. See A xii br. n. 1 6.] 26' [Respectively, Schranken and Grenzen.] 266[Or 'volume ' : Inhall.]
{ A 761 B
789
{ A 762 B
790
704
A 763 } B 79 1
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
son; indeed, there even questions about such supposed objects concern only subjective principles of a thoroughgoing detennination of what relations can occur, within this sphere, among the concepts of understanding. We are actually in possession of synthetic a priori cognitions, 267 as is established by the principles of understanding that anticipate experience. Now if someone cannot make the possibility of such cognitions compre hensible to himself at all, then he may indeed initially doubt whether such cognitions actually reside in us a priori. But he cannot yet claim that this inability of his is also an impossibility for such cognitions actually to arise through mere powers of the understanding, and cannot yet claim that all steps that reason takes by their guidance are null. He can only say that if we had insight into the origin and genuineness of such cognitions, then we could determine the range and the bounds of our reason; but that be fore this determination has occurred, all assertions of reason are ven tured blindly. And in this way a thoroughgoing doubt concerning all dog matic philosophy, which268 takes its course without critique of reason itself, has a very good basis. Yet one could not therefore entirely deny that reason might make such an advance, if the advance were prepared and secured by laying a better foundation. For, in the first place, all con cepts and indeed all questions put before us by pure reason lie by no means in experience, but lie themselves only in reason again, and hence they must be capable of being solved and comprehended as regards their validity or nullity. Moreover, we are not entitled to dismiss these prob lems and to refuse to investigate them further, on the pretext-as if their solution actually lay in the nature of things-that we are unable [to dis cover that nature]; for reason itself has produced these ideas solely in its womb, and is therefore obliged to account for their validity or their dia lectical illusion. Thus all skeptical polemicizing is in fact turned only against the dogmatist-who without placing any distrust in his original objective prin ciples, i.e., without critique, continues solemnly on his course-in order to put him out of countenance and thus bring him to self-cognition. In itself this skeptical polemic269 establishes nothing whatsoever as regards what we can know and what, on the contrary, we cannot know. All failed dog267 [
Reading Erkenntnisse for Erkenntnis, as suggested by Erdmann.]
268 [As such.]
269[sie, as if Kant had said skeptische Polemik just above.]
SECTION II
PURE REASON IN ITS POLEMIC USE
705
matic attempts of reason are facts,270 and subjecting these to a census is always beneficial. But this [method] cannot decide anything concerning the expectations of reason that lead it to hope for, and lay claim to, a better result in its future endeavors. Hence the mere census can never bring to an end the controversy concerning the right27 1 of human reason. Hume is perhaps the most brilliant among all the skeptics, and is in contestably the most superb skeptic as regards what influence the skep tical procedure can have on arousing in us a thorough examination of reason. Hence it will surely be worth our trouble to present to ourselves, 272 as far as is fitting for my aim, the course of his inferences and the aber rations of such an insightful and estimable man-which did, after all, begin on the track of truth. Hume was perhaps thinking, although he never developed this [thought] completely, that in judgments of a certain kind we go beyond our concept of the object. I have called this kind of judgments synthetic. 273 How I can, by means of experience, go outside what concept I had until then is not subject to any perplexity. Experience is itself a synthesis of perceptions-a synthesis whereby what concept I have acquired by means of a perception is augmented through other, additional perceptions. However, we believe that a priori, too, we can go outside274 our concept and expand our cog nition. We try to do this either through pure understanding, in regard to what can at least be an object of experience;275 or we try to do it even through pure reason, in regard to such properties of things-or, indeed, even the existence of such objects-as can never occur in experience. 276 Our skeptic did not distinguish these two kinds of judgments, as surely he should have done. Instead he straightforwardly regarded this augmentation of con cepts from themselves-and, so to speak, the self-delivery of our under standing (along with reason) without impregnation by experience-as im possible. And hence he regarded all supposed a priori principles of these 270 [Fakta.] 27 1
[Rechtsame.]
272
[vorsteLLig machen.]
273
[For Kant's distinction between analytic and synthetic judgments, see A 274 [I.e., beyond.] 27S [ As in the Transcendental Analytic, A 64-292IB 89-349.] 276 [As in the Transcendental Dialectic, A 293-704/B 349-732.]
6-1O/B 10-14.]
{ A 764 B
792
{ A 765 B
793
706
A 766 } B 794
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
powers as imaginary, and thought that they are nothing but a habit arising from experience and its laws, and that hence they are merely empirical rules-i.e., rules contingent in themselves-to which we attribute a sup posed necessity and universality. But in order to maintain this strange proposition, Hume referred to the universally recognized principle of the relation of cause to effect. For since no power of understanding can by it self take us from the concept of a thing to the existence of something else that is thereby universally and necessarily given, he thought he could infer from this that without experience we have nothing that could augment our concept and entitle us to such a judgment as expands [our cognition] a priori. That the sunlight which illuminates wax also melts the wax, whereas it hardens clay, is a fact that no understanding can divine-much less law fully infer-from concepts that we previously had of these things, and only experience can teach us such a law. However, in the Transcendental Logic we saw that although we can never go directly beyond the content of a con cept that is given to us, we can still cognize the law of the connection of a thing with other things277 completely a priori-but in reference to a third something, viz., possible278 experience, and hence a priori after all. Hence if previously firm wax melts, then I can cognize a priori that there must have preceded something or other (e.g., the sun's heat) upon which this melting followed according to a constant law-although without experi ence I could not a priori and without the instruction of such experience cog nize determinately either the cause from the effect or the effect from the cause?79 Hence from the contingency of our determination280 according to the law, Hume wrongly inferred the contingency of the law itself. And the act of going outside281 the concept of a thing to possible experience, which is done a priori and amounts to the concept's objective reality, was confused by him with the synthesis of the objects of actual experience-a synthesis that is indeed always empirical. But through this confusion he turned a principle of affinity, which has its seat in the understanding and asserts necessary connection, into a rule of association, which is found 277[See A 155-58/B 1 94-97 (also A 1 37-47IB 1 76-87) and A 1 89-2 1 1 IB 232-56.] 278 [Rather than actual.] 279
[I.e., I could not a priori cognize the specific causes or effects.]
280[Our experiential detennination of cause or effect.] 28 1 [I.e., beyond.]
SECTION II PURE REASON IN ITS POLEMIC USE
707
merely in the ectypal imagination282 and can exhibit only contingent but not at all objective linkages?83 However, the skeptical aberrations of this otherwise extremely acute man arose primarily from a defect that he did, after all, have in common with all dogmatists: viz., the fact that he did not systematically survey all the kinds of a priori synthesis of understanding. For then he would have found, e.g., the principle ofpermanence284-and I shall not here mention the other principles-to be one that, just as much as the principle of causality, an ticipates experience. This survey would also have enabled him to trace out determinate bounds for the understanding that expands a priori, and for pure reason. But instead he only limits our understanding without boundinl8 5 it. And thus he does indeed bring about a general distrust, but no determi nate cognition286 of the ignorance that is unavoidable for us. For he sub jects some principles of understanding to a census without putting this understanding on the test scale287 of critique as regards its entire ability. And while he [rightly] denies to the understanding what it actually cannot accomplish, he goes further and disputes all its ability to expand a priori, even though he has not subjected this entire ability to assessment. And thus the fate befalls Hume that always strikes down skepticism, viz., that skep ticism is doubted itself; for its objections rest only on facts that are con tingent, but not on principles that could effect a necessary renunciation of the right to dogmatic assertions. Hume also knows288 no distinction between the well-founded claims of the understanding and the dialectical pretensions of reason-his attacks be ing in fact directed mainly against these dialectical pretensions. And hence reason, whose very own momentum has not in the least been disrupted289 in this [skeptical attack] but only impeded, feels that the space for its ex tension is not closed off; and thus---despite being pinched here or there-it 282[nachbildende EinbildungskraJt, i . e . , the reproductive (rather than productive) imagination-see A 100-102.]
283[Verbindungen; see B 20 1 n. 3 0.] 284[ For the principle of the permanence of substance, see A 1 82-891B 224-32.] 28S [Respectively, einschranken and begrenzen.]
28fi [Kenntnis.]
287 [Or 'assay balance'; Probierwaage.]
288 [ke nnr.]
289 [ges tOrt.]
{ A 767 B
795
{ A 768 B
796
708
A 769 } B 797
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
can never be deterred entirely from its attempts. For [as a reaction] against attacks one arms oneself for defense, and sets one's mind all the more rig idly on enforcing one's demands. But a complete appraisal of one's entire assets,290 with the resulting conviction that a small possession is certain whereas higher claims are futile, annuls all dispute and moves one to settle peaceably for a limited but undisputed property. When these skeptical attacks are used against the uncritical dogmatist, they are not only dangerous but are even ruinous for him. I.e., they are so for the dogmatist who has not measured his understanding's sphere and hence has not determined according to principles the bounds of his pos sible cognition, and who thus does not already know beforehand how much he can do but means to discover this through mere attempts. For if he is caught with a single assertion which he cannot justify, but the illusion of which he also cannot develop from principles, then the suspicion falls on all his assertions, no matter how persuasive they may be otherwise. Thus the skeptic is the disciplinarian291 of the dogmatic subtle rea soner,292 inasmuch as he moves him toward a sound critique of the under standing and of reason itself. When the dogmatist has arrived there, he need fear no further challenge. For he then distinguishes his possession from the realm which lies entirely outside it, and regarding which he makes no claims and thus also cannot become involved in controversies. Thus al though the skeptical procedure is not in itself satisfactory for questions of reason, it is still preparative for arousing reason's cautiousness and for pointing reason to well-based means capable of securing it in its legitimate possessions.
290 [Or 'power· : Vermiigen.] 29 1 [Zuchtmeister.] 292 [ Vernunftler.]
Chapter I Section III The Discipline of Pure Reason in Regard to Hypotheses293 Since, then, through critique of our reason we finally know this much: that in reason's pure and speculative use we can in fact know nothing whatso ever, should not reason open up an all-the wider realm for hypotheses, where at least it is allowed to engage in invention294 and opinion, even if not in assertion? Where imagination is not, say, merely to rave but-under the strict su pervision of reason-to invent, there must always be something before hand that is completely certain and not invented or mere opinion; and this is the possibility of the object itsele95 If this possibility is there, then we are indeed permitted to resort to opinion concerning the object's actuality. But if this opinion is not to be baseless, then it must be brought into con nection with· what is actual and hence certain-viz., as basis of explana tion thereof-and is then called hypothesis. Now, we cannot a priori frame the slightest concept of the possibility of dynamical connection, and a category of the pure understanding serves not for thinking up such a connection but only for understanding it if en countered in experience. Hence we cannot, in accordance with these cat egories, originally excogitate a single object in terms of a characteristic that is new and that cannot be indicated empirically, and lay ie96 at the basis of a permitted hypothesis; for that would mean to lay at reason's basis empty chimeras instead of concepts of things. Thus we are not permitted
293/B 349 br. n. 2, vol. 4, 7 18-30. See also Norman
293 [See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cil. at A Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 543-46.] 294 [ZU dichlen.]
29' [The object's real rather than merely logical possibility. For the distinction (cf. also the upcoming paragraph), see the references in A br n. 66.]
139/B 178
296 [Reading, with Erdmann (but not the Akademie edition) ihn for sie-which would refer to the property, or perhaps to the object's possibility.]
709
{ A 770 B
798
710
A 77 1 } B 799
A 772 } B 800
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
to think up some new original powers,297 e.g., an understanding capable of intuiting its object without senses;298 or a force of expansion299 without any contact; or a new kind of substances, e.g., a kind that would be present in space without having impenetrability. Nor, consequently, may we think up any community of substances that is different from all such community provided to us by experience, nor think up any presence otherwise than as presence in space, or any duration except only as duration in time. In a word: our reason can use as condition of the possibility of things only the conditions of possible experience; by no means can it, entirely indepen dently of these, create for itself-as it were-such conditions of the pos sibility of things. For such concepts, although being without contradiction, would nonetheless also be without an object. Concepts of reason, as I have said, are mere ideas and have indeed no object to be encountered in any experience; yet they do not therefore des ignate objects that are invented and simultaneously also assumed as pos sible. 300 [The objects of] such concepts are thought only problematically, in order that by reference to them (as heuristic fictions), we can provide a basis for30 1 regulative principles governing the systematic use of the un derstanding in the realm of experience. 302 If we deviate from this [con strual of such objects], then they are mere thought-entities. 303 The possi bility of such entities cannot be proved, and hence such entities also cannot be used as a basis for explaining actual appearances through a hypothesis. To think the soul as simple is entirely permitted, in order that in accor dance with this idea a complete and necessary unity of all mental powers can be laid down�ven though we can have no insight into such a unity in concretcr-as principle for our judging of the soul's inner appearances. But to assume the soul as simple substance (a transcendent concept) would be to affirm a proposition that not only would be unprovable (as several 297 [ Kriifte. ] 298 [On an intuitive understanding with its intellectual intuition, see B 72 incl. br. n. 1 83.] 299 [Reading, with Erdmann and the Akademie edition, Ausdehnungskraft for Anziehungskraji ('force of attraction')-Mellin instead substitutes Zuriickstoj3ungskraft ('force of repulsion' ) Kant certainly did not deny action at a distance. See the Metaphysical Foundations of Natu
ral Science. Ak. IV, 5 1 1- 1 5, cf. also 521-22.]
300[See above, A 327-291B 383-86; also A 338-401B 396-98.]
301 [griinden. ] 302 [See above, A 642-681B 670-96.]
303 [Gedankendinge. See A 292/B 348.]
SECTION III PURE REASON IN HYPOTHESES
711
physical hypotheses are), but would also be ventured quite arbitrarily and blindly. For the simple cannot occur in any experience whatsoever, and if by substance one means here the pennanent objece04 of sensible intuition, then the possibility of a simple appearance is something that one can have no insight into at all. No merely intelligible beings-or merely intelligible properties of things in the world of sense-<:an with any well-based au thority305 of reason be assumed as an opinion, although they also cannot be denied dogmatically through any appeal to supposedly better insight (since one has no concepts of their possibility or impossibility). To explain given appearances, no other things and bases of explanation can be adduced but those that have, according to already familiar laws of appearances, been put in connection with the given appearances. Hence a transcendental hypothesis, in which a mere idea of reason would be used to explain natural things, would be no explanation at all. For in such a hy pothesis, what one does not sufficiently understand from familiar empiri cal principles would be explained through something whereof one under stands nothing at all. Moreover, the principle of such a hypothesis would in fact serve only to satisfy reason, and not to further the use of under standing in regard to objects. Order and purposiveness in nature must be explained in tum from natural bases and according to natural laws; and there even the wildest hypotheses, if only they are physical, are more bear able than a hyperphysicat3°6 hypothesis, i.e., the appeal to a divine origi nator presupposed for the sake of this explanation. For this appeal would be a principle of lazy reason (ignava ratio): 307 viz., to bypass at a stroke all causes with whose objective reality-at least as regards their possibility-we can still become acquainted through continued experi ence, in order to [seek a place of] rest in a mere idea that is very conve nient to reason. But as regards absolute totality of the basis of explanation in the series of these causes, this concern cannot give rise to any difficulty regarding the objects of the world; for since these objects are nothing but appearances, nothing complete in them can ever be hoped for in the syn thesis of the series of conditions. 308 304[Objekt here, Gegenstand earlier in this (and also in the next) paragraph. See A vii hr. n. 7.) 3O'[B efugnis.) 306 307 3OIl
[I.e., supranatural.) [Cf. A 689
=
B 7 1 7 inel. n. 265 and hr. n. 265a.]
[See A 330-38/B 386-96.]
{ A 773 B
801
712
A 774 } B 802
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
Transcendental hypotheses of reason's speculative use-and a freedom to compensate for the lack of physical bases of explanation by availing one self at least of hyperphysical ones�annot be permitted at all. This is so partly because using such hypotheses does not at all advance reason but rather cuts off all progress in reason's use, and partly because this license would ultimately have to deprive reason of all fruits gained from working its proper soil, viz., experience. For if natural explanation becomes diffi cult for us here or there, we then constantly have at hand a transcendent basis of explanation that exempts us from that [natural] inquiry; and our investigation is concluded not by insight, but by the utter incomprehensi bility3 09 of a principle that has already beforehand been excogitated so as to contain necessarily the concept of the absolutely primary. The second component required in order for a hypothesis to be worthy of assumption3 10 is that it be sufficient for our determining from it a priori the consequences that are [actually] given. If for this purpose we are com pelled to call in auxiliary hypotheses, then these give rise to the suspicion that the [basic] hypothesis is mere invention. For each of the auxiliary hy potheses itself needs the same justification that was required by the thought laid at the basis, and hence can provide no competent witness. Thus on the presupposition of a cause of unlimited perfection there is indeed no lack of bases for explaining all the purposiveness, order, and magnitude found in the world. Yet in view of-what are at least by our concepts-deviations and evils manifesting themselves, this perfect cause still requires new hy potheses in order to be saved from these deviations and evils taken as ob jections. Similarly, the simple independence3 1 l of the human SOUl3 12 has been laid at the basis3 13 of the soul's appearances. 3 14 But when this inde pendence is controverted by difficulties such as the phenomena of the soul that are similar to the alterations of matter (viz., increase and decrease3 15), then new hypotheses have to be called upon for assistance. And although these new hypotheses are not without plausibility, they still have no cre309[Unbegreijlichkeit. See A 467
=
B 495 br. n. 30 and B 1 14 br. n. 239.]
3 10[Or 'of acceptance' : Annehmungs-.] 3 1 1 [Selbstiindigkeit.] 3 1 2 [From the material realm.] 3 1 3 [As a hypothesis.] 3 14[In order to explain these.] ' ! S [Of the soul's powers; cf. below, A 718
=
B 806.]
SECTION III PURE REASON IN HYPOTHESES
713
dentials other than those given to them by the very opinion3 1 6 that was as sumed as the main basis [of explanation], which yet they are to corrobo rate. If the assertions of reason that I have here cited as examples (viz., in corporeal unity of the SOUI, 317 and existence of a supreme being318) are meant to hold not as hypotheses but as dogmas proved a priori, then they are not at issue here at all. But in that case one should take care indeed that the proof has the apodeictic certainty of a demonstration. For to seek to make the actuality of such ideas merely probable 3 1 9 is an absurd project-just as if one planned to prove a proposition of geometry merely with probability. Reason as separated from all experience can only cognize everything a priori and as necessary, or not cognize it at all. Hence rea son's judgment is never opinion, but is either abstention from all judg ment, or else apodeictic certainty. 320 Opinions and probable judgments concerning what pertains to things can occur only as bases for explaining what is actually given, or as consequences-according to empirical laws--{)f what lies at the basis as actual [antecedent], and hence they can occur only within the series of objects of experience. Outside of this realm, having an opinion is equivalent to playing with thoughts-unless perhaps one had, concerning such an insecure path of judgment, merely the opinion that one might find the truth on such a path. But although in merely speculative questions of pure reason hypotheses have no place as bases for propositions, they are nonetheless quite permis sible at least for just defending such propositions; i.e., they do have a place in reason's polemic use, although not in its dogmatic use. Now by defend ing I do not mean augmenting the bases of proof for one's assertion; I mean, rather, merely foiling the opponent's illusory insights that are intended to damage the proposition asserted by us. However, all synthetic propositions based on pure reason have this peculiarity: that although the person assert ing the reality of certain ideas never knows as much as is needed to make his proposition certain, the opponent on the other side can just as little know 3 1 6 [Or, i.e., hypothesis.] 3 17
[Considered above, in the Paralogisms of Pure Reason, A 34l -4051B 399-432.]
3 18
[Considered above, in the Ideal of Pure Reason, A 567-642/8 595-670.]
319 [wahrscheinlich. which literally means 'seeming true.'] 320
[Opinion (as related to knowledge and to faith) is discussed more fully below, A S20-3 11B 848-59.]
{ A 775 B
803
{ A 776 B
804
7 14
A 777 } B 805
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
enough to assert the reverse. 321 Now this equality of the 10t322 of human reason favors indeed neither of the two opponents in [the realm of] specu lative cognition, and that [realm] is also the proper combat arena for feuds that can never be settled. But we shall see later323 that in regard to its prac tical use reason does have a right to assume something that in the realm of mere speculation it would in no way be entitled to presuppose without suf ficient bases of proof. For all such [theoretically illegitimate] presupposi tions impair the completeness of speculation; but this completeness is of no concern whatever to our reason's practical interest. There324 our reason is thus in possession [of legitimate practical presuppositions] ; it does not need to prove [theoretically] the possession's legitimacy, nor would it in fact be able to conduct that proof. Hence the opponent should prove [his own, negative proposition] . He, however, does not know anything con cerning the doubted object so as to establish its nonexistence-any more than does the first person, who asserts its actuality; and hence we can see here an advantage on the side of the one who asserts something as a prac tically necessary presupposition (melior est conditio possidentis).325 For he is free to employ-in self-defense, as it were-the same means for his good cause [or thing] 326 as the opponent employs against it: i.e., hypotheses. These hypotheses are in no way meant to serve to strengthen the proof of this [thing], but are meant only to show that the opponent understands far too little concerning the dispute's object in order to flatter himself with hav ing an advantage of speculative insight in comparison to ours. Hence hypotheses are permitted in the realm of pure reason only as weapons of war-not in order to base a right on them, but only in order to defend this right. The opponent, however, must here always be sought within ourselves. For speculative reason in its transcendental use is in it self dialectical. The objections that might have to be feared lie within our selves. We must seek them out-like claims that are old but that never become superannuated-in order to base a perpetua1327 peace on their 321 [Widerspiel.] 322 [Los. ] 323[A 795-831IB 823-59.] 3 24[ln the practical realm.] 3 25[The condition of the possessor is better.)
326[Sache. Cf., e.g., the end of A 780 327[ewig )
=
B 808.)
SECTION III PURE REASON IN HYPOTHESES
715
annihilation. Outward tranquillity i s only a seeming tranquillity. The seed of the challenges, which lies in the nature of human reason, must be eradi cated. But how can we eradicate this seed unless we give it freedom -indeed, even nourishment-to sprout leaves and thereby reveal itself, so that we can thereafter obliterate it with the root? Do you, then, yourselves think up objections that have not yet occurred to any opponent; and even lend him weapons, or concede to him the most favorable position that he could possibly wish for. In this proposal there is nothing at all to be feared, yet much to be hoped: viz., that you will gain a possession that can never again be challenged throughout the future. Thus to your complete armor there now belong also the hypotheses of pure reason; and although they are only leaden weapons (because they have not been steeled by any law of experience), they are nonetheless always as potent as the weapons that any opponent may employ against you. Hence if you have assumed (in some respect other than a speculative one) that the soul's nature is immaterial and not subject to any corporeal transforma tion, you may come upon the difficulty-raised against this assumption -that nonetheless experience seems to prove that both the elevation and the derangement of our mental powers are merely diverse modifications of our organs. To defend your assumption, you can then weaken the force of this proof against it by assuming that our body is nothing but the funda mental appearance to which-in our current state (in life)-our entire power of sensibility and therewith all our thought refer as [corporeal] condition; and that the soul's separation from the body is the end of this sensible use of your cognitive power, and the beginning of its intellectual use. Thus the body would not be the cause of thought, but merely a restricting condition of it. Hence the body would then have to be regarded as a furtherance for the sensible and animal life, but be regarded all the more as also a hin drance for the pure and spiritual life; and the dependence of our sensible and animal life on our corporeal constitution would be no proof for the dependence of our entire life on the state of our organs. But you can go still further, and can perhaps even discover new doubts that have either not been raised or not carried far enough. Procreation is contingent: both in human beings and in nonrational crea tures it depends on opportunity, but in addition also often on sustenance, on the [people in] government, their moods and whims, and often even on vice. This contingency328 gives rise to great difficulty for the opinion that 328[Zu!iilligkeit. j
{ A 778 B
806
{ A 779 B
807
716
A 780 } B 808
PART IT DOCTRINE OF METHOD
a creature whose life first began under such insignificant circumstances -which are, moreover, left altogether to our freedom329-should continue [in a life] extending to all etemity.330 Now as regards the continuance (here on earth) of the entire human species, this difficultl3 1 is inconsiderable, because chance332 in the individual [case] 333 is nonetheless subjected to a rule in the whole [species]. But to expect so mighty an effect from so un important a cause in regard to every individual334 does indeed seem pre carious. Against this objection, however, you can muster a transcendental hypothesis. You can say that properly speaking all life is intelligible only and not subjected to changes of time, and that it neither began through birth nor is ended through death; but that this life, on the other hand, is nothing but a mere appearance, i.e., a sensible presentation of the pure spiritual life, and the whole world of sense is a mere image hovering before our current way of cognizing, and like a dream has in itself no objective reality; but that if we were to intuit things and ourselves as they [and we] are, we would then see ourselves in a world of spiritUal natures-a world with which we have our one true community that neither has started through birth nor will cease through bodily death (both of which are mere appearances), etc. Now although we have not the least knowledge of any [part] of this [as sumption] that we here put up hypothetically against the attack, nor are as serting it seriously-everything being, rather, not even an idea of reason but merely a concept thought up for our defense-we are still proceeding quite rationally in this. For the opponent thinks that he has exhausted ev ery possibility, inasmuch as the lack of empirical conditions on the part of what things33S we have faith in336 is falsely passed off by him as a proof that such things are entirely impossible; and we only show him that he can no more through mere laws of experience encompass the whole realm of possible things in themselves, than we can outside of337 experience ac3 29 [Our freedom of choice.]
BO [auj Ewigkeiten.] 33 l [Regarding individual creatures.]
3 32 [Zujall. ] 333[im Einzelnen.] 334[/ndividuum.] 335[ihrer.] 336 [Or 'believe' , cf. below, A 820-3 lIB 848-59.] 33?[l.e .. beyond ]
SECTION III PURE REASON IN HYPOTHESES
717
quire for our reason anything whatsoever in a well-based way. If someone turns such hypothetical remedies against the pretensions of the opponent and his audacious negations, then he must not be regarded as seeking to appropriate these [hypotheses] as his own true opinions. He abandons them as soon as he has disposed of the opponent's dogmatic self-conceit. For no matter how modest and moderate someone may look who behaves toward the assertions of others338 in a merely declining and negating manner, yet as soon as he wants to make his objections hold as proofs of the opposite assertion, his claim is always just as haughty and imaginary as if he had adopted the affirming party and its assertion. We see from this, therefore, that in the speculative use of reason hy potheses have no validity in themselves, but have such validity only rela tively to opposite transcendent pretensions. For extending the principles of possible experience to the possibility of things as such is just as transcen dent as is asserting the objective reality of concepts that cannot find their objects anywhere but outside the boundary of all possible experience. What ever pure reason judges assertorically must (like everything that reason cog nizes) be necessary, or it is nothing at all. Accordingly, pure reason in fact contains no opinions whatsoever. But the mentioned hypotheses are only problematic judgments-which at least cannot be refuted, although they cannot indeed be proved by anything. Hence they are purely339 private opin ions; yet they cannot properly be dispensed with (even for gaining inner tranquillity) as remedies against stirring scruples. They must, however, be preserved in this quality, and must be prevented carefully indeed from com ing forward as in themselves having credentials340 and some absolute validity, and thus prevented from drowning reason in inventions and de ceptions.
338[fremd.] 339[Reading, with Hartenstein and the Akademie edition, reine for keine.]
340 [beglaubigt.]
{ AB 781 809
{ A 782
B 8 10
Chapter I
Section IV The Discipline of Pure Reason in 3 Regard to its Proofs 4 1
A 783 B 81 1
}
Among all proofs of a synthetic a priori cognition, the proofs of transcen dental synthetic propositions have the peculiarity that reason in their case must not turn straightforwardly to the object, but must first establish a priori the objective validity of their concepts and the possibility of these con cepts' synthesis. This is by no means merely a needed rule of caution, but concerns the nature342 and possibility of the proofs themselves. If I am to go a priori beyond the concept of an object, then doing this is impossible without a special guide343 located outside of344 this concept. Thus in math ematics my synthesis is guided by a priori intuition, and hence all infer ences can there be conducted directly 345 by reference to pure intuition. 346 In transcendental cognition, as long as such cognition deals merely with concepts of understanding, this outside guideline 347 is possible experi ence. 348 For the proof here does not show that the given concept (e.g., the concept of what occurs) leads straightforwardly to another concept (that of a cause), because such a transition would be a leap that could not at all be justified; 349 the proof shows, rather, that experience itself and hence the 341 [See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5,
293/B 349 br. n. 2, vol. 4, 730-42. See also Norman 568 ] .
342[Wesen.] 343[Leiifaden.] 344 [I.e. beyond. ] ,
345 [unmittelbar; see B xxxix br. n. l44c.] 346 [See above, A
347 [Richtschnur.] 348[See above, A
7 1 3-20
720-24
=
B
741 -48.]
=
B
748-52, A 736-37
349[ verantworten.]
718
=
B
764-65.]
SECTION IV PURE REASON IN REGARD TO PROOFS
7 19
object of experience would be impossible without such a connection. 350 Hence the proof had to indicate also the possibility of arriving syntheti cally and a priori at a certain cognition of things that was not contained in their concept. Without this attention to possibility, proofs run like waters breaking through their banks, wildly and haphazardly, wherever the pro pensity of hidden association chances to lead them. The semblance35 1 of conviction that rests on subjective causes of association and is regarded as insight into a natural affinity cannot at all counterbalance the perplexity to which such daring steps must appropriately give rise. This is also why, as is universally confessed by the experts, all attempts to prove the principle of sufficient basis 352 have been futile; and before transcendental critique made its entrance, people-being nonetheless unable to abandon that principle353-would always rather appeal defiantly to sound human under standing (resorting to this always proves that the cause354 of reason is des perate) than attempt new dogmatic proofs. But if the proposition to be proved is an assertion of pure reason, and if I seek to go beyond my concepts of experience even by means of mere ideas, then there would be an even greater need for this proof to contain, as a necessary condition of its cogency, the justification of such a step of synthesis (if indeed this step were possible in a different wal55). Hence no matter how plausible3 5 6 the supposed proof of our thinking substance's simple nature from the unity of apperception may be,3 51 it yet faces in evitably this perplexity: Absolute simplicity is not a concept that can be referred directly to a perception; rather, being an idea, it must be merely in ferred. And hence one cannot see at all how the mere consciousness that is or at least can be contained in all thinking�espite being to that extent a simple presentation-is to bring35 8 me to the consciousness and the knowl350[ See above, A 766
=
B 794.]
351[Schein. ] 352[Or 'ground' or 'reason' : Satz des zureichenden Grundes; see A 2011B 246 br. n. 160.] 35 3 [Grundsatz.] 354[Sache.] 355[I.e., different from the reference to possible expenence; see above, A 736-37 A 769-72 = B 797-800, and below, A 785-86 = B 8 1 3-14.] 356[scheinbar.] 3 57[See the second paralogism, A 35 1 -6 1 ; cf. B 407-8, 410- 1 3.] 358[iiberfiihren ]
=
B 764-65,
{ A 784 B
812
720
A 785 } B 8 13
A 786 } B 814
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
edge359 of a thing in which alone this thinking can be contained. For if I present to myself the force of a360 body in motion, then to that extent the body is for me absolute unity, and my presentation of it is simple. This is also the reason why I can express this presentation by the motion of a point; for here the body's volume36 1 does nothing and can without diminution of the force be thought as small as we wish, and hence also can be thought as located in a point. 362 Yet I shall not infer from this that if nothing but the motive force of a body is given to me, then the body can be thought as simple substance-merely because its presentation abstracts from all mag nitude of the volume3 63 and hence is simple. Now the simple in the ab straction is thus entirely distinct from the simple in the object; and the 1364 that in the first sense comprises within itself no manifoldness whatsoever can in the second sense, where it signifies the soul itself, be a very com plex concept, viz., one serving to contain and designate very much under itself-and by seeing this I discover a paralogism. 365 Yet in order to im pugn366 this paralogism in advance (for without such a provisional pre sumption we would not become suspicious toward the proof at all), we need throughout to have at hand an everlasting criterion of the possibility of those synthetic propositions that are meant to prove more than experience can give. This criterion consists in the requirement that the proof should be con ducted not straightforwardly to the desired predicate, but only by means of a principle of the possibility of expanding our given concept a priori up to ideas in order to realize these ideas. This caution should always be exer cised; i.e., before even attempting the proof, we should first wisely take counsel as to how and with what basis for hope we might expect such an expansion367 through pure reason, and from where indeed we are to take, in such a case, these insights that are not developed from concepts nor can 3 59[Kenntnis.] 36°[Reading, with Hartenstein, eines for meines.]
36 1 [Volumen.] 362 [See the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak. IV, 482-83.]
363[Raumesinhalt.] 364[Emphasis added.] 365[See above, A 3 5 1 -6 1 , B 407-8.] 366 [Or, possibly, 'to suspect,' if ahnden is taken as the old variant spelling of ahnen. Cf. Ety mologisches WOrterbuch der deutschen Sprache. eds. Friedrich Kluge and Elmar Seebold (Ber lin and New York: Walter de Gruyter, 1989), 14 ] .
367[Of cognition.]
SECTION IV PURE REASON IN REGARD TO PROOFS
72 1
be anticipated by reference to possible experience. For by so doing we can save ourselves many difficult and yet fruitless efforts, by not requiring from reason what obviously exceeds its power�r, rather, by subjecting reason, which in bursts of its passion for speculative expansion368 does not like to be confined, to the discipline of restraint. Hence thefirstJ 69 rule is this: not to attempt any transcendental proofs without first having deliberated on the questions, and justified ourselves on their account, whence we shall take the principles upon which we mean to build these proofs, and with what right we may expect from these prin ciples the success of our inferences. If the principles are principles of un derstanding (e.g., that of causality), then attempting to arrive, by means of them, at ideas of pure reason is futile; for these principles hold only for objects of possible experience. If they are to be principles based on pure reason, then again all endeavor is futile. For although reason does have such principles, they are one and all dialectical when taken as ob jective principles, and can be valid at most in the manner of regulative principles of the systematically coherent use of reason in experience.3 70 But if such alleged proofs are already present, then you should oppose the deceptive37 1 conviction with the non /iquer372 of your matured power of judgment; and although you cannot yet penetrate the deception373 in these proofs, you still have every right to demand the deduction374 of the principles used in them-a deduction which, if these principles are to have arisen from reason alone, can never be provided to you. And thus you need not even occupy yourselves with the development and the refuta tion of every baseless illusion, but can dismiss all at once and in bulk all dialectic, however inexhaustible in artifices, at the tribunal of a critical reason that demands laws. The second peculiarity of transcendental proofs is this: that for every transcendental proposition only a single proof can be found. When I am to make an inference not from concepts but from the intuition corresponding 368 [Of its cognition.] 369 [Emphasis added; likewise on 'third' at A 789
370 [See above, A 770-77
=
=
B 8 1 7. ]
B 798-803.]
371 [triiglich.] 372 [lt is not clear (i.e., not proved).] 37J [Blendwerk.] 374[I.e., legitimation or justification. Cf. A 663-64
=
B 69 1 -92 incl. br. n. 147.]
B 815 A 787
722
A 788 } B 816
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
to a concept-whether a pure intuition as in mathematics, or an empirical one as in natural science-then the intuition laid at the basis375 provides me with manifold material for synthetic propositions. I can connect this material in more than one way; and since I am allowed to start from more than one point, I can arrive at the same proposition by different paths. But any transcendental proposition starts merely from one concept. and states376 the synthetic condition of the object's possibility in accordance with this concept. Hence the basis of proof can be only a single one. For apart from this concept there is nothing further whereby the object could be determined; and hence the proof can contain nothing more than the de termination of an object as such in accordance with this concept, which is also only a single377 concept. In the Transcendental Analytic the principle that everything that occurs has a cause, 378 e.g., had been obtained by us from the single condition for the objective possibility of a concept of what occurs as such: viz., that the determination of an event in time-and hence this (event) as belonging to experience-would be impossible without be ing subject to such a dynamical rule. Now this is indeed the only379 pos sible basis of proof. For the presented event has objective validity-i.e., truth-only because an object is determined for the concept by means of the law of causality. To be sure, other proofs of this principle have also been attempted, e.g., the proof from the contingency [of what occurs]. Yet when this proof is examined closely, we can find no criterion of contin gency except the occurrence-i.e., the object's existence that is preceded by the object's nonexistence-and thus we always come back again to the same basis of proof. Similarly, if we are to prove the proposition that ev erything that thinks is simple, then we do not dwell upon the manifold of thought but stay merely with the concept of the 1, 380 which is simple and to which all thought is referred. 381 The same applies to the transcendental proof of the existence of God; this proof rests solely on the interchange375[Of my inference.] 376 [sagt. ] 377 [einzig.] 37 8 [See above, A 1 89-2 1 1 1B 232-56.] 379 [einzig. ] 3 8° [Emphasis added.] 381 [See above, A 785
=
B 8 1 3 br. n. 365.]
SECTION IV PURE REASON IN REGARD TO PROOFS
723
ability3 82 of the concepts of the most real and of the necessary being and cannot be sought anywhere else. 383 This note of caution makes the critique of the assertions of reason a very much smaller task. Where reason carries on its business through mere con cepts, there only a single proof is possible, provided that any proof is pos sible at all. Hence as soon as we see the dogmatist come forward with ten proofs, we may safely believe that he has none at all. For if he had one that proved its conclusion apodeicticaUy (as is required in matters of pure rea son), for what would he need the others? His intention is only like that of the parliamentary advocate, whose one argument is for this and the other for that member-so that he may take advantage of the weakness of his judges, who, without entering deeply into the business and wishing to get away from it soon, seize upon whatever first happens to attract their atten tion, and decide by it. The third rule peculiar to pure reason if this reason is subjected to a dis cipline regarding transcendental proofs is this: that its proofs must never be apagogic but always ostensive. 3 84 A direct or ostensive proof is, in ev ery kind of cognition, a proof that combines with the conviction of the truth also insight into the sources of this truth. An apagogic proof, on the other hand, can indeed produce certainty, but not comprehensibility385 of the truth as regards its connection386 with the bases of its possibility. Hence apa gogic proofs are more an expedient than a procedure that satisfies all the aims of reason. Yet they are superior to direct proofs in regard to evidence, inasmuch as contradiction always carries with it more clarity in the pre sentation than does the best connection, 387 and thus comes closer to the intuitive character of a demonstration. The proper cause, however, of the use of apagogic proofs in various sci ences is presumably the following. If the bases from which a certain cog382 [ReziprokLIbilitiit. ] 383 [See above, A 567-642
=
B 595-670.]
384 [Apagogic proofs are indirect proofs (which prove a proposition by establishing the false hood of its contradictory) and are to that extent of the form modus tollens (i.e., the annulling
mode: If P. then q; not q; therefore, not p.); cf. the Logic. Ak. IX, 52 (also 7 1 ). Ostensive proofs are direct proofs and are to that extent of the form modus ponens (i.e , the positing mode: If P. then q; p; therefore. q.).]
385 [Begreijiichkeit. See A 467
386 [Zusammenhang.] 387[Verknupjimg.]
=
B 495 br. n. 30 and B 1 1 4 br. n. 239.]
{ A 789
B 817
{ A 790
B 818
724
A 791
B
819
}
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
nition is to be derived are too manifold or lie too deeply hidden, then we try to find out whether the cognition might not be reachable through its consequences. Now a modus ponens inferring the truth of a cognition from the truth of its consequences388 would be permitted only if all possible con sequences of the cognition are true; for then only a single basis for these389 consequences is possible, which is therefore also the true basis. This pro cedure is unfeasible, however, because gaining insight into all possible con sequences of any assumed sentence exceeds our powers. We nonetheless employ this kind of inference, although indeed with a certain amount of forbearance, when we are concerned to prove something merely as a hypothesis-viz., inasmuch as we grant this inference by analogy: that if all the consequences that we may have tried agree with an assumed basis, then all the remaining possible consequences will also agree with this ba sis. Because of this,39o a hypothesis can never by this path be transformed into demonstrated truth. The modus to liens in syllogisms391 making an in ference from the consequences to the bases is not only a quite strict but also an extremely easy proof. For if even a single false consequence can be drawn from a proposition, then this proposition is false. Thus we need not provide an ostensive proof and go through the entire series of bases that can lead us to the truth of a proposition by means of complete insight into this truth's possibility. Instead we need only look at the consequences issuing from the cognition's opposite and find a single one of them to be false; for then this opposite is also false, and hence the cognition that we had to prove is true. However, the apagogic kind of proof can be permitted only in those sci ences where there is no possibility of [erroneously] substituting the sub jective [element] of our presentation for the objective, viz., for the cogni tion of what is in the object. 392 But where such substitution is prevalent, there it must frequently happen that the opposite of some proposition ei ther contradicts not the object but merely the subjective conditions of thought, or that the two propositions contradict each other only under a sub jective condition that is falsely regarded as objective-in which case, since 3""[Rather than vice versa.) 3 89 [Reading, with Erdmann and the Akademie edition, diesen for diesem.) 39°[This reliance on analogy in such a modus ponens.) 391 [Literally, 'inferences of reason' : Vernunftschlusse.] ]92 [Such erroneous substitution is what Kant calls subreption. See A 643 14.]
=
B 67 1 incl. br. n
SECTION IV PURE REASON IN REGARD TO PROOFS
725
the condition is false, both propositions can be false and thus no inference can be made from the falsity of the one proposition to the truth of the other. In mathematics this subreption3 93 is impossible; hence that is where these apagogic proofs have their proper place. In natural science every thing is based on empirical intuitions, and hence such subreption can in deed usually be prevented there by comparing many observations; yet there this kind of proof is usually unimportant. But each and every transcenden tal attempt of pure reason is carried out within the medium proper of dia lectical illusion, i.e., the subjective [element] that in reason's premises offers itself to reason-or even thrusts itself upon reason-as objective. Thus here, as far as synthetic propositions are concerned, one cannot be permitted at all to justify one's assertions by refuting their opposite. For either this refutation is nothing but the mere presentation of the opposed opinion's conflict with the subjective conditions of comprehensibility394 by our reason; and this does nothing to repudiate the matte�95 itself. (E.g., the unconditioned necessity in a being's existence absolutely cannot be comprehended by us; hence subjectively it rightly resists every speculative proof of a necessary supreme being, but resists wrongly the possibility of such an original being in itself.) Or both parties, the asserting as well as the negating party, being deceived396 by transcendental illusion, are bas ing their propositions on an impossible concept of the object; and then this rule holds: non entis nulla sunt praedicata397-i.e., what is asserted affir matively as well as what is asserted negatively of the object are both incorrect-and one cannot apagogically, by refuting the opposite, arrive at cognition of the truth. Thus, e.g., if one presupposes that the world of sense is given in itself in its totality, then it is false to say that this world must either be infinite as regards space or be finite and bounded,398 because both alternatives are false. For appearances399 (as mere presentations) that are 393[Subreption here, Erschleichung just below.] 394[Begreijiichkeit. Note how translating begreijiich as 'conceivable' rather than as 'compre hensible' here has the effect of making the upcoming parenthetical sentence itself incompre
hensible, since anything that is inconceivable (as this term is used in philosophy) is therefore also logically impossible. See A 467 = B 495 br. n. 30 and A 3 1 01B 367 br. n. 97.]
395[Sache.] 396[betrogen.] 397[A nonentity has n o predicates.] 398 [Cf the first antinomy, A 426-33
=
B 45
399 [Of which the world of sense consists.]
4
6 1 .]
-
{ A 792 B
820
{ A 793 B
821
726
A 794 } B 822
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
nonetheless given in themselves (as objects) are something impossible; and although the infinity of this imagined whole would indeed be uncondi tioned, it would still contradict the detennination4OO of unconditioned mag nitude40 l which is presupposed in the concept (because in402 appearances everything is conditioned). Indeed, the apagogic kind of proof is the particular deception403 by which those who admire the thoroughness of our subtle dogmatic reason ers have always been put off. It is, as it were, the champion who wants to prove the honor and the indisputable right of his adopted party by prom ising to scuffie with anyone who might doubt these. Yet such bluster de cides nothing concerning the matter but only concerning the respective strength of the adversaries,404 and even this only on the side of the one who behaves aggressively. The spectators, seeing that each adversary takes his tum being now victorious and then defeated, are often prompted by this to become skeptical themselves and to doubt the object of the dispute. But they do not have cause for this, and it suffices to shout to them:405 non de fensoribus istis tempus eget. 406 Everyone must conduct his case407 by means of a legal proof through transcendental deduction of the bases of proof-in other words, directly-so that one can see what bases his claims of reason can adduce on their own behalf. For if his opponent408 relies on subjective bases, then this opponent can indeed easily be refuted, but with out advantage to the dogmatist himself, who usually adheres just as much to the judgment's subjective causes and can likewise be driven into a cor ner by his opponent. But if both parties proceed only directly, then they will either notice on their own the difficulty-indeed, the impossibility--of 4OO[l.e., attribute.]
401 [l.e., totality.] 402[an.] 403[das eigentliche Blendwerk.] 404[Gegner.] 405 [Kant may have meant the shout to be addressed to the adversanes rather than to the spec tators, but it obviously works either way.] 406 [In Vergil's Aeneid (ii, 521-22), Hecuba says to Priam, who is taking up arms: Non tali auxilio nee defensoribus istis tempus eget; i.e., the situation (the time, literally) does not call for such aid and such defenders. (The emphasized portion of the translation renders Kant's own quotation here.)]
407[Sache.] 408[Gegner.]
SECTION IV PURE REASON IN REGARD TO PROOFS
727
discovering any title for their assertions, and can ultimately plead only that the statute of limitations has run out;409 or the critique will easily uncover the dogmatic illusion and will compel pure reason to abandon the over blown pretensions that it makes in its speculative use, and will compel pure reason to retreat within the bounds of its proper territory, viz., that of prac tical principles.4 10
409[Verjiihrung.] 4 10 [To be treated in the Canon of Pure Reason (the next chapter).]
A 795 } B 823
TRANSCENDENTAL DOCTRINE OF METHODl
Chapter
II
The Canon of Pure Reason
A 796 } B 824
Human reason is humiliated by the fact that, in its pure use, it accom plishes nothing and indeed even needs a discipline to restrain its own ex travagances and prevent the deceptions that these engender for it. But, on the other hand, human reason is elevated and acquires self-confidence through the fact that it can and must exercise this discipline on its own, without permitting any other verdict2 concerning itself; and likewise through the fact that the bounds that it is compelled to set to its own specu lative use simultaneously limit the subtly reasoning3 claims of every op ponent, so that whatever may still be left to human reason from its previ ously exaggerated demands can be secured by it against all attacks. Hence the greatest and perhaps only benefit of all philosophy of pure reason may be only negative. For such philosophy does not-as an organon-serve to expand [cognition], but-as a discipline-serves to determine the bound ary [of cognition]; and instead of discovering truth, it has only the silent merit of preventing errors. Yet somewhere there must nonetheless be a source of positive cogni tions that belong in the domain of pure reason, and that perhaps give rise to errors only through misunderstanding but in fact amount to the aim of reason's zeal. For to what cause could one otherwise attribute reason's in domitable desire to gain by all means a firm foothold somewhere beyond the boundary of experience? Reason there suspects4 objects that carry with ' [See Heinz Heirnsoeth, op. cit. at A 293/B 349 hr. n. 2, vo!. 4, 743-46.]
2 [Zensur.] ' [die verniinftelnden.] 4[Reading ahnden as the old variant spelling of ahnen. Cf. A 785
728
=
B 8 1 3 inc!. hr.
n.
366.]
CHAPTER II CANON OF PURE REASON
729
them a great interest for it. It enters upon the path of mere speculation in order to come closer to these objects: but there they flee from it. Presum ably we may hope that reason will have better fortune5 on the only path that still remains to it, viz., that of its practical use. By a canon I mean the sum of a priori principles governing the correct use of certain cognitive powers as such. Thus general logic in its analy tical part is a canon for understanding and reason as such6-but only as regards form, for general logic abstracts from all content. And thus the transcendental analytic was the canon of pure understanding; 7 for pure understanding alone is capable of having true synthetic a priori cognitions. But where no correct use of a cognitive power is possible, there is no canon. Now all synthetic cognition of pure reason in its speculative use is, ac cording to all the proofs conducted thus far, entirely impossible. Hence there is no canon whatever of pure reason's speculative use (for this use is dia lectical throughout), and all transcendental logic is in regard to this specu lative aim nothing but discipline. Consequently, if there is a correct use of pure reason at all, in which case there must also be a canon of pure rea son, then this canon will concern not the speculative but the practical use of reason. Hence we shall now investigate this use.
S[Gluck. ] "[See the Logic. Ak. IX 1 3-16.] . 7 [See above, A 1 21B 26. A 60-611B 85, A 631B 88.]
{ A 797 B
825
The Canon of Pure Reason Section P On the Ultimate Purpose9 of the Pure Use of Our Reason
A 798 } B 826
Reason is impelled by a propensity of its nature to go beyond its use in experience, to venture outward-in a pure use and by means of mere ideas-to the utmost bounds of all cognition, and to find rest for the first time 1 0 in the completion of its sphere, 1 1 i.e., in a self-subsistent systematic whole. Now, is this endeavor based merely on reason's speculative inter est, or is it, rather, based solely and exclusively on its practical interest? Let me now set aside whatever success 1 2 pure reason has in regard to its speculative aim, and inquire only into the problems whose solution amounts to pure reason's ultimate purpose-the purpose which pure rea son may or may not accomplish, and in regard to which all other purposes have only the value of means. These highest purposes must, according to the nature of reason, have unity in turn, in order that-as thus united-they may further that interest of humanity which is not subordinate to any higher interest. The final aim1 3 to which the speculation of reason as used transcenden tally is ultimately directed concerns three objects: the freedom of the will, the immortality of the soul, and the existence of God. 14 With regard to all three the merely speculative interest of reason is only very slight; and with
293/B 349 br. n. 2, vol. 4, 746-55. See also Norman 5, 569-70.]
8 [See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n.
9 [Zweck. Translating this term as 'end' (Which also has a temporal meaning) would fre quently result in serious ambiguities; indeed, it would do so in this very instance. See my ticle on Zweckmiij3igkeit ( 'purposiveness'), cited at A vii br. n. 7.]
IO
[nur allerersl.]
I I [Kreis.] l 2 [Gluck.
]
! 3[Endabsicht.] 14[Cf. B
395 n. 222. including the references in br. n. 222b.] 730
ar
SECTION I ULTIMATE PURPOSE
73 1
this interest in view l 5 one presumably would scarcely undertake an ex hausting job-which wrestles with unceasing obstacles-of transcendental investigation. For whatever discoveries one might be able to make con cerning these three objects, one could still not make of these discoveries a use that would prove its benefit in concreto, i.e., in the investigation of na ture. E.g., first, even if the Will l 6 is free, this fact still can concern only the intelligible cause of our willing. For as regards the phenomena consisting of that will's manifestations, 1 7 i.e., the actions, we must always-according to an inviolable basic maxim without which we could not exercise any empirically used reason at all--explain them only as we explain all the remaining appearances of nature, viz., according to immutable laws of nature. 18 Moreover, second, even if one can have insight into the spiritual nature of the soul (and, with this nature, into the soul's immortality), one still can count on this spiritual nature neither as a basis of explanation re garding the appearances of this life, nor as shedding light on the particular character of our future state. 1 9 For our concept of an incorporeal nature is merely negative; it does not in the least expand our cognition or offer suit able material for inferences--except perhaps for inferences that can be re garded20 only as inventions but that philosophy does not allow. Third, even if the existence of a supreme intelligence were proved, although we would indeed from this existence make comprehensible for ourselves in a general way what is purposive in the world's arrangement and order, we would by no means be entitled to derive from this existence any particular provision and order, or boldly to infer such provision or order where it is not per ceived. 21 For there is a necessary rule of the speculative use of reason, not to pass over natural causes and abandon something of which we can in form ourselves through experience, in order to take something that we know22 and derive it from what entirely surpasses our knowledge. In a 15 [Absicht.] 1 6 [Wille; 'willing' just below renders Wollen.] 1 7[Aufterungen.] 1 8 [ See above, A 538-41
=
B 566-69.]
1 9 [As considered above, in the Paralogisms, A 341-405/8 399-432. See also A 778-80 806-8.]
=
B
2o[gellen.] "[See above, A 559-65 461 -66.]
=
B 587-93. See also the Crilique of Judgment, Ak. V, 436-42,
22 [kennen; similarly Kennlnis for 'knowledge' just below.]
{ A 799 B
827
732
A 800 } B 828
A 801 } B 829
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
word, for speculative reason these three propositions23 always remain tran scendent and have no immanent use whatever, i.e., no use admissible for objects of experience and hence beneficial to us in some way; rather, when regarded in themselves, they are endeavors of our reason that are entirely futile and are even extremely difficult into the bargain. Accordingly, if these three cardinal propositions are not at all necessary to us for knowledge24 and are nonetheless urgently commended to us by our reason, then-I suppose-their importance will properly have to con cern only the practical. Practical25 is everything that is possible through freedom. But if the con ditions for the exercise of our free power of choice26 are empirical, then reason can have in this exercise none but a regulative use and can serve only to bring about the unity of empirical laws. Thus, e.g., in the doctrine of prudence, the entire business of reason consists in taking all the pur poses assigned to us by our inclinations and uniting them in the one pur pose, happiness, and in harmonizing the means for attaining this happi ness.27 Consequently, reason can here supply none but pragmatic laws of free conduct that is aimed at attaining the purposes commended to us by the senses, and hence can supply no laws that are pure, i.e., determined completely a priori. By contrast, pure practical laws, the purpose of which is given completely a priori by reason and which command not in an em pirically conditioned but in an absolute way, would be products of pure reason. Moral laws, however, are indeed such pure practical laws, and hence they alone belong to the practical use of pure reason and permit a canon. The entire apparatus of pure reason, as considered in the treatment that may be called pure philosophy, is in fact directed only to the three men tioned problems. These problems themselves, however, have in turn their more remote aim, viz., what is to be done if the will is free, if there is a God, and if there is a future world. Now since this more remote aim con cerns our conduct in reference to the highest purpose, the ultimate aim of nature-the nature that in the arrangement of our reason provides for us wisely-pertains properly only to what is moral. 23
[l.e., that the will is free, that the soul is immortal, and that there is a God.]
24[Wissen.] 25[Emphasis added.] 26 [ Willkur.] 27[See the
Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals, Ak IV, 394-96.J
SECTION I ULTIMATE PURPOSE
733
But as we tum our attention to an object extraneous to transcendental philosophy,28 we must be cautious not to stray into digressions and violate the unity of the system, and cautious also-on the other hand-not to in cur a lack of distinctness or of [power of] conviction by saying too little about our new material. I hope to accomplish both of these goals by keep ing as close as possible to what is transcendental and setting aside entirely what might in this material be psychological, i.e., empirical. And thus I must first point out that I shall for now employ the concept of freedom in its practical meaning only, and shall here set aside-as hav ing been dealt with above29-the same concept in the transcendental sig nification. The latter concept cannot be presupposed empirically as a basis for explaining appearances, but is itself a problem for reason. For a power of choice is merely animal (arbitrium brutum)30 if it cannot be determined otherwise than through sensible impulses, 3 l i.e., pathologically. But the power of choice that can be determined independently of sensible im pulses and hence through motivating causes that are presented only by rea son is called the free power of choice (arbitrium liberum); and everything connected with this free power of choice, whether as basis or as conse quence, is called practical. Practical freedom can be proved through expe rience. For the human power of choice32 is determined not merely by what stimulates, i.e., by what directly affects the senses. Rather, we have a powe�3 of overcoming, through presentations of what is beneficial or harm ful even in a more remote34 way, the impressions made upon our sensible 28All practical concepts deal with concepts of liking or disliking,a i.e., pleasure or displeasure, and hence deal at least indirectly with objects of our feeling. Feeling, however, is not a power to present things, but lies outside the cognitive power as a whole. Therefore, the elements of our judgments insofar as these judgments refer to pleasure and displeasure-and hence the elements of practical judgments---do not belong to the sum of transcendental philosophy, which has to do solely with pure a priori cognitions. "[des WohLgefaLlens oder MijJfaLlens. ] 29 [See the third antinomy ( A 444-51
B 472-79) and its solution ( A 538-59 B 566-87).] lO [On the contrast that Kant is about to make, cf. A 534 B 562. See also the Metaphysics of MoraLs, Ak. VI, 2 1 3-14, 226-27 .] =
=
=
31 [I.e., impulses of sense.] 32 [WilLkiir.] l3[Vermogen.] l4[auf entferntere Art; A has aUf entfernete (entjernte) Art, i.e., 'in a remote way. ']
{ A 802 B
830
734
A 803 83 1
}
A 804 832
}
B
B
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
power of desire. These deliberations, however, concerning what is with regard to our whole state desirable,35 i.e., good and beneficial, rest on reason. This is also why reason gives laws 36 that are imperatives, i.e., ob jective laws offreedom. Such laws tell us what ought to occur even though perhaps it never does occu27-and therein they differ from laws of nature, which deal only with what occurs-and this is why the laws of freedom are also called practical laws. But whether reason is not, even in these actions through which it pre scribes laws, determined in turn by other influences, and whether what in regard to sensible impulses is called freedom may not in regard to higher and more remote efficient causes in turn be nature-this further question does not concern us in the practical [realm] . For there we initially consult reason only concerning the prescription of conduct; but that further ques tion is a merely speculative one, which we can set aside as long as our intention is directed to doing or refraining. 38 Hence we cognize practical freedom through experience; we cognize it as one of the natural causes, viz., as a causality of reason [that is operative] in the determination of the will. Transcendental freedom, on the other hand, demands an indepen dence of this reason itself (as regards reason's causality whereby it is able to begin a series of appearances) from all determining causes of the world of sense; and to this extent transcendental freedom seems to be contrary to the law of nature and hence to all possible experience, and therefore re mains a problem.39 But this problem does not pertain to reason in its prac tical use; and hence in a canon of pure reason we deal with only two questions, which concern the practical interest of pure reason and with re gard to which a canon of this reason's use must be possible, viz.: Is there a God? Is there a future life? The question regarding transcendental free dom concerns merely our speculative knowledge. This question we can set aside as making no difference whatever when our concern is what is prac tical; and sufficient discussion regarding it can already be found in the antinomy of pure reason.40 35 [begehrungswert. ] 36[l.e., reason legislates.] 37 [See the Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals, Ak. IV, 406-1 2.] 38[Emphasis on both these terms added.] 39[See H. E. Allison, op. cit. at A 2 1 /B 35 br. n 22, 3 1 5-29.] 40 [See br. n. 29, just above.]
The Canon of Pure Reason
Section II On the Ideal of the Highest Good, As a Determining Basis of the Ultimate Purpose of Pure Reason4 l Reason in its speculative use led us through the realm of experiences and, since complete satisfaction can never be found for it in that realm, from there to speculative ideas. But in the end these ideas led us back again to experience, and thus they fulfilled their intent in a way that, although beneficial, did not at all conform to our expectation. This leaves us with one more attempt. Viz., we must inquire whether pure reason can be found also in reason's practical use; whether in this use it leads us to the ideas which reach the highest purposes of pure reason that we have just men tioned; and whether, therefore, pure reason cannot perhaps grant us from the viewpoint of its practical interest what it altogether denies us with re gard to its speculative interest. All my reason's interest (speculative as well as practical) is united in the following three questions;42 1.
What can I know?
2.
What ought I to do?
3.
What may I hope ?
The first question is merely speculative. We have (as I flatter myself) exhausted all possible answers to this question and have finally found the one answer with which reason must indeed content itself and, if reason does
293/B 349
41 [See Heinz Heimsoeth, op cit. at A hr. Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii hr. n. 5, 570-76.]
2
n.
2, vol. 4, 756-75. See also Norman
42 [In the Logic (Ak. IX, 5) Kant adds a fourth question: What is the human being?]
735
{ A 805 B
833
736
A 806 } B 834
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
not take account of the practical, also has cause to be content. From the two great purposes,43 however, to which this entire endeavor of pure rea son was properly directed we have remained just as distant as if we had-from love of leisure-refused this job at the very beginning. Hence if our concern is knowledge, then at least this much is certain and estab lished: that we shall never be able to partake of knowledge regarding those two problems.44 The second question is merely practical. As such it can indeed belong to pure reason; but it is then a moral45 rather than a transcendental ques tion and hence cannot in itself occupy our [present] critique.46 The third question-viz., If, now, I do what I ought to do, what may I then hope?-is simultaneously practical and theoretical, so that the prac tical [component] is only a guide that leads to the answering of the theo retical question and-if the theoretical question rises high47--of the specu lative question. For all hoping aims at happiness, and is in regard to the practical [realm] and to the moral48 law the same [thing] that knowing and the natural law are in regard to the theoretical cognition of things. Hoping ultimately amounts to the conclusion that there is something (that deter mines the ultimate possible purpose) because something ought to occur; knowing ultimately amounts to the conclusion that there is something (that acts as supreme cause) because something does occur. Happiness is the satisfaction of all our inclinations49 (extensively, in terms of their manifoldness; intensively, in terms of their degree; and also protensively, in terms of their duration). The practical law issuing from the motive of happiness I call pragmatic (i.e., rule of prudence).5o But the prac43[Existence of God, and immortality of the soul.] 44[I.e the two purposes just mentioned. See, however, A 8 1 8 .•
=
B 846 incl. br. n. 1 02.]
45 [moralisch.] 46[This question is considered in the Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals, the Critique of Practical Reason. and the Metaphy.tics of Moral.t ] 47[To the point where experience is no longer possible and thus theorizing gives way to specu lation; see A 634-35 B 662-63.] =
48 [Sitten - . ]
49 [Neigungen, which are lower desires (8egehrungen), i.e those of sensibility, a s distin guished from higher desires, which are those of morality. See the Critique of Practical Rea son, Ak. V, 24-25. and the Critique of Judgment. Ak. V. 178-79, 209, cf. 1 68-69. 1 90. 1 96-97. 2 1 0. 353. Cf. also the Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals, Ak. IV, 4 1 1 - 1 2.] .•
5('[See the Critique of Practical Reason, Ak. V. 22-26 ]
SECTION II IDEAL OF THE HIGHEST GOOD
737
tical law that has as its motive nothing but the worthiness to be happy-if there is such a law-I call moral (moral law).51 The pragmatic law advises [us] what we must do if we want to partake of happiness; the moral law commands52 how we ought to behave in order just to become worthy of happiness. The pragmatic law is based on empirical principles; for in no other way than by means of experience can I know either what inclinations there are that want to be satisfied, or what the natural causes are that can bring about the satisfaction of those inclinations. The moral law abstracts from inclinations and from the natural means for satisfying them.53 It con siders only the freedom of a rational being as such, and the necessary con ditions under which alone this freedom harmonizes with a distribution of happiness that is made in accordance with principles. Hence the moral law at least can rest on mere ideas of pure reason and thus be cognized a priori. I assume that there actually are pure moral laws that determine com pletely a priori (without regard to empirical motives, i.e., to happiness) the doing and the refraining, i.e., the use of the freedom of a rational being as such, and that these laws command absolutely (not merely hypothetically, on the presupposition of other empirical purposes) and are therefore nec essary in every regard.54 This proposition [that there are such laws] I may rightly presuppose, by appealing not only to the proofs of the most en lightened moralists, but also to the moral judgment that every human be ing makes if he wishes to think such a law distinctly. Hence pure reason contains-although not in its speculative use but still in a certain practical. viz., the moral, use-principles of the possibility of experience, viz., of the experience of such actions as could be encountered in accordance with moral precepts55 in the history of the human being. For since pure reason commands that such actions ought to occur, they must also be able to occur. And hence a particular kind of systematic unity must be possible, viz., moral unity. By contrast, the systematic unity of nature according to speculative principles of reason was incapable of being proved; for although reason has causality with regard to freedom as such, 5 l [moralisch (Sittengesetz). See ibid., I I 0- 1 3.] 52 [gebieten. Although one alternative translation of this verb, as 'to dictate' (which I do use in two places in order to avoid contorted grammar), might sound more idiomatic in the present context, the verb's connotation of haughtiness is inappropriate here.] 5 3 [See the Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals, Ak. IV, 41 1-1 2.] 54 [See the Critique of Practical Reason, Ak. V, 3 1 -34. 46-50.] 55 [Or 'prescriptions' : Vorschrijien.]
{ A 807 B
835
738
A 808 } B 836
A 809 } B 837
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
it does not have causality with regard to all of nature; and although moral principles of reason can give rise to free actions, they cannot give rise to natural laws.56 Accordingly, the principles of pure reason in its practical use-but specifically in its moral use-have objective reality. The world insofar as it would be in accordance with all moral laws (as, indeed, according to the freedom of rational beings it can be, and as ac cording to the necessary laws of morality it ought to be) I call a moral world. The moral world is thought merely as an intelligible world, inas much as we abstract in it from all conditions (purposes) and even from all obstacles for morality (weakness or impurity of human nature). Therefore, to this extent the moral world is a mere idea; yet it is a practical idea that actually can and ought to have its influence on the world of sense, in order to bring this world as much as possible into accordance with the moral world. Hence the idea of a moral world has objective reality. But it has such reality not as dealing with an object of an intelligible intuitionS ? (such [a way for this idea to have objective reality] we cannot even think), but as dealing with the world of sense. However, the world of sense must here be taken as an object of pure reason in its practical use and as a corpus mysticumS 8 of the rational beings in it insofar as their free power of choice is, under moral laws, in thoroughgoing systematic unity both with itself and with the freedom of every other such being.s9 This has been the answer to the first of the two questions of pure rea son that concerned its practical interest,60 and this answer is: Do that whereby you become worthy to be happy. Now the second question asks this: What if now I behave in such a way as not to be unworthy of hap piness, may I also hope that I can thereby partake of happiness? In an swering this question, what matters is whether the principles of pure reason that prescribe the law a priori do also connect this hope necessarily with that law. I maintain, then, that just as moral principles are necessary according to reason in its practical use, so it is equally necessary also according to reason in its theoretical use to assume that everyone has cause to hope for happiness insofar as he has made himself worthy of it in his conduct, and 56 [See the Critique of Practical Reason. Ak. V. 50-57, 1 1 9-21 .] 5 7[I.e., an intellectual intuition; see B 72 incl. br. n. 1 83.] 5 8 [Mystical object.] 59 [See
the Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals. Ak. IV, 433-34.]
60 [l.e.: What ought I to do ?]
SECTION II IDEAL OF THE HIGHEST GOOD
739
hence to assume that the system of morality is linked inseparably-but only in the idea of pure reason-with the system of happiness. Now in an intelligible world, i.e., in the moral world, in whose concept we abstract from all obstacles to morality6 1 (i.e., from inclinations),62 such a system of a proportionate happiness linked63 with morality can indeed be thought as necessary. For freedom, partly impelled64 and partly restricted by moral laws, would itself be the cause of general happiness; and hence rational beings, under the guidance of such principles, would themselves be originators of their own and also of other beings' lasting welfare. But this system of the morality that rewards itself is only an idea. Carrying out the idea rests on the condition that everyone does what he ought to do, i.e., the condition that all actions of rational beings occur as they would if they sprang from a supreme Will65 comprising all private power of choice66 within itself or under itself. However, the obligation issuing from the moral law remains valid for everyone's particular use of freedom even if others were not to behave in accordance with this law. Therefore, how the con sequences of these actions will relate to happiness is determined neither by67 the nature of the things of the world, nor by the causality of the ac tions themselves and their relation to morality. 68 And thus the mentioned necessary connection of one's hope for happiness with the unceasing en deavor to make oneself worthy of happiness cannot be cognized through reason if mere nature is laid at the basis. Rather, this connection may be hoped for only if a supreme69 reason that commands according to moral laws is also laid at the basis of nature, as nature's cause. The idea of such an intelligence wherein the morally most perfect will, combined7o with the highest71 bliss, is the cause of all happiness in the 6 1 [Sittlichkeit here, Moralitat just below.] 62 [Reading, with Kirchmann, den Neigungen for der Neigungen.] 6J[ verbunden.] s4[bewegt.] 6s[oberster Wille.] 66[Privatwillkiir.] 67 [Literally, 'from' : aus.] 68 [See the Critique oj Practical Reason, Ak. Y, 1 1 3-19.] 69 [I.e., divine: hochst.] 7°[verbunden ] 71 [hochst; likewise in 'highest good,' just below.]
{ A 8 1O
B 838
740
A 811 } B 839
A 8 12 } B 840
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
world, insofar as this happiness is exactly proportionate to one's morality (as the worthiness to be happy), I call the ideal of the highest good. 72 Hence only in the ideal of the highest original good73 can pure reason find the basis of the practically necessary connection between the two elements74 of the highest derivative good, viz., the basis of an intelligible, i.e., moral world. Now, we must through reason necessarily conceive ourselves as be longing to such a world,75 although the senses exhibit to us nothing but a world of appearances. Hence we shall have to assume the moral world as being a consequence of our conduct in the world of sense, and-since the world of sense does not now offer us such a connection between happiness and morality-as being for us a future world. Hence God76 and a future life77 are two presuppositions that, according to principles of pure reason, are inseparable from the obligation imposed on us by that same reason. Morality78 in itself amounts to a system; but happiness does not, except insofar as its distribution is exactly commensurate with morality. This, how ever, is possible only in the intelligible world, under a wise originator and ruler. Reason finds itself compelled either to assume such a being, along with life in such a world, which we must regard as a future world; or to regard the moral laws as idle chimeras, because without this presupposi tion the necessary result that reason connects with these laws would have to vanish. This is, moreover, why everyone regards the moral laws as com mands; 79 this the moral laws could not be if they did not a priori connect with their rule commensurate consequences and thus carry with them prom ises and threats. But this again the moral laws cannot do unless they re72 [See the Critique of Practical Reason, Ak. V, 1 10-19.] 73 [Or 'supreme original good ' ; i.e., the existence of God. Cf. the Critique of Practical Rea son, Ak. V, 125.] 74 [l.e., happiness as proportioned to one's morality (worthiness to be happy).] 75 [Viz., a moral world.] 76 [On the moral proof of the existence of God, cf. the Critique of Practical Reason. Ak. V, 124-32; also the Critique of Judgment. Ak. V, 447-85 (esp. 447-53). See also W. H. Walsh, op. cit. at A 2931B 349 br. n. 1 , 229-41 . And see T. D. Weldon, op. cit. at A 211B 35 br. n. 22, 247-48.] '17[On the presupposition of a future life (immortality of the soul), cf. the Critique of Prac tical Reason, Ak. V, 122-24; also the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 460-61 , 471-75. See also T. D. Weldon, op. cit. at A 211B 35 br. n. 22, 247-48.] 7 8 [Sittlichkeit here, MoraliUit just below.] 79[See the Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals, Ak. IV, 4 1 2- 1 3 ; also the Critique of Practical Reason, Ak. V, 36-37.]
SECTION II IDEAL OF THE HIGHEST GOOD
741
side in a necessary being that, as the highest good, can alone make such a purposive unity possible. Leibniz called the world, insofar as we consider in it only the rational beings and their coherence according to moral laws under the government of the highest good, the kingdom of grace. 80 And this he distinguished from the kingdom of nature, where these beings are indeed subject to moral laws but expect from their conduct no other results than those that occur in accordance with the course of nature in our world of sense. Therefore, seeing ourselves in the kingdom of grace, where all happiness awaits us except insofar as we ourselves limit our share therein by being unworthy of happiness, is a practically necessary idea of reason. Practical laws insofar as they also become subjective bases of actions, i.e., subjective principles, are called maxims. 8 1 The judging of morality in terms of its purity and consequences occurs according to ideas, the com pliance with its laws occurs according to maxims. It is necessary that our entire way of life82 be subjected to moral max ims. But it is at the same time impossible for this to occur unless reason connects with the moral law, which is a mere idea, an efficient cause that determines for all conduct conforming t083 this law an outcome, whether in this or in another life, that corresponds exactly to our highest purposes. Hence without a God and without a world that is invisible to us now but is hoped for, the splendid ideas of morality are indeed objects of approbation and admiration, but are not incentives84 for our resolve and for our carry ing out these ideas. For they do not then fulfill the entire purpose which is natural for every rational85 being and which is determined a priori and made necessary by that same pure reason. Happiness by itself is, for our reason, far from being the complete good. For happiness is not approved by our reason (however much it may be wished for by our inclination) unless this happiness is united with worthiness to be happy, i.e., with morally good conduct. But morality by 8°[Cf. below, A 815
=
B 843.]
8 1 [Cf. the Critique of Practical Reason, Ak. V, 1 9-20, 79. See also the Grounding for the
Metaphysics of Morals, Ak. IV, 400n, 421n, 438-39, 449.] 82 [Lebenswandel.] 83[Verhalten nach.]
84[See the Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals, Ak. IV, 427; also the Critique of Prac tical Reason, Ak. V, 7 1 -72.] 85 [ve rnunftig.]
{ A 813 B 841
742
A 814 } B 842
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
itself-and with it the mere worthiness to be happy-is also far from be ing the complete good. In order for this good to be completed, the person who in his conduct has not been unworthy of happiness must be able to hope that he will partake of it. Even a reason free from any private aim and thus not taking into account an interest of its own, if it puts itself in the position of a being that had to distribute all happiness to others, cannot judge differently. For in the practical idea86 the two components are linked essentially-although in such a way that it is the moral attitude, as con dition, that first makes possible the sharing in happiness, and not, con versely, the prospect of happiness that first makes possible the moral attitude. 87 For in the latter case the attitude would not be moral, and hence would also not be worthy of fu1l88 happiness-the happiness which in rea son's view89 recognizes no other limitation than a limitation due to our own immoral conduct. Hence happiness, in exact balance with the morality of rational beings whereby these beings are worthy of happiness, alone amounts to the high est good of a world into which, according to the precepts of pure but prac tical reason, we must definitely transfer ourselves. That world, to be sure, is only an intelligible one; for the world of sense does not promise to us, as arising from the nature of things, such systematic unity of purposes. Moreover, the reality of that intelligible world cannot be based on any thing other than the presupposition of a highest original good: a good where independent90 reason, equipped with all the sufficiency of a supreme cause, establishes, preserves, and completes-according to the most perfect purposiveness-the order of things that is universal although very much concealed from us in the world of sense. Now this moral theology has over speculative theology the particular advantage of leading inevitably to the concept of a single, maximally per ject, and rational original being; speculative theology does not, from ob jective bases, even point to such a being, much less is able to convince us [of the existence] thereof. For no matter how far reason may lead us in transcendental and in natural theology, in neither of them do we find any 86[Of the complete good.] 87[See the Critique of Practical Reason, Ak. V, 1 1 3-19; also the Metaphysics of Morals, Ak. VI, 337-78.] 88[ganz.] 89[vor der Vernunft.] 90[selbstiindig.]
SECTION II IDEAL OF THE HIGHEST GOOD
743
significant basis for assuming just a single being such that we would have sufficient cause to put this being prior to9 1 all natural causes and also to make these causes in all respects dependent on it. By contrast, if we con sider from the viewpoint of moral unity, as a necessary law of the world, the cause that alone can give to this law the commensurate effect and hence also its obligating force for us, then what comprises all these laws within itself must be a single supreme will. For how could we find perfect unity of purposes among different wills? This will must be omnipotent, in order that all of nature and its reference to morality in the world may be92 sub ject to it; omniscient, in order that it may cognize the innermost core of our attitudes and their moral value; omnipresent, in order that it may be directly close to all need that the highest greatest good of the world re quires [to be satisfied] ;93 eternal, in order that this harmony of nature and freedom may at no time be lacking; etc. Thus we arrive at systematic unity of purposes in this world of intelligences94-a world that as mere nature can indeed be called only the world of sense, but that as a system of freedom can be called the intelli gible, i.e., the moral world (regnum gratiae). 95 But this systematic unity of purposes leads inevitably also to the purposive unity of all things mak ing up this large whole [as a unity] according to universal natural laws, just as the unity in the world of intelligences is one according to universal and necessary moral laws; and it thus unites practical with speculative rea son. The world must be presented by us as having arisen from an idea, if it is to harmonize with that use of reason without which we would con sider ourselves unworthy of reason, viz., the moral use, which rests en tirely on the idea of the highest good. Through this way of presenting the world, all investigation of nature acquires a direction according to the form of a system of purposes, and in its highest extension becomes physicothe ology.96 But because physicotheology started from moral order, as a unity 9 1 [Reading, with Wille, vorzusetzen for vorsetzen.) 92 ['may be' here translates sei; similarly below.) 93[we/ches das hochste We/tbeste erfordert, which (by its grammar) could also mean 'that re quires the highest greatest good of the world. ' ) 94 [Cf. A 566
=
B 594 incl. br. n . 408.)
95[Kingdom of grace; cf. above, A 8 1 2 B 840.) 96 [Cf. the Critique of Judgment Ak. V, 436-42 On this entire topic of the relation between nature's unity and morality (as well as the relation among our theoretical and our practical =
,
{ A 815 B
843
{ A 816 B
844
744
A 8l7 } B 845
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
that has its basis in the essence97 of freedom and is not brought about con tingently through external commands, it leads the purposiveness of nature to bases that must be inseparably connected a priori with the intrinsic pos sibility of things. It thereby leads nature's purposiveness to a transcenden tal theology, which adopts the ideal of the highest ontological perfection as a principle of systematic unity-a principle that connects all things ac cording to universal and necessary natural laws because all these things have their origin98 in the absolute necessity of a single original being.99 What sort of use can we make of our understanding, even as regards experience, if we do not set purposes for ourselves? But the highest pur poses are those of morality, and these are purposes that only pure reason can allow us to cognize. Now even as furnished with these moral purposes and guided by them, we still cannot make any purposive use of our ac quaintance with nature itself as regards cognition, if nature itself has not also laid down purposive unity. For without this unity we ourselves would not even have any reason, since we would have no school for it and no culture l OO [of reason] through objects that would offer to it the material for such concepts of purposes. However, the moral purposive unity is neces sary and has its basis in the essence of the power of choice itself. Hence the natural purposive unity, which contains the condition of the moral uni ty's application in concreto, must likewise be necessary. And thus the tran scendental enhancement of our rational cognition would be not the cause but merely the effect of the practical lO l purposiveness imposed on us by pure reason. Thus we do indeed find, in the history of human reason, that before the moral concepts were sufficiently purified and determined, and insight gained-and this from necessary principles-into the systematic unity of purposes according to these concepts, our acquaintance with nature and even a considerable degree of the culture of reason in various other sci ences [had very little theological significance; for in part they] could pro duce only crude and erratic concepts of the deity, and in part they left people powers and among Kant's three Critiques), see Section 15 of the Translator's Introduction to my translation of that work, cited at B xvii br. n. 73.] 97[Or 'nature' : Wesen.] 98[Ursprung.] 99 [Urwesen.] l OO[Or 'cultivation' : Kultur.] 101
[Or, i.e., moral ]
SECTION II IDEAL OF THE HIGHEST GOOD
745
with an amazing general indifference regarding this question. A greater treatment of moral ideas-which was made necessary by the extremely pure moral law of our religion-sharpened reason for dealing with this [divine] object, through the interest that this treatment compelled people to take in this object. And these moral ideas, without any contribution either from an expanded acquaintance with nature or from correct and reliable transcen dental insights (of which there has at all times been a lack), brought about a concept of the divine being that we now regard as the correct concept; and we regard it as correct not because speculative reason convinces us of this correctness, but because the concept harmonizes perfectly with rea son's moral principles. And thus in the end it is always still pure reason alone, but only in its practical use, that has the merit of connecting a cog nition lO2 to our highest interest: a cognition that mere speculation can only surmise but cannot validate. 1 03 And pure practical reason has the merit of thereby turning this cognition, not indeed into a demonstrated dogma, but still into an absolutely necessary presupposition linked with reason's most essential purposes. However, when practical reason has reached this high point, viz., the concept of a single original being as the highest good, it must by no means-just as if it had elevated itself beyond all empirical conditions of this concept.'s application and had soared to a direct acquaintance with new objects-presume to start now 1 04 from this concept and to derive from it the moral laws themselves. 105 For it was precisely these laws whose in trinsic practical necessity led us to the presupposition of an independent cause, or of a wise ruler of the world, in order to provide these laws with effect. And hence we cannot thereafter regard them in tum as contingent and as derived from a mere will, especially not from a will of which we would have no concept at all if we had not formed this concept in accor dance with those laws. As far as practical reason has the right to guide us, we shall not regard actions as obligatory because they are commands of God, but shall regard them as divine commands because we are intrinsiI02[Viz., of God. What pure practical reason connects to our highest (moral) interest is Erkennt nis (cognition), not Wissen (knowledge), which in the case of God we do not have: see A 828-29 B 856-57, and A vii br. n. 6. Cf. also A 805 B 833 inc\. br. n. 44 ] =
=
I03 [ Wahnen. aber nicht geltend machen.] 1 04 [Reading, with Hartenstein. nun for um.] I 05 [See the Critique of Practical Reason. Ak. V, 132-34.]
{ A 818 B
846
{ A 8 19 B
847
746
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
cally 1 06 obligated to them. 107 We shall study freedom in terms Of1 08 the purposive unity according to principles of reason, and shall believe that we conform to the divine will only insofar as we hold sacred the moral law which reason teaches us from the nature of the actions themselves; and we shall believe that we can serve this will solely by furthering in 109 us and in others the highest good in the world. l l o Hence moral theology is only of immanent use. It serves us, viz., to fulfill our vocation here in the world by fitting ourselves into the system of all purposes, and to keep from aban doning in a good way of life, through fanaticism or perhaps even wicked ness, the guiding thread of a morally legislating reason in order to tie this thread directly to the idea of a supreme being. For doing the latter would yield a transcendent use of reason and must-just like the use of reason in mere speculation-pervert and defeat the ultimate purposes of reason. I I I
106 [Or, possibly, inwardly: innerlich.] 1 07 [See the Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals. Ak. IV, 408-09; the Critique of Prac tical Reason. Ak. V, 127-29; and the Metaphysics of Morals. Ak. VI, 486-88.] 108 [unter.] I 09 [an.] l lo[das Weltbeste.]
III [See the Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals. Ak. IV, 443; the Critique of Practical Reason. Ak. V, 127-30; and the Metaphysics of Morals. Ak. VI, 486-91 .]
The Canon of Pure Reason Section 111 1 12 On Opinion, Knowledge, and Faith 1 l 3 Assent 1 l 4 is an event in our understanding that may rest on objective bases l l 5 but that also requires subjective causes in the mind of the person who is judging. If the assent is valid for everyone, provided that he has reason, then its basis is sufficient objectively, and the assent is then called conviction. If the assent has its basis only in the particular character11 6 of the subject, then it is called persuasion. 1 1 7
2931B 349 br. n. 2, vol. 4, 776-88. See also Norman
1 1 2 [See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 576-78.]
1 1 3[Glauben, which can also refer to belief In this section and elsewhere, Kant is concerned above all withfaith, a Glaube that is incompatible with knowledge-which is commonly de fined as belief that is true, (theoretically) justified, etc.-i.e., incompatible with Wissen. though B 850. See also not with Erke�ntnis (cognition). See Kant's definition of Glauben at A B xxx incl. br. n. and cf. A vii br. n. 6. (On this whole section, cf. the Logic, Ak. IX, 65-74.) However, because Kant here also discusses the kind of Glaube that is compatible with knowledge, I do use the noun 'belief' in places where incompatibility with knowledge is not implied. And I use the verb 'to believe' where that incompatibility is not implied or where the verbal phrase 'to have faith in' would be excessively awkward or even misleading. Given these terminological choices, one could translate the section's heading more literally, as 'On Opining, Knowing, and Believing.' However, the verb 'to opine' is at best quaint (where necessary, I use instead the phrase 'to hold an opinion'), and for the noun 'faith' there is no good verb. Besides, Kant's decision to use the verbs (as verbal nouns) does not seem to have philosophical-in particular, phenomenological-significance. He may well have used the verbs simply because in the case of knowledge there is no noun other than the verbal noun Wissen, and in the case of faith the nonverbal Glaube is, in the dative case (with Yom, 'On') indistinguishable from the verbal noun Glauben; and thus a similar use of Meinen instead of Meinung ('opining' instead of 'opinion' ) would have suggested itself.] 1 I4 [Literally, 'considering-true' : Furwahrhalten.]
822
1 22,
=
1 1 5 [Or 'grounds' : Grunden. See B xix br. n. 79.] 116 [Beschajfenheit.] 1l 7[For this contrast, cf. the Critique of Judgment, Ak. V, 461-63, also 467-73. See also the Logic, Ak. IX,
72-73.]
747
{ A 820
B 848
748
A 82 1
:r
849
}
A 822 } B 850
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
Persuasion is a mere illusion; for the judgment's basis, which lies in the subject, is regarded as objective. Hence such a judgment also has only pri vate validity, and the assent cannot be communicated. Truth, however, rests on agreement with the object; consequently, in regard to the object the judg ments of every understanding must be in agreement (consentientia uni ter tio. consentiunt inter se). 1 !S Thus, whether assent is conviction or mere persuasion, its touchstone externally is the possibility of communicating the assent and of finding it to be valid for every human being's reason. For then there is at least a presumption that the agreement II 9 of all the judg ments, despite the difference among the subjects, will rest on the common basis, viz., the object, and that hence the judgments will all agree with the object and will thereby prove the truth of the [joint] judgment. Accordingly, persuasion can indeed not be distinguished subjectively from conviction if the subject views the assent merely as an appearance of his own mind. But the assent's bases that are valid for us can be tested 120 on the understanding of others, to see whether these bases have the same effect on the reason of others that they have on ours; and this test is still a means, although only a subjective one, not indeed to bring about convic tion, but still to detect any merely private validity of the judgment, i.e., whatever in the judgment is mere persuasion. If, in addition, we can unfold the judgment's subjective causes that we take to be objective bases of it, and if we can therefore explain the decep tive assent as an event in our mind without needing the object's charac ter l 2 l for this explanation, then we expose the illusion and are no longer tricked by it. But we are still to a certain degree tempted 122 by the illusion if its SUbjective cause attaches to our nature. I cannot assert anything-i.e., pronounce it as a judgment that is nec essarily valid for everyone-unless it is something that produces convic tion. Persuasion I can keep for myself if I am at ease with it, but I cannot and should not try to make it hold apart from me. " " [If there is agreement of one (of several judgments) with (something) third (the object). then they (all the judgments) agree with one another.] 1 19 [Kant actually says 'the basis of the agreement,' apparently intending to go on to say 'will be the common basis' rather than 'will rest on the common basis.'] 1 2o[Versuch machen. ] 1 2 1 [Beschaffenheit. ] 1 22 [ versuchl ]
SECTION III OPINION, KNOWLEDGE, AND FAITH
749
Assent-or the judgment's subjective validity-in reference to convic tion (which holds [subjectively and] at the same time objectively) has the following three levels: opinion, faith, 123 and knowledge. Opinion is an as sent that is consciously insufficient both subjectively and objectively. If the assent is sufficient only subjectively and is at the same time regarded as objectively insufficient, then it is called faith. Finally, assent that is suffi cient 124 both subjectively and objectively is called knowledge. Subjective sufficiency 125 is called conviction (for myself); objective sufficiency is called certainty (for everyone). I shall not linger upon the elucidation of such readily comprehensible concepts. I must never presume to hold an opinion 126 without knowing at least something by means of which the judgment, which in itself is merely prob lematic, acquires a connection with truth; for truth, even when not com plete, is still more than an arbitrary invention. Moreover, the law of such a connection must be certain. For if in regard to this law I again have noth ing but opinion, then everything is only a play of imagination without the least reference to truth. In judgments issuing from pure reason, holding an opinion is not permitted at all. For such judgments are not supported by experiential bases. Rather, where everything is necessary, there everything is to be cognized a priori. Hence there the principle of connection requires universality and necessity,1 27 and hence complete certainty; otherwise one finds in it n'o guidance to truth. Thus holding an opinion in pure math ematics is absurd; here one must know, or refrain from all judgment. The same applies to the principles of morality, where one must not venture upon an action on the mere opinion that something is permitted, but must know this to be permitted. In the transcendental use of reason, on the other hand, holding an opin ion is indeed too little, but knowing is again too much. Hence here we cannot judge at all with a merely speculative aim. For subjective bases of assent, such as those that can bring about faith, deserve no approval in the case of speculative questions, because as used independently of all 123[Glauben. Although this term can also refer to belief, Kants definition, just below, of Glaube assent that is sufficient subjectively but not objectively fits only the term 'faith,' inasmuch as a belief at least can still also be knowledge. See br. n. 1 1 3 , just above.]
as
124[zureichend.] 12s[Zuliinglichkeit.] 126 [ZU meinen.]
1 27 [Cf. above. B 3-6 ]
{ A 823
B 85 1
750
A 824 } B 852
A 825 } B 853
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
empirical assistance they do not hold up, nor can be communicated in equal measure to others. [That leaves faith or belief.] However, only in a practical reference can the theoretically insufficient assent be called belief128 at all. Now this practical [reference or] aim is ei ther one of skill or of morality-4'Jf skill for optional and contingent pur poses, of morality for absolutely necessary purposes. Once a purpose has been set, the conditions for attaining it are hypo thetically necessary. This necessity is subjectively sufficient-yet it is so only comparatively if I do not know any other conditions whatever under which the purpose could be attained. But the necessity is sufficient abso lutely and for everyone if I know with certainty that no one can be ac quainted with any other conditions leading to the set purpose. In the first case my presupposition and the assent to certain conditions is a merely contingent belief, but in the second case it is a necessary belief. 129 A physician must do something for a patient who is in danger, but is not acquainted with the nature of the patient's illness. He observes the phe nomena and then judges, not knowing anything better to conclude, that the disease is consumption. His belief, even in his own judgment, is merely contingent; another belief might perhaps hit it better. Such belief, which is contingent but underlies our actual use of the means for certain actions, I call pragmatic belief. The usual touchstone as to whether something asserted by someone is mere persuasion, or at least subjective conviction-i.e., firm belief-is bet ting. Often someone pronounces his propositions with such confident and intractable defiance that he seems to have entirely shed all worry about er ror. A bet startles him. Sometimes the persuasion which he owns turns out to be sufficient to be assessed at one ducat, but not at ten. For although he may indeed risk the first ducat, at ten ducats he first becomes aware of what he previously failed to notice, viz., that he might possibly have erred after all. If we conceive in our thoughts the possibility of betting our whole life's happiness on something, 130 then our triumphant judgment 1 3 1 dwindles very much indeed; we then become extremely timid and thus discover for the first time that our belief does not reach this far. Thus pragmatic belief has 1 28[Or 'faith.'] 1 29 [Or 'faith.'] 130 [Something that we believe.] 1 3 1 [Or, i.e., belief.]
SECTION III OPINION, KNOWLEDGE, AND FAITH
75 1
merely a degree, which according to the difference of the interest involved may be large but may also be small. Even if we cannot undertake anything at all concerning an object, and the assent regarding it is therefore merely theoretical, we can still in many cases conceive and imagine an undertaking132 for which we suppose our selves to have sufficient bases 1 33 if there were a means of establishing the certainty of the matter. 1 34 And thus there is in merely theoretical judg ments an analogue of practical judgments, and for an assent to such judg ments the word faith 1 3 5 is appropriate. We may call this a doctrinal faith. I would indeed bet all that I own-if this matter could be established through some experience-that there are inhabitants on136 at least one of the planets that we see. Hence I say that this view-that there are inhab itants also on other worlds-is not a mere opinion but a strong faith (on whose correctness I would surely risk many of life's advantages). Now, we must admit that the doctrine of the existence of God belongs to doctrinal faith. To be sure, as regards theoretical cognition of the world 1 37 I have nothing available that necessarily presupposes this thought as a condition for my explanations of the world's appearances; rather, I am ob ligated to employ my reason as if everything were mere nature. Yet purpo sive unity is such a major condition for applying reason to nature that I cannot pass it by-[especially] since experience also provides me richly with examples of this unity. 1 3 8 But I know 1 39 no other condition for this unity that would make it my guide for the investigation of nature except the presuppo!>ition that a supreme intelligence has arranged everything in this way in accordance with the wisest purposes. Hence presupposing a wise originator of the world is a condition for an aim that is indeed contingent but still not unimportant, viz., to have guidance in the investigation of na ture. Moreover, so often is this presupposition's usefulness confirmed by \ 32 [Such as a bet.] 1 3][Or 'grounds.'] 134[l.e., !be certainty concerning !be object.] 135 [Or belief; likewise for !be remainder of !be discussion of doctrinal fai!b (which ends just after the end of A 827 B 855.] 136 [Kant actually says 'in.'] =
137 [Weltkenntnis. ] 1 38[See above. A 620-30 461-66.] 1 39 [kenne.]
=
B 648-58. See also the Critique of Judgment. Ak. V, 425-42,
{ A 826 B
854
752
A 827 } B 855
A 828 } B 856
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
the outcome of my attempts, 140 while nothing can be adduced against the presupposition in a decisive way, that I would say far too little if I warted to call my assent merely an opinion. Rather, even in this theoretical rela tion we may say that I have firm faith in a God. But this faith is then still not practical in a strict meaning of this term; rather, it must be called a doctrinal faith, to which the theology of nature (physicotheology) must nec essarily give rise everywhere. With regard to the same wisdom, and in view of the superb endowment of human nature and the shortness of life that is so incommensurate with this endowment, we can likewise find a sufficient basis for a doctrinal faith in the future life of the human soul. 1 4 1 The expression faith 142 is in such cases an expression of modesty from an objective point of view, but simultaneously of firmness of confidence from a subjective point of view. If I here wanted to call the merely theo retical assent even just a hypothesis that I am entitled to assume, I would already be promising to have a fuller concept of the character143 of a world cause and of the character of another world than I can actually show. For if I assume something even just as a hypothesis, then I must know l 44 at least so much about its properties that I need to invent not its concept but only its existence. The word faith, however, applies here only to the guid ance that an idea gives to me, and to the idea's subjective influence on the furtherance of my acts of reason-the furtherance that keeps me attached to the idea even though I am unable to account for it from a speculative point of view. The merely doctrinal faith, however, has something shaky about it; for the difficulties encountered in speculation often drive one away from this faith, although inevitably one always returns to it again. The situation is quite different with moral faith. For here there is an ab solute necessity that something must occur, viz., that I comply in all points with the moral law. Here the purpose is inescapably established, and-according to all the insight I have--only a single condition is pos sible under which this purpose coheres with the entirety of all purposes and thereby has practical validity, viz., the condition that there is a God and a 1 40[To explain nature.] l 41 [See above, A 805- 1 1
=
B 833 39.] -
142 [Emphasis added; likewise later in this paragraph.] 143[Beschaffenheit; i.e., roughly, nature.] 144[kennen.]
SECTION III OPINION, KNOWLEDGE, AND FAITH
753
future world. 1 45 I also know with complete certainty that no one else is acquainted with other conditions that lead 1 46 to the same unity of pur poses under the moral 1 47 law. But since the moral precept is thus simul taneously my maxim (as, indeed, reason commands), I shall inevitably have faith in the existence of God and in a future life. And I am sure that nothing can shake this faith; for that would overturn my moral principles themselves, which I cannot renounce without being detestable in my own eyes. In this way, even after all the ambitious aims of a reason roaming be yond the bounds of experience have been defeated, we are still left with enough in order to have cause to be satisfied from a practical point of view. No one, indeed, will be able to boast that he knows 14 8 that there is a God and that there is a future life; for if he knows this, then he is just the man that I have been looking for all along. All knowledge (if it concerns an ob ject of mere reason) can be communicated, and hence I could then hope that I might through his instruction see my own knowledge extended in such a marvelous degree. No, the conviction is not a logical but a moral certainty; and because it rests on subjective bases (of the moral attitude), I must not even say, It is morally certain that there is a God, etc., but must say, I am morally certain, etc. In other words, the faith in a God and in an other world �s so interwoven with my moral attitude that, as little as I am in danger of losing my moral attitude, so little am I worried that my faith 149 could ever be torn from me. The only precariousness to be found in this 150 is the fact that this ra tional faith is based on the presupposition of moral attitudes. If we aban don this presupposition and assume someone who is entirely indifferent with regard to moral laws, then the question posed by reason becomes merely a problem for speculation; and it can indeed still be supported then by strong bases taken from analogy, but not by bases to which the most 145 [See above, A 805-1 9
=
B 833-47.]
1 46[Reading, with Grillo and the Ako.demie edition, fiihren for fiih re.] 1 47 [moralisch here, sittlich just below.] 1 48 [wissen. Kant is denying knowledge of God, but is denying neither faith nor cognition (Er/cenntnis). Cf. A 8 1 8 B 846, and B xxx inc!. br. n. 122.] 1 9[Reading, 4 with Mellin and the Akademie edition, letztere . . . erste for erstere . . zweite.] ! ° 5 [l.e., in this account of moral faith.] =
{ A 829 B
857
754
A 830 } B 858
A 83 1 } B 859
A 830 } B 858
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
obstinate skepticism would have to yield. lSI But in these questions no hu man being is free of all interest. For although he may be separated from moral interest through a lack of good attitudes, yet enough remains even in this case to make him /ear a divine existence and a future life. For this requires nothing more than the fact that at least he cannot plead any cer tainty that no such being and no future life are to be found. This [negative proposition]-since it would have to be proved through mere reason and hence apodeictically-he could prove only by establishing that both such a being and such a future life are impossible; and certainly no reasonable human being can undertake to do that. This [faith based on fear] would be a negative faith; and although it could not bring about morality and good attitudes, it could still bring about their analogue, viz., a powerful restraint on the eruption of evil attitudes. But, it will be said, is this all that pure reason accomplishes in opening up prospects beyond the bounds of experience? Nothing more than two ar ticles of faith? Even the common understanding could presumably have ac complished as much without consulting philosophers about it! In reply, I do not here want to extol what merit philosophy has on be half of human reason through the laborious endeavor of its critique, even supposing that this merit were in the upshot deemed to be merely negative; for I shall say something more about this in the following section. 152 But do you indeed demand that a cognition which concerns all human beings should surpass the common understanding and be revealed to you only by philosophers? Precisely the point l 53 which you rebuke is the best confir mation that the assertions made thus far are correct. For it reveals what one could not have foreseen at the outset: viz., that in matters of concern to all human beings, without distinction, nature cannot be accused of par tiality in the distribution of its gifts; and that with regard to the essential purposes of human nature the highest philosophy cannot get further than 151The human mind takes (as, I believe, happens necessarily with any rational be ing) a natural interest in morality, although this interest is not undivided and not preponderant practically. Solidify and increase this interest, and you will find rea son very teachable and even further enlightened for the task of uniting with the practical interest also the speculative interest. But if you do not take care before hand to make at least halfway good human beings, then you will also never make them human beings of sincere faith. 152 [The next chapter, actually: The Architectonic of Pure Reason.] ' ''[Viz., that even the common understanding could have discovered the two articles of faith.]
CHAPTER III ARCHITECTONIC OF PURE REASON
755
can the guidance that nature has bestowed even upon the commonest understanding.
TRANSCENDENTAL DOCTRINE OF METHOD Chapter III The Architectonic of Pure Reason 154 By an architectonic I mean the art of systems. Since systematic unity is what first turns common cognition into science, I SS i.e., turns a mere ag gregate of cognition into a system, architectonic is the doctrine of what is scientific l s6 in our cognition as such; and hence it necessarily belongs to the doctrine of method. Under reason's government our cognitions as such must not amount to a rhapsody; rather, they must amount to a system, in which alone they can support and further reason's essential purposes. By a system, however, I mean the unity of the manifold cognitions under an idea. This idea is rea son's concept of the form of a whole insofar as this concept determines a priori both the range of the manifold and the relative position that the parts have among one another. Hence reason's scientific concept contains the whole's purpose and the form of the whole congruent with this purpose. I S7 1S4[See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 293/B 349 br. n 2, vol. 4, 789-820 See also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit. at A vii br. n. 5, 579-81.] l S5[Wissenscha!t.] IS6 [szienrijisch; likewise in the next paragraph.] 1 57 [Or possibly, 'with this concept: mit demselben.] ,
{ A 832 B
860
756
A 833 } B 86 1
A 834 } B 862
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
The unity characteristic of a purpose, 158 to which all the parts refer and to which in the idea of the purpose they also refer among one another, makes possible the fact that every part can be missed if the remaining parts are familiar, and the fact that there is no place for any contingent addition or indeterminate magnitude of the whole's perfection-i.e., a magnitude that does not have its a priori determined bounds. Hence the whole is struc tured (articulatio) and not accumulated (coacervatio). 1 59 It can indeed grow internally (per intus susceptionem) but not externally (per appositionem); 160 i.e., it can grow only like an animal body, whose growth adds no member but makes each member stronger and more efficient for its purposes with out any change of proportion. For its execution the idea requires a schema, i.e., an essential manifold ness as well as order of the parts that is determined a priori from the prin ciple of the purpose. A schema that is drawn up not in accordance with an idea-i.e., on the basis of reason's main purpose-but empirically, in ac cordance with aims that offer themselves contingently (whose number one cannot know in advance), yields technical unity. 161 But a schema that arises only in conformity with an idea (where reason imposes the purposes a priori and does not await them empirically) is the basis for architectonic unity. What we call science cannot arise technically, i.e., not because of the simi larity of the manifold [parts in it] or because of the contingent use of cog nition in concreto for all sorts of optional external purposes; but it can arise only architectonically, on account of the affinity [of its parts] and the deri vation [of these parts] from a single supreme and internal purpose that makes the whole possible in the first place. For the schema of what we call science must contain the whole's outline (monogramma) and the whole's division into members in conformity with the idea-i.e., it must contain these a priori-and must distinguish this whole from all others securely and according to principles. No one tries to bring about a science without having an underlying idea. But as one elaborates the idea, the schema-indeed, even the definition-that at the very outset he gives of his science corresponds very seldom to his idea. For this idea lies hidden in reason like a germ in which 158 [Einheit des Zwecks.] 1 59 [In the Latin, (by) articulation (but not by) accumulation.] 1 60[In the Latin. by internal (taking-up or) inclusion (but not) by apposition (external addi tion).] 16 1 [I.e the unity charactenstic of art (in the broad sense of this term, which includes craft).] .•
CHAPTER III ARCHITECTONIC OF PURE REASON
757
all the parts are still enfolded and barely recognizable even to microscopic observation. Hence all sciences-because they are, after all, devised from the viewpoint of a certain universal interest-must be explicated and de termined 1 62 not according to the description that their originator gives of them, but according to the idea that, judging from the natural unity of the parts that the originator has brought together, we find to have its basis in reason itself. For we shall then find that the originator of the science and often even his latest successors are wandering around an idea that they were unable to make distinct to themselves, thus being unable also to determine the science's proper content, articulation (systematic unity), and bounds. It is terrible 1 63 that only after we have, in accordance with the instruc tion of an idea lying hidden in us, for a long time collected rhapsodically as building material many cognitions referring to this idea, l 64 and indeed only after we have over long periods of time assembled these cognitions technically, we are first able to discern the idea in a clearer light and to sketch a whole architectonically in accordance with the purposes of rea son. Systems seem to have been formed, truncated at first but with time complete, by a generatio aequivoca 1 65-like vermin-from the mere meld ing 1 66 of gathered concepts, although every one of these systems had its schema, as the original germ, in the reason that was merely unfolding. Hence not only is each system by itself structured in accordance with an idea, but, in addition, all systems are in turn united purposively among one another-as members of a whole-in a system of human cognition, and thus permit an architectonic of all human knowledge. Such an architectonic-at the present time, when so much material has already been collected or can be obtained from the ruins of collapsed old edifices-would not only be possible, but indeed not even difficult. Here we settle for the completion of our task, viz., merely to sketch the architectonic of all cog nition issuing from pure reason; and we start only from the point where the general root of our cognitive power divides and thrusts forth two stems, one of which is reason. 167 By reason, however, I mean here the whole 1 62 [Or 'defined': bestimmt; likewise in the next sentence.] 1 63[schlimm.] 1 64[dahin.] 1 6S [See B 1 67 inc!. br. n. 326.] 106[ZusammenjlujJ ] 167[The other stem is sensibility.]
{ A 835 B
863
758
A 836 B 864
}
A 837 B 865
}
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
higher cognitive power, and I therefore still contrast! 68 what is rational with what is empirical. If I abstract from all content of cognition as considered objectively, then subjectively all cognition is either historical or rational. Historical cogni tion is cognitio ex datis, but rational cognition is cognitio ex principiis. ! 69 No matter how a cognition is given originally, with the person l7O who pos sesses the cognition it is still historical if he cognizes [material] only to the degree and in the amount! 7 ! given to him from elsewhere, whether this [ma terial] was given to him through direct experience, through someone's re port, or through instruction (of universal cognitions! 72). Hence someone who has (properly speaking) learned a system of philosophy (e.g., the Wolffian system) 1 73-even if he has in his mind all the principles, expli cations, and proofs, together with the division of the entire doctrinal edi fice, and could count it all on his fingers-would still have none but a com plete historical cognition of the Wolffian philosophy. He knows and judges only as much as was given to him. Dispute one of his definitions, and he will not know whence to take another. He molded !74 himself according to the reason of another person.! 75 But the reproductive l76 power is not the productive.l 77 I.e., with him the cognition did not arise from reason; and although it was objectively indeed a rational cognition, yet subjectively it is merely historical. He has well comprehended and retained, i.e., learned, and is the plaster cast of a living human being. Rational cognitions that are such objectively (i.e., that can arise initially only from a human being's own reason), may be so named subjectively as well solely if they are drawn from universal sources of reason-from which there can arise also the cri! 68 [Within this power.] ! 69 [Respectively, cognition from data and cognition from pnnciples Cf. the Logic, Ak. IX, 22.] 17°[bei dem.] 1 7 1 [SO viel.] 172 [Cf. below, near the end of the paragraph.] ! 73[See B xxxvi inc!. br. n. 1 34. (Parentheses added; likewise just above.)] ! 74[bilden. ] l 75[fremd.] I 76[nachbildend.]
1 77 [erzeugend.]
CHAPTER III ARCHITECTONIC OF PURE REASON
759
tique, and indeed even the rejection, of what has been learned-i.e., solely if these cognitions are drawn from principles. Now all rational cognition is obtained either from concepts or from the construction of concepts. The first is called philosophical, the second math ematical. The intrinsic difference between these two kinds of rational cog nition has already been dealt with in the first chapter. 178 Thus a cognition can be objectively philosophical and yet be subjectively historical. This is the case with most learners, and with all learners who never look beyond the school and remain learners all their lives. What is odd, however, is that mathematical cognition, just as one has learned it, can yet count as ratio nal 179 cognition also subjectively, and that there is with this cognition no such distinction as there is with philosophical cognition. The cause of this is the fact that the sources of cognition from which alone the teacher can draw his cognition do not lie anywhere but in the essential and genuine principles of reason; and hence the learner cannot obtain these cognitions from anywhere else, nor indeed dispute them. And this is so because here the use of reason, although performed only in concreto, occurs nonetheless a priori, viz., by reference to pure and precisely therefore faultless intu ition, and thus excludes all delusion and error. Hence among all the (a priori) rational sciences, solely mathematics can be learned. But philoso phy can never be learned (except historically); rather, as far as reason is concerned, one can at most learn only to philosophize. 1 80 Now the system of all philosophical cognition is philosophy. Philoso phy must here be taken objectively, if we mean by it the archetypel 8 1 for judging all attempts at philosophizing-the archetypel 82 that is to serve for judging any SUbjective philosophy, whose edifice is often quitel 83 diverse and changeable. Considered in this way, philosophy is a mere idea of a pos sible science that is given nowhere in concreto but that by various roads we try to approach. We try this until we discover the single path, which is heavily overgrown by sensibility, and until we succeed in making the 118 [Of the Transcendental Doctrine of Method; mainly in Section I (A 7 1 2-38 B 740-66), but also in Section IV (A 782-94 B 8 10-22). See also the Logic, Ak. IX, 22-23.] =
=
119 [Rather than merely historical.]
'BO [Cf. the Logic, Ak. IX, 23-26.]
'B' [ Urbild, i.e . • literally. 'original image.']
' 82[Reading, with Rosenkranz, welches for welche.] '83[SO.]
{ A 838 B
866
760
A 839 } B 867
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
ectypel 84-failed thus far-equal to the archetype insofar as doing this is granted to human beings. Until then philosophy cannot be learned; for where is philosophy, who possesses it, and by what can it be recognized? We can learn only to philosophize, i.e., to practice reason's talent of complying with its own universal principles upon certain already available attempts at philosophy-but always while reserving reason's right to in vestigate these principles themselves in their sources and to confinn or re ject them. Thus far, however, the concept of philosophy is only a school concept, viz., the concept of a system of cognition that is being sought only as sci ence, 1 85 and that has as its purpose nothing more than the systematic unity of this knowledge l86 and hence the logical perfection of cognition. But there is also a world concept (conceptus cosmicus) on which this name l 87 has always been based, primarily when the concept was, as it were, per sonified and conceived as an archetype in the ideal of the philosopher: From this point of view, philosophy is the science of the reference of all cogni tion to the essential purposes of human reason (teleologia rationis huma nae), 188 and the philosopher is not an artist of reason but the legislator of human reason. In such a meaning of the term it would be quite vainglo rious to call oneself a philosopher and to claim that one has come to equal the archetype, which lies only in the idea. The mathematician, the natural scientist, 189 and the logician/ 90 how ever superbly the fonner two may be progressing in rational cognition as such and the latter two in philosophical cognition in particular, are still only artists of reason. There is-as an ideal-another teacher, who assigns to all of these their tasks, and who uses them as instruments in order to fur ther the essential purposes of human reason. This teacher alone would have to be called the philosopher. However, since he himself is not to be found 184 [Or 'derivative image': Nachbild.] 18S[Wissenschajt.] 186[Wissen.] 1 "7['Philosophy.' ] 188 [Teleology of human reason.] l 8°[der Naturkiindiger (i.e , der Naturkundige).] 1 90 [Who deals, of course, not only with general but, above all, with transcendental logic: the science that determines the origin, the range, and the objective validity of rational cognitions. See A 57fB 8 1 .]
CHAPTER III ARCHITECTONIC OF PURE REASON
76 1
anywhere but the idea of his legislation is found throughout 1 9 1 in every human reason, we shall keep solely to this idea, and shall determine more closely what sort of systematic unity is prescribed by philosophy, accord ing to this world concept, 1 92 from the standpoint of purposes. Essential purposes are not yet, on that account, the highest purposes, of which (in the case of perfect systematic unity of reason) there can be only one. Hence essential purposes are either the final purpose itself or subsid iary 1 93 purposes that necessarily belong to the final purpose as means. The final purpose is none other than the whole vocation of the human being, and the philosophy concerning it is called morality. 1 94 By the same token, among the ancients the name philosopherl 95 was always used, because of this superiority of moral philosophy over all other pursuits of reason, to mean also and especially the moralist. And, indeed, even now someone's outer semblance of self-control through reason makes us-by a certain analogy-call him a philosopher, despite his limited knowledge. Now the legislation of human reason (philosophy) has two objects, na ture and freedom. 1 96 It thus contains natural law as well as moral law, ini tially in two separate philosophical systems but ultimately in a single such system. The philosophy of nature concerns everything that is, the philoso phy of morals concerns only what ought to be. All philosophy, however, is either cognition from pure reason or ratio nal cognition1 97 from empirical principles. The first is called pure and the second empirical philosophy. 198 Now, the philosophy of pure reason either is the propaedeutic (prepa ration), which investigates our power of reason with regard to all pure a 191 [allenthalben.]
191World concept here means a concept that concerns what interests everyone nec essarily. Hence I detennine the aim of a science merely according to school con cepts if the science is regarded only as a science of the skills for certain optional purposes.
19J[suballern ] ' 94 [Moral.]
' 95 [Emphasis added.] 196[See the Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals. Ak. IV, 387-88; also the Critique of judgment. Ak V. 1 7 1 -72. 174-75; and also the First Introduction to that same work, Ak. XX. 195-96. ] 1 97[Or 'cognition of reason" Vernunfterkenntnis.] 198 [See the Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals. Ak. IV. 387-89.]
{ A 840
B 868
{ A 841
B 869
762
A 842 } B 870
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
priori cognition, and is called critique; or, second, it is the system of pure reason (science), i.e., the whole (true as well as seeming) philosophical cog nition from pure reason in its systematic coherence, and is called meta physics. 1 99 This latter name, however, may also be given to the whole of pure philosophy, including critique, in order to encompass therein the in vestigation of all that can ever be cognized a priori, as well as the expo sition of what makes up a system of pure philosophical cognitions of this a priori kind while differing from all empirical and likewise from the math ematical use of reason. Metaphysics is divided into that of the speculative and that of the prac tical use of pure reason, and thus is either metaphysics of nature or meta physics of morals. 200 The metaphysics of nature contains all pure prin ciples of reason, based on mere concepts (hence excluding mathematics),20 1 of the theoretical cognition of all things.202 The metaphysics of morals con tains the principles that a priori determine and make necessary our doing and refraining. 203 Now morality204 is the only law-govemedness of ac tions that can be derived completely a priori from principles. Hence the metaphysics of morals205 is, in fact, a pure morality,206 i.e., one in which no anthropology (no empirical condition) is used as a basis,z°7 Now, the metaphysics of speculative reason is what is usually called metaphysics in the narrowe,z°8 meaning of the term. But insofar as the pure doctrine of morals209 belongs nonetheless to the same special stem of human and, in 199[See above, A xix-xxi, A IO-161B 24-30.] 200 [See the Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals. Ak. IV, 388-89; also the Metaphysics of Morals, Ak. VI, 205.] 20 1 [Both commas added.] 202[See above, A xxi; also the Prolegomena. Ak. III, 295; the Metaphysics of Morals, Ak. VI. 2 14-1 5 ; and the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak. IV, 469-70.] 203[See the Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals, Ak. IV, 388-92: also the Metaphysics of Morals. Ak. VI, 205-06, 214-18.] 204[Moralitiit.] 205 [Sitten.] 206[Moral.] 207[See the Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals. Ak. IV, 388-9 1 ; also the Metaphysics of Morals. Ak. VI, 2 1 7-1 8.] 208[engeren; the fourth edition has eigenen. i.e., ·proper.'] 209[Sitteniehre.]
CHAPTER III ARCHITECTONIC OF PURE REASON
763
particular, philosophical cognition from pure reason, we shall keep for it also that name? l O Here, however, we set it aside as not pertaining to our purpose now. It is of the utmost importance to isolate cognitions that differ from one another in type and origin, and to keep them carefully from melding into a mixture with other cognitions to which they are customarily linked in use. What chemists do in separating kinds of matter l l and what mathema ticians do in their pure doctrine of magnitudes212 is far more incumbent still on the philosopher, in order that he can reliably determine the share that a particular kind of cognition has in the roaming use of the under standing, i.e., determine its own value and influence? 13 Hence human rea son, ever since it has been thinking2 1 4 or-rather-meditating,215 has never been able to dispense with a metaphysics, yet has nonetheless been unable to expound one that was sufficiently purified of everything extraneous. The idea of such a science is j ust as old as speculative human reason; and what reason is there that does not speculate, whether such speculation be done in a scholastic or in a popular manner? One must admit, however, that the differentiation between the two elements of our cognition, of which one is in our control completely a priori and the other can be obtained only a pos teriori from experience, remained only very indistinct even among think ers by trade. Hence this differentiation was never able to bring about the determination of the bounds for a special kind of cognition, nor, therefore, the genuine idea of a science that has so long and so greatly occupied hu man reason. When people2 1 6 said that metaphysics is the science of the first principles of human cognition, they were indicating not a quite special kind of cognition but only a status of cognition in regard to generality. Hence metaphysics could not thereby be differentiated discernibly2 17 from the em pirical. For even among empirical principles some are more general and 2IO['Metaphysics.'] 2 11 [M aterien.] 2 1 2 [Grojleniehre, i.e., mathematics .]
21 3[Cf. the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak. IV, 472-73, 477-78.] 2 1 4[denken.] 2 I S [nachdenken.]
2 16[man.] 2 17[kenntlich.]
{ A 843 B 87 1
764
A 844 } B 872
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
therefore higher than others; and where, in the series of such a subordina tion of principles (when what is cognized completely a priori is not differ entiated from what is cognized only a posteriori) is one to draw the line that differentiates the first part and thus the highest members from the last part and the subordinate members? What would one say if our chronology could designate the world's epochs only by dividing them into the first cen turies, on the one hand, and the subsequent centuries, on the other? Does the fifth or the tenth century, etc . , also still belong to the first centuries ?-one would ask. In the same way I ask: Does the concept of the extended belong to metaphysics? You answer: Yes ! Ah, but also the concept of a body? Yes ! And the concept of a fluid body? You become perplexed; for if this continues, then everything will belong to metaphys ics. We see from this that the mere degree of subordination (of the par ticular under the general) cannot determine any bounds of a science, but such bounds can be determined-in our case-only by complete hetero geneity and complete difference of origin. However, what obscured the basic idea of metaphysics on yet another side2 1 8 was the fact that, as a priori cognition, it manifests a certain homogeneity with mathematics. This homogeneity does indeed make them akin219 to each other as re gards their a priori origin. But consider now the kind of cognition in volved: viz., cognition from concepts, in the case of metaphysics, as com pared to the kind of cognition where a priori judgments are made only by constructing concepts, in the case of mathematics; and hence consider the difference between a philosophical and a mathematical cognition. 22o We can then see a very definite heterogeneity; and although this hetero geneity has always been felt, as it were, no one has ever been able to bring it to distinct criteria. And hence it came about that, because phi losophers themselves failed in their attempt to develop the idea of their science, the treatment of this science could have no determinate purpose and no secure guideline. Thus philosophers-by dealing with a project brought about so arbitrarily, and being ignorant concerning the path that they would have to take, and also being always at odds with each other concerning the discoveries that each claimed to have made on his own 2l" [l.e., other than the side where it contrasts with what is empirical.) 2 l 9 [Reading. with Hartenstein. verwandt macht for verwandt ) 220 [See above. A 7 1 2-38/8 740-66 )
CHAPTER III ARCHITECTONIC OF PURE REASON
765
path-brought their science into contempt, at first among others and fi nally even among themselves. Thus all pure a priori cognition, by virtue of the special cognitive power in which alone this cognition can reside, makes up a special unity; and metaphysics is the philosophy that is to exhibit that cognition in this sys tematic unity. Now, the speculative part of metaphysics, which has espe cially appropriated this name, is the metaphysics that we call metaphysics of nature and that considers everything on the basis of concepts insofar as it is (rather than what ought to be). 22 1 And this part of metaphysics is di vided in the following manner. Metaphysics in this narrower meaning of the term consists of transcen dental philosophy and the physiology of pure reason. Transcendental phi losophy (ontologia)222 contemplates only our understanding and reason themselves in a system of all concepts and principles referring to objects as such, without assuming objects223 that are given. 224 The physiology of pure reason contemplates nature, 225 i.e., the sum of given objects (whether given to the senses or, for that matter, to some other kind of intuition),226 and hence is physiology (although only physiologia rationalis)?27 How ever, the use of reason in this rational contemplation of nature is either physical or hyperphysica1?28 or-better yet-either immanent or transcen dent. Reaso�'s immanent use deals with nature insofar as the cognition thereof can be applied in appearance (in concreto)?29 Reason's transcen dent use deals with that connection of objects of experience which sur passes all [possible] experience?30 This latter, transcendent physiology, 221 [See above, A 1O- 1 6/B 24-30.] 222[Ontology.] 223 [Objekt here; Gegenstand just above and just below. See A vii br. n. 7.] 224 [I.e., referring to (really) possible objects (a priori) rather than to actual objects (a poste riori). ] 225[In accordance with the root meaning of 'physiology.'] 226[See B 72 incl. br. n. 1 83.] 221 [Rational physiology.] 228 [I .e., natural or supranatural.] 229[This was treated above, in the Transcendental Aesthetic and in the Transcendental Ana lytic.] 230[This was treated above, in the Transcendental Dialectic.]
{ A 845 B
873
{ A 846 B
874
766
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
then, has as its object either an internal or an external connection; both of these, however, go beyond possible experience. The first kind of transcen dent physiology is the physiology of the entirety of nature; i.e., it is tran scendental cosmology. 23 1 The second kind is the physiology of the link232 of the entirety of nature with a being above nature; i.e., it is transcenden tal theology. 233 Immanent physiology, on the other hand, contemplates nature as the sum of all objects of the senses, and hence as nature is given to us, but does so only according to a priori conditions under which nature can be given to us at all. There are, however, only two kinds of objects of this physiol ogy: 234 ( 1 ) The objects of the outer senses, and hence the sum of these ob jects, corporeal nature. (2) The object of the inner sense, i.e., the soul, and-according to the basic concepts of the soul as such-thinking nature. The metaphysics of corporeal nature is called physics, but more specifically-because physics is to contain only the principles of its a priori cognition-rational physics. The metaphysics of thinking nature is called psychology, and is to be understood-because of the just mentioned re striction to a priori cognition235-as including only psychology's rational cognition. 236 Accordingly, the entire system of metaphysics consists of four main parts: ( 1 ) Ontology. (2) Rational physiology. (3) Rational cosmology. 237 (4) Rational theology. 23 8 The second part, viz., the natural science239 of 2 31 [Literally, 'cognition of the world': Welterkenntnis. treated above. in the Antinomies. Kant presumably meant to say 'transcendent' rather than 'transcendental.' (Likewise for theology, just below.)] 232 [Zusammenhang.] 2 33[Literally, 'cognition of God': Gotteserkenntnis, treated above, especially in the fourth an tinomy and in the Ideal of Pure Reason. (Emphasis on 'transcendental' added, following Erdmann and the Akademie edition.)] 234[See the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak. IV, 467-73.] 2 35[Kant says only 'for the just mentioned reason ( 'cause,' literally): aus der eben ange fohrten Ursache.] 236 [In other words, rational psychology. ] 2 37[Rationale Kosmologie.] 2 38[Rationale Theologie.] 239[Narurlehre ]
CHAPTER III ARCHITECTONIC OF PURE REASON
767
pure reason, contains two divisions in tum: physica rationalis24o and psy chologia rationalis. 241
The original idea of a philosophy of pure reason prescribes by itself this entire division. Hence the division is carried out architectonically, i.e., in conformity with pure reason's essential purposes, and not merely techni cally, i.e., according to contingently perceived kinships and, as it were, hap hazardly. But precisely therefore it also is immutable and has legislative authority. 242 Here we find some points, however, that may arouse qualms and may weaken one's conviction concerning the division's being law governed. First, how can I expect there to be an a priori cognition-and hence a metaphysics--of objects insofar as they are given to our senses and thus a posteriori? And how is cognizing the nature of things and arriving at a ra tional physiology possible according to a priori principles? The answer is this: we take from experience nothing more than what is needed to give us an object either of outer or of inner sense. The Object of outer sense is given through the mere concept of matter (impenetrable, inanimate extension); the object of inner sense is given through the concept of a thinking be ing243 (in the empirical inner presentation I think244). [For this, then, we need these two concepts.] Otherwise we would have to abstain entirely, in the whole metaphysics of these objects, from using any empirical prin�et no one think that I mean by this what is commonly called physica gener alis, and what is closer tob mathematics than to philosophy of nature. For the meta a
physics of nature is entirely set apart from mathematics, and also cannot offer nearly so many expansive cognitions as mathematics can. But the metaphysics of nature is very important nonetheless in view of the critique which it provides of the un derstanding'S pure cognition as such that is to be applied to nature. Lacking such critique, even mathematicians-inasmuch as they adhere to certain concepts that are common but are in fact still metaphysical-have inadvertently burdened natu ral science with hypotheses that vanish upon a critique of these [metaphysical] prin ciples, yet do so without in the least impairing the (quite indispensable) use of math ematics in this field. "[General physics.] b[mehr. ] 24 1 [Rational physics, rational psychology.] 242 [legislatorisch.] 24' [See the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science. Ak. IV, 467-72; also above, A 265-661B 3 2 1 -22. A 277-781B 333-34.]
244[Emphasis added. ]
{ A 847 B
875
{ A 848 B
876
768
A 849 } B 877
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
ciples that seek to supplement the concept with some experience in order to judge from this experience something concerning these objects. Second, what becomes of empirical psychology, which has all along maintained its place in metaphysics, and from which people245 have ex pected great things in our times for the enlightenment of metaphysics, once they had abandoned their hope for anything suitable to be accom plished there a priori? I answer: empirical psychology goes where the proper (empirical) natural science must be put, viz., on the side of ap plied philosophy, whose a priori principles are contained in pure philoso phy. But although pure philosophy must thus be linked with applied phi losophy, it must not be mixed up with applied philosophy. Hence empirical psychology must be banished entirely from metaphysics, and is wholly excluded from it by the very idea of metaphysics. Nonetheless, in accor dance with scholarly usage,246 one will still have to allow it a little place in metaphysics (although only as a digression)-viz., from economic mo tives. For empirical psychology is not yet rich enough to make up a field of study by itself, 247 and yet is too important to be expelled entirely or attached somewhere else, where it might encounter even less kinship than in metaphysics. It is, therefore, merely a stranger whom one puts up for a while and grants residence for some time, until he can move into his own lodging in a comprehensive anthropology (the pendant to empirical natural science). 248 This, then, is the general idea of metaphysics. Because people249 ini tially required more from metaphysics than can legitimately be demanded, and for some time took delight in agreeable expectations, they ultimately found their hopes betrayed; and thus metaphysics fell into general con tempt. From the entire course of our critique, the reader250 will have become sufficiently convinced that although metaphysics cannot be the foundation of religion, it must yet always remain in place as the bulwark of religion. And he will have become convinced that human reason, which is dialectical already by the very direction of its nature, can never dispense 245[man.] 246 [Schulgebrauch.] 247 [See the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science, Ak. IV, 47 1 ] 248 [Kant's own empirical psychology is contained mainly in his Anthropology, Ak VII ] 249[man.] 250 [man.]
CHAPTER III ARCHITECTONIC OF PURE REASON
769
with a science curbing it and keeping away from it, through a scientific and completely evident self-cognition, the devastations that a lawless specu lative reason would otherwise quite unfailingly wreak in both morality and religion. Hence even if those who are able to judge a science solely by its contingent effects-rather than by its nature-may act very demurely or disdainfully, we251 may be sure that we shall always return to metaphysics as we would to a beloved woman252 with whom we have had a quarrel. For here253 the concern is with essential purposes, and hence reason must work tirelessly either toward thorough insight or toward the destruction of [allegedly] already present good insights. Properly speaking, therefore, the metaphysics of nature and the meta physics of morals-but, above all, as preceding metaphysics as its prepa ration (propaedeutic), also the critique of the reason venturing forward on its own wings-alone make up what can be called philosophy in the genu ine meaning of the term. Philosophy refers everything to rthe goal of] wis dom. But it does so by the path of science-the only path that, once opened, is never overgrown and permits no straying. Mathematics, natural science, and even our empirical cognition254 of the human being have a high value as means to purposes of humanity-for the most part to contingent pur poses but in the end still to essential purposes of humanity. But in the latter case they have this value only through the mediation of a rational cognition from mere concepts that-no matter what we call it-is in fact nothing but metaphysics. Precisely therefore metaphysics is also the completion of all culture255 of human reason, which is indispensable even if the influence that meta physics has as a science on certain determinate purposes is set aside. For metaphysics contemplates reason in terms of reason's elements and high est maxims that must underlie the very possibility of some sciences and the use of all sciences. The fact that metaphysics, as mere speculation, serves more to prevent errors than to expand cognition does not impair its value, but rather gives to metaphysics dignity and authority through the cen251 [man.] 252 [eine Geliebte. In German, the word 'metaphysics' is likewise feminine in gender; cf. A viii-ix.] 2S3 [In metaphysics.) 2S4[Kenntnis.] 2SS [Or 'cultivation' : Kultur.)
B 878 A 850
{ A 851 B
879
770
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
sor's office that it operates?S6 This office secures the general order and the concord. and indeed the prosperity of the scientific community, and keeps that community's daring and fertile works from deviating from the main purpose, viz., the general happiness.
256 [durch das Zensoraml.]
TRANSCENDENTAL DOCTRINE OF METHOD
{ A 852
B 880
Chapter IV The History of Pure Reason257 This heading is258 here only in order to mark a place in the system that still remains and that must be filled in the future. I shall here settle for cast ing a cursory glance-from a merely transcendental point of view, viz., that of the nature of pure reason-upon the whole of the works produced by pure reason thus far. This whole does indeed present edifices to my eye, but only in ruins. It is a quite259 remarkable fact--even though by nature it could not have happened differently-that in philosophy's infancy human beings started from the point where we would now prefer to end: they started, viz., by studying their cognition of God26o and their hope for another world,26 1 or perhaps even the character of such a world. However coarse may have been the concepts of religion introduced by the ancient usages that still re mained from the crude state of peoples, this still did not prevent the more enlightened part [of humanity] from devoting itself to free investigations on this topic.262 And these people263 easily saw that there can be no more thorough264 and reliable way of pleasing the invisible power ruling the world, in order to be happy at least in another world, than through good 2S 7[See Heinz Heimsoeth, op. cit. at A 2931B 349 br. n. 2, vol. 4, 821-88. See also Norman Kemp Smith, op. cit at A vii br. n. 5, 582. And cf. the Logic, Ak. IX, 27-33.] 2S 8[steht. ] 259 [genug.] 260[1 e., what came to be called theology.] 26 1 [I.e , heaven.] 262 [Or, perhaps, 'concerning this [religious ] object' (viz., God): uher diesen Gegenstand.] 263 [man; likewise in the next sentence.] 264[Reading, with Rosenkranz, grundlichere for grundliche.] 77 1
{ A 853
B 88 1
772
A 8S4 } B 882
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
conduct. Thus theology and morality were the two incentives-or, better yet, points of reference-for all abstract rational investigations to which people have afterwards at all times devoted themselves. But it was in fact theology that little by little drew the merely speculative reason into the busi ness that later became so famous under the name of metaphysics. I shall not now distinguish the time periods in which this or that change in metaphysics came about, but shall only depict265 in a cursory sketch the difference in the idea of metaphysics that occasioned the main revolutions. And there I find the following three respects in which the most notable changes in this contest arena were brought about. 1 . As regards the object of all our rational cognitions, some metaphy sicians were merely sensualist philosophers266 and others merely intellec tualist philosophers. Epicurus may be called the foremost philosopher of sensibility, Plato of the intellectual [realm] . But this distinction of schools, however subtle it is, had already begun in earliest times; and it maintained itself uninterrupted for a long time. The philosophers of the sensualist school asserted that actuality is to be found only in the objects of the senses, and that everything else is imagination. Those of the intellectualist school, by contrast, said that in the senses there is nothing but illusion, and that only the understanding267 cognizes what is true. Yet the sensualists did not by any means therefore deny reality to the concepts of understanding; but this reality was for them only logical, whereas for the intellectualists268 it was mystical. The sensualists granted intellectual concepts, but assumed only sensible objects. The intellectualists required the true objects to be merely intelligible, and asserted that there is an intuition through a pure understanding unaccompanied by any senses, which in their opinion merely confuse this understanding.269 2. As regards the origin of pure rational cognitions, as to whether they are derived from experience or have their origin independently of experi ence, viz., in reason. Here Aristotle may be regarded as head of the empiricists, Plato of the nooJogists. In modem times, Locke has followed 265 [darstellen.] 266 [l.e., philosophers of sensibility; cf. just below.] 267[l.e., the intellect.] 26 8 [lnstead of 'sensualists' and 'intel1ectualists' Kant actual1y says merely die ersteren and die anderen (i.e., 'the first' and 'the others'). Similarly in the remainder of the paragraph, where Kant actual1y says merely jene and diese (i.e., 'the former' and 'the latter' ).] 269[Cf. B 72 inc\. br. n. 1 83.]
CHAPTER IV HISTORY OF PURE REASON
773
Aristotle, and Leibniz has followed Plato (although keeping sufficient dis tance from Plato's mystical system); however, Locke and Leibniz have not yet been able to bring about a decision in this contest. As regards Epicu rus270 (inasmuch as in his inferences he never went beyond the boundary of experience), he at least proceeded far more consistently in accordance with his sensualist system than did Aristotle and Locke (but above all Locke). For although Locke derives all concepts and principles from ex perience, in their use he goes as far as to assert that the existence of God and the immortality of the soul can be proved with the same [degree of] evidence as can any mathematical theorem (even though both objects271 lie entirely outside the bounds of possible experience)?72 3. As regards method. If something is to be called a method, then it must be a procedure in accordance with principles. Now, the method that cur rentll73 prevails in this field-i.e., in the investigation of nature--can be divided into the naturalistic and the scientific274 method. The naturalist of pure reason adopts as his principle the view that, as regards the most au gust275 questions making up the problem of metaphysics, more can be ac complished through common reason without science276 (he calls this sound reason) than through speculation. He maintains, therefore, that the size and distance of the moon can be determined more reliably by eye than through mathematical detours. But this is mere misology brought to principles; and-what is most absurd-the neglect of all artificial means is here be ing extolled as a special method for expanding one's cognition. For as re gards those who are naturalists for lack of more insight, they cannot with any basis be blamed. They follow common reason without boasting of their ignorance as a method that is held to contain the secret for drawing277 the 270[The Athenian philosopher (mentioned repeatedly by Kant throughout this Critique), 342-270 B.C., who was much admired by David Hume.]
c.
27 I [I.e., God and the soul.] 272 [Cf. B 1 27-28. For Locke's assertion regarding the existence of God, see An Essay Con cerning Human Understanding, Bk. IV, ch. x. I (cf. 5 and 6); for his assertion regarding the immortality of the soul-though without the comparison to mathematics asserted by Kant-see ibid Bk. IV, ch. iv, 1 5 (cf. ch. iii, 6).] .•
273 Uetzt.] 274 [szientifisch.] 27' [Or 'sublime' : erhaben. ] 276[Wissenschaft.] 277 r_hnlorl
1
{ A 855 B
883
774
A 856 B 884
}
PART II DOCTRINE OF METHOD
truth from the deep well of Democritus. 278 Quod sapio, satis est mihi; non ego curo esse quod Arcesilas aerumnosique Solones-Pers. 279-is their motto, with which they can live cheerfully and laudably without worrying about science or confounding its business. Now as regards those who observe a scientific method, they have the choice here of proceeding either dogmatically or skeptically; but in any case they have the obligation to proceed systematically. If fo�8o the dogmatic method I here mention the illustrious WOlff 281 and for the skeptical method David Hume, then I can-as far as my current aim is concerned-leave the others unmentioned. The critical path282 alone is still open. If the reader has had the kindness and the patience to travel along283 this path in my company, and if it pleases him to contribute his share toward turning this path284 into a highway, then he may now judge whether what many cen turies have been unable to accomplish might not still be achieved before the end of the present one: namely. to bring human reason to complete sat isfaction in what has always-although thus far in vain-engaged its de sire to know.
27 8 [The Greek atomist philosopher, c. 460-c. 370 B.C., from Abdera in Thrace. The reference may be to Fragment 1 17 . Cf. G. S. Kirk and 1. E. Raven, The Presocratic Philosophers: A Critical History with a Selection of Texts (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1957), 424.]
279 [Persius, Satires, iii, 78-79: "What I know is enough for me; I do not care to be an Arcesi las or one of those poor wretches of Solon." Arcesila(u)s, 3 1 6-241 B.C Greek philosopher. is considered to be the founder of the Middle Academy. Solon, c. 630-c. 560 B.C., Athenian statesman, reformer, and poet, is the most famous of the Seven Wise Men of Greece.] .•
28°[in Ansehung; likewise just below.]
28 1 [See above, B xxxvi br. n. 134.] 282 [Weg. ] 283 [durch_.] 284 [FujJsteig. ]
SELECTED B IBLIOGRAPHY
A. 1.
EDITIONS OF THE GERMAN '!EXT Original Editions
Critik der reinen Vemunft von Immanuel Kant.
1st ed. Riga: Johann Friedrich Hart
knoch, 1 78 1 .
Critik der reinen Vemunft von Immanuel Kant.
2d ed., with occasional improve
ments. Riga: Johann Friedrich Hartknoch. 1787.
Critik der reinen Vemunft von Immanuel Kant.
3d, 4th eds. Riga: Johann Friedrich
Hartknoch, 1 790, 1 794.
Critik der reinen Vernunft von Immanuel Kant.
5th, 6th, 7th eds. Leipzig: Johann
Friedrich Hartknoch, 1799, 1 8 1 8 , 1 828.
2.
Principal Nineteenth-Century Editions
Immanuel Kant s siimmtliche Werke.
Eds. Karl Rosenkranz and Friedrich Wilhelm
Schubert. 14 vo1s. Leipzig: L. Voss, 1 838-42. Vol. 2, ed. Karl Rosenkranz, 1 838.
Immanuel Kant's Werke. Carefully revised complete edition in ten vols. Edited, with a preface, by Gustav Hartenstein. Leipzig: Modes und Baumann, 1 838-39. Vol. 2, 1 838.
Immanuel Kant s Kritik der reinen Vernunft.
Ed. Gustav Hartenstein. Leipzig: L.
Voss, 1 853.
Immanuel Kant's siimmtliche Werke.
In chronological order. 8 vo1s. Ed. Gustav
Hartenstein .. Leipzig: L. Voss, 1 867-69. Vol. 3, 1 867.
Immanuel Kant s Kritik der reinen Vernunft.
Ed. Gustav Hartenstein. Leipzig: L.
Immanuel Kants Kritik der reinen Vernunft.
Edited, elucidated, and provided with
Voss, 1 868.
a biography of Kant, by Julius Hennann von Kirchmann. Philosophische Bi-
775
776
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
bliothek, vol. 2. Berlin: L. Heimann, 1 868. 8th ed., rev. by Theodor Va1entiner. Philosophische Bibliothek, vol. 37. Leipzig: F. Meiner; Leipzig: Diirr, 1 90 1 . Kritik der reinen Vernunft. Text of the 1 7 8 1 edition, supplemented by all the de viations in the 1787 edition. Ed. Karl Kehrbach. Leipzig: P. Reclam jun., 1 877. Newly edited by Raymund Schmidt. Reclams Universa1-Bibliothek. Leipzig: P. Reclam jun., 1 924. Immanuel Kant's Kritik der reinen Vernunft. Ed. Benno Erdmann. Leipzig: L. Voss, 1 878. Immanuel Kants Kritik der reinen Vemunft. Edited, with an introduction and com ments, by Erich Adickes. Berlin: Mayer & Miiller, 1 889. Immanuel Kants Kritik der reinen Vemunft. Edited, with an introduction as well as person and subject indexes, by Karl Vorllinder. Halle/Saale: Otto Hendel, 1 899.
3.
Principal Twentieth-Century Editions
Kants gesammelte Schriften. Kaniglich PreuBische Akademie der Wissenschaften.
Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter & Co. and Predecessors, 1 902-. Vol. 3, containing the second original edition, ed. Benno Erdmann, 1 904. Vol. 4, con taining the first original edition up to and including the Paralogisms, ed. Benno Erdmann, 1903. Electronic editions of vols. 1-9 for IBM-compatible comput ers. Bonn: IKS [Institut fiir angewandte Kommunikations- und Sprachfor schung e.V., Poppelsdorfer Allee 47, W-5300 Bonn I , Germany. Fax 02 28-73 56 39], 1 990-91 . Kants siimtliche Werke. Edited, i n association with Otto Buek, Paul Gedan, Walter Kinkel, Friedrich Michael Schiele, and Theodor Valentiner, by Karl Vorlander. 10 vols. Philosophische Bibliothek. Leipzig: F. Meiner, 1 904-22. Vol. 37, newly edited by Theodor Valentiner, 1 9 1 3 . Vol. 37a, newly edited, from the first and second original editions, by Raymund Schmidt. Leipzig: F. Meiner, 1926. Re printed, with a bibliography by Heiner Klemme. Hamburg: F. Meiner, 1 990. Immanuel Kants Werke in acht Buchem. Selected, and provided with an introduc tion, by Hugo Renner. 8 books in 2 vols. Berlin: Weichert, 1 904, 1 92 1 . Vol. I , books 2 and 3. Immanuel Kants Werke. Edited, jointly with Hermann Cohen, Artur Buchenau, Otto Buek, Albert Garland, and Benzion Kellermann, by Ernst Cassirer. 1 1 vols. Ber lin: Bruno Cassirer, 1 9 1 2-23. Reprinted: Hildesheim: H. A. Gerstenberg, 1973. Vol. 3, ed. Albert Garland, 1 9 1 3, 1922, 1973. Immanuel Kants siimtliche Werke. Ed. Felix Gross. GroBherzog Wilhelm-Ernst Aus gabe. 6 vols. Leipzig: Inselverlag, 1 9 1 3, 1 920-23. Vol. 3, 1 9 1 3, 1920. Kritik der reinen Vemunft. Ed. Ingeborg Heidemann. Rec1ams Universal-Bibliothek. Stuttgart: Rec1am, 1 966, 1 985, 1989. Immanuel Kant. Werke. 1 2 vols. Theorie-Werkausgabe. Ed. Wilhelm Weischedel. FrankfurtlMain: Suhrkamp, 1 968, 1 977. Vols. 3-4. Previously issued as Werke in zehn Biinden. 10 vols. Darmstadt: Wissenschaftliche Buchgesellschaft, 1 968. Vols. 3-4. Originally issued as Werke in sechs Biinden. 6 vols. Wiesbaden: In selverlag; Darmstadt: Wissenschaftliche Buchgesellschaft: 1 956-64. Vol 2. 1956.
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY B. 1.
777
PREVIOUS ENGLISH TRANSLATIONS Complete Editions
Critick of Pure Reason. Trans. Francis Haywood. London: W. Pickering, 1 838. 2d ed., as Critique of Pure Reason, with notes and explanation of terms. London: W. Pickering, 1 848.
Critique of Pure Reason. Trans. J.M.D. Meiklejohn. London: Henry G. Bohn, 1 855. (Several subsequent editions by various publishers.) Introduced by A. D. Lind say. London: J. M. Dent; Rutland, Vt.: C. E. Tuttle, 199 1 . Revised and ex panded ed. by Vasilis Politis. London: Everyman, 1993. Immanuel Kant's Critique of Pure Reason. In commemoration of the centenary of its first publication. Trans. F. Max Milller. With an historical introduction by Lud wig Noire. 2 vols. London: Macmillan, 1 8 8 1 . 2d, revised ed. London: Mac millan, 1 896, 1 924; New York: Macmillan, 1 949. Anchor Books. Garden City, N.Y.: Doubleday: 1 966. Critique of Pure Reason. Trans. Norman Kemp Smith. London: Macmillan; New York: St. Martin, 1 929. 2d impression with corrections. London: Macmillan; New York: St. Martin, 1 933, 1 989.
2.
Abridged Editions
Text-Book to Kant: The Critique of Pure Reason. Aesthetic, Categories, Schema tism: Translation, reproduction, commentary, index, with a biographical sketch, by James Hutchison Stirling. Edinburgh: Oliver and Boyd, 1 88 1 ; New York, G. P. Putnam, 1 882. Reprinted. London: Routledge/Thoemmes Press, 1 993. Critique of Pure Reason. Trans. Norman Kemp Smith. Abridged ed. New York: Modem Library, 1958 (1 929). Critique of Pure Reason-Concise Text. Trans. Wolfgang Schwarz. New faithful terminologically improved translation exhibiting the structure of Kant's argu ment in thesis and proof, with introduction and glossary. Aalen: Scientia, 1 982. Kant's Critique ofPure Reason: An Introductory Text. Abridged translation by Hum phrey Palmer. Cardiff: University College Cardiff Press, 1983. Reprinted as
Kant 's Critique of Pure Reason: An Abridged Translation for College Students. Lewiston, N.Y. : E. Mellen, 1 992.
C.
EARLY TEXTUAL CRITICISM BY AUTHORS CITED IN THIS TRANSLATION
Erdmann, Benno. Beitriige zur Geschichte und Revision des Textes von Kants Kri tik der reinen Vernunft. Appendix to Erdmann's 5th edition of the Critique. Ber lin: G. Reimer, 1900. ed. Nachtriige zu Kants Kritik der reinen Vernunft. From Kant's NachlafJ (Posthumous Writings). Kiel: Lipsius & Tischer, 188 1 . Frederichs, Friedrich. Der phiinomenale Idealismus Berkeley 's und Kant 's. Eine kritisch-philosophische Abhandlung. Berlin: Bahlke & Hindersin, 187 1 .
-_,
778
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
Grillo, Friedrich. "Druckfehleranzeige in den Schriften des Herrn I. Kant." Phi
losophischer Anzeiger der Annalen der Philosophie und des philosophischen Geistes. Ed. L. H. Jakob. Items 37-40. Halle and Leipzig: 1795. Meyer [no first name]. "Berichtigung." Correction of Grillo's index of printing errors. Ibid. Item 54. Leclair, Anton von. "Textkritische Bemerkungen zu Kants Schriften." In his Kritische Beitriige zur Kategorienlehre Kants. With an appendix. Prague: Tempsky, 1 877, 104-5. Lehmann, Gerhard. "Nachtrage zur Kritik der reinen Vernunft." In the Akademie edition's Vorarbeiten und Nachtriige, part of the NachlafJ (Posthumous Writ ings), vol. 23, 15-49. (See Kants gesammelte Schriften above, under heading A, 3.) Mellin, Georg Samuel Albert. Marginalien und Register zu Kants Critik der
Erkenntnissvermogen; zur Erleichterung und Beforderung einer Vemunfterkennt niss der critischen Philosophie aus ihrer Urkunde. 2 vols. Ziillichau: F. From
mann, 1794-95, vol. I . Newly edited by Ludwig Goldschmidt. Gotha: E. F. Thienemann, 1900-1902, vol. I (1900). Reprinted. Brussels: Culture et Civili sation, 1968. Reprinted. Aalen: Scientia, 1969, 1 973, vol. 1 . Noire, Ludwig. His introduction to F. Max Miiller's translation ( 1 8 8 1 ) of the Cri tique. (See above, under heading B, 1 .) Vaihinger, Hans. "Notiz, den Kanttext betreffend." Philosophische Monatshefte. 17 ( 1 88 1), 298-99. . "Siebzig textkritische Randglossen zur Analytik." Kant-Studien, 4 ( 1 900), 452-63. Wille, Emil. "Conjecturen zu Kants Kritik der reinen Vernunft." Kant-Studien, 4 ( 1900), 3 1 1-15. . "Conjecturen zu mehreren Schriften Kants." Kant-Studien, 8 ( 1 903), 337-39. . "Neue Conjecturen zu Kants Kritik der reinen Vernunft." Kant-Studien, 4 ( 1 900), 448-5 1 . . " Uber einige Textfehler i n Kants Widerlegung des Idealismus." Kant Studien. 5 ( 1901 ), 123-24. . "Verbesserung einiger Stellen in Kant's Kritik der reinen Vernunft." Phi losophische Monatshefte. 26 ( 1 890), 399-403. __
__
__
__
__
D. 1.
REFERENCE WORKS ON KANT Dictionaries, Indexes, Materials, and Pagination-Coordinators
Caygill, Howard. A Kant Dictionary. Oxford and Cambridge, Mass.: Blackwell, 1995. Diemer, Alwin. Gesamtregister der Kant-Studien. MeisenheimlGlan: A. Hain, 1 969-70. Eisler, Rudolf. Kant-Lexikon. Nachschlagewerk zu Kants siimtlichen Schriften, Briefen und handschriftlichem NachlafJ. Edited in collaboration with the Kant Gesellschaft. Berlin: E. S. Mittler, 1 930. Reprinted. Hildesheim: G. Olms, 1 961 , 1989; New York: B. Franklin, 197 1 .
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
779
Heinicke, Samuel. Worterbuch zur Kritik der reinen Vemunft und zu den philoso phischen Schriften von Herm Kant. Presburg: P. U. Mahler, 1788. Reprinted. Brussels: Culture et Civilisation, 1968. Hinske, Norbert, and Weischedel, Wilhelm. Kant-Seitenkonkordanz. Darmstadt: Wissenschaftliche Buchgesellschaft, 1970. Kopper, Joachim, and Malter, Rudolf, eds. Materialien zu Kants Kritik der reinen Vemunft. FrankfurtlMain: Suhrkamp, 1975, 1980. Martin, Gottfried. Allgemeiner Kantindex zu Kants gesammelten Schriften. Edited in collaboration with Ingeborg Heidemann, Hugo Moser, Gerold Ungeheuer, Heinz Unger, Leo Weissgerber. Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter, 1967-. . Sachindex zu Kants Kritik der reinen Vemunft. Revised by Dieter-1iirgen Uiwisch. Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter, 1967. Mellin, Georg Samuel Albert. Enzyklopiidisches Worterbuch der kritischen Phi __
losophie, oder Versuch einerfaJ3lichen und vollstiindigen Erkliirung der in Kants kritischen und dogmatischen Schriften enthaltenen Begriffe und Siitze. Accom panied by information, elucidations, and comparisons from the history of phi losophy, and ordered alphabetically. 6 vols. Ziillichau, Leipzig: F. Frommann, 1797-1 804. Reprinted. Brussels: Culture et Civilisation, 1968; Aalen: Scientia, 1 970-7 1 . Ratke, Heinrich. Systematisches Handlexikon zu Kants Kritik der reinen Vernunft. Philosophische Bibliothek, vol. 37b. Leipzig: F. Meiner, 1929. Reprinted. Ham burg: F. Meiner, 1972, 1 99 1 . Reuscher, John A . A Concordance to the Critique of Pure Reason. New York: P. Lang, 1 993. Roser, Andreas, and Mohrs, Thomas, eds. Kant-Konkordanz. For the works of Im manuel Kant in vols. 1 -9 of the Akademie edition (see Kants gesammelte Schriften above, under heading A, 3.). Edited with the collaboration of Frank R. BOmcke. With a preface by Wilhelm Liitterfelds. 1 0 vols., 2 completed. Hildesheim, Zurich, and New York: Dims-Weidmann, 1 992-. Schmid, Carl Christian Erhard. Worterbuch zum leichtem Gebrauch der Kanti schen Schriften. Jena: Croker, 1788. 4th, enl. ed. Jena: Croker, 1798. Reprinted. Brussels: Culture et Civilisation, 1974. Newly edited and provided with a per son index by Norbert Hinske. Darmstadt: Wissenschaftliche Buchgesellschaft, 1976, 1980. Stockhammer, Morris. Kant Dictionary. New York: Philosophical Library, 1972. Wegner, Gustav. Kantlexikon. Ein Handbuchfor Freunde der Kant'schen Philoso phie. Berlin: Wiegandt & Schotte, 1 893.
2.
Bibliographies of Books and Articles, from Past to Present
Adickes, Erich. German Kantian Bibliography. Boston: Ginn, 1 895-96. Reprinted. Wiirzburg: A. Liebing, 1 970. Boswell, Terry. "A Bibliography of English Translations of Kant. " Kant-Studien. 82 ( 1991), 228-47.
780
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
Brugger, Walter. " Scholastische (und an der christlichen Philosophie orientierte) Lite ratur zu Kant seit 1920." In Kant und die Scholastik heute. Ed. Johannes Bap tist Lotz. Pullach b. Miinchen: Verlag Berchmanskolleg, 1 955, 256-74. Klemme, Heiner. His selected bibliography for the Critique. In Kant's Kritik der reinen Vernunft. Philosophische Bibliothek, vol. 37a. Hamburg: F. Meiner, 1990, 767-9 1 . Landau, Albert. Rezensionen zur Kantischen Philosophie 1 781 -87. Bebra: A . Lan dau, 199 1 . Malter, Rudolf. "Selected Kant Bibliography. " In Cooperation with Achim Ktid derrnann. Technical editing, Olav Wiegand. In Proceedings of the Sixth Inter national Kant Congress. Held at Pennsylvania State University, 1985. Eds. Gerhard Funke and Thomas M. Seebohm. 2 vols. in 3. Washington, Lanham, Md., and London: Center for Advanced Research in Phenomenology & Uni versity Press of America, 1 989-9 1 , vol. 1 , 257-341 . Meyer, Till, and Wiegerling, Klaus. " Kant-Artikel 1977-87. " Kant-Studien, 82 ( 1991), 1 1 9-28. Reicke, Rudolf. "Kant-Bibliographie fiir die Jahre 1 890-94 . " Altpreussische MonatsschriJt, 32 (1 895), 555-612. Rtihrl, Wolfgang. "Bibliographie zum Thema 'Transzendentale Argumente. ' " In
Bedingungen der Moglichkeit: "Transcendental arguments " und transzenden tales Denken. Ed. Eva Schaper and Wilhelm Vossenkuhl. Stuttgart: Klett-Cotta, 1984. Walker, Ralph C. S. A Selective Bibliography on Kant. Oxford: Sub-Faculty of Phi losophy, Oxford University, 1975, 1 978. Wiegerling, Klaus. "Kant-Artikel 1986-87." Kant-Studien, 81 ( 1 990), 392-99. Wiistehube, Axel. "Neuere Literatur zur theoretischen Philosophie Kants ( 1 976-86)." Bibliography edited by the Forum fiir Philosophie, Bad Homburg. In Kants transzendentale Deduktion und die Moglichkeit von Transzendental philosophie. FrankfurtlMain: Suhrkamp, 1988, 303-22.
3.
Bibliographies of Books and Articles, Continuing
Malter, Rudolf. "Bibliographie der deutschsprachigen Kant-Literatur 1957-67. Kant-Studien, 60 ( 1 969), 234-64, 540-41 . . "Kant-Bibliographie 1968." Kant-Studien, 61 ( 1 970), 536-49. . "Kant-Bibliographie 1969." Kant-Studien, 62 (1 97 1 ), 527-42. . "Kant-Bibliographie 1 965-69. " In Proceedings of the Third International Kant Congress. Held at the University of Rochester, March 30-April 4, 1 970. Ed. Lewis White Beck. Dordrecht: D. Reidel Pub. Co., 1 972, 16-46. . "Kant-Bibliographie 1970." Kant-Studien, 63 ( 1 972), 5 1 5-34. . "Kant-Bibliographie 1 971 ." Kant-Studien, 64 ( 1 973), 520-36. . " Kant-Bibliographie 1972." Kant-Studien, 65 ( 1 974), 49 1-5 14. . "Kant-Bibliographie 1973 . " Kant-Studien, 67 ( 1 976), 1 20-40. . "Kant-Bibliographie 1974." Kant-Studien, 68 (1977), 2 1 7-73. . "Kant-Bibliographie 1975." Kant-Studien, 69 (1978), 472-5 1 5 . . "Kant-Bibliographie 1976-78." Kant-Studien, 7 2 ( 1 9 8 1 ), 207-55. __
__
__
__
__
__ __ __
__
__
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
78 1
. "Kant-Bibliographie 1 979-80." Kant-Studien. 74 ( 1983). 97-1 3 1 . . "Kant-Bibliographie 1 9 8 1 . " Kant-Studien. 76 ( 1 985). 480-5 14. . "Kant-Bibliographie 1982." Kant-Studien. 78 ( 1 987). 23 1-58. . "Kant-Bibliographie 1983-84." Kant-Studien. 78 ( 1987), 340- 8 1 . . "Kant-Bibliographie 1985 ." Kant-Studien. 78 ( 1987), 498-5 14. . "Kant-Bibliographie 1986." Kant-Studien. 79 ( 1 988), 499-5 1 7 . . "Kant-Bibliographie 1987." Kant-Studien. 8 0 ( 1 989), 499-5 1 6. . "Erganzungen zur Kant-Bibliographie 1 985-87." Kant-Studien. 8 1 ( 1 990), 1 1 7-25. . "Kant-Bibliographie 1988." Kant-Studien. 81 ( 1 990). 496-5 1 5 . . "Kant-Bibliographie 1989." Kant-Studien. 82 ( 1991), 491-5 1 3. . "Kant-Bibliographie 1 990." Kant-Studien. 83 ( 1 992). 487-509. . "Kant-Bibliographie 1 9 9 1 . " Kant-Studien. 84 ( 1 993), 481-510. . "Kant-Bibliographie 1992." Kant-Studien. 85 ( 1 994), 485-508. . "Kant-Bibliographie 1993." Kant-Studien. 86 ( 1 995), 487-5 1 1 .
__
__
__
__
__
__
__
__
__
__
__
__ __
__
Bibliographies of Dissertations Beck, Lewis White. "Doctoral Dissertations on Kant Accepted by Universities in 4.
the United States and Canada, 1 879-1980." Kant-Studien. 73 ( 1 982), 96- 1 1 3 . Gabel, Gemot U . Immanuel Kant. Eine Bibliographie der Dissenationen aus den deutschsprachigen Liindem. 1 900- 75. Hamburg: Gemini, 1980. 2d, enlarged ed., as Immanuel Kant. Ein Verzeichnis der Dissertationen aus den deutsch sprachigen Liindem. 1 900-80. Cologne: Gemini, 1987. . "Canadian Theses on Kant, 1950-75." Kant-Studien. 74 ( 1 983), 373-77. . "Canadian Theses on Kant, 1 976-85." Kant-Studien. 80 ( 1 989). 246-148. . Kant: An Index to Theses and Dissenations Accepted by Universities in Canada and the United States. 1879- 1985. Cologne: Gemini, 1 989. . "Theses on Kant Accepted by Universities in Australia and New Zealand, 191 8-87." Kant-Studien 8 1 ( 1 990), 5 16-17. Heismann, Giinter. "Dissertationen zur Kantischen Philo sophie 1 954-76." Kant Studien. 70 ( 1 979), 356-81 . Lehmann, K . H., and Horst, Hermann. "Dissertationen zur Kantischen Philosophie [ 1 885-1953]. Kant-Studien. 5 1 ( 1959-60), 228-57.
__
__
__
__
E.
OTHER WORKS BY KANT CITED IN THIS TRANSLATION
Volume and page numbers refer to the original texts in the Akademie edi tion. The index lists these works under their English titles, as given here. Announcement That a Treatise on Perpetual Peace in Philosophy Is Nearly Com pleted (Verkiindigung des nahen Abschlusses eines Traktats zum ewigen Frieden in der Philosophie). Vol. 8. 4 1 1 -22.
782
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
Anthropology from a Pragmatic Point of View (Anthropologie in pragmatischer Hinsicht). Vol. 7, 1 1 7-333. Critique of Judgment (Kritik der Urteilskraft). Vol. 5, 165-485. Critique of Practical Reason (Kritik der praktischen Vernunft). Vol. 5, 1-163. First Introduction to the Critique ofJudgment (Erste Einleitung zur Kritik der Urteilskraft). Vol. 20, 193-25 1 .
Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals (Grundlegung zur Metaphysik der Sitten). Vol. 4, 385-463. Lectures on Metaphysics (Vorlesungen iiber Metaphysik), Vol. 28, 1-987. Logic (Logik). Vol. 9, 1 - 1 50. Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science (Metaphysische Anfangsgriinde der Naturwissenschaften). Vol . 4, 465-565. Metaphysics of Morals (Metaphysik der Sitten). Vol. 6, 203-493. The Mistaken Subtlety of the Four Syllogistic Figures (Die falsche Spitl,/indigkeit der vier syllogistischen Figuren). Vol . 2, 45-6 1 . New Elucidation o f the First Principles o f Cognition i n Metaphysics (Principorum primorum cognitionis metaphysicae nova dilucidatio. Vol. I , 385-416. The Only Possible Basis of Proof for Demonstrating the Existence of God (Der einzig mogliche Beweisgrund zu einer Demonstration des Daseins Gottes). Vol . 2, 63-1 63.
On the Form and Principles of the Sensible and Intelligible World (De mundi sen sibilis atque intelligibilis forma et principiis). Vol. 2, 385-419. On the Progress of Metaphysics since Leibniz and Wolff ( Ober die Fortschritte der Metaphysik seit Leibniz und Wolff ). Vol. 20, 253-35 1 . Opus postumum. Vol. 2 1 , 1 -645, and vol. 22, 1 -825. Preliminary Studies and Supplementary Entries (Vorarbeiten und Nachtrage). Vol. 23, 1-545. Cf. Nachtrage zu Kants Kritik der reinen Vernunft (Supplementary Entries to Kant's Critique of Pure Reason). Ed. Benno Erdmann. Kiel: Lipsius & Tischer, 1 88 1 . Included as vol. 2 in Reflexionen Kants zur kritischen Phi losophie (Kant's Reflections on Critical Philosophy). From Kant's handwritten notes. 2 vols. Leipzig: Fues (R. Reisland), 1 882-84. This larger work reedited and provided with an introduction by Norbert Hinske. Stuttgart-Bad Canstatt: Frommann-Holzboog, 1 992.
Prolegomena to Any Future Metaphysics . . . (Prolegomena zu einer jeden kiinfti gen Metaphysik . . . ). Vol. 4, 253-383. Reflections on Logic (Reflexionen zur Logik). Vol. 16, 1-875. Reflections on Metaphysics (Reflexionen zur Metaphysik). Vol. 17, 1 -745, and vol. 1 8, 1-725.
Universal Natural History and Theory of the Heavens (Allgemeine Naturge schichte und Theorie des Himmels), Vol. I , 21 5-368.
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY F.
783
SOURCES FROM OR CONCERNING THE ANCIENT BACKGROUND THAT ARE CITED IN THIS TRANSLATION
Aristotle. Topics. With a translation by E. S. Forster. In Aristotle's Posterior Ana lytics, Topica. With translations by Hugh Tredennick and E. S. Forster. Loeb Classical Library. London: William Heinemann Ltd.; Cambridge, Mass.: Har vard University Press, 1 966 (1 960), 265-739. Diogenes Laertius. The Lives of Eminent Philosophers. With a translation by R. D. Hicks. 2 vols. Loeb Classical Library. Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press, 1 958-59. Horace. The Epistles. Trans., with brief comment, by Colin Macleod. Rome: Edi zioni dell' Ateneo, 1986. Lucan. The Civil War. With a translation by J. D. Duff. Loeb Classical Library. Cam bridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press, 1 962. Ovid. Metamorphoses. With a translation by Frank Justus Miller. 2 vols. 2d ed. Loeb Classical Library. Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press, 1966-68. Persius. The Satires of Persius. With a verse translation by Guy Lee. Introduction and commentary by William Barr. Wolfeboro, N.H., and Liverpool: F. Cairns, 1987. Plato. The Republic. Trans. G.M.A. Grube. Indianapolis: Hackett Publishing Co., 1974. Kirk, Geoffrey Stephen, and Raven, John Earle. The Presocratic Philosophers: A Critical History with a Selection of Texts. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1 957. Vergil. The Aeneid. Trans. C. Day Lewis. Garden City, N.Y.: Doubleday, 1 953. . Eclogues. Trans. C. Day Lewis. London: J. Cape, 1963. __
G.
SOURCES FROM OR CONCERNING THE SEVENTEENTH- AND EIGHTEENTH-CENTURY BACKGROUND THAT ARE CITED IN THIS TRANSLATION
Anderson, Lorin. Charles Bonnet and the Order of the Known. Dordrecht and Bos ton: D. Reidel Pub. Co., 1982. Bacon, Francis. Instauratio magna. London: John Beale, 1620. Beattie, James. An Essay on the Nature and Immutability of Truth, in Opposition to Sophistry and Scepticism. Edinburgh: Kincaid & J. Bell, 1770. Reprinted. New York: Garland Pub., Inc., 1 983. Berkeley, George. A New Theory of Vision. Reprinted in A New Theory of Vision and Other Writings. With an introd. by A. D. Lindsay. London: J. M. Dent & Sons, Ltd.; New York, E. P. Dutton & Co., 1 9 1 0. . The Principles of Human Knowledge. Edited, with an analysis and appen dix, by T. E. Jessop. London and New York: T. Nelson and Sons, Ltd., 1942.
__
784
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
. Siris: A Chain ofPhilosophical Reflexions and Inquiries Concerning the Vir tues of Tar Water. 2d ed., improved and corrected by the author. Dublin: M.
__
Rhames for R. Gunne; London: for W. Innys, C. Hitch, and C. Davis, 1 744. . Three Dialogues between Hylas and Philonous. La Salle, Ill.: Open Court, 1 969. Bonnet, Charles. Contemplation de la nature. 2d ed. Amsterdam: Marc-Michel Rey, 1764. Brucker, Johann Jakob. Historia critica philosophiae, a mundi incunabulis ad nos tram usque aetatem deducta. 5 vols. Leipzig and Bern: Christoph Breitkopf, 1 742-44. Descartes, Rene. Meditations on First Philosophy. Trans., with an introduction, by Laurence J. Lafleur. 2d, rev. ed. New York: The Bobbs-Merrill Company, 1 960. Hales, John. Several Tracts. London[?]: [n.p.], 1 677. Haller, Albrecht von. Die Alpen. Revised by Harold T. Betteridge. Berlin: Akademie Verlag, 1 959. Hieron, Samuel. Works. London: W. Stansby and J. Beale, 1 634-35. Hume, David. Dialogues Concerning Natural Religion. Ed., with a commentary, by Nelson Pike. Indianapolis: The Bobbs-Merrill Company, 1970. . An Enquiry Concerning Human Understanding. Ed., with an introduction, by Eugene Freeman. La Salle, Ill.: Open Court Publishing Company, 1 907. 2d ed., 1 966. . A Treatise ofHuman Nature. . Ed., with an analytical index, by L. A. Selby Bigge. 2d ed. Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1 888. Kluge, Friedrich, and Seebold, Elmar, eds. Etymologisches Worterbuch der deut schen Sprache. Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter, 1989. Leibniz, Gottfried Wilhelm. Discourse on Metaphysics. In Leibniz' Discourse on Metaphysics and other Essays. Ed. and trans. Daniel Garber and Roger Ariew. Indianapolis: Hackett Publishing Co., 1 99 1 . . Nouveaux essais sur l'entendement humain. Chronology and introduction by Jacques Brunschwig. Paris: Flammarion, 1966, 1 990. Locke, John. An Essay Concerning Human Understanding. Ed. J. W. Yolton. 2 vols. New York: E. P. Dutton Campany, 196 1 . Lovejoy, Arthur O . The Great Chain of Being: A Study of the History of a n Idea. The William James Lectures Delivered at Harvard University, 1933. Cam bridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press, 1936. Mendelssohn, Moses. Phiidon, oder uber die Unsterblichkeit der Seele. In Ge sammelte Schriften, Jubiliiumsausgabe. Berlin: 1929-32. Photomechanically re produced. Hamburg: F. Meiner, 1979. Priestley, Joseph. Disquisitions Relating to Matter and Spirit, and The Doctrine of Philosophical Necessity Illustrated. New York: Garland Pub., Inc., 1976. "Ramee, Pierre de la." In the Encyclopaedia Britannica. 1 1th edition. New York: The Encyclopaedia Britannica Company, 1 9 1 1 . Vol. 22, 88 1 . Segner, Johann Andreas von. Anfangsgrunde der Arithmetik. 2d ed. Halie/Saale: Renger, 1773. Translated from the Latin original, Elementa arithmeticae, geome triae et calculi geometric;. Halle/Saale: Renger, 1 756, 1 767. __
__
__
__
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
785
Sulzer, Johann Georg. Allgemeine Theorie der Kiinste. Treated in individual ar ticles arranged in the alphabetical order of the artistic terms. 2d ed. 5 vols. Leipzig: Weidmann, 1792-99. Reprinted, with an introduction by Giorgio Tonelli. Hildesheim: G. Dims, 1967. Terrasson, Jean. La Philosophie applicable a tous les objets de I 'esprit et de la rai son. Ouvrage en reflexions dhachees. Paris: Prauit, 1754. German translation.
Philosophie nach ihrem allgemeinen Einflusse auf aile Gegenstiinde des Gei stes und der Sitten. Berlin: [n.p.] , 1762. Vleeschauwer, Herman Jean de. La Deduction transcendantale dans l 'oeuvre de Kant. 3 vols. [Vol. I ( 1934) used the spelling transcendentale.] Antwerp: De Silekel; Paris: Champion; The Hague: M. Nijhoff, 1 934-37. Reprinted. New York and London: Garland Pub., Inc., 1976.
H.
SECONDARY SOURCES CITED IN THIS TRANSLATION
Allison, Henry E. Kant's Transcendental Idealism: An Interpretation and Defense. New Haven and London: Yale University Press, 1983, 1 986. Ameriks, Karl. Kant's Theory of Mind: An Analysis ofthe Paralogisms of Pure Rea son. Oxford: Clarendon Press; New York: Oxford University Press, 1 982. Beck, Lewis White. "Can Kant's Synthetic Judgments Be Made Analytic?" in Kant Studien, 47 ( 1 955), 168-8 1 . Reprinted in Beck's Studies in the Philosophy of Kant. Indianapolis and New York: The Bobbs-Merrill Company, 1 965. Re printed. Westport, Conn.: Greenwood Press, 1 98 1 . . Essay� on Kant and Hume. New Haven and London: Yale University Press, 1978. Bird, Graham. Kant's Theory of Knowledge: An Outline of One Central Argument in the Critique of Pure Reason. London: Routledge & Kegan Paul, 1 962; New York: Humanities Press, 1962, 1 973. Brittan, Gordon G., Jr. Kant's TheO/y of Science. Princeton: Princeton University Press, 1978. Buchdahl, Gerd. Metaphysics and the Philosophy of Science: The Classical Ori gins, Descartes to Kant. Oxford: Blackwell; Cambridge, Mass.: MIT Press, 1969. Reprinted. Lanham, Md.: University Press of America, 1988. Cassirer, Heinrich Walter. Kant's First Critique: An Appraisal of the Permanent Sig nificance of Kant's Critique ofPure Reason. London: Allen & Unwin; New York: Macmillan, 1 954. Reprinted. London: Allen & Unwin and New York: Humani ties Press, 1968; New York: Humanities Press, 1978. Ellington, James W. Translator's Introduction to Kant's Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science. In Immanuel Kant, Philosophy of Material Nature. India napolis: Hackett Publishing Co., 1985, v-xxix. "The Unity of Kant's Thought in His Philosophy of Corporeal Nature." In Ellington's translation of the Prolegomena and the Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science: Immanuel Kant, The Philosophy of Material Nature. India napolis: Hackett Publishing Co., 1985. Book II, 1 35-219. __
-_.
786
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
Findlay, John N. Kant and the Transcendental Object: A Hermeneutic Study. Ox ford: Clarendon Press; New York: Oxford University Press, 198 1 . Garnett, Christopher B., Jr. The Kantian Philosophy of Space. New York: Colum bia University Press, 1 939. Reprinted. Port Washington, N.Y.: Kennikat Press, 1 965. Gram, Moltke S., ed. Interpreting Kant. With an introduction. Iowa City: Univer sity of Iowa Press, 1 982. ed. Kant: Disputed Questions. With an introduction and new translations. Chicago: Quadrangle Books, 1967. 2d ed. Atascadero, Calif.: Ridgeview Pub lishing, 1 984. Kant, Ontology, and the A Priori. Evanston: Northwestern University Press, 1968. Guyer, Paul. Kant and the Claims of Knowledge. Cambridge and New York: Cam bridge University Press, 1987. Heimsoeth, Heinz. Transzendentale Dialektik. Ein Kommentar zu Kants Kritik der reinen Vernunft. 4 vols. Berlin: Walter de GlUyter, 1 966-7 1 . The volumes carry the following dates and titles. Vol. 1 (1 966): Ideenlehre und Paralogismen. Vol. 2 ( 1 967): Vierfache Vernunftantinomie. Natur und Freiheit; intelligibler und em pirischer Charakter. Vol. 3 (1969): Das Ideal der reinen Vernunft; die speku __ ,
__ .
lativen Beweisarten vom Dasein Gottes; dialektischer Schein und Leitideen der Forschung. Vol. 4 ( 1 97 1 ) : Die Methodenlehre. With an epilogue and an index for all four volumes. Kemp Smith, Norman. A Commentary to Kant's 'Critique of Pure Reason. ' London: Macmillan, 1918. 2d, rev. and enl. ed. London: Macmillan, 1923. Reprinted. New York: Humanities Press, 1 962; Atlantic Highlands, N.J.: Humanities Press In ternational, 1 992. Martin, Gottfried. Kant 's Metaphysics and Theory of Science. Trans. P. G. Lucas. Manchester: Manchester University Press, 1955, 1 96 1 . Reprinted. Westport, Conn.: Greenwood Press, 1974. Translation of Immanuel Kant, Ontologie und Wissenschaftstheorie. Cologne: KOlner Universitiits-Verlag, 1 95 1 . 4th ed., rev. and enl. by a third part. Berlin: Walter de Gruyter, 1969. Melnick, Arthur. Kant's Analogies of Experience. Chicago and London: University of Chicago Press, 1 973. . Space, Time, and Thought in Kant. Dordrecht and Boston: Kluwer Aca demic Publishers, 1989. Paton, Herbert James. "Is the Transcendental Deduction a Patchwork?" In Kant: Disputed Questions. Ed. Moltke S. Gram. Chicago: Quadrangle Books, 1 967, 62-9 1 .
__
. Kant's Metaphysic of Experience: A Commentary on the First Half of the "Kritik der reinen Vernunft. " 2 vols. London: Allen & Unwin, 1936. Reprinted.
__
New York: Humanities Press; London: Harvester Press, 1970, 1 984; London: Allen & Unwin, 1 976. "The Key to Kant's Deduction of the Categories." In Kant: Disputed Ques tions. Ed. Moltke S. Gram. Chicago: Quadrangle B ooks, 1 967, 247-68 .
__.
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
787
Pluhar, Werner S. "How to Render Zweckmiij3igkeit in Kant's Third Critique." In Interpreting Kant. Ed. Moltke S . Gram. Iowa City: University of Iowa Press, 1 982, 85-98. . Translator's Introduction to his translation of Immanuel Kant's Critique of Judgment. Indianapolis: Hackett Publishing Co., 1 987, xxiii-cix. Powell, C. Thomas. Kant 's Theory of Self-Consciousness. Oxford: Clarendon Press; New York: Oxford University Press, 1 990. Swing [or Seung], Thomas K. Kant 's Transcendental Logic. New Haven: Yale Uni versity Press, 1 969. Vaihinger, Hans. Commentar zu Kants Kritik der reinen Vernunft. On the work's hundredth anniversary. 2 vols. Vol. 1 : Stuttgart: W. Spemann, 1 88 1 . Vol 2: Stutt gart, Berlin, Leipzig: Union Deutsche Verlagsgesellschaft, 1 892. 2d ed., as Kom mentar zu Kants Kritik der reinen Vernunft. 2 vols. Stuttgart: Union Deutsche Verlagsgesellschaft, 1 922. Reprinted, ed. Raymund Schmidt. 2 vols. Aalen: Sci entia, 1 970; New York and London: Garland Pub., Inc., 1 976. . "The Transcendental Deduction of the Categories in the First Edition of the Critique of Pure Reason." In Kant: Disputed Questions. Ed. Moltke S. Gram. Chicago: Quadrangle Books, 1 967, 23-6 1 . Walsh, William Henry. Kant's Criticism of Metaphysics. Edinburgh: Edinburgh Uni versity Press, 1 975; Chicago: Chicago University Press, 1 976. Watson, Walter. The Architectonics of Meaning: Foundations of the New Plural ism. Albany: State University of New York Press, 1 985. Reprinted, with a new preface. Chicago: University of Chicago Press, 1 993. Weizsacker, Carl Friedrich von. The Unity of Nature. Trans. Francis J. Zucker. New York: Farrar Straus Giroux, 1 980. Translation of Die Einheit der Natur. Studien. Munich: Carl Hanser Verlag, 1 97 1 , 1 979. Munich: Deutscher Taschenbuch Verlag, 1 983. Weldon, Thomas Dewar. Kant's Critique of Pure Reason. 2d ed. Oxford: Claren don Press, 1 958, 1 964. Reprint of Introduction to Kant's Critique of Pure Rea son. Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1 945, 1 947. Wolff, Robert Paul. Kant's Theory of Mental Activity: A Commentary on the Tran scendental Analytic of the Critique ofPure Reason. Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press, 1963. Gloucester, Mass.: P. Smith, 1 973.
__
__
I.
ADDITIONAL B OOK-LENGTH SECONDARY SOURCES IN ENGLISH AND SOME FOREIGN LANGUAGES
Because of the enonnous quantity of the secondary literature concerning the Critique of Pure Reason, this section does not include individual ar ticles. Infonnation concerning articles can be found in the bibliographies listed in section D above.
788
1.
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY Kant's Philosophy
Adickes, Erich. Kant und die Als-Ob-Philosophie. Stuttgart: Fr. Frommans Verlag (H. Kurtz), 1 927. Reprinted. Wiirzburg: Jal, 1972; Vaduz, Liechtenstein: Topos, 1 978. Bauch, Bruno. Immanuel Kant. Leipzig: G. J. Goschen, 1 9 1 1 . 3d, em. ed., supple mented with an appendix. Berlin and Leipzig: Walter de Gruyter, 1 920, 1 923. Beck, Lewis White. Early German Philosophy: Kant and His Predecessors. Cam bridge, Mass.: Belknap Press of Harvard University Press, 1969. , ed. Kant Studies Today. La Salle, Ill.: Open Court, 1 969. , ed. Proceedings of the Third International Kant Congress. Held at the Uni versity of Rochester, March 30-April 4, 1970. Dordrecht: D. Reidel Pub. Co., 1 972. . Studies in the Philosophy of Kant. Indianapolis: The Bobbs-Merrill Com pany, 1965. Reprinted. Westport, Conn.: Greenwood Press, 1 9 8 1 . Bencivenga, Ermanno. My Kantian Ways. Berkeley: University of California Press, 1995. Boutroux, Emile. La Philosophie de Kant. Paris: J. Vrin, 1 926, 1968. Broad, Charlie Dunbar. Kant: An Introduction. Ed. C. Lewy. Cambridge and New York: Cambridge University Press, 1978. Brook, Andrew. Kant and the Mind. Cambridge and New York: Cambridge Uni versity Press, 1 994. Buchdahl, Gerd. Kant and the Dynamics of Reason: Essays on the Structure of Kant's Philosophy. Oxford, U.K., and Cambridge, Mass.: Blackwell, 1992. Buhr, M anfred. Groj3e und Grenzen der Philosophie Immanuel Kants. Berlin: Akademie-Verlag, 1 975. Caird, Edward. The Critical Philosophy of Immanuel Kant. 2 vols. Glasgow: J. Mac1ehose & Sons; New York: Macmillan, 1 889. 2d ed. Glasgow: J. Mac1ehose & Sons, 1909. Reprinted. New York: Kraus Reprint Corp., 1968; Amsterdam: Rodopi, 1969. Cassirer, Ernst. Kant 's Life and Thought. Trans. James Haden. Introduction by Stephan Komer. New Haven and London: Yale University Press, 1 9 8 1 , 1983. Translation of Kants Leben und Lehre. Berlin: B . Cassirer, 1 9 1 8. 2d ed. Berlin: B. Cassirer, 1 92 1 . Reprinted. Darmstadt: Wissenschaftliche Buchgesellschaft; New Haven: Yale University Press, 1 975. Reprinted. Darmstadt: Wissenschaftli che Buchgesellschaft; Hildesheim: H. A. Gerstenberg, 1977. Chadwick, Ruth E, ed. Immanuel Kant: Critical Assessments. Edited by Ruth E Chadwick and Clive Cazeaux. 4 vols. London and New York: Routledge, 1 992. Crampe-Casnabet, Michele. Kant: Une Revolution philosophique. Paris: Bordas, 1989. Dancy, R . M., ed. Kant and Critique: New Essays in Honor of W. H. Werkmeister. Dordrecht and Boston: Kluwer Academic Publishers, 1993. Delekat, Friedrich. Immanuel Kant. Historisch-kritische Interpretation der HauptschriJten. Heidelberg: Quelle & Meyer, 1963. 2d, greatly enl. ed. Heidel berg: Quelle & Meyer, 1 966. 3d, rev. ed .. Heidelberg: Quelle & Meyer, 1969. __
__
__
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
789
Deleuze, Gilles. Kant's Critical Philosophy: The Doctrine of the Faculties. Trans. Hugh Tomlinson and Barbara Habberjam. London: Athlone Press; Minneapo lis: University of Minnesota Press, 1985 (©1984). Translation of La Philoso phie critique de Kant: Doctrine des facultes. Paris: Presses universitaires de France, 1963, 1 99 1 . Den Duden, Bernard, ed. Moen, Marcia, assoc. ed. New Essays on Kant. Frankfurt! Main, Bern, New York, and Paris: P. Lang, 1987. Erdmann, Benno. Immanuel Kant. Bonn: F. Cohen, 1 904. Farr, Wolfgang, ed. Hume und Kant. Interpretation und Diskussion. Texts by Lewis White Beck et al. With a foreword by Gerhard Funke. FreiburglBreisgau and Munich: K. Alber, 1982. Fischer, Kuno. Immanuel Kant und seine Lehre. 2 vols. 3d, newly revised ed. Mu nich: F. Bassermann, 1882. 6th ed. Heidelberg: C. Winter, 1928-57. Funke, Gerhard, and Kopper, Joachim, eds. Akten des Vierten Intemationalen Kant Kongresses. Held at Mainz, April 6-10, 1974. 3 vols. in 4. Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter, 1974-75. Funke, Gerhard, ed., in conjunction with Manfred Kleinschnieder, Rudolf Malter, and Gisela Miiller. Akten des Fiinften Internationalen Kant-Kongresses. Held at Mainz, April 4-8, 198 1 . 2 vols. in 3. Bonn: Bouvier, 1981-82. Funke, Gerhard, and Seebohm, Thomas M., eds. Proceedings of the Sixth Interna tional Kant Congress. Held at Pennsylvania State University, 1985. 2 vols. in 3. Washington, Lanham, Md., and London: Center for Advanced Research in Phenomenology & University Press of America, 1 989-9 1 . Funke, Gerhard, ed., i n conjunction with Manfred Kleinschnieder. Akten des Sie benten Internationalen Kant-Kongresses. Held at Mainz, 1 990. 2 vols. in 3. Bonn: Bouvier, 199 1 . Gerhardt, Volker, and Kaulbach, Friedrich. Kant. Darmstadt: Wissenschaftliche Buchgesellschaft, 1 979, 1989. Glouberman, Mark. The Origins and Implications of Kant's Critical Philosophy: NC",PK. Lewiston, N.Y. : E. Mellen, 1990. Goldmann, Lucien. Immanuel Kant. Trans. Robert Black. London: NLB; Atlantic Heights, N.J.: Humanities Press, 197 1 . Translation of Introduction a la philoso phie de Kant. Paris: Gallimard, 1948, 1967. A rev., en!. ed. of the author's
Mensch, Gemeinschaft und Welt in der Philosophie Immanuel Kants. Studien zur Geschichte der Dialektik. Zurich: Europa Verlag, 1 945. New ed. With an epilogue by Dietrich Bohler. FrankfurtlMain and New York: Campus Verlag; Paris: Maison des Sciences de l 'Homme, 1989. Grondin, Jean. Kant et Ie probleme de la philosophie: L'A priori. Paris: J. Vrin, 1989. Gulyga, Arsenii V. Immanuel Kant: His Life and Thought. Trans. Marijan Despala tovic. Boston: Birkhauser, 1987. Translation of the Russian original, Kant. Mos cow: Molodaia Gvardiia, 1977, 198 1 . Guyer, Paul, ed. The Cambridge Companion to Kant. Cambridge and New York: Cambridge University Press, 1 992. Handy, William J. Kant and the Southern New Critics. Austin: University of Texas Press, 1963 .
790
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
Heimsoeth, Heinz. Studien zur Philosophie Immanuel Kants. 2 vols. Vol . 1 : Co logne: KOlner Universitats-Verlag, 1 956. Vol. 2: Bonn: Bouvier, 1970. 2d, rev., ed. Bonn: Bouvier, 1 97 1 . Heintel, Peter, and Nagl, Ludwig, eds. Zur Kantforschung der Gegenwart. With a selected bibliography. Darmstadt: Wissenschaftliche Buchgesellschaft, 1 98 1 . Henrich, Dieter. The Unity of Reason: Essays on Kant's Philosophy. Ed., with an introduction, by Richard L. Velkley. Trans. Jeffrey Edwards et al. Cambridge, Mass. : Harvard University Press, 1 994. Hiltscher, Reinhard. Kant und das Problem der Einheit der endlichen Vemunft. Wiirzburg: Konigshausen & Neumann, 1 987. Hinske, Norbert. Kant als Herausforderung an die Gegenwart. FreiburglBreisgau and Munich: K. Alber, 1980. Hoffe, Otfried. Immanuel Kant. Trans. Marshall Farrier. Albany: State University of New York Press, 1 994. Translation of the German original, Immanuel Kant. Munich: C. H. Beck, 1 983, 1988. Horster, Detlef. Kant zur Einfuhrung. Hamburg: Junius-Verlag, 1 982. 2d ed. Ham burg: Junius-Verlag, 1985. Jaspers, Karl. Kant. Trans. Ralph Manheim. Ed. Hannah Arendt. New York: Har court, Brace & World, 1 962. Translation of selections from the first (and only) volume of Die grof3en Philosophen. Munich: R. Piper, 1 957, 1 98 1 . Trans. as The Great Philosophers by Ralph Manheim. Ed. Hannah Arendt. 4 vols. (inc1. posthumous works). New York: Harcourt, Brace & World; Harcourt, Brace & Co., 1962-95. Kaulbach, Friedrich. Immanuel Kant. Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter, 1969, 1983. . Das Prinzip Handlung in der Philosophie Kants. Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter, 1 978. Kemp, John. The Philosophy of Kant. London and New York: Oxford University Press, 1 968. Reprinted. Bristol: Thoemmes Press, 1 993. Kennington, Richard, ed. The Philosophy of Immanuel Kant. Washington: Catho lic University of America Press, 1985. Kimpel, Benjamin Franklin. Kant's Critical Philosophy. Boston: Student Outlines Co., 1964. Konhardt, Klaus. Die Einheit der Vemunft. Zum Verhiilmis von theoretischer und praktischer Vemunft in der Philosophie Immanuel Kants. Konigsteinffaunus: Fo rum Academicum in der Verlagsgruppe Athenaum, Hain, Scriptor, Hanstein, 1979. Komer, Stephan. Kant. Harmondsworth and New York: Penguin Books, 1 955, 1 990; New Haven: Yale University Press, 1982. Kroner, Richard. Kant's Weltanschauung. Trans. John E. Smith. With revisions by the author. Chicago: University of Chicago Press, 1 956, 1 965. Translation of Kants Weltanschauung. Tiibingen: J.C.B. Mohr (P. Siebeck), 1 9 14. Laberge, Pierre; Duchesneau, Fram.ois; and Morrisey, Bryan E.; eds. Proceedings __
of the Ottawa Congress on Kant in the Anglo-American and Continental Tra ditions. Held October 10- 1 4, 1974. Ottawa: University of Ottawa, 1 976.
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
79 1
Lauener, Henri. Hume und Kant. Eine systematische Gegenuberstellung einiger Hauptpunkte ihrer Lehren. Bern and Munich: Francke, 1969. Lehmann, Gerhard. Beitriige zur Geschichte und Interpretation der Philosophie Kants. Berlin: Walter de Gruyter, 1969. . Kants Tugenden. Neue Beitriige zur Geschichte und Interpretation der Phi losophie Kants. Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter, 1980. Lindsay, Alexander D. Kant. London: E. Benn, 1934. Reprinted. Folcroft, Pa.: Fol croft Press, 1970, 1976; Norwood, Pa.: Norwood Editions, 1977. Malherbe, Michel. Kant ou Hume; ou, La Raison et Ie sensible. Paris: J. Vrin, 1980. Marty, Franr;:ois. La Naissance de la mitaphysique chez Kant. Une Etude sur la notion kantienne d'analogie. Paris: Beauchesne, 1980. Melchiorre, Virgilio. Analogia e analisi trascendentale. Linee per una nuova let tura di Kant. Milan: Mursia, 1 99 1 . Neiman, Susan. The Unity of Reason: Rereading Kant. New York: Oxford Univer sity Press, 1994. Oberer, Hariolf, and Seel, Gerhard, eds. Kant. Analysen-Probleme-Kritik. Wiirzburg: Konigshausen & Neumann, 1988. Pascal, Georges. Kant. Paris: Bordas, 1985, 1992. Paulsen, Friedrich. Immanuel Kant: His Life and Doctrine. Trans. J. E. Creighton and Albert Lefevre. London, J. C. Nimmo; New York: C. Scribner's Sons, 1902, 1 9 10. Reprinted. New York: F. Ungar, 1963, 1 972. Translation of Immanuel Kant. Sein Leben und seine Lehre. Stuttgart: F. Frommann, 1 888. 8th ed. Stutt gart: F. Frommann, 1 924. Philonenko, Alexis. Etudes kantiennes. Paris: J. Vrin, 1982. . L'Oeuvre de Kant: La Philosophie critique. 2 vols. Paris; J. Vrin, 1 969-72, 1 993. Rauch, Leo. The Philosophy of Immanuel Kant. New York: Monarch Press, Inc., 1 965. Rigobello, Armando. I Limiti del trascendentale in Kant. Milan: Silva, 1 963. Ger man translation thereof. Die Grenzen des Transzendentalen bei Kant. Trans. Jo sef Tscholl. Munich: A. Pustet, 1 968. , ed. Ricerche sui trascendentale kantiano. Padua: Ed. Antenore, 1973. Robinson, Hoke, ed. Proceedings of the Eighth International Kant Congress. Held at the University of Memphis, 1995. Edited in collaboration with Gordon Brit tan et al. 2 vols. in 5. Milwaukee: Marquette University Press, 1995-. Ross, George M., and McWalter, Tony, eds. Kant and His Influence. Bristol: Thoe mmes Press, 1990. Rossmann, Kurt. Immanuel Kant, 1 72411974. Bonn: Inter Nationes, 1 974. Sandvoss, Ernst R. Immanuel Kant: Leben, Werk, Wirkung. Stuttgart: W. Kohlhammer, 1983. Schmitz, Hermann. Was wollte Kant? Bonn: Bouvier, 1989. Schulte, GUnter. Immanuel Kant. Frankfurt and New York: Campus Verlag, 1 99 1 . Schultz, Uwe. Immanuel Kant, mit Selbstzeugnissen und Bilddokumenten. Reinbek b. Hamburg: Rowohlt, 1 992 ( 1 965). Scruton, Roger. Kant. Oxford and New York: Oxford University Press, 1 982. __
__
__
792
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
Seebohm, Thomas M., and Kockelmans, Joseph J., eds. Kant and Phenomenology. Pittsburgh: Center for Advanced Research in Phenomenology; Washington: Uni versity Press of America, 1984. Smith, Alic Halford. Kantian Studies. Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1947. Reprinted. Westport, Conn.: Greenwood Press, 1974. Teichner, Wilhelm. Kants Transzendentalphilosophie. GrundrifJ. FreiburglBreisgau and Munich: K. Alber, 1978. Thorn, Martina. Immanuel Kant. Leipzig, Jena, and Berlin: Urania-Verlag, 1974. 2d, rev. ed. Leipzig, Jena, and Berlin: Urania-Verlag, 1 978. Topitsch, Ernst. Die Voraussetzungen der Transzendentalphilosophie. Kant in weltanschauungsanalytischer Beleuchtung. Hamburg: Hoffmann und Campe, 1 975. 2d, rev. and enl. ed. Tiibingen: J.C.B. Mohr, 1 992. Vaihinger, Hans. The Philosophy of "As if": A System of the Theoretical, Practi cal, and Religious Fictions of Mankind. Trans. C. K. Ogden. London: K. Paul, Trench, Trubner; New York: Harcourt, Brace & Company, Inc., 1924, 1925 . 2d ed. London: K. Paul, Trench, Trubner, 1935. Reprinted. New York: Barnes & Noble, 1966. London: Routledge & Kegan Paul, 1968; Translation of Die Phi
losophie des Ais Ob. System der theoretischen, praktischen und religiosen Fik tionen der Menschheit auf Grund eines idealistischen Positivismus. With an
appendix on Kant und Nietzsche. Berlin: Reuther & Reichard, 1 9 1 1 . Newly ed. by Raymund Schmidt. Leipzig: F. Meiner, 1924. 9th and 10th eds. Leipzig: F. Meiner, 1927. Reprinted. Aalen: Scientia, 1986. Valentiner, Theodor. Kant und seine Lehre. Eine Einfuhrung in die kritische Phi losophie. Stuttgart: Reclam, 1949, 1976. Vesey, Godfrey N. A. Kant's Copernican Revolution: Speculative Philosophy. Pre pared for the author's Course Team. With a postscript by William H. Walsh. Mil ton Keynes: Open University Press, 1973, 1976 (©1972). Villacaiias Berlanga, Jose L. Racionalidad crftica. Introducci6n a la filosofia de Kant. Madrid: Tecnos, 1 987. Vleeschauwer, Herman Jean de. Immanuel Kant. Antwerp: Standaard; Nijmegen: Dekker & Van de Vegt, 193 1 . Vorilinder, Karl. Immanuel Kant: der Mann und das Werk. 2 vols. Leipzig: F. Meiner, 1924. 2d, enl. ed. With a contribution entitled "Kants Opus postu mum" by Wolfgang Ritzel. Ed., with the collaboration of Konrad Kopper, by Rudolf Malter. Hamburg: F. Meiner, 1 977. 3d, special ed. 2 vols. in 1. With a bibliography on Kant's biography by Rudolf Malter, and a list of bibliographies on the work of Immanuel Kant by Heiner Klemme. Hamburg: F. Meiner, 1992. Walker, Ralph C. S. Kant. London and Boston: Routledge & Kegan Paul, 1 978. 19&9. Wallace, William. Kant. Edinburgh and London: W. Blackwood & Sons; Philadel phia: J. B. Lippincott and Co., 1 882, 1 9 1 1 . Reprinted. Freeport, N.Y.: Books for Libraries Press; Salem and Manchester, N.H.: Ayer Co. Pubs., 1 972. Walsh, William Henry. Towards an Interpretation of Kant. With an introduction by Mrs. W. H. Walsh. Birmingham: Words & Images, 1 990.
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
793
Ward, James. A Study of Kant. New York and London: Garland Pub., Inc., 1976. Reprint of the 1922 ed., Cambridge: Cambridge University Press; and of the 1 923 ed. of Immanuel Kant, London: Oxford University Press. Watson, John. The Philosophy of Kant Explained. Glasgow: J. Maclehose, 1908. Reprinted. New York: Garland Pub., Inc., 1976; Folcroft, Pa.: Folcroft Library Editions, 1 978. Weil, Eric. Problemes kantiens. Paris: J. Vrin, 1963. 2d, rev. and enl. ed. Paris: J. Vrin, 1970, 1 990. Wenley, Robert M. Kant and His Philosophical Revolution. Edinburgh: T. & T. Clark; New York: Scribner, 1 910. Reedited by Oliphant Smeaton. Freeport, N.Y.: Books for Libraries Press; Salem and Manchester, N.H.: Ayer Co. Pubs., 1 97 1 . Reprinted. Bristol: Thoemmes Press, 1993. Werkmeister, William H., ed. Reflections on Kant's Philosophy. Gainesville: Uni versity Presses of Florida, 1975 . Whitney, George T., and Fogel, Philip H. An Introduction to Kant's Critical Phi losophy. New York: Macmillan, 1 9 1 4. Reprinted. New York: Gordon Press, 1972. Windelband, Wilhelm. Immanuel Kant und seine Weltanschauung. Heidelberg: C. Winter, 1904. Wolff, Robert Paul, ed. Kant: A Collection of Critical Essays. Garden City, N.Y.: Anchor Books; Notre Dame: University of Notre Dame Press, 1968 (©1967). Wundt, Max. Kant als Metaphysiker. Ein Beitrag zur Geschichte der deutschen Phi losophie im 18. Jahrhundert. Stuttgart: F. Enke, 1 924. Reprinted: Hildesheim, Zurich, and New York: G. Dims, 1984.
2.
Critique of Pure Reason: General and Miscellaneous Topics
Adickes, Erich. Kants Lehre von der doppelten Affektion unseres /ch als Schlussel zu seiner Erkenntnistheorie. Tiibingen: J.C.B. Mohr (P. Siebeck), 1 929. Aquila, Richard E. Representational Mind: A Study of Kant's Theory of Knowl edge. Bloomington: Indiana University Press, 1983, 1989. Aschenbrenner, Karl. A Companion to Kant's Critique of Pure Reason: Transcen dental Aesthetic and Analytic. Lanham, Md., New York, and London: Univer sity Press of America, 1983. Atkinson, Ronald F. Kant's First Critique: An Inaugural Lecture Delivered in the University of Exeter on 23 January 1981. Exeter: University of Exeter, 1 98 1 . Aul, Joachim. Die Problemstellung von Kants theoretischer Philosophie. Cux haven: Junghans, 1993. Barone, Francesco. II Trascendentale kantiano e l 'epistemologia. Turin: Filosofia, 1 980. Baumgartner, Hans Michael. Kants "Kritik der reinen Vernunft. "Anleitung zur Lek ture. FreiburgfBreisgau and Munich: K. Alber, 1 985 . 4th ed. FreiburgfBreisgau: K. Alber, 1996. Beck, Lewis White, ed. Kant 's Theory of Knowledge: Selected Papers from the Third International Kant Congress. Dordrecht and Boston: D. Reidel Pub. Co., 1974.
794
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
Bencivenga, Ennanno. Kant's Copernican Revolution. New York: Oxford Univer sity Press, 1 987. Blaha, Ottokar. Die Ontologie Kants. Ihr Grundrij3 in der Transzendentalphiloso phie. Salzburg and Munich: Pustet, 1 967. Boehm, Rudolf, and Vandamme, Femand, eds. Tweehonderd jaar Immanuel Kant. Kritik der reinen Vernunft. Objectiviteit en eindigheid. Brussels: Centrum voor de Studie van de Verlichting en van het Vrije Denken, 1 983. Bohme, Gernot. Philosophieren mit Kant. Zur Rekonstruktion der Kantischen Erkenntnis- und Wissenschaftstheorie. FrankfurtlMain: Suhrkamp, 1 986. Bonvecchio, Claudio. Metafisica e ontologia in Kant. Per una analisi della Critica della ragion pura. Pavia: Cooperativa Editrice Universitaria, 1974. Bossart, William H. Apperception, Knowledge. and Experience. Ottawa: Univer sity of Ottawa Press, 1 994. Brocker, Walter. Kant iiber Metaphysik und Erfahrung. FrankfurtlMain: V. Klos tennann, 1 970. Brunner, August. Kant und die Wirklichkeit des Geistigen. Eine Kritik der tran szendentalen Methode. Munich: Berchmans, 1 978. Buchenau, Artur. Grundprobleme der Kritik der reinen Vernunft. Zugleich eine Ein fiihrung in den kritischen Idealismus. Leipzig: F. Meiner, 1914. Caimi, Mario P. M. Kants Lehre von der Empfindung in der Kritik der reinen Ver nunft. Versuch zur Rekonstruktion einer Hyletik der reinen Erkenntnis. Bonn: Bouvier, 1982. Canterla Gonzalez, Cinta. Receptividad y espontaneidad del sujeto cognoscente en la Disertacion de 1 770 y en la Critica de la razon pura de 1 781 de Kant. Coidiz: Universidad de Cadiz, Servicio de Publicaciones, 1 987. Chadha, Satish C. Kant and the Synthetic A Priori. Chandigarh: Panjab University, 1965. Chadwick, Ruth F., and Cazeaux, Clive, eds. Kant's Critique of Pure Reason. Lon don and New York: Routledge, 1992. Vol. 2 of Immanuel Kant: Critical As sessments. Edited by Ruth F. Chadwick and Clive Cazeaux. 4 vols. London and New York: Routledge, 1 992. Ciafardone, Raffaele, ed. La "Critica della ragion pura " nell 'Aetas Kantiana: An tologia. 2 vols. L'Aquila and Rome: L. U. Japadre, 1987-90. Cohen, Hennann. Kants Theorie der Erfahrung. Berlin: F. Diimmler, 1 87 1 . 5th ed. With an introduction by Geert Edel. Hildesheim and New York: G. Olms, 1 987. . Kommentar zu Immanuel Kants Kritik der reinen Vernunft. Leipzig: Diirr; Leipzig: F. Meiner, 1 907. 5th ed. With an introduction by Helmut Holzhey. Hildesheim, Zurich, and New York: G. Olms, 1 978, 1989. Cornelius, Hans. Kommentar zu Kants Kritik der reinen Vernunft. Erlangen: Ver lag der Philosophischen Akademie, 1 926. Costa, Filippo. La Totalita differita. Metafisica ed esistenza in Kant. Milan: F. An geli, 1984. Cramer, Konrad. Nicht-reine synthetische Urteile a priori. Ein Problem der Tran szendentalphilosophie Immanuel Kants. Heidelberg: C. Winter, 1985. Cubeddu, Italo, ed. Kant teoretico. Materiali del Novecento. [Contributions by] B . Antomarini et al. Urbino: Editrice Montefeltro, 199 1 . __
795
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
Daniel, Claus. Kant verstehen. Einfiihrung in seine theoretische Philosophie. FrankfurtlMain and New York: Campus, 1984. Drescher, Wilhelmine. Vernunft und Transzendenz. Einfohrung in Kants Kritik der reinen Vernunft. MeisenheimlGlan: A. Hain, 1 97 1 . Dryer, Douglas P. Kant 's Solution for Verification in Metaphysics. London: Allen & Unwin, 1966. DuPlessis, Samuel I. M. Kants Hypothesisbegrijf. Bonn: Bouvier, 1972. DUsing, Klaus. Die Teleologie in Kants Weltbegrijf. Bonn: Bouvier, 1968. 2d, en!. ed. Bonn: Bouvier, 1986. Erdmann, Benno. Die Idee von Kants Kritik der reinen Vernunft. Eine historische Untersuchung. Berlin: Akademie der Wissenschaften (G. Reimer), 1917. . Kant's Kriticismus in der ersten und in der zweiten Auflage der Kritik der reinen Vernunft. Eine historische Untersuchung. Leipzig: L. Voss, 1 878; Hildesheim: H. A. Gerstenberg, 1973. Ewing, Alfred C. A Short Commentary on Kant's "Critique ofPure Reason. " Lon don: Methuen & Co. Ltd., 1 938. 2d ed. London: Methuen & Co. Ltd.; Chicago: University of Chicago Press, 1 950, 1 987. Faggiotto, Pietro. Introduzione aUa metafisica kantiana deU 'analogia. Milan: Massimo, 1989. Fischer, Kuno. A Commentary on Kant 's Critick of the Pure Reason. Trans. John Pentland Mahaffy. With an introduction, explanatory notes, and appendices. lon don: Longmans, Green, & Co., 1 866. Reprinted. New York: Garland Pub., Inc., 1976. Translation of Kant's System der reinen Vernunft auf Grund der Vernunft kritik. 2d, rev. ed. Heidelberg: F. Bassermann, 1 869 ( 1854). Fischer, Norbert. Die Transzendenz in der Transzendentalphilosophie. Untersu chungen zur speziellen Metaphysik an Kants "Kritik der reinen Vernunft. Bonn: Bouvier, 1979. FJamarique, Lourdes. Necesidad y conocimiento. Fundamentos de la teor{a cdtica de I. Kant. Pamplona: Ediciones Universidad de Navarra, 1 99 1 . Gerlach, Hans-Martin, and Mocek, Sabine, eds. Kants "Kritik der reinen Vernunft " im philosophischen Meinungsstreit der Gegenwart. Halle/Saale: Martin-Luther Universitat Halle-Wittenberg, 1 982. Gibbons, Sarah L. Kant's Theory of Imagination: Bridging Gaps in Judgement and Experience. Oxford: Clarendon Press; New York: Oxford University Press, 1994. Glauner, Friedrich. Kants Begriindung der "Grenzen der Vernunft. " Cologne: Ja nus, 1990. Gloy, Karen. Studien zur theoretischen Philosophie Kants. Wiirzburg: Konigs hausen & Neumann, 1990. Gram, Moltke S. The Transcendental Turn: The Foundation of Kant's Idealism. Gainesville: University Presses of Florida, 1984. Graubner, Hans. Form und Wesen. Ein Beitrag zur Deutung des Formbegriffs in Kants "Kritik der reinen Vernunft. " Bonn: Bouvier, 1972. Grayeff, Felix. Kant's Theoretical Philosophy: A Commentary to the Central Part of the 'Critique of Pure Reason. Trans. David Walford. Manchester: Manches ter University Press; New York: Barnes & Noble, 1 970. Translation of Deutung __
"
'
und Darstellung der theoretischen Philosophie Kants. Ein Kommentar zu den
796
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
grundlegenden Teilen der Kritik der reinen Vernunft. Hamburg: F. Meiner, 195 1 ,
1966. 2d ed. With a subject index by Eberhard Heller. Hamburg: F. Meiner, 1977. Gurwitsch, Aron. Kants Theorie des Verstandes. Ed. Thomas M. Seebohm. Dor drecht and Boston: Kluwer Academic Publishers, 1990. Hahn, Rainald. Die Theorie der Erfahrung bei Popper und Kant. Zur Kritik des kritischen Rationalismus am transzendentalen Apriori. FreiburglBreisgau and Munich: K. Alber, 1982. Hahn, Robert. Kant's Newtonian Revolution in Philosophy. Carbondale: Southern Illinois University Press, 1988. Hartnack, Justus. Kant 's Theory of Knowledge. Trans. M. Holmes Hartshorne. New York: Harcourt, Brace & World. 1 967; London and Melbourne: Macmillan, 1968. Translation of Kants erkendelsesteori. Copenhagen: Gyldendal, 1 965. Heidegger, Martin. Kant and the Problem of Metaphysics. Trans. James S. Churchill. With a foreword by Thomas Langan. Bloomington: Indiana University Press, 1962. Trans. Richard Taft. 4th, enl. ed. Bloomington and Indianapolis: Indiana University Press, 1990. Translations of Kant und das Problem der Metaphysik. Bonn: F. Cohen, 1929. 5th, enl. ed. FrankfurtlMain: V. Klostermann, 199 1 . . Phiinomenologische Interpretation von Kants Kritik der reinen Vernunft. Lec ture at Marburg, winter semester 1 927-28. Ed. Ingtraud Garland. Frankfurt! Main: V. Klostermann, 1977, 1987. Heidemann, Ingeborg, and Ritzel, Wolfgang, eds. Beitriige zur Kritik der reinen Ver nunft 1 781 - 1 981. Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter, 198 1 . Herring, Herbert. Das Problem der Affektion bei Kant; die Frage nach der Gege __
benheitsweise des Gegenstandes in der Kritik der reinen Vemunft und die Kant Interpretation. Cologne: KOlner Universitats-Verlag, 1953. Hinderks, Hermann. Uber die Gegenstandsbegriffe in der Kritik der reinen Ver nunft. Basel: Verlag Haus zum Falken, 1948. Hoche, Hans Ulrich. Nichtempirische Erkenntnis: Analytische und synthetische Urteile a priori bei Kant und bei Husserl. MeisenheimlGlan: A. Hain, 1964. Hogrebe, Wolfram. Kant und das Problem einer transzendentalen Semantik. FreiburglBreisgau and Munich: K. Alber, 1974. Hapker, Marlis. Kants Suche nach dem Begriff. Die Entschliisselung der Wirklich keit im Friihidealismus. Munich: Ars Una, 1988. Hiillinghorst, Andreas. Kants spekulatives Experiment. Cologne: Dinter, 1992. Jordan, Elijah. The Constitutive and Regulative Principles in Kant. Chicago: Uni versity of Chicago Press, 1912. Kaulbach, Friedrich. Philosophie als Wissenschaft. Eine Anleitung zum Studium von Kants Kritik der reinen Vernunft in Vorlesungen. Hildesheim: H. A. Gersten berg, 198 1 . Kirchmann, Julius Hermann von. Erliiuterungen zu Kant's Kritik der reinen Ver nunft. Berlin: L. Heimann, 1 869. 2d and 3d eds. Leipzig: E. Koschny, 1876, 1 88 l . 4th ed. Berlin: Philos.-Historischer Verlag, 1 893. Kitcher, Patricia W. Kant's Transcendental Psychology. New York: Oxford University Press, 1 990, 1 993. Klein, Hans Dieter. Vernunft und Wirklichkeit. 2 vols. Vienna and Munich: Olden bourg, 1973-75. Vol. I : "Untersuchungen zur Kritik der reinen Vernunft."
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
797
Konigshausen, Johann-Heinrich. Kants Theorie des Denkens. Amsterdam: Rodopi, 1977. Kopper, Joachim. Die Stellung der "Kritik der reinen Vemunft" in der neueren Phi losophie. Darmstadt: Wissenschaftliche Buchgesellschaft, 1984. , and Marx, Wolfgang, eds. 200 Jahre Kritik der reinen Vemunft. With con tributions by Jean Brun et al. Hildesheim: H. A. Gerstenberg, 1981. Komfein, Roger. Kant and the Metaphysics of Reference. Ottawa: National Library of Canada, 1982. Krausser, Peter. Kants Theorie der Erfahrung und Erfahrungswissenschaft. Eine ra tionale Rekonstruktion. FrankfurtlMain: V. Klostermann, 198 1 . Lange, Horst. Kants modus ponens. Uberlegungen und Vorschliige zu einer ana lytischen Rekonstruktion von Kants Metaphysik der Erfahrung. With an intro duction by Klaus Hartmann. Wiirzburg: Konigshausen & Neumann, 1988. Leider, Kurt. Kritische Ankliinge zu Kants "Kritik der reinen Vernunft" in der Phi
__
losophie der Menschheit. Grundlegung zu einer Kant-Erneuerung im 200. Ju biliiumsjahr des Erscheinens seines Hauptwerks. Liibeck: Weiland, 198 1 . Loebbert, Michael. Wie ist die Unterscheidung analytischer und synthetischer Urteile moglich ? Eine Untersuchung zu Kants Theorie des Urteils. Rhein
fe1den: Schauble, 1989. Liitterfe1ds, Wilhelm. Transzendentale oder evolutioniire Erkenntnistheorie ? Darm stadt: Wissenschaftliche Buchgesellschaft, 1987. Macann, Christopher E. Kant and the Foundations of Metaphysics: An Interpreta tive Transformation of Kant's Critical Philosophy. Heidelberg: C. Winter, 1 98 1 . Mancini, Italo. Guida alia Critica della ragion pura. 2 vols. Urbino: Quattro Venti, 1982-88 . . Marcucci, Silvestro. Kant e la conoscenza scientifica. Vol. 1 of the author's Studi kantiani. 3 vols. Lucca: M. Pacini Fazzi, 1988. Marquard, Odo. Skeptische Methode im Blick auf Kant. Freiburg/Breisgau and Mu nich: K. Alber, 1958, 1982. ¥enzel, Alfred. Kants Kritik der reinen Vemunft. Ein Leitfaden zum Studium. Ber lin: E. S. Mittler & Sohn, 1 922. Messer, August. Kommentar zu Kants Kritik der reinen Vernunft. Stuttgart: Strecker und Schroder, 1922, 1923. Meyer, Michel. Science et metaphysique chez Kant. Paris: Presses universitaires de France, 1988. Miles, Murray Lewis. Logik und Metaphysik bei Kant. Zu Kants Lehre vom zwie fachen Gebrauch des Verstandes und der Vernunft. FrankfurtlMain: V. Kloster mann, 1978. Milmed, Bella K. Kant & Current Philosophical Issues: Some Modem Develop ments ofHis Theory of Knowledge. New York: New York University Press, 196 1 . Mohanty, Jitendra N . , and Shahan, Robert W., eds. Essays on Kant's Critique of Pure Reason. Norman: University of Oklahoma Press, 1982. Nenon, Thomas. Objekliviliit und endliche Erkenntnis. Kants transzendentalphilo sophische Korrespondenz-Theorie der Wahrheit. Freiburg/Breisgau and Mu nich: K. Alber, 1 986.
798
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
Nink, Caspar. Kommentar zu Kants Kritik der reinen Vernunft. Eine kritische Ein ftihrung in Kants Erkenntnistheorie. FrankfurtlMain: Carolus, 1930. Niquet, Marcel. Transzendentale Argumente: Kant, Strawson und die Aporetik der Detranszendentalisierung. FrankfurtlMain: Suhrkamp, 1 99 1 . O'Farrell, Frank. Per leggere la Critica della ragion pura di Kant: La Critica della ragione pura pensata come risposte a domande. Rome: Editrice Pontificia Uni versita Gregoriana, 1989. Paek, Chong-Hyon. Phiinomenologische Untersuchung zum Gegenstandsbegriff in Kants "Kritik der reinen Vernunft. " FrankfurtlMain, Bern, and New York: P. Lang, 1985. Palmer, Humphrey. Presupposition and Transcendental Inference. London: Croom Helm; New York: St. Martin, 1985. Parrini, Paolo, ed. Kant and Contemporary Epistemology. Dordrecht and Boston: Kluwer Academic Publishers, 1994. Pascher, Manfred. Kants Begriff "Vernunftinteresse. Innsbruck: Verlag des lnsti tuts fUr Sprachwissenschaft der Universitat lnnsbruck, 199 1 . Patt, Walter. Transzendentaler Idealismus. Kants Lehre von der Subjektivitiit der "
Anschauung in der Dissertation von 1 770 und in der 'Kritik der reinen Ver nunft. ' Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter, 1987. Penelhum, Terence, and MacIntosh, John J., eds. The First Critique: Reflections on Kant's Critique of Pure Reason. Belmont, Calif., Wadsworth Pub. Co., 1969. Pereboom, Derk. Kant on Concept and Intuition. Ann Arbor: University Micro
films International, 1986. Petitot, Jean. La Philosophie transcendantale et Ie probleme de l'objectivite. With the collaboration of Fran,
__
"
Kant. Untersuchungen zur analytischen und metaphysischen Schicht in der "Kri tik der reinen Vernuft. " Wiirzburg: Konigshausen & Neumann, 199 1 . Rotenstreich, Nathan. Experience and its Systematization: Studies in Kant. The Hague: M. Nijhoff, 1 965. 2d, en!. ed. The Hague: M. Nijhoff, 1 972.
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
799
Rudolph, Enno. Skepsis bei Kant. Ein Beitrag zur Interpretation der Kritik der reinen Vemunft. Munich: W. Fink, 1978. Saldanha, Nelson Nogueira. Kant e 0 criticismo, no bicentenario da Critica da raziio pura. Recife: Editora Massangana: Fundaciio Joaquim Nabuco, 1982. Schaarschmidt, Peter. Die Begriffe "Notwendigkeit" und "Allgemeinheit" bei Kant und Schiller. Clausthal-Zellerfeld: Bonecke-Druck, 1971. Schaper, Eva and Vossenkuhl, Wilhelm, eds. Bedingungen der Moglichkeit. "Tran scendental arguments " und transzendentales Denken. Stuttgart: Klett-Cotta, 1984. , eds. Reading Kant: New Perspectives on Transcendental Arguments and Critical Philosophy. Oxford and New York: Blackwell, 1989. Schulthess, Peter. Relation und Funktion. Eine systematische und entwicklungsge schichtliche Untersuchung zur theoretischen Philosophie Kants. Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter, 1 98 1 . Schulz, Gudrun. Veritas est adaequatio intellectus e t rei. Untersuchungen zur Wahr
__
heitslehre des Thomas von Aquin und zur Kritik Kants an einem iiberlieferten Wahrheitsbegrijf. Leiden, Cologne, and New York: E. J. Brill, 1993. Schwyzer, Hubert. The Unity of Understanding: A Study in Kantian Problems. Ox ford: Clarendon Press; New York: Oxford University Press, 1990. Sellars, Wilfrid. Science and Metaphysics: Variations on Kantian Themes. London: Routledge & Kegan Paul; New York: Humanities Press, 1968, 1982. Sicard, Elisabeth. Kant und das Problem der Evidenz. Basel and Paris: Editions Analytica, 1981. Soucy, Gaetan. Theorie critique de la connaissance etfondement des sciences chez Kant. Sainte Foy: Universite du Quebec, 1 987. Srzednicki, Jim T. J. The Place of Space and other Themes: Variations on Kant's First Critique. The Hague and Boston: M. Nijhoff; Hingham, Mass.: Kluwer Academic Publishers, 1983. Stentzler, Friedrich. Die Verfassung der Vemunft. Berlin: Publica, 1984. Strawson, Peter F. The Bounds of Sense: An Essay on Kant's 'Critique of Pure Rea son. ' London: Methuen; New York: Routledge, Chapman & Hall, 1966. Re printed: London: Methuen; New York: Harper & Row, 1 975. Reprinted. London and New York: Routledge, 1989. Theis, Robert. Approches de la Critique de la raison pure. Etudes sur la philoso phie theorique de Kant. Hildesheim, Zurich, and New York: G. OIms, 1 99 1 . Tremblay, Rejean. Metaphysique e t ontologie chez Kant e t Heidegger. Ottawa: Na tional Library of Canada, 1986. Tuschling, Burkhard, ed. Probleme der "Kritik der reinen Vemunft. " Kant-Tagung Marburg, 1 98 1 . Berlin and New York: WaIter de Gruyter, 1984. Varga, Alexander von. Erkliirung der Grundbegriffe von Kant's Kritik der reinen Vernunft. Munich: Verlag UNI-Druck, 1 97 1 . Vemeaux, Roger. Critique de la "Critique de la raison pure" de Kant. Paris: A. Montaigne, 1972. Visentin, Mauro. Il Signijicato della negazione in Kant. Bologna and Naples: II Mulino, 1 992. Vuillemin, Jules. L'lntuitionnisme kantien. Paris: J. Vrin, 1994.
800
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
Walker, Ralph C. S., ed. Kant on Pure Reason. Oxford and New York: Oxford Uni versity Press, 1982. Waxman, Wayne. Kant 's Model of the Mind: A New Interpretation of Transcen dental Idealism. New York: Oxford University Press, 199 1 . Weeland, Horst. Autonomie und Sinnprinzip. Zum Vorgang Kantischen Philoso phierens. FrankfurtlMain, Bern, New York, and Paris: P. Lang, 1987. Wenley, Robert M. An Outline Introductory to Kant's "Critique of Pure Reason. New York: H. Holt and Company, 1 897, 1904. Wilkerson, Terence E. Kant's Critique of Pure Reason: A Commentary for Stu dents. Oxford: Clarendon Press, 1 976. Williams, Terence C. The Unity of Kant's Critique of Pure Reason: Experience, Lan guage and Knowledge. Lewiston, N.Y., and Queenston, Ont: E. Mellen, 1 987 (©1986). Wolf, Johannes. Verhiiltnis der beiden ersten Aufiagen der Kritik der reinen Ver nunft zueinander. Halle/Saale: C. A. Kaemmerer, 1905. Zeidler, Kurt Walter. Grundrij1 der transzendentalen Logik. Cuxhaven: Junghans, 1992. Zoller, Giinter. Theoretische Gegenstandsbeziehung bei Kant. Zur systemati,�chen "
Bedeutung der Termini "objektive Realitiit" und "objektive Giiltigkeit" in der "Kritik der reinen Vernunft. " Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter, 1 984. 3.
Transcendental Aesthetic: General Topics, Space, Time, Mathematics
Albrecht, Wolfgang. Geometrie des Anschauungsraumes. Ein Versuch, mit KanIs reiner Anschauung ins reine zu kommen. Bayreuth: Ellwanger, 1979. Azm, Sadik J. al-. Kant's Theory of Time. New York: Philosophical Library, 1967. Biichel, Gregor. Geometrie und Philosophie. Zum Verhiiltnis beider Vernunftwis
senschaften im Fongang von der Kritik der reinen Vernunft zum Opus poslu mum. Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter, 1987. Buroker, Jill Vance. Space and Incongruence: The Origin of Kant's Idealism. Dor drecht and Boston: D. Reidel Pub. Co.; Hingham, Mass.: Kluwer Academic Pub lishers, 198 1 . Debru, Claude. Analyse e t representation: De la mithodologie a. la theorie de l'espace. Kant et Lamben. Paris: J. Vrin, 1977. Dietrich, Albert Johannes. Kants Begriff des Ganzen in seiner Raum-Zeitlehre und das Verhiiltnis zu Leibniz. HallelSaale: M. Niemeyer; Halle/Saale: Karras, 19 16. Reprinted. Hildesheim and New York: G. Olms, 1 975. Dietrich, Walther R. Kants Raumlehre und ihr Verhiiltnis zur Geometrie. Hallel Saale: H. John, 1904. Enskat, Rainer. Kants Theorie des geometrischen Gegenstandes. Untersuchung iiber
die Voraussetzungen der Entdeckbarkeit geometrischer Gegenstiinde bei Kant. Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter, 1978. Falkenstein, Lome. Kant's Intuitionism: A Commentary on the Transcendental Aes thetic. Toronto; Buffalo: University of Toronto Press, 1 995. Friedman, Michael. Kant and the Exact Sciences. Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard Uni versity Press, 1 992, 1994.
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
801
Giannini Iniguez, Humberto. Tiempo y espacio en Arist6teles y Kant. Santiago, Chile: Editorial Andres Bello, 1982. Hatfield, Gary C. The Natural and the Normative: Theories of Spatial Perception from Kant to Helmholtz. Cambridge, Mass.: MIT Press, 1 990. Havet, Jacques. Kant et Ie probleme du temps. Paris: Gallimard, 1947 (©1946). Heinemann, Fritz H. Der Aufbau von Kants Kritik der reinen Vernunft und das Pro blem der Zeit. GieBen: A. Topelmann, 1 9 1 3 . Heinrich, Richard. Kants Erfahrungsraum. Metaphysischer Ursprung und kritische Entwicklung. FreiburglBreisgau and Munich: K. Alber, 1986. Henke, Ernst. Zeit und Erfahrung. Eine konstruktive Interpretation des Zeitbegriffs der Kritik der reinen Vernunft. MeisenheimlGlan: A. Hain, 1978. Holzapfel, Heinrich. Kants Philosophie der Arithmetik. Diisseldorf: G. H. Nolte, 1937.
Kaloyeropoulos, Nicolas A. La Theorie de l 'espace chez Kant et chez Platon. Geneva: Editions Ion, 1 980. Kaulbach, Friedrich. Die Metaphysik des Raumes bei Leibniz und Kant. Cologne: KOiner Universitats-Verlag, 1 960. Lavanco, Gioacchino. La Forma tempo. Per la critica del normativismo temporale e della "Formwille " in Immanuel Kant. With an introduction by Gianni Puglisi. Palenno: Palumbo, 1986. Lorenzo, Javier de. Kant y la matemcitica: El Uso constructivo de la raz6n pura. Madrid: Tecnos, 1992. Marcus, Ernst. Die Zeit-und Raumlehre Kants (transzendentale Aesthetik) in An wendung auf Mathematik und Naturwissenschaft. Munich: E. Reinhardt, 1927. Marc-Wogau, Konrad. Untersuchungen zur Raumlehre Kants. Lund: H. Ohlsson, 1 93 1, 1932.
Martin, Gottfried. Arithmetic and Combinatorics: Kant and His Contemporaries. With an appendix, "Examination of Kant's Critique ofPure Reason, Part I, Sec tion 4," by Johann Schultz. Translated and edited by Judy Wubnig. With a fore word by George Kimball Plochmann. Carbondale: Southern Illinois University Press, 1986 (© 1985). Translation of Arithmetik und Kombinatorik bei Kant. Ber lin and New York: Walter de Gruyter, 1972. Nakajima, Yoshimichi. Kants Theorie der Zeit-Konstruktion. Vienna: VWGO (Ver band der wissenschaftlichen Gesellschaften Osterreichs), 1986. Palumbo, Margherita. Immaginazione e matematica in Kant. Rome and Bari: Laterza, 1985. Posy, Carl J., ed. Kant 's Philosophy ofMathematics: Modern Essays. Dordrecht and Boston: Kluwer Academic Publishers, 1 992. Rohs, Peter. Transzendentale Asthetik. MeisenheimlGlan: A. Hain, 1973. Rosenthal-Schneider, Use. Das Raum-Zeit-Problem bei Kant und Einstein. Berlin: J. Springer, 192 1 . Schindler, Walter. Die reflexive Struktur objektiver Erkenntnis. Eine Untersuchung zum Zeitbegrijf der "Kritik der reinen Vernunft. Munich: C. Hanser, 1979. Sherover, Charles M. Heidegger, Kant and Time. With an introduction by William Barrett. Bloomington: Indiana University Press, 1 97 1 . Reprinted. Philadelphia: "
802
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
Center for Advanced Research in Phenomenology; Washington: University Press of America, 1 988. Smyth, Richard A. Forms of Intuition: An Historical Introduction to the Transcen dental Aesthetic. The Hague and Boston: M. Nijhoff, 1978. Somer, Detlev. Auf dem Weg zu Kants Theorie der Zeit. Untersuchung zur Genese des Zeitbegriffs in der Philosophie Immanuel Kants. FrankfurtlMain and New York: P. Lang, 1 994. Strohmeyer, Ingeborg. Transzendentalphilosophische und physikalische Raum-Zeit
Lehre. Eine Untersuchung zu Kants Begriindung des Erfahrungswissens mit Beriicksichtigung der speziellen Relativitatstheorie. Mannheim, Vienna, and Zu rich: Bibliographisches Institut, 1 980. Van Cleve, James, and Frederick, Robert E., eds. The Philosophy ofRight and Left: Incongruent Counterparts and the Nature of Space. Dordrecht, Boston, and Lon don: Kluwer Academic Publishers, 1 99 1 . Winterbourne, Anthony. The Ideal and the Real: A n Outline of Kant 's Theory of Space, Time, and Mathematical Construction. Dordrecht and Boston: Kluwer Academic Publishers, 1 988.
4.
Transcendental Analytic: Judgments, Categories, Deduction, Apperception, Schematism, General and Miscellaneous Topics
Aquila, Richard E. Matter in Mind: A Study of Kant 's Transcendental Deduction. Bloomington and Indianapolis: Indiana University Press, 1 989. Banerjee, Nikunja Vihari. Kant's Philosophy of the Self. New Delhi: Arnold Heinemann Publishers, 1 974. Baum, Manfred. Deduktion und Beweis in Kants Transzendentalphilosophie. Un tersuchungen zur "Kritik der reinen Vernunft. " Konigsteinffaunus: Hainverlag bei Atheniium, 1 986. Baumgarten, Hans-Ulrich. Kant und Tetens. Untersuchungen zum Problem von WJr stellung und Gegenstand. Stuttgart: M & P Verlag flir Wissenschaft und For schung, 1992. Becker, Werner. Idealismus und Skeptizismus. Kritische Betrachtungen iiber das Ver
haltnis von Selbstbewuj1tsein und Gegenstandsbewuj1tsein bei Kant und Fichte. FrankfurtlMain: H. Heiderhoff, 1 97 1 . Becker, Wolfgang. Selbstbewuj1tsein und Erfahrung. Zu Kants transzendentaler Deduktion und ihrer argumentativen Rekonstruktion. FreiburglBreisgau and Mu nich: K. Alber, 1 984. Bellini, Omelia. Una Lettura idealistica dell ' "Analitica Trascendentale. " Saggio su Edward Caird. With a foreword by Antimo Negri. Milan: A. Giuffre, 1990. Bennett, Jonathan F. Kant's Analytic. Cambridge and London: Cambridge Univer sity Press, 1 966. Birven, Henri Clemens. Immanuel Kants transzendentale Deduktion. Halie/Saale: C. A. Kaemmerer; Berlin: Reuther & Reichard, 1 9 1 3 . Reprinted. Wiirzburg: A. Liebing, 1 970. Braga, Rubem. A Apercepciio originaria de Kant na jfsica do seculo xx. Brasilia: Editora UnB, 199 1 .
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
803
Brandt, Reinhard. Die Urteilstafel. Kritik der reinen Vernunft A 67- 76; B 92-201. Hamburg: F. Meiner, 199 1 . Carl, Wolfgang. Die transzendentale Deduktion der Kategorien in der ersten Auf lage der Kritik der reinen Vernunft. Ein Kommentar: FrankfurtlMain: V. Klos termann, 1992. Chiari, Ercole. La Deduzione trascendentale delle categorie nella Critica della ra gion pura. Padua: CEDAM, 197 1 . Chiodi, Pietro. La Deduzione nell 'opera di Kant. Turin: Taylor, 196 1 . Coninck, Antoine de. L'Analytique transcendantale de Kant. 2 vols. (The full title of vol. 2, also published separately in 1956, is L'Analytique transcendantale de Kant est-elle coherente?) Louvain: Publications universitaires de Louvain, 1955-56. Daval, Roger. La Metaphysique de Kant. Perspectives sur la metaphysique de Kant d'apres la tMorie du schematisme. Paris: Presses universitaires de France, 195 1 (©1950). Evans, Joseph Claude, Jr. The Metaphysics of Transcendental Subjectivity: Des cartes, Kant, and W Sellars. Amsterdam: Gruner, 1984. Forster, Eckart, ed. Kant 's Transcendental Deductions: The Three 'Critiques ' and the 'Opus postumum. ' Stanford: Stanford University Press. 1989. Forum filr Philosophie, Bad Homburg, ed. Kants transzendentale Deduktion und die Moglichkeit von Transzendentalphilosophie. FrankfurtlMain: Suhrkamp, 1988. Franken, Martin. Transzendentale Theorie der Einheit und systematische Univer salontologie. Studien zur Kategorienlehre Kants und Fichtes. Amsterdam and Atlanta: Rodopi, 1993. Gattullo, Mario. Categoria e oggetto in Kant: La Deduzione trascendentale nella prima edizione della Critica della ragion pura. Florence: La Nuova Italia, 1966. Hauck, Polykarp. Urteile und Kategorien. Eine kritische Studie zu Kants trans szendentaler Logik. StraBburg: M. Du Mont-Schauberg, 1903. Heinrichs, Johannes. Die Logik der Vernunftkritik. Kants Kategorienlehre in ihrer aktuellen Bedeutung. Eine Einfiihrung. Tiibingen: Francke. 1986. Henrich, Dieter. ldentitiit und Objektivitiit. Eine Untersuchung iiber Kants tran szendentale Deduktion. Heidelberg: C. Winter. 1976. Hinsch, Wilfried. Erfahrung und Selbstbewuj3tsein. Zur Kategoriendeduktion bei Kant. Hamburg: F. Meiner, 1986. Hoppe, Hansgeorg. Synthesis bei Kant. Das Problem der Verbindung von Vorstel
lungen und ihrer Gegenstandsbeziehung in der "Kritik der reinen Vernunft. " Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter, 1983. Hossenfelder, Malte. Kants Konstitutionstheorie und die transzendentale Deduk tion. Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter. 1978. Howell. Robert. Kant's Transcendental Deduction: An Analysis of Main Themes in His Critical Philosophy. Dordrecht and Boston: Kluwer Academic Publishers, 1992. Kang, Young Ahn. Schema and Symbol: A Study in Kant's Doctrine of Schematism. Amsterdam: Free University Press, 1 985.
802
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
Center for Advanced Research in Phenomenology; Washington: University Press of America, 1 988. Smyth, Richard A. Forms of Intuition: An Historical Introduction to the Transcen dental Aesthetic. The Hague and Boston: M. Nijhoff, 1978. Somer, Detlev. Auf dem Weg zu Kants Theorie der Zeit. Untersuchung zur Genese des Zeitbegriffs in der Philosophie Immanuel Kants. FrankfurtlMain and New York: P. Lang, 1 994. Strohmeyer, Ingeborg. Transzendentalphilosophische und physikalische Raum-Zeit
Lehre. Eine Untersuchung zu Kants Begriindung des Erfahrungswissens mit Beriicksichtigung der speziellen Relativitatstheorie. Mannheim, Vienna, and Zu rich: Bibliographisches Institut, 1 980. Van Cleve, James, and Frederick, Robert E., eds. The Philosophy ofRight and Left: Incongruent Counterparts and the Nature of Space. Dordrecht, Boston, and Lon don: Kluwer Academic Publishers, 1 99 1 . Winterboume, Anthony. The Ideal and the Real: A n Outline of Kant 's Theory of Space, Time, and Mathematical Construction. Dordrecht and Boston: Kluwer Academic Publishers, 1 988.
4.
Transcendental Analytic: Judgments, Categories, Deduction, Apperception, Schematism, General and Miscellaneous Topics
Aquila, Richard E. Matter in Mind: A Study of Kant 's Transcendental Deduction. Bloomington and Indianapolis: Indiana University Press, 1 989. Banerjee, Nikunja Vihari. Kant's Philosophy of the Self. New Delhi: Arnold Heinemann Publishers, 1 974. Baum, Manfred. Deduktion und Beweis in Kants Transzendentalphilosophie. Un tersuchungen zur "Kritik der reinen Vernunft. " Konigsteinffaunus: Hainverlag bei Atheniium, 1 986. Baumgarten, Hans-Ulrich. Kant und Tetens. Untersuchungen zum Problem von WJr stellung und Gegenstand. Stuttgart: M & P Verlag flir Wissenschaft und For schung, 1992. Becker, Werner. Idealismus und Skeptizismus. Kritische Betrachtungen iiber das Ver
haltnis von SelbstbewujJtsein und GegenstandsbewujJtsein bei Kant und Fichte. FrankfurtlMain: H. Heiderhoff, 1 97 1 . Becker, Wolfgang. SelbstbewujJtsein und Erfahrung. Zu Kants transzendentaler Deduktion und ihrer argumentativen Rekonstruktion. FreiburglBreisgau and Mu nich: K. Alber, 1 984. Bellini, Omelia. Una Lettura idealistica dell ' "Analitica Trascendentale. " Saggio su Edward Caird. With a foreword by Antimo Negri. Milan: A. Giuffre, 1990. Bennett, Jonathan F. Kant's Analytic. Cambridge and London: Cambridge Univer sity Press, 1 966. Birven, Henri Clemens. Immanuel Kants transzendentale Deduktion. Halie/Saale: C. A. Kaemmerer; Berlin: Reuther & Reichard, 1 9 1 3 . Reprinted. Wiirzburg: A . Liebing, 1 970. Braga, Rubem. A Apercepciio originaria de Kant na jfsica do seculo xx. Brasilia: Editora UnB, 199 1 .
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
803
Brandt, Reinhard. Die Urteilstafel. Kritik der reinen Vernunft A 67- 76; B 92-201. Hamburg: F. Meiner, 199 1 . Carl, Wolfgang. Die transzendentale Deduktion der Kategorien in der ersten Auf lage der Kritik der reinen Vernunft. Ein Kommentar: FrankfurtlMain: V. Klos termann, 1992. Chiari, Ercole. La Deduzione trascendentale delle categorie nella Critica della ra gion pura. Padua: CEDAM, 197 1 . Chiodi, Pietro. La Deduzione nell 'opera di Kant. Turin: Taylor, 196 1 . Coninck, Antoine de. L'Analytique transcendantale de Kant. 2 vols. (The full title of vol. 2, also published separately in 1956, is L'Analytique transcendantale de Kant est-elle coherente?) Louvain: Publications universitaires de Louvain, 1955-56.
Daval, Roger. La Mitaphysique de Kant. Perspectives sur la metaphysique de Kant d'apres la theorie du schematisme. Paris: Presses universitaires de France, 195 1 (©1950).
Evans, Joseph Claude, Jr. The Metaphysics of Transcendental Subjectivity: Des cartes, Kant, and W Sellars. Amsterdam: Gruner, 1984. Forster, Eckart, ed. Kant 's Transcendental Deductions: The Three 'Critiques ' and the 'Opus postumum. ' Stanford: Stanford University Press. 1989. Forum filr Philosophie, Bad Homburg, ed. Kants transzendentale Deduktion und die Moglichkeit von Transzendentalphilosophie. FrankfurtlMain: Suhrkamp, 1988.
Franken, Martin. Transzendentale Theorie der Einheit und systematische Univer salontologie. Studien zur Kategorienlehre Kants und Fichtes. Amsterdam and Atlanta: Rodopi, 1993. Gattullo, Mario. Categoria e oggetto in Kant: La Deduzione trascendentale nella prima edizione della Critica della ragion pura. Florence: La Nuova Italia, 1966. Hauck, Polykarp. Urteile und Kategorien. Eine kdtische Studie zu Kants trans szendentaler Logik. StraBburg: M. Du Mont-Schauberg, 1903. Heinrichs, Johannes. Die Logik der Vernunftkritik. Kants Kategorienlehre in ihrer aktuellen Bedeutung. Eine Einfiihrung. Tiibingen: Francke. 1986. Henrich, Dieter. ldentitiit und Objektivitiit. Eine Untersuchung iiber Kants tran szendentale Deduktion. Heidelberg: C. Winter. 1976. Hinsch, Wilfried. Erfahrung und Selbstbewuj3tsein. Zur Kategoriendeduktion bei Kant. Hamburg: F. Meiner, 1986. Hoppe, Hansgeorg. Synthesis bei Kant. Das Problem der Verbindung von Vorstel
lungen und ihrer Gegenstandsbeziehung in der "Kritik der reinen Vemunft. "
Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter, 1983. Hossenfelder, Malte. Kants Konstitutionstheorie und die transzendentale Deduk tion. Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter. 1978. Howell. Robert. Kant's Transcendental Deduction: An Analysis of Main Themes in His Critical Philosophy. Dordrecht and Boston: Kluwer Academic Publishers, 1992.
Kang, Young Ahn. Schema and Symbol: A Study in Kant's Doctrine of Schematism. Amsterdam: Free University Press, 1 985.
804
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
Konig, Alfred Philipp. Denkformen in der Erkenntnis. Die Urteilstafel Immanuel
Kants in der Kritik der reinen Vernunft und in Karl Leonhard Reinholds Ver such einer neuen Theorie des menschlichen Vorstellungsvermogens. Bonn: Bou vier, 1980. Korsgen, Norbert. Formale und transzendentale Synthesis. Untersuchung zum Kern problem der Kritik der reinen Vernunft. Konigstein: Forum Academicum, 1984. Kunkel, Eckhard. Das 'lch denke. ' Seine gnoseologische Relevanz in Kants "Kri tik der reinen Vernunft " und sich hieraus eroffnende Perspektiven. Frankfurt! Main, Bern, New York, and Paris: P. Lang, 1989. Leppakoski, Markku. The Transcendental How: Kant 's Transcendental Deduction of Object Cognition. Stockholm: Almqvist & Wiksell International, 1 993. Longuenesse, Beatrice. Kant et Ie pouvoir de juger: Sensibilite et discursivite dans L'Analytique transcendantale de la Critique de la raison pure. Paris: Presses universitaires de France, 1993. Lorenz, Gisela Helene. Das Problem der Erkliirung der Kategorien. Eine Unter suchung derformalen Strukturelemente in der "Kritik der reinen Vernunft. Ber lin and New York: Walter de Gruyter, 1986. Maier, Anneliese. Kants Qualitiitskategorien. Berlin: Pan-Verlag, K. Metzner, 1930. Reprinted. Vaduz, Liechtenstein: Topos Verlag, 1978. Marcus, Ernst. Aus den Tiefen des Erkennens. Kants Lehre von der Apperzeption ..
(dem Selbstbewuj3tsein), der Kategorialverbindung und den Verstandesgrund siitzen in neuer verstiindlicher Darstellung; ein Kommentar zur transzenden talen Logik (Kritik der reinen Vernunft, Teil II). Munich: E. Reinhardt, 1 925. Massolo, Arturo. Introduzione alla analitica kantiana. Florence: G. C. Sansoni, 1946. Metz, Wilhelm. Kategoriendeduktion und produktive Einbildungskraft in der theo retischen Philosophie Kants und Fichtes. Stuttgart-Bad Cannstatt: Frommann Holzboog, 1 99 1 . Mohr, Georg. Das sinnliche lch. Innerer Sinn und Bewuj3tsein bei Kant. Wiirzburg: Konigshausen & Neumann, 1 99 1 . Montero, Fernando. Mente y sentido interno en la Cr(tica de la raz6n pura. Bar celona: Editorial Critica, 1989. Morchen, Hermann. Die Einbildungskraft bei Kant. 2d, unchanged ed. Tiibingen: M. Niemeyer, 1970 (1 930). Muralt, Andre de. La Conscience transcendantale dans Ie criticisme kantien. Essai sur l 'unite d 'aperception. Paris: Aubier, 1 958. Obergfell, Frank. BegriJf und Gegenstand bei Kant. Eine phiinomenologische Un
tersuchung zum Schematismus der empirischen und mathematischen BegriJfe und der reinen VerstandesbegriJfe in der "Kritik der reinen Vernunft. Wiirzburg: ..
Konigshausen & Neumann, 1985. Penaloza Ramella, Walter I. El Conocimiento inferencial y la deducci6n trascen dental. Lima: Universidad Nacional Mayor de San Marcos, 1962. Pierce, D. Morgan. Kant's Metaphysical Deduction: The Role of Predication in the First Edition of the Critique of Pure Reason. Heidelberg: Universitat, 1981 Pierobon, Frank. Systeme et representation. La Deduction transcendantale des categories dans la Critique de la raison pure. Grenoble: J. Millon, 1 993 .
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
805
Pozar, Michael S . . Self, Time and Subject in Heidegger and Kant. Ottawa: National Library of Canada, 1986. Reich, Klaus. The Completeness of Kant's Table of Judgments. Trans. Jane KnelIer and Michael Losonsky. With a foreword by Lewis White Beck. Stanford: Stanford University Press, 1992. Translation of Vollstiindigkeit der Kantischen Urteilstafel. Berlin: R. Schoetz, 1 932. 2d ed. Berlin: R. Schoetz, 1 948. Re printed. Hamburg: F. Meiner, 1 986. Rohs, Peter. Transzendentale Logik. MeisenheimlGlan: A. Hain, 1 976. Salvucci, Pasquale. La Dottrina kantiana deLlo schematismo trascendentale. Urbino: S.T.E.U., 1 957. ScaraveIli, Luigi, ed. L'Analitica trascendentale. Scritti inediti su Kant. With an introduction by Mario Corsi. Florence: La Nuova Italia, 1 980. Scheffer, Thomas. Kants Kriterium der Wahrheit. Eine systematische Interpreta
tion der Argumentation fiir die Anschauungsformen und Kategorien a priori in der "Kritik der reinen Vemunft. Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter, 1 993. Schtiler, Wilhelm Franz. Die transzendentale Einheit der Apperzeption von Imma nuel Kant. Bern: SeIbstverlag, 1 959 (© 1 958). Schtinrich, Gerhard. Kategorien und transzendentale Argumentation. Kant und die Idee einer transzendentalen Semiotik. FrankfurtlMain: Suhrkamp, 198 1 . Schultz, Uwe. Das Problem des Schematismus bei Kant und Heidegger. Elmshom: "
E. Koch, 1 963. Snyder, Lee R. The Development of Cognitive Synthesis in Immanuel Kant and Ed mund Husserl. Lewiston, NY: E. Mellen, 1 995. Sommer, Manfred. ldentitat im Obergang: Kant. FrankfurtlMain: Suhrkamp, 1988. Stunna, Dieter. Kant iiber Selbstbewuj3tsein. Zum Zusammenhang von Erkennt niskritik �nd Theorie des Selbstbewuj3tseins. Hildesheim, Zurich, and New York: G. OIms, 1 985. Traversa, Guido. L'Unita che lega ['uno ai molti. La Darstellung in Kant. L' Aquila: L. U. Japadre, 1 99 1 . Waxman, Wayne. Kant's Model of the Mind: A New Interpretation of Transcen dental Idealism. New York: Oxford University Press, 199 1 . Weatherston, Martin. Categories and Temporality: Heidegger's Interpretation of Kant. Ottawa: National Library of Canada, 1 988. WOlff, Michael. Die Vollstiindigkeit der Kantischen Urteilstafel. With an Essay on Frege's Begriffsschrift. FrankfurtlMain: V. Klostermann, 1995.
5.
Transcendental Analytic: Principles, Nature, Immanence, Appearances, Things in Themselves, Amphiboly, Reflection
Adickes, Erich. Kant als Naturforscher. 2 vols. Berlin: WaIter de Gruyter, 1924-25. Kant und das Ding an sich. Berlin: R. Heise, 1 924. Reprinted. Hildesheim and New York: G. OIms, 1977. Artz, Johannes. Der Substanzbegrijf bei Kant und Hegel. Quakenbriick: C. Trute, 1 932. Beets, Muus G. J. The Shape of Reality: An Approach to Kant 's Analogies. Delft: Eburon, 1 986.
_.
806
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
Butts, Robert E. Kant and the Double Government Methodology: Supersensibility and Method in Kant's Philosophy of Science. Dordrecht and Boston: D. Reidel Pub. Co.; Hingham, Mass.: Kluwer Academic Publishers, 1984, 1987. Doring, Woldemar Oskar. Der Anhang zum analytischen Teile der Kritik der rein en
Vernunft. Uber die Amphibolie der Reflexionsbegriffe, exegetisch-kritisch beleuchtet. Leipzig-Reudnitz: Hoffmann, 1904. Ehrenberg, Hans. Kants mathematische Grundsatze der reinen Naturwissenschaft. Leipzig: J. B . Hirschfeld, 1910. Ewing, Alfred C. Kant 's Treatment of Causality. London: K. Paul, Trench, Trub ner; Boston: Routledge & Kegan Paul, 1924. Reprinted. Hamden, Conn.: Ar chon Books, 1969. Falkenburg, Brigitte. Die Form der Materie: Zur Metaphysik der Natur bei Kant und Hegel. FrankfurtlMain: Athenaum, 1987. Gersch, Walter. Der transzendentale Existenzbeweis in Kants kritischer Meta physik der auJ3erbewuJ3ten Wirklichkeit. Wtirzburg: Konrad Triltsch, 1938. Gloy, Karen. Die Kantische Theorie der Naturwissenschaft. Eine Strukturanalyse ihrer Moglichkeit. ihres Umfangs und ihrer Grenzen. Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter, 1976. Grunewald, Bernward. Modalitiit und empirisches Denken. Eine kritische Ausein andersetzung mit der Kantischen Modaltheorie. Hamburg: F. Meiner, 1986. Heidegger, Martin. What Is a Thing ? Trans. W. B. Barton, Jr., and Vera Deutsch. With an analysis by Eugene T. Gendlin. Chicago: H. Regnery Co.; South Bend, Ind.: Gateway Editions, 1967. Reprinted. Lanham, Md. : University Press of America, 1 985. Translation of Die Frage nach dem Ding. Zu Kants Lehre von den transzendentalen Grundsiitzen. Ttibingen: M. Niemeyer, 1962, 1975. Newly ed. by Petra Jager. FrankfurtlMain: V. Klostermann, 1984. Heidemann, Ingeborg. Spontaneitat und Zeitlichkeit. Ein Problem der Kritik der reinen Vernunft. Cologne: KOiner Universitats-Verlag, 1 958. Imanishi, Konin. Erfahrung und Wirklichkeit. Eine experimentelle Betrachtung des
"Amphiboliekapitels " unter textanalytischem, "recipiens " -bezogenem Aspekt; ein bislang noch wenig beachteter Zugang zu Kants "Kritik der reinen Ver nunft. FrankfurtlMain and New York: P. Lang, 1989. Jansohn, Heinz. Kants Lehre von der Subjektivitiit. Eine systematische Analyse des Verhaltnisses von transzendentaler und empirischer Subjektivitat in seiner theo retischen Philosophie. Bonn: H. Bouvier, 1969. Klotz, Christian. Kants Widerlegung des problematischen Idealismus. Gottingen: ..
Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht, 1993. Kolln, Fritz. Der Immanenzgedanke in der Kantischen Erfahrungslehre. Ein Bei
trag zum Problem des Transzendenzmotivs als Faktor immanenter Systematik innerhalb des kritischen Idealismus. Hamburg: Friederichsen, Walter de Gruyter,
1929. Kowalewsky, Erich Julius Albert. Kants "Widerlegung des Idealismus" im Zusam menhang der "transzendentalen Analytik. Konigsberg: E. Steinbacher, 1927 Llano Cifuentes, Alejandro. Fenomeno y trascendencia en Kant. Pamplona: Edi ciones Universidad de Navarra, 1 973. ..
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
807
Lopez Molina, Antonio M. Razon pura y juicio reftexionante en Kant. Madrid: De partamento de Metaffsica, Facultad de Filosofia y Cc. de la Educacion, Uni versidad Complutense, 1983. Martinez de Velasco, Luis. Idealismo crftico e inmanencia en el pensamiento kan tiano. Madrid: Orfgenes, 1986. Mayz Vallenilla, Ernesto. El Problema de la nada en Kant. Madrid: Revista de Oc cidente, 1 965. Miller, Oscar W. The Kantian Thing-in-Itself; or, The Creative Mind. New York: Philosophical Library, 1956. Mudroch, Vilem. Kants Theorie der physikalischen Gesetze. Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter, 1 987. Nagel, Gordon. The Structure of Experience: Kant's System of Principles. Chicago and London: University of Chicago Press, 1 983. Pavon Rodriguez, Manuel. Objetividad y juicio en la Crftica de Kant. Seville: Ser vicio de Publicaciones de la Universidad de Sevilla, 1 988. Petrassi, Giovanni. II Problema della causalita in I. Kant. Introduzione. Rome: Bul zoni, 1 99 1 . Petry, Giinther. Kants Weltidee. Die transzendentalen Bedingungen der Erfahrungs welt. Innsbruck: Solaris, 1985, 1 987. Pitschl, Florian. Das Verhiiltnis yom Ding an sich und den Ideen des Vbersinnli
chen in Kants kritischer Philosophie. Eine Auseinandersetzung mit T. I. Oiser man. Munich: Minerva-Publikation, 1 979. Prauss, Gerold. Erscheinung bei Kant. Ein Problem der "Kritik der reinen Ver nunft. " Berlin: Walter de Gruyter, 1 97 1 . . Kant und das Problem der Dinge an sich. Bonn: Bouvier, 1 974, 1 989. Puech, Michel. Kant et La causalite. Etude sur la formation du systeme critique.
__
Paris: J. Vrin, 1 990. Reenpaa, Yrjo. Vber den Kantischen Grundsatz der Kausalitiit. Helsinki: Suoma lainen Tiedeakatemia, 1 953. Reuter, Peter. Kants Theorie der Reftexionsbegriffe. Eine Untersuchung zum Am phiboliekapitel der Kritik der reinen Vemunft. Wiirzburg: Konigshausen & Neu mann, 1 989. Sachta, Peter. Die Theorie der Kausalitiit in Kants Kritik der reinen Vemunft. MeisenheimlGlan: A. Hain, 1975. Schafer, Lothar. Kants Metaphysik der Natur. Berlin: Walter de Gruyter, 1966. Scheffel, Dieter. Kants Theorie der Substantialitiit. Untersuchung ihrer Ent wicklungsgeschichte. Cologne and Vienna: Bohlau, 1979. Schiissler, Ingeborg. Philosophie und Wissenschaftspositivismus. Die mathemati
schen Grundsiitze in Kants Kritik der reinen Vemunft und die Verselbstiindi gung der Wissenschaften. FrankfurtlMain: V. Klostermann, 1 979. Shaw, Gisela. Das Problem des Dinges an sich in der englischen Kantinterpreta tion. Bonn: H. Bouvier, 1 969. Takeda, Sueo. Kant und das Problem der Analogie. Eine Forschung nach dem Logos der Kantischen Philosophie. The Hague: M. Nijhoff, 1969, 1970. Teichner, Wilhelm. Die intelligible Welt. Ein Problem der theoretischen und prak tischen Philosophie I. Kants. MeisenheimlGlan: A. Hain, 1967.
808
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
ThOle, Bernhard. Kant und das Problem der GesetzmiiJ3igkeit der Natur. Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter, 1 99 1 . Vasconi, Paola. La Cosa in se e la doppia aJfezione in Kant. Uno studio sui realismo empirico kantiano. Rome: Bulzoni, 1 988. Vuillemin, Jules. Physique et meraphysique kantiennes. Paris: Presses universi taires de France, 1 955, 1 987. Wettstein, Ronald Harri . Eine Gegenstandstheorie der Wahrheit. Argumentativ
rekonstruierender Aktualisierungs- und Erweiterungsversuch von Kants kriti scher Theorie. Konigsteinffaunus: Forum Academicum in der Verlagsgruppe Athenaum, Hain, Scriptor, Hanstein, 1980. 2d, greatly rev. and emended ed., as
Kritische Gegenstandstheorie der Wahrheit. Argumentative Rekonstruktion von Kants kritischer Theorie. WUrzburg: Konigshausen & Neumann, 1 983. Wolfram, Roland. War Kant ein Dualist? Regensburg: S. Roderer, 1988. Wood, Allen w., ed. Self and Nature in Kant's Philosophy. Ithaca, N.Y., and Lon don: Cornell University Press, 1 9 84.
6.
Transcendental Dialectic: General Topics, Paralogisms, Antinomies
Alquie, Ferdinand. La Critique kantienne de la metaphysique. Un Commentaire de la "Dialectique transcendantale. Paris: Presses universitaires de France, 1968. Antweiler, Anton. Die Anfangslosigkeit der Welt nach Thomas von Aquin und Kant. 2 vols. Trier: Paulinus, 196 1 . Azm, Sadik J . al-. The Origins of Kant's Arguments in the Antinomies. Oxford: Clar endon Press, 1972. B ennett, Jonathan F. Kant's Dialectic. London and New York: Cambridge Univer sity Press, 1974. Choi, In-Sook. Die Paralogismen der Seelenlehre in der ersten und der zweiten Auf/age der "Kritik der reinen Vemunft. " FrankfurtlMain and New York: P. Lang, 1 99 1 . Fang, Joong. Das Antinomienproblem i m Entstehungsgang der Transzendental philosophie. MUnster: Regensberg, 1957. Freuler, Leo. Kant et la meraphysique speculative. Paris: J. Vrin, 1992. Gneiting, Ulrich. Erfahrung und Dialektik. Die [dentitat des Bedeutungs- und des ..
Verijikationsproblems als Schliissel zu einem nicht-idealistischen Verstiindnis der dialektischen Philosophie. FrankfurtlMain and New York: P. Lang, 1 990. Heimsoeth, Heinz. Atom, Seele, Monade. Historische Urspriinge und Hintergriinde von Kants Antinomie der Teilung. Mainz: Verlag der Akademie der Wissen
schaften und der Literatur; Wiesbaden: F. Steiner, 1 960. Hillmer, Philip M. The Antinomy Structure of Kant's Transcendental Dialectic. Lewiston, N.Y.: E. Mellen, 1989. Hoselbarth, Frank. Raum und Korper in der zweiten Antinomie der Kritik der reinell Vernunft Kants. FrankfurtlMain, Bern, and New York: P. Lang, 1983. Ishikawa, Furniyasu. Kants Denken von einem Dritten. Das Gerichtshof-Modell und das unendliche Urteil in der Antinomienlehre. FrankfurtlMain and New York: P. Lang, 1990.
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
809
Jones, Hardy E. Kant's Principle of Personality. Madison: University of Wisconsin Press, 1 97 1 . Kalter, Alfons. Kants vierter Paralogismus. Eine entwicklungsgeschichtliche Un
tersuchung zum Paralogismenkapitel der 1. Ausgabe der Kritik der reinen Ver nunft. MeisenheimlGlan: A. Hain, 1 975. Kimmerle, Gerd. Kritik der identitiitslogischen Vemunft. Untersuchung zur Dia lektik der Wahrheit bei Descartes und Kant. Konigsteinffaunus: Forum Aca
demicum in der Verlagsgruppe Athenaum, Hain, Scriptor, Hanstein, 1982. Ltitterfelds, Wilhelm. Kants Dialektik der Erfahrung. Zur antinomischen Struktur der endlichen Erkenntnis. MeisenheimlGlan: A. Hain, 1977. Rathschlag, Hans. Die Bedeutung der Antinomienfiir den Kritizismus. Berlin: Junker und Dtinnhaupt, 1936. Rottges, Heinz. Dialektik als Grund der Kritik. Grundlegung einer Neuinterpreta
tion der Kritik der reinen Vernunft durch den Nachweis der Dialektik von Be deutung und Gebrauch als Voraussetzung der Analytik. Konigsteinffaunus: Hain, 1 98 1 . Schmucker, Josef. Das Weltproblem in Kants Kritik der reinen Vernunft. Kommen
tar und Strukturanalyse des ersten Buches und des zweiten Hauptstiicks des zweiten Buches der transzendentalen Dialektik. Bonn: Bouvier, 1990. Toll, Charles Hansen. Die erste Antinomie Kants und der Pantheismus. Berlin:
Reuther & Reichard, 1 910. Reprinted. Wtirzburg: A. Liebing, [ 1 968?]. Torrevejano, Mercedes. Razan y metafisica en Kant. Sentido de la dialectica trascendental como critica de la metafisica. Madrid: Narcea, 1982. Vogel, Karl. Kant und die Paradoxien der Vielheit. Die Monadenlehre in Kants phi
losophischer Entwicklung bis zum Antinomienkapitel der "Kritik der reinen Ver nunft. " M�isenheimlGlan: A. Hain, 1 975. 2d, rev. ed. FrankfurtlMain: A. Hain, 1 986. Wike, Victoria S. Kant's Antinomies of Reason: Their Origin and Their Resolution. Washington: University Press of America, 1982. Wolff, Michael. Der Begriff des Widerspruchs . Eine Studie zur Dialektik Kants und Hegels. Konigsteinffaunus: Hain, 1 98 1 .
7.
Transcendental Dialectic and Doctrine of Method: Ideal, God, Immortality
Andersen, Svend. Ideal und Singularitiit. Uber die Funktion des Gottesbegriffes in Kants theoretischer Philosophie. Berlin and New York: Walter de Gruyter, 1983. Cortina Orts, Adela. Dias en la filosofia trascendental de Kant. Salamanca: Uni versidad Pontificia, 1 98 1 . Cramer, Wolfgang. Gottesbeweise und ihre Kritik. Priifung ihrer Beweiskraft. FrankfurtlMain: V. Klostermann, 1967. Dell'Oro, Regina Ortiz-Mena. From Existence to the Ideal: Continuity in Kant's Theology. New York: P. Lang, 1994. Eklund, Harald. Die Wiirde der Menschheit. Uber die erkenntnistheoretischen Voraussetzungen der Reiigionsphilosophie bei Kant. Uppsala: A. B. Lunde quist; Leipzig: O. Harassowitz, 1947.
812
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
Hartnack, Justus. Immanuel Kant: An Explanation ofHis Theory of Knowledge and Moral Philosophy. Atlantic Highlands, N.J.: Humanities Press, 1 974. Hochberg, Gary M. Kant: Moral Legislation and Two Senses of ·Will. Washing ton: University Press of America, 1 982. Hoffman, W. Michael. Kant's Theory of Freedom: A Metaphysical Inquiry. Wash ington: University Press of America, 1 979. Hudson, Hud. Kant's Compatibilism. Ithaca, N.Y.: Cornell University Press, 1 994. Iribarne, Julia Valentina. La Libertad en Kant. Alcances eticos y connotaciones metafisicas. Buenos Aires: Ediciones Carlos Lohle, 198 1 . Kuhlmann, Wolfgang. Kant und die Transzendentalpragmatik. Wurzburg: Kanigs hausen & Neumann, 1 992. Miller, Edmund M. The Basis of Freedom: A Study of Kant's Theory. Sydney: Aus tralasian Assoc. of Psychology and Philosophy, 1 924. Ortwein, Birger. Kants problematische Freiheitslehre. Bonn: Bouvier, 1983. Prauss, Gerold, ed. Handlungstheorie und Transzendentalphilosophie. Frankfurt! Main: V. Klostermann, 1986. . Kant iiber Freiheit als Autonomie. FrankfurtlMain: V. Klostermann, 1983. . Kant. Zur Deutung seiner Theorie von Erkennen und Handeln. Cologne: Kiepenheuer & Witsch, 1 973. Quinn, Dennis P. An Examination of Kant's Treatment of Transcendental Freedom. Lanham, Md.: University Press of America, 1 988. Rastetter, Konrad. BewuJ3tsein der Freiheit. Zur ontologischen Struktur einer zen tralen Kategorie der Philolosphie Kants. B amberg: M. Schadel, 1 977. Sandermann, Edmund. Die Moral der Vernunft. Transzendentale Handlungs- und Legitimationstheorie in der Philosophie. FreiburglBreisgau: K. Alber, 1989. Sommerlath, Ernst. Kants Lehre vom intelligiblen Charakter: Ein Beitrag zu seiner Freiheitslehre. Leipzig: A. Deichert (Werner Scholl), 1 9 1 7 . Stockhammer, Morris. Kants Zurechnungsidee und Freiheitsantinomie. Cologne: KaIner Universitats-Verlag, 1961. Sullivan, Roger J. Immanuel Kant's Moral Theory. Cambridge: Cambridge Uni versity Press, 1989. Velkley, Richard L. Freedom and the End of Reason: On the Moral Foundation of Kant's Critical Philosophy. Chicago and London: University of Chicago Press, 1 989. Vogel, Peter. Kausalitiit und Freiheit in der Piidagogik. Studien im AnschluJ3 an die Freiheitsantinomie bei Kant. FrankfurtlMain and New York: P. Lang, 1 990. Ward, Keith. The Development of Kant's View of Ethics. Oxford: Blackwell; New York: Humanities Press, 1 972. Wenzel, Uwe Justus. Anthroponomie: Kants Archiiologie der Autonomie. Berlin: Akademie Verlag, 1992. '
__
__
9.
Doctrine of Method: Architectonic, Systematicity
Adickes, Erich. Kants Systematik als systembildender Factor: Berlin: Mayer & Muller, 1 887.
SELECTED BIBLIOGRAPHY
813
Conrad, Elfriede. Kants Logilcvorlesungen als neuer Schliissel zur Architektonik der
Kritik der reinen Vemunft. Die Ausarbeitung der Gliederungsentwiirfe in den Logikvorlesungen als Auseinendersetzung mit der Tradition. Stuttgart-Bad Cannstatt: Frommann-Holzboog, 1994. Kopper, Margit. Die Systemfrage in der transzendentalen Methodenlehre der Kri
tik der reinen Vernunft und ihre Bedeutung for die Reflexion des Wissens in sich bei Hegel. Wiirzburg: Konigshausen & Neumann, 1 99 1 . Lafuente, Maria Isabel. Ideas, principios y dialectica. La Sistematizaci6n racional como proyecto libre en la jilosofia de Kant. Leon: Centro de Estudios Meto dologicos e Interdisciplinares, Universidad de Leon, 1990. Palmquist, Stephen R. Kant 's System of Perspectives: An Architectonic Interpreta tion of the Critical Philosophy. Lanham, Md: University Press of America, 1 993. Pierobon, Frank. Kant et la fondation architectonique de la meraphysique. With a foreword by Marc Richir. Grenoble: J. Millon, 1990. Werkmeister, William H. Kant: The Architectonic and Development of His Phi losophy. La Salle, Ill. : Open Court, 1980 (© 1 979).
GLOSSARY
The Gennan tenns are usually given not as they appear in the original text, but in their modem spelling, in order that they can more easily be found in a modem Gennan dictionary. For translations from English to Gennan, please see the Index. A
abandern Abbruch (tun)
Aberglaube abbrechen abfassen
abflieBen aus Abfolge abgeleitet abgesondert abgezogen Abhandlung abhangend abhangig abhelfen Abkunft ablaufen ableiten
to alter, to change impairment (to impair, to damage) superstition sever, cut off to draw up, to formulate, to compose to flow from succession, sequence derivative, derived separate, apart, abstract abstract treatise dependent dependent to remedy descent to elapse, to pass to derive
Abmessung abnehmen abreiBen AbriB Absicht
absolut absondern
abstammen Abstammung absteigen abstrahieren abstrahiert abstrakt abteilen abwarts Abwechslung
815
dimension to decrease, to gather, to glean to disrupt, to break sketch aim, intention, intent, (point of) view, regard, respect absolute to separate, to isolate, to set apart to originate, to stem origin, lineage to descend to abstract abstract(ed) abstract to separate downward variety
816
GLOSSARY
abweichen abziehen Achtsamkeit Achtung adaquat affektieren Affektion Affinitat affizieren Aggregat Aggregation ahnen akademisch akroamatisch Akzidenz Algebra All allbefassend alleinig allenthalben allererst allerhochst allerrealst allerwiirts alles allgegenwiirtig allgemein allgenugsam allgewaltig Allheit allmachtig allmiihlich allvermogend Allvermogenheit allwissend Alten, die Amphibolie Analogie Analogon analysieren Analysis Analytik
to depart, to deviate, to diverge to abstract, to subtract attenti veness respect adequate to affect being affected affinity to affect aggregate aggregation to suspect academic acroamatic accident algebra universe, total all-encompassing unique, sole in each case, everywhere, throughout first (of all), for the first time most supreme maximally real everywhere, in all cases everything omnipresent universal, general all-sufficient omnipresent allness omnipotent gradually all-powerful omnipotence omniscient the ancients amphiboly analogy analogue to analyze analysis analytic
analytisch andem andichten anfangen anfanglich anfangs anfechten anfiihren angeben angeblich Angelegenheit angemessen angenehm Angriff anhaften anhangen anheften anheischig machen, sich animalisch ankundigen Anlage AnlaB Anleitung anlocken anmaBen, sich anmerken annehmen
anordnen Anreiz anschauen
analytic to change to attribute fictitiously to begin, to start, to set (go) about at first, initially, at the outset at first, initially, at the outset to challenge, to controvert to adduce, to cite, to mention, to set forth to indicate, to state, to give alleged concem(s) appropriate, adequate, fitting, commensurate agreeable attack, charge to adhere to attach, to adhere to attach to promise animal to announce, to proclaim predisposition prompting guidance to entice to presume, to pretend, to claim to note, to point out, to comment to assume, to suppose, to take (on), to accept, to adopt to arrange stimulus, inducement to intuit
GLOSSARY
anschauend anschaulich Anschauung Anschauungsart Anschlag Ansehen
ansehen an sich
Anspruch Anstalt Anstandigkeit anstellen
Anstrengung Anteil Anthropologie Anthropomorphismus Antinomie Antithesis Antithetik Antizipation antreffen antreiben Antrieb antworten Anwachs anweisen Anweisung anzeigen Anziehung apagogisch
intuitive intuitive intuition kind of intuition, way of intuiting project reputation, authority, look, air(s) to regard, to watch, to view in itself (themselves), intrinsically, in principle claim, entitlement arrangement propriety to perform, to engage in, to carry out (or on), to undertake, to arrange effort, endeavor contribution, share, sharing anthropology anthropomorphism antinomy antithesis antithetic anticipation to encounter, to find, to meet to impel impulse to answer, to reply, to respond accretion to impose, to assign, to enjoin instruction to indicate, to poin t out attraction apagogic
apodiktisch Apperzeption Apprehension Arbeit Architektonik Argument Argutation Arithmetik Art Artikulation assertorisch Assoziation Asthetik Astronomie asymptotisch Atheismus Atomistik Attribute aufbehalten aufbewahren aufbieten aufdecken aufeinander folgend Aufenthalt auferlegen auffinden auffordern Aufgabe aufgeben
aufheben
aufhellen aufhoren Aufklarung auflegen
817
apodeictic apperception apprehension work, job architectonic argument subtlety arithmetic kind, way, manner, species, style articulation, structure assertoric association aesthetic astronomy asymptoticall y atheism atomism attribute to preserve to preserve to enlist, to muster, to summon to uncover, to expose successive residence to impose to discover to call for (upon), to challenge problem, task, business to assign, to impose, to abandon to annul, to abolish, to destroy to clear up to cease, to stop clarification, enlightenment to enjoin
818
GLOSSARY
to solve, to resolve, to analyze aufmerksam attentive aufnehmen to take up, to adopt, to receive, to record Aufrichtigkeit uprightness aufsammeln to gather AufschluB information aufsteigen to ascend aufstellen to put forth aufsuchen to locate, to look for, to search for aufwarts upward aufweisen to display, to bring out, to show forth aufzahlen to enumerate to show aufzeigen Augenblick instant augenscheinlich obvious, manifest Ausarbeitung elaboration ausbreiten to expand, to broaden ausbreiten, sich to extend, to expand Ausdehnung extension Ausdruck expression, term ausfinden to discover ausfindig machen to discover Ausflucht escape, subterfuge Ausforderung challenge ausfiihren to carry out, to achieve, to execute ausfiihrlich comprehensive, elaborate ausfiillen to occupy, to fill in ausgeben als to pass of as, to claim to be extensive, spread ausgebreitet out to seek, to aim at ausgehen auf to emanate from, ausgehen von to start from auflosen
auslaufen Auslegung ausmessen ausnehmen ausrotten aussagen ausschlieBen auBer(halb) auBer(lich) auBern auBerordentlich auBersinnlich auBerst AuBerung Aussicht aussinnen aussondern aussprechen Ausstattung ausstellen ausstoBen ausiiben Ausweg ausweichen auswickeln auszeichnen Axiom B
Bahn bandigen Bau
B aumeister B auwerk Bearbeitung
to amount, to result, to issue interpretation to survey to exclude, to except to eradicate to state, to assert to exclude outside outer, external, extrinsic, outward to utter, to manifest, to express extraordinary extrasensible extreme, outermost, utmost utterance, manifestation outlook, prospect to excogitate to differentiate to pronounce endowment to put forth to expel to exercise, to perform, to practice, to exert escape, way (out) to evade, to escape to unfold to distinguish, to mark axiom route, path to subdue, to restrain edifice, structure, construction architect building, structure treatment, work on
GLOSSARY
Bedenken
concern, qualms
beharrend
permanent
bedenklich
precarious,
beharrlich
permanent
behaupten
to assert, to
Bedenklichkeit
perplexity, qualms
bedeutend
significant
Behuf
sake, behalf
Bedeutung
signification,
behutsam
cautious
scrupulous
meaning, significance bedingt
conditioned,
maintain
beieinander bestehen Beifall
conditional
to coexist approval, approbation, assent
Bedingung
condition
bediirfen
to require, to need
Beigesellung
association
befassen
to comprise,
Beihilfe
aid, assistance
beilegen
to ascribe, to
beimessen
to assign,
to encompass, to take in(to) befassen, sich mit to take up, to
befinden, sich
to impute,
with
to attribute
found) befolgen
attribute
occupy oneself to be (located, to comply with, to follow, to observe, to pursue Beftirderung
furtherance
befragen
to consult, to interrogate
befreien
to free, to liberate
befremdlich
disturbing, strange
befugen
to entitle
Befugnis
right, authority
beiordnen
to coordinate
Beispiel
example
Beistand
support, aid
Beistimmung
assent
Beitrag
contribution
Beitritt
assistance
beiwohnen
to attend, to reside
beizahlen
to include among
bejahend
affirmative
(in) (with) bekiimpfen
to combat
bekommen
to acquire, to
bekiimmernd
worrisome
begabt
endowed
Begebenheit
event
begehen
to commit
belachenswert
ridiculous
Begehrung
desire
beleben
to enliven, to
Begierde
desire
beglaubigen
to authenticate
belegen
to support
Begleitung
concomitance,
belehren
to instruct, to
belehrend
didactic
obtain, to gain
animate
accompanying begreifen
to comprehend, to
begreiflich
comprehensible
comprise begrenzen Begriff behafted Behandlung
inform, to teach beleuchten
to examine
beliebig
this or that,
to bound, to confine concept encumbered treatment, action on, manipulation
819
arbitrary, optional Bemerkung
observation, remark
bemerkungswiirdig
noteworthy
820
GLOSSARY
Bemiihung Benennung Benutzung beobachten berechtigen berichtigen beriichtigt berufen, sich beruhen beruhigen beriihmt Beschaffenheit
Beschaftigung bescheiden Beschonigung
beschranken
Beschriinktheit beschreiben beschuldigen beschwerlich Besitz besonder besorglich Bestand bestandig Bestandteil bestatigen bestehen bestehend, (fUr sich [selbst]) bestimmbar bestimmen
endeavor name, designation employment to observe to entitle, to justify to correct notorious to appeal, to plead to rest, to be due, to be based to calm illustrious, famous, celebrated character(istic), property, constitution activity, enterprise, occupation modest rationalization, painting over, palliation to limit, to confine, to restrict, to delimit limitedness to describe to accuse difficult, burdensome possession particular, special, separate, specific worrisome stability steady, constant, subsistent component to confirm to consist, to subsist, to hold (self-)subsistent determinable to determine, to make determinate, to define, to destine
bestimmend bestimmt
Bestimmung
Bestimmungsgrund bestrafen Bestrebung bestreiten betrachten
Betrug beurteilen bewahren Beweger, erster Bewegung Beweggrund Bewegungsgrund Bewegursache Beweis Beweisgrund Beweiskraft bewirken Bewunderung BewuBtsein bezeichnen
Beziehung Bild bilden billig bleiben bleibend
determinative, determining determinate, determined, definite determination, vocation, destination, attribute determining basis to punish endeavor to dispute, to deny to examine, to consider, to contemplate, to regard, to study deception, fraud to judge, to pass judgment on to verify prime mover motion, movement motive motive motivating cause proof basis of proof (for proving) cogency to bring about admiration consciousness, awareness to characterize, to mark, to designate, to indicate reference, relation image to mold, to form proper, appropriate. legitimate to endure, to remain, to abide enduring
GLOSSARY
Blendwerk blind Boden borgen brauchbar btindig C
Chaos Charakter
Charakteristik Chemie D
darbieten darlegen
darreichen Darstellung dartun da sein Dasein Data Dauer dauerhaft Deduktion Definition deistisch Dekadik Deklaration Dekomposition Demonstration demtitig demutsvoll denken Denken, das Denkungsart Denkungsvermogen Dependenz deutlich Dialektik Diallele
deception blind soil, ground, terrain, territory, bottom to take usable, useful cogent chaos character, characteristic characteristic chemistry to offer, to provide to set forth, to display to offer exhibition, exposition to establish to exist existence, existent data duration lasting deduction definition deistic decimal system declaration decomposition demonstration humble humble to think, to conceive, to mean, to seek thought, thinking way of thinking power of thought dependence distinct dialectic circle
Dichotomie dichten didaktisch dienlich Dignitiit Ding Ding an sich (selbst) direkt dirigieren disjunktiv diskursiv Disziplin dogmatisch Doktrin drangen dringen dringend Drittes, ein Dualismus dunkel durchaus
durchdringen durchruhren durchgangig durchgehends DUrchzahlung dUrfen dynamisch E
EbenmaB Ehrbarkeit ehrstichtig eigen Eigenschaft Einbildung
82 1
dichotomy to invent, to engage in invention didactic suitable, useful dignity thing, entity thing in itself direct to govern disjunctive discursive discipline dogmatic doctrine to urge, to press to penetrate urgent, compelling something third dualism obscure throughout, thoroughly, definitely, assuredly, without exception to penetrate, to permeate to carry through thoroughgoing, throughout thoroughgoing, throughout enumeration may, need dynamical balance respectability ambitious own, particular, in (its) own right property imagination
822
GLOSSARY
Einbildungskraft eindringen Eindruck einerlei
Einerleiheit einfach einflieBen einfloBen EinfluB eingebildet eingeschriinkt einheimisch Einheit Einhelligkeit einig einleuchtend einnehmen einriiumen
Einrichtung einschriinken
einsehen
Einsicht einstimmig
Einstimmigkeit Einstimmung Einteilung Eintracht einwenden Einwohner Einwurf
(power of) imagination to penetrate impression (entirely, one and) the same, unifonn sameness, identity simple to influence, to impinge to imbue influence imagined, imaginary limited indigenous unity, unit agreement, accordance one, single, unitary evident, plausible, convincing to occupy to grant, to concede, to admit arrangement to limit, to restrict, to confine, to delimit to have (gain) insight into, to see, to discern insight unanimous, agreeing, accordant agreement, hannony agreement, hannony division concord to object inhabitant objection
einzeln
individual, singular, single
Einzelnheit
singularity
einzig
single, sole, one, only
Ektypon
ectype
Elangueszenz
fading out
Eleganz
elegance
Element
element
Elementarlehre
doctrine of elements
Empfiinglichkeit
receptivity
empfehlen
to commend
empfinden
to sense
Empfindung
sensation
empirisch
empirical
Empirismus
empiricism
Endabsicht
final aim
Ende
end
endlich
finite, finally, in the end
endlos
endless
Endursache
final cause
Endzweck
final purpose to dispense with, to forgo
entbehren entdecken
entfernt Entgegensetzung entgehen enthalten
to discover, to uncover, to reveal, to detect remote, removed, distant opposition, contrast to escape
to contain, to include, to involve, to comprise forgo, renounce entsagen to decide, to settle entscheiden definite entschieden entschlieBen, sich to decide to arise, to spring, entspringen to issue, to originate
GLOSSARY
entstehen
entwerfen entwickeln Entwurf Epigenesis Episyllogismus erbauen Erdbeschreibung erdenken erdichten Erdkunde Ereignis Erfahrung Erfahrungs-, der Erfahrung Erfindung Erfolg erfordem erforschen erfiillen erganzen ergeben, sich ergrtinden erhaben erheben erheben, sich erheblich erheischen
to arise, to originate, to be brought about, to come about to outline, to draw up, to sketch to extricate, to unfold, to develop plan, design, sketch, project epigenesis episyllogism to build geography to think up, to devise invent geography happening experience experiential, of experience invention, discovery result, success to require to explore to occupy, to fill, to fulfill to compensate for, to complement, to supplement to surrender, to yield, to result to explore, to fathom sublime, august, exalted to elevate, to raise, to lift (up), to exalt to rise (above) significant, important, considerable to require
Erinnerung erkennen Erkenntnis ErkenntnisErkenntnisart erkliiren ErkHirungsgrund
Erkundigung eriautem eroffnen Erorterung erregen erreichen
errichten Erscheinung Erschleichung Erschleichung, durch erschlichen erschweren ersinnen Ersparung erst
823
notice, reminder, remark, recollection to cognize, to recognize cognition cognitive, of cognition way of cognizing, kind of cognition to explicate, to explain, to declare basis of explanation, basis for explaining inquiry, information, exploration to elucidate, to illustrate to open up, to disclose, to reveal exposition, discussion to arouse, to give rise to to attain, to reach, to accomplish, to be adequate to to erect, to build, to set up appearance subreption surreptitious(ly) surreptitious(ly) to impede to devise, to excogitate, to think of parsimony first, primary, prime, earliest
824
GLOSSARY
Erstaunen erstrecken, sich erteilen erwagen erweisen erweitern, (sich) erweiternd Erweiterungserwerben erzeugen etwas Euthanasie Evidenz ewig Existenz Existenzialexistierend Experiment Explikation Exponent exponieren Exposition extensiv F
Fach Faden Fiihigkeit Fall falsch fassen
fassen, in sich faBlich Fassungskraft Fatalismus faul fechten Fehler fehlerfrei
amazement to extend to confer, to assign to examine, to consider to prove to expand expansive expansive to acquire to produce, to generate something euthanasia (self-)evidence eternal, perpetual existence existential existent, existing experiment explication index, indicator to expound exposition extensive field thread, course capacity case, instance, situation wrong, false, deceptive to comprehend, to encompass, to apprehend, to seize, to frame, to take to comprise comprehensible power of comprehension fatalism lazy to fight mistake, error, defect faultless
fehlschlagen FehlschluB fein Feld Fertigkeit fest festsetzen feststehen feststellen Figur finden
Flache flieBen
fliissig Folge
Folge nacheinander folgen folgend folgem
Folgesatz fordem fOrdem Form formativ Formel forschen fortdauem Fortgang
fortgehen fortschreiten
to fail fallacious inference acute, delicate realm, field proficiency solid, firm to ascertain, to fix, to lay down to hold to establish figure, shape to find, to discover, to think, to believe plane, surface to flow, to be in flux, to emanate, to issue fluid succession, consequence, sequence, result sequentiality follow (upon), succeed following, subsequent to infer, to conclude, to deduce consequence to demand, to require to further, to promote form formative formula to investigate to continue progression, advance, progress to proceed, to progress to progress, to advance
GLOSSARY
fortsetzen Frage Freiheit fremd
fruchtbar fruchtlos Fundament Funktion Fiirwahrhalten FuB FuBsteig G
to continue, to pursue question freedom foreign, extraneous, outside, of another (of others) fertile, fruitful fruitless foundation function assent basis, footing, foothold course, path
gift course whole genus, type edifice, building to give, to put forth, to provide, to yield, to offer domain Gebiet to command, to gebieten enjoin, to dictate command Gebot use, usage Gebrauch Gedanke thought thought-entity Gedankending thought-being Gedankenwesen gedenken to mean, to plan, to bear in mind gedichtet fictional, fictitious Gefahr danger, risk Gefecht fight Gefiihl feeling, touch gegeben given Gegenbehauptung counterassertion Gegenrnittel remedy Gegensatz opposition, conflict, contrast, antithesis, counterproposition
Gabe Gang Ganzes Gattung Gebaude geben
Gegenstand gegenwiirtig Gegenwehr Gegenwirkung gegliedert Gegner gehalten Geist Geistes, des geistig geistreich gekiinstelt Gelegenheit Gelegenheitsursache gelehrig Gelehrsarnkeit Gelehrter gelten
gemiiBigt gemein gemeines Wesen gemeinsam Gemeinschaft gemeinschaftlich Gemiit Gemiitsgenau Genealogie Genehmigung geneigt genug genugsam genugtuend Geometrie
825
object, subject matter, topic present defense reaction, interference structured opponent, adversary obliged spirit intellectual spiritual brilliant artificial occasion occasioning cause teachable erudition scholar to hold, to count, to be valid, to apply, to be considered moderate common, usual, general, ordinary community common community, communion common, concerted, joint mind mental, of the mind exact, accurate, strict genealogy sanction inclined enough, sufficient, quite sufficient adequate, satisfactory geometry
826
GLOSSARY
gerade
geradezu Gerichtshof Geschaft Geschehen Geschichte Geschicklichkeit Geschtipf Gesellschaft Gesetz Gesetzgebung gesetzlich gesetzlos gesetzmaBig
Gesichtspunkt Gesinnung Gestalt gesund gewachsen gewagt Gewalt Gewinn gewiB Gewohnheit Glaube gleichartig gleichbedeutend gleichformig gleichgeltend gleichgiiltig gleichlautend Glied Gliederbau Gliick gliicklich Gliickseligkeit Gott Gotteserkenntnis
direct(ly), precisely, exactly, just straightforwardly tribunal, court of law business, task occurence, happening history skill creature society, company law legislation legal, of law lawless law-governed, lawful, legitimate point of view, viewpoint attitude shape, guise sound adequate daring force, authority, control gain certain habit, custom faith, belief homogeneous synonymous uniform equivalent indifferent, inconsequential homonymous member, link structure fortune, success happy, fortunate, lucky happiness God theology
Gottheit gottlich Grad Gravitation Grenze(n) grenzenlos Grenzlinie grob groB GroBe griibeln Grund Grundgriinden griinden, sich Grundfeste griindlich
Grundsatz giiltig Gute, das gutgesinnt H
haften Handelnder Handlung Hang Harmonie Haufen heben heften heilig Heilmittel heischen herausbringen
herbeirufen herleiten herrschen
deity divine degree gravitation boundary (bounds) boundless boundary line coarse, crude large, great, big, major, wide magnitude, size to ponder basis, ground, foundation basic, fundamental to be the basis for, to establish to be based, to rest foundation well-founded, thorough, solid, sound principle valid the good well-intentioned to adhere agent act, action propensity harmony heap, accumulation to remove to affix, to attach sacred remedy to demand to discover, to uncover, to extract to summon, to call in to derive to prevail, to be prevalent, to obtain
GLOSSARY
hervorbringen
Heterogeneitat Heuchelei heuristisch Hilfsmittel Hilfsquelle Himmel Himmelshinabgehen hinaufsteigen Hindernis
hinlanglich hinreichend hinweisen Hinzutun Hirngespinst hochst
Hoffnung Homogeneitat Horizont hyperbolisch hyperphysisch hypostasieren Hypothese
to produce, to generate, to give rise to heterogeneity hypocrisy heuristic remedy resource sky celestial to descend to ascend, to rise impediment, obstacle, hindrance sufficient, adequate sufficient, adequate to point addition chimera highest, supreme, exceedingly, utmost, extremely hope homogeneity horizon hyperbolic hyperphysical to hypostatize hypothesis
I leh, das Ideal idealisch idealisierend Idealismus Idealitat Idee Identitat Illusion l11ustration Imagination immanent Immaterialitat immerwahrend Imperativ Imputabilitat
imstande Inbegriff Indifferentismus indirekt Individuum Induktion Inhalt Inharenz inkonsequent inner(lich) innerst in sich (selbst) Intellekt intellektual intellektuell intellektuieren Intelligenz intelligibel intensiv Interesse intuitiv Inventar Irrationalirren, (sic h) Irrtum, Irrung isolieren ist, was da
able sum (total) indifferentism indirect individual induction content(s), volume inherence inconsistent inner, internal, intrinsic, inward innermost internally, intrinsicall y intellect intellectualist intellectual to intellectualize intelligence intelligible intensive interest intuitive inventory irrational to err, to be mistaken error to isolate what is
J the I ideal ideal idealizing idealism ideality idea identity illusion illustration imagination immanent immateriality everlasting imperative imputability
jedermann Jugend juristisch K
Kampfer Kanon Kardinalsatz Kasualitat Kategorie kategorisch Kathartikon KausalKausalitat keines
827
everyone youth juridical combatant canon cardinal proposition casualism category categorical cathartic causal causality none
828
GLOSSARY
kennen
kennenlernen
Kenner Kenntnis(se)
Kennzeichen klar klein Kluft Klugheit knupfen Koalition Koexistenz Kommerzium Komposition kongruieren Konklusion Konkurrenz konsequent Konsequenz konstitutiv konstruieren Kontext kontinuierlich Kontinuitiit Kontinuum kontradiktorisch koordinieren Kopf Kopie Korper KorperKorperlehre korperlich Korrelatum Kosmologie Kosmotheologie
to be acquainted with, to know, to (re)co gnize, to be familiar with to become acquainted with, to get to know expert acquaintance, knowledge, cognition indicator, criterion, characteristic clear, evident small, little breach, gulf, gap prudence, sagacity to tie, to weave, to fasten coalition coexistence commerce composition to be congruent conclusion concurrence consistent consequence, implication constitutive to construct context continuous, continual continuity continuum contradictorily to coordinate mind copy body corporeal somatology corporeal, bodily correlate cosmology cosmotheology
Kraft Kriterium Kritik kritisch krumm Kugel kuhn Kultur kunftig
Kunst kunstlich kunstmiiBig L
Lage Land langweilig langwierig liistig Lauf Laune liiutern Leben Lebenswandel leer Lehre Lehrling Lehrrneinung Lehrsatz Leibesleiden
leidend Leidender Leidenschaft leisten Ieiten Leitfaden Leitung letzt leugnen
power, force, ability criterion critique critical curved sphere bold culture, cultivation (in the) future, hereafter, thereafter, later art, artistry artful, artificial technical position, location land, territory tedious tedious irksome course mood to purify, to refine life conduct, way of life empty, void, idle doctrine, science, teaching, theory learner dogma doctrine, theorem bodily to undergo, to tolerate, to admit of passive patient passion to accomplish, to achieve to govern, to guide guide, guidance, guiding thread guidance ultimate to deny
GLOSSARY
Limitation locken Logik Lust Macht
M
limitation to entice logic pleasure
force, power, might Machtspruch fiat painter Maler Mangel deficiency, lack, failure, omission Manier manner manifold, diverse mannigfaltig Mannigfaltige, das the manifold Mann man Mark mark Maschine machine MaB measure, extent, degree, standard to moderate miiBigen material Material material material materialism Materialismus matter, material, Materie(n) (kinds of matter) material materiell mathema Mathema mathematics Mathematik Maxime maxim maximum Maximum mechanism, Mechanik mechanics mechanism Mechanismus usually mehrenteils mehrentlich usually Mehrheit plurality mehrmals repeatedly meinen to have (hold) an opinion, to mean, to think Meinung opinion, intent Meinungssache matter of opinion Menge multitude, amount, number Mensch human being, person, man humanity Menschheit mark, characteristic Merkmal
Merkzeichen MeBkunst Metaphysik Methode Methodenlehre mischen Misologie MiBdeutung MiBfallen MiBtrauen MiBverstand miBverstehen mitteilen Mittel Mittelmittelbar mitwirken Modalitat Modifikation Modus moglich Molekiil Moment Monadologie Mond Monogramm Monotheismus Moral moralisiert Moralitat miiBig Muster mutig mystisch N
nachahmen Nachbild nachbildend
829
mark geometry metaphysics method doctrine of method to mix, to mingle misology misinterpretation dislike, disliking distrust misunderstanding to misunderstand to communicate means, remedy intermediate indirect, mediate to cooperate, to contribute modality modification mode possible molecule moment monadology moon monogram monotheism morality moralized morality idle, futile model daring mystical to imitate copy, ectype reproductive, ectypal to meditate emphatic
nachdenken nachdriicklich nacheinander (folgend) successive, sequential Nacheinandersein sequentiality nachfolgend subsequent Nachfolger follower, successor
830
GLOSSARY
nachforschen Nachforschung Nachfrage Nachsicht nachsinnen nachspiiren niichst Nachsuchung nachteilig
niihern, sich Name Namenerkliirung Natur Naturalist Naturkenner nebeneinander Negation neigen neugierig Neigung Neuerung Neuigkeit nichtig nichts Nichts, das Nichtsein Nomothetik Nonsens Noogonie Noologist Norm Nothilfe notig notigen Notion notwendig Noumenon null numerisch Nutzen
to investigate, to search for investigation, inquiry inquiry forbearance to reflect to explore, to trace, to discover proximate, nearest investigation detrimental, disadvantageous, unfavorable to approach, to come closer to name nominal explication nature naturalist naturalist concurrent negation to tend inquisitive inclination innovation novelty null, void nothing nothing(ness) nonexistence, not-being nomothetic nonsense noogony noologist standard expedient needed, necessary to compel notion necessary noumenon zero, null numerical benefit
niitzlich
beneficial, useful 0
Obersatz oberst Objekt objektiv Obliegenheit offenbar Okkasionalismus Ontologie Ontotheologie Opposition Orden ordnen Ordnung Organ Organisation organisch organisieren Organon Original Ort ostensiv P
Palingenesie Pantheismus paradox Paralogismus Partei parteiisch Parteilichkeit partikular passiv pathologisch Person Personalitiit personifizieren Personlichkeit Perzeption Petition Pflicht Phaenomenon Philodoxie Philo sophie Physik Physikotheologie
major premise supreme, highest object objective obligation manifest, plain, obvious occasionalism ontology ontotheology opposition order to order, to arrange order organ organization organic to organize organon original place, location ostensive palingenesis pantheism paradoxical paralogism side, party partial partiality particular passive pathological person personality personify personality perception petition duty phenomenon philodoxy philosophy physics physicotheology
GLOSSARY
Physiognom Physiokratie Physiologie physisch physischmechanisch physischtheologisch Planet Platz Pneumatismus polemisch polysyllogistisch popular Position positiv Posten Postpradikament Postulat postulieren potential Pradikabilie Priidikament Priidikat PraformatiOli. pragmatisch praktisch Prarnisse Prazision Principium Prinzip Probe Probierstein Problem Produkt produktiv Programrn Progressus Projekt Propadeutik Proportion Prosyllogismus Prozess priifen Psychologie
physiognomist physiocracy physiology physical physicalmechanical physicotheological planet room, place, position, territory pneumatism polemic polysyllogistic popular positing positive position postpredicament postulate to postulate potential predicable predicament predicate preformation pragmatic practical premise precision principle principle sample, test touchstone problem product productive program progression project propaedeutic proportion prosyllogism trial, litigation to examine, to test psychology
83 1
point, dot, locus
Punkt
Q
QualiUit Quantitat Quantum Quelle
R
RadikalRationalismus ratsam RatschluB Raum Realgrund realisieren Realismus Realitat realst Rechenkunst Rechenschaft geben Recht recht rechtens rechtfertigen rechdich rechtmiiBig RechtsRechtsame Rechtsanspruch rechtschaffen Rechtshandel Rede reden Reflexion Regel regelmiiBig Regierer Regierung Regiment Register regressiv Regressus regulativ Reich
quality, capacity quantity quantum source root rationalism advisable decree space real basis to realize realism reality most real arithmetic to account for law, right, rightness proper, right, quite legal to justify legal legitimate legal, legitimate rightness legitimate claim righteous lawsuit speech, language, issue to talk, to speak reflection rule regular ruler government reign register regressive regression regulative kingdom
832
GLOSSARY
reichen Reihe Reihenfolge reihenweise rein reizen reizend Rekognition Relation Religion Reproduktion reproduktiv Requisit restringieren Restriktion Resultat retten Revolution Rezeptivitat Reziprokabilitiit Rhapsodie richten, (sich) Richter richtig RichtmaB Richtschnur roh Rtickgang Ruhe Rtihrung Sache
S
Sache an sich (selbst) Sachheit sagen sagen wollen sammeln Satz schaden
to extend, to reach, to hand series sequence serially pure to stimulate charming, exciting recognition relation religion reproduction reproductive requirement to restrict restriction result to save revolution receptivity interchangeability rhapsody to direct, to aim, (to conform) judge correct standard guideline, guidance crude regression calm, silence, tranquillity, rest emotion thing, matter, cause, case thing in itself thinghood to say, to utter, to tell, to speak, to affirm to mean to gather, to collect proposition, thesis, principle, premise to (do) harm
schaffen scharf scharfen SchattenriB schatzen schauderhaft Scheidekiinstler scheiden Schein
scheinbar scheinen Schema Schematismus schicklich Schicksal schlechterdings schlechthin schlieBen SchluB SchluBfolge SchluBfolgerung schmeicheln scholastisch Schopfung SchoB Schranke schreiten Schritt schiichtem Schuld Schule, Schulschulgerecht schwach schwankend schwarmen Schwarmerei
to create, to provide keen, rigorous to sharpen outline to assess, to rate horrible, awesome chemist to separate illusion (of plausibility), semblance (of plausibility) seeming, illusory, plausible to seem schema schematism fitting, appropriate fate absolutely absolutely to conclude, to infer, to make an inference inference, conclusion, argument conclusion, inference, argument inference to flatter scholastic creation womb limit to proceed course timid blame, guilt school complying with school standards feeble, weak, faint shaky, wavering to rave, to rove fanaticism
GLOSSARY
schwatzen schwer schwerlich schwierig schwindlig Schwung Seele Seelenlehre sei, was da Sein Selbst, das Selbstselbstiindig selbstsiichtig Seligkeit .seltsam sensibel sensifizieren sensitiv(us) SensualSentenz setzen sicher Simplizitiit Simultaneitiit Singular sinken Sinn Sinnensinnen auf sinnenfrei sinnleer sinnlich Sinnlichkeit sinnreich Sitten sittiich, SittenSittlichkeit Sittsamkeit skeptisch Skeptizismu s
to chatter difficult, having weight, heavy scarcely difficult dizzy momentum, soaring soul psychology what is being self selfindependent selfish bliss odd sensible to sensualize sensory sensualist verdict to place, to set, to suppose, to posit secure, safe, sure, assured, reliable simplicity simultaneity singular to sink, to give way sense, mind, meaning of sense, sensible to devise, to think up sense-free meaningless sensible sensibility ingenious morals moral, of morals morality decency skeptical skepticism
sofort sogleich
sollen
sonderbar Sophist Sophistikationen sorgfiiltig sorglos Sparsamkeit Spekulation spekulativ Spezies Spezifikation Sphiire Spiritualismus Spiritualitiit Spontaneitiit Sprache Sprung StammStammbaum Stand Standpunkt Statt stattfinden
-steig steigen Stelle Stellung sterblich stimmen Stem Stoff streben Streit Streithandel
833
immediately, forthwith at once, immediately, forthwith ought, to be (intended, meant, expected) to, shall, should odd sophist sophistries careful carefree parsimony speculation speculative species specification sphere spiritualism spirituality spontaneity language, speech leap root, genealogical genealogical tree state standpoint place to occur, to happen, to take place, to have a(ny) place, to be there course, path ascend position, place, passage position mortal to harmonize, to agree star material to endeavor dispute, contest contest
834
GLOSSARY
Streithandlung streitig
Streitigkeit streng strittig Stiick
Studium stufenartig S tufenordnung Stiitze subaltern SUbjekt subjektiv subordinieren Subreption Subsistenz substantial Substantialitiit substantiell Substanz Substrat(um) subsumieren subtil Sucht Sukzession sukzessiv Summe sy llogistisch synonymisch Synopsis Synthesis synthetisch System systematisch szientifisch T
Tadel Tat Tater Tatigkeit
contest disputed, disputable, at odds conflict, controversy strict, rigorous disputing, in dispute component, item, matter, work, point, regard, respect study stepwise hierarchy support subsidiary subject subjective to subordinate subreption subsistence substantial substantiality substantive substance substrate (substratum) to subsume subtle passion succession successive sum syllogistic synonymous synopsis synthesis synthetic system systematic scientific rebuke act, deed perpetrator activity
tauglich Tauschung Tautologie technisch Teil Teilteilbar teilen Teleologie theistisch Thema Theologie theoretisch Theorie Thesis Thetik Tier Ton Tonkiinstler Topik Totalitiit Traktat transzendent transzendental treu TriangeJ Triebfeder trocken trtistend trostlos triiglich TrugschluB tiichtig Tiichtigkeit Tugend Tun U
fit, suitable delusion tautology technical part component, partial divisible to divide, to share teleology theistic topic theology theoretical theory thesis thetic animal sound, tone musician topic totality treatise transcendent transcendental faithful triangle incentive dry comforting hopeless deceptive fallacious inference sturdy, competent, efficient sturdiness virtue doing
evil to practice, to exercise at all, throughout, iiberall whatsoever to reflect on iiberdenken to agree iibereinkommen U bereinstimmung agreement, harmony iibel iiben
GLOSSARY
iiberfliegen Dbergang iiberhaupt iiberheben, sich iiber " " " hinaus iiberlegen iibermtmschlich iibematiirlich iiberreden iiberschlagen iiberschreiten iiberschwenglich iibersinnlich iibersteigen iibertragen iibertreffen iiberwinden iiberzeugen Umiinderung" Umfang umgekehrt
Umkehrung UmriB umspannen Umwandlung unabhiingig unabliissig unaufhorlich unaufloslich unausbleiblich
to fly (soar) beyond (above), to overreach transition as such, in general, in principle to refrain, to exempt oneself beyond to deliberate suprahuman supranatural to persuade to gauge, to assess to overstep, to step beyond, to exceed transcendent, exceedingly suprasensible to surpass, to surmount to transfer to surpass to overcome to convince transformation range vice versa, conversely, (in) reverse, on the other hand conversion outline to encompass transformation, conversion independent unceasingly, incessantly incessantly, unceasingly, constantly indissoluble, insoluble unfailingly, inevitably
unausgemacht unbedingt unbegreiflich unbegrenzt unbekannt unbescheiden unbeschriinkt unbestimmbar unbestimmt Unbestimmtheit unbeweglich unbezweifelt Unding undurchdringlich uneingeschriinkt unempfindlich unendlich Unendliche, ins Unendlichkeit unentbehrlich unerforschlich unergriindlich unermeBlich unerweislich unfiihig unfehlbar ungegriindet ungereimt ungezweifelt Unglaube ungleichartig Ungrund ungiiltig Universum unkritisch Unkunde Unlauterkeit Unlust unmittelbar unmoglich unnatiirlich
835
undecided, unestablished unconditioned, unconditionally incomprehensible unbounded unknown immodest unlimited indeterminable indeterminate, undetermined, indefinite indeterminateness immovable indubitable nonentity impenetrable unlimited, without limitation insensitive infinite
ad infinitum
infinity indispensable inscrutable unfathomable immense, vast unprovable incapable unfailingly unfounded absurd indubitable, beyond doubt lack of faith heterogeneous lack of basis invalid universe uncritical ignorance insincerity, impurity displeasure direct, immediate impossible unnatural
836
GLOSSARY
unnotig unniitz Unordnung unorganisch unparteiisch Unparteilichkeit unrecht unrechtmiiBig unrichtig Unschliissigkeit unsicher unsittlich unstatthaft unsterblich unstreitig unstrittig untauglich unteilbar unterbrechen untergeordnet Untemehmung Unterordnung Unterricht Untersatz unterscheiden, (sich) Unterscheidungsmerkmal unterschieben
Unterschied unterschieden untersuchen
Unterweisung untunlich uniiberwindlich unumschriinkt ununterbrochen
needless, unnecessary useless disorder inorganic impartial impartiality wrong il1e gitimate incorrect inconclusiveness unsafe, insecure immoral inadmissible immortal indisputable undisputed useless, unsuitable, unfit indivisible to interrupt subordinate undertaking, enterprise subordination instruction, information minor premise to distinguish, to differentiate, (to differ) distinguishing characteristic to allege, to substitute, to foist distinction, difference distinct, different to investigate, to inquire into, to examine instruction unfeasible insurmountable limitless uninterrupted
unveranderlich unverletzlich unvermeidlich
unchangeable inviolable unavoidable, inevitable incapacity Unvermogen incapable unvermogend unverschamt impudent imperfect unvollkommen immutable unwandelbar unwidersprechlich incontestable indignation Unwille Unwissenheit ignorance unzerstorlich indestructible unzertrennlich inseparable unzulanglich insufficient, inadequate unzulassig inadmissible unzureichend insufficient archetype Urbild original basis Urgrund Urheber originator, author Urquelle original source Ursache cause Ursprung origin, origination judgment, verdict Urteil Urteilskraft power of jUdgment forefathers Urvater original being Urwesen V
Vakuum Varietat verachtlich Verachtung veranderlich Veranderung veranlassen
verbieten verbinden
Verbindlichkeit Verbindungsbegriff
vacuum variety, variation despicable contempt changeable change to prompt, to occasion, to give rise to to prohibit to combine, to link (together), to obligate obligation combination concept
GLOSSARY
Verbindungsvermogen � Verblendung Verbot Verbrennung verbunden Verdacht verdachtig verderben verdienen verdient vereinbaren vereinen vereinigen vereiteln Verfahren verfalschen Verfasser Verfechter verfehlen verfehlt verflossen Verfolg verfolgen Verfiihrung vergangen vergeblich vergehen vergleichen Vergleichungsbegriff vergroBern Verhalten Verhaltnis verhaltnisweise verhindern verhiiten
Verirrung verkehrt verkennen
power of combination delusion prohibition combustion obligated suspicion suspect to corrupt, to ruin to deserve worthy to reconcile to unite to unite, to reconcile to foil, to defeat procedure, process, treatment to corrupt author champion to miss, to fail in false, failed gone by, bygone continuation to trace, to pursue corruption past futile, (in) vain to pass away to compare comparison concept to increase conduct, behaving relation, proportion, ratio relatively to prevent to forestall, to prevent, to keep from aberration, straying inverted to mistake, to misunderstand
verkniipfen verlangen verliingern verlassen Verlauf Verlegenheit verleiten verletzen vermehren vermeiden vermessen vermitteln Vermogen vermuten Vermutung verneinend Verneinung vernichten Vernunft Vernunftverniinfteln(d) verniinftig vernunftlos vernunftmaBig VernunftschluB
verrichten Verringerung verschaffen
verschieden verschwinden versetzen Verstand
837
to connect to demand, to require to expand to leave, to abandon course perplexity, quandary to mislead to violate to augment, to increase to avoid, to prevent presumptuous to mediate power, ability to presume conjecture, presumption negative negation to annihilate, to annul reason rational, of reason, reason's subtle (subtly) reasoning reasonable, ratonal nonrational rational syllogism, inference of reason to perform diminution to furnish, to provide, to impart, to gain different, various, varied, diverse to vanish to transfer, to put, to transpose understanding, meaning, sense
838
GLOSSARY
Verstandesverstandlich verstiirken verstatten versteckt verstehen Versuch vertauschen Verteidiger vertilgen
vertragen, sich (nicht) Vertrauen Veruneinigung verunstalten verursachen verurteilen Verwahrung verwandeln verwandt Verwandtschaft verwechseln verweigern verweisen verwenden verwerfen verwerflich Verweslichkeit verwirren verwirrt verworren vieles
of (the) understanding, understanding's understandable to reinforce, to strengthen, to increase to permit, to allow hidden, covert to understand, to mean attempt, experiment, test, essay to exchange defender to obliterate, to eliminate, to eradicate to be (in)compatible with confidence disunity to corrupt to cause to condemn safeguard to transform, to convert kindred, akin kinship, affinity to confuse to refuse to relegate, to order to employ to reject, to repudiate reprehensible corruptibility to confuse, to confound, to disconcert confused confused much
vielfiHtig Vielgotterei Vielheit Vielwissen Vielwisserei Yolk vollenden vollfiihren vollkommen vollstandig vollzahlig vollziehen Volumen vorangehen vorausgehen voraussetzen Voraussetzung vorbeigehen vorbestimmt vorbeugen Voreltern Vorerinnerung vorfinden, sich vorgaukeln vorgeben vorgehen Vorhaben vorhanden vorher vorherbestimmt
manifold, a multitude of, multifarious polytheism multiplicity, plurality gaining a lot of knowledge attitude of knowing a lot people, population to complete, to perfect to carry out, to complete perfect, complete complete complete to carry out volume to precede to precede to presuppose presupposition to pass by, to bypass, to pass over predetermined to forestall progenitors advance notice, preliminary reminder to occur to hoodwink to allege, to purport, to claim to precede, to occur, to take place project present, at hand, available previously, before(hand), in advance predetermined, preestablished
GLOSSARY
vorhergehen vorig .
vorkommen vorkommen, uns vorlaufig vorlegen
vornehmen vornehmlich vornehmst Vorrat Vorrecht vorriicken Vorsatz vorsatzlich vorschreiben Vorschrift Vorsehung Vorsicht vorstehend vorstellen, (sich)
Vorstellung Vorstellungsart
Vorstellungsfahigkeit Vorstellungsform Vorstellungskraft
to precede previous, foregoing, above to occur, to come up, to be found we encounter provisional, preliminary to pose, to submit, to put before, to put forth to carry out, to take up above all, primarily, even foremost, principal supply prerogative to advance precept, resolve deliberate to prescribe, to enjoin precept, prescription Providence, foresight care, caution, provision preceding to present, to have a presentation (of), to conceive (of) presentation, conception way of presenting, kind of presentation
Vorstellungsvermogen
Vorteil Vortrag vortragen
vortreffiich Voriibung Vorurteil vorwenden vorzeigen Vorzug W
wachsen wagen
wahlen Wahn wahnen Wahnsinn wahr wahrhaftig Wahrheit wahrnehmen Wahrnehmung wahrscheinlich wandelbar wankend Wiirme Wechsel wechseln wechselseitig wechselweise Wechselwirkung Weg weglassen
capacity to present form of presentation power to present, power of presentation
wegnehmen wegschafIen wegwerfen Weise weise
839
power to present, power of presentation advantage, favor treatise to set (put) forth, to propound, to treat superb preparation prejudice to allege to display superiority, advantage to increase to venture, to risk, to dare to select, to choose delusion to surmise madness true veritable truth to perceive, to observe perception probable mutable shaky heat variation to vary reciprocal vice versa interaction path, road, course, way, passage to omit, to leave out to remove to remove to dismiss manner, way wise
840
GLOSSARY
wei sen Weisheit weiterbringen weitergehen weitgehend Welt Welt-
Weltall Weltbestes
Weltkorper Welterkenntnis Weltlehre Weltraum Weltweisheit Weltwissenschaft Werk Werkzeug Wert Wesen wesentlich Wettstreit Wichtigkeit widerfahren widerlegen widerrechtlich widersinnig widersinnisch widersprechend, (in sich selbst) widerstehen Widerstreit Wiederholung Wille Willkiir willkiirlich
to show, to point out wisdom to advance, to take further to continue far-reaching world world, of the world, the world's universe highest (greatest) good of the world celestial body, cosmic body cosmology cosmology cosmic space philosophy cosmology work instrument value, merit being, entity, essence, nature essential contest importance to befall to refute, to disprove illegitimate preposterous preposterous (self-)contradictory to resist, to counter conflict repetition will power of choice chosen, elected, voluntary, arbitrary
to produce (an effect), to effect, to act, to work wirkende Ursache efficient cause actual wirklich active wirksam effect, efficacy, Wirkung action desire (thirst) for WiBbegierde knowledge knowledge Wissen science Wissenschaft ingenuity, wit Witz well-meaning wohldenkend liking Wohlgefallen well-meant wohlgemeint consonance Wohlgereimtheit wealth, prosperity Wohlstand benefactor Wohltater willing Wollen, das Wort word, term Wunder marvel miraculous wunderbar worthy wiirdig root Wurzel wirken
Zahl Zahlzahlen
Z
zanken ZauberZeichen Zeichnung zeigen Zeit
ZeitZeitalter zeitlich zelotisch Zensur zerfallen zergliedern
number numerical to number, to class, to include to quarrel magical sign design to show, to manifest time, age, period of time, time period temporal, of time age temporal zealous census, verdict to break up, to cut up, to split up to dissect, to analyze
GLOSSARY
zerhauen
zero zeniittet zerstreut
Zerteilung
Zeug
zeugen
Zeugungen
Ziel
Zierlichkeit
Zirkel, fehlerhafter
Zucht
zufallig
to cut up zero
in disarray sporadic
partition
zureichend
zuruckfiihren zuriickgehen
sufficient
to trace back, to guide back
to go backward, to
material,
ZuriickstoBung
regress repulsion
to attest
Zuriistung
apparatus
equipment
generations
aim, goal elegance
vicious circle, fallacy of circular reasoning
training
contingent, accidental, incidental
zuriickweisen zusammen bestehen
zusammenfassen
84 1
to point back
to coexist, to be consistent to collate,
to encompass, to integrate
Zusarnmenfassung collating
zusarnmenflieBen
zusammengesetzt zusammenhalten mit
to meld
composite,
composed
to hold up to
ZufaIligkeit
contingency
Zug
characteristic, draft
zugehen
to happen, to be done
zusammenhangen
to cohere, to be
at the same time, simultaneous, also, as well, both, along
Zusarnmenhaufung
accumulation
Zukunft zuIanglich
future
zusammensetzen
zuletzt
ultimately, finally
zusammenstimmen
initially,
zusammentreifen
to increase to eliminate to ascribe, to impute rebuke imputation
Zusatz
Zuflucht nehmen zugeben
zugestehen
zugleich
Zugleichsein
zulassen
zumuten zunachst zunehmen
zunichte machen zurechnen Zurechtweisung Zurechnung
to resort
to allow, to admit, to add
to concede
simultaneity
sufficient, adequate
to admit (of), to permit
to require, to impute
proximately
Zusarnmenhang
coherence,
cohesion, context,
zusammenkommen
connection, link, continuity linked, to connect
to come together
zusammennehmen to gather together to assemble, to compose, to put together
Zusammenstellung compilation
Zuschauer
zuschreiben
Zustand
zustande bringen
to agree, to accord, to harmonize to concur, to coincide addition
observer
to attribute, to ascribe
state, situation
to bring about
842
GLOSSARY
zustande kommen to come about, to arise to take place. to zutragen, sich happen zutraglich conducive confidence, trust Zutrauen reliable zuverlassig Zuversicht confidence first, before(hand) zuvor first of all zuvorderst zuvorkommend antecedent increase Zuwachs to go against. to be zuwider sein contrary to
Zwang zwanglos Zweck zweckiilmlich zweckmiiBig zweideutig Zweifel zweifelhaft zweifeln Zweifelsucht Zwiespalt ZwischenZwist
constraint unrestrained purpose purposelike purposive. appropriate ambiguous doubt doubtful to doubt skepticism discord intermediate quarrel
INDEX
Headings are arranged alphabetically, but their subheadings are ordered by affinity of topics. The sequence of the individual references follows the ar rangement of the text in this volume--except that indirect references (in troduced by 'cf. ' ) follow direct references as a group, and occasionally the group of direct references starts with a subgroup of especially important (rather than early) references. Where headings have subheadings, the ref erences immediately following the main headings and preceding the sub headings are usually less specific (and often less important) than those given under the subheadings. Referrals (marked by 'see ' or 'see also ') to other headings are typically given only once under each heading, even where they are relevant to several of the subheadings. Both the roman and the arabic numerals refer to the pagination of the Critique 's original editions A and B (of 1 78 1 , 1 787), as this pagination ap pears (in approximate correspondence to that of the German editions) on the margins of the translation. The primed numerals refer to A, the unprimed to B . Where A runs concurrently with B or appears in a footnote to B, only the B references are given. References to footnotes are keyed to this A and B pagination. Notes con taining extended Kantian text (Kant's own notes as well as notes giving passages from A) are marked by 'n. ' or the plural 'ns.' The translator's bracketed notes are marked by 'br. n.' or 'br. ns.' (Notes identified by lower case letters are notes to other notes; see the Translator's Preface for fur ther details.) Works by Kant are listed by their English titles, with the original titles given in parentheses . Other authors are listed here only by their names; their
843
844
INDEX
works, insofar as these are cited in this translation, are listed in the bibli ography. Ability (Vennogen), xii' br. n. 16, 75 br. n. 22, see also Power, Capacity Absolute(ly) (absolut [schlechthin, schlechterdings]), synonymity of the German terms, 382 br. n. 166; ambiguity of the term, 380-82; here means in any ref erence, 382, cf. 3 8 1 ; unconditioned (independent[lyl, 3, 589), 382, 383, 436, 445, 480, 509, 536-38, 54 1-42, 545, 616; equated with unconditioned, 39 1 , see also Unconditioned; pure, 24 n. 259; a priori, 3-4, 24; possibility (i.e., in all respects), 285, cf. 504; impossibility (impossible), xxviii, 378', cf. 344, 629; ne cessity (necessary), xv', xxv, 60, 64, 76, 1 1 7 ' n. 138, 3 8 1 , 382, 420, 446 (natu ral necessity), 480-83, 485, 486, 489, 506 (cf. 504), 5 16, 587, 590, 592, 595, 612 (cf. 604), 613, 615, 6 1 6, 6 1 8, 620-23 inc!. br. n. 123, 632, 633 n. 1 95, 634-36, 638-40, 643, 645, 647, 657, 661 , 662, 707, 7 1 4, 721, 722 incl. br. n. 289, 786, 844, 846, 851 (cf. 852), 856; see also Necessary, Necessity; univer sality (universal), 64, 124; completeness (complete[d]), 385, 393, 436, 443, 444, 524, 555, 693, 7 1 8, 768; see also Completeness; whole, 383, 384, 445 n. 64, 455, 5 12, 525, 527, 528; entirety, 533; magnitude, 460, 544, 549, cf. 547; to tality, 382-84, 394, 398, 434, 436, 438, 440, 443, 444, 447, 484, 487, 507, 5 1 1 , 5 15, 525, 533, 534, 537, 538, 540, 541, 543, 5 5 1 , 561, 571, 656, 7 1 3, 80 1 ; see also Totality; perfection, 722; self-sufficient, 589; unity, 92, 99', 391-93, 398, 352'-56' incl. br. n. 63, 397', 401', 402', 405', 419, 450, 47 1 , 615, 656, 700, 769, 8 12, see also Unity; simplicity (simple), 352', 465 (cf. 463, 464), 47 1 , 8 1 2; intrinsic(ally), 333 (vs. comparatively), 339, 340, see also Comparative; objec tive, 305 n. 169; reality, 52-57, 564, 698 (to my reason); attachment to things, 52; subsumption, 223; determinations, 42 (vs. relative), cf. 7 1 1 ; 627; dense, 2 1 5 br. n. 1 25; space, 40 br. n . 4 8 (vs. empirical), 49 br. n . 89, 457 n . 126, 459 inc!. br. n. 1 3 1 , cf. 321 br. n. 35; empty space, 2 1 5 br. n. 1 25, 549, cf. 5 1 5 ; bounded, 546 n. 229; boundary, no experience of, 545, cf. 537, 543, 547-49; time, 245, 262, 459 incl. br. n. 1 3 1 ; empty time, 549; arising or passing away, 23 1 ; un changed, xlii; permanence, 4 1 5 ; first, 1 1 7' n. 138, 463, 477, 485, 495, 497; pri mary, 802; (first) beginning or starting (to be), 23 1 , 473, 477, 478, 485, 5 1 1 (cf. 502), 57 1 , 5 8 1 , 582, 586, 7 1 3, 768; cause, e.g. 394'; spontaneity, 474, 476; self activity, 446; subject, 348', 553, cf. 410; basic (mental) power, 677; principles, 358 (vs. comparative); answerable (questions), 723 ; given, 340, validity, 810; conferring objective validity, 726; manner of enjoining a priori principles, not allowed in philosophy, 761-62; nullity of reason's allegations, 73 1 ; uncertain, 505; indeterminate, 553; nothing revealed, 4 1 1 n. 259; no cognition, 412; out side our cognitive power, 308; incomprehensible for us, 820; unthinkable, 62 1 ; assumed, 704, (vs. relatively), 709, 7 14 (in itself); presupposed, 72 1 ; supposi tion, 704 incl. br. n. 2 1 2 ; commands of pure (moral) practical laws, 828, 835 Abstract(ed) or abstractly (abstrahieren [-iertl. abziehen [abgezogen]), ix, 11 br. n. 225, 1 2, 38, 43, 46, 49, 5 1 , 52, 56, 57, 77-80, 83, 95, 97, 96', 1 44, 145, 1 55, 1 62, 163, 1 70, 1 7 1 incl. br. n. 25, 2 1 7 , 299. 303 n. 1 57, 304, 305 n. 1 69. 307, 3 1 4, 3 1 8, 3 1 9, 322, 32� 327, 335. 337-4� 355, 373, 390, 4 1 1 n. 259, 355�
INDEX
845
397', 398', 426, 427, 429, 452, 453, 456 n. 1 2 1 , 461 , 467, 5 1 3, 528, 563, 565, 599, 6 1 8, 626, 633, 65 1 , 652, 663, 684, 73 1 , 742, 745, 762, 774, 775, 8 1 3, 824, 834, 836, 837, 863, 8 8 1 ; see also Abstraction, abstracto-in Abstraction or abstractness (Abstraktion, Abgezogenheit), xvii' br. n. 26, 1 1 n. 200, 402 n. 25, 8 1 3, see also Abstract abstracto-in, 173, 341, 346, 762, see also Abstract Academic (akademisch, Akademiker), 782, 783, cf. 883 br. n. 279 Accident(s) (Akzidenz[en]), are only the way in which the existence of a substance is determined positively, 230, cf. 1 83, 201 n. 30, 229, 441 , 463, see also Sub stance; in all changes substance endures and only they vary, 227; are not sub ordinated to the substance (do not make up a series), 441 inc!. br. n. 49; intrin sic, 32 1 , 352', see also Intrinsic; real, 466; are always real, 229; aggregate of, distributed among a set of substances, 35 1 '; myself as existing as, cannot be determined, 420 inc!. br. n. 283; of one's existence, thought must be regarded as, 349', cf. 352'; see also Accidental Accident (casus), in the world there is none, 280 inc!. br. n. 70, 282 inc!. br. n. 76 Accidental (zujiillig), obstacles, ix; see also Accident, Contingent, Incidental Achilles, 35 1 ' inc!. br. n. 5 1 Acquaintance (Kenntnis), with my reason (its ability), xiv', 23 ; with the unity of consciousness, 420; with the circumstances of understanding's application, 77; with appearances (nature, substance in space), 32 1 , 498, 527 inc!. br. n. 146, 574, 650-5 1 , 844, 845, cf. xx, 59 inc!. br. n. 1 37, 341 ; with ourselves as ap pearance, 334; with intelligences, through experience, 669; with particular laws (causes, their objective reality, determinate kinds of reality), 165, 605, 654, 801 ; with a still higher member of a series, 546; with an addition to the possible, 284; with no conflict other than that of contradiction, 330; with an intuition other than our sensible one, 343; with absolutely intrinsic determinations other than those given through our inner sense, 339; with (the) transcendental object(s), 358', 372', 380', 393', cf. 383'; with the first bases of nature, 700, cf. 522, 654; with objects (things) as things in themselves, xx, 129', 379', 385', cf. 397, 497, 594 inc!. br. n. 409, 846; with the real subject of the inherence of thought (the subject in itself), 350', 355'; with reason's intelligible character, 579, cf. 568; with the simple nature of ourselves as subject, 360', cf. 365', 382' br. n. 175, 7 1 1 ; with the conditions leading to a set purpose (to unity of purposes under the moral law), 852, 856; with a being of all beings (necessary being), 398, 63 1, cf. 617, 658, 705; with the character (object) at issue, in a dogmatic objection, 388; with mere names, 736; with dangerous propositions, 782; with the nature of a patient's illness, 852; with wealth, 603; see also Cognition, Knowledge Acroamatic (akroamatisch), proofs, equated with discursive, 763; see also Discur sive Action(s) or act(s) (Handlung[en], Wirkung [en]) , as a predicable under the cat egory of causality, 108, cf. 107 br. n. 196; is the causality of the cause, 570, cf. 838, see also Causality, Cause ( Ursache); is the relation of the causality's sub ject to the effect, 250; and reaction, 17, 20 n. 243, cf. xliv; reciprocal, 3 3 1 , cf. 256 inc!. br. n. 204; at a distance, 798 br. n. 299; leads (as first basis of all varia tion by appearances) to the concepts of activity and force and thereby to those
846
INDEX
of substance and pennanence (proves the substantiality of the subject), 250, cf. 249, 254 see also Substance, Pennanence, Subject; of the subject, motion as, 1 5 5 inc!. n. 283, see also Motion; of simple things (e.g., the soul) and of com posite things, 3 5 1 '-52'; is the relation of the causality's subject to the effect, 250, cf. 249, 365'; of determining inner sense (my existence), 155, 157 n. 296; transcendental, of the mind, 102'; of apperception, 1 32, cf. 108', 422 n. 288, 700; of synthesis (combining), 102-3, 99', 130, 138 inc!. br. n . 214, 1 39 (cf. 130 br. n. 1 90), 153, 1 54, see also Synthesis; the mind's, of producing presen tations, 103'-4', cf. 93 inc!. br. n. 1 27; of the imagination, 1 02', 1 54 (cf. 1 53), 1 55 n. 283, cf. 794; of constructing a concept, 742, cf. 104; of reflection, 334, cf. 1 56 n. 292; of transcendental deliberation, 3 17; of (pure) thinking (thought), 67, 8 1 , 157, 304, 7 1 1 ; of (pure) understanding, xxxix n. 1 44, 94, 104-5, I l l , 130, 143 inc!. br. n. 241 , 145, 1 53 (cf. 152), 1 56 n. 292, 350, 35 1 inc!. n. 16, 383, 387, 574, 672, 692; of (pure) reason, xiv', 14', 170, 387, 577, 579, 58 1 , 83 1 , 855; see also Reason; all, of the human being in all circumstances of time, reason is present to, 584; of the human power of choice, 562, cf. xxviii, cf. 826; of noumenal realities, 338 n. 124; as not determined according to constant laws, 473; ideas as efficient causes (an idea as archetype) of, 374; (dynamically first, absolute) beginning of, 473, 483, 58 1-82, cf. 475, 56 1-62, 569; original, 572; absolute spontaneity of (of spontaneity, self-activity), 1 30, 1 32, 476, see also Spontaneity, Activity; free, voluntary (from freedom), 478, 49 1 , 494 (cf. 503), 569 (cf. 564, 568), 5 8 1 -82, 585, 835; of the subject as appearance and as thing in itself, 566-86, cf. xxix; freedom and nature in the same, 569, see also Free dom, Nature; or effects, concepts of, as used practically, 43 1 -32, cf. 385, 575 br. n. 319; practical laws as bases of, 840, cf. 385, 597, 83 1 , 852, see also Prac tical, Law (Gesetz); moral character (morality) of (possible), 6 1 , 575-78, 579 n. 339, cf. 372, 504, 835, 847, 85 1 , 869, see also Moral, Morality; all, of ra tional beings, as if they sprang from a supreme will, 838, cf. 597, 7 1 7 br. n. 265a, 847; of an august and wise free cause as intelligence, 653, cf. 660-6 1 , 7 16, 834; prudent, 5 13; legal, 1 16; of war, 779 br. n . 224; see also Activity, Do ing, Effect Active (tiitig. wirksam), force(s), 32 1 , 330; power (in us), 120', 75 br. n. 22, cf. 153 incl. br. n. 278; being, the subject as, 569, cf. 153 inc!. br. n. 278; self-, see Ac tivity; and passive senses of the word begin. 483 n. 250; see also Action, Pas sive Activity (Tiitigkeit), the mind's own, as affecting it, 67-68; of the imagination, 102' ; of the understanding, 1, 685; of reason, 1 28; self-, 68, 74 br. n. 8, 1 30, 167 br. n. 333, 278, 446, cf. 33 br. n. 9, 69, 1 57 n. 296, see also Spontaneity, Freedom. Being (Wesen); Kant's, of removing deception, xiii'; other than the present in quiry, 108 br. n. 207, 109; see also Active, Action Actuality (Wirklichkeit), logical, is truth, 10 I , cf. 1 00, see also Truth; of pure math ematics and of pure natural science, 20 inc!. n. 243; of external objects and of the object of our inner sense, according to empirical idealism, transcendental realism, and transcendental idealism, 368'-73' inc!. br. n. 1 33, cf. 55, 5 19, 88 1 ; of a thing, is not only its possibility (cf. 282-86, 627, 778, 798) but is the per ception that provides the material for the thing's concept, 273, cf. 272, 278, 287
INDEX
847
n. 96, 373'-77'; is coherence with the material conditions of experience (with sensation), 266, cf. xxvi n. 103, 267, 270, 284, 286, 384 inc!. br. n. 172, 376', 495', 521, 523; space and time have none, apart from the senses, 148, cf. 5 1 9; proof of the existence of actual things outside me, 275-97, cf. 524-25, 529-30, see also Existence; realm containing everything actual, 282; of appearances is possible only in time, 46, cf. 237; its schema is existence within a detenninate time, 1 84; mine, is asserted directly by the Cartesian cogito, 355'; of conscious ness, in it the presentation of time is given only through the prompting of per ceptions, 480 n. 245 ; of the opposite of a thing's state does not prove the state's contingency, 290 n. 107; and possibility and necessity (of everything that exists as a thing in space or time), their predicates do not augment the concept of which these (modalities) are affinned, 286, cf. 266, 752; of predicates and of things, when space is considered as self-subsistent rather than as fonn of outer intu ition, 459; of external objects taken as things in themselves, cognition of it is absolutely incomprehensible, 378', cf. 394'; of a thinking being, as basis for ra tional psychology, 4 1 8-19; of (myself as) substance (the I), as allegedly proved in an object of experience, 47 1 ; ours, as capable of a determination (by a spon taneity) that does not require the conditions of empirical intuition, 430, cf. 585-86; of a supreme being, 707, cf. 594, 720, 803, 805 Adequate(ly) (angemessen, adiiquat, zuliinglich, hinliinglich [-reichend], genugtu end, gewachsen), xiii', xviii, 2, 1 9, 1 08, 1 27', 142, 14 n. 2 1 7, 173, 1 80, 365, 372, 375, 380, 382 br. n. 166, 384, 396, 413, 415, 444, 450, 492, 5 1 9, 520, 596, 599, 617, 635, 643 br. n. 250, 649, 674, 704, 705, 735, 756, 767, 788, see also Sufficient Adickes, Erich, 80 br. ns. 45 and 48, 93 br. n. 1 25, 108' br. n. 104, 1 25' br. n. 1 66, 1 8 1 br. n . .95, 260 br. n. 221 , 403' br. n. 238 Aesthetic (Asthetik), in its meaning, here called psychological, of critique of taste, 35 n. 23 and br. ns. 23a and 23e, cf. 650 br. n. 285; transcendental (or transcen dental doctrine of sense, 30, or science of all principles of a priori sensibility, 35, cf. 35 n. 23, 36, 76), 33-73 inc!. br. n. 162, 305 n. 169 and br. n. 169p; cf. xix br. n. 80, xxiii', xxxviii, 79, 87, 102, 136 inc!. n. 2 10, 146, 148, 1 5 2 br. n. 275, 160 inc!. n. 305, 1 88, 274, 353' br. n. 64, 357', 362' br. n. 93, 378', 469, 5 1 8, 534, 666 br. n. 366, 873 br. n. 229; see also Aesthetic (iisthetisch) Aesthetic (iisthetisch), equated with intuitive (sensible), xviii', cf. xvii' br. n. 26; 8 1 inc!. br. n . 5 3 , see also Intuitive, Sensible; distinctness, xvii'-xviii' inc!. br. ns. 26 and 29; theory, 72; origin, 8 1 ; see also Aesthetic (Asthetik) Affected-being (ajfizieren, Affektionen), the mind's (by an object, by its own ac tivity, by itself), yields sensation (intuition), 33, 67-69, 93, cf. 34, 4 1 , 42, 44 n. 65, 5 1 , 6 1 , 72, 102, 129, 153-56 inc!. n. 292, 207, 235, 309, 358', 359', 401', 522, 562 (also 583), 830, see also Sensation, Sensibility, Receptivity, Intuition, Presentation, Mind Affinity (Ajfinitiit, Verwandtschaft), means kinship, 3 1 5 br. n. 206, see also Kin ship; of the manifold (of intuition), 1 1 3'; transcendental and empirical, of ap pearances, 1 1 3'- 14', 1 22', 1 23', cf. 520; of all concepts, law (principle) of, 685-86, 689, 696 , 794, 8 1 1 , 86 1 ; with pure reason, 657; of all possible things, 600 n. 27
848
INDEX
Affirmation (Bejahung), a logical function of judgments, 303 n. 1 57, cf. 95, 97, see also Judgment; and negation, 100, 303 n. 157, 5 1 3 , 602-3, cf. 767, 769, 82 1 , cf. 10, 95, 97, 1 90, 193, 3 1 8, 338 inc!. n . 124, 389', 395', 461 , 601 , 609, 7 8 1 , 809, 820-2 1, see also Negation; question aimed merely at, realities as, 328, 329 br. n. 7 1 , cf. 336, 338 n. 1 24, 303 n. 1 57, see also Reality; possible, actual, and necessary, 100; transcendental, 602; see also Affirmative Affirmative (bejahend), judgment(s), see Judgment; assertion (proposition, an swer), 389', 395', 46 1 , 549, 769, 7 8 1 , cf. 799, 82 1 ; concepts, 338; presentation of an object, 609; determination (characteristic), 99, 338, 60 1 , cf. 609; see also Affirmation, Negative Age (Alter), Kant's, xliii Age(s) (Zeitalter), all, 227; Wolff's, xxxvii; ours, xi' inc!. n. 14; of critique, xi' n. 14 Aggregate (Aggregat), as contrasted with system or with series, 89, 204, 2 12, 217, 380, 35 1'-52', 436, 439, 441 , 446-47, 456, 552, 607, 673, 860; see also Ag gregation Aggregation (Aggregation), 201 n. 30, 2 16, 467; principle of, 694 inc!. br. n. 1 59; see also Aggregate Agreement (Einstimmung, Ubereinstimmung, Einhelligkeit), xiv-xv, xxi n. 87, 57. 82-84, 86, I l 2, I I 6, 166, 197, 236, 284, 296, 350, 380, 490, 634, 670, 682, 7 16, 730, 767, 848 inc!. br. n. I l 8, 849 inc!. br. n. I l9, cf. xii'; and conflict, 3 17-18, 320-2 1 ; see also Harmony Aim (Absicht), xx', vii, xlii, 45, 108, 172, 383', 413, 538, 582, 638, 655, 657, 668, 675, 68 1 , 736, 771-74, 777, 861, 868 n. 192, cf. 99', 223, 383, 366', 390', 391', 448, 45 1 , 506 n. 74, 5 13, 683, 828, 833; Kant's (our, our essential, this inqui ry's), v, xiii' , 25, 26, 28, 105, 109, 300 n. 144, 386, 350', 539, 618, 792, 884, cf. 635, 779; philosophy's, 763, 765, cf. 498; (pure) reason's, 393, 599, 605, 8 1 8, 856, cf. xiii', 33, 398, 5 7 1 , 675, 697-732, 788, 824; reason's speculative, 824, 825, 8 5 1 , cf. 384, 854; transcendental, 736, cf. 740; the imagination's, 123', cf. 179; the transcendental deduction's, 145; the understanding's, 1 26'; deter minate, 653; forced, 772; arbitrary, 449; practical, 85 1 ; private, 84 1 ; moral, xxxiii, cf. 828, 85 1 ; intelligible, 668; (reason's) final, xxxviii, 7, 13, 445, 603 n. 43, 653, 826, 828, 8 5 1 , 854; ultimate, of nature, 829; of religion, 774; final, of the natural dialectic of human reason, 697-732; see also Intention, Purpose Akin (verwandt), see Kinship Algebra (Algebra), 745, 762, see also Arithmetic, Mathematics, Number, Magni tude Allison, Henry E., 35 br. n. 22, I l 6 br. n. I , 1 76 br. n. 46, 224 br. n. 46, 232 br. n. 88, 274 br. n. 38, 294 br. n. 1 25, 399 br. n. 9, 472 br. n. 202, 8 3 1 br. n. 39 Allness (Allheit); is plurality regarded as unity, I I I ; its relation to universality, see Universality; category of, 106, I l l , I l4; as sum of all possible predicates, 600 n. 27; of conditions, 379; see also Totality, Everything Alteration (Abiinderung), 3, xxxviii, xxxix n. 144, xlii br. n. 146, 228 inc!. br. n. 64, 230 br. n. 76, 233 br. n. 98, 274 br. n. 36; 479, 764, 802; contrasted with change and variation, 224 br. n. 45, see also Change, Variation
INDEX
849
Ameriks, Karl, 399 hr. n. 9, 348' hr. n. 42, 35 1' hr. n. 50, 36 1 ' hr. n. 9 1 , 366' hr. n. 1 1 2, 381' hr. n. 166, 409 hr. n. 255, 413 hr. n. 263, 425 hr. n. 293, 428 hr. n. 304 Amphiholy (Amphibolie); i.e., amhiguity, of concepts of reflection, 3 1 6-49 incl. hr. n. 1 ; arises through the confusion of the empirical with the transcendental use of understanding, 3 1 6; transcendental, a confusion of a pure ohject of under standing with appearance, 326, cf. 336, 5 1 2 Ampliative (erweiternd), 1 1 hr. n . 1 94, cf. 1 86 incl. hr. n . 1 36; see Expansive Analogy (-ies) or analogue (Analogie[n], Analogon), xvi, xxxix hr. n. l 44c, 50, 84 hr. n. 69, 339, 356, 363' n. 99, 425, 433 incl. hr. n. 9, 478 hr. n. 237, 594, 654, 659, 67 1 hr. n. 14, 693, 702, 703, 706, 724, 726, 728, 770 hr. n. 1 87, 8 1 8 incl. hr. n. 390, 853, 857, 858, 868, cf. 22 n. 93, 50 hr. n. 95, 321, 43 1 , 605, 669 incl. hr. n. 375, 740 hr. n. 28; all the principles of, 654; in mathematics, is a formula asserting the equality of two relations of magnitudes, 220; in philosophy, is the equality of two qualitative relations, 220; of experience, 2 1 8-65 incl. hr. ns. 3, 14, 33, 46, n. 47, hr. ns. 160 and 209, cf. 200, 201 hr. n. 30h, 268 hr. n. 7, 269 hr. n. 10; of experience, (general) principle of, 2 1 8 incl. n. 1 , cf. 220; of expe rience, consider not appearances and the synthesis of their empirical intuition hut merely the appearances' existence and their relation to one another in re gard to that existence, 220; of experience, are rules wherehy unity of experi ence is to arise from perceptions, 222, cf. 262-63, 272, 273; of experience, are principles for the determination of the existence of appearances in time, accord ing to all three modes of time, 262; of experience, hold only regulatively rather than constitutively (as principles of understanding's empirical rather than tran scendental use), 222-23; of experience, first (principle of the permanence of suh stance), 224-32, 25 1 ; of experience, second (principle of temporal succession according to the law of causality), 232-56; of experience, third (principle of si multaneity according to the law of interaction or community), 256-65 Analysis or analyze (Analysis, analysieren), xxi', 25, 84 hr. n. 70, cf. 35 n. 23; or resolution, is the opposite of synthesis, 1 30, see also Synthesis; principle of, is the principle of contradiction, 624 n. 148, see also Contradiction; of concepts (of what is thought in them), xxi', 27-28, 90, 91 hr. n. 108, 249, 264 hr. n. 241 , 758 incl. hr. n . 1 19, see also Concept; of cognition, 27-28, 103, cf. xxi n . 87, see also Cognition; of presentations, 103; (of) ohjects of nature, 497; of the con sciousness of myself 409, cf. 408; (of) the understanding (its use), 90 incl. hr. n. 105, cf. 84; (of) human reason, 14, cf. 84; and see Dissection Analytic (Analytik), 82, 84, 169, 1 70, cf. 102, 104, 824; see also Analytic (ana lytisch), Analytic-transcendental Analytic (analytisch), judgment, proposition, principle, rule, see these headings; as sertion, 3 1 4; definitions, 760, cf. 758; thinking of one presentation through an other, 130 n. 1 9 1 ; transformation of presentations into concepts, 102; presenta tion, 600; cognition, 1 1 n. 200, 25 (cf. 26), 64, 1 9 1 , 207 hr. n. 67, cf. 1 2, see also Cognition; reference of the conditioned to some condition, 364; mark of possihility, 630; opposition, 532 incl. hr. n. 160; origination of concepts in terms of content is impossible, 103; kinship, 3 15; procedure, 4 1 8. cf. 263 hr. n. 238; order. 395 n. 222 and br. n. 222d; exhihition of the complete system of the phi-
850
INDEX
losophy of pure reason, 26; unity, 105, cf. 1 1 5 ; unity of consciousness, 1 33 n. 202; unity of apperception, 1 33; see also Analytic (Analytik), Tautology, Syn thetic Analytic-transcendental (transzendentale Analytik) (of pure reason), xvi', xxiii', xix hr. n. 80, 87-88, 89-349 (specifically, 90 hr. n. 1 0 1 , 100 hr. n. 166a, 1 7 1 hr. n. 17, 295, 303, 346, cf. 349 inc!. hr. n. 1 , 348'-49'), 377, 353' hr. n . 64, 4 1 5 n. 275, 428, 509, 564, 609, 666 inc!. hr. n. 366, 670, 692, 730, 761 , 793 hr. n. 275, 8 1 6, 873 hr. n. 229, consists in dissecting our entire a priori cognition into the elements of understanding's pure cognition, 89, cf. 87, see also Cognition; is an analytic of pure understanding, 303, cf. 824, see also Understanding; is a logic of truth, 87, cf. 170; its result, 303, cf. 377-78, 348'-49', 564, 609, 670, 730-3 1 ; of concepts, 90-169, is the dissection of the understanding itself in or der to explore the possihility of a priori concepts, 90; of concepts, is the canon for the understanding, 1 7 1 hr. n. 17, cf. 824; of principles, 169-349, 100 n. 166 and hr. n. 166a, 353' hr. n. 64, is a canon for the power of judgment, teaching it to apply the concepts of understanding to appearances, 1 7 1 , see also Analytic (Analytik), Judgment-power of Ancients-the (die Alten), 14 hr. n. 2 1 7a, 35 n. 23, 83 inc!. hr. n. 59, 85, 1 1 3, 229, 290 n. 1 07, 3 1 2, 7 1 7 hr. n. 265a, 868, cf. 645; see also Greeks-the, Egyptians-the, History Anderson, Lorin, 696 hr. n. 168 Animal (1ier[isch], animalisch), 1 80, 374, 695, 7 16; kingdoms, 7 19; nature, 574; hody, 7 16, 86 1 ; shape, 100'; life, 807; power of choice, 562 inc!. hr. n. 284, 830, see also Choice-power of Animality (Animalitiit), 403, 384'
Announcement That a Treatise on Perpetual Peace in Philosophy Is Nearly Com pleted (Verkiindigung des nahen Abschlusses eines Traktats zum ewigen Frieden in der Philosophie), 395 hr. n. 222c Anthropology or anthropological (Anthropologie, anthropologisch), viii inc!. hr. n. 42, 578, 869, 877, cf. 669 hr. n. 374
Anthropologyfrom a Pragmatic Point of View (Anthropologie in pragmatischer Hin sieht), xvii' hr. n. 26, 75 hr. n. 19, 79 hr. ns. 38 and 42, 1 1 8' hr. n. 142, 169 hr. n. 6, 172 hr. n. 26, 862 hr. n. 86, 877 hr. n. 248 Anthropomorphism or anthropomorph(ist)ic (Anthropomorphismus, anthropomor phistisch), 668, 720, 725; a suhtler 728 Anticipation(s) (Antizipation[en]), is any cognition wherehy I can cognize and de termine a priori what helongs to empirical cognition, 208, cf. 221, 222, 256, 537, 547, 8 14; of perception, 207- 1 8 inc!. hr. ns. 74, 80, and 1 37, 221 hr. ns. 19, 24, and 26, cf. 200 inc!. n. 30, hr. n. 30e, and n. 60, is what is cognizahle a priori in every sensation, as sensation as such, 209; of perception, their prin ciple, 207 inc!' n. 68 and hr. n. 74; of our own apprehension, 255-56; of ex perience, 264, cf. 209, 303, 790, 795; of appearances, 209 Antinomy of pure reason (Antinomie der rein en Vernunft), 432-595, cf. xxii', 282 hr. n. 75, 365 hr. n. 88, 701 inc!. hr. n. 198, 7 1 3, 723, 772, 832, 874 hr. n. 23 1 , i s the state of reason i n its dialectical inferences, 398, see also Reason; i s com mon to all transcendental ideas, 563, see also Idea; is a conflict of laws, 434,
INDEX
85 1
cf. 452, 586; arises when in the series of appearances reason aims at the uncon ditioned, 5 7 1 , cf. 525, 449, 5 14; how it is removed (solved), 534, 543-93; seem ing, 588, 592; is fourfold, 535, cf. 443, 453 n. 1 1 2, 768 br. n. 174; mathemati cal (Le., first and second), 558, 559 incl. br. n. 264, 560 br. n. 267, cf. 556; dynamical (i.e. third and fourth), 557-58, cf. 556; first, 454-6 1 , cf. 477 br. n. 226, 549 n. 23 1 , 559 incl. br. n. 264, 588 br. n. 372, 768 br. n. 176, 82 1 br. n. 398; second, 462-7 1 , 559 incl. br. n. 264, 588 br. n. 374; third, 472-79, cf. 558 br. n. 261 , 588 br. ns. 375 and 376, 829 br. n. 29; fourth, 480-89, cf. 558 br. n. 262, 588 br. ns. 375 and 377, 592, 594, 874 br. n. 233 ; see also Reason, Anti thetic, Thesis, Antithesis Antithesis (Antithesis, Gegensatz), xxii' incl. br. n. 40, 448 incl. br. n. 80, 449 incl. br. n. 84, 455, 459, 463, 465, 467, 471 br. n. 195, 473, 477 br. n. 226, 477, 48 1 , 485, 487, 493-96, 498, 502, 534, 549 n . 23 1 , 559 br. n . 265, 592, 768 br. n. 174, see also Thesis, Antinomy of pure reason Antithetic (Antithetik) of pure reason, 448-89, cf. 433-34, 768, is the conflict of seemingly dogmatic cognitions without attribution to one of them of a superior claim to approval over the other, 448; is an inquiry concerning the antinomy of pure reason, its causes, and its result, 448, 449; see also Antinomy of pure rea son; seeming, 768; properly speaking, there is none, 77 1 ; see also Thetic Apagogic (apagogisch), proof, 8 1 7-2 1 , is an indirect proof, 8 1 7 br. n. 384, see also Proof; such proofs have their proper place (only) in mathematics, 8 1 9-20 Apodeictic (apodiktisch), means unconditionally necessary, 199, cf. 100 incl. n. 166, 101, see also Necessity; judgment(s), 17, 95, 404, cf. 762; proposition(s) (as are all those of geometry, 4 1 , 64, cf. 39 n. 37, 199), 4 1 , 64, 65, 101, 407, 764, cf. 424, 749, think an assertoric proposition as determined by the laws of the un derstanding, 1 0 1 ; propositions, are divided into dogmata and mathemata and may be provable or immediately certain, 764; principle(s), 47, 1 99, 678, 765; cer tainty, 14, 39 incl. n. 37, 47, 57, 64, 189, 1 9 1 , 640, 652, 741, 757, 758, 762, 765 incl. br. n. 1 57, 768, 770, 777, 803, is philosophical certainty, xv', cf. 100 n. 166, see also Certainty; certainty, requires that the inference proceed accord ing to the principle of contradiction, 14; proofs, xxii n. 93, 424, 762, 765, 8 1 7, 858, cf. 14, 55, 406, 652, cannot be provided by empirical bases of proof, 762, cf. 858, see also Proof, Demonstration; proofs, are required in matters of pure reason, 8 17, cf. 803, 858; use of reason, 674 incl. br. n. 38 A posteriori, 57, means through experience, 3, cf. 2, 209, 269, 749, 87 1 , see also Empirical, Experience, Experiential; distinguished from a priori, see A priori; presentation, intuition, form, concept, cognition, judgment, proposition, prin ciple, etc., see these headings Appear (erscheinen), is to affect the senses, 69; is to be an object of sensibility, 43, cf. I n. 153; is to be an object of empirical intuition, 1 2 1 ; is to be empirically intuited and given, 1 25, cf. 126; see also Appearance, Object, Subject Appearance(s) (Erscheinung[en]), enter the mind, 122', cf. 26 1 ; is what is (first) given to us (to me), 1 19'-20', 236, 256, 279, 28 1 , 523, 524, cf. l l5', 1 25', 246, 398, 438, 443, 444, 457 n. 1 26, 5 1 2, 533, 536, 537, 554, 800, see also Given; are data of the senses, 122', cf. 296, 430, see also Sense; are beings of sense, Le., phenomena, 305 n. 1 69, 306, cf. see also Being (Wesen), Phenomenon; as
852
INDEX
such, cannot occur outside us (is nothing in itself), but exist(s) only in our sen sibility (in us, in me, relatively to the subject), 127'-29', 1 64, 236, 370', cf. 1 30', 320, 369', 378', 384', 393'-94', 522, 6 1 1 . n. 83, 768, see also Sensibility; as em pirical intuition (intuitions in space or time), 62, 162, 203, cf. 44 n. 65, 99', 1 15', 160, 164, 165, 204, 207, 536, see also Intuition; are (only) presentations (in us, in me), 104', 1 1 3', 235, 236, 305 n. 169, 369', 370'-72', 375', 377', 386', 5 1 8-23, 527, 535 incL br. n. 169, 536, 565, 59 1 , 82 1 , cf. 101', I l l ' , 164, 389'-92', 534, see also Presentation; one and all, may go away, 46, cf. 2 1 2, 23 1 ; has in itself no objective reality and exists only in cognition, 120', cf. 1 24', 1 25', 1 30', 198, 223, 234, 235, 246, 28 1 , 296, 305 n. 169, 334-35, 527, 666, 684, see also Cog nition; can be given in intuition without functions of understanding, 122, cf. I l l ' , 124', 1 64, 2 19, 235; presentation(s) of, 5 9 , 100', 164, 203, 305 n . 1 69, cf. xx, 68, 69, 125; intuition of, 69, 108', 204, 22 1 ; apprehension of (by the imagina tion), 12 1', 202-3, 206, 209, 237-38, 271, cf. 164, 2 19, 225, 234, 235, 527, see also Apprehension, Imagination; production of, from intuition, 22 1 ; conscious ness of, 106'; belong to the entire possible self-consciousness, 1 1 3'; combined with consciousness is called perception, 120', 521 , see also Perception; are pos sible perceptions, 247; anticipation(s) of, 209, 217; reproduction of, 100'-2', 108', 122', cf. 98'-99', 106', 1 1 5', 125'; as presented by sense, imagination, and apperception, 1 1 5', cf. 264, 364', see also Apperception; are data for (a) pos sible experience(s), 1 1 9', 1 27', cf. 34 br. n. 16, 66, 108', I l l ', 122', 1 85, 206, 252, 26 1 , 282, 296, 386', 5 1 8, 521-22, 550, 609-10, see also Experience; have a necessary reference to the understanding, 1 1 9', 126'-28', cf. 164-65, 1 68-69, 3 12-1 3, 359, 392, 6 1 1 n. 83, see also Understanding; concept of, 60, 204, 305 n. 169; application of categories (pure concepts of understanding) to (by means of schemata), 1 7 1 , 176-78, 1 85, 223, 224, 227, 308, 527, 595, cf. 20 1 , 300, 305 n. 169, 444, 751, see also Category, Schema; reflection on, 367; is not illusion, 69-70 inc!. n. 1 78, 349, cf. 1 57; offer objects to our intuition, 123, see also Ob ject; are presentations that in turn have their object, 109', 566-67, cf. xx, xxvii, 55 br. n. 1 1 9, 1 1 5', 195, 198, 236, 358', 372', 380', 385', 387' inc!. br. n. 194, 391', 393', 444, 522, 565, 568, 64 1 , 748; are the only objects that can be given to us directly, 108'-9', cf. 1 29'; is the undetermined object of an empirical in tuition, 34 inc!. br. n. 16; the element in it which allows it to be presented as an object (which is the object), 236; are objects of our consciousness, 235; are (things considered as) objects of our senses (of [sensible, empirical] intuition), xxvi, 34, 5 1-52, 66, 1 25, 299, cf. 62, 68, 126, 108'- 10', 1 22', 199, 235, 305 n. 169, 3 1 3, 320, 323, 432, 520; are objects of perception, 207, 225, cf. 203, 22 1 , 239, 260, 261 , 367', 5 2 1 , 568; ar� possible objects o f experience, 252; are ob jects of (a possible) experience (empirical objects), 234, 298, 299-300, cf. 303, 304 n. 169, 379', 523, 570; as object of understanding, 392, cf. 3 1 2- 1 3; as a thing in itself in the empirical meaning of this expression, 45, 62-63, cf. 44 n. 65, 53, 69 br. n. 175, 393', 537, 609; the subject (ourselves, myself) as (the soul's), 68, 1 52-59 inc!. n. 296, 334, 362', 386', 428-32, 506, 520, 566-74 inc!. br. n. 3 14, 577-8 1 , 7 1 0, 7 1 8, 799, 802, cf. 69, 364', 379'-83', 447 br n. 74, 506 n. 74, 806, 808, 826, see also Subject, Soul; reason's, 583-84, cf. 5 8 1 , 677, 849; the power of self-consciousness as, 69, cf. 359'; the will as, xxviii, see also Will;
INDEX
853
realm of, 7, 56, 57, 1 83, 240, 25 1 , 253, 254, 260, 264, 280, 305 n. 1 69, 379', 399', 400', 433, 443, 447 inc I. br. n. 73, 484, 533, 553, 557, 562, 567, 57 1-73 incl. br. n. 3 14, 576, 577, 579, 586, 596, 607, 609; sphere of, 3 10; absolute to tality of, 440; boundary of all, xx; all (generally), xx, 34, 42, 46, 50, 5 1 (cf. 52), 125, 108', 1 1 1', 1 1 3', 1 14', 1 19', 1 22', 1 23', 128', 1 63, 203-4, 220, 443, 472, 589, 609- 10, 664, 7 1 1 ; (a) sum (whole) of all, nature as, 1 1 4', 163, 446 inc I. n. 70, 480, 570, 610, 699 br. n. 1 86, 700, 724, cf. 1 25'-27' incl. br. n. 168, 165, 263, 265 n. 244, 3 12-13, 334, 384, 3 9 1 , 447, 482, 483, 500, 505, 532, 534-35, 545, 549, 550, 586, 587, 591, 674, 702, 826, 839, 854, see also Nature, World; all, must reside in one nature, 263, cf. 293, 479, 565; unconditioned necessity of, 446, cf. 447, 584; contingency of, see Contingency; existence of, 1 99, 2 1 9, 22 1 , 224 n. 47, 226, 227, 245, 262, 367', 447, 520, 521 incl. br. n. 1 3 1 , 587, 588, 590, 594, 768, cf. 229, unity therein, 262, 447, cf. 1 14', see also Unity; empirical truth of, 520; actuality of, 46, 369', 370', 372', 394', 5 19, 5 2 1 , 799, cf. 376'; possibility of (things as, objects ot), 39, 43, 122, 1 1 1', 127', 130', 1 88, 221 , 393', 443, 457 n. 126, 461 , 469, 590, 6 1 0, cf. 125, 108', 1 1 3', 1 1 9', lies in ourselves, 1 30'; condition(s) of, 44 n. 65, 50, 1 10', 1 1 3', 196, 347, 39 1 , 398, 469, 520, 536, 557, 584, 585, cf. 1 25, 122, 24 1 , 461, 525, 528, 536, 542, 548, 559 incl. n. 266, 560, 585 br. n. 360, 587, 59 1 , 664, 821 ; detennination of, in space and time as such, 168-69, cf. 33-73, 202, 209, 224, 239, 241 -47, 256, 257, 262, 459-61 , 469, 48 1 , 482, 5 1 5, 5 19, 520, 522, 536, 567; (things as) outer (external, of outer sense), 38, 39, 42, 43, 44 n. 65, 49-5 1 , 53, 106', 156, 320, 357', 359', 360', 367', 369'-73', 376'-77', 379'-8 1', 386', 393', 394', 457 n. 126, 469, 553, 568, 700, cf. 45, 224 n. 47, 333, 366', 385', 390'-91 '; inner (internal, of inner sense), 50, 107', 405, 386', 506 n. 74, 5 19, 520, 700, 701 , 7 1 8, 799, cf. 1 56, 379'-83'; fonn(s) of, 34, 36, 42, 55, 62, 1 10', 128', 147 incl. br. n. 253, 156, 223, 459, 4i2, 68 1 , 748, cf. 125, 160, 164, 1 80, 1 82, 202, 300, 7 5 1 , see also Fonn; are (continuous) magnitudes (quanta), 202 n. 33, 203, 2 12, 221, 253-54, cf. 206, 207 n. 68, 210, 2 1 1 , 2 14, 215, 218 incl. br. n. 145, 221, 533, 547; matter of (i.e., sensation, the matter of perception), 34, 207-9, 2 1 1 , 223, 748, cf. 333, 359', 360', 366', 370', 372', 385', 390'-92', 4 1 5 n. 275, 470, 5 1 1 , 5 15, 553, 609, 645, 646, 7 1 1 , 75 1, see also Matter; reality (the real [of sensa tion]) in, 207-8, 210, 214, 2 16-1 8 , 2 1 9 br. n. 1 5 , 225, 254, 320, 376', 389', 564, 565, 607, 609-10, 646, see also Reality, Real; the empirical in, 129, see also Empirical; substance (the pennanent) in (as), 224 n. 44, 225-32, 25 1 , 258, 26 1, 293, 321, 362', 399', 553, 677, cf. 249-50, 260, 340, 364', 379', 3 8 1 ', 394', see also Substance; simple, 5 1 1 , 800; as making up a composite, 261-62, cf. 443, 5 1 1 , 533-55; arising (derivation, explanation) of, 443, 472, 494, 497, 499 n. 44, 500, 505, 508, 5 1 0, 5 1 1 , 574, 590, 646, 7 10, 7 1 3, 7 1 8, 799, 800, 826, 830, 854, cf. 577-78; exposition of, 303, 305 n. 169, 443, 465, 5 10, 536, prin ciples thereof, 305 n. 1 69; creation cannot be admitted among, 25 1 ; causality of, 560, 572, cf. 562, 565, 569, 570; changes of (in), 53, 210, 2 1 3 , 214, 480, 587; as changes, 232; variation (succession) by, 224-26 incl. br. n. 45 and n. 47, 233, 250, 366'; objective succession of (contrasted with subjective), 238-47, 257, 259, cf. 252, 301 , 474; series of, 245, 28 1 , 284, 301, 44 1 , 474, 477, 478, 484, 485, 488, 494, 532 incl. hr. n. 1 62, 533, 538, 539, 549, 558-60, 564, 57 1 ,
854
INDEX
580, 5 8 1 , 7 1 3, 768, 8 3 1 , cf. 444; manifold(ness) of (in), 34 incl. br. n. 19, 106', 1 1 3', 120', 1 23' (cf. 1 24'), 1 26'-27', 160, 2 1 2, 225, 235 incl. br. n. 1 1 3, 236, 238-39, 246, 258, 305 n. 1 69, 444, 6 1 1 n. 83, 692, see also Manifold; rela tion(s) of (among), 38, 56, 1 10', 2 1 9, 225, 234, 235, 243, 247, 280, 441 , 5 8 1 , 702, cf. 59, 239, 340, 3 4 1 , 386'; aggregate of many, 2 1 2; play of, 479; are in trinsically associable, 1 22', cf. 1 26'; (transcendental) affinity of, 1 1 3'-14', 1 22', 123', cf. 68 1 ; coherence of, 108', 1 21', 263, 274, 282, is called nature, 446 n. 70, 479; are subject to rules (have regularity), 123, 1 24, 100', 1 0 1 ', 1 25'-27' incl. br. n. 168, 1 85, 236, 3 1 2, 3 14, 479, cf. 219, 220, 221, 359, 379', 577; law govemedness of, 1 1 3'-14', 1 22', 1 26'-28', 1 64, 1 65, 479, 570, cf. 1 63, 198, 474, 565, 567, 584, 800; combination of, 1 65, 201 n. 30, cf. 224, 700, see also Com bination; synthesis of, see Synthesis; (synthetic) unity (in time) of, 1 1 0', 122', 1 28', 195, 196, 220, 241 , 264, 28 1 , 359, 645-46, cf. 123, 106', 108', 1 1 1 ', 1 12', 1 19', 1 25'-27', 129', 1 30', 140, 168-69, 1 85, 203, 2 1 2, 224, 241 , 262, 296, 367, 370-7 1 , 436, is experience, 28 1 , see also Experience, Unity; principle of the greatest possible unity of, 645-46; unity of understanding and unity of reason of, 383; systematic unity of, 7 10, 728, cf. 645, 646, 768, 801 ; seeing through it and to its very bottom, 6 1 ; always has two sides, 55; without anything that ap pears, is absurd, xxvi-xxvii, cf. 305 n. 169, 324, 358', 380', 385', 387' incl. br. n. 194, 391', 393'-94', 522, 565-69, 573, 574, 641 , 723 br. n. 296, 724, 748; contrasted with noumena (things in themselves, pure objects of understanding), xxi n. 87, xxv-xxix (cf. xxx), 43, 5 1 (cf. 53), 55 incl. br. n. 1 19, 56 (cf. 57), 59-63, 66, 68, 69 br. n. 175, 1 0 1 ', 108'-9', 1 14', 1 28'-29', 152-53 (cf. 15 1 ), 1 55, 157-59 incl. n. 296, 164, 178, 1 86, 1 88, 206, 207, 223, 229, 235, 236, 25 1 -52, 298, 305 n. 1 69, 306-8, 3 1 2- 1 4, 3 1 9-20, 323, 326-27, 329 (cf. 330-3 1 ), 332-36, 341-45 , 347 (cf. 365), 3 9 1 , 357'-59', 369'-74' n. 142, 379'-80', 383'-87' incl. br. n. 194, 389', 391', 393'-94', 422 n. 288, 427-29, 5 1 8-22 (cf. 520), 528 (cf. 527), 532-36, 542, 544, 549, 553-54, 563-69, 573 incl. br. n. 3 14, 574, 579, 582, 584, 587, 589-92, 594, 596 (cf. 641), 700, 723 br. n. 296, 724, 768, 769, 807-8, 82 1 ; see also Noumenon, Thing in itself; rea son is not, 58 1 , cf. 583-84; ideas cannot be presented in concreto in them, 595-96, cf. 598; rightness cannot be, 6 1 Apperception (Apperzeption), is something real, 419; i s the consciousness o f one self, 68, 106'-7', 1 17' n. 138, 132, 1 57, cf. 1 1 1', 1 1 3', 123'-24', 1 29', 1 37, 220, 401 , 402' incl. br. n. 235, see also Consciousness (self-); is one of the original sources (capacities or powers of the soul) that contain the conditions for the pos sibility of all experience, 127 n. 48, cf. 1 15', 1 1.8' br. n. 142, 194 br. n. 1 8 1 , see also Experience; is a subjective source of cognition, 1 1 5'; the human being cog nizes himself through mere, 574, cf. 401'-2'; produces the presentation (per forms the act, is the) I think, 1 32, 1 37, 401 , cf. 123', 13 1-35, 1 38, 1 57, 354'-55', 362'-63', 365', 400'-402', 407, 419, 8 1 2, see also I-the; community of, 26 1 ; conditions of, 283, cf. 1 10', 1 1 1', 1 36, 283; synthesis of, see Synthesis; as a syn thesis, 135; form of, 354'; unity of, 1 05', 1 24' incl. br. n. 1 62, 144 n. 244 , 145-46, 150, 152, 1 8 1 , 185, 194, 256, 263, 407, 415 n. 275 and br. n. 275k, 75 1 , 8 1 2, is a rule, 1 27', (and) is the (pure) understanding, 1 1 9', cf. 1 24', 1 27', 1 37, 1 53, 1 62 n. 3 1 1 , 169, 6 1 1 n. 83, see also Unity, Understanding; (synthetic)
INDEX
855
unity of, its principle, 122', 1 35-38, 142, cf. 1 1 6'-18'; absolute unity of, 419; synthetic unity of, contrasted with analytic, 1 33 incl. n. 202; (transcendental) unity of, is the highest point (in philosophy), 133 n. 202, cf. 1 3 5-37, see also Transcendental; (unity of) transcendental, 1 06'-8', 1 1 8', 1 32, 139, 142, 195-97, 220 inc I. br. n. 1 8, cf. 1 5 1 , as distinguished from the (mutable) (unity of) em pirical, i.e., inner sense, 107', 1 1 5', 132, 1 39-40, 1 53-54, ef. 1 23'-24', 127 n. 48, 1 85, is (immutable and) pure (a priori), objective, original, synthetic (con sciousness), 107', 127 n. 48, 1 30 br. n. 190, 13 1-43 inc I. br. n. 219, 148, 1 50-5 1 incl. br. n. 267, 1 54. 1 57, 169, 1 85, 220, 264, cf. 106', 1 1 1 ', 1 1 3', 1 16'- 1 8', 1 22', 123', 130', 153, 1 6 1 -64, is necessary, 1 10', 1 24', 142 (ef. 144), 195-96 (cf. 197), 220, and has (is) numerical unity, 107', i.e., (thoroughgoing [numerical]) iden tity (of oneself in all possible presentations), 108', 1 1 2', 1 1 3', 1 1 5'-16', 133-35 (cf. 1 32), 365'; transcendental, is the root power for all our cognition, 1 1 4', ef. 1 17' n. 1 38, 1 27 n. 48, 1 53, and as such is the basis (principle) of the possibil ity of all concepts, 1 07', 1 24', 139, including of the categories (pure [transcen dental] concepts [of understanding]), 1 1 1'-12' (cf. 108', 1 10', 1 19', 1 24' incl. br. n. 1 62, 129'-30'), 144 n. 244 (cf. 143, 1 58), 401 (cf. 402-3), 401 '-2' (cf. 403'), and thus the basis of the law-governedness (coherence, [synthetic] unity [in one consciousness]) of the manifold, (of) intuition(s) or presentations, and thereby makes possible our perception(s) and cognition (experiential cognition, empirical consciousness, experience), and thus appearances (objects, nature) and judgments, 108', 1 10', 1 1 3'- 1 8' incl. n. 1 38, 1 22'-23', 127', 1 29'-30', 1 27 n. 48, 1 32-45 incl. n. 244, 148-50, 1 53, 1 54, 1 57, 1 85, 194 incl. br. n. 1 8 1 , 220 inc I. br. n. 18, 256, 263-64, 296, 354', 368', 407, cf. 107', 1 12', 122', 124', 283, 345, 365', 6 1 1 n. 83, 75 1 Apprehension (Apprehension), is the (imagination's) taking up (of impressions [of intuition], of appearances) into its activity (into empirical consciousness, into the synthesis of imagination), 202, 235, ef. 68, 1 22', 495 br. n. 30, see also Imagination, Synthesis; is a compilation of the manifold of empirical intuition, 219, 238, see also Empirical, Intuition, Manifold; by means of mere sensation, 209-10, cf. 208, see also Sensation; of an empirical intuition's manifold turns this intuition into a perception, 1 62, cf. 1 60, 164, see also Perception; is the act that the imagination performs directly on perceptions, 1 20', cf. 125', 162 n. 3 1 1 , 225, 257, 261 incl. br. n . 228; of the manifold of appearance(s) i s always suc cessive, 225, 234, cf. 102', 1 2 1', 160, 162, 1 84, 204, 235-43, 246, 258, 26 1 incl. br. n. 228, 439; succession of, is subjective, 238-42; of an event is a per ception succeeding another perception, 237; of appearance(s), 1 21', 122', 1 24', 202, 204, 206, 237, cf. 160, 1 82, 220-21 incl. br. n. 19, 235, 236, 238, 27 1 , 527, i s actual experience, 124', cf. 206, see also Appearance, Experience; ap pearances, taken as presentations, are not distinct from it, 235, cf. 236; presen tations of, 236; formal condition and anticipation of, 255-56; of space, 439, see also Space; of a homogeneous intuition as such, in it I myself produce time, 1 82, ef. 258, see also Time; of empty time or of an actuality succeeding an empty time is impossible, 237; necessary rule of, 236, cf. 238, 240-42; synthetic unity of, 1 2 1 ', see also Unity; synthesis of, see Synthesis
856
INDEX
A priori, means (absolutely) independent(ly) of (all) (actual) experience(s) (impres sions of the senses), I n. 153, 2-4, 19 br n. 235, 1 17-19, 167, 196, 606, 662, 741 , 749, 793-94, cf. xvi, 8, 1 1- 1 2, 14, 4 1 , 42, 44 n. 65, 66, 80-8 1 , 120-22, 1 27-28, 95', 101', 1 1 8', 1 55 n. 283, 198, 263, 377, 453, 6 1 8, 634, 665, 743, 747, 748, 752, 790, 798, 87 1 , 875-76, see also Experience, Sense; involves (ab solute) necessity, (strict) universality, xv', 3-4, 14, 17, 64, 1 0 1 , 122 br. n. 34, 1 14', 1 1 8'-19', 1 22', 1 25', 66 1-62, 72 1 , 85 1 , cf. xii, 13, 38-39 inc!. n. 37, 47, 5 1 , 52, 60, 64, 1 09', 1 1 2', 1 5 1 , 177-78, 1 85, 199, 219, 357, 389, 636, 678-79, 741 -42, 75 1 , 762, 765 inc!. br. n. 1 57, 803; completely, distinguished from com paratively, 273, 279, cf. 2-3; distinguished from a posteriori (empirical), 1 n. 153, 64-65, 75, 1 1 7-19, 1 29', 1 76, 208-9, 252, 263, 747-50, 794, cf. ix, xxvi n. 103, 2-3, 14, 1 5 , 80-82, 103, 1 22, 1 24-25, 127-28, 95', 98'-99', 1 02', 167, 190, 2 1 8 inc!. br. n. 144, 24 1, 298-99, 503, 593, 665, 72 1 , 741 -43, 752, 861 , 869, 87 1 , 873 inc!. br. n. 224, 875-76, see also A posteriori, Empirical, Non empirical; distinguished from pure, 3, 24 n. 259, cf. x, 4, 28, 29 inc!. br. n. 289, 4 1 , 60, 75, 1 03, 1 06, 120, 227, 750 n. 80, 829 n. 28, 869, see also Pure; dis tinguished from transcendental, see Transcendental; presentation, intuition, form, concept, cognition, judgment, proposition, principle, validity, etc., see these
headings Arcesilas, 883 inc!. br. n. 279 Archetype (Urbild), 370, 372, 374, 597, 598, 606, 701 , 866, 867, cf. 723 inc!. br. n. 296, see also Prototype, Ideal (Ideal), Ectype Architect (Baumeister), of the world, 655, see also God Architectonic (Architektonik, architektonisch), 27, 375, 502, 503, 736, cf. xvi br. n. 7 1 , 655; of pure reason, 860-79 (specifically, 860, 86 1 , 863, 875), cf. xxiv', 736, 859 br. n. 1 52 Argument (Argument, Schluj3[Jolge], Grund), xxxiv, 20, 53, 86 br. n. 76, 172 br. n., 28c, 352', 357', 4 1 2, 4 1 3, 433, 458, 484, 485, 487, 489, 492, 525, 529, 530, 535, 559, 563, 6 1 2, 6 1 6, 6 1 7 , 626 br. n. 1 6 1 , 634, 635, 637 inc!. br. n. 2 1 9, 643, 648 br. n. 272, 655, 657, 7 1 7 n. 265, 721 br. n. 282, 777, 8 1 7, cf. 3 9 1 ', 624, 626 br. n. 1 58, see also Proof, Syllogism, Inference, Logic Arising (Entstehen), and passing away, 108, 228, 230, 23 1 , 233, 25 1 , 349', 400', 567, 6 17, 650, see also Substance Aristarchus, xvi br. n. 72 Aristotle, viii, 86 br. n. 76, 105, 107 inc!. br. ns. 1 95 and 202, 324, 370, 882 Arithmetic (arithmetisch, Arithmetik, Rechenkunst), 16 (cf. 15 inc!. br. n. 225), 764; cf. 205, 299, see also Algebra, Mathematics, Number, Magnitude Arrange(ment)
(einrichten, [an]ordnen, [an]stellen, anbringen [Einrichtung, An ordnung, AnstaltD, xx', xxii', vii, xviii n. 77, 92, 1 56, 1 67, 305 n. 1 69, 33 1 , 345.
354 br. n. 3 1 , 373-74, 396', 436, 622, 648, 653-55, 679, 690, 696, 698, 706. 7 14, 7 1 6, 7 1 9, 723, 725-27, 77 1 , 827, 829, 854, cf. 23, see also Order (Ord
nung) Art (Kunst), 82, 85, 86 inc!. br. n. 76, 88, 1 4 1 n. 230, 172 br. n. 28c, 1 74, 1 80-8 1 . 634 inc!. br. n. 204, 654-55, 745, 753, 860, cf. 433, 530, 554, 638, 680 inc!. br. n. 76, 757, 769 br. n. 1 8 1 , 8 1 5, 86 1 br. n. 1 6 1 , 867, see also Technical, Artifi cial
INDEX
Article (Artikel), of faith, 858, 859 br. n. 1 53, see also Faith Articulation (Artikulation), xix', 862, cf. 861 inc!. br. n. 1 59,
857
see also Structure
Artificial (gekiinstelt. kiinstlich), 354, 425, 449, 883, see also Technical, Art Ascend ([(hin)auflsteigen), vii', 1 1 8, 1 83, 365, 366, 388, 390, 394, 436, 437, 442, 484-86, 495, 500, 540, 546, 550, 573 inc!. b� n. 3 14, 6 1 8 , 63 1 , 660, 683, 686, 7 1 3, see also Descend Assembly or assemble (Zusammensetzung, zusammensetzen), 201 n. 30, cf. xxxvi, 12 br. n. 205, 39, 1 0 1 ' br. n. 7 1 , 105', 1 1 8' inc!. br. n. 43, 1 20' n. 1 50, 129 br. n. 1 85, 1 60, 202, 203, 205, 2 1 1 , 22 1 , 224, 322, br. n. 43, 330, br. n. 76, 403, 446 br. n. 69, 457, br. n. 1 26d, 553br. n. 1 64, 588, 862, contrasted with gather ing together and with collating, 1 1 4 br. n. 239; see also Composition, Combination, Synthesis Assent (Fiirwahrhalten, Beifall, Beistimmung), 848-55 inc!. br. n. 1 23, cf. 6 1 5 , 780 Assert (behaupten), something, means to pronounce it as a judgment that is nec essarily valid for everyone, 849, see also Judgment, Proposition Assertoric (assertorisch), judgment (proposition), 95, 100 inc!. n. 166, 1 0 1 , cf. 3 10, 809 Association (Assoziation, Beigesellung), 5, 127, 1 1 2', 1 1 3', 1 1 5', 1 1 6', 1 2 1 '-25', 140, 142, 152, 794-95, 8 1 1 , cf. xvi br. n. 72, 100', rules of, 1 1 3', 794, cf. 1 2 1 ' A s such (iiberhaupt), xxvii br. n. 106, 401 br. n . 1 8; sensibility, 76, 1 88, 303 n . 1 57; senses, 3 1 4, cf. 1 50; inner sense, 1 8 1 ; (a) sensation, 60, 1 82, 209, 2 1 7 ; (all) presentation(s), 1 57, 3 1 7, 376, 404, 432, cf. 235; (a) (possible, given, [outer] sensible, empirical, homogeneous) intuition(s), 95', 1 05, 1 40, 145, 1 5 1 , 1 54, 1 55 br. n. 285, 1 6 1 -63, 1 82, 203, 222, 304 br. n. 1 63, 305 n. 1 69, 752, cf. 1 48, 1 50, 1 55 n. 283, 1 59; perception, 40 1 ; (one, a) (pure) apperception, 1 43; (our, one, an) (empirical) consciousness, 1 25', 143, 2 1 7, 642; self-consciousness, 40 1 '; (empirical) thought (thinking), see Thought; concept(s), 1 8 1 , 246 br. n. 1 60, 298, 39 1 , 399, see also Concept; categories, 159 inc!. br. n. 300; transcendental sche mata of pure concepts of understanding, 1 82; the unity of the schema, 224; em pirical time determination, 1 83; conditions of time (time conditions), 1 84, 750 n. 80; time, see Time; space, see Space; combination, 1 29 inc!. br. n. 1 88, 1 30 br. n. 1 90; synthesis, see Synthesis; the unity of a synthesis, 224; (the) (pure synthetic) unity (of thought) of a (the) manifold, 1 97, 304, cf. 1 05; the under standing's power to combine the manifold, 1 64, cf. 1 29 br. n. 1 88; (a, our, un derstanding's) (possible) (pure, experiential, empirical, sensible, discursive, ra tional) cognition(s), 59, 96, 98, 1 1 5, 98', 1 02', 1 70, 189, 1 97, 354', 628, 649, 699, 737, 860, 867, 875 n. 240; (a, all) (possible, inner, outer) experience, see Experience; the empirical, 401 ; (a) body, 1 1 inc!. n. 200, 1 2; (a) (given) ap pearance(s), 1 77, 1 99, 21 2, 305 n. 1 69, 398, 443, 522, 535, 555, see also Ap pearance; a reality, 605; (a) matter, 377', 678; the determinable, 322; (a) some thing, 63, 1 04', 305 n. 1 69, 307, 34 1 , 345, 355', 400', 705, cf. 239, 333, 347, see also Transcendental (object), X; (a) thing(s), see Thing, Thing in itself; (an) object(s), see Object; (empirical) substance(s), 330, 469; all possible predicates, 60 1 ; intrinsic characteristics, 34 1 , cf. 357; what occurs (happens), 357, 8 1 6; an event, 238 inc!. hr. n. 1 26; (a) change (of certain relations), 2 1 3, 252 n. 1 9 1 , 479; motion, 338; (an) (efficient) cause, 2 1 3 br. n . 106, 743, 788; (all) (contin-
858
INDEX
gent) beings (the contingent), 484, 663; (a, some) (given) existence (of appear ances) (the existent), 447, 46 1 , 495, 502, 5 1 1 , 587, 620, 63 1 , 633, 643, 648, cf. 644; (a, all) everything (that makes up existence), 349', 414; the sensible series, 592; nature, 1 65 inc!. br. n. 320, 696, 7 1 2, 7 1 3 ; a world, 99, 461 ; the world concept, 7 1 2; a system, 29; (a) thinking being(s) (natures), 405, 406, 354', 382', 393', 399', 405', 410, 4 1 8, 4 1 9, 42 1 , 422, 426; a rational being, 834, 835; the soul, 874; a basic power, 678; (the) cognitive power(s), 287, 824; (use of) (the, a) (possible) understanding, see Understanding; the transcendental power of judgment, 1 7 1 ; (a, understanding ' s) (experiential) judgment(s), 95, 140, 1 89, 303 n. 1 57, 368, 348', 405'; universal propositions, 358; assertion, 378; a rule, 1 98; reason, see Reason; ideas, 368, cf. 379; freedom (a free will), 79, 835; the un conditioned unity of all conditions, 391 ; an ideal, 595 ; an(absolutely) necessary being, 634-35; logic, 74, 86; syllogisms, 432; axioms, 761 ; magnitude(s), 2 1 8 , 27 1 , 300, 745; a number, 1 79, cf. 7 5 2 ; a triangle, 1 80, 746; a transcendental deduction, 1 1 6; metaphysics, xii'; dialectic, 349; red, 133 n. 202; one's case, 468; see also General Astronomy (Astronomie), 3 1 3, cf. 69 n. 178, 260, 277-78, 354, 410, 489, 508 br. n. 83, 5 2 1 , 524, 550, 603 n. 43, 690-9 1 , 853, see also Star, Planet, Moon, In habitant Asymptotically (asymptotisch), 691 Atheism or atheist(ic), (Atheismus, Atheist[ischD, xxxiv, 668, 669 br. n. 372, 769, see also Theist Atomism or atomist (Atomistik, Atomist), 883 br. n. 278, cf. 2 1 5 br. n. 125; tran scendental, 470; see also Molecule Attention (Aufmerksamkeit), 79 inc!. br. n. 38, 1 56 n. 292, cf. vi inc!. n. 3, x', xvi', xxii n. 93, xliii, 2, 95, 103, 1 17' n. 1 38, 1 54-55, 198, 201 inc!. br. n. 28, 3 16, 352, 353, 369, 362', 406, 447, 597, 644, 678, 682, 772, 8 1 1 , 817, 829 Attitude (Gesinnung), 426, 776-78, 841 , 843, 857, 858, cf. 5 1 4, 784-85, see also Way of thinking, Spirit Aules, see Aulus Aulus, Persius Flaccus, xx' br. n. 35 Author (Verfasser; Urheber), ix', xiv', xv', xix', xi inc!. br. n. 5 1 , xx�iii, xxxvi br. n. 1 34, 1 5 br. n. 225, 127, 370, 496, 641 br. n. 237, see also Originator Authority (Ansehen), 1 9 1 , 489 br. n. 266, 497, 576, 6 16, 6?-,2 , 766, 767, 779, 879, cf. xxxiii, 779-80, 800, 875, see also Reputation I Axioms (Axiome), 47, 204-6, 222, 286, 356, 536, 545, 7 P , 754, 760-62, are syn thetic a priori principles insofar as such principles are pirectly certain, 760; phi losophy, unlike mathematics, has none, 76 1 , cf. 536, 545, 753; are intuitive prin ciples, 761 ; of intuition, 200, 201 br. n. 30d, 202-7 inc!. n. 33 and br. ns. 34, 48, and 6 1 , 221 br. n. 2. 19, 24, and 26, cf. 222; of intuition, their principle, 202 inc!. n. 33, 204 br. n. 48, 206 br. n. 6 1 , 22 1 br. n. 26, 76 1 Bacon, Sir Francis, ii inc!. hr. n. I , xii Basic (Grund-), sources of the mind, 74; power, see Power; material, 2, 330, 68 1 ; presentations, 1 02'; idea, 872; concepts, 28, 29, 107, 1 20, l l l ', 2 1 3, 348' inc!. br. n. 41, 406 inc!. hr. n. 244, 608 inc!. br. n. 68, 7 1 2, 874; experiences, 2 1 3;
INDEX
859
character of sensible cognition, 59; rules (maxims), 353, 779, 826; properties, 680; synthetic characteristics (forces), 477, 679; origin, 80; causes, 689; hy pothesis, 802; science, xxiv; transcendental doctrines, 746; pillars of religion, 773; meaning, 44 br. n. 68, 349 br. n. 1 Basis (Grund), xix br. n. 79, 72 1 inc1. br. n. 283, see also Ground, Presupposition; and consequence(s), 98 inc!. br. n. 157, 246 br. n. 160, 323, 3 3 1 , 43 1 , 438, 495, 503, 639, 8 1 8, 819, 830, see also Consequence; contrasted with sum, 607; pos sible, 130'; illusory, 777, 7 8 1 inc!. br. n. 23 1 , 783 inc!. br. n. 235, cf. 785; a priori, 96', 101', 492 br. n. 1 1 , 786; transcendental, see Transcendental; tran scendent, see Transcendent; (our) subjective, 1 14', 1 2 1', 125', 350, 642, 822, 840, 85 1 , 857; formal, 492 br. n. 1 1 , cf. 29; inner, 1 16'; internal, 5 8 1 ; intrinsic, 5 19; of truth, 3 1 6, cf. 349, 817, 8 1 9; real, 330, 586; empirical, 1 2 1', 540, 541, 578, 634, 688, 762, cf. 576; experiential, 850; natural, 576, 800; physical, 7 1 8, 80 1 ; common, 849 inc!. br. n. 1 1 9; objective, 126, 1 2 1', 122', 642, 695, 842, 848, 849; determining, xix br. n. 79, xxxix n. 144, 1 9 1 inc!. br. n. 167, 274 br. n. 46, 832, cf. 198, 6 1 1 , see also Determination; cognitive (of cognition), 33 br. n. 14, 98', 126', 349, 388, 389, 400, 818, cf. 1 25'; of proof (for proving), xxxiii, xxxvii, xlii, 72, 144 n. 244, 246, 352' n. 57, 392', 409, 426, 467, 487, 529, 6 1 1 , 6 1 5 , 633, 634, 648, 652, 653, 655, 657, 666, 668-69, 765, 769, 777, 7 8 1 inc!. br. n. 23 1 , 782, 783 inc!. br. n. 235, 804, 8 15, 816, 822, cf. 389, 434, 449, 492 inc!. br. n. 13, 503, 5 13, 606 br. n. 60, 6 1 2, 626 br. n. 1 6 1 , 632 br. n. 186, 648 br. n. 272, 8 1 8, 857, see also Proof; of explanation (for explaining), 1 15, 574, 590, 640, 654, 68 1 , 705, 7 1 1 , 7 1 8, 798, 799-803, 826, 830, cf. 438, see also Explanation; for explicating, 420; of judgment(s), 1 88, 194, 350, 6 1 7 inc!. br. n. 105, cf. 449, 503, 5 13, 804, 849, 85 1 ; of thought, 429; of (prior to all) ex perience, �ee Experience; speculative, 383', cf. 777; rational (of reason), 577, 617 br. n. 105, 777; of the possibility of the transcendental object, 593-94; se ries of, 389, 8 19; of series, 6 1 2; intelligible, 565 inc!. br. n. 292, 573, 5 9 1 , 700, cf. 575, 577, 578, 7 1 1 , 777, 844; first (primary), 250, 393', 644, 700; original, 165, 261 , 596, 6 1 5 , 659, 669, 706, 725; original, of all things (of everything), 6 1 5 , 669, cf. 596, 659, 844; full, 726; complete, 6 1 0; sufficient, 3 19, 772, 804, 853, 855, see also Basis-principle of sufficient; all-sufficient, 700; highest (su preme), 644-47, 70 1 , 704, cf. 574, 649, see also God; governing, 326; legal. 1 17, 558; see also Substrate Basis-principle of sufficient (Satz des zureichenden Grundes), 246 inc!. br. n. 160, 265, 8 1 1 , see also Basis (sufficient), Sufficient Baumgarten, Alexander Gottlieb, 35 n. 23 with br. ns. 23a and 23h Beattie, James, 5 br. n. 1 60 Beck, Lewis White, I I br. n. 199, 232 br. n. 88 Begin (anfangen), active and passive meanings of the term, 483 n. 250; nothing begins in reason itself, 582, see also Reason; and see Beginning Beginning (Anfang), any, is in time, 550, see also Time; is an existence preceded by a time wherein the thing that begins was not yet, 482, cf. 5 1 5 ; first, math ematical or dynamical, 477; comparatively first, 478; to be, absolute, 23 1 ; a state absolutely, power, of 473, cf. 476, 478, 5 6 1 , see also Freedom, Action, Series; unconditioned, see Unconditioned; of the world, see World; of sensation, see
860
INDEX
Sensation; of cognition, see Cognition; intellectual, 494; rudiments as, 680 incl. br. n. 72; see also Begin, State Being (Sein), 2 1 7, 602, 604, cf. 1 1 3 incl. br. n. 236, contrasted with existence, 604 br. n. 50; concept of, signifies nothing but the synthesis in an empirical con sciousness as such, 2 1 7 , see also Is-what; is not a real predicate, 626, see also Real; what belongs to it absolutely, 604; sum of all, 300, is time, see also Time; and not-being (of something in time), 1 10', 1 82, 23 1 incl. br. n. 8 1 , 232, 290 incl. n. 107, 479, 602, cf. 48, 106, 229 incl. br. n. 7 1 , 243, 25 1 , 29 1 , 301 incl. br. n. 1 5 1 , 643 incl. br. n. 252, see also Existence, Not-being Being(s) (Wesen), 1 1 3 incl. br. n. 236, 322, 509; of sense, 306, 308, see also Phe nomenon, Appearance; whether space and time are, 37, see also Space, Time; actual, 6 1 2, 702, 7 12; existing, 682; independent, 371', cf. 706; self-subsistent, 4 1 5 br. n. 275; permanent, 462, 7 1 0- 1 1 , cf. 724, see also Substance; extended, 42, 349, 371', 3 8 1 ', 393', 5 19, 520, cf. 509; composite, 359', 360'; simple, 340, 359', 4 1 3-14, 464, 506, 607, 608, 70 1 , cf. 410, see also Monad; all, 59, cf. 409; chain of, 696 br. n. 1 68; derivative, 607, cf. 729; dependent, 72; contingent, 484; finite, 72; limited, 616; living, 425, 550, 864, cf. 554 br. n. 246; thinking 72, 270, 400, 402, 403, 405 , 406, 348', 349', 352'-54' incl. br. n. 63, 357'-60', 367'-68', 370', 380'-83' incl. br. n. 1 65, 393', 395', 399', 401', 403', 405', 407- 1 1 incl. br. n. 256, 4 1 3 , 415-22 incl. n. 288, 426, 669, 7 10, 876, cf. xxii, xxviii, 429, 503, 520, 566, reality thereof, 669, see also Thought, I-the, Soul, Substance; human, see Human being; that are intelligences, 594, cf. 668, 706, see also Intelligence; having understanding, 164, 306 incl. br. n. 176, 728, cf. 659, 706, see also Understanding; having understanding, liking and disliking, desire and will, etc., 728; rational, 834-38, 840-42, 857 n. 1 5 1 , cf. 706, 858, see also Reason; (self-)active, 157 n. 296, 569, cf. 566, 659, see also Action, Activity; other, 33 br. n. 9, 49 1 , 837, cf. 334; other thinking, 43, other human, 270, cf. 352', 409; cf. 54, 409; divine human, 597; nonmortal, 97; possible, 97, 596, 641 , cf. 334, 4 1 1 , 703-5; extramundane, 589 incl. br. n. 385; imaginary, 347 incl. br. n. 146; of the understanding, 306-9, see also N �non; thought (of thought), 701-2; reasoning and of reason, 697-98 incl. b . n. 179, 709 incl. hr. n. 227, see also Reasoning; of reason, 347 incl. br. n. 1 3, 394 incl. br. n. 220, 697-98 br. n. 179; 709 incl. br. ns. 226 and 227; ideal, 702-3, cf. 704-7, 709, 7 1 3- 14, 726, 729; intelligible, 590, 592, 649, 800; tralll/cendent, 667, cf. 704-6; unknown (unknowable, incomprehensible), 705, 707, 725-26, 729, 7 3 1 , cf. 820; separate, 608, 609, cf. 724, 725, 728, 874; a third, 39 1 '; single (indi vidual), 604 incl. br. n. 49, 608, 6 1 5 , 658, 7 1 3-14, 842-44, 846; eternal, 608; (absolutely, unconditionally) necessary (unconditioned), 422 n. 288, 480, 48 1 , 483, 484 incl. bL n. 25 1 , 486-88, 509, 5 16, 587-90, 595, 606, 6 1 3-16, 620-23 incl. br. ns. 1 23 and 130, 63 1 -36, 638-40, 642-44, 646-49, 657, 668-69, 707, 7 14, 722, 724, 8 16- 17, 820, 839-40, 844, cf. 703-5; having an intuitive un derstanding, 33 br. n. 1 3, see also Understanding; original, 72, 394, 487, 494-96, 498, 607-9, 612, 646, 649, 655, 658-61 incl. br. n. 337, 664, 668, 706, 707, 722, 820, 842-44, 846, cf. 6 1 5 , 669, 721 , 725, 728, 729, 839; whose concept contains the therefore for every wherefore, 6 1 3, cf. 6 1 8, 664-65 ; all-sufficient (of supreme sufficiency), 608, 640, 649, 655-56, 668, 7 1 3- 14, cf. 6 1 8 ; single,
�
INDEX
86 1
simple, all-sufficient, eternal, concept of, is the concept of God, 608, cf. 7 13-14,
see also God; divine, 656 br. n. 3 1 8, 703, 845-46, cf. 728; thoroughly deter mined, cf. 605-6; possessing all power, wisdom, etc., i.e., all perfection, 655-56; of supreme (highest, infinite) perfection, 65 1 , 703-4, 7 14, 722, 728, 846, 847, cf. 839-4 1 , 874; supreme, 606, 607, 6 1 1 , 6 15-17, 102, 103, 104 and 106, 6 1 8 br. n . 1 1 1 , 629-30 inc!. br. n . 175, 637, 639-4 1 , 647-49 inc!. br. ns. 277 and 282, 653, 658 incl. br. n. 33 1 , 660-62 inc!. n. 344 and br. n. 354, 664, 665 inc!. br. n. 362, 668, 669 inc!. br. n. 377, 706, 707, 7 1 7 , 72 1 , 726, 727, 769, 770, 773, 7 8 1 , 803, 820, cf. 839; highest, 484, 6 1 8 br. n. 1 1 1 , 648, 65 1 , 667-68, cf. 66 1 , 707, 7 14, 846; utmost, 651 ; most real, 604 inc!. br. n. 48, 606, 659 inc!. br. n. 337, 8 16-17; supremely (maximally) real (containing [having] all real ity), xxxii inc!. br. n. 1 28, 6 1 1 n. 83 and br. n. 83a, 624, 6 1 4 inc!. br. n. 94, 6 1 6, 63 1-36 inc!. br. ns. 1 85, 193, and 202, 639, 647, 659 inc!. br. n. 339, cf. 607, 628, 668-69, 724, see also Real, Reality; all reality as united in one, 330, cf. 703, see also Unity; infinite, 623, cf. 728; all-encompassing, 7 14; of all beings, 3 9 1 , 393. 398, 606-7, 659 inc!. br. n. 337, 699 br. n. 1 86; see also Entity Belief (Glaube), 285, 848 br. n. 1 1 3 , 850 br. n. 1 23, 8 5 1 -53 inc!. br. ns. 1 3 1 and 1 35, cf. xxiv br. n. 98, xxxix n. 144, 1 n. 1 53, 1 3 , 17, 19, 62, 107, 128, 1 20' n. 1 50, 255, 326, 328, 377', 384', 388', 415 n. 275, 427, 530, 578, 582-83, 62 1, 622, 63 1 , 635, 660, 694-95, 7 1 4, 7 1 8, 720, 7 8 1 , 783, 792-93, 808 inc!. br. n. 336, 8 1 7, 847, 853 br. n. 1 3 1 , 857 n. 1 5 1 ; common, 285; pragmatic, 852-53; contrasted with faith, xxx br. n. 122, 848 br. n. 1 13, 850 br. n. 1 23. cf. 85 1 , see also Faith, Opinion Berkeley, George, 7 1 , 274 inc!. br. n. 4 1 , 5 1 9 br. n. 123 Bird, Graham,. 92 br. n. 121, 1 16 br. n. I, 224 br. n. 46, 232 br. n. 88, 472 br. n. 202 Blind (blind), x, 14 n. 2 17a, 75, 99, 101, 103, 1 2 1 . 1 1 2', 280, 475, 603, 6 1 8, 660, 735, 79 1 , 800 Bodily (korperlich, Leibes-), 372', 470, 808, cf. 77 1 , see also Corporeal, Body Body or bodies (Korper), doctrine of (somatology), 3 8 1 ' br. n. 1 67; concept (pre sentation) of, S, 1 1 inc!. br. n. 200, 1 2, 6 1 , 93-94, 106', 387, 469, 871-72; are presentations in us, 387'; as presented in intuition, 6 1 , cf. 44 n. 65, 1 29; ap pearances of, 5 1 1 ; are objects ([mere] appearances lrather than things in them selves]) of the outer senses (external objects, outer appearances), 400, 357', 370', 3 83', 553, cf. 69, 7 1 , 236, 372', 387', 469, 470, 806-8; transcendental objects appear as, 394', cf. 387'; are enclosed within bounds, 54 1 br. n. 209, 553; are (presented as) substances, 553, cf. 129, 363' n. 99, 8 1 3; have weight (are heavy), 2, 4, 5, 1 1 incl. br. n. 198 and n. 200, 1 2, 142, cf. 12 br. n. 56, 69 1 ; are com posite, 387, cf. 5 1 1 , 553; are divisible, 35, 93-94, 1 28-29, 553-55, cf. 5 1 1 , 541 ; and their parts, 1 1 2. 351', 353', cf. 1 1 n . 200, 5 1 1 , 553-55; are extended (oc cupy space), 5-6, 11 inc!. br. n. 198 and n. 200, 12, 38 1', cf. 69, 106', 469. 553; volume of, 8 1 2; have shape, 11 inc!. br. n. 200. 1 2, cf. 106'; are impenetrable, 5, 1 1 inc!. br. n. 200, 12, 381', cf. 1 06'; presented as simple, 8 1 2; are perme ated by a magnetic matter, 273; are changeable, 387; at rest, 290 n. 107, 488; in motion (motion of), 252 n. 1 9 1 , 290 n. 1 07, 35 1 , 35 1 ', 353', 363' n. 99, 387',
862
INDEX
488, 69 1 , 8 1 2 ; (motive) force of, 35, 812, 8 1 3 ; color, hardness, softness of, 5; smell or lack of smell of, 53 1 ; fluid, 87 1 ; cosmic, 550, cf. 383'; celestial (heav enly), xvi, xxii n. 93, 260, 665 br. n. 358; organized (organic, structured), xxiii, 384', 554-55 inel. br. n. 246, 7 1 6; animal, 716, 861 ; humors of, 77 1 ; commerce with, 403; and soul(s), 69, 400, 358', 384'-87', 389', 427, 806-8, cf. 356'-57', 390'-93', 409, 700, 802-3, see also Soul; see also Bodily Bonnet, Charles, 696 incl. br. n. 168 Boundary (-ies) or bounds (Grenze[n]), contrasted with limit, 789, cf. 795, see also Limit; of human insight, 7 8 1 ; of a science, viii, 862, 87 1 -72, cf. xxii; of natu ral science, 774; of logic, viii-ix; of (transcendental) philosophy, 2 1 3, 755; of metaphysics, xii', xxii, see also Metaphysics; of sources of cognition, 56, see also Cognition; of (the use of) (speculative, pure) reason, xxiv, 23, 25, 1 28, 395', 42 1 , 7 1 4, 754, 763, 786, 788, 789-90, 822, 823, cf. 5', 26, 699, 825, see also Reason; of the unity of reason, 68 1 ; of thoughts, 650; of an idea's proper de termination, 608, see also Idea; of a concept, 173 incl. br. n. 3 1 , 3 10, 755 incl. n. 105, 756, see also Concept; concept, 3 1O-1 1 ; a priori, of empirical synthe sis, 490, cf. 546; of (the domain of, the use of [the pure concepts of]) (pure) understanding, xvi', 148, 193, 294, 297, 3 1 2, 336, 352, 795-96, cf. 14 n. 2 1 7 , 384-85, 620 incl. br. n . 1 19, see also Understanding; o f sensibility, xxiv-xxv, 148, cf. 343, 345, 549, 552; of (the sphere of) (all [possible]) experience, viii', xiv', xviii n. 77, xix-xxi inc I. n. 87, xxiv, 3', 6-7, 23, 87, 1 2 1 , 127, 148, 1 70-7 1 , 272-74, 281-82, 308, 353, 384, 395'-96', 423-� , 435, 449, 490, 494, 499, 525, 537, 542-43, 545, 563, 665, 670, 672- 3 7 14, 7 1 8, 729-30, 739, 754, 809, 824, 832, 856, 858, 882-83, cf. 148, 308, 35, 7 14, 753, 786-88, 823, see also Experience; of life, 425; of the world, 4 6, 454-61 incl. br. n. 1 54, 49 1 , 499 n . 44, 5 1 5, 548-49, 821 , cf. 477, 497, 54 , 550; of appearances, 393', 46 1 , 545, 550, 553, cf. 549; of a whole, 446, cf. 8 6 . of some matter, 541 incl. br n. 209; of an indeterminate quantum, 454 n. 1 19, cf. 86 1 ; of (parts of) space and time, 2 1 1 , 439-4 1 , 455, 457 n. 1 26, 459 incl. n. 135, 466, 467, 509, 552, cf. 253, 419, 46 1 ; of a figure, 359, cf. 790; of empirical regression, 542-43; (or lack of) of a series, 389, 445, 542-48, see also Boundless; absolute, 545-49 incl. n. 229; surmounting of, by freedom, 374, cf. 385, see also Freedom; of the school, 502; of the mathematician's talent, 755; of the earth (of possible geog raphy), 787; of unending error, ii incl. br. n. I ; see also Horizon
�
Boundless or unbounded (grenzenlos, unbegrenzt), 14 n. 2 1 7 , 166 n. 324, 322, 5 15. 544, 593, 632, 653, 69 1 , cf. 39 n. 43, 426, 546, see also Boundary Boyle, Robert, 2 1 5 br. n. 125 Brittan, Gordon G., 202 br. n. 35, 224 br. n. 46, 232 br. n. 88 Brucker, Johann Jakob, 372 incl. br. n. 1 16 Buchdahl, Gerd, 2 1 8 br. n. 3, 232 br. n. 88, 256 br. n. 206, 294 br. n. 1 25, 435 br. n. 22, 648 br. n. 272, 670 br. n. 1 , 697 br. n. 172, 754 br. n. 99, 648 br. n. 272 Building (Bauwerk, Gebiiude), 14 n. 2 1 6, 376, 735 incl. br. n. 4, 784, cf. 9, 458, 492, 529, 766, 8 1 4, 862, see also Edifice, Structure, System Business (Geschiift, Aufgabe), vii, xxv, 5', 19, 84, 3 1 9, 497, 665, 692, 698, 70 1 , 708, 8 1 7, 828, 88 1 , 884, see also Occupation, Task, Project, Work
INDEX
863
Caesar, Julius, xxiv hr. n. 98 Calm (ruhig, beruhigen, befriedigen), xxv, 641 , 643, 652, 784, see also Tranquil Canon (Kanon), xxiv', is the sum of a priori principles governing the correct use of certain cognitive powers as such, 824; contrasted with organon, 26, 77-78, 85, 88, cf. 823; of (pure) reason, 77, 1 70-7 1 , 723 hr. n. 300, 736, 822 hr. n. 4 10, 823-59 (specifically, 823-25, 828, 83 1 , 832, 848), pertains not to its specu lative hut only to its practical use, 824-25; of (pure) understanding, 77-78, 1 70 inc!. hr. n. 7, 1 7 1 hr. n. 1 7, 385, 824; of the power of judgment, 1 70-7 1 inc!. hr. n. 7, cf. 85, 88 Capacity (Fiihigkeit), xiii, 33 inc!. hr. n. 1 0, 34, 6 1 , 72, 75 inc!. hr. n. 22, 1 27 n. 48, 1 50, 4 1 3, 522, cf. 656 hr. n. 3 1 8, see also Ahility, Power Cardinal (Kardinal-), propositions, 357', 769, 770 inc!. hr. n. 1 84, 827 Cartesian (Cartesisch), see Descartes Cassirer, H. w., 35 hr. n. 22, 92 hr. n. 1 2 1 , 1 29 hr. n. 1 84, 1 97 hr. n. 1 , 202 hr. n. 35, 224 hr. n. 46, 232 hr. n. 88, 265 hr. n. 1 , 294 hr. n. 1 25, 349 hr. n. 1 , 399 hr. n. 9, 435 hr. n. 22, 595 hr. n. 1 , 670 hr. n. 1 Categorical (kategorisch), syllogisms, 1 4 1 n. 230, 337 hr. n. 1 1 5, 36 1 , 392, 432; synthesis, see Synthesis; judgments, 95, 1 28, 1 4 1 inc!. n. 230, 387 Categories (Kategorien), 1 02-69, are predicaments, 1 07, 1 08 incl. br. n. 204; Ar istotle's, l OS , 107 inc!. br. n. 1 97, cf. 1 13-16; are (express) forms of thought, 34 br. n. 1 6, 1 50, 267, 288, 305-6 inc!. n. 1 69, 309, cf. 1 29'-30', 1 46, 1 48, l S I , 175, 343, 367, 378, 379, 383, see also Thought; are required for thinking an object, 1 65, see also Object; are a priori (pure) concepts (cognitions) of under standing, 102, 1 05, 96', 1 1 9', 1 27' br. n. 1 76, 1 76-77, 307, 368, 595 inc!. br. n. 3, cf. 1 1 8, 1 10'- 14', 1 1 8'-19', 1 24'-30', 1 44-45, 1 59, 1 60, 1 67, 1 87, 343, 363, 367, 383, · 392, 798, see also Concepts, Understanding; are the true root con cepts of pure understanding, 1 07, cf. 1 54, 1 67, 670; are (based on) logical func tions occurring in judgments, 1 3 1 , 429, cf. 1 22, 1 28, 1 43, 1 59, 1 78-79, 1 87, 224, 303 n. 1 57, 305 n. 169, 378, 348', 406, see also Judgment; the subject of, 422; definitions of, 1 08-9, 300, cf. 1 28; table of, 1 06, 107- 1 3 inc!. br. n. 203, 1 87, 200, 300 n. 144, 399 incl. br. n. 1 3 , 402, 396', 4 1 8 br. n. 279, 438, 557, 752 br. n. 87, cf. 265, 392, 402, 436, see also the individual categories men tioned in the table, e.g., Causality, Possihility, etc.; realm of, 1 66 n. 324, cf. 305 n. 1 69; division of, 106, 1 10; their number cannot he increased, 1 1 3, cf. 1 45-46, 265, 403', 4 1 7 incl. br. n. 277, 442; are conditions under which alone the mani fold of sensible intuitions can come together in one consciousness, 143, cf. 1 44, 1 54, 1 58, 348', 401 '-2', 406, 42 1 -22, see also Consciousness, Apperception; presuppose combination, 1 3 1 , cf. 1 59, 1 6 1 , 1 63, 308, 383; are rules according to which a manifold of pure intuition is synthesized, 144-45, cf. 1 25' inc!. br. n. 1 67, 1 28', 146-52, 1 6 2 br. n. 3 1 1 , 1 64, 1 8 1 , 1 85, 267, 288-93, 300 n. 144, 303 n. 1 57, 305-6 inc!. n. 1 69, 308, 378, 383, 399', 429, see also Intuition, Syn thesis; schematism of, 1 76-87, 223-24, 432, cf. 1 08, 1 1 1 ', 304-5, 342, 377 inc!. br. n. 1 4 1 , 348', 693, 7 10, see also Schematism, Schema; formula of, 224; em pirical deduction of (is impossible), 1 1 8, cf. 1 67 ; metaphysical deduction of, 1 59 inc!. br. n. 299, 90- 1 1 6 ; transcendental deduction of, 1 24-69, 95'-1 30', cf. xxii n. 93 and br. n. 93b, 1 16 br. n. I , 95' br. n. 58, 96'-98', 1 78, 386, 393, 697-98,
INDEX
864
see also Deduction; objective deduction of, 393; necessity of, 1 1 1 ', 1 67-68; pos sibility of, 1 10', 1 1 1'. 159 inc!. br. n. 300, 269-70, 401'; objective reality of, 150-5 1 , 288, 29 1 , 595; lead to truth, 670; objective validity of, 1 26, 96'-97', 145, 1 75, 303 n. 1 57, 305 n. 1 69, cf. 3 1 0- 1 1 , 670, 697; are (basic) concepts of (for thinking) an object (objects) as such, 1 1 1 ', 1 46, 158, 303-5 inc!. ns. 1 69 and 309, cf. 1 1 5-16 inc!. br. n. 250, 1 28, 97', 143, 1 54, 1 59, 288, 29 1 , 300, 306, 3 1 1 , 346, 399', 407, 422, 670; apply to (prescribe laws to, make possible) appearances (experience[s], empirical intuition[s], objects of experience [of the senses, of intuition)), (but not [to] things in themselves [noumena]), 1 26, 1 1 1 ', 1 19'-20', 125', 143-5 1 , 159-6 1 , 165-68 inc!. n. 324, 177-79, 1 85-87, 200-20 1 inc!. br. ns. 25 and 26, 266-70, 300 inc!. n. 144, 303-5 inc!. ns. 1 57 and 1 69, 307-1 5 , 341 -46, 352, 370, 4 1 5 n. 275, 527, 724, 798, d. 1 1 br. n. 201 , 1 26, l l l ' , 125', 1 28', 1 45, 325 , 346, 367-68, 370, 348', 356', 399', 401 ', 435-36, 444, 506 n. 74, 595, 629, 705, 707, 7 1 0, 7 1 2; objective use of, is governed by the principles of pure understanding, 200, see also Principles; prescribe laws to nature (make nature possible), 1 59-60, 163, 1 65, cf. 1 67, 7 12; mathematical and dynamical, 1 1 0; unity of, see Unity; as combined with one another, 108, I l l ; predicab1es subordinated to them, 1 08 Cathartic
(Kathartikon), applied logic as, 77-78; a sober critique as, 5 1 4 (Kausalitiit), category of, 1 06, 108, 176, 302, 44 1 , cf"i1 0 ; see also Cause (Ursache), Dependence, Category; concept of, 29 1 , 301 66 705-7; principle
Causality
E
' of, xxvii, 1 3 , 19 inc!. br. n. 240, 250, 28 1 , 289, 303, 4 6 br. n. 70, 572, 637, 662-64, 788, 795, 8 14, cf. 247, 257; law(s) of (causal law), 232-56 (specifi cally, 234, 252), 279-80, 473-74 inc!. br. n. 2 1 2, 48 488, 5 1 6, 5 6 1 , 564, 566-68, 572, 573, 6 1 8, 633 n. 1 95, 664-65, 8 16, cf. 5, 241, 247, 268 inc!. br. n. 8, 301 ; Hume's views concerning, 5 inc!. br. n. 160, 19-20, 1 27-28 inc!. br. ns. 50 and 53, 656 br. n. 3 1 8, 788, 793-96, cf. 649 br. ns. 280 and 282, 656 hr. n. 3 1 8, 773 inc!. hr. n. 201 , 774; of a change as such, 2 1 3, cf. 234; of motions, 39 1', cf. 691 ; schema of, 1 8 3 ; determination (of the exercise) of, xxvii; a prop erty as, 268; the cause's, see Cause ( Ursache); of a substance, see Substance; community as (reciprocal), I l l , 1 83, d. 256 br. n. 204, 302; see also Commu nity; its subject, 250-5 1 ; its relation to action (Handlung), 249-50, 254, 570-86, 838; according to laws of nature (conditioned, sensible), 447, 472-79, 5 16, 560-86, 660, 835, cf. 342, 482, 483, 485, 488; through freedom (of [pure] rea son, by means of understanding [spontaneity, will], voluntary, practical, intel ligible, intellectual, unconditioned), 1 25, 374, 375, 385, 447, 472-79, 486, 5 1 6, 560-86 inc!. br. n. 360, 587, 589, 654, 660, 7 13, 83 1 , 835, see also Freedom; origin of all, 722; purposive, 7 1 6; highest and supreme, 6 17-18, 65 1 Cause
(Sache), 772, 777-78, 7 8 1 , 805, 8 1 2, cf. 822, see also Matter (Sache)
Cause(s) (Ursache[n)), (and effect), category of, 1 06, 163 , 429-32, d. 2 1 3 hr. n. 1 06, 441 , see also Causality, Category; causality of, 248, 249, 253, 447 inc!. br. n. 73, 472, 475, 483 n. 250, 5 1 6, 560, 5 6 1 , 565, 570, 572, 574; concept (pre sentation) of, 5, 1 3, 1 22-24, 1 12', 168, 24 1 , 577, 743, 750 n. 80, 756, 788, 8 1 1 . cf. 40 1 , 655; signifies a special kind of synthesis where upon [the occurrence of] something, A, something quite different, B , is posited according to a rule, 1 22, cf. 1 12', 577; and effect, law (rule) of, 5, 232, 248; everything that occurs
INDEX
865
(happens) has (is detennined by) its, 13, 241 , 280, 289-90, 357, 363, 5 6 1 , 76 1 , 765, 8 16, cf. 301, 3 1 5, 495, 5 1 6 , 564, 6 1 2, 617, 633 n . 1 95, 637; every (all) change has its, 3, 5, 253-54, 290-9 1, 617, cf. 213, 234, 25 1 , 482, 483, 570; and effect(s) (series [chain] of causes, causal linkage), xvii', 5, 13, 1 1 2, 124, 1 63, 168, 201 n. 30, 234, 247-49 inc!. br. n. 176, 256, 259, 276 inc!. br. n. 5 1 , 279, 291, 301 , 3 1 5, 342, 368', 372', 386'-87', 441-42, 478 br. n. 237, 483 n. 250, 523, 533, 550, 558, 561, 568, 569, 57 1 , 580, 638, 646, 649-50 inc!. b� n. 282, 662-65, 689, 701 , 722, 742, 752, 793-94 inc!. br. ns. 279 and 280, 801 ; and effect, can be simultaneous, 247-48; unity of, 691 ; schema of, 1 83; objective reality of, 801 ; possibility of, 213, cf. 288; efficient, xxvii, 248, 374, 386', 387', 391', 475, 567, 7 1 6 inc!. br. n. 254, 788, 83 1, 840 cf. 486; incidental. xviii'; occasioning, 1 1 8, 582; final, 7 1 6 inc!. br. n. 254; absolute and intrinsic, 394'; basic, parsimony of, 689, cf. 65 1 , 678; proximate, 368'; more remote, 83 1 ; internal (inner, in us), 98', 368', 372'; external (outside us), 367', 368', 372', 387', 390'-91 ; of presentations (perceptions, appearances), 367'-68', 372', 387', 390'-94', 522, cf. 698, 7 1 8 ; a reality contained in appearance as, 210, cf. 207 br. n. 74; natural (sensible), 478, 562, 569, 572-74 inc!. br. ns. 3 1 2 and 3 14, 649, 674, 722, 827, 83 1 , 834, 843, cf. 488, 578, 580; phenomenal, 573 inc!. br. n. 3 1 3 ; a substance as, 1 1 1 , cf. 33 1 ; ideas as (original efficient), 374, cf. 3 3 br. n . 13; subjective, 8 1 1 , 822, 848, 849; motivating, 562, 578, 582, 617, 830; absolute spontaneity of, 474, cf. 358; tran scendental, 391', 524, 574, 592; of appearance is not itself appearance, 344, cf. 572, 59 1 , 698; nonsensible (intelligible), 334, 522, 565, 572 inc!. br. n. 3 1 2, 573 inc!. br. n. 3 14, 585 incl. br. n. 360, 592, 7 1 3, 826; in themselves, 584; unknown, 387', 524, 592, cf. 522, 654; some third, 33 1 ; first, 638, 657, see also Prime mover; supreme (highest, necessary, all-sufficient, of [external to] the world [uni verse]), 99, 229, 480-89, 491 , 498, 499 n. 44, 506, 5 16, 59 1, 6 1 2, 618, 6 1 9, 633 n. 1 95, 640, 647-61 inc!. br. n. 3 1 8, 664, 665 inc!. br. n. 3 6 1 , 706, 707, 713-16, 728, 834, 842, 846, 855, cf. 25 1-52, 33 1 , 455, 698, 703, 802, 838, see also Be ing (Wesen), Originator; supremely wise (august and wise), 653, 701 , cf. 655, 72 1 , 728, 802, 846, see also God Census
(Zensur), 788-89, 792, 795, see also Verdict
Certainty (GewijJheit), xv', xii, xxii n. 93, xxxvii, xxxix n. 144, 1 n. 1 53, 5, 14, 22, 56, 57, 63, 65, 78, 107, 1 13', 1 25', 1 9 1 , 1 95, 200, 223, 295, 356', 367', 369', 370', 449-5 1 , 508, 509, 555, 578, 63 1 , 654, 674, 676, 741 , 754, 761 , 770, 775, 778, 789, 796, 798, 804, 817, 833, 850, 852, 853 inc!. br. n. 1 34, 858, (for ev eryone) is objective sufficiency (of assent), 850; complete (entire, indubitable), 201 , 369', 374', 5 10, 5 1 2, 526, 661, 73 1 , 760, 768, 7 8 1 , 789, 798, 8 5 1 , 856; apodeictic, see Apodeictic; philosophical, xv', 76 1 , cf. 741 ; direct (immediate), 204, 285, 317, 760, 76 1 , 764, cf. 674; intuitive (is self-evidence), 201 , 762, see also Evidence; discursive, 201 ; logical and moral, 857; origin of the different kinds of, viii; lack of, 1 9, 367', 368', 37 1 ', 505, 508, 5 10, 5 1 2, 858 Change(s) (Veriinderung[en]), is a way of existing that ensues upon another way of existing of the same object 230, 233, cf. 48, 108, 149, 213, 252-54 inc!. n. 1 9 1 , 6 1 7; is a successive (is the variation of) being and not-being of the deter minations (states) of (a) substance (thing), which itself is permanent, 232, 290-92 inc!. n. 1 07, cf. xxxix n. 144, 58, 227, 233, 25 1 , 252, 28 1 , 292, 363 n.
866
INDEX
99, 477, 480-88, 5 1 9, 7 1 8, see also Substance; contrasted with alteration and variation, 224 br. n. 45, cf. 230-33, see also Alteration; possibility of, 48, 252, 254, 290-92, 479, 480 n. 245 ; concept of, is possible only through and in the presentation of time, 48, cf. 53-54, 58, 252-54, 290-92, 480 inc!. n. 245, 482, 520, see also Time; has a magnitude, 468; are actual, 53, 520, cf. 479, 486-88 ; i s a reality contained i n experience, 2 10, cf. 3, 5 8 , 28 1 , 479; exhibition of, is the intuition corresponding to the concept of causality, 29 1 ; perception of, see Perception; causality of, see Causality; every, has its cause, see Cause (Ursa che); all, occur according to (are subject to) the law of the connection of cause and effect (the law of causality), 232, 234, cf. 67, 253-55, 280-8 1 , 290-91 , 480, 483, 587, 6 1 7 , 690, 7 1 g e; all, is continuous, 2 1 3 , 254, 28 1 , cf. 468; step wise, 208; of place(s) (motion), 48, 67, 386', 530, cf. 252 n. 1 9 1 , 29 1 ; in the corporeal world, in all, the quantity of matter remains unchanged, 1 7, 1 9 br. n. 235, cf. 37 1 '; of outer appearances, 53, cf. 156, 371'-72'; of nature (the world), 400'-1 " 479-86, 587; in ourselves as subj ects (internal), 45 inc!. br. n. 70, 292, cf. 233, 363 n. 99, 7 1 8 ; of the soul, 3 5 1 ', �f. 807-8; all future, of the world, 39; of human beings into different animal sha , 100'; none, occurs in the subject as noumenon, 569, cf. 583-84; none, is found-Jn nonsensible intuition, 149; in (the method 00 our way of thinking, xviii, xix, 'CCxxxii; see also Changeable, Arising, Passing away Changeable (veriinderlich), xxxii, 93 br. n. 1 33, 156, 2 1 3 , 387, 443, 446, 568, 577, 587, 866, cf. xxxviii, 294, 374 inc!. br. n. 126, 499 n. 44, see also Change, Mu table, Unchangeable Chaos (Chaos), x' Character(istic) (Beschaffenheit, Merkmal, Zug, Charakteristik), xvii inc!. br. n. 26, xxii n. 93, xxxvii, 3, 11 n. 200, 12, 33 inc!. br. n. 14, 38, 40, 4 1 , 44 inc!. n. 65, 55, 58-62, 67, 69, 1 14, 123, 97', 1 1 2', 1 29', 133 n. 202, 1 92, 1 99, 222 inc!. br. n. 34, 223, 242, 250, 268, 273, 280, 300 n. 144b, 305 n. 1 69, 306, 323, 326, 333, 334, 336, 337 br. n. 1 15, 338, 34 1 , 377, 404, 374' n. 142, 388', 389', 398', 4 1 5 n. 273, 4 1 9, 420, 467, 478, 492, 494, 506 inc!. n. 74, 535, 598, 6 14, 6 1 8, 633, 639, 643, 648, 660, 664, 671 br. n. 14, 673, 676, 679, 694, 695, 699, 709, 7 1 9, 737, 745 inc!. br. n. 55, 755 inc!. n. 105, 756. 758, 760, 798, 8 1 8, 827, 848, 849, 855, 880, see also Character (Charakter), Property, Constitution Character (Charakter), of possibility, 267, 269; of analytic propositions, 626; of ex istence, 272; of actuality, 273; of substance, 4 1 8; of efficient causes, 386', 567; of magnitudes, 745, cf. 763; empirical and intelligible, of a subject (of a human being, of an agent, of the effects of his thinking and acting, of his reason, of his power of choice) 567-69, 574, 577-85 inc!. n. 339; moral, 774; national, 695; see also Character (Beschaffenheit)
Pt:z
Chemistry 870
(Chemie), xxi n. 87, cf. xii br. n. 59 [chemist], 4 1 5 n. 275, 674, 680-8 1 ,
Chimera (Hirngespinst), 1 24, 196, 269, 37 1 , 415 n. 275, 5 7 1 , 597, 798, 839, cf. 372, see also Invent Choice-power of (Willkiir), 29 br. n. 290, 562 inc!. br. n. 283, 576 inc!. br. n. 328, 577-78, 580-8 1 , 828, 830, 836, 838, 845, cf. 20 1 n. 30, 394, 490, 63 1 , 757, 807, see also Will
INDEX
867
Cicero, 7 1 7 n. 265 and br. n. 265a Claim (Anspruch. Anmaflung. sich anmaflen. vorgeben), ix'-xi' inc!. n. 14, xiv', xxx br. n. 122, xxxiii, xxxv, 24, 52, 88, 1 1 6, 1 2 1 , 1 99 br. n. 10, 2 1 5, 217, 255, 270, 285, 295, 297, 344, 347, 352, 353, 360', 363', 388', 391', 392', 394', 395', 407, 424, 426, 448, 453, 458, 459, 49 1 , 493, 498, 508, 553, 598, 614, 6 1 5 , 637, 640, 652, 656 br. n. 3 1 8, 667, 678, 697, 729, 73 1 , 76 1 , 763, 767, 779, 790, 792, 796, 797, 805, 809, 822, 823, 867, 872, cf. vii' br. n. 7, xix br. n. 8 1 , 10, 42 br. n. 57, 2 1 5 br. n. 125, 246 br. n. 1 60, 324, 393' br. n. 2 1 1 , 669 br. ns. 372, 373, and 374, see also Pretension, Reason Clarity (Klarheit), xvii' br. n. 26, 414 n. 273, xliv, 98', of a consciousness, 104'; of a characteristic, 300 n. 144, 755 n. 1 05 ; of an exhibition, xxxiii, cf. 498; of a presentation, 38, 1 17' n. 1 38, 241 , 414 n. 273, 8 1 8 ; logical, of a presentation, 24 1 ; of a concept, 241 ; of an idea, xvii' br. n. 26, cf. 863; of a proposition, 498, cf. 4 1 5, 73 1 , 770 inc!. br. n. 1 88, 8 1 4 inc!. br. n. 372; of a cognition, 1 n. 1 53; of a proof, xxxi, 255, 424-25, 467, 65 1 , cf. 529, 765, 770 inc!. br. n. 1 88, 814 inc!. br. n. 372; of a contradiction, 8, cf. 8 1 8 Coalition
(Koalition), 201 n . 30, 4 1 5 n . 275
Coexistence (Koexistenz), 257 br. n. 209, 260, 265 n. 244, 456, cf. 373, 558, 564, 590, 644, 703, 780, see also Simultaneity Cogency
(Beweiskraft), 6 1 9, 635, 8 1 2, see also Valid, Hold, Proof
Cognition (Erkenntnis). its nature is the matter of this critical inquiry, xiv', cf. xii' br. n. 16, 6, 6 1 , 249; contrasted with knowledge, vii' br. n. 6, xxx br. n. 1 22, 723 br. n. 300, 846 br. n. 102, 848 br. n. 1 13, 856 inc!. br. n. 148, see also Knowl edge; is a whole consisting of compared and connected presentations, 97', cf. xvii br. n. 73, 94, 98 inc!. br. n. 1 59, 99, 1 14, 95'-1 30', 135, 1 37, 142, 324, see also Whole; systematic character of, 673, see also Systematic; system of, see System; is objective perception (i.e., objective conscious presentation), 376, cf. xvii br. n. 40, 1 16', 1 20', 1 58, 404, 376', 382'; consists in determining (proving the [real] possibility of) the object, xxvi n. 103, 1 66 n. 324, cf. 1 37, 406, 601 ; i n every, there are three components: qualitative unity (of the concept), quali tative plurality (truth as regards the consequences), and qualitative complete ness (perfection), 1 14, cf. 96, 1 15 , 1 16; realm of (all) (human, pure, a priori, empirically possible, speculative), xxiii, 14 n. 2 1 7 , 98, 174, 428, 672, 804; is either intuition or concept, 376-77, cf. 64, 74-75, 92-93, 125; the understand ing (in the general sense) as the power of, 1 37, cf. 92-93, 145; (in the term's proper meaning) requires intuition (sensibility, receptivity, imagination) and un derstanding (apperception, spontaneity) (requires a synthesis of [the manifold ot] intuition according to pure concepts [categories] of understanding), xxv-xxvi, 8, 33, 74-76, 87, 102-4, 125, 95'-130' inc!' n. 138, 1 29-69 inc!. n. 324, 1 94-96, 288, 303 n. 1 57, 343, 406-7, 4 1 2, 43 1 , 747, cf. I , 90, 92-93, 1 14, 1 20, 1 75, 1 86 inc!. br. n. 143, 1 87, 220, 301 inc!. br. n. 148, 304 inc!. br. n. 1 67, 3 14, 335, 350, 376', 394', 402', 871-72, see also Sensibility, Intuition, Imagination, Un derstanding, Categories, Apperception, Synthesis; all our (human), starts from the senses (intuitions), proceeds from there to understanding (concepts) and ends with reason (ideas), 355, 730, cf. xvii, I , 363; critique of, 8 1 , cf. 84, 96, 249, 545. 668, 699 , 737 , 786, see also Critique; bounds (boundary, limits, range) of,
868
INDEX
xiv', xix, 6-8, 26, 170-7 1 , 345, 673, 723, 737, 768-72, 786-90, 796, 823, 825, 87 1 , cf. 1 27, 1 85, 234-35, 280, 3 15, 355, 37 1 , 423, 428, 499, 5 1 0-12, 526-27, 596, 629-30, 665-67, 702, 706-7, 7 2 1 , 725, 730-3 1 ; possible ([a priori] pos sibility of), xix, 6, 24 n. 259, 25, 40, 57, 80-8 1 , 94, 99, 1 15, 1 1 8, 122, 1 25, 102'. 1 10', 1 1 5', 1 1 8', 126', 1 37, 1 50-52, 166 inc!. br. n. 323, 1 88, 1 89, 1 99, 206, 255, 265 n. 244, 289, 296, 305 n. 1 69, 354', 382', 537, 596, 628, 666, 672, 684, 708, 786, 790, 796, 875-76, cf. 98', 207, 209, 688, 721 ; as such, see As such; kinds (types) of (ways of cognizing), xi' n. 14, xvii, 96, 305 n. 1 69, 3 1 8, 808, 817, 870-72, cf. 14 n. 2 17, 1 70, 35 1 ; sensible (sensory) and intelligible (intellectual), 35 n. 23 and br. n. 23f, 59, 74, 165-66, 3 1 2 n. 1 98, 336, 345, 494 br. n. 25, cf. 3 10, 340, 342, 499, see alsq Intellectual; other than human (intui tive, transcendental), 7 1 , 145, 159, 207 cl. br. n. 67, 305 n. 169, 3 1 1 -14, cf. 93, 336, 394', see also Intuitive; (specu ative), of things in themselves (nou mena), (we [can] have none), xx, xxi n. 8 xxvi, 45, 60-62, 67, 1 28'-29', 158, 1 64, 234, 305 n. 1 69, 306-7, 3 10- 12, 342- 3, 430, 7 1 1 , 7 1 8, cf. xxviii-xxix, 326. 359', 394', 526-27, 594, see also Thing in itself, Noumenon; of one's ig norance, 786, 795, see also Ignorance; false, 737, cf. 8 1 9 , 823-24; positive, 823; direct and indirect, 93, 1 4 1 , 359-60, 579; distinct and indistinct, 305 n. 1 69, cf. 62, 1 03, 396', 786, 787, 794, 795; subjective, 863-65, cf. 820; a posteriori (em pirical, experiential), xvii, xx, xxviii, 1-4 inc!. n. 1 53, 1 5, 56, 60, 80, 8 1 , 1 25-26, 109', 1 1 3', 1 25', 1 29', 1 30', 1 55 n. 283, 170, 197, 208, 2 1 8, 224, 228, 23 1 , 234, 244, 246, 255, 256, 260-61 , 265 n. 244, 267, 269-70, 277, 279, 28 1 , 305 n. 1 69, 309, 367, 384, 40 1 , 353', 381', 396', 500, 5 1 1 , 527, 537, 594, 596, 628, 666, 672, 676, 699, 702 br. n. 205, 705, 708, 721 inc!. br. n. 282, 749, 750, 786-87. 87 1 , 878, cf. x, 29, 1 6 1 , 195-96, 221 , 258-59, 264, 271-73, 278, 280, 283, 289, 465, 499, 7 5 1 , see also A posteriori, Empirical, Experiential; com paratively a priori, 273, 279, cf. 2-3; a priori ([absolutely] pure, pure a priori, [absolutely] independent of [all] experience), xii', xv', xvii', ix, xvi, xix-xxi inc!. br. n. 86, xxxv, 1 - 1 0 inc!. n. 1 5 3 and br. n. 1 68, 14 n. 217, 15, 1 8, 23-28 inc!. n. 259, 36, 57, 60, 64, 80, 87, 89, 98, 1 19-21 , 128, 96', 1 02', 1 1 0', 1 14', 1 1 7' n. 1 38, 1 19', 132, 150-52, 1 55 n. 283, 168, 1 70, 1 74, 1 87, 1 95-97, 206-9, 2 1 3, 2 1 8, 221, 222, 255, 256, 279, 289, 356, 405, 382', 476, 509, 666, 72 1 , 736, 749, 7 5 1 , 765, 788-89, 793-94 inc!. br. n. 279, 803, 829 n. 28, 85 1 , 869, 871 -74, 875 n. 240, 882, cf. xiv, 56, 82, 90, 269, 586, see also A priori, Pure; analytic (discursive, through [from] concepts), xx', xiv, xxxv, 9-1 0, 1 1 n. 200, 1 2- 1 5, 25, 64-65, 92-94, 170, 1 9 1 , 207 br. n. 67, 279, 283, 31 1 - 1 2, 357, 494 br. n. 25, 660, 74 1 , 745, 750, 752, 760, 762, 872, cf. 103; formal, 1 29'-30'; form of, 9, 6 1 , 83-85, 1 09, 1 1 8, 120, 1 1 7' n. 1 38, 1 1 8', 1 29'-30', 1 7 1 , 326, 377, 386. 427, 599, 742, cf. 79, 190, see also Form; matter (content) of (for), 74, 78-80. 83 , 85-87, 98. 99, 102-3, 1 1 8 , 170, 1 7 1 , 1 89-90, 355, 390, 599, 737, 740, 863, cf. xxxix n. 144, see also Matter; third, mediating, 760; expansive (expansion of), xiv', xvi, xxi, 8, 1 1 n. 200, 1 2, 18, 23, 25 inc!. br. n. 264, 26, 74 br. n. 8. 88, 170-7 1 , 206, 254, 255, 296 inc!. br. n. 1 3 1 , 328, 354', 361', 366', 382', 398', 496, 498, 545, 629-30, 649, 665, 667, 699, 702, 7 1 8, 725, 730-3 1 , 736, 737, 764, 793, 8 1 3 inc!. br. ns. 367 and 368, 823, 827, 875 n. 240, 879, 883, cf. 14, 1 74, see also Expansive; synthetic a priori, 18, 25 , 28, 37 br. n. 28, 40, 4 1 , 49.
�
INDEX
869
55, 64, 1 2 1 , 1 89, 1 96, 1 99, 207, 223, 249, 303, 353', 3 8 1 ', 665, 746, 748-50, 790, 8 10, 824, cf. 13, 23, 1 1 9, 128, 1 87, 1 9 1 , 269, 272-73, 357, 363, 40 1 , 366', 630, see also Synthetic; (a priori), of (the existence, actuality of) objects (things, nature, the world) (objective), xvi, xviii inc!. br. n. 78, xxi n. 87, xxiii, xxv-xxvi, 1 , 20, 25, 33, 44, 66, 74 inc!. br. n. 9, 78-80, 93, 1 1 4, 1 2 1 , 1 22, 1 25, 1 04', l OS', 109', 1 1 1', l I S', 1 26' , 1 29'-30', 1 38, 146-48, I SO, 1 55, 1 56, 1 58, 1 59, 1 64-66 inc!. br. n. 323, 1 86 br. n. 140, 1 88, 1 90, 1 94, 1 98, 206-7, 2 1 8-19, 223, 240, 243, 254, 267, 283, 289, 296, 303 n. 1 57, 305 n. 1 69, 309, 328, 333, 362, 367, 378, 385, 354', 358', 361', 372', 378', 396', 400', 402', 406-7, 409, 526-27, 60 1 , 6 1 8, 629, 663, 667, 676, 693, 694, 702, 705-8, 709 br. n. 228, 789-90, 8 1 1 , 833-34, 854, 863-65, 873-76 inc!. br. n. 23 1 , cf. x, 8, 1 06'-8', 1 10'-14', 220, 246. 304 inc!. br. n. 1 65, 335, 603 n. 43, 630-3 1 , 66 1 , 684, 721 , 773-74, 794 inc!. br. n. 279, 8 1 9, 864-65; all we cognize a priori about things is what we ourselves put into them, xviii inc!. br. n. 78, cf. xii, xiv, xvi, xxiii; objective reality of, 1 94-96, 335, cf. 351 n. 1 6, see also Reality; objective validity (truth) of, 8 1 -85, 1 25', 1 9 1 , 236, 3 10, 722, 8 1 8- 1 9, 867 br. n. 1 90, 882, cf. 99, 100, 1 37, 1 90, 296, 349-50, 82 1 , 846, see also Validity; deduction of, 1 19, 509, cf. 1 99, see also Deduction; object(s) of (all), ix, 24, 30, 8 1 , 84, 86, 87, 1 26-27, 1 20', 1 27', 1 28', 1 89, 267, 305 n. 1 69, 3 1 5, 361 , 787; of the self (the subject [its properties], [the nature of] thinking being[s] [as such], the soul), xi', xviii, 1 5 5-59, 277, 293-94, 394, 404, 405, 350', 355'-58', 365'-68', 382', 383', 398'-404', 406-7, 409, 420-22 inc!. br. ns. 284 and 286, 430-3 1 , 509, 574, 577-79, 585, 7 1 1 , 7 1 8, 763, 773, 79 1 , 877, 878, practical use thereof, 42 1 inc!. br. n. 284, see also Self, Consciousness, I-the, Subject; historical, 864-65 incl. br. n. 1 69; mathematical (geometric), 741 -42, xiv, xvi, 8, 14, 37 br. n. 28, 4 1 , 55-57, 64, 1 20, 1 28, 147, 1 96, 206, 27 1 , 356-57, 359, 749, 754-55, 762, 865, 872, 875 n. 240; of universal natural science, 1 28, cf. 49, 1 55 n. 283, 603 n. 43, 874; philosophical, see Philosophical; metaphysical, xiv, xvi, xxiii, 1 8, 20-2 1 , 875 inc!. n. 240, cf. 10, 606 br. n. 60, 878; transcendental, see Tran scendental; transcendent, see Transcendent; dogmatic, 448, see also Dogmatic; organon and canon of, 26, 823; sphere(s) and community of, 99, 235; method of, 740; (basic, primary, theoretical, practical) sources ([first] origin, stems, root power, [first, highest] principles, [first] bases, grounds, foundation) of (the pos sibility of), viii, x, xxiii, xxvi n. 1 03, 4, 24, 29, 33 br. n. 14, 36, 55, 56, 6 1 , 74, 80, 103, 1 1 8, 97'-99', 1 1 3', 1 15', 125', 1 35, 1 88, 249, 297, 3 16, 350, 3 5 1 n. 1 6, 356-57, 368 br. n. 1 02, 3 7 1 , 390, 400, 45 1 , 5 1 2, 537, 663, 667, 702 inc!. br. ns. 201 and 205, 709 br. n. 228, 7 1 8 , 730, 786, 8 1 8, 823, 863, 865, 870, 87 1 , 882-83, cf. xix', 40, I l S, 1 16'- 1 9'; (pure) understanding's, xvii', 3 , 26, 78, 87, 89, 90, 93, 98, 1 37, 1 87, 289, 297, 305 n. 1 69, 307, 357-62, 364, 385, 575, 673, 675, 676, 684, 690, 693, 708, 709, 736, 790, 824, 875 n. 240, 882, cf. 207 br. n. 67; (pure) reason's (rational, from principles), 864-65 inc!. br. n. 1 69, vii', xii'. xvii', xx', vii, ix-x, xiv, xvi, xxxv, 26, 8 1 , 82, 1 09, 357-58, 363, 386-90, 394, 405, 354', 382', 448, 603 n. 43, 640 , 735, 741-43, 749-S2, 760, 773, 803, 809, 824, 865 , 867-69 inc!. br. n. 1 90, 878, 8 8 1 , 882, cf. 24, 255, 360-6 1 , 3 7 1 , 379, 496, S02, 644 , 649, 673-79, 683, 688, 693, 699, 702, 8 1 0, 845, 860-63, 866, 873-74, see also Rational; theoretical, 66 1-62, ix-x, xxix, 20, 1 68, 426,
870
INDEX
589 br. n. 386, 630 inc!. br. n. 179, 833-34, 854, 869, cf. xxvi n. 103, see also Theoretical; (reason's) speculative, 662, 735, xix', xiv, xxvi, xxviii, 13, 371 n. 1 10, 386, 505, 663-64, 804, 824, see also Speculative; of the particular in the univer sal, see Universal; higher and more universal, 1 88, cf. 1 n. 153, 256, 356, 357, 365, 379, 448, 864; purposes, completeness, comprehensiveness of, xiv', cf. xx', 7, 26, 27, 60, 80, 89, 97, 223, 669, 683, 694, 736, 844-46, 866-67, 87 1 , 878, 879; (reason's) practical, vii' br. n. 6, ix-x, xxi, 846, 661, 662 br. n. 356, 723 br. edom, 723 br. n. 300, 83 1 ; of n. 300, cf. 6 1 7, 838, 844, see also Practical; of the moral law, 834, cf. 844; of purposiveness, 6; of the original (necessary, su preme) being (God, the originator) (theologicaVcognition), 392 br. n. 208, 395 br. n. 222e, 394-95, 628, 659-60, 664, 665, 722, ;846 inc!. br. n. 102, 856 inc!. br. n. 148, 874 inc!. br. n. 233, 880, cf. 595, 602, 4, 614, 655, 659-62, 667-68, 72 1, 843, 848 br. n. 1 1 3; see also Cognitive power, Acquaintance, Insight
� 4;2
§(i
Cognitive power (Erkenntnisvermiigen, -kraft), xvi', viii, 1, 4-6, 1 1 8, 128, 97', 1 1 9', 169, 201 n. 30, 266, 277, 286, 287, 308, 3 1 6-1 9, 324, 325, 333, 3 5 1 , 353, 370, 386, 730, 806-7, 824, 829 n. 28, 863, 873, cf. xix, xx br. n. 86, 24, 6 1 , 75, 9 1 , 92, 1 1 3', 353, 362; higher, 863, 1 69, cf. 1 3 1 , 355; supreme (highest), 355, 730; reason regarded subjectively as, 353, cf. 3 17; see also Power Coherence or cohere(nt) (Zusammenhang, zusammenhiingen[d]), xix', xiii, 1 n. 1 53, 85, 89, 92, 108', 1 1 0', 1 14', 1 15', 1 19', 121', 124', 1 8 1 , 1 82, 2 10, 2 1 1 , 244, 245, 26 1 , 263, 266, 272-74, 279, 282-84, 286, 3 1 1 , 3 12, 3 14, 362, 386, 394, 396, 363', 377', 379', 386', 400', 403', 446 n. 70, 473 br. n. 209, 475, 479, 500, 52 1-23, 564 br. n. 288, 565 br. n. 290, 59 1 , 629, 656 br. n. 3 1 8, 673, 675, 676, 679, 686, 688, 691 , 694, 708, 715, 720, 724, 8 14, 840, 856, 869, see also Co hesion, Connection, Combination, System, Unity, Whole, Experience Cohesion
(Zusammenhang), 358', see also Coherence
Collating or collate (Zusammenhang, -fassen), 1 14 inc!. br. n. 239, 137, 1 38, 1 60, n 305, 383, 495br. n. 30, 685 inc!. br.n. 107, cf. 93, contrasted with gathering together and with assembly, 1 14 br. n. 239 Combination or combine (Verbindung, verbinden), 201 n. 30, 1 2, 13, 48, 73, 102, 108, 1 10, I l l , 1 1 3, 127, 97', 1 0 1 ', 108', 109', 1 17' n. 38, 1 1 8', 120', 1 2 1 ', 1 24', 1 29-39 inc!. br. ns. 1 88, 1 90, and n. 202, 142, 145, 150-5 5 , 1 56 n. 292, 158-61 162 n. 3 1 1 , 163-65, 235, 236, 238, 242, 270, 29 1 , 306, 308, inc!. br. n. 1 8 1 , 3 14, 320, 329, 338, 374, 385 br. n. 1 75, 392, 395, n. 222, 407, 414 n. 273, 419, 428, 464, 465, 49 1 , 554, br. n. 246, 567, 570, 664, 677, 8 17, 838, cf. xvii br. n. 26, xxi n. 87, 43, 39 1, see also Linkage, Connection, Assembly, Synthesis, Coherence Combustion (Verbrennung), xii br. ns. 59 and 60 Command (Gebot, gebieten), 352 br. n. 28, 353, 364, 492, 536, 550, 645, 652, 662 br. n. 354, 677, 68 1 , 685, 688, 714, 729, 828, 834, 835, 838, 839, 844, 847, 856; moral laws as, 839; see also Law (Gesetz), Enjoin, Dictate, Prescription, Reason, Divine Commerce
(Kommerzium), 260 inc!. br. n. 2 1 9 , 403, cf. 26 1 , 302
Common(est) (gemein[st]), human mind, 6 1 7 inc!. br. n. 108, cf. 78 1 ; (human) rea son, see Reason; (human) understanding (sense), xxxii, 3, 6 1 inc!. br. n. 144, 78
INDEX
87 1
inc!. br. n. 35, 1 69 br. n. 6, 227, 357', 384', 390', 495, 500-1 , 556, 6 1 8, 632, 858-59 inc!. br. n. 1 53; cognition, 860; way of presenting (conceiving), 3 9 1 ', 549 n. 23 1 ; perception, 47; experience, ix', xiv, 377', 492, 6 1 2; logic, xiv'; (use of a) concept, 6 1 , 875 n. 240. cf. 1 33 n. 202; explication, 759; expression, 506 n. 74; judgment, 303 n. 1 57 incl. br. n. 1 57e; assertions, 378'; presupposition, 564; belief, 285; opinion, 285, 565; dogma, 392'; prejudice, 768; refutation, 467 Common (gemeinschaftlich), root, 29; basis (ground), 1 04, 1 14, 849 inc!. br. n. 1 19; principle(s), xx', 1 06, 676, 68 1 , 739, cf. 683; substratum of things, 606; corre late of every thing, 600 n. 27; subject of all thought, 350'; characteristic, 40, cf. 377; presentation, 93, cf. 1 33 n. 202, 1 37; concept, 683 inc!. br. n. 95; title for all concepts of reason, 380; object of philosophy and mathematics, 743; hori zon, 686-87; aim, vii; good, ii inc!. br. n. 1 , cf. 774, 780; defect of all dogma tists, 795 Communion (Gemeinschaft), 260 inc!. br. ns. 2 1 9 and 220, 384'-86' inc!. br. n. 1 83, 389'-94', 427, 428, cf. 261, see also Community Community (Gemeinschaft), 99, 1 06, 1 08, 1 1 1 - 1 3, 1 83-84, 256-62 inc!. br. ns. 205 and 220, 264, 265 n. 244, 269 br. n. 10, 270, 288, 292-93, 302, 323, 330-3 1 , 384' br. n . 1 83, 389' inc!. br. n . 198, 428 br. n . 302, 44 1 , 7 1 0, 798-99, 808, subjective, 261 ; concept of, 302; category of, 106, 108, 1 1 1 - 1 3 inc!. br. n. 226, 292; schema of, 1 83-84; law of, 256; principle of, 256 n. 205, 265 n. 244 inc!. br. n. 244b; see also Communion, Interaction, Substance, Soul Community (gemeines Wesen [Gemeinwesen]), 502, 753, 774, 777, 780, 879 Comparative(ly) (komparativ[e]), principles, 358; universality, 3, 39 n. 37, 1 24, cf. 382, 5 1 1 ; a priori, 273, 279; first beginning, 478; intrinsic, 333, 341 ; basic pow er(s) of the mind, 677; subjective sufficiency of the hypothetical necessity of the conditions for attaining a purpose, 85 1-52; see also Absolute Comparison(s) (Vergleichung[en]), all, four headings of, 325; all, require a delib eration, 3 1 7, cf. 325; logical, 325, 601 , cf. 3 1 8-19, 335; transcendental, see Tran scendental; of objects (things), 325-28, 334; of the universe with some other thing, is impossible, 530-3 1 ; of all objects, with the understanding, 326, cf. 656; of objects, with predicates, 609; of appearances, 126', 68 1 , cf. 240-41 ; objec tive, of presentations, 3 1 8; of predicates (with their opposite), 600, 601 ; of pre sentations, 1 , 97', 3 1 6- 1 8, 325, cf. 44 n. 65; of perceptions, 25 1 ; of many ob servations, 820; of an image with a concept, 179; of concepts, 1 94, 3 1 7-19, 325, 332, 335, 362, cf. 370; of rules, 362, cf. vi; of powers of the mind, 677; of the thinking I (myself) with outer appearance (with the intelligible that underlies matter), 360', cf. 366'; of our reason, with a sphere, 790; of actions with their intelligible or with their sensible cause, 569, cf. 578; of ourselves with a (di vine) standard for our actions, 597; of an (alleged) model of virtue, with the true original, 372 Completeness (completion)
or complete(d) (Vollstiindig[keitl. Vollkommen[heitl. vollenden[-et], vollziihlig), xii', xiv', xx', xxi'. viii, xxiii, xxiv, xxxvii. xlii, I I n.
200, 14 n. 2 1 7, 23, 25-28, 60, 89-92, 94, 96, 107-9, 1 14- 1 5 , 1 2 1 , 98', 1 88, 223, 266, 272, 287 n. 96, 300 n. 1 44, 346, 364-66, 379, 380. 385, 392, 393, 403 ', 436, 440, 443-45. 447, 454 inc!. n. 1 1 9, 456 incl. n. 1 2 1 , 474, 480, 486, 502, 5 10, 524, 526, 528, 536, 538, 543, 544, 555, 556, 564,
1 65, 388, 460, 569,
872
INDEX
583, 596, 598, 600, 601 , 604, 607, 608, 6 1 1 - 1 6, 620, 632 br. n. 1 93, 633 n. 1 95, 642, 644, 646, 665, 673, 683, 685, 686, 690, 693, 700, 701 , 704, 705, 7 1 3, 7 1 8-20, 722, 736, 755 br. n. 105 a, 758, 759 n. 1 2 1 , 760, 768, 789, 799, 801 , 804, 806, 8 1 9, 84 1 inc!. br. n . 86, 850, 863, 864, cf. viii', xxii, 1 0 br. n . 190, 1 59, 1 8 1 , 330, 337, 338, 437, 493, 568, 574, 597, 730, 77 1 , 787, 792, 796, 842; qualitative, 1 14, see also Totality, Comprehensive, Maximum, Perfect, Science Composite (Zusammengesetzt[esD, 1 , 92, 1 3 6 n. 210, 262 incl. br. ns. 230 and 23 1 , 35 1 , 387, 35 1 '-53', 358'-60' incl. br. n . 86, 413, 4 1 5 n. 275, 462-66, 468-70, 5 1 1 , see also Composition, Whole, Substance, Simple Composition
or compose(d) (Zusammensetzung, Komposition, zusammensetzen, [-gesetztD, 89, 262, 322, 330, 382', 443, 446, 457 n. 1 26, 462-64 incl. br. ns.
1 60, 1 6 1 , and 1 63, 466 inc!. br. ns. 176 and 177, 469, 47 1 , 5 1 1 , 545, 553, 558, 559 br. n. 264, 588 inc!. br. n. 371, cf. 201 n. 30, 205 br. n. 58, 533, 540-42, 55 1-52 inc!. br. n. 235, 554-55, see also Assembly, Composite Comprehension or comprehend or comprehensible (-ibility) (Begreifen, Fassungs-, fassen, Begreijlich[keitl, faj3lich), 367 br. n. 97, 495 incl. br. n. 30, 820 inc!. br. n. 394, 1 14 br. n. 239, 103' br. n. 83, xvi', xix', xiii, xxxiii, xlii, 8, 4 1 , 48, 1 19, 1 2 1 , 127, 1 1 3', 1 27', 1 28', 1 63, 1 89, 283, 289, 29 1-93, 297, 300, 307, 3 1 1 , 333, 349 br. n. 1 , 359, 367, 389, 378', 388', 389', 393' br. n. 2 1 1 , 437, 438, 476-78 incl. br. n. 234, 490, 493, 496, 501, 5 1 3 , 5 14, 6 1 3 , 638 incl. br. n. 226, 639, 663, 695, 778, 790, 79 1 , 802, 817, 827, 850, 864; power of, 656, see also In sight, Understand, Incomprehensible Comprehensive(ness) (Ausfohrlich[keitD, xiii', xiv', xxi', ix, 25, 27, 28, 38, 9 1 , 25 1 , 7 3 1 , 732, 755-57 incl. n . 105 and br. n . 105a, 760, 877, see also Elaborate, Sys tem, Complete Conceit
(Dunkel), see Self
Concept(s) (Begriff[e D, are (presentations that are) general (universal), 106', 1 80, 741-42, cf. 1 1 , 1 3 , 39, 1 1 8-19, 1 50, 224, 298, 3 1 8, 597, see also General, Uni versal; are presentations that refer tv the object indirectly, by means of a char acteristic that may be cormnon to several things, 377, cf. 39-40, 93-94, 1 14, 1 3 3 n. 202, 1 80, 298, 3 17, 686; is the consciousness that unites in one presen tation what is manifold (unites the manifold of intuition; is a rule of intuition, of the synthesis of perceptions), 103'-6', 1 37, 1 39, 2 1 9, 750 incl. n. 80, 75 1 , cf. xi-xii, 40, 6 1 , 73, 75, 93, 94, 103-5, 1 14, 1 1 5, 1 1 8- 19, 1 22, 1 28, 106', 108', 1 10'-12', 1 30, 1 3 1 , 163, 1 66, 1 74-76, 1 86, 195, 234, 270-72, 282, 303 n. 157, 362, 366, 367, 378, 391 , 404, 361', 595, 685, 692, 708, 739, 741 , 765, 8 10, 8 1 5, see also Manifold, Synthesis, Perception, Intuition, Exhibition; are required in order for intuition to become cognition (experience), xvii, xxv-xxvi, 74-75, 126, cf. xviii' br. n. 29, xvii, xxviii, 93, 1 25, 1 27, 95', 96', 1 06', 1 23', 1 25', 148-49, 166, 168, 298, 300 n. 144, 3 1 4, 345, 348-49, 376-77, 672, 705 inc!. br. n. 2 1 3 , see also Cognition, Experience; analytic of, 90-1 69, 1 7 1 br. n . 1 7 , see also Analytic-transcendental; possibility of, xxvi br. n. 103b, 1 1 5 , 95', 178, 269-70, 273, 302 n. 156, 366, 401 , 444 n. 64, 460, 495, 5 14, 5 1 5 , 5 17, 624 n. 148, 638, 682, 687, 692, 702, 8 1 6, 820, see also Possibility; deduction of, 1 1 6-2 1 , 1 26, 95', 1 15', 129, 144, 1 65, 168, 178, 697, cf. 1 59, see also Deduction; exposition of, 37-38, 40, 46, 48, 249, 758, cf. 1 1 n. 200, see also Exposition; analysis (dis-
INDEX
873
section) of, see Analysis, Dissection; explication of, 40, 4 1 , 300, 620, 755 incI. n. 105, 757, 758, cf. 249, 300 n. 144b, 539, 756, 759 inc I. n. 121, see also Ex plication; range (sphere) of, 96, 1 12-13, 1 80, 604-5, 683, cf. 753; content of, 1 9 br. n. 235, 23, 90. 92, 1 75, 298, 3 1 8, 335, 602, 629, 639, 747, 749, 764, 794, 8 1 1 , cf. 38, 40, 94-96, 95', 105', 148, 176, 290, 337, 338, 340, 378, 385, 626-27, 636, 682-84; without content (intuition) are empty, 75, 148, 298, 347-49, cf. xv-xvi, xxviii, 6, 1 1 n. 200, 1 8 , 5 1-52, 54, 74, 1 22-23, 96', 128', 146-47, 149, 1 5 1 , 165, 175, 178 incl. br. ns. 65 and 66, 1 86-87, 1 94-95, 264, 267, 268, 272, 297, 299, 302 n. 1 56, 3 1 4, 3 1 5, 335, 344, 412, 496, 601 , 624 n. 148, 667, 707, 743, 749, see also Empty; subjective reality of, 397; objective reality (objective validity, reference to objects, legitimacy) of, xxvi n. 103, 1 14- 1 8, 1 22, 1 23, 125-27, 128', 146, 150, 175 incl. br. n. 43, 178 br. n. 66, 1 85, 196, 268-69, 288, 291, 292, 300 n. 144b, 302 n. 1 56, 303 n. 1 57, 305 n. 1 69, 3 1 0, 3 14, 342, 367, 368, 36 1 ', 4 1 2- 1 3 , 501 , 595, 667, 669, 698, 703, 705, 753, 757, 788, 794, 809, 810, 882, cf. 120, 105', 27 1 , 286, 298, 301 , 325, 332, 347-48, 43 1 , 5 17, 624 n. 1 48, 627-28, 67 1 , 683-84, 706-7, 7 1 2, 749, 799, see also Reality; (a priori, empirical, sensible,) of objects, ix, xxvi br. n. 103b, 6 incl. br. n. 166, 9, 25 br. ns. 267 and 268, 41, 102, 1 1 3, 1 26, 1 28, 96', 105', 106', 108', 109', 1 23', 1 28', 1 39;148, 166, 1 86, 235, 287, 305 n. 1 69, 307, 3 1 5, 335 incl. br. n. 105, 341 , 343, 344 incl. br. n. 1 4 1 , 346, 367 incl. br. n. 96, 392, 396, 382', 393', 395', 399', 407, 422 n. 288, 441 , 465, 505, 507, 538, 602, 62 1, 628-29, 662, 67 1-73, 724-26, 747, 756, 757, 792, 8 10, 820, cf. 347, 525, 659-60, 708, see also Object; of things, see Thing; expansion of, 9, 74 br. n. 8, 249, 379', 435-36, 537, 8 1 3 , cf. xxi', 1 1 , 12- 1 3 , 15- 1 8, 4 1 , 98, 1 86, 193-94, 235-36, 266, 286, 287, 626-29, 792-94, 8 10, see also Expansion; cognition through (mere), xx', xiv, xxxv, 9, 64-65, 94, 273, 279, 283, 303 n. 1 57, 340, 357-58, 367, 378, 353', 399'-40 1 ', 412, 494 br. n. 25, 586, 604, 660, 662, 684, 741 , 745, 750 incl. n. 80, 752, 757, 760-62, 865, 872, 878, cf. I I br. n. 1 97, 12, 13, 40-4 1 , 47, 89, 9 1 , 93, 1 17, 1 I 8, 1 2 1 , 106', 193, 288-90, 304, 306, 308, 3 1 5 , 324-27, 338-339, 341, 376-77 incl. n. 1 10, 352', 361', 383', 415, 484, 509- 1 0, 595, 608, 6 1 3, 6 1 8-19, 624, 630-3 1 , 635-38, 714, 743, 744, 747, 764, 766. 793, 8 1 5, 817, 869, see also Thought; investigators of (are philosophers), 538-39, cf. 634, see also Philosophy; power (source) of, xii' br. n. 16, 1 26', 1 98, 287, 3 17, 324, 355, 359, 362, 386, see also Power; arise from (are based on, serve for) understand ing (spontaneity of thought, of concepts), 33, 74, 9 1 -93, 106, 107', 1 24' br. n. 162, 1 87, 286, 305 n. 169, 306-7, 367, 377, 435, cf. 1 1 8, 1 23, 127, 95', 124', 129', 1 39, 1 69, 1 7 1 -72, 287, 322-23, 328, 353, 509, 624 n. 148, 672, 684-85, 692, 753; are used (by the understanding) for (are predicates of possible) judg ments, 93, 94, cf. 1 n. 1 53, I I n. 200, 120, 140-4 1 , 190. 304, 322, 626, see also Judgment, Predicate; as such, 1 8 1 , 399, cf. 195; subjective, 1 29'; sensible, 1 80 incl. br. n. 79, 1 8 1 incl. br. n. 90, 1 86, 299. 3 1 1 . cf. 327, 67 1 br. n. 1 4, cf. xvii' br. n. 26, see also Sensible; empirical ([given] a posteriori, experiential), 5, 6, 28-29, 38, 46, 64, 74, 8 1 , 89, 1 I 6, 1 24, 109', l I l ', 1 1 2', 129', 176, 1 80, 1 8 1 br. n. 90, 2 1 5, 241 , 267, 27 1 , 327, 357, 37 1 , 373, 377, 380', 444, 450, 470, 486, 5 1 5-17 , 525. 594. 595. 680, 682, 692, 708. 7 1 0, 726. 750 n. 80, 755-57. cf. 3, 40 br. n. 48, 81 br. n. 53, 1 66, 269, 527, 597, 747, 749, 75 1 , 882. see also Em-
874
INDEX
pirical, A posteriori, Experiential, Abstracted; (given) a priori (pure [a priori]), xx', xvii, 6, 8, 23, 25 br. ns. 267 and 268, 28, 29 br. n. 290, 38, 39 n. 37, 57, 64, 74, 75, 80, 8 1 , 89-92, 106, 108, 109, l l l , 1 1 3, l l9, 1 2 1 , 1 26, 95'-96', 107', 1 09', 128', 129', 130, 167, 1 75, 178, 1 80 inc!. br. n. 79, 1 8 1 br. n. 90, 195, 199, 204, 207, 2 1 3 , 267, 270, 27 1 , 29 1 , 299, 340, 377, 39 1 , 435, 586, 593, 594, 6 1 1 , 6 1 4, 634, 635, 636 br. n . 2 1 7 , 643, 662, 665, 697, 747, 748, 753, 756, 757 inc!. br. n. I l l , 762, 766, cf. xviii n. 77, 41, 1 1 7, l l 8, 269, see also A priori, Pure; synthetic (a priori), 267, 3 8 1 ', see also Synthetic; (a priori, pure), of (the) un derstanding, xvi', xxv, xxvii, xxviii, xxxviii, 36, 88-92, 95, 102, 1 04- 1 0, 1 1 3, l l6, 1 1 8, 120, 123, 124-27, 95', 96', 1 1 2', 1 15', 1 1 9', 127' br. n. 1 76, 128'-30', 1 29, 144, 146-5 1 . 159, 160 ll. 305, 1 65, 168, 1 7 1 , 172 n. 28, 1 74-79, 1 8 1 , 1 82, 1 85-89, 199, 224 inc!. br. n. 40, 234, 257, 282, 285, 288, 289, 297, 303 n. 1 57, 304, 306, 309, 3 14, 323, 326, 342, 345, 356, 362, 366-68, 370, 377, 383, 385, 392, 396, 367' br. n. 1 19, 369', 403', 407, 43 1 , 435, 443, 444, 469, 488, 5 14, 5 17, 527, 543, 553, 557, 558, 575, 595, 672, 676, 685, 693, 706, 709, 753, 765, 790, 8 1 1 , 882, cf. xvii-xix, 5, 6, 27, 6 1 , 125' br. n. 167, 163, 166, 167, 265, 3 1 1 , 343, 346, 422, 667, 682, 75 1 , see also Categories, Understanding; reason does not produce (create) any (of objects) (but orders them, tries to expand them beyond the empirical), see Reason; (a priori, pure,) of (pure) reason (rational), xxi, 23, 356, 359, 362, 363, 366-68, 372, 377-86, 39 1-93, 395-97, 383', 389', 433, 508, 543, 563 inc!. br. n. 286, 593, 597-98, 620, 658, 673, 674, 687, 708, 7 10, 7 1 3, 7 14, 729, 739, 787, 799, cf. xxxv, 10, 390, 601 , 698, 79 1 , 860, see also Ideas, Reason, Rational; root, 27, 107, I l l ; original (primitive), 1 n. 1 53, 1 06, 107, 60 1, cf. 91, 755 n. 105; elementary, xxii n. 93, 89, 109, 169; basic (fundamental), 28, 29, 107, 1 20, 1 1 1', 2 1 3, 36 1 , 348' br. n. 4 1 , 406 br. n. 244, 608 br. n. 68, 712, 874; derivative (derived, subsidiary, subordinate), xxi', 27, 89, 107-8, I l l , l l2, 127-28, 603, cf. 28, 882; abstract (formal), 326, 65 1 ; af firmative, 338, cf. 338 n. 1 24; positive, 305 n. 1 69, 3 15 br. n. 208; negative, 827, cf. (i03; logical, 356, cf. 419; discursive, 47, 467, 753; universal (general), 39 inc!. br. n. 39, 47, 96 inc!. br. n. 143, 1 1 8- 1 9, 158, 1 80, 25 1 , 308, 337, 405', 46 1 , 569, 604, 605, 6 1 6, 640, 682, 688, 743, 745, cf. xvii'-xviii'; necessary, 1 26, 1 1 2', 1 30', 2 19, 3 10, 380, 383, 393', 5 1 6, cf. 34 1 , 594, 640; common (concep tus communis), 1 33 n. 202, 683 inc!. br. n. 95; comprehensive, 755 inc!. n. 105, cf. 28, 756; complete, 272, 538, 600, cf. 638; combination, 308 inc!. br. n. 1 8 1 ; composite, 92, cf. 300 n . 144; divided, 1 1 3, 346, cf. 380; limited, 1 86, cf. 606, 702; particular, 337; single, 8 16; simple, 92; determining, 657, see also Deter mination; determinate (distinct), xxi br. n. 90, xxxvi, 6, 14, 90, 307, 344, 357, 526, 55 1 , 598, 599, 602, 604, 656-58, 683, 702, 703, 75 1 , 773, cf. xvii', 9, 1 1 , 4 1 , 106', 108', 207, 286, 300 n. 144b, 305 n. 169, 332, 370, 379', 388', 600 n. 27, 605, 61 1 , 626, 668, 669, 756, 758, 763, 764, 855, see also Determinate; un derstandable, 598, 62 1 ; comprehensible, 850; scientific, 860; precision of, 759; correct, 846; correctly inferred (conceptus ratiocinati) and (subtly) reasoning (dialectical) (conceptus ratiocinantes); 368 inc!. br. ns. 99 and 102, 672; dy namical, 557, 563; mathematical, 1 80 br. n. 79, 1 8 1 br. n. 9 1 , 460 n. 140, 563 br. n. 286, 750, 752 br. n. 9 1 , cf. 739-46, 758-59, 762, 764; geometrical, 176; construction of, see Construction; cosmological, 415 hr. n. 1 04, cf. 866; world,
INDEX
875
434-35, 446-48 inc!. hr. n. 77, 5 14, 5 17, 7 1 2, 866, 868 inc!. n. 1 92, cf. 459-60, see also World; natural, 448; metaphysical, 875 n. 240; school, 866, 868 n. 192; personified, 867; psychological, 384', 476, 7 1 2; transcendental, see Transcen dental; transcendent, see Transcendent; houndary, 3 10- 1 1 ; intellectual, 3 1 1 , 403', 566, 637, 882, cf. 67 1 hr. n. 14, see also Intellectual; prohlematic, 3 10, 343-44, 397, 444 n. 64, 5 1 0 hr. n. 89, 675, cf. 3 1 2 hr. n. 193, 799, see also Prohlematic; inscrutahle, 720; surreptitiously ohtained, 368, cf. 6 1 7 hr. n. 14; usurped, 1 17; erratic, 845, cf. 863; crude, 373; defective (deficient), 458, 6 14; fictional (thought up), 269, 808; imaginary, 5 1 8 , cf. 642, 738; chosen (thought hy choice, as sumed at will), 467, 622, 757; of reflection, 3 16, 324, 326, 333, 336, cf. 366, see also Reflection; comparison, 3 1 8 ; heuristic vs. ostensive, 699; regulative, 712, see also Regulative; aggregate of, 89, cf. 9 1 -92, 106-7; system (system atic unity) of, 25 inc!. hr. n. 268, 89, 108-10, 693, 873, cf. 92, 1 1 3-15, 337, 346, 356, 393, 67 1 -73, 680, 684-87, 698, 708, 7 10, 845, 866, see also System; practical, 386, 5 6 1 , 6 1 7 inc!. hr. n. 105, 829 inc!. n. 28, cf. 6 1 , 365', see also Practical; moral (of morality), 28-29, 597, 845, cf. 6 1 , 6 1 5 , 759 n. 1 2 1 , 837, see also Moral; purified, 670; highest, 346, 393, 687; deistic, 702 hr. n. 204 Conception or conceive (of) (Vorstellung. [sichl vorstellen. denken), xvii inc!. hr. n. 73, xx', xxxix n. 144, 129', 104, 166, 229, 306, 307, 32 1, 369', 390', 391', 415 n. 275, 458 hr. n. 1 34, 450, 495 hr. n. 30, 523 hr. n. 1 33, 525 hr. n. 1 37, 560, 575, 599 n. 266, 603 inc!. n. 43, 641 , 643, 647, 649 hr. n. 282, 65 1 , 659-6 1 , 669, 69 1 , 729, 787, 839, 853, 867, cf. 2 9 inc!. hr. n. 293, 35 n. 23, 348', 407, 488, 555, 596, see also Presentation, Thought Conclusion or conclude (Folgerung. Konklusion. SchlufJrJolgel. schliefJen), xxvi, 20, 42, 49, 265 n. 244, 334, 360-61, 364, 378, 386-89, 395 inc!. n. 222, 397, 35 1', 40.2', 4 10, 4 1 1 inc!. n. 259, 420, 478 hr. n. 237, 528, 529, 605, 624, 768, 817, 834, 852, cf. 617, see also Inference, Syllogism, Proof, Argument, Con sequence, Premise
concreto-in. xviii', 78, 140, 173, 177, 1 80, 270, 380, 384, 385, 400, 356', 403', 453, 497, 507, 5 10, 590, 595-96, 601 , 663, 692, 7 1 1 , 739, 743, 749, 750 n. 80, 762, 799, 826, 845, 86 1 , 865, 866, 873 Condition(s) (Bedingung[enD, xxi', xxv, xxxix n. 144, 12, 14 n. 217, 29 inc!. hr. n. 297, 30, 37, 39, 43, 44 inc!. n. 65, 49, 50, 52, 54, 56, 57, 60, 64, 66, 69, 7 1 , 86, 87, 100, 102, 1 20-23, 125, 96', 105', 107', 1 10'-12', 1 1 8', 1 2 1 ', 124', 128', 132, 1 36-38, 140, 143, 148, 1 50, 159, 1 6 1 , 166 n. 324, 1 7 1 , 173, 175, 1 78, 179, 1 8 1 , 1 84-86, 1 88, 1 9 1-93, 1 96-99, 204, 223, 226, 230, 23 1 , 236, 239, 241 , 246, 247, 252, 258, 259, 265 n . 244, 268, 269, 27 1 , 274, 276, 279, 283, 284, 289, 293, 300 inc!. n. 144, 301 , 303 n. 157, 304, 305 inc!. n. 1 69, 320, 326, 328-30, 332, 335, 338-40, 342, 343, 357, 358, 360-62, 364, 366, 378, 379, 382, 385 hr. n. 175, 386-89 inc!. hr. n. 1 89, 39 1 , 393, 394, 398, 404, 405, 353', 354', 356', 369', 394', 396'-99', 402', 403', 405', 422 n. 288, 425, 430, 434, 436-45 inc!. n. 64, 447, 449, 450, 455 inc!. hr. ns. 1 1 8 and 122, 461 , 469, 480, 486 inc!. hr. n. 258, 487, 490, 495, 506 n. 74, 508, 5 1 1 , 5 15, 520, 522, 523, 525-29, 53 1 , 534, 536, 539-52, 556-60 inc!. n. 266, 563, 564, 567, 5 7 1 , 573, 579-89 , 592, 593 inc\. hr. n. 398, 595, 599-60 1 , 604, 6 1 0, 6 1 2-14 inc!. hr. n. 93, 6 1 6 , 62 1 , 622, 63 1 , 635, 638 inc\. hr. n. 226, 639, 644, 649, 652, 661-63,
876
INDEX
669, 673, 685, 693, 698, 700, 705, 7 12, 7 1 3 , 722, 726, 746, 747, 750 n. 80, 761 , 779, 780 br. n . 228, 799, 805 inc!. br. n . 325, 8 1 6 , 8 1 9, 828, 836, 838, 841 , 845, 85 1 , 852, 854, 856, logical, 268, 302; negative, 84, 1 89, 639 inc!. br. n. 23 1 ; necessary, 42, 43, 44 n. 65, 66, 7 1 , 84 inc!. br. n. 65, 1 1 6', 123', 1 9 1 inc!. br. n. 1 66, 196-97, 199, 232, 268, 278, 337, 4 1 3, 454, 455, 484, 590, 638, 639 inc!. br. n. 23 1 , 661, 8 12, 834, 85 1 , cf. 96'; indispensable, 84 inc!. br. n. 65, 1 9 1 inc!. br. n. 166, 385, 4 1 2; inseparable, 274; contingent, 78, 53 1 ; sufficient, 614 inc!. br. n. 93, 615, 639; universal, 46, 65, 1 1 3', 174, 179, 1 87, 1 89, 266, 303 inc!. n. 1 57, 361 , 364, 366', 407, 628, 742, 744; a priori (pure [a priori]), 50, 65, 66 incl. br. n. 160, 7 1 , 122, 126, 95', 96', 1 1 1', 1 1 3', 1 1 8', 1 6 1 , 1 63, 179, 1 99, 256, 264, 267, 27 1 , 278, 461, 600 inc!. br. n. 26, 874; nonempirical, 588; empirical, 77, 9 1 , 1 39, 329 inc!. br. n. 69, 335, 384 inc!. br. n. 172, 427, 486, 5 15, 524, 527, 547, 559 n. 266, 565, 568, 569, 573, 576, 5 8 1 , 583, 589, 590, 592, 593, 757, 808, 846, 869; formal, 50, 67, 86, 123, 125, 96', 99', 1 10', 1 36, 177, 179, 197, 207, 236, 244, 256, 265, 267, 27 1 , 272, 283, 284, 286, 304, 305, 347, 363', 398', 427, 436, 438, 467, 480 n. 245, 648, 666, 735; material, 266, 604, 648; real (reality of), 268, 6 1 1 ; corporeal, 806; natural, 572, 576; transcendental, 106'; synthetic, 8 1 5 ; determinate, 661, 662; objective, 96', 125', 1 3 8 , 27 1 , 433; sub jective, 42, 44 n. 65, 49, 5 1 , 52, 65-66, 77, 1 22, 1 25', 150, 283, 3 1 6, 323, 354', 396', 432, 8 1 9-20; external, 700; internal, 540, 542; sensible, 1 75, 1 86, 224, 256, 303 n. 157, 305 n. 169, 486, 558, 580, 584, 592; intelligible, 559 n. 266, 588, 590; limiting (restricting), 1 59, 1 86 inc!. br. n. 1 37, 224, 385, 577, 693, 702, 706, 807; hypostatic, 648; special, 43, 50, 323; heterogeneous, 558; indi vidual, 374; direct, 50; preceding, 578, 579; original, 106'; permanent, 5 8 1 ; un conditioned, see Unconditioned; supreme (highest), 389, 39 1 , 482, 486, 587, 641 -42, 699 br. n. 1 86; series of, xx, 364-66 inc!. br. n. 86, 387-89 inc!. br. n. 1 89, 39 1 , 393, 394, 398, 436-44, 445 n. 64, 480, 486, 487, 5 16, 5 17, 525-29, 533, 536-43, 546-5 1 , 556-58, 559 n. 266, 563, 565, 568, 583, 586-89, 593, 6 1 2, 647, 649, 67 1 , 7 13, 801 , cf. vii', 495, 592; totality (completeness) of, 379, 380, 383, 384, 389, 392-94, 398, 436-38, 442-43, 445 n. 64, 480, 484, 485, 487, 525-27, 537-38, 540, 556, 56 1 , 57 1 , 593, 6 1 2, 6 1 4, 6 1 6, 703, 7 1 3; see also Conditioned, Experience Conditioned or conditional (Bedingt[es]), 594, xx, 239, 280, 364, 365 inc!. br. n. 86, 379, 384 br. n. 1 7 1 , 388-90, 393, 394, 396', 436-40, 442, 444, 445 inc!. n. 64, 447, 475, 476, 480, 481, 484, 486, 487, 490, 495, 502, 509, 5 1 7, 525-28 inc!. br. ns. 145 and 147, 533, 536, 538-4 1 , 546, 548-52, 556, 559 inc!. n. 266, 563-64, 574-76, 587-89, 59 1 , 592, 594, 606, 6 1 2, 614, 6 1 6, 621, 645, 646, 649, 652, 66 1 , 662, 664, 700, 82 1 , 828, sensibly, 574, 59 1 , see also Sensible; see also Condition, Unconditioned Conduct (Verhalten, Lebenswandel), 42 1 , 426, 579 n. 339, 583, 597, 828-29, 83 1 , 837, 839-42, 88 1 , cf. 809, 821, 834, 838 Confidence (Vertrauen, Zutrauen, Zuversicht), ii inc!. br. n. 1, v, xv, xxxviii, 286, 634, 753, 754, 823, 855, cf. 7, 376, 501, 646, 763, 852, self-, 823; see also Faith, Trust Confine (einschriinken, beschriinken, begrenzen), xxxiii, 1 n. 153, 367, 494 br. n. 29, 620, 758, 814, see also Limit
INDEX
877
Confinn(ation) (Bestiitigung, bestiitigen), xiv, xviii n. 77, xliii, 66, 288, 293, 334, 368 br. n. 102, 449, 478, 582, 670, 691, 723, 727, 764, 854, 859, 866, see also Proof, Refutation Conflict (Widerstreit, Streitigkeit, Gegensatz), viii', ix', xviii n. 77, 84, 3 17-2 1 , 329 inc!. br. ns. 69 and 7 1 , 330, 338, 434, 435, 448, 450, 454-55, 462-63, 472-73, 480-8 1 , 490, 499, 525, 5 3 1 , 533-35, 556, 563, 569, 592, 645, 694, 769, 820, cf. xxii 93, xxx, 328, 335, 336, 373, 458, 585, 586, 588, 600, 6 1 3, 682, see also Antinomy of pure reason, Contest Confused (verworren, verwirrt), x', 9, 1 1 , 57, 60, 103, 1 23, 320, 323, 326, 479, 756, 758, cf. 53 br. n. 108, 198, 3 1 6, 327, 332, 354, 387', 388', 426, 427, 559, 564, 582, 6 1 0, 626, 628, 638, 721 , 735, 794, 882 Connect(ion) (Verkniipfung, Zusammenhang, verkniipfen, zusammenhiingen), 201 br. n. 30, xxxix n. 144, 1 , 5, 1 0- 1 3 inc!. n. 200, 19, 57, 73 br. n. 1 88, 85, 1 1 2, 1 15, 96', 97', 99', 100', 1 03', 107', 1 1 1', 1 1 3', 1 1 6', 122', 125', 1 30', 161, 1 64, 1 68, 177, 1 8 1 , 185, 192, 195, 2 1 8, 2 19, 229, 232, 233, 238, 244, 247, 248, 261 inc!. br. n. 225, 262, 264 br. n. 24 1 , 265 n. 244, 266 br. ns. 2 and 3, 269, 27 1 -73 inc!. br. ns. 28 and 3 1 , 279, 284, 286 inc!. br. n. 9 1 , 287 inc!. n. 96, 289, 3 1 1 br. n. 1 89, 3 15, 3 16, 322, 323, 327, 33 1 , 332, 353, 360, 362, 364, 375, 387, 364', 365', 378', 379', 386', 395', 435, 444, 473 inc!. br. n. 210, 484, 494, 5 16, 5 1 1 , 526, 528, 553, 556, 558-6 1 , 564 inc!. br. n. 288, 565 inc!. br. n. 290, 567, 569, 572 inc!. br. n. 3 1 1 , 573, 575, 6 1 1 n. 83, 629, 630, 632, 643, 665, 667, 67 1 , 692, 699-701 , 709, 7 14, 7 1 5 inc!. br. ns. 253 and 254, 7 19, 720, 728, 760, 794, 798, 800, 8 1 1 , 8 1 5, 8 17-1 8 inc!. br. ns. 386 and 387, 830, 837-40, 844, 846 incl. br. n. 1 02, 850, 85 1 , 873, 874, see also Linkage, Combination, Coherence Conscious(ness) (Bewuj3t[sein]), xxxii, xxxix n. 144, 1 1 , 12, 4 1 , 54 n. 1 1 7, 55, 60, 6 1 , 67, 68, 103, 1 15, 1 03'-8', 1 1 6', 1 17' n. 138, 1 20', 1 22', 1 23', 125', 1 29', 130 inc!. n. 1 9 1 , 1 32-35 inc!. br. n. 208, 136 n. 2 1 0, 1 37, 1 38, 143, 152-54, 1 57 inc!. n. 296, 1 58, 1 85, 195, 202, 203, 207, 208, 2 1 8, 233-35, 242, 272, 276, 292 br. n. 1 1 2, 305, 3 16, 3 1 8, 376, 400, 404, 405, 354', 357', 359'-66' inc!. br. n. 97 and n. 99, 370'-72', 378', 382' inc!. br. n. 1 75, 404', 406-9, 4 1 1 n. 259, 4 1 3- 1 5 inc!. ns. 273 and 275, 417, 426-28, 43 1, 465, 480 n. 245, 5 10, 5 1 1 , 520, 5 2 1 , 550, 629, 677, 7 1 8, 729, 767, 786, 8 1 2, 850, i s the mere subjective form of all our concepts, 36 1 ', see also Concept; is a fonn of presentation as such insofar as this presentation is to be called cognition, 404, see also Cogni tion; is what turns all presentations into thoughts, and hence solely in it as the transcendental subject must all perceptions be found, 350', see also Thought; sensation accompanied by, is perception, 272, see also Perception; is direct per ception, 371'; direct(ly), xxxix n. 144, 204-5, 274 br. n. 36, 276 inc!. n. 52, 372', 378'; inner, 293-94; self- (of the self, of myself, of my [our] existence), xxxix n. 144, 68, 69, 107', 1 1 1 '- 1 3', 1 16', 1 17' n. 138, 1 22', 1 30 br. n. 1 90, 132 inc!. br. n. 1 95, 133 n. 202, 1 34, 135, 137-40, 144, 1 57, 1 58, 275-78, 364, 401 , 404-5, 36 1 '-65' incl. br. n . 96, 370', 37 1 ', 378', 399', 40 1 ', 402', 406-9, 4 1 1 n . 259, 4 1 4- 1 5, 420, 422, 426-30, 470, 632 br. n . 193, cf. 370', 372', 404', 401 br. n. 16, 8 1 2, see also Apperception, I-the, Self, Identity; subject of, see Sub ject; (necessary, universal, fonnal, analytic, synthetic, empirical, subjective, ob jective, transcendental, original) unity of (possible), 1 05'-9', 1 1 1 ', 1 12', 123',
878
INDEX
129', 132, 133 n. 202, 136 n. 210, 137-40, 144, 364', 406, 4 1 1 , 413, 420, 42 1 , 427, cf. 195, see also Unity; (objective) unity of self-, I l l ', 132, 1 3 3 n . 202, 139-40, 144, 364', 413, cf. 362' incl. br. n. 96; empirical, xxxix n. 144, 1 1 5', 1 1 6', 1 17' n. 1 38, 1 22', 1 23', 133, 139, 144, 1 60, 164, 202, 207, 208, 217, 2 1 8, 220, 367, 642, 743; pure (a priori), 107', 144, 208, 422, 430; necessary, 108'; immutable, 107'; formal, 208, cf. 382' incl. br. n. 175; transcendental, 1 17' n. 1 38 ; determinate, 278; original, 107', 108', 1 6 1 ; intellectual, xxxix n. 144; pos sible, 1 1 3', 1 17' n. 1 38, 1 20', 123', 129', 1 30 n. 1 9 1 , 195, 220, 276 n. 52, 367, cf. 365'; hypostatized, 402' Consequence (Konsequenz, Folge[satz]), 1 14-15, 1 1 2', 234, 244-46 incl. br. n. 160, 259, 262, 263, 269, 290, 320, 3 2 1 , 329, 394, 436-38 incl. br. ns. 33 and 34, 453, 472, 472, 478, 480, 495, 503, 583, 583, 607, 674-75, 802, 8 1 8- 19, 838, 839-40, cf. xviii', xxiii, 10, 14, 79, 88, 109, 100, 1 14', 123', 141 incl. n. 230, 1 66 n. 324, 228, 28 1 , 298, 303, 355, 360, 389 br. n. 190, 379', 381', 393', 395', 400', 409, 488, 459 br. n. 1 3 1 , 5 10, 5 1 3, 569, 669, 687, 689, 7 1 8, 758; basis (ground) and, 98 incl. br. n. 157, 1 12 incl. br. n. 233, 246 br. n. 160, 323, 3 3 1 , 43 1 , 438, 639, 803, 8 1 8- 1 9, 830; see also Conclusion, Sequence, Succession Constitution (Beschaffenheit), 745 incl. br. n. 55, 807, cf. 579 n. 339 incl. br. n. 339d, see also Property, Character (Beschaffenheit) Constitutive (konstitutiv), princip1e(s), see Principle; analogies (formulas), 222; use of ideas (pure concepts of reason), 672, 702, 7 17, 7 1 8, cf. 7 1 3 ; use of reason, see Reason; see also Regulative Construct(ion) (konstruieren [Konstruktion]), 39 n. 37, 206, 221, 222, 27 1 , 741 -42, 744-47 incl. br. n. 59, 762, cf. 154, 299, (of) a concept (a figure, a shape, a tri angle), xii, 65, 1 1 5, 268, 27 1 , 299, 741 -42, 744, 747-52 incl. n. 80, 758, 760, 762, 764, 865, 872, cf. 1 80, means to exhibit a priori the intuition correspond ing to it, 741 , cf. 27 1 , 742, 748, 750; of a proposition, 746; of an intuition, 744; of a synthesis, 757; of a magnitude (quantum), 454 n. 1 19, 742, 745, cf. 748; of magnitude(s) as such, 745; of existence, is impossible, 22 1 ; mathematical, 746, cf. 745; algebraic (symbolic) and geometric (ostensive), 745, cf. 39 n. 37, 746, 762, see also Demonstration Contempt (Verachtung), xiv', 872, 877, cf. x' Content(s) (Inhalt), xx', xxi', xxiii' incl. br. n. 1 5 1 , xxi br. n. 90, 7 br. n. 170, 9, 19 br. n. 235, 27, 6 1 -62, 75, 77-80, 83-87, 90, 92, 95, 97-100, 102, 103, 105, 95', 140, 170, 1 7 1 , 175, 178 br. n. 66, 1 84, 190, 191 , 202, 2 1 2, 252, 298, 3 1 8, 335, 346, 355, 390, 400, 349', 350', 355', 38 1', 382', 397', 418, 433, 440 br. n. 43, 476, 508, 549, 600, 602-6, 626, 628, 629, 65 1 , 653, 656, 68 1 , 682, 707, 736, 737, 740, 748, 75 1 , 759, 765, 790, 794, 824, 833, 862, 863, see also Vol ume, Range Contest (Streit[-handel, -handlung], Wettstreit), 45 1 incl. br. ns. 97 and 98, 453, 5 1 8, 557-58, 774-75, 882, cf. xxiv br. n. 98, 450, 881, see also Conflict Context (Kontext, Zusammenhang), xliv, 195, 273, 279 br. n. 67, 282, 379' br. n. 1 58, 400' br. n. 230, 416, 52 1 , 523 br. n. 1 34, 565, 59 1 br. n. 392, 610, 628, 700, see also Coherence Contingency (Zu!iilligkeit), (and necessity,) category of, 106, 486, see also Neces sity; thoroughgoing, principle of, 592, cf. 590-9 1 , 644-45 ; cognition of, 29 1 ;
INDEX
879
criterion of, 8 1 6; according to concepts of pure understanding, is not proved by change, 488; of what is changeable, xxxii, cf. 48 1 , 485, 486, 488; (necessity and,) as not applying to things themselves, 644; intelligible and empirical, 486, cf. 488; empirical (concept of), 486, 488; empirical, of changes; 486; of judg ments, 4; of perception, 39 n. 37, cf. 219; of experience, see Experience; of pre sentations of things, 59 1 ; unbounded, of the sensible series, 593; of everything that is determined in the time series, 487; objective, 302; of what occurs, 8 1 6; of a thing's state (a body's motion), 290 n. 107; of the states of the world, 485; of form but not of matter (substance), 645, 654-55, cf. 646; of matter, 290 n. 107, 655 ; (thoroughgoing), of (all) appearances, 589, 591-92 inc!. br. n. 394, cf. 594; (thoroughgoing, universal), of all natural things (of [everything belong ing to] the world [of sense]), 590, 59 1 , 657, cf. 650; external, 695, cf. 844; see also Contingent, Accident Contingent (zujiillig), means having no coherence at all in terms of a necessary law, xiii; concept of the, 290, 663, cf. 30 1 ; intellectual concept of the, 637; in the pure sense of the category, is that whose contradictory opposite is possible, 486, cf. 290, 488; as such, 663; as implied by empirical, 5, 1 1 1', 1 14', 142, 241 , cf. 139-40, 199, 486, 793-; empirically, 663 inc!. br. n. 357; cognition of the, is pos sible only through experience, 594; possible experience as, 765; is that whose nonexistence is possible, 301-2, cf. 290 n. 107, 488; existence of the, 289; ev erything (belonging to the world) is, (as regards its existence), 509, 5 17, cf. 588, 632 inc1. br. n. 1 92, 650, 679; is what we call the conditioned found in exist ence as such, 447, cf. 662; the, in existence, must always be regarded as con ditioned, 442, cf. 48 1 , 487, 509, 662; everything, has (must have, exists as ef fect of) a cause, 289, 301 , 3 1 5, 633 n. 195, cf. 246 br. n. 160, 6 12, 637, 662, 807; rul� (law) whereby everything that occurs has a cause (if this rule were based on experience), 241 , 794; condition(s), 78, 1 99, 5 3 1 , 661, 854, cf. 44 n. 65; empirical unity of consciousness, 139-40, cf. 62; unity of synthesis (unity of the manifold), 1 1 1', 466, cf. 12; aggregate, a cognition as, 673; use of cog nition, 86 1 ; coherence of cognitions, 1 2 1 ', cf. 1 22'; unity of nature, 1 14'; facts, 795, cf. 636 br. n. 2 1 5 ; existence, 289, 290; thing(s), see Thing; beings as such, 484; substance (matter) as, 663; existence of substance, 588, cf. 655 ; relation of substances, 462; series of the world's changes, 48 1 ; concepts, 1 26; judg ments, 142; belief, 852; observations, xiii; effects of a science, 877-78; arising of inferences of reason, 397; ignorance, 786; procreation as, 807; the purposive arrangement of the things of the world as, 653, cf. 650, 655, 657, 72 1 , 728; pur poses, 85 1 , 878, cf. 86 1, 875 ; addition to a whole as a purpose, there is no place for it, 861 ; is intrinsically insufficient, 6 17 ; linkages, 795 ; the, linkage of the necessary with it, 558, cf. 588-90, 594, 6 1 2, 633 n. 195, 650, 655, 704, 728; moral laws are not, 847, cf. 844, 85 1 ; see also Contingency, Accidental, Inci dental Continuous (-ual) (kontinuierlich), 1 83, 210- 1 3 inc!. br. n. 9 1 , 254, 256, 260, 27 1 , 282, 381 " 486, 490, 55 1 . 555 incl. br. n . 249, 559 n . 266, 598, 685, 688, 689, 700, 739, 743, cf. 2 1 2, 23 1 , 387, 393, 406, 478, 5 1 1 , 5 1 7, 527, 536, 537, 539 inc!. br. n. 1 95, 541-46, 548, 550, 569, 57 1 , 684, 80 1 , see also Continuance, Continuity, Continuum
880
INDEX
Continuance (Fortdauer), xxxii, 365', 4 1 3, 426, 650, 807, cf. 349', 366', 394', 400', of the soul (our existence), xxxii, 413, 426, cf. 365', 424, 807; see also Conti nuity, Continuous, Continuum Continuity (Kontinuitiit, Fortdauerung), 1 69, 2 1 1 , 2 1 8, 244, 689, 743, principle (law) of, 254, 28 1 , 686-88 inc!. br. n. 128, 696 br. n. 1 68, see also Continuum, Continuance, Continuous Continuum (Kontinuum), 2 1 2, 687 inc!. br. n. 1 23, 688 inc!. br. ns. 1 27 and 128, see also Continuity, Continuous, Continuance Contradiction or contradictory (Widerspruch, widersprechend), viii', xx, xxvii-xxix inc!. br. ns. 1 1 7 and 1 1 9, xxxviii, xliv, 8 inc!. br. n. 1 76, 19, 22, 24, 83, 95', 153, 178 br. n. 66, 190, 192, 194, 206 br. n. 64, 267-68 inc!. br. n. 6, 270, 305 n. 169, 308, 31 0, 330, 335, 337 br. n. 1 1 5, 347, 348, 352', 377', 395', 415 n. 275, 433, 449, 5 1 3, 5 3 1 -33, 57 1 , 590, 622-26, 630, 638, 644, 65 1 , 697, 701, 730, 768, 799, 8 1 7 br. n. 384, 8 1 8, cf. 84, 87, 1 9 1 , 240, 337, 359', 459 n. 1 35, 464, 483, 530, 566, 6 1 6, 679, 769, 8 1 9, 82 1 ; self-, xxv, xxvi n. 103, 30 1 , 302, 348, 398, 359' br. n. 87, 463, 474, 48 1 , 486, 488, 555, 624 inc!. n. 1 48, 727, 768, cf. xxix, 84, 1 89, 65 1 ; principle of, 12, 14- 1 6, 1 90-92, 599, 600, 624 n. 148; see also Contradictorily, Opposition Contradictorily (kontradiktorisch), opposed, 48-49, 29 1 , 488, 5 3 1 -32, 599, cf. 486, 533, see also Contradiction Conviction ( Uberzeugung), xvii', xxxii-xxxiii, 79 inc!. br. n. 38, 295, 297, 425, 434, 648, 652, 660 n. 344, 785, 796, 8 1 1 , 8 14, 817, 829, 848-49, 857, 875, cf. xxv, 4, 20 n. 243, 1 2 1 , 376, 503, 6 1 4, 6 1 7 , 63 1 , 730, 731, 78 1 , 842, 846, 877, is an assent that is valid for everyone and has an objectively sufficient basis, 848, cf. 849-50; (for myself) is subjective sufficiency, 850; subjective, 852, cf. 849, 850; practical, 777, cf. 660 n. 344, 857; touchstone of, 848, 852, cf. 849-50 Copernican revolution, Kant's, 19 br. n. 235, 62 br. n. 149 Copernicus, Nicolaus, xvi inc!. br. n. 72, xxii n. 93, cf. 3 1 3 Corporeal (korperlich, Korper-), 6, 17, 1 9 br. n. 235, 339, 357' inc!. br. n . 8 1 , 359', 383', 394', 395', 7 1 1 , 7 12, 7 1 3 br. n. 241 , 806-7, 874, see also Bodily, Incor poreal corpus mysticum, 836 inc!. br. n. 58 Correlate (Korrelatum), 45, 1 l0, 123', 1 84, 226, 244, 278, 305 n. 1 69, 366', 402', 457 inc!. n. 126, 459, 5 1 5, 600 n. 27, see also Relation Corrupt (verunstalten, verfiilschen, verderben), viii, xxxiv, 336, 776, cf. 403, 494, 496, 782, see also Corruption, Corruptibility Corruptibility (Verweslichkeit), 496, see also Corruption, Corrupt, Incorruptibility Corruption (Verfohrung), 782, see also Corrupt, Corruptibility Cosmological (kosmologisch), question(s), 506, 507, 5 1 1 , 5 1 3, 545, 548, see also Cosmology; problem, 546; difficulties, 485 ; dispute, 525; dialectic, 5 1 8 ; idea(s), 435, 438 incl. br. n. 34, 442, 447, 448 br. n. 77, 490, 494, 496, 506-7, 5 1 4 inc!. br. n. 1 04, 5 1 7 inc!. br. n. 1 1 5, 5 1 8, 525, 533-34, 536, 543, 545, 5 5 1 , 552, 560, 570, 587, 593, 594, 699, 701 inc!. br. n. 198, 7 1 3 ; sense of the term freedom, 5 6 1 , cf. 570; assertions, 529; principle(s), 435, 484, 536-37, cf. 543, 700, 7 1 3 ; series, 7 1 3 ; proof (argument, syllogism), see God; and see World, Cosmotheol ogy
INDEX
88 1
Cosmology (Weltwissenschaft [-lehre, -erkenntnis], Kosmologie), 39 1 , 392 inc!. br. n. 209, 395 n. 222, 397', 428, 433, 435, 655 br. n. 3 13, 700, 874, see also Cos mological, World, Cosmotheology, Rational Cosmotheology (Kosmotheologie), 660, see also Cosmological, Theology, God Course (Gang, Weg, -steig, Schritt, [Ver-]lauf, Faden, Rat), vii', xiii n. 6 1 , xliii, 36, 120, 167, 237, 240, 295, 392, 452, 474, 475, 478, 49 1 , 523, 570, 573, 575, 578, 584, 59 1 , 612, 614, 6 1 8, 63 1 , 637, 658, 690-9 1 , 717, 722, 726, 772, 785, 788, 79 1-92, 840, 877, see also Path Cratylus, 364' br. n. 100 Creation (SchOpfung), 25 1 , 426, 658, cf. 57, 1 1 2 inc!. br. n. 233, 1 1 8' br. n. 142, 329, 374, 387', 425, 507, 597, 598, 612, 655, 67 1 , 696 inc!. br. n. 168, 700, 721 br. n. 282, 7 5 1 , 799, 807 incl. br. n. 3 3 1 , realm of, 658 Criterion (Kriterium, Kennzeichen), 4, 35 n. 23, 41 inc1. br. n. 55, 82-84 inc!. br. n. 6 1 , 1 1 4-15, 1 26', 175, 1 90-9 1 , 232, 249-50, 269, 279, 280, 8 1 3, 816, 872, see also Indicator, Mark (Merkmal), Sign Critical (kritisch), philosophy, vii' br. n. 5, 264 br. n. 24 1 , cf. 372 br. n. 1 16; in quiry (investigation), xiv', 1 2 1 , 296, 730, cf. 5 1 3, 786; essay, 107; project, 249; business, 698; path, 884; treatment, 382', 668; solution, 509, 5 1 2, 544; reason, 326, 8 1 5 ; principles, xxix; judging, 35 n. 23, cf. 3 16; decision, 525 ; objection, 388'-89', 392'; eye, 348', 406, 767; provision, 1 87 ; distinction, xxviii; com ment, 285; reminder, 45; benefit, 534; see also Critique, Uncritical Critique (Kritik), to it everything must submit, xi' n. 14, cf. 766-67; strict (rigor ous), xi' n. 14, 395', 654, 670, cf. 424, 5 14; principles of, 778, xi' n. 14, xii', 1 1 3, xvii n. 77, 390', 779, 782-83; transcendental, see Transcendental; of pure (speculative) reason, as contrasted with the system of pure (speculative) reason (metaphysics of nature), xxi, cf. xxii, xxxv, 26-28, 174, 878, is a special sci ence, 24 inc!. br. n. 258, cannot and need not become popular, xxxiv, is a tri bunal, xii', 779-80, cf. 433, 795, is the critique of our power of reason con cerning all a priori cognitions (concerning the possibility of metaphysics [as a science], concerning reason's sources, range, and bounds), xii', 789-90, 869, cf. xi' n. 14, xxi-xxv inc!. n. 93, xxvii, xxix-xxxi, xxxvi-xxxvii, xliii, 22-27, 88, 1 74, 334, 352-53, 348', 35 1', 361', 367', 380', 395', 409-1 0, 424, 637, 654, 659, 670, 723 n. 301, 730-32, 766, 769, 775, 779-86, 79 1 , 795, 797, 8 1 7, 822, 865, 875 n. 240, 877, 878, and is negative (its benefit for speculation is nega tive) but also has a positive benefit for the practical use of reason, xxiv-xxv, xxxiv, 25, 859, cf. 730, 739, 833, 877, see also Critique of Pure Reason; rea son needs none in its empirical use, 738-39, nor in mathematics, 739, cf. 767, 875 n. 240; of (pure) understanding, 88, 285, 345, 797, cf. 875 n. 240; of cog nitions, 8 1 , cf. 875 n. 240; of speculative theology, see Theology; of dialectical illusion, 86, 88; of taste, 35 n. 23
Critique of Judgment (Kritik der Urteilskraft), vii' br. ns. 6 and 7, xiii br. n. 63, xvii br. n. 73, xxiii br. n. 96, xxx br. n. 1 24, xxxii br. n. 127, xxxviii br. ns. 140 and 142, xliii br. ns. 147 and 149, 7 br. ns. 169 and 170, 33 br. n. 10, 35 n. 23, 72 br. n. 1 83, 74 hr. n. 13, 75 hr. n. 2 1 , 77 hr. n. 3 1 , 79 hr. n. 38, 84 br. n. 69, 125 hr. n. 41. 1 1 8' hr. n. 142, 1 30 hr. n. 1 90, 167 hr. ns. 326 and 328, 1 69 hr. ns. 3 and 6, 1 82 hr. n. 96, 2 1 9 hr. n. 5, 322 hr. n. 44, 368 hr. n. 102, 374 hr. n. 124,
882
INDEX
385 br. ns. 175 and 1 76, 395 br. ns. 222b and 222c, 393' br. n. 2 1 1 , 414 br. n. 273b, 425 br. ns. 294 and 295, 521 br. n. 1 27, 526 br. n. 142, 554 br. ns. 246 and 247, 594 br. n. 408, 596 br. n. 9, 598 br. n. 17, 610 br. n. 8 1 , 620 br. n. 1 1 8, 63 1 br. n. 1 80, 632 br. ns. 186 and 193, 648 br. n. 272, 650 br. n. 285, 656 br. n. 3 1 8, 665 br. n. 364, 669 br. n. 378, 67 1 br. n. 14, 674 br. n. 38, 680 br. n. 7 1 , 684 br. n . 1 00, 697 br. n . 179, 7 1 6 br. n . 26 1 , 723 br. ns. 296 and 300, 737 br. n. 17, 741 br. n. 30, 767 br. n. 1 69, 827 br. n. 2 1 , 839 br. ns. 76 and 77, 844 br. n. 96, 848 br. n. 1 17, 854 br. n. 1 38, 868 br. n. 196; First Introduction to, xviii' br. n. 29, 6 1 br. n. 142, 75 br. n. 2 1 , 79 br. n. 38, 84 br. n. 69, 322 br. n. 44, 414 br. n. 273b, 680 br. n. 71, 684 br. n. 100, 723 br. n. 300, 868 br. n. 196 Critique of Practical Reason (Kritik der praktischen Vemunft), vii' br. n. 6, xxviii br. ns. 1 1 2 and 1 13, 72 br. n. 183, 125 br. n. 4 1 , 166 br. n. 324a, 385 br. ns. 173 and 174, 365' br. ns. 107 and 108, 424 br. n . 290, 425 br. n. 296, 586 hr. n. 365, 594 br. n. 408, 650 br. n. 285, 665 br. n. 364, 723 br. n. 300, 833 hr. n. 46, 834 hr. n. 50, 835 hr. n. 54, 836 hr. n. 56, 838 br. ns. 68, 72, and 73, 839 br. ns. 76, 77 and 79, 840 br. n. 8 1 , 841 br. ns. 84 and 87, 844 br. n. 96, 846 hr. n. 105, 847 br. ns. 107 and 1 1 1 , cf. xliii
Critique of Pure Reason (Kritik der reinen Vemunft), vii' br. ns. 5 and 7, xvii br. n. 73, xix hr. n. 80, xxii n. 93, xxvii, xliii incl. br. n. 149, 1 br. n. 1 52, 24, 33 hr. n. 13, 35 hr. n. 22, 72 hr. n. 1 83, 1 10 br. n. 217, 95' br. n. 58, 1 29 br. n. 1 84, 1 69 br. n. 3, 349 br. n. 1 , 366 hr. n. 94, 3 8 1 br. n. 1 6 1 , 650 br. n. 285, 665 hr. n. 364, 844 hr. n. 96, 882 br. n. 270, see also Critique Culture or cultivation (Kultur), xxxiii, 697, 737-38 incl. br. n. 1 7, 845 incl. br. n. 100, 878-79 incl. hr. n. 255, cf. xxx, 772 Custom (Gewohnheit), 5 br. n. 1 59, 127 br. n. 50, 458, 788, cf. 2, 53, 96, 173, 217, 359, 377, 495, 667, 764, 870, see also Hahit Data (Data), means given(s), 540, see also Given; a priori, 58; empirical, 58, 107', 752; sensihle (of sensibility, the senses), 122', 305 n. 1 69, 343, cf. 96', 407; of intuitions, 107'; for possible experience, 1 1 9', 298, cf. 377'; of experience, 323; of appearance, 430; for a possihle cognition, 296, cf. 864 incl. hr. n. 1 69; for the (particular) possibility (and thoroughgoing detennination) of everything (all things), 601 , 603; empty, for concepts, 349; practical, xxi, cf. xxviii Deception (Blendwerk, Betrug), xiii', 86, 88, 274 hr. n. 40, 297, 302, 324, 352, 354, 359, 376', 384', 395', 45 1 , 458, 475, 5 1 8, 528, 535, 636, 697, 739, 763, 783, 8 10, 815, 821, 823, cf. 85, 349, 390, 369', 396', 435, 450, 525, 564, 637, 670-72, 730, 7 3 1 , 737, 8 14, 820, 849, see also Illusion, Delusion Decimal system (Dekadik), 1 04 Declaration (Deklaration), 757, 758, cf. xxx, 127, 126' hr. n . 7 3 , 1 35, 274, 400, 364', 370', 377', 399', 556, 559, 576, 590, 629 Decomposition (Dekomposition), 540-42, 5 5 1 -55 inc I. br. n. 235, cf. 533 Deduction (Deduktion), means legitimation (or justification), xix inc I. br. n. 8 1 , 1 1 7 inel. br. n. 1 1 , 1 19 incI . br. ns. 1 9 and 2 1 , 97' incl. hr. n . 6 1 , 199 incl. br. n . 10, 692 incl. br. n. 146, 698 inc I. br. n. 1 80, 699 inc I. br. n. 1 88, 761 inel. hr. n. 1 29, 762 incl. br. n. 135, 8 1 5 incl. br. n. 374, cf. 1 1 6, 697-98, 822; in law and in philosophy, 1 1 6, cf. 1 1 7, 822; subjective and objective, xvii', 1 29 br. n. 1 84, cf.
INDEX
883
393; empirical and transcendental, 1 17-19, cf. 1 27-28; metaphysical and tran scendental, 159 incl. br. n. 299; transcendental, of the concept of space (of time), 1 1 8, 120, 1 2 1 ; (transcendental.) of the (pure) concepts of understanding (cat egories), xvi', xxvii, xxxviii, 1 16-69 (specifically, 1 16-21 incl. br. n. 1, 1 24, 1 26, 1 29 br. n. 1 84, 1 30, 144, 145, 159, 1 65, 168), 95'- 1 30' (specifically, 95' incl. br. n. 58, 97', 98', 1 1 5', 1 28' incl. br. n. 179, 1 30'), 178, 386, 697-98, is the explanation as to how concepts can refer to objects a priori, 1 17, (i.e.,) the exhibition of the pure concepts of understanding (and, with them, of all theo retical a priori cognition) as principles of the possibility of experience, 168; see also Categories; of our pure cognition, 509; of the possibility of synthetic a priori cognition in mathematics, 199; of our power to cognize a priori, xix; of the pos sibility of experience, 228; (transcendental,) of principles (propositions), 255, 285, 286, 69 1-92, 76 1 , 8 1 5 ; discursive (philosophical) principles require one, intuitive principles (axioms) do not, 76 1 -62 ; (transcendental,) of ideas (of [speculative] reason), 393, 691-92 inc!. br. n. 147, 697-99, cf. 8 1 5 ; mystical, 371 n. 1 10; see also Derivation Definite (bestimmt, entschieden), 157 inc!. br. n. 294, 170, 214 inc!. br. n. 1 1 2, 276 br. n. 5 1 , 368' br. n. 120, 653 br. n. 305, 695, 872, cf. 300 n. 144, 698, 783, 842, see also Detenninate, Indefinite Definition or define (Definition, definieren), xvii' br. n. 26, 108-9, 1 15, 300 inc!. ns. 144 and 144b inc!. br. n. 144d, 303 n. 1 57. 746-47, 754, 755-60 inc!. n. 1 2 1 , cf. xxx br. n. 1 22, 14 n. 2 17, 19, 79, 86, 125 br. n. 4 1 , 201 br. n. 30c, 257 br. n. 209, 376 br. n. 1 34, 537-39 inc!. br. n. 1 84, 758 br. n. 1 15, 848 br. n. 1 1 3, 850 br. n. 1 23, 862 inc!. br. n. 1 62, 864; (analytically [Le., logically)), is to ex hibit a thing's comprehensive concept originally within its bounds, 755 inc!. br. n. 103, cf. 300 n. 144b, 758; really, is to make understandable the possibility of (a concept's) object, 300, cf. 300 n. 144b incl. br. n. 144e, (i.e.,) to give the ob ject its signification in accordance with some function of the understanding, 303 n. 157; mathematical and philosophical, 757-60 inc!. n. 1 2 1 , cf. 746-47, 754; see also Explication, Detennination Degree (Grad), 1 0 1 , 333-34, 367, 372, 374, 414 br. n. 270, 415 n. 275, 447, 468, 577, 678, 682, 686, 687, 689, 690, 693, 787, 834, 853, 857, 864, 872, cf. 60, 77, 108, 1 72-73 incl. n. 28, 402 n. 25, 598, 676 br. n. 5 1 , 757, 845, 849, 882, of (every) sensation ([every] reality contained in appearance [in perception], ev erything real), 1 82-83, 207- 1 8 inc!. n. 68 and br. ns. 129 and 1 34, cf. 221, 254-55, 414, 415 n. 275, 834; of (all) consciousness, 414 inc!. n. 273, 415 n. 275, 550; of completeness, 690; of empirical unity, 705, cf. 729-30; of perfec tion(s), 65 1 , 656 br. n. 3 1 8 Deist or deistic (Deist, deistisch), 659-61 , 668, 669 br. n . 373, 702 br. n . 204, 703, see also Theist Deity (Gottheit), 293, 385 br. n. 1 75, 623, 656 br. n. 3 1 8, 845, see also God, Di vine Deliberation or deliberate C Uberlegung, aberlegen), viii, 3 16- 1 7 incl. br. n. 4, 325, 8 14, 830, cf. 86, 108, 207 br. n. 72, 301 br. n. 149, 757, transcendental, see Tran scendental; see also Reflection Delimit (beschriinken, einschriinken), see Limit
884
INDEX
Delusion (Wahn, Tiiuschung, Verblendung), xiii', 20, 128, 264, 286, 297, 305, 33 1, 366, 376', 5 14, 525, 528, 5 7 1 , 672, 697, 739, 775, 784, 865, cf. 295, 336, 385', 424, 449, 669, 670, 765; self-, 503; see also lIIusion, Deception Democritus, 883 incl. br. n. 278 Demonstration or demonstrate (Demonstration, demonstrieren), 762-66, 803, 8 1 8- 19, cf. xi, 78, 79, 86 br. n. 76, 204 br. n. 52, 7 8 1 , 846, is an apodeictic proof insofar as it is also intuitive (hence is found only in mathematics, not in philosophy) 762-63, cf. 223, 754-55, 803, 8 1 8-19; of the existence of God and of a future life is not possible, 769-70, cf. 605 br. n. 60, 626 br. n. 1 60, 632 br. n. 1 86, 648 br. n. 272, 803, see also Proof, Construction De mundi intelligibilis . . . , see On the Form and Principles . . . De omni et nullo-dictum, 337 inel. br. n. 1 1 5 Dependence or dependent (Dependenz, Abhiingig[keitj, abhiingend), 39, 7 1 , 72, 252, 393, 395 n. 222, 443, 486, 509, 5 16, 5 17, 573, 5 87, 589, 5 9 1 , 700, 752, 807, 843, cf. 73 br. n. 1 88, category of, 106; see also Causality, Independence Derivation or derivative (Ableitung, abgeleitet), xxi', 28, 72, 89, 107-8, 1 1 1 , 1 19, 128, 393 incl. br. n. 2 1 6, 495, 560, 588, 60 1 , 603, 606-7, 644-47, 679, 7 1 3, 723 br. n. 296, 839, 86 1 , cf. 2-4, 27, 39, 44, 47, 65, 1 15, 127 inel. n. 48, 1 1 2', 1 1 8' br. n. 142, 127', 140, 142, 163, 165, 238, 357, 360, 389, 402, 353', 401', 472, 480, 567, 589, 594, 595, 597 incl. br. n. 15, 600, 609, 6 1 3, 63 1 , 654, 660, 674, 676, 680, 694, 698, 701, 7 10, 722, 723, 727, 729, 755 n. 105, 758, 762, 8 1 8, 827, 846, 866 inc I. br. n. 1 84, 869, 882, see also Subsidiary, Deduction, Proof Descartes, Rene, xxxvi br. n. 134, 274 inel. br. n. 40, 275, 367'-68', 390' br. n. 201 , 422 n. 288, cf. xvii' br. n. 26, 355', 405, 630 Descend (absteigen, hinabgehen), 1 83, 300, 388, 389, 394, 436, 437, 539, 683, 686, cf. xx', see also Ascend Desire (Begierde, Begehrung, begehren), 834 br. n. 49, xii' br. n. 16, xv, xxxi, 29 incI. br. n. 290, 296, 357', 677, 680, 728, 736, 824, 884, cf. xix, 782, 8 1 3 , see also Inclination, Passion, Desire-power of Desire-power of (Begehrungsvermogen), xii' br. n. 1 6, 1 25 br. n. 4 1 , 830, see also Will Destination (Bestimmung), 425, cf. xv, 773, see also Vocation, Determination Determinability or determinable (Bestimmbar[keit]), 322, 6 1 1 n. 83, xxxix n. 1 44, 37, 15 1 , 157 n. 296 incI. br. n. 296b, 228, 232, 248, 304, 305 n. 1 69, 3 1 7, 34 1, 385, 3 8 1 ', 402', 407, 420, 430, 437, 522, 584, 593, 596, 599 inel. n. 27, 726, principle of, 599, see also Determination, Indeterminably Determinate (bestimmt), 37 br. n. 30, 214 incl. br. n. 1 1 2, 653 incl. br. n. 305, ex pression, 2, 227, 72 1 br. n. 283, cf. viii, 705; signification, 303 n. 1 57; predi cate, 506 n. 74; presentation, 48, 1 6 1 ; concept(s), xxi br. n. 90, 6, 307, 344, 357, 526, 5 5 1 , 598, 656, 658, 702, 703, 773; principles, 109; laws, 35 n. 23 incl. br. n. 23c, cf. 689; rules, 1 74; thought, 19, 134, 603, 693, 704, 705; consciousness, 278; intuition, 109', 1 54, 157 br. n. 294, cf. 1 63, 221, 5 6 1 , 75 1 , 752; image, 598; form, 37; magnitude, 47, 203 ; degree, 255; number, 396; multitude, 460. 555; arrangement, 345; order, 237, 238; coherence, 12 1'; combination, 138; cog nition, 22 1 , 305 n. 1 69, 396', 673, 787, 794, 795; acquaintance, 63 1 ; experi-
INDEX
885
ence, xx', 6 1 8, 648, cf. 693-94; reference, 1 37, 303 n. 1 57; space, see Space; time, see Time; position (in space, time [time position]), 243, 549 n. 23 1 ; thing, 635; object, see Object; kinds, 605; relation, 69 n. 178, cf. 234; bounds, 128, 541 br. n. 209, 789, 795; limits, 22; condition, 66 1 , 662; cause(s), 276, 368', cf. 655; regression, 550; infinite, 546 n. 229, cf. 546 n. 229; (final) aim(s), 653; purpose(s), 872, 879; see also Determinateness, Determination, Definite, Inde terminate Determinateness
(Bestimmtheit), 682, cf. 684, see also Determinate
Determination or determine (Bestimmung, bestimmen), 37 br. n. 30, 322-24, 427, 596-1 1 inc!. n. 27, 626, xii', xv', xvi', viii-x, xvii, xxi inc!. br. n. 90, xxiv, xxvii, xxviii, xxxvi, xxxix n. 144, 6 inc!. br. n. 166, 23, 34 br. n. 16, 37, 39 inc!. ns. 37 and 43, 40, 42, 44 n. 65, 49-5 1 , 54 inc!. n. 1 17, 56, 58, 62, 63, 67, 68, 72, 74 inc!. br. n. 9, 8 1 , 84 br. n. 69, 89-92, 98, 99, 1 0 1 , I l l , 1 12, 1 17, 120, 128, 129, 1 01 ', 1 04', 105', 1 07'-8', 126'-29' inc!. br. n. 176, 1 39, 142, 143 inc!. br. n. 241 , 1 47-50, 1 52-58 inc!. ns. 292, 296, and br. n. 296e, 160 inc!. n. 305, 161 br. n. 306, 163, 165, 1 66 n. 324, 168, 169, 177-8 1 , 1 83, 1 86, 1 87, 1 9 1 , 193, 198, 201 , 203 inc!. br. n . 28, 207-9, 2 1 1 , 2 1 3, 2 1 8-22 inc!. br. ns. 1 and 19, 224 ns. 44 and 47, 225-34, 237, 239-42, 244-47, 250, 253, 255-59, 261 -64, 266, 268, 272, 275-8 1 inc!. n. 52, 286, 288, 291, 292, 294, 297, 300-5 inc!. ns. 144, 1 57, and 169, 308-9 inc!. br. n. 1 8 1 , 3 1 1 , 3 1 5- 19, 3 2 1 , 325, 328 inc!. br. n. 63, 330, 332, 335, 336, 339, 342, 346, 3 5 1 inc!. n. 16, 353, 358, 360, 362, 363, 365, 367, 370, 372, 374 inc!. bL n. 1 26, 376, 378, 382, 384-86, 389, 400, 401 , 348', 349', 355', 358', 360', 362', 365', 368', 369', 373', 374', 378', 379', 3 8 1 ', 387', 395', 396', 399', 402', 405', 406, 407, 409, 4 1 8, 420-22 inc!. n. 288, 429-32, 440, 441 , 446 n. 70, 452, 454 n. 1 19, 457 n. 1 26, 459, 46 1 , 467 inc!. bL n. 1 83, 47 1 , 473-75, 479, 48 1 , 482, 487, 488, 490, 493, 494, 496, 497, 499 n. 44 , 5 15, 5 19, 520, 522, 523, 532, 536, 537 br. n. 1 82, 544-49, 5 5 1 , 554, 561-66, 568-70, 573, 574-85 inc!. br. n. 360, 5 9 1 , 603 n. 43, 626-28 inc!. br. n. 162, 632-33 inc!. br. n. 193, 636, 639, 645, 646, 656, 657, 659, 660, 664, 665, 668, 669, 673, 674, 676, 678-84 inc!. br. n. 67, 686, 687, 693-94, 696, 698, 699, 705 inc!. br. n. 2 1 3 , 708, 7 1 0, 7 1 2, 7 1 3, 7 1 9, 720, 728, 735, 742, 746, 7 5 1 , 752, 754-56 inc!. n. 105, 760, 76 1 , 764, 77 1 , 772, 774, 779, 786-88, 790, 794, 796 inc!. bL n. 280, 802, 8 16, 821, 823, 828, 830, 83 1 , 834, 835, 838, 840, 841 , 845, 860-62, 867-72 inc!. br. n. 190 and n. 1 92, 879, 883; thoroughgoing, principle of, 599-601 ; see also Determinability, Determinate, Determinateness, Determinative, Basis (determining), Predetermined, Indeterminate, Vocation, Destination, Intuition, Sense, Object, Time Determinative (bestimmend), 84 br. n. 69, 125, 1 5 1 , 244, 459, 478, 486, 562, 584 inc!. br. n. 355, 674 br. n. 38, 750 inc!. br. n. 79, see also Determination Dialectic (Dialektik), 82, 85-86, 349, cf. 173 br. n. 29, 530, 7 1 7 n. 265, logical, 354, 390; hidden, 782; cosmological, 5 1 8 ; transcendental, see Dialectic -transcendental; see also Dialectical Dialectic-transcendental (transzendentale Dialektik) (of pure reason), xxiii', xix br. n. 82 (cf. xxi n. 87), xxxix, 19 br. n. 235, 170, 282, 349-32 (specifically, 349 inc!. br. n. 1 , 354, 366, 368, 377, 390, 396, 399, 396', 432 inc!. br. n. 2, 492 br. n. 1 1 , 595, 670, 707, cf. 397', 449, 609, 697, 723), 793 br. n. 276, 874 br. n.
886
INDEX
230 (cf. 805), is natural to (unavoidable for) pure reason, xxxi, 354-55, 697, 877, cf. 449, 5 10, 609, 723, 775-76; its sources, 366, 609, cf. 782-83; contains a priori the origin of certain cognitions that arise from pure reason, and of in ferred concepts whose object cannot be given empirically, 390; is the critique of dialectical illusion, 88, cf. 170, 354, 5 10, 535, 723, 775, 8 1 5 ; its task (ques tions), 365-66, 449; its result, 707, cf. 708-32, 8 1 5; its final aim, 697-732; see also Dialectic Dialectical (dialektisch), general logic as, 86; use of understanding, 88; (use of [speculative]) reason, 1 7 1 , 397', 805, 824, 877; attempts of pure reason, 670; doctrine of pure reason, 449-50; psychology, 435, cf. 35 1 '; schools, 5 1 8 ; art, 634 inc!. br. n. 204; combat arena, 450; opposition (conflict), 532-33; anti nomy, 534; concepts, 672; presentations, 556; play (use) of ideas, 490, 697, cf. 610, 708; illusion, 86, 88, 396', 426, 642 (cf. 643-48), 7 3 1 , 783, 79 1 , 820; de ception, 528; pretensions (claims), 637, 796; assertions, 403', 47 1 ; counteras sertions, 559 inc!. br. n. 265; questions, 384'; witnesses, 73 1 ; principle(s), 470, 544, 8 14; inferences (arguments, syllogisms), 366, 368, 390, 396-732 (specifi cally, 396, 398, 3 5 1 ', 377', 382', 397', 402', 432, 433, 525, 559, 563, cf. 529-30), are of three kinds, 390, 397-98, 432-33, cf. 397', see also Paralogism(s) of pure reason, Antinomy of pure reason, Ideal of pure reason; and see Dialectic Dichotomy (Dichotomie), 1 1 0 Dictate (gebieten), 4 1 0, 527, 834 br. n . 52, see also Command, Enjoin Dictum of all and none (dictum de omni et nullo), 337 inc!. br. n. 1 1 5 Didactic (didaktisch, belehrend), xx', 1 75 Difference (Unterschied, Verschiedenheit), see Sameness Difficult(y) (Schwierig[keit], schwer; beschwerlich), xi', ix, xvi, xxx, xxxvii, 11 n. 200, 24, 53, 58, 68, 1 09, 1 2 1 -22, 98', 155, 156 n. 292, 250, 297, 305, 3 1 2, 372', 377', 384', 387', 39 1 ', 392', 427, 428, 460, 469, 475-77, 485, 489, 495, 501 , 5 10, 5 19, 557, 561 , 564, 573 br. n. 3 14, 628, 753, 759 n. 1 2 1 , 783, 801 , 802, 806, 807, 8 1 4, 822. 827, 855, 863, see also Perplexity Diogenes Laertius, xi inc!. br. ns. 5 1 and 52, 208 br. n. 80 Direct (unmittelbar; direkt, gerade), xxxix br. n. 144c, xvii br. n. 73, xxxix n. 144, 2, 14, 33 inc!. br. n. 1 5, 4 1 , 47, 48 inc!. br. n. 83, 50, 55, 69, 93-94, 120, 99', 103', 1 09', 1 16', 1 20', 147, 1 80, 1 92, 1 95, 200 br. n. 2 1 , 204, 2 1 4, 248, 259, 262, 272, 273-77 inc!. br. n. 36 and n. 52, 284, 285, 305 n. 1 69, 3 17, 323, 327, 355 br. n. 39, 359, 360 br. n. 58, 363, 377, 395 n. 222, 355', 367', 368', 37 1 ', 372', 375'-78', 390', 393', 464, 470, 534, 568, 57 1 , 579, 5 8 1 , 584, 629, 642 br. n. 246, 67 1 br. n. 16, 687-89, 698 inc!. br. n. 1 84, 699, 708, 7 1 8, 723 br. n. 300, 725, 760, 76 1 , 763-65 inc!. br. n. 148, 779, 794, 8 10, 8 12, 8 1 7 inc!. br. n. 384, 8 1 8 , 822, 830, 843, 846, 847, 864, see also Immediate, Indirect Discipline (Disziplin), is the constraint whereby the constant propensity to deviate from certain rules is limited and finally eradicated, 737 inc!. br. n. 1 7, cf. 42 1 , 738-39 inc!. n . 1 9 and br. ns. 1 9a and 1 9b, 8 14, 823; rational psychology as, 42 1 ; transcendental logic as, 825; of philosophy of pure reason, 823; of pure reason, xxiv', 736-822 (specifically, 736-40, 766, 797, 8 1 0, 8 14, 8 1 7 , 823), in its dogmatic use, 740-66, in its polemical use, 766-97, in regard to hypotheses, 797-8 10, in regard to its proofs. 8 1 0-22
INDEX
887
Discursive (diskursiv), means logical, xvii' inc!. br. n. 26, (i.e.,) conceptual, xvii' br. n. 26, xxxix br. n. 144g, 33 br. n. 13, 75 br. n. 20, cf. xvii', 283, 3 1 1-12, 745, 748, 750, see also Logical, Concept; concept(s), xvii', 39, 47, 467, 753; distinctness, xvii'-xviii' inc!. br. n. 26; certainty, 20 1 ; proofs, 763; principles, 76 1 ; proposition, 750; judging, 748; forms of thought or of cognition through concepts, 283, cf. 170; cognition, 93, 170, 3 1 1 - 1 2, 745, 762, see also Cogni tion, Thought; understanding, xxxix br. n. 144g, 33 br. n. 1 3, 75 br. n. 20, 1 30 br. n. 190, see also Understanding; use of reason, 747, cf. 748, 750-53; medi tation, 746; is implied by philosophical, 761 inc!. br. n. 130, see also Philoso phy Disjunctive (disjunktiv), 95, 98-1 00, 1 1 2, 141 , 36 1 , 379, 393, 433 br. n. 9, 604, 605 Disorder (Unordnung), 376, see also Order (Ordnung) Displeasure (Unlust), see Pleasure Dissect(ion) (Zergliederung, zergliedem), (of) concepts (of what is thought in them), 5', 1 1 , 15, 16, 18, 23, 27-28, 90, 108, 249, 264 inc!. br. n. 241 , 744, 746, 749, 756, 758, 759 n. 1 2 1 , 760, see also Concept; of concepts, definitions are, 758, see also Definition; of cognition, 89, see also Cognition; of the understanding, 90, see also Understanding; of what is required for transcendental schemata, 1 8 1 , see also Schema; of appearance(s), 327, 334, see also Appearance; o f the parts of a structured (organized) whole, 554, cf. 7 16 ; (of) the proposition I think, 4 1 8 ; (of) the acts o f reason, 170, see also Reason; and see Analysis Distinct(ness) (Deutlich[keit]), xvii' br. n. 26, 60-62, xv', xvii'-xviii' inc!. br. n. 26, xix', viii, xxxvi, 14, 1 6, 59, 90, 109, 1 17, 1 2 1 , 155 br. n. 285, 1 89, 193, 244, 300 n. 144b, 305 n. 169, 334, 353, 374, 392, 388', 396', 4 1 2, 496, 5 1 0, 548, 653, 689., 700, 707, 7 1 6, 744, 747, 754, 756, 759, 829, 835, 862, 872, cf. 772, 87 1 ; discursive and intuitive (logical and aesthetic), xvii'-xviii' inc!. br. ns. 26 and 29 Distrust (Mij3trauen), xvi', 79 1 , 795, cf. 255, 73 1 , see also Trust, Confidence Disunity (Veruneinigung), 492, cf. 735, 775, 786-97 (specifically, 786), see also Unity Divine(ly) (gottlich), existence, 858; object, 656 br. n. 3 1 8, 845, 846; being, 703; originator, 801 ; properties, 728; wisdom, 727, 729; will, 727, 847; commands, 847, cf. 662 br. n. 354; reason, 838 inc!. br. n. 69; understanding, 145, 596; hu man being, 597; preestablished harmony, 696 br. n. 168; see also God Divisibility or divisible (Teilbar[keit]), 35, 93, 94, 1 1 3 inc!. br. n. 234, 1 28, 1 29, 206, 4 1 5 n. 275, 49 1 , 496, 502, 541 inc!. br. n. 2 1 1 , 55 1-55 inc!. br. n. 235, cf. 354', 400', 413, 414, 415 n. 275, 440, 443, 446, 462-7 1 , 509, 5 1 1 , 5 1 5 , 558, 559 br. n. 264, 607, 650, 683, 684, 752, see also Indivisible, Composite, Whole, Part Dizzy (schwindlig), reason as, 7 1 7 Doctrinal (doktrinal, Lehr-), system, 326, 33 1 , 369', 370', 380', 427, 5 19; edifice, 329, 864; principle, 544; opinion, 392' br. n. 210; faith, 853-55 inc!. br. n. 135; benefit, 534; see also Doctrine Doctrine (Doktrin, Lehre, Lehrsatz), 25-26 inc!. br. n. 265, 78-79, 170, 1 74, 303, 42 1 , 448-5 0, 73 1 , 738, 740 inc!. br. n. 26, 782, cf. xi br. n. 5 1 , xxix, xxiii',
888
INDEX
xxiv', 29-3 1 inc!. br. n. 294, 33, 35 n. 23, 36, 52, 55, 57, 60, 74, 108, 141 n. 230, 169, 1 7 1 , 175-77, 1 87, 294, 307, 324, 349 inc!. br. n. 1 , 367', 369' br. n. 1 22, 3 8 1 ' br. n. 1 67, 391', 400', 432, 477, 503, 733, 735 inc!. br. n. 6, 736, 746, 823, 828, 854, 860, 865 br. n. 178, 870, 880, see also Theory, Doctrinal, Thetic Dogma (Dogma, Lehrmeinung), is a directly synthetic proposition based on con cepts, 764-65 inc!. br. ns. 153 and 1 54, cf. ii incl. br. n. 1, 388', 392', 803, 846, see also Dogmatic, Dogmatism, Thetic Dogmatic (dogmatisch), means [by means of] strict proofs from secure a priori prin ciples (from concepts), xxxv, cf. 227-28, 263, 764-65, 846, without first ex amining whether reason is capable or incapable [thereof], 7; attempts of reason, 791-92, cf. 23; (use of) (pure) reason, 22, 740-67, 780, 804; first step in mat ters of pure reason is, 789; science (metaphysics) must be, xxxv, cf. xxxvi; meta physics, xxxvi, 23, 24 br. n. 254, cf. 7; philosophy (philosophers), xxxvi, 79 1 , cf. 389'; investigation, 786; way of thinking (presenting), xxxvii, 549 n . 23 1 ; point of view, 784; empiricism as, 499; idealism (idealist), 274, 377'; spiritu alist, 7 1 8 ; procedure, xxxv, 7, 24, 782, 884, cf. 389'; method, 741 , 765, 884, cf. 389'; (conducting of a) proof, 227-28, 255, 263, 264, 549 n. 23 1 , 812, cf. 424; benefit, 534; cognitions, 448; solution, 5 12; answers, 5 1 3 ; propositions, 499 n. 44; judgments Uudging), xxx br. n. 1 24, 764; assertion(s), 424, 448, 47 1 , 770 inc!. br. n. 1 87, 796; doctrines, 448; affirmation, 769, 770; objections, 384', 388'-89', 392', 394', cf. 559; denial(s), 767, 800, cf. 559; defender, 7 8 1 ; cham pions, 666; teacher, 496; opponent, 7 8 1 -82; persuasions, 667; claims, 763, 767; authority, 767; pretensions, 425; grip, 784; self-conceit, 785, 809; gait, 763; lan guage, 652; defiance, 434; attacks, 383'; weapons, 782; subtle reasoner, 797, 82 1 ; deception, 395'; creation of illusion, 88, 822; dream, 785; jumble, 5 14; wan dering, reason's, 789; habituation, 783; ruining of one's principles, 783; lack of faith, xxx inc!. br. n. 1 24; see also Uncritical, Dogmatism, Dogma Dogmatism or dogmatist (Dogmatismus, Dogmatik[er]), iX'-x', xiii', xxx-xxxii, xxxv, 3 5 1 ', 434, 458, 494, 501 br. n. 48, 534 br. n. 17, 7 1 8, 783, 79 1 , 795-97, 8 17, 822, cf. 500 inc!. br. n. 47, is the pretension that we can (without prior cri tique of reason's ability) make progress by means of no more than a pure cog nition from concepts (i.e., philosophical cognition), xxxv; see also Dogmatic, Dogma Doing (Tun), and acting, 503; and refraining, 83 1 , 835, 869, see also Action Doubt (Zweifel[n]), xi' n. 14, xvii' br. n. 26, xv, xxxix n. 144, 1 inc!. n. 153, 20 n. 243, 2 1 , 6 1 , 79 inc!. br. n. 38, 109, 1 19, 1 22, 1 78, 338 n. 1 24, 373, 368', 375', 377', 428, 452, SOl , 5 1 9 n. 1 20, 544, 554, 623, 652, 666, 724, 725, 772, 777, 779, 780, 785, 788 inc!. br. n. 263, 790, 79 1 , 795, 80S, 807, 82 1 , 822, cf. xlii, 107 br. n. 197, 120' n. I SO, 1 87, 208, 27 1 , 274-75 inc!. br. ns. 40 and 44, 334, 369, 366'-67', 372', 383', 5 19, 585 br. n. 360, 746, 756, see also Skepticism Dry (trocken), xviii', 78, 1 8 1 , 490 Dualism or dualist (Dualismus, Dualist), 367', 370', 376', 379', 380', 389'-92' Duration (Dauer), 149, 226, 262, 64 1 , 752, 799, 834 Duty (Pfiicht), xiii', xxxiii, 29, 3 1 9, 6 1 7 , 7 3 1 , 754, see also Obligation Dynamical(ly) (dynamisch), categories (concepts of understanding), 1 1 0, 557 incl. br. n. 257; (use of the) synthesis (of the pure concepts of understanding, of ap-
INDEX
889
pearances), 1 99 inc!. br. n. 17, 557, 558; principles, 20 1 , 202, 281, 296, 692, are only regulative, 296, 692; rule, 8 1 6; relations, 262, 332; connection (com bination), 201 n. 30, 798; (unity of) time determination, 262, 569, cf. 481, 5 8 1 ; law of nature that determines temporal succession according to rules, 58 1 ; law of causality, 280, cf. 248, 665; community, 259, 260; relation of substances as such, 469; sequence of the states of substances, 332; relation of the condition to the conditioned, 564; series (of sensible conditions), 558, 559, 587; regres sion, 534, 588; first beginning of action, 473, cf. 477; unconditioned, 448, cf. 5 8 1 ; concept of reason ([transcendental] ideas), 556, 559, 563; whole, 446; an tinomy, 557; realities of a thinking being, 669; division of parent souls, 415 n. 275; see also Dynamics Dynamics (Dynamik), general (physical), 202, principles thereof, 202, see also Dy namical Ectype or ectypal (Ektypon, Nachbild[endJ), 597 br. n. 15, 606 inc!. br. n. 62, 723 br. n. 296, 795, 866 inc!. br. n. 1 84, see also Reproductive, Archetype, Proto type Edifice (Gebtiude, Bau), xxii n. 93, 7, 9, 27, 170, 329, 374, 376, 502, 652, 726, 735, 766, 784, 863, 864, 866, 880, see also Building, Structure, System Effect (Wirkung), see Cause ( Ursache), Action Egyptians-the (die Agypter), xi, see also Ancients-the, History Elaborate (ausfohrlich), 47 1 , 755 br. n. 104, cf. 392, 862, see also Comprehensive Elegance (Eleganz, Zierlichkeit), viii, xliv, 402 n. 25 Elementary (Elementar-), xxii n. 93, 76, 89, 109, 1 69, 464, see also Elements, Elements---doctrine of Element (Element), xi, xviii n. 77, xxi n. 87, xxv, xxxviii, 30, 58, 74, 78, 84, 87, 89, 103, 1 1 8, 95', 96', 98', 1 1 5', 125', 166, 170 br. n. 10, 178, 254, 403, 422 n. 288, 452 br. n. 103, 470 inc!. br. n. 1 88, 553, 561 br. n. 276, 730, 73 1 , 759 n. 1 2 1 , 829 n. 28, 839, 87 1 , 879, cf. xvi, 15 br. n. 225, 201 n. 30, 236, 342, 350, 400, 3 6 1 ', 362', 4 1 4, 463, 465, 47 1 , 727, 7 5 2 , 8 1 9, 820, see also Elements---doctrine of, Elementary Elements---doctrine of (Elementarlehre), transcendental, xxiii', 29 inc!. br. n. 294, 3 1 -732 (specifically, 3 1 , 33, 36, 74, 349 br. n. I , cf. 78), 735, 740; see also El ements, Elementary Ellington, James w., xliii br. n. 149, 10 br. n. 1 9 1 , 33 br. n. 14, 37 br. n. 27, 40 br. n. 46, 48 br. n. 82, 93 br. n. 1 28, 94 br. ns. 135 and 1 37, 97 br. n. 1 5 1 , 98 br. n. 156, 103 br. n. 1 8 1 , 107 br. n. 192, 1 09 br. n. 2 14, 133 br. n. 202a, 141 br. n. 232, 143 br. n. 240, 1 76 br. n. 46, 197 br. n. I , 457 br. n. 126c, 468 br. n. 1 85, 754 br. n. 99 Empirical (empirisch), means a posteriori (through experience), 1 n. 153, 2-3, 38, 46, 58, 60, 64, 75, 1 17, 147, 165-66, 247, 263, 270, 277, 298, 507, 682, 75 1 , 834, see also A posteriori, Experience, Experiential; contrasted with transcen dental, see Transcendental; means containing (involving) sensation (the senses), 1 1 br. n. 201 , 34, 44 n. 65, 74, 77, 8 1 , 1 1 5', 1 1 9', 147, 208-9, 2 17, 400, 422 n. 288, 579, see also Sensation; distinguished from experiential, I I br. n. 201 ; im plies contingent, see Contingent; use of reason, (greatest possible,) 367, 591-93,
890
INDEX
647, 67 1 , 69 1 , 698, 699, 701-8 inc!. hL n. 205, 7 1 3-15, 726, 738-39, 770, 77 1 inc!. hr. n. 1 89, 773, 826, cf. 8 1 , 298, see also Critique, Principle, Reason; in tuition, fonn, concept, cognition, judgment, proposition, principle, etc., see these headings; see also Experiential, A posteriori, Nonempirical Empiricism or empiricist (Empirismus, Empirist), 494, 496-500, 502, 882 Employment (Gebrauch), see Use Empty (leer), xxi, 109, 3 10, 5 15, 665, 687, cf. 85, 2 14, 2 16, space, see Space; time, see Time; intuition, 457 n. 1 26; detenninations, 457 n. 1 26; predicate(s), 400', 506 n. 74; expression, 382, 355', cf. 707; presentation, 1 29', 345, 404; thought(s), 75, 1 1 3, 305 n. 169, cf. 475, 697, see also Thought; idea, 5 14; concept(s), 122, 1 23, 1 48, 178 hr. n. 66, 194, 267, 298, 3 1 5, 349, 5 1 8, 624 n. 1 48, cf. 368 hr. n. 102; concept without ohject (ohject of a concept, intuition without ohject, oh ject without concept), 348, cf. 349; experience, 549; cognition, 87; proposi tions, 737; doctrine, 60, cf. 102; suhtlety, 539; pretense, 86; thought-entity (-ies), 475, 697; chimeras, 798, cf. 475, 697; hopes, 295; tumhler, 249; see also Void-the, Vacuum End (Zweck), see Purpose Enduring or endure (bleiben[dJ), xiv, 107', 1 24', 1 83, 225, 227, 230, 23 1 , 739, see also Lasting, Duration, Pennanent-the Enjoin (auflegen, gebieten, anweisen), see also Prescription, Command, Dictate Enlightenment (Aufkliirung), x', xxxvi hr. n. 1 34, 775, 876, cf. v, vi n. 3, 60, 783, 835, 857 n. 1 5 1 , 880 Ens or entia, 1 1 3, 347-49, 394, 589, 604, 606-7, 6 1 1 hr. n. 83a, 63 1 hr. n. 1 85, 633, 635, 636, 659, 680, 684, 697 inc!. hr. n. 179, 709 inc!. hr. n. 227, cf. 82 1 , see also Entity, Being (Wesen) Entit1e(ment) (berechtigen, befugen [AnspruchD, ix, xxxviii, 6 1 , 1 1 3, 1 87, 224, 238, 309, 362, 415 n. 274, 43 1 , 540, 573, 580, 589, 59 1 , 624, 638, 644, 704-6, 7 1 4, 7 16, 727-29, 79 1 , 793, 804, 827, 855, see also Justification Entity (Ding, Wesen), xii' hr. n. 16, 674, 677 hr. n. 57, 680 hr. n. 73, thought-, 348, 394, 457 n. 126, 475, 497, 5 17, 571, 594, 684 inc!. hr. n. 1 0 1 , 697, 799, see also Being (Wesen), Ens, Thing, Nonentity Epicurus, 208 inc!. hr. n. 80, 499 n. 44, 500, 88 1 , 882 inc!. hr. n. 270, cf. 478, 499 Epigenesis (Epigenesis), 1 67 inc!. hr. n. 328 Episyllogism (Episyllogismus), 364 hr. n. 78, 388 inc!. hr. n. 1 87, see also Prosy1logism, Syllogism Erdmann, Benno, xix' hr. n. 3 1 , x hr. n. 46, 33 hr. n. 13, 69 hr. n. 178c, 86 hr. n. 74, 93 hr. n. 132, 94 hr. n. 133, 96 hr. n. 148, 1 19 hr. n. 22, 121 hr. n. 32, 1 24 hr. n. 39, 126 hr. n. 47, 102' hr. n. 73, 107' hr. n. 99, 109' hr. n. 108, 1 10' hr. n. 1 16, 1 16' hr. n. 135, 1 1 9' hr. n. 145, 127' hr. n. 175, 1 30 hr. n. 190, 1 76 hr. n. 54, 1 80 hr. n. 85, 1 8 1 hr. n. 90, 1 86 hr. n. 1 34, 1 88 hr. n. 148, 196 hr. n. 1 99, 207 hr. n. 74, 214 hr. n. 1 1 1 , 2 1 6 hr. ns. 1 28 and 1 29, 2 1 7 hr. ns. 1 36 and 137, 224 hr. ns. 42 and 43, 246 hr. n. 1 66, 250 hr. n. 1 84, 274 hr. n. 36, 287 hr. n. 95, 309 hr. n. 1 86, 3 10 hr. n. 1 88, 3 1 7 hr. n. 1 1 , 32 1 hr. n. 35, 370 hr. n. 109, 392 hr. n. 2 14, 40 1 hr. n. 1 9, 354' hr. n. 69, 360' hr. n. 90, 374' hr. n. 1 38, 377 ' hr. ns. 1 5 1 and 153, 407 hr. n. 25 1 , 4 1 2 hr. n. 261 , 415 hr. n. 275f, 42 1 hr. ns. 284 and 286, 450 hr. n. 9 1 , 452 hr. n. 245a, 502 hr. n. 58, 508 hr. n. 87, 5 10 hr.
INDEX
89 1
n. 90, 5 1 5 br. n. 103, 560 br. n. 269, 573 br. n. 3 14, 593 br. n. 40 1 , 594 br. n. 407, 6 1 8 br. n. 1 1 2, 636 br. n. 217, 650 br. n. 289, 699 br. n. 1 29, 690 br. n. 135, 696 br. ns. 169 and 1 70, 727 br. n. 3 12, 745 br. n. 57, 751 br. ns. 83 and 84, 772 br. n. 1 92, 786 br. n. 250, 787 br. n. 256, 790 br. n. 267, 798 br. ns. 296 and 299, 8 1 8 br. n. 389, 874 br. n. 233 Error (Fehler, Irrtum, Irrung), ii incl. br. n. I , viii', xii', xxvii, xxxi, xxxviii, 7, 25, 45, 79 incl. br. n. 38, 84, 97, 1 90, 350-51 incl. n. 16, 397, 395', 397'-99', 656 br. n. 3 1 8, 67 1 , 7 15-16, 732, 737, 739, 740, 759-60, 765, 77 1 , 823-24, 852, 853, 865, 879, cf. 194, 207 incl. br. n. 74, 8 1 9 incl. br. n. 392, see also Mistake Escape (Ausflucht, Ausweg, entgehen, ausweichen), xx', 14, 376', 461 , 588, 623, 738, see also Subterfuge Essence or essential(ly) (Wesen[tlichD, xv'-xviii', xvi, xix, xxxix n. 144, xlii, 4, 2 1 , 28, 39, 62, 96, 109, 1 68, 206, 2 1 8, 250, 264, 322 incl. br. n. 46, 363, 452, 46 1 , 494, 557, 596, 709, 721-23, 740, 742, 759 br. n. 1 2 1a, 760, 841 , 844-46, 859-6 1, 865, 867, 868, 875, 878, see also Nature (Wesen) Eternity or eternal (Ewig[keit]), xii', 22, 56, 57 br. n. 1 29, 1 86 inc!. br. ns. 1 34 and 1 35, 454, 460, 509, 5 14, 529, 608, 641 , 660, 669, 807, 843, see also Everlast ing, Immutable Euclid, cf. 40 br. n. 48 Euthanasia (Euthanasie), pure reason's, 434 Event (Begebenheit), 1 1 2', 163, 237-41 incl. br. ns. 124, 126, and 1 27, 243, 244, 246, 247, 25 1 , 264, 270, 289, 290, 473, 475, 478, 495, 499 n. 44, 502, 5 16, 523, 560, 562, 564, 568, 570-72, 580, 582, 750 n. 80, 8 16, 848, 849, see also Hap pen, Occur, State Everlasting (immerwiihrend), 228, 35 1 ', 8 13, see also Eternal, Lasting Everything (alles), concept of, 347, see also Allness Evidence or self-evidence (Evidenz), 223, 762 incl. br. n. 139, 8 1 8, xxxviii, 200-1 incl. br. n. 28, 213, 467, 777, 882, cf. xi', viii, 16, 55, 58, 63, 109, 120, 1 22, 125, 107', 123', 1 89, 192, 205, 206, 2 19, 255, 274 br. n. 40, 285, 290, 300, 402', 412, 452, 525, 575, 577, 657, 745, 76 1 , 769, 877 Evil ( Ubel), 329, 802, cf. 98, 450-5 1 , 582, 858 Example (Beispiel), xviii', 5 incl. br. n. 1 6 1 , 1 23, 173-74, 221 , 241 , 269, 290-93, 300 incl. n. 144, 338 n. 124, 347, 359, 37 1 , 372, 415 n. 275, 582, 598, 621, 649, 7W, 740, 743, 757, 776, 854, cf. xiv', xv', xvi, xxii, xxvii incl. br. n. 106, xxxvi, 4, 8, 1 1 , 17, 19 br. n. 235, 40 br. n. 48, 45, 55, 64, 69 n. 178, 94, 100, 1 56 n. 292, 162, 2 1 5 , 237, 298, 353, 354 br. n. 3 1 , 372 br. n. 1 1 5, 377, 3 8 1 br. n. 1 57, 415 br. n. 273b, 478, 535, 597, 720 br. n. 273, 747, 803, see also Illustration Exhibition or exhibit (Darstellung, darstellen), xii incl. br. n. 53, xvii br. n. 73, xxxiii, 8, 17, 26, 38, 56, 84, 9 1 , 94, 105', 1 1 8' br. n. 142, 1 2 1', 147, 1 52, 1 56, 159, 1 68-69, 1 80, 1 8 1 , 1 87, 195, 263, 276 n. 52, 29 1 , 299 br. n. 138, 300 n. 144b, 319, 325, 343 br. n. 1 38, 369', 410, 428, 435, 496, 497, 541, 552, 576, 590, 595, 601 , 705, 739, 74 1-45 incl. br. n. 4 1 , 748, 749, 750 n. 80, 755, 757, 778, 785, 795, 839, 873 Existence or exist(ent) (Existenz, existieren, Dasein, da sein), 5, 13, 19, 20, 58, 7 1 , I l l , 125, 12 1', 164, 1 80, 201 n . 30, 207, 221-22, 225-33 incl. br. n . 82, 243-44, 247, 256, 259, 26 2-64, 272-80 incl. br. n. 40, 288-92, 300-302, 3 1 5, 32 1 , 373,
892
INDEX
374, 405, 366'-67', 384', 402'-3', 409-14, 417-20, 422 n. 288, 443, 446, 447, 455, 461 , 476, 481-83, 495, 502, 509, 5 1 1 , 5 1 6- 1 7, 587-92, 597, 601 , 604, 6 1 2, 6 1 3, 6 16, 6 1 8, 620, 622 incl. br. n. 1 34, 624-3 1 incl. br. ns. 1 5 1 and 170, 635, 638-45, 648, 65 1 , 655, 662, 667, 669, 747, 75 1 , 752 incl. br. n. 87, 793, 855, contrasted with being [SeinJ, 604 br. n. 50; category of, 106, 402 n. 25, 422 n. 288, 629, 403'-4', cf. I l l , 1 84, 302; predicate (concept) of, 626 incl. br. n. 1 6 1 ; cannot be constructed, 22 1 ; a thing's character of, can never be found in the thing's mere concept, 272, cf. 625, 626 br. n. 1 6 1 ; lies within the concept of a possible thing, 624, cf. 629, 752, see also Possibility; magnitude of, is du ration, 226, 262, cf. 4 1 5 n. 275, see also Duration; in (within, at) time(s), xxxix n. 144, 1 84, 207, 2 1 9 incl. br. n. 8, 226-29, 244, 247, 262, 275-77, 300, 402, 4 1 8 incl. br. n. 280, 422, 482, cf. 1 82, 4 14, 455, 46 1 , 472; within a determinate time, is the schema of actuality, 1 84, see also Actuality; at all time, is perma nence, 300, see also Permanence; of an object at all time, is the schema of ne cessity, 1 84, see also Necessity; implies necessary existence, 6 12, 6 1 6, 620, 632-33 incl. br. n. 1 93, 643, 644; necessary (necessity of), 126' br. n. 173, 266, 279-80, 48 1 , 485, 5 16, 533, 587, 588-90, 592, 6 1 2- 1 6, 620, 63 1-36 incl. br. n. 1 93, 639, 640, 643 incl. br. n. 250, 647, 703, 705, 707, 722 incl. n. 289, 752, 820, cf. 502, 62 1 , 622, 66 1 , 70S, 707; contingent (of the contingent), 289-90, 302, 3 1 5, 588, cf. 1 83, 442, 5 17, 533, 587, 589, 6 1 2, 6 14, 663, see also Con tingency; doubtful, 366'-67', 5 19, cf. 377'; preceded by a time wherein a thing is not, is the thing's beginning, 455, 482, cf. 46 1 , 816, see also Beginning; of the manifold in the same time, is simultaneity, 257 incl. br. n. 209, cf. 258-59, 26 1 , 262, 454, see also Simultaneity, Coexistence; sequential, 226, cf. 292; of presentations (perceptions), 1 1 7' n. 1 38, 222, 368', 370', 37 1 ', 5 19; of the mani fold, 201 n. 30; of space and time (nonentities), 56, cf. 59; of matter, 370', 377', 380', 645-46; of the (a) world, 99-100, 454, 532-35, cf. 663, 699; of all things, 7 1 , cf. 447, 454, 530, 589, 601 , 604, 625-29, 663, 68 1 , 699; of objects (bodies, appearance(s), things [as appearances, outside us]), xv, xxxix n. 144, 42, 69, 72, 1 10, 1 20', 1 27', 1 39, 164, 1 99, 2 1 8 n. 1 , 219-21 incl. br. n. 8, 224 ns. 44 and 47, 225, 226, 229, 243, 245, 257 incl. br. n. 209, 26 1 -64, 272-80 incl. n. 52 and br. n. 36, 366'-72', 374' n. 142, 380', 4 1 8, 447, 454, 457 n. 126, 459, 46 1 , 5 19-24 incl. n . 1 20, 533-34 incl. br. n . 1 68, 563, 587-94, 621, 628, 635, 646, 667, 768, 8 1 6, cf. 59, 125, 1 57 n. 296, 247, 260, 404', 443, 645, 663, 707; of appearances, unity therein, see Appearance; of a whole and of parts, 1 12- 13, 533-35, cf. xxiii; of the simple, 462-65; of substance(s) (of what is permanent, enduring), 149, 1 83, 225-30, 25 1-52, 259, 279, 280, 288-89, 292-93, 302, 3 15, 3 3 1 , 409- 1 1 , 4 1 5 n. 275 incl. br. n. 275h, 4 1 7 - 1 8 incI. br. n. 277, 420, 44 1 , 588, 663, 700, cf. xxxix n . 144, 232-33, 4 12, i s subsistence, 230, cf. 288-89, see also Subsistence; of the real in substance, is inherence, 230, cf. 279, 3 15, 415 n. 275, 420, 624, 632, 635, see also Inherence; of thinking beings ([aJ think ing being, my thinking nature), 383', 409, 410, 417- 1 8 incl. br. n. 277, 420, 7 10, cf. 422 n. 288, 428-29; one's own (of the soul, the self, the I, the subject), xxxix n. 1 44, 69, 7 1 , 1 57-58 inel. n. 296, 167, 275-78 incl. br. ns. 46 and 49, 292, 395 n. 222, 402 incl. br. n. 23 and n. 25, 405, 349', 367', 368', 370', 37 1 ', 383', 404', 409-1 5 inc I. ns. 259 and 275, 4 1 7 br. n. 277, 41 8-20, 422 incl. n.
INDEX
893
288, 425-3 1 , 520, 523, 616, 632 inc!. br. n. 1 93, 700, cf. xxviii, 72, 597, 669; of things in themselves (noumena), 164, 346, 369', 373', 380', 391', 422 n. 288, 520-2 1 , 563, 59 1 , cf. 430, 533-34 inc!. br. n. 168, 629, 645, 669, 7 10, 793 ; of ideals, 597; supreme, 722; (divine,) of God (a supreme [highest, original] being [cause, intelligence], a necessary being, an originator [author, ruler] of the world), xxxii-xxxiii, 7 1 -72, 480, 48 1 , 484-88 inc!. br. ns. 252 and 257, 5 16-17, 606-7 inc!. br. n. 60, 6 1 1 , 6 1 3-16, 6 1 8-20, 622, 623, 625-28 inc!. br. ns. and 163, 630-32, 634, 636-40, 642-44, 648 incl. br. n. 274, 653, 655, 657, 658 br. n. 332, 659, 660 inc!. n. 344, 662, 665-69, 703, 704, 721, 722 inc!. br. n. 289, 723 br. n. 300, 729, 769, 773, 7 8 1 , 803, 816, 820, 826, 827 inc!. br. n. 23, 828, 83 1 , 833 br. n. 43, 838 br. n. 73, 839 br. n. 76, 842, 854, 856-58, 882, 883 br. n. 272, see also God; and see Being (Sein), Is-what, Existential, Nonexistence Existential
(Existenzial-), proposition, 442 n. 288, 626; see also Existence or expand or expansive (Erweiterung[s-], erweitern, ausbreiten, ver liingern), xiv', xvii' br. n. 26, xviii', xx', viii, xvi, xxi, xxiv, xxv, xxx, 6, 8-9, 1 1
Expansion
incl. br. n . 194 and n . 200, 12, 1 3 , 18, 21-23, 25 inc!. br. n . 264, 26, 74 br. n. 8, 86, 88, 170, 1 74 inc!. br. n. 37, 1 86 br. n. 136, 206, 249, 254, 255, 296 inc!. br. ns. 1 3 1 and 133, 305 inc!. br. n. 169h, 3 1 2, 328, 343, 344, 352, 380, 382, 354', 361', 366', 379', 382', 398', 410, 425, 426. 435, 436, 453, 490-92, 496, 498, 499 n. 44, 53 \, 545, 550, 596, 619, 620, 629, 638, 649, 65 1, 665, 667, 673, 683, 686, 699, 701, 702, 7 14, 7 1 6, 7 1 8 , 720, 725, 729, 7 3 1 , 736, 737, 739, 740, 764, 772, 793, 795, 798, 8 13, 8 14, 823, 827, 845, 875 n. 240, 879, 883, see also Cognition, Knowledge, Concept, Judgment, Understanding, Reason Experience (Erfahrung), is the sum of all cognition wherein objects may be given to us, 296, see also Cognition; is a cognition of objects, I , 2 1 9, 283, cf. 264, 275, 289,. 5 1 7, see also Object; is objective (objectively valid) cognition (of ap pearances), 246, 722, cf. 234, 5 1 8, 570-7 1 , see also Appearance; is empirical cognition, 147, 165-66, 2 1 8, 234, 277, cf. xvii, 1-3 incl. n. 1 53, 1 1 br. n. 20 1, 58, 1 1 8, 98', 1 24', 155 n. 283, 196, 1 99, 247, 260, 289, 3 14, 401 , 427, 479, 537, 549, 568, 574, 594, 682, 8 3 1 , see also Empirical, A posteriori; is cognition through connected perceptions, 1 6 1 , cf. 1 85, 195, 2 1 4, 2 1 8, 219, 222-23, 260, 269, 376', 550, see also Perception; is (rests on) synthetic unity (combination) of perceptions (intuitions, appearances), 12, 195, 226, 28 1 , cf. 1 1 n. 200 and br. n. 20 1 , 1 2 , 1 10'- 1 2', 1 23', 1 24', 1 27', 1 30', 1 96, 2 1 8 , 273, 282, 296, 364, 370-7 1 , 379', 386', 5 2 1 , 550, 792, see also Unity; contains intuition and thought (a concept), 126, 277, cf. 1 27, 129, 96', I l l ', 1 24'-25', 692, see also Intuition, Thought, Concept; there is only one (a single) (all-encompassing), 1 1 0', 282-84, 6 1 0, cf. xxxix n. 144, 108', 123', 127', 1 85, 28 1 ; all our cognition begins with (but not all arises from), 1 inc!. n. 1 53, cf. 273, 6 1 9, 633, 634, 642, 743, 793, 798; provides no strict (true) universality (apodeictic certainty, necessity), 1 n. 153, 3, 39 n. 37, 47, 1 1 2', 353', 765, cf. 5, 13, 65, 24 1 , 369', 594, 662, see also Universality, Apodeictic, Certainty, Necessity; teaches (tells) us that something is thus or thus (what is), but not that it cannot be otherwise (different), 1 n. 153, 3, 762, cf. 498, 662; is a way of cognizing for which I need (is the [an empiri cal] product of) understanding. xvii, 1 n. 153, 97'-98', cf. 128', 1 30', 244, 296, 363, 383, see also Understanding; the pure concepts of understanding are de-
894
INDEX
veloped on the occasion of, 9 1 , cf. 1 1 8, 241 ; none is unconditioned (bounds any thing absolutely), 383, 542-43, cf. 545, 599, see also Unconditioned; only it can supply the material for (reason's) system of investigation according to prin ciples of unity, 766, cf. 1 n. 153, 359, 363, 660, 69 1 , 696, 700, 7 10, 832; ref erence to (possible), 95', 130', 1 85, 1 87, 196 br. n. 197, 200, 228, 246 br. n. 1 60, 272, 364, 361', 5 2 1 , 524, 670, 8 1 2 br. n. 355, 8 14, cf. 269, 410; possible, 5 17, xiv', xviii n. 77, xix, xx br. n. 86, xxi, xxx, 6, 18 br. n. 233, 19 br. n. 235, 38, 73, 1 2 1 , 127, 95'-96', 1 1 1 ', 1 14'- 16', 1 1 8', 1 19', 127', 148, 166, 1 7 1 , 1 78, 1 85, 1 87, 1 95-97 incl. br. n. 1 97, 199, 2 1 3, 223, 228, 232, 245, 246 inc!. br. n. 1 60, 259, 261 , 267, 273, 280, 28 1 , 283 inc!. bL n. 80, 289, 296, 298, 303, 304, 3 14, 3 15, 345, 352, 357, 363-64, 365, 367, 370, 371 n. 1 10, 383, 396, 406, 361', 369', 380', 382', 395', 405', 410, 423, 426, 435, 447, 453, 465, 490, 494 br. n. 29, 496, 507, 5 1 1 , 5 1 5, 5 1 8, 5 2 1 , 523-25, 537, 541, 544, 549, 550, 555, 563, 566, 568, 570-7 1 , 589, 593, 6 10, 624 n. 148, 633, 638, 649, 663, 664, 666, 667, 670-73 inc!. br. n. 13, 682, 69 1 , 700, 702, 705, 7 1 2, 7 1 4, 724, 725, 730, 7 3 1 , 739, 747, 75 1 , 764 br. n. 149, 765, 770, 778, 779, 78 1 , 794, 799, 809, 8 1 1 , 8 1 2 br. n . 355, 8 14, 8 3 1 , 874, 883; possibility of (of objects of, encountered in), 95'-98', 1 95-97, 2 1 8, 2 1 9, 226, 294, xxxix n. 144, 5, 23, 44, 47, 126, 1 27 n. 48, 101', 107', 1 1 1', 1 15', 1 1 8', 123', 126', 1 28', 1 30', 1 6 1 , 166-68, 206, 214, 228, 234, 244, 247, 258-60, 263, 264, 283, 284, 289, 296, 299, 305 n. 1 69, 323, 365, 375, 377, 401 , 410, 420, 475, 537, 56 1 , 682, 749, 765, 770, 8 1 1 , 833 br. n. 47, 835, see also Possibility; principle(s) (of the possibility) of (all), 56, 1 19', 167, 168, 246 inc!. br. n. 1 60, 289, 294, 4 1 0, 624 n. 148, 809, 835, cf. 1 96, 352, 691 , 692, 749, 814, cf. xxx, 5, 47, 126-27, 1 1 6'-19', 537, 765; law(s) of (possible) (of the possibility of), 1 26', 279, 280, 490, 496, 5 12, 5 16, 5 6 1 , 5 8 6 , 692, 793, 806, 808, cf. 123', 1 6 7 , 5 2 1 , 522; rule(s) of, 5, 283, 490, 69 1 , cf. 2, 47, 1 96, 2 1 9, 524, 548; cause of, 7 1 8; basis prior to all, 1 0 1 '; basis (bases, foundation, ground) of (for the possibility of), 126, 96'-97', 101', 196, 24 1 , 246, 247, 296, 383, 658, 717, cf. 225, 228, 698, 801 ; condition(s) of ([a] possible) (for the possibility of), xxxix n. 144, 44, 54, 126, 1 27 n. 48, 95'-96', 1 07', 1 1 1 ', 1 1 8', 1 6 1 , 178, 196 inc!. br. n. 1 96, 1 97, 241 , 265-67, 269, 27 1 , 272 inc!. br. n. 26, 283, 284, 286, 303, 357, 366, 427, 544, 663, 666, 779, 799, cf. 67, 1 96, 240, 261, 263, 277, 323, 373, 475, 692, 76 1 , 764 br. n. 149, 765, see also Con dition, Space, Time, Categories; form of (possible), 1 1 8, 1 1 0', 1 25' inc!. br. n. 1 67, 128', 1 30', 196, 267-69, 273, 303, 367, 354', 376', cf. 265, 27 1 inc!. br. n. 22, 272 inc!. br. n. 26, 284, 286, 299, 305 n. 169, 666, principles thereof, 196, see also Form; matter of, 1 1 8, 209, 270, cf. 196, 266, 649, see also Matter; el ements of (a possible), 1 1 8, 95', 1 25', cf. 1 n. 1 53, 1 9 br. n. 235, 1 1 1', 222, 76 1 ; manifold in (of) ( a possible), 34, 682; partes) of, 1 1 n. 200, 1 2, 279, 282, 5 15, 524, 673; (as a) whole (of) (possible), 12, 1 85, 367, 378, 610, 628-29, cf. 283, 548, 5 6 1 , 67 1 , 673, 722; sum of (possible), 465; complete, 1 1 n. 200, cf. 524; unity of, see Unity; coherence of, 279, 283, 377', 379', 400', 475, 523, cf. 5 2 1 ; context o f ([a] possible), 282, 6 1 0, 628, 700, cf. 273; sphere of (possible), 8, 28 1 , cf. 790; terrain of, 7; level of, 735; realm of (possible), 6, 13, 95', 229, 280, 2 8 1 , 304, 393', 395', 43 1 , 453, 49 1 , 56 1 , 629, 638, 664, 670, 7 1 5, 724, 725, 730, 78 1 , 790, 799, 832, cf. 382', 765, 788, 803; appearances in, 1 10', see
INDEX
895
also Appearance; application (applicability) to (objects of), 199, 206, 266, 690, 724, cf. 367; object(s) of (possible) ([things] that can be given in, that we can encounter in), 52 1 , 523, 524, 548, 570-7 1 , 633, 722, xvii-xix inc!. br. ns. 73, 75, and n. 77, xxvi, xxvii, xxx, 1 , 11 n. 200, 12, 19 br. n. 235, 34 br. n. 16, 5 1 , 73, 8 1 inc!. br. n . 52, 1 26, 127, 95'-96', 106', 1 1 1 ', 1 14', 1 15', 1 1 8', 1 26'-28', 146, 148, 1 6 1 , 165, 166, 1 80, 195 incl. br. n. 1 9 1 , 197, 206, 209, 2 19, 225, 232, 234, 247, 252, 258, 259, 261 , 263, 27 1 inc!. b� n. 22, 272, 283, 289, 298, 303, 308, 3 1 3, 359, 365, 367, 37 1 inc!. n. 1 10, 372, 356', 360', 380', 393', 400', 403', 410, 421 , 424, 427, 43 1 , 449, 465, 47 1 , 499, 507, 5 14, 5 1 8, 5 1 9, 544, 545, 594, 6 17-18, 648-50, 663, 664, 673 inc!. br. n. 29, 693, 698, 699, 702, 705, 724, 770, 793, 794, 799, 803, 8 1 1 , 8 14, 8 16, 827, 873, see also Object, Given, Cat egories; and objects of, are the same, xvii inc!. br. ns. 73 and 75, 1 9 br. n. 235, cf. I l l ', 1 24', 197, 206, 2 1 8, 259-60, 765, 799, 8 6 ; concept(s) of (a possible), 95', 566, 8 12; character of, 642, cf. 699, see also Character; formula of, 405'; anticipation of, see Anticipation; magnitude of (a possible), 544, 55 1 ; analogies of, see Analogy; as such, xxxix n. 144, 5, I l l ', l l5', 1 25' inc!. br. n. 1 67, 1 65, 167, 197, 267-69, 27 1 , 272, 278-79, 283, 303, 357, 40 1 , 465, 524, 638, 642, 660, 663, cf. 1 10', 648; common(est), ix', xiv, 377', 492, 6 1 2, see also Com mon; general, 39 n. 37, 63; determinate, xx' inc!. br. n. 34, 6 1 8 , 648, cf. 694, 794; indeterminate, 6 1 8 ; direct, 275, 276, 864; indirect, 277; inner, xxxix n. 144, 53, 66, 275-79, 400-401 , 382', 403', 5 19, 700, 7 1 8, presupposes outer (and vice versa), xxxix n. 144, 275-79, cf. 401 , see also Inner, Outer; outer, xxxix n. 144, 38, 39 n. 37, 44, 66, 196, 206 inc!. br. n. 66, 27 1 , 275-79, 405, 357', 360'; sup posed (alleged), 279, 635 ; actual, 1 8 br. n. 233, 124', 195, 1 96 br. n. 1 97, 245, 269, 279, 367, 426, 555, 7 3 1 , 778, 794, cf. 2, 270, 479, 638, see also Actual; partiCUlar (circumstances of), 1 1 7' n. 1 38, 173, cf. 1 98, 240; occasion of, 9 1 ; course of, vii', 1 67, 658, 788; progression of, 521 ; advance of, 5 2 1 , 524, cf. 549-50; basic, 2 1 3 ; expansion of, 537; chain of, 523, cf. 260-6 1 , 664; addition of, 165, cf. 876; ascension from, 366, cf. 544; guide of, see Guidance; aid of, 740; appeal to, 373; inference from, 367, 586, 632-33, cf. 638; abstraction from, 1 1 n. 200, 12, 38, 46, 56, 57, 426, 6 1 8, cf. 24 1 , 633, see also Abstraction; ex ample from, 269, 338 n. 124, 347, 709, 743, 854, cf. 1 23, 241 , see also Ex ample; data of (for), 298, 323, cf. 377'; derivation Uustification, teaching, in struction, information, borrowing) by (from, through), vii', xiv, 1 n. 1 53, 2, 3, 6, 12, 39 n. 37, 47, 1 17- 1 8, 1 27, 1 1 2', 2 1 3 , 401', 498, 499 n. 44, 56 1 , 660, 685, 787, 794, 827, 882, cf. xiv', xx', xxxix n. 144, 2, 14, 18, 20, 38, 47, 57, 58, 77, 87, 1 1 9-20, 1 26, 96', 126', 1 55 n. 283, 165-67, 1 80, 209, 2 1 5 , 2 1 8, 228 br. n. 64, 241 , 258, 260, 262, 263, 267, 269, 270, 272, 278, 295, 356, 37 1 , 373, 375, 378, 395 n. 222, 400, 349', 353', 361', 4 1 5 n. 275, 452, 453, 465, 479, 5 1 2, 546, 555, 568, 577, 593, 594, 605, 6 1 8, 6 19, 629, 630, 648, 662, 665, 669, 678, 690, 696, 705, 709, 7 10, 741 , 743, 749, 750 n. 80, 757, 766, 789, 791-93, 798, 799, 801 , 8 1 3, 83 1 , 834, 853, 854, 864, 87 1 , 876, see also Derivation, justification; confirmation (or refutation) by (in), xiv, 449, 691 , cf. 367, 65 1 , 658, see also Confirmation, Refutation; agreement with (of), 1 15, 166, cf. 265-66, 284, 490, 7 17; testimony of, xxvi n. 103, 1 1 ; touchstone of, 738, cf. viii'; proof(s) by (from, through, based on), xxvi n. 103, 1 16- 17, 1 22, 2 1 4, 275, 372, 765, 806, 830,
896
INDEX
657, cf. 619, 633, 634, 642, 648, 8 3 1 , see also Proof; use in (in the realm of, the midst ot) (regarding), viii', 159, 295, 378, 383, 544, 65 1 , 690, 720, 799, 8 1 4, 825, 844, cf. 264, 277, 545, 6 10, 693-94; reflection upon, 1 17, see also Reflec tion; mean of, 598; boundary (bounds) of, see Boundary; coasts of, 396'; pos sible, realm beyond all bounds of, 1 2 1 , cf. 305 n. 169, 638, 667, 7 8 1 , 797; ob jects (things) that cannot occur (be given) in any (cannot be objects ot), xviii, xxx, 6, 52, 96', 303, 367, 384, 465, 490, 494 br. n. 29, 5 10, 5 1 1 , 538, 56 1 , 594, 630, 662-64, 689, 699, 705, 709, 799, cf. 45, 28 1 , 283, 3 1 5, 370, 37 1 , 375, 361', 4 1 0, 427, 436, 475, 499, 507, 5 15, 541, 545, 549, 570-7 1 , 649, 665-66, 690-9 1 , 696, 7 1 2, 793, 800, see also Thing in itself, Noumenon; effects of ideas in, 576; use independent of, 1 1 7, 1 19; principles that go beyond the bounds of, see Principle; is the mother of illusion in regard to moral laws, 375; see also Experiential, Apprehension, Judgment, Proposition, Reality, Nature, Reason Experiential (Erfahrungs-, der Erfahrung), distinguished from empirical, 1 1 br. n. 201 , see also Empirical, A posteriori; bases, 850; sources, 2; use of our cogni tive power, 277; use of reason, 2 1 ; use of (our) understanding, 264, 545, 610, 693-94; use of the categories, 4 1 5 n. 275; determination, 794 inc I. br. n. 280; concept(s), 5, 27 1 , 357, 450, 5 15, 525, 594, 595, 708, 7 10; cognition(s), xx, 1 , 56, 1 26, 1 97, 384, 500, 699; judgments, 1 1-12; propositions, 399'; object, 126, 699; test, viii'; see also Experience Experiment (Experiment, Versuch), xi, xii br. n. 56, xiii incl. n. 61 and br. n. 62, xvi, xviii incl. n. 77 and br. n. 78, xx, xxi n. 87, xxxviii, 356', 452 incI. br. n. 105, 756 Expert (Kenner), v, xviii', xxxiii, 8 1 1 Explanation or explain (Erkliirung, erkliiren), 755 br. n . 107, xii incl. br. n . 59, xvi, xix, xxxix n. 144, 19, 49, 59, 1 14, 1 17, 1 19, 120, 127, 1 10', 145, 1 52, 1 59, 193, 2 14- 1 6, 250, 274 br. n. 36, 300 br. n. 143, 3 1 3, 402 n. 25, 405, 387', 389', 390', 4 1 5 n. 275, 427 br. n. 301 , 432, 470, 472, 478, 493, 494, 499 n. 44, 500, 504, 505, 5 10- 1 2, 573, 574, 578, 590, 609, 642, 644, 647, 674, 69 1 , 700, 705, 707, 7 10, 7 1 1 , 7 13, 7 1 5 n. 250 and br. n. 25 1 , 7 1 8, 800-1 , 802 br. n. 3 14, 826, 849, 854 incl. br. n. 140; basis of, see Basis; see also Explication Explication or explicate (Erkliirung, Explikation, erkliiren, explizieren), 300-302 incl. n. 1 44 and br. n. 144f, 755 n. 105 and br. n. 107, 757-59 inc I. br. n. 1 1 8, 40-41 , 82, 92, 109, 128, 126', 140-4 1 , 1 7 1 , 266, 303 n. 1 57, 355-56, 379 inc I. br. n. 1 50, 382 br. n. 1 66, 398', 420, 422, 427, 598, 599, 620-2 1 , 638, 66 1 , 749, 764, 862, 864, cf. 568, see also Definition, Explanation Exposition (Exposition, Erorterung, Darstellung), xii br. n. 53, xvii br. n. 73, 37 incl. br. n. 28, 38, 40, 757-58, xvii', ix, xxix, xxxviii, xlii-xliii, 44, 46, 48, 78, 98', 1 52 inc I. br. n. 275, 177, 249, 303, 305 n. 169, 396', 409', 443, 465, 492, 493, 5 10, 536, 636, 869, cf. vii' br. n. 5, 364, 432, 443, 642, 754, 849, 870 Extensive (extensiv), see Magnitude External (iiufJer[lich)), xxxix n. 144, 43-45 inc I. n. 65, 55, 66, 69 inc I. n. 178, 99, 1 20, 98', 1 06', 1 54 incI. br. n. 282, 275-78 incl. n. 52, 293, 357', 36 1 ', 362' incI. br. ns. 95 and 97, 366'-7 1', 373', 378' incl. br. n. 157, 384', 390'-9 1 ', 4 1 4, 417, 4 1 8, 457 n. 1 26 incl. br. n. 126a, 459 incl. br. n. 1 32, 463, 464, 47 1 , 509, 5 19 n. 1 20, 5 8 1 , 695, 700, 744 incl. br. ns. 52 and 53, 844, 848, 861 incl. br. n.
INDEX
897
160, 874; see also Outer, Extrinsic, Internal, Ohject, Thing, Appearance, Rela tion, Cause (Ursache), Condition, Connection, World, Ohserver, Contingency, Purpose Extrasensih1e (aufJersinnlich), ohject, see Ohject; see also Nonsensih1e, Sensih1e Extrinsic (iiufJer[lichD, 90, 3 1 7, 321-23, 330-3 1 , 333, 336 hr. n. 1 09, 339-41 inc!. hr. n. 126, 352', 428, 434 hr. n. 1 59, 464 hr. n. 1 65, 623, see also External, Re lation, Intrinsic Faculty (Vennogen, Kraft), see Power Fading out (Elangueszenz), 4 1 4, cf. xlii Faith (Glaube), 848-59 inc!. hr. ns. 1 1 3, 1 28, 1 29, 1 50, 1 53, and n. 1 5 1 , vii' inc!. hr. n. 6, xxx hr. n. 1 22, xxxiii, xxxix n. 1 44, 498, 502, 652, 66 1 , 773, 808; lack of, xxx inc!. hr. n. 1 24, xxxiv, cf. 66 1 ; see also Belief, Confidence, Trust Fanaticism (Schwiirmerei), xxxiv, 1 28, 297 hr. n. 1 34, 847, cf. 295 inc!. hr. n. 1 29, 42 1 , see also Rave Fatalism (Fatalismus), xxxiv, see also Fate Fate (Schicksal), vii', xiv, 9, 1 1 7, 280 inc!. hr. n. 7 1 , 282 inc!. hr. n. 76, 49 1 , 7 17 n. 265, 778, 795, see also Fatalism Feeling (Gefohl), see Pleasure and displeasure Field (Feld, Fach), 27, 42 1 , 452, 755, 77 1 , 875 n. 240, 877, 883, see also Realm Figurative (jigiirlich), 1 5 1-52, 154 inc!. hr. n. 282, 292, see also Figure Figure (Figur), xii, 65, 141 n. 230, 1 8 1 , 268, 27 1 , 287, 348, 359, 403' inc!. hr. n. 237, 4 1 1 inc!. hr. n. 258, 528 inc!. hr. n. 148, 541 hr. n. 209, 606, 74 1 , 744, see also Shape, Figurative, Construction, Geometry, Syllogistic Final (End-), see Aim, Cause (Ursache), Purpose Findlay, J. N., 35 hr. n. 22, 92 hr. n. 1 2 1 , 1 16 hr. n. 1 , 95' hr. n. 58, 1 29 hr. n. 1 84, 176 hr. n. 46, 202 hr. n. 35, 207 hr. n. 70, 2 1 8 hr. n. 3, 224 hr. n. 46, 232 hr. n. 88, 256 hr. n. 206, 265 hr. n. 1 , 274 hr. n. 38, 294 hr. n. 1 25, 349 hr. n. 1 , 399 hr. n. 9, 435 hr. n. 22, 595 hr. n. I , 670 hr. n. I Finite (endlich), 72, 455, 5 1 1 , 5 1 5, 530-34, 538, 542, 548, see also Infinity, Non infinite First Introduction to the Critique ofJudgment (Erste Einleitung zur Kritik der Urteils kraft), see Critique of Judgment Follow (upon) (folgen), ix', vii-x, xii, xiii inc!. n. 6 1 , xix, xxi, xxii, xxvi, xxxii, xxxv, xxxvi, xxxix n. 144, 2, 9, 1 5 , 1 8, 26, 35 n. 23, 37 hr. n. 28, 39, 53, 54 n. 1 17, 55, 59, 66, 70, 89, 92, 94-96, 98, 99, 105, 1 1 3, 120, 1 24, 98'-100', 102', 1 1 2'- 1 3', 1 1 9', 1 23', 167, 170, 1 83, 1 84, 200, 209, 230, 232-34, 239-40, 243-47, 253, 255-57, 259, 261 , 278, 280, 283, 288, 289, 291 , 292, 298, 300, 304, 305 inc!. n. 169, 339, 348, 350, 365, 371 n. 1 10, 373, 375, 386, 387, 392, 402 inc!. n. 25, 350', 365', 367', 376', 377', 388', 389', 397', 401', 406, 4 1 0, 4 1 1 n . 259, 414, 4 1 8, 419, 424, 432, 433, 449, 460, 464, 465, 472, 477, 478, 486, 494, 496, 526, 527, 534, 535, 543, 549, 553, 560, 563, 565, 573, 576, 577, 588, 589, 593, 595, 6 1 0, 617, 6 1 8, 632, 633, 644-46, 648, 649 hr. n. 280, 653, 675, 686, 690, 69 1 , 701, 7 1 5 , 7 1 7 n. 265, 72 1 , 744, 758, 762, 763, 789, 794, 8 1 8, 832, 850, 859, 873, 88 1-83, see also Succeed, Follower Follower (Nachfoiger), 207 hr. n. 67, 329, see also Successor, Follow
898
INDEX
Force (Kraft), xvii', xxii n. 93, 9, 1 1 br. n. 194, 35, 67, 77, 108, 249, 250, 252, 269, 321 , 329 incl. br. n. 70, 330, 347, 350-5 1 , 386', 478, 492, 496, 562, 584, 619 incl. br. n. 1 16, 635, 64 1 , 650, 65 1 , 662 inc!. br. n. 354, 665, 674 inc!. br. n. 36, 676, 678, 679, 690, 69 1 , 7 1 0 br. n. 232, 750, 798 incl. br. n. 299, 806, 8 12-13, 843, cf. xii' br. n. 16, 6, 6 1 5 , 617, 63 1 , 72 1 br. n. 283 , 772, see also Power Forefathers (Urviiter), 540 Form(s) (Form[en]), 3 17, 322-24, 84, 1 27 n. 48, 600, 824, logica1, 79, 84, 97, 105, 95', 1 17' n. 1 38, 140, 1 75, 298, 305 n. 169, 3 1 8, 326, 346, 362, 377, 386, 599, 600, 688 incl. br. n. 127, cf. 80, 85, 267, 303 n. 157, 824; discursive, 283; pure, 34, 36, 44 n. 65, 47, 50, 56, 60, 1 20, 1 2 1 , 1 1 8', 1 29, 140, 148, 156, 305, 306; (given) a priori, 1 57 n. 296, 164, 194, cf. 196, 245, 268, 7 1 2; empirical, 128', 609; sensible, 306, 344, 369'; subjective, 72, 343, 361'; objective, 267; 1aw governed, 128'; constant, 163; permanent, 224; intellectual, 129', 367; intelli gible, 332; essential, 206, 264, 322; original, 58, 169, 324; matter as a mere, 385'; continuity of, 686, 687 inc!. br. n. 1 23, 689; vacuum of, 687 incl. br. n. 122; of (for) concepts, 95', 106', 146, 298, 303 n. 1 57, 305 n. 1 69, 3 1 8, 361', 597, 759, cf. 705 br. n. 2 13; of perception, 59-60; of judgments, 105, 1 1 1- 12, 140, 322, 378, 348', 406, 736, cf. 97, 358, 737; of syllogisms (inferences of rea son), 378, 390, 393, 399, cf. 86 br. n. 76, 1 0 1 br. n. 1 7 1 , 357, 398', 8 1 7 br. n. 384; of truth, 84; of an inquiry, xv', cf. xxxvii; of a conflict, 499; of something third, 264; of apperception, 354'; of a condition, 65 ; of time, 579; of space, 162; of magnitude, 201 inc!. br. ns. 27 and 28, cf. 745 ; of quality, 201 inc!. br. ns. 27 and 28; of relation(s), 270, 332; of changes, 252, 255; of the connection of things, 332; of things, 45, 7 1 , 322; of things in themselves, 45, 56, 7 1 , cf. 147, 563; of matter, 228, cf. 385'; of nature, 645 ; of (in) the world, see World; of a whole, 673, 860; of a system, 109; of a system of purposes, 844; of reason, 170, 353, cf. 77; of the existence of things themselves, 563; see also Sense, Sensi bility, Intuition, Presentation, Thought, Understanding, Cognition, Experience, Appearance, Object, Space, Time, Categories Form and Principles . . , see On the Form and Principles . . . Formal (formal), see Logic, Necessity, Possibility, Condition, Basis, Conscious ness, Cognition, Intuition, Concept, Principle, Rule, Unity, Relation, Idealism, Interest, Understanding, Reason Formative (formativ), 271 .
Formula
(Formel), 19, 173, 205, 206, 222, 224, 299, 354', 405', 490, 491 Foundations of the Metaphysics of Morals, see Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals
Frederichs, Friedrich, 274 br. n. 36 Frederick the Great, iii br. n. 2 Frederick William II, iii br. n. 2 Freedom (Freiheit), is a cause's unconditioned causality in the realm of appear ance, 447, cf. 475, 497, 5 86, 5 89, 653, 660, see also Cause (Ursache), Causal ity (through freedom); is (a cause ' s) absolute self-activity, 446, cf. 473. 475, 476, 486, see also Activity; transcendental (power of, idea of), 473. 474-76 inc!. br. n. 223, 479, 561-62, 586, 8 3 1 , cf. 829-30; in the transcendental (cosmologi cal) meaning of the term, is a special kind of causality according to which the
INDEX
899
events in the world could happen, 473, cf. xxviii-xxix, 475, 478, 479, 5 6 1 , 570, 586, viz., a power (of reason) to begin spontaneously (on its [one's] own) a se ries of successive things or states (a state, events), 476, 561-62, 582, cf. 473-75, 476, 478, 479, 486, 497, 5 16, 569, 580, 586, 73 1 , 83 1 , 835, see also Sponta neity, Activity (self-), Reason; completes the sequence of appearances on the side of the causes, 474; idea of, contains nothing borrowed from, and cannot be given detenninately in, (any) experience, 5 6 1 , cf. 828; possibility of, 586, 5 6 1 , 562, 564, cf. 654; actuality of, 5857 86; study of, 847; doctrine of, 477; o f the will (a free will as such, [pure] reason, the soul, the subject), xxvii, xxviii, xxxii, 79, 43 1 , 476, 490, 494, 496, 503, 569, 579-8 1 , 583, 659 br. n. 342, 661 br. n. 345, 723 br. n. 300, 772, 773, 826, 827 br. n. 23, 830, cf. 49 1 , 666, 679, 7 13, 766, 841 , see also Will; of (our power of) choice, 1 0 1 , 562 inc!. br. n. 284, 807 br. n. 329, 828, 836, see also Choice-power of; power of (acting from), 478, 479; action through, 653; of (detennination of) action, 494, 569, 579, 5 8 1 , 585 inc!. br. n. 360, 654, 83 1 , 835, cf. 807, see also Action; causality of (through, from), 472, 560, 561 , 566, 586, cf. 580, 660, 83 1 ; rule of, 660; generation (pro duction) from, 509, 5 1 6, cf. 497; in the negative and in the positive sense, 58 1-82 inc!. br. n. 345; transcendental idea of, is the basis of the practical con cept of, 5 6 1 , cf. 562; whatever is possible through, is practical, 828, cf. 830, see also Practical; practical, 561-62, 830, cf. 829, is the independence of our power of choice from coercion by impulses of sensibility, 562, cf. 497, 828, see also Independence; is lawless, 597, cf. 479; consciousness of, xxxii; cognition (and knowledge) of, xxviii, 723 br. n. 300, 83 1 ; can be proved through experience, 830, cf. 83 1 , but remains a problem, 83 1 , cf. xxix-xxx, 476 br. n. 223; decep tion of, 475, cf. 503, 564, 565, 57 1 , 78 1 ; is, along with God and immortality, a problem (question) (of reason), 7, 778, cf. xxx, 395 n. 222, 723 br. n. 300, 773, 7 8 1 , 826, 827 br. n. 23, 828, 83 1 ; its effects in the world of sense, 565, 57 1 , 576, 586, 835, cf. xxviii, 43 1 , 447, 473, 474, 476, 478, 479, 579 n . 339, 773, 830; realm of, 7 1 3, cf. 7 8 1 ; contrasted (and reconciled) with natural necessity (nature, its [causal] law[s], its mechanism, its order), 473, 475, 560-86 inc!. n. 339, xxvii-xxix incl. br. ns. 1 1 7 and 1 1 9, xxxii-xxxiii, 446, 447 inc!. br. n. 74, 478, 479, 49 1 , 494, 497, 503, 509, 589-90, 653, 654, 659-60, 773, 826, 8 3 1 , 843, 868, see also Nature, Necessity; cannot be saved, i f appearances are things in themselves, 564, cf. 565, 5 7 1 ; essence of, 844; in the strictest sense, is pre supposed by (is the basis of) morality (whatever is practical, the necessary prac tical use of my reason), xxviii-xxx inc!. br. ns. 1 15 and 1 1 9, 3 7 1 , 496, cf. 37 1 , 8 3 1 , see also Morality, Moral; system of, 843; moral (practical, objective) laws of, 79, 475, 830, cf. 834-38, 843 ; can sunnount any stated boundary, 374, cf. 830; from a (any) condition, 486, 490, 5 8 1 , cf. 585; from sense (from all con ditions of sensible intuition), 305 n. 169, 3 1 5, 338 n. 124, 666, cf. 486, 562, 569, 578, 585, 5 9 1 ; from all interest, 858; from any private aim, 84 1 ; from ex trinsic relations, 330; greatest human, according to laws through which the free dom of each can coexist with that of the others, 373-74 inc!. br. n. 1 19, cf. 780, 836; of citizens, 766, cf. 358; of thought (thinking), xlii-xliii, 2 1 5 , 305 n. 169, 780, cf. ii br. n. 1, xi' n. 14, xvii', xxxiv-xxxv, 453, 535, 679, 766, 7 8 1 , 805-6, 880; of rational beings (as such), 834-36; of an intelligible being, 590, cf. 59 1 ,
900
INDEX
653, 659-61 inc!. br. ns. 342 and 345; from contradiction, 190, cf. 345, 769; from dogmatic deception, 395'; from error(s) (misunderstanding), 25, 1 89, 656 br. n. 3 1 8; of substituting hyperphysical for physical bases of explanation, 801 ; in the realm of appearances, for mathematical assertions, 57; in the use of lan guage, xliv; of the categories (pure concepts of understanding), 9 1 , 148, 435; psychological concept of, 476 inc!. br. n. 222, cf. 563; from care, 376; of con fessing ignorance, 383'; of (a talent's) movement, 738; in flight, 8 Function(s) (Funktion[en]), is the unity of the act of arranging various presenta tions under one common presentation, 93, 303 n. 157, see also Unity; underlie concepts, 93, cf. 1 87, 298; of unity among our presentations, all judgments are, 94, see also Judgment; of unity in judgments, 94, cf. 104; (logical,) of subject and predicate, 1 29, 43 1 ; (logical, of thought), in (of) judgment(s) Gudging), 95, 105, 128, 1 3 1 , 143 inc!. br. n. 239, 146, 300 n. 144, 303 n. 1 57, 349', 429, cf. 100 n. 166, 1 1 1 , 123, 1 29, 1 59, 305 n. 169, 342, 406, 428, 430, are the catego ries, 143, 349', 429, 432, cf. 105, 300 n. 144, 303 n. 157, 305 n. 169, 407, 430, see also Judgment, Categories; special, of judgments, modality as, 99-100, cf. 1 0 1 ; of the power of judgment, 169, 304; of (the) understanding, 75, 94, 98, 100 n. 1 66, 103-5 inc!. br. n. 1 83, 122, 169, 179, 1 87, 303 n. 1 57, 351 n. 16, are the categories, 105, cf. 143, 300 n. 144, 303 n. 1 57, 305 n. 169, 349', 407, 429, 430, 432; corresponding to inner sense, the unity of apperception as, 185; (universal,) of synthesis (synthetic unity), 105', 1 1 2', 349', 356', cf. 104-5, 108', 109', 120' n. 1 50, 303 n. 1 57, 429; of sensibility, 75; transcendental (intellec tual), of the (pure, productive) imagination, 1 23'-24', 205; of the unity of the schema, 224; of the mind, 109'; (logical, practical,) of reason, 100 n. 166, 169, 356, 378, 386, 392; of the soul, 103 Future (kiinftig, Zukunft), 732, 806, 880, cf. 7 1 7 br. n. 265a, time, xxxi, 228, 229, 437; events, 270, cf. 438; endeavors, 792, cf. 285; system of pure reason, 249, cf. 880; system of metaphysics, xxxvi, cf. xliii; judgments, 1 68; errors, 732; world, 828, 839, 856; changes of the world, 394; generations, 1 n. 153; state of the soul (of ourselves), 400', 827, cf. 855, see also Soul; life, xxxii, 424, 770, 773, 7 8 1 , 8 3 1 , 839 inc!. br. n. 77, 855-58, see also Immortality, Life Galileo Galilei, xii inc!. br. n. 56 Garnett, Christopher B., 37 br. n. 27 Gather(ing) together (Zusammennehmung, -nehmen), 99', 552, 555, contrasted with collating and with assembly, 1 14 br. n. 239 Genealogy
(Genealogie), of metaphysics, ix', see also Tree-genealogical
General(ly) or in general ([all]gemein, iiberhaupt), xxvii br. n. 106, cf. 682, 87 1 , sensibility, 62, 89, 92 br. n . 122; the senses (outer sense), 4 1 , 59; presentation, 546, 557, 741 br. n. 32; (possible, sensible) intuition(s), 34, 8 1 br. n. 53, 1 76, 305 n. 169; (empirical, sensible) concept(s), 109', 1 80, 181 br. n. 90, 569, 680, 682, 688, cf. 399; conception, 29, cf. 103, 1 04; (pure) synthesis (unity), 104, 1 05 ; cognition, 24, cf. xxxix n. 144, 586, 790, 827, 87 1 ; experience, 63, 1 10', cf. 283 ; possibility, 22 hr. n. 25 1 ; time, 47; spaces, 39; something, 1 04' br. n. 90; existence, 7 1 , cf. 747; nature, 7 12 inc!. br. n. 236; appearances, 46, 50, 5 1 , cf. 568, 646, see also Appearance; validity, 96 , cf. 1 98; objects, see Object;
INDEX
90 1
things, see Thing; properties of things, 680; the, and the particular, 680, 682 hr. n. 86, 872; what happens, 1 3; cause(s), 77, 288; heing, that can he thought, 4 1 1 ; the suhject, 69 n . 178; root of our cognitive power, 863; (use of) (human) rea son, xxxviii, xxxix n. 144, cf. xxx, 563; understanding, 76, 1 37; judgment, 57 1 ; principle(s), 2 1 8 n . 1 , 220, 683, 87 1 ; laws, 655 incl. hr. n . 3 1 2 , 678, cf. 7 1 6, 788; (human) philosophy, 9 1 ; natural science, 2 1 3 ; physics, 875 n. 240 incl. hr. n. 240a; mechanics, 329; dynamics, 202; mathematics, 1 7 ; logic, see Logic; ar gument forms, 86 hr. n. 76; conclusions, 624; prohlem (question), 19, 22, 73, 398'; procedure, 582; theory, 49; doctrines, 7 3 1 ; exposition, 396'; order of the scientific community, 879; comment(s) (remar� notice), 59, 99', 288 incl. hr. n. 97, 293 hr. n. 1 2 1 , 301 hr. n. 147, 308, 360', 406, 412, 428, 552; indication, 689; name, 1 30, cf. xxi n. 87, 103, 105, 1 30 hr. n. 1 90, 1 37, 536 hr. n. 1 74; idea, 877; happiness, 837, 879; good, 7 1 7 hr. n. 265a; human heings, 62, cf. xi hr. n. 52, 1 hr. n. 152; indifference, 845; distrust, 795; contempt, 877; tracing of a shape, 1 80; see also As such, Universal, Genus, Particular Generatio aequivoca, 167 incl. hr. n. 326, 863, see also Generation Generation(s) (Hervorbringung, Erzeugung, Zeugungen), 1 67 incl. hr. n. 326, 204, 509, 5 1 6 incl. hr. n. 1 13, 7 1 1 incl. hr. n. 234, cf. ix', 1 n. 1 53, 106, 630; future, 1 n. 153; see also Generatio aequivoca, Production, Freedom Genus or genera (Gattung[en]), 336 hr. n. 1 15, 376, 605, 68 1 , 683, 684, 686 incl. hr. n. 1 19, 687, concept of, 682; unity of, 683, 691 ; (logical) principle (law) of, 682, 683 hr. n. 90; related to families, species, suhspecies, 679-80, 683, 684, 687, cf. 336 hr. n. 1 15, 686 incl. hr. n. 1 1 9; higher (highest, universal), 685-87; original, 687, 688; see also Species, Specification, General Geometric(al) (geometrisch), concept(s), 1 76, cf. 1 20, 207; construction(s), 39 n. 37, 745-47, 762, see also Construction; figures, 606, cf. 268, 287, 359, see also Figure; ohject(s), 8 1 hr. n. 52, 27 1 incl. hr. n. 2 1 ; propositions, 16- 1 7, 37 hr. n. 28, 4 1 , 64, 205, 621-22, 764, 803, cf. 65-66, 105', 201 n. 30, 204, 206-7, 287, 299, 3 17, 356, 359, 539; principles, 1 6, 39 incl. n. 37 and hr. n. 39; demonstra tions, xi, see also Demonstration; determination, 8 1 ; cognition, 1 20, see also Cognition; see also Geometry Geometry (Geometrie, MejJkunst), 40, 204, 207, 745, xi hr. n. 52, 37 hr. n. 28, 39 n. 37 and hr. n. 39, 4 1 , 64, 65, 1 20, 1 55 n. 283, 1 60 n. 305, 205-6, 621, 755 incl. hr. n. 101 , 764, 803, cf. xxii, 16, 744, 754 hr. n. 98; pure, 16, 8 1 hr. n. 52, cf. 120, 176, 74 1-54, 764; possihility of, 4 1 ; as a science, see Science; its re lation to philosophy, 754-55, cf. 741-53; see also Geometric, Mathematics, Tri angle Given (gegeben), to he given an ohject is to refer the presentation of it to (actual or at least possihle) experience, 195 incl. hr. n. 1 88, cf. 194, see also Experi ence; to he given a priori in intuition is to he constructed, 750, see also Con struction; and givahle, 437-38 incl. hr. n. 29, 540 incl. hr. n. 198; concept(s), 10, 17-18, 38, 40, 64, 73, 1 14, 1 3 1 , 193, 194, 269, 289, 3 10, 317, 322, 335, 384, 550, 598, 672, 749, 750, 752, 756-59, 765, 794, 8 1 1 , 8 1 3 ; presentationes), 37 hr. n. 28, 47, 48, 67, 74, 80, 93, 102, 103, 1 15', 1 1 8' hr. n. 142, 1 29, 1 30, 1 32-37, 142, 143, 150, 202, 3 16, 3 1 8, 325, 409, 452 n. 245, 480, 522; sensa tion, 209, 210, 2 1 8, 374', cf. 208; (possihle) intuition(s), xxvi, xxxix n. 144, 8,
902
INDEX
64, 132, 1 34, 1 35, 137, 1 38, 143-46, 149, 1 5 1 , 153, 160 n. 305, 1 6 1 , 203 , 22 1 , 288, 304, 3 1 1 , 324, 406, 409, 422, 457 n . 126, 467, 496, 520, 537, 585, 747, 748, 750 incl. n. 80, 753, 762; perception(s), 222, 279, 282, 40 1 , 367', 5 2 1 , 546, 548; advance from one perception to others, 52 1 ; possibility of an object, 757; the (something) real (reality [-ies]), 338, 397, 375', 422 n. 288, 5 17, 608-10, 630; impenetrable extension, 398'; matter, 34, 379', 398', 541, 609, 610, 7 5 1 , cf. 1 45, 374', 375', 415 n . 275; fonn(s) (of intuition, appearances), 42, 126', 1 57 n. 296, 324; time, 46, 48, 1 57 n. 296, 160 n. 305, 239, 324, 369', cf. 437, 454, 460, 5 16; space, 39 n. 43, 160 n. 305, 324, 369', 439, cf. 44 1 ; degree, 22 1 ; mag nitude, 39 inc!. n. 43, 2 10, 458, cf. 547; quantum, 454; unit(s), 458, 460 inc!. n. 139; multitude, 554; manifold, 68, 103, 1 04, 1 29, 1 30 br. n. 1 90, 1 32-36, 1 38-40, 143-45 inc!. n. 244, 1 53, 1 57-59 inc!. n. 296, 160 n. 305, 203, 306, 460, 466, cf. 1 5 ; schema, 692, 7 10, cf. 693; combination (synthesis, unity, co herence), 1 n. 153; 1 1 n. 200, 1 14', 1 20', 1 30, 160 n. 305, 1 6 1 , 453, 507, 527, 528, 67 1 , 675, 708, 709; experience, 401 , 649, 673; empirical consciousness, 2 1 8; cognition(s), 2 1 , 99, 1 4 1 , 362, 371 n. 1 1 0 , 388, 708, 864, cf. 735; knowl edge, 252; judgments, 36 1 , 386; propositions, 748; something (what is, may be), 126, 130, 140, 209, 283, 284, 29 1 , 304, 305 n. 169, 322, 369', 374'-75', 382', 438, 507, 528, 537, 554, 698, 707, 708, 748, 793, 803, cf. 3 1 1, 408, 429, 465, 5 12, 521 , 541, 8 1 3, 864; something pennanent (pennanence), 291 , 365', 420; the simple, 468, 470, cf. 465; substance, 379', 462, cf. 408, 4 1 2 ; thing(s), xx, 147, 178, 272, 305 n. 1 69, 340, 341, 402, 5 10, 523, 524, 542, 549 n. 23 1 , 609, 6 1 0, 622, 642, 645, 748; object(s), xvi-xix inc!. br. n. 75, 6, 29, 30, 33 inc!. br. n. 1 3 , 52, 65-66, 69, 72, 74, 75, 87, 88, 1 20, 122, 125, 126, 95', 96', 104' br. n. 88, 108'-9', 1 30 br. n. 190, 144 n. 244, 145 inc!. br. n. 249, 146, 148, 149-5 1, 1 65, 175, 177, 1 78, 1 86, 194, 1 95, 207, 264, 267, 272, 283, 287, 289, 296, 298 inc!. br. n. 1 35, 303, 305 n. 1 69, 306, 309, 3 10, 3 1 3- 1 5, 327, 338, 340-42, 37 1 , 383, 390, 393, 398, 349', 399', 4 1 1 inc!. n . 259, 412, 4 1 5 n . 275, 422 incl. n. 288, 465, 479, 490, 497, 505-9 inc!. n. 74, 5 1 1 , 5 12, 5 18, 5 2 1 -25, 528, 538, 5 6 1 , 610, 627, 647, 663, 682, 698, 699, 708, 709, 7 1 2, 747, 7 5 1 , 757, 82 1 , 873, 875, 876; appearance(s), 60, 66, 122, 125, 106', 108'-10', 1 I 5', 120', 235, 236, 246, 256, 279, 28 1 , 398, 4 1 5 n. 275, 438, 443, 444, 457 n. 1 26, 508, 520, 522-24, 527, 533, 536, 537, 542, 554, 585, 667, 7 1 3, 768. 800, 82 1 ; existence, 72, 1 1 1, 279, 280, 367', 5 17, 6 1 3 , 6 16, 620, 632 br. n. 1 93, 642, 662, cf. 644, 707; existence, ours (mine), 157 n. 296, 167, 420; the self (subject, soul, I [think]), 69, 107', 1 55, 1 57 n. 296, 305 n. 169, 402, 379', 408, 418, 429, 506 n. 74, cf. 4 1 1 , 541 , 632 br. n. 193; the detenninable and the detenninative in me, 1 57 n. 296; detenninations, 339, 369', cf. 149; predicate(s), 378, 399', 410, 43 1 , 60 1 , 623; properties, 52, 69, 705, cf. 67; character, 242, 5 84; state(s), 2 1 3, 280, 290 n. 107, 291 ; relation, 1 63, 222, 508, cf. 67; divisibility, 554; part(s), 204, 2 1 1 , 255, 441 , 533, 554, 588, cf. 222; aggregate, 456; whole, xxxviii, 443, 446 , 454, 456, 540, 542, 55 1 , 552, 554, 588, cf. 48, 5 12, 550; (absolute) idea, 384, 385, 866; totality (maximum), 507, 536, 537, 55 1 , cf. 547, 549 n. 23 1 ; infinity (infinite), 547 n. 229, 548, 55 ! ; world (nature) (world series [ends]), 459, 46 1 , 532, 547, 549, 550, 821, 874; series (sum) of conditions, 364, 365 br. n . 86, 388, 393, 436-37, 444, 445, 525-27, 550, cf. 438-39, 533, 541 , 552; mem-
INDEX
903
her(s) of the series, 388, 529, 540-42, 547, cf. 244, 675; condition(s), 79, 140, 174, 36 1 , 393, 437, 5 1 1 - 1 2, 526-28, 552; conditioned, 364, 365 hr. n. 86, 379, 396', 436-39, 444, 445 n. 64, 480, 525-28, 536, 538, 540, 550-52, 556, 612, 662; regression, 529, 533, cf. 387; unconditioned, 436-37, 526, 6 12, 649; hasis (hases, heginning), 190, 495, 576, cf. 704; cause(s), 279, 280, 6 17-18, 638; ef fect (consequence[s]), xvii', 276, 368', 44 1 , 582, 639, 802, cf. 528; necessity, 1 12', 632; universal(ity), 1 n. 153, 674, cf. 793; rule(s), 79, 126', 1 7 1 inc!. hr. n. 23, 1 74, 283, 597; laws, 830; action, 580; ahility, 334, cf. 167; principles of morality, 452-53; purpose of pure practical laws, 828; ideal, 642; light, 349; color, 743; instant (present), 437-39; point (in time), 287, 454, 460, 5 16; line, 287; shape, 50; triangle, 622; positions, 2 1 1 ; mo�e force, 8 1 3; motion, 338; course of the planets, 690; stars, 524; species, 689; sciences, 20; see also Data God (Gatt), xxx, 7 1 , 274 hr. n. 40, 331 inc!. hr. n. 82, 530, 621 inc!. hr. n. 125, 648 hr. n. 276, 649 hr. n. 280, 699 hr. n. 1 86, 7 1 7 hr. n. 265a, 721 inc!. hr. n. 284, 723 hr. n. 300, 839, 841 , 847, 880 hr. n. 262, 883 hr. n. 27 1 , cf. 784 hr. n. 24 1 , see also Deity, Divine, Being (Wesen) (divine, original, supreme, etc.), Cause (Ursache) (supreme, etc.), Basis (highest), Condition (supreme), Originator, Ar chitect, Ruler, Theology; concept (idea) of, xxix, xxx hr. n. 124, 96', 608, 623 inc!. hr. n. 141 , 626, 627 inc!. hr. n. 163, 660, 703, 7 1 3, 727, cf. 7 1 , 530; ex istence of, xxxii-xxxiii, 7 1 , 484 hr. n. 257, 606 hr. n. 60, 6 1 8-20, 623, 627, 63 1 , 648 inc!. hr. ns. 272 and 274, 658 hr. n. 332, 769, 78 1 , 8 1 6, 826, 827 hr. n. 23, 828, 83 1 , 833 hr. n. 43, 838 hr. n. 73, 839 hr. n. 76, 854, 856, 857, 882, 883 hr. n. 272, cf. xxx, 839 inc!. hr. n. 76, see also Existence (of God); is a hy pothesis, 800-801 , 803, cf. 805; is, along with freedom and immortality, a proh lem (question) (of reason), 7, 778, cf. xxix-xxx, 395 n. 222, 723 hr. n. 300, 769-70, 7 ! h , 826, 827 hr. n. 32, 828, 8 3 1 , 833 inc!. hr. n. 43, 839, 841 , 856-57, 882, 883 incl. hr. n. 27 1 ; proofs of ([ways of] proving) the existence of, 6 1 8- 19, 63 1 , cf. xxx, xxxii, 395 n. 222, 606 hr. n. 60, 648 inc!. hr. ns. 272 and 274, 8 16, 882; ontological proof (argument) (of the existence of), xxxii hr. n. 1 28, 484 hr. n. 253, 619, 620-30 (specifically, 620, 622 hr. n. 129, 630), 63 1 -36 inc!. hr. ns. 1 8 1 , 1 86, and 193, 638 inc!. hr. n. 227, 639 inc!. hr. n. 229, 648 hr. n. 273, 653, 657, 658, 666, cf. 485, 844, 874; cosmological proof (argument, syllogism) (of the existence of), lI.Xxii hr. n. 1 28, 484 inc!. hr. n. 257, 485, 527, 6 19, 63 1-48 (specifically, 63 1-38 inc!. hr. ns. 1 86 and 193, 639 hr. ns. 230 and 233, 640 hr. n. 235, 642-43, 648 hr. n. 273), 657, 658, cf. 485, see also Cosmological; physi cotheological proof (argument) (of the existence of), 6 1 9, 633, 648-58 inc!. hr. n. 280 (specifically, 648 inc!. hr. ns. 272 and 276, 650 hr. n. 285, 653, 656-58), 665, 72 1 hr. n. 282; living, 66 1 ; is the highest original good, 838 inc!. hr. n. 73, cf. 839, 846; related to morality (pure practical laws), 660-62 inc!. n. 344 and hr. ns. 354 and 356, 668, 832-47 inc!. hr. ns. 74-76, 86, 93, 95, 96, 1 0 1 , and 102, 856-59 inc!. hr. ns. 148, I SO, and n. l S I , cf. xxix-xxx, 496, 804-5, see also Morality, Moral; moral proof of the existence of, 839 hr. n. 76, cf. 6 1 7 hr. n. 102; faith in, xxxiii, 66 1 , 854, 856-57 inc!. hr. n. 148, see also Faith; cog nition (hut not knowledge) of, vii' hr. n. 6, 392 hr. n. 208, 395 hr. n. 222e, 846 inc!. hr. n. 102, 856 inc!. hr. n. 1 48, 874 hr. n. 233, 880, see also Cognition (of the onginal heing); and see Theist, Theology, Religion
904
INDEX
Good-the (das Gute) , 375, 576, 7 17 hr. n. 265a, cf. 598, 77 1 , 776, 830; highest, 832-47 (specifically, 832, 838 inc1. hr. n. 73, 840, 842-44, 846, 847); highest original, 838, 842; highest derivative, 839; highest greatest, 843 inc!. hr. n. 93; complete, 84 1 inc!. hr. n. 86; see also Perfect Garland, Alhert, 245 hr. n. 156 Gram, Moltke S., vii' hr. n. 7, 11 hr. n. 199, 116 hr. n. 1 , 95' hr. n. 58, 176 hr. n. 46, 218 hr. n. 3, 224 hr. n. 46, 232 hr. n. 88 Greeks-the (die Griechen), an admirahle people, x, see also Ancients-the, Phi losopher, History Grillo, Friedrich, 128 hr. n. 57, 1 96 hr. n. 199, 277 hr. n. 54, 282 hr. n. 77, 406 hr. n. 247, 507 hr. n. 77, 699 hr. n. 1 87, 856 hr. n. 146 Ground (Grund, Boden), xix hr. n. 79, xv', xviii', xxi', xxxii, xxxvii, 7, 2 1 , 33 hr. n. 14, 98, 1 1 2 inc!. hr. n. 233, 1 14, 1 29', 1 30 hr. n. 190, 188 hr. n. 147, 2 1 6 hr. n. 129, 246 hr. n. 160, 265 hr. n. 243, 285, 323 hr. n. 49, 3 3 1 hr. n. 86, 349 hr. n. 6, 376, 388 hr. n. 1 88, 399 hr. n. 12, 431 hr. n. 3 1 8, 434 hr. n. 16, 438 hr. n. 36, 449 hr. n. 85, 492 hr. n. 13, 545 hr. n. 223, 565 hr. n. 291 , 575 hr. n. 32 1 , 577 hr. n . 332, 600 hr. n . 27h, 607 hr. n . 67, 612, 6 1 7 hr. n . 102, 6 1 8 hr. n . 1 13, 658, 704, 7 17, 739, 753, 777 hr. n. 2 13, 784, 8 1 1 hr. n. 352, 848 hr. n. 1 15, 853 hr. n. 1 3 3 , cf. xxxvi, 1 69, see also Basis, Territory, Terrain, Soil, Consequence
Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals (Grundlegung zur Metaphysik der Sit ten), 358 hr. n. 52, 372 hr. n. 1 1 3, 373 hr. n. 1 19, 375 hr. n. 1 3 1 , 43 1 hr. n. 3 16, 567 hr. n. 296, 568 hr. n. 301, 574 hr. n. 3 1 6, 582 hr. n. 345, 780 hr. n. 226, 828 hr. n. 27, 830 hr. n. 37, 833 hr. n. 46, 834 hr. ns. 49 and 53, 836 hr. n. 59, 839 hr. n. 79, 840 hr. n. 8 1 , 84 1 hr. n. 84, 847 hr. ns. 107 and 1 1 1 , 868 hr. ns. 196 and 198, 869 hr. ns. 200 and 203, 870 hr. n. 207, see also Metaphysics of Mor als, Metaphysics Guidance or guide(line) ([Leitlfaden, [An]leitung, Richtschnur, leiten, fahren), 6, 9 1 , 92, 95, 1 02, 97', 1 87, 265, 273, 282, 363, 385, 402, 382', 387', 475, 492, 495, 497, 523, 550, 587, 6 19, 643, 649, 65 1 , 664, 675, 685, 691 , 699, 700, 703, 712, 7 1 8, 719, 745 inc!. hr. n. 53, 763, 790, 8 10, 8 1 1 , 833, 837, 844, 847, 85 1 , 854, 855, 859, 872 Guyer, Paul, 1 1 6 hr. n. I , 176 hr. n. 46, 197 hr. n. I , 202 hr. n. 35, 207 hr. n. 70, 2 1 8 hr. n. 3, 224 hr. n. 46, 232 hr. n. 88, 256 hr. n. 206, 274 hr. n. 38, 294 hr. n. 1 25, 435 hr. n. 22, 454 hr. n. 1 13, 462 hr. n. 1 56, 472 hr. n. 202, 480 hr. n. 242 Hahit (Gewohnheit), 5, 20, 77, 1 27, 3 1 6, 387', 788 hr. n. 260, 793, cf. 783, see also Custom Hales, John, 83 hr. n. 59 Haller, Alhrecht von, 641 inc!. hr. n. 237 Happen(ing) (Geschehen, Ereignis, stattfinden, zugehen, sich zutragen), 5, 7-8, 13, 1 24, 1 13', 1 63, 1 97-98, 244, 473, 478, 57 1 , 573, 575, 661 hr. n. 348, 7 17 n. 265, 8 16, 880, cf. xxix, 70, 1 13, 125, 1 67, 276, 36 1 , 468, 469, 499, 563, 639, 647, 8 1 9, 857 n. 1 5 1 , see also Occur, Event Happiness or happy (Glackseligkeit, glUcklich), 834-35, xliii, 373, 395', 828, 833, 837-42 inc!. hr. n. 74, 853, 879, 880
INDEX
905
Hannony ([ Uber]einstimmung, Zusammenstimmung, Einstimmigkeit, Harmonie), xviii n. 77, 175, 1 84, 1 86, 296, 338, 655, 669, 706 , 843, cf. 1 67, 358, 373, 653, 668, 717, 828, 834, 844, 846, preestablished (predetennined), 1 9 br. n. 235, 33 1 , 390'-9 1 ' incl. br. n . 20 1 , 696 br. n . 168, see also Agreement Hartenstein, G., 1 1 5 br. n. 247, 120 br. n. 24, 125 br. n. 42, 247 br. n. 170, 305 br. ns. 169n and 169q, 338 br. n. 1 23, 339 br. n. 125, 350' br. n. 49, 377' br. n. 153, 402' br. n. 235, 407 br. n. 249, 559 br. n. 264, 573 br. n. 3 14, 594 br. n. 407, 642 br. n. 244, 672 br. n. 26, 688 br. n. 1 25, 690 br. n. 140, 7 1 9 br. n. 270, 722 br. n. 288, 728 br. n. 3 17, 742 br. n. 36, 787 br. n. 258, 8 1 0 br. n. 339, 8 1 2 br. n. 360, 846 br. n. 1 04, 872 br. n. 2 1� Hecuba, viii' inc!. br. n. 9, 822 br. n. 406 Heimsoeth, Heinz, 349 br. n. 2, 355 br. n. 36, 366 br. n. 94, 368 br. n. 1 04, 377 br. n. 144, 390 br. n. 195, 396 br. n. I , 399 br. n. 9, 348' br. n. 42, 3 5 1 ' br. n. 50, 361' br. n. 9 1 , 366' br. n. 1 1 2, 38 1 ' br. n. 166, 406 br. n. 24 1 , 4 1 3 br. n. 263, 426 br. n. 299, 432 br. n. 1 , 435 br. n. 22, 448 br. n. 78, 454 br. n. 1 1 3, 462 br. n. 1 56, 472 br. n. 202, 480 br. n. 242, 490 br. n. 1 , 504 br. n. 64, 5 1 3 br. n. 1 0 1 , 5 1 8 br. n. 1 1 8, 525 br. n. 1 38, 536 br. n. 172, 543 br. n . 2 19, 545 br. n. 222, 5 5 1 br. n . 233, 5 5 6 br. n . 250, 560 br. n. 270, 566 br. n. 295, 570 br. n . 308, 587 br. n. 366, 593 br. n. 400, 595 br. n. I , 599 br. n. 20, 6 1 1 br. n. 84, 620 br. n. 1 1 8, 63 1 br. n. 1 80, 648 br. n. 272, 659 br. n. 333, 670 br. n. I , 697 br. n. 172, 733 br. n. I, 736 br. n. 13, 740 br. n. 27, 766 br. n. 1 60, 797 br. n. 293, 8 1 0 br. n. 341, 823 br. n. 1 , 825 br. n. 8, 832 br. n. 4 1 , 848 br. n. 1 12, 860 br. n. 1 54, 880 br. n. 257 Heraclitus, 364' br. n. 1 00 Heterogeneity or heterogeneous (Heterogen[eittitj, Ungleichartig[keit]), xxi n. 87, 1 15, 1 1 8, 176, 177, 20 1 n. 30, 357', 385', 386', 390', 427, 428, 558, 676, 679, 683, 7 1 1 , 872 Heuristic (heuristisch), 644 inc!. br. n. 259, 691 , 699, 762, 799 Hieron, Samuel, 83 br. n. 59 Highest (hOchst, oberst), see Supreme Highway (HeeresstrafJe), 754, 785, 884, see also Path, Way Hindrance (Hindemis), 64 1 , 807, cf. 453, 573, 709, 772, see also Obstacle, Im pediment History (Geschichte), x, xi, xiii n. 6 1 , xxiv', 523, 550, 736, 835, 845, 880-84, cf. vii' br. n. 5, 27, 372 br. n. 1 1 6, 864-65 inc!. br. n. 179, of (human) reason, x, xxiv', 735, 845, 880-84; see also Ancients-the Hobbes, Thomas, 779 br. n. 221 , 780 inc!. br. n. 226 Hold (gelten, feststehen, bestehen), xxvii, 4, 17, 1 8 , 43, 47, 58, 62, 73, 83, 93, 96, 1 30, 148-49, 1 80, 1 86, 1 90, 198. 206, 246 br. n. 160, 247, 248, 280, 285, 288, 305 n. 169, 3 15, 320, 328, 332, 342. 36 1 , 381-82, 387, 356", 400', 405', 44 1 , 46 1 , 468, 469, 498, 506 n . 74, 526, 5 3 1 , 533-34, 554, 5 8 1 , 6 l O, 6 1 1 br. n . 82, 6 1 2, 636, 664, 693, 702, 757, 803, 809, 8 14, 82 1 , 850, cf. 1 07 incl. br. n. 97, a priori, xv', 1 1 , 1 16', 1 6 1 , 227, 362', 430; universally, 43, 744; necessarily, 206; unconditionally, 43; absolutely and relatively, 7 1 1 ; intrinsically and compara tively, 382; objectively and subjectively, 850; constitutively and regulatively, 222, cf. 702: see also Valid, Cogency
906
INDEX
Homogeneity or homogeneous (Homogeneitdt, Gleichartig[keitD, 685-88, 1 15, 162, 176-78 inc!. hr. ns. 49, 52, and 59, 1 82 inc!. hr. n. 97, 201 n. 30, 202-3 inc!. hr. n. 38, 205 inc!. hr. n. 58, 300, 3 1 8, 556, 558 inc!. hr. n. 263, 588, 678, 682, 694 hr. n. 159, 748, 872, see also Uniform Homonymous (gleichlautend), 363', see also Synonymous Hope (Hoffnung, hoffen), xxxii, 35 n. 23, 295, 361', 383', 501, 644, 658, 667, 683, 740, 754, 763, 769, 77 1 , 773, 7 8 1 , 784, 792, 801 , 806, 8 1 3, 824, 833, 837-38, 841 , 857, 876, 877, 880, xiv', xvi', xxi', xi hr. n. 50, xv, xxxviii, xlii, 26, 55, 98', 178, 334, 382, 396', 434, 449, 626, 652, 829, see also Confidence, Trust, Faith Horace, xxxiii hr. n. 1 32 Horizon (Horizont), 297, 686-87 inc!. hr. n. 1 19, 787-88, see also Boundary, Limit Human (menschlich, Menschen-), heing, see Human heing; species, 807; nature, x', 372, 373, 596, 775, 836, 855, 859, see also Nature; intuition, 5 1 , 1 50, see also Intuition; cognition(s) (cognizing), xiv', 4, 27, 29, 30, 1 1 7, 1 2 1', 135, 428, 669, 730, 863, 870, 87 1 , see also Cognition; knowledge, 863, see also Knowl edge; insight, 7 8 1 , see also Insight; comprehension, 393' hr. n. 2 1 1 , see also Comprehension; cognitive power(s), 333, 353, cf. 575, see also Cognitive power; understanding, ix', xxxii, 9 1 , 93, 1 10, 1 30 hr. n. 190, 1 39, 556, 667, 68 1 , 703, 8 1 1 , see also Understanding; reason, vii'-viii', xii', x, xxxviii, xxxix n. 144, 9, 14, 1 8, 2 1 , 22, 24, 76, 128, 354, 366, 370, 374, 380, 399, 372', 377', 382', 424, 433, 449, 489, 492, 502, 505, 597, 603 n. 43, 604, 6 1 2, 614-15, 641 , 65 1 , 653, 668, 670, 697, 722, 732, 780, 788-89, 792, 804, 805, 823, 845, 859, 867-68 incl. hr. n. 1 88, 870-7 1 , 877, 878, 884, cf. 848, see also Reason; mind, 617, 677, 678 hr. n. 62, 857 n. 1 5 1 , see also Mind; soul, xxvii, 1 24', 1 80, 359', 802, 855, see also Soul; suhject, 384 hr. n. 1 7 1 , see also Suhject; wisdom, 597; sci ence, 49 1 ; will, 503, 7 8 1 , see also Will; power of choice, 562, 830, cf. 577, see also Choice-power of; freedom, 373, cf. 503, 7 8 1 , see also Freedom; action, 578, see also Action; life, 4 1 5 n. 275; art, 654, 655; standpoint, 42; concerns, xxxii, xxxiii; see also Human heing, Common, Suprahuman Human heing (Mensch), xxxii, 2 1 , 33 hr. n. 1 3 , 59, 62, 63, 79, 100', 1 53, 192, 235 incl. hr. n. 1 1 1 , 360 incl. hr. n. 62, 372, 374, 378, 397, 359'-60', 384', 393', 395', 415, 425, 492, 503, 504, 521, 524, 540, 541 , 550, 562, 574, 577, 578, 580, 5 8 1 , 584, 596, 597, 630, 695, 736, 770, 773, 776, 807, 832 hr. n. 42, 835, 848, 857-59 incl. n. 1 5 1 , 864, 866, 868, 878, 880, divine, 597; see also Human, Man, Person, Being Humanity (Menschheit), ii hr. n. 1 , 374, 423, 49 1 , 492 hr. n. 1 2, 596, 826, 878, 880 Hume, David, 5 incl. hr. n. 160, 19-20, 1 27-28 incl. hr. ns. 50 and 53, 649 hr. ns. 280 and 282, 656 hr. n. 3 1 8, 773 inc!. hr. n. 201 , 774, 788, 792-96, 882 hr. n. 270, 884, cf. 232 hr. n. 88 Humiliation or humhle (Demiitigung, demiitig, demutsvoll), xiv', 509, 738, cf. vi, 823 Hyperholic (hyperbolisch), 69 1 Hyperphysical (hyperphysisch), use of reason, 88, 873; hypothesis, 801 ; purposive ness, 728; see also Supranatural Hypocrisy (Heuchelei), 776
INDEX
907
Hypostatic (hypostatisch), 647, 648, 701, 720, 721 , 723 n. 301, see also Substan tive, Substantial, Hypostatize Hypostatize (hypostasieren), 371 n. 1 10, 384', 386', 392', 395', 402', 608, 6 1 0, 6 1 1 n. 8 3 , 643, see also Hypostatic Hypothesis (-es) (Hypothese[nD, 797-8 10 incl. br. ns. 3 1 3 and 3 16, xv', xvii', xvi br. n. 72, xxii n. 93, 63, 1 67, 216, 360', 608, 640, 649 br. n. 280, 661 incl. br. n. 35 1 , 675, 8 1 8 , 855, 875 n. 240, is a basis of explanation of what is actual and hence certain, 798; criterion of, 1 1 5 ; realm for, 797; auxiliary, 1 1 5, 802; physical, 800, 801 , cf. xvi incl. br. n. 72, xxii n. 93, 2 16, 875 n. 240; hyper physical, 801 ; transcendental, 800, 801 , 807; windy (wild), 7 1 1 , 801 ; see also Hypothetical Hypothetical (hypothetisch), use of reason, 674 br. n. 38, 675, cf. 678, cf. 797-8 10; unity of reason, 677; synthesis, see Synthesis; judgment(s), 95, 98, 100 incl. br. n. 169, 1 4 1 , 387; proposition, 98; assumption, 808; inferences, 246 br. n. 160; syllogism(s), 1 0 1 , 361, 392, 433, 616; necessity, 280, 85 1 ; commands, 835 ; at tempt(s), xxii n. 93, 68 1 ; excogitation, 689; remedies, 808-9; addition to a schema, 698; see also Hypothesis I-the (das Ich), 68, 1 1 7' n. 1 38, 1 23', 135, 155, 278, 400, 404, 349'-5 1', 354'56', 360'-66', 379', 3 8 1 ', 382', 398'-40 1 ', 407 incl. br. n. 253, 408, 4 1 3, 4 1 8, 419, 422 n. 288, 430, 471 , 7 12, 7 1 8, 8 1 3, 8 16, or he or it, 404; think, 1 32 incl. br. n. 195, 137, 1 38, 140, 1 57 n. 296, 399-401 , 405, 348', 354', 355' incl. br. ns. 70 and 7 1 , 397' br. n. 22 1 , 398', 399', 401', 406, 408, 4 1 8-20, 422 n. 288, 428, 429, 876; am, xxxix n. 144, 274, 277, 355' incl. br. ns. 70 and 7 1 ; exist, 422 n. 288; exist as thinking, 428, 429; am simple, 354'-55'; as subjective, 354; see also Apperception, Soul, Subject, Self, Substance Idea(s) (ldee[nD, xvii br. n. 73, xliv, 1 n. 1 53, 24, 27 incl. br. n. 280, 74, 8 1 , 89-90, 92, 28 1 br. n. 74, 368-77 incl. br. n. 1 34, 391-94, 395 n. 222, 397, 351', 397', 426, 433-35, 443-45 incl. n. 64, 456 n. 1 2 1 , 484, 495, 497, 499, 507, 5 10, 5 1 3, 5 17-18, 534, 538, 554 br. n. 246, 558, 575-76, 596-97, 600 n. 27, 601 -10, 620, 629-3 1 , 643-53, 655, 658, 665, 666, 669, 67 1 -8 1 , 686, 689-93, 696 br. n. 168, 697-730, 735, 764, 799-80 1 , 8 1 2, 825, 832, 834, 836-4 1 , 843-44, 847, 855, 860-63, 866-68, 870-72, 875-77, 8 8 1 , as such, 368-77; all human cog nition begins with intuitions, proceeds from there to concepts, and ends with, 730, see also Cognition; in Plato, 9, 370-75 incl. n. 1 10 and br. ns. 107, 1 10a, 596-97; in Leibniz, xvii' br. n. 26, 33 1 ; in Hume, 649 br. n. 282; original mean ing of the term, 376 incl. br. n. 1 34; nature of, 7 1 8 ; are concepts of (pure) rea son ([pure] concepts of reason), 368, 377, 378, 383, 391, 394, 396, 397, 507, 561, 620, 7 10, 79 1 , 799, cf. 434, 642, 668, see also Concept, Reason; of (pure) reason (rational), xxi n. 87, xxx br. n. 1 24, 368, 376-78, 383, 386, 391-92, 394, 396, 397, 426, 439, 496, 507, 536, 537 br. n. 1 79, 538 incl. br. ns. 1 83 and 1 84, 557, 561, 578, 601 , 6 17, 620, 693, 697, 79 1 , 799, 800, 808, 8 14, 834, 837, 860, 862; are transcendental concepts of reason, 385, 3 9 1 , cf. 441 , see also Tran scendental; transcendental, 368, 376, 377-97 (specifically, 377, 378, 383, 386, 391-94, 3 96), 434, 436, 438, 440-43, 445 n. 64, 453 n. 1 12, 454-55, 462-63, 465, 47 1 -73, 476 incl. br. n. 223, 480-8 1 , 494, 496, 498, 5 1 3 , 534, 556-6 1 ,
908
INDEX
563, 586, 593, 605, 608, 648, 649, 670-72, 699 incl. br. n. 1 86, cf. 668, are natural to human reason, 670, cf. 642, 723, are mathematical or dynamical, 556-60 incl. br. n. 260, form a system, 390-96 (specifically, 394, cf. 395 n. 222), cf. 435, 605, can be brought under three classes, 39 1-92, cf. 395 n. 222, 397, 397', 605, 699, can be put in a table arranged according to the (four) headings of the categories, 436, 442-43, cf. 448 br. n. 77, 5 1 3, 525, 556, (since they) are categories expanded up to the unconditioned, 436, cf. 367, 383, 394, 436, 49 1 , 507, 557, 558, 595, 8 1 3, see also Unconditioned; i s an analogue of a schema of sensibility, 693, cf. 698, 702, 7 10, 7 12, 727, 861-62; manifold of, 608; is the concept of a maximum, 384, cf. 693, see also Maximum, Totality; complete (completeness [contained] in), 28, 536, 595-96, 598, 690, cf. 720, see also Com pleteness; (are used by reason to) provide the manifold of concepts with sys tematic (unconditioned, synthetic) unity (of all conditions as such), 391, 596, 672-75, 677-8 1 , 686, 689-90, 698-99, 702-6, 709- 1 1 , 7 14, 719, 725, cf. 3 3 1 , 383, 436, 447, 450, 620, 644-46, 65 1 , 692-94, 702-4, 707-1 6, 7 1 9-23, 72829, 799, 825, 860-63, see also Unity, Systematic, System; (serving) as rules, 537, 699 br. n. 1 87, 7 1 3, cf. 538 incl. br. n. 1 84, 597, 701 ; regulative (use of), 365 br. n. 9 1 , 670-96 (specifically, 670, 672, 675), 699-700, 702-4, 707, 7 1 2 incl. br. n. 239, 7 1 3, 7 1 7 , 720, 722, 725-27, cf. 494-95, 536-38 incl. br. n . 179, 543, 575, 593, see also Regulative; immanent use of, 67 1 , see also Immanent; is a heuristic concept, 699, cf. 799, see also Heuristic; underlies any science, 862, cf. 392, see also Science; is (serves as) an imaginary focus (point of view), 672 incl. br. n. 23, 709; can never be dialectical in themselves (but only in their use), 697, see also Dialectical, Dialectic; constitutive use of, 672, 675, 699, 7 17, cf. 702, 7 14, see also Constitutive; is a problem (problematic concept) (admit ting of no solution), 5 1 0 incl. br. n. 89, 675, 677, cf. 396-97, 445 n. 64, 490, 494 incl. br. n. 23, 674, 697, 709, 799; are too large or too small for any con cept of understanding, 5 14, 5 17, cf. 384, 5 1 5, 557, 558, 563, 649; is a neces sary concept of reason for which no congruent object can be given in the senses, 383, cf. 371, 384, 393, 397, 444, 465, 490, 497, 501, 506, 5 1 0, 5 1 2, 538, 561 , 630, 709-10, 778, 799; surpass (the boundary of) (possible) experience (no ex perience can be congruent with them) 384, 649, 7 1 2, cf. 37 1 , 444, 465, 490, 499, 5 10, 5 12, 538, 561, 595-96, 630, 665-66, 671 -73, 689-90, 705, 709, 774, 778, 799, see also Boundary, Experience; as conflicting with experience, 373 incl. br. n. 122, cf. 435, 679, 705; conflict of (transcendental), 454-55, 462-63, 472-73, 480-8 1 , 563, cf. 448 br. n. 77, 525, 701 inc!. br. n. 1 98, see also An tinomy of pure reason, Conflict; contain no contradiction, 70 1 incl. br. n. 198; genuine, 373; legitimacy of, 727; must be inferred, 812; (transcendental, objec tive, subjective) deduction of (transcendental), 393, 69 1-92, 697, 699, cf. 8 1 5, see also Deduction; derivation of, from the form of inferences of reason (syl logisms), 378-80, 390, is only SUbjective, 393; reality of, 395 n. 222, 397, 357', 465, 537, 595, 620, 678, 701-2, 804, 836, cf. 3 5 1 ', 724-25, 8 13, see also Re ality; actuality of, 803, see also Actuality; necessary, xxi n. 87, 373, 385, 705, 840, cf. 3 10, 372, 380, 383, 384, 392-93, 396, 397, 490; legislative for us, 723 ; basic, 872; realm of (pure), 357', 774; psychological, 39 1 , 699, 70 1 , 7 1 1 , 7 1 2, 7 1 8, 723 n. 30 1 , see also Psychological, Psychology, Soul; cosmological, 391,
INDEX
909
434-35, 438 inc!. br. n. 34, 442, 447 inc!. br. n. 76, 448 br. n. 77, 490, 494, 496, 506-7, 5 14, 5 1 7 inc!. br. n. 1 1 5, 5 1 8, 525 , 533-34, 536, 543, 545, 55 1 , 552, 560, 570, 587, 593, 594, 699, 701 inc!. r. n. 198, 7 1 2-13, see also Cosmologi cal, Cosmology, World; theological, 39 1 , 395 n. 222, 699, 701, cf. 607- 1 1 , see also Theological, Theology, God; speculative, 71 4, 832, see also Speculative; transcendent, 447, 593, cf. 490, see also Transcendent; empty, 5 1 4, cf. 5 1 7, see also Empty; as a thought-entity, 5 1 7, see also Entity, Thought; perhaps make possible a transition from the concepts of nature to the practical concepts, 386, cf. 395 n. 222 inc!. br. ns. 222b and 222c; freedom as, 56 1 , 586, see also Free dom; as efficient causes, 374, cf. 375, 385, 578, 586, 653, 655, 843-44; as pur poses, 375, cf. 385, 653, 655, 860; (final) aim of, 708, 726; moral ([pure] prac tical), 385, 386, 836, 84 1 , 845, cf. 371-75, 395 n. 222, 426, 496, 597-98, 837-40, 843-44, see also Moral, Morality, Practical; contrasted with ideal, 596-97, 602, 606-9, 642, see also Ideal (Ideal); sublime, 49 1 , cf. 841 ; thor ough(going) determination of, 596, 601-2, cf. 378, 603-4, 606, 608; hyposta tizing of, 608, 61 0, 643 inc!. br. n. 248, cf. 701, see also Hypostatize; and see Ideal (idealisch), Ideality, Idealism
�
Ideal (Ideal), as such, 595-99 inc!. br. n. 10; of sensibility, 598; (transcendental, 599-6 1 1 ), of (pure) reason, 595-732 (specifically, 595, 598, 599, 602, 604-6, 608, 640, 642, 658, 669), cf. 365 br. n. 88, 398, 435, 484 br. n. 25 1 , 497, 502, 506 br. n. 73, 769 br. n. 178, 803 br. n. 3 1 8, 874 br. n. 233, see also Idealizing; proper, the only one of which human reason is capable, 604; (objective) reality of, 597, 642; mere but faultless, 669; theological, 723 n. 301 ; of the original (supreme, maximally real) being, 607, 6 1 1 n. 83, 647; of the highest good, 832-47 (specifically, 832, 838); of the highest original good, 838; of the high est ontological perfection, 844; of the philosopher, 867; see also Archetype, Pro totype, Model Ideal (idealisch), 281 br. n. 74, time and space as, see Time, Space; outer and in ner sense as, 66; all our sensible intuitions as, 70; relation, 265 n. 244; com posite, 466 inc!. br. n 177; being(s), 630, 702; world, 649 br. n. 282; reason, 28 1 ; explanations, 500; presupposition 6 1 1 ; see also Ideality, Idea, Idealism Idealism or idealist (ldealismus, Idealist), 367'-69', viii inc!. br. n. 42, xxxiv, xxxix n. 144, 55, 274-76 inc!. br. n. 50, 376', 4 1 8 ; transcendental (Kant's), 369'-7 1' inc!. br. n. 1 26, 392', 5 1 8-20 inc!. br. n. 1 20b, cf. 521-25, also calIed formal, 5 1 9 n. 1 20; transcendental, of time, 52 br. n. 106; material (the usual), 274, 5 1 9 n . 120; psychological, xxxix n . 144; empirical, 369', 371 '-72', 376', 5 1 9 inc!. br. n. 120b; problematic (skeptical) (Descartes'), 377', 378', 274-75, 4 1 8, cf. 55; most rigorous, 376'; dogmatic (Berkeley's), 274, 377'; refutation of, 274-79 inc!. br. n. 36, cf. 293; benefit provided by the objections of, 377'; see also Ideal (idealisch), Ideality, Idea Ideality (ldealitat), (transcendental,) of time and space, see Time, Space; transcen dental, of appearances, 534, 535, see also Appearance; of outer relations, 366'-80'; of outer (of all) appearances, 367', 379'-80'; see also Ideal (ide alisch), Idealism, Idea Idealizing (idealisierend) reason, 497, 502, see also Ideal (Ideal)
910
INDEX
Identical (identisch), numerically, 107', 402, 362', 402'; personally, a simple sub stance as, 710; the soul (the thinking l) as, 402, 401 '-2', cf. 419; my existence, with the proposition I think, 422 n. 288; subject, 419; self, 129', 1 35, 138, 362', 364', 366', cf. 107'; apperception, 365'; judgment, 622 inc!. br. n. 1 36, see also Analytic (ana/ytisch); proposition(s), 16, 1 35, 290 inc!. br. n. 104, 362', 407 inc!. br. n. 252, 4 1 1 n. 259; presentations, 1 30 n. 1 9 1 ; the appearances of one power and another as, 677; the concept of omnipotence as, with (part of) the concept of an infinite being, 623; explication, 382 br. n. 166; emendation, 1 88 br. n. 148; see also Identity Identity (Identitiit, Einerleiheit), numerical, 1 1 3', 3 1 9 inc!. br. n. 2 1 , 361'-63', 365'; logical, 363'; necessary, 1 1 2', cf. 363'; full, 363'; thoroughgoing, 1 1 2', 1 1 6', 133, 135; of indiscernibles (the indistinguishable), (Leibniz') principle of, 320 inc!. br. n. 27, 327-28 inc!. br. ns. 61 and 65, 337 inc!. br. ns. 1 1 7 and 1 1 8; rule of, 353' inc!. br. n. 62, 622 inc!. br. n. 1 34; the predicate's connection with the sub ject as thought by (thinking), 10, cf. 1 34 br. n. 204, 1 93-94; of (original) ap perception, 1 1 2', 1 1 3', 1 33, cf. 107'-8'; of my (the) consciousness (in given pre sentations), 1 33, 363', cf. 107'-8'; of self-consciousness (consciousness of myself), 1 1 3', 1 30 br. n. 1 90, 1 35, 363'; of oneself (ourselves, myself), 108', 1 16', 362', 363', 365', 408; (logical,) of the I, 363', 365'; of the subject, 1 33, 363', 408; of the soul, 403, 361'; of a (the) person, 36 1 ', 362', 365', 408; (per sonal,) of the mind (as a simple substance), 108', 700; hidden, of mental pow ers, 677; of the permanent in time, 362'; of reproductive presentations, with the appearances through which they were given, 1 15'; link by way of, between the consciousness of my existence in time and the consciousness of a relation to something outside me, xxxix n. 144; of an external object, 361'; of the substra tum, 229; of one magnitude's production with another's, 205; is postulated by the logical principle of genera, 682; of a species, 679, cf. 680, 682; of the basis of the thoroughgoing determination of all possible things, would prove their af fi nity, 600 n. 27; of an object of pure understanding, 3 1 9 inc!. br. n. 2 1 ; see also Identical, Sameness ignava ratio, see Lazy Ignorance ( Unwissenheit, Unkunde), viii, xxix, xxxi, 82, 86, 1 2 1 , 383', 45 1 , 50 1 , 504, 505, 508, 5 1 3, cf. xxxiii inc!. br. n. 1 32, 344, see also Knowledge Ignoratio elenchi, 637 inc!. br. n. 219 Illegitimate (unrechtmiiftig, widerrechtlich), 286, 458, 486, 768, 804, see also Le gitimate Illusion (Schein, Illusion), 69-7 1 inc!. n. 178, 294-95, 349-50, 396'-97', 55, 1 4 1 n . 230, 1 57, 1 68, 349 br. n. 5, 368, 398, 376', 402', 405', 428, 433, 534, 544, 586, 588 br. n. 380, 598, 609, 626, 642, 730-32, 783, 797, 848-49, 881 -82, cf. 14 br. n. 223, 1 7 1 , 777, 7 8 1 , 804, empirical (e.g., optical), 351-52, 396', cf. 354; logical, 353-54, cf. 368, 622, 626; logic of, 86, 170 inc!. br. n. 1 2, 349 inc!. br. n. 5; transcendental, 349-66 (specifically, 349, 352-55 ) , 384', 396', 397', 432, 529, 532, 634, 723 n. 30 1 , 820, cf. 670; dialectical, 86, 88, 396', 426, 642, 7 3 1 -32, 783, 79 1 , 820; subtly reasoning, 739; dogmatic , 822; baseless, 8 1 5 ; de ceptive (false), 88, 390, 369', 376', 435, 697, 730, 73 1 , 737, 739, cf. 354, 672, 849; beguiling (enticing, splendid), 435, 730, 732, cf. 849; irresistible, 670; un-
INDEX
911
avoidable (natural), 353-54, 397, 399, 388', 396', 402', 449-50, 610, 643, 732; necessary, 672-73; strange and ingeniously excogitated, 7 8 1 ; artificial, 354, 449; routine, 78 1 ; cursory, 3 5 1 '; one-sided, 433, 434; power of, 622; mother of, 375; see also Delusion, Deception, Semblance, Subreption, Truth Illustration or illustrate (Illustration, 582, see also Examples Illustrious
Erliiuterung, erliiutern), xviii', 45, 72, 98, 1 26,
(beriihmt), ix', xxxvi, 1 19, 1 27, 1 28, 326, 630, 676, 788, 884
Image (Bild), 15, 120' inc!. n. 150, 1 2 1', 156, 179-82 inc!. br. n. 89, 377, 384, 496, 503, 554, 597 br. ns. 14 and 1 5 , 598, 723 br. n. 296, 808, 866 br. ns. 1 8 1 and 1 84; see also Imagination Imaginary or imagined (eingebildet), 1 1 6, 276 n. 52, 347 incl. br. n. 146, 389', 392', 395', 434, 5 1 8, 642 br. n. 246, 644, 672 inc!. br. n. 23, 698, 730, 793, 809, 821 , see also Imagination Imagination (Einbildung[skraftl, Imagination), xxxix n. 1 44, 233-34, 246, 274-75, 276 n. 52, 278-79, 352, 373'-75', 444, 477, 497, 677, cf. ii inc!. br. n. 1, xxxi, 853, is a (subjective) source of cognition (cognitive power), viii, 1 15', cf. 124', 1 94 br. n. 1 8 1 , 246, 677; is a blind but indispensable function of the soul, 103 inc!. br. n. 1 83, cf. 75; belongs to sensibility, 1 5 1 ; is (to some extent) sponta neity, 152, 1 62 n. 3 1 1 , 1 8 1 br. n. 90, cf. 120', 1 5 1 , 276 n. 52; is one of the origi nal sources (capacities or powers of the soul) that contain the conditions for the possibility of all experience, 1 27 n. 48, cf. 1 1 8' br. n. 142, see also Experience; power of, viii, xxxix n. 144; reproductive (empirical) (power of), 1 1 5', 1 1 8' br. n. 142, 120' inc!. n. 1 50, 12 1', 1 4 1 , 1 52, 1 8 1 br. n. 90, 195, is a power of de rivative exhibition, 1 1 8' br. n. 142, 795 br. n. 282, cf. 195, 276 n. 52, 497, 74 1 ; ectypal, 794-95 incl. br. n . 282; productive (pure, [purel a priori) (power of), 1 15', 1 1 8� br. n. 142, 1 23', 124', 1 52, 155 n. 283, 1 8 1 inc!. br. n. 90, 1 96 inc!. br. n. 203, 204, is a power of original exhibition, 1 1 8' br. n. 142, cf. 276 n. 52, 497, 741 , and makes images possible, 1 8 1 , cf. 1 20', but is not creative, 1 1 8' br. n. 142, see also Exhibition, Image; transcendental product of, 1 8 1 ; productive, its empirical ability (use), 1 8 1 incl. br. n. 90; presents appearances empirically in association (and reproduction), 1 1 5', cf. 1 1 6', 1 2 1 ', see also Appearance; em pirical laws of, 122'; transcendental power of, 102'; performs the act of appre hension on perceptions, 1 20' inc!. n. 1 50, 246 br. n. 166, cf. 1 2 1', 1 64, 257, see also Apprehension; is a power of determining sensibility a priori, 1 52, cf. 1 5 1 , 179, 233, 276 n . 52, see also Sensibility; synthetic ability of, 233; i s a power of an a priori synthesis, 123', see also Synthesis; is an active power to synthesize the manifold contained in appearance, 120', cf. 103, 104, 1 18', 123', see also Manifold; is to bring the manifold of intuition to an image, 120', cf. 1 8 1 ; per forms the synthesis (connects the manifold) of (sensible) intuition, 1 1 9', 164, cf. 1 24' inc1. br. n. 162, 1 30', 1 55, 162 n. 3 1 1 , 179, 1 94, 383, 741 , see also In tuition; is the power of presenting an object in intuition even without the ob ject's being present, 1 5 1 , cf. 1 1 8' br. n. 142; synthesis of (the manifold in [by]), 104, 1 18'- 19', 124', 1 25' , 1 5 1-53, 164, 179-80, 197, 235, 246, 257, 296, cf. 1 2 1', 127 n. 48, 1 94 inc!. br. n. 1 8 1 , 27 1 ; reproductive (empirical) synthesis of (synthesis of the reproductive, synthesis of reproduction in), 97', 100'-2', 1 1 8', 1 52, cf. 1 25'; productive (pure, a priori) synthesis of (synthesis [functionl of
912
INDEX
[the] productive), 1 16', 1 1 8' incl. br. n. 1 4 1 , 1 19', 123', 1 55 n. 283, 204, 205, 2 1 1 ; (pure ) transcendental synthesis (unity thereof, function, act) of, 10 1'-2', 1 1 8', 1 1 9', 123', 1 24', l S I -54, 1 85, see also Transcendental; intellectual syn thesis of, 164; intellectual synthesis proceeds without, 1 52; schema of (pro duced by), 179-8 1 , see also Schema; outer, 276 n. 52; construction in, 27 1 , see also Construction; an object's fonn as a product of, 27 1 , cf. 205, 2 1 1 ; as a tal ent, 738; invention in, 374'-75', 377', 798, cf. 57, 274, 279, 389', SO l , 598, 8 8 1 ; (or imaginings,) (subjective) play of (by), 77, 247, 298, 376', 850, cf. 738; rav ing by, 798; in dreams (madness), 278, 376'; see also Imaginary, Image Immanent (immanent), means indigenous, 67 1 ; contrasted with Transcendent and Transcendental, see these headings; validity, 666; principles, 352, 353, cf. 365, 664, 666; sources of cognition, 7 1 8 ; use of reason in the contemplation of na ture, 873, (i.e.,) physiology, 874; the (objective) use of the (synthetic) principles (the pure concepts) of understanding is (must be), 365, 383, 664, cf. 666; use of the transcendental ideas, 67 1 ; use, there is none for the propositions that the will is free, that the soul is immortal, and that there is a God, 827; use, moral theology has no other, 847; see also Transcendent Immateriality (Immaterialitiit), (of the soul,) 403, cf. 356'-58', 360', 7 18, 769, 806, see also Spirituality, Soul, Material (material) Immediate (unmittelbar), xxxix br. n. 144c, 141 n. 230, 200, 2 14 incl. br. n. 1 1 3, 248 inc!. br. n. 174, 355, 360, 363 incl. br. n. 77, 764, see also Direct, Mediate
(mittelbar) Immediately (sofort, sogleich), xvii, xxxviii, xxxix br. n. 144c, 7, 300 inc!. n. 144, 312, 3 1 8, 335, 365', 378', 388', 459 incl. n. 140, 504, 616, 624 n. 148, 635, 739, 744, cf. 1 1 1 Immodest(y) (Unbescheiden[heit]), xiv', 499, see also Modest Immoral (unsittlich), 842, 579 br. n. 339a, see also Moral Immortality (Unsterblichkeit), (of the soul), 403, 384', 826-28, 833 br. n. 43, 839 incl. br. n. 77, cf. xxxii, 360, 351', 366', 394'-95', 400', 424-27, 769-70, 806-8, 855-58, is, along with freedom and God, a problem (question) (of reason), 7, 778, cf. xxx incl. br. n. 124, 395 n. 222, 723 br. n. 300, 773, 7 8 1 , 826, 827 br. n. 23, 828, 83 1 , 882; see also Nonmortal, Mortal, Soul, Future, Life Immutable (unwandelbar), xii', 1 07', 1 83, 564, see also Unchangeable, Eternal, Mu table Impartial(ity) (unparteiisch [Unparteilichkeit]), xxi', xli, xliv, 45 1 , see also Partial Impediment or impede (Hinde mis, hindem, erschweren), ii br. n. I , 79, 402 n. 25, 796, see also Obstacle, Hindrance Impenetrability or impenetrable (Undurchdringlich[keitD, 5, 1 1 n. 200, 12, 35, 1 06', 215, 278, 321 inc!. br. n. 39, 340, 358' incl. br. n. 86, 38 1', 398', 506, 646, 798, 876, see also Penetrate, Matter Imperative (/mperativ), practical, 575, cf. 830 Imperfect (unvollkommen), 106', 371, see also Perfect Impossibility (Unmoglichkeit), 268, 420, 444, 465, 508, 590, 620, 624, 63 1 , 638, 648, 786, 790, 800, 802, 820 incl. br. n. 394, 822, category of, 106, see also Impossible, Possibility
INDEX
913
Impossible (unmoglich), xii', xv, xxix, xxx, 20 inc!. br. n . 241 , 83, 95', 96', 1 04'6', 108', 1 1 7' n. 138, 1 2 1 ', 1 22', 132, 1 78, 1 9 1 , 196 inc!. br. n. 198, 223, 258, 260, 262, 264, 273, 274, 284, 292, 305, 332, 340, 342, 343, 346-48, 358, 381-82, 393, 353', 372', 375', 378', 387', 393', 4 1 4, 430, 454, 456 inc!. n. 1 2 1 , 458-60, 465, 469, 482, 502, 506, 5 12, 538, 545, 547-49, 553, 575, 590, 598, 607, 620, 621 bL n. 1 2 1 , 629, 648, 656, 667, 678, 689, 692, 746, 768, 770, 787, 793, 808, 8 10, 8 1 1 , 8 16, 820, 821 , 824, 840, 858, see also Impossibility, Pos sible Impression (Eindruck), 1-2 inc!. n. 1 53, 74, 93, 1 1 8 inc!. br. n. 17, 98', 1 20' inc!. n. 150, 12 1', 400, 574, 641 , 830 Impulse (Antrieb), 425, 562, 738, 830-3 1 inc!. br. n. 3 1 , see also Incentive, Stimu lus Imputability (Imputabilitiit), 476, see also Imputation Imputation or impute (Zurechnung, zurechnen, zumuten, beimessen), xxxvii, 5 19, 579 n. 339, 582, 583, see also Imputability In abstracto, see Abstracto-in Inaugural Dissertation, see On the Form and Principles . . . Incentive (Triebfeder), 29 inc!. br. n. 292, 583 inc!. br. n. 354, 6 1 7, 841 , 8 8 1 , see also Impulse, Stimulus Incidental (zufiillig), xviii', see also Contingent Inclination (Neigung), 834 br. n. 49, xxxiii, xliv, 29 inc!. br. n. 290, 77, 79, 3 16, 358', 688, 776, 828, 837, 841 , see also Desire, Passion Incomprehensible or incomprehensibility (Unbegreiflich[keitD, 293, 5 1 3, 705, 7 1 7, 820 br. n. 394, realm of the, 7 1 7, see also Comprehension In concreto, see Concreto-in Incorporeal (nicht korperlich), 6, 803, 827, cf. 356', see also Subject, Corporeal Incorruptibility (Inkorruptibilitiit), (of the soul,) 403, cf. 494, see also Soul, Corruptibility Indefinite (unbestimmt), 128, 387, 539 inc!. br. n. 1 87, 708 incl. br. ns. 222 and 224, 7 1 3 inc!. br. n. 243, see also Indeterminate, Definite Independence or independent ( Unabhiingig[keitl, selbstiindig), xii', xvii', xx' br. n. 35, xii br. n. 56, I n. 1 53, 2, 3, 8, 19 br. n. 235, 92, 1 17, 1 19, 1 2 1 , 1 14', 1 37, 142, 144, 145, 167, 173, 1 86, 269, 27 1 , 305 n. 169, 332, 335, 341 , 400, 401 , 369', 371', 373', 375', 379', 383', 389', 391', 405', 417, 4 1 8, 475, 495, 497, 499 inc!. n. 44, 508, 533, 538, 553, 562, 569, 5 8 1 , 585 inc!. br. n. 360, 589 inc!. br. n. 387, 592, 594, 614 inc!. br. n. 93, 642, 650, 700, 706, 7 10, 799, 802, 830, 83 1 , 842, 846, 8 5 1 , 882, see also A priori, Freedom, Dependence Indeterminable (-bly) (unbestimmbar), 539-41 , 546, 790, see also Determinability Indeterminate (unbestimmt), 34 inc!. br. n. 1 6, expression, 405'; answer, 344; pre supposition, 721 ; proposition, 420; thought, 546; concept, 305 n. 169, 307, 426, 599, 75 1 ; intuition, 1 77 br. n. 57, 422 n. 288; perception(s), 222, 422 n. 288; quantum, 454 n. 1 1 8 ; magnitude, 861 ; manifoldness, 693; multitude, 554; sche mata, 692; cognition, 786; experience, 6 1 8; object, see Object; reference, 176 br. n. 53; validity, 69 1 , 697; relation, 234; succession, 238; correlate, 244; unity of reason, 693; idea, 601 ; see also Indeterminateness, Indefinite, Determinate Indeterminateness (Unbestimmtheit), 684, see also Indeterminate, Determinateness
914
INDEX
Index (Exponent), 263, see also Indicator Indicator (Kennzeichen, Exponent), 4, 5, 83, 1 14, 198 br. n. 8, 387, 441 , see also Criterion, Mark (Merkmal), Index, Sign Indifference or indifferent (GleichgUltig[keitD, x'-xi' incl. n. 14, 7, 258, 3 14, 382, 389, 492, 503, 727, 77 1 , 845, 857 Indifferentism or indifferentist (Indifferentismus, Indifferentist), x' Indigenous (einheimisch), 508 incl. br. n. 79, 67 1 , see also Immanent Indignation ( Unwille), xiv', 773 Indirect (mittelbar; indirekt), xxxix br. n. 144c, 33 incl. br. n. 1 5 , 50, 93-94, 1 16', 1 85, 195, 196, 200, 2 14, 259, 260, 274, 277, 377, 386 bL n. 178, 534, 629, 693, 698, 765, 8 1 7 br. n. 384, 829 n. 28, see also Mediate, Direct Indiscernible or indistinguishable (nichtzuunterscheidend), 320 incl. br. n. 27, 327-28 incl. br. ns. 61 and 65, 337 incl. br. ns. 1 1 7 and 1 1 8, cf. 690, 848 br. n. 1 1 3, see also Identity Individual (einzeln, Individuum), xxxviii, xliv, 1 1 5', 1 20', 169 br. n. 3, 179, 33 1 , 374 incl. br. n. 1 26, 352', 362' incl. br. n . 96, 596, 598, 602 br. n. 34, 604 incl. br. n. 49, 610, 640, 679, 684, 686, 688, 741 -42 incl. br. n. 38, 762, 807 incl. br. n. 33 1 , see also Single, Singular Indivisible (unteilbar), 2 1 5 br. n. 125, 355', 470 br. n. 1 88, 49 1 , 541 , see also Di visibility, Division Induction (Induktion), 3, 39 n. 37, 107, 1 24, 24 1 , 356 Inference or infer (Schluj3rJolgerungl, Folgerung, schliej3en, folgem), xxxvi, 14, 24 br. n. 262, 4 1 , 50, 96 br. n. 140, 107, 1 1 3 , 1 23, 1 1 2', 133, 1 4 1 n. 230, 157 br. n. 294, 1 69, 172, 213-15, 221, 228, 246 br. n. 160, 250, 25 1 , 265 n. 244, 270, 276 incl. br. n. 5 1 , 280, 283, 284, 290 n. 107, 294, 301, 302, 353-55, 356 br. n. 48, 357, 359-61 incl. br. n. 64, 363, 365-68 incl. br. n. 99, 378, 3 8 1 , 382, 386-88, 390 incl. br. n. 1 97, 392, 397-400, 348', 349', 3 5 1 ', 353'-55', 362', 363', 365'-68', 37 1', 372', 377', 382', 397', 402', 406, 4 1 1 , 4 1 9, 422 n. 288, 426, 432 incl. br. n. 3, 433, 458, 465, 467, 468, 477, 483 n. 250, 485-89, 525 br. n. 1 3 9, 527, 547, 549 n. 231, 586, 591, 604 br. n. 53, 606 br. n. 60, 608, 6 1 1 - 1 6 incl. br. n. 88, 618, 620, 622, 624 n. 1 48, 625, 629, 632 incl. br. n. 1 93, 633 incl. n. 195, 635-39 incl. br. ns. 225 and 232, 643, 653-55, 656 br. n. 3 1 8, 657, 660, 662-64, 667, 670, 675, 680, 7 1 7 n. 265, 721 br. n. 282, 722, 745, 758, 762, 763, 787, 788, 792-94, 8 1 0, 8 1 2- 1 5 incl. br. n. 375, 8 1 8, 8 1 9 incl. br. n. 39 1 , 827, 882, see also Conclusion, Syllogism, Reason (inference of), Proof, Argu ment, Logic Infinity or infinite (Unendlich[keitD, 1 1 1 incl. br. n. 225, ii incl. br. n. I , xi, 23, 39 incl. n. 43 incl. br. n. 43b, 40, 47, 56, 57 br. n. 129, 70, 95-98, 205, 206, 2 14, 254, 3 8 1 , 414, 4 1 5 n. 273, 42 1 , 445, 454-61 incl. ns. 1 2 1 , 1 26, 140 and br. n. 1 54, 467, 477, 501 , 508, 5 1 1 , 5 1 5, 5 16, 530-34, 538-42 incl. br. ns. 1 86, 1 88, 200, 2 1 1 , and 217, 546-48 incl. br. n. 227 and n. 229, 55 1 -55, 606, 61 2, 623. 638, 650, 656 br. n. 3 1 8, 669, 680, 684, 689, 690, 700, 708 incl. br. n. 224, 7 1 3, 728, 743, 761 , 82 1 , cf. 50, 216, 437, 478, 509, 686, see also Judgment, Finite. Noninfinite Influence (Einfluj3, einfliej3en), vii' br. n. 5, xvi', xx', xxxi, xxxii, 77, 78, 80, 1 1 1 , 98', 1 1 6' br. n. 1 34, 1 54, 208, 2 1 3 , 258, 260, 26 1 , 268, 33 1 , 336, 350-52 incl.
INDEX
915
n. 16, 376, 385, 387', 390'-92', 4 1 5 n. 275, 424, 478, 479, 496, 545, 562, 564, 568, 569, 608, 674, 697, 792, 8 3 1 , 836, 855, 870, 879 Ingenuity (Witz), viii, 677, 682 inc!. br. n. 86, 738, cf. 172 inc!. br. ns. 26 and 28c, 63 1 inc!. br. n. 1 83 Inhabitants (Einwohner), on other planets (worlds, the moon), 521, 853 Inherence or inhere(nt) (Inhiirenz. inhiirieren[dJ), 106, 230 inc!. br. n. 74, 262, 52, 53, 56-57, 70, 164, 393, 349'-52', 355', 404', 441 , 47 1 , cf. xx, 29 1 , 765, cat egory of, 1 06, 230 inc!. br. n. 74; see also Substance, Subsistence Inner (inner), xxxix n. 144, 37, 48-5 1 , 53-55 inc!. n. 1 1 7 and br. n. 1 1 8, 66-68, 72, 1 1 8, 98'-99', 101', 107', 1 1 5', 1 1 6', 124', 139, 150, 152-56 inc!. n. 292, 1 5 8-60 inc!. br. n. 303, 162, 163, 1 77, 179, 1 8 1 , 1 82, 1 85, 194 inc!. br. n. 1 8 1 , 202, 217, 220, 224, 233, 242, 245, 255, 275-78 inc!. n . 52, 29 1 -93, 321 inc!. br. ns. 35 and 4 1 , 334, 339, 340 br. n. 1 29, 400-401 , 403, 405, 357', 359', 36 1', 362', 367', 368', 3 7 1 ', 372', 378'-82' inc!. br. n. 1 76, 385'-87', 394' br. n. 213, 403', 407, 4 1 2, 415, 420, 427, 429-3 1 , 465, 47 1 , 506 n. 74, 5 1 9-520, 574, 579, 700, 710, 7 1 1 , 7 1 8, 723 br. n. 299 and n. 30 1 , 73 1 , 799, 8 10, 874, 876, cf. 697, 730, 843, see also Internal, Intrinsic, Outer, Sense, Intuition, Presentation, Per ception, Experience, Consciousness, State, Power, Source, Basis, Appearance, Nature, Cause ( Ursache), Tranquillity Inorganic (unorganisch), 555, see also Organic Inquiry (Untersuchung, Nachforschung. Nachfrage. Erkundigung), 3 16, x', xiv' xvi', 6-8, 19, 26 inc!. br. n. 272, 36, 90, 9 1 , 109, 1 1 3, 1 2 1 , 123, 98', 188, 25 1 , 296, 297, 358, 370, 395, 40 1 , 384', 448, 452, 493, 498, 499 n . 44, 542, 546, 595, 62 1 , 640, 649, 650, 700, 7 1 1 , 786, 801, cf. xxxv, 9, 95', 128', 141, 236, 242, 440, 45 1 , 5 1 5, 648, 825, 832, realm of, 1 88, 499 n. 44, see also Investi gation Insensitive (unempfindlich), 582, see also Sensible Insight (Einsicht), 630 inc!. br. n. 1 79, xiii, xiv, xxix-xxxi, xxxiii, xliii, xliv, 9, 14 inc!. n. 2 1 7, 20, 25, 40, 53, 82, 107, 121, 123 br. n. 35, 1 27 n. 48, 98', 1 22', 168, 170, 1 72, 173, 213, 276 n. 52, 288, 292, 307, 308, 3 10, 333, 353, 355, 395 n. 222, 350', 353', 357', 361 ', 383', 384', 388', 389', 399', 4 1 2, 4 1 5 n. 275, 426, 449, 453, 467, 478, 492-93, 498-501, 5 14, 6 1 7 inc!. br. n. 106, 636, 642, 643, 656, 663, 669, 695, 696, 704, 7 1 8, 765, 772, 773, 775, 777, 7 8 1 , 788, 790, 799, 800, 802, 804, 805, 8 1 1 , 8 1 3, 8 1 7-19, 826, 845, 856, 878, 883, cf. xi inc!. br. n. 48, 792, see also Knowledge, Cognition, Comprehension, Understand Intellect (lntellekt), archetypal, 66 1 br. n. 345, 67 1 br. n. 14, 723 inc!. br. n. 296, 882 br. n. 267, see also Understanding Intellectua1(ist) (intellektual, intellektuell. des Geistes), meaning, 367'; concept(s), 3 1 1 , 403', 566, 637, 882; propositions, 263; presuppositions, 498; principle, 43 1 ; beginnings, 494; power, 422 n . 288; use of the cognitive power, 806-7; con sciousness, xxxix n. 144; presentation, 278, 422 n. 288; way of presenting, xxviii; function of pure imagination, 124'; synthesis (combination), 150-52, 162 n. 3 1 1 , 164, cf. 747; the transcendental schema as (partly), 177; form of all ex perience, 367; form of the cognition of the object, 1 30'; cognition, 3 1 2 n. 1 98, 336, 494 br. n. 25, cf. 207 inc!. br. n. 67; intuition, see Intuition; characteristic, 67 1 br. n. 1 4; substance, 403; the sUbject's causality as, 568, see also Causality,
916
INDEX
Freedom; realm, 754, 8 8 1 , cf. 6 1 ; world, 3 1 2 n. 1 98; system (of the world), 326, 336-37, cf. 6 1 ; philosopher(s), 323, 8 8 1 , cf. 6 1 , 207 inc!. br. n. 67, 882 inc!. br. n. 268; school, 88 1 ; soaring, 375; agility, xliv, see also Nonsensib1e, Spontane ity, Spirit Intellectualize (intellektuieren), 327, cf. 326, 3 3 1 Intelligence (Intelligenz), 594 inc!. br. n . 408, 1 55, 1 57 n . 296, 1 58-59, 426, 6 1 1 n . 83, 653, 659-6 1 inc!. br. n . 347, 668, 669, 698, 699, 701 , 7 10, 7 1 5, 7 1 6, 71 8-20 inc!. br. n. 278, 725-27, 770, 827, 838, 843, 854, cf. 354', 649 br. n. 282, 72 1 , supreme (highest), 659, 660, 66 1 inc!. br. n. 347, 668, 698, 699, 701 , 7 1 5 , 7 1 6, 7 1 8-20 inc!. br. n . 278, 725, 727, 827, 854, see also God, Being (We sen) (supreme); see also Spirit, Soul, Subject, Mind, Spontaneity Intelligible (intelligibel), 566, the (what is), 35 n. 23 inc!. br. n. 23f, 335-36, 360', 580, 590, 592, cf. 305 n. 169, 320; world(s), 1 86 br. n. 1 34, 305 n. 169, 3 1 2 inc!. n . 198 and br. ns. 197, 1 98b, and 198f, 3 1 3, 345, 43 1 , 461 inc!. br. n . 155, 836, 837, 839, 842-43; things, 594, 595; object(s), 3 1 1 , 312 n. 198, 3 1 3, 3 1 5, 342, 574, 593, 594, 882, cf. 305 n. 1 69 inc!. br. n. 1 69c, 320; substances, 332; properties, 573 br. n. 3 1 4, 800; character, 567-69, 574, 579, 5 8 1 , 583-85; in tuition, 836 inc!. br. n. 57, see also Intuition (intelligible); form, 332; series, 486; contingency, 486; condition(s), 558, 559 n. 266, 573, 588, 590; basis (bases), 573, 59 1 , 700, cf. 649 br. n. 282; cause, 522, 565, 585 inc!. br. n. 360, 592, 7 13, 826; causality, 566, 572, 589; power, 573 inc!. br. n. 3 14, 579, cf. 572; action, 572 br. n. 3 12; aim, 668; life, 808; being, 589, 590, 592, 649, 800; see also Nou menon Intensive (intensiv), see Magnitude Intent(ion) (Absicht), 1 92, 370, 373, 432, 590, 65 1 br. n. 296, 653 br. n. 305, 688, 696, 7 1 4- 1 6, 725, 726, 8 1 7 , 8 3 1 , 832, cf. 1 42, 2 1 6, 30 1 , 3 13, 3 1 5, 357', 427, 538, 737, 755, 774, 804, see also Aim, Purpose Interaction (Wechselwirkung), 100, 106, 1 1 1 inc!. br. n. 221 , 1 83, 256-65 (specifi cally, 256 inc!. n. 205, 258, 260, 265 n. 244), 269, 391', cf. 390' br. n. 201 , law of, 256; schema of, 183; see also Community, Substance Interchangeability (Reziprokabilitiit), 8 16- 17, cf. vii' br. n. 7, 87 br. n. 84, 356 br. n. 47, 357 br. n. 50, 374' br. n. 137, 495 br. n. 30, 522 br. n. 1 32, 536 br. n. 174, 537 br. n. 175, 628 br. n. 173, see also Reciprocal Interest (Interesse, interessieren), ii inc!. br. n. 1 , v, xxxii, 423, 424, 490-504 (spe cifically, 490, 492-94, 496, 498, 499, 501 , 503), 644, 661 , 676, 682, 694-96, 704, 7 14, 7 1 8, 723, 732, 769-75 inc!. br. n. 1 89, 777, 780, 804, 825, 826, 83 1 , 832, 836, 841 , 845, 846 inc!. br. n . 102, 853, 857 n . 1 5 1 , 858, 862, 868 n . 192, universal, 862, cf. 868 n. 192; natural, 857 n. 1 5 1 ; the common best, 774, 780; formal, 644; architectonic, 503; of range and of content (generality and deter minateness), 682; of manifo1dness and of unity, 694; speculative, 494-96, 498, 501 , 694, 704, 7 14, 770, 771 br. n. 1 89, 825, 826, 832, 857 n. 1 5 1 ; practical, 494, 496, 498, 499, 501 , 503, 770, 772, 804, 825, 83 1 , 832, 836, 857 n. 1 5 1 ; moral, 846 br. n . 1 02, 857 n . 1 5 1 , 858; highest, 423, 77 1 , 846 inc!. br. n . 1 02 Intermediate (Zwischen-, Mittel-), 210, 253, 270, 360, 687, 689, 690, see also Me diate (mittelbar), Mediation
INDEX
917
Internal (inner), xxiii, 99, 292, 368', 373', 377', 394' br. n . 2 1 3, 4 1 9 n. 70, 440, 540, 542, 5 8 1 , 623 br. n. 144, 638, 700, 70 1 , 744 inc!. br. n. 52, 861 inc!. br. n. 1 60, 874, cf. xliv, 335, 771 inc!. br. n. 1 90, see also Inner, Intrinsic, External, Object, Basis, Cause (Ursache), Condition, Change, Principle, Necessity Intrinsic (inner[lichD, 67, 96, 1 90, 217, 229, 272, 3 17, 3 19, 32 1 , 326, 328, 330, 333, 334, 339-4 1, 3 8 1 inc!. br. ns. 158 and 1 6 1 , 382, 370', 394', 440 br. n. 45, 5 1 9, 593, 617, 623, 625, 639, 646, 654, 664, 678, 703, 7 1 2, 7 1 9, 723 inc!. br. n. 299, 770, 844, 846, 865, cf. 33 br. n. 1 3, 37, 69 br. n. 178d, 83, 1 14', 122', 133, 235, 305, 335, 336, 352', 360', 427, 602, 847, see also Internal, Inner, Ex trinsic, Basis, Cause (Ursache), Possibility, Necessity, Validity, Law (Gesetz), Predicate, Property Intuition(s) (Anschauung[enD, are (a kind of) presentations, xvii, 74, 80, 93, 370, cf. xvii br. n. 73, 1 24, 1 1 6', 1 36 n. 210, see also Presentation; (outer,) is direct presentation acquired from objects, 4 1 , xvii inc!. br. n. 74, 33 incl. br. n. 5, 48 inc!. br. n. 83, 5 1 , 72, 75, 93, 109', 146, 195, 273, 304, 377, 356', 399', 412; is sensible presentation, xviii' br. n. 29, 129', cf. 1 46-47, see also Sensible; are supplied to us by sensibility, 33, 1 27' incl. br. n. 176, cf. 34 br. n. 16, 92, 129, 135, 144-45, 150, 1 53, 276 n. 52, 305 n. 169, 3 1 2, 332, 363, 430, 522, 554, see also Sensibility, Given; is presentation that can precede (be given prior to) all thought, 67, 1 32, cf. 107'; (are) particular (concrete; provide examples, in stances), xviii', xx', 84 br. n. 69, 149, cf. 15, 47, 1 36 n. 2 10, 377, 732 inc!. br. n. 38, 739, 74 1 , 750 n. 80, 762; power of, xvii, 65, 1 1 8' br. n. 142, 1 53, 276 n. 52, 270, 309, 522, see also Imagination; inner source of, 1 1 8; our (human, pos sible for us), is sensible, xxxix n. 144, 43, 5 1 , 52, 60, 68, 72, 75, 92, 93, 146, 148-49, 1 5 1 , 165, 302 n. 1 56, 304, 306, 333-36, 342-44, 346, 373', 374', 3 89', 408, 429; 43 1 , 522, 882, cf. 33, 43, 59, 62, 69, 89, 126, 107', 1 50, 153, 159; sensible, xxv, xxvi, xxxix n. 1 44, 33 br. n. 13, 34, 36, 43, 47, 5 1 , 52, 56, 60, 62, 63, 68, 70-72, 75, 8 1 , 92, 93, 1 2 1 , 1 22, 1 23'-24' inc!. br. n. 1 62. 1 27', 129-30 inc!. br. n. 190, 1 37, 1 39, 143, 144, 145 br. n. 249, 1 46-5 1 inc!. br. ns. 265 and 267, 1 54, 155 inc!. br. n. 285, 160-62 inc!. br. n. 303, 164, 165, 166 n. 324, 167, 1 76, 203, 204, 2 14, 298 br. n. 1 37, 302 n. 1 56, 303 n. 1 57, 304 inc!. br. n. 1 6 1 , 305 n. 169, 306, 307, 309, 3 10, 3 1 2 br. n. 198e, 3 17, 323, 326, 328, 333-36, 338, 342-44 inc!. br. n. 133, 346, 373', 374', 389', 403', 408, 429-3 1 , 444, 520, 522, 566, 585, 705 br. n. 2 1 3 , 7 1 0 , 7 1 2, 800, 882, cf. 8 1 inc!. br. n. 53, 873, conditions thereof, 52, 1 2 1 , 137, 166 n. 324, 204, 303 n. 1 57, 304, 305 n. 169, 326, 335, 403', 444, cf. 522; distinguished from thought, see Thought; distinguished from (mere) sensation(s), 44, 60, cf. 34, 66, see also Sensation; distinguished from (actual) perception, 59-60, 160, 162, 1 77 br. n. 57, 323-24, 422 n. 288, cf. 1 1 br. n. 201 , 1 1 5', 748-49, see also Perception; distinguished from experience, 2 1 8- 1 9, 277, see also Experience; make up the realm (entire object) of possible experience, 95', cf. 67 1 br. n. 1 3 ; all human cognition be gins with, 730, see also Cognition; is the material for cognition, 145, cf. 288, 3 1 5 inc!. br. n. 204, 355; apart from, the only way of cognizing is through con cepts, 92-93, 376-77, cf. 143, 342; does not require the functions of thought, 1 23, cf. I l l '; mere, 1 1 7' n. 1 38, 1 27', 1 53 br. n. 278, 203, 223, 233, 309, 684; all thought (concepts) must refer to, 33, cf. 146, 158, 1 65, 1 66 n. 324, 277,
918
INDEX
288-93, 298, 306, 3 14, 333, 340, 349', 350', 398', 399', 422, 43 1 , 743, 749; without concepts are blind, 75, cf. I l l ', 125-26, 309, 3 14, 403'; empty (with out object), 348, 457 n. 1 26, cf. 87, 1 1 1', 214, 342, 345, 347; corresponding to concepts (application of concepts to), xiv, xxvi, 15, 147, 149, 1 5 1 , 165, 176-78, 291 , 308, 335, 345, 347, 74 1 , 743, 745-46, 749, 750, 762, 8 1 5, cf. xxviii, 16- 1 7, 73-76, 125, 95', 106', 1 1 6', 127' incl. br. n. 176, 143, 144, 146, 1 50, 152, 176, 199, 265, 278, 298, 299, 300 n. 144b, 327, 333, 338, 705 br. n. 2 l 3, 753, 760, see also Concept; exhibition in, see Exhibition; derivation from, 39, 44, cf. 40-41 , 47-49; determination of (in, by means of), xvii, xxxix n. 144, 4 1 , 42, 63, 1 28, 147, 1 58, 166 n. 324, 1 80, 2 1 1 , 406, 497, 705 br. n. 2 l 3, 75 1 , 752, cf. 109', 127' incl. br. n. 176, 154, 1 57 br. n. 294, 422 n. 288, 457 n. 126, 47 1 ; manifold of, see Manifold; combination of, 12, cf. 101', l 30, l 35, l 39. 143, 1 53, 160, 1 6 1 , 162 n. 3 1 1 , 163, 1 64, 362; synthesis of (the manifold of) (in), 105, 106', 1 1 9', l30', 142, 1 52, 1 79, 204, 220, 378-79, 383, 747, 750, cf. 97'-99', 105', l 35, 162, 1 82, 401', 444, see also Synthesis; unity of, see Unity; (objec tive) reality (the real) of (in), xxxix n. 144, 209, 2 14, 338, 373', 375', cf. 298, 342-43, see also Reality, Real; object of, see Object; of objects (things), xvii, 42, 52, 56, 69, 465, 808, cf. xxxix n. 144, 1 06', 108', l 37-38, 1 47-49, 288; self- (of ourselves, myself, the I, the subject), 49, 5 1 , 54, 69, 153 br. n. 278, 155-56, 1 57 n. 296, 362', 363', 406, 408, 421 , 429, 430, 432, 808, cf. xxxix n. 144, 278; axioms of, see Axioms (of intuition); all, are extensive magnitudes, 202-4 inc!. n. 33, 206 br. n. 6 1 , 2 1 2, cf. 214, 217, 438; principles of, 692 inc!. br. n. 149, cf. 39 n. 43, 136, 1 88, 198-99, 761 ; possibility of (all), 1 26, 136, 393'; (merely) possible (for us), 1 1 7', 146, 1 52, 1 57, 199, 303 n. 1 57, 304 incl. br. n. 1 63, 305 n. 169 incl. br. n. 1 69t, 306, 309- 1 1 , 345, 428, 479, 598, 74 1 , 747, 750, cf. 1 59, 394'; empirical ([given] a posteriori), xvii br. n . 73, 1 1 br. n. 20 1, 34-36 incl. br. n. 24, 39, 41, 60, 62, 64, 65, 74-75, 79, 8 1 br. n. 53, 1 10, 1 2 1 , 125, 1 29, 1 10', 1 1 8' br. n. 142, 1 42-44, 147, 149, 160, 1 62, 176, 177 incl. br. n. 57, 1 99, 206, 209, 2 1 9, 220-22, 238, 256, 273, 278, 28 1 , 289, 294, 298, 305 n. 169, 375', 4 1 5 n. 275, 422 n. 288, 428, 430, 457 n. 126, 465, 469, 540, 54 1 , 598, 739, 74 1-43, 746, 748-50, 8 1 5 , 820, see also Empirical, A posteriori; empirical, is possible only through pure, 206; pure ( [pure, given, encountered] a priori, prior to experience [to perception of an object], nonempirical), 8, 34-36 inc!. br. n. 24, 39-43, 48, 49, 57, 59-60, 64, 65, 73-75 incl. br. n. 1 87, 79, 8 1 , 8 9 br. n . 98, 102, 1 04, 1 10, 1 1 8, 1 20, 1 2 1 , 101', 1 15', 124', l 37, 144, 147, 150 incl. br. n. 265, 1 5 1 , 1 60 n. 305, 164, 166, 1 67, 177, 197, 1 99 inc!. br. n. 9, 204, 206-8, 22 1 , 255, 298 inc!. br. n. l 37, 299, 357, 382', 452, 453, 522, 596, 736 br. n. 1 0, 739, 741-53 incl. n. 80, 757, 762, 8 1 0- 1 1 , 8 1 5 , 865, cf. 337-46, see also Pure, A priori; pure, is the mere form of empirical, 298, cf. 1 28', 1 47, 206, 741 ; formal, 1 60 n. 305, 207, 324, 457 n. 1 26; (pure, essential) form(s) of (sen sible, possible), xxv. 34 inc!. br. n. 1 6, 36, 37, 44 n. 65, 47, 52, 55, 56, 59-60 , 66, 67, 75, 120, 1 17' n. 1 38, 1 26', 127', 1 29-30, 140, 146-48, 150 incl. br. n. 265, 153-54, 157 n. 296, 1 59, 160, 160 n. 305, 164, 1 82, 206, 283, 305 n. 1 69, 306 incl. br. n. 172, 323-24, 347, 349, 369', 373', 457 n. 1 26, 75 1 , see also Space, Time, Form; outer (external), 37, 38, 4 1 -43, 5 1 , 65, 69, 72, l 37, 155 n. 283, 156. 160 incl. br. n. 303, 162, 276 n. 52, 291 -93, 328, 340, 357', 358',
INDEX
919
362', 372', 375', 376', 387', 393', 394', 400', 457 n . 1 26, 459, 465, 469, 520, 585, see also Outer; form of outer, 72, 1 37, 1 60 incl. br. n. 303, 457 n. 126, 459, 520, cf. 50; inner, xxxix n. 144, 37, 48-5 1 , 53-54, 67-69, 72, 1 1 5', 1 56, 1 56 n. 292, 1 58, 160 incl. br. n. 303, 162-63, 224, 245, 277, 362', 363', 370', 372'-74', 380', 381', 407, 4 1 2-13, 420, 430, 520, cf. 37, 429, 47 1 , see also In ner; form of inner, 37, 49, 53-54, 68, 72, 1 1 5', 160 incl. br. n. 303, 163, 224, 245, 3 8 1 ', cf. 50; (subjective, formal, a priori) condition(s) of, xxxix n. 144, 34 br. n. 16, 42-43, 49-52, 54, 66, 1 2 1 , 122, 1 1 1', 1 37, 166 n. 324, 1 97, 199, 204, 303 n. 1 57, 304, 305 n. 169, 326, 337-40, 403', 427, 430, 444, 46 1 , 528, 746, cf. 44 n. 65, 55, 72, 143, 207, 587, see also Condition; matter (content) of, 60-6 1 , 457 n. 1 26, 75 1 , see also Matter; predicate(s) of, 120, 278, 399'; fault less, 865; constant and enduring (permanent), 350', 4 1 2, 4 1 5 n. 275; complete, 5 1 1 ; collective, 55 1 ; progression of, 39 n. 43; series of, 587; infinity of, 39 n. 43 ; original and derivative, 72 incl. br. n. 83, cf. 40 incl. br. n. 48, 467; sub stratum of, 499; reason has no direct reference to, 363; we can have none (no adequate) of things in themselves (the unconditioned), 45, 55, 59-6 1 , 69, 298 br. n. 1 35 , 3 10, 429, cf. xvii, 43, 52, 63, 67-68, 7 1 , 109', 1 5 1 , 1 55, 1 59, 303, 306, 307, 323, 333, 372'-73', 492, 5 1 8, 566, 808, see also Thing in itself; self subsistent, 323; nonsensible, 1 30, 149, 305 n. 1 69, 307, 308, 3 12 incl. n. 198, 342, cf. 75, 92, 148, 1 50, 155, 157 n. 296, 163, 309, 333-36, 343-44, 394', 467, 585, 873 ; intellectual, xxxix n. 144 incl. br. n. 1 44g, 68, 72 incl. br. ns. 1 82 and 1 83, 33 br. ns. 9 and 13, 68, 75 br. n. 20, 129 br. n. 1 86, 1 30 br. n. 190, 135 incl. br. n. 207, 139 incl. br. n. 2 1 8, 148, 149 incl. br. n. 261 , 1 5 1 incl. br. n. 270, 1 54 incl. br. n. 279, 155 incl. br. n. 285, 157 n. 296 incl. br. n. 296c, 207 incl. br. n. 67, 235 br. n. l l l , 305 n. 169 incl. br. ns. 169b, 169f, and 169t, 307-9, 3 1 2 incl. .br. n. 192 and n. 198 incl. br. n. 198e, 335-36, 342-44, 429, 596 incl. br. n. l l , 723 incl. br. n. 296, 798 incl. br. n. 298, 836 incl. br. n. 57, 882, cf. 43, see also Intellectual, Intuitive (understanding); intelligible, 837 incl. br. n. 57; see also Intuitive Intuitive (anschauend, anschaulich, intuitiv), equated with aesthetic (sensible), xviii', cf. xvii' br. n. 26, see also Aesthetic (iisthetisch), Sensible; character, 223, 8 1 8 ; distinctness, xvii' br. n . 26, xviii'; certainty, 201 , i s (self-)evidence, 762, cf. 120, see also Evidence; apodeictic proof, 762, cf. 8 1 8, see also Demonstration; use of reason, 747, cf. 750-55; presentation, 160 n. 305, 278, 749; concept so made, 396, cf. 753; cognition(s), 93, 3 1 2, 499, see also Cognition; judging, 747-48; principles, 76 1 , cf. 223, see also Axioms; (or intuiting) understanding, 72 br. n. 1 83, xxxix n. 144 incI. br. n. 144g, 33 br. n. 13, 75 incl. br. n. 20, 130 incl. br. n. 190, 135, 1 38-39 incl. br. n. 218, 145, 207 incl. br. n. 67, 235 incl. br. n. l l l , 3 1 1 - 1 2 incl. br. n. 192, 344, 596 incl. br. n. l l , 798 incl. br. n. 298, 882, see also Intuition (intellectual), Understanding; a shape so made, 742; change(s) so made, 29 1 , 292; see also Intuition, Sensible Invalid(ity) ( UngUltig[keit]), 544, see also Valid Invent(ion) (Erfindung, Erdichtung, [er]dichten), xii br. n. 57, xvi br. n. 72, xxxi, 8, xxxix n. 144, 1 72 br. n. 28c, 270, 3 1 1 , 348, 384, 397, 373'-75', 377', 497, 573, 598, 608 , 757 br. ns. 1 1 2 and 1 1 3, 797-99, 802, 8 10, 827, 850, 855, see also Chimera
920
INDEX
Inventory (lnventar), xx', 26 br. n. 274, 788 br. n. 262 Inverted (verkehrt), reason, 720 Investigation or investigate (Forschung, Nachsuchung, Untersuchung, [nachlfor schen, untersuchen), xii, xxiii, xxxiv, 2, 37 br. n. 28, 6 1 , 64, 1 26, 235, 254, 296, 297, 334, 395 n. 222, 3 5 1 ', 354', 399', 475, 492, 497, 500, 50 1 , 503, 582, 60 1 , 6 1 3, 632, 634, 637, 649, 658, 717, 7 1 8, 720, 722, 725, 727 inc!. b� n . 3 1 3, 728 br. n. 3 16, 729 br. n. 322, 730, 73 1 , 753, 766, 772, 774, 785, 786, 79 1 , 802, 825, 826, 844, 854, 866, 869, 880, 88 1 , 883, cf. xiii, xviii n. 77, xxii, 56, 14 1-42, 2 1 5 , 217, 539, 674, 683, see also Inquiry Irrational (lrrational-), numbers, 508, see also Rational Is-what (was da ist [sei]), 1 n. 1 53, 575, 66 1 , 662, 762 inc!. br. n. 137, cf. 375, see also Being (Sein), Existence, Ought Isolate (isolieren, absondem), xiv, xviii n. 77, 36, 87, 1 23, 97', 258, 265 n. 244, 293, 362, 464, 687, 752, 870, see also Separate Job (Arbeit), 1 1 8, 375, 826, 833, see also Work, Project Judge (Richter), xv', xxi', vi n. 3, xiii, 27, 1 73, 452, 558, 6 1 7, 767, 780, 817, cf. 7 3 1 inc!. br. n. 332, see also Tribunal Judgment(s) or judge (Urteil[e], Beurteilung[en], [be]urteilen), 84 inc!. br. n. 69, 169 incl. br. n. 3, is not (as logicians say) the presentation of a relation between two concepts, 140, cf. 96-97, 141, 602; is a relation that is valid objectively, 142, cf. 407, 602; is the indirect cognition of an object, Le., the presentation of a presentation of it, 93, see also Cognition; is a way of bringing given cogni tions to the objective unity of apperception, 1 4 1 , cf. xxxix n. 144, 1 3 1 , 143, see also Apperception; absolute (determining) subject of, 348', 407, cf. 399, 404, 364', 406, 4 1 1 n. 259, see also I-the, Subject; (cognitive) source for (of), 4, 362, cf. xiii, 755 n. 105; the senses do not, 350; is the relation of the object to our understanding, 350, see also Understanding; all acts of understanding can be reduced to, 94; are functions of unity among our presentations, 94, cf. 104-6, 143, 300 n. 144, 348', 406, see also Function, Unity; table (division) of the un derstanding's logical functions (of unity) in, 95, cf. 94, 97, 98, 100, 104-6, 1 1 1 , 128, 1 3 1 , 143, 146, 300 n. 144, 303 n. 1 57, 378, 348', 349', 406, 429, 432; quan tity of, 95, 96, 100, cf. 303 n. 1 57, see also Quantity; (holding) universa1(1y), 4, 95, 96, 3 17, 404, cf. 1 n. 1 53, 849, see also Universal; generally valid (com mon), 96, 303 n. 157 incl. br. n. 1 57e, cf. 57 1 , 849, see also General, Common; particular, 95, 3 17-1 8; singular, 95, 96; quality of, 95, 1 00, see also Quality; affirmative, 10, 95, 97, 190, 193, 303 n. 1 57, 3 1 8, 636, cf. 98, 1 00, see also Af firmative; negative, 10, 95, 97, 100, 190, 193, 3 1 8, 736-37, cf. 100, 303 n. 1 57, see also Negative; infinite, 95, 97-98; relation of, 95, 100, cf. 36 1 , see also Re lation; categorical, 95, 128, 1 4 1 incl. n. 230, 387, cf. 10, 96, 98, 303 n. 1 57, 36 1 , 392, see also Categorical; hypothetical, 95, 1 00 inc\. br. n. 169, 1 4 1 , 387, cf. 98, 36 1 , 392, see also Hypothetical; disjunctive, 95, 99, 100, 1 1 2, 1 4 1 , cf. 98, 36 1 , 392-93, 604-5, see also Disjunctive; modality of, 95, 99-1 00, see also Modality; prob1ematic(ally), 95, 100 inc!. n. 166, 1 0 1 , 809, 850, see also Prob lematic; assertoric, 95, 100 inc\. n. 1 66, 809, cf. 10 1 ; apodeictic(ally certain), 1 7, 95, 100 incl. n. 1 66, 404, 762, cf. 1 0 1 , 777, see also Apodeictic; necessary,
INDEX
92 1
4, 1 2, 14, 1 7, 62 1-24, cf. 1 n. 153, 100- 1 0 1 , 190, 621 -22, 809, 849-5 1 ; hold ing unconditionally, 43; unconditioned necessity of, is not an absolute necessity of things, 621-22; certainty of, 509; directly certain, 31 6-17; contingent, 4, 142; (all) possible, 94, 105, 386, cf. 100; given, possible, and actual, 386, cf. 360-61 ; analytic, 10- 1 4 incl. n . 200 (cf. 1 1 br. n . 199), 1 7 (cf. 1 8), 1 9 incl. br. n. 235 (cf. 23), 1 93, 749, 764, 792 br. n. 273, cf. 250, 267, 398', 622 incl. br. n. 1 36, 625 br. n. 1 5 1 , 667, 758, see also Analytic (analytisch); affirmative and nega tive analytic, 190, 193; analytic, their (supreme) principle, 1 89-93; identical, 622 incl. br. n. 136; e1ucidatory, 1 1 ; expansive, I I , cf. 737, 793, see also Ex pansive; synthetic, 10- 1 1 incl. n. 200, 1 4, 19 br. n. 235, 88, 1 1 9, 1 87, 1 89, 193-94, 264 br. n. 241 , 409, 749, 764, 770, 792-93 incl. br. n. 273, their pos sibility (supreme principle), 1 93-94, 197, see also Synthetic; directly synthetic, 764; (valid) a priori (pure [a priori], independent of experience), 1 n. 153, 3-5, 14 incl. n. 217, 73, 3 1 5 , 3 1 9, 3 5 1 , 630, 872, see also A priori; sense-free, 3 1 5 ; synthetic a priori (pure synthetic), 12- 1 4 incl. n . 2 17, 1 7 , 1 8, 1 9 incl. br. ns. 234, 235, and 236, 22 incl. br. n. 25 1 , 175, 1 89, 193-94, 196 incl. br. n. 203, 1 97 incl. br. n. 207, 748, cf. 73, 1 87, 3 19, their possibility, 14 n. 217, 1 9 incl. br. ns. 234, 235, and 236, 22 incl. br. n. 2 5 1 , 1 89, 193-94, 196, 197 incl. br. n. 207, cf. 264 br. n. 241 , 388; a posteriori (empirical, experiential, of [derived from] experience), 3, 4, 1 1- 1 2 incl. n. 200, 14, 4 1 , 142, 246, 247, cf. 375, 876, see also A posteriori, Empirical, Experiential, Experience; mediately, 386; in termediate, 360; logical, 84, cf. 85; copula of, 626; (logical) form of (in), 95, 105, 1 1 2, 140, 322, 378, 348', 406, 736, see also Form; (logical) matter of, 322, see also Matter; content of, 19 br. n. 235, 95, 99-100, 736; determination of, 35 1 ; determinative and reflective, 84 br. n. 69, 674 br. n. 38; all, require a de liberation, 3 17, cf. 324; subjective (private) validity of, 848-50, see also As sent, Persuasion; objectively valid, 324, 327, 764, cf. 168, 196, 1 97, 247, 694-95, 848-49 incl. br. n. 1 1 8; objective, 3 17; theoretical, 853, see also Theo retical; range of, 6; sphere of, 1 12; transcendental, 3 8 1 , see also Transcenden tal; speculative, 777, cf. 8 5 1 , see also Speculative; of (arising [issuing] from) (pure, speculative) reason, xiii, 22, 281-82, 362-64, 357', 6 1 7 br. n. 105, 664, 73 1 incl. br. n. 332, 764, 772, 803, 809, 841 , 850, cf. 378. 554 br. n. 246, 650, 683, 689, 694-95, 799, 862, see also Reason; of objects not as appearances but merely as they relate to the understanding, 57, cf. 68, 88, 148, 3 1 6, 324, 399', 748; transcendent (that go beyond [all possible] [concepts of] experience), 1 8, 19 br. n. 235, 354, 770, cf. 69 n. 1 78, 73, 88, 2 8 1 -82, 630, 650, 694-95, see also Transcendent; dialectically and contradictorily opposed, 530-32, cf. 1 89-90, 268, 530-3 1 , 622-23, 694-95; practical, 6 1 7 br. n. 105, 829 n. 28, 853, see also Practical; moral, 835, cf. 372, 577, 579 n. 339, 582, 583, 585, 597-98, 840-41 , see also Moral; canon for, 85, 88; dogmatic(ally), xxx br. n. 124, 764, see also Dogmatic; critical (the critique's), 25, 35 n. 23, 88, cf. xix', vii, ix, 19, 26, 67, 103, 200, 493, 5 10, 5 1 7, 615, 737, 779, 866, 884, see also Critical, Cri tique; strict, 675; decisive, 275; complete, 28; true, 194, 350, cf. 190, 247, 3 1 6- 1 7, 849, 850; ju,tification (basis, bases [of truth]) of, 190, 3 1 6, 350, 6 1 7 inc!. br. n . 105, 848-50, cf. 695, see also Justification; reasoning and correctly inferred, 368 inc!. br. n. 102; by analogy, 425; probable, 803; optional, 100; ab-
922
INDEX
stention (refraining) from, 803, 85 1 ; annulment of, 389'; haseless, 1 90, cf. 650, 803; false (erroneous), 190, 1 94, 350, 3 5 1 , 7 3 1 ; correction of, 535, 772; ma tured, xi', cf. 782, 789; halance of, 773; toleration, favor, and esteem for, 737; use of, 97; interest in, 732, cf. 777; inducement to, 737; suhjective causes of, 822, 848-49; referring to pleasure and displeasure, 829 n. 28; of taste (the heau tiful), 35 n. 23; of common reason, 645 ; (ordinary) people's xi, 508, 598, cf. 3 16, 877-78; of (hy) others, xliv, 503, 780, cf. 864; the reader's, xv', xvi', 428, 884, cf. xxxvii; a physician's, 852; ahout other people (thinking heings), 27, 43; triumphant, 853; future, 1 68 ; see also Proposition, Principle, Verdict, JUdgment-power of, Assert Judgment-power of ( Urteilskraft), means ahility to judge, xii' hr. n. 1 6, 169 inc!. hr. n. 3, cf. 106, 1 7 1 ; is one of the three higher cognitive powers, 169, cf. 100 n. 166, 360-6 1 , 67 1 ; the understanding (as such) as, 94, 126', cf. 26, 88, 93, 98, 105, 1 3 1 , 1 87, 327, 350, 351 n. 1 6, 363, 348', 406, 848, see also Under standing; reason as, for mediate judgments (inferences), 386, see also Reason; is the ahility to suhsume under rules, 1 7 1 , cf. 100 n. 1 66, 304, 360, 674, 682 hr. n. 86, see also Suhsumption; the schema as condition of (of suhsumption hy), 304, cf. 305, 432; is a particular talent that cannot he taught hut can only he practiced, 172, cf. 173-74; lack in, is stupidity, 172 inel. n. 28 and hr. n. 28c, cf. 67 1 ; as misled (to make a mistake), 352, cf. 174 hr. n. 38, 376', 387', 67 1 ; correction and securing of, is the task of transcendental logic (and of philoso phy), 174; canon of, 170-71 inc!. hr. n. 7; (transcendental) doctrine of, 169-349 (specifically, 1 7 1 , 175-77, 1 87, 294); transcendental use of, 1 67; transcenden tal, 1 7 1 , 1 87; empirical, 266, cf. 789; natural, 173; matured, 782, 8 1 5, cf. xi', 789; manhood of, 789; shrewd (cautious), 789; instruction from, 1 72; thought as a function of, in the case of assertoric judgments, 100 n. 166; its use of an idea can he transcendent or immanent, 67 1 inc!. hr. n. 1 1 ; makes possihle the transition from the concepts of nature to the practical concepts, 386 inc!. hr. n. 176; see also Judgment, Power, Critique of Judgment Justification or justify (Rechtfertigung. rechtfertigen. berechtigen), 1 9 hr. n. 235, 1 1 6, 97', 190, 221, 240, 285, 305 n. 1 69, 3 1 5, 368, 402 n. 25, 392', 396', 425, 434, 594, 617, 629, 663, 666, 667, 698, 701, 762, 767, 772, 797, 802, 8 1 2, 81 4, 8 1 5 hr. n. 374, 820, 848 hr. n. 1 13, cf. vii', 345, 645 inc!. hr. n. 3 1 1 , 8 1 1 inel. hr. n. 349, according to man and according to the truth, 767 inc!. hr. ns. 1 67 and 169; see also Entitle, Verify, Deduction, Derivation, Proof Kehrhach, Karl, 85 hr. n. 72, 224 hr. n. 40, 3 1 9 hr. n. 20, 377' hr. n. 153
Kemp Smith, Nonnan, vii' hr. n. 5, 1 hr. n. 1 52, 33 hr. n. 1 , 37 hr. n. 27, 46 hr. n. 75, 74 hr. n. 1 , 89 hr. n. 96, 1 16 hr. n. 1 , 95' hr. n. 58, 176 hr. n. 46, 197 hr. n. 1, 202 hr. n. 35, 207 hr. n. 70, 218 hr. n. 3, 224 hr. n. 46, 232 hr. n. 88, 256 hr. n. 206. 265 hr. n. 1 . 274 hr. n. 38, 294 hr. n. 1 25, 3 1 6 hr. n. 3, 349 hr. n. 1 , 399 hr. n. 9, 348' hr. n. 42, 351' hr. n. 50, 361' hr. n. 9 1 , 366' hr. n. 1 12, 381' hr. n. 166, 406 hr. n. 24 1 , 4 1 3 hr. n. 263, 435 hr. n. 22, 454 hr. n. 1 1 3, 462 hr. n. 1 56, 472 hr. n. 202, 480 hr. n. 242, 490 hr. n. 1 , 504 hr. n. 64, 5 1 3 hr. n. 101, 5 1 8 hr. n. 1 1 8, 525 hr. n. 1 38, 536 hr. n. 172, 543 hr. n. 219, 545 hr. n. 222, 551 hr. n. 233, 556 hr. n. 250, 560 hr. n. 270, 566 hr. n. 295, 570 hr. n. 308, 587 hr. n.
INDEX
923
366, 593 br. n. 400, 595 br. n. I , 6 1 1 br. n. 84, 620 br. n. 1 1 8, 63 1 br. n. 1 80, 648 br. n. 272, 659 br. n. 333, 670 br. n. 1 , 697 br. n. 172, 736 br. n. 13, 740 br. n. 27, 766 br. n. 160, 797 br. n. 293, 8 10 br. n. 34 1 , 825 br. n. 8, 832 br. n. 4 1 , 848 br. n . 1 12, 860 br. n . 1 54, 880 br. n . 257 Kingdom (Reich), of (mere) possibility (-ies), 283, 658, see also Possibility; of grace, 840, 843 inc I. br. n. 95; of nature, 840, see also Nature; plant and ani mal, 7 1 9 ; mineral, 695 Kinship or akin (Verwandt[schaftD, 3 15, 395, 357', 686, 688-91 , 872, 875, 877, rules of, 69 1 , see also Affinity Kirchmann, Julius Hermann von, 786 br. n. 249, 837 br. n. 62 Kirk, G. S., 883 br. n. 278 Kluge, Friedrich, 8 1 3 br. n. 366 Knowledge or know (Kenntnis[sel, kennen), I n. 1 53, 59-60 inc I. br. n. 1 37, 86, 193, 252, 354, 386', 391 ', 393', 426, 430, 501 , 7 1 6, 728, 729, 736, 755, 766, 770, 7 8 1 incl. br. n. 230, 796, 8 12, 827, 854, 855, cf. 13 incl. br. n. 2 1 2, 29, 63, 1 00', 104' incl. br. n. 9 1 , 236, 3 12, 3 14, 404 incl. br. n. 29, 366', 387', 392', 394', 400', 4 1 5 n. 275, 506-7, 520, 524, 573, 574, 592, 707, 708, 725, 726 incl. br. n. 308, see also Acquaintance, Cognition, Knowledge (Wissen), Insight, Un known Knowledge or know (Wissen), 848-59 (specifically, 848 incl. br. n. 1 1 3, 850-52, 856-57 incl. br. n. 148), x', xi', xiii', xvi', xvii' br. n. 26, ix, xii, xiv, xv, xvii, xxx incl. br. n. 102, xxxi, xxxiv, 2, 7, 10, 214 n. 217, 1 , 22, 82, 1 17, 95', 1 1 1', 1 1 4', 146, 149, 206, 207 br. n. 67, 228 br. n. 64, 242, 284, 288, 296, 297, 301 , 305 n . 169, 3 14, 327, 329, 332-34, 358, 365, 400, 355', 360', 366', 372', 384', 387', 394'-95', 398', 400', 409, 4 1 2, 4 1 5 n. 275, 422 n. 288, 444, 46 1 , 47 1 , 488, 498-501., 504, 505, 5 14, 5 18, 529, 547, 568, 593, 6 1 5 , 621 , 632, 640, 65 1 , 656 br. n. 3 1 8, 658, 675, 701, 7 1 5 n. 250, 723 br. n. 300, 730, 736, 74 1 , 744, 756-57, 773, 774, 781-82, 786-87, 79 1 , 796-97, 804-5, 808, 827, 833-34, 846 br. n. 102, 86 1 , 863, 864, 866, 868, 883 br. n. 279, cf. xx' br. n. 35, 884, is assent that is sufficient both subjectively and objectively, 850; contrasted with cognition, see Cognition; all, can be communicated (if it concerns an object of mere rea son), 857; speculative, 499-500, see also Speculative; practical, 723 br. n. 300, see also Practical; annulment of, to make room for faith, xxx incl. br. n. 1 22, cf. 772-73 incl. br. n. 197, 846 br. n. 102, 848-59 incl. br. ns. 1 1 3 and 148, see also Faith; desire (want, would like) for (to), xv, xxxi, 95', 1 1 1 ', 284, 296, 301 , 400', 422 n . 288, 47 1 , 621 , 640, 736, 884, cf. 82, 400, 366', 74 1 ; thirst for, xiii'; a lot, attitude of, 5 14; see also Cognition, Knowledge (Kenntnis), Acquaintance Laertius, see Diogenes Lambert, Johann Heinrich, 508 inc I. br. n. 83 Lasting (dauerhaft), xix', xv, 493, 837, see also Enduring, Everlasting Lavoisier, Antoine Laurent, xii br. n. 59 Law(s) (Gesetz[e]), are rules that are necessary (objective), 1 26', 263, cf. 280, see also Rule; is the presentation of a universal condition according to which a cer tain manifold must be posited, 1 1 3'; concepts of, 351 incl. br. n. 5 1 ; subjective, 362; logical, 85, 68 1 , 684, 688; of sensibility, see Sensibility; of (governing)
924
INDEX
the imagination, 1 22', 1 4 1 , 1 8 1 n. 90, cf. 152; of empirical presentation, 244, cf. 274; of (the) reproduction (of presentations), 1 00'; of empirical synthesis, 649; coherence (connection) (of presentations, appearances) according to, 1 08', 1 1 1', 1 14', 123', 263, 3 12-13, 386', 565, 567, cf. 1 28', 159, 164, 274, 522, 673, 720, 724, 728, 794, 828, 840, see also Coherence, Connection; of (possible, the possibility of) experience, see Experience; of (corporeal) appearances, 164, 580, 7 1 1 , 800, cf. xiii, see also Appearance (law-govemedness of); of the thinking self, 405, cf. 794; transcendental, see Transcendental; natural ([lying a priori at the basis] of [material] nature), xix, xxviii, 1 00', 1 1 3', 127', 1 67, 1 98, 227, 263, 280, 328, 405, 432, 472-76, 478, 479, 497-98, 499 n. 44, 5 1 6, 561 , 564, 566-68, 570, 574, 580-8 1 , 584, 585, 633 n. 1 95, 678, 720-22, 727, 773, 800, 826, 830, 83 1 , 833, 835-36, 843-44, 868, deal with what occurs, 830, see also Natural; intrinsic, of nature, 678, 7 19; prescribed to nature (appearances) (mak ing nature possible), 159-60, 1 63-65 incl. br. n. 320, 263, cf. 362, 688, 83 1 ; of the synthetic unity of all appearances, the understanding as, 1 28', see also Unity; of (from) (the [use of]) understanding (as the source of) , 80-8 1 , 84, 1 0 1 , 1 26'-28', 160, 164, 165 incl. br. n. 320, 3 1 3, 350, 394, 443, 5 15, 570, 590, 779, cf. 198, see also Understanding; original, 263, 396; a priori (pure), 35 n. 23, 1 26', 1 28', 160, 165 incl. br. n. 320, 1 98, 227, 263, 280, 828, 835, 837, 845, see also A priori ; empirical(ly valid), 1 00', 1 22', 127', 1 28', 1 52, 1 8 1 n. 90, 263, 273, 280, 284, 376', 387', 484, 485, 5 2 1 , 523, 562, 565, 574, 579, 629, 664, 692, 7 1 1 , 803, 828, cf. 1 26', 5 1 5, 521, 794, 834, see also Empirical; more gen eral, 678; general, see General; (holding) universal(ly), 84, 1 1 1', 279, 3 1 3, 3 3 1 , 479, 490, 561, 564, 566, 647, 655, 7 1 9-22, 724, 727, 843-44, see also Univer sal; particular, 165, 678, see also Particular; formal, 84; (absolutely) necessary (indispensable, unavoidable, inexorable), xiii, 1 1 1 ', 1 14', 122', 198, 244, 474, 5 1 6, 562, 565, 661-62, 673, 722, 788, 836, 843-44, 846, cf. 1 98', see also Nec essary; certain, 850; alleged contingency of, 794; higher, 1 26'; highest (su preme, under which all other laws fall), 1 26', 767; determinate, see Determi nate; constant, xiii, 1 1 3', 386', 473, 567, 690, 794; eternal, xii'; immutable (unchangeable), xii', 499 n. 44, 564, 826; of (the use of) (given [prescribed] by) (pure) reason, xii', 8 1 , 84, 396, 430, 434, 583, 586, 679, 703, 708, 767, 8303 1 , 837, 847, cf. 452 incl. br. n. 102, 685, their conflict (antinomy), 434, 586, cf. 452, see also Reason, Antinomy of pure reason; reason demands, 8 1 5 ; ap plication of, 452 incl. br. n. 102, 684; benefit of, 689; pragmatic (of free con duct), 828, 834, see also Pragmatic, Prudence; (pure) practical, 617, 66 1 -62, 828, 830, 834, 840, see also Practical; teleological, 7 1 5 ; regulative, 7 16, 728, see also Regulative; of freedom, 475, 830, cf. 834, see also Freedom; that are imperatives, 830, cf. 575; (pure) moral (of morality, about what I ought to do, what ought to occur), 79, 375, 425, 430-32, 660 n. 344, 66 1 -62, 664, 723 br. n. 300, 828, 830, 833-40, 843, 845-47, 856, 857, 868, are regarded by every one as commands, 839, see also Moral, Morality, Command; necessary, of the world, moral unity as, 843; civil, 358, cf. 373, 452, 779, 780, see also Law (Re cht); -suits, 452; refutation of, 458; misunderstood, appeal to, 458; seeming, 328; of the skeptical method, 452; to renounce all claims to any dogmatic assertion, 424; of a connection with truth, 850; of memory, 77; of association, 142, 1 52,
INDEX
925
see also Association; that nothing occurs through a hlind randomness (hlind ne cessity), 280; causal (of causality, of [the connection of] cause and effect), see Causality, Cause (Ursache), Change, Contingent, Dynamical; of interaction and community, 256; of genera, 68 1 ; of specification, 684-85, 687-88; of homoge neity, 687-88; of the affinity of all concepts, 685; of continuity, 687-88 inc!. hr. ns. 1 23, 127, and 1 28, see also Continuity; of the divisihility of space, 553; dynamical, of the determination in time of all appearances, 48 1 , cf. 220, 568, 5 8 1 ; of a force of nature, 350; of gravitation, 3 1 3, 69 1 ; of the mechanism of matter, 719; (central,) of motion, xxii, 351 inc!. hr. n. 1 9, 69 1 ; of the continu ous scale (chain) of creatures, 696 inc!. hr. n. 1 68; of the contingency and de pendence of all appearances, 589; through which the freedom of each can co exist with that of the others, 373, cf. 780, 836; see also Principle, Legislation, Law-governed Law (Recht), 1 1 6, cf. 759 n. 1 2 1 , see also Trihunal, Lawyer, Law (Gesetz), Leg islation, Legal, Right Law-govemed(ness) or lawful (Gesetzmdj3ig[keitD, xxxvi, 1 10', 1 14', 126', 475, 794, 875, unity of experience, 475, see also Unity, Experience; of appearances, see Appearance; of appearances in space and time, nature as, 1 65 ; of nature, 1 14', 165, see also Nature; of things in themselves, 1 64; of actions, the only one that can he derived completely a priori from principles, is morality, 869; see also Law (Gesetz), Lawless Lawless(ness) (Gesetzlos[igkeitD, 475, (power of) freedom, 479, 597, see also Freedom; speculative reason, 878; see also Law-governed, Law (Gesetz) Lawyer (Advokat), 458, see also Law (Recht) Lazy (jaul), reason (ignava ratio), 7 17-1 8 inc!. n. 265 and hr. n. 265a, 801 Leclair, Anton E. von, 102 hr. n. 1 74, 1 23 hr. n. 35
Lectures on Metaphysics (Vorlesungen aber Metaphysik), 246 hr. n. 160, see also Metaphysics Legal (Rechts-, rechtens, rechtlich, gesetzlich), 1 1 6 inc!. hr. n. 4, 1 1 7, 1 19 hr. n. 2 1 , 374, 558, 779 hr. n . 220, 822, see also Right, Law (Recht), Law (Gesetz), Le gitimate Legislation or legislate (Gesetzgebung, gesetzgeben), ix', xi' n. 14, 358, 369, 373, 375, 430, 452 inc!. hr. n. 102, 728, 739, 780, 830 inc!. hr. n. 36, 847, 867-68, cf. 126', 723, 875 inc!. hr. n. 242, see also Law Legitimate (Rechts-, rechtmdj3ig, gesetzmdj3ig, billig), xviii', xxxiii, 286, 349', 6 1 5 , 696, 702 hr. n . 204, 797, 804, 877, cf. xix hr. n . 8 1 , 1 9 hr. n . 235, 1 17 hr. n . 1 1 , 1 19 hr. n s . 1 9 and 2 1 , 97' hr. n. 6 1 , 1 99 hr. n . 10, 692 hr. n. 1 46, 698 hr. n . 1 80, 699 hr. n. 1 88, 761 hr. n. 1 29, 762 hr. n. 1 35, 8 1 5 hr. n. 374, see also Legal, Illegitimate Lehmann, Gerhard, 33 hr. n. 13, 321 hr. n. 35 Leihniz, Gottfried Wilhelm, xvii' hr. n. 26, xxxvi hr. n. 1 34, 42 hr. n. 57, 49 hr. n. 90, 60 hr. n. 1 39, 6 1 , 207 hr. n. 67, 246 hr. n. 1 60, 293, 305 hr. n. 169d, 3 1 2 hr. n. 1 96, 320-23, 326-32 inc!. hr. n. 74, 337, 390' hr. n. 20 1 , 459 hr. n. 1 3 1 , 470, 630, 632, 696 inc!. hr. n. 1 68, 7 17 hr. n. 265a, 840, 882; cf. 33 hr. n. 15, 35 hr. n. 23a, 56 hr. n. 1 2 1 , 459
926
INDEX
Life or live (Leben), xx' hr. n. 35, vi n. 3, xi hr. n. 5 1 , 1 n. 1 53, 403, 384', 393', 394', 4 1 5 inc!. n. 275, 420-2 1 , 425, 540, 550, 583-84, 661 , 700, 7 1 7 n. 265, 806, 807-8, 826, 839, 840, 847, 853, 855, 864, 865, 883, cf. 65 1 , 784; future, see Future; see also Way of life Limitless (unumschriinkt), 477, see also Unlimited, Limit Limit or delimit (Schranke, beschriinken, einschriinken), 9, 22, 43, 50, 56, 69 n. 178, 7 1 , 72, 8 1 , 97, 1 20, 128, 105', 1 20' n. 1 50, 130 hr. n. 1 90, 159, 166 inc!. n. 324, 170, 172 inc!. n. 28, 1 80, 1 86, 188, 192, 2 1 1 , 247, 294, 300, 303, 305 n. 169, 3 10- 1 2, 3 15, 329, 343, 344, 346, 352-53, 375, 383, 385, 396, 403, 367', 382', 393' hr. n. 2 1 1 , 395' inc!. hr. n. 2 14, 424, 425, 452, 461 , 509, 540, 577, 590, 597, 598, 604, 606, 6 1 5, 6 1 6, 655, 682, 688, 702. 703, 706, 7 1 6, 723, 736, 737, 755, 772, 775, 780, 787, 789, 790, 795, 796, 823, 840, 868, cf. 98, con trasted with houndary, 789, cf. 795, see also Boundary; and see Limitation, Re striction, Horizon, Limitless, Unlimited Limitation or limitedness (Limitation, Einschriinkung, Eingeschriinktheit, Beschriinkt heit), ix, 4, 39, 43, 48, 106, l l l , 148, 283 hr. n. 8 1 , 3 1 1, 322, 335, 344, 358, 3 8 1 , 435, 444, 528, 605-7, 610, 636 hr. ns. 2 14, 215, and 2 1 6, 647, 668, 669, 694, 786, 842, category of, 106, cf. I l l , 822; see also Restriction, Limit Linkage or link (Verbindung, verbinden), 201 n. 30, v, xxii n. 93, xxxix n. 1 44, 1 1 , 4 1 , 44 n . 65, 101, 102', 1 24', 140, 168, 1 87, 1 90, 192, 2 1 9 inc!. hr. n . 8 , 222, 229, 233, 235 hr. n. 1 1 2, 242 hr. n. 1 4 1 , 276, 282, 322, 3 3 1 , 344, 370, 382, 350', 363', 376', 387', 390', 391', 413, 424, 457 n. 1 26, 466, 473, 483, 485, 558, 568, 647 inc!. hr. n. 269, 693, 706, 722, 739, 747, 760, 77 1 inc!. hr. n. 1 89, 795, 837, 841 , 846, 870, 876, cf. 16, 157 hr. n. 29, 224 hr. n. 45, 495 hr. n. 30, 572, 573, 762 hr. n. 139, 770 inc!. hr. n. 1 85, 874 inc!. hr. n. 232, see also Comhination Location (art, Lage) , 38, 292, 3 19, 325, 328, 330, 338, 342, 530, cf. xii', 68, 90, 92, 1 06-7 inc!. hr. n. 194, 1 18, 260, 273, 358, 36 1 , 402 n. 22, 4 1 7 hr. n. 277, 424, 455, 540, 54 1 , 582, 661 , 719, 8 10, 8 1 3, physical, 328; logical, 324; tran scendental, 324, 327, cf. 325; change of, 530; see also Place, Position, Topic
(Topik) Locke, John, ix', 1 1 9 incl. hr. ns. 1 8 and 20, 127-28 inc!. hr. n. 53, 327, 5 1 9 hr. n. 1 22, 696 hr. n. 168, 882-83 inc!. hr. n. 272 Logic (Logik), viii-ix inc!. hr. n. 44, xi, xxiii, 76, 80, 83-86, 97, 107 hr. n. 195, 133 n. 202, 141, 172 hr. n. 28c, 190, 335, 349, 355 hr. n. 39, 432, 626, 677, as such, 74; common, xiv'; of the understanding's general and of its special use, 76, cf. 736 inc!. hr. n. 10; elementary, 76; general, 77-80 inc!. hr. n. 37, 82, 84, 85, 86 hr. n. 76, 96 hr. n. 145, 97, 1 02, 1 04, 105, 1 69-72 inc!. hr. n. 4, 174 inc!. hr. n. 36, 1 93, 736 inc!. hr. n. 10, 824; pure, 77-79 inc!. hr. n. 37; applied, 77-79; fonnal, 170; transcendental, xxiii', 36, 74-732 (specifically, 79, 80 inc!. hr. n. 44, 8 1 , 87-90, 96 hr. n. 145, 97, 1 02, 1 04, 1 70, 174-75, 193, 349, 356, 348'), 736 hr. n. 10, 794, 824, 867 inc!. hr. n. 190; (fonna1, transcendental,) as a sci ence, see Science; of truth, 87, 170 inc!. hr. n. 12, see also Analytic (Analytik); of illusion, 86, 170 inc!. hr. n. 1 2, 349, see also Dialectic; practical, 736; see also Logical, Logician, Logic, Reflections on Logic, Inference, Argument, Syl logism
INDEX
927
Logic (Logik), vii' hr. n. 7, xvii' hr. n. 26, ix hr. n. 44, 33 hr. n. 14, 77 hr. n. 3 1 , 79 hr. n. 38, 82 hr. n. 56, 84 hr. n. 66, 1 4 1 hr. n. 230e, 169 hr. ns. 5 and 6, 173 hr. n. 32, 176 hr. n. 5 1 , 1 9 1 hr. n. 1 68, 246 hr. n. 160, 283 hr. n. 8 1 , 300 hr. n. 142, 337 hr. n. 1 1 5, 355 hr. n. 40, 359 hr. n. 55, 360 hr. n. 59, 361 hr. n. 66, 364 hr. n. 78, 376 hr. n. 1 39, 377 hr. n. 142, 386 hr. n. 179, 387 hr. n. 1 86, 388 hr. n. 1 87, 390 hr. n. 1 97, 399 hr. n. 1 0, 402' hr. n. 237, 605 hr. n. 55, 636 hr. n. 2 1 5 , 75 1 hr. n . 8 1 , 755 hr. ns. 103, 105a, and 106, 757 hr. n . 1 14, 8 1 7 hr. n. 384, 824 hr. n. 6, 832 hr. n. 42, 848 hr. ns. 1 1 3 and 1 1 7, 864 hr. n. 1 69, 865 hr. ns. 178 and 1 80, 880 hr. n. 257, see also Logic, Reflections on Logic Logical (logisch), contrasted with transcendental, see Transcendental; possihility, necessity, form, unity, principle, law, rule, distinctness, comparison, function, see these headings; use of the understanding, see Understanding; use (power, concept) of reason, see Reason; suhject of thought, 350', cf. 407, 419; use of our cognition, 390; exposition, 409; treatment, 9 1 ; procedure, 363, 392, 395 ; progression, 395; reflection, 3 1 8, 319, 335 ; location, 324; topic, 86 inc. hr. n. 76, 324; sphere, 684; range, 98; horizon, 686; division, 604; distinction, 60-61 ; relation, xix hr. n. 79; kinship, 3 1 5 ; identity, 363'; certainty, 857; clarity, 24 1 ; meaning, 350'; signification, 178 hr. n . 66, 1 86, 267; predicate, 626, cf. 602, 627; presentation, 300; schema, 432; determination, 604; actuality, 1 0 1 ; reality, 882; matter for a judgment, 322; judging, 84, cf. 85; affirmation, 97 ; negation, 602, cf. 737; maxim, 364, 677; precept, 365; postulate, 526; requirements (de mands), 1 14, 528; condition, 268, 302; criterion (-ia), 84, 1 14, 1 1 5 ; mark, 624 hr. n. 148; touchstone, 493, cf. 84; conflict, 328, 329 hr. n. 7 1 , 338; opposition, 99, 290 n. 107; dialectic, 354, 390; illusion, 353, 354; paralogism, 399, cf. 402'; improvement, 749; superiority, 301 ; perfection, 866; see also Logic, Logician, Discursiv� Logician (Logiker), 78, 82, 96, 140-41 , 172 hr. n. 28c, 322, 355, 414 n. 273, 867 inc!. hr. n. 190 Lovejoy, Arthur 0., 696 hr. n. 168 Lucan, xxiv hr. n. 98 Machine (Maschine), 674, see also Mechanism Magical (Zauber-), powers, xiii' Magnitude(s) (Grofie[nD, xviii', 16, 37, 48, 39 n. 43, 92 hr. n. 1 19, 96 hr. n. 146, 1 00 hr. n. 164, 1 1 4 hr. n. 24 1 , 1 82 hr. n. 96, 202- 18, 222 inc!. hr. n. 28, 226, 25 1 , 253-55, 27 1 , 288, 293, 303 n. 1 57, 325, 344, 4 1 4 hr. n. 270, 447, 454, 458, 459, 461, 468, 546-5 1 , 557, 558, 563, 742 inc!. hr. ns. 36 and 40, 745, 787, 802, 8 1 3, pure doctrine of, 870 inc!. hr. n. 2 1 2, see also Mathematics; phi losophy Uust as much as mathematics) deals with, 743, cf. 870; category of, 162 inc!. hr. n. 309, 201 inc!. hr. ns. 27 and 28, 293, cf. 288, 303 n. 157, see also Quantity, Quantum; concept(s) of, 203, 299, 300, 548, 55 1 , 742, 745, 752, cf. 547; as such (quanta), contrasted with particular (quantitas), 204, 745; pos sihility of, 272, cf. 293; production of, 203, 205, 208, 2 1 1 , 745; form of, 201 ; pure image of all (for outer sense, for all sense ohjects), 1 82, see also Space, Time; (pure) schema of, 1 82, 1 84, see also Schema, Numher; realm of, 752; numerical, 22 1 ; re1ation(s) of, 745 inc!. hr. n. 59, 762; actual, 1 83, 55 1 ; given,
928
INDEX
39, 458, 550-5 1 , cf. 548; indetenninate, 86 1 ; detenninate, 47, 203, cf. 48, 55 1 ; continuous (continuity of), 2 1 1 , 212, 2 1 8, 27 1 , all appearances are such, 2 1 2, cf. 22 1 , 253; flowing, 2 1 1 ; extensive, 203, 2 1 5 , 201 n. 30, 202 inc!. n. 33, 204, 206 br. n. 6 1 , 208-10, 212, 214, 2 1 6, 217 inc!. br. n. 143, 2 1 8, 22 1 br. ns. 1 9 and 2 1 , 414, all intuitions (appearances) are such, 202-4 inc!. n. 33, 206 br. n. 6 1 , cf. 212, 752, see also Intuition, Appearance, Axiom (of intuition); intensive, 2 10, 207, 201 n. 30, 207 inc!. n. 68, 208, 2 1 1 , 212, 2 14, 22 1 br. ns. 19 and 2 1 , 4 1 4 inc!. br. n. 270, 4 1 5 n. 275, in all appearances the real that is an object of sensation has (all objects of perception have) such, 207 inc!. n. 68, 208, 2 1 0- 1 1 , cf. 254, see also Real, Anticipation (of perception), Degree; time i s always and in all its parts a, 255 ; every sensation has a, 1 82, cf. 208, 2 1 1 ; of a (possible) experience, 544, 55 1 ; of existence, 262, cf. 226, 4 1 4, see also Duration; the soul has intensive but not extensive, 4 14; found in the world, 802; of the phenom enal world, 461 inc!. br. n. 1 50; absolute, 460, 544, 549; absolute total(ity) of (of the world [whole], the whole of appearances), 5 1 1 , 5 15, 532-33, 546-5 1 inc!. n. 229, 65 1 , 656; finite, 532-33, 546 n. 229; infinite (infinity of), 39 n. 43 inc!. br. n. 43b, 458, 546 n. 229, 548, 5 5 1 , cf. 532-33; complete, 379; un bounded, 653; unconditioned, 546, 82 1 ; most supreme, 652; of perfection, 656, 861 ; transcendental (in Lambert), 508 br. n. 83 Mairan, Jean-Jacques Dortous de, 489 inc!. br. n. 266 Major premise (Obersatz), see Premise Malebranche, Nicholas de, 3 3 1 br. n. 83, 390' br. n. 201 Man (Mann, Mensch), ii br. n. I , xi, 68, 72, 107, 327, 372, 5 1 8, 649 br. n. 280, 767 inc!. br. n. 167, 773-74, 792, 795, 857, see also Human being Manifold(ness) ([das] Mannigfaltige, Mannigfaltig[keitD, as such, 164, 197, 304, cf. 105; of thought, 8 1 6, see also Thought; of concepts (thought in a concept), 1 1 , 1 30, 672, cf. 685, 687, see also Concept; given, see Given; of (offered by) (a priori) sensibility, 102, 100', 1 27' br. n. 176, cf. 153, 160 n. 305, see also Sensibility; of sensation, 374'; presentation of, 1 3 1 ; of (in) (a) (sensible, given) presentation(s), 103, 100', 102', 103', 105', 108', 1 16', 1 27', 1 29', 1 29, 1 30 n. 1 9 1 , 132, 133-36, 143, 1 50, 1 57, 243, 47 1 ; of a comparison of presentations, 325; of perceptions, 1 12', 2 1 8, cf. 1 20'-22'; in imagination, 1 1 8', see also Imagi nation; of (for, [contained, given, found] in, offered by) (a) (sensible, possible, given) intuition(s) (as such), 34, 1 05-6, 97', 99', 105', 1 06', 1 16', 1 1 7', 1 20', 1 24', 1 27' inc!. br. n. 176, 1 29', 1 29-40 inc!. n. 2 1 0, 1 43-45 inc!. n. 244, 150 inc!. br. n. 267, 1 5 1 , 1 53, 154, 1 55 n. 283, 1 58, 160-64 inc!. ns. 305 and 3 1 1 , 1 82, 1 85, 1 97, 203, 303 n. 1 57, 305-6, 309, 342, 362, 349', 401', 407, 428. 444, 465, 746, see also Intuition; for ([given] in) (an) empirical intuition, 1 43, 144, 160, 219; of (in) pure ([pure] a priori) (sensible) intuition, 102, 104, 1 37, 140, 150 inc!. br. n. 267, 1 77; intuition of, 34 br. n. 19, 158; apprehension of, see Apprehension; of apprehension, 164; positing of, 1 1 3', 1 57 n. 296; exis tence of, 201 n. 30, 2 1 9, 257, see also Existence; belonging to a schema, 746; apperception of (reference [relation, linking, bringing] of, to (under) the unity of apperception [the I think]), 1 24' incl. br. n. 1 62, 132, 1 33, 1 35, 1 40, 1 43, 144 n. 244, 1 50 incl. br. n. 267, 1 53, 157, cf. 1 58, 408, see also Apperception, I-the; affinity (kinship) of, 1 1 3', 690; association of, 1 1 3'; reproduction of, 105', 106';
INDEX
929
recognition of, 1 25'; synopsis of, 127 n. 48; indeterminate, 693; detennination of, 105', 127' inc!. br. n. 176, 143 inc!. br. n. 241 , 1 54, cf. 1 60; bringing of, un der a concept (under laws), 303 n. 1 57, 692, see also Law; (a priori, transcen dental) combination (assembly, connection, synthesis, [synthetic, systematic] unity, uniting, comprising, collating, gathering [placing] together) of, 69, 102-5, 1 1 4, 127 n. 48, 99'-10 1', 103', 105', 106', 108', 109', 1 1 2', 1 1 3', 1 1 6'-1 8' inc!. n. 1 38, 1 20', 124', 1 26'-27', 1 29-30 inc!. br. ns. 1 88 and 190, 1 3 1 , 1 33-35, 1 37-39, 144 n. 244, 145, 150, 1 5 1 , 1 53-64 inc!. ns. 292, 305, and 3 1 1 , 177, 1 82, 1 85, 1 97, 201 n. 30, 202-3, 2 12, 218, 220, 235-36, 238, 246, 304-6, 356', 401', 407, 428, 439, 442, 444-66, 606, 6 1 1 n. 83, 692, 699, 706, 723 n. 301 , 748, cf. 869, see also Combination, Assembly, Connection, Synthesis, Collat ing, Categories, Contingent; of (in) (possible) experience, 34, 682, cf. 225, see also Experience; (empirical) consciousness of, 1 39, 408, 465, cf. 220; (of) (em pirical) cognition(s), 1 14, 109', 359, 361, 676, 699, 860, see also Cognition; cog nition of, 108'; bases of a cognition, 8 1 8; reference of, to an object, 109', cf. 1 29', see also Object; of the object, 39 1 ; (given) in the subject, 68, 132, cf. 1 35, 1 38, 398, 354'-56', 381', 414, 47 1 , 723 n. 301 , 8 13, see also Subject; of ([con tained] in) appearance(s), see Appearances; outside or within us, 1 6 1 ; ([of] el ements) outside (external to) one another, 4 14, 462, 465, 47 1 ; of (inner) sense, 97', 177, 723 n. 301 ; of (in) time, 103, 1 07', 1 36 n. 2 10, 208, cf. 50, 1 77-78, see also Time; of (in) space, 39, 103, 107', 1 36 n. 2 1 0, 155 inc!. n. 283, 162, 208, cf. 439, see also Space; of nature, 163, 683, 695, cf. 690, see also Nature; of (in) the world (whole), 650, 706, cf. 460, 653, see also World; (all,) of (among) things, 606, 607, 679-80, 682, 696, cf. 686-88; of substances, see Sub stance; of effects, 689; interaction of, 265 n. 244; successive (succession of), 1 83, 243, cf. 235, 238; simultaneous, 264, cf. 257; heterogeneous, 201 n. 30; homogeneous (homogeneity of), 203 inc!. br. n. 38, 682, 685, 748, cf. 1 82, 688; of species, 682, cf. 683 inc!. br. n. 91, 685-87; (of) genera, 687, 688; of rules, 362, cf. 676; (of) powers (forces), 677-79; use of understanding, 675, cf. 676; in (given by) an intuitive understanding, 1 30 br. n. 190, 1 35, 1 53, cf. 1 38-39, see also Understanding (intuitive); idea of, 690; (essential,) of an idea, 608, 860-61 , see also Idea; range of, 860; greatest possible, 728, cf. 688; interest of, 694; material for synthetic propositions, 8 1 5 ; parts in a science, 86 1 ; of incli nations, 834; obstacles, 9 br. n. 1 8 1 ; wanderings, 1 2 1 ; of civil laws, 358; see also Multifarious Mark (Mark), 2 1 2 inc!. br. n. 98 Mark (Merkmal, Merkzeichen), 33 inc!. br. n. 14, 60 inc!. br. n. 141, 83, 222, 3 17, 479, 614 inc!. br. n. 93, 624 inc!. n. 148, 629, 630, 637, 679, 689, cf. 14 n. 27, 68, 300 n. 144, 345, 393', 422 n. 288, 7 17, 7 19, 789, 880, see also Criterion, Indicator, Sign Martin, Gottfried, 36 br. n. 26, 294 br. n. 1 25, 435 br. n. 22, 595 br. n. 1 Material (material, materiell), 85, 88, 1 14, 125' br. n. 168, 163 inc!. br. n. 3 15, 266, 274, 279, 373', 446 n. 70, 5 1 9 n. 1 20, 604, 648, 75 1 , 769, 773, realm, 802 br. n. 3 1 2; see also Matter (Materie), Material (Stoff), Materialism, Immateriality Material (Stoff, Material, Materie, Zeug), xiv', xxxix n. 144, 1 inc!. n. 153, 2, 67, 102, 1 1 8' br. n. 142, 145, 196, 269, 273, 284, 330, 355, 365, 367, 374', 375',
930
INDEX
382', 394', 4 1 5 n. 275, 422 n. 288, 492, 499 n. 44, 593, 595, 600 n. 27, 603, 606, 649 inc!. br. n. 282, 655, 680, 681, 735, 766, 78 1 , 8 15, 827, 829, 845, 862-64, cf. xviii', xlii, xliii, see also Matter (Materie), Material (material) Materialism or materialist (Materialismus, Materialist), xxxiv, 379', 380', 383', 415 n. 275, 420-2 1 inc!. n. 275, see also Spiritualism Mathema (Mathema), 764, see also Mathematical, Mathematics Mathematical(ly) (mathematisch), contrasted with transcendental, 740-41 ; use of (pure) reason, 740-4 1 , 752, 767, 869, cf. 739, 875 n. 240; (rational) task, 752; problems, 747; art, 753; method, 74 1 , 753 inc!. br. n. 92, 754; contemplation, 743 inc!. br. n. 47; examination, 201 n. 30; treatises, xliv; investigators of na ture, 56, 2 1 5 ; doctrines, 57; assertions, 57; judgments, 14; propositions, 14; prin ciples, 14, 35 n. 23, 1 88-89, 199 inc!. br. n. 14, 201-2, 22 1 , 223, 296, 692; axioms, 356; theorem, 883; (basis ot) proof(s), 467; definitions, 758-59; expli cations, 300 n. 144b; construction, 746; self-evidence, 213; concept(s), 147, 1 80 inc!. br. ns. 76 and 79, 1 8 1 inc!. br. n. 9 1 , 459 n. 1 35, 563 br. n. 286, 750, 752 br. n. 9 1 , cf. I I I br. n. 225; categories, 1 1 0, 557 br. n. 257; synthesis (of ap pearances), 221, 557; use of the synthesis of pure concepts of understanding (cat egories), 199, 200 inc!. br. n. 22; (rational) cognition(s), 8, 57, 74 1-42, 749, 865, 872, contemplates the universal in the particular. 742; connection of series of appearances, 558; regression, 588; first beginning, 477; unconditioned, 448; unconditioned unity, 560; whole of all appearances, 446; (-transcendental) ideas (concepts of reason), 556, 557, 558 br. n. 260, 563 br. n. 286; antinomy (-ies), 558, 559 inc!. br. ns. 264, 560 br. n. 267; objects, 207 br. n. 67; point, 467; space, 40 br. n. 48; equation, 104' br. n. 91, 404 inc!. br. n. 29; detours, 883; see also Mathematics, Mathematician, Mathema Mathematician (Mathematiker), xi, xii br. n. 57, xxxvi br. n. 1 34, 14, 1 5 br. n. 225, 285, 489 br. n. 266, 49 1 , 508 br. n. 83, 538, 745 br. n. 63, 753-55, 765, 867, 870, 875 n. 240, see also Mathematics, Mathematical Mathematics (Mathematik), xi' n. 14, x-xi, xii br. n. 55, xiv-xvi, 4, 8, 14, 15, 17, 20, 39 n. 37, 55, 1 28, 147, 175, 198 br. n. 8, 199, 202, 204-6, 22 1 -22, 287, 298, 299 inc!. br. n. 140, 300 br. n. 144f, 357, 371 n. 1 10, 452, 467, 469, 492 inc!. br. n. 1 1 , 497, 508, 739, 740, 742, 743 inc!. br. n. 47, 745, 752-55 incl. br. ns. 90, 98, and 101, 757-63 inc!. n. 1 2 1 , 8 1 0, 8 15, 820, 85 1 , 865, 869, 870 inc!. br. n. 212, 872, 875 n. 240, 878, 883 br. n. 272, pure, 15, 20, 55, 1 28, 206, 508, 85 1 , cf. x, 8, 147, 298-99, 357, 452, 743-44, 762-63, 8 10, 8 1 5 , 865; possibil ity (of the principles) of, 20, 199, 202, 76 1 , as a science, see Science; compared to philosophy (logic, metaphysics, pure morality), xi, xiv-xvi, 20, 1 75, 199, 221-22, 300 br. n. 144f, 452-53, 467, 469, 492 inc!. br. n. 1 1 , 508, 538-39, 739-66, 820, 870, 875 n. 240, 878, 882-83; compared to (universal) natural science (physics), xi' n. 14, x, xv-xvi, 1 7, 1 28, 202, 492 inc!. br. n. 1 1 , 508-9, 738-39, 754, 8 1 5, 820, 875 n. 240, 878, cf. 870; see also Mathematical, Math ematician, Mathema, Algebra, Arithmetic, Geometry, Number, Magnitude Matter (Materie), 34, 207 inc!. br. n. 73, 3 1 7, 321 -24, 333, 359'-60', 366', 370'72', 379' inc!. br. n. 163, 385', 390'-92', 398', 440, 496, 5 15, 541 inc!. n. 209, 609, 646, 655, 748, 75 1 , 876, 1 7, 18, 19 n. 235, 20 n. 243, 58 inc!. br. n. 1 32, 1 1 8 inc!. br. n. 1 7, 215-16 inc!. br. n. 1 22, 228, 230, 23 1 , 260 inc!. br. n. 223,
INDEX
93 1
270, 278, 325, 356'-58', 380' incl. hr. n. 1 65, 383', 387', 40 1 ', 409, 410, 440, 645, 674, 678, 683, 705 hr. n. 2 1 3, 749, 870; presentation of, xxxix n. 144, 358', 372'; concept of, 1 8, 390', 646, 876, cf. 87-88; of a concept, 9; logical, 322; of the senses, 286, see also Sense; sensation is what (in appearance) corresponds to it, 34, 609, 7 5 1 , cf. 207, 323, 748, see also Sensation; intuition of, 29 1 , 469; of intuition, 34 hr. n. 1 6, 60-6 1 , 1 82 incl. hr. n. 102, 323-24, 457 n. 1 26, 75 1 , see also Intuition; of perception (our way of perceiving), 59-60, 209, see also Perception; of (contained in) (possihle) experience, 1 1 8 inc!. hr. n. 1 7, 209, 270, 273 inc!. hr. n. 34, see also Experience; appearance of, 4 1 5 n. 275, 428, cf. 333, 359', 360'; of (contained in) (all) appearance(s), 34, 207, 223, 748, see also Ap pearance; transcendental, of all ohjects, 1 82 inc!. hr. n. 1 03, see also Ohject; in every heing, 322; of (for) (sensihle, rational) cognition, 74, 83, 1 1 8, 742, cf. 87-88, see also Cognition; of (for) a judgment, 322; of our critical inquiry, xiv'; (alleged) necessity of, 645, 646 inc!. hr. n. 264; contingency of, 290 n. 107, 655, 663, cf. 645; not-heing of, 290 n. 107, cf. 383', 553, 646; possihility of, 370', 377', 467; of (for) all possihility, 322, 601 , cf. 603, 610, see also Possihility; reality of, 440, cf. 609, 646, see also Reality; actuality of, 371', see also Actu ality; existence of, 370', 377', 645, 646, 663, see also Existence; real properties of, 646; every determination of, 646; (intrinsic) character of (characteristics in), 333, 341 ; hasis of, 333, 360', cf. 366', 385', 428, 645; suhstratum of, 359'; as (as not) a thing in itself, see Thing in itself; different realm of, 283; life in, 403; composition in, 553; (infinite) divisihility (division) of, 467, 496, 541 inc!. hr. n. 2 1 1 , 683, cf. 440; part(s) of, 401' inc!. hr. n. 232, 408, 554; mechanism of, 7 1 9, see also Mechanism; motion of, 215, 23 1 , 387', 392', see also Motion; al terations of, 802; magnetic, 273; fluid, 446 n. 70; chemical effects of, 674; see also Material (materiell), Materialism, Material (Stoif) Matter (Sache), xxxvii, 1 2 1 , 285, 529, 555, 6 1 5, 720, 782, 789, 8 1 7, 820, 821 , 853, cf. ii inc!. hr. n. 1, of fact, 5; see also Suhject matter, Cause (Sache), Thing, Maxim (Maxime), xxx hr. n. 1 24, 353, 363, 364, 493, 494, 498, 499 n. 44, 677 inc!. hr. n. 57, 694-96, 699, 708, 770, 789, 826, 840, 856, 879, see also Principle Maximum (Maximum), 374, 384, 458, 536, 693, cf. viii' inc!. hr. n. 9, xxxii inc!. hr. n. 1 28, 6 1 1 n. 83, 624, 631, 633 inc!. hr. n. 202, 635-36, 639, 647, 668, 842, see also Totality, Completeness Meaning or mean (Bedeutung, Sinn, Verstand, bedeuten, heij3en, meinen, verste hen, sagen wollen), 178 hr. n. 66, xii'-xiii' inc!. hr. n. 16, xvii' hr. n. 26, xxii', xii hr. n. 53, xvii hr. n. 73, xxiv hr. n. 98, xxx hr. n. 1 22, xliv, 1-2, 7-8, 1 1 hr. ns. 1 96, 1 98, and 200h, 14 hr. n. 223, 19 hr. n. 235, 33 hr. ns. 7 and 15, 35 n. 23, 37 hr. n. 30, 38-40, 42, 47, 54 n. 1 1 7, 63, 69, 76 incl hr. ns. 27 and 28, 90, 93, 96 hr. n. 1 44, 99, 1 03-4, 1 1 1 hr. n. 225, 1 15-16, 1 25 hr. n. 40, 1 04', 1 14', 1 1 8' hr. n. 1 42, 1 25' hr. n. 1 68, 142, 1 49, 1 60, 1 69 hr. ns. 3 and 6, 1 76, 178 hr. n. 65, 1 80 hr. n. 78, 1 8 1 hr. n. 89, 1 82 hr. n. 1 05, 1 86 hr. n. 1 38, 1 87 hr. n. 146, 1 94-95 incl. hr. n. 1 82, 205 hr. n. 58, 208 hr. n. 75, 209 hr. n. 82, 2 1 2, 214 hr. n. 1 1 2, 2 1 9 hr. n. 5, 224 hr. n. 45, 23 1 hr. n. 80, 232 hr. n. 86, 236, 238, 250, 258 hr. ns. 2 1 3 and 214, 260, 263, 268 hr. n. 6, 274, 282, 283, 285, 295 hr. n. 129, 298 inc!. hr. n. 136, 300 inc!. n. 144, 301 , 306 hr. n. 1 76, 307, 3 1 2 inc!. hr. ns. 196 and 1 97, 3 1 3, 333, 338 n. 1 24, 342, 349 inc!. hr. ns. 1 and 5, 352, 368
932
INDEX
hr. n. 103, 369-70, 379 hr. n. 1 50, 3 8 1 , 383, 392 hr. n. 210, 400, 405 hr. n. 33, 406 hr. n. 37, 355', 357', 360', 368', 369' inc!. hr. n. 1 24, 37 1 ' hr. n. 1 28, 372'-73', 384' inc!. hr. n. 1 83, 390'-9 1', 394' hr. n. 213, 397' hr. n. 2 1 9, 400', 402' hr. n. 237, 407-8, 4 1 1 n. 259, 422 n. 288, 441 , 446-48 inc!. n. 70, hr. ns. 73 and 74, 458, 459 n. 1 35, 462 hr. n. 1 57, 463, 466, 47 1 , 473 hr. n. 2 10, 483 n. 250, 486, 494 hr. n. 29, 495 hr. n. 30, 501 , 527, 530, 535-39, 540 hr. n. 198, 561, 573 hr. n. 3 1 4, 575, 579 hr. n. 339a, 584, 586 hr. n. 362, 592, 596, 601 , 604 hr. n . 50, 621 inc!. hr. n . 1 24, 622 hr. n . 1 36, 636, 637, 659, 679 hr. n . 67, 682, 684, 700 inc!. hr. n. 193, 701 , 7 1 2, 7 1 6 hr. n. 259, 721 hr. n. 283, 724, 735, 736, 737 n. 19, 74 1 , 755 inc!. n. 105 and hr. n. 107, 762 hr. n. 1 36, 767, 798, 800, 804, 824, 860, 863, 866-·68 inc!. n. 192, 875 n. 240; ordinary, 79, cf. 3 1 2 hr. n . 1 98e, 356, 369, 67 1 hr. n . 14; exceptional, 209; literal, xxxix hr. n . 144c, 96 hr. n. 140, 3 1 2 hr. n. 1 98f, 349 hr. n. 5, 527 hr. n. 146, 803 hr. n. 3 1 9; root, 84 hr. n. 70, 1 82 hr. n. 107, 540 hr. n. 198, 764 hr. n. 1 52, 770 hr. n. 1 87, 873 hr. n. 225; hasic, 44 hr. n. 68, 349 hr. n. I ; original, 366 hr. n. 92, 376, 755 n. 105; initial, 380; narrower (-est), 367', 447, 448, 870, 873; hroader, 668; ex panded, 382; complete, 569; proper, 103, 204, 427, 468; genuine, 878; strict (est), 376', 703, 854; logical, 350'; formal, 1 14; empirical, 45, 263, 379', 5 1 1 , 527; psychological, 3 5 n . 23, 402 n . 25; temporal, 825 hr. n . 9 ; transcendental, see Transcendental; intellectual, 367' inc!. hr. n. 1 19; positive and negative, 307, cf. 309, 737 n. 1 9; prohlematic, 100; practical, 562, 829; see also Signification, Meaningless Meaningless (sinnleer), 1 78 hr. n. 66, 508, 5 13, see also Meaning Means (Mittel), v, 33 incl. hr. n. 5, 64, 395 n. 222, 452, 505, 554 hr. n. 246, 629, 650, 653, 657, 667, 685, 695, 770, 774, 778, 785, 797, 805, 825, 828, 834, 849, 852, 853, 868, 878, 883, see also Remedy, Mediation, PUipose Mechanism or mechanical (Mechanismus, Mechanik, mechanisch), xxvii, xxix inc!. hr. ns. 1 14, 1 1 7, and 1 19, xxxii, 9 1 , 215, 329, 415 n. 275, 674, 715, 7 1 9, 720, 749, see also Machine, Motion Mediate (mittelbar), 93 inc!. hr. n. 130, 1 96 inc!. hr. n. 204, 200, 214 inc!. hr. n. 1 1 3, 274 inc!. hr. n. 36, 355, 386, see also Indirect, Mediation, Intermediate, Immediate Mediation or mediate (Vermittlung, vermitteln), xxxix hr. n. 144c, 1 77, 1 78, 293, 360 inc!. hr. n. 58, 760, 761, 779, 878, see also Means, Mediate (mittelbar), In termediate, Third Mellin, George Samuel Alhert, 1 30 hr. n. 1 90, 1 89 hr. n. 1 5 1 , 199 hr. n. 1 2, 2 1 8 hr. n. 1 44, 222 hr. ns. 3 1 and 32, 238 hr. n. 1 2 1 , 242 hr. n. 140, 3 1 7 hr. n. 1 1 , 393 hr. n. 216, 401' hr. n. 233, 42 1 hr. n. 284, 470 hr. n. 1 89, 502 hr. n. 59, 5 1 2 hr. n. 99, 685 hr. n. 105, 798 hr. n. 299, 857 hr. n. 149 Melnick, Arthur, 37 hr. n. 27, 46 hr. n. 75, 95' hr. n. 58, 197 hr. n. 1 , 2 1 8 hr. n. 3, 224 hr. n. 46, 232 hr. n. 88, 256 hr. n. 206, 294 hr. n. 1 25, 454 hr. n. 1 1 3, 462 hr. n. 1 56, 525 hr. n. 138 Mendelssohn, Moses, 4 1 3- 1 5 inc!. hr. ns. 262 and 270 Mental (Gemiits-, -sinnigkeit) power(s), 169, 306 hr. n. 1 76, 35 1 hr. n. 20, 574 hr. n. 3 1 7, 670 hr. n. 7, 799, 806, cf. v, xiv', 670-7 1 , 676-77, see also Power; state,
INDEX
933
242; acuity (acuteness), 9 1 , 682; world and supreme being (conceived as, in Hume), 649 br. n. 282; see also Mind Metaphysical (metaphysisch), contrasted with transcendental, see Transcendental; problem, xiii'; concepts, 875 n. 240; principles, 875 n. 240; presupposition, 2 1 5 ; assertions, x'; exposition, 3 7 inc!. br. n . 28, 3 8 , 46, 4 8 ; chapters, viii inc!. br. n. 42; deduction, 1 59 inc!. br. n. 299, cf. 90- 1 1 6; combination, 201 n. 30; deter mination of the object, 409; -cosmological proof, 632 br. n. 1 93 ; natural scien tists, 56; status of objects (in Hume), 274 br. n. 4 1 ; jugglery, 88; see also Meta physics, Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science
Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science (Metaphysische Anfangsgriinde der Naturwissenschaften), xliii br. n. 1 49, 20 br. n. 243c, 37 br. n. 27, 40 br. n. 48, 58 br. n. 1 32, 1 1 0 inc!. br. n. 2 1 7, 1 28' br. n. 1 79, 1 29 br. n. 1 84, 1 55 br. n. 283a, 2 1 5 br. n. 1 20, 261 br. n. 227, 29 1 br. n. 108, 292 br. n. 1 1 4, 321 br. ns. 3 1 and 40, 333 br. n. 98, 338 br. n. 1 2 1 , 347 br. n. 144, 3 5 1 br. ns. 19 and 22, 364' br. n. 99a, 366' br. n. 1 1 1 , 379' br. n. 1 59, 3 8 1 ' br. ns. 1 68 and 1 70, 398' br. n. 224, 4 1 5 br. n. 274, 457 br. n. 1 26c, 459 br. n. 1 35a, 468 br. n. 1 85 , 49 1 br. n. 6, 492 br. n. 9, 508 br. n. 86, 54 1 br. ns. 209 and 2 1 1 , 552 br. n. 239, 646 br. n. 265, 683 br. n. 92, 754 br. n. 99, 798 br. n. 299, 8 1 3 br. n. 362, 869 br. n. 202, 870 br. n. 2 1 3, 874 br. n. 234, 876 br. n. 243, 877 br. n. 247, see also Meta
physics of Nature Metaphysical Principles of Virtue (Metaphysische Anfangsgriinde der Tugend lehre), see also Metaphysics of Morals Metaphysician (Metaphysiker), xxi n. 87, xxxiv, 8 8 1 , cf. 56 Metaphysics (Metaphysik), is the completion of all culture of human reason, 878; as the whole of pure philosophy, including critique, 869, cf. xxiv, see also Phi losophy, Critique; in it reason deals merely with itself, 23, see also Reason; is the system of pure reason, i.e., the whole philosophical cognition from pure rea son in its systematic coherence, 869, cf. 873, see also System; is the inventory of all the possessions that we have through pure reason, xx', cf. 879; consists in a speculative cognition by reason that is wholly isolated and rises entirely above being instructed by experience, xiv, cf. xix, xxi, 6-7, 1 8, 395 n. 222, see also Experience; is to contain (consists of nothing but) synthetic a priori cognitions (in it, we want to expand our cognition[sl [synthetically]), 1 8, 23, cf. xxxvi, 869, 87 1 -73, 875-77 inc!. n. 240, 879, see also Cognition; homogeneity of, with mathematics, 872, cf. 875 n. 240, see also Mathematics; there has always been and there will always be some, xxxi, cf. 2 1 , 22, 870, 877-78 incl. br. n. 252; our pure natural predisposition for, 2 1 ; is indispensable, 1 8, 24, 870, 878-79; (essential) value (advantage, importance) of, xxxi, 875 n. 240, 879; dignity and authority of, 878; (basic, general) idea of, 870, 872, 876, 877, 88 1 ; (essential) purpose(s) (ideas) of, xix, xxxix n. 1 44, 1 8, 2 1 , 23, 395 n. 222, 878 incl. br. n. 253; problem(s) (task[s]) of, xvi, xxxvi, 7, 23, 883, cf. 395 n. 222, see also God, Freedom, Immortality; objects of, 22; questions of, 22, 883; wish of, xxi; pos sibility of, xii', xxi', 20-22, cf. xv, 19, 875-77; preparation (propaedeutic) of, 878, see also Propaedeutic; outline of, xxii; procedure (method) of (followed in), xv, xxii, xxxvi, 24; progress in, xvi, xxx, xxxv inc!. br. n. 1 33, 2 1 , 494 br. n. 25 ; completion (completeness) of, xx', xxiii-xxiv, xliii br. n. 1 49, 7 ; (future)
934
INDEX
system (systematicity, systematic unity) of, xxii, xxiii, xxx, xxxvi, xliii, 869, 873-75, cf. xxxviii, 880; as the queen of all the sciences, viii', cf. xiv; as (on the secure path of) a science, xx', xiv, xviii-xix, xxii-xxiv, xxxvi, 7, 1 8, 22, 24, 395 n. 222, 869-7 1 , 877-79; as not yet (on the secure path of, actual as) a sci ence, xiv, xv, 2 1 , cf. xliii hr. n. 149; we do not yet have one, 2 1 ; skepticism makes short work of, xxxvi, cf. 20, 22-23; cognition from (mere) (dissection of) concepts (whatever is analytic) in, xxxv, 23, 494 hr. n. 25, cf. xv, 1 1 3 ; dog matic (dogmatism [dogmatic procedure] in) in, x' incl. hr. n. 1 0, xxx, xxxv incl. hr. n. 1 33, xxxvi, 7, 23, 24 incl. hr. n. 254, 494 incl. hr. n. 25; groping ahout (uncertainty) in, xv, 19, cf. xxx-xxxi, 2 1 , 869; the claims of, ix'; errors of, xxxi, cf. 869, 879; disagreement (controversy, contradictions) in (raised hy), xiv-xv, xxxiv, 24, see also Antinomy of pure reason; as a hattlefield (contest arena), viii', xv, 88 1 ; as treated with disdain (contempt), viii'-ix', 877-78, cf. xxx; pu rification of (hy critique), xxiv, 870, cf. xxx; enlightenment of, 876; experiment in, xvi-xvii, xviii incl. hr. n. 78; revolution(s) (change, changed [transformed] way of thinking) in, xv-xvii, xviii-xix inc!. hr. n. 78, xxii incl. n. 93, 88 1 ; proper, 23; as such, xii'; division (main parts) of, 869, 874-75, cf. 876-77; of nature (natural, of [the] speculative [use of pure] reason), xliii incl. hr. n. 149, 2 1 incl. hr. n. 246, 1 08 incl. hr. n. 207, 869-70 incl. hr. n. 210, 873, 875 n. 240, 878, cf. xxi', 87 1 -72, 879, 8 8 1 , its (further) division, 873-74, see also Nature, Meta physics of Nature; of corporeal nature, 874, see also Physics; of thinking na ture, 874, cf. 876-77, see also Psychology; of morals (of the practical use of pure reason, in the narrower meaning), xliii incl. hr. n. 1 49, 869-70 incl. hr. n . 2 1 0, 878, see also Morals, Metaphysics of Morals; must always remain the hul wark of religion (hut cannot he its foundation), 877; see also Metaphysical, Metaphysician, Reflections on Metaphysics, Lectures on Metaphysics, Prolego
mena to any Future Metaphysics, On the Progress of Metaphysics since Leibniz and Wolff, Principorum primorum cognitionis metaphysicae nova dilucidatio Metaphysics of Morals (Metaphysik der Sitten), xliii hr. n. 149, 79 hr. n. 39, 373 hr. n. 1 2 1 , 579 hr. n. 339a, 582 hr. n. 345, 594 hr. n. 408, 780 hr. n. 226, 830 hr. n. 30, 833 hr. n. 46, 84 1 hr. n. 87, 847 hr. ns. 1 07 and 1 1 1 , 869 hr. ns. 200, 202, and 203, 870 hr. n. 207, see also Grounding for the Metaphysics of Morals, Metaphysics Metaphysics of Nature (Metaphysik der Natur), xxi', see also Metaphysical Foun dations of Natural Science, Metaphysics Method (Methode), ii hr. n. I, xiii n. 6 1 , xviii incl. n. 77, xxii, xxxvi, xxxvii, xlii. 1 7, 86, 1 79, 264 incl. hr. n. 242, 434, 45 1 -52, 535, 656 hr. n. 3 1 8, 676, 689, 694, 696, 730, 736, 740-4 1 , 752-55 inc. hr. n. 92, 760, 765, 766, 783 incl. hr. n. 237, 792, 883-84, cf. 92, see also Method-
INDEX
935
64 1 , 677, 678 inc!. hr. n. 62, 683, 695, 700, 753, 78 1 , 784, 796, 848, 849, 857 n. 1 5 1 , cf. ii inc!. hr. n. 1, xx' hr. n. 35, xxxii hr. n. 1 28, 55, 2 1 5 hr. n. 1 25 , 259, 387', 4 1 4, 428, 446 n. 70, 5 1 9 hr. n. 123, 585 hr. n. 360, 735, 864, see also Soul; as suhstance, see Suhstance; suhjective character of, 38, cf. 62, 305 n. 169; state of, 3 1 6, 3 1 7, 700, cf. 242, 520; hasic source of, 74; power(s) of, 127 n. 48, 270, 500, see also Mental, Power, Spirit, Intelligence Minor premise (Untersatz), see Premise Misology (Misologie), 883 Mistake (Fehler), xxxviii, 345, 352, 354, 499, 656 hr. n. 3 1 8, 7 1 7, 7 1 9, 720, 762, 763, cf. 14, 350, 558, 709, 742, see also Error
Mistaken Subtlety of the Four Syllogistic Figures-The, (Die falsche Spit
(Monadologie, Monadist),
330, 467, 469-70,
see
see also
Monogram (Monogramm) 1 8 1 , 598, cf. 8 6 1 Monopoly (Monopol), xxxii
(Monotheismus), 6 1 8, see also Theist (Mond), 22 1 , 257, 354, 489 inc!. hr. n. 266, 5 2 1 , 883, see also Astronomy Moral(ly) (moralisch, Moral-, sittlich, Sitten-), philosophy, 868, see also Philosophy; concepts, 597, 845; ideas, 386, 496, 845, cf. 840, see also Idea; question,
Monotheism Moon
833; sphere, 374, 579 hr. n. 339a; edifices, 376; use of ([the principles of] pure) reason, xxv, 668 hr. n. 369, 835, 836, 844, see also Reason; principles (of rea son), 496, 835, 837, 846, 85 1 , 856, see also Principle; legislating reason, 847;
936
INDEX
law(s), (pure, universal, necessary), 79, 375, 425, 43 1 , 660-62 inc!. n. 344, 664, 723 br. n. 300, 828, 833-40, 843, 845-47, 856, 857, 868, as a fact of reason, 723 br. n. 300, see also Law; laws, (regarded) as commands, 834, 839-40; law, extremely pure, of our religion, 845; precept(s), 835, 856, see also Precept; max im(s), xxx br. n. 124, 840, cf. 856, see also Maxim; judgment, 835, cf. 840; -practically justifiable, 19 br. n. 235, see also Practical; aims, xxxiii, see also Aim; interest, 846 br. n. 102, 858, see also Interest; good or bad (moral or im moral) vs. moral or nonmoral, 579 br. n. 339a, cf. 842; (lack of) value, 372, 843; good conduct, 84 1 , cf. 842, see also Conduct; gUiltiness (liability), 579 br. n. 339a; character (of acts), 6 1 , 774, see also Character; attitude(s), 841-42, 857-58, see also Attitude; order, 660, 844; unity, 835, 843-45, cf. 856, is sys tematic, 835; purposive unity, 845; purposiveness, 845 inc!. br. n. 101 ; what is, the ultimate aim of nature pertains properly only to this, 829; world, 836-39 inc!. br. n. 75, 843; perfection, 372, 660; most perfect will, 838; theology, 648 br. n. 278, 660 inc!. n. 344, 665 br. n. 364, 669, 842, 846-47, contrasted with theological morality, 660 inc!. n. 344, see also Theology; analogue of, 858; faith, vii' br. n. 6, 856, 857 br. n. 1 50, see also Faith; certainty (that there is a God), 857-58; proof of the existence of God, 839 br. n. 76, cf. 6 1 7 br. n. 102, see also God; see also Morality, Morals, Moralist, Moralized, Immoral Moralist Morality
(Moralist), 835, 868, see also Morality, Morals, Moral (Moral, Moralitiit, Sittlichkeit), xxviii-xxxi inc!. br. ns.
1 1 5 and 1 1 9, 28,
79, 395 n. 222, 452-53, 492 br. n. 12, 844 br. n. 96, 8 8 1 , is the only law governedness of actions that can be derived completely a priori from principles, 869, cf. 28; is the philosophy concerning the final purpose (the whole vocation of the human being), 868, see also Purpose; possibility of, xxix br. n. 1 1 9; ideas of, 84 1 ; doctrine of, xxix; principles of, 375, 499 n. 44, cf. 42 1 , 432; supreme principles and basic concepts of, 28-29, cf. 494; necessary laws of, 836; realm of, 166 br. n. 324a; system of (pure), 28, 837-39, that rewards itself, 837-38; pure, 79 inc!. br. n. 39, 508, 869-70; purity and consequences of, 840; aim of, 85 1 ; purposes of, 844, cf. 85 1 , 856; desires of, 834 br. n. 49; pure, its practical content, 508; practical (natural) interest in, 496, 857 n. 1 5 1 , see also Practica!' Interest; (proper) of actions (conduct), 579 n. 339, see also Action, Conduct; obstacles for (to), 836, 837, cf. 79, see also Obstacle; devastations wreaked in, 877; nature's reference to, 843, cf. 829; judging of, 840; as worthiness to be happy, 838, 839 br. n. 74, cf. 84 1-42, see also Worthiness; its connection with happiness, 837-42 inc!. br. n. 74, see also Happiness; theological, 660 inc!. n. 344, see also Theology; see also Moral, Morals, Virtue, Moralist, Moralized Moralized
(moralisiert),
776,
see also
Moral
Morals (Sitten), philosophy of, 868, see also Philosophy; metaphysics of, xliv, 869-70, 878, see also Metaphysics; pure doctrine of, 870; universal principles of, 508; see also Morality, Metphysics of Morals, Grounding for the Metaphys
ics of Morals (sterblich), ii inc!. br. n. 1 , 97, 360 inc!. br. n. 62, 378; not-, 602 inc!. br. n. see also Nonmortal, Immortality Mother (Mutter), wit 172 inc!. br. ns. 26 and 28c, see also Ingenuity; of illusion, 375, see also Illusion; of chaos and night, x' Mortal 36;
INDEX
937
Motion (Bewegung), xvi, xxii n. 93, 1 , 9, 1 7 , 48-49, 58, 67, 107 incl. br. ns. 1 97 and 199, 1 54-55 incl. n. 283, 2 1 5 incl. br. n. 125, 230, 252 incl. n. 1 9 1 , 277-78, 290 n. 107, 29 1 , 292, 330, 338, 35 1 incl. br. n. 19, 35 2'-53', 358', 363' n. 99, 385', 387', 39 1 '-93', 457 n. 1 26, 478, 488, 489 incl. br. n. 266, 530 incl. br. n. 154, 690, 69 1 , 8 1 2, cf. xxxii, 492, 738, state of, see State Much
(vieles),
concept of, 347,
see also
Multitude
Milller, Max, 224 br. ns. 42 and 43 Multifarious (vielftiltig), 203 br. n. 38, 606, 756, plicity, Multitude
see also
Manifold, Much, Multi
Multiplicity (Vielheit), 203 br. n. 38, 2 1 0, 258 br. n. 2 1 5 , 4 1 5 n. 275, cf. 677 br. n. 57, 680 inc!. br. n. 73, see also Plurality, Multitude Multitude (Menge), xviii', xxxiii, 9, 19, 40, 97, 108, 1 1 1 , 1 1 2, 1 1 6, 1 14', 1 22', 179, 204, 458, 460 incl. n. 140, 48 1 , 502, 533, 547, 552, 554, 555, 60 1 , 62 1 , 686, 7 1 5 , 760, cf. 93 br. n. 1 32, 297, see also Multiplicity, Plurality, Much, Multi farious Musician
(Tonkiinstler),
414 n. 273
Mutable (wandelbar), xxxix n. 144, 107', 1 83, 224 n. 44, 227, 23 1 , 250, 37 1 , 350', 3 8 1 ', 399', 7 1 0, 826, 875, see also Changeable Mystical (mystisch), system, 882; deduction, 37 1 n. 1 1 0; reality of concepts, 882; object, 836 incl. br. n. 58 Natural (natiirlich, Natur-), 7-8 inc!. br. n. 173, 447 incl. br. n. 74, 873 incl. br. n. 228, contrasted with transcendental, see Transcendental; philosophy, xi br. n. 52, see also Philosophy; metaphysics, 21 incl. br. n. 246, see also Metaphysics; sci ence(s), (proper, empirical, universal, general,) xi n. 14, xii, xiv-xvi, xviii n. 77, xxix, 17-18, 20 inc!. n. 243, 1 28, 2 1 3, 2 1 5 br. n. 1 25 , 395 n. 222, 49 1 br. n. 1 1 , 508, 754, 774, 8 1 5, 820, 874-78 incl. n. 240, its (their) realm, 774, its principles, 17. and its possibility, 20, see also Science; scientist(s), xxxvi br. n. 1 34, 56, 2 1 5, 867; questions, 22, 177, cf. 449, 747; investigation (inquiry), 7 1 8, 727 incl. br. n. 3 1 3, 80 1 ; guidance, 1 87 ; objection, 53; decision, 774; explana tions, 700, 80 1 , see also Explanation; assumption (presumption), 723, 752, cf. 326, 329-30, 503, 528; premise, 525; argument, 357', 6 1 7 ; inference, 63 1 , 643, cf. 283, 305 n. 1 69, 553, 768; concepts, transcendental, 448; reference of the transcendental use of our cognition to its logical use, 390; affinity, 8 1 1 ; arrange ment, 7 1 6, cf. 200, see also Arrange; order, 374, 425, 496, 509, 567, 570, 660, see also Order (Ordnung); unity, 1 25' br. n. 168, 720, 721 br. n. 279, 845, 862, see also Unity; appearances, 500, 508, 700, see also Appearance; things, 590, 722, 800, see also Thing; products, 654; law(s), (constant, unchangeable, im mutable, transcendental, necessary, universal, particular) xxviii, 1 00', 1 98, 405, 432, 474, 476, 478, 499 n. 44, 5 1 6, 564, 567, 568, 570, 574, 580, 584, 633 n. 1 95, 678, 720, 722, 800, 833, 835-36, 843, 844, 868, cf. 566, see also Law; necessity, (absolute, universal) xxvii, 446, 447, 566, 569-7 1 , 585, cf. 564, see also Necessity; mechanism, xxix, see also Mechanism; events, 572, cf. 349'; conditions, 572, 576, see also Condition; bases, 576, 800, see also B asic; cause(s), (determinative,) 447, 478, 562, 569, 572-74 incl. br. n. 3 1 4, 5 8 1 , 649, 674, 722, 827, 83 1 , 834, 843, cf. 564, see also Cause, Causality; influence, 391';
938
INDEX
means for satisfying inclinations, 834; effect(s), 478, 571, 580, 582; conse quences, 478; result, 562; predisposition, 21-22, 425, 697, cf. 582-83 incl. br. n. 35 1 ; talent, 174; gift, 172; understanding, 63 1 , see also Understanding; course of common understanding, 6 1 8, cf. 665 ; power of judgment, 173, see also Judgment-power of; reason, 382', 654, see also Reason, Critique; use of rea son, 663-64, 7 1 8 ; course of (human, every) reason, 612, 614, 63 1 , 772, cf. ix; propensity, human reason's, 670; vocation, of reason, xiii', see also Vocation ; idea(s), 609, 670; problems of reason, 490; limits impairing completeness, 598; obstacles, ix; illusion, 354, 396', 402', 449, 610, 643, 732, see also llIusion; de lusion of common reason, 528; subreption, 647; dialectic of (human, pure) rea son, 354, 697, cf. xxxi, 37 1 ; antithetic, 433; advance of reason to the comple tion of unity, 6 1 1 n. 83; purpose, 841 , cf. 425, 845; perfection, 660, cf. 722; interest in morality, 857 n. 1 5 1 ; advance from the cognition of oneself to that of the world and to that of the original being, 395, cf. 371, 740; theology, 7 1 , 632, 659-60, 842, see also Theology; and see Physical, Nature, Naturalistic, Naturalist, Supranatural, Unnatural, Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Sci
ence Naturalist (Naturalist, Naturkenner), tic, Natural, Nature
657, 696
br. n.
168, 883, see also
Naturalis
(naturalistisch), 883, see also Naturalist, Natural, Nature (Natur), as such, 164, 165, 696, 7 1 2; considered materially, 163 incl. br. n. 3 15, cf. 1 25' incl. br. n. 168, 446 n. 70; is a (the) sum of (all) appearances (given objects, objects of experience), xix, 1 14', 163, 446 n. 70, 873-74, cf. 125' inc!. br. n. 168, 561, 682, 7 1 2, see also Appearance, Given, Experience; is the object of all possible experience, 1 14'; is the world considered as a dynamical whole, 446-47 incl. n. 70, see also World; considered formally, 165 incl. br. n. 3 19, cf. 1 25' br. n. 168, 446 n. 70; is law-governedness (order and regularity, synthetic unity) in (of [the manifold of]) appearances, 1 25'-27' incl. br. n. 168, 165, see also Law-governed, Order (Ordnung), Regular, Unity; in the empirical mean
Naturalistic Nature
ing, is the coherence of appearances as regards their existence according to nec essary rules, 263, cf. 1 1 4', 446 n. 70, 475, 479, 572-73, see also Coherence; of things (as appearances), 23, 26, 281, 358, 37 1 n. 1 10, 384', 653, 680, 721, 723, 729, 737 n. 19, 790, 838, 842, 875, cf. 555, is the unity of the understanding, 28 1 , see also Thing, Understanding; is the object of the understanding, 127' inc!. br. n. 1 77; its conformity with (agreement with, dependence on) apperception (the understanding, the categories), 1 14', 127', 1 63-65, cf. 198, see also Apper ception, Categories; understanding is legislative for (is the source of the law s [the formal unity] of), 1 27', 570, cf. 160, see also Legislation; in respect of it experience provides us with the rule and is the source of truth, 375, see also Truth; the land of truth is enclosed by, 294-95; philosophy of, 868, 875 n. 240, cf. 644, see also Philosophy; metaphysics of, see Metaphysics; investigation (in vestigator[s]) of, xii-xv, xviii n. 77, xxii, 56, 2 1 5, 2 1 7, 254, 501, 674, 683, 7 1 7 , 720-22 incl. br. n. 279, 725, 727, 729 br. n. 322, 826, 844, 854, 883, cf. 30,
673; (rational) contemplation (observation, study) of, xiii-xiv, 65 1 , 726, 728, 873, 874; is reason's proper realm, 729, cf. 753, 873, see also Reason; reason does not have causality with regard to all of, 835 ; is the one and only given ob-
INDEX
ject in regard to which reason needs regulative principles, 712,
see also
939
Prin
ciple; what reason itself puts into, xiv, cf. 1 25' incl. br. n. 168, 720-21 incl. br. n. 279; puzzle (marvels) of, 477, 652, cf. 1 8 1 ; explanation of, 2 1 6, cf. 500, 504-5, 5 1 1 , 800-803, 854 br. n. 140, see also Explanation; acquaintance with, 498, 574, 65 1 , 844-45, cf. 497 inel. br. n. 38, see also Acquaintance; cognition of (regarding), 254, 328, 575, 663, 679, 688, 702, 709 br. n. 228, by the under standing is limited to what is, or has been, or will be, 575,
see also Cognition; see also Knowl
cognition of, its principle, 663; knowledge of, 505, cf. 334, 5 10,
edge; insight into, 492, cf. 1 27 n. 48, 3 84', 388', see also Insight; (intrinsic) pos sibility of, 1 27', 159-60, 263, 7 1 2, cf. 280, 4 1 5 n. 275, 654, see also Possibil ity; essence of, 72 1 ; intrinsic character of, 334, cf. 730; entirety of, 874, cf. 729; range of, 497; one context of, 565, cf. 503, 854; contents (members, compo nents) of, 127', 386, 689, 7 1 9, cf. 775-76; opulent, 685; quantum of substance in, 224-25 ; on the large and the small scale, 492, cf. 696; removal of the simple from, 465; differences in, 685; species in, 689; animate and inanimate, 574; of fluid matter, fire, etc., 446 n. 70; every form of, 645 ; manifold(ness} of, see Manifold; appearances of, 165, 505, 683, 826; things (objects) of (offered to us by), 1 1 4', 446 n. 70, 49 1 , 497, 498, 574, 685; material, 773; corporeal, 7 1 2- 1 3 incl. br. n. 24 1 , 874; incorporeal, 827; immaterial, 7 1 8, 806; spiritual, 7 1 2, 808, 826; (my, our, the) thinking, (as such,) 383', 391', 393', 405', 4 1 5 n. 275, 7 1 0, 7 1 2, 7 1 3 br. n. 24 1 , 874, see also Thought; of a (all) thinking being(s} (as such), 406, 382', 399', 42 1 ; of our thinking being (mind), 125', 403, 395'; of myself as subject, 3 84'; simple, of the soul (ourselves as subject, the thinking self [sub ject, substance]), xiv', xxix, 356', 359'-6 1 ', 401', 4 14, 494, 7 1 8, 8 1 2, cf. 659 incl. br. n. 34 1 , 7 10, 769, 806, 826; human (of a human being, our [inner], one's), x', xxxii, 15, 294, 372, 373, 360', 596, 7 1 8, 7 3 1 , 775, 836, 849, 855, 859; facts of, 497; origin of, in Plato, 374; first bases of, 700; course of, 474, 475, 49 1 , 575, 578, 840, cf. 497; (indissoluble) chain of, 503, 572, cf. 5 1 6, 562, 564; con ditions in, 7 1 3; causality according to, 560, see also Causality; efficient causes in, 248, cf. 568, see also Cause; effects in, 280, cf. 5 1 6, 564; changes of, 400', see also Change; action of, 576, see also Action; force(s} of, 350, 64 1 , 679, see also Force; (necessary) mechanism of, xxvii, xxix incl. br. n. 1 1 4, see also Mechanism; contingent character of, 679, see also Contingent; necessity of (in), 280, 565, cf. 660, see also Necessity; (necessary) law-govemedness of, 1 1 4', 165; law(s} of, see Law; rule of, 573, 678; continuity in, 688 incl. br. n. 128,
see also
Continuity; order (regularity, beauty, provisions) of ([manifested] in), xxxiii, 1 25', 425, 492, 577, 578, 696, 7 1 9, 800, cf. 479, see also Order (Ord nung); (necessary) coherence of, 1 1 4', 1 25', 263, 446 n. 70, 479, cf. 572-73, 680, 683; (necessary, a priori certain, formal, systematic, purposive, greatest pos sible) unity of, 1 14', 1 25 ' br. n. 1 68, 1 27', 263, 492, 647, 679, 695, 7 1 9-2 1 , 727, 728, 835, 844-45 incl. br. n . 96; o f our powers, 670; of our power o f pre sentation, 400; of (pure [speculative], [universal] human, our) reason, see Rea son; of the (my, human) understanding, see Understanding; of the transcenden tal (objective) use of the pure concepts of understanding (use of imagination and apperception), 1 27 n. 48, 383; of concepts, 1 1 8; of our perceptions, 2 1 6, cf. 37 br. n. 28; of the object, 388', 695; of (a particular) cognition(s), xiv', 8, 6 1 ,
940
INDEX
1 1 9, 170; of synthetic (a priori) judgments (propositions), 1 89, 790; of an ana lytic proposition, 1 93 ; of apodeictic certainty, 14; of (a) science(s), see Science; of the science of logic, viii; of (transcendental) philosophy, 400, 763, cf. 753. 880; we are acquainted with nothing more than, 498; boundary of, 73 1 , 753, cf. 395', 755, see also Boundary; beyond (outside of), 334, 395 n. 222, 498, 65 1 , 73 1 , 784, cf. 475, 478; limitless, 477; blindly acting and eternal, 66 1 ; as if it were infinite, 700; all-powerful (omnipotence of), 477, 653; of a thing in itself, 360'; of an idea, 7 1 7 ; concepts of reason are not drawn from, 673; signification in regard to, 329; application to, 682 inc!. br. n. 8 1 , 854, 875 n. 240; commen surate with, 68 1 , 689; systematic unity that does not conform to, 679; of our actions, 846; the state of, 779-80 inc!. br. ns. 221 and 224; constraint of, 494; of a patient's illness, 852; obstructions and reactions in, 329; a path directly op posite to, 688; and freedom, 475, 479, 497, 560, 564, 565, 568, 569, 5 7 1 , 573, 579 n. 339, 580, 586, 660, 8 3 1 , 835, 843, 868, see also Freedom; freely acting, first makes possible all art and perhaps even reason itself, 654; analogy of (with), 425, 654, 659; arrangement(s) of, 654, 679, 696, 727, 77 1 , cf. 7 1 6, 829, see also Arrange; as impartial in the distribution of its gifts, 859; wisdom and fore sight of, 729; predispositions made by, 694; (supreme) purposiveness of (in), 374 br. n. 124, 721 inc!. br. n. 282, 728, 800, 844, see also Purposive; purposes (manifesting themselves) in, 7 1 9, see also Purpose; intentions of, 696, see also Intent; ultimate aim of, 829, see also Aim; reference of, to morality (what ought to happen in), 575, 843, cf. 576-78, 838, see also Morality; proving from, 648 inc!. br. n. 276, 72 1 , cf. 657-58, see also Proof; a supreme reason as cause of, 838, see also Cause (supreme); a being above, 728, 874, see also God; of a be ing of the highest perfection, 7 14; theology (theological system) of, 7 1 8, 855, see also Theology; kingdom of, 840; see also Natural, Naturalistic, Naturalist, Metaphysics Nature (Wesen), 1 26', 8 1 0, 844 inc!. br. n. 97, cf. 639 inc!. br. n. 228, 855 inc!. br. n. 143, see also Essence, Character Necessary (notwendig, nOtig) , the, concept of, 442; is that whose coherence with the actual is determined according to universal conditions of experience, 266; everything cognized (a priori) by reason is cognized as, 803, cf. 809, 85 1 ; ex perience tells us what is, but not that it must necessarily be so and not other wise, 1 n. 1 5 3 ; hypothetically, everything that occurs is, 280, cf. 85 1 ; presen tation, 38, 46, 106'; predicate, 621-22; concept(s), see Concept; the categories as, 1 1 1', cf. 168; ingredient of perception, 1 20' n. 150; taste and colors are not. 44 n. 65 ; synthesis of apprehension as, 97', cf. 102'; reproduction, 105', 106', cf. 102', 108; (a priori) synthesis (of presentations, of the manifold, of imagi nation), 1 06', 1 35 inc!. br. n. 208, 1 5 1 , 197, see also Synthesis; reference to the understanding, 1 1 9'; reference to possible experience (a possible empirical [tran scendental] consciousness), 1 1 7' n. 1 38, 1 1 9', cf. 75, 197; reference to the I think (the one self), 1 32, 140; linkage of consciousness of my existence in time with the existence of things outside me, 276, cf. xxxix n. 144; reference, to each other. of synthetic presentation and its obj ect, 124-25; unity (union) of (pure) apper ception (the subject, [self-]consciousness), 108'-10', 1 1 2', 1 24', 1 35 , 142, 144, 1 85 , 195-96, 220, 353', cf. 1 14', 1 1 7' n. 1 3 8, 140, 363'-64'; unity of synthesis
INDEX
941
(synthetic [fonnal] unity), 1 04, 1 0 1 ', 1 05', 1 08', 1 1 8'-1 9', 1 22', 1 23', 234, cf. 1 27, 1 85 ; unity (coherence) of appearances, 108', 1 29'; unity of nature, 1 14', 1 25', cf. 727; unity of space (of outer sensible intuition as such), 1 62; time de termination, 264, cf. 46; (pure, empirical) use of space and time, 1 95 incl. br. n. 1 9 1 , cf. 60; objectivity of space and time (as underlying) appearances, 39 inc!. n. 37, 5 1 , cf. 44 n. 65, 55-56, 59, 65-66, 72, 1 2 1 , 125, 1 63, 1 88-89, 206, 46 1 , 469; conformity (agreement) of objects of experience with the concepts o f un derstanding (the unity of apperception), xvii-xviii, cf. 75, 122, 125-26, 1 04'-5', 1 1 2', 1 1 3', 1 1 7' n. 1 38, 1 1 9', 1 24', 1 32, 142, 143, 1 50, 1 62 n. 3 1 1 , 366-67, 405, 349', 442,
see also
Experience; agreement of judgments with the laws of un
derstanding, 350; in regard to objects of experience, 259, cf. 266; what is, realm of, 282, cf. 594; appearances, 447, 584; nature as, 565, cf. 659-60; thing(s), Thing; object,
see
see
Object; subjects, 623; (states of) substances, 279-80; prop
erty, 469, 646; matter regarded as, 645-46 inc!. br. n. 264; law-govemedness, 1 27', 1 65 , cf. 1 64; law(s), rule(s), principles, proposition, judgment(s),
headings; validity, 850;
see these
cognition, xv', 389, 640; assumption, 424, 425, 472, 837,
cf. 1 22 br. n. 34, 2 1 6, 622, 7 1 4; presupposition, xxviii, 102', 2 1 5, 394, 353', 373', 477, 6 1 7 br. n. 102, 662, 682, 805, 846, 854; condition(s), see Condition; logical condition, 268, 302; connection (linkage, linked existence, order, coher ence) of perceptions (presentations, appearances), 2 1 8, 2 1 9, 222, 234, 238, 245, 265 n. 244; kind of combination of the manifold, 236, 242, cf. 201 n. 30; con nection between cause and effect, 5, 168, cf. 1 2, 1 3 , 1 24, 1 1 2', 1 68, 20 1 n. 30, 239, 243, 244, 246, 247, 280, 478, 479, 565, 588, 794, see also Causality, Cause; mechanism, xxix br. ns. 1 14, 1 17, and 1 19; succession of states, 240, cf. 528; precedence, 42, 129', 203, 395 n. 222; consequence, 123'; result, 124, 839; event, 568; change, 480; series of the world's changes (of appearances), 48 1 , 564; pro gression, 239; regression, 5 14-16, 650, cf. 442, 542, 645; (first) beginning (in the series) of the world (its changes), xiv', 476, 48 1 ; a conditioned as, 662; the unconditioned as, 447, 480, 487, cf. 444; the intelligible as, 592; first basis, 644; the (a) first cause as, 657, 659-60, cf. xxxii; linkage of the, with the contingent, 558; completeness, xx'; simultaneity, 257; community of interaction, 260; per manence, 229, 232, cf. 4 1 8; the simple as, 468, cf. 353', 4 1 5 n. 275, 466, 468; identity, 1 1 2', cf. 107'; division, 1 69, cf. 466, distinction, xxvii, 328, 369'; analy sis, 25 inc!. br. n. 27 1 ; examples and illustrations, xviii'; question, 5 1 1 , cf. 449; inquiry, 98', 542; critique, xxxvi, cf. 22; thought, see Thought; agreement, 57, 166; truths, 64; cf. 328; use of understanding, 78; science of pure reason, xliii, cf. 22; syllogism, 397; proof, 82; deduction, 1 1 9, 1 2 1 ; bases, 449, cf. 1 94 incl. br. n. 1 82, 372, 668-69; conclusion, 392 n. 222, cf. xii, 392-93, 392'; detenni nation of the particular, 674; demand of reason, xx; component of the doctrine of method, architectonic as, 860; impulse to go beyond the boundary of expe rience, xx, cf. 295; dogmatism in metaphysics, xxxvi; renunciation of the right to dogmatic assertions, 796, cf. 295, 754, 783-84; limits of our reason, 424; ig norance, 508, 786, cf. 524; errors, 740; illusion, 672-73; dizziness of reason 7 1 7 ; quandary, 371'; problem of pure reason, 438; idea(s), see Idea; regulative use of ideas, 672; systematic unity as, 647, 676, 678-79; unity of all reality, 703, cf. 727; unity of all mental powers, 799; twofold use of reason as, 747;
942
INDEX
(practical) use of reason, xxv, xxx; purpose(s), 84 1 , 85 1 , cf. 868; moral (and natural) purposive unity, 845, cf. 29, 7 1 4, 839; maxim of reason, 699; subjec tion of our entire way of life to moral maxims, 840; interest in morality, 857 n. 1 5 1 , cf. 686 n. 192; greater treatment of moral ideas, 845; gulf between an idea and its execution, 374; action of the human power of choice (willing) is not, (theoretically), 562, 576, cf. xxviii, 568, 572, 578; actions, (practically,) 576, cf. 869; continuance of the soul (our existence), 4 1 3 , 426, cf. 424; faith (belief), 852, 855; connection of one's hope for happiness with the unceasing endeavor to make oneself worthy of happiness, 837-39; system of a proportionate hap piness linked with morality as, 837; unity of all possible purposes, 385, cf. 868; perfection, 721 incl. br. n. 282; thoroughgoing detennination, 605, cf. 604; ex istence, see Existence; something (the, what is), 282, 480, 482, 487, 594, 6 1 2, 62 1 , 63 1 , 633, 643-45, 647, cf. 639, 640, 66 1 , 803, 809; (supreme) cause, 48 1 . 482, 485, 486, 488, 506, 6 1 8, 633 n . 195, 647, cf. xxxii, 6 1 8 , see also Cause; being(s), see Being (Wesen); see also Necessity, Unnecessary Necessity (Notwendigkeit), is the existence that is given through possibility itself. I l l ; is a transcendental predicate, 669-70, see also Existence, Possibility; any, is based on a transcendental condition, 1 06', see also Transcendental; experi ence does not allow us to cognize any (no experience can give us) 1 1 2', 353'. see also Experience; is a safe indicator of a priori cognition, 4, see also A priori. Cognition; unconditioned, is required by us as the ultimate support of all things, 64 1 ; and contingency, as not applying to things themselves, 644, cf. 648, 705, 707; entities must not be multiplied beyond, 677 incl. br. n. 57, 680 incl. br. n. 73, cf. 677 br. n. 57; characteristic of, 1 1 2', 280, cf. 104'; expression of, 1 98. 382, 575 ; predicate of, 286; definition of, 302; presentation of, 2 1 9; concept of (a), 5, 6, 266, 28 1 , 620, 635, 638, 643, 648, 657, 705, 707, cf. 17, 1 98 ; category of, 106; schema of, 1 84; condition(s) of, 449, 639; criterion of, 280; cognition of, 279-80, 353', 640, 66 1 , 662, 704, cf. 1 04', 635; understandable, 28 1 ; idea of, 645; postulate of, 279 incl. br. n. 62; seeming (supposed), 20, 2 1 5, 793; com paratively sufficient, 85 1 -52; hypothetical, 280, 85 1 ; conditioned (-tional), 28 1 . 62 1 , 646; extrinsic, 623 inel. br. n. 1 3 8 ; subjective(-ly sufficient), 5, 1 27, 1 68, 353, 676, 788, 85 1 , cf. 644; pathological, 562; phenomenal, 1 86 incl. br. n. 1 3 5 ; empirical, 25 1 , cf. 266; a priori (certain), 3 9 n . 3 7 , 47, 1 09', 1 1 8', 1 5 1 , 1 85. 1 99, 63 1 ; logical, 1 0 1 , 279, 622, 676; fonnal, 279; material, 279; obj ective. xxxii, 1 22', 353, 676; natural, see Natural; blind , 280; internal, 99; intrinsic, 1 n. 1 53, 229, 3 8 1 inel. br. n. 1 6 1 , 382, 846; absolute, see Absolute; strict, 1 n. 153; unconditioned (-tional), 199, 398, 442, 447, 48 1 , 533, 588-90, 592, 6 1 3 . 6 1 4, 6 1 6, 621 incl. br. n. 123, 63 1 , 632, 640, 648, 820, cf. 447, 487; original. 665; (objective) practical, xxxii, 805, 838, 840, 846; moral, 575, 856, cf. 6 1 7 hr. n . 102; see also Necessary Negation (Negation, Verneinung), 2 14, 2 1 7, 268, 303 n. 1 57, 322, 329, 5 1 3 , 606. is the limitation of (a) reality, 322, cf. 329, 604, 606, see also Reality; is wh at corresponds to the lack of sensation, 209, cf. 2 1 0- 1 8 , see also Sensation; is th at whose concept presents a not-being (in time), 1 82, cf. 229, 300, 320 br. n. 29, 347, 602-3, see also Not-being; is nothing, 347, cf. 348-49, see also Nothin g : category of, 106, cf. 1 1 1 , 1 8 2-83 ; concepts of, 603; logical and transcendental,
INDEX
943
602-3; possible, actual, and necessary, 100; true, 604; and affirmation, see Affirmation; cannot be thought determinately without using as a basis the op posed affirmation, 603; audacious, 809; see also Negative Negative (Negativ-, negativ, verneinend) logically, 737; concept, 827; use of a con cept, 3 1 1 ; presentation, 609; predicate, 97, cf. 338 inc!. n. 1 24; explication, 92; determination, 547, 60 1 ; meaning (sense), 307, 58 1-82 inc!. br. n. 345, 737 n. 19; signification, 309, 342; assertion(s), 389', 395', 7 8 1 , 82 1 , cf. 809, 820; propo sition, see Proposition; judgment(s), see Judgments; answer, 3 1 3, 548; expan sion, 3 1 2; nothing, 348 inc!. br. n. 147, 624 n. 148 inc!. br. n. 1 48a; possibility, 46 1 ; condition, 84, 1 89, 639; criterion, 190; touchstone, 84; a critique as, xxv; merit, 859; benefit, xxiv, 25, 174, 3 82', 739, 823; legislation, 739; doctrine, 740; contribution of discipline, 737-38; character of an instruction, 737; use of tran scendental theology, 668; faith, 858; see also Negation, Affirmative
New Elucidation o/ the First Principles o/ Cognition in Metaphysics (Principorum primorum cognitionis metaphysicae nova dilucidatio), 606 br. n. 60, see also Metaphysics Newton, Sir Isaac, 49 br. n. 89, 2 1 5 br. n. 1 25, 3 1 3, 3 5 1 br. n. 1 9 ; cf. xxii n. 93, 56 br. n. 1 2 1
nihil negativum,
348 inc!. br. n . 147, 624 n . 148 inc!. br. n. 148a,
see also
Nega-
tive, Nothing, Unding Noire, Ludwig, 62 1 br. n. 1 2 1 Nomothetic (Nomothetik), of reason, 452 inc!. br. n. 102 None (keines), concept of, 347, see also Nothing; all and, dictum of, 337 inc!. br. n. 1 1 5 Nonempirica1 (nichtempirisch), 109', 1 30 br. n. 190, 3 1 5 inc!. br. n. 2 1 7 , 588, 74 1 , 747, see also A priori, Pure, Empirical Nonentity (Unding), 56 inc!. br. n. 1 24, 7 1 , 274 inc!. br. n. 42, 348, 37 1 , 46 1 , 821 inc!. br. n. 197, see also Entity Nonexistence (Nichtsein), 106, 1 1 0' inc!. br. n. 1 1 5, 1 82 br. n. 100, 229, 23 1 br. n. 80, 232 br. n. 96, 290 br. n. 103, 30 1 -2, 455 inc!. br. n. 1 1 8, 46 1 , 487, 620, 62 1 , 624, 643, 805, 8 1 6, see also Not-being, Existence Noninfinite (nichtunendlich), 532, see also Finite, Infinity Nonmortal (nichtsterblich), 97 inc!. br. n. 1 53, 98 inc!. br. n. 155, 602 inc!. br. n. 36, see also Immortal, Mortal Nonrational (vernunftlos), 807, see also Rational Nonsense (Nonsens), 5 1 3 Nonsensib1e (nichtsinnlich), 92, 1 30 inc!. br. n . 190, 149 inc!. br. n . 26 1 , 298 br. n. 1 35 , 305 n. 1 69, 307, 3 1 2, 334, 342, 522, 559, see also Intellectual, Power, Ob ject, Cause, Noumenon, Extrasensible, Sensible Nonthing Thing
(Unding),
56 incl. br. n. 1 24, 274 incl. br. n. 42,
see
Nonentity, Nothing,
Noogony (Noogonie), 327 Noologist (Noologist), 882 Not-being (Nichtsein), 1 1 0' inc!. br. n. 1 1 5, 1 82, 229 inc!. br. n. 7 1 , 231 inc!. br. n. 8 1 , 232, 25 1 , 290-9 1 incl. n. 107, 301 inc!. br. n. 1 5 1 , 479, 602, 653 br. n. 252, see also Nonexistence, Being (Sein)
944
INDEX
Nothing(ness} (nichts, [das] Nichts), 347-49 inc!. br. ns. 145 and 147, xxiv incI . br. n. 98, 39 n. 43, 44 incI. n. 65, 5 1 -52, 54, 63, 66, 1 26, 96', 1 04', 1 05', I l l ', 1 1 3', 1 1 6', 1 20', 1 32, 1 37, 145-46, 148, 149, 1 7 8 br. n. 66, 1 82, 1 89, 1 95 , 1 96, 208, 2 1 3 , 2 1 4, 236, 238, 239, 243, 246 br. n. 160, 272, 274, 280-82, 284, 286, 289, 299, 30 1 , 303 n. 1 57, 304 inc!. br. n. 165, 305 n. 1 69, 306, 309, 329, 333, 336, 338 incI. n. 1 24, 340, 346, 360, 363, 365, 370, 373, 398, 355', 360', 364', 370', 374' n. 142, 375', 3 8 1 ', 386', 395' incI. br. n. 2 1 4, 401', 402', 4 1 1 n. 259 , 4 1 3-14, 4 1 5 n. 275, 419, 425, 428-30, 440, 457, 459, 462, 463, 465, 466, 473, 474, 493, 495 , 498, 50 1 , 506 n. 74, 508, 5 1 0, 524, 528, 529, 533, 535 incI. br. n. 169, 542, 545, 553, 555, 56 1 , 566, 568, 569, 582, 589, 593, 6 1 0, 6 1 3 , 6 1 5-17, 621-23, 624 n. 1 48 inc I. br. n. 148a, 625, 628, 632, 64 1 , 643-45, 650, 666, 687, 728, 743, 744, 756, 759 n. 1 2 1 , 766, 768, 774, 777, 78 1 , 782, 784, 790, 79 1 , 793, 797, 800, 80 1 , 806, 809, 8 1 2, 820, 82 1 , 823, 854, 856; origination from, 25 1 ; nothing arises from (or reverts to), 228-29 inc!. br. n. 68; see also None, Nonthing, S omething
(Notion), 376-77 incI. br. n. 142, cf. xvii' br. n. 26, 376f (nichtsterblich), 602 incI. br. n. 36; see Nonmortal Noumenal (noumenon), reality (-ies), 320 incI. br. n. 28, 338 n. Notion
Not-mortal
124 inc!. br. ns. 1 24a and 1 24c; substances, 332 inc!. br. n. 90, cf. 321-22; subject, 573 inc!. br. n. 3 14; see also Noumenon
Noumenon or noumena (Noumenon, Noumena), 294-3 1 5 , is (to be thought of as) a thing in itself, 3 1 0, 3 1 2, 3 1 5 , 343, 422 n. 288, cf. 307-8, 346, see also Thing in itself; is not appearance, 3 1 3 , cf. 332, 342-43, 422 n. 288, 447, see also Ap pearance; phenomena and, distinction of all objects as such into, 294-3 1 5 inc I. n. 169, cf. see also Phenomenon; are beings (objects) of the (pure) understand ing, 306, 325, cf. 305 n. 169, 3 10-1 1 , 320, see also Object, Understanding; is an object determinable in terms of mere concepts, 34 1 ; are objects of pure thought, 343, cf. 422 n. 288, see also Thought; are intelligibles, 305 n. 169 inc!. br. n. 1 69c, see also Intelligible; in their case the use of the categories (and their signification) ceases, 308, cf. 3 1 1 - 1 3, 3 1 5 , 343, 345; in the negative meaning (signification), 307-9, 342, is a thing insofar as it is not an object of our sen sible intuition, 307, cf. 305 n. 169, 3 1 0, 3 1 1 , 342-45, 409, 447; in the positive meaning (signification, concept), 305 n. 1 69, 307-8, 3 1 1 , 343, is an object of a nonsensible intuition, 307, cf. 305 n. 169, 308, 3 1 1 , 343-44, see also Intuition (intellectual); concept of, 305 n. 169, 3 1 0- 1 1 , 3 1 2 br. n. 1 93, 343, 344, is prob lematic (a problem, a concept without an object), 343-44, 347, cf. 3 1 1 , 3 1 2 br. n. 193, (but) is a boundary concept, 3 1 0- 1 1 , cf. 338 n. 124; possibility of, 3 10, 341 , 343, see also Possibility; objective reality of, 305 n. 169, 325, 338 n. 124, 4 1 2, cf. 320, see also Reality; cognition of, 306, 3 1 0, 430, cf. 207 br. n. 67, 305 n. 1 69, see also Cognition; realm of, 409-10, 492 br. n. 1 1 , cf. 3 1 0, see also Realm; the transcendental object cannot be called, 305 n. 169, cf. 344-45 , 358', 64 1 -42 inc!. br. n . 240; the subject (self) as, 430, 569, 573 inc!. br. n. 3 14, cf. 358', 412, see also Subject, Soul Number (Zahl), 1 82, 1 86 inc!. br. n. 1 35 , 752, 1 5- 1 6, 65, 104, 1 l 0, 1 1 1 , 1 1 3, 1 02' inc!. br. n. 76, 1 03', 146, 179, 205 inc!. br. n. 58, 2 1 2, 284 inc!. br. n. 82, 299, 36 1 , 362, 396, 460 inc!. n. 140, 508, 555, 650, 744, 745, 748, 861, cf. ix', xiv',
INDEX
xix', xxiii, 27, 64, 1 0 1 , 1 04, 107, 300 n. 144, 435, 456, 749, cal, Mathematics, Arithmetic, Magnitude Numerical
(Zahl-, numerisch),
see also
945
Numeri
unity, 107'; identity (sameness), 1 07', 1 1 3', 3 1 9 inc!.
br. n. 2 1 , 337 inc!. br. n. 1 1 9, 402, 361 '-63', 365', 402', 404'; difference, 3 1 9-20, 338 inc!. br. n. 120, 404'; relations, 205 ; formulas, 205, 206; magnitudes, 22 1 ; see also Number Object(s) (Gegenstand [-standel, Objekt[e]), synonymity of the German terms, vii' br. n. 7; is that in whose concept the manifold of a given intuition is united, 1 37, cf. 1 04'-9', 1 1 3', 1 24', 1 29', 1 30', 1 39, 144 n. 244; is that (element) in ap pearance which contains the condition of (a) necessary rule of apprehension, 236, cf. 197, cf. 234-35 ; are presentations insofar as they are connected and determinable in (the relation of) space and time according to laws of the unity of experience, 522, cf. 45, 1 04', 1 29'; as a determinate space, 1 3 8 ; without sen sibility none would be given to us, and without understanding none would be thought, 75, cf. 1 25 , 1 24', 146, 148, 298, 3 14, 399'; for us, none but objects of the senses are, 6 10, cf. 33, 44 n. 65, 45, 1 23 , 109', 1 29', 1 38, 1 7 8 ; the three, at which the final aim of speculative transcendental reason is ultimately directed, 826, see also Freedom, Immortality, God; definition (defining) of, 303 n. 157, 757, cf. 382, 430, 523, 756, 799; as such (in general), 6 inc!. br. n. 1 66, 25 br. ns. 267 and 268, 75, 8 1 , 88, 1 25-26 inc!. br. n. 44, 1 04'-6', 108' inc!. br. ns. 105 and 106, 1 1 5'-30', 146 inc!. br. n. 25 1 , 154, 1 58, 207, 208, 244 br. n. 1 55, 304, 305 inc!. n. 169, 309, 335 inc!. br. n. 1 05 , 346, 399, 374', 4 1 1 n. 259, 429, 433, 507, 594, 605-10, 8 1 6, 873, cf. 1 20, 1 59, 177, 346, 365, 39 1 , 47 1 , their distinction (division) into phenomena and noumena, 294-1 5 (specifically, 305 n. 1 69, 306-8, 3 1 1 , 3 1 3), 325, see also Phenomenon, Noumenon; two senses (different kinds) of, xxvii, 76-78, cf. 83, 294-3 1 5 , 344, 489; as presentations (presentations as), 1 04' inc!. br. n. 88, 108', 234-35 , 370', 37 1 ', 378', 387', cf. 395'; presentation(s) of, see Presentation; of presentation(s), xvii, 50, 62, 1 24 br. n. 39, 1 04', 1 08', 1 09', 1 39, 236, 242, 244, 370', 372'; sensible, 3 1 2 n. 198, 882; of (that might be given to) the (our) senses (of [ourl sensibility, of sensa tion[s]) (as such), xvii, xviii n. 77, xxi inc!. br. n. 88, xxxix n. 144, 35, 38, 43, 44 n. 65, 5 1 , 52, 66, 69 n. 178, 73, 8 1 , 1 1 9', 145, 146, 148, 1 50, 159, 1 82, 206, 207 inc!. br. n. 74, 2 1 8, 279, 303, 305, 306, 309, 3 1 0, 3 1 3, 3 1 9, 320, 325, 326, 328, 342-43, 368', 3 80', 392', 397', 4 1 5 , 469, 525 inc!. br. n. 1 37, 535, 537, 548, 566, 576, 609- 1 0, 628, 629, 7 1 3, 755, 874, 875, 8 8 1 , cf. 1 , 332, 650, 684, see also Sense, Sensibility, Sensation; as possible intuitions, 345; intuition of,
see Intuition;
of (for, that are [can bel given in) (sensible, empirical, outer) in tuition (as such), xvii, xxvi, xxxix n. 144, 34, 43, 5 1 , 65, 7 1 , 72, 75, 87, 1 05 , 106, 1 10, 1 2 1 -23, 1 08', 1 4 8 , 1 50-52, 1 56, 1 59, 298, 303 n. 1 5 7 , 305 n. 1 6 9 inc!. br. n. 1 69h, 307, 327, 3 3 5 , 3 3 8 , 340, 342-43, 347, 350, 3 8 3 , 350', 374', 399', 4 1 1 n. 259, 457, 47 1 , 520, 566, 800, cf. 1 38, 309, 3 1 2 n. 1 98, 4 1 2, 4 1 5 n. 275, 585, 673; apprehension of, 1 84; of apprehension, 258 ; perception(s) of, see Perception; of perception(s), 1 1 2', 156, 1 77 br. n. 57, 207, 208, 225, 23 1 , 245, 259-60, 262, 40 1 , 367', 378', 422 n. 288; phenomenon of, the schema as, 1 86; image(s) of, 1 20' n. 1 50, 1 80; construction of, 745, see also Construction; (di-
INDEX
946
rect) exhibition of, 8, 1 1 8' br. n. 142, 195, 3 1 9, 300 incl. n. 1 44, 325, 496, 497. 74 1 , 757, cf. 120, 3 1 5, see also Exhibition; as (of) appearances, see Appear ance; appearance (appearing) of, 1 n. 1 5 3 , 55, 60, 62, 69, 1 2 1 , 122, 3 1 3, 385', 387', 537 br. n. 1 80, 566-67, cf. 1 1 0', 1 1 1 '; given (to us), see Given; of (pos sible) experience,
see Experience; experiential,
see also Experiential: see also Empirical; determi
1 26, 699,
empirical, 63, 299, 373', 573 incl. br. n. 3 1 4, 610,
nation (determining) of, ix, x, xvii, 42, 84 br. n. 69, 108', 148-49, 155, 166 n. 324, 1 84, 2 1 8, 240, 246, 263, 272, 30 1 , 302, 304, 305 incl. n. 1 69, 309, 3 1 1 . 3 1 4, 323, 335, 336, 344, 346, 362, 363, 367, 385, 386, 374', 399', 405', 409, 422
�
288, 602, 605, 609, 659, 693, 698, 699, 705, 742, 746, 8 1 5-1� cf.
232-33, 341, 38 1', 593, 599, 708,
see also
Determination; indeterminate (un
determined), 34, 94 incl. br. n. 1 36, 1 04'-6', 422 n. 288, 708, cf. 303 n. 1 57 .
see also Indeterminate; determinate, 1 50, 303 n. 157, 304, 3 1 4, 341, 399', 70 1 , cf. 705, see also Determinate; manifold of, 39 1 , see also Manifold; order in. 246, see also Order (Ordnung); unity of, 305 n. 169, cf. 47 1 , 708, see also Unity. combination (connection, linkage) (of predicates, presentations, concepts, states, cause and effect, the manifold) in (of), 48, 1 27, 1 30, 142, 223-35, 238, 261 , cf 129', 264, 364, 672, see also Combination, Connection, Linkage; connection (of cause and effect) in, 1 68; synthesis of, see Synthesis; prescription of laws to, 362, see also Prescription, Law; relation of the (pure concepts of) understand ing (the categories, the unity of apperception) to, xviii, I , 29-30, 33, 75-77. 87-88, 106, 1 1 0, 1 1 8, 1 20, 1 22, 123, 126-28, 104', I l l ', 1 1 5'-28'-30', 1 39. 1 45-46 incl. br. n. 249, 148, 150-52, 1 5 8-6 1 , 165, 179, 1 86, 1 97-98, 220, 266, 288, 300 incl. n. 144, 303 n. 1 57, 304, 305 incl. n. 169, 307, 308, 3 1 4, 323, 325, 334-35, 342, 343, 346, 350, 3 5 1 n. 1 6, 363, 365 , 367, 383, 392, 399', 406-7, 422 incl. n. 288, 448-49, 595, 67 1 , 672, 7 1 0, 724, 800, 848-49, cf. xxiii, xx vii, 74, 8 1 , 84-85, 105, 1 1 3, 1 1 5-17, 1 25 , 96', 97', 1 08'-9', 1 1 3', 195, 232, 356', 4 1 1 n. 259, 5 1 4, 523-24, 609, 6 1 0 , 620, 62 1 , 628, 692, 693, 702, 708, see also Understanding, Categories, Apperception; concept(s) of, see Concept; of (for) concepts, 1 1 5 , 1 1 8, 1 78, 1 86, 267, 27 1 , 286, 298, 3 1 1 , 325, 338, 347, 390, 622. 626, 628 incl. n. 148, 667, 7 1 2, 742, 744, 749, 799, 809, cf. 422, 757, 8 1 6;
thought (thinking) of, see Thought; of (for, that can be given [only 1 in) (mere, pure) thought (as such), ix, xviii, xxiii, xxvi, 155, 343, 39 1 , 4 1 1 , 509, 629, 642 incl. br. n. 242; of (our) (pure) consciousness, 235, 382' br. n. 1 75, 430, 520. see also Consciousness; of (for, thought through, given to, as they relate to) (pure) understanding, xvi', xviii n. 77, 57, 25 1 -52, 305 n. 1 69, 306, 3 1 0, 3 1 1 . 3 1 3, 3 14, 3 1 9-21, 325, 326, 332, 333, 344, 384 incl. br. n . 1 7 1 , 392, 397', 4 84 , 528, 7 1 3, cf. 76, 77, 88, 149, 327, 769; nonsensible, 298 br. n. 1 34, cf. 305 n. 169, 374', 479, 494 br. n. 29, 522, 538, 662-64, 672-73, 699, 702, 709, 773-74 . 793, 809, 873-74, 882-83; extrasensible, 343, cf. 344; intelligible, 3 1 1 , 3 1 2 n. 198, 3 1 3, 3 1 5, 342, 574, 593, 594, 882, cf. 566, see also Intelligible; abstrac tion from, ix, 43, 335, 397', 398', 4 1 1 n. 259; as something as such. (nothing for us), x, 63, 104'-6', see also X; transcendental (nonempirical, x). see Transcendental ; true (veritable), 305 n. 1 69, 389', 390', 757, 882; (our) being affected by (effect of, on us), 33 incl. br. n. 1 3 , 34, 4 1 -42, 5 1 , 69, 72, 75, cf. 65, 67, 69 n. 1 78, 102, 1 22-23, 156; (direct, indirect, a priori, determinate) ref=
=
INDEX
947
erence to, ix, xvii, 33, 34, 72, 79, 8 1 -83, 87, 93, 94, 1 1 7- 1 8, 120, 1 2 1 , 1 26, 1 27, 95', 97', 1 04', 109', 1 1 1', 1 37 , 146, 175 inc!. br. n. 42, 178 br. n. 66, 1 85, 194, 208, 223, 239, 242, 267, 298-300, 302 n. 1 56, 303 n. 1 57, 304, 305 n. 169, 309, 3 1 1 , 3 14, 323, 334, 335, 342, 346, 362, 377, 383, 390-9 1 , 393, 370', 397', 410, 5 1 7, 666, 698, 699, 770, 873 inc!. br. n. 224, cf. 235, 67 1 , is objec tive reality (signification), 109', 300, cf. 178 br. n. 66, 194, 207 n. 68, 303 n. 157, 343, 698, 724-25, see also Reality, Signification; agreement with (is truth), 1 97, 236, 296, 670, 848 inc!. br. n. 1 1 8, see also Truth; as confonning to our cognition ([power of] intuition, concepts) rather than vice versa, xvi-xviii inc!. n. 77, 345, cf. xx, xxxix n. 144, 4 1 , 42, 49, 62-66, 80, 83, 1 22-25 ; correspond ing to (cohering with) intuitions (perceptions, presentations, cognition[s], our outer senses), 1 25 , 1 04', 272, 372', 376', 377', 629, cf. 236, 288, 296; corre sponding (congruent, commensurate, adequate) to (with) concepts (ideas), xviii, xxvi n. 103, 6, 1 25, 1 80, 272, 299, 301-2, 3 7 1 , 383, 384, 396-97, 490, 506, 5 1 0, 5 1 4, 63 1 , 67 1 , 689, 699, 74 1 , cf. 75, 1 97-98, 236, 4 1 2 , 544, 545, 627 inc!. br. n. 1 64, 670, 756-58, 764; (real) possibility of, xxvi n. 1 03 inc!. br. n. 1 03b, 65 , 1 1 5, 1 22, 1 24-26, 96', l l l ', 148, 197, 258, 267, 268 inc!. br. n. 6, 270, 27 1 , 286, 300, 34 1 , 342, 3 8 1 , 393', 433, 469, 593-94, 609, 6 1 0, 624, 627, 70 1 , 757, 770, 798 inc!. br. ns. 295 and 296, 8 1 0, 8 1 5, cf. 149, 283, 821 , see also Pos sibility; (really) possible, 96 br. n. 144, 96' 1 85, 252, 266, 286, 372, 38 1 , 402, 459, 787, 799, 873 inc!. br. n. 224, cf. 684, see also Possible; real (objective re ality of), 593, 748, see also Real; actual(ity of), xxvi n. 1 03, 35, 49, 55, 96 br. n. 144, 266, 278, 286, 384 inc!. br. n. 172, 36 1 ', 367'-69', 37 1 ', 373', 378', 457 n. 1 26, 459, 47 1 , 5 1 0, 520, 523, 525 inc!. br. n. 1 37, 607, 647, 70 1 , 705, 707, 778, 798, 805, 873 inc1. br. n. 224, 88 1 , cf. 69, 283, 602, 627, see also Actu ality; (actual) presence of, 74, 1 00', 1 1 8' br. n. 142, 1 5 1 , 387'; necessary, 266, 286-87, 647, 659-60, see also Necessity; existence of, 72, 1 l 0, 1 25, 1 39, 1 84, 199, 2 1 9, 224 n. 44, 230, 260-6 1 , 264, 272, 274, 275, 278, 279, 346, 367', 368', 372', 39 1 ', 430, 523-24, 563, 622-23, 628-29, 667, 793, 8 1 6, cf. 422 n. 288, see also Existence; nonexistence (annulment) of, 623, 805, 8 1 6, cf. 702; realm of, xxi inc!. br. n. 88, 343, 345; sphere of, 309, 506 n. 74; range of, 787 ; natu ral (of nature), see Natural, Nature; external (outer, outside us, of outer senses [intuition, experience], in space), 37-39, 43-45 inc1. n. 65, 50, 55, 66, 69 n. 178, 1 5 5 n. 283, 274, 275, 277, 278, 321 br. n. 3 1 , 400, 402, 357', 358'-62', 367', 368', 370'-73', 375'-79', 3 8 1 ', 384', 385', 387', 389'-9 1', 4 1 5 , 427-28, 459, 465, 469, 520, 523-24, 874, 876, cf. 1 04', 340, 344, 394', 457 n. 1 26, 47 1 , 585, see also External, Body; of (our) inner sense (experience) (myself [I, the soul, the subject, the mind, a thinking being] as), 37, 54, 55, 68, 1 55 , 400, 40 1 , 403, 356', 357', 3 6 1 ', 362', 366', 368', 3 7 1 ', 373', 385', 398', 402'-3', 407, 409, 4 1 5 , 42 1 , 427-29, 47 1 , 520, 573 br. n. 3 1 4, 7 1 O- 1 1 , 769, 874, 876, 882-83 inc!. br. n. 27 1 , cf. 344, 353', 379', 44 1 , 5 23-24, 8 1 3 , see also Inner, Soul, Subject; positing of, 243, 422 n. 288, 622, 627, 667, 705; assumption of, 336, 593-94, 7 1 4, 873, cf. 799; presupposition of, 507, 658, 699, 725-26; principle of, 222; direct (of a principle), 708; subsumption of (under a concept), 1 76, 304, 305, 36 1 ; cognition of (of cognition), see Cognition; acquaintance with, see Acquain tance; knowledge of, xvii, 22, 63, 236, 305 n. 1 69, 3 1 4, 366', 387', 39 1 ', 392',
948
INDEX
394', 395', 499, 506, 507, 568, 593, 857, cf. 66, 77, 85, 1 70, 333, 344, 358', 367', 389', 422 n. 288, 424, 430, 493, 505, 509- 10, 641 -42, 695, 787, 805, 822,
see also Knowledge; judging of Uudgments about), 22, 73 , 85, 350, 389', 695, 755 n. 105, 764, 848-49, 876, cf. 1 89-9 1 , 196, 266, 36 1 . 363, 388', 509, 602, 8 1 9-20; deliberation (concerning), 3 1 9, 325, cf. 3 1 6 ; in vestigation (exploration, examination, contemplation) of, 63, 575, 704, 7 1 1 , 75 1 , 853 inc!. br. n. 1 34,
772, 786, cf. 790, 873; discovery o f (concerning), 667, 826; character (nature , constitution) of, xvii, 55, 59, 60, 67, 69, 388', 389', 506 inc!. n. 74, 659, 676, 694, 695, 699, 745, 849; particular, 404; single (individual), 47, 596, 602 inc!. br. n. 34, 74 1 ; form of, 62, 66, 1 20, 1 25, 1 47 inc!. br. n. 253, 1 82, 27 1 inc!. br. n. 22, 366', 459, cf. 55, 347,
also
see also
Form; material of, 375', 593, cf. 845,
Material; (transcendental) matter of (for), 1 82, 207, 6 10,
see also
see
Matter;
matter as, 87-88, 742, cf. 333; corporeal, 6, cf. 874, see also Corporeal; incor poreal, 6, cf. 874, see also Incorporeal; as (phenomenal) substance ( [the] per manent), 6, 224 n. 44, 227, 349', 47 1 , 800, cf. 52, 25 1 -52, 277-78, 403, 389', 403', 407, 4 1 4- 1 5 , 44 1 , see also Substance, Permanent; (absolutely) simple (the simple as), 382', 465, 47 1 , 497, cf. 8 1 3 ; properties (determinations, qualities, predicates, characteristics) of (in), 6, 42, 44 n. 65, 53 br. ns. 1 08 and 1 09, 62, 69 inc!. n. 1 78, 149, 224 n. 44, 266, 378, 40 1 , 358'-59', 366', 566-67, 593, 633, 663, 747, 749, 755-56, 760, cf. 52, 54, 6 1 , 65-66, 337 br. n. 1 1 5 , 5 1 2, 798, 8 1 9; states of, see State; magnitude of (in), 48, 1 82, 207-8, 548, 556-57, 656, cf. 204, 563, 75 1 ; homogeneity of, 685 ; simultaneity (coexistence) of, 257, 260, cf. 26 1 ; change in, 230; not-being in, 602; difference in, viii; relations of (among), 42, 59, cf. 607, 698; connection of, 699, 873-74; chain of, 664; suc cession of (in), 240-42, 26 1 , cf. 257, 260; series of, 803; condition(s) of (for), 39 1 , 369', 557, cf. 593, 702; series of conditions (as given) in, 364, 366, 542; as (the) conditioned, 525, 556; the unconditioned in, 536, cf. 647 ; totality in, 536, cf. 542, 593; that is itself a problem, 344, cf. 55, 346; as heuristic fictions, 799; alleged (supposed), 299, 305, 790; imagined, 698, cf. 799, 824; nothing, 347, 348, cf. 1 78 br. n. 66, 305 n. 1 69, 457, 459, 505, 5 1 7, 524, 594, 70 1 , 790, 799; empty, (of a concept, without concept) 348-49; of (for) a (transcendental) idea, 396, 497, 506, 5 1 0-1 1 , 56 1 , 593, 630, 702 , 705, 706, 708- 10, 7 1 4, cf. =
383-84, 447, 465, 490, 5 1 4, 602, 63 1 , 7 1 2, 799, see also Idea; in my (our, one's) idea, 689-99, 724-25, cf. 3 1 4, 505, 5 1 2, 606, 647, 778; of (for, given to, used [dealt with, thought, etc.] by) (pure, practical) reason, ix-x, xviii n. 77, xxiii, 22, 23, 266, 359, 362, 363, 392, 43 1 , 505, 5 1 8, 576, 599, 659, 67 1 -72, 692, 693-94, 698, 704, 709, 7 1 2, 723, 739-40, 743, 772, 790, 8 1 0, 824, 836, 857, 873-74, cf. 383, 386, 544, 658, 868, 88 1 , see also Reason; of principles of pure reason, 692; as it is (may be) (as a thing) in itself (as they are [may be] [as things] in themselves), xx, xxi inc!. br. n. 88, xxvi-xxvii, 1 9 br. n. 235, 44, 5 1 , 52, 55, 59-67, 69 inc!. n . 1 7 8 and br. n. 1 75 , 128', 1 78, 207, 223, 306, 307 br. n. 1 79, 327, 344, 358, 386, 369', 372', 378'-80', 385', 387', 39 1 ', 393', 405 ', 429-30, 507, 5 1 9, 536-37, 545, 568, 59 1 , 647, 706, 707, 7 1 4, 725-26, 747, 821 , cf. xviii n. 77, xxx, 56, 1 29', 149, 25 1 -52, 305 n. 1 69, 3 1 2 n. 1 98, 362, 366, 5 2 1 , 538, 678, 703, 769, 778, see also Thing in itself; of an intuitive un derstanding (intellectual [nonsensible, some other kind of] intuition), 33 inc!.
INDEX
949
br. n. 13, 72, 1 30 br. n. 1 90, 1 38-39, 145, 148, 149, 305 n. 169, 307- 1 0, 335, 342-44, 798, 836, cf. 312 n. 1 98, 394', see also Understanding (intuitive), In tuition (intellectual); causality of, 566-67; of actions, 374; production (making actual) of, x, 1 25 , 145, cf. 853; of my power of choice, 576 incl. br. n. 328, cf. 1 25 ; freedom (of the will) as, 826, 868, cf. 828-29; immortality of the soul as, 826, cf. 828-29; of (linked with) great (our highest) interest, 492, 77 1 , 824, cf. 658, 845; dignity of, 658, cf. 84 1 ; ultimate, 49 1 ; of (as) (pure) reason's ideal, 606, 608, 642, cf. 6 1 1 n. 83, see also Ideal of pure reason; the (existence of the) original being (originator of the world, supreme being [intelligence] , being of all beings, God) as, 606-7, 624, 626, 659-60 inc!. br. n. 337, 705, 826, 882-83 inc!' br. n. 27 1 , cf. 647, 828-29, 845, 880 br. n. 262, see also Being (Wesen), God; omnipotence as, 626; the world (nature) as, 633, 7 1 2, 868, cf. 80 1 , see also World, Nature; space as (not), 160 n. 305, 26 1 , 457 n. 1 26, 647, see also Space; (of perception) (absolute) time is not, see Time; the mere fon n of intu ition is not, 347; experience as, 1 27'; sensibility as, 3 5 1 n. 16, 692; the under standing (its concepts, its purposive engagement) as, 26, 557, 671-72, 692; a (mental) power as, 566; my existence as, 367'; my thoughts as, 371'; sensa tions, intuitions, perceptions, concepts, cognitions, ideas, and schemata as, xvii br. n. 73, cf. 255, 74 1 ; simultaneity as, 259-60; negation is not, 349; of our feel ing, 829 n. 28; the agreeable as, 576; the good as, 576; mystical, 836 inc!. br. n. 58; of a contest (dispute), 45 1 , 492, 779, 805, 822; of (our) inquiry (-ies), x', 26, 25 1 ; of (dealt with by) a science, xxiii, 77, 299; of mathematics (geometry), 8, 8 1 br. n. 52, 207 br. n. 67, 271 br. n. 2 1 , 299, 37 1 n. 1 1 0, 742-43, cf. 65, 1 05', 741 ; of philosophy, 742-43, cf. 868; of metaphysics (metaphysics of), 22, 875, 876, cf. 274 br. n. 4 1 ; of physiology (physiology of), 3 8 1 ', 873-74; of psy chology, 39 1 , 400, cf. 353'; of cosmology, 39 1 ; of (natural, transcendental) the ology, 7 1 , 39 1 , 608, 659 inc!. br. n. 340; celestial, xxi incl. br. n. 88; the earth's, 278, cf. 787; a hundred thalers as, 627; see also Thing, Subject-matter, Topic (Gegenstand), Objective Objection (Einwurj), 388'-94', xxxi, xxxiv, 53-55, 206, 274, 378', 384', 467, 652, 77 1 , 795, 802, 805-7, 809, cf. xxxix n. 144, 479, 374' n. 142, 782 br. n. 232 Objective (objektiv), reality, see Reality; validity, see Valid; signification, presen tation, concept, perception, basis, condition, fonn, synthesis, unity, j udgment, cognition, knowledge, principle, law, rule, deduction, sufficiency, necessity, truth, succession, philosophy, etc., see these headings; see also Object Obligation or obligate (Obliegenheit, Verbindlichkeit, verbinden), ix, xxiv, xxxiv, 92, 396', 504-5, 509, 540, 585, 6 1 7, 662 inc!. br. n. 354, 738, 838, 839, 843, 847, 854, 884, reality thereof, 617, see also Duty
or observe (Beobachtung, Betrachtung, Bemerkung, beobachten, be merken, wahmehmen), xiii, xxii n. 93, xxviii, 4, 66, 9 1 , 1 09, 1 1 3, 103', 237,
Observation
242, 3 1 3 incl. br. n. 200, 334, 349 br. n. 1 , 405, 350', 362' inc!. br. n. 97, 366', 38 1', 489, 497, 499 n. 44, 503, 578, 603 n. 43, 633, 64 1 , 65 1 , 654, 656, 690, 696, 7 1 6, 723 n. 30 1 , 726, 728, 756, 758, 767, 78 1 , 786, 820, 852, 862, 884, cf. 363', 655 , 686, 69 1 inc!. br. n. 143, see also Perception, Study Obstacle (Hindemis), ix, xxv, xxix, 9 br. n. 1 8 1 , 29, 1 2 1 , 372, 373, 695, 701 incl. br. n. 1 98, 776, 826, 836, 837, see also Impediment, Hindrance
950
Occam,
INDEX
see Ockham (Gelegenheit), ii hr.
Occasion
n. 1 , vii' hr. n. 5, xvii', 9 1 , 1 1 8, 33 1 , 404 n. 240, 346'
hr. n. 30, 396' hr. n. 2 1 6, 30, 432, 684, 723, 782, cf. 582
(Okkasionalismus), 33 1 hr. n. 83, 390 hr. n. 201 (Beschaftigung), 782, see also Business, Task Occur(rence) (Geschehen, stattfinden, vorgehen, vorkommen, sich vorjinden), Occasionalism
Occupation
x', xviii' hr. n. 29, xxii', xxxix n. 144, 2, 3, 1 8, 54, 56, 57, 98, 1 0 1 , 1 22, 1 27, 97', 99', 1 1 0', 1 27', 1 3 1 , 1 58, 205, 2 1 0, 232 inc!. n. 87, 234, 236-38, 240-4 1 , 243 , 245-47, 250-53, 257, 261 , 263, 27 1 , 280, 288, 289, 300, 305 n. 1 69, 309, 329. 34 1 , 3 5 1 , 357, 360, 361 , 363, 384, 387, 400, 350', 363', 385', 386', 396', 438, 439, 447, 459, 47 1 -74, 504, 5 1 1 , 5 1 2, 5 1 6, 526, 527, 536, 537, 544, 547, 558-62, 566, 568-72, 575, 576, 578, 580, 5 8 1 , 583, 66 1 , 663, 689, 7 1 5 n. 250, 750 n. 80, 759, 76 1 , 765 , 770, 778, 783, 790, 793, 800, 803, 8 1 2, 8 1 6, 830, 834, 835, 838, 840, 856, 865, see also Happen, Event
Ockham, William of, 677 hr. n. 57
Only Possible Basis of Prooffor Demonstrating the Existence of God-The (Del" einzig mogliche Beweisgrund zu einer Demonstration des Daseins Gottes), 606 hr. n. 60
On the Form and Principles of the Sensible and Intelligible World (De mundi sen sibilis atque intelligibilis forma et principiis), 67 1 hr. n. 1 4 On the Progress of Metaphysics since Leibniz and Wolff ( Uber die Fortschritte der Metaphysik seit Leibniz und Wolff) , 33 hr. n. 1 5 , see also Metaphysics Ontological (ontologisch), proof (argument), see God; difficulties, 485; perfection, 844
(Ontologie), 1 08, 303, 873 inc!. hr. n. 222, 874 (Ontotheologie), 660, see also Ontological, Theology, God (Meinung, Meinen), 848-59 (specifically, 848 inc!. hr. n. 1 1 3 , 850,
Ontology
Ontotheology
Opinion 85 1 , 853, 854), i i incl. hr. n . 1 , xv", xvii', xxxi, xxxvii, 55, 57, 59, 285, 327, 370, 392' hr. n. 2 1 0, 393', 394', 447, 459, 5 1 7, 565, 622, 642, 769, 797, 798, 800, 803 inc!. hr. n. 320, 807, 809, 8 1 0, 820, 882, see also Belief Opposition (Gegensatz, Entgegensetzung, Entgegenstellung, Opposition), xxxiii, 99, 1 07 hr. n. 1 97 , 1 82 hr. n. 1 0 1 , 329, 338 n. 1 24 inc!. hr. n. 1 24c, 388', 499 n. 44, 5 3 1 -32, cf. xxix inc!. hr. ns. 1 1 7 and 1 1 9, xxxix n. 144, 1 4, 23, 24, 48, 49, 57 hL n. 1 28, 97, 1 30, 1 84, 1 9 1 -93, 2 1 3, 2 1 5 inc!. hL n. 1 25, 2 1 7, 233, 252, 290-92 inc!. n. 1 07, 320 hr. n. 29, 32 1 , 338, 347, 348, 3 8 1 , 382, 398, 369', 379', 388', 389', 4 1 5 n. 275, 424, 433, 434, 448, 454, 455, 459, 477, 486, 488, 5 1 3, 548, 556, 576, 596, 599-604 inc!. n. 27, 633, 668, 682, 688, 744, 745 hr. n. 53, 752, 768, 770 inc!. hr. n. 1 87, 775, 782, 783, 785, 809, 8 14, 8 1 9-2 1 , see also Con tradiction
Opus Postumum, Kant's, xliii hr. n. 149 (Orden), of mathematics, 763 Order (Ordnung, ordnen), xx', xxxiii, 34 inc!. Order
hr. n. 19, 49, 9 1 , 1 1 0, 1 1 8, 99', incl. hr. n. 1 68, 1 45, 1 69, 1 8 1 , 1 84, 202, 237-38, 242-46, 248, 258, 282, 33 1 , 346, 374, 375, 395 n. 222 inc!. hr. n. 222d, 402, 425, 453 n. 1 1 2, 475, 492, 494, 496, 509, 528, 562, 567, 570, 576-78, 619, 649 hr. n. 280, 650,
1 25' 327, 49 1 , 65 1 ,
INDEX
95 1
655-57, 660, 67 1 , 690, 696, 70 1 , 7 1 9, 724-26, 728, 752 hr. n. 87, 800, 802, 827, 842, 844, 86 1 , 879, see also Regular, Arrange, System, Disorder Organ (Organ), xxxvi, xxxvii, 44 n. 65 inc!. hr. n. 65f, 273, 425, 806, 807, see also Organic, Organization, Organon Organic (organisch), 3 84, 554 inc!. hr. n. 246, 555, 7 16, cf. 664 hr. n. 358, Organ, Organization, Inorganic
see also
Organization or organize (Organisation, organisieren), xxiii, 44 n. 65 inc!. hr. n. 65f, 62, 168, 554 inc!. hr. n. 246, 555, 7 1 9. cf. 373-74 inc!. hr. n. 1 1 8, 709 inc!. hr. n. 230, see also Organ, System, Organic Organon (Organon), 63, 64, 76-78, 85-86, 88, 823, is an instrument, 86, see also Organ; of pure reason, 24-25, 26, would he the sum of those principles hy which all pure a priori cognitions can he acquired and actually hrought ahout, 24-25; 85-86, 88; contrasted with canon, 26, -77-78, 85, 88; see also Organ Origin (Ursprung), viii-ix, 5, 7, 17, 24 hr. n. 256, 29 incl. hr. n. 290, 39 hr. n. 38, 6 1 , 62, 72, 79, 80-8 1 , 87, 103, 1 1 3, 1 27, 1 1 2', 128', 1 59, 167, 282, 305, 3 1 6, 334, 355-57, 374, 377-78, 390, 396, 387', 399', 400', 42 1 , 475, 476, 492, 509, 5 1 1 , 578, 674, 722, 728, 753, 790, 844, 867 hr. n. 190, 870, 872, 882, cf. 1 n. 1 5 3, 85 hr. n. 53, 229, 25 1 , 474, 477, see also Arising, Original, Originator Original (Original, urpsriinglich, Ur-), xxviii, 1 n. 1 53, 14 n. 217, 40 inc!. hr. n. 48, 45, 48, 58, 60, 72 hr. n. 1 83, 106-8, 126, 1 27 n. 48, 100', 1 06'-8', l l l ', 1 1 3', 1 1 7' n. 1 38, 1 1 8' inc!. hr. n. 142, 122', 1 23', 125', 127', 128', 1 30', 1 30-33, 1 35-37 inc!. n. 2 1 0, 140, 142, 1 43 , 1 5 1 , 153, 1 57, 1 6 1 , 165, 1 69, 1 85, 220, 263, 296, 305 n. 1 69, 324, 326, 366 hr. n. 92, 370, 372, 374, 376, 385, 396, 422, 438, 467, 526 hr. n. 142, 572, 596, 597 hr. n. 14, 60 1 , 606, 6 1 5, 6 1 8, 645, 647, 650, 659, 665, 669, 673 hr. n. 32, 687, 688, 697, 700, 7 1 0, 723 hr. n. 296, 725, 753, 7-55 inc!. n. 105, 758, 780, 79 1 , 798, 838 inc!. hr. n. 73, 842, 863, 864, 866 hr. n. 1 8 1 , 875, cf. vii' hr. n. 5, xxii' hr. n. 38, xiii hr. n. 60, xxiv hr. n. 98, xxix hr. ns. 1 1 7 and 1 1 9, xxx hr. n. 1 25, xxxiii hr. n. 132, xxxix hr. n. 1 44a, 5 n. 164, 19 hr. n. 234, 22 hr. ns. 247 and 252, 69 hr. n. 1 78c, 98 hr. n. 1 54, 1 1 2 hr. n. 233, 190 hr. n. 1 62, 199 hr. n. 1 1 , 201 hr. n. 30c, 2 1 7 hr. n. 1 37, 372 hr. n. 1 1 6, 350' hr. n. 44, 354' hr. n. 68, 401' hr. n. 233, 407 hr. n. 253, 408 hr. n. 254, 539 hr. n. 1 94, 758 hr. n. 1 1 6, heing, see Being (Wesen); see also Origin, Originator Originator ( Urheber), 1 67, 369, 652, 656, 657, 660-61 , 7 1 5 , 721 -22 inc!. hr. n. 289, 725, 729, 801, 837, 839, 854, 862, supreme (highest), 652, 729, see also Being (Wesen) (original), Author, Cause, Architect, Origin, Original Ostensive (ostensiv), 699, 745, 8 1 7 - 1 9 inc!. hr. n. 384 Ought (sollen), 575-76, 833-36 inc!. hr. n. 60, xxiii, 7, 62, 69, 205, 374, 375, 359', 553, 562, 578, 583, 644, 661-62, 699, 778, 830, 838, 868, 873, cf. 227 inc!. hr. n. 62, 375, 828, see also Is-what Outer (iiuj3er), xxxix n. 144, 37-39 inc!. n. 37, 41 -44, 49-5 1 , 53, 65-67, 72, 1 37, 1 5 5 n . 283, 1 56, 160 inc!. hr. n. 303, 1 62, 1 82, 1 96, 204, 206 inc!. hr. n. 66, 27 1 , 275-79 inc!. n. 52, 291 -94, 320, 321 hr. n. 35, 322-23 inc!. hr. ns. 42 and 48, 328, 330-3 1 inc!. hr. ns. 75 and 85, 333 inc!. hr. n. 95, 336, 339-40 inc!. hr. ns. 1 26 and 129, 400, 405, 357'-60', 362'-63', 366'-69', 371 '-79', 3 8 1 ', 382' hr. n. 1 76, 383', 385'-87', 389'-9 1', 393', 394', 400', 4 1 5, 427, 457 n. 1 26, 459,
952
INDEX
465, 469, 520, 553, 568, 585, 868, 874, 876, cf. 497, 524, 548, 550, see also External, Extrinsic, Inner, Sense, Sensibility, Presentation, Intuition, Imagina tion, Perception, Experience, Appearance, Object, Thing, State, Relation Overgrown
(verwachsen), xxi', 349 br. n. 1 , 866, 878 (iiberfliegend), 67 1 , see also Transcendent
Overreaching Ovid, ix'
(Maler), 598, cf. 86, 529-30 (Palingenesie), 7 1 1 incl. br. n. 234 Paradoxical (paradox), 1 52, 230, 392, 374' n. 142, 774, cf. 530 br. n. 154 Paralogism(s) of pure reason (Paralogismus [-en] der reinen Vemunft), (transcen-
Painter
Palingenesis
dental,) xxxviii, 69 br. n. 169, 1 5 8 br. n. 297, 294 br. n. 122, 365 br. n. 88, 398'-405', 348'-405', and 406-32 (specifically, 398, 399, 403, 348', 350' br. n. 44, 35 1', 354' incl. br. n. 68, 36 1 ', 366', 367', 369', 38 1', 382', 395', 396', 398', 402', 403', 406, 407 br. n. 253, 408 br. n. 254, 4 1 0, 4 1 2, 426), 433 incl. br. n. 6, 435, 47 1 br. n. 1 99, 506 br. n. 72, 520 br. n. 125, 8 1 3, 827 br. n. 19, is a dia lectical inference in which I infer from the transcendental concept of the sub ject the absolute unity of this subject itself, 397-98; logical and transcendental, 399; systematic arrangement of, 396'-405', cf. 419; there are four, 403, cf. 419; first, 348'-5 1', cf. 354', 365' br. n. 105, 403', 4 1 0- 1 1 ; second, 3 5 1 '-61', cf. 407-8, 8 1 3 ; third, 361 '-66'; fourth, 366'-80' Parsimony
(Ersparung, Sparsamkeit),
65 1 , 678, 689
Part (Teil), vii' br. n. 7, xvii' br. n. 26, xix', vii, x, xi br. n. 5 1 . xvii br. n. 73, xviii-xix, xxv, xxxviii, xxxix n. 144, xliii br. n. 149, xliv, 1 , 8, 9, 1 1 n. 200, 12, 1 3 incl. br. n. 1 3 , 1 7 , 1 8 , 29, 30, 35 br. n. 23a, 36, 39, 40, 44 br. n. 66, 47, 48, 50, 53, 78, 84, 87, 88, 90, 96-99 incl. br. n. 147, 1 09, 1 1 2, 1 1 3, 102', 129, 1 30 br. n. 1 90, 1 36 n. 2 1 0, 167, 170, 172 br. n. 28c, 1 80, 1 88, 1 9 1 , 1 99, 203, 204, 209- 12, 2 14-16. 224 br. n. 45, 226, 232-34 incl. br. n. 1 1 0, 245, 253-55, 265 incl. n. 244, 279, 281 -83, 294, 300 n. 144, 305 n. 1 69, 320, 32 1 , 323, 326, 333, 339, 349 incl. br. n. 1, 356, 366 br. n. 94, 367, 379, 385, 40 1 , 348', 352', 353', 400', 40 1 ' incl. br. n. 232, 408', 4 1 3 , 419, 432, 439, 440, 445 , 446, 454 n. 1 1 9, 455, 456 incl. n. 1 2 1 , 459 incl. br. n. 1 3 1 , 460, 462-64 incl. br. n. 163, 466-69, 476, 480-82, 495, 502, 5 1 1 , 5 1 5 , 5 1 6, 524, 533, 54 1 , 543, 55 1 -55 incl. br. ns. 236 and 246, 558, 568, 577, 585 br. n. 360, 588, 593, 605, 623, 653, 67 1 , 673, 69 1 . 721 bL n. 282, 740, 752, 760, 780, 787, 789, 808, 824, 845, 860-62, 87 1 , 873, 874, 878, 880, cf. ii incl. br. n. 1, 2, 92, 372, 389, 579 br. n. 339a, 833, 834. 837, 84 1 , and whole, see Whole; See also Partial (Tei/-), Divisibility, Combina tion Partial(ity) (parteiisch, Parteilichkeit), 503, 859, see also Impartial Partial (Teil-), 10 br. n. 1 90, 33 br. n. 14, 48 incl. br. n. 82, 60, 224 br. n. 45, 249, cf. x, xii, xxxvii, 35 n. 23, 1 20' n. 1 50, 2 1 5 , 434, 447, 582, 649, 80 1 , 837, see also Part Particular (besonder, partikular), the, power to find it for the universal (and to think up the universal for it), 682 br. n. 86, cf. 84 br. n. 69, 1 73, see also Reason; in ferences to the. 680; derivation of the, 674; contemplation of the, 742; determi nation of the, 674; certainty of the, 674; subsumption of the, 674; subordina-
INDEX
953
tion of the, 872; the, contained under a concept, 337; concept, 337; sensation, 209; the, in an intuition, 84 br. n. 69, cf. xx', 1 58; perception, 400; experience, 1 1 7' n. 138; cognition of the (in the universal), 357, see also Universal; (kind of) cognitions, 675, 736, 870, cf. 1 70; judgment(s), 95 , 3 1 7-18; proposition, 283; possibility of everything, 600; object, 404; ways for a substance to exist, 229; property (-ies), 633, 680; determination(s), 1 26', 1 28', 279, 382, 40 1 incl. br. n. 1 8; predicates, 459; character, 44 n. 65 incl. br. n. 65e, 6 1 8, 633, 642, 827, 848; world, 63 3 ; (natural) laws, 1 65, 678; legislation, 739; arrangement, 7 1 9; succession, 239 incl. br. n. 1 32; provision and order, 827; kind of systematic unity, 835; highest conditions, 641-42; use of freedom, everyone's, 838; merit, 375; advantage of moral theology, 842; degree of (divine) perfections, 656 br. n. 3 1 8; use of understanding, 675, cf. 76 incl. br. n. 28; talent, the power of judgment as, 1 72; science, 76; way of explaining, 470; respect, what holds in a, 382; case(s), xxxix n. 1 44, 1 98, 674-75; circumstances, 173; distinction, 401 incl. br. n. 1 8 ; shape, 1 80; theorem, 760; deception, 82 1 ; expression, 599 br. n. 22; see also General Passage
( Weg), xi, cf. 1 28, see also Path (Vergehen), see Arising (Leidenschaft, Sucht), 79, 8 1 4, cf. 773, see also Inclination, Desire (passiv, leidend), capacity as, 75 br. n. 22; ability as, 75 br. n. 22; sensi-
Passing away Passion
Passive bility as, 75 br. n. 22; intuition, 33 br. n. 9; intuiting and being intuited, 1 5 3 br. n. 278; the subject as, 1 5 3 incl. br. n. 278; meaning of the word begin, 483 n. 250; see also Active Path (Weg, Gang, -steig), x', xii', vii-xi, xiv-xv, xviii, xxiii, xxx, xxxvi, xliii, 1 1 9, 98', 2 1 4, 25 1 , 259, 386, 445, 449, 530, 6 1 8, 6 19, 637, 639, 645, 656, 658, 669, 688, 690, 69 1 , 696, 708, 720, 745 , 754, 764, 785, 789, 803, 8 1 5, 819, 824, 866, 872, 878, 884, see also Course, Road, Way, Highway, Passage, Route Pathological
(pathologisch),
173, 562, 830,
see also
Sensible
Paton, Herbert James, I br. n. 152, 33 br. n. 1 , 37 br. n. 27, 46 br. n. 75, 76 br. n. 26, 92 br. n. 1 2 1 , 1 1 6 br. n. 1, 95' br. n. 58, 1 29 br. n. 1 84, 176 br. n. 46, 197 br. n. 1, 202 br. n. 35, 207 br. n. 70, 2 1 8 br. n. 3, 224 br. n. 46, 232 br. n. 88, 256 br. n. 206, 265 br. n. 1, 274 br. n. 38, 288 br. n. 98, 294 br. n. 125 Payzant, Geoffrey, xxxiii br. n. 1 32
([einjdringell, durchdrillgell), 98', 32 1 incI. br. n. 39, 334, 697, 776, 8 1 5, see also Impenetrability Perception(s) (Wahmehmullg[ellj, Perzeption), 39 n. 37, 46, 58, 1 34, 142, 1 62, 2 1 5 , Penetrate
225, 233-34, 236-37, 260-6 1 , 272-73, 277, 457 n . 126, 465, 47 1 , 480 n . 245, 5 1 1 - 1 2, 523-24, 543, 545, 548, 549, 629, 727, 776, 786-87, 8 1 2 , 827, 875, theory of, xvii br. n. 73; nature of, 2 1 6; is a modific ation of inner sense, 367', see also Sense; is contingent, 39 n. 37, cf. 219, 748-50, 875 ; are objects of our direct awareness, xvii br. n. 7 3 ; objective, is cognition, 376, cf. 273, 376', 786-87, see also Cognition ; considered subjectively, are apprehensions, 261 incl. br. n. 228, cf. 1 62 inc I. br. n. 3 1 0, 26 1 , see also Apprehension; SUbjective, is sensation, 376, cf. 1 84, 2 1 2, 272, 286, see also Sensation; are presentations ac companied by sensation (consciousness), 147, 272, cf. xvii br. n. 73, 11 hr. n. 20 1 , 1 1 5', 208, 350'; is indeterminate empirical intuition, 223, 422 n. 288, cf.
954
INDEX
60, 223, 234, 238, 323-24, 374', 750 n. 80,
see also
Intuition; the imagination
is a necessary ingredient of, 1 20' n. 1 50, cf. 723 br. n. 296, see also Imagina tion; is the determination of apperception, 368'; is consciousness in which there is sensation as well, 207, cf. 208, 272, 350', 378',
see also
Consciousness; is
presentation with consciousness, 376, cf. 122'; is empirical consciousness (of an intuition [as appearance]), 160, 207, 220, cf. 236-37 inc!. br. n. 1 1 7, 3 7 1 ', 550, 748-50 inc!. n. 80, see also Empirical; is appearance combined with con sciousness, 1 20', see also Appearance; (possible) is (are) appearance(s), 247, 457 n. 126, 5 2 1 , cf. 568; is the matter of appearance, 223, cf. 1 1 5', 373', see also Matter; is the presentation of (is what designates) an actuality (in space or time), 373'-74', cf. 273, 375'-77', 52 1 , see also Actuality; all, is based on pure intu ition, 1 1 5'; all possible, are subject to the categories, 1 64, cf. 1 6 1 -62; formal (subjective) condition of, 244, 323-24, cf. 546; pure forms of, 59-60; matter of, see Matter; cause of (for), 366'-68'; possibility of, 1 6 1 , 2 14, 26 1 ; possible, 123', 1 63-64, 2 1 1 , 23 1 , 245, 247, 259, 273, 274 br. n. 36, 403', 457 n. 1 26, 479, 5 1 1 , 5 2 1 , 523; as such, 401 ; range of, 522-23 ; existence of, 257; actual, 42, 60, 272, 273, 550, 629; singular, 1 1 8; direct, 272, 273, 284, 359, 367'-68', 371', 377', 7 1 8, cf. 629, 8 1 2 ; given, see Given; inner, 68, 107', 1 56, 400-40 1 , 367'-68', 378', 379', 465, cf. 1 54, 1 56 n . 292, see also Inner; outer, 275-76, 278, 340, 367'-70', 375'-79', 465, cf. 106', 349, see also Outer; common, 47; indistinct (doubted), 772; indeterminate, 422 n. 288; anticipations of, see An ticipation; magnitude of, cf. 222, 255; degree of, 255 ; apprehension of (in), 120', 258, see also Apprehension; production of, 255; reproduction of, 278; summon ing of, 1 2 1'; exhibition of, 1 2 1', see also Exhibition; manifold of, see Manifold; rhapsody of, 1 95 ; comparison of, 25 1 ; relation(s) of, 1 84, 220, 222-23, 269, 40 1 ; state of, 237, cf. 240, 243-45 ; position of, 245, 282; transition in, 255; progress of, 255 ; series of, 1 2 1 ', 238, 245, 247, 523, cf. 543; succession of, 237-39, 256-57 inc!. br. n. 208, 259, 26 1 inc!. br. n. 228, cf. 240, 243, 5 2 1 ; as sociation of, 1 2 1 '-22'; order of, 242, 245; context of, 273, cf. 52 1 ; coherence of, 245, 379', 522-23; necessary connection of, see Necessary; connection (com bination, synthetic unity) of, to yield experience, see Experience, Unity; under standing of, 367; determination of, 40 1 , 523; (objective) reality (the real) in (of), 214, 22 1 , 376', see also Reality, Real; of the complete lack of the real in sen sible intuition is impossible, 2 14; of space and time, is impossible, 207, cf. 2 1 9, 225, 226, 23 1 , 233, 245, 257, 262, 549, see also Space, Time; things in space and time as, 147; of an existent, 405, cf. 367'; of appearance(s), see Appear ance; (direct,) of objects, 4 1 , 203, 257, 272, 368', 371', 376'; object(s) of (cor responding to), see Object; of things, 256, 257 inc!. br. n. 208, 272, 273, 275-76, 368', 747, cf. 645 ; of extended beings, 349; of oneself (myself, my own exist ence), 400, 367', 368', cf. 402', 7 1 8 ; of substances, 256; of something perma nent, 275, cf. 350'; of what (that something) occurs, 238, 243, 245, cf. 237, 240, 246; of change, 23 1 , 260, 292; of action, 5 80-8 1 ; different from those that be long in general to our entire possible experience, 283; of inhabitants on the moon, 5 2 1 ; of stars, 524; see also Observation Perfect(ion) (Vollkommen[heit], Vollendung, vollendet, vollenden), 1 1 4- 1 5, 722, vii' hr. n. 7, xiii', xx', xliii, 76, 98, 100, 1 93, 364 inc!. hr. n. 80, 372-74, 379 inc!.
INDEX
955
br. n. 148, 380 br. n. 1 52, 493, 596-97, 611 n. 83 incl. br. n. 83b, 6 1 8, 64 1 , 642 br. n. 243, 65 1 , 655-56 incl. br. n. 3 1 8, 660, 665, 685 incl. br. n. 1 10, 694, 698 incl. br. n. 1 8 1 , 703-4, 706, 709, 7 14, 7 1 7 br. n. 264, 72 1 incl. br. n. 282, 726, 728, 802, 838, 842-44, 846, 861, 866, 868, supreme (highest), 665, 703, 706, 7 1 4, 72 1 , 844, see also Good-the, Completeness, Imperfect Permanence or permanent (Beharrlich[keitD, 67, 1 83, 2 1 9, 224-32 incl. n. 44 and br. n. 67, 275 incl. br. n. 46, 300, 795 inel. br. n. 284, xxxix n. 144, 6 br. n. 1 66, 1 8, 20 n. 243, 1 86 incl. br. ns. 1 33 and 1 35 , 233, 249-5 1 , 264, 268, 270, 277-78, 291-92, 3 3 1 , 340, 34 1 , 349'-50', 362'-66' incl. br. n. 102, 383', 399', 401', 403', 4 1 2- 1 5 incl. n. 275, 4 1 8, 420, 424, 462, 530, 553, 5 8 1 , 700, 7 1 1 , 769, 785, 800, is one of the three modes of time, 2 1 9; of substance, principle thereof, 224-32 incl. n. 44, 795 incl. br. n. 284, cf. 233, see also Substance; of the soul (the subject, the I, myself, my thinking nature), 349'-50', 361'-66' incl. br. n. 102, 383', 401', 403', 4 1 2- 1 5 inc I. n. 275, cf. xxxix n. 144, 420, 700, 710- 1 1 , 769 (see also Soul), proof thereof, see Proof Perplexity (Verlegenheit, Bedenklichkeit), vii', xvii, 1 1 7, 247, 355, 370', 376', 452, 539, 57 1 , 773, 792, 8 1 1 , 8 1 2 , cf. 872, see also Difficulty Persius, xx' incl. br. n. 35, 883 incl. br. n. 279 Person (Person, Mensch), 355', 361'-62' inel. br. n. 94, 363' n. 99, 365', 408, 582, 583, 7 1 8, 766, 778, cf. xxiv br. n. 98, xxx br. n. 124, 82, 83, 98, 1 40, 494, 501, 529, 597, 598, 603, 626, 694, 7 3 1 . 756, 776, 804, 805, 84 1 , 848, 864, see also Human being, Personality, Personal, Personify Personal (personlich), 700, 7 1 0, see also Person Personality (Personalitiit, Personlichkeit), (of the soul,) 403, 361'-66', 409, 427, see also Person, Soul Personify
(personijizieren),
6 1 1 n. 83, 867,
see also
Person
Persuasion or persuade ( Oberredung, uberreden), 848-50, x', 14, 78, 79 br. n. 38, 377', 6 1 1 , 63 1 , 632, 646, 666, 667, 730, 77 1 , 773, 782, 852, cf. 797 Petition
(Petition),
366, cf. 768
Phenomenal (phaenomenon), world, 1 86 br. n. 134, 328 inc I. br. n. 62, 461 inel. br. n. 1 5 1 ; substantive whole, 469 incl. br. n. 1 92 ; substance, 1 86 inc I. br. n. 1 35 , 227, 250 inel. br. n. 1 8 1 , 321 incl. br. n. 34, 333 inel. br. n. 93, 589 incl. br. n. 384, cf. 386' incI. br. n. 190; quantity, 1 86 inc I. br. n. 1 35 ; reality (-ies), 1 8 6 incl. br. n. 1 35 , 207 n. 68 incl. br. n. 68b, 209 incl. br. n. 86, 320 incl. br. n. 30, 329 incl. br. n. 68; necessity, 1 86 inc I. br. n. 1 3 5 ; the subject as, 573 incl. br. n. 3 14; cause, 573 inel. br. n. 3 1 3 Phenomenon (-en a) (Phaenomenon [-ena], Phiinomen[eD, x', 1 55 , 320, 338 n. 1 24, 433, 489, 609, 852, are appearances (insofar as these are thought as objects ac cording to the unity of the categories), 305 n. 169, 306, 573 incl. br. n. 3 14, cf. 25 1 , 59 1 , see also Appearance; are beings of sense, 306 incl. br. n. 175, cf. 1 86 br. n. 1 34, 305 n. 169, 3 1 1 , 325, see also Sense; and noumena, 294-3 1 5 (spe cifically, 294, 305 n. 1 69, 3 1 1 ), 325, cf. 25 1 , 306, 386' inc I. br. n. 190, 573 incl. br. n. 3 1 4, 574, 59 1 , 642 br. n. 240, see also Noumenon, Thing in itself; of an object, the schema as, 1 86; the subject's (the subject [myself] as), 1 55 , 573-74 inc I. br. n. 3 1 4, cf. 802; consisting of the will's manifestations, 826 Philodoxy
(Philodoxie),
xxxvii incl. br. n. l 38
956
INDEX
Philosopher(s) (Philosoph[en]), ii br. n. I , viii, xi br. n. 5 1 , xxxiv, xxxvi incl. br. n. 1 34, xxxvii, 1 4 n. 2 1 7, 1 9, 35 br. n. 23a, 1 1 4, 1 1 9 br. n. 20, 227-28, 3 1 2, 330, 336, 345, 370, 372, 373, 375, 382, 396, 364' br. n. 1 00, 4 1 3 , 459, 46 1 , 478, 498, 499 n. 44, 500, SOl , 506, 530, 539, 645, 649 br. n. 280, 677 br. n. 57, 679, 680, 696 br. n. 1 68, 729, 73 1 , 744-46 incl. br. n. 63, 774, 859, 867, 868, 870, 872, 8 8 1 -83 incl. br. ns. 266, 270, 278, and 279, are investigators of concepts, 539; are legislators of human reason, 867, cf. 868; speculative, xxxiv; dog matic, xxxvi; empirical, 498; sensualist, 8 8 1 incl. br. n. 266; intellectualist, 323, 88 1 ; see also Philosophy, Philosophical Philosophical (philosophisch), inquiries, 90; contemplation, 743 incl. br. n. 47; cog nition, 752, 865, xxxv, 741-42, 760, 762, 764, 859, 866-70, 872, 875-76, is either true or seeming, 869, see also Cognition; certainty, xv', 76 1 , cf. 74 1 ; pro cedure, 90, cf. 452, 755, 766; proofs, 763 inc I. br. n. 142; principles, 76 1 , 876, cf. 92, 499 n. 44, SOl , 679, 760, 866, 868, 883 ; explications (definitions), 758-60 incl. n. 1 2 1 ; use of reason, 752; way of thinking, 275; system, xxxvi br. n. 1 34, 868, cf. xliv, 346, 372', 427, 5 1 9, 829, 869, see also System; content, 27; im portance (significance), 848 br. n. 1 1 3; treatise, xliv; writers, 285; spirit, 499 n. 44; tranquillity, 785; airs, 785 ; see also Philosophy, Philosopher Philosophy (Philosophie, Weltweisheit), the concept(s) of, 866-68; is the system of all philosophical cognition, 866, see also Cognition, System; is the rational cog nition according to concepts, 760, cf. 539, 743; all, is either cognition from pure reason or rational cognition from empirical principles, 868, see also Reason, Principle; is the legislation of human reason, 868, cf. 867; pure, 20, 753, 828, 868, 869, 876, (i.e.,) of pure reason, 26, 739, 823, 869, 875, cf. 763, is either the propaedeutic or the system of pure reason (critique or metaphysics), 869, cf. 873, see also Critique, Metaphysics; in the genuine meaning of the term, is meta physics (of nature and of morals) as preceded by the critique of pure reason, 878; as a mere idea, 866; needs a science, 6; is needed as critique, not as doc trine, 1 74; consists in knowing its own bounds, 755, cf. SOl , 506, 823; can never be learned (only philosophizing can), 865, cf. 866; refers everything to the goal of wisdom, 878; as the science of the reference of all cognition to the essential purposes of human reason, 866-67 inc I. br. n. 1 87 ; compared to mathematics, see Mathematics; objective and SUbjective, 866, cf. 865; applied, 876; empiri cal, 868, cf. 5 1 9 br. n. 1 2 3 ; experimental, 452; dogmatic, 79 1 , cf. 6 1 , 864; criti cal, vii' br. n. 5, 264 br. n. 24 1 , see also Critical; theoretical part of, 109; cf. 644; natural (of nature), xii br. n. 52, 868, 875 n. 240; transcendental, 873 incl. br. n. 222. 1 n. 1 53. 25 inc I. br. n. 265, 27-30, 73, 9 1 -92, 1 07, 1 1 3, 1 3 3 n. 202, 152, 1 55 n. 283, 1 74-75, 2 1 3, 346, 400, 452, 49 1 , 505-6, 508, 563, 704, 76 1 , 766, 829 incl. n . 28, idea (nature) thereof, 1 n . 1 5 3 , 2 8 , 400, cf. 763, 875, see also Transcendental; transcendental, is ontology, 873 incl. br. n. 222; transcen dental, its peculiarity (and superiority), 174-75, 505, cf. 868, its division, 27 br. n. 279, and its bounds, 2 1 3, cf. 755; speCUlative, 35 n. 23, 382, 423, 476 br. n. 223, 499 n. 44, cf. 29, see also Speculative; transcendent, 484, see also Tran scendent; practical, 476 br. n. 223, see also Practical; moral (of morals), 868, see also Moral; concerning the final purpose, is called morality, 868; the high est, 859; dignity of (peculiar to), 86, 376, 49 1 ; merit of, 859; duty (obligation)
INDEX
957
of, xiii', 92, cf. 73 1 , 870; business of, xxxi; (proper) task of, 90-9 1 , 174; prob lem of, 73, 264 br. n. 24 1 , 563; object of, 742, 743, cf. 829; promises of, 49 1 ; attempts at, 866; expectation of, 492; aim of, 763, 765; systematic unity pre scribed by, 867-68; system(s) of, 25 inc!. br. n. 265, 26, 107, 864, cf. 27, 829; edifice of, 866, cf. 375-76; benefit of, 823; acuteness and art of examination of, 1 74; deduction in, 1 1 6; certificate from, 1 20; those who have it at heart, 376; warnings of, 755; a sound, death of, 434; deluding of, 765; as playing tricks with mathematics, 467, 469; scandal for, xxxix n. 144; the stumbling-block proper for, 476 inc!. br. n. 223; inferences that are not allowed in, 827; has no axioms, 76 1 ; (no) definitions in, 300 br. n. 144f, 758-60 inc!. n. 1 2 1 ; analogies in (and in mathematics), 222; use of term in, 367 br. n. 97, 495 br. n. 30, 820 br. n. 394; historian of, 372 br. n. 1 1 6; infancy of, 880; ancient, xix' br. n. 30, 1 1 3 ; recollection as (in Plato), 370; see also Philosophical, Philosopher Phlogiston (Phlogiston), xii br. n. 59, xiii br. n. 60 Physical (physisch), 63, 201 n. 30, 202, 328, 3 3 1 , 375, 390'-92', 452 br. n. 105, 467, 498, 500, 573, 7 1 5 , 7 1 8, 720, 75 1 , 800, 80 1 , 873, use of reason, 873, see also Physics, Physicotheological, Natural Physician
(Arzt),
xii br. n. 59, 172, 7 1 6, 7 1 7 n. 265, 852
Physicist (Physiker), xii br. n. 57, 15 br. n. 225, 489 br. n. 266, 508 br. n. 83, see also Physics Physicotheological (physikotheologisch), proof (argument), see God; see also Physi cotheology Physicotheology (Physikotheologie), 656, 660, 7 1 6 br. n. 26 1 , 7 1 8, 844, 855, cf. 657, see also Physicotheological, Theology, Teleology Physics (Physik), x, xiii, 17 inc!. br. n. 229, 20 n. 243 inc!. br. n. 243b, 874, 875 incl. n. 24Q and br. ns. 240a and 24 1 ; (rational,) as a science, see Science; see also Physicist, Physical, Physicotheology, Rational Physiocracy
(Physiokratie),
477
Physiognomist (Physiognom), 598 Physiology or physiological (Physiologie, physiologisch), 873-76 inc!. br. ns. 225 and 227, ix', 1 1 9, 201 inc!. br. n. 29, 405, 3 8 1 ', 563, 578, 7 1 6, cf. 641 br. n. 237, contrasted with transcendental, see Transcendental; see also Rational Place (Ort, Platz, Stelle, Statt) , xviii', xxix, xlii, xliv, 35, 48, 66-67, 86 br. n. 76, 90, 92, 96, 97, 107 br. ns. 1 96 and 198, 109, 1 52, 260, 265 n. 244, 274, 294, 3 1 5 , 3 1 8, 3 5 1 , 379', 386', 387', 475, 484, 554, 588, 6 1 6, 630, 653, 68 1 , 682, 789, 80 1 , 804, 820, 861, 876-77, 880, see also Location Planet (Planet), 690, 853, see also Astronomy Plato, 9, 207 br. n. 67, 370-75 inc!. n. 1 1 0, 364' br. n. 100, 530, 596, 655 br. n. 3 1 3 , 8 8 1 -82; cf. 499, 597 Pleasure and displeasure (Lust und Unlust), 29 inc!. br. n. 290, 44 n. 65, 66, 40 1 , 597, 829 n. 28, cf. 32 1 , 374', 677 Pluhar, Werner Schrutka, vii' br. n. 7, xvii br. n. 73 Plurality (Vielheit, Mehrheit), category of, 106 inc!. br. n. 1 87, 1 1 4, 320, 328, 402, 403', 404', 407, 4 1 3, 4 1 5 n. 275 inc!. br. n. 275e, 530 br. n. 1 54, cf. I I I incl. br. n. 224, 303 n. 1 57, see also Multiplicity Pneumatism (Plleumatismus), 433, 379', see also Spiritualism
958
INDEX
Polemic (polemisch), use of pure reason, 766-97 (specifically, 766, 767, 770 br. n. 1 87, cf. 778, 782, 784, 79 1 ), 804, cf. 5 1 9 br. n. 1 23
(polysyllogistisch), 387 incl. br. n. 1 86, see also Syllogistic (Vielgotterei), 6 1 8 , see also Theist Popular(ity) (popular [Popularitat]), x', xviii', xxxiv, xliv, 352' n. 57, 357', Polysyllogistic
Polytheism
495,
500, 502 incl. br. n. 58, 870 Posit (Setzen, Position), 625-27, 69, 97-98, 1 1 2, 1 22 incl. br. n. 34, 1 24, 1 1 3', 157 n. 296, 1 83, 192, 232, 242-44, 246-47 incl. br. n. 1 60, 268, 284, 287 n. 96, 300, 3 1 1 , 336, 363', 392', 396', 422 n. 288, 457 n. 1 26, 476, 506 n. 74, 5 1 1 , 5 1 6, 523, 5 3 1 , 570, 592, 593, 6 1 5 , 622-23, 630, 646, 65 1 , 667, 702, 705, 7 1 3, 728 br. n. 3 1 5 , 8 1 7 br. n. 384 Position (Stelle, Stellung, Lage, Platz, Posten), v, 50, 62, 63, 1 56, 2 1 1 , 237, 243, 245, 256, 259-62, 282, 320, 324, 327, 396, 363' n. 99, 374', 549 n. 23 1 , 673, 745, 806, 84 1 , 860, see also Location Positive (positiv), designation, 582; characterization, 92 br. n. 1 22; characteristics, 336; concept, 305 n. 1 69, 3 1 5 br. n. 2 1 8 ; meaning, 307, cf. 336; sense, 582 br. n. 345; signification, 308, 3 1 1 incl. br. n. 190, 343, cf. 336; determination, 230, cf. 336; truth, 85; cognitions, 823; information, 737; expansion, 343; use, 190; benefit, xxiv, xxv, xxix; contribution, 738; obstacle, 70 1 Possibility (Moglichkeit), definition (explication) of, 302; concept of, 266, cf. 377' br. n. 153, 442, 798; predicate of, 286; category of, 106, 1 84, cf. 1 1 1 , 265-66; schema of, 1 84; character of, 267, 269; postulate of, 265-72 (specifically, 268); related to actuality, 282-84, 287 n. 96, 627; and actuality and necessity (of ev erything that exists as a thing in space or time), their predicates do not augment the concept of which these (modalities) are affirmed, 286, cf. 266, 752; itself, the existence that is given through it is necessity, I l l ; (original) source(s) of, xxi', 6 1 5 ; a single underlying, 609; realm (kingdom) of (mere), 282-83, 6 1 4, 658, cf. 97; (sum of) all, (entire, in its entirety), 600-60 1 incl. n. 27, cf. 604-7, 609- 1 1 , 6 1 3 , 636, 640, 64 1 , 65 1 , 699 br. n. 1 86, 787, is the thoroughgoing de terminability of all things, 6 1 1 n. 83, see also Determinability; matter of (for) all, 322, 60 1 , cf. 603, 606, 610, see also Matter (Materie); of synthetic cogni tions, mark of, 630, cf. 624 n. 148; analytic (logical) mark of, 624 n. 148, 630, cf. 627; logical, xxvi n. 1 03 incl. br. ns. 1 03a and 103c, 1 0 1 , 96 br. n. 144, 178 br. n. 66, 268 incl. br. n. 6, 300-302 inc I. ns. 144b and 1 56, 305 n. 1 69 incl. br. n. 1 69v, 461 n. 140 inc I. br. n. 140b, 586 incl. br. n. 362, 624 n. 148, 638, 798 incl. br. n. 295, cf. 820 br. n. 394, distinguished from real, xxvi n. 103, 300-2 incl. n. 144b, 624 n. 148, 798 inc I. br. n. 295, cf. 1 84, 265-72, 282-87 inc I. n. 96, 308, 609, 638, 8 1 5 - 1 6, see also Logical, Real; real, is a concept's objective reality (a possibility of things rather than of concepts), xxvi n. 103, 302, 624 n. 1 48 , 798 incl. br. n. 295, see also Reality; formal, 127', 305 n. 169; general, 22 br. n. 25 1 ; absolute (in every [any, all] reference, respect[s]), 284-85, 3 8 1 -82, cf. 504; complete, 287 n. 96; intrinsic (inherent, in itself), 29 1 , 3 8 1 -82 inc I. br. n. 1 5 8, 370', 625, 654, 703, 7 1 2, 770, 844; transcendental, 302, 638; objective, 1 0 1 ; affirmative and negative, 46 1 ; a priori, 1 9 incl. br. ns. 234 and 236, 22 br. n. 25 1 , 24 n. 259, 56, 73, 75, 80, 125, 127 n. 48, 1 5 1 , 197, 246 br. n. 1 60, 254, 298, 357, 388, 639; a posteriori (empirical), 3, 75, 596, 628; particular, 60 1 ; of
INDEX
959
presentations, concepts, categories, understanding, thought, intuition, percep tions, synthesis, judgments, propositions, principles, cognitions, experience, ap pearances, nature, properties, objects, things, things in themselves, noumena, freedom, morality, metaphysics, mathematics, etc., see these headings; see also Possible, Impossibility Possible (moglich), is what agrees with the formal conditions of experience, 265, cf. 286, 287 n. 96, 609, see also Experience; all that is, sphere of, 97, cf. 28283, 658; equated with optional, 100; presentation, sensation, intuition, percep tion, understanding, consciousness, synthesis, combination, j udgment, cogni tion, experience, appearance, object, thing, being, predicate, cause, basis, change, action, unity, purpose, etc., see these headings; see also Possibility, Impossible Postpredicaments
(Postpriidikamente),
107 inc I. br. n. 197
Postulate(s) (Postulat[eD, logical, 526 incI. br. n. 142; in mathematics, 287; con trasted with petition, 366; of empirical thought as such. 200, 201 n. 30 incl. br. n. 30i, 223, 265-87 (specifically, 265), cf. 288-94, (i.e.,) the principles of mo dality, 285, cf. 265-66, 287, do not at all augment our concept of things, but merely indicate the way in which the concept is connected with the cognitive power as such, 287; first, of the possibility of things, 265-72 (specifically, 267, 268), cf. 274 br. n. 36, 282-85, 286, 287 n. 96; second, for cognizing the ac tuality of things, 266, 272-79 (specificaJly, 272), cf. 274 br. n. 36, 282-84, 286, 287 n. 96; third, of material necessity in existence, 266, 279-82, cf. 286; of prac tical reason, 723 br. n. 300, cf. 661-62; see also Postulate (postulieren) Postulate (postulieren), 285, 287, 366, 525, 526, 537, 661 -62, 673, 676, 678, 682, means to demand, 366 n. 92, 526 br. n. 142, 537 br. n. 1 78, 673 br. n. 32, 682 br. n. 82; practically, 662; see also Postulate (Postulat) Potential
(potential),
388, cf. 445
PoweJl, C. Thomas, 401 br. n. 16, 348' br. n. 42, 3 5 1 ' br. n. 50, 361' br. n. 9 1 , 366' br. n. 1 1 2 Power(s) (Vermogen, Kraft [Kriifte]), reason for using this term, xii' br. n . 1 6; men tal (of the mind, soul), see Mental, Mind, Soul; of presentation, sensibility, sense, intuition, imagination, concepts, thought, apperception, understanding, cogni tion, reason, rules, principles, freedom, see these headings; of judgment (choice, desire), see Judgment (Choice, Desire)-power of; human, 353, 575, 830; our entire, 735 , cf. 145, 4 1 4, 7 1 7 n. 265, 766 incl. br. n. 1 59, 796 incl. br. n. 290, 799, 806, 8 1 8; root, 1 14'; basic, 1 24', 270, 428, 677-79, 7 1 0, comparative and absolute, 677; subsidiary, 362; inner, 43 1 ; of being (becoming) conscious of one self, 68-69, 4 1 4- 1 5 , see also Consciousness; natural, 1 73 ; animal, 830; sen sible, 309, 562 inc I. br. n. 283, 830; empirical, 1 1 9', 266; a priori, 201 n. 30; transcendental, 1 02', 1 87, 356, 479; of comprehension, 656, see also Compre hension; pure intellectual, 422 n. 288; rational, 500; nonsensible, 92; intelli gible, 573 incl. br. n. 3 14, 579; active, 120', cf. 75 br. n. 22; original, 1 53 , cf. 798; wit as a, 682 br. n. 86; theoretical, 844 br. n. 96; speculative, 395 n. 222; practical, 425, 597, 844 br. n. 96; free, 828, 830, 836; performative, 575; cre ative, 597; private, 838; lawless, 479; of illusion, 622; to secure oneself against deceptions, 783; matured, 8 1 5 ; to differentiate, 677 br. n. 56; to measure, 650; supreme, 355 ; new original, 798 ; magical, xiii'; amazing or immense, 656; all,
960
INDEX
655, cf. 653; invisible, governing the world, 880, see also God; (used) in mock combat, xv; see also Ability, Capacity, Source, Force Practical (Praktisch), the, 385, 575, 775, 828, 83 1 -33, is what rests on (is possible through) freedom, 37 1 , 838, cf. 830, see also Freedom; the, has to do with what ought to be (occur), 575-76, 66 1 , 833, cf. 578, see also Ought; reference (re gard, point of view), xxi, 578, 668, 8 5 1 , 856; realm, 784, 804 br. n. 324, 83 1 , 833, cf. 371 n . 1 1 0; sphere, xxxviii; the, insofar as it contains incentives, refers to feelings, 29, cf. 829 n. 28; question, 832-33; pure, 430 br. n. 3 1 1 , 668 br. n. 369, 828, 846 inc!. br. n. 102; morally-, 19 br. n. 235, see also Moral, Morality ; philosophy, science, logic, concept, idea, necessity, validity, imperative, law, principle, judgment, proposition, presupposition, data, conviction, cognition , power, reason, causality, freedom, aim, interest, purposiveness, vocation, see these headings; use of cognition, understanding, reason, see Cognition, Under standing, Reason; knowledge, 723 br. n. 300, see also Knowledge; postulation, 662;. faith, 854, see also Faith; concerns, 498; consequences, 453; addition, 6 1 7 ; the, in Plato, 3 7 1 , 500, i n Epicurus, 500 Pragmatic (pragmatisch), law(s), 828, 834; belief, 852-53 Precept (Vorschrift, Vorsatz), xiv', 29, 1 70, 1 7 1 inc!. br. n. 24, 263, 365, 682, 835, 842, 856, see also Prescription Predetermined (vor[her]bestimmt), 167, 33 1 , 390', 569, 5 8 1 , see also Detennination
(Priidikabilien), 108 (Priidikamente), 107-8, 348', 406, 608 Predicate (Priidikat), 1 0- 1 3 inc!. n. 200, 17, 38, 43, 53,
Predicables
Predicaments
69 n. 178, 94, 96-98, 12829, 1 05' inc!. br. n. 95, 1 49, 1 86, 1 90, 1 92, 205, 264 br. n. 24 1 , 266, 286, 289, 300, 303 n. 1 57, 3 6 1 -62, 378-79, 404, 348', 349', 358'-59', 399' inc!. br. n.
226, 400', 40 1 ', 405', 407, 4 1 0, 4 1 2, 4 1 9 , 420 br. n. 283, 43 1 -32, 44 1 , 457 n. 1 26, 47 1 , 604 br. n. 50, 605, 609, 622-28, 633, 656, 663, 8 1 3 , 821 inc!. br. n. 397; (the sum of) (alI) possible, 459, 599-4 inc!. n. 27, 633; subject and, see Subject; opposite (conflicting), 596, 600 inc!. n. 27, 604, 633, cf. 60 1 -2 ; con tradictorily opposed, 48, 599, cf. 1 92; negative, 97, cf. 606; of a possible ex perience, 7 1 2, cf. 623; empirical, 40 1 , 399', 405'; of (empirical) intuition, 120, 278, 399', cf. 43 1 , 47 1 ; of sensibility, 120, cf. 43 1 ; given, 60 1 , cf. 623, 663; of inner sense, 359'; detenninate, 506 n. 74; distinguishing and intrinsic, 593 ; de rivative, 60 1 ; logical and real, 626; real, Being (existence) is not, 626 inc!. br. n. 1 6 1 , cf. 627-28, see also Being (Sein); of pure a priori thought, 1 20; tran scendental, see Transcendental; assumed, 7 1 1 ; see also Concept
(Anlage), xxxii, 2 1 , 22, 9 1 , 1 67, 425, 695, 697, 727, 776 (vorherbestimmt), hannony, see Hannony Prefonnation (Priiformation), 1 67-68 inc!. br. n. 328 Prejudice (Vorurteil), ii br. n. 1, viii, Xl(X, 77 inc!. br. n. 3 1 , 768, 775, cf. 493 Premise (Satz), 1 0 1 inc!. br. n. 1 7 1 , 141 n. 230, 356-57, 360 inc!. br. n . 65 , 361 , Predisposition
Preestablished
364, 366, 379, 386, 387-89, 395, 397, 367', 402'-3' inc!. br. n. 239, 4 1 1 inc!' n. 259, 422 n. 288, 432, 444, 478 br. n. 237, 525, 527-28 inc!. br. ns. 149 and 1 50, 604-5, 632-33, 637 br. n. 2 1 9, 763, 820, see also Inference, Syllogism. Proof, Argument, Conclusion
INDEX
96 1
Prescription or prescribe (Vorschrift. vorschreiben), xxxvi, 86, 145, 159, 160 inc!. br. n. 302, 163- 1 65, 170 br. n. 8, 1 7 1 , 1 72, 1 74, 362, 363, 365 br. n. 89, 383, 538 inc!. br. n. 1 84, 550, 586, 60 1 , 688, 738, 775, 83 1 , 835 br. n. 55, 837, 867, 875, see also Precept, Command, Enjoin, Categories, Law Presentation (traditional rendering of
Darstellung), see
Exhibition
Presentation(s) or present(ing) (Vorstellung[en], vorstellen), reason for using this term, xvii br. n. 73; are (inner) determinations (modifications) of the (our) mind (in this or that time relation), 50, 74, 98', 242, cf. 37, 46, 68, 97', 1 14', 299, 3 1 8- 1 9, 390'-92', 404', 420, 422, 432, 5 1 9-2 1 , see also Mind; are the objects (elements, contents) of consciousness (our direct awareness), xvii br. n. 73, 234-35, cf. 104' inc!. br. n. 88, 1 1 3', 242, see also Consciousness; belong to (are contained in, are determinations [predicates] 00 inner sense (our inner state), 50, 98', 1 01', 194, 220, 359', cf. 1 1 3', 202, 242, 33 1 , 372', 373', 375', 378', 379', 386', 387', 522, 5 9 1 , see also Sense; all, are (can be) accompanied by (have in common, have as correlate) the I think (the I, [the act of] [original] appercep tion). 1 23', 1 3 1 , 1 32, 1 37, 363', 364', cf. 1 1 3', 1 1 6', 1 30', 1 34, 1 38, 142-43, 1 8 1 , 376, 350', 359', 368', 370', 378', 404'-5', 414 n. 273, 8 12, see also I-the, Apperception; consciousness of, xxxix n. 144, 67, 1 1 7" n. 1 38, 1 23', 1 30 n. 1 9 1 , 1 34, 1 3 6 inc!. n . 2 1 0, 234, 242 inc!. br. n. 1 39, 363' n . 99, 3 7 1 ', 378', 4 1 4 n . 273, cf. 1 1 3', 1 1 6', 1 32-33 inc!. br. n. 20 1 , 137; thought o f (through), 1 30 n . 1 9 1 , 1 68, 404, see also Thought; state of, 330, 3 3 1 , cf. 143 br. n . 24 1 ; realiza tion of, 300, see also Real, Reality; subjective reality (signification, condi tion[s]) of, 242, 432, 522, 536, see also Signification; objective reality (signi fication) of, 242-43, 264, cf. 70; reference of, to the subject, 390-9 1 , cf. 8 1 9; reference of, to objects (an object), xvii, 50, 1 09', 1 37, 242, 305 n. 169, 309, 3 1 4, 39 1 , cf. xxxix n. 144, 8 1 9; objects of (as), see Object; (transcendental) con tent of, 1 3 , 47, 6 1 , 67, 1 05, 356', 3 8 1 '; empty (devoid of content, signification, meaning), 42-43, 1 29', 299, 345, 404, cf. 1 32, 1 37, 1 86-87 inc!. br. n. 1 39, 697; as such (repraesentatio), 376, 432; way(s) (kinds) of, 376-77, xvii br. n. 73, xx, xxviii, 5 1 , 54, 1 79, 229, 305 n. 169, 326, 370', 372', 378', 379', 382', 383', 385', 393', 429, 594, cf. xviii' br. n. 29, xvii, 40, 47, 48, 50, 67, 80, 93, 105, 1 1 5', 1 24', 1 57, 177, 1 95 , 298, 379; accompanied by sensation (conscious ness), is perception, 147, 376, cf. 374'-76', 5 2 1 , 749, see also Perception; in tellectual intuitions (of an intuitive understanding) as, 33 br. n. 1 3 , 1 39, 145, cf. 723 br. n. 296, see also Intuition (intellectual); (mere, logical) formes) of, 70, 80, 326, 404, 377'; material for, 382'; beings endowed with, 340; sources for, 194, 325-27; the (our) power of, 5 1 , 1 04', 1 29-30, 1 5 1 , 3 1 8, 3 1 9, 32 1 , 323, 400, cf. 298, 3 1 6- 1 7, 320, 3 3 1 -32, 35 1 ; capacity (ability) for (to [receive, be affected with]), 34, 38, 39, 72, 74, 75, 1 50, 522, cf. 1 02, see also Sensibility; method for, 179; acquisition (origin) of, 33, 358', 387', cf. 98', 1 3 1 ; (efficient) cause of, 276, 387', 390'-93', cf. 409; production of, 1 , 75, 98', 103', 1 1 8' hr. n. 142, 1 32, 202, 299, 372', 387', 390', 480 n. 245, cf. 34; given, see Given; apprehension (intuition) of, 97', 102', 358', cf. 236, see also Apprehension; a sum of, 236; manifold(ness) of (given), see Manifold; mere (blind) play of, 1 0 1 ', 1 1 2', 239, cf. 195, 247, 278, 38 1'; variation of, xxxix n. 144, 53; (objective) comparison of, 1 , 97', 3 1 6, 3 1 7, 3 1 9, 325 ; addition of, 13, 1 33 ; reproduction of,
962
INDEX
97', 1 2 1 ', cf. 103', 1 1 5'; succession (following, series) of, 1 02'-3', 54 n. 1 1 7, 234 inc!. br. n. 1 1 0, 235, 243, 246, 533, 534, cf. 242, 260; association of, 1 00', 1 2 1 ', 140, see also Association; convergence of, 1 1 6'; transfonnation of, 1 02, cf. 350'; collating of, 1 37, see also Collating; connection (linking) of, 5, 97', 1 00', 1 1 6', 140, 1 68, 1 77, 3 1 6, 350', 3 86', 387', 522, 565, cf. 1 42, 205, 8 1 8; combination of, 1 2 1 ', 1 33, 1 36-37, 142, 235, 242, 4 1 4 n. 273, cf. 1 09', 1 30, see
also
Combination; (pure) synthesis (of the manifold) of,
see
Synthesis; (deter
minate) coherence (order, arrangement) of (in an experience), 108', 1 2 1 ', 1 8 1 , 244, 345, 386', cf. 99', 327, 405', 522; (synthetic, analytic, subjective, objec tive) unity of (among), 94, 1 1 7' n. 1 38, 1 30', 1 35-36, 1 42, 1 60 n. 305, 1 86 inc\. br. n. 1 39, 194, 39 1 , 355', 399', cf. 99', 1 1 6', 353',
see also Judgment, Unity;
recognition of, 97'; bringing of, under a concept, 1 04; determination (detennin ability) by (of), xvii, 1 42, 522, 536, 566, see also Detennination; cognition through, 45, 74, 94, 97', 1 37, 142, 404, 355', 382', cf. 1 1 6', 1 2 1 ', 1 30', 527, see also Cognition; analysis of, 103; possibility of, 80, 1 24-25, 1 1 6', 1 32, 1 33, 244 inc!. br. n. 1 5 5 , see also Possibility; possible, 40, 1 1 6', 1 3 3 n. 202; actual (ac tuality of), 1 1 7' n. 1 38, 3 7 1 '-72', 374' n. 1 42, 376', 52 1 ; existence of, 370'-7 1 ' ; pure, 34, 74, 1 05 , 1 02', 1 77, 24 1 , 762; a priori, 29, 37 br. n. 2 8 , 38, 3 9 , 4 4 inc\. n. 65, 49, 80, 1 25, 99', 1 60, 1 94, 1 95, 209, 2 1 7, 24 1 , 299, 749, 762, cf. 1 8 1 , 377; necessary, 38, 46, 1 63, cf. 1 60 br. n . 303, 370'; through mere (pure) con cepts, 340, 444; intellectual, 1 77, 278, 422 n. 288; analytic, 600; logical, 300; in abstracto, 346, cf. 8 1 3 ; subjective, 44 inc!. n. 65, 207 br. n. 74, 208, see also Sensation; intuitive, 1 60 n. 305, 278, 749, cf. 387'; sensible, 1 04', 1 29', 1 77, 305 n. 1 69, 522, 808, cf. xxviii, 33 br. n. 13, 1 32, 345, see also Intuition; of the senses (of sense, through a sense, through [based on] sensation), xxxix n. 144, 44 n. 65, 68, 1 1 8' br. n. 142, 147, 305 n. 1 69, 369', contains no error (no judg ment), 350, see also Sense; inner, 378', 876, see also Inner; outer (of outer senses), 67, 385', 39 1 ', cf. 37 1 ', 374', 376', 387', see also Outer; (given) em pirical(ly), (acquired) a posteriori, 39 n. 37, 80-8 1 , 99', 147, 1 68, 1 78, 226, 23 1 , 244, 260, 422 n . 288, 520, 5 2 1 , 536, 748, cf. 1 77, see also Empirical, A pos teriori; empirical, law of, 244; empirical, chain of, 260, see also Experience ; in concreto, 595, 7 1 1 ; direct, 4 1 , 94, 305 n. 169, cf. 93; indirect, 94, 698; media tion by a third, 360; transcendental, 8 1 , 1 1 3', see also Transcendental ; objec tive, 44, 207 br. n. 74, 208, see also Objective; synthetic, 1 24, 397', see also Synthetic; determinate, 48, 1 6 1 , see also Detenninate; clear, 4 1 4 n. 27, 383, cf. 8 1 8; distinct, 60-6 1 , 244, 756; indistinct, 60-6 1 ; confused, 57, 60, 320, 323, 326, 327, 332; obscure, 1 1 7' n. 1 38, 4 1 4 n. 273, 756; poor, 408; deceptive, 376'; hypostatic, 723 n. 30 1 , cf. 386', 392'; dialectical, 556; figurative, 1 54 inc\. br. n. 282; homogeneous, 1 76 inc\. br. n. 50, 3 1 8 ; single, 127'; singular, 97', 1 36 n. 2 1 0, 404', cf. 604; simple, 404, 355', 47 1 , 8 1 2- 1 3 ; basic, 102'; original, 40, 48; identical, 1 30 n. 1 9 1 ; pennanent, xxxix n. 144; subordinated, 534; higher, 94; general, 546; universal, 40 1 , 74 1 , cf. 1 3 3 n. 202; comprehensive, 38, cf. 756; whole, 3 3 br. n. 14, 48, 102', 209; composite, 1 36 n. 2 1 0; partial, 33 br. n. 1 4, 48 inc\. br. ns. 82 and 83, 60, cf. 209, 352'; supplementary, 327; diverse (vari ous, varied, many, multitude of), 6 1 , 93, 1 03, 104, 1 14', 1 34, 1 36 n. 2 1 0, 3 1 7, 353', cf. 1 3 3 n. 202, 1 84; contained in (belonging to, comprised by) different
INDEX
963
(possible) presentations, 40, 94, 133 n. 202, 1 36 n. 2 1 0, 142, cf. 6 1 , 93, 103, 99', 104' inc!. br. n. 89, 108', 1 1 7' n. 1 38, 135', 242, 3 1 7, 352', 354'; relational, 67; relation(s) of, 39 1 , 50, 63, 80, 142, 243, 3 1 6, 3 1 8, 522; community of, 323; that surpasses experience, 7 1 2,
see also
Idea; as determinative in regard to the
object, 1 25 ; causality of, by means of the will, 125, cf. 33 br. n. 1 3 ; of (a) re ality (the real), 1 83, 320; of the sum of all reality, 605; of an existence (actu ality, something existent [actual], [a] being [of something]), 208, 30 1 , 374', 602, cf. 2 1 7; of the existence of things, 229, cf. 23 1 ; of (external, bodily) things (a thing [outside me], things as such), xx, xxxix n. 144, 1 64, 1 84, 1 86, 268, 275 inc!. br. n. 46, 278, 303 n. 156, 305 n. 169, 402, 37 1 ', 372', 401', 526, 686, cf. 723 br. n. 296, 829 n. 28; of appearances (appearances as),
see Appearance; (di
rect, indirect, synthetic,) of objects, xviii' br. n. 29, 37, 38, 52, 62, 63, 68, 69 n. 1 78, 93, 94, 102, 1 1 8, 124-25, 105', 107', 1 30', 145 inc!. br. n. 249, 149, 1 5 1 , 1 60 n . 305, 1 76-77, 1 82, 1 87, 195, 203, 207, 242, 243, 244 br. n . 1 55 , 26 1 , 264, 286, 299, 306, 346, 350, 377, 373', 379', 382', 385', 390', 397', 5 1 2, 522, 523, 594, 595 ; of all existing objects of the senses in all time and in all spaces, 523; of space (space as),
see
Space; of time (time as),
see
Time; of the (think
ing) subject (myself, self-consciousness, the / [/ am, / think], the mind), 68, 69, 1 1 7' n. 1 3 8, 132 inc!. br. n. 1 95 , 1 35 , 1 38, 278, 404, 348', 354'-55', 357', 37 1 ', 379', 3 8 1 ', 383', 408, 429, 47 1 , 876, cf. 300, 401', 401', 4 1 9 ; see also Subject; of substance(s) (something permanent), xxxix n. 1 44, 259, 293, 348', 356', 553, cf. 226, 268, 392', 813; of thinking substance (thinking being[sD, 403, 405, 353'-54'; of matter (matter as), xxxix n. 144, 358', 360', 366', 370', 372', 387', 390', 748, cf. 39 1 ', 609; of properties (determinations), 44 n. 65, 1 33 n. 202; of a whole, 203, 555, cf. 458, 460; of parts, 203, 234 inc!. br. n. 1 1 0, cf. 460; of an event (something that occurs), 243, 8 1 6; of changes, 520; of a (time) series, 480, 523, 528, 546; of (efficient, motivating) causes, 387', 830; of color, 44 n. 65 , 101', 133 n . 202, 377; of darkness, 349; of taste, 44 n. 65; of a (sensible, intelligible) world (of sense, of understanding), 3 1 2-13, 843-44, cf. 594; of the thing in itself (noumenon), 326, cf. 332, 335, 343, 402 br. n. 20, 604; the maxi mally real being as, 6 1 1 n. 83, cf. 647 inc!. br. n. 270; of a not-being (nonex istence), 1 82, 301, 602, cf. 209, 23 1 , 603; of empty thought-entities, 697, cf. 106'; see also Conception Presupposition
or
presuppose
(Voraussetzung, voraussetzen, zum Grunde legen),
720-21 incl. br. ns. 277 and 283, ix, xvi, xvii, xxviii-xxix inc!. br. ns. 1 1 5 and 1 1 9, 14, 16, 29 br. n. 290, 40, 46, 53, 58, 74, 82, 126, 99', 1 00', 1 02', 107', 1 1 8', 1 30, 1 3 1 , 1 33, 1 34, 147, 149, 1 60 n. 305, 1 67, 168, 2 1 1 , 213, 2 1 5 , 227, 228, 23 1 , 232 n. 87, 233, 240, 243, 246, 258, 264, 274 br. n. 36, 275, 276 n. 52, 278, 289, 292, 309, 324, 336, 337, 340, 346, 379, 380, 388, 393, 394, 353', 354', 365', 366', 369', 373', 376', 382', 389', 391', 394', 402', 4 1 5 n. 275, 422, 427, 430, 437, 440, 444, 46 1 , 464, 469, 470, 472, 473, 476, 477, 480, 483, 490, 498, 501 , 502, 507, 5 1 3, 5 1 5, 526-28, 5 3 1 , 532, 535, 540, 543, 548, 556-58, 562, 564, 572, 576, 577, 583, 590, 600 inc!. br. n. 26, 606, 607, 609- 1 1 inc!. br. n. 82, 6 1 7 inc!. hr. ns. 102 and 1 03, 623, 625, 629, 635, 639, 643, 647, 658, 660 n. 344, 66 1 , 662, 668, 673 , 678-82, 685 , 687, 688, 690, 699, 704, 706, 707,
964
INDEX
709, 7 1 1 , 7 1 5 , 7 1 6, 720, 725, 726, 763, 764 bL n. 149, 765, 768, 778, 783, 801 , 802, 804, 805, 821 , 830, 835, 839 inc!. br. n . 7 7 , 842, 846, 852, 854, 857 Pretension or pretend (AnmajJung, sich anmajJen), ix', xii', xiv, xxx, xxxv, 88, 303, 3 1 1 , 388', 389', 425, 490, 491 , 494 br. n. 25, 498, 558, 656 br. n. 3 1 8, 763, 767. 785, 788, 796, 809, 822, see also Claim, Reason Priam, 822 br. n. 406 Priestley, Joseph, 773-74 inc!. br. n. 202 Prime mover
(erster Beweger),
xxxii, 478,
see also
Cause (first)
Principle(s) (Prinzip[ienJ, Grundsatz [-satze]), synonymity of the German tenns, vii' br. n. 7; ambiguity (and common [ordinary] meaning of the tenn), 356, cf. 357-58; absolute vs. comparative, 358; are rudiments (beginnings), 680 inc!. br. n. 72; are universal conditions (the unconditioned), 361 , 394; contrasted with fonnulas, 174, cf. 299, with maxims, 364, 694-96, 708, 840, with axioms, 760-61 , with theorems, 765 ; (or entities,) must not be multiplied beyond ne cessity, 677 inc!. br. n. 57, 680 inc!. br. n. 73, cf. 361 , 362, 65 1 , 678-80, 7 1 1- 12, 7 1 4; parsimony of, 65 1 , 678, cf. 689; unity (system) of, 362, 873, cf. 676, 87 1 ; sphere of, 3 1 5 ; analytic of, see Analytic-transcendental; power of, vii' br. n. 7, 356, reason as, 356, 405'; source of, the understanding as, 1 97-98; of sen sibility, intuition, geometry, see Sensibility, Intuition, Geometric; of inner sense, 5 1 ; of pure thought, 35; of the unity of apperception, see Apperception; of a transcendental deduction, 1 16, 126, cf. 1 1 8 ; of (for the [transcendentalJ use of) (pure) understanding, xxxviii, 88, 90, 1 7 1 , 175, 1 87-294 (specifically, 1 87-89, 1 93, 197, 1 98, 200, 202 inc!. n. 33, 2 1 6, 223, 264, 265, 285, 294), 296, 297, 303 inc!. br. n. 158, 304, 352-53, 357, 365, 448-49, 537, 559, 560, 664, 692, 699, 752 br. n. 87, 7 6 1 , 790, 795, 8 14, cf. xxviii, 87, 106-8, 136-38, 142, 201 br. ns. 26 and 28, 288, 300, 412, 4 1 5 n. 275, 564, 799, system thereof, 1 87-294 (specifically, 1 87-89, 1 93, 1 97, 200, 285, 288), and table thereof, 200, cf. 761 , see also Understanding; o f understanding'S empirical use, 198, 223, 297, 304, 352-53; (a priori,) of (the possibility [fonn] of) experience, see Experience; of the exposition of appearance, 305 n. 169; of cognition (cognitive, cognition from), see Cognition; of the axioms of intuition, anticipations of perception. analogies of experience, see Axioms, Anticipation, Analogy; of the pennanence of substance, see Substance; of causality, see Causality; of simultaneity (com munity), see Simultaneity, Community; of modality, see Modality; of natural sci ence, see Natural; that go beyond (the boundary of [all], all possible use in) ex perience, viii', 353, cf. 3 15, 352, 358, 637-38, 664, 696, 788-89, 809; (pure,) of (used by, contained in, based on) (pure, speculative) reason (rational). vii'-viii', xiii', xiii, xvii n. 77, xxiii, xxiv, xxix, xxx, xxxv, 24, 27, 35 n. 23, 355 , 362-66, 376, 383', 433, 452, 484, 496, 536-38, 543-45, 550, 555, 582, 5 89, 597, 638, 642, 644, 647, 653, 659, 664, 678, 679, 685, 692, 693, 703, 708, 7 1 0. 7 1 2-14, 7 16. 725, 726, 730, 738-39, 765, 766, 788, 814, 8 1 5, 835-37 , 839. 846, 847, 865, 866, 869, cf. xx', xxi', xxiv, 14, 359, 378, 390, 42 1 , 425, 435. 436, 502, 526, 59 1 , 592, 599, 610, 673, 675, 680, 686-87, 690, 694-96, 7 1 7-18.
720, 721 , 763-64, 779, 784, 822, 875 n. 240, system thereof, 27, cf. 502, see of (for furthering) reason's empirical use, 647, 708, 773, cf. 543. 582, 69 1 , 692, 7 1 4, 726, 730; of totality, 536, cf. 537; of affinity, 696, 794; of
also Reason;
INDEX
965
genera (homogeneity), 682, 683 inc!. br. n. 90, 685-86, 694-95 inc!. br. n. 159,
see also Genus; of species (specification), 682, 683 inc!. br. n. 89, 685-86, 694-95, see also Species, Specification; of continuity, 28 1 , 686, 696 br. n. 168, cf. 685, 687 inc!. br. ns. 122 and 1 23, 690-91 , see also Continuity; of the pos sibility of things as such, 610; of thoroughgoing contingency, see Contingency; of all derivative unity, 646; of unconditioned (thoroughgoing) unity, 433, 694, cf. 364, 436, 645, 65 1 , 730, 813, see also Unity; of (the world's) systematic unity, 708, 676, 678-79, 693, 699, 702, 7 1 0, 714, 716, 71 9-2 1 , 725, 727-28, 844, cf. 362, 68 1 , 7 1 3, 730, 739, 766, 814, 835, 85 1 , see also Systematic, System; of purposive unity (purposiveness), 720 inc!. br. n. 278, 727-28, cf. 7 14-15, 730, 847, 861 , see also Purposive; of detenninability, 599, cf. 600; of thoroughgo ing detennination, 599-600 inc!. n. 27; the ideal of the supreme being (onto logical perfection) as, 647, 840, cf. 653, 660; of contradiction, see Contradic tion; of analysis, 624 n. 148; of the excluded middle, 600 n. 27; of the identity of indiscernibles, see Identity; of sufficient basis (reason), see Basis-principle of sufficient; of lazy reason, 801 , see also Lazy; critical (of critique), see Criti cal, Critique; supreme, 28, 29, 1 35, 1 36, 365, 502; (supreme,) of (all) analytic judgments, 1 89-93, cf. 353' inc!. br. n. 62; (supreme,) of all synthetic judg ments, 1 89, 1 93-97; first, S, 39 n. 37, 1 39, 167, 87 1 ; (pure) a priori, 1 88, 223, xvii n. 77, xxxv, S, 35 br. n. 23a, 52, 77, 101', 1 16', 198, 246 br. n. 1 60, 294, 296-99, 304-5, 363, 760, 761, 787, 793, 824, 869, 876; apodeictic, 47, 1 99, 678, 765; necessary, 198, 1 99, 837, 845, 85 1 , cf. 1 9 1 , 20 1 , 223, 395', 425, 508, 761 , 765, 802; directly certain, 760-61 ; logical 1 92, 337, 599, 676-78, 680, 682-84, 686, cf. 84; analytic, 13, 1 6, 246 br. n. 1 60; fonnal, 88, 1 9 1 , 647; philo sophical (of philosophy), see Philosophical, Philosophy; discursive, 76 1 ; intui tive, 76 1 , cf. 223; subjective, 354, 577, 644, 694, 790, 840, cf. 286, 544; ob jective, 353, 644, 694, 79 1 , cf. 52, 1 88 br. n. 148, 222, 286, 544, 708, 8 14; objective reality of, 693, 836; detenninate, 109; validity of, 536, 544, 666, 8 14, cf. 69 1 -92; confinnation of, 582, 866; genuine, 776, 865; legitimate, 696; suf ficient, 1 9 1 ; internal, 446 n. 70; doctrinal, 544; universal, 52, 1 9 1 , 255, 508, 600 n. 27, 675, 704, 866, cf. 85 1 ; general, 2 1 8 n. 1 , 220, 683, 87 1 ; comprehen sive, 28 inc!. br. n. 286; expansive, 1 3 , cf. 254, 499 n. 44, 537, 550, 638; tran scendental, see Transcendental; synthetic (of [a priori] synthesis), 13, 25, 28 inc!. br. n. 286, 101', 1 1 8'- 19', 1 97-294 (specifically, 1 97, 223, 246 br. n. 160, 286) 299, 304-5, 3 15, 325-26, 363-65 inc!. bL n. 86, 664, 749, 750, 760-6 1 , cf. 16, 1 8, 1 16'-17', 1 9 1 , 196, 625-27, 637; constitutive, 22 1 inc!' br. n. 19, 223, 296, 537, 538, 544, 647-48, 692, 694, 699, 708, 7 1 3-14, 7 1 8, 721 , 730, cf. 7 1 6; im manent, 352, 353, cf. 365, 664, 666; mathematical (of mathematics), see Math ematical; dynamical (of dynamics), see Dynamical, Dynamics; empirical, xii, 77-79, 198, 2 1 3 , 3 1 5, 40 1 , 610, 642, 800, 834, 868, 87 1 , 876, cf. 2 1 , 47, 882; regUlative, 221 br. n. 1 9, 222-23, 296, 536, 537, 543, 545, 582, 589, 592 , 597, 644, 646-48 inc!. br. ns. 267 and 269, 692, 694, 696, 699, 702-4, 707, 708, 71 0- 13, 7 15, 7 1 6, 7 1 9-22, 723 n. 30 1 , 725, 727, 729, 799, 8 14; indefinite, 708 inc!. br. n. 222; heuristic, 644 inc!. br. n. 259, 69 1 ; economical, 678; specula tive, 394', 659-732 (specifically, 659), 835, cf. 663, see also SpeCUlative; dia lectical, 470, 544, 8 1 4; subtly reasoning, 634; transcendent, see Transcendent;
966
INDEX
purely intellectual, 43 1 , cf. 432; psychological, see Psychological; cosmologi cal, see Cosmological; practical (of reason's practical use), xxviii, 424, 502, 7 1 3, 822, cf. 500, 503, 577, 597, 835-37; moral (of morality), see Moral, Morality, Morals; an arranging, 653; a supreme intelligence as, 720 inc!. br. n. 278, cf. 649 br. n. 282; of religion, 375 ; of theology, 656, cf. 700, 839; of life in matter, 403; of monadology, 470, cf. 484; of pure empiricism, 494, cf. 498, 501 ; claimed, 353, cf. 793; deceptive, 637, cf. 793; false, 336, cf. 537, 637, 783; of neutrality, 784; of technical and scientific ignorance, 45 1 ; legal (of legislation, civil laws), 358, 375, 779 br. n. 220; see also Rule, Law, Proposition, Thesis
Principorum primorum cognitionis metaphysicae nova dilucidatio, see New Eluci dation of the First Principles of Cognition in Metaphysics Probability or probable (Wahrscheinlich[keitD, 349 inc!. br. n. 5, 66, 654, 677, 68 1 , 803, cf. 227 inc!. br. n . 60, see also Truth Problem (Problem, Aufgabe), 7, 19-20, 178 br. n. 66, 1 93, 236, 28 1 , 3 1 2, 344, 384, 393', 398', 427, 444, 46 1 , 491 br. n. 8, 494 br. n. 23, 504-5, 5 10 inc!. br. n. 89, 5 12, 540, 563, 585, 589, 6 1 5, 640, 674, 675, 677, 678, 697 inc!. br. n. 174, 79 1 , 825, 828, 8 3 1 , 833, chosen, 438; necessary, 438; unavoidable, 7, 490, cf. 372'; universal, 398'; general, 19 inc!. br. n. 235, 22 inc!. br. n. 25 1 , 73; genuine, 392; natural, 490; physiological, 563; cosmological, 546; metaphysical (of metaphys ics), xiii', 883; transcendental, 504, 5 1 2, 563, 570; of (transcendental, critical) philosophy, 73, 264 br. n. 241 , cf. 563, 828; for the understanding, 536; (proper, natural, necessary,) of (for) (pure) reason, xxiii, 7, 19-20 inc!. br. n. 235, 23, 392, 438, 490, 504, 5 1 2, 830-3 1 , cf. xxx, 372', 570, 589, 825, 828, see also Freedom, God, Immortality; for speculation, 857; for the SUbject, 536; herme neutic, 349 br. n. I ; see also Task, Business, Problematic Problematic (problematisch), meaning, 101 ; concept, 3 10, 3 1 1 , 343, 397, 445 n. 64, 675, cf. 55, 3 1 2 inc!. br. n. 193, 344, 346; thought, 3 1 5 , 799; judgment(s) Uudging), 100 inc!. n. 1 66, 95, 1 0 1 , 809 , 850; proposition, 1 01 , 405, 348', 406; principle, 678 inc!. br. n. 60; assumption, 674, cf. 669, 709; distinction, 1 55 br. n. 285; extending of the understanding, 3 10, cf. 3 12; idealism, 274, 4 1 8; see also Problem Procedure (Verfahren), xv, xix, xxi inc!. n. 87, xxii, xxxv, xxxvii, 7, 10, 24, 90, 9 1 , 1 1 3 , 1 1 6, 179, 287, 363, 387, 392, 395, 410, 4 1 8, 45 1 , 486, 530, 563, 605, 609, 639, 652, 665, 666, 693, 723 n. 30 1 , 746, 754, 762, 782, 788, 792, 797, 8 1 8, 883, see also Method, Treatment Product (Produkt, Erzeugung), I n. 153, 1 24, 98', 179, 1 8 1 , 233, 27 1 , 343, 37 1 , 392, 598, 654-55, 658, 828, cf. 656 br. n. 3 1 8, see also Production Production
or produce (Erzeugung, Hervorbringung, erzeugen, hervorbringen, wirken), xvii', xiii, 67, 68, 75, 85 , 1 03 , I I I inc!. br. n. 226, 1 15, 1 1 8, 1 25, 95', 98', 99', 103', 105', 1 1 8' br. n. 142, 1 21', 1 32, 1 34 br. n. 203, 145, 1 54, 155, 182-84, 1 87, 201 n. 30, 202-5 inc!. br. n. 47, 208, 2 1 1 , 2 1 2, 221 , 232 n. 87, 235, 245, 253-55, 287, 299, 3 1 7, 355, 378, 385, 396, 359', 372', 373', 376'. 387', 390', 415 n. 275, 434, 435, 473, 497, 499 n. 44, 502, 509, 5 16, 560, 562, 57 1 . 576, 578, 579, 603 n. 43, 605, 624 n. 148, 637, 654, 656 br. n. 3 1 8, 674, 745, 746, 747 br. n. 68, 75 1 , 762, 77 1 , 791, 795 br. n. 282, 8 1 7, 845, 850, 880,
INDEX
cf. xix, xxix, 26, 108 inc I. br. n. 207, principle of, 232 n. 87; tion, Product, Productive, Reproduction
967
see also Genera
Productive (produkth\ erzeugend), 1 1 8' incl. br. n. 1 42, 1 23', 1 52, 1 55 n. 283, 1 8 1 incl. br. n . 90, 196 incl. br. n . 203, 204, 205, 2 1 1 , 2 1 2, 864, see also Produc tion, Reproductive Program (Programm), xiv' Progress (Fortgang, Fortschritt, fortgehen, fortschreiten), xvi, xxi, xxx, xxxv, 1 n. 1 53, 8, 1 0, 14 n. 217, 20, 50, 255 incl. br. n. 200, 392, 348', 406, 449, 490, 494 br. n. 25, 539-40, 5 5 1 , 552, 80 1 , 867, see also Progression, Progressive Progression (Fortgang, Progressus), 39 n. 43, 203, 2 1 1 , 239, 255-56 incl. br. n. 200, 388-89, 394 incl. br. n. 2 1 8, 395, 439, 440, 507, 5 2 1 , 524, 538-39 incl. br. ns. 1 86, 1 87, 194, and 195, 540 br. n. 196, 689, 763, cf. 76, see also Progress, Progressive, Regression Progressive (jortschreitend), 438, 49 1 , see also Progress, Progression, Series, Syn thesis Project (Vorhaben, Anschlag, Projekt, Entwurj), xviii', xliii br. n. 149, 19, 107, 249, 754, 757, 785, 803, 872, cf. viii br. n. 42, 1 1 0, 502, 675, 735, see also Work, Job, Business
Prolegomena to Any Future Metaphysics (Prolegomena zu einer jeden kunftigen Metaphysik), xliii br. n. 149, 1 1 br. ns. 201 and 202, 37 br. n. 28, 65 br. n. 1 57, 74 br. n. 1 3 , 127 br. n. 5 1 , 128 br. n. 56, 395 br. n. 222d, 393' br. n. 2 1 1 , 75 1 br. n. 8 1 , 869 br. n. 202 Proof or prove (Beweis[en]), xi' n. 1 4, xiv', xi, xxii n. 93, xxv-xxvi incl. n. 103, xxix incI. br. ns. 1 1 7 and 1 19, xxxii, xxxix n. 1 44 incl. br. n. 144a, 5, 8, 20, 53, 82, 1 16, 1 17, 96', 145, 162 n. 3 1 1 , 1 88-89, 202 incI. br. n. 36, 206, 207 incl. br. n. 7 1 , 2 1 8 incl. br. n. 4, 223, 224 incl. n. 47, 227, 228, 232 inel. br. n. 89, 233, 238, 250, 25 1 , 256 incI. br. n. 207, 260, 263-65, 274 inel. br. n. 36, 275-76 incl. n. 52, 278, 28 1 , 282 br. n. 77, 285, 286, 287, 289, 290 n. 107, 305 n. 1 69, 308, 3 15, 335-36, 372, 357', 363', 365', 370', 375', 388', 392', 408, 412, 413, 4 1 8 , 422 n. 288, 424, 427, 452, 454-56, 458, 459, 462, 463, 467, 468, 470-72, 473, 478, 488, 508 incl. br. n. 83, 530, 534, 535, 549 n. 23 1 , 578, 582, 586, 590, 600 n. 27, 622, 624, 637 incl. br. n. 2 1 9, 639, 655, 669, 670, 675, 692, 704, 716, 755 n. 105, 768, 770 incl. br. n. 1 88, 789, 799, 803, 805-9, 8 1 1-14 incl. br. n. 372, 8 16, 8 1 8, 8 1 9, 8 2 1 , 826, 830, 835, 849, 858, 864, 882-83, cf. xii br. n. 56, 261, 415, a priori, 1 12', 409, 803, cf. 633 ; apodeictic, xxii n. 93, 423, 762, 765, 803, 8 1 7 , 858; strict, ix, xxxv, xxxix n. 144, 55, 819, cf. xxxvi; irresistible, 665; invincible, 7 8 1 ; acroamatic, 763; distinct, 374; discursive, 763; intuitive, 762; (self-)evident, 2 1 3, 657, cf. xxxviii; clearest, xxxi, 255, 65 1 ; mani fest, 47 1 ; ostensive, 8 1 7 incl. br. n. 384, 8 1 9 ; direct, 214, 375'-77', 534, 8 1 7 br. n. 384, 8 1 8, 822, cf. 275; indirect, 2 1 4, 274, 534, 8 1 7 br. n. 384; apagogic, 8 1 7-21 incl. br. n. 384; factual, 624; objective, 188 br. n. 148; transcendental, see Transcendental; sufficient, 275, 37 1', 5 1 8, cf. 669; adequate, 19, 5 19 ; sat isfactory, xix, xxxix n. 144, 648; theoretical, 618, 804; from principles, 789; from (mere) concepts, 227-28, 289, 352' incl. n. 57, 415, 465, 630, 658; through mere reason, 585; (merely) speculative, 424, 653, 666, 820, cf. 6 1 1 , 669; dogmatic, 227-28, 255, 264, 549 n. 32 1 , 8 1 2; by (based on, obtained from) experience,
968
INDEX
1 17 , 2 1 4, 275, 657, 806, 830, cf. 1 22, 721 ; hypothetical, xxii n. 93, cf. 8 1 8; in sufficient, 1 17; (or justification,) according to man and according to the truth, 767 inc!. br. ns. 167 and 169; cogency of, 6 1 9, 635, 649, 8 12; mathematical, 467; psychological, 355'; Mendelssohn's, of the soul's permanence, 413-15 incl. br. ns. 262 and 270; legal, 822; a lawyer's, 458; nerve of, 352' inc!. br. n. 58, 636 inc!. br. n. 2 1 3, 639 incl. br. n. 233; basis of (for), see Basis; vicious circle in, 72 1 ; (ontological, cosmological, physicotheological, moral,) for the exist ence of God, see God; reason's, discipline of reason regarding them, 8 1 0-22; see also Demonstration, Syllogism, Argument, Inference, Confirmation Propaedeutic
(Propiideutik), ix, xliii, 25. inc!. br. n. 265, 76, 869, 878
Property (Eigenschaft, Beschaffenheit), xii, xxviii, 6 inc!. br. n. 1 66, 37, 40, 42, 44 n. 65, 45, 50, 52, 53 br. n. 109, 62, 69, 70, 75, 1 14, 124, 129' br. n. 1 8 1 , 133 n. 202, 160 inc!. br. n. 304, 1 88, 2 1 1 , 2 1 8, 268, 274 incl. br. n. 4 1 , 3 2 1 , 356, 376, 405, 349', 355', 366', 383', 384', 400', 406 br. n. 37, 422 n. 288, 469, 567, 573 n. 3 14, 575, 596, 6 1 6, 630, 633, 634, 646, 660, 669, 680 inc!. br. n. 74, 690, 703, 705, 706, 7 10, 7 1 1 , 726, 728, 744, 746, 747, 749, 756, 765, 793, 796, 798 br. n. 296, 800, 855, cf. 148, inc!. br. n. 262, see also Character, Constitution, Quality, State Proportion (Verhiiltnis, Proportion), 222, 861 , cf. 349 br. n. I , xii br. n. 56, 425, 655, 656 br. n. 3 1 8, 837, 838, 839 br. n. 74, see also Ratio, Relation Proposition (Satz), 14 br. n. 223, xviii n. 77, xxvii, xxxvii, xxxix n. 144, xlii, 4, 5, 13, 14, 17, 18, 4 1 , 43, 47, 65, 96 br. n. 147, 97-99, 1 0 1 , 1 1 3 , 1 17' n. 1 38, 138, 144 inc!. br. n. 245, 148, 166 n. 324, 1 88, 190-9 1 , 205 incl. br. n. 60, 227-29, 246, 28 1 , 282, 286, 287, 289, 297, 3 15, 329 inc!. br. n. 7 1 , 338 n. 124, 353, 360, 387, 400, 405, 348'-50', 352', 353'-57', 364', 367', 374' n. 142, 388', 398'-99', 407, 408, 416-20 inc!. br. ns. 276 and 277, 422 n. 288, 424, 429-30, 463, 465, 467, 477, 499 n. 44, 502, 504, 530-32 incl. br. n. 157, 535, 545-46 inc!. br. n. 224, 564, 599 br. n. 22, 601 , 605 , 625, 626, 635, 636, 637 br. n. 2 19, 658, 730, 73 1 , 737, 759 n. 1 2 1 , 764, 765, 768, 770, 77 1 br. n 1 89, 7 8 1 , 804, 8 15-16, 8 1 7 br. n. 384, 819, 820, 835, 852, (absolutely) necessary, 3, 14, 17, 4 1 , 64, 62 1-22, 626 inc!. br. n. 157, 749, 827, cf. 39 n. 37, 64, 100, 1 98, 341 . 746, 749; apodeictic, see Apodeictic; clear, 526; obvious, 761 ; (directly) (self-) evident, 192, 205, 2 1 3, 274 br. n. 40, 285, 289; directly (immediately) certain. 204, 285 , 761 , 764, 804; incontestably (indubitably) certain, 14, 526; (univer sally, objectively) valid, 3, 64, 65, 228, 365, 357', 691 ; (absolutely) universal. 64, 356, 357, 358, 398', 405', 474, 746, see also Universal; formal, 354'; (hold ing, determined) a priori, 3, 1 1 , 14, 15, 1 1 7' n. 1 38, 280, 357, 362', 636 , see
also A priori; absolutely a priori, 3; pure, 3, cf. 18, see also Pure; intellectual. 263, see also Intellectual; analytic, 1 1 , 1 5 , 16 (cf. 1 8 inc!. br. n. 23 1), 135, 1 38. 1 92-93, 204-5 incl. br. n. 53, 263 br. n. 24 1 , 290 inc!. br. n. 104, 29 1 , 353' inc!. br. n. 62, 362' br. n. 94, 407-9 inc!. br. n. 252, 526, 625-26 (cf. 627), 746, 747 br. n. 68, see also Analytic (analytisch); identical, see Identical; tautological. 1 1 3, 227; cardinal, 357', 769, 770 inc!. br. n. 184, 827; going beyond the con cept, 4 1 ; sphere of, 99; determinative, 750, see also Determinative; synthetic. 14, 16, 19, 47, 49, 64, 1 1 4', 1 17' n. 138, 204, 205, 2 1 7, 227, 264, 285, 289, 3 1 5, 364, 382' inc!. br. n. 1 74, 408, 4 1 6, 461 , 625, 626 incl. br. n. 1 59, 637. 663.
INDEX
969
746, 748, 750, 7 6 1 , 764, 779, 804, 8 10, 8 1 3, 8 1 5, 820, see also Synthetic; syn thetic a priori, 1 7-20 inc!. br. ns. 23 1 and 241 , 44, 56 inc!. br. n. 120, 65, 73, 1 1 7' n. 1 38, 1 96 inc!. br. n. 198, 205, 228, 263, 294. 365, 353' incl. br. n. 63, 410, 691, 746, 764, 78 1 br. n. 229, 790, cf. 217, 382', their possibility, 1 9-20, 56 inc!. br. n. 1 20, 64, 73, 1 96 inc!' br. n. 198, 294, 353', cf. 64, 46 1 ; directly synthetic, 764 inc!. br. n. 149; transcendental, see Transcendental; empirical, 428, 4 1 , 64, 198, 404, 420, 422 n. 288, 746, 750, see also Empirical; of (obtained [drawn] from) experience, 57, 64, 356, 378, see also Experience; experiential, 398'; existential, 422 n. 288, 626; particular, 283; singular, 205, 405'; true (cor rect), 98, 1 0 1 , 328, 360, 374' n. 142, 53 1 , 560, 588, 636, 8 1 9 ; false, 246 br. n. 1 60, 5 3 1 , 532, 8 1 9; counter-, 388', 449, 504, 532; assertoric, see Assertoric; af firmative, 769, cf. 636, see also Affirmative; negative, 192, 5 3 1 , 737, 805, 858, see also Negative; hypothetical, 98, see also Hypothetical; (taken) problemati c(ally), 1 0 1 , 405, 348', 406, cf. 799-800, see also Problematic; optional, 100; indeterminate, 420, cf. 69 1 ; paradoxical, 374' n. 142, cf. 793; sophistical, 449; dangerous, 782; absurd, xxvi; null and meaningless, 508; transcendent, 827, see also Transcendent; going beyond all bounds of (lying outside the realm of) pos sible experience, xviii n. 77, 78 1 , cf. 8 1 3 ; of (based on) (pure, transcendental, speculative) reason, xviii n. 77, 365, 449, 560, 761 , 767-69, 804, 8 1 2, 827, see also Reason; practical, 287, see also Practical; mathematical (of mathematics), see Mathematical, Mathematics; arithmetic (of arithmetic), 16, 764; geometric (of geometry), see Geometric; of empirical physics, 20 n. 243; of rational psy chology, 4 1 8; and see Judgment, Principle, Thesis, Assert Prosyllogism (Prosyliogismus), 364 inc!. br. n. 78, 379, 387-88 inc!. br. n. 1 87, see also Episyllogism, Syllogism Prototype (prptotypon), 599 inc!. br. n. 2 1 , 606 inc!. br. n. 6 1 , see also Ideal (Ideal), Archetype, Ectype Prove (beweisen), see Proof Providence (Vorsehung), 77 1 , cf. 772, see also God, Fatalism Prudence (Klugheit), rule of, 300 n. 144, 834 inc!. br. n. 50, cf. 8 10 Psychological (psychologisch), xii' br. n. 1 6, viii incl. br. n. 42, xxxix n. 144, 35 n. 23, 79, 402 n. 25, 353', 355', 357', 373', 384', 400'-1 ', 426, 476, 562 br. n. 278, 699, 723 n. 30 1 , 701 , 7 1 1 , 71 2, 7 1 8 , 723 n. 301, 829, contrasted with transcen dental, see Transcendental; see also Psychology, Psychologist Psychologist (Psychologe), 1 20' n. 1 50, 372', 380', 415, see also Psychological, Psy chology Psychology (Psychologie, Seelenlehre), 874-77 inc!. br. ns. 236, 241 , and 248, xii' br. n. 1 6, xxxviii, 77, 78, 1 52, 1 53, 391 , 392 inc!. br. n. 209, 395 n. 222, 400-3, 405-6, 348', 350', 35 1 ', 354', 357', 361', 367', 379', 3 8 1 '-84', 397', 402', 403', 405', 406, 410, 4 1 6- 1 8, 42 1 , 426-28, 43 1 , 435, 506 n. 74, 563 , 700, 769, 77 1 , realm of, 428; (rational, transcendental,) as (as not) a science, see Science; see also Psychological, Psychologist, Soul, Subject, Self, I-the, Mind Punish(ment) (Strafe, bestrafen), 98, 373 Pure (rein), means entirely (absolutely) a priori, x, 24, i.e., independent of all ex perience, 1 1 7, i.e., nothing empirical (nothing belonging to sensation) whatso ever is mixed in (found), 3, 34, 74 , cf. 22 n. 259, 28-29, 1 03, 195, 444; pre-
970
INDEX
sentation, intuition, imagination, fonn, concept, category, apperception, thought, synthesis, cognition, judgment, proposition, principle, understanding, reason, etc., see these headings Purpose (Zweck), 825 hr. n. 9, vii' hr. n. 7, xiv' inc!. hr. n. 2 1 , xvi'-xviii', vii, xix, xxxix n. 144, 1 8, 2 1 , 23, 27, 33 hr. n. 7, 90, 1 93, 2 1 6 hr. n. 129, 375 , 385 inc!. hr. n. 175, 395 inc!. n. 222, 352' n. 57, 425 inc!. hr. n. 295, 491 -92 inc!. hr. n. 12, 5 17, 554 hr. n. 246, 592, 596, 650-5 1 , 654, 7 16, 7 19, 720-21 inc!. hr. n. 279, 726-27, 730, 737, 776, 802, 825, 82�-29, 832-36 inc!. hr. n. 44, 841-47, 85 1-52, 854, 856, 859-6 1 , 863, 866-68 inc!. n. 1 92, 870, 872, 875, 878-79, essential, xxxix n. 144, 2 1 , 846, 859, 860, 867, 868, 875, 878; ultimate, 425 inc!. hr. n. 295, 49 1 , 492 hr. n. 1 2, 825, 832, 834, 847; final, 385 hr. n. 175, 425 inc!. hr. n. 295, 868; highest, 395 n. 222, 492, 727, 825, 829, 832, 841 , 844, 861 , 868; see also Aim, Intention, Purposive, Purposelike, Means, Teleology Purposelike
(zweckiihnlich), 726, see also Purposive, Purpose
Purposive(ness) (Zweckmiiftig[keitD, 374 hr. n. 124, 650 hr. n. 285, 425-26, 494, 650, 65 1 , -53-55, 657, 670, 672, 697, 7 14, 716, 7 1 9-22 inc!. hr. ns. 278 and 282, 725-28, 800, 802, 825 hr. n. 9, 827, 840, 842-45, 847, 854, 863, cf. vii' hr. n. 7, supreme, 721 , see also Purposelike, Purpose, Teleology Qualitative
(qualitativ), 1 1 4, 1 3 1 , 222, 4 1 3 , see also Quality Quality (Qualitiit), 1 6, 69, 25 1 , 3 1 9 inc1 hr. n. 17, 337, 384'-86', 589, 742, 743, 748, 8 10, is the real (component) of appearances, 2 1 8, cf. 2 1 6 inc!. hr. n. 129, 743; categories of, 1 06, 201 inc!. hr. ns. 27 and 28, 440 hr. n. 44, cf. 1 07 hr. n. 196, 1 84; schema of, 1 84; rational cognition of, 743; of judgments, 95, 100, cf. 97; of a cognition, 1 15 inc!. hr. n. 246; (empirical,) of sensation, 2 1 7 , cf. 2 1 8; of magnitudes, 2 1 8 ; (unconditioned unity of,) of the soul, 402, 404', cf. 384'-86', see also Property, Qualitative Quantitative
(quantitativ), 222, see also Quantity, Quantum
Quantity (Quantitiit), 204, 742-43, 745 inc!. hr. n. 54, 748, categories of, 106, 1 14, 1 15 , 162 inc!. hr. n. 309, 201 inc!. hr. n. 27, 438 hr. n. 37, cf. 107 hr. n. 196; schema of, 1 82, 1 83 ; of a concept's content, 92, cf. 1 14; of judgments (their content), 95, 96, 100, 303 n. 1 57; of cognition, 96; of things (an ohject), 3 1 9 inc!. hr. n. 1 7 , 337; of matter, 1 7 , 1 9 hr. n . 235, 20 n. 243, 2 1 5 ; phenomenal, 1 86 inc!. hr. n. 1 35, see also Numher; intensive, 2 1 8, 414 hr. n. 270, see also Degree; see also Quantum, Magnitude, Quantitative Quantum (Quantum), 1 15, 1 82, 1 83, 203, 204, 2 1 1 inc!. hr. n. 9 1 , 2 12, 224, 225, 289, 4 1 5 n. 275, 438, 454 inc!. n. 1 19, 456 n. 1 2 1 , 456, 460 inc!. n. 140, 554, 555 inc!. hr. n. 249, 689 inc!. hr. n. 133, 742, 745, 748, 7 5 1 -53, see also Quan tity, Magnitude, Quantitative Question (Frage), necessary, general, transcendental, natural, cosmological, dia lectical, speCUlative, practical. moral, of metaphysics, of reason, etc., see these
headings Ramee, Pierre de la, 172 hr. n. 28c Ramus, Petrus,
see Ramee
INDEX
97 1
Range ( Umfang), xii', 6-7, 14 n. 2 1 7 , 20 n. 243, 23, 25, 8 1 , 96-98 inc!. br. n. 154, 193, 224 n. 47, 3 10, 3 1 1 , 378-79, 390, 497, 522, 622, 653, 656, 673, 682, 683, 686, 687, 700, 7 1 7 n. 265, 753, 787, 790, 860, 867 br. n. 190, see also Sphere, Realm, Content Ratio (Verhiiltnis), 744 inc!. br. n. 49, see also Proportion, Relation Rational
(rational, Rational-, Vemunft-, vemunftmiijJig, vemiinftig, vemiinftiger weise), what is, 863; purity, 401 ; (pure,) concept, 383', 7 10, 7 1 3, 787, see also
Idea; idea(s), xxx br. n. 124, 538 inc!. br. n. 1 84; principle(s), 35 n. 23, 653; grounds (bases), xxxii, 777; inference, 632; (our, a priori, pure, speculative, syn thetic,) cognition(s), 864-65 inc!. br. n. 1 69, xvi, xxx, 8 1 -82, 109, 386, 405, 382', 662, 664, 741-43, 749, 750, 752, 760, 845, 863, 867 inc!. br. n. 190, 868, 874, 878, 8 8 1 , 882, objectively and subjectively, 864-65, from concepts and from the construction of concepts, 74 1 , 865, cf. 749, 752, 867-68, see also Phi losophy, Mathematics, Cognition; (pure,) insight(s), 20, 1 2 1 , 499, 773, see also Insight; power of minds, 500; (pure,) members of nature, 689; being(s) (as such), 834-38, 840-42, 857 n. 1 5 1 ; original being, 842; task, 752; procedure, 808; in vestigations, 8 8 1 ; observation, 726; contemplation, 873 ; coherence, 500; (pure a priori,) unity, 503; system, 784; sciences, xxiii, 508, 865, cf. 8 1 , 401 ; physi ology, 873 inc!. br. n. 227, 874, 876, see also Physiology; psychology, xxxviii, 392 inc!. br. n. 209, 400-403, 406, 354', 357', 36 1 ', 382'. 384', 402', 4 10, 4 1 6- 1 8 , 42 1 , 426, 428, 43 1 , 874 inc!. br. n. 236, 875 inc!. br. n. 241 , cf. 405, 383', 415, see also Psychology; physics, 20 n. 243 inc!. br. n. 243b, 874, 875 inc!. br. n. 241 , see also Physics; (pure,) cosmology, 392 inc!. br. n. 209, 435, 874, see also Cosmology; theology, 659 inc!. br. ns. 335, 336 and 338, 874, see also Theology; faith, vii' br. n. 6, 857, see also Faith; obligating force, 662 br. n. 354; numbers, 508; see also Reason, Reasonable, Rationality, Rationalism, Nonrationa1, Irrational Rationalism or rationalist (Rationalismus, Rationalist), xxxvi br. n. 1 24, 415 n. 275, see also Rational Rationality (VemunftmiijJigkeit), 652, see also Rational Rationalization (BeschOnigung), 9, see also Reasoning Rave (schwiirmen), xiii', 295 br. n. 1 59, 798, see also Fanaticism Raven, I. E., 883 br. n. 278
Real (real), the, is what (in the object) corresponds to sensation, 207 n. 68 and br. n. 74, cf. 217, see also Reality; the, as object of sensation, 207, cf. 225, 286; the, as cause of sensation, 2 10; the, is the material of all objects of outer intu ition, 375'; the, is what belongs to the existence of things, 225, cf. 229, 286, cf. 602 inc!. br. n. 39; means objectively valid, 44, 52, see also Valid; empirically, 44, 52-53, cf. 208; transcendentally, 53; absolutely, see Absolute; the, of (in) sensation, appearance, perception, intuition, space, time, the soul, see these head ings; everything, degree of, see Degree; everything, its substrate is substance, 225, cf. 705; existence of the, in substance, see Existence; pennanence of the, 183; the, as a substratum of empirical time detennination as such, 1 83, see also Substance; the, upon which, whenever it is posited, something else always fol lows, 1 83, cf. 705, see also Cause; presentation of the, see Presentation; the, its complete lack in sensible intuition cannot itself be perceived, 2 14; the given,
972
INDEX
see Given; possibility (and its distinction from logical possibility), see Possibil ity; possibility, of objects, see Object, Cognition; definition, predicate, condi tion, basis, subject, object, see these headings; (most, maximally, supremely), being, see Being; apperception as, 419; use of reason, 355; cognitions, 3 5 1 n. 16; properties, 630, 646; relation(s), 265 n. 244, 293, 340, 441 ; connection, 272; composition, 47 1 ; composite, 262 inc!. br. n. 230, 463, 466 inc!. br. n. 177; whole, 404'; community of substances, 261 ; accidents, 466 Realism or realist (Realismus, Realist), empirical, 370' inc!. br. n. 126, 37 1 ', 375'; transcendental, 369', 371', 372', 5 1 9, 57 1 , see also Reality Reality (-ies) (Realitiit[enD, is what (in empirical intuition, in the realm of appear ance) corresponds to sensation (as such), 1 82, 209, 609, cf. 207 inc!. n. 68 and br. n. 74, see also Real; (objective,) is provided by the possibility of experience, 195-96, 5 17, cf. 264, 288, 29 1 -92, 300 n. 144, 335, 367, 412, 538, 624 n. 148, 693-94; is the matter of experience, 270, cf. 603, 609, see also Experience, Mat ter; is existence, 597, cf. 625; is transcendental truth, 269, see also Truth; in dicates a being (of something) (in time), 1 82, cf. 1 8, 300; is something, 347, cf. 373'; is thinghood, 1 82 inc!. br. n. 107, 602 inc!. br. n. 39, see also Thing; ob jective, is application to possible things, 268, cf. 225, 3 10; objective, is refer ence (application) to an object, 1 09', 1 50-5 1 , 194, cf. 148-49, 196, 242, 268, 270, 349, 4 12, 5 17, 698, 701 , 808-9, see also Object, Valid; (contained) in ap pearance, see Appearance, Change, Degree, Quality; in (of) the world, 706, 842, cf. 808; (transcendental, universal) concept of, 329, 605, 705, 707, 743, 750; logical, 882; (mere) affirmation (positing[sD as, 328, 329 br. n. 7 1 , 336, 625, 630, cf. 303 n. 1 57, 602-3; limitation of, see Negation; conflict (opposition) be tween, 320-2 1 , cf. 290 n. 107 incl. br. n. 107b, 328-30, 336, 338 inc!. n. 124; category of, 1 06, 403'-4' inc!. n. 240, cf. 1 1 1 , 303 n. 157; schema of, 1 82-83; determinate kinds of, 605; presentation of (of the sum of all), see Presentation; every, is presented as a quantum, 1 83, cf. 4 1 5 n. 275; possible (possibility of), 2 1 1 , 638; phenomenal, see Phenomenal; given, see Given; empirical, 44, 52-54, 610, 6 1 1 br. n. 82; transcendental, 53, 397; dynamical, 669; objective, of con cepts, see Concept, Possibility; (objective,) of (in) presentations, categories, sche mata, conditions, causes, sense, intuition, perception, synthesis, cognition, prin ciples, rules, space, time, matter, substance, objects, things, beings, ideas, ideals, obligations, noumena, see these headings; subjective, of concepts, presenta tions, see Concept, Presentation; dreams have none, 808; mystical, 882; nou menal, see Noumenal; pure and sense-free, 338 n. 1 24; self-subsistent, 7 1 ; ab solute, see Absolute; unbounded, 322, 632; complete (all- encompassing), 6 1 5 , 657, cf. 6 1 2 ; total (sum, unity) of all, see Total, Sum, Unity; supreme, 606-9. 6 1 1 n. 83, 614 inc!. br. n. 94, 6 16, 628, 632, 635, 639, 643, 668, cf. 724, the concept thereof is the common substratum of all things, 606, see also Substrate; unity of the supreme, 6 1 1 n. 83, cf. 6 1 5, 703, 727; being containing (having) all (all, as united in one being), see Being; see also Signification, Realize, Re alism Realize (realisieren), 300 inc!. br. n. 146, 6 1 1 n. 83, 1 85-87, 598, 608, 643, 705, 7 1 3, 8 1 3, see also Real, Reality
INDEX
973
Realm (Feld), natural, material, intellectual, practical, see these headings; of pos sibility, everything actual, what is necessary, see Possibility, Actuality, Neces sary; of (for) inquiry, hypotheses, the sciences, psychology, see these headings; of natural science, see Natural; of (for) sensibility, the senses, the categories, cognition, experience(s), appearance(s), nature, creation, objects, matter, mag nitudes, understanding, reason, speculation, ideas, freedom, morality, the in comprehensible, noumena, see these headings; of things in themselves, see Thing in itself; beyond all bounds of possible experience, see Experience; see also Field, Sphere, Kingdom, Range Reason (Vernunft), as such, xii', 355, 364, 779, 788, 824; essence of, 723; nature of (pure [speculative], [universal] human, our), vii', xiii', xxxvii, 1 8, 22, 23, 380, 384, 393, 397, 399, 449, 502, 642, 697, 723, 739, 77 1 , 772, 805, 825-26, 877, 880, cf. xv, 829; is not appearance, 5 8 1 , cf. 583-84; is not in time, 584; does not change, 584; as an organ, xxxvi-xxxvii; is perhaps first made possible by nature, 654; natural, see Natural; human, see Human; common (human), viii', 382', 424, 489, 528, 6 1 2, 645, 65 1 , 753, 883; as the whole higher cognitive power (one of the two stems of our cognitive power), 863, see also Sensibility, Understanding; as one of the three higher cognitive powers, 1 69, is our su preme cognitive power, 355; all our (human) cognition starts from the senses (intuitions), proceeds from there to understanding (concepts) and ends with rea son (ideas), 355, 730, xvii, I , 363; is our power of principles (of a priori cog nition), vii' inc!. br. n. 7, 24, 356, 405, cf. ix, 359, 865, see also Principle; de mands parsimony of principles, 65 1 , cf. 678, 689; is a perfect unity, xiii', cf. xxxvii-xxxviii; is itself subjectively a system, 765-66, cf. 353, 676, 708; all its simple acts can be enumerated completely and systematically, xiv'; consists in our being able to account for all our concepts, opinions, and assertions, 642; is the highest tribunal of all rights and claims of our speculation, 697, 768, cf. 529, 6 1 7, 73 1 inc!. br. n. 332, 780, 8 1 5, 823; (proper) realm of (pure), 1 2 1 , 396, 729, 763, 784, 801 , 805, cf. 128, 78 1 ; formal, 77, 355, (i.e.,) logical (power of, use of), 355-56 inc!. br. n. 42, 359-6 1 (specifically, 359), 364, 392, 679, cf. 378, 394, which deals only with itself, xi, is the power of making mediate inferences (mediate judgments), 355, 386, cf. 1 69, (i.e.,) of deriving the particular from the universal, 674, cf. 357-64, see also Inference, Syllogism, Universal, Par ticular; pure, 362-66, cf. 20, 22, 24, 825, 828, (as meaning) real, 355, (i.e.,) transcendental (power of, use of) (see Transcendental), which (in metaphysics) deals merely with itself (is to be its own pupil), xiv, 23, 708, itself produces concepts (ideas) and principles, 355-56, cf. 673, 863, see also Idea, Principle, Metaphysics; (merely) regulative use of, 674 br. n. 38, 675, 717, 723 n. 301 , 828, see also Idea, Principle; contains nothing but regulative principles, 729; the only given object for which it needs regulative principles (its proper realm [soil]) is nature (experience), 7 12, 729, 801, cf. 7 1 2, 753, 784, 854, see also Nature; human, starts not from concepts but from common experience, 6 12; does not produce (create) concepts (of objects) (but orders them, tries to expand them beyond the empirical), 435, 67 1 , cf. 386, 557, 672, 674, 7 1 2 br. n. 239, 8 1 3 ; deals not with objects (experience) but with the understanding, in order to pro vide the understanding's cognitions (the material of intuition) with (a priori, sys-
974
INDEX
tematic, the highest) unity (of thought, through concepts, in tenns of ideas, of coherence in a principle), 355, 359, 36 1 , 693, 708, cf. 362, 363, 365, 367, 380, 383-84, 392, 394, 433, 435-36, 502, 575, 595-96, 601 , 6 1 1 incl. n. 83, 640, 671-73, 675-79, 685-86, 690, 692, 699, 705, 707, 709- 10, 7 14, 716, 825, 86869, see also Unity, Systematic, System, Cognition, Understanding; endeavors to raise concepts of understanding to ideas (frees them of the limitations of a pos sible experience), 435, 557; ascends ever higher, to more remote conditions, vii', cf. 366, 390, 6 1 1 n. 83, see also Condition; aims at (seeks, demands) the un conditioned (for everything conditioned, for the series of conditions), xx, 383, 443, 445, 5 7 1 , 592, cf. xx n. 87, 364, 367, 379-80, 389-90, 392-93, 397', 433, 436, 503, 543, 606, 6 1 2, 641 , 652, 703, 704, see also Unconditioned; demands (seeks) (absolute, unconditioned) totality (completeness) (of [the series of] con ditions, of the regressive synthesis) (on the side of the conditioned), 436-37, 440, 443, 543, 7 1 2- 1 3, cf. 362, 597-98, 6 1 1 incl. n. 83, 638, 642, 701 , 704, 825, see also Synthesis; speculative, must never venture beyond the boundary of experience, xxiv, cf. 3 1 3, 444-49, 563, 7 1 7, 730, 739, 824, 825, 856; human, unconditioned necessity is for it the true abyss, 641 ; (pure,) a dialectic is natu ral (and unavoidable) for it, xxxi, 354; transcendental ideas are just as natural to it as the categories are to the understanding, 670; transcendent (use of), see Transcendent; is the seat of transcendental illusion, 355; cannot possibly itself contain original delusions and deceptions, 697; its peculiar domain (proper ter ritory) is the order of purposes (practical principles), 425, 822, cf. 37 1 , 592, 823, 845, see also Purpose, Principle; (pure, necessary) practical (moral) (power of, use of, function of), xxv, xxx, xxv, xxx, xliii, 166 n. 324 incl. br. n. 324a, 384-85, 421 , 424, 425, 43 1 , 578, 648 br. n. 278, 66 1 , 668 incl. br. n. 369, 723 br. n. 300, 804, 824-25, 828, 83 1 , 832, 835, 837, 842, 843, 844-47 incl. br. n. 102, 869 (see also Moral), principle and benefit thereof, see Principle, Critique; is the per manent condition of all the voluntary actions under which the human being ap pears, 5 8 1 , cf. 584; acts freely, 5 8 1 , cf. 575, 578, 584, 667, see also Action, Freedom; is detenninative, not determinable, 5 84; legislates morally (teaches us the moral law), 847, cf. 723, 828, see also Legislation, Law; its object is the good, 576, cf. 841 , see also Good-the; higher and judicial, 767; independent, original, and creative, 700; archetype of all, 701 ; (most) supreme (highest) (as nature's cause), 370, 706, 714, 838, see also God; divine, 838 incl. br. n. 69; theology of (merely speculative), 664, 666; intuitive, mathematical, philosophi cal, discursive, critical, sound, general, theoretical, immanent, experiential, em pirical, physical, speculative, skeptical, dogmatic, apodeictic, dialectical, hypo thetical, systematic, hyperphysical, ideal, idealizing, moral, constitutive, polemic, inverted, lazy. dizzy, world (use of, attempts of), see these headings; problem, philosophy, critique, analysis of, see these headings; transcendental analytic and dialectic of, see Analytic-transcendental, Dialectic-transcendental; antithetic of, see Antithetic; antinomy, paralogisms, and ideal of, see Antinomy of pure reason, Paralogism(s) of pure reason, Ideal of pure reason; discipline, canon, architectonic, history, organon of, see these headings; affinity with, acquain tance with, cognition, speCUlation, concept, idea, judgment, law, rule of, see these headings; proposition of (based on), see Proposition; principle of (based on, etc.,
INDEX
975
reason as principle), see Principle, Moral; principle of sufficient, see Basis-principle of sufficient; postulate of, see Postulate (Postulat); object of (for, dealt with by, thought by, etc.), see Object; object of principles (of the ideal) of, see Object; boundary (bounds) of, see Boundary; appearance, function, schema, form, unity, system, basis of, see these headings; (empirical and intel ligible) character of, see Character (Charakter); nomothetic, freedom, sponta neity, causality, activity, action, aim of, see these headings; being of, see Being (Wesen); euthanasia of, see Euthanasia; phenomenon of, 433; matters of, 782, 789, 8 1 7 ; dialectical doctrine of (pure), 25, 78, 449-50, cf. 29; existence of, 766; conditions of (pure), 579, 726; (universal) sources (cause, womb) of, 23, 25, 791 , 8 1 2, 864-65; natural predisposition of, 697; infancy (unfolding) of (pure), 789, 863; root (stem) of. 24; range (sphere) of (the use of), 23, 704, 790, 825, cf. 374; horizon of human, 788; whole of, xxxviii; structure of pure, xxx vii; elements (parts) of (pure), xviii n. 77, xxxviii, 879; product of (production, bringing forth [about] by), xx' inc!. br. n. 63, xiii, 37 1, 392, 396, 578, 658, 70 I , 79 1 , 828, 880, cf. 5 6 1 ; (pure, legitimate) possessiones) of, xxxi, 128, 797, 804, cf. xx'; supply of (of synthetic a priori propositions), 781 inc!. br. n. 229; ap praisal of, 668, 669, cf. 789; standard of, 597, 6 1 7 inc!. br. n. 105; census of, 788, cf. 792, 795; ability of, vii', xxiii, xxxv, 10, 22, 23. 659, 668, 740, 763, 789, 804-5, 8 3 1 , cf. 7, 604, 814, 823, 858; (necessary, theoretical, natural) sci ence(s) of (drawn from) (pure), xliii, 14, 403, 397', cf. ix, 24; artistes) (talent) of, 745, 866, 867, cf. 634; natural vocation of, xiii', 679; teleology of human, 867 inc!. br. n. 1 88; (main, highest, ultimate, [most] essential) purpose(s) of (hu man), 72 1, 825, 832-47 (specifically, 832, 833, 844, 846, 847), 860, 8 6 1 , 863, 866-67 inc!. br. n. 1 87, 875; obligation of (the ought pronounced by), 576, 738; (formal, speculative, practical, architectonic) interest of, 832-33, 424, 490-504 (specifically, 490, 494, 496, 498, 499, 503), 644 , 676, 682, 694-96, 704, 71 4, 723, 769, 770-73 inc!. br. n. 1 89, 804, 824-26, 83 1 , 841 , see also Interest; goal (plans) of, 6 1 9, 673, 679, 763; expectation of, 576, 792; indomitable desire, 824, 884; (natural) propensity of, 670, 739, 825; need(s) of, 2 1 , 365, 393, 6 1 1 , 63 1 , 642, 71 2, 739, 775, cf. 709; (necessary) demand(s) (requirement) of, xiii, xx, 292, 362, 389, 396, 433, 435-37, 440, 443, 478, 543, 592, 620, 65 1 , 679, 683, 727, 8 1 5, 823, cf. xxii, 372, 503; right(s) of (speculative), xxxiv, xxxv, 128, 490, 679. 779, 780, 792, 804, 866; task (business, transaction) of, vii', xi', vii, 9, 84, 390, 550, 692, 698, 70 1 , 708, 7 1 8, 752 inc!. br. n. 88, 785, 8 17, 828, 857 n. 1 5 1 , 88 1 ; pursuit (enterprise, undertakings) of, 7, 766, 868; endeavor[s] (striv ing) of, xii', xv, xviii n. 77, 49 1 , 557, 619, 7 19, 792, 827, 833; (dogmatic) at tempt(s) of (by) (speculative), 364, 492 br. n. 1 1 , 66 1 , 670, 763, 79 1 -92, 796, 820; (natural) course (path) of (taken by), 570, 5 9 1 , 6 1 2, 614, 63 1 , 637, 7 17, 763, 772, 789, 824, cf. 739, see also Natural; (first, second, third) step(s) (in matters of) of, 765, 789, 790; progress(ion) of, xxi, 76, 388-89, 394-95, 449, 801 ; (formal, dogmatic) procedure (methods) of (followed by), xxxv, 363, 392, 609, 730, 792, cf. xiii-xiv. 24, 679, 788; (logical, necessary, highest) maxim(s) (precept) of (speculative), 365, 694, 699, 770-7 1 , 879; material(s) (apparatus) for (the use of) (pure), 367. 492, 828; thinking (thought, consciousness) of, xiv', xviii. xxiii, 464, 490. 599, 707. 709. 7 10, 767, 870, cf. 603 n. 43; presentation
976
INDEX
by, 207, 403', 830; reflection (contemplation) by, 492, 704, 789; inquisitiveness of, 498; (speculative) question(s) of (for, raised [posed] by), xii', xiii', xiii, 19, 2 1 , 442, 449, 505-6, 509, 5 14, 544, 723, 778, 787-89, 79 1 , 797, 804, 832-33, 836, 8 5 1 , 857; factts) of, 723 br. n. 300, 788, 789; (practical) data of, xxi-xxii, xxviii; assumption (presumption, supposition) of, 425, 498, 6 1 1-12, 63 1 , 707, 804, 839, 846; presupposition of, 394, 437, 576, 605-6, 6 1 1 , 678, 763, 804; pre mises, 820; (self-)examination by, xi' n. 14, 772, 773, 785 ; investigation (in quiry [-iesD by (of), 6, 634-35, 7 1 1 , 725, 866, cf. 9, 376, 772; experiment of pure, xxi n. 87; (speculative, dialectical, transcendent) inference(s) (syllogisms) of, 360-6 1 , 96 inc!. br. n. 140, 355, 356 inc!. br. n. 48, 360 inc!. br. n. 64, 363, 366-68, 378, 386-88, 390 inc!. br. n. 197, 392, 396-732 (specifically, 396-99, 353', 432 inc!. br. n. 3, 525 inc!. br. n. 139, 604 inc!. br. n. 53, 6 1 5 , 654), 763, 8 1 9 inc!. br. n. 391 , see also Syllogism, their fonn, see Form, Idea; proofs (prov ing) of (through, by means of), xxvi n. 103, xxix inc!. br. n. 1 17, 7, 585, 804-5, 8 10-22 (specifically, 8 10, 8 1 2, 8 17, 8 1 8), 858, cf. 6 1 1 , 770; (dialectical, so phistical) argument(s) of (pure), 535, 563, 634, 7 1 7 n. 265; confirmation (jus tification, witness) by (of, from), 368 br. n. 102, 624, 654, 866; answering of, 2 1 , 42 1 , 505, cf. 723; (logical) detennination (of cognition, principles, an ob ject, appearances, action, desire, volition, itself) by (the use of), x, 1 66 n. 324, 361 , 584, 585 br. n. 360, 604, 659, 764, 8 3 1 , cf. 579-86, 829-3 1 , see also Cri tique; discovery by, 88; knowledge of, 498, 7 8 1 , cf. 773, 846, 884; insight (dis cernment, comprehension, enlightenment) of (by), xiii, xxx, 292, 492, 498, 6 1 1 , 704, 772, 857 n . 1 5 1 ; 878, cf. 367, 773, 820; (speculative, practical, greatest) expansion (of the use) of, xxiv, xxv, xxx, 2 1 , 22, 25, 49 1 , 492, 6 1 9, 65 1 , 683, 701, 720, 740-41 ; elevation of, 823, 846; security (safety) of, xi', 23, 1 28, 424, 492, 797, 874-75, cf. ix, xxx, 170; (dictatorial, well-based) authority of, 766, 767, 800; persuasion(s) (conviction) of, 6 1 1 , 614, 77 1 ; beliefs (opinion, view) of, 635, 797, 809, 842, cf. 803, 824, 850-5 1 ; hypotheses of pure, 806, cf. 797; teachings of (pure), xxxii; (dialectical) assertions of, 10, 49 1 , 503, 767, 770, 778-79, 787, 79 1 , 803, 8 12, 8 17, cf. 22; claim(s) (allegations, pronounce menOof, xi', xiv, 10, 88, 49 1 , 730, 73 1 , 766, 767 inc!. br. n. 166, 779, 822; (dia lectical, overblown) pretension(s) of, xi'-xii', xxx, 88, 490, 558, 767, 785, 788, 796, 822; pretense(s) of, xv, 10; (necessary, narrow) invention by, 797, cf. 8 10; limits of, 395', 424, 425, 509, 775, 786, 789, 790, cf. xiv, 22, 128, 590, 772, 786, 877, contrasted with its bounds, 789; inability (incapacity, insufficiency, weaknesses) of, xii', 22, 668, 773, 7 8 1 , 788, 870, cf. 68 1 ; conflict (dispute, dis unity, contradiction) of, (with itself), viii', xii', xxv, 24, xviii n. 77, 377', 433, 435, 492, 525, 544, 563, 592, 645, 768-69, 775, 778, 785, 786, cf. xxxviii, 557, 669, 682, 694, 779-80, 784, see also Antinomy of pure reason; illusion (con fusion, misleading) of, 396', 405, 564, 7 1 7, 72 1 ; (natural) delusion (deception) of (common), 528, 669, 763, 823, cf. 1 28, 354-55, 784, 8 10; errors of, 207, 77 1 , cf. 25, 354-55, 452, 67 1 , 739, 763; ignorance of, 789; sophistries of, 397; dogmatic wandering (groping, roaming, voyage) of, xxx-xxxi, 395', 789, 856; soaring by (wings of), 3 7 1 , 6 1 9, 846, cf. 878; popularity of, 502; extravagances of, 823; quandary of, 476, cf. 492, 5 14, 586, 652, 77 1 ; scandal for, xxxix n. 144; value of pure, 376; service of, 593; work(s) of, xxxv, 878, 880;
INDEX
977
books of, 27; archives of human, 732; physiology of pure, 873; geographers of human, 787; creature of, 508; situation of, 785; peculiarity of (speculative), xxiii; (intrinsic) arrangement (order) of (made by), 576, 723, 829; coherence of, 403'; abstraction by, 355; application of, 433, 448, 7 15, 854; adequacy to, 450, cf. 789; agreement with, 544, cf. viii', 84, xviii n. 77, 396, 450, 557, 643, 65 1 , 722, 846; approval (commendation, respect) (accorded) by, xi' n. 14, 827, 84 1 ; pre scription (commanding, decrees) by (of), 363-64, 673, 68 1 , 7 14, 738, 835, 838, 856, cf. 83 1 ; refusal (rejection, prohibition) by (of), 421 , 766, 767, 866, cf. 832; government (reign, supervision) of (by), 493, 697, 798, 860; might (force, mo mentum) of, 8, 584, 796; legislation (legislators, jurisdiction) of (human), 282, 728, 830 inc!. br. n. 36, 847, 867-68; dogmatism (dogmatic dream) of (pure), 494, 785; self-conceit of, 77 1 ; (skeptical, false self-) satisfaction of (specula tive), xii', xxxvi, I n. 1 53, 559, 638, 696, 701 , 704, 786-97, 800, 832, 884, cf. 833; indifference (indecision) of, 389, 652; temptation (incitement, stimulation) of, I n. 153, 434, 784; play(ing) of (speculative), 503, 738; lawless speculative, 877; isolated, xiv, xviii n. 77, cf. 362, 803; emptiness in, 665; cautiousness (ti midity, retreat, humiliation) of, 738, 767, 797, 822, 823; effect(s) of, 582, 584; harm (detriment) to, 766, cf. 877; drowning of, 810; hint of, 421 ; confession of (begging by), 68 1 , 773; teachability of, 857 n. 1 5 1 ; mediation of, 870; influ ence of (pure), 376, 674; guidance for, 492, 6 19, 790, cf. 703, 772, 782; deter rence of, 796; restraining (restriction, subduing) (of speculative), xxv, 775, 814, 823, cf. xiii, xxvi, 63 1 , 774, 822, 825, 839; protection (defense) of, 767, 782; weapons (stratagem) of (for, used by), 68 1 , 772, 784, cf. 779, 806; liberation (awakening, purification) of, 25, 388', 788; benefit(ting) (gain) of, 677, 7 1 5 , 774, cf. 377'; fate (lot, better fortune, success) of (human), vii', 9, 752, 804, 824, 825; culture (cultivation) of (human), xxx, 772, 845, 878; deportment (gait) of, 738, 763; independence (self-control) of (through), 700, 706, 83 1 , 842, 868; feel ing of, 796; courage (self-confidence) of, 77 1 , 823; zeal (passion, pride, honor) of (human), 49 1 , 492, 8 14, 824; (dialectical, transcendental) hope (trust) of, 701, 740, 77 1 , 792; state (of rest) (resting [living] place, tranquillity) of (for), 370, 398, 5 8 1 , 584, 6 1 2, 772, 779, 785, 789; see also Rational, Reasonable, Reason ing, Reasoned concepts, Reasoning Reasonable (vemiinftig), 7, 82, 275, 354, 373, 626, 7 3 1 , 858, cf. 333, son, Rational Reasoned concepts (conceptus ratiocinati), 368 inc!. br. n. 99, soning
see also Rea
see also Reason, Rea
Reasoning or subtle (-Iy) reasoning (verniinfteln[d]), xxxi, 88, 325, 387 inc!. br. n. 1 86, 380', 389', 467, 501, 694, cf. 652, 656 br. n. 3 1 8, 697, 777, 784, 797, 821, equated with dialectical, 672, cf. 525; being, see Being; concepts, see Concept; claims, 823; assertions, 450, 47 1 , 490, 5 1 8, cf. 449; judgments, 368 inc!. br. n. 102; principles, 634; doctrines, 449; argument (syllogism), 525, cf. 432-33; (kind of) inference(s), 397-98, 432, 477, 632; illusion, 739; psychology, 35 1', 403'; see also Rationalization, Reason, Subtle Receptivity (Rezeptivitiit, Emp/iinglichkeit), 33 inc!. br. ns. 9 and 10, 42-43, 59, 6 1 , 74-75, 93, 102, 97', 100', 1 20' n. 150, 1 26', 1 29 inc!. br. n. 1 86, 1 50, 1 57
978
INDEX
n. 296 incl. br. n. 296b, 1 85, 2 14, 276 n. 52, 430, 522, 554 br. n. 246, 575, 700, cf. 1, 157 n. 296, see also Sensibility, Affected-being, Spontaneity Reciprocal (wechselseitig), 99, 1 1 1-12, 1 83, 256-58 incl. br. ns. 204 and 208, 260-61 , 288, 292, 302, 330, 3 3 1 , 388", 466, 653, 694, 752, 779, see also In terchangeability Recognition (Rekognition), 97', 103'-10' (specifically, 1 03'), 1 15' incl. br. n. 1 33, 1 24'-25' incl. br. n. 1 67, cf. vi n. 3, 91 incl. br. n. 1 14, 1 26 br. n. 46, 127 incl. br. n. 49, 301 br. n. 152, 352, 375, 403, 679 incl. br. n. 68, 747 br. n. 73, 780, 793, 842, 862 Reference (Beziehung), necessary, determinate, indeterminate, practical, see these headings; (of presentations, the manifold, concepts, thought, appearances) to ob jects (experience, intuition, the unity of apperception, the understanding, the sub ject), see Presentation, Manifold, Concept, Thought, Appearance, Object, Ex perience, Subject, Sensation, Given, Reality, Signification, Deduction; of nature, to morality, see Nature, Morality; (of all cognition) to the essential purpose of human reason (to the goal of wisdom), see Philosophy; possibility in any (in all), see Possibility; of judgments, to pleasure and displeasure, see Judgment; see also Relation Reflection (Rejiexion), 3 1 6 incl. br. ns. 4 and 5, x', 1 17, 234, 3 16-49 (specifically, 3 16, 3 1 8- 19, 322, 324, 326, 327, 333, 334, 336), 366, 367, cf. xvi, 70, 7 1 , 84 br. n. 69, 297, 3 1 3 incl. br. n. 201 , 492, 674 br. n. 38, 789, transcendental vs. logical, 3 1 8- 1 9, cf. 3 3 1 , 335; concepts of, 3 1 6-49 (specifically, 3 16, 324, 326, 327, 333, 336); concepts that are reflected upon, 366; see also Deliberation Rejiections on Logic (Rejiexionen zur Logik), ix br. n. 44, see also Logic, Logic Rejiections on Metaphysics (Rejiexionen zur Metaphysik), 395 br. n. 222c, see also Metaphysics Refutation or refute (Widerlegung, widerlegen), xviii n. 77, xxxix n. 144, xliii, 8, 86 br. n. 76, 1 28, 274-79 (specifically, 274 incl. br. ns. 36 and 37), 293, 364', 376', 391', 413-15 (specifically, 4 1 3), 449, 458, 467, 497, 529, 669, 778, 809, 8 15, 820-22, cf. 426, by experience, see Experience; see also Confirmation, Proof Register (Register), of the root concepts of the understanding, 107, see also Cat egories Regression (Regressus, Riickgang), 439-40, 444-45, 447-48, 484, 486, 5 1 4- 1 7. 524, 526, -27, 529, 532-34, 536-52 incl. br. ns. 196 and 202, ns. 229 and 23 1 , 554-56, 559 n. 266, 57 1 , 588, 59 1 , 593, 6 1 2, cf. 644 incl. br. n. 254, 7 1 3, see also Regressive, Progression Regressive (regressiv), 438, 440-41 , 444, 5 14, 523, 533, 538 incl. br. n. 1 84, see also Regression, Series, Synthesis Regular(ity) (Regelmiij3ig[keit]), 1 23, 1 25' incl. br. n. 168, 374, 479, 492, 650, see also Order (Ordnung), Uniform Regulative (regulativ), unity of experience, 6 1 1 n. 83, see also Unity; (use of) con cepts, ideas, laws, principles, reason, see these headings; see also Constitutive Relation (Verhiiltnis, Relation, Beziehung), 34, 37, 38, 42-43, 52, 56-57, 62, 63. 66-67, 79, 96, 98-99, 1 24' incI. br. n. 162, 1 4 1 -42, 1 82, 1 93-94, 21 9-20, 222. 225, 230, 234, 247-48, 252 n. 1 9 1 , 3 17, 32 1 , 330, 34 1, 39 1 , 395 n. 222 inc!.
INDEX
979
br. n. 222c, 404', 457 inc!. n. 1 26, 593 inc!. br. n. 398, 632 br. n. 1 86, 650 br. n. 285, 656, 735, 752, 778, 790, 803 br. n. 320, 844 br. n. 96, cf. v, 79 br. n. 39, 1 4 1 , 1 82 br. n. 96, 339, 340, logical, xix br. n. 79, cf. 3 6 1 , 395 n. 222 inc!. br. n. 222c, 478 br. n. 237; numerical, 205, cf. 508, 744; quantitative, 222; quali tative, 222; determinable, 248; determinate, 69 n. 1 78, 234; formal. 293, 340; ideal, 265 n. 244; real, 265 n. 244, 293, 340, 44 1 ; sensible, 373', 486; contin gent, 462; theoretical, 854; objective. 234, 607; independent and permanent, 341 ; the three dynamical, from which all other relations arise, are those of inherence, consequence, and composition, 262, cf. 332, 469, 564; categories (category, pre dicament) of (real), 106, 1 07 inc!. br. ns. 1 96 and 1 97, 288, 290-9 1 , 4 1 6, 441 inc!. br. n. 48, cf. 1 16 br. n. 250, 230, 342, 379; (pure) concept(s) of, 39 n. 43, 29 1 , 342; predicate of, 459; rule of, 1 68; schema of, 1 84, cf. 707; condition of, 230; form of, 270, 332; of sameness and difference, 3 1 7; of agreement and con flict, 3 17, cf. 320; of the intrinsic and the extrinsic, 3 17, cf. 321-23, 330-3 1 , 333, 339, 341 ; of the determinable and determination (matter and form), 3 1 7 , cf. 322; o f subordination, 246 br. n . 1 60; o f (the principles of) understanding, 1 1 5'-30' (specifically, 1 1 5', 1 28'), 202; of the categories, 1 87-88; of predicates, 600; of concepts, 1 1 5- 1 6 inc!. br. n. 250, 1 40-41 , 246 br. n. 1 60, 3 17, 328-29, 465, 602, 628; of an idea, 607; of (thought in) judgments (propositions), 95-1 00, 1 4 1 , cf. 602; of cognitions, 79, 99', 1 17' n. 1 38, 1 4 1 , 36 1 , cf. 66, 388; of sub ject to predicate, 1 0. 98, 1 28, cf. 322, 407; of (among) presentations, 50, 63, 80, 1 42, 242-43, 3 1 6, 3 1 8, 39 1 , 522, cf. 67, 1 68, 656; of perceptions, 1 84, 220, 222, 223, 269. 401 , cf. 247; of ground (basis) to consequence, 98, 246 br. n. 1 60, see also Basis; of the conditioned to its condition, 486, 564, see also Con dition; of cause(s) to effect(s) (causal), 1 1 2, 1 63, 234, 247-48, 56 1 , 793, see · also Cause; of everything that happens, 1 63 ; of influence, 258; of community or interaction, 258; of actions (the causality's subject to the effect), 250, 5 8 1 , 838; o f (in) time, 37, 47, 50, 5 1 , 57 inc!. br. n . 1 27, 59. 1 59, 1 62-63 inc!. br. n. 3 12, 1 92, 2 1 8 n. 1 , 2 1 9-20, 222, 225-26, 233, 239, 242-43, 248, 256, 261 -63, 373', 556, 575, 5 8 1 , cf. 246-47, (see also Substance,) are either simultaneity or succession, 226, cf. 26 1 , see also Time, Simultaneity, Succession; inner, 32 1 br. n. 35, see also Inner; of (in) space (spatial), 44 n. 65, 5 1 , 55-56, 59, 386', 455, 556, cf. 32 1 , 340, 387', 860, see also Space; external (outer), 277, 293, 32 1 br. n. 35, 336, 366'-80' (specifically, 366'), 463, cf. 37, 38, 43, 339, see also Ex ternal, Outer; of magnitudes, 222, 656, 745, 762; of existence (being or not being), 1 10', 222, cf. 224 n. 47; of the real in appearance, 2 1 9 br. n. 1 5 ; of (among) appearance(s), 38, 56, 1 10', 1 20', 2 1 8 n. 1 , 2 1 9-20, 225, 234, 243, 245, 247, 280, 340, 386', 441 , 702, cf. 34 br. n. 19, 224 n. 47, 58 1 ; of objects (things), 37, 42, 59, 65, 67, 69, 69 n. 1 78, 266, 269, 3 1 8, 33 1 , 336, 341 , 350, 373', 455, 496, 600, 607, 609, cf. 43, 74, 339, 752; of substances, 258, 323, 403, 462, 469, cf. 321 ; of the soul (ourselves, myself, my existence), xxxix n. 144, 1 5 3 , 402-3, cf. 404'; of the world, 457, cf. 656, 844 br. n. 96; of (among) things (objects) in themselves, 42 inc!. br. n. 57, 49 br. n. 90, 52, cf. 65, 67, 323; of a whole. 460; of parts, 99, 339, 673, cf. 860; of characteristics, 34 1 ; of a (divine) being, 707, cf. 702; see also Reference, Proportion, Correlate, Relative
980
INDEX
Relative(ly) (relativ), 40 hr. n. 48, 42, 279, 356, 4 1 1 , 5 1 7 , 704-7 inc!. hr. n. 2 12, 7 1 1 , 7 1 3, 725, 809, 860, cf. 164, see also Relation Religion (Religion), xi' n. 14, xxxi, 375, 395 n. 222, 492 hr. n. 1 2, 494, 496, 656, 773-74, 7 8 1 , 845, 877, 880 inc!. hr. n. 262, see also Theology, God Remedy (Mittel, [Gegen-, Heil-. Hilfs-lmittel. abhelfen), viii, xxxvii, xxxviii, 1 2, 58, 172 n. 28, 369, 377', 529, 556, 648, 739, 77 1 , 785, 809, 810, see also Means repraesentatio, xvii hr. n. 73, 376, see also Presentation Representation (traditional rendering of Vorstellung), see Presentation Reproduction or reproduce (Reproduktion. reproduzieren), 97', 100'-3', 105', 106', 1 15', 1 20' n. 150, 1 2 1'-25', 278, cf. 108'; necessary, transcendental, see these headings; synthesis of (the reproductive imagination), see Imagination, Synthe sis; law of, see Law; of presentations (perceptions, the manifold, appearances), see these headings; see also Reproductive, Production Reproductive (reproduktiv, nachbildend), 1 02', 1 15', 1 1 8' inc!. hr. n. 142, 1 2 1', 1 4 1 , 152, 1 8 1 hr. n . 90, 195, 795 inc!. hr. n . 282, 864, imagination, (synthesis thereof,) see Imagination, Synthesis; see also Ectypal, Reproduction, Productive Republic of Plato, 372, cf. 373-75, see also Plato Reputation (Ansehen), 24, 141 n. 230, 384', 502, 788, cf. xi' n. 14, see also Au thority Respect (Achtung), xi' n. 14, xxxiii, 375, 65 1 , cf. 776 Restriction or restrict(ing) (Einschriinkung. Beschriinkung. Restriktion. einschriin ken. restringieren[d]), xxiv-xxvi, xxviii-xxix, 1 5 , 57, 178, 179, 1 86-88 inc!. hr. n. 1 37, 223-24, 246 hr. n. 1 60, 266, 358, 378, 382, 585 hr. n. 360, 693, 717, 722, 807, 837, 874, condition, see Condition; of reason, see Reason; see also Limitation, Limit Revolution (Revolution), xi-xiii, xvi, xxii, 19 hr. n. 235, 62 hr. n. 149, 88 1, in meta physics, see Metphysics, Copernican revolution Rhapsody or rhapsodically (Rhapsodie. rhapsodistisch), 106, 195, 860, 862 Right(ness) (Recht[samel, Befugnis), xvii', xxxiv, xxxv, 6 1 , 7 1 , 1 16-17, 1 28, 287, 4 10, 414 n. 273, 424, 493. 5 85, 608, 665, 679, 697, 756, 759 n. 1 2 1 , 762, 779-80, 785, 792, 796, 804-5, 8 14- 15, 821 , 847, 866, cf. ix', xv', xx, xxxiii, 22, 45, 69 n. 178, 96, 97, 109, 1 53, 274, 276, 293, 356, 373, 374, 357', 365', 367', 49 1 inc!. hr. n. 5, 504-6, 5 15, 5 1 8, 529-30, 539, 6 1 7, 662, 774, 795, 820, 835 Road (Weg), x inc!. hr. n. 47, xii, 1 0 1 , 866, see also Path Root (Wurzel. Stamm-. Radikal-), xxxiv, 24 inc!. hr. n. 256, 29, 230 incl. hr. n. 73, 660, 745, 806, 863, cf. 387', 782, concepts, 27, 107, I l l . see also Categories; chart, 356; power, 1 1 4', cf. 863; meaning (sense), 84 hr. n. 70, 182 hr. n. 107, 203 hr. n. 44, 540 hr. n. 198, 764 hr. n. 152, 770 hr. n. 1 87, 873 hr. n. 225, cf. 24 hr. n. 256 Rosenkranz, Karl, xix' hr. n. 3 1 , 388' hr. n. 195, 695 hr n. 1 6 1 , 728 hr. n. 3 15, 866 hr. n. 1 82, 880 hr. n. 264 Route (Bahn), xi, see also Path Ru1e(s) (Regel[n]), 3-4, 76-77, 92, 1 22 inc!. hr. n. 34, 124, 1 00', 105', 1 12'-13', 1 2 1 ', 123', 17 1 -73 inc!. hr. ns. 23 and 3 1 , 180-8 1 , 1 83-85, 195, 198, 200, 206, 2 1 8-22 inc!. n. 1 , 232 n. 87, 238-47. 264, 274 inc!. hr. n. 36, 283, 30 1 , 303.
INDEX
98 1
324, 337 incl. br. n. 1 1 5, 353, 359-64, 375, 384 386-87, 376', 379', 380', 399', 472, 5 10, 536, 537-38, 544, 546-50, 554, 560, 564, 577, 5 8 1 , 598-99, 645, 656 br. n. 3 1 8, 673-78, 680 incl. br. n. 71, 691 , 7 1 3 , 7 14, 737, 745, 807, 8 14, 82 1 , 827, 839, is the presentation of a universal condition according to which a certain manifold can be posited, 1 1 3'; as implying necessity, 239, 247, cf. 1 26', 371 ; everything (whatever we can encounter as an object) is necessarily subject to, 198; power of, see Understanding; ability to subsume under, see Judgment-power of; of understanding, power of providing their unity under principles, see Reason; as such, 198; analytic, basic, determinate, given, dy namical, see these headings; logical, 1 16, 283, 353, 430, cf. 76-80, 84-85, 172, 656 br. n. 3 1 8; formal, ix, 172, 714; analytic, 328; (absolutely) necessary (ne cessity of), 76, 84, 236, 241, 263, 497, 793, 827, cf. 1 24, 126", 1 98, 239, 247, 37 1 , 564, are laws, 263, cf. 1 1 3', see also Law; (presupposed, true) a priori, xvii, 122 incl. br. n. 34, 108', 1 10', 1 1 2', 1 7 1 , 178, 241 , 296, 329 incl. br. n. 69, 599, cf. 106', 262, 399'; innate, 1 72 br. n. 26; objective, are laws, 126' incl. br. n. 173; synthetic, 363; (absolutely, comparatively) universal (universality [univer sal validity] of), 2, 5, 43, 84, 124, 1 22', 1 84, 196, 24 1 , 245, 246 br. n. 1 60, 361 , 364, 386, 387, 399', 674-75. 685-86, 745, cf. 243, 262, 375, 544, 682 br. n. 86; close to universality, 675, cf. 1 24, 173; constant, 100'; contingent, 793, cf. 173, 241 ; correct (true, truth of), 296, 352, 675; empirical, 35 n. 23, 1 24, 1 1 2', 375, 793, cf. '753; higher and lower, 362, cf. 6 br. n. 162, ; of (the [speculative, empirical] use of) (pure) reason, 536-38, 544, 685, 699, 701 , 7 14, 817, 827, cf. 753, 8 14-1 5 ; practical, 575, 578, cf. 384-85, 504, 577, 839; pathological, ju ridical, or political, 1 7 3 ; governing the critical judging of the beautiful, 35 n. 23; principles as, 1 96, 303, 536, 537, 538, 544, 680, 686, cf. 375, 353' br. n. 62, 693; \lsed more as formulas than as principles, 173; imperatives as, 575; apperception, concepts, ideas, categories, schemata, laws, analogies as, see these headings; (as such,) (universal) presentation of, 241 ; predicate of, 360-61 ; con dition of (for), 173, 175, 198, 236, 239, 360, 362, 386, 387; manifoldness, com parison, unity of, see these headings; accordance of, 676; objective reality of, 196; application of, 174-75; adequacy of, 173; guidance of, 475-97; authority of, 779; of (governing) cause and effect, see Cause ( Ursache); of identity, re lation, association, kinship, sensibility, apprehension, understanding, thought, synthesis, unity, experience, appearances, nature, prudence, freedom, the school,
see these headings Ruler (Regierer), (supreme,) of the world, 660 n. 344, 846, cf. ix' br. n. 9, 372, 839, 880, see also God Sameness (Einerleiheit), and difference, 3 17, 3 19-2 1 , cf. viii-ix, 1 br. n. 1 52, 50, 76, 78, 104', 1 07 br. n. 1 05, 1 55 incl. br. n. 285, 200, 203 br. n. 38, 208, 210, 214, 305 n. 1 69, 322, 324, 326, 328, 336, 364', 371', 379', 3 8 1 ', 403', 437, 5 1 8, 525 br. n. 140, 542, 553, 557, 577, 584, 6 10, 670, 680, 684-90, 693, 695-96, 698, 742-43, 747, 753, 83 1 , 849, 853, 865, 872, 8 8 1 , see also Identity Sceptic
(Skeptiker), see Skeptic (skeptisch), see Skeptical Scepticism (Skeptizismus), see Skepticism Sceptical
982
INDEX
Schema(ta) (Schema[te]), xvii br. n. 73, 177-87 incl. br. n. 60, 1 95, 204, 223-24 incl. br. n. 40, 296, 303 n. 1 57, 304 incl. br. n. 166, 342, 432, 5 8 1 , 692-93, 698, 702, 707, 7 1 0- 1 2, 725 inc!. br. n. 307, 727, 742, 746, 861 -63, cf. 159 br. n. 298, 377 br. n. 141 ; the categories' application ([by the power of jUdgment] to sensibility, to appearances) by means of, see Categories, Appearance, judgment-power of; sensible (of sensibility), see Sensible, Sensibility; logi cal, transcendental, given, indeterminate, see these headings; manifold belong ing to, 746; (function of the) unity of, 224; reality of, 702; hypothetical addi tion to, 698; analogue of, 693, see also Idea; of reason, 693, cf. 692, 698, 702, 707, 7 1 0-12, 725 inc!. br. n. 307, 727, 742, 861 -62; of quality, quantity, real ity, relation, modality, substance, causality, cause, community, interaction, pos sibility, see these headings; of magnitude, see Magnitude, Number; of actual ity, see Actuality, Existence; of necessity, see Necessity, Existence; of a (the) triangle (as such), 1 80, 746, cf. 742; of (a) science, 861-62, cf. 863; a supreme intelligence as, 725 incl. br. n. 307, cf. 727; see also Schematism Schematism (Schematismus), of (our) (pure) understanding, 1 75, 179, 1 80, 185; of the pure concepts of understanding (the categories), see Categories; see a/so Schema Scholar 876,
(Gelehrter), xxxv, 129 br. n. 84, 360, cf. vii" br. n. 5, 369, 402 n. 25, 501 , see also School Scholastic(s) (scholastisch, Scholastiker), xviii', xii br. n. 56, 1 1 3, 1 70, 677 br. n . 57, 870, see also School School (Schule, Schul-), iii br. n. 2, x', xi br. n. 52, xxxii-xxxvi, xliii, 76, 78, 172, 322 br. n. 44, 352' n. 57, 364', 424, 459, 478, 501 , 502, 5 1 8, 63 1 , 632, 636, 680, 722, 736, 737 inc!. n. 1 9, 770, 776, 845, 865, 866, 868 n. 192, 8 8 1 , cf. 324, 402 n. 25 incl. br. n. 25b, 63 1 , 876 incl. br. n. 246, see also Scholastic, Scholar
Schwarz, Wolfgang, vii' br. n. 7, xvii br. n. 73 Science(s) (Wissenscha!t[en]), nature of, viii, 504, 877-78; are devised from the viewpoint of a certain universal interest, 862, cf. 86 1 ; any, is based on an idea, 862, cf. 391 -92, 866, 870-72; systematic unity is what first turns common cog nition into, 860, cf. xxii, 29, 109, 736, 862, 866, 869, see also Unity; is a sys tem of cognition, 860, see also System; completeness is characteristic of it, 89, see also Completeness; must have a foundation, xxxvi, cf. xi' n. 14, xxxi, 4034; must always do strict proofs from secure a priori principles, xxxv, cf. 8 1 8- 1 9; must always be dogmatic (is dogmatic procedure), xxxv; cannot arise techni cally (i.e., through art), 86 1 , cf. 867; (a priori) rational, among all of these solely mathematics (but not philosophy) can be learned, 865; critique of pure reason ultimately leads of necessity to, 22; are flourishing, x'; of a priori sensibility, of pure understanding, of pure reason, see Sensibility, Understanding, Reason; ba sic, human, rational, given, particular, see these headings; (general) natural (cog nition of, mathematics compared to), see Natural, General, Cognition, Math ematics; proper, ix, 78. 876, cf. x.i' n. 14; objective, ix; true, 35 n. 23, 79; demonstrated, 79; pure (a priori), 20 n. 243, 155 n. 283, 508, 865, cf. 1 8, 20, 25, 28, 109, 1 28, 401 , 3 8 1 ', 492 br. n. I I ; theoretical, 14, cf. 20; speCUlative , 1 1 0, 508; practical, 508, cf. 868 n. 192; didactic, 1 75 ; useful, xxxiv; volumi-
INDEX
983
nous, 23; special, 24, 77-78; indispensable, 24; lasting, xliii; complying with school standards, xliii; illusory, 397', cf. 400, 395'; surpassing all powers of hu man reason, 382'; possibility of, 879; idea of (for), 27, 8 1 , 397', 866, 870-72, cf. 39 1-92, 861 ; concept of, 603; schema of, see Schema; plan of, 27, 109, cf. 392; realm of, xxxi, xxxiii br. n. 130, 774, cf. xxiii; range of, 25; boundary (bounds) of, see Boundary; sum total of, 508; object(s) of, see Object; question in (belonging to), 504, 508; study (treatment) of, xxxi, 872; method (apparatus) of, xxii, 7; organon of, 76-78; structure of, xxii-xxiii; vestibule of, ix; mo ments of, 1 10; level of, 35 n. 23 ; secure path (high road) of (a), vii-viii, ix-xii, xiv-xv, xviii, xxiii, xxx, xxxvi, cf. 878, 884; (analytic, synthetic a priori, pure) cognition(s) contained in (pertaining to), xxiii, 25, 28, 3 8 1 ', 786, cf. 40 1 ; knowl edge of (from), x'-xi', ix, 736; experts in, xviii'; trustee of, xxxiv; value of, 49 1 , 878; aim of, 868 n . 192, cf. 86 1 ; use of, 1 7 2 n . 28, 879; effects (influence) of, 877-79; interest in, v, 862; concern of (for), xix, xxxv, cf. 884; way of thinking (attitude) in, x', xvi; culture of reason in, 845; growth (augmentation) of, v, viii, 24; completion (completeness) of, xx', xxiv, 89, cf. 25, 76; elegance of, viii; pomp of, 498-99; difficulty (fetters) of, xxxvii, 24; resistance (contempt) to ward, 24, 872; corruption of, viii, cf. 376, 401 , 884; (formal, transcendental) logic as, viii-ix, 76, 8 1 , 867 br. n. 190, cf. xxiii; (pure) mathematics as, xi' n. 14, x-xi, 4, 1 75, 299 incl. br. n. 140, 491 , 74 1 , 865; geometry as, 40, 1 20, 155 n. 283, 207, cf. 299; philosophy as (as needing), see Philosophy, Philosophical; metaphysics as (as not yet) (on the secure path of, as the queen of), see Meta physics, Critique; cognition of one's ignorance as, 786; critique as, see Cri tique; transcendental aesthetic as, see Aesthetic (Asthetik) as; dialectic as, 85 ; pure morality as, 508; (rational, transcendental) psychology as (as not), 401 , 403, 3 8 1 '-82', 874-75 incl. br. n. 241 ; (rational) physics as, x, 20 n. 243, 874-75 incl. n. 240 and br. n. 241 ; somatology as, 381'; see also Scientific, Scientist Scientific (wissenschaftlich, szientijisch), concept, 860; form, 109; method, 883, 884; cognitions, 1 28, cf. 860; self-cognition, 877; works, 641 br. n. 237; community, 879; ignorance, 45 1 ; see also Science, Scientist Scientist (-lehrer; -kiindiger), xxxvi br. n. 134, 56, 2 1 5 incl. br. n. 1 25, cf. 862, see also Science, Scientific Secunda Petri, 172 n. 28 incl. br. n. 28c Seebold, E1mar, 8 1 3 br. n. 366 Segner, Johann Andreas von, 15 incl. br. n. 225 Self (Selbst, Eigen-), 107', 129', 134-35, 138, 405, 353', 362', 364', 366', 383', 427, 429-30, 49 1 , 494, 520; determining and determinable, 402', 407; thinking, 405, 383', 427, 430, 491 , 494, cf. 167, 402', see also Thought; -activity, -contradiction, -evidence, -consciousness, -intuition, -cognition, -delusion, -subsistence, -activity, -sufficient, -confidence, see these headings; -examination, 739, 773; -control, 868; -defense, 805; -satisfaction, 638; -conceit, xxxviii, 504, 657, 763, 77 1 , 785, 809; -denial, 24; -sufficient, 5 89 incl. br. n. 387, cf. 89-90; -created, 387'; -delivery, 793; see also Subject, Soul, I-the, Selfish Selfish (selbstsuchtig), 68 1 , see also Self Semblance (Schein), 86 incl. br. n. 80, 88 br. n. 92, 325, 428 br. n. 307, 509, 776, 787, 8 1 1 , 868, see also Illusion
984
INDEX
Sensation(s) (Empjindung[en]), are a kind of presentations (objects of our aware ness), xvii br. n. 73; is subjective presentation, 207 inc!. br. n. 74, cf. 208, see also Presentation; is subjective perception, 376, cf. 374', see also Perception; presentation (consciousness) accompanied by, is perception, 147, 272; cannot be anticipated, 209; is that component in our cognition on whose account it is called a posteriori cognition, i.e., empirical intuition, 60, cf. 2 1 8, see also Em pirical, Intuition; receptivity (power) of, 214, 677; belongs to sensibility, 422 n. 288, see also Sensibility; is the matter of the senses (of sensible cognition), 74, 286, see also Sense, Matter, Cognition (matter of); is the matter of experience, 270, cf. 81 br. n. 52, 266, see also Experience (matter of), Actuality; is the mat ter of perception (intuition), 60, 209, cf. 34 br. n. 1 6, 323, see also Appearance (matter of); is what (in appearance) corresponds to matter (of intuition), 34, 609, 75 1 ; what corresponds to it (in empirical intuition, in the realm of appearance, in objects [as appearances]) is the real (reality), see Real, Reality; is caused by the real, 2 10; is phenomenal reality, 1 86 inc!. br. n. 135; is the effect of an ob ject on our capacity for presentation. insofar as we are affected by the object, 34, see also Affected-being; presupposes the actual presence of the object. 74, cf. 373'; apprehension by means of mere, see Apprehension; presentations through (based on), see Presentation; as such, 60, 1 82, 209, 217, 2 1 8; particu lar, 209; given, see Given; underlies the existential proposition I think, 422 n. 288; feeling (of pleasure and displeasure [pain]) as (as the effect of), 44 n. 65, 219 br. n. 5, 374'; of colors, sounds, or heat, 44, cf. 2 1 7 ; reference of, to some thing outside me, 38; object of, see Object, Real; the real of, 207, see also Ap pearance (reality in); what belongs (pertains) to, 34-36 inc!. br. n. 24, 1 25 ; dif ference among, 60, 2 1 0, 2 1 7 ; property of, 2 1 8 ; (intensive) magnitude (degree, measure) of, 1 82-83, 207 n. 68, 208, 2 1 1 , 2 1 8, 221, cf. 209, 217, see also De gree; beginning of a, 208, cf. 393'; quality of, 217, see also Quality; succession of, 209, cf. 210; ordering (synthesis) of, 34, 1 84, 2 1 0, 7 5 1 , cf. 2 1 8 ; lack (ab sence, vanishing, negation) of, 34, 44 n. 65, 1 82-83, 208-10, see also Pure, Negation; subreptions of, 53 inc!. br. n. 1 08; see also Sensible Sense
(empjinden), see Sensing Sense(s) (Sinn[e]), is one of the original sources (capacities or powers of the soul) that contain the conditions for the possibility of all experience, 1 27 n. 48, cf. 1 1 5', 1 1 8' br. n. 142, 1 94 br. n. 1 8 1 , see also Experience; is a subjective source of cognition, 1 1 5', cf. xxxix n. 144, 1 64; supply us with impressions, 120' n. 150, cf. 1-2 inc!. n. 153, 1 1 8 inc!. br. n. 17, 1 20' n. 150, 400, 574, see also Im pression; cannot think anything, 76; do not err, because they do not judge at all, 350, cf. 359, 8 8 1 -82; present appearances empirically in perception (present ob jects [something] to us as they appear [as it appears]), 1 1 5', 305 n. 1 69, 3 1 3, cf. 520, see also Empirical; the human being (apart from his self-cognition) is ac quainted with all of nature solely through, 574, cf. 62-63 ; is merely determin able, not determinative, 1 5 1 -52; combination of perceptions (of a manifold) can not be (found) in ([but] come to us through), 1 20' inc!. n. 1 50, 155, cf. 1 60 n. 305, 233, 3 1 6; all our (human) cognition starts from (from intuitions), proceeds from there to understanding (concepts) and ends with reason (ideas), 355, 730, cf. xvii, 1, 363; reason's reign over, 493, see also Reason; common, see Com-
INDEX
985
mon; as such, 3 14, cf. 41, 59, 1 50, 1 8 1 ; of sight, 44 inc!. n. 65, cf. 69 n. 178, 349; of hearing, 44; of smell, 69 n. 178; of taste, 44 n. 65; of touch, 44; inner, xxxix n. 144, 37, 49, 54 n. 1 17, 55, 66, 68, 98'-99', 10 1 ', 107', 139, 150, 1 52-56 inc!. n. 292, 1 58-59, 177, 179, 1 8 1 , 1 82, 1 85, 1 94 inc!. br. n. 1 8 1 , 202, 2 1 7, 220, 233, 255, 276 n. 52, 278, 292-93, 321 inc!. br. n. 35, 334, 339, 400, 403, 405, 357', 359', 36 1', 362', 367', 368', 37 1', 379'-8 1 ', 385'-87', 4 1 5, 427, 429, 47 1 , 5 1 9, 520, 579, 7 1 0-1 1 , 723 n. 30 1 , 874, 876, in which everything flows constantly, 29 1 , cf. 292, is a limiting condition, 1 59, is (with its a priori form) the (only) sum (total) that contains all our presentations, 194, 220, (and) is em pirical apperception, 107', cf. 1 85, see also Inner, Subject, Apperception; outer, xxxix n. 144, 37, 4 1 , 66, 67, 156, 1 82, 276 n. 52, 29 1 , 333, 400, 357', 358', 359', 367', 37 1 ', 374' inc!. br. n. 1 38, 377'-79', 3 8 1 ', 385'-86', 390'-9 1 ', 415, 427, 874, 876, by means of which we are given nothing but mere relational pre sentations, 67, is a property of our mind whereby we present objects as outside us (in space), 37, see also Outer; unity in inner, 1 85, cf. 71 0, see also Unity; form (formal condition) of inner, 49, 54 n. 1 17, 68, 99', 1 52, 1 54, 155, 158, 1 79, 181, 1 82, 1 94, 220, 292, 362', 380', see also Time; form of outer, 41, cf. 385', see also Space; matter of, 286, cf. 1 1 8 inc!. br. n. 1 7, is sensation, see also Sensation, Matter; reference (relation) to (inner, outer), xxxix n. 144, 69 n. 1 78, 202, 220, 3 1 4, 341 , 358', 37 1 ', 380', 386', 5 2 1 , cf. 127 n. 48, 359'; reality of inner and of outer, xxxix n. 1 44, see also Reality; connection of (the reality of) outer, with (the reality of) inner, xxxix n. 144; (so-called) deception of (illusion in), 359, 376', 8 8 1-82, cf. 350; as (allegedly) confusing and corrupting under standing's presentations, 332, see also Confused; inner and outer, as ideal, 66; transcendental doctrine of, 30 inc!. br. n. 298; physiology of inner, 405, 3 8 1 ' ; principle o f inner, 5 1 , cf. 246 br. n. 1 60; realm of, 707; power of, 1 1 8' br. n . 142, cf. 1 2 7 n. 4 8 ; receptivity o f inner, 1 85, cf. 685; acquisition by, 358', cf. 349, 370, 707, 873; (direct) affecting of (inner), 44 inc!. n. 65, 69, 1 53-55, 1 59 n. 292, 358', 359', 830, see also Appear, Affected-being; influence on (inner), 1 54, 208 inc!. br. n. 79, 387"; influence of, 77; borrowing from, 355, 370; pre sentation of (through), see Presentation; sensation of, 2 1 9 inc!. br. n. 5, 374'; intuition of (in, through, to, limited to) (inner), 1 26, 97', 1 35, 176-77, 276 n. 52, 292, 334, 346, 363, 378', 47 1 , cf. 385', see also Intuition; exhibition by, 1 52, 497, 839; data of, 1 22', see also Data, Appearance; predicates of inner, 359', see also Presentation, Thought; everything belonging to, 1 n. 1 53, cf. 1 60 n. 305, 357', 7 1 1 ; modification(s) of (inner), 44 n. 65, 367', see also Perception; (subjective, special) character of, 44 inc!. n. 65, 59; coarseness (vs. delicate ness) of, 273; degree of every, 2 14; manifold(ness) of (inner) 97', 1 77, 723 n. 301 , see also Manifold; play of inner, 368'; leading of, from one object to an other, 260; synopsis of (of the manifold through), 97', 1 27 n. 48; position and organization of, 62, cf. 63; deterrnination(s) of (in) (inner, outer), 101', 1 39, 1 50, 1 52-56 inc!. n. 292, 1 8 1 , 233, 278, 330, 373', see also Action; product of, 343; being(s) of, see Being, Appearance, Phenomenon; object(s) (appearances) of (of outer, of inner), see Object, Appearance, Body, Soul; world of, see World; im pulses of, 830 inc!. hr. n. 3 1 ; purposes commended by, 828; conflict with, xxii n. 93; analogy with inner, 339; if nothing were hidden from, 5 10; departure from,
986
INDEX
3 1 1 , cf. 369', 385', 882; an intuition (concept, determination, cognition) with out, 299, 798, cf. 67 1 br. n. 14, 882, see also Intuition (intellectual), Sense-free; objects that cannot be given (congruently) in, see Idea; properties that can never be given through, 52; see also Sensing, Sensible, Sensibility, Mind, Understand ing Sense-free
(sinnenfrei), 3 15, 338 n. 1 24, 666, see also Sense, Sensible, Freedom
Sensibility (Sinnlichkeit), as such, 76, 1 88, 303 n. 1 57, cf. 62, 89, 92 br. n. 1 22; is (our mind's) receptivity for (capacity [ability] to receive, acquire) presentations (intuitions), 33, 75, 1 50, cf. 43, 59, 68, 74, 102, 100', 1 26', 309, 326, 522, 575, see also Receptivity, Presentation, Intuition; is the receptivity of our cognitive capacity, 6 1 , see also Cognition; is one of the two stems of human cognition, 29, 863 inc!. br. n. 1 67, cf. 1 24', 3 1 7, 327, see also Understanding, Reason; is passive (not spontaneous), 68, 75 br. n. 22, 1 32, cf. 72; (only) through it are objects given to us, 29-30, 33, cf. 1 2 1 , 125, 305, see also Object, Given; is our way of intuiting, 60, cf. 5 1 , 92, 309-10 inc!. br. n. 1 86, 393'-94', 641-42; gives us forms of intuition, 126', cf. 36, 305; sensation and imagination belong to, see Sensation, Imagination; all thought must ultimately refer to, 33, see also Thought; is an object of (for) (is limited by, determined by, acted upon by) understand ing, 152, 1 53, 160 n. 305, 305 n. 169, 3 12, 344, 3 5 1 n. 16, 692, cf. 1 79, see also Understanding; realizes (limits, restricts, influences) (the acts of) under standing, 1 87, 303, 350, 35 1 inc!. n. 16, cf. 3 10, 3 12, 669, see also Understand ing; reason is not affected by, 583, cf. 569, 585 incl. br. n. 360, (but) is often deluded by, 669; cannot belong as an ingredient to the idea of the original (su preme) being, but belongs to this being's consequence (along with the limita tion thereof), 607; as (allegedly) only a confused (way of) presenting (intuiting) (things), 60, 326, 332, see also Confused; philosopher(s) of, 881 inc!. br. n. 266; doctrine of, 30 inc!. br. n. 298, 60, 307; science of all principles of (a priori), see Aesthetic (A sthetik); principle of (pertaining to) (a priori), xxiv, 35, 647, cf. 70, 1 36, 246 br. n. 160; law of, 244, 273, 469, 486; rules of, 76; realm of, 1 22, 305 n. 169, 3 10, 594, 753, cf. 707; range of, 3 1 1 ; boundary (bounds) of, see Boundary; limits (limitation) of, 303, 3 1 1 , 344; origin of, 334; substratum of, 305 n. 169; (our entire) power of, 3 17, 3 1 8, 806; function (action) of, 75, 35 1 ; (subjective) character of, 44, 305 n . 169, 323, cf. 62; position in, 324; modes of (pure), 107, 108; modification(s) of, 1 29', 178, 386', 5 19; presentations of our, 45, 387'; data of, see Data; manifold of (offered by) (a priori), see Manifold; (pure, formal, subjective, special, highest) condition(s) of ([lying] in, belonging to), 42, 43, 54, 56, 120, 123, 1 25, 1 79, 1 86, 207, 283, 300 inc!. n. 144, 305, 330, 332, 338, 343, 46 1 , 567, 5 8 1 , 595, 641 -42, cf. 1 28', 536, for which no reason can be given, 641 -42; reference of, to original apperception, I l l ' , cf. 122', see also Apperception; (pure, original, constant) formes) of, 34-35, 43, 45, 58, 1 1 8, 1 2 1 , 128', 1 60 n. 305, 1 69, 3 3 1 , 342, 522, cf. 29-30, 60, 72, 323, 647, see also Space, Time, Form; pure image of, 377 inc!. br. n. 1 4 1 , cf. 553-54; schema(ta) of, 1 85, 342, 692, 693, cf. 302 n. 157, 377 inc!. br. n. 141 , see also Schema, Idea; analogue of a schema of, 693; determination through, 430-3 1 ; relation of the categories to, see Categories; concept(s) of (belonging to), 58, 60; predicates (determinations) of, 120, 522, cf. 43 1 , 358'; something that cor-
INDEX
987
responds to, 522; reference of, to an object, 334; object(s) of, see Object; to be an object of, is to appear, 43, see also Appear; appearances exist only in (our), see Appearance; without it no object would be given to us, 75, see also Object; abstraction from, 5 1 , 305 n. 169; annulment of, 344, cf. 345; (cognition of) ob jects (beings) apart from (without restriction to) our, 59, 61-62, 178, 307, cf. 120, 305 n. 1 69, 343, 363', 369', 370', 375', 384'-85', 391', 520, 59 1 , 594, see also Thing in itself; possibility of completeness in, 444 inc!. br. n. 60; ideals of, 598, 599; desires of, 834 br. n. 49; (coercion by) impUlses of, 562, cf. 830-3 1 , see also Freedom; motivating causes of, 562 inc!. br. n . 279, cf. 576; path heavily overgrown by, 866; see also Receptivity, Sensible, Sense Sensible or sensibly (sinnlich. sensibel), equated with aesthetic (intuitive), xviii', cf. xvii' br. n. 26, see also Aesthetic, Intuitive; the (what is), 35 n. 23 inc!. br. n. 23f, 6 1 ; world (presentation of), see World, Presentation; concept (of ob· jects), (general,) see Concept, General; data, see Data; make (so), 299, 686, see also Sensualize; use of our cognitive power, 806; power of intuition, 309; in tuition(s), presentation(s), cognition (as such, general), see Intuition, Presenta tion, Cognition, As such, General; cognition, matter of, see Matter; object(s), see Object; intuition, object(s) (not an object) of, see Object, Appearance, Nou menon; form, see Form; intuition, form(s) (condition[s)) of, see Intuition; intui tions (presentations), manifold and synthesis of, see Manifold, Synthesis, Imagi nation, Categories; schema(ta), 5 8 1 , 693 , see also Schema; determination (determinability), 57 n. 296, 1 86, 335, 345; relation(s), see Relation; series, see Series; conditioned, see Conditioned; condition(s) (freedom from), see Condi tion, Freedom; unconditioned (condition), see Unconditioned; sign of the intel ligible character, 574; power of choice (desire), 830, 562 inc!. br. n. 283, cf. 566; causality (cause), 566, 569; impulses (stimuli, incentives), 562, 576, 583 inc!. br. n. 354, 830, 83 1 ; life, 807; semblance, 787; see also Pathological, Sen sibility, Sense, Sensation, Sensing, Sensory, Sensualist, Suprasensible, Extra sensible, Nonsensible, Insensitive Sensing (empjinden), 1 1 8 inc!. br. n. 17, 3 12 n. 198 inc!. br. n. 198, 579, 686 inc!. br. n. 1 1 5, is not possible outside oneself but only within oneself, 378', see also Sensation, Sense Sensory (sensitiv[us)), (i.e., sensible,) cognitions, 3 1 2 n. 1 98 inc!. br. ns. 198c and 198e, cf. 67 1 br. n. 14; power of choice, 562 inc!. br. n. 283 Sensualist (Sensual-), philosophers (school, system), 8 8 1 -82 inc!. br. ns. 266 and 268, see also Sensible Sensualize (sensijizieren), 327, cf. 299, 686, see also Sensible Separate (absondern, abteilen, scheiden, abgesonden, besonder), xxiii, xlii, I , 2, 4, 10 br. n. 1 86, 19 br. n. 234, 20 n. 243, 35-36 inc!. br. n. 24, 57, 76, 78, 96-97, 97', 1 1 5', 122', 192, 229-30, 259, 305 inc!. n. 169, 307, 3 14, 326, 327, 349, 375, 404, 370', 389', 393', 415 n. 275, 419-20, 427, 430, 466, 482, 484, 532, 554, 570, 608, 609, 624 n. 148, 649, 687, 689, 703, 735, 803, 858, 868, 870, cf. 1 86, 680 br. n. 76, 806, see also Isolate Sequence (Folge. Abfolge. Reihenfolge), 50, 54 n. 1 1 7, 99, 123, 99', 102', 1 12', 163, 176 br. n. 53, 2 1 4, 232 inc!. br. n. 86, 246-48 inc!. br. n. 1 59, 3 3 1 , 474, 479, 572, 689, see also Succession, Series, Sequentiality, Sequential, Consequence
988
INDEX
Sequential (nacheinander [folgend]), 47, 49, 50, 56, 1 39, 1 84, 192, 224 n. 47, 225, 226, 232, 243 incl. br. n. 142, 258, 262, 528, see also Successive, Sequential ity, Sequence Sequentiality (Nacheinandersein, tial, Sequence Serially
Folge nacheinander), 225, 226, see also Sequen
(reihenweise), 443-44, see also Series
Series (Reihe), general presentation of. 546; contrasted with aggregate, see Aggre gate; principle of, 246 br. n. 160; formal condition of all, is time, 438, see also Time; unconditional truth of, 389; indicator of, 387, 44 1 ; ascending, 388, 436-37, 486, 546, cf. 394, 441-42, 485, 540, 550, 713 incl. br. n. 242, see also Ascend; descending, 388, 389, 436-37, cf. 394, see also Descend; actual, 552, cf. 523; given, (of conditions,) see Given; givable, 438 incl. br. n. 29; sensible, as such, 592-93; merely intelligible, 486; too long (large) or too short (small) for the understanding, 557, 563; infinite (unbounded), 454, 458-60, 534, 538, 542, 544, 555, 638, 7 13, cf. 540, 547; finite (bounded, limited), 534, 538, 540, 542, 544, cf. 547; conditioned, 533, see also Conditioned; (extending up to the) unconditioned, 364, 365 incl. br. n. 85, 480, cf. 394, 440, 485, 486, 526, 533, 57 1 , 592, see also Unconditioned; (given) without (a) (first) beginning (bounds), 445, 48 1 , 486, 5 1 1 , cf. 543; (absolute, [absolutely] first, spontaneous [on one's own], unconditionally necessary) beginning of, 455, 472-74, 477, 478, 480-83 incl. n. 250, 485, 486, 562, 5 7 1 , 582, 583, 7 1 3, 768, 8 3 1 , cf. 5 1 1 ; becoming, 388; ceasing of, 437; bygone (elapsed, preceding), 460, 478, 523, 583; (abso lute) totality (entirety, wholeness, completeness, completion, maximum) (of the synthesis, the basis of explanation) of (in), xx, 364, 366, 388-89, 393, 394, 398, 436-38, 440, 442-45 incl. br. n. 64, 454, 460, 474, 480, 482, 484, 486, 487, 5 1 1 , 525-28, 534, 536-4 1 , 543, 550-52, 556, 5 7 1 , 588, 6 1 2, 633 n. 195, 638, 67 1 , 7 1 3, 80 1 , 819, cf. 379-80, 382-85, 396'-97', 434, 533, 544, 593, see also Totality, Completeness; (unconditioned synthetic) unity of, see Unity; (progres sive, regressive, hypothetical) synthesis (of the members) of, see Synthesis, Pro gressive, Regressive, Hypothetical; the concepts of the possible, the actual, and the necessary do not lead to, 442; accidents do not make up, 44 1 ; space (unlike time) does not amount to, 439, see also Space; of aggregated spaces, 439, cf. 440, 44 1 ; (of) time, see Time; of the division, 552; of the empirical regression, 525, see also Regression; dynamical, 558, 559, 587, see also Dynamical; of (all past) states (states of things, of the world), 454, 476, 478, 483 incl. n. 250, 546, 587, 7 1 3 , cf. 473 ; of events, 241 , 243-44, 562, 5 7 1 , 580, 582, cf. 475; of changes, 2 8 1 , 394, 477, 480-83, 5 19, 587, 7 1 9; of synthetic presuppositions. 490; of (given, empirical, sensible, a whole's internal) conditions, xx, 364-66 incl. br. n. 85, 387-88, 391-94, 398, 436-45 incl. br. n. 64, 480, 486, 487, 5 1 6 , 525-28, 533, 536-43, 546-48, 550, 5 5 1 , 556-58, 669 n. 266, 563, 565, 568, 583, 584, 586-89, 592, 593, 612, 649, 67 1 , 7 1 3, 801 , see also Condition; of bases, 389, 8 1 9, cf. 246 br. n. 160, see also Basis; of consequences, 583, cf 580; of (natural, determining) causes (and effects, for a given [natural] effect) (causal), 256, 441 , 474, 475, 478, 483 incl. n. 250, 485, 533, 569, 580, 582, 63 3 n. 195, 638, 649, 801, cf. 572, see also Cause; of effects, 580, cf. 583; of the natural order, 567; of dependent (conditioned) existence, 533-34, 587; of ap-
INDEX
989
pearance(s), 1 1 2', 245, 28 1 , 284, 301, 441 , 444, 474, 477, 478, 484, 485, 488, 494, 532-34, 538, 539, 549, 558, -60 incl. n. 266, 564, 5 7 1 , 580, 58 2, 588, 7 1 3 incl. br. n. 242, 768, 8 3 1 , cf. 244, 256, 389, 398, 528, 536-37, 584, 586, 589 , 59 1 , 592-93, see also Appearance; of objects of experience, 803; of things, 246 br. n. 160, 455, 476, 534 br. n. 168, 546, cf. 274 br. n. 36; of substances, 363' n. 99, cf. 534 br. n. 168; of progenitors (for a given human being), 540-41 , 550; of cosmic bodies, 550; cosmological, 7 1 3 ; (of [in] the) world (of sense), 454, 458, 459, 478, 482, 486, 536, 544, 546 n. 229, 550, 589, cf. 480, 48 1 , 485, 532-33, 546, 549; of things in themselves, 534; (regressive,) of (my, subordi nated) presentations, 103', 246, 533, 534, cf. 244; of intuitions, 587; (regres sive,) of (possible) perceptions, 1 2 1 ', 238, 245, 247, 273, 274 br. n. 36, 523, cf. 543, 546; of concepts, 92, 1 1 2, 587; of the categories, 402, 417; of premises, 387-89, 443-44; of inferences (syllogisms), 387-88; of conclusions, 389; of cognitions, 389; of a subordination of principles, 87 1 ; see also Succession, Se quence, Serially Shape (Gestalt, Figur), 1 1 n. 200, 12, 35, 37, 44 n. 65, 50, 63, 100', 106', 124', 1 62, 1 80, 196 incl. br. n. 203, 204, 209, 248, 299, 330, 358', 37 1', 387', 393', 459, 541 br. n. 209, 577, 634, 647, 69 1 , 7 1 5 incl. n. 250, 743, 748, 752, see also Figure Sign (Zeichen), 359', 574 incl. br. n. 3 1 6, 653, 717, 762, see also Criterion, Indi cator, Mark (Merkmal) Significance or significant (Bedeutung, bedeutend, erheblich, nicht gering), 1 5 br. n. 225, 149, 178 br. n. 66, 328, 448, 707, 842, 845, 8 1 8 br. n. 1 1 3, cf. 6, 9 1 incl. br. n. 1 16, 807, see also Signification Signification or signify (Bedeutung, bedeuten), 178 br. n. 66, 94, 96 incl. br. n. 144, 122, 123, · 1 45 , 1 80 incl. br. n. 78, 1 85-87, 194, 195, 208, 217, 222, 223, 235, 252, 273, 299-303 incl. ns. 144, 156, and 257, 305-8 incl. n. 169, 3 14, 322, 329, 339, 342, 343, 356', 385', 422 n. 288, 429, 43 1 , 446 n. 70, 447, 5 14, 521, 523-24, 557, 560, 602-3, 607, 627, 637, 650, 663-64, 67 1 , 692, 698, 705, 709, 7 12, 724, 75 1 , 8 1 3, logical, 178 br. n. 66, 1 86, 267; pure, 1 86, 357'; empirical, 3 13; determinate, 303 n. 157; subjective, 544, 644 ; objective, 242-43, 348'; posi tive and negative, 308- 1 1 incl. br. n. 1 90, 342-43, see also Noumenon; tran scendental, see Transcendental; imagined, 1 1 6; see also Reality, Reference, Meaning, Significance Simplicity or simple (Simplizitiit, Einfach[heitD, xiv', xxix, 68, 92, 1 35, 2 1 1 , 321, 330, 339-40, 35 1 , 402-4, 406 inc I. br. n. 37, 347', 35 1 '-6 1' (specifically, 35 1'-57' inc I. br. ns. 69, 73, 78, and 79, 359'-6 1' incl. br. n. 89), 365', 366', 38 1', 382', 399'-402' incl. br. ns. 225 and 232, 403' br. n. 238, 404' incl. n. 240, 407- 10, 4 1 3 , 414, 4 1 5 n. 275, 4 1 9-20, 440, 446, 462-7 1 incl. br. n. 163, 494, 497, 506, 509, 5 1 1, 5 15, 5 5 1 , 607, 608, 700, 701, 7 10, 7 1 1, 7 1 2 br. n. 239, 799-800, 802, 8 12- 13, 8 16, cf. xviii', 80, 358, 492, 6 1 7 incl. br. . 107, 636 incl. br. n. 2 16, of the soul (the subject), 3 2 1 , 405-6 incl. br. n. 37, 351'-61 ' incl. br. ns. 73, 78, 79, and 89, 399', 401 '-2' inc I. br. n. 232, 404', 407, 419, 506, 799-800, cf. 4 13, 47 1 , 553, 701 , see also Nature (simple), I-the, Soul, Sub ject; (of) substance, object, being, action, concept, presentation, see these head ings; see also Space, Time, Necessary, Absolute, Given, Reason, Composite
990
INDEX
Simultaneity or simultaneous (Zugleich[sein), Simultaneitiit), 257 br. n. 209, xxxix n. 144, 40, 46, 47, 50, 67, 107 br. ns. 1 97 and 198, 1 1 2, 1 39, 153 br. n. 278, 174, 175 inc!. br. n. 44, 1 83-84, 191-92, 197, 219, 224-26 inc!. n. 47, 232, 235, 247-49, 256-65 (specifically, 256-62 inc!. ns. 205, 264, and br. n. 228, 265 n. 244), 276, 306, 307, 3 1 9, 320, 326, 337, 344, 354, 356, 380, 388, 396, 358", 359', 3 7 1 ', 4 1 1 , 414 n. 273, 415, 420, 424, 425, 429, 432, 437, 439, 450, 454, 456, 460, 467, 47 1 , 484, 498, 520, 526, 528, 546, 549, 552, 562, 564, 565, 569, 588, 623, 748, 773, 786, 799, 823, 833, 855, 856, is one of the three modes of time, 219, cf. 224, 226, see also Coexistence, Substance Single (einig, einzeln, einzig), xiii', viii, xxxix n. 144, 1 5, 1 9, 2 1 , 47, 48, 99, 1 2 1 , 1 17' n . 1 38, 1 27', 130, 149, 1 73, 1 80, 205, 214, 2 1 8, 282, 284, 369, 400, 360', 366', 398', 441 , 48 1 , 5 1 0, 567, 578, 59 1 , 600 n. 27, 602, 604, 608- 10, 6 1 5, 6 1 8, 634, 649 bL n. 280, 65 1 , 658, 666, 667, 677, 68 1 , 686, 687, 694, 700, 7 1 0, 7 1 1 , 7 1 3, 7 14, 725, 739, 749, 760, 764, 798, 8 15-19, 842-44, 846, 856, 861, 866, 868, cf. 1 56, see also Individual, Singular, Unitary Singular(ity) (Einzeln[heit), Singular), 95-96, 1 1 8, 97', 1 36 n. 210 inc!. br. n. 2 1 Oa, 205, 377, 405', 407, 741 br. n. 3 1 , 742 br. n. 38, see also Single, Individual, Unitary Skeptical (skeptisch), xxii', manner, 5 14, 785; procedure, 792, 797, cf. 884; method, 45 1 -52, 535, 884; presentation, 5 1 3; objections, 388'-89'; polemic (polemiciz ing), 79 1 ; attack, 796; step, 789; aberrations, 795; hopelessness, 434; use of pure reason, 784; satisfaction of pure reason, 786; idealism (idealist), 377'-78'; spec tators, 822; see also Skepticism Skepticism or skeptic (Skeptizismus, Zweifelsucht, Skeptiker), ix', viii inc!. br. n. 42, xxxiv, xxxvi, 23, 1 28, 168, 434 inc!. br. n. 17, 45 1 , 535, 789, 792-93, 795-97, 857, is a resting-place but not a dwelling-place for human reason, 789, see also Skeptical, Doubt Soil (Boden), ix', 1 n. 1 53, 801, see also Ground, Terrain, Territory Solon, 883 inc!. br. n. 279 Somatology (Korperlehre), 3 8 1 ', see also Body Something (etwas), as such, see As such; third, see Third; see also Thing, Third, Nothing Sophism (sophisma), 402' inc!. br. n. 237, 4 1 1 inc!. br. n. 258, 528 inc!. br. n. 1 48, see also Sophistries, Sophist, Sophistical Sophist (Sophist), 354, 530, see also Sophistical, Sophism, Sophistries Sophistical (sophistisch), 86, 88, 3 13, 3 5 1 ', 388', 449, 7 1 7 n. 265 inc!. br. n. 265a, see also Sophist, Sophism, Sophistries Sophistries (Sophistikationen), 397, see also Sophism, Sophist, Sophistical Soul (Seele), xiv', xxvii-xxix inc!. br. n. 1 10, xxx br. n. 124, xxxii, 37, 50, 69, 9798 inc!. br. ns. 153 and 1 55, 1 03, 1 27 n. 48, 1 1 1', 1 24', 1 80, 374, 394, 400, 402 inc!. n. 25, br. ns. 22 and 23, 403, 406 br. n. 37, 348', 350'-5 1 ', 354', 355' br. n. 73, 356'-62' inc!. br. ns. 78, 79, 89, and 94, 364'-65', 3 8 1 " 382', 384'-85' , 389'-90', 394', 400'-403' inc!. br. n. 232, 405', 4 1 3 - 1 5 inc!. n. 275 and 275f, 417 br. n. 277, 420, 427, 428, 432, 496, 506, 659 inc!. br. n. 34 1 . 669, 70 1 . 7 10- 1 2 inc!. br. n. 235, 7 1 8, 723 br. n . 300, 769, 773, 778, 784 br. n . 24 1 , 799, 802-3 inc!. br. n. 3 15, 806, 8 1 3, 826, 327 br. n. 23, 833 br. n. 43, 839 br. n. 77,
INDEX
99 1
855, 874, 882, 883 br. ns. 27 1 and 272, cf. 42 1 , human, see Human; and body, see Body; as object of inner sense, see Object (of inner sense); what is real in, 4 1 5 n. 275; as given, see Given; appearances, existence, magnitude, cognition, thought, function, state, freedom of, see these headings; immortality of, see Im mortality, Continuance; permanence of (and proof thereof), see Permanence, Proof; identity of, see Identity, Identical; simplicity of, see Simplicity, Nature (simple); unity, substantiality, incorruptibility, immateriality, spirituality, per sonality, quality, relation of, see these headings; ideality of (the) outer relations (of), see Ideality; power(s) (capacities) of, 1 27 n. 48, 124', 4 1 5 n. 275, 802 br. n. 3 15, cf. 7 10-1 1 ; (of the) world, 669 inc!. br. n. 378; see also I-the, Self, Subject, Mind, Spirit, Substance (thinking), Nature (thinking), Psychology Sound (gesund), (human) understanding, 61 br. n. 144, 632, 8 1 1 ; critique, 797; phi losophy, 434; reason, 883, cf. 740-41 inc!. br. n. 29, 784 inc!. br. n. 242 Source (QueUe), vii" br. n. 5, x', xii' inc!. br. n. 16, xxi', x, xxvi n. 103, xxx, xxxi, 2, 4, 14 n. 2 1 7, 25, 29, 35 n. 23, 55-57, 74, 77, 1 1 8, 1 19, 127 n. 48, 97', 1 14'- 15', 125', 127', 154, 1 88, 194, 198, 249, 250, 274 br. n. 41, 296-97, 3 16, 326-27, 349 br. n. 1, 350, 351 n. 16, 356, 362, 366, 37 1, 375, 386, 424, 504, 582, 609, 615, 661 , 667, 704, 7 1 8, 730, 73 1 , 780, 786, 817, 823, 865-66, sub jective, 97', 1 15', 1 88; apperception, understanding, imagination, sense as, see these headings; of the mind, see Mind; of reason, see Reason, Critique; of cog nition, see Cognition, Apperception; of possibility, concepts, presentations, in tuition, judgments, principles, see these headings; of laws (of nature), see Law, Nature; of the dialectic, see Dialectic-transcendental; see also Power, Ability, Capacity Space(s) (Raum [Riiume]), xxiii", 5-6, 9, 1 8, 37-45 inc!. n. 65, 5 1 , 59-73 inc!. br. n. 1 3 1 , 80-8 1 , 98 incl. br. n. 1 54, 102-3, 1 2 1 -22, 107', 1 17' n. 1 3 8, 136 n. 2 1 0, 1 37, 147, 149, 155 inc!. n. 283, 1 56, 160-62 incl. n. 305 and br. n. 306, 165, 168, 169, I SO, 1 8 1 , 196 inc!. br. n. 203, 204, 206- 1 1 , 214- 1 6 incl. br. n. 122, 219 inc!. br. n. 8, 256-65 inc!. br. n. 220, 270, 274-75, 277, 28 1 , 291 -93, 299, 308, 320-21 inc!. br. ns. 35 and 39, 323, 328, 33 1 -32, 338, 340, 402, 357', 364' n. 99, 373'-77' inc!. n. 142, 379', 3 8 1 ', 385', 386', 394', 404', 4 1 8 inc!. br. n. 280, 419, 438-41 inc!. br. n. 43, 446, 454-57 inc!. n. 1 26, 459 inc!. n. 1 35, 461 inc!. br. n. 152, 463, 466, 467 inc!. br. n. 183, 469, 49 1 , 509, 5 1 1 , 5 1 5, 5 1 8-25, 527, 5 3 1 , 536, 546, 548-50 inc!. n. 23 1 , 552-56, 669-70, 683, 7 1 1 , 743, 748, 75 1-53, 787, 796, 798, 799, 821, is not (does not represent) a property (qual ity, determination, form, condition) of ([or] relations among) things in them selves (their possibility, their existence), 42, 43, 45, 64, 69-7 1 , 274, 323, 332, 369', 522, 563, cf. 37, 39, 44, 55-56, 63, 1 88, 457 n. 126, 459, see also Thing in itself, Being (Wesen); is nothing outside our sensibility (our mind) (nothing but [an inner (kind of)] presentation, a nonentity), 56, 274, 373'-75' inc!. n. 142, 378', 385', 46 1 , 520, cf. 37, 43-45, 148, 207, 305, 369', see also Sensibility; is (to be found) only in our senses (in the world of sense, in us, in me), 59, 148, 370', 373', 375', 550, cf. 42, 69, 522, 647, see also Sense; we can speak of it only from the human standpoint, 42, cf. 43, 7 1 -72; (transcendental) ideality of, 44-45, 53 inc!. br. n. 1 1 2, 55, 308; (objective, empirical, limited) reality of, 44, 56, 377', cf. 5 1 9, see also Reality; necessary objectivity of, see Necessary, Ob-
992
INDEX
ject; objective validity of, 44, 206, see also Valid; transcendental deduction (of the concept) of, 1 1 8-20, see also Deduction; (original presentation of,) is not a (mere, discursive, universal, empirical) concept, 38, 39, 136 n. 2 10; is a singu lar presentation (intuition), 136 n. 2 10; cannot itself be perceived, 207; is empty intuition, 457 n. 126; (original presentation of,) is (a, the) (sensible, pure, a priori, formal, outer) intuition (of outer sense), 39-40, 43, 73, 1 2 1 , 1 36 n. 2 10, 147, 160 incl. n. 305, 203-4, 207, 324, 328, 378', 457 n. 1 26; is the pure image of all magnitudes for outer sense, 1 82, cf. 195; is a (pure, original) form of (our) sensibility (way of perceiving), 43, 45, 59-60, 1 1 8, 169, 3 3 1 , 342, 522, cf. 306 br. n. 172, 377', 647; is a (the) (mere, pure, essential, sensible, subjective) form (modification, foundation) of (all, our) (possible, sensible, a priori, outer) intu ition, xxv, 34 br. n. 16, 36, 56, 63, 66, 72, 120, 1 17' n. 1 3 8, 1 37, 146, 160 incl. br. n. 303, 206, 283, 305, 347, 369', 373', 457 n. 126, 459, 520, 7 5 1 , cf. 37-38, 44 n. 65, 162, 377', see also Intuition, Form; is the (mere, pure) form of (all) outer appearances (appearances of outer senses), 42-43, 50, 1 56, 459, 748; is the form of possible objects, 459, cf. 553; is a (subjective, necessary, formal) condition of sensibility (sensible presentation, [outer] intuition), 42-43, 56, 66, 1 1 1', 427, 522, cf. 38, 60, 7 1 , 102, 1 20-2 1 , 107', 1 36, 293, 536, 647; is a (the) (necessary, formal, a priori) condition of (for) (the possibility of, the existence of) (things as, objects as) (outer) appearances ([outer] experience[s], matter), xxv, 39, 44 incl. n. 65, 66, 1 10', 148, 1 88, 196, 27 1 , 320, 347, 46 1 , 467, 469, cf. 55-56, 69 incl. n. 178, 1 20-22, I l l ', 195, 202-4, 241 , 274, 323, 332, 427, 370', 457 n. 126, 5 1 8; amounts to the possibility of a body as an extended whole, 553, cf. 374' incl. n. 142, 459, 647, see also Possibility; (there) is (we can present) (essentially, only) one, 39, 1 10', cf. 160 n. 305, 162; different, are not sequential but simultaneous, 47; is a whole, (not a [real] composite), 466 incl. br. ns. 1 76 and 177, 552-53, cf. 39, 136 n. 2 1 0, 2 1 1 , 463 ; amounts to an ag gregate, not a series, 439-40, cf. 467, 552, see also Aggregate; is a continuous quantum (consists only of spaces), 2 1 1 inc I. br. n. 9 1 , 463, 522, cf. 320, 438, 748, 753; does not consist of simple parts, 468, cf. 419, 467, 469, see also Sim plicity; cannot cease to be, 553, cf. 38; as such, 39, 196 incl. br. n. 203, 203, 46 1 , cf. 39; determinate, 1 38, 202, 2 14, cf. 203, 268, 29 1 ; pure, 347; math ematical, Euclidean, empirical, 40 br. n. 48; given, see Given; cosmic, 509, 524, 546; filling of, 2 14; empty, 9, 2 14-1 6 incl. br. n. 125, 259, 26 1 , 3 15, 455, 457 incl. n. 126, 459 incl. n. 1 3 5, 46 1 , 5 15, 548-49, 6 1 2, 687, 730, cf. 38-39, 393' ; is an (a priori) source of (principle for) (synthetic a priori) cognition, 36, 55-56, cf. 39 br. n. 43b, see also Cognition; (synthetic a priori) cognition(s) of, 40, 55-56; (necessary, original, basic, pure, a priori, objective, subjective) presen tation of (in, as), xxii n. 93, 37 br. n. 28, 38-40 inel. n. 43, 42-44 inel. n. 65, 57-58, 99'-100', 102', 1 36 n. 2 10, 1 54, 160 inel. br. n. 303 and. n. 305, 202, 207, 241 , 349, 358', 373'-75' incl. n. 142, 385', cf. 80-8 1 , 148, 377'; presen tation of, is a mere schema, 195, cf. 182; (universal, pure, a priori) concept(s) of, 37-41 inel. ns. 37 and 43, br. ns. 32 and 48, 43, 57, 58, 1 18-2 1, 107', 160 n. 305, 195 incl. br. n. 193, 207, 24 1, 3 8 1 ', 753, cf. 33 1 ; their possibility, 1 60 n. 305, cf. 40 br. n. 48; thought (of parts) of, 39, 40, 331, 338, 439; (pure, a priori, original) intuition of (in), 37, 39, 40 br. n. 48, 44, 72, 107' incl. br. n.
INDEX
993
100, 139, 202, 203, 206, 208, 2 1 4, 291 , 292, 358', 393', 467, 469, 522, 585, 752; predicate (property, quality, character) of, 42-43, 69 inc!. n. 1 78, 70, 467; properties (detenninations) of, (are detennined by geometry), 40, 44 n. 65, 358', 387', cf. 39 n. 37, 4 1 , 43, 55-56, 57 inc!. br. n. 1 27, 1 54, 293, 299, 321 br. n. 35, 331-32, see also Geometry; fonn of, 1 62; conditions of, 268; partes) of, 39, 40, 136 n. 210, 2 1 1 , 2 1 6, 320, 333, 419, 439-40, 463, 466, 467-69, cf. 47; mani fold(ness) of (in), see Manifold; synthesis of (the parts, the manifold) of (in), see Synthesis; necessary unity of, 160 n. 305, 1 62, cf. 107, see also Unity; boundary (bounds) of, see Boundary; as an infinite given magnitude, 39 inc!. n. 43 and br. n. 43b, cf. 606, 650, 82 1 , see also Magnitude; infinite divisibility of, 552-53, cf. 320, 5 1 5, 554-55, 650, see also Divisibility; the real in, 215, cf. 375'; things in, see Thing; all existing objects of the senses in all time and in all spaces, 523; necessary use of, 1 95 inc!. br. n. 1 9 1 ; (alleged) absolute reality (self-subsistence) of, 55-57 inc!. br. n. 129, 459 inc!. br. n. 1 3 1 , cf. 40 br. n. 48, 49 inc!. br. n. 89, 64, 369', 457 n. 126, 5 15, 647; as (allegedly) a relation of ap pearances (as only inherent), 56-57, cf. 40 br. n. 48, 42 inc!. br. n. 57; as (al legedly) in itself impossible, 274; in Berkeley, 274; in Leibniz, 323-24, 326-28, 33 1-32; see also Spatial, Time Sparshott, Francis E., xxxiii br. n. 1 32 Spatial (des Raumes), 649 br. n. 279, 650 br. n. 292, relations, 44 n. 65, 5 1 , see also Space Species (Art[enl, Spezies), 230 br. n. 72, 337 br. n. 1 1 5 , 605 inc!. br. n. 66, 679-80, 682-89 inc!. br. n. 1 19, principle of, 682, 683 inc!. br. n. 89; continuum of, 688 inc!. br. n. 127; and subspecies, 683-84, 686-88; the human, 807; see also Speci fication, Genus Specification ·(Spezijikation), xii', 683-88, principle (law) of, 683-87 inc!. br. ns. 1 00, W I , and 104, 694, see also Species, Genus Speculation or speculate (Spekulation. spekulieren), 833 br. n. 47, xxxii, xxxiv, 9, 2 1 , 25 inc!. br. n. 266, 49, 6 1 , 42 1 inc!. br. n. 284, 452, 492, 499 br. n. 44, 6 17-19, 652, 665, 669, 697, 763, 773-75, 777, 804, 824, 826, 846-47, 855, 857, 870, 879, 883, see also Speculative Speculative (spekulativ), 662-63, contrasted with theoretical, 494 br. n. 29, 66263, 833 inc!. br. n. 47, see also Theoretical; cognition, see Cognition, Meta physics; interest, see Interest, Reason; aim, idea, jUdgment, principle, basis, proof, power, understanding, knowledge, science, philosophy, philosopher, the ology, see these headings; (use of) (pure) (human) reason, xxi', xxi-xxv, xxiv, xxviii-xxxi inc!. br. n. 1 17, xxxiv, xxxvi, xxvii, xliii, 29, 395 n. 222, 384, 386, 42 1 , 424 inc!. br. n. 290, 476, 492 br. n. 1 1 , 499 n. 44, 503, 578, 6 1 1 -732 (spe cifically, 6 1 1 , 6 1 8, 634 inc!. br. n. 204, 637, 641 , 648, 658, 663-64, 666-69, 694, 699, 70 1 , 703, 7 12, 729-3 1), 735, 764, 765, 77 1 , 778, 797, 80 1 , 805, 809, 822-25, 827, 832, 835, 843, 846, 869-70, 877, 8 8 1 , see also Reason, Rational; questions, 804, 8 3 1 , 833, 85 1 , see also Reason; way of thinking, 776, cf. 683; point of view (respect), 806, 855; insight, 805; certainty, 777; expansion, 814; claims, 395'; opponent, 383'; dispute, 772, cf. 775, 778; life, vi n. 3 ; building, 784; part of metaphysics, 873; investigators of nature, 683; see also Specula tion
994
INDEX
Sphere (Sphiire, Kugel, Kreis), xxxviii, 8, 97-99 inc!' br. n. 154, 1 12-13, 180, 235, 28 1-82, 297, 309, 3 1 0, 3 1 5, 362, 374, 604, 62 1 , 683-84, 704, 787, 790, 796, 825, logical, practical, moral, see these headings; of concepts, cognitions, ex perience, appearances, objects, principles, judgments, propositions, understand ing, reason, see these headings; of all that is possible, see Possible; see also Realm, Range Spirit (Geist), xi' n. 14, 96', 379' br. n. 163, see also Spiritual, Spirituality, Spiri tualism, Mind, Soul, Intelligence, Attitude; philosophical, 499 n. 44; of thor oughness, xxxvi, xlii; see also Soul, Mind, Intellectual, Way of thinking, Atti tude Spiritual (geistig), nature of the soul, 7 1 2, 826; natures, 808; life, 807-8 Spiritualism or spiritualist (Spiritualismus, Spiritualist), 380', 420-2 1 , 7 1 8 inc!. br. n. 267, see also Pneumatism, Materialism, Spirit, Spiritual, Spirituality Spirituality (Spiritualitiit), (of the soul,) 403, 7 1 2, 807-8, 826, see also Immateri ality, Spirit, Spiritual, Spiritualism, Soul Spontaneity (Spontaneitiit), (act of, exercise of), 68 inc!. br. n. 165, 74-75 inc!. br. ns. 8 and 19, 97', 1 30, 1 32, 1 5 1 , 157 n. 296, 162 n. 3 1 1 , 167 br. n. 333, 278 br. n. 57, 428, see also Activity (-self); through it an object is thought, 75; of (our, my) thought, 93, 102, 157 n. 296, 430, cf. 132, 167 br. n. 333; of concepts, 74 inc!. br. n. 8; the understanding as, 75, 1 26', 150, see also Understanding; the imagination as, 15 1-52, 1 8 1 br. n. 90, 276 n. 52, see also Imagination; of cog nition, 75 incl. br. n. 19, 126', see also Cognition; (absolute [complete], of ac tion,) the causality of freedom as, 473-74, 476, 478 inc!. br. n. 241 , 5 1 6 inc!. br. n. 1 1 3, 561 inc!. br. n. 273, 576-77, cf. 430, see also Freedom; of intuition, 33 br. n. 9, see also Intuition (intellectual); and see Intellectual, Intelligence, Receptivity Stahl, Georg Ernst, xii inc!. br. n. 59 Star (Stem), xvi, 4 1 0, 524, cf. 3 1 3, see also Astronomy State (Zustand, Stand), unchangeable, xxxviii; intrinsic, 330; contingency of, 290 n. 107; nothing has on its own entered the state wherein it is to be found, 650; of the world, 476, 485, 502, 546, cf. 478, 560, 7 1 3; absolutely first, of the world, 477; original, 370; beginning (coming-to-be) of, 236-37, 472-73, 483 n. 250, 561, cf. 477, 7 1 3, see also Beginning; transition from one to another, 213, cf. 230, 23 1 inc!. br. n. 8 1 , 25 1-54 inc!. n. 1 9 1 and br. n. 1 89, 290 n. 1 07, 291-92, 363', 383', 408, 486, 488, 587, 617, see also Change, Variation; (my) inner, 37, 49-50, 400; of presentation, perception, thought, reason, mind, see these head ings; of the soul (the thinking nature), 384', 393', 400'-40 1', cf. 408, 7 1 0-1 1 , see also Soul; the subject's (the person's, one's, my, our [current, future]), 55, 107', 142, 376, 349', 363' inc!. n. 99, 383', 394'-95', 627, 7 1 8, 780 inc!. br. n. 228, 806, 827, 830, cf. 292, 583, 7 1 0- 1 1 , 880, see also Subject; of substance(s), 25 1 , 253, 279-80, 330-32, 363' n. 99, 464, 468, 477, cf. 588, see also Sub stance; of things (objects), 2 1 3, 233-34, 237, 254, 268-69, 279-80, 290 n. 107, 291-92, 323, 331-32, 408, 454, 478, 617, 663, cf. 163, 230, 252 n. 1 9 1 , 264. 363' n. 99, 460, 464, 468, 472-73, 476, 486, 488, 560, 568, 583, 58 7, 588, 700, see also Thing, Object; of a thing in itself, 360; of motion, 252 n. 1 9 1 , cf. 163, 290 n. 107, 363' n. 99, see also Motion; of rest, 290 n. 107, 612; of efficient
INDEX
995
causes, 475, cf. 57 1 ; of the not yet acting cause, 473; of complete freedom, 772; of nature (of injustice and violence), see Nature; crude (of crudeness), 776, 880; shaky (wavering, of vacillation), 19, 503, 643, cf. 79; secure, xxxvi; of tran quillity, 785; of admiration, 656; of philosophizing, 759 n. 1 2 1 ; of our organs, 807; of my assets, 627 inc!. br. n. 169; Aristotle's category of, 107 br. n. 1 96; see also Property, Event Stimulus (Anreiz), 29, 576, cf. 1 n. 153, 349 br. n. 1 , 830, see also Impulse, Incen tive Stoics-the (die Stoiker), 597 Structure or structured (Bau[werk], Gliederbau, Artikulation, gegliedert), xix', xxiii, xxxvii, xxxviii br. n. 141, xliv, 33 br. n. 5, 90, 3 1 3, 369' br. n. 122, 502, 554-55, 654, 7 1 6, 7 19, 86 1 , 863, see also Building, Edifice, System, Articulation Study (Studium, Betrachtung[en], Erlernung, studieren), xv'-xvi', xxxi, 382', 65 1 , 726, 728, 73 1 , 847, 877, 880, cf. 783; see also Observation Subject(s) (Subjekt[eD, human, 384 br. n. 1 7 1 ; as (contained in) appearance (as phe nomenon, phenomenal cause), 68, 156 inc!. n. 292, 228, 428-29, 568, 573 inc!. br. n. 3 14, cf. 506 n. 74, 520, see also Appearance, Phenomenon, Phenomenal; (as part) of the world of sense, 567-68, see also World; as object of inner sense, 68, 357', cf. 37 1 ', 429-30, see also Object (of inner sense), Sense (inner); em pirical character of, 567-68, cf. 573 inc!. br. n. 3 14; existence (occurrence) of (as), 228, 233, 277, 288-89, 300, 405, 410, 4 1 1 n. 259, 412, 419, 422, 429; arising and passing away (ceasing) of, 25 1 , 395', cf. 567; transcendental, ( x,) see Transcendental, X; (as thing) in itself (noumenon), 1 56, 350', 360', 401', 520, 567-69, 573 inc!. br. n. 3 14, cf. 68, 358', 506 n. 74, see also Thing in it self, Noumenon; intelligible character of, 567-68, cf. 573 inc!. br. n. 3 14; as pure intelligence, 770, see also Intelligence; as the soul, 348', 356', 404', 432, cf. 350', 359'-60', 362', 365', 383'-85', 389', 400'-402', see also Soul; (nu merical) identity of, 1 33, 363', 408, 4 1 9 inc!. br. n. 28 1 , cf. 1 55, 233, 32 1 , 404', 430, 569; a single, 7 10, cf. 7 1 1 - 1 2; plurality of, 407, cf. 849; characteristics (properties, determinations) of (inhering in) (myself as), 404-6 inc!. br. n. 30, 355', 365', 47 1 , 573 inc!. br. n. 3 14, cf. 7 10; (formal, particular) character of, 4 1 , 419, 420, 848; organization of, 1 68; simplicity of, see Simplicity, Nature (simple); absolute (necessary, logical, perceived) unity of, 39 1 , 392, 397-98, 352'-54', 356', 365', 401'-2', cf. 47 1 , see also Unity; subsistence (permanence, endurance, continuation) of, 233, 25 1 , 365'-66', 4 1 9, see also Subsistence, Per manence; self-subsistent (of all composition), is a substance, 413, 553, cf. 228, 407, see also Substance; substantiality, immateriality of, see these headings; logi cal (of thought) vs. real (of the inherence of thought), 350', 355', cf. 353'-54', 404'; of (our) thought(s), 350', 358', 402', 429, 433, cf. 349', 407, 4 1 1 inc!. n. 259, 428 inc!. br. n. 306; thinking, xxiii, 155, 278, 39 1 -92, 349', 352', 355', 357', 360', 3 7 1 ', 383'-86', 389', 392'-95', 402', 408, 420, 47 1 , 699 inc!. br. n. 1 86, 7 1 8, 770, cf. 404, 405, 397', 413, 419, 430, is not corporeal, 357' inc!. br. n. 8 1 ; unity of the thinking, 39 1, 392, 352', 402', see also Unity; ,fee also Self (thinking), Substance (thinking), Nature (thinking); as the form of thought, 4 1 1 n . 259; of the categories, 422; the I as, 349'-50', 355', 363', 399', see also I-the, Self; of consciousness. 4 1 1 n. 259, 428-29, see also Consciousness; of all in=
996
INDEX
ner appearances, 506 n. 74; power(s) (capacity, receptivity) of, 42, 72, 1 53, 32 1 , 566; relation of (contingent) conditions (forms of intuition, space, time) to, 5 1 , 54, 60, 79, 1 29, cf. 404 inc!. br. n. 30, 573; reference to, 376, 390-9 1 , 362', 4 1 1 n. 259, 432-33, 627; intrinsic reality of, 32 1 ; realities (combined) in, 320-2 1 , 329, cf. 625; relation of an object (objects, [laws of] appearances [in nature)) to, 4 1 -42, 55, 65, 67, 69 inc!. n. 1 78, 72, 1 64, 207-8, 277; state of, see State; changes (variation) in, 45 inc!. br. n. 70, 250, 363', 569; as simultaneously ac tive and passive, 1 53 inc!. br. n. 278; determination of (in, by), 1 66 n. 324, 250, 277, 355', 429; determining, 407; primary (first), 1 86-87, 25 1 , 399', 464, see also Substance; ultimate, 250-5 1 , 303 n. 1 57, see also Substance; absolute, 348', 553, cf. 349'-5 1 ', 848 ; positing of, 625, 627; annulment of, 59, 622-23; ab solutely necessary (that cannot be annulled), 623 ; (logical, intellectual) presen tation(s) of (in, by), 68, 205, 278, 300, 390-9 1 , 404, 355', 383', 389', 408, 422, 429, see also Presentation; (logical) concept of, I I inc!. n. 200, 43, 96, 264 br. n. 24 1 , 404, 4 1 2, 4 1 9, 422, 625, 764, cf. 1 29; pure self-consciousness of, 422, cf. 429-30, 47 1 ; senses of (in), 44 n. 65, 1 64, 386'; perceptions in, 257, 350', cf. 376; (self-)intuition of (in, by), 4 1 , 43, 54, 69, 68, 155, 363', 408, 4 1 1 , 42 1 , 47 1 , cf. 656, 849; exhibition of, 428-29; manifold in, 68, 1 16', 1 32; combina tion by, 1 30; experience of, 277; cognition of, 1 56, 277, 404, 422, 427, 7 1 8; acquaintance with, 350', 355', 360', 365', 568; knowledge of, 355', 384', 573, cf. 520; problem for, 536; use of reason of, 166 n. 324; idea of, 433, cf. 384 inc!. br. n. 1 7 1 ; act(ion) of (in), 1 54-55, 250, 567, 569, 573; self-activity of, 1 30, 278, cf. 569; volition of, 166 n. 324; causality of, 250-5 1 , 566-68, 573 inc!. br. n. 3 14; of freedom, 43 1 ; of a judgment (proposition), 405, 4 1 1 n. 259, 764; its relation to (connection with) the predicate, 1 0- 1 1 incl. n. 200, 96-98, 1 28-29, 149, 1 86, 192, 205, 264 br. n. 241 , 288-89, 303 n. 1 57, 379, 404, 348'-49', 401 ', 407, 4 1 2, 4 1 9, 43 1 -33, 441 , 621-23, 625-27, see also Predi cate, Substance; and see Subjective, Subject matter Subjective (subjektiv), reality, of concepts and presentations, see Concept, Presen tation; validity, see Valid; signification, source, presentation, concept, percep tion, basis, condition, form, synthesis, unity, cognition, principle, law, deduc tion, sufficiency, necessity, cause, succession, conviction, philosophy, etc., see these headings; see also Subject Subject matter (Gegenstand), viii', cf. 365, 374 br. n. 1 24, 433 inc!. br. n. 1 0, 772 inc!. br. n. 196, see also Topic (Gegenstand), Subject, Object, Matter (Sache) Subreption or surreptitious(ly) (Subreption, Erschleichung, erschlichen, durch Er schleichung), 67 1 inc!. br. n. 14, 10, 53 inc!. br. ns. 1 08, 1 09, and I l l , 1 4 1 n. 230, 1 88, 324, 368, 378', 389', 39 1 ', 392', 402' inc!. br. n. 235, 537, 6 1 1 inc!. br. n. 82, 647, 8 19 br. n. 392, 820 Subsidiary (subaltern), 108, 362, 472, 868; see also Derivative Subsistence or subsist(ent) (Subsistenz, subsistieren[dJ, bestehen[dJ), xxiii, 49, 52. 56, 57, 7 1 . 89. 1 06, 293 inc!. br. n. 1 1 5, 332, 384', 386', 389', 392', 403', 404', 407, 4 1 5 n. 275, 4 1 9, 44 1 , 446 n. 70, 459, 462, 468, 5 15, 5 1 9, 534 inc!. br. n. 168, 594, 643 br. n. 248, 647, 650, 7 1 8, 825, is the existence of substance, 230, cf. 407, 413, 4 1 5 n. 275, 44 1, see also Substance; category of, 1 06; self-, xxiii,
INDEX
997
49, 56, 57 br. n. 1 29, 7 1 , 89, 332, 4 1 3, 4 1 5 n. 275, 459, 468, 5 15, 594, 643 br. n. 248, 647, 825, cf. 5 19, 534 incl. br. n. 168, 650; see also Inherence Substance(s) (Substanz[enD, is (to be found) in all existence, 289, cf. 3 1 5 ; is the immutable in existence, 1 83, cf. 228-29, 300, 710; cannot (itself) arise or pass away (occur), 231-33, 25 1 , 280, cf. 229, 349', 400', 415 n. 275, 477, see also Arising; is the real of appearance that as substrate of all variation remains al ways the same, 225, cf. 1 83, 224 incl. n. 44, 227-33 incl. br. n. 9 1 , 250, 253, 402, 35 1 ', 399'-400', 477, 676, 706, see also Real, Substrate, Variation, Sub stantiality, Appearance; is the permanent in relation to which all time relations of appearances can alone be determined (the substratum [substrates] of all time determination[sD, 225, 228-3 1 , cf. 1 83, 1 86, 224 n. 44, 227, 233, 250-5 1 , 268 incl. br. n. 7, 270, 300, 33 1 , 349', 364'-65' incl. br. n. 102, 401', 412, 414, 4 1 8, 462; is the permanent object of (image belonging to) sensible intuition (sensi bility), 553-54, 800, cf. 149, 227, 29 1 , 293, 303 n. 157, 344, 347, 399', 408, 4 1 2- 1 3 ; principle of its permanence, see Permanence; as a self-subsistent sub ject (being), 407, 4 1 3 , cf. 230, 462, see also Subject; as primary (first) subject (of the causality of all arising and passing away, of all composition), 1 86-87, 25 1 , 399', 464; as ultimate subject (of the mutable, of all other determinations, of all composition), 250-5 1 , 303 n. 157, cf. 553; as what can be thought (can �xist, occur) only as subject but never as mere predicate (determination) (of other things, of anything), 1 49, 1 86, 288-89, 300-30 1 , cf. 129, 348'-49', 401', 410, 489 incl. br. n. 283 ; phenomenal, 1 86 incl. br. n. 1 35, 227, 250 incl. br. n. 1 8 1 , 3 2 1 incl. br. n . 34, 3 3 3 incl. br. n . 93, 589 incl. br. n . 384, i s only a sum of re lations, 321 ; character of, 417; characteristic of, 250, cf. 321 ; predicate of, 399' incl. br. n. 225; (sensible) (intrinsic) determination(s) of, 1 84, 1 86, 224 n. 44, 225 incl. br. n. 54, 227, 229, 232, 257-59 incl. br. ns. 2 1 3 and 2 14, 3 15, 32 1 , 323, cf. 6 , 7 1 , 330, 339, 349', 441 ; state(s) of, see State; form of, 228; quantum of, 224, 225; appearances of, 676, cf. 701 ; accidents of, 1 83, 201 n. 30, 229, 44 1 , 463, 489 incl. br. n. 283, cf. 227, 349', 420, see also Accident; (intrinsic) reality of, 32 1 , 415 n. 275; the real (reality) in, 230, 4 1 5 n. 275, see also Real; (contingent, unconditioned) existence (being, nonexistence, not-being, way of existing) of, 149, 224 n. 44, 225, 227-30, 232-33, 25 1 -52, 259, 280, 288, 289, 292-93, 300-302, 3 15, 3 3 1 , 402 n. 23, 349', 409, 415 n. 275 incl. br. n. 275h, 417 inc I. br. n. 277, 441 , 587-88, 663, cf. 70-7 1 , 1 83, 25 1 , is subsistence, 230, cf. 407, 4 1 3, see also Subsistence, Existence; annulment of, 302; in idea, but not in reality, 35 1'; empirical criterion of, 249; reference to, 1 83, 228, 261 , 302, cf. 701 br. n. 1 97, 720 br. n. 278; idea of, 7 10, 7 1 2 br. n. 239, cf. 351'; concept (conceptual determination) of, 6, 149, 1 86, 249, 25 1 , 269, 278, 29 1 , 300-301 , 321, 349'-5 1', 356', 365', 400'-40 1', 403', 408, 412-13, 553, 705, 707, 7 10, 750, 756, 799, cf. 401-402, 419, 798; category (concept of understanding) of, 1 06, 1 29, 227, 230, 29 1 , 302, 303 n. 1 57, 401-402, 348'-49', 356', 379' incl. br. n. 1 6 1 , 401', 415 n. 275, 422, 429-32, 441 , cf. 107 incl. br. n. 1 96, I l l ; schema of, 1 83, 1 86; cognition of, 402'; knowledge of, 386'; acquaintance with, 3 2 1 ; of (in) the world, 229, 293, 477, 655, 706; things as, 70, 1 82 incl. br. n. 105, 25 1-52, 258 incI. br. ns. 2 1 3 and 214, 268 incl. br. n. 7, 279, 280, 332, 339, 463, 663, cf. 288, 655, 7 10, see also Thing; objects as, 6, 224 n. 44, 227,
998
INDEX
25 1 -52, 321 br. n. 39, 403, 349', 407, 412, 800, see also Object; matter as, 228, 32 1 , 379', 385', 655, 663, cf. 278, 678; a (the) body as, 35, 553, 8 1 3, cf. 129, see also Body; extended, 359', 392', cf. 385'-86'; composite, 35 1', 462-64 inc!. br. n. 163, cf. 1 1 3 , 465-7 1 , 495 inc!. br. n. 3 1 , see also Composite; homoge neous, 678; unity of, 4 1 5 n. 275, 678, 7 1 8 ; simple (simplicity [simple nature] of), xxxii, 321, 403, 35 1'-53', 356'-57', 399'-402', 408-10, 413, 4 1 5 n. 275, 470, 47 1 , 700-70 1 , 7 1 0, 7 1 1 , 7 1 2 br. n. 239, 799, 8 12-13, cf. 420, 462-69; el ementary, 464; isolation (separation) of, 258-59, cf. 292-93, 4 1 5 n. 275; mani foldness (multiplicity) of, 258, 4 1 5 n. 275, cf. 292, 35 1', 353', 363' n. 99, 462 inc!. br. n. 160, 466, 469; influence among, 257-58, cf. 3 3 1 , see also Influence; causality of (contained in), 1 1 1 , 1 83, 259, 302, 676, cf. 249, see also Causality; interaction (reciprocal causality, community, communion) of, 1 1 1 , 1 83, 256-61 inc!. n. 205, 265 n. 244, 269, 288, 292-93, 302, 330-3 1 , 428m 44 1 , 7 1 0, 798-99, cf. 249, 363' n. 99, see also Community, Interaction; simultaneity (si multaneous existence) of, 256 inc!. n. 205, 258-6 1 , 265 n. 244, see also Simul taneity; as having powers of presentation (sensation, etc.), 32 1 , 676-78, cf. 330-3 1 , 359'; thinking, 403, 357', 359', 392', 401 '-2', 409-10, 47 1 , 489 inc!. br. n. 283, 701 , 7 1 8, 8 12, cf. 352', 363' n. 99, see also Thought; the soul (sub ject, mind, thinking being, [the] J) as, 402-3 inc!. n. 23, 348'-5 1 ', 356'-57', 359', 379', 399'-402', 407-8, 410- 1 1 inc!. n. 259, 413, 416-17 inc!. br. n. 277, 419-20, 429, 47 1 , 799, cf. xxxii, 385'-86', 414, 42 1-22, 553, 701 , 7 10, see also Substantiality, Soul, Subject, Mind, Being (Wesen)(thinking), I-the; as objects of pure understanding, 321, cf. 401', 403'; intellectual, 403 ; intelligible (nou menal), 332 inc!. br. n. 90; as things in themselves (noumena), 251-52, 321 , cf. 359', 392', 553-54, see also Thing in itself, Noumenon; relation of action and force(s) to, 249-50, 321-22 inc!. br. n. 39, 352', 676, cf. 330-3 1 ; as having a power of acting from freedom, 478-79, cf. 589 inc!' br. n. 384; dependence of, 25 1-52; a cause valid for all, 33 1 ; a cause of all things as, 703; a perfect being as (a single), 65 1 , cf. 720 br. n. 278, 721-22 br. n. 285, 724 Substantial (substantial), the, (concept of), 44 1 , cf. 402' inc!. br. n. 234; the, in me, 427; see also Substantive, Substantiality, Substance Substantiality (Substantialitiit), of appearances, 232, cf. 250-5 1 , see also Sub stance, Appearance; of the soul ( [myself as] a [thinking] subject), 250-5 1 inc!. br. n. 1 84, 349', 365' inc!. br. n. 102, cf. 348', 350'-51', 402' inc!. br. n. 234, 427, see also Substance (the soul [subject, etc.] as), Soul, Subject; paralogism of, 348'-5 1', 403'; see also Substantial, Substantive Substantive (substantiell), 44 n. 70, 463, 464, 466, 468, 469 inc!. br. n. 192, 701 inc!. br. n. 197, 720 inc!. br. n. 278, 723 n. 30 1 inc!. br. n. 301b, cf. 72 1 inc!. br. n. 285, see also Substantial, Hypostatic, Substantiality, Substance Substrate or substratum (Substrat[um]), is the thing itself, 399', cf. 752, see also Thing; of sensibility, 305 n. 169; primary, of all outer perception, 340, cf. 752, see also Pennanence; of all (empirical) time detennination(s), 1 83, 226, 228, 23 1 , cf. 225, 229, 381 see also Real; of everything real, is substance, 225, cf. 752, see also Substance; of all variation (by appearances), 225, 227, 250, cf. 229, 3 8 1 '; of matter (as appearance), 359'; of appearances, matter (time) as, 225-26, 645, see also Matter, Appearance; of all relational or extrinsic deter"
INDEX
999
minations, 339-40; of intuition, there is none for cognitions beyond experience, 499, cf. 224; transcendental, of outer appearances, 383', cf. 359', see also Tran scendental; of the I (and of all thoughts), 350'; transcendental, in our reason, 603; of the greatest possible unity of experience, 706, cf. 725; common, of all things, 606; see also Basis Subsumption or subsume (Subsumtion, subsumieren), 1 7 1 -72, 176, 178, 223, 304-5, 356-57, 360, 36 1 , 364, 378, 386, 402', 528, 678, 674, see also JUdgment-power of Subterfuge (A usflucht) , 206, 3 1 3, 338 n. 124, 459, 469, see also Escape Subtle(ty) (Subtil[itiitl, Argutation), viii, xxxii, xxxiv, 6 1 , 296, 466, 530, 539, 565, 626, 652, 704, 728, 8 8 1 , reasoning, see Reasoning Succeed ifolgen), 232-34 inc!. n. 87 and br. n. 1 1 0, 237-4 1 , 243-49 inc!. br. ns. 142 and 160, 252, 257 inc!. br. n. 208, 259, 264, 268, 290 n. 107, 301, 3 1 6, 453 n. 1 1 2, 488, see also Follow, Succession, Successive, Successor Succession (Sukzession, Folge, Abfolge, Aufeinandetfolgen), 46, 58, 67, 149, 1 54, 1 83, 209, 2 19, 224, 226 inc!. br. n. 57, 232-35 inc!. br. n. 86, 237-43, 246-50 inc!. br. n. 176, 252 inc!. br. n. 1 89, 257, 26 1, 292, 30 1 , 476, 478, 488, 520, 528, 579, 5 8 1 , is one of the three modes of time, 219, cf. 224, 226; concept of, 528; temporal, 232, 246, 248, 249, 257, 579, 5 8 1 i subjective, 238, 239, 241 -42; objective, 238, 240, 24 1 ; agreeing, 240; necessary, 240; reciprocal, 257; see also Sequence, Consequence, Succeed, Successive, Successor, Series Successive (sukzessiv, aufeinander [nacheinanderl folgend), 103', 154, 1 55 n. 283, 1 82, 184, 203-4, 209- 10, 225, 232, 234-36, 243, 246, 252, 261 bL n. 228, 292, 300, 362', 439, 444, 454 inc!. n. 1 19, 456, 460, 473, 476, 478, 5 1 3, 528, 529, 534, 552, .580, see also Sequential, Succession Successor (Nachfolger), 862, see also Follower, Succession, Succeed Sufficiency (Zuliinglichkeit), 618, 755 n. l OS, 783, 842; subjective, 850; objective (intrinsic), 850, cf. 617; supreme, 640; see also Sufficient Sufficient (zuliinglich, hinliinglich, hinreichend, genug[samD, vii', xvii', xviii', xxxiii, xxxviii, 83, 84, 89-90, 1 1 7, 1 23, 96', 173, 175, 1 90-9 1 , 246 inc!. br. n. 160, 250, 265, 268, 275, 295, 302, 3 1 9, 343, 363, 370, 389, 402 n. 25, 352' n. 57, 359', 365', 37 1 ', 376', 414 n. 273, 415 n. 275, 427, 469, 474, 489, 50S, 5 1 8-20, 544, 564, 585, 602, 6 1 3, 614 bL n. 93, 6 1 5, 635, 639, 655, 656, 667, 669, 676, 679, 701 , 704, 731, 756, 763, 772, 802, 804, 8 1 1 , 832, 843, 845, 852, 853, 855, 870, 877, 882, cf. xiii', xxxii, 45, 304, 335, 349, 369', 377', 420, 617 br. n. 106, 668, 768, 7 8 1 , 800, 85 1 , subjectively, 850 inc!. br. n. 123, 8 5 1 ; ob jectively, 6 1 7 inc!. br. n. 105, 848, 850 inc!. br. n. 1 23; absolutely, 852; self-, see Self; all-, 608, 647, 649, 655, 668, 700, 7 1 3, 71 4; basis (reason), see Basis (sufficient), Basis-principle of sufficient; see also Adequate, Sufficiency Sufficient basis (reason)-principle of (Satz des zureichenden Grundes), see Basis-principle of sufficient Sum (total) (Inbegriff, Summe), xxvi n. 103, 1 5- 16, 25-26, 90, 99, 1 1 4', 1 25' br. n. 168, 163, 1 85, 194, 220, 236, 262, 281 , 282, 296, 300, 3 12, 321, 391, 3 8 1 ', 436, 446 n. 70, 447-48, 459, 465, 479, 482, 483, 508, 535, 561 , 587, 600-60 1 inc!. n. 27, 605, 607, 6 10, 6 1 1 br. n. 82, 699 br. n. 86, 700, 702, 724, 735, 744, 745 br. n. 53, 787, 824, 829 n. 28, 873, 874, see also Total
1 000
INDEX
Sulzer, Johann Georg, 769 incl. br. n. 1 8 1 Superhuman (iibermenschlich), see Suprahuman Supernatural (iibematiirlich), see Supranatural Supersensible (iibersinnlich), see Suprasensible Superstition (Aberglaube), xxxiv Suprahuman (iibermenschlich), ii br. n. I , 654, see also Supranatural, Human Supranatural (iibematiirlich), xxi incl. br. n. 88, 88 incl. br. n. 9 1 , 390', 728 incl. br. n. 3 14, 801 inel. br. n. 306, 873 incl. br. n. 228, see also Hyperphysical, Su prasensible, Suprahuman, Natural Suprasensible (iibersinnlich), xxi, see also Supranatural Supreme or highest (oberst, hochst), being, see Being (Wesen), God; cause, (nec essary,) see Cause, Necessary; causality, condition, basis, existence, reality, in telligence, understanding, reason, cognitive power, power, will, ruler, origina tor, wisdom, interest, purposiveness, purpose, good, perfection, sufficiency, unity, magnitude, principle, law, concept, see these headings; philosophy, 859; logi cal use of reason, 392; extension of the investigation of nature, 844; maxims, 879; (stand)point, 1 33 n. 202, 687; genus, 686, 687; degree, 60, 374, 690, 705, 730; member (of [in] a series), 483, 486, 588-89, 700, 87 1 ; empirical element, 1 25' incl. br. n. 1 64; tribunal, 697, 768; bliss, 838 Surreptitious (erschlichen, durch Erschleichung), see Subreption Suspicion or suspect (Verdacht, verdiichtig, ahnen), viii', ix', xi' n. 14, 9, 1 20, 1 88, 399', 467, 5 1 8, 598, 738, 766, 783, 797, 802, 8 1 3 incl. br. n. 366, 824 incl. br. n. 4 Swing, Thomas K., 366 br. n. 94, 399 br. n. 9, 348' br. n. 42, 35 1 ' br. n. 50, 361' br. n. 91, 366' br. n. 1 1 2, 454 br. n. 1 13, 462 br. n. 156, 480 br. n. 242, 595 br. n. I , 620 br. n. 1 1 8, 631 br. n. 1 80, 648 br. n. 272 Syllogism (Vemunftschluj3), 357, 364, 379, 96 incl. br. n. 147, 356, 360-6 1 incl. br. n. 6 1 , 363 incl. br. n. 76, 366, 378 incl. br. n. 146, 388, 397, 410, 432, 525, 605, categorical, 141n 230, 337 br. n. 1 1 5 , 361, 392, 432; hypothetical, 1 0 1 , 361, 392, 433, 6 1 6, cf. 8 1 7 - 1 9 incl. br. ns. 3 8 4 and 390; disjunctive, 361, 393, 433 br. n. 9, 604-5 ; necessary, 397; pure, 141n 230; form of, 390; wrongness of, as regards form, 399; fallacious, 390 br. n. 197; subtly reasoning, 397 inel. br. n. 4, see also Reasoning; dialectical, 366, 397-98, 402', cf. 527-28; psy chological (of transcendental [rational] psychology), 350', 353' incl. br. n. 67, 402'; cosmological, 527-28; transcendent, 366; see also Reason (inference of), Syllogistic, Prosyllogism, Episyllogism, Inference, Proof, Argument, Conclu sion, Logic Syllogistic (syllogistisch), figures, 141 n 230; relation among God, freedom, and immortality, 395 n. 222 incl. br. n. 222c; see also Syllogism Synonymous (gleichbedeutend, synonymisch), 369, 381, 402 n. 25, 729, cf. xxxiii br. n. 132, 1 1 br. n. 201 , 33 br. ns. 7 and 10, 169 br. n. 3, 203 br. n. 38, 299 br. n. 1 38, 376 br. n. 1 36, 382 br. n. 1 66, 472 br. n. 203, 495 br. n. 30, 574 br. n. 3 17, 610 br. n. 80, 670 br. n. 7, 721 br. n. 283, 737 br. n. 1 9a, 742 br. n. 4 1 , see also Homonymous Synopsis (Synopsis), 97', 1 27 n. 48
INDEX
1 00 1
Synthesis (Synthesis), is combination, 102, 130 inc!. br. n. 1 90, 150, 1 5 1 , 160, cf. 103, 101', 109', 1 1 8', 1 25' inc!. br. n. 169, 184, 201 n. 30, see also Combina tion; is the opposite of (yet is presupposed by) analysis, 130, cf. 103, see also Analysis; in the most general sense, is the act of putting presentations with one another and of comprising their manifold in one cognition, 103, cf. 14, 102, 104, 97', 102', 1 1 3', 1 1 8', 1 96, 267, 649, see also Cognition; is performed by (an ac tive power called) the imagination, see Imagination; (bringing it to concepts) is an act (function) of the understanding, 103, 130 inc!. br. n. 1 90, cf. 104, 1 1 9', 1 39, 140, 144-45, 1 52, 153, 156 n. 292, 1 62, 390, 526, 795, see also Under standing; possible, 1 5 1 ; as such (in general), 103, 1 30 br. n. 190, 224; subjec tive, 240, cf. 397'; sensible, 1 24'; given, see Given; empirical, 99', 10 1', 108', 140, 162 n. 3 1 1 , 1 64, 196, 259, 281, 282, 367, 368, 392, 434, 436, 490, 507, 5 1 5 , 527-28, 538, 547, 649, 75 1 , 794, cf. 1 1 8', 21 7, 220, 267, 750, see also Imagination, Experience, Empirical; in an empirical consciousness as such, see Being (Sein); reproductive, 102', 1 1 8', cf. 152; productive, 1 1 8', 2 1 2, cf. 204, 2 1 1 , 287; thoroughgoing, 101'; necessary, 97', 1 35 inc!. br. n. 208, 1 5 1 , cf. 106', see also Necessary; pure, (a priori), 103-4, 25, 99', 101', 1 1 6', 1 1 8', 1 1 9', 1 23', 1 24', 135, 140, 1 8 1 , 795, cf. 1 5 1 , 1 52, 196, 750, 757; evident, 452; formative, 27 1 , cf. 287; figurative, 1 5 1 -52, 154; mathematical (use of), 1 99, 200 br. n. 22, 221, 557, cf. 201 n. 30, 8 1 0, see also Mathematical; dynamical (use of), 199, 557, 558, cf. 201 n. 30, see also Dynamical; categorical, 279, 379-80; hypo thetical, 379-80; disjunctive, 379-80; objective, 240, 397', 433; transcendental (of imagination), see Transcendental, Imagination; intellectual, see Intellectual; successive (sequential), 155 n. 283, 204, 209- 10, 246, 258, 439, 444, 454 inc!. n. 1 1 9, 456, 460; progressive, 438, cf. 507; regressive, 438, 440, 443-44, 5 14, 538 inc!. br. n. 1 84, cf. 447, 527, 533; decomposing, 533; conditioned, 390; un conditioned, 390; unconditioned (absolute) beginning of, 495, 5 1 1 , cf. 558; fi nite, 5 1 1 ; to be continued ad infinitum, 5 1 1 ; surpassing all possible experience, 447, cf. 499, 456 inc!. n. 1 2 1 , 5 1 1 , 8 1 2; abstract, 453, cf. 526; extensive, 14; uniform, 75 1 ; secure, 14; precariousness of, 28; interrupted, 212; arbitrary, 269, cf. 267; chosen, 757; special kind of, 122, see also Cause; of (the manifold of) (possible) presentations, 104-5, 105', 133-37 inc!. br. n. 208, 1 57, 1 84, 194, cf. 97', 99'-1 00', 103', 202, 209, 356', see also Presentation; of (by, in) (the) imagi nation, see Imagination; of (in) apprehension, 97'-1 00', 102', 108', 1 1 3', 121', 160-64 inc!. n. 3 1 1 , 204, 237, 240. 246, cf. 202, 257, 258, 271 , is that combi nation of the manifold in an empirical intuition (cf. 99') whereby perception be comes possible, 1 60, cf. 161-62, 164, see also Apprehension, Perception; of ap prehension, is perception, 162 inc!. br. n. 3 10, is empirical, 108', 1 62 n. 3 1 1 , can be performed empirically or a priori, 99'-1 00', cf. 102', is linked insepa rably with the synthesis of reproduction, 1 02', cf. 97', 121', constitutes the tran scendental basis for the possibility of all cognitions as such, 102', (and) must conform to the a priori conditions of appearances (to the synthesis of appercep tion), 1 1 3', 1 62 n. 3 1 1 , cf. 160-64; of sensations, see Sensation; of what is given, 283, cf. 748; of (possible) perceptions, 1 84, 2 1 8, 223, 750 n. 80, 792, cf. 748, see also Experience, Concept; of (the manifold of) (in) (sensible) intuition(s), see Intuition. Imagination, Categories, Cognition; of two numbers, 205 inc!. br.
1 002
INDEX
n. 58; of aggregation, 201 n. 30; of coalition, 201 n. 30; of the homogeneous (manifold), 162, 201 n. 30, 205, 300, 558, 748, cf. 1 82, 556; of the heteroge neous (physical or metaphysical combination), 556, cf. 201 n. 30; of reproduc tion, 97', 100'-102', requires the consciousness that what we are thinking is the same as what we thought an instant before, 103', (i.e.,) the empirical conscious ness of the identity of the reproductive presentations with the appearances through which they were given, and hence recognition, 1 1 5'; of recognition, 97', 1 03'-10'; of apperception, 160, 162 n. 3 1 1 , cf. 1 1 1 '-12', 1 33, 401', 6 1 1 n. 83, see also Apperception; of the conditions of (empirical, pure) thought (thought as such), 396'-97', see also Thought; of (possible) consciousness, 1 30 n. 1 9 1 ; of thoughts, 402'; of the thought with the subject, 397'; of concepts (of predi cates with concepts), xxi', 1 1 n. 200, 1 2- 1 4, 27-28, 1 94, 8 10, cf. 160 n. 305, 267, 624 n. 148; according to concepts, 1 04, 108', 1 1 1 '-1 2', 195; of (in, ac cording to) (the) pure concepts of understanding (categories), 150-52, 1 99 inc!. br. n. 17, 200 br. n. 22, cf. 104-5, 120, 303 n. 157; of (possible) experience, 223, 367, cf. 267; of our cognition, 649; of (the manifold) ([contained] in) ap pearance(s), 108', 1 1 2', 1 1 3', 120', 123', 1 96, 212, 221, 509, 5 1 4, cf. 122, 123, 1 85, 212, 224, 236, 243, 27 1 , 305 n. 169 incl. br. n. 16ge, 365, 364', 379', 406', 433-34, 444, 446, 509, 5 14, 525, 527, 533, 557, 567, 768, cf. 125' incl. br. n. 169, 195, 223, 246, 443, see also Appearance; of thinking things, 365, see also Thing (thinking); of objects, 365, 383, 75 1 , 794, cf. 397', 752, see also Object; (of the manifold) in space (time), 122, 155, 300, 439, 527, 752, cf. 1 1 2', 1 60-6 1 , see also Space, Time; o f (the [manifold] parts o f) space(s) (time[s]), 1 82 inc!. br. n. 98, 184, 206, 255, 439, cf. 202-3; in the production of a magnitude, 208, 2 1 1 -12, 221 , cf. 752; in a subject, 379, see also Subject; of (the members of) a series, 379-80, 438-40, 538, 801 , cf. 1 1 2', 436, 442-44, 460, 528-29, see also Series; of the conditioned, 379-80, 526-28, see also Conditioned; of condi tions, 380, 382, 396'-97', 434, see also Condition; of cause and effect, 1 24, cf. 1 22, 558, see also Cause; of uniform ascent, 2 1 8; of the parts of a quantum (of units), 454 inc!. n. 1 19, 456 inc!. n. 1 2 1 , 460; of the parts in a system (parts of a whole), 379-80, 460, see also System, Whole; of events in the world, 5 16; of the parts of an infinite world, 456 inc!. n. 1 2 1 ; of all predicates that are to make up the complete concept of a thing, 600, cf. 606, 630, 638; presentation of, 456 n. 121, 460; consciousness of, 1 33-34; (pure) concept(s) (category) of, 106 inc!. br. n. 190, 162, 378, cf. 1 04-5; condition(s) of (in), 1 6 1 , 495, 525; possibility of, 134, 444, 606, 630, 8 10, cf. 638; (objective) reality of, 1 97, 624 n. 148; (ob jective) validity of, 1 22, 1 96-97; truth of, 1 96-97; construction of, 757; func tion of, see Function; power of, see Imagination; act of, see Act, Understand ing; principles of, see Principle; rule(s) of (for), 122-23, 1 80-8 1 , 1 85, 221 , 263, 450, 538, 748, 750 n. 80, 75 1 , see also Categories, Concept; member(s) of, 368, 392; harmony of, 1 84; unity of (in), see Unity; totality (completeness) of (in), see Reason, Series; see also Combination, Assembly, Composition, Synthetic, Analysis Synthetic (synthetisch), directly, 764; objectively and subjectively, 286; (a priori) judgments, their possibility and their principle, see Judgment, Principle; condi tion, (a priori) presentation, concept, thought, cognition, proposition, principle,
INDEX
1 003
rule, unity, activity, see these headings; ability, 233; procedure (proceeding), xxi n. 87, 263 inc!. br. n. 238; method, 264 inc!. br. n. 242; bringing about of defi nitions, 759; comparing, 194; connection (linking), 73 br. n. 1 88, 1 92, 760; com bination, 1 2, 73, 108', 138; addition of predicates (of determinations, of part of an experience, of an object), 1 2, 286, 627; determination(s), 40, 386, 47 1 , 497; characteristics, 477; question, 665 ; presuppositions, 490; establishing (decid ing), 66, 88; answer, 398'; solution, 282, 398'; expansion of cognition, 23; as sertion, 3 14, 770; pronouncement, 2 1 7, cf. 332; influence, 154; use of the cat egories, 300 n. 144; using of a function, 392; referring of the principles of understanding, 303 inc!. br. n. 1 60; context, 4 1 6; order, 395 n. 222 inc!. br. n. 222d; exhibition of a system, 26; see also Analytic (analytisch) System (System), as such, general conception of, 29; is a structured whole, 8606 1 , see also Whole; is the unity of manifold cognitions under an idea, 860-61 , cf. 90, 673, 863, see also Idea; contrasted with aggregate, see Aggregate; struc ture (articulation) of, xix', xliv, 90; synthesis of the parts in, 379, cf. 69 1 , see also Synthesis; coherence in, 89-90, 673, see also Coherence; form and unity of, see Form, Unity; schema of, 863; oneness and extension of, 683, cf. 26; com prehensiveness of, xxi'; complete (completeness of), 26, 27, 90, 1 07-8, 346, 736, see also Completeness; principles for, xxi', 108, see also Principle; exhibition of, 26; art of, 860, see also Architectonic; critique of, xii', 27, see also Critique; sturdiness of, xix'; salutary, 784; transcendental, philosophical, metaphysical, doctrinal, intellectual, rational, sensualist, theological, mystical, necessary, geo metric, decimal, see these headings; all, are united purposively among one an other in a system of human cognition, 863, cf. 72 br. n. 1 83, 665 br. n. 364, 868; of cognition, is science, 860, cf. 336, 863, 866, 869, see also Science; of pure understanding's (understanding's pure) cognition, 14 n. 217, 90, 673, cf. 683, 688, see also Understanding; of pure (speculative) reason (its cognitions), xxi', 14 n. 2 17a, 25 incl. br. n. 269, 27, 109, 167 inc!. br. ns. 328 and 335, 249, 394, 736, 869, cf. xxxviii, 26, 502, 766, 860, 863, 880, its possibility, xxi', 26, see also Reason, Metaphysics, Critique; of all philosophical cognition, see Philoso phy; of philosophy, metaphysics, nature, the world, concepts, ideas, principles, freedom, morality, see these headings; of (rational) psychology, 153, 416- 1 8; of physical influence, 390'; of predetermined harmony, 390'; of (supranatural) assistance, 331 inc!. br. n. 8, 390'; of epigenesis, 1 67; of preformation, 167; of noogony, 327; of space and time, 33 1 ; of heavenly bodies, 664 br. n. 358, cf. 691 inc!. br. n. 142; of investigation, 766; supposed, of intellectual cognition, 336; of delusions and deceptions, 739, cf. 395', 863; of caution and self examination, 739; of happiness (proportionate to morality), 837, see also Mo rality; of (all) purposes, 844, 847; of Kant's three Critiques, 72 br. n. 183, 665 br. n. 364, cf. 868; see also Unity, Order (Ordnung), Coherence, Organization, Structure, Whole, Systematic Systematic (systematisch), unity is what first turns common cognition into science, 860, see also Unity, Metaphysics; coherence, 396, 403', 686, 708, 869, cf. 8 14; accordance, 676; order, xx', 726; arrangement, 396'; structure, xxxviii br. n. 141; organization, 709; whole, 825; completeness, 683, cf. 705; enumeration, xiv'; connection, 728; combination (linking), 1 87, 554 br. n. 246, 693; division, 109,
1 004
INDEX
605, cf. 106; presentation, 1 97, 395 n. 222, 4 1 2, 677, cf. 92, 98'; precision, 435; character of cognition, 673, cf. 688, see also Cognition; what is, in the sciences, 736, see also Science; doctrine, 303, cf. xxx, xxxvi; use of reason, 7 1 1 , 725, cf. 8 14, see also Reason; use of understanding, 799; method, 765, cf. 884; proce dure, 884; topic, 109; survey, 795; see also System Task (Geschiijt, Aufgabe), ii br. n. 1, viii', xi', xviii', xvi, xxii, xxv, xxxvi, 36, 90, 1 04, 1 7 1 , 173-74, 1 87, 193, 297, 332, 349 br. n. 1 , 35 1 , 3 6 1 , 365, 369, 380, 390, 507 br. n. 77, 550, 640-41 , 653, 685, 7 1 8, 735, 737, 752-53 incl. br. n. 88, 8 1 7, 857 n. 1 5 1 , 863, 867, cf. 573, see also Business, Project, Occupation Tautology or tautological (Tautologie, tautologisch), 1 1 3, 227, 302, 355', 366', 625, see also Analytic (analytisch) Technical (technisch, kunstmiij3ig), xii br. n. 53, xvii br. n. 73, 1 1 br. ns. 198 and 200b, 208 br. n. 75, 3 1 6 br. n. 4, 45 1 , 495 br. n. 30, 736, 86 1 -63 incl. br. n. 1 61 , 875, cf. 96 incl. br. n. 139, see also Art Teleology or teleological (Teleologie, teleologisch), 374 br. n. 1 24, 648 br. n. 272, 665 br. n. 364, 715-16, 7 19, 720-21 br. n. 282, 867 incl. br. n. 1 88, cf. 555 br. n. 246, 650 br. n. 285, see also Purposiveness, Physicotheology Temporal (zeitlich, Zeit-), xxxii, xxxix br. n. 144c, 696 br. n. 1 68, 825 br. n. 9, cf. 41 br. n. 52, 375 br. n. 1 29, succession, 232 incl. br. n. 86, 246, 248, 249 incl. br. n. 1 76, 257, 579, 58 1 ; see also Time Terrasson, Jean, Abbott, xviii'-xix' br. n. 30 Terrain (Boden), 7, 753, 77 1 , 784, see also Territory, Ground, Soil Territory (Boden, Platz, Land), xv, 174, 294 br. n. 126, 295, 352, 496, 822, see also Terrain, Ground, Soil Thales of Miletus, xi incl. br. n. 52 Theist(ic) (Theist[isch]), 659-6 1 , 769, see also Deist, Monotheism, Polytheism, Atheism, Theology, God Theological (theologisch), 619, 633, 64 1 br. n. 237, 642 br. n. 247, 648, 650 br. n. 285, 653, 656-58, 660 n. 344, 665, 699, 701 , 7 1 8, 723 n. 30 1 , 845, cognition, idea, ideal, morality, see these headings; system of nature, 7 1 8; works, 641 br. n. 237; significance, 845; see also Theology Theology (Theologie, Gotteserkenntnis), 7 1 , 39 1-92, 395 n. 222, 397', 608, 632, 648 br. n. 278, 649 br. n. 280, 656, 659-61 incl. n. 344, br. ns. 335, 336, 338, and 340, 664, 665 br. n. 364, 666, 668-70, 700, 7 1 6 br. n. 261 , 7 1 8, 723, 842, 844, 847, 855, 874 incl. br. n. 23 1 , 880 incl. br. n. 260, 88 1 , cf. 657, natural, of nature, rational, of reason, transcendental, moral, see these headings; pure, 7 7 1 ; speculative (based o n speculative principles), 659-70, 842, cf. 395 n . 222, cri tique thereof, 659-70; revealed, 659 incl. br. n. 335; principle of, see Principle; object of, see Object, God; see also Ontotheology, Cosmotheology, Physicothe ology, Theological, Theist, God, Religion Theoretical (theoretisch), contrasted with speculative, see Speculative; (sources of) cognition, see Cognition; judgment, proof, science, power, relation, see these headings; part of philosophy, see Philosophy; question, 833; justification (le gitimation, support), 19 br. n. 235, 496, 848 br. n. 1 1 3, cf. 6 1 7 br. n. 1 06, 804; decision, 617 br. n. 106; assent, 853, 855, cf. 852; (use of) reason (ideas), 43 1 ,
INDEX
1 005
661 , 837, cf. xxx br. n. 1 24; insufficiency, 852, cf. 6 1 7 br. n. 106, 804; as tronomy, 3 1 3 incl. br. n. 200; see also Theory Theory (Theorie, Lehre), vii' br. n. 5, xii' br. n. 1 6, xii br. ns. 56, 59, and 60, xvii br. n. 73, xliv, 35 br. n. 23a, 49, 53, 58, 63, 66, 68, 72, 98', 167 incl. br. n. 327, 1 89, 274, 396, 388'-90' incl. br. n. 20 1 , 395', 428, 656 br. n. 3 1 8, cf. 769 br. n. 1 8 1 , 833 br. n. 47, see also Doctrine, Theoretical Thesis (Thesis, Satz), xxii' incl. br. n. 40, 448 inc I. br. n. 80, 454, 458, 460, 462, 466, 470 incl. br. n. 1 89, 472, 476, 480, 484, 487, 494 incl. br. n. 28, 503, 534, 559 br. n. 265, 661 incl. br. n. 3 5 1 , 768 br. n. 1 74, see also Proposition, Prin ciple, Antithesis, Antinomy of pure reason Thetic (Thetik), 448, see also Dogma, Doctrine, Antithetic Thing(s) (Ding[e], Sache[n]), essence of, 721 -22; nature of, see Nature; as such (in general), xxvii incl. br. ns. 104 and 106, 5 1 -52 incl. br. ns. 99 and 102, 1 1 4, 1 78, 1 83, 1 86, 298 incl. br. n. 1 35, 300 n. 144, 303 incl. n. 1 57, 322, 327-29, 335-37, 339, 340, 365, 391, 398, 349', 410, 435, 443, 485, 590, 594, 600, 608, 610, 6 1 1 br. n. 82, 628, 644, 698, 722, 747-48 incl. br. n. 69, 809, see also Thing in itself, As such; itself (themselves), 49, 67, 7 1 , 1 14, 258, 289, 300 n. 144, 3 1 8, 323, 324, 337 br. n. 1 15, 340, 382, 399', 589, 601 , 609, 625, 642, 663, cf. xxxix n. 144, 1 82, 379'; as objects of intuition (the senses, experience), see Object, Intuition, Experience; as appearances, see Appearance, Space, Time; as substance(s), substrate, see these headings; possible ( [real, transcendental, in trinsic] possibility of), 43, 1 14, 178 incl. br. n. 66, 1 88, 258, 267, 268, 269 br. n. 12, 270-72, 274, 284, 287 n. 96, 288, 291 , 293, 300 n. 144, 302, 306, 308, 323, 381, 398, 435, 590, 599-601 incl. n. 27, 603, 605-7 incl. b� n. 60, 609- 1 1 incl. n . 83, 6 1 3 , 614, 624-25 incl. n . 148, 635, 636, 640, 705, 799, 809, 844, see also Possible, Possibility, Postulate; necessary ([extrinsic, absolute] neces sity of), 267, 279, 382, 621-23, 635-36, 640, 643, 644, 662, cf. 485, 616, 645 ; contingent, 29 1 , 588, 591, 632 inel. br. n. 1 92; actuality of, see Actuality, Pos tulate; existence of, see Existence, Real; being of, 628, see also Being (Sein); true, 392'; given, see Given; in space (time), 43, 57, 147, 257, 258, 274, 373', 546, 748, 752, cf. 455, 457 n. 1 26, 482, see also Space, Time; natural, of na ture, of (in) the world, see these headings; external (outer, outside us [me, one another]), xxxix n. 144, 44 n. 65, 50, 66, 98', 1 56, 257, 274 br. n. 36, 275-76 incl. n. 52, 278, 360', 368', 370'-7 1', 373', 384', 389', 404', 409, 417-18, 5 1 9 n. 120, cf. 43, 392', see also External, Appearance (outer), Necessary (linkage etc. ); corporeal (bodily), 339, 359', 372'; extended, 360'; thinking, 274 br. n. 40, 365, 402, 404, 405, 359'-60', 398', see also Thought; permanent (perma nence of), 268, 414, cf. 1 86 inc I. br. ns. 1 33 and 1 35, see also Permanence; self subsistent, 468, 643 br. n. 248, cf. 5 1 9, 534 incl. br. n. 168, see also Subsis tence; isolated, 293; individual, 596, 610, 679, cf. 640; single, 600 n. 27; simple, 35 1', 360', 400', 464; composite, 360', 463; divisible, 1 1 3 incl. br. n. 234; ho mogeneous, 205 br. n. 58; the same or different, 3 1 8, 319, cf. 305 n. 169, 322, 326, 328, 336, 337, 359', 360', 379', 409, 530, 653, 683, 756 br. n. 108; agree ing or conflicting, 3 1 8, cf. 308, 337 br. n. 1 1 5, 682; change of (variation in), 213, 254, 268, 6 1 7 ; changeable, 446; movable, 398'; beginning, 482, see also Beginning; duration of, 641 ; simultaneous, 256-58, 320, 546, cf. 454; coexist-
1 006
INDEX
ing, 456, cf. 590; coordinated rather than subordinated, 1 12; successive, 476,
see also Series; passing-away of, 6 1 7 ; nonexistence of, 30 1 , 62 1 ; annulment of, 7 1 , 603, 623-25; hidden, 5 10; transcendental, see Transcendental; intelligible, see Intelligible; secondary, 493; deficient, 628; good, 805; superior, 301 ; great, 876, cf. 603 n. 43; perfection of, 656; infinite, 70; independent, 495, cf. 6 1 3 ; distinct from the world, 484; containing the supreme condition of the possibil ity of all that can be thought, 39 1 , 699 br. n. 1 86; fitting for absolute necessity, 6 1 6 ; the necessary being as, 640, see also Being (Wesen); ignorance of, 786; investigation (contemplation) of, xviii n. 77, 786; reasoning about, xxi; (a priori, objectively valid) (synthetic) judgment(s) about, 3 19, 327, 770, cf. 803; doc trine of, 307; knowledge of, xii, 812, cf. xxxi, 300, 398, 641-42; cognition, per ception, intuition, presentation of, see these headings; thought(s) of (about), see Thought; (universal, a priori, comprehensive, complete) concept(s) of, 1 8, 39, 5 1 -52 inc!. br. n. 102, 192, 264, 266, 27 1 -73, 286, 287, 300 inc!. n. 144, 325, 327, 330, 336-4 1 , 398, 412, 594, 595, 600, 604, 6 1 1 , 6 1 3 , 6 1 4, 6 1 6, 622-26, 628, 633, 640, 643, 648, 67 1, 698, 702, 748, 755, 793-94, 798, 8 1 1 , see also Concept, Synthesis; (mere) designation of (rather than concept), 756; names of, 1 0 1 ', 300 n. 144b, cf. 140; words in place of, 738; idea of, 778; (objective) re ality of, 605, 778, 808, cf. 609, 628, see also Reality; exhibition of, 147, 576; (thoroughgoing) determinability of, 593, 596, 6 1 1 n. 83, cf. 232; (objective, ex trinsic, intrinsic, thoroughgoing) determination(s) of, 37, 48-49, 54 n. 1 1 7, 1 87, 258, 272, 288, 300, 328, 339, 342, 382, 348', 446 n. 70, 596, 600 n. 27, 601 , 603, 605, 608, 6 1 1 , 626, 633, 639, cf. 1 84, 19 1-92, 291 , 338, 599, 645; deter minate, see Determinate; (possible) (intrinsic, true) character of, 272, 326, 333, 398', 535, 567, 574, 648; characteristics of (in), 336, 337 br. n. 1 1 5, 377; predi cate(s) of, 43, 48, 1 14, 190, 192, 348', 349', 599-601 , 603, 628, see also Predi cate, Substance; propeny (-ies) of (in), 45, 268, 405, 384', 630, 680, 690, 793, 800, cf. xii; state(s) of, see State; form(s) of, see Form; matter of (as), 322, 37 1 ' ; conditions (of [for] the possibility) of, 1 88, 258, 274, 398, 435, 799; the cat egories as penaining to, 267-68, see also Categories; magnitude of (as magni tudes), 288-89, 293, 46 1 , 656; quantity of, see Quantity; place (position, loca tion) of, 295, 320, 328; relation(s) of, see Relation; parts of, 1 13, 339, 463; aggregate of, 456; comparison of, see Comparison; affinity of, 600 n. 27; co herence of, 273, 720; arrangement of, 648, cf. 653; order of, 49 1 , 494, 576, 842; purposive unity of, 7 14, 843, see also Unity; connection of, 287 n. 96, 332, 709, 7 1 5, 794, 800, 844; combination of, 374; action of, 3 3 1 , 35 1'; forces of, 690; influence of, 98'; effect of, 385'; causality of, 1 83, 268, cf. 258, 269, 288, 342; (original) cause(s) of, 1 83, 29 1 , 3 1 5 , 374, 663, cf. 650; origination (arising, coming-to-be) of, 229, 23 1 , 455, 617, 844; (infinite) multitude of, 97, 686, see also Manifold; a whole of, 1 1 2, 443, 454, 843, cf. 288, 374, 446 n. 70, 6 1 0; ab solute totality of the sum of (existing), 447; all reality as amounting to, 608, cf. 6 1 O- 1 1 , 628; correlate of, 5 1 5, 600 n. 27; root of, 660; basis (substrate) of, see Basis, Substrate; ultimate support of, 641 ; archetype of all, 606, cf. 370; (su preme) cause of all, 506, 650, 703, cf. 655, see also Cause, Basis; originator of, 66 1, cf. 844, see also Originator; see also Entity, Matter (Sache), Thinghood, Something, Everything, Nonthing
INDEX
1 007
Thinghood (Sachheit), see Reality; see also Thing Thing in itself or things in themselves (Ding[e] [Sache(n)] an sich [selbstD, are (included among) things as such, xxvii inc!. br. n. 1 04, 1 78, 298 inc!. br. n. 1 35, 328, 329, 336, 337, 380', 410, cf. 5 1 -52, 303, 748, see also Thing, As Such; are things considered without regard to whether and how they may be given to us, 178, cf. 1 9 br. n. 235, 69 inc!. br. n. 1 75, 235, 306-7, 369', 373'; contrasted with appearances, see Appearance; is what appears (what is intuited by us), xxvi-xxvii inc!. br. n. 1 09, 56, 59, 305 n. 1 69, 333, cf. 55 inc!. br. n. 1 19, 109', 69 br. n. 1 75, 1 64, 178, 1 86, 235, 236, 323-24, 521 inc!. br. n. 1 3 1 , 532 inc!. br. n. 1 62, 564 inc!. br. n. 289, 566; underlie appearances, 66, 428; is the true correlate of our sensibility, 45, cf. 702, see also Sensibility; are originals, 723 br. n. 296; as (the) transcendental object, 235-36, 366', 366, cf. 379'-80', 404-5, 641-42, see also Transcendental; is an object that we merely think, xviii n. 77; is a noumenon, see Noumenon; are intelligibilia, 320, cf. 594, see also Intelli gible; are objects of (pure, mere) understanding, 25 1 -52, 305 n. 1 69, 320, cf. 3 10, 326, 327, 333, 369', 769, see also Object, Understanding; substances, ob jects, the subject as, see these headings; the world (of sense) as, 532, 535, 536, cf. 543-44, see also World; the highest being as, 648, cf. 655-56, see also Be ing (Wesen), God; monads as, 42 br. n. 57, 49 br. n. 90, 323, cf. 339-40; in the empirical meaning of the expression, see Appearance; possible (possibility of), 43, 64, 178, 308, 323; inherent actuality of, xx; existence of, see Existence; realm of (possible), xxi br. n. 88, 808, see also Supersensible; presentation of, see Pre sentation; archetypes of, 370, cf. 606; concept of, 604; nature of, 360'; (intrin sic) character of, 62, 333, 567, cf. 326; (thorough) determination of, 353, 604; (intrinsic) determinations (predicates, properties, state, relations) of (belonging to), 37-38, 42, 49, 52, 54 n. 1 17, 70, 1 1 4, 274, 323, 328, 360', 520, 521 , 532, cf. 43-44, 60, 62, 330, 38 1 , 369', 626 inc!. br. n. 1 62; form, state, relation, se ries, law-govemedness of, see these headings; synthesis of, 768; condition(s) (of the possibility) of, 52, 64, 369', 534, 567, 587, see also Condition; a con ditioned and its condition as, 526, cf. 542, see also Conditioned; the uncondi tioned in, xx, see also Unconditioned; assertions (judgments) about, 1 9 br. n. 235, cf. 332; thought (thinking) of, xxvi, 307, 3 10, 3 12, 553, 625, 628, 643, cf. 1 29', 342, see also Thought; contemplation of, xviii n. 77; acquaintance with, see Acquaintance; our lack of (speculative) cognition of, see Cognition; our lack of knowledge (our ignorance) of, xxix, 3 12, 332, 366', cf. xx, 300, 333, 391', 64 1-42, is unavoidable, xxix, nor do we need such knowledge, 332-33; is never at issue in experience, 45; cannot occur in any experience, 4 10, 524, 594, see also Experience (objects [things] that cannot occur in any); our sensibility (pre sentation) does not deal with (conform to), xx, 344; our lack of intuition of, see Intuition; intuition of, would be an intellectual intuition (of an intuitive under standing), 207 br. n. 67, 235 br. n. I l l, 305 n. 1 69 inc!. br. n. 1 69b, cf. 723 br. n. 296, 808, see also Intuition, Understanding; our lack of exhibition of, 56, 1 52-53 inc!. br. n. 277; we have no (a priori) concept of, 1 28', 329, cf. 604, 656; categories do not apply to, see Categories; natural law (the principle of causality) does not apply to, xxvii-xxviii, cf. 584; contingency and necessity do not apply to, see Contingency, Necessity; space and time are not properties of,
1 008
INDEX
see Space, Time; matter as, 366', 380', 39 1'; matter is not, 359'-60', cf. 428; bodies are not, see Body; action of, 566; the will as belonging to, xxvii-xviii, see also Will Thinker (Denker), 372, see also Thought Thinking (Denken, Denkungs-), see Thought Third (dritt), something (thing), 104, 177, 194, 196, 264 inc!. br. n. 241 , 3 1 5 inc!. br. n. 204, 761, 794, 848 br. n. 1 19, cf. 1 10- 1 1 , 391', 760, see also Mediation, Something Thirst for knowledge (Wij3begierde), xiii', see also Knowledge Thought(s) or think(ing) (Denken, Denkungs-, Gedanke[nJ), is a predicate of inner sense, 359', see also Sense; all, consists in the unity of consciousness, 406, see also Consciousness; presentations contained in, 6 1 ; turning of presentations into, see Consciousness; taken by itself, is merely (a) logical function, 428, cf. 346, 429; always manifests limits, 7 1 ; as such, without content are empty, 75 ; ab stracts from all reference to any object, 397', cf. xxvi n. 103, 146, 1 94-95, 346, 4 1 1 n. 259, 398', 413, 422, see also Object (reference to); is discursive cogni tion, 170, see also Discursive; is cognition through concepts, 94, 283, cf. 1 1 8, see also Cognition, Concept; distinguished from (synthetic) cognition, xxvi n. 103, 146, 1 55 inc!. br. n. 288, 1 57, 165, 166 n. 324, 194-95, 277, 356', 406, cf. 288, 396'; distinguished from existence, 272, 422 inc!. n. 288, 429, 5 19, 625, 628-29, 648, 704, 667, cf. 1 80, 277, 349', 384'-85', 410, 426, 509, 597, 622, see also Existence; distinguished from intuition(s) (sensibility, the senses), 29 inc1. br. n. 295, 33, 7 1 , 8 1 , 89, 93, 125, 126, 1 1 1 ', 1 35, 146, 1 55 inc!. br. n. 288, 1 57 inc!. br. n. 293, 1 65, 166 n. 324, 305 n. 1 69, 309, 325, 343, 429, 430, cf. 4 1 5 n. 275, 806, see also Intuition, Sensibility, Sense; all, aims at (must refer ultimately to) sensibility (to intuition as means to cognition), 33; is the act of bringing the synthesis of the manifold of intuition to the unity of apperception, 145, cf. 153, 157, 158, 346, 406, 422, 1 17' n. 138, see also Apperception, In tuition; is the act of referring given intuitions to an object, 304, cf. 74 inc!. br. n. 9, 104', 1 29', 146, 309, 401 , 609; as objects, 3 7 1 '; as accidents, see Accident; contrasted with the extended, 392'-93', see also Matter, Body; as the determin ing self, 402'; contrasted with the thinking subject, 402'; subject (of the inher ence) of, see Subject; common (logical) subject of (all), see Common, Logical; what can be thought as subject but never as mere predicate, see Substance; the I think, see I-the; I think, therefore I am, 405 inc!. br. n. 34, 355' inc!. br. n. 70; everything that thinks, 404, 357', 769, 8 1 6; thinking being, thing, sub stance, subject, self, nature, see these headings; thought-being (-entity), see Be ing, Entity; as such, xxiii, 79, 84, 96, 100, 1 0 1 , 1 17' n. 1 38, 1 70, 200, 201 br. n. 30i , 223, 265, 298, 3 14, 382', 397', 399', 405', 407, 409, 4 1 3, 422 n. 288, 429, cf. 39 1 ; confused, 9, 1 1 ; paradoxical, 392; problematic, empty, indetermi nate, determinate, theoretical, rational, philosophical, see these headings; pos sible, xxvi n. 103; necessary, xviii, 437 , 439, cf. 104', 839; actual, 1 7 ; pure (a priori), xiv', ix, 18 inc!. br. n. 23 1 , 36, 80, 8 1 , 120, 96', 108', 1 17' n. 138, 1 50 inc!. br. n. 267, 343, 366, 397', 508, 602, 609, 629; distinct, 392; analytic, 1 8, 1 30 n. 1 9 1 ; synthetic, 18, 1 15, 779; synthetic a priori, 1 I 5 ; contained in expe rience, see Experience; empirical, ix, 80, 1 99, 200, 20 1 br. n. 30i, 223, 265, 397',
INDEX
1 009
cf. 400, postulates thereof, see Postulate; self-, 167 incl. br. n. 333; free-, xxxiv, cf. 7 8 1 ; freedom of, see Freedom; possibility of, xxvi n. 1 03 inc!. br. n. 1 03c, 1 26, 284, 290, 302 n. 156, 307, 39 1 , 352'-54', 398'-99', 415 n. 275, cf. xviii, xx, xxix inc!. br. ns. 1 1 6 and 1 17, 87, 125, 96', 107', 1 3 1 -32, 133 n. 202, 135, 1 37, 1 86 , 225, 292, 305 inc!. n. 169, 3 15, 34 1 , 342, 344, 392, 363' n. 99, 393', 4 1 0, 445, 454, 456, 460, 507 n. 74, 522, 554, 593, 609, 620. 621, 634, 642 inc!. br. n. 242, 68 1 , 699 br. n. 1 86, 703, 724, 728, 8 12- 13, 836, 837; act (activity) of, see Action, Activity; state of, 419, 628; way of, see Way of Thinking; origin (arising) of, ix, 87, 1 02'; cause of, the body as, 807; basis of, 429; substrate of all, see Substrate; subjective predispositions for, 1 67; (inner, primary) source(s) of, 1 1 8, 1 14'; consciousness of, 4 1 3, 400, 372', cf. 350', 359', 8 12; power of (ability to), xii' hr. n. 16, xvii', 75, 94, 106, 97', 1 26', 145 , 4 1 5 n. 275, its pos sibility, xvii', see also Understanding; spontaneity of, 93, 102, 1 57 n. 296, 430, cf. 74 inc! . br. n. 8, 1 67 br. n. 333, see also Spontaneity; of (by, through, in) (pure) understanding, 29, 33, 35, 36, 75-76, 80, 87, 94, 100 n. 166, 106, 1 1 3 inc!. hr. n. 1 34, 127, 97', 126', 1 35, 1 39, 1 45, 1 50, 1 56 n. 292, 2 1 5 , 293. 305 n. 169, 306, 307, 3 10, 325, 344, 408, 573-74, 682, 724, cf. 84, see also Under standing, Object; of (by) reason, see Reason, Object; as a function of judgment, see Judgment; of (by) the (a) mind, 1 08', 368, 500, cf. 270, 274 br. n. 40; by the soul, 348', 35 1', 359'-61', 401', 428, 506, 7 10, 874; apprehension in, 102'; concept of, 407, cf. 398'; logical exposition of, 409, cf. 749; (as such,) mo ments of, 96, 98, 1 0 1 ; (as such, discursive,) manifold of (in a concept), see Mani fold; (logical, pure) material for, 422 n. 288; formes) of, xxiii, 34 br. n. 16, 75, 78, 79, 126, 148, 150, 170, 267, 283, 288, 298, 305-6 incl. n. 1 69, 309, 4 1 1 n. 259, 595, 7 1 2, cf. 1 29'-30', 146, 1 48, 1 5 1 , 175, 303 n. 1 57, 343, 367, 378, 379, 383, (see also Subject,) are (expressed by) the categories, see Categories; func tion(s) of, see Function; (as such,) (subjective, formal) condition(s) (of the pos sibility) of (aU, empirical, pure), 30, 122, I l l ', 138, 398, 404, 405, 353', 363', 396'-99', 405', 407, 604, 648, 703, 7 1 2, 807, 8 1 9; supreme condition of all that can be thought, 39 1 , 699 br. n. 1 86; criteria of, 1 14; combination of, 270; syn thesis (of the conditions) of, see Synthesis; rules of (for), ix, 76, 80, 84; prin ciple, unity, predicate of, see these headings; determination of, 1 58; as such, truth of, 84; object(s) of (for), see Object, Noumenon; hypostatizing of, 395', see also Hypostatize; obstacles to, ix; boundary (bounds) of, see Boundary; an nulment of all, 383'; parts and whole of, 352'-54'; community of, 270; play of, 405, cf. 803; of (a) something (as such, existent), x', xiii inc!. br. n. 60, 17, 125, 95', 129', 1 3 1-32, 1 86, 268, 277, 305 n. 169, 345, 400', 47 1 , 609, 621 , 702-3, cf. 76, 3 1 2, 340, 404, 46 1 , 643; of (in, through, as) concepts, xxvi n. 1 03, 9, 1 1 -12 inc!. n. 200, 15- 1 8 inc!. br. n. 227, 36, 39-40, 74 br. n. 8, 89, 95', 96', 105' br. n. 95, 1 06', 1 14, 125, 146, 176, 177, 190, 193-94, 203, 267, 268, 298, 302 n. 1 56, 3 14, 337, 340, 366, 458, 460, 608, 621, 628, 682, 704-5, 746, 757, 759, cf. 288, 305 n. 1 69, 309, 326, 341 , 383, 422, 629, see also Analysis, Dis sect; under concepts and in the concepts, 682; of ideas (ideas as), 372, 490, 601 , 725, 726, 728, 799; about thinking, 32 1; o f (through) presentations, see Presen tation, Analytic (analytisch); of (in, through, as) judgments, 4, 10, 95, 98, 100, 246, 303 n. 1 57, 36 1 , see also Judgment, Relation; of (by) propositions, 3, 1 8
1010
INDEX
inc!. br. n. 23 1 , 100, 1 0 1 , cf. 1 15, 707; of principles, 167; of a rule, 360; of identity, negation, see these headings; of detenninations, 266, 303 n. 157; of (through) predicates, 1 1 , 105' inc!. br. n. 95, 1 86, 205, 378-79, 47 1 , 507 n. 74. 628, cf. 441 , 602; of characteristics, 1 1 n. 200, 12, 1 14, 755-56; of (through) properties, 706, 756; of a possible experience, 524; of reality, 270, 628; of ex istence, 629; (empirical, a priori,) of objects, xviii inc!. n. 77, xxvi, 29-30, 33, 7 1 , 74-76, 80, 8 1 , 87, 1 06, 1 25, 126, 96', 1 04'-6', I l l ', 1 29'-30', 146 inc!. br. n. 25 1 , 1 58, 165, 166 n. 324, 177, 270, 288, 303 n. 1 57, 304, 305 inc!. n. 1 69, 307, 309, 3 10, 335, 344, 3 6 1 , 399, 374', 398', 4 1 1 n. 259, 428-29, 47 1 , 538. 593, 599, 604, 627, 628, 659-60, 705, 7 1 2, 745, 757, 799, cf. 525 br. n. 1 37, 568, 642 inc!. br. n. 242, 755-56, 763, 798, would not occur without under standing (categories), see Object, Understanding, Categories; of (about) things, 1 1 3 inc!. br. n. 234, 1 29', 272, 3 10, 342, 365, 409, 41 1 n. 259, 593, 620, 628, 643, cf. 348 br. n. 148; of things in themselves (noumena), see Thing in itself, Noumenon; of the soul, 799; of substance(s), 293, 401 , cf. 302, 363' n. 99, 8 1 3; of a whole, see Whole; of nature, 479; of the (a) (sensible, intelligible, moral) world, 305 n. 169, 43 1 , 456, 461 , 836, cf. 749; of (in) (a) time, see Time; of (parts of) space, see Space; of there being no objects encountered in space, 38-39; without any object, 146, 305 n. 1 69; of the not-being (nonexistence) of something, 290 inc!. n. 107, 621 , 643, cf. 645; of an intelligible basis of ap pearances, 59 1 ; of the conditioned, 662; of the unconditioned, xx, 445; of a will, xxvii-xxviii; of freedom, xxviii, xxix inc!. br. ns. 1 1 6 and 1 17, 479; of God (a divine understanding, the supreme cause, the necessary being), 7 1 , 145, 589, 608, 634, 650, 706, cf. 607, 628, 659 inc!. br. n. 337, 703, 707, 724-26, 728; (up), of an intuitive understanding (intellectual intuition), 15, 145, 467, 798, cf. 522; up, of concepts, ideas, (impossible) objects, different forms of intuition and of understanding, etc., 96', 283, 375', 477, 490, 667, 682 br. n. 86, 798-99, 808; see also Concept, Thinker Time(s) (Zeit[en]), xxxix n. 144, xxiii', 1 , 13, 37, 46-73 incl. br. n. 1 3 1 , 102-3, 1 2 1 -22, 99', 1 07', 1 17' n. 1 38, 1 36 n. 2 1 0, 147, 149, 1 56, 1 57 n. 296, 160-63 inc!. n. 305 and br. n. 306, 1 65, 1 68-69, 1 77-78, 1 83-84, 1 9 1 -92, 202-3, 206-8, 2 1 1 , 219, 224-28 inc!. n. 47, 231-33, 243-48, 250, 253-59, 262, 29 1 , 300-301 , 323, 3 3 1 -32, 362'-65' inc!. br. n . 96, 373'-74', 402', 404', 414, 417 br. n. 277, 4 1 8 inc!. br. n. 280, 437-40 inc!. br. n. 43, 446, 447, 454-56, 459, 46 1 inc!. br. n. 1 52, 477, 478, 480 inc!. n. 245, 482. 483, 486-88, 5 15, 5 16, 5 1 8-20, 522-24, 527-29, 536, 546, 548-50 inc!. n. 23 1 , 556, 56o-62, 569-70, 572, 575, 579-82, 584, 748, 751-52, 799, 8 1 6, 843, cf. viii', ix', x', xvi', xix', xx', viii, x-xii inc!. br. n. 56, xvi br. n. 72, xxxi, xxxv, xl, xlii-xliv, 8, 14 n. 217, 35 br. n. 23a, 1 13, 172 br. n. 28c, 334, 3 7 1 , 373, 503, 508, 620, 658 br. n. 329, 680, 7 1 5 n. 250, 729, 754, 782, 822 br. n. 406, 846, 862, 863, 876, 877, 88182, is not a property (quality, [objective] determination, form, condition) of (or der [among]) things ([in] themselves) 49 inc!. br. n. 90, 52, 54 inc!. n. 1 17, 64, 69-7 1 , 323, 332, 369', 520, 522, 563, 567, cf. 5 1 , 56, see also Thing in itself, Being (Wesen); is nothing outside our sensibility (our mind) (nothing in itself [subsistent], nothing but [an inner (kind of)] presentation, a nonentity), 49, 5 1 , 52, 56, 7 1 , 373', 461, 520, cf. 1 , 54 inc!. n . 1 1 7, 148, 363', 369', 374', see also
INDEX
1011
Sensibility; is (to be found) only in our senses (in the world of sense, in us), 59, 148, 373', 550, cf. 49, 54, 420, 482, 522, see also Sense; cannot itself be perceived, 207, 2 1 9, 225, 226, 233, 257, cf. 277; (absolute,) is not an object (of perception), 54, 1 56, 23 1 , 245, 262; (transcendental) ideality of, 52-53 incl. br. n. 106, 308; (empirical, objective, subjective, limited) reality of, 52-54, 56, see also Reality; objective validity (objectivity) of, 5 1 , 52, 1 95, cf. 256, see also Valid, Object, Necessary; cannot itself be annulled, 46, cf. 59; is actual, 53-54, cf. 37, 49, 56, 148, 374', see also Actuality; existence of (at, in), see Existence; transcendental deduction (of the concept) of, 1 1 8-20, see also Deduction; is not a (mere, discursive, universal, empirical) concept, 46, 47, 1 36 n. 2 10; is a sin gular presentation (intuition), 1 36 n. 2 1 0; (presentation of,) is (a, the) (sensible, pure, a priori, formal, inner) intuition, 48, 50, 73, 1 2 1 , 124', 1 36 n. 2 1 0, 147, 160 incl. n. 305, 203-4, 207, 277, 324; is a (pure, original) form of (our) sen sibility (way of perceiving), 59-60, 1 1 8, 169, 522, cf. 37, 54; is the (a priori) form of inner sense, 49, 194, 292, 362', cf. 54 n. 1 1 7, 162-63, 291 , 379', 5 19, 520; is a (the) (mere, pure, constant, permanent, sensible, subjective) form of (all, our) (possible, sensible, a priori, essential, inner) intuition, xxv, 34 br. n. 16, 36-37, 47, 49, 53, 54, 56, 66, 72, 1 1 5', 1 1 7' n. 1 38, 146, 1 57 n. 296, 1 60 incl. br. n. 303, 163, 1 82, 206, 224, 245, 283, 305, 347, 362', 369', 373', 38 1', 75 1 , cf. 162, 520, 579, see also Intuition, Form; is the (mere) form of (objects as) appearance(s), 1 82, 482, 748; is a (the) (subjective, formal, special) condi tion of (our, human) sensibility (sensible presentation, [sensible, inner] intu ition, inner sense, all experience[sj), 49, 50, 54, 56, 66, 67, 99', 1 1 1', 177, 1 8 1 , 427, 522, cf. xxxix n . 144, 52, 60, 102, 107', 1 36, 179, 536; is a (the) (univer sal, formal, a priori) condition of (for) (the possibility of, the existence of) (things as, objects as) appearance(s) (generally), xxv, 46, 50, 52 1 10', 148, 1 88, 347, 567, cf. 49, 5 1, 1 2 1 -'22, 254, 256, 262, 323, 332, 440, 5 18; is the direct con dition of inner appearances (of our souls), and thereby also an indirect condi tion of outer appearances, 50, cf. 427, 5 19, 520; is the formal condition of the possibility of changes, 480 n. 245; is (in itself) a series (and the formal condi tion of all series), 438, 439, 572, cf. 528, 579; is the constant correlate of all existence of appearances, 226, cf. 224 incl. n. 47; as substrate of appearances, 224, cf. 47-48; is given a priori, 46, cf. 347; is the pure image of the magni tudes of all sense objects as such, 1 82; is the sum of all being (comprises all existence), 263, 300, cf. 185, 523, see also Being (Sein), Existence; (there) is (only) one (a single underlying), 47-48, 1 10', 232, cf. 2 19, 229, 23 1 , 308, 224; is always and in all its parts a magnitude, 255, cf. 203, 253-55, 546, 752, see also Magnitude; is a continuous quantum (consists only of times), 2 1 1- 12, cf. 244, 438, 748, 753; does not consist of simple parts, 468, see also Simplicity; is immutable and enduring, 1 83, cf. 58, 224-26; has nothing enduring, 3 8 1 '; constantly flows, 29 1 ; has only one (a single) dimension, 47, 156, cf. 50; as such, 163, 1 69, 1 84, 203, 2 19, 225, 226, cf. 47; determinate, 1 84, 202, 2 14, 239, cf. 203, cf. 203; pure, 347, cf. 46; given, see Given; empty, 182, 2 14, 23 1 , 237, 300, 455, 459, 46 1 , 548-49, cf. 209; filled (filling of), 182-84, 2 14; one and the same or different, 46-47, cf. 48-49, 19 1-92, 232, 257-58, 26 1 , 361', 363', 404', 488, see also Simultaneity, Sequentiality; past (elapsed, bygone), 228, 244,
1012
INDEX
258, 439-40, 446, 455, 456, 487, 523, 548, cf. 248; future, 228-29, 437, cf. 438; is an (a priori) S'lurce of (synthetic a priori) cognition, 55-56, see also Cog nition; (a priori) cognition of, 49; axioms about, 47; (pure) concept(s) of, xxx viii, 46, 48, 49, 54, 57, 1 1 8-2 1 , 107', 160 n. 305, 195 inc!. br. n. 193, 753; thought of (in) (a), 102', 203, 226, 300, 437, 439, cf. 225; (self-)consciousness of (in), 362'-65'; (necessary, original, basic, pure, a priori, figurative) percep tion(s) (empirical consciousness) in (at), 2 19, 220, 233; (necessary, pure, a priori, empirical) presentation of (in, as), xxii n. 93, 46-50, 54, 57-58, 69, 99'- 100', 102', 107', 1 36 n. 2 1 0, 1 54, 1 56, 1 60-61 inc!. br. n. 303, 1 84, 195, 202, 207, 225-26, 23 1 , 241 , 362', 373', 379', 420, 422, 480 n. 245, 520, cf. 148; presen tation of, is a mere schema, 195, cf. 1 82; (pure) intuition of (in), 47-49, 72, 107' inc!. br. n. 100, 1 39, 140, 202, 203, 206, 208, 2 14, 308, 522; exhibition of, 1 56, cf. 1 54; (empirical, transcendental, dynamical, necessary, universal, thor oughgoing) detennination(s) (in terms) of (time determination, determination[s] in), xxviii, xxxix n. 144, 54 inc!. n. 1 17, 149, 163, 168-69, 177-78, 1 83-85, 203, 209, 220, 226, 228, 23 1 , 262, 244, 247, 255, 264, 275-78, 48 1 , 487, 5 19, 568, 569, 580, 761 , 8 16, cf. 1 57 n. 296, 1 84, 234, 248, 4 1 8 inc!. br. n. 280, 422 n. 288, 523, 536, 5 6 1 -62, see also Substrate, Substance; determinations, (a priori, according to rules,) are the schemata of the concepts of understanding, 1 84-85, cf. 177-78, 220, see also Schema, Categories; condition(s) of (in) (time condition[s]), 1 84, 1 9 1 , 252, 486, 5 1 1 , 5 1 5, 529, 536, 560-6 1 , 567, 669, 750 n. 80, cf. 256; form of, 579; mode(s) of, 2 1 9, 224, 226, 262; circumstances of, 584; properties of, 50, cf. 3 3 1 -32; quality (predicate) of, 69 inc!. n. 178; mani fold(ness) of (in), see Manifold; part(s) of, 47, 48, 50, 102', 1 36 n. 210, 203, 2 1 1 , 226, 254, 439, 455, 468; relation(s) of (in), see Relation, Substance; (em pirical) position(s) in (time positions), 1 56, 243, 245, 256, 259, 261 , 262, 374'; point of (in), 23 1 , 239, 252, 253, 290 n. 107, 439, 454, 460, 5 1 6; permanence in, 1 83, cf. 226-29, 275, see also Permanence; change (variation, transition) in, 58, 1 83, 227, 253-54, 275 br. n. 46, 362', cf. 38 1 ', 480 n. 245, 808; beginning (of the world) in (terms of), 353, 454, 548, cf. 446, 455, 459, 46 1 , 549 incl. n. 23 1 , see also Beginning, World; progression in, 203, 2 1 1 , 239, 255; order (or der of), 1 84, 245, 248, 528, 563; sequence, 50, 54 n. 1 17, 163, 232 br. n. 86, 246 inc!. br. n. 1 59, 248, 572, cf. 528, see also Sequence; succession in, 232 br. n. 86, see also Temporal; series (series in), 1 12', 1 84, 224 n. 47, 244, 478, 480, 482, 486, 487, 523, cf. 262, 437-38, see also Series; length of, 156; range, 224 n. 47; content, 1 84, cf. 262; sum total, 1 85, cf. 262, 263, 300; coherence of, 244; combination in, 235; production of, 1 82, 1 84, cf. 203; synthesis (of the parts, the manifold) of (in), see Synthesis; (empirical, synthetic) unity of (in) (all), 2 19, 229, 231 , 308, cf. 24 1 , see also Unity; boundary (bounds) of, see Boundary; reality (the real) in, 1 83; things in, see Thing; all existing objects of the senses in all time and in all spaces, 523 ; reason is not in, 584; necessary use of, 195 inc!. hr. n. 1 9 1 ; (alleged) absolute (transcendental) reality (self subsistence) of, 52-54, 56-57 inc!. br. n. 1 29, 459 inc!. br. n. 1 3 1 , cf. 49 inc!. br. n. 90, 64, 7 1 , 245, 262, 369', 459 incl. br. n. 1 3 1 ; in Leibniz, 49 br. n. 90, 323, 3 3 1 -32; Aristotle's category of, 107 incl. br. ns. 196 and 198; see also Tem poral, Space
INDEX
1013
Topic (Gegens/and, Thema), xviii', 69 br. n. 1 69, 1 14, 370, 433-34 incl. br. n. 10, 844 br. n. 96, 880 inc1. br. n. 262, see also Subject-matter, Object Topic (Topik), (logical, transcendental,) 86 incl. br. n. 76, 109, 324-26 incl. br. n. 54, 402-3 incl. br. n. 22, see also Location Torricelli, Evangelista, xii incl. br. n. 57 Total (All), 5 1 1 - 1 2 incl. br. n. 98, 603-5, 6 1 5 , 6 1 6, 656, cf. 624, 638, see also To tality, Sum, Allness, Universe, World Totality (To/ali/iit), (absolute, unconditioned,) 106 br. n. 1 87, 1 1 1 , 379-80, 38284, 388-89, 393-94, 398, 396', 397', 434, 436-38, 440, 442-47, 454 n. 1 19, 456 incl. n. 1 2 1 , 460 incl. br. n. 147, 484, 487, 490, 507, 509, 5 1 1 , 5 15, 5 16, 525, 527, 528, 533, 534, 536-38, 540-4 1 , 543, 545, 547, 549 n. 23 1 , 5 5 1 , 556, 559-61 , 5 7 1 , 587, 593, 601 , 606, 656, 67 1 , 7 1 3 , 743, 787, 801, 821 incl. br. n. 40 1 , is al1ness, 1 1 1 , 379, cf. 106 incl. br. n. 1 87, see also A11ness; is qualitative completeness, 1 14, see also Completeness; see also Total, Universality, World, Universe, Maximum Touchstone (Probierstein), viii', xviii, 26, 27, 35 n. 23, 84, 90, 352, 453, 493, 675, 739, 848, 852 Tranqui1(lity) (ruhig [RuheD, 493, 77 1 , 779, 780, 785, 805, 8 10, see also Calm Transcendent (transzendent, iiberschwenglich), means overreaching, 67 1 , (i.e.,) go ing beyond (surpassing) the boundary of (all) (possible) experience, 352-53, 384, 593, cf. 365, 590, 599, see also Experience; contrasted with transcendental, see Transcendental; contrasted with immanent, 353, 383, 67 1 incl. br. n. 1 1 , 827, see also Immanent; being, 667, cf. 704-6, see also Noumenon; concepts, xxi, 398, 448, 497, 598, 599, 702, 799, cf. 383, 500-501 ; (use of, application of) ideas ([pure] concepts of [pure] reason), xxi, 384, 447, 593, 67 1 , see also Idea; speculation, 421 incl. br. n. 285, 773; (use of) reason, 7 1 8, 73 1 , 847, 873, see also Reason; pretensions, 809, cf. xxx; goal, 703; problem, 427; question, 507; basis (-es) of explanation, 590, 801 ; syllogisms, 366; (use of) principles, 352-54, 365, 789, cf. 484, 788-89, 809; propositions, 827, cf. 809; judgments, 354; cog nition(s), 730, 7 3 1 ; insight, xxx; philosophy, 484; physiology, 874; cosmology, 874 incl. br. n. 23 1 ; theology, 874 incl. br. n. 23 1 Transcendental (transzendental), means dealing with the a priori possibility or a priori use of cognition, 25, 35 n. 23, 40, 80- 8 1 , 1 50, cf. 1 17' n. 1 38, 1 1 8', 15 1-52, 3 1 8, 602, 642; involves abstraction from all difference in what is given and from the way in which it is determined, 322, cf. 427, 602, 642, 659; means dealing with things as such and in themselves, 298, cf. 300 n. 144, 305 n. 169, 319, 427, 6 1 7 ; dynamical- and mathematical-, 556-60 (specifically, 556, 557, 558 br. n. 260); contrasted with transcendent, 352-53, cf. 593, see also Tran scendent; contrasted with (merely) a priori, 80-8 1 , with logical, 6 1 -62, 86 br. n. 76, 3 1 8- 1 9 , 355-56, 390, 395, 399, 602-3, 676, 682, 688, with mathemati cal, 740-4 1 , with metaphysical, 35 n. 23, 37-4 1 , 46-49, 159, 2 1 5 , with imma nent, 664, 873, with empirical, 69 br. n. 175, 77, 8 1 , 1 17-19, 97', 1 08', 109', 127 n. 48, 178, 1 85, 2 1 3, 222-23, 297-98, 300 n. 1 44, 303-5, 3 13, 3 16-46, 352-53, 373', 573-74 incl. br. n. 3 14, 5 9 1 , 642-43, 688, 829, with natural, 842, with physiological, 563, with psychological, 35 n. 23, 829; possibility, 302, 638, see also Possibility; truth, 1 85 , 269, see also Truth; reality, 53, 397, see also
1014
INDEX
Time, Space; substratum, see Substrate; basis, 102', 106', 1 1 1 ', 1 27', 334, 399, 5 9 1 , 592, 688, 724, cf. 80 1 ; cause, 391', 524, 574, 592; condition, 106'; thing, 710; object ( x), 63, 109', 235-36, 304, 305 n. 1 69, 333, 344-45, 358', 361', 366', 372'-73', 379'-80', 390', 393'-94', 506-7 inc I. n. 74, 522, 523, 566-68, 573 inc I. br. n. 3 14, 585, 593-94, 641-42 incl. br. n. 241 , 707, 725-26, cannot be called the noumenon, 305 n. 169, see also X, Object, Thing in itself, Nou menon; subject ( x), 397-98, 404 incl. br. n. 28, 350', 355', 427, 441 , 506 n. 74, 520, 573 incl. br. n. 3 14, see also Subject; character of subjective sources, 97'; power, see Power; (idea of, power of) freedom, see Freedom; (power of, use of) (pure) reason, 170, 356, 376, 386, 394, 441 , 453, 543, 5 9 1 , 739-4 1 , 754, 761 , 805, 826, 85 1 , cf. xviii n. 77, 502, 763, 820, see also Reason; use of un derstanding, 223, 3 1 3 , 3 1 6-46 (specifically, 3 1 6, 345), 348'. 406, 678, see also Understanding; (use of the) power of judgment, see Judgment-power of; use (of the powers) of sense, imagination, and apperception, 1 27 n. 48; unity, see Unity; (unity of) apperception, see Apperception; synthesis, 1 0 1 ', 1 1 8', 1 1 9', 1 50-53, 157, 1 64, 747, see also Synthesis; power (act, function, [unity of the] synthesis, product) of (the) imagination, see Imagination; use of space, 8 1 ; time determination, 177-78; schema, 177, 1 8 1 , 1 82, see also Schema; (use of) con cepts, 45, 298, 300 n. 144, 322, 329, 356, 366, 379-80, 382, 386, 395-99 incl. br. n. 8, 401 , 365', 403', 435, 460, 497, 6 1 9, 657, 659, 702 br. n. 204, 703, 750, 753, cf. 300 n. 144, 403', 543, 668, 829, see also Apperception; side of a con cept, 668; concept(s) of (pure) reason (pure rational concepts), 366, 379-80, 382, 385, 395-96, 497, 543, 619; (use of) ideas, see Idea; (use of the) categories ([pure] concepts of understanding), 178, 266, 297, 300 n. 144, 303-5, 3 14, 352, 402', 435, 543, see also Categories; use of the principles of pure understand ing, 304, 664, see also Principle; principle(s) (of [pure] reason), 88, 1 1 6', 1 88, 206, 3 15, 363, 366, 376, 435, 459 n. 1 35, 610, 637, 676, 678, 682, 69 1 , cf. 282; origin of principles, 282; law (of nature, natural law), 109'-10', 263, 633 n. 195, 684-85, 688, cf. xiv; affinity, 1 1 4', see also Affinity; magnitude (in Lambert), 508 br. n. 83; division of an appearance, 555: matter, 1 82 inc I. br. n. 103; prob lem(s), 504-1 2 (specifically, 504, 5 1 2), 563, 570; aim, 736, cf. 740; path, 1 19, 6 1 9; acts of the mind, 1 02'; attempt(s), 763, 820, cf. 492 br. n. 1 1 ; procedure, 395, 666; presupposition, 107', 600, 679, 706; contemplation, 586; consider ation, 602; comparison, 601 , cf. 3 1 8-19, 325; distinction, 6 1 , 62; abstractness, 402 n. 25 ; investigation, 297, 826; inquiry, 401 ; question(s), 63, 334, 665, 833, cf. 476; answers, 665; hypothesis (-ies), 800, 801 , 807; point of view, 880; as sertions, 453, 582; affirmation, 602; negation, 602-3; proposition(s), 748-50, 8 10, 8 1 5 , cf. 761 ; judging, 3 8 1 ; guide, 92, 95, 102; standard, 668; critique, 26, 353, 526, 637, 654, 740, 781, 8 1 1 ; deduction, see Deduction; argument, 6 1 7, 655; major premise, 605, cf. 402'; (kind of) proof, 2 1 5, 6 1 9, 642-43, 657, 8 14-17; insights, 845; (use of) cognition, 25, 80-8 1 , 3 14, 390, 8 1 1 , cf. 1 19, 3 14, 390, 392 incl. br. n. 208, 874 incl. br. n. 333; enhancement of cognition, 845; consciousness, 1 1 7' n. 1 38; reflection, 3 1 8- 1 9, 33 1, 335; deliberation, 2 1 7, 3 1 7- 1 9, 325, 332, 35 1 ; location, 324, 327, cf. 325; topic, see Topic (Topik); con tent, 77, 105, 603, 605 ; signification, 236, 305, 3 1 3, 829, cf. 447; meaning, 322, 335, 372', 376', 379', 447, 473, 5 19, 527, 608; sense, 34, 35 n. 23, 69 br. n. 1 75, =
=
INDEX
1015
1 82 br. n. 103, 373', 375'; designation, 355'; predicates, 1 1 3- 1 4, 40 1 , 669-70, cf. 602; presentation, 8 1 , 1 1 3'; philosophy, see Philosophy; idealism (ideal ist), see Idealism; ideality, see Ideality; realism (realist), see Realism; dual ism, 389', 3 9 1 ', cf. 370', 379'; dogmatics, 500; physiocracy, 477; atomism, 470; basic doctrines, 746; doctrine of elements, see Elements-doctrine of; aesthetic (doctrine of sense), see Aesthetic (A sthetik); exposition of the con cept of space (of time), 37 br. n. 28, 40-41 , 48-49; logic, see Logic; analytic, see Analytic-transcendental; table, 98, 1 1 5 ; doctrine of the power of judg ment, see Judgment-power of; amphiboly, see Amphiboly; dialectic, see Dialectic-transcendental; illusion, see Illusion; subreption, 537, 6 1 1 , 647-48; psychology, 3 9 1 , 403, 350', 35 1 ', 3 6 1 ', 367', 397', 506 n. 74; paralogism, see Paralogism; antithetic, 448; cosmology, 39 1 -92 incl. br. n. 209, 397', 874 incl. br. n. 23 1 ; idealizing, 502; ideal, 599-61 1 (specifically, 599, 604), 640; pro totype, 599 incl. br. n. 2 1 ; theology, 392, 397', 608, 659-60, 668-70, 723, 842, 844, 874 incl. br. n. 23 1 ; doctrine of method, see Method-doctrine of
Transitionfrom the Metaphysical Foundations ofNatural Science to Physics ( Uber gang von den metaphysischen Anfangsgriinden der Naturwissenschaften zur Physik), xliii br. n. 149, see also Metaphysical Foundations of Natural Science Treatise (Traktat, Abhandlung, Vortrag), xxii incl. n. 93, xlii, 108, 1 69, 489, see also Work, Treatment Treatment (Bearbeitung, Behandlung, Verfahren), vii, xliii, xliv, 24, 9 1 , 285, 374 br. n. 124, 395 n. 222, 382", 528, 668, 828, 845, 872, cf. viii', xviii', 34 br. n. 16, 53 br. ns. 109 and I l l , 96, 1 24, 158 br. n. 297, 2 1 5 br. n. 120, 250 br. n. 1 84, 3 16, 3 1 8, 333, 365 br. ns. 88 and 9 1 , 37 1 , 353', 393', 434, 449 br. n. 82, 506 br. ns. 72 and 73, 5 14, 586, 589, 608, 628 br. n. 173, 645, 679, 720, 729, 743, 822 br. n. 410, 873 br. n. 229, 874 br. ns. 230, 23 1 , and 233, see also Pro cedure, Treatise Tree-genealogical (Stammbaum), 108, see also Genealogy Triangle (Triangel), xi, 39, 65, 105" incl. br. n. 95, 1 24', 1 80, 201 n. 30, 205, 27 1 , 62 1-22, 74 1 , 742, 744-46 incl. br. ns. 5 2 and 5 3 , 746, 750, see also Geometry Tribunal (Gerichtshoj), xi' -xii', 529, 697, 768, 779, 8 1 5 , cf. 732 br. n. 332, see also Judge, Critique True (wahr), xxi n. 87, xxii n. 93, xxx, xxxvii, xliv, I n. 153, 3, 35 n. 23, 45, 57, 58, 79, 98- 1 0 1 , 107, 1 1 3 incl. br. n. 236, 1 14, 1 66 n. 324, 170, 1 80-8 1 , 1 85, 194, 24 1 , 296 incl. br. n. 1 3 1 , 305 n. 1 69, 328, 349 br. n. 5, 350, 372, 389, 390', 392', 4 1 3 , 460, 498, 5 14, 53 1 , 534, 535, 560, 588, 590 incl. bL n. 390, 603, 622 br. n. 136, 64 1 , 687, 689, 694, 7 3 1 , 737, 757, 759 n. 1 2 1 , 769, 776, 779, 803 br. n. 3 19, 808, 809, 8 1 8, 8 1 9, 824, 848 br. ns. 1 1 3 and 1 14, 869, 882, see also Truth Trust (Zutrauen, Kredit), 504, 701 , cf. xxxiv, 656, 782, see also Hope, Confidence, Faith, Distrust Truth (Wahrheit), xx, xxxiii, 19 br. n. 235, 64, 1 0 1 , 1 14-15, 128', 135 br. n. 204, 1 9 1 , 350, 360, 5 1 9, 675, 695, 762, 767 incl. br. n. 1 69, 788, 803, 8 1 7-19, 850-5 1 , 883, concerns the content of cognition, 83, cf. 87, see also Cognition; is (rests on) the agreement (of cognition, the concept) with the (its) object, 82-83, 196-97, 236, 296, 670, 848, see also Object; (transcendental,) is refer-
1016
INDEX
ence to an object (objective reality), 87, 5 1 7, cf. 1 14, see also Reality; is ob jective validity, 1 25', 8 16, see also Valid; (formal element of all,) is the agree ment with the (universal and formal) laws of the understanding (and of reason), 84, 350, see also Understanding, Reason; is the agreement of consequences (de rivable from a hypothesis) with one another and with experience, 1 1 5, cf. 247, 375, 670, see also Experience; of the understanding's rules, touchstone thereof, is the systematic unity of the cognitions of understanding, 675; cognized through insufficient bases, is probability, 349, cf. 850, see also Probability; and illusion are in the judgment made about the object insofar as it is thought (rather than intuited), 350, see also Judgment, Illusion; according to the truth and according to man, 767 incl. br. ns. 167 and 169; positive, 85; objective, 85; transcenden tal, 1 85, 269; material, 85; empirical, 1 85 , 236, 247, 479, 520, 679; absolutely necessary and universally valid, 63; unconditional, 389; useful, xxxiv; deficient but not deceptive, 349, cf. 850; demonstrated, 8 1 9 ; form of, 84; possibility of, 8 1 7, 8 19; (negative, formal, necessary, indispensable) condition of, 84, 1 9 1 incl. br. n. 1 66, 236, 247; ([merely] logical, negative, universal, sufficient) criterion (-ia) (mark, indicator, touchstone) of, 82-84, 190, 1 9 1 , 3 1 7, 453 incl. br. n. 109, 479, 493, 675, 679, cf. 5 19, 521 incl. br. n. 1 26; documentation of, 778; prov ing of, 849; bases of, 3 16, cf. 349, 788, 817; determining basis of, 1 9 1 ; source(s) of (all), 296, 375, 817, cf. 64, 670; cognition of, 100, 190, 349, 821 ; compre hending of, 817; logic of, 87, 170 incl. br. n. 12; guidance to, 85 1 ; track of, 792, cf. 803; discovery of, 823; land of, 294-95 br. n. 128; an air of, 86; see also True, Verify Ultimate(ly) ([zU]le1Zl), 22, 33, 92, 127, 99', 1 73, 223, 264, 359, 417, 501 , 535, 747, 777, 783, 801, 822, 826, 834, 868, 877, subject, 250, 303 n. 1 57; object, 49 1 ; (possible) purpose(s), 425 br. n. 295, 49 1 , 492 br. n. 12, 825-47 (specifi cally, 825, 832, 834, 847), see also Purpose; final purpose, 425 incl. br. n. 295; aim, 829, see also Aim; means, 453; support, 641 Unbounded
(unbegrenzt), see Boundless
Unchangeable (unveriinderlich), xxxviii, 2 1 3 , 294, 374 incl. br. n. 126, 499 n. 44, cf. 17, 19 br. n. 235, 2 14, 7 1 8, see also Immutable, Eternal, Changeable Unconditioned or unconditional(ly) (unbedingt), the, is never an object of (is not found in) experience (intuition), 367, 436, 5 1 1 , 538, 554, 593, cf. 644, 649, cf. xx, 383, 5 1 5, see also Experience, Intuition; the, in objects (things in them selves), see Object, Thing in itself; the three, 379, 391-93; syllogisms as pro ceeding to the, 379, cf. 392-93, 444; the, equated with principles, see Principle; the, completes the unity of the understanding's conditioned cognition, 364, cf. 380, 383, 436, 444, 526, 6 1 2, 621, 644, see also Understanding, Cognition; the, alone makes possible the totality of conditions, 379, cf. 39 1 , 436, see also To tality, Condition; two ways of thinking of the, 445-46, see also Thought; (nec essary, transcendent) concept (idea) of the, xxi incl. n. 87, 379 incl. br. n. 1 50, 5 15, 623, cf. 484; determinations of the, xxi br. n. 90, cf. 365; actuality of the, 623, cf. 365; the, is found only in the idea, 436, cf. xxi n. 87, 445 n. 64, 484, 5 15; the, as contained in concepts of reason, 367, cf. 380, 7 1 0; relation of ideas (concepts of reason) to the, see Idea; reason seeks (demands, aims at), see Rea-
INDEX
1017
son, Antinomy; a given, see Given; mathematically, see Mathematical; dynami cally, see Dynamical; absolute(ly), see Absolute; the, as necessary, see Neces sary; necessity (necessary), see Necessity, Apodeictic, Reason; (necessary) being, see Being (Wesen); necessity, of appearance Uudgments), see Appearance, Judg ment; necessity, of the beginning of a series, see Series; series (series extend ing up to the), see Series; synthesis (beginning thereof) see Synthesis; magni tude, see Magnitude; completeness, xx', 543, 608; totality, see Totality, Reason; whole, 445 inc!. n. 64, 533, 588, 82 1 ; part for a whole, 588; unity, see Unity, Idea, Principle, Mathematical, Quality; unity, of all conditions, 391 ; condition, 397'-98', 401', 403', 485, 545, 558-59 inc!. n. 266, 580-82, 585 inc!' br. n. 360, cf. xx, 588-90, 592-93, sensibly, 585 inc!. br. n. 360, 586, see also Sen sible; causality, see Causality, Freedom; beginning, 495, 5 15, see also Begin ning, Series, Synthesis; (necessary) existence, 502, 533, 589, 590, 6 1 3-14, see also Existence; existence of substance, see Substance; bearing and support, 495; originator, 652, see also Being (Wesen) (original); truth, see Truth, Series; ap proval, 285; submission, 653 Uncritical
(unkritisch), 796, see also Dogmatic, Critical
Understand (verstehen), 333, 367, xix', xxxi, xxxiii inc!. br. n. 1 32, xliii, 42, 86, 106, 1 1 1 , 1 14 br. n. 239, 29 1 , 293, 338 n. 1 24, 370, 402 n. 25, 408, 4 1 9, 43 1 , 494, 501 , 620, 62 1 , 660, 672, 724, 729, 800, 805, 874, cf. 24 br. n . 262, 360', 643, see also Understanding, Understandability, Comprehension, Insight, Mis understand Understandability or understandable (Verstandlich[keit]), 1 1 n. 200, 75, 1 15, 1 9 1 , 280, 292, 300 incl. n . 144b, 368, 369, 598, 6 1 8, 621 , cf. 8 inc!. br. n . 174, see also Understand, Understanding Understanding '(Verstand), (various) explications of, all come to the same, 1 26'; as (a, the, our) (nonsensible) cognitive power (power of [a priori] cognition[s]) (through concepts), 92-93 inc!. br. n. 122, 1 37, 97', 3 1 7-18, cf. xvii', 1 50, 283, 357-58, 667, 684, see also Cognition, Concept; its supply of a priori cognition cannot be hidden from us, 26; is one of the three higher cognitive powers (and, in the broad sense, is the combination of these), 169; as our spontaneity (of cog nition), 75 inc!. br. n. 22, 1 26', 1 50, 162 n. 3 1 1 , cf. 1 30, see also Spontaneity; as our power of (ability to produce) presentation(s), 75, 130, cf. 169; as (a) power of concepts, 126', 198, cf. 33, 92, 104, 109-10, 124' inc!. br. n. 162, 307, 377, 435, 682, see also Presentation; in logic, deals with nothing but itself and its form, ix; as (a) power of thought (thinking) (power [ability] to think [the object of sensible intuition]), 75, 94, 97', 1 26', 145, cf. 29, 33, 87, 106, 1 35, 1 39, see also Thought; all its acts can be reduced to judgments, 19, 94, see also Judg ment, Action; as (a) power of judgment(s) Uudging), see Judgment-power of; as (a, our) power of rules, vii' br. n. 7, 126'-27', 1 7 1 , 197, 356, cf. 172 inc!. br. n. 26, 360, see also Rule; as (the) source of principles, laws (of nature), see Principle, Law, Nature, Source; is one of the two stems of human cognition, 29, cf. 75 inc!. br. ns. 19 and 22, 89, 92-93, 1 1 9', 124' inc!. br. n. 163, 1 30, 166, 186, 31 4, 3 1 6, 31 7- 1 8, 324-25, 327, 344, 355, 377, 397', 574-75, see also Sen sibility, Reason; (human, our,) does not (cannot) intuit (anything) (is not intui tive hut discursive), xxxix hr. n. 144g, 75 inc!. hr. n. 20, 1 30 hr. n. 190, 1 39, cf.
1018
INDEX
33 br. n. 13, 93, 1 35, 153, 283, 3 1 1-12, 684, 723 br. n. 296, 798; is (its acts are) realized by sensibility, see Sensibility, Object, Reason; both it and sensi bility (intuition, imagination) are required for cognition, see Cognition; it and sensibility can determine objects only in combination, 3 14, cf. 75, 1 1 9', 1 24', 1 28', 1 5 1 -52, 1 64, 1 66, 1 86, 246 inc!. br. n. 1 66, 300 n. 144, 3 1 3 , 327, 343, 351 inc!. n. 1 6, 363, 723 br. n. 296, 736 br. n. 10, 793; sensibility is an object for it, 692; limits sensibility, 344; is an (absolute, self-subsistent) unity, 89-90, 92, see also Unity; (pure,) is the (synthetic) unity of apperception, see Apper ception; as (having) the power to combine (a priori) (to order, give rules to) (the manifold, the material) (of, for) presentations (intuitions, concepts, cognition), 135, 1 26', 1 30 incl. br. n. 190, 145-46, 1 53, 1 64, cf. 1, 102, 105, 106, 129 br. n. 1 88, 135, 140, 143-44, 151 inc!. br. n. 27 1 , 155, 1 56 n. 292, 1 68-69, 283f, 305 n. 169, 306, 362, 363, 526, 6 1 1 n. 83, 672, 795, see also Intuition, Synthe sis, Combination; is a power of providing unity of appearances by means of rules, 359, cf. 126', 1 28', 1 65, 244-45, 28 1 , 436, 6 l l n. 83, 672, see also Ap pearance; is an a priori condition of appearances (makes them possible for mally), 1 27', cf. 6-7, 1 1 9', 256, 305 n. 169, 3 1 3 , 572-73, see also Condition; makes possible the presentation of an Object, 244-45, cf. 286-87; is required for (is the author [formal and synthetic principle] of, contains the basis of, pro duces, gives the rule to) (all, possible) experience (as such), xvii, 1 inc!. n. 1 53, 1 27, 97'-98', 1 19', 244, 283 , 383, cf. 124', 127', 128', 1 67, 28 1 -82, 295-96, 363 , 6 10, 673, 693, see also Experience; cannot determine for itself the bounds of its use, 297; (ours,) is limited (restricted) by (cannot overstep the limits of) sensibility (the world of sense), 9, 1 85-87, 303, 305 n. 1 69, cf. 87-88, 3 13, 3 3 1 -33, 350-53, 390, 435, 496-97, 559 n. 266, 673, see also Sensibility; as wanting to go beyond the realm of appearances, 57, cf. 1 n. 153, 673; the unity of its conditioned cognition is completed by the unconditioned, see Uncondi tioned; reason as dealing with (the cognition of), see Reason; as an object (for reason), see Object; all our (human) cognition starts from the senses (intui tions), proceeds from there to understanding (concepts) and ends with reason (ideas), 355, 730, cf. xvii, 1 , 363; is capable of being taught, 172; we have it on ly under the presupposition of differences in nature, and only under the con dition that nature's objects possess homogeneity, 685; ([every] possible,) as such (in general), 76, 77, 94, 1 37, 1 38-39, 1 69 , 1 7 1 , 736 inc!. hr. n. 10, 824, cf. 1 26', 336, 337, 380, 383, 384; natural, 632, see also Natural; human, common, sound, see these headings; degree of, 172 n. 28; the keenest human, 68 1 ; limited, 1 72; all use of, 133 n. 202, 378, cf. 76, 172, 322, 378, 550, 67 1 , 688, 736, 800, 844; general use of, 76, cf. 77; manifold use of, 675, cf. 676; ordinary (use of), 4-5 inc!. br. n. 1 6 1 ; particular use of, see Particular; special use of, 76, cf. l l l ; nec essary use of, 78; assertoric use of, 3 1 0; objectively valid (true) use of, 1 70; formal use of, 355; (merely) logical use of, 92-94 (specifically, 92), 128, 1 3 1 , 230, 355, cf. 3 1 4, 394; conceptual, xxxix br. n . 144g, 75 br. n . 20; discursive, see Discursive; (as such,) pure (use of) (use [power] of pure), xvi'-xvii', xxx viii, 9, 8 1 , 88-90, 92 br. n. 1 22, 106-8, 1 1 1 , 1 1 9', 1 27', 128', 174, 1 75, 1 79, 1 87, 1 89, 193, 1 97-200, 202 inc!. n. 33, 2 1 6, 285, 29 1 , 294, 296, 300 n. 144, 302-4, 305 n. 169, 3 10, 3 14, 3 1 7, 3 1 9-2 1 , 323-25, 332, 333, 335, 345, 352-
INDEX
1019
53, 357, 364-65, 384, 390, 397', 469, 488, 573, 574, 7 1 3, 724, 76 1 , 793, 798, 824, 882; ([all] possible, merely) empirical use of, 88 inc!. br. n. 88, 198, 222-23, 266, 285, 287 n. 96, 296-97, 305 n. 169, 3 1 3, 3 15, 3 1 6-49 (specifically, 3 1 6, 320), 365 , 486, 5 1 5 , 572, 575, 586, 590, 658, 693-94, 706, 708, 729, principles thereof, see Principle; immanent, experiential, see these headings; transcenden tal use (of the pure concepts, of the principles) of, see Transcendental; specu lative, 632, cf. xxxii; dialectical use of, see Dialectical; hyperphysical use of, 88; roaming use of, 870; extensive and accordant use of, 385; coherent use of, 679; systematic use of, 799, cf. 693, 708; complete use of, 601 ; practical use of, 384; intuitive, see Intuitive, Object, Manifold, Intuition (intellectual), Thing in itself, Presentation; archetypal, 723 inc1. br. n. 296; highest (supreme), 374, 6 1 1 n. 83; divine, 145, 596; nature of (my, human), l lO, 1 26', 667, 676, 757; possibility of (pure), xvi', 89, 97', 1 3 1 , 137, 153, 3 1 2, 344, 408, 685 , cf. 14 n. 2 17, 98; criterion of, 1 26'; critique of, see Critique; analysis (dissection) of (the power of), 90 inc!. br. n. 105, cf. 84; analytic of pure, 303, cf. 824; logic (of the use) of, see Logic; canon of, see Canon; (objective, subjective) examination (contemplation) of (pure), xvi'-xvii', 873; science of (the rules of) (pure), 76, 8 1 ; physiology of, ix'; (mere, entire) powers (ability) of, 790, 795; peculiarity (current arrangement) of our, 145-46, 305 n. 169; genealogical tree of pure, 108; self-delivery of our, 793; cognitive powers underlying, xvi', cf. 29, 97'-98', 1 3 1 , 1 37, 1 53, 573, 6 l l , 677-78; bounds (of the use) o f (pure), see Boundary; range of pure, 1 93, cf. 673; territory of, 496, cf. 352; land of, 294; sphere of, 62 1 , 796; realm o f (pure), I n . 153, 89, 344, 408, cf. 496, 685 ; world of, 305 n . 169, 3 l l , 3 12, see also World, Presentation; beings of, see Being (Wesen), Noume non; beings having, see Being ( Wesen); all people with, 7 1 6; relation of, to ob jects, see 9bject; comparison of objects with, see Comparison; (pure) object(s) of (objects of pure), see Object, Appearance, Substance, Nature, Sensibility, Nou menon, Thing in itself; event in, 848; acts (activity) of, see Action, Activity; functions of, see Function, Judgment, Synthesis; conditions of, 620, cf. 62 1 ; el ements of, 78, 98'; (mere, pure, a priori) form (of the use) of, 80, 85, 95, 164, 1 69, 283, 305-6, cf. 77, 84, 105, 128', 267, 309, 343, 348', 405', see also Form; unity (of the use) of, see Unity; (pure, a priori) concepts (categories) of, see Concept, Categories, Synthesis, Appearance, Cognition, Reason; predicaments (predicables )of pure, 108; thought (thinking) of (pure), see Thought; presenta tion(s) of (by), 105, l l 2- 1 3 , 145 inc1. br. n. 249, 3 1 3, 320, 3 3 1 -32, 379, 723 br. n. 296, cf. 75, 1 30, as (allegedly) confused (and corrupted) by the senses, 332, 882, see also Confused, Sense; judgments of Uudging by), 26, 93, 327, 351 n. 1 6. 363, 348', 405', 848, cf. 98, 3 1 6, 350; (universal, necessary) rule(s) of (for, for the use of), xvi', xvii, 76-78, 83-84, 1 1 3, 145, 172 br. n. 26, 262, 28 1 , 296, 352, 442, 601 , 673, 675, 676; rules of, are the source of all truth, 296, cf. 675; laws of, see Law, Nature, Truth; principles (of [for] the [transcenden tal, empirical] use) of (pure), see Principle; schematism (of the pure concepts) of (pure), see Schematism, Categories; (pure) cognition (by means) of (pure), see Cognition, Nature, Unity, System, Reason, As such; knowledge of, 297, 31 4, 327, 364-65, cf. 501, 708; insight of, 1 73, cf. 2 1 3 ; comprehending by, 291, 307, cf. 333, 496, 5 0 1 ; reflection by, 297 ; inference of (by), 360, 794, cf. 36 1 ; (nec-
1 020
INDEX
essary) linking with, 1 0 1 ; reference to, 1 l0, 1 1 9', 136, 287 n. 96, 67 1 , cf. 330,
see also Appearance; application(s) (exercise) of, 77, 152; (proper) business of, 3 19, 497, 692; task of, 685; burden of, 475; problem for, 536; aim of, l 26', cf. 672; demand of, 322; pretensions of, 88; precept for, 682; motive of, 501 ; ef fort of, 173; as set in motion, 9, cf. 1 ; causality by means of, see Causality; guidance of, 385, 497, cf. 675 incl. br. n. 48; purposive engagement of, 672; vocation of, 345; advancement of, 3 14, cf. 800; broadening of, 363; (greatest possible) expansion (of the use) of (pure), 174 incl. br. n. 37, 352, 380, 49 8, 620, 673, 795, see also Expansion; negative expansion of our, 3 1 2; problematic extension of, 31 0, cf. 3 12; confinement of, 620; limiting it without bounding it, 795; procedure ([natural) course) of (the common), 179, 240, 6 1 8; preparation of, 665, cf. 685; presupposition of the common, 556; anticipation by, 217, 303; divining by, 794; investigation (exploration) by, 475, 496, 497; scrutinizing by, 1 26'; admission into (incorporation in), 1 0 1 ; discovery by (common), 1 3 , 859 incl. br. n. 153; exhibition by, 496; pronouncement (claims) of, 217, 324, 796, cf. 306; decision of, 28 1 , 283; jurisdiction of, 281 ; warning by, 344; attentive ness of, 682; freedom of, 2 1 5 ; convenience of, 363; satisfaction of, 559, 64 1 ; benefit of, 353, cf. 709; cathartic of the common, 78; play of, 298, 352; empty space of pure, 9; coherence of, 1 1 9', 1 24', 362; agreement (commensurateness, congruence) (of cognition, unity) with, 86, 164, 450, cf. 1 0 1 , 380, 557, 563; as in conflict with itself, 84; impairment of (interference with), 282, 573; incapac ity (feebleness) of our, 64 1 , 650; subtle reasoning by the common, 50 1 ; as mis led, 307, cf. 688; erring by, 350, cf. 3 5 1 n. 16, 67 1 ; delusion of, 286; a phe nomenon of, 609; see also Intellect, Understand, Understandability Uniform(ity) (Gleichjormig[keit), einerlei), 1 83, 2 1 5, 2 1 8, 252 n. 1 9 1 , 254, 479, 493, 577, 695, 7 5 1 , see also Unity, Regular, Homogeneous Unit (Einheit, Eines), 15, 1 02', 103', 205, 300, 456, 458, 460 incl. n. 140, 466, 5 5 1 , 555, see also Unity, Unitary Unitary
(einig), 694 br. n. 1 57, see also Single, Singular, Unit, Unity
Unite (vereinigen, vereinen), xix', 1 5 , 58, 72 br. n. 1 83, 103, 103', 105', 134, 13739, 220, 282, 295, 305 incl. n. 169, 32 1 , 329-30, 359', 386', 49 1 , 566 incl. br. n. 294, 638, 65 1 , 665 br. n. 364, 672, 686, 688 incl. br. n. 1 30, 691 , 696 br. n. 1 67, 71 0, 739, 770 br. n. 1 86, 826, 828, 832, 841 , 843, 857 n. 1 5 1 , 863, see also Unity Unity (Einheit), absolute, see Absolute; (mathematically) unconditioned, 391 , 398, 398', 404', 432-33, 560, 7 10; (logically, subjectively, objectively) necessary, 104, 1 01', 108'-10', 1 12', 1 14', 1 1 8', 1 1 9', 1 22'-25', 129', 135, 140, 142, 144, 162, 1 85, 1 95-97, 220, 385, 353', 647, 676, 678-79, 703, 727, 799, 845, cf. 234; universal (universally valid), 1 1 2', 1 1 4', 1 40, 224, 7 19; formal, 1 05', 125' incl. br. n. 166, 127', 415 n. 275, 7 14; logical, 224, 355', 356', 398', 413, cf. 305; numerical, 107'; analytic, see Analytic; a priori (pure), 104, 107', 109', 1 14', 1 17' n. 138, 1 1 8', 1 25', 1 3 1 , 134, 177, 1 85, 220, 263, 264, 359, 503, 702, cf. 676, 678, 72 1 ; synthetic, I I br. n. 201, 1 04, 1 05, 1 23, 1 01', 1 05', 106', 1 10', 1 1 6', 1 1 7' incl. n. 1 38, 12 1', 122', 125', 1 26', 128', 1 30-3 1 inc I. br. n. 190, 133 incl. n. 202, 1 34, 136, 1 38, 139 incl. br. n. 2 19, 148, 1 50 incl. br. n. 267, 154 , 1 6 1 -63, 1 77, 1 94-97 inc!. br. n. 200, 203 incl. br. n. 39, 2 1 8, 220, 226, 234,
INDEX
1 02 1
241 , 262, 264, 267, 28 1 , 296, 359, 364, 370-7 1 , 377, 378, 383, 3 9 1 , 398, 349', 436, 642, 749, 750; synthetic a priori (pure), 104, 177, 264; transcendental, 108', 1 1 8', 1 32, 1 39, 142, 1 5 1 , 1 95-96, 220 incl. br. n. 18, cf. 669-70; (empirically) possible, 1 2 1', 133 n. 202, 596; empirical, 139-40, 23 1 , 503, 646, 705, 7 10, cf. 596; given (in itself), I n. 153, 1 14', 675; actual, 679; subjective (subjectively valid), 139 inc!. br. n. 22 1 , 140, 142; objective (objectively valid), 107', 122'-23', 1 39-42, 334, 679; natural, see Natural; material, 769; immaterial, 769; incor poreal, 703; (subjectively, objectively necessary) law-governed, 475; system atic, 9 1 , 596, 644, 647, 675, 676, 678-79, 680, 685, 686, 692, 693, 696, 698, 699, 701-3, 705-10, 7 1 3, 7 1 5, 7 16, 7 1 9-23 inc!. n. 301 , 725, 726-28, 730, 835, 836, 842-45, 860-62, 866-68, 873, see also Systematic, Principle, Idea, Truth, Reason; (systematically) complete, 493, 673, 705, 722, cf. 364, 6 1 1 n. 83, 642, 685, 690; greatest (possible, empirical, systematic), 645, 646, 672, 698, 704, 706, 707, 7 15, 722, 727, cf. 729; thoroughgoing, 1 10'- 1 2', 129', 229, 475, 673, 693, 694; technical, 861 inc!. br. n. 1 6 1 ; architectonic, 861 ; rational, 503; regulative, 6 1 1 n. 83; special (particular), 65 1 , 835, 873; purposive, 7 1 4, 720 inc!. br. n. 278, 722, 727, 728, 840, 843, 845, 847, 854, cf. 494, 65 1 , 72 1 , 725 ; moral, see Moral; highest, 355, 361 , 365; supreme (systematic), 703, 7 14, 7 1 6; perfect, xiii', xx', 703, 709, 843, 868, cf. 722, see also Reason; admirable, 49 1 ; well-based, 689; contingent, I l l ', 1 14', 1 39-40, 466, 72 1 , cf. 769; hypothetical, 677, cf. 689; projected, 675; indeterminate, 693, cf. 72 1 ; hidden, 679; extraneous, 7 2 1 ; derivative, 646; original, 1 1 8', 1 3 1 , 1 35-37 inc!. n . 210, 140, 143, 1 5 1 , 1 57, 169, 7 10, cf. 296; self-subsistent (sufficient to itself), xxiii, 89-90, cf. 7 1 8; in dispensable (essential, salutary, useful), 709, 7 10; indestructible, 491 ; perma nent, 769; unchanged, 7 1 8 ; indivisible, 355', 49 1 ; homogeneous, 1 1 5 ; qualita tive, 1 1 4,. 1 3 1 , 4 1 3 ; collective, 1 17' n. 1 38, 353', 610, 672; distributive, 610, 672; individual, 362' inc!. br. n. 96; dynamical, 262; category of, 106 inc!. br. n. 1 87, 1 14, 1 15, 1 3 1 , cf. 1 1 1 , 403'-4'; concept of, I l l , 1 15, 105', 1 30, 392, 353', 669-70, 673, 7 1 2 br. n. 239; predicate of, 669-70; presentation of, 1 3 1 , 229, 723 n . 301 ; idea of, 673, 675, 680, 690, 706, 709, 720, 722, cf. 394, 560, 698, 702, 7 1 2 br. n. 239, 727; necessity of (synthetic), 234; possibility of, 105', 108', 226, 229, 282, 475, 750, 840; apprehension of, 210; perception of, 402', 7 1 8, 727; consciousness of, 1 03', 202-3 inc!. br. n. 39; awareness of, 727; thought of, 1 5 1 , 203, 224, 398', 7 1 0; functions of, 94, 303 n. 1 57, 349'; sub jective forms of, 343 ; determination(s) of, 308 inc!. br. n. 1 8 1 , 365'; schema of, 725; exhibition of, 263; synthesis of, 460 inc!. n. 138; cognition of, 1 14'; ac quaintance with, 365', 420; insight into, 799; principle(s) of, see Principle; (regu lative) law(s) of, 1 28', 522, 728; (a priori, universal) rule(s) of synthetic (a priori), 1 1 0', 1 1 2', 196, 264, 523, 647, cf. 1 26'-27', 222, 263, 359, 673, 693, 699; maxim of, 694, 708; prescription of, 867-68; presupposition of, 678, 679, 721 ; condition[sl of (for) (the possibility of), 123, 1 10', 1 24', 1 36, 223-24, 226, 23 1 , 241 , 401', 407, 450, 854; (a priori, subjective, objective, transcendental, original, supreme) basis (-es) of, 104, 1 0 1 ', 1 06', 1 1 1', 1 2 1 ', 125', 1 85, 334, 646, 703, 705, 709, 725, 726, 844, 845, 86 1 , cf. 7 14, 840, 854; substratum of, 706, 725; (empirical) cause(s) of, 645, 703; originator of, 725; excogitation of, 689; postulation of, 676, 678; demand for, see Reason; desire for, 680; interest of,
1022
INDEX
694; expectation of, 7 1 9-20; reference to, 705, 860; path to, 696, cf. 720; at tainment of, 727-29; derivation of, 701 , 723; correctness of, 398; as a real re lation, 265 n. 244; plurality regarded as, is allness, I l l ; a magnitude as, 2 1 0, cf. 2 1 2; as underlying any number, 2 1 2; examples of, 854; application of, 845; preservation of, 698; (highest possible) extending of, 380, 709- 10, cf. 383; de gree of empirical, 705, 730; supplementation of, 720; completion of, 364, 6 1 1 n . 83, 642, 685, cf. 493, 673, 705, 722; bounds of, see Boundary; violation of, 829; annulment of, 720-21 , cf. 854; of (among) presentation(s), see Presenta tion; of (outer sensible) intuition(s) (as such), 99', 143, 144-45 inc!. n. 244, 162, 308, 378; (synthetic,) of (in) (a) (possible) perception(s), 1 10', 1 1 2', 226, 403', 748-49, cf. 220, 282; of apprehension, 1 2 1 ', 1 27'; in inner sense, 1 85, cf. 7 10; formal, of all empirical use of the imagination, 125' inc!. br. n. 166; of (in, as) (the use of, the act[s] of) (pure) understanding, 89-90, 92, 1 23, 1 19', 153, 162, 169, 28 1 , 343, 363, 380, 383, 450, 610, 672, 692, 693, cf. 104-5, 126, 1 36-39, 144, 160 n. 305, 282, 296, 355, 359, 436, 450, 6 10, 673, 675, 676, 709, 729, see also Understanding, Nature; of (as, expressed by) the category (-ies), 1 77, 305 n. 169, 383, 401', 403', cf. 11 br. n. 20 1 , 1 45-46, 1 5 1 , 1 8 1 , 1 85, 224, 234, 282, 366-67, 421-22; (logical, universal, qualitative,) of (through, by means of, according to) concept(s), 91-92, 105, 1 14, 1 1 5, 105'-7', 1 1 0'-1 2', 1 3 1 , 1 8 1 , 196 inc!. br. n . 200, 224, 282, 359, 366', 403', 67 1 -73, 677, 680, 693, 708, 845, cf. 1 60 n. 305, 234, 305 n. 1 69, 366-67, 39 1 , 450, see also Concept; (synthetic, empirical, highest,) of (in) thought (thinking), 123, 304, 3 1 1 , 3 1 4, 355, 383, 353', 398', 413, 422, 647, 7 10, 712, cf. 427, see also Thought; of (self-)consciousness, see Consciousness; as (a priori) underlying empirical consciousness, 220; of ap perception, see Apperception; (a priori, synthetic) of (in) the (a) manifold (the manifold of [in] presentation[s], intuition, perceptions, cognition[s] , appear ances, space, the world whole), 104-5, 1 14, 99', 1 03', 105', 106', 109', 1 1 6'-18', 1 26'-27', 130-3 1 , 134, 1 39, 145, 160, 162-63, 177, 1 85, 197, 203, 2 1 8 , 304, 305 n. 1 69, 401', 466, 699, 706, cf. 690, 723 n. 301 ; of (a transcendental) time determination, 177, 262, cf. 179, 1 82, 23 1 -32; synthetic, in the time relation of all perceptions, 220, cf. 262; of (in) the schema, 224; of the act of arranging presentations, 93, 303 n. 1 57, see also Function; (necessary,) of (in) (the imagi nation's, the understanding's) synthesis (of the manifold, of presentations, of thoughts, of intuitions, of appearance[sD, 104-5, 1 27 n. 48, 103', 105', 106', 108', I l l ', 1 1 8', 1 1 9', 1 23', 1 37, 1 6 1 , 164, 1 82, 196, 197, 224, 263, 296, 450, cf. 1 38, 144 n. 244, 1 6 1 , 163, 203, see also Necessary; in the collating of the manifold of cognitions, 1 14; (empirical, systematic,) of cognition(s) (cognition as), xx', 104'-5', 107', 1 1 6', 223-24, 359, 36 1 , 364, 365, 377-78, 644, 673, 675, 676, 678, 690, 702-3, 750, 860, 873, cf. 866, see also Cognition, Truth, Rea son, System, Unconditioned; of knowledge, 866; (synthetic, empirical, regula tive, law-governed, thoroughgoing, greatest possible,) of (possible) experience (the use thereof, a whole thereof), 1 16', 125', 197, 2 1 8, 222, 229, 25 1 , 263, 267, 282, 296, 363-64, 475, 477, 522-23, 610, 6 1 1 n. 83, 629, 702-3, 706, cf. 223-24, 226, 269, 28 1 , 370-7 1 , 383, 450, 596, 690, 693, 696, 700, 708- 1 0, 7 1 6, 720, 729, 854; (in the existence) of appearance(s), see Appearance; of (in) time, see Time; unconditioned, in the plurality in time, 404'; of space, see Space;
INDEX
1 023
unconditioned, of existence in space, 404'; of nature, see Nature; (necessary,) of (the derivation of) (a substance's) force(s) ([mental] power[s], causality), 492, 676-79, 799, cf. 690; of (according to, in terms of) laws, 720, 727; 828, 843; of (under, according to) principles (of coherence in a principle), 359, 362, 686, 708, 835, 847, cf. 36 1 , 690, 693-94, see also Principle; of (the, understand ing ' s, nature ' s) rule(s), 105', 359, 678; of the maxim, 493; in judgments, 94, 1 3 1 , cf. 303 n. 1 57; of reflection, 367; of (among) basis (-es) of explanation. 1 1 5. 640; of science, see Science; of metaphysics. see Metaphysics; of our plan, 28; of the topic (in a play. etc.). 1 14; in the production of a quantum, 1 1 5 ; un conditioned, of quality. 404'; of (basic) properties, 680, cf. 690; unconditioned, of relation, 404'; of variation, 229; of genera (the genus), 683, 69 1 ; of the cause, 69 1 ; unconditioned synthetic, of a (the) series (of conditions), 39 1 , 398, cf. 67 1 ; unconditioned synthetic, of all conditions as such, 39 1 ; of the subjective con ditions of all presentations as such, 432; of the conditions of thought as such, 405'; of the condition of all objects of thought as such, 39 1 ; of the objective conditions in the (realm of) appearance, 433; for the possibility of objects as such, 433; absolute synthetic, of all conditions of the possibility of things as such, 39 1 , 398; (purposive, greatest systematic,) of things, 7 14, 7 1 5, 843, cf. 690, 720, 721 ; of objects (of an object, an object a�), 305 n. 169, 47 1 , 698, cf. 105', 109', 1 39, 150, 2 1 8, 220, 263, 269, 377-78. 676, 693, see also Object; a body as, 8 12; of parts, 862, cf. 860-6 1 ; of substance(s), see Substance; of the thinking substance, 7 1 8 ; of (in) my thinking self, 491 ; of (in) the (thinking) sub ject, see Subject; of the thinking being, 353' inc!. br. n. 63, cf. 769; of the soul (the soul as), 402, 769, 803; of the (presentation) I, 355', 398', 7 1 8; of myself, 362'; of the person, 7 1 8; (hypothetical, greatest, highest,) of reason (adequate to reason', xxiii, 359, 363, 365, 383, 450, 67 1 -73, 676-8 1 , 693, 698, 708, 7 16, 868, cf. 394, 503, 6 1 1 n. 83, 675, 689-90, 692, 694, 699, 702-4, 709-10, 7 1 4, 721 , 722-23, 727, 825-26, 835, 845, 847, 854, see also Boundary; of (in, un der, in terms of) an idea (ideas), 3 3 1 , 450, 690, 860-61 , cf. 394, 595-96, 698, 702, 708, 709, 716, 7 19, 727; of a (the) system (a system as), xix', xliv, 2 1 3, 683 inc!. br. n. 9 1 , 708, 829, 860; of association, 1 2 1 '; of a teleological connec tion, 7 1 9; (necessary, systematic,) of purposes, 385, 730, 825-26, 842-43, 845, 856, cf. 860, 868; of (among) wills (powers of choice), 836, 843, cf. 844-45; (absolute, supreme and necessary,) of complete (of all) reality, 6 1 5 , 703, cf. 330, 727; of the supreme reality, see Reality; (systematic,) of (in) the world (world whole, world of sense), 265 n. 244, 656, 660, 707, 725, cf. 494, 653-54, 706, 7 1 3, 7 1 5 , 842-43, see also Principle; of the cause (originator) of the world, 653, 656; see also Coherence, Order (Ordnung), Organization, Structure, System, Whole, Unite, Unit, Unitary, Disunity Universal (al/gemein), analytically, see Analytic (analytisch), Concept; syntheti cally, see Concept; absolutely, see Absolute; more (so), 1 88, cf. 13; the, power to find (think up) the particular for, 682 br. n. 86, cf. 84 br. n. 69, 173, see also Reason, Particular; the, cognition (contemplation) of the particular in, 357, 742, see also Cognition; contemplation of the, in the particular, 742; consideration of the, in abstracto and in concreto, 762; the, as certain or as assumed (a mere idea), 674; the, insight into, 1 73; concept, presentation, judgment, proposition,
1024
INDEX
cognition. principle, law, rule, validity, unity, condition, function, contingency, genus, problem, interest, reason, see these headings; procedure, 1 79; element of the synthesis, 752; time determination, 1 77, 220; determination of an object, 742; object, 346; sources of reason, 864-65; self-consciousness, 1 32; thought, 177; criterion (-ia, indicator), 82-83, 190; inference, l l2'; justification (show ing), 172, 667; answer (solution), 398', 745; insight, 173; certainty, 200; natu ral science, see Natural; natural necessity, 570; mechanism, xxxii; contingency and dependence, 59 1 ; coherence, 283; order, 842; something, l O6'; a, accord ing to concepts, 358; belonging to or contradicting of a concept, 337; a given, see Given; an available, 84 br. n. 69; the, as matter, 322; what is, in relations, 57; consequence of the, 674 inc!. br. n. 40; reference, 120, 1 85, cf. 390; way of saying (something), 5 1 , 387, cf. 565 ; possibility of the use of concepts, 159; use of concepts, 362; use of principles, 88; recognition of a principle, 793; use of numbers, 205 ; horizon, 687; purview, 687; human concerns, xxxi-xxxiii; ex pression, 96', 1 38; delusion, 128; harm, xxxiv; confession, 8 l l ; forbearance, l l7; see also Universality, General
Universal Natural History and Theory of the Heavens (Allgemeine Naturge schichte und Theorie des Himmels), 521 br. n. 1 27 Universality (Allgemeinheit), concept of, 5; is the complete magnitude of range in reference to a certain condition, 379; to it corresponds allness or totality of con ditions, 379, see also Allness, Totality; contrasted with allness, 600 n. 27; ab solute, comparative, synthetic, given, see these headings; as involved in (what is) a priori, see A priori; a priori, 52; strict, 3-5, 47, 1 24, cf. 241 , 379; unlim ited, 4, 474; true, 1 n. 153, 3; greater, 13, cf. 188; close to, 675; empirical, 4; of concepts, see Concept; of a question, 398'; of a problem, 19-20; of proposi tions, 4, 64, 474, cf. 39 n. 37, 746, see also Proposition; of assertions, 1 n. 153; of judgments, 3-4, see also Judgment; of cognition, 4, 378, 75 1 , cf. 1 n. 1 53, 358, see also Cognition; of a law, 564, see also Law; of rules, see Rule; of prin ciples, 13, 47, 52, 600 n. 27, 675, 704, 85 1 , see also Principle; of maxims, 789, see also Maxim; in science, see Science; in uncovering the basis on which syn thetic a priori judgments are possible, 14 n. 2 1 7 ; absolute, and necessity are what characterize all geometric propositions, 64, cf. 39 br. n. 39; see also Universal Universe (Weltall, All, Universum), 330, 375, 494, 530, 5 l l inc!. br. n. 98, 649 br. ns. 280 and 282, 650, 656 br. n. 3 1 8, see also World, Total Unknown (unbekannt), 1 3 inc!. br. n. 2 12, 29, 59, 63, 1 00', l O4' inc!. br. n. 9 1 , 236, 3 12, 3 1 4, 404 inc!. br. n. 29, 366', 387', 39 1 '-92', 394', 415 n. 275, 506-7, 520, 524, 573-74, 592, 707, 725, 726 inc!. br. n. 308, cf. 708 inc!. br. n. 225, see also X, Knowledge (Kenntnis) Unlimited (unbeschriinkt, uneingeschriinkt), 4, 48, 88 inc!. br. n. 88, 97, 366, 474, 5 9 1 , 604, 650, 738, 775, 802, cf. 3 8 1 , see also Limitless, Limit Unnatural (unnatiirlich), 63 1 , see also Natural Unnecessary (unnotig), 82, 84 br. n. 69, 82, cf. 476, see also Necessary Use (Gebrauch), of concepts, categories, imagination, synthesis, cognition, judg ments, understanding, reason, ideas, science, space, time, see these headings; of the power of judgment, see JUdgment-power of; in (independent of) expe rience, see Experience; common, manifold, positive, negative, universal, gen-
INDEX
1 025
eral, particular, discursive, logical, mathematical, dynamical, philosophical, real, physical, sensible, intuitive, empirical, experiential, immanent, constitutive, tran scendental, natural, necessary, apodeictic, contingent, hypothetical, theoretical, speculative, intellectual, transcendent, regulative, systematic, practical, moral, hyperphysical, supreme, dogmatic, skeptical, dialectical, polemic, see these head ings; ordinary, special, assertoric, formal, pure, roaming, extensive, accordant, coherent, complete, see Understanding; see also Critique, Discipline, Canon, Principle, Rule, Law, Logic, Metaphysics, Nature, Object, Subject, Freedom, Unity, World, Boundary, Noumenon Vacuum (Vakuum), xii br. n. 57, 28 1 , 261 inc!. br. n. 226, of forms, 687 inc!. br. n. 122; see also Void-the, Space (empty), Empty Vaihinger, Hans, vii' br. n. 5 , 1 br. n. 1 52, 33 br. n. 1 , 37 br. n. 27, 46 br. n. 75, 59 br. n. 135, 109 br. n. 2 1 6, 1 1 2 br. n. 233, 95' br. n. 58, 1 24' br. n. 1 62, 1 27' br. n. 175, 1 34 br. n. 203, 143 br. n. 242, 1 76 br. n. 53, 1 8 1 br. n. 90, 1 95 br. n. 194, 1 96 br. n. 200, 203 br. n. 39, 207 br. n. 74, 252 br. n. 1 89, 255 br. n. 201 , 276 br. n . 49, 284 br. n . 82, 302 br. n. 1 5 3 , 303 br. n . 1 57d, 305 br. n . 1 69a Valentiner, Theodor, 421 br. n. 284, 455 br. n. 1 1 8, 470 br. n. 1 89, 738 br. n. 20 Valid(ity) (Giiltig[keitD, 3, 4, 7, 23, 62, 193, 223, 228, 303 n. 1 57, 3 3 1 , 337 br. n. 1 1 5, 375, 387, 404, 364', 394', 415 n. 275, 4 1 6, 435, 465, 496, 536, 544, 569, 668, 753, 79 1 , 809, 8 14, 838, 848-49, c[ 107 incl. bL n. 97, 433, 779, 846, ob jective(ly), xvi', 44, 5 1 , 52, 57, 8 1 , 1 20, 122-23, 1 26, 97', I l l ', 125', 1 28', 1 29', 137, 140, 142, 168, 1 70, 175 incl. br. n. 43, 195-97, 1 99, 206, 223, 247, 256, 298, 305 n. 1 69, 3 10, 3 1 1 , 324, 327, 343, 345, 363, 365, 368 inc!. br. n. 99, 357', 361', 679, 69 1 , 692, 697, 698, 703, 705, 722, 726, 764, 788, 8 1 0, 816, 867 br. n. 190,means (empirically) real (in regard to all objects that might ever be given to our senses), 44, 52, c[ 62, see also Real, Reality; objective, implies real possibility, xxvi br. n. l 03b, see also Possibility; objective, means (in re lation to) the possibility of the cognition of objects, 122, cf. 1 37, see also Cog nition; objective, rests on possible intuitions, 345, c[ 298, 363, see also Intu ition; objective, is application to experience, 1 99, cf. 1 96-97, 3 10, 705, see also Experience; objective, is truth, 125', 170, 816, see also Truth; absolute, 810; necessary, 849-50; a priori, 4, 1 19-20, 1 1 1 ', 145, 198, 1 99, cf. 122-23; intrin sic, 96; true, 24 1 ; immanent, 666; universal, 43, 64, 65, 72, 140, 241 , 256, 741 , cf. 4 , 262; general, 96, c[ 62, 198; for everyone (for all), 3 3 1 , 838, 848-49, c[ 404, 416; relative, 809; empirical, 664; subjective, 140-42, 848-50; private, 848, 849, c[ 809- 10; indeterminate, 69 1 , 697; practical, 856, c[ 668; of bases, 1 98, 449, 849; of subjective conditions, 122, 1 25'; of the condition under which I think at all, 404; of the (original, empirical) unity of apperception (conscious ness), 140; of the sameness of ourselves, 364'; of a priori sources of cognition, 56; of the conditions for the possibility of experience as such, 1 97; of concepts, categories, judgments, propositions, laws, principles, rules, truth, synthesis, unity, space, time, see these headings; of a cause, 33 1 ; of an event, 8 1 6; of relations, 1 4 1 , 142; of presentations, 1 37; of intuition(s), 43, 57, 72, 298, 343; of cogni tion, see Cognition, Experience; of a presupposition, 368; of assent, 848; of hy potheses, 809- 10; of a maxim, 363; of ideas, xxx br. n. 1 24, 697, 726, 79 1 ; of
1 026
INDEX
the use of understanding, see Understanding; of the use of the power of judg ment, 1 70; of the use of reason, 1 70; of the use of concepts, 23, 1 20; of the use of the categories, 305 n. 1 69; of a criterion of truth, 83; of a syllogism (infer ence), 337 hr. n. l I 5 , 465, 468 incl. hr. n. 1 79, cf. 469 inc1. hr. n. 1 94; of an ohjection, 394'; of (the principles [doctrines 1 of) mathematics, 57, 206, 1 99, cf. 206; of cosmology, 435 ; of analogies, 223; of an organon, 64; of a purpose, 856; of an ohligation, 838; see also Hold, Cogency, Invalid Value (Wert), xxxi, 7, 26, 97, 1 00, 372, 376, 356', 4 1 5 n. 275, 425, 49 1 , 73 1 , 762, 825, 843, 870, 878-79 Variation or vary (Wechsel[nJ), xxxix n. 144, 53, 1 83, 224-27 incl. hr. n. 45, 229-33 inc!. hr. n. 90, 250, 268, 275 hr. n. 46, 277, 290 n. 1 07, 301 , 350', 362', 363', 366', 3 8 1 ', 383', 408, 477, 664, 680, 69 1 , 700, 7 10, 7 1 8, contrasted with change and alteration. 224 hr. n. 45 ; see also Change, Alteration, Accident, Suhstance, Suhstrate, Suhject, Appearance, Thing, Time, Presentation, Unity Verdict (Zensur, Sentenz, Urteil), xv', 323, 530, 767, 780, see also Census, Judgment Vergil, 83 hr. n. 59, 822 hr. n. 406 Verify (bewiihren), xii hr. n. 56, 123, 544, 708, 789, see also Justify, Truth Virgil, see Vergil Virtue (Tugenti), 79, 371 -72, 597, see also Morality Vleeschauwer, Herman Jean de, 89 br. n. 96, 95' hr. n. 58, 129 hr. n. 1 84 Vocation (Bestimmung), vi inc!. n. 3, xiii', xxxii, 345, 421 , 492, 498, 679, 723 n. 301 , 730, 847, 868, see also Destination, Determination Void-the (das Leere), 28 1 , 461 , 545, see also Vacuum, Space (empty), Empty Volume (Volumen, Inhalt), 2 1 5 , 790 inc!. hr. n. 266, 8 1 2, 8 1 3, see also Content Vorlander, Karl, 1 1 7' hr. n. 1 38h, 219 hr. n. 8, 362' hr. n. 97, 4 1 1 hr. n. 257 Wagner, Richard, 784 hr. n. 241 Walsh, W. H., 349 hr. n. 1 , 399 hr. n. 9, 435 hr. n. 22, 595 hr. n. 1 , 670 hr. n. 1 , 839 hr. n. 76 Watson, Walter, xvi hr. n. 7 1 , xxii hr. n. 94, 85 hr. n. 73, 88 hr. n. 95, 107 hr. n. 195, l I 8 hr. n. 1 6, 1 1 5' hr. n. 1 32, 1 3 1 hr. n. 194, 170 hr. n. 15, 3 1 2 hr. n. 195, 324 hr. n. 54, 45 1 hr. n. 99 Way (Weg), 1 67, see also Path, Highway Way of life (Lebenswandel), 583, 584, 840, 847, see also Life Way of thinking (Denkungsart), xi' n. 14, Xi-xiii, xvi, xviii, xix, xxii n. 93, xxx hr. n. 1 24, xxxvii, 275, 326, 335, 493, 579, 683, 694, 704, 776, 785 Weizsacker, C. F. von, 224 hr. n. 46 Weldon, T. D., 35 hr. n. 22, 92 br. n. 1 2 1 , 1 1 6 hr. n. I , 176 hr. n. 46, 197 hr. n. I , 202 br. n. 35, 207 hr. n. 70, 2 1 8 hr. n. 3, 224 br. n. 46, 232 br. n. 88, 256 hr. n. 206, 265 hr. n. 1 , 294 hr. n. 125, 349 br. n. 1 , 399 br. n. 9, 435 br. n. 22. 472 br. n. 202, 595 hr. n. 1 , 620 br. n. 1 1 8, 63 1 br. n. 1 80, 648 br. n. 272, 670 hr. n. I , 736 br. n. 1 3, 839 br. ns. 76 and 77 What is (was da ist), see Is-what Whole (Ganzes), contrasted with a composite, 438 inc!. br. n. 1 76; mathematical, dynamical, phenomenal, real, given, indeterminate, systematic, absolute, un con-
INDEX
1 027
ditioned, see these headings; conditioned, 445 n. 64; subsisting (self - subsis tent), 446 n. 70, 825; substantive, 466, 469 inc!. br. n. 1 92; coherent, 85; struc tured, 554, 860-6 1 , see also System; organized, 554; not accumulated, 86 1 ; extended, 553; complete, 704, cf. xlii; infinite, 454, 458, 460, 533-34, cf. 542, 552, 554, 821 ; imagined, 821 ; possibility of, 454 n. 1 2 1 , 460, 466, 5 5 1 , 553, 588, 86 1 , cf. 203; existence, fonn, relation of, see these headings; manifoldness of, see Manifold; content of, 552, 653; composition of, 443, 469; division (di visibility) of, 443, 5 5 1 -55, 861-62; and parts, xix", xxxviii, 12, 17, 1 1 2- 1 3 , 203, 209, 210, 214, 265 n . 244, 367, 352', 446, 456, 460, 466, 5 4 1 , 552-55 inc!. br. n. 246, 588, 673, 860, cf. 863, see also Part, Synthesis; (internal) con ditions of, 540-42; subordination and coordination in, 1 12; overview of, xix'; outline (sketching) of, 384, 86 1 , 863; (absolute, unconditioned) magnitude of, 460, 546-47, 653 , cf. 458, 533, 843; range of, 653; bounds of, see Boundary; limits of, 46 1 ; internal vs. external growth of, 861 ; (collective) unity of, 103', 265 n. 244, 6 1 0, cf. 706, 707, 843; completeness of, xlii, cf. 443, 740, 825; per fection of, 86 1 ; purpose of, 860, 861 , cf. 863; cognition, presentation of, see these headings; (empirical) intuition of, 456 n. 1 2 1 , 54 1 , 552, cf. 547, 55 1 ; con cept of, 384, 443, 458, 546-47, 860; thought (thinking) of, 1 12, 456, 469, cf. 446 n. 70, 461 , 610; idea of, 89, 384, 435, 445 inc!. n. 64, 525, 860, cf. 673, 706, 861-62; judgment of, 650; distinguishing of, from all others, 862; as equal to itself (as greater than its parts), 17; as a problem, 384; as a purpose, 554 br. n. 246, 861 ; of presentations, 821 , cf. 103'; of a judgment's sphere, 1 12; of acts of understanding, 383; of thought, reason, see these headings; of reason's ob jects, 704; of (a priori, speculative) cognition (cognition[s] as), xix', 27, 89, 97, 99, 97', 669, 863, see also Cognition, Metaphysics; of experience, see Experi ence, Uni iy; of appearances, see Appearance, Magnitude; of nature, things, see these headings; of the combination of things in the universe, 375 ; of (the mem bers of) a series (a series as), 445 inc!. n. 64, 48 1 ; the world as, see World, Na ture; the realm of sensibility as, 594; a (discrete, indetenninate) quantum as, 454 n. 1 19, 554; a body as, 553, cf. 554 br. n. 246, 861 ; matter as, 54 1 ; space as, see Space; real, the soul as not, 404'; the cognitive power as, 829 n. 28; an idea as, xliv; a work (book) as, xix', xliii, cf., 880; a science as, 109; of logiC, 133 n. 202; of pure philosophy, 869, see also Metaphysics; of rational psychology, 361', 382'; see also System, Composite, Combination, Part, Divisibility Will (Wille), as our power of desire, 125 br. n. 4 1 , see also Desire-power of; hu man, 503, 7 8 1 ; manifestations of, 826; appearance of, xxviii; intuition of, 358', cf. 66; the thought of, xxvii-xxviii; as belonging to a thing in itself (the soul), xxvii-xviii, see also Soul; property of, xxviii; freedom of, xxvii-xxviii, xxxii, 79, 476, 496, 503, 659 inc!' br. n. 342, 723 br. n. 300, 78 1 , 826-28 inc!. br. n. 23, see also Freedom; laws of, 79; detennination of, 83 1 ; causality (by means) of, 1 25, 654, cf. 576, 64 1 , 66 1 inc!. br. n. 345, 826, 846, see also Causality; unity of purposes among different wills, 843; morally most perfect, 838; su preme, 838, 843, cf. 661 inc!. br. n. 345, see also Being (Wesen) (supreme), God, Supreme; divine, 727, 846-47, cf. 7 1 7 br. n. 265a, 728; see also Choice-power of; see also Willing
1 028
INDEX
Wille, Emil, 108' br. n. 1 0 1 , 1 82 br. n. 105, 250 br. n. 1 84, 427 br. n. 300, 452 br. n. 105, 603 br. n. 43b, 693 br n. 1 54, 72 1 br. n. 280, 745 br. n. 60, 781 br. n. 230, 843 br. n. 9 1 Willing (wollen), 576, 727, 826 incl. br. n . 1 6 , see also Will, Object Wisdom or wise (Weisheit, weise), 385 incl. br. n. 175, xi br. n. 52, xxxiii, xxxv, 397, 40 1 , 452, 597-98, 653, 655-57 incl. br. n. 3 1 8, 7 1 5- 1 6 incl. n. 250, 725, 727, 729, 8 1 3, 829, 854-55, 878, 883 br. n. 279, supreme (divine), 655-56 incl. br. n. 3 1 8, 70 1 , 7 19, 727, 729, cf. xxxiii, 653, 657, 701 , 7 1 5- 1 6, 725, 839, 846, 854-55, see also Being (Wesen) (supreme), God, Supreme Wit (Witz), see Ingenuity Wolff, Baron Christian von, xxxvi-xxxvii incl. br. n. 134, 35 br. n. 23a, 6 1 , 246 br. n. 1 60, 305 br. n. 169d, 3 1 2 br. n. 196, 884; cf. 33 br. n. I S , 329, 864 Wolff, Robert Paul, S br. n., 1 59, 9 1 br. n. 1 1 3, 95' br. n. 58, 129 br. n. 1 84, 176 br. n. 46, 197 br. n. 1 , 202 br. n. 35, 207 br. n. 70, 2 1 8 br. n. 3, 224 br. n. 46, 232 br. n. 88, 256 br. n. 206, 265 br. n. I , 274 br. n. 38, 294 br. n. 125 Work (Werk, Arbeit), ii incl. br. n. I, vi incl. n. 3, vii' br. n. 7, xv', xvi', xviii'-xx', xi br. n. 5 1 , xvi br. n. 72, xxiv-xxxv, xxxvi br. n. 1 34, xxxvii, xliii-xliv inc!. br. n. 149, 1 br. n. 152, 15 br. n. 225, 27, 37 br. n. 30, 72 br. n. 1 83, 75 br. n. 2 1 , 83 br. n. 59, 1 08, 1 1 8' br. n. 142, 1 69 br. n. 3, 1 9 1 , 233, 349 br. n. 1, 358, 366 br. n. 94, 372 br. n. 1 1 6, 402 n. 25, 414 br. n. 270, 432, 489 br. n. 266, 641 br. n. 237, 650 br. n. 285, 666, 680 br. n. 7 1 , 723 br. n. 300, 759, 769 br. n. 1 8 1 , 789, 844 br. n . 96, 868 br. n . 1 96, 879, 880, cf. 735, see also Treatise, Project, Job World (Welt), xxxi-xxxii, 364', 479, 48 1 , 482, 539-40, 569, 589 incl. br. n. 385, 645, 646, 648, 655, 660, 7 1 2 br. n. 237, 735, 777, is the sum of all possible in tuitions, 479, see also Intuition; is the sum (realm, object) of (all) possible ex perience(s), 28 1 , 465, 479, 619, cf. 548, 724, see also Experience; is the (a) sum (whole) of (all) appearances, 3 1 2, 391, 446-47, 480, 482, 534-35, 587, 5 9 1 , 699 br. n. 1 86, 700, 724, cf. 383', 549, 8 2 1 incl. br. n . 399, 839, see also Ap pearance, Nature; is the entire series of appearances, 532; is the absolute total ity of the sum of existing things, 447, see also Totality; as finite or infinite, 455, 456 incl. n. 1 2 1 , 46 1 inc!. br. n. 1 54, S I S, 53 1 -34, 546 n. 229, 548, 549 inc!. n. 23 1 , 82 1 , cf. 454, 455-60, 547; of sense, does not contain unconditioned com pleteness (can never be given wholly), 544, 550, see also Unconditioned; of sense, everything in it has empirically conditioned existence, 589, cf. 59 1 , 593, see also Existence; as a thing in itself, see Thing in itself; as too large or too small for one's concept, 5 1 4-15, cf. 5 16-1 7; as arising of itself, 455; as a nec essary being, 48 1 , 484, 5 1 6, cf. 480, 482, 483, 530; as an object, see Object; as the object of cosmology, 39 1 , see also Cosmology, Cosmological; there is in it no break, no leap, no accident, no fate, 280-8 1 incl. br. ns. 70, 72, and 76; as such, 99, 46 1 ; possible, 633; actual, 459 br. n. 1 3 1 ; present, 648, 650; this, 383', 425, 426, 461, 637, 660, 705, 82 1 , 836, 843; sensible (of sense), xxviii, 6, 9, 62 incl. br. n. l S I , 1 20, 305 n. 169 inc!. br. n. 169g, 1 86 br. n. 1 34, 3 1 1 , 3 1 2 incl. br. n. 197, 3 1 3 incl. br. n. 199, 409, 447, 46 1 , 465, 480, 482, 485, 535-37, 543, 544, 548-50 inc!. n. 23 1 , 560, 562, 564, 566-69, 572, 574, 586-94, 6 1 8, 6 1 9, 633. 637-38, 650, 700, 705-7, 709, 724, 800, 808, 821 incl. br. n. 399, 8 3 1 ,
INDEX
1 029
836, 839-40, 842-43, see also Freedom; phenomenal, given, natural, particu lar, see these headings; external, 1 20; material, 394'; corporeal, 1 7, 19 n. 235, 383', 394'-95'; our solar, 69 1 ; on the large and the small scale, 448; matenal and mental (in Hume), 649 br. n. 282; intelligible, intellectual, of understand ing, moral, ideal, future, see these headings; (an)other, 5 3 1 , 853, 855, 857, 880, 88 1 ; better, 426; invisible but hoped for, 84 1 , cf. 840; of intelligences, 843; of spiritual natures, 808; whole (of), 1 1 2, 265 n. 244, 434, 446-47 incl. n. 70, 454-56, 46 1 , 533-35, 545-47, 550, 705-7, 7 1 5 , 843, see also Whole, Unity; (sum-)total, 459, 5 1 1 ; totality of, 547; system, 69 1 ; systematic organization of, 709, cf. 701 , 707, 725; unity, magnitude of, see these headings; edifice, xxii n. 93, 374, 652, 726; structure, 3 1 3, cf. 653-54; order (coherence, arrangement) of (in), 375, 494, 649 br. n. 280, 650, 653, 655-57, 660, 69 1 , 701 , 7 14, 724-28, 802, 827; fonn of (in), 655, 664; combination of, 664; law of, 843; of sense, character of, 6 1 8, 633, 660, 880; properties of, 707; states, relation, change(s), series of (in), see these headings; realities in, 706; matter (material) of (in), 1 7 , 1 9 br. n . 235, 499 br. n. 44, 646, 655; manifold(ness) of (in), 460, 650, 706; partes) of, 456 incl. n. 1 2 1 , 464, 480, 568, 653, 69 1 , cf. 463, 509; motions of, 457 n. 1 26, 478; connection (linkage) in, 647 inc I. br. n. 269, 709, 7 1 4; appear ance(s) of (in), 472, 494, 535, 549, 550, 566, 574, 586, 588, 590, 646, 854, see also Appearance; things of (in), 454, 463, 464, 478, 494, 588, 632 inel. br. n. 1 92, 648, 650, 653, 655, 663, 698, 705, 709, 7 1 5, 725, 729, 800, 838, cf. 374-75, see also Thing: substance(s) of (in), see Substance; objects of (in), 62-63 inel. br. n. 1 5 1 , 5 1 7, 650, 801 , see also Object; a subject of, 567-69, cf. 572, see also Subject; living beings in, 425; inhabitants on another, see Inhabitants; cor relate of, 457; boundary of, see Boundary; limits of, 46 1 ; (first) beginning (ori gin) of, xiv', 1 8, 22, 353, 446, 454, 455, 459-6 1 incl. br. n. 1 3 1 , 472, 474, 476, 477, 49 1 , 494, 496, 499 n. 44, 509, 5 14- 1 5 , 529, 548, 768, see also Time; ends, 549; course of, 478, 523; epochs of, 87 1 ; events (in), 473, 475, 5 1 6, 560-64, 568; (causes and) effects in, xxviii, 568-69, 70 1 , cf. 280, 572, 577, see also Cause, Freedom; causality in, 562, 706, cf. 572, see also Causality; predispo sitions in, 727; purposiveness of, 650, 655, 657, 725-27, 802, 827; beauty of, 650; happiness in, 838; morality in, 843; perfection of, 728; highest (greatest) good of, 842, 843 incl. br. n. 93, 847; soul, see Soul; a being (thing, cause, power) distinct from (apart from, outside), 479-8 1 , 483, 484, 496, 499 br. n. 44, 59 1 , 6 1 8, 645, 646, 664, 724-25, cf. 435, 498, 506 n. 74, 593-95, 629, 650, 65 1 , 669, 672, 700, 705-7, 723, see also Being (Wesen) (supreme), Cause (su preme), God; cause of, see Cause; creator of, 1 1 2 incl. br. n. 233, 655; architect of, 655 ; originator (author) of, xxxiii, 496, 652 incl. br. ns. 299 and 301 , 656 inel. br. n. 323, 657, 660, 725, 854; ruler, governor of, see these headings; pos sibility of, 480. 705; reality, existence, contingency, presentation, thought, con cept of, see these headings; idea(s) (of), 447 incl. br. n. 76, 5 1 7, 836, 843-44; observation (observer) of, 656, 726; intuition of, 120, 305 n. 169, 461 . 547, 55 1 ; cognition of, see Cognition; acquaintance with, 650-5 1 ; knowledge of, 728, cf. 650-5 1 ; explaining of, 705; judgments (assertion) about, 1 9 br. n. 235 ; proofs usable for, 424-25; use, of our reason, 726; systems of, 3 1 3, 326; cognitions (a step) (going) beyond (outside), 6, 409, 594, cf. 9, 6 19, 637; see also Universe
1030
INDEX
Worthiness or worthy (Wurdig[keit], verdient), xxxiii, xliii, 107, 802, 834, 836-38, 839 br. n. 74, 841-42, cf. 207, 373, 840, 844 X, as the unknown, 1 3 incl. hr. n. 2 1 2, 404 incl. hr. n. 29,
see also Unknown; as something (an object) as such, 1 04'-5', cf. 305 n. 169, see also As such; as the transcendental object, 109', 305 n. 1 69, see also Transcendental (object); as the transcendental subject, 404, see also Transcendental (subject); as the complete experience of the object, 1 1 n. 200
youth(s)
(Jugend), xxxi, 782-83
Zedlitz, Karl Abraham Freiherr von, iii-vi inc!. n. 3 and br. ns. 2 and 4 Zeno of Elea, 530 incl. br. n. 1 54 Zero (null, zero), 2 1 0, 253, 255, 338, 630, cf. 1 82, 208-9, 2 17-1 8, 254, 320 inc!. br. n. 29, 329